<?xml version="1.0" encoding="UTF-8"?>

<ThML>
<ThML.head>
<!-- Copyright Christian Classics Ethereal Library -->

<generalInfo>
<description>Louis Berkhof, who was both President of Calvin Seminary and a professor of Systematic Theology, offers critical insight in this astounding book.  Systematic Theology covers six important theological doctrines, each topic bringing the reader closer to understanding his or her own faith. This text is considered by many to be the best book on systematic theology available. For those who are in seminary, or those who are simply interested in building their knowledge of God, this book is an absolute must read.<br />Luke Getz<br />CCEL Staff Writer
</description>
<pubHistory />
<comments />
</generalInfo>

<printSourceInfo>
<published>London: Banner of Truth Trust, 1969</published>
</printSourceInfo>

<electronicEdInfo>
<publisherID>ccel</publisherID>
<authorID>berkhof</authorID>
<bookID>systematictheology</bookID>
<workID>systematictheology</workID>
<version>1.0</version>
<editorialComments />
<revisionHistory />
<status />

<DC>
<DC.Title>Systematic Theology</DC.Title>
<DC.Creator scheme="short-form" sub="Author">Louis Berkhof</DC.Creator>
<DC.Creator scheme="file-as" sub="Author">Berkhof, Louis (1873-1957)</DC.Creator>
<DC.Creator scheme="ccel" sub="Author">berkhof</DC.Creator>
<DC.Publisher>Grand Rapids, MI: Christian Classics Ethereal Library</DC.Publisher>
<DC.Subject scheme="LCCN">BT21.2 .B4 1969</DC.Subject>
<DC.Subject scheme="lcsh1">Doctrinal theology</DC.Subject>
    <DC.Subject scheme="lcsh2">Doctrine and dogma</DC.Subject>
    <DC.Subject scheme="ccel">All; History;</DC.Subject>
<DC.Contributor sub="Digitizer" />
<DC.Date sub="Created">2015-06-16</DC.Date>
<DC.Type>Text.Monograph</DC.Type>
<DC.Format scheme="IMT">text/html</DC.Format>
<DC.Identifier scheme="URL">/ccel/berkhof/systematictheology.html</DC.Identifier>
<DC.Identifier scheme="ISBN" />
<DC.Source>Biblical Training</DC.Source>
<DC.Source scheme="URL">biblicaltraining.org</DC.Source>
<DC.Language scheme="ISO639-3">eng</DC.Language>
<DC.Rights>Public Domain</DC.Rights>
</DC>

</electronicEdInfo>


<style type="text/css">
.ital	{ font-style:italic }
.hangingindent	{ padding-left:22px; text-indent:-22px }
hr	{ width:50% }
table	{ border:1px solid black }
tr	{ border:1px solid black }
td	{ border:1px solid black }
</style>

<style type="text/xcss">
<selector class="ital">
  <property name="font-style" value="italic" />
</selector>
<selector class="hangingindent">
  <property name="padding-left" value="22px" />
  <property name="text-indent" value="-22px" />
</selector>
<selector element="hr">
  <property name="width" value="50%" />
</selector>
<selector element="table">
  <property name="border" value="1px solid black" />
</selector>
<selector element="tr">
  <property name="border" value="1px solid black" />
</selector>
<selector element="td">
  <property name="border" value="1px solid black" />
</selector>
</style>


</ThML.head>
<ThML.body xml:space="preserve">

    <div1 id="i" next="ii" prev="toc" title="Title Page">
<h1 id="i-p0.1">Systematic Theology</h1>
<hr />
<h2 id="i-p0.3">by Louis Berkhof</h2>

</div1>

    <div1 id="ii" next="iii" prev="i" title="Preface">
<!-- *PREFACE* -->

<h2 id="ii-p0.1">Preface</h2>
<p id="ii-p1" shownumber="no">Now that my  <span class="ital" id="ii-p1.1">Systematic Theology</span> is again
being reprinted, the Preface can be very brief. It is not necessary to say much about the nature of the work,
since it has been before the public for more than fifteen years and has been used
extensively. I have every reason to be grateful for its kind reception, for the favourable
testimony of many reviewers, and for the fact that the book is now used as a textbook in
many Theological Seminaries and Bible Schools in our country, and that requests
were even received from abroad for permission to translate it into other languages. These are
blessings which I had not anticipated, and for which I am deeply grateful to God. To Him
be all the honor. And if the work may continue to be a blessing in many sections of the
Church of Jesus Christ, it will but increase my recognition of the abundant grace of
God.</p>
<p id="ii-p2" shownumber="no">L. Berkhof</p>
<p id="ii-p3" shownumber="no"> <span class="ital" id="ii-p3.1">Grand Rapids, Michigan,</span></p>
<p id="ii-p4" shownumber="no"> <span class="ital" id="ii-p4.1">August 1, 1949.</span></p>
</div1>

    <div1 id="iii" next="iii.i" prev="ii" title="Part One: The Doctrine of God">

<h2 id="iii-p0.1">PART ONE: THE DOCTRINE OF GOD</h2>

      <div2 id="iii.i" next="iii.i.i" prev="iii" title="The Being of God">
<h2 id="iii.i-p0.1">THE BEING OF GOD</h2>

        <div3 id="iii.i.i" next="iii.i.ii" prev="iii.i" title="I. The Existence of God">
<h2 id="iii.i.i-p0.1">I.The Existence of God</h2>
<h4 id="iii.i.i-p0.2">A.PLACE OF THE DOCTRINE OF GOD IN DOGMATICS</h4>
<p id="iii.i.i-p1" shownumber="no">WORKS on dogmatic or systematic theology generally begin with the doctrine of
God. The prevailing opinion has always recognized this as the most logical
procedure and still points in the same direction. In many instances even they
whose fundamental principles would seem to require another arrangement, continue the
traditional practice. There are good reasons for starting with the doctrine of God,
if we proceed on the assumption that theology is the systematized knowledge
of God, of whom, through whom, and unto whom, are all things. Instead of being surprised that
Dogmatics should begin with the doctrine of God, we might well expect it to be a study of
God throughout what it is intended to be, though only the first locus deals with God
directly, while the succeeding ones treat of Him more indirectly. We start the
study of theology with two presuppositions, namely (1) that God exists, and (2) that He has
revealed Himself in His divine Word. And for that reason it is not impossible for us to start
with the study of God. We can turn to His revelation, in order to learn what He has
revealed concerning Himself and concerning His relation to His creatures. Attempts have been
made in the course of time to distribute the material of Dogmatics in such a way as
to exhibit clearly that it is, not merely in one locus, but in its entirety, a study of
God. This was done by the application of the trinitarian method, which arranges the
subject-matter of Dogmatics under the three headings of (1) the Father (2) the Son, and
(3) the Holy Spirit. That method was applied in some of the earlier systematic works, was
restored to favor by Hegel, and
can still be seen in Martensen's  <span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p1.1">Christian Dogmatics.</span> A similar attempt
was made by Breckenridge, when he divided the subject-matter of
Dogmatics into (1) The Knowledge of God Objectively Considered, and (2) The Knowledge of
God Subjectively Considered. Neither one of these can be called very
successful.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p2" shownumber="no">Up to the beginning of the nineteenth century the
practice was all but general to begin the study of Dogmatics with the doctrine of God; but a change came
about under the influence of Schleiermacher, who sought to safeguard the
scientific character of theology by the introduction of a new method. The religious
consciousness of man was substituted for the Word of God as the source of theology. Faith in
Scripture as an authoritative revelation of God was discredited, and human insight based
on man's own emotional or rational apprehension became the standard
of religious thought. Religion gradually took the place of God as the object of theology. Man
ceased to recognize the knowledge of God as something that was<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p2.1">given</span> in Scripture, and began to pride himself on being a seeker after God. In course of time it became
rather common to speak of man's discovering God, as if man ever discovered Him; and every
discovery that was made in the process was dignified with the name of
"revelation." God came in at the end of a syllogism, or as the last link in a chain of reasoning,
or as the cap-stone of a structure of human thought. Under such circumstances it was but natural
that some should regard it as incongruous to begin Dogmatics with the study of
God. It is rather surprising that so many, in spite of their subjectivism, continued the traditional
arrangement.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p3" shownumber="no">Some, however, sensed the incongruity and struck out in a
different way. Schleiermacher's dogmatic work is devoted to a study and analysis of the
religious consciousness and of the doctrines therein implied. He does not deal
with the doctrine of God connectedly, but only in fragments, and concludes his work with a
discussion of the Trinity. His starting point is anthropological rather than
theological. Some of the mediating theologians were influenced to such an extent by
Schleiermacher that they logically began their dogmatic treatises with the study of man. Even in
the present day this arrangement is occasionally followed. A striking example of it is
found in the work of O. A. Curtis on<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p3.1"> The Christian Faith.</span> This begins
with the doctrine of man and concludes with the doctrine of God. Ritschlian theology might seem to
call for still another starting point, since it finds the objective revelation of God, not
in the Bible as the divinely inspired Word, but in Christ as the Founder of the Kingdom
of God, and considers the idea of the Kingdom as the central and all-controlling
concept of theology. However, Ritschlian dogmaticians, such as Herrmann. Haering, and Kaftan
follow, at least formally, the usual order. At the same time there are several
theologians who in their works begin the discussion of dogmatics proper with the doctrine
of Christ or of His redemptive
work. T. B. Strong distinguishes between<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p3.2">theology</span> and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p3.3"> Christian theology,</span> defines the latter as "the expression and analysis of the
Incarnation of Jesus Christ," and makes the incarnation the dominating concept throughout his<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p3.4"> Manual of Theology.</span></p>

<h4 id="iii.i.i-p3.5">B. SCRIPTURE PROOF FOR THE EXISTENCE OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.i-p4" shownumber="no">For us the existence of God is the great presupposition
of theology. There is no sense in speaking of the knowledge of God, unless it may be assumed that God
exists. The presupposition of Christian theology is of a very definite type. The
assumption is not merely that there is something, some idea or ideal, some power or
purposeful tendency, to which the name of God may be applied, but that there is a
self-existent, selfconscious, personal Being, which is the origin of all things, and which
transcends the entire creation, but is at the same time immanent in every part
of it. The question may be raised, whether this is a reasonable assumption, and this question may
be answered in the affirmative. This does not mean, however, that the existence of
God is capable of a logical demonstration that leaves no room whatever for doubt; but it does
mean that, while the truth of God's existence is accepted by faith, this faith is
based on reliable information. While Reformed theology regards the existence of God as an
entirely reasonable assumption, it does not claim the ability to demonstrate this
by rational argumentation. Dr. Kuyper speaks as follows of the attempt to do this:
"The attempt to prove God's existence is either useless or unsuccessful. It is useless
if the searcher believes that God is a rewarder of those who seek Him. And it is
unsuccessful if it is an attempt to force a person who does not have this<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p4.1">
pistis</span> by means of argumentation to an acknowledgment in a logical sense."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.i-p4.2" n="1" place="foot"> <span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p4.3">Dict. Dogm., De Deo I,</span> p. 77 (translation mine — L.B.). </note></p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p5" shownumber="no">The Christian accepts the truth of the existence of God
by faith. But this faith is not a blind faith, but a faith that is based on evidence, and the evidence is
found primarily in Scripture as the inspired Word of God, and secondarily in God's
revelation in nature. Scripture proof on this point does not come to us in the form of an
explicit declaration, and much less in the form of a logical argument. In that sense the Bible
does not prove the existence of God. The closest it comes to a declaration is perhaps
in <scripRef id="iii.i.i-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.6" parsed="|Heb|11|6|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:6">Heb. 11:6</scripRef>... "for he that cometh to God must believe that He is, and that He is
a rewarder of them that seek after Him." It presupposes the existence of God in its
very opening statement, "In the beginning God created the heavens and the earth." Not
only does it describe God as the Creator of all things, but also as the Upholder of all His
creatures, and as the Ruler of the destinies of individuals and nations. It testifies to the
fact that God works
all things according to the counsel of His will, and reveals the gradual
realization of His great purpose of redemption. The preparation for this work, especially
in the choice and guidance of the old covenant people of Israel, is clearly seen in the
Old Testament, and the initial culmination of it in the Person and work of Christ stands
out with great clarity on the pages of the New Testament. God is seen on almost every page
of Holy
Writ as He reveals Himself in words and actions. This revelation of God
is the basis of
our faith in the existence of God, and makes this an entirely reasonable
faith. It should
be remarked, however, that it is only by faith that we accept the
revelation of God, and
that we obtain a real insight into its contents. Jesus said, "If
any man will do his will, he shall know of the doctrine, whether it be of God, or whether I speak of
myself," <scripRef id="iii.i.i-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:John.7.17" parsed="|John|7|17|0|0" passage="John 7:17">John 7:17</scripRef>. It is this intensive knowledge, resulting from intimate communion
with God,
which Hosea has in mind when he says, "And let us know, let us
follow on to know the
Lord," <scripRef id="iii.i.i-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Hos.6.3" parsed="|Hos|6|3|0|0" passage="Hos. 6:3">Hos. 6:3</scripRef>. The unbeliever has no real understanding of the
Word of God. The
words of Paul are very much to the point in this connection: "Where
is the wise? where is the scribe? where is the disputer of this age (world)?
Hath not God made foolish the wisdom of the world? For, seeing that in the wisdom of God the world
through its wisdom knew not God, it was God's good pleasure through the foolishness
of the
preaching to
save them that believe," <scripRef id="iii.i.i-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.20" parsed="|1Cor|1|20|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:20">I Cor. 1:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.i-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.21" parsed="|1Cor|1|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:21">21</scripRef>.</p>
<h4 id="iii.i.i-p5.6">C. DENIAL OF THE EXISTENCE OF GOD IN ITS VARIOUS FORMS</h4>
<p id="iii.i.i-p6" shownumber="no">Students of Comparitive Religion and missionaries often testify to the fact that the
idea of God is practically universal in the human race. It is found even
among the most
uncivilized nations and tribes of the world. This does not mean,
however, that there are
no individuals who deny the existence of God altogether, nor even that
there is not a
goodly number in Christian lands who deny the existence of God as He is
revealed in
Scripture, a self-existent and self-conscious Person of infinite
perfections, who works all things according to a pre-determined plan. It is the latter denial that
we have in mind
particularly here. This may and has assumed various forms in the course
of history.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p7" shownumber="no"> 1. ABSOLUTE DENIAL OF THE EXISTENCE OF GOD. As stated above, there is strong evidence for the universal presence of the idea of God in the human
mind, even amongtribes which are uncivilized and have not felt the impact of special
revelation. In view of
this fact some go so far as to deny that there are people who deny the
existence of God,
real atheists; but this denial is contradicted by the facts. It is
customary to distinguish
two kinds, namely, practical and theoretical atheists. The former are
simply godless
persons, who in their practical life do not reckon with God, but live as
if there were no God. The latter are, as a rule, of a more intellectual kind, and base
their denial on a
process of reasoning. They seek to prove by what seem to them conclusive
rational arguments, that there is no God. In view of the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p7.1">semen religionis</span> implanted in every man by his creation in the image of God, it is safe to assume that no one is
born an atheist. In the last analysis atheism results from the perverted moral state of man
and from his desire to escape from God. It is deliberately blind to and suppresses
the most
fundamental instinct of man, the deepest needs of the soul, the highest
aspirations of
the human spirit, and the longings of a heart that gropes after some
higher Being. This
practical or intellectual suppression of the operation of the <span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p7.2">semen religionis</span> often
involves prolonged and painful struggles.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p8" shownumber="no">There can be no doubt about the existence of practical
atheists, since both Scripture and experience testify to it. <scripRef id="iii.i.i-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.10.4" parsed="|Ps|10|4|0|0" passage="Psalm 10:4">Psalm 10:4</scripRef>b declares of the wicked,
"All his thoughts are, There is no
God." According to <scripRef id="iii.i.i-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.14.1" parsed="|Ps|14|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 14:1">Ps. 14:1</scripRef> "The fool hath said in his heart, There
is no God." And Paul reminds the Ephesians that they were formerly
"without God in the
world," <scripRef id="iii.i.i-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.12" parsed="|Eph|2|12|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:12">Eph. 2:12</scripRef>. Experience also testifies abundantly to their
presence in the world. They are not necessarily notoriously wicked in the eyes
of men, but may belong to the so-called "decent men of the world," though respectably
indifferent to spiritual things. Such people are often quite conscious of the fact that they are out of
harmony with God,
dread to think of meeting Him, and try to forget about Him. They seem to
take a secret
delight in parading their- atheism when they have smooth sailing, but
have been
known to get down on their knees for prayer when their life was suddenly
endangered.
At the present time thousands of these practical atheists belong to the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p8.4">
American
Association for the Advancement of
Atheism.</span></p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p9" shownumber="no">Theoretical atheists are of a different kind. They are
usually of a more intellectual type and attempt to justify the assertion that there is no God by
rational argumentation. Prof. Flint distinguishes three kinds of theoretical
atheism, namely, (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p9.1"> dogmatic atheism,</span> which flatly
denies that there is a Divine Being; (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p9.2">
sceptical atheism,</span>
which doubts the ability of the human mind to determine, whether or not there is a God;
and (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p9.3">critical atheism,</span> which maintains that there is no valid proof for the existence of God.
These often go hand in hand, but even the most modest of them really
pronounces all belief in God a delusion.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.i-p9.4" n="2" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p9.5">Anti-Theistic Theories,</span> p.4 f.</note> In this division, it will be noticed,
agnosticism also appears as a sort of atheism, a classification which many agnostics resent. But it should be
borne in mind
that agnosticism respecting the existence of God, while allowing the
possibility of His reality, leaves us without an object of worship and adoration just as
much as dogmatic
atheism does. However the real atheist is the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p9.6">dogmatic atheist,</span>the man who makes the positive assertion that there is no God. Such an assertion may mean one
of two things:
either that he recognizes no god of any kind, sets up no idol for
himself, or that he does
not recognize the God of Scripture. Now there are very few atheists who
do not in
practical life fashion some sort of god for themselves. There is a far
greater number who
theoretically set aside any and every god; and there is a still greater
number that has
broken with the God of Scripture. Theoretical atheism is generally rooted
in some
scientific or philosophical theory. Materialistic Monism in its various
forms and atheism
usually go hand in hand. Absolute subjective Idealism may still leave us
the idea of
God, but denies that there is any corresponding reality. To the modern
Humanist "God" simply
means "the Spirit of humanity," "the Sense of wholeness,"
"the Racial Goal" and
other abstractions of that kind. Other theories not only leave room for
God, but also
pretend to maintain His existence, but certainly exclude the God of
theism, a supreme
personal Being, Creator, Preserver, and Ruler of the universe, distinct
from His creation,
and yet everywhere present in it. Pantheism merges the natural and supernatural,
the finite and infinite, into one substance. It often speaks
of God as the hidden ground of the phenomenal world, but does not conceive of Him as personal, and
therefore as
endowed with intelligence and will. It boldly declares that all is God, and
thus engages
in what
Brightman calls "the expansion of God," so that we get "too much
of God," seeing that He also includes all the evil of the world. It excludes the
God of Scripture,
and in so far is clearly atheistic. Spinoza may be called "the
God-intoxicated man," but his God is certainly not the God whom Christians worship and adore.
Surely, there can
be no doubt about the presence of theoretical atheists in the world.
When David Hume
expressed doubt as to the existence of a dogmatic atheist, Baron
d'Holbach replied, "My
dear sir, you are at this moment sitting at table with seventeen such
persons." They who
are agnostic respecting the existence of God may differ somewhat from the
dogmatic
atheist, but they, as well as the latter, leave us without a God.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p10" shownumber="no"> 2. PRESENT DAY FALSE CONCEPTIONS OF GOD INVOLVING A DENIAL OF THE TRUE GOD.
There are several false conceptions of God current in our day, which
involve a denial of
the theistic conception of God. A brief indication of the most important
of these must suffice
in this connection.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p11" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p11.1"> An immanent and impersonal God.</span> Theism has
always believed in a God who is both transcendent and immanent. Deism removed God from the world, and stressed
His transcendence at the expense of His immanence. Under the influence
of Pantheism,
however, the pendulum swung in the other direction. It identified God and
the world,
and did not recognize a Divine Being, distinct from, and infinitely
exalted above, His creation. Through Schleiermacher the tendency to make God continuous with
the world gained a footing in theology. He completely ignores the transcendent
God, and
recognizes only a God that can be known by human experience and
manifests Himself
in Christian consciousness as Absolute Causality, to which a feeling of
absolute
dependence corresponds. The attributes we ascribe to God are in this
view merely
symbolical expressions of the various modes of this feeling of
dependence, subjective
ideas without any corresponding reality. His earlier and his later
representations of God
seem to differ somewhat, and interpreters of Schleiermacher differ as to
the way in
which his statements must be harmonized. Brunner would seem to be quite
correct,
however, when he says that with him the universe takes the place of God,
though the latter name is used; and that he conceives of God both as identical
with the universe
and as the unity lying behind it. It often seems as if his distinction
between God and the
world is only an ideal one, namely, the distinction between the world as
a unity and the
world in its manifold manifestations. He frequently speaks of God as the
"Universum"
or the "Welt-All," and argues against the personality of God;
though, inconsistently,
also speaking as if we could have communion with Him in Christ. These
views of
Schleiermacher, making God continuous with the world, largely dominated
the
theology of the past century, and it is this view that Barth is
combatting with his strong emphasis on God
as "the Wholly Other."</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p12" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p12.1">A finite and personal God.</span> The idea of a
finite god or gods is not new, but as old as
Polytheism and Henotheism. The idea fits in with Pluralism, but not with
philosophical
Monism or theological Monotheism. Theism has always regarded God as an
absolute
personal Being of infinite perfections. During the nineteenth century,
when monistic
philosophy was in the ascendant, it became rather common to identify the
God of
theology with the Absolute of philosophy. Toward the end of the century,
however, the
term "Absolute," as a designation of God, fell into disfavor,
partly because of its
agnostic and pantheistic implications, and partly as the result of the
opposition to the
idea of the "Absolute" in philosophy, and of the desire to
exclude all metaphysics from theology. Bradley regarded the God of the Christian religion as a part
of the Absolute,
and James pleaded for a conception of God that was more in harmony with
human
experience than the idea of an infinite God. He eliminates from God the
metaphysical
attributes of self-existence, infinity, and immutability, and makes the
moral attributes
supreme. God has an environment, exists in time, and works out a history
just like
ourselves. Because of the evil that is in the world, He must be thought
of as limited in
knowledge or power, or in both. The condition of the world makes it
impossible to
believe in a good God infinite in knowledge and power. The existence of
a larger power
which is friendly to man and with which he can commune meets all the
practical needs
and experiences of religion. James conceived of this power as personal,
but was not
willing to express himself as to whether he believed in one finite God
or a number of
them. Bergson added to this conception of James the idea of a struggling
and growing
God, constantly drawing upon his environment. Others who defended the
idea of a
finite God, though in different ways, are Hobhouse, Schiller, James
Ward, Rashdall, and
H. G. Wells.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p13" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p13.1"> God as the personification of a mere abstract idea.</span> It has become
quite the vogue in modern liberal theology to regard the name "God" as a mere
symbol, standing for some cosmic process, some universal will or power, or some lofty and
comprehensive ideal. The statement is repeatedly made that, if God once created
man in His image, man is
now returning the compliment by creating God in his (man's) image. It is
said of Harry
Elmer Barnes that he once said in one of his laboratory classes:
"Gentlemen, we shall now proceed to create God." That was a very blunt expression of a
rather common idea.
Most of those who reject the theistic view of God still profess faith in
God, but He is a
God of their own imagination. The form which He assumes at any
particular time
depends, according to Shailer Mathews, on the thought patterns of that
day. If in pre-war times the controlling pattern was that of an autocratic sovereign,
demanding
absolute obedience, now it is that of a democratic ruler eager to serve
all his subjects.
Since the days of Comte there has been a tendency to personify the
social order of
humanity as a whole and to worship this personification. The so-called
Meliorists or
Social Theologians reveal a tendency to identify God in some way with
the social order.
And the New Psychologists inform us that the idea of God is a projection
of the human
mind, which in its early stages is inclined to make images of its
experiences and to
clothe them with quasi-personality. Leuba is of the opinion that this
illusion of God has
served a useful purpose, but that the time is coming when the idea of
God will be no
more needed. A few definitions will serve to show the present day trend.
"God is the
immanent spirit of the community" (Royce). He is "that quality
in human society which
supports and enriches humanity in its spiritual quest" (Gerald
Birney Smith). "God is the totality of relations constituting the whole social order of growing
humanity" (E. S.
Ames). "The word 'god' is a symbol to designate the universe in its
ideal forming
capacity"
(G. B. Foster). "God is our conception, born of social experience, of the personality-evolving and personally responsive elements of our cosmic
environment
with which we are organically related" (Shailer Mathews). It need
hardly be said that
the God so defined is not a personal God and does not answer to the
deepest needs of the human heart.</p>

<h4 id="iii.i.i-p13.2">D. THE SO CALLED PRROOFS FOR THE EXISTENCE OF GOD.</h4>
<p id="iii.i.i-p14" shownumber="no">In course of time certain rational arguments for the
existence of God were developed, and found a foothold in theology especially through the influence
of Wolff.
Some of these were in essence already suggested by Plato and Aristotle,
and others were
added in modern times by students of the Philosophy of Religion. Only
the most
common of these arguments can be mentioned here.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p15" shownumber="no">1. THE ONTOLOGICAL ARGUMENT.
This has been presented in various forms by Anselm, Descartes, Samuel Clarke, and others. It has been stated in its
most perfect
form by Anselm. He argues that man has the idea of an absolutely perfect
being; that
existence is an attribute of perfection; and that therefore an
absolutely perfect being
must exist. But it is quite evident that we cannot conclude from
abstract thought to real
existence. The fact that we have an idea of God does not yet prove His
objective
existence. Moreover, this argument tacitly assumes, as already existing
in the human
mind, the very knowledge of God's existence which it would derive from
logical
demonstration. Kant stressed the untenableness of this argument, but
Hegel hailed it as
the one great argument for the existence of God. Some modern Idealists
suggested that
it might better be cast into a somewhat different form, which Hocking
called "the report
of experience." By virtue of it we can say, "I have an idea of
God, therefore I have an
experience of
God."</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p16" shownumber="no">2. THE COSMOLIGICAL ARGUMENT.
This has also appeared in several forms. In general it runs as follows: Every existing thing in the world must have
an adequate
cause; and if this is so, the universe must also have an adequate cause,
that is a cause
which is indefinitely great. However, the argument did not carry general
conviction.
Hume called the law of causation itself in question, and Kant pointed
out that, if every
existing thing has an adequate cause, this also applies to God, and that
we are thus led
to an endless chain. Moreover, the argument does not necessitate the
assumption that
the cosmos had a single cause, a personal and absolute cause, — and
therefore falls
short of proving the existence of God. This difficulty led to a slightly
different
construction of the argument, as, for instance, by B. P. Bowne. The
material universe
appears as an interacting system, and therefore as a unit, consisting of
several parts.
Hence there must be a unitary Agent that mediates the interaction of the
various parts or is the dynamic ground of their being.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p17" shownumber="no">3. THE TELEOLIGICAL ARGUMENT. This is also a causal argument, and is really but an extension of the preceding one. It may be stated in the following form:
The world
everywhere reveals intelligence, order, harmony, and purpose, and thus
implies the
existence of an intelligent and purposeful being, adequate to the
production of such a
world. Kant regards this argument as the best of the three which were
named, but
claims that it does not prove the existence of God, nor of a Creator,
but only of a great
architect who fashioned the world. It is superior to the cosmological
argument in that it
makes explicit what is not stated in the latter, namely, that the world
contains evidences
of intelligence and purpose, and thus leads on to the existence of a
conscious, and
intelligent, and purposeful being. That this being was the Creator of
the world does not
necessarily
follow. "The teleological evidence," says Wright,<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.i-p17.1" n="3" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p17.2">A Student's Philosophy of Religion,</span> p.341.</note> "merely indicates the probable existence of a Mind that is, at least in considerable measure,
in control of the
world process, — enough to account for the amount of teleology apparent
in it." Hegel
treated this argument as a valid but subordinate one. The Social
Theologians of our day
reject it along with all the other arguments as so much rubbish, but the
New Theists retain
it.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p18" shownumber="no">4. THE MORAL ARGUMENT
Just as the other arguments, this too assumed different
forms. Kant took his starting point in the categorical imperative, and
from it inferred the
existence of someone who, as lawgiver and judge, has the absolute right
to command
man. In his estimation this argument is far superior to any of the
others. It is the one on which he mainly relies in his attempt to prove the
existence of God. This may be one of
the reasons why it is more generally recognized than any other, though
it is not always
cast into the same form. Some argue from the disparity often observed
between the
moral conduct of men and the prosperity which they enjoy in the present
life, and feel
that this calls for an adjustment in the future which, in turn, requires
a righteous arbiter.
Modern theology also uses it extensively, especially in the form that
man's recognition
of a Highest Good and his quest for a moral ideal demand and necessitate
the existence
of a God to give reality to that ideal. While this argument does point
to the existence of
a holy and just being, it does not compel belief in a God, a Creator, or
a being of infinite
perfections.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p19" shownumber="no">THE HISTORICAL OR ETHNOLOGICAL ARGUMENT.
In the main
this takes the following form: Among all the peoples and tribes of the earth there is a
sense of the
divine, which reveals itself in an external cultus. Since the phenomenon
is universal, it
must belong to the very nature of man. And if the nature of man
naturally leads to religious worship, this can only find its explanation in a higher Being
who has
constituted man a religious being. In answer to this argument, however,
it may be said that this universal phenomenon may have originated in an
error or misunderstanding of one of the early progenitors
of the human race, and that the religious cultus referred to appears strongest among primitive races, and disappears in the measure
in which they become civilized.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p20" shownumber="no">In evaluating these rational arguments it should be
pointed out first of all that believers do not need them. Their conviction respecting the existence of
God does not
depend on them, but on a believing acceptance of God's self-revelation
in Scripture. If
many in our day are willing to stake their faith in the existence of God
on such rational
arguments, it is to a great extent due to the fact that they refuse to
accept the testimony
of the Word of God. Moreover, in using these arguments in an attempt to
convince
unbelievers, it will be well to bear in mind that none of them can be
said to carry
absolute conviction. No one did more to discredit them than Kant. Since
his day many
philosophers and theologians have discarded them as utterly worthless,
but to-day they
are once more gaining favor and their number is increasing. And the fact
that in our day
so many find in them rather satisfying indications of the existence of
God, would seem
to indicate that they are not entirely devoid of value. They have some
value for
believers themselves, but should be called<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p20.1"> testimonia </span>rather than arguments. They are important as interpretations of God's general revelation and as
exhibiting the
reasonableness of belief in a divine Being. Moreover, they can render
some service in
meeting the adversary. While they do not prove the existence of God
beyond the
possibility of doubt, so as to compel assent, they can be so construed
as to establish a
strong probability and thereby silence many unbelievers.</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p21" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. Why is
modern theology inclined to give the study of man rather than the study of God precedence in theology? Does the
Bible prove the existence of God or does it not? If it does, how does it prove
it? What accounts for the general <span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p21.1">sensus
divinitatis</span> in man? Are there nations or tribes that are entirely
devoid of
it? Can the position be maintained that there are no atheists? Should
present day
Humanists be classed as atheists? What objections are there to the
identification of God
with the Absolute of philosophy? Does a finite God meet the needs of the
Christian life? Is the doctrine of a finite God limited to Pragmatists? Why is
a personified idea of God a poor substitute for the living God? What was Kant's criticism on the
arguments of
speculative reason for the existence of God? How should we judge of this
criticism?</p>
<p id="iii.i.i-p22" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: <span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.1">Geref. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 52-74; Kuyper,
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.2">Dict. Dogm. De Deo</span> I, pp. 77-123; Hodge, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.3">Syst. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 202-243; Shedd. <span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.4">Dogm. Theol.</span> I, pp. 221-248; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.5">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.,</span>
pp. 5-26; Macintosh,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.6">Theol. as an Empirical Science,</span> pp. 90-99;
Knudson, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.7">The Doctrine of God,</span>pp. 203-241;
Beattie,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.8"> Apologetics,</span> pp. 250-444;
Brightman,&amp;gt;<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.9"> The Problem of God,</span>
pp. 139-165; Wright,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.10">
A Student's Phil. of Rel.,</span>
pp. 339-390; Edward,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.11">  The Philosophy of Rel.,</span>
pp. 218-305; Beckwith,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.12"> The Idea of God,</span>
pp. 64-115; Thomson,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.13"> The Christian Idea of God,</span> pp. 160-189;
Robinson,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.14">
The God of the Liberal Christian,</span> pp. 114-149;
Galloway,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.i-p22.15"> The Phil. of Rel.,</span>
pp. 381-394.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.i.ii" next="iii.i.iii" prev="iii.i.i" title="II. The Knowability of God">

<h2 id="iii.i.ii-p0.1">II. The Knowability of God</h2>
<h4 id="iii.i.ii-p0.2">A. GOD INCOMPREHENSIBLE BUT YET KNOWABLE</h4>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p1" shownumber="no">The Christian Church confesses on the one hand that God is the Incomprehensible
One, but also on the other hand, that He can be known and that knowledge
of Him is an
absolute requisite unto salvation. It recognizes the force of Zophar's
question, "Canst
thou by searching find out God? Canst thou find out the Almighty unto
perfection?" <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.11.7" parsed="|Job|11|7|0|0" passage="Job 11:7">Job
11:7</scripRef>. And it feels that it has no answer to the question of Isaiah,
"To whom then will ye liken God? or what likeness will ye compare unto Him?" <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.18" parsed="|Isa|40|18|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:18">Isa. 40:18</scripRef>.
But at the same time
it is also mindful of Jesus' statement, "And this is life eternal,
that they should know
Thee, the only true God, and Him whom thou didst send, even Jesus
Christ," <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:John.17.3" parsed="|John|17|3|0|0" passage="John 17:3">John 17:3</scripRef>.
It rejoices in the fact that "the Son of God is come, and hath
given us an understanding, that we know Him that is true, and we are in Him that is true, even in
His Son Jesus
Christ." <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p1.4" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.20" parsed="|1John|5|20|0|0" passage="I John 5:20">I John 5:20</scripRef>. The two ideas reflected in these
passages were always held side by side in the Christian Church. The early Church Fathers spoke of the
invisible God as an
unbegotten, nameless, eternal, incomprehensible, unchangeable Being.
They had
advanced very little beyond the old Greek idea that the Divine Being is
absolute
attributeless existence. At the same time they also confessed that God
revealed Himself
in the Logos, and can therefore be known unto salvation. In the fourth
century
Eunomius, an Arian, argued from the simplicity of God, that there is
nothing in God
that is not perfectly known and comprehended by the human intellect, but
his view was
rejected by all the recognized leaders of the Church. The Scholastics
distinguished
between the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p1.5">
quid</span> and the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p1.6">
qualis</span> of God, and maintained that we do not know what God is in His essential
Being, but can know something of His nature, of what He is to us, as He reveals Himself in His divine attributes. The same general ideas were
expressed by
the Reformers, though they did not agree with the Scholastics as to the
possibility of
acquiring real knowledge of God, by unaided human reason, from general
revelation.
Luther speaks repeatedly of God as the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p1.7">
Deus Absconditus</span>
(hidden God), in
distinction
from Him as the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p1.8">
Deus Revelatus</span> (revealed God). In some passages he even speaks of the <span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p1.9">revealed</span> God as still a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p1.10">
hidden</span> God in view of the fact that we cannot fully know Him even through His special revelation. To Calvin, God in the depths of His
being is past
finding out.
"His essence," he says, "is incomprehensible; so that His
divinity wholly escapes all human senses." The Reformers do not deny that man can
learn something of the nature of God from His creation, but maintain that he
can acquire true knowledge of Him only from special revelation, under the illuminating influence
of the Holy Spirit.
Under the influence of the pantheizing theology of immanence,
inspired by Hegel and
Schleiermacher, a change came about. The transcendence of God is
soft-pedaled,
ignored, or explicitly denied. God is brought down to the level of the
world, is made
continuous with it, and is therefore regarded as less incomprehensible,
though still
shrouded in mystery. Special revelation in the sense of a direct
communication of God
to man is denied. Sufficient knowledge of God can be obtained without
it, since man
can discover God for himself in the depths of his own being, in the
material universe,
and above all in Jesus Christ, since these are all but outward
manifestations of the
immanent God. It is over against this trend in theology that Barth now
raises his voice
and points out that God is not to be found in nature, in history, or in
human experience
of any kind, but only in the special revelation that has reached us in
the Bible. In his
strong statements respecting the hidden God he uses the language of
Luther rather than
of Calvin.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p2" shownumber="no">Reformed theology holds that God can be known, but that
it is impossible for man to have a knowledge of Him that is exhaustive and perfect in every way. To
have such a
knowledge of God would be equivalent to comprehending Him, and this is
entirely out
of the question:
"<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p2.1">
Finitum non possit capere infinitum.</span>
"
Furthermore, man cannot give a definition of God in the proper sense of the word, but only a partial
description. A
logical definition is impossible, because God cannot be subsumed under
some higher
genus. At the same time it is maintained that man can obtain a knowledge
of God that is perfectly adequate for the realization of the divine purpose in
the life of man. However, true knowledge of God can be acquired only from the divine
self-revelation, and onlyby the man who accepts this with childlike faith. Religion necessarily
presupposes such
a knowledge. It is the most sacred relation between man and his God, a
relation in
which man is conscious of the absolute greatness and majesty of God as
the supreme Being, and of his own utter insignificance and subjection to the
High and Holy One.
And if this is true, it follows that religion presupposes the knowledge
of God in man. If
man were left absolutely in the dark respecting the being of God, it
would be impossible
for him to assume a religious attitude. There could be no reverence, no
piety, no fear of
God, no worshipful service.</p>
<h4 id="iii.i.ii-p2.2">B. DENIAL OF THE KNOWABILITY OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p3" shownumber="no">The possibility of knowing God has been denied on various
grounds. This denial is generally based on the supposed limits of the human
faculty of cognition, though it has been presented in several different forms. The fundamental position is
that the human
mind is incapable of knowing anything of that which lies beyond and
behind natural
phenomena, and is therefore necessarily ignorant of supersensible and
divine things.
Huxley was the first to apply to those who assume this position, himself
included, the
name "agnostics." They are entirely in line with the sceptics
of former centuries and of Greek philosophy. As a rule agnostics do not like to be branded as
atheists, since they
do not deny absolutely that there is a God, but declare that they do not
know whether
He exists or not, and even if He exists, are not certain that they have
any true
knowledge of Him, and in many cases even deny that they can have any
real
knowledge of Him.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p4" shownumber="no">Hume has been called the father of modern agnosticism. He
did not deny the
existence of God, but asserted that we have no true knowledge of His
attributes. All our ideas of Him are, and can only be, anthropomorphic. We
cannot be sure that there is any reality corresponding to the attributes we ascribe to Him. His
agnosticism resulted from the general principle that all knowledge is based on experience. It was
especially Kant,
however, who stimulated agnostic thought by his searching inquiry into
the limits of
the human understanding and reason. He affirmed that the theoretical
reason knows
only phenomena and is necessarily ignorant of that which underlies these
phenomena,
— the thing in itself. From this it followed, of course, that it is
impossible for us to have any theoretical knowledge of God. But Lotze already pointed out that
phenomena,
whether physical or mental, are always connected with some substance
lying back of
them, and that in knowing the phenomena we also know the underlying
substance, of
which they are manifestations. The Scotch philosopher, Sir William
Hamilton, while not
in entire agreement with Kant, yet shared the intellectual agnosticism
of the latter. He
asserts that the human mind knows only that which is conditioned and
exists in various
relations, and that, since the Absolute and Infinite is entirely
unrelated, that is exists in no relations, we can obtain no knowledge of it. But while he denies that
the Infinite can be known by us, he does not deny its existence. Says he,
"Through faith we apprehend what is beyond our knowledge." His views were shared in substance
by Mansel, and
were popularized by him. To him also it seemed utterly impossible to
conceive of an
infinite Being, though he also professed faith in its existence. The
reasoning of these two
men did not carry conviction, since it was felt that the Absolute or
Infinite does not
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p4.1">necessarily</span> exist outside of all relations, but can enter into various relations;
and that the
fact that we know things only in their relations does not mean that the
knowledge so
acquired is merely a relative or unreal knowledge.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p5" shownumber="no">Comte, the father of Positivism, was also agnostic in
religion. According to him man can know nothing but physical phenomena and their laws. His senses are
the sources of
all true thinking, and he can know nothing except the phenomena which
they
apprehend and the relations in which these stand to each other. Mental
phenomena can
be reduced to material phenomena, and in science man cannot get beyond
these. Even
the phenomena of immediate consciousness are excluded, and further,
everything that
lies behind the phenomena. Theological speculation represents thought in
its infancy.
No positive affirmation can be made respecting the existence of God, and
therefore both theism and atheism stand condemned. In later life Comte felt the
need of some religion
and introduced the so-called "religion of Humanity." Even more
than Comte, Herbert
Spencer is recognized as the great exponent of modern scientific
agnosticism. He was
influenced very much by Hamilton's doctrine of the relativity of
knowledge and by
Mansel's conception of the Absolute, and in the light of these worked
out his doctrine of
the Unknowable, which was his designation of whatever may be absolute,
first or
ultimate in the order of the universe, including God. He proceeds on the
assumption
that there is some reality lying back of phenomena, but maintains that
all reflection on it lands us in contradictions. This ultimate reality is utterly
inscrutable. While we must accept the existence of some ultimate Power, either personal or
impersonal, we can form
no conception of it. Inconsistently he devotes a great part of his<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p5.1"> First Principles</span> to the
development of the positive content of the Unknowable, as if it were
well known
indeed. Other agnostics, who were influenced by him, are such men
as Huxley, Fiske,
and Clifford. We meet with agnosticism also repeatedly in modern
Humanism. Harry
Elmer Barnes says: "To the writer it seems quite obvious that the
agnostic position is the
only one which can be supported by any scientifically-minded and
critically-inclined
person in the present state of knowledge.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.ii-p5.2" n="4" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p5.3">The Twilight of Christianity,</span> p. 260.</note></p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p6" shownumber="no">Besides the forms indicated in the preceding the agnostic
argument has assumed
several others, of which the following are some of the most important.
(1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p6.1">  Man knows only by analogy.</span> We know only that which bears some analogy to our own nature or experience:"
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p6.2">Similia similibus percipiuntur.</span> " But while
it is true that we learn a great deal by analogy, we also learn by contrast. In many cases the differences are
the very things
that arrest our attention. The Scholastics spoke of the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p6.3">
via negationis</span> by which they in
thought eliminated from God the imperfections of the creature. Moreover,
we should
not forget that man is made in the image of God, and that there are
important analogies
between the
divine nature and the nature of man. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p6.4">
Man really knows only what he can grasp in its entirety.</span> Briefly stated the position is that man cannot comprehend God,
who
is infinite, cannot have an exhaustive knowledge of Him, and therefore
cannot know
Him. But this position proceeds on the unwarranted assumption that
partial knowledgecannot be real knowledge, an assumption which would really invalidate all
our
knowledge, since it always falls far short of completeness. Our
knowledge of God,
though not exhaustive, may yet be very real and perfectly adequate for
our present
needs. (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p6.5"> All predicates of God are negative and therefore furnish
no real knowledge.</span>
Hamilton says that the Absolute and the Infinite can only be conceived as a
negation of the
thinkable; which really means that we can have no conception of them at
all. But though
it is true that much of what we predicate to God is negative in form,
this does not mean
that it may not at the same time convey some positive idea. The aseity
of God includes
the positive idea of his self-existence and self-sufficiency. Moreover,
such ideas as love,
spirituality,
and holiness, are positive. (4)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p6.6">
All our knowledge is relative to the knowing
subject.</span> It is said that we know the objects of knowledge, not as they are
objectively, but
only as they are related to our senses and faculties. In the process of
knowledge we
distort and colour them. In a sense it is perfectly true that all our
knowledge is
subjectively conditioned, but the import of the assertion under
consideration seems to
be that, because we know things only through the mediation of our senses
and faculties,
we do not know them as they are. But this is not true; in so far as we
have any real
knowledge of things, that knowledge corresponds to the objective
reality. The laws of
perception and thought are not arbitrary, but correspond to the nature of
things.
Without such correspondence, not only the knowledge of God, but all true
knowledge
would be utterly impossible.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p7" shownumber="no">Some are inclined to look upon the position of Barth as a
species of agnosticism.
Zerbe says that practical agnosticism dominates Barth's thinking and
renders him a
victim of the Kantian unknowableness of the Thing-in-Itself, and quotes
him as follows:
"<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p7.1">Romans</span> is a revelation of the unknown God; God comes to man, not man to God.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p7.2"> Even after the revelation man cannot know God</span>, for He is
always the unknown God. In manifesting Himself to us He is farther away than ever before. (Rbr. p.
53)".<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.ii-p7.3" n="5" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p7.4">The Karl Barth Theology,</span> p. 82</note>
At the same time he finds Barth's agnosticism, like that of Herbert Spencer,
inconsistent. Says
he: "It was
said of Herbert Spencer that he knew a great deal about the 'Unknowable';
so of Barth, one
wonders how he came to know so much of the 'Unknown God'."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.ii-p7.5" n="6" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p7.6">Ibid,</span> p.84</note>
Dickie speaks in a similar vein: "In speaking of a transcendent
God, Barth seems
sometimes to be speaking of a God of Whom we can never know
anything."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.ii-p7.7" n="7" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p7.8">Revelation and Response,</span> p.187</note> He finds,
however, that in this respect too there has been a change of emphasis in
Barth. While it is perfectly clear that Barth does not mean to be an agnostic, it cannot
be denied that
some of his statements can readily be interpreted as having an agnostic flavor.
He
strongly stresses the fact that God is the hidden God, who cannot be
known from
nature, history, or experience, but only by His self-revelation in
Christ, when it meets
with the response of faith. But even in this revelation God appears only
as the hidden
God. God reveals Himself exactly as the hidden God, and through His
revelation makes
us more conscious of the distance which separates Him from man than we
ever were
before. This can easily be interpreted to mean that we learn by
revelation merely that
God cannot be known, so that after all we are face to face with an
unknown God. But in
view of all that Barth has written this is clearly not what he wants to
say. His assertion, that in the light of revelation we see God as the hidden
God, does not exclude the idea that by revelation we also acquire a great deal of useful knowledge of
God as He enters
into relations with His people. When He says that even in His revelation
God still
remains for us<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p7.9"> the unknown God</span>, he really means,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p7.10"> the incomprehensible God. The</span> revealing God is God in action. By His revelation we learn to know Him in His
operations, but
acquire no real knowledge of His inner being. The following passage in<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p7.11"> The Doctrine of the Word of God</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.ii-p7.12" n="8" place="foot">p. 428</note>
is rather illuminating: "On
this freedom (freedom of God) rests the <span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p7.13">inconceivability</span> of God, the inadequacy of all knowledge of the revealed God. Even the three-in-oneness of God is revealed to us only in God's operations.
Therefore the three-in-oneness of God is also inconceivable to us. Hence, too, the
inadequacy of all our
knowledge of the three-in-oneness. The conceivability with which it has
appeared to us,
primarily in Scripture, secondarily in the Church doctrine of the
Trinity, is a creaturely
conceivability. To the conceivability in which God exists for Himself it
is not only
relative: it is absolutely separate from it. Only upon the free grace of
revelation does it
depend that the former conceivability, in its absolute separation from
its object, is vet
not without truth. In this sense the three-in-oneness of God, as we know
it from the
operation of
God, is truth."</p>
<h4 id="iii.i.ii-p7.14">C. SELF-REVELATION THE PREREQUISITE OF ALL KNOWLEDGE OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p8" shownumber="no">1. GOD COMMUNICATES KNOWLEDGE OF HIMSELF TO MAN. Kuyper calls
attention to the fact that theology as the knowledge of God differs in an important
point from all
other knowledge. In the study of all other sciences man places himself<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p8.1"> above</span> the object of his investigation and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p8.2">
actively</span> elicits from it
his knowledge by whatever method may seem most appropriate, but in theology he does not stand above but
rather<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p8.3">
under</span> the
object of his knowledge. In other words, man can know God only in so far
as the latter
actively makes Himself known. God is first of all the subject
communicating knowledge
to man, and can only become an object of study for man in so far as the
latter
appropriates and reflects on the knowledge conveyed to him by
revelation. Without revelation man would never have been able to acquire any
knowledge of God. And
even after God has revealed Himself objectively, it is not human reason
that discovers
God, but it is God who discloses Himself to the eye of faith. However,
by the
application of sanctified human reason to the study of God's Word man
can. under the
guidance of the Holy Spirit, gain an ever-increasing knowledge of God.
Barth also stresses the fact that man can know God only when God comes to him
in an act of
revelation. He asserts that there is no way from man to God, but only
from God to man,
and says repeatedly that God is always the subject, and never an object.
Revelation is
always something purely subjective, and can never turn into something
objective like
the written Word of Scripture, and as such become an object of study. It
is given once for all in Jesus Christ, and in Christ comes to men in the
existential moment of their lives. While there are elements of truth in what Barth says, his construction
of the doctrine of
revelation is foreign to Reformed theology.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p9" shownumber="no">The position must be maintained, however, that theology
would be utterly
impossible without a self-revelation of God. And when we speak of
revelation, we use
the term in the strict sense of the word. It is not something in which
God is passive, a
mere "becoming manifest," but something in which He is
actively making Himself
known. It is not, as many moderns would have it, a deepened spiritual
insight which
leads to an ever-increasing discovery of God on the part of man; but a
supernatural act
of self-communication, a purposeful act on the part of the Living God.
There is nothing
surprising in the fact that God can be known only if, and in so far as,
He reveals
Himself. In a measure this is also true of man. Even after Psychology
has made a rather
exhaustive study of man, Alexis Carrell is still able to write a very
convincing book on
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p9.1">Man the Unknown.</span>
"For who among men," says
Paul, "knoweth the things of a man, save the spirit of the man, which is in him? even so the things of God
none knoweth, save the Spirit of God." <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.11" parsed="|1Cor|2|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:11">I Cor. 2:11</scripRef>. The Holy Spirit
searcheth all things, even the deep things of God, and reveals them unto man. God has made Himself known.
Alongside of
the archetypal knowledge of God, found in God Himself, there is also an
ectypal
knowledge of Him, given to man by revelation. The latter is related to
the former as a
copy is to the original, and therefore does not possess the same measure
of clearness
and perfection. All our knowledge of God is derived from His
self-revelation in nature and in Scripture. Consequently, our knowledge of God is on the one hand
ectypal and
analogical, but on the other hand also true and accurate, since it is a
copy of the
archetypal knowledge which God has of Himself.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p10" shownumber="no">2. INNATE AND ACQUIRED KNOWLEDGE OF GOD (COGNITO INSITA AND ACQUISTA).
A distinction is usually made between innate and acquired knowledge of
God. This is not
a strictly logical distinction, because in the last analysis all human
knowledge is
acquired. The doctrine of innate ideas is philosophical rather than
theological. The seeds
of it are
already found in Plato's doctrine of ideas, while it occurs in Cicero's<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p10.1"> De Natura</span>
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p10.2">Deorum</span> in a more developed form. In modern philosophy it was taught first of
all by
Descartes, who regarded the idea of God as innate. He did not deem it
necessary to
consider this as innate in the sense that it was consciously present in
the human mind
from the start, but only in the sense that man has a natural tendency to
form the idea
when the mind reaches maturity. The doctrine finally assumed the form
that there are
certain ideas, of which the idea of God is the most prominent, which are
inborn and are
therefore present in human consciousness from birth. It was in this form
that Locke
rightly attacked the doctrine of innate ideas, though he went to another
extreme in his
philosophical empiricism. Reformed theology also rejected the doctrine
in that
particular form. And while some of its representatives retained the name
"innate ideas," but gave it another connotation, others preferred to speak of a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p10.3"> cognitio Dei insita</span>(ingrafted or implanted knowledge of God). On the one hand this<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p10.4"> cognitio Dei insita</span>does not consist in any ideas or formed notions which are present in man
at the time of
his birth; but on the other hand it is more than a mere capacity which
enables man to
know God. It denotes a knowledge that necessarily results from the
constitution of the
human mind, that is inborn only in the sense that it is acquired
spontaneously, under
the influence of the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p10.5">
semen religionis</span>
by his creation in the image of God, and that is not acquired by the laborious process of reasoning and
argumentation.
It is a knowledge which man, constituted as he is, acquires<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p10.6"> of necessity</span>, and as such is
distinguished from all knowledge that is conditioned by the will of man.
Acquired
knowledge, on the other hand, is obtained by the study of God's
revelation. It does not
arise spontaneously in the human mind, but results from the conscious and
sustained pursuit of knowledge. It can be acquired only by the
wearisome process of perception and reflection, reasoning and argumentation. Under the influence
of the Hegelian
Idealism and of the modern view of evolution the innate knowledge of God
has been
over-emphasized; Barth on the other hand denies the existence of any
such knowledge.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p11" shownumber="no">3. GENERAL AND SPECIAL REVELATION. The Bible
testifies to a twofold revelation of God: a revelation in nature round about us, in human consciousness, and
in the
providential government of the world; and a revelation embodied in the
Bible as the
Word of God. It testifies to the former in such passages as the
following: "The heavens declare the glory of God; and the firmanent showeth His handiwork. Day
unto day
uttereth speech, and night unto night showeth knowledge," <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.19.1" parsed="|Ps|19|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 19:1">Ps. 19:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.19.2" parsed="|Ps|19|2|0|0" passage="Ps 19:2">2</scripRef>. "And yet He left not Himself without witness, in that He did good and gave you from heaven
rains and fruitful
seasons, filling your hearts with food and gladness," <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.17" parsed="|Acts|14|17|0|0" passage="Acts 14:17">Acts 14:17</scripRef>.
"Because that which is known of God is manifest in them; for God manifested it unto
them. For the
invisible things of Him since the creation of the world are clearly
seen, being perceived
through the things that are made, even His everlasting power and
divinity," <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.19" parsed="|Rom|1|19|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:19">Rom. 1:19</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.20" parsed="|Rom|1|20|0|0" passage="Rom 1:20">20</scripRef>. Of the latter it gives abundant evidence in both the Old and the New
Testament. "Yet Jehovah testified unto Israel, and unto Judah, by every
prophet, and every seer,
saying, Turn ye from your evil ways, and keep my commandments and my
statutes,
according to all the law which I commanded your fathers, and which I
sent to you by
my servants the prophets," <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.17.13" parsed="|1Kgs|17|13|0|0" passage="I Kings 17:13">I Kings 17:13</scripRef>. "He hath made known
His ways unto Moses,
His doings unto the children of Israel," <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.7" parsed="|Ps|103|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 103:7">Ps. 103:7</scripRef>. "No man
hath seen God at any time; the only begotten Son, who is in the bosom of the
Father, He hath declared Him," <scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:John.1.18" parsed="|John|1|18|0|0" passage="John 1:18">John 1:18</scripRef>. "God, having of old time spoken unto the fathers in the
prophets by divers
portions and in divers manners, hath at the end of these days spoken to
us in His Son,"
<scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.1" parsed="|Heb|1|1|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:1">Heb. 1:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.ii-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.2" parsed="|Heb|1|2|0|0" passage="Heb 1:2">2</scripRef>.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p12" shownumber="no">On the basis of these scriptural data it became customary
to speak of natural and
supernatural revelation. The distinction thus applied to the idea of
revelation is
primarily a distinction based on the manner in which it is communicated
to man; but in
the course of history it has also been based in part on the nature of
its subject-matter.
The mode of revelation is natural when it is communicated through
nature, that is,
through the visible creation with its ordinary laws and powers. It is
supernatural when
it is communicated to man in a higher, supernatural manner, as when God
speaks to
him, either directly, or through supernaturally endowed messengers. The
substance of
revelation was regarded as natural, if it could be acquired by human
reason from the
study of nature; and was considered to be supernatural when it could not
be known
from nature, nor by unaided human reason. Hence it became quite common in
the
Middle Ages to contrast reason and revelation. In Protestant theology
natural revelation
was often called
a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p12.1"> revelatio realis</span>, and
supernatural revelation a <span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p12.2">revelatio verbalis</span>,
because the former is embodied in things, and the latter in words. In course of
time, however,
the distinction between natural and supernatural revelation was found to
be rather
ambiguous, since all revelation is supernatural in origin and, as a
revelation of God,
also in content.
Ewald in his work on<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p12.3">
Revelation</span>:<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p12.4"> its Nature and Record</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.ii-p12.5" n="9" place="foot">p. 5 f.</note>
speaks of the revelation in nature as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p12.6">
immediate</span>
revelation, and of
the revelation in Scripture, which he regards as the only one deserving the name "revelation" in the
fullest sense, as mediate<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p12.7"> revelation.</span> A more common distinction, however, which gradually gained currency, is
that of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p12.8"> general</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p12.9">
special</span>
revelation. Dr. Warfield distinguishes the two as follows: " The one is addressed generally to all intelligent creatures, and is
therefore accessible to all men; the other is addressed to a special class of sinners, to whom God
would make
known His salvation. The one has in view to meet and supply the natural
need of
creatures for knowledge of their God; the other to rescue broken and
deformed sinners
from their sin and its consequences."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.ii-p12.10" n="10" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p12.11">Revelation and Inspiration,</span> p.6</note> General revelation is rooted in creation, is addressed to man as man, and more particularly to human reason, and finds
its purpose
in the realization of the end of his creation, to know God and thus
enjoy communion
with Him. Special revelation is rooted in the redemptive plan of God, is
addressed to
man as sinner, can be properly understood and appropriated only by faith,
and serves
the purpose of securing the end for which man was created in spite of
the disturbance
wrought by sin. In view of the eternal plan of redemption it should be
said that this
special revelation did not come in as an after-thought, but was in the
mind of God from
the very beginning.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p13" shownumber="no">There was considerable difference of opinion respecting
the relation of these two to each other. According to Scholasticism natural revelation provided the
necessary data
for the construction of a scientific natural theology by human reason.
But while it
enabled man to attain to a scientific knowledge of God as the ultimate
cause of all
things, it did not provide for the knowledge of the mysteries, such as
the Trinity, the
incarnation, and redemption. This knowledge is supplied by special
revelation. It is a
knowledge that is not rationally demonstrable but must be accepted by
faith. Some of
the earlier Scholastics were guided by the slogan "Credo ut
intelligam," and, afteraccepting the truths of special revelation by faith, considered it
necessary to raise faith
to understanding by a rational demonstration of those truths, or at least
to prove their
rationality. Thomas Aquinas, however, considered this impossible, except
in so far as
special revelation contained truths which also formed a part of natural
revelation. In his
opinion the mysteries, which formed the real contents of supernatural
revelation, did
not admit of any logical demonstration. He held, however, that there
could be no
conflict between the truths of natural and those of supernatural
revelation. If there
appears to be a conflict, there is something wrong with one's
philosophy. The fact
remains, however, that he recognized, besides the structure reared by
faith on the basis
of supernatural revelation, a system of scientific theology on the
foundation of natural
revelation. In the former one assents to something because it is
revealed, in the latter
because it is perceived as true in the light of natural reason. The
logical demonstration, which is out of the question in the one, is the natural
method of proof in the other.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p14" shownumber="no">
The Reformers rejected the dualism of the Scholastics and
aimed at a synthesis of
God's twofold revelation. They did not believe in the ability of human
reason to
construct a scientific system of theology on the basis of natural
revelation pure and
simple. Their view of the matter may be represented as follows: As a
result of the
entrance of sin into the world, the handwriting of God in nature is
greatly obscured,
and is in some of the most important matters rather dim and illegible.
Moreover, man is
stricken with spiritual blindness, and is thus deprived of the ability to
read aright what
God had originally plainly written in the works of creation. In order to
remedy the
matter and to prevent the frustration of His purpose, God did two things.
In His
supernatural revelation He republished the truths of natural revelation,
cleared them of
misconception, interpreted them with a view to the present needs of man,
and thus
incorporated them in His supernatural revelation of redemption. And in
addition to
that He provided a cure for the spiritual blindness of man in the work
of regeneration
and sanctification, including spiritual illumination, and thus enabled
man once more to
obtain true knowledge of God, the knowledge that carries with it the
assurance of
eternal life.</p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p15" shownumber="no">
When the chill winds of Rationalism swept over Europe,
natural revelation was
exalted at the expense of supernatural revelation. Man became
intoxicated with a sense
of his own ability and goodness, refused to listen and submit to the
voice of authority
that spoke to him in Scripture, and reposed complete trust in the
ability of human
reason to lead him out of the labyrinth of ignorance and error into the
clear atmosphere
of true knowledge. Some who maintained that natural revelation was quite
sufficient to
teach men all necessary truths, still admitted that they might learn them
sooner with the
aid of supernatural revelation. Others denied that the authority of
supernatural
revelation was complete, until its contents had been demonstrated by
reason. And
finally Deism in some of its forms denied, not only the necessity, but
also the possibility
and reality of supernatural revelation. In Schleiermacher the emphasis
shifts from the
objective to the subjective, from revelation to religion, and that
without any distinction
between natural and revealed religion. The term "revelation"
is still retained, but is
reserved as a designation of the deeper spiritual insight of man, an
insight which does
not come to him, however, without his own diligent search. What is
called revelation
from one point of view, may be called human discovery from another. This
view has
become quite characteristic of modern theology. Says Knudson: "But
this distinction
between natural and revealed theology has now largely fallen into
disuse. The present
tendency is to draw no sharp line of distinction between revelation and
the natural
reason, but to look upon the highest insights of reason as themselves
divine revelations.
In any case there is no fixed body of revealed truth, accepted on
authority, that stands
opposed to the truths of reason. All truth to-day rests on its power of
appeal to the
human
mind."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.ii-p15.1" n="11" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p15.2">The Doctine of God,</span> p. 173</note></p>
<p id="iii.i.ii-p16" shownumber="no">
It is this view of revelation that is denounced in the
strongest terms by Barth. He is
particularly interested in the subject of revelation, and wants to lead
the Church back
from the subjective to the objective, from religion to revelation. In
the former he sees
primarily man's
efforts to find God, and in the latter "God's search for man" in
Jesus
Christ. Barth does not recognize any revelation in nature. Revelation
never exists on any
horizontal line, but always comes down perpendicularly from above.
Revelation is
always God in action, God speaking, bringing something entirely new to man,
something of which he could have no previous knowledge, and which becomes
a real
revelation only for him who accepts the object of revelation by a
God-given faith. Jesus
Christ is the revelation of God, and only he who knows Jesus Christ
knows anything
about revelation at all. Revelation is an act of grace, by which man
becomes conscious of
his sinful condition, but also of God's free, unmerited, and forgiving
condescension in
Jesus Christ.
Barth even calls it<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p16.1">
the reconciliation.</span>
Since God is
always sovereign and free
in His revelation, it can never assume a factually present, objective
form with definite
limitations, to which man can turn at any time for instruction. Hence it
is a mistake to
regard the Bible as God's revelation in any other than a secondary
sense. It is a witness
to, and a token of, God's revelation. The same may be said, though in a
subordinate
sense, of the preaching of the gospel. But through whatever mediation
the word of God
may come to man in the existential moment of his life, it is always
recognized by man as
a word directly spoken to him, and coming perpendicularly from above.
This
recognition is effected by a special operation of the Holy Spirit, by
what may be called an
individual<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p16.2">
testimonium Spiritus Sancti</span>.
The revelation
of God was given<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p16.3">
once for all</span>
in
Jesus Christ: not in His historical appearance, but in the
superhistorical in which thepowers of the eternal world become evident, such as His incarnation and
His death and
resurrection. And if His revelation is also continuous — as it is —, it
is such only in the sense that God continues to speak to individual sinners, in the
existential moment of
their lives, through the revelation in Christ, mediated by the Bible and
by preaching.
Thus we are left with mere flashes of revelation coming to
individuals, of which only those individuals have absolute assurance; and fallible witnesses to, or
tokens of, the
revelation in Jesus Christ, — a rather precarious foundation for
theology. It is no
wonder that Barth is in doubt as to the possibility of constructing a
doctrine of God.
Mankind is not in possession of any infallible revelation of God, and of
His unique
revelation in Christ and its extension in the special revelations that
come to certain men
it has knowledge only through the testimony of fallible witnesses.</p>

<p id="iii.i.ii-p17" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY:
In what
sense can we speak of the hidden or
unknown God in spite of the fact that He has revealed Himself? How did
the
Scholastics and the Reformers differ on this point? What is the position
of modern
theology? Why is revelation essential to religion? How does agnosticism
differ
theoretically from atheism? Is the one more favorable to religion than
the other? How
did Kant promote agnosticism? What was Sir William Hamilton's doctrine
of the
relativity of knowledge? What form did agnosticism take in Positivism?
What other
forms did it take? Why do some speak of Barth as an agnostic? How should
this charge
be met? Is "revelation" an active or a passive concept? Is
theology possible without
revelation? If not, why not? Can the doctrine of innate ideas be
defended? What is
meant by "cognitio Dei insita?" How do natural and
supernatural revelation differ? Is
the distinction between general and special revelation an exact parallel
of the preceding
one? What different views were held as to the relation between the two?
How does
revelation differ from human discovery? Does Barth believe in general
revelation? How
does he conceive of special revelation? </p>


<p id="iii.i.ii-p18" shownumber="no">LITERATURE:
Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 1:74; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.2"> Dict. Dogm., De Deo</span>
I, pp. 1-76; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.3"> Syst. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 191-240; 335-365; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.4"> Dogm. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 195-220; Thornwell,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.5"> Collected Works</span>
I, pp. 74-142; Dorner,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.6"> System of Chr. Doct.</span>, I, pp. 79-159; Adeney,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.7"> The Christian Conception of God</span>, pp. 19-57;
Steenstra,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.8">
The Being of God as Unity and Trinity</span>, pp. 1-25; Hendry,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.9">
God the Creator</span>; Gilson,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.10">; Reason and Revelation in the Middle
Ages;</span> Baillie and Martin,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.11">
Revelation</span>
(<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.12">a Symposium of Aulen, Barth, Bulgakoff, D'Arcy, Eliot,
Horton, and Temple;</span>
Warfield,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.13">
Revelation and
Inspiration</span>,
pp. 3-48; Orr,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.14">
Revelation and Inspiration,</span> pp.1-66; Camfield,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.15"> Revelation and the Holy Spirit</span>, pp. 11-127;
Dickie,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.16">
Revelation and Response</span>, Warfield,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.17">
Calvin and
Calvinism</span>
(<span class="ital" id="iii.i.ii-p18.18">Calvin's Doctrine of the Knowledge of God</span>).</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.i.iii" next="iii.i.iv" prev="iii.i.ii" title="III. Relation of the Being and Attributes of God">
<h2 id="iii.i.iii-p0.1">III. Relation of the Being and Attributes of God</h2>
<p id="iii.i.iii-p1" shownumber="no">Some dogmaticians devote a separate chapter or chapters
to the Being of God, before taking up the discussion of His attributes. This is done, for instance,
in the works of
Mastricht, Ebrard, Kuyper, and Shedd. Others prefer to consider the
Being of God in
connection with His attributes in view of the fact that it is in these
that He has revealed
Himself. This is the more common method, which is followed in the
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p1.1">Synopsis Purioris Theologiae</span>, and in the works of Turretin, à Marck, Brakel, Bavinck, Hodge, and Honig.
This difference of treatment is not indicative of any serious
fundamental disagreement
between them. They are all agreed that the attributes are not mere names
to which no
reality corresponds, nor separate parts of a composite God, but
essential qualities in
which the Being of God is revealed and with which it can be identified.
The only
difference would seem to be that some seek to distinguish between the
Being and the
attributes of God more than others do.</p>

<h4 id="iii.i.iii-p1.2">A.THE BEING OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.iii-p2" shownumber="no">It is quite evident that the Being of God does not admit
of any scientific definition. In
order to give a logical definition of God, we would have to begin by
going in search of
some higher concept, under which God could be co-ordinated with other
concepts; and
would then have to point out the characteristics that would be
applicable to God only.
Such a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p2.1"> genetic-synthetic</span>
definition cannot be given of God,
since God is not one of several species of gods, which can be subsumed under a single genus. At
most only an
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p2.2">analytical-descriptive</span>
definition is possible. This
merely names the characteristics of a person or thing, but leaves the essential being unexplained. And even
such a definition
cannot be complete but only partial, because it is impossible to give an
exhaustive
positive (as opposed to negative) description of God. It would consist
in an
enumeration of all the known attributes of God, and these are to a great
extent negative
in character.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iii-p3" shownumber="no">The Bible never operates with an abstract concept of God,
but always describes Him
as the Living God, who enters into various relations with His creatures,
relations which
are indicative
of several different attributes. In Kuyper's<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p3.1">
Dictaten Dogmatiek</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.iii-p3.2" n="12" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p3.3">De Deo I,</span> p.28</note>we are told that God, personified as Wisdom, speaks of His<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p3.4"> essence</span> in <scripRef id="iii.i.iii-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Prov.8.14" parsed="|Prov|8|14|0|0" passage="Prov. 8:14">Prov. 8:14</scripRef>, when He ascribes to Himself<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p3.6">
tushiyyach</span>,
a Hebrew word
rendered "wezen" in the Holland
translation. But this rendering is very doubtful, and the English
rendering "counsel" deserves preference. It has also been pointed out that the Bible speaks
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p3.7">of the nature</span> of
God in II Pet. 1:4, but this can hardly refer to the essential Being of
God, for we are not
made partakers of the divine essence. An indication of the very essence
of God has been
found in the name Jehovah, as interpreted by God Himself, "I am
that I am." On the
basis of this passage the essence of God was found in being itself,
abstract being. And
this has been interpreted to mean self-existence or self-contained permanence
or
absolute independence. Another passage is repeatedly quoted as containing
an
indication of the essence of God, and as the closest approach to a
definition that is found
in the Bible, namely, <scripRef id="iii.i.iii-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:John.4.24" parsed="|John|4|24|0|0" passage="John 4:24">John 4:24</scripRef>, "God is Spirit: and they that
worship Him must worship
in spirit and truth." This statement of Christ is clearly
indicative of the spirituality of
God. The two ideas derived from these passages occur repeatedly in
theology as
designations of the very Being of God. On the whole it may be said that
Scripture does
not exalt one attribute of God at the expense of the others, but
represents them as
existing in perfect harmony in the Divine Being. It may be true that now
one, and then
another attribute is stressed, but Scripture clearly intends to give due
emphasis to every
one of them. The Being of God is characterized by a depth, a fullness, a
variety, and a
glory far beyond our comprehension, and the Bible represents it as a
glorious
harmonious whole, without any inherent contradictions. And this fullness
of life finds
expression in no other way than in the perfections of God.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iii-p4" shownumber="no">Some of the early Church Fathers were clearly under the
influence of Greek
philosophy in their doctrine of God and, as Seeberg expresses it, did
not advance
"beyond the mere abstract conception that the Divine Being is
absolute attributeless
Existence." For some time theologians were rather generally
inclined to emphasize the transcendence of God, and to assume the impossibility of any adequate
knowledge or
definition of the divine essence. During the trinitarian controversy the
distinction
between the one essence and the three persons in the Godhead was strongly
emphasized, but the essence was generally felt to be beyond human
comprehension.
Gregory of Nazianze, however, ventures to say: "So far as we can
discern,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p4.1">
ho on</span> and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p4.2">
ho theos</span> are somehow more than other terms the names of the (divine) essence,
and of these
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p4.3">ho on</span>
is the preferable." He regards this as a
description of absolute being. Augustine's conception of the essence of God was closely akin to that of Gregory. In
the Middle Ages
too there was a tendency, either to deny that man has any knowledge of
the essence of
God, or to reduce such knowledge to a minimum. In some cases one
attribute was
singled out as most expressive of the essence of God. Thus Thomas
Aquinas spoke of
His aseity or self-existence, and Duns Scotus, of His infinity. It
became quite common
also to speak of God as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p4.4">
actus purus</span>
in view of His
simplicity. The Reformers and their
successors also spoke of the essence of God as incomprehensible, but
they did not
exclude all knowledge of it, though Luther used very strong language on
this point. They stressed the unity, simplicity, and spirituality of God. The
words of the Belgic
Confession are quite characteristic: "We all believe with the
heart, and confess with the mouth, that there is one only simple and spiritual Being, which we call
God."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.iii-p4.5" n="13" place="foot">Art. I.</note> Later on philosophers and theologians found the essence of God in abstract being,
in universal
substance, in pure thought, in absolute causality, in love, in
personality, and in majestic holiness or the numinous.</p>

<h4 id="iii.i.iii-p4.6">B. THE POSSIBILITY OF KNOWING THE BEING OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.iii-p5" shownumber="no">
From the preceding it already appears that the question
as to the possibility of
knowing God in His essential Being engaged the best minds of the Church
from the
earliest centuries. And the consensus of opinion in the early Church,
during the Middle
Ages, and at the time of the Reformation, was that God in His inmost
Being is the
Incomprehensible One. And in some cases the language used is so strong
that it
seemingly allows of no knowledge of the Being of God whatsoever. At the
same time
they who use it, at least in some cases, seem to have considerable
knowledge of the
Being of God. Misunderstanding can easily result from a failure to
understand the exact
question under consideration, and from neglecting to discriminate
between "knowing" and "comprehending." The Scholastics spoke of three questions
to which all the
speculations respecting the Divine Being could be reduced, namely:<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p5.1"> An sit Deus? Quid sit Deus?</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p5.2">
Qualis sit Deus?</span>The first question concerns the existence of God, the second, His nature or essence, and the third, His attributes. In this
paragraph it is
particularly the second question that calls for attention. The question
then is, What is
God? What is the nature of His inner constitution? What makes Him to be
what He is?
In order to answer that question adequately, we would have to be able to
comprehend
God and to offer a satisfactory explanation of His Divine Being, and
this is utterly
impossible. The finite cannot comprehend the Infinite. The question of
Zophar, "Canst
thou by searching find out God? Canst thou find out the Almighty unto perfection?" (<scripRef id="iii.i.iii-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Job.11.7" parsed="|Job|11|7|0|0" passage="Job 11:7">Job 11:7</scripRef>) has the force of a strong negative. And if
we consider the second
question entirely apart from the third, our negative answer becomes even
more inclusive. Apart from the revelation of God in His attributes, we have
no knowledge of
the Being of God whatsoever. But in so far as God reveals Himself in His
attributes, we
also have some knowledge of His Divine Being, though even so our
knowledge is
subject to human limitations.</p>
<p id="iii.i.iii-p6" shownumber="no">
Luther uses some very strong expressions respecting our
inability to know
something of the Being or essence of God. On the one hand he
distinguishes between
the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.1"> Deus absconditus</span>
(hidden God) and the <span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.2">Deus revelatus</span>
(revealed God); but on the other hand he also asserts that in knowing the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.3"> Deus revelatus</span>, we only know Him in his
hiddenness. By this he means that even in His revelation God has not
manifested
Himself entirely<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.4">
as He is essentially</span>
but as to
His essence still remains shrouded in
impenetrable darkness. We know God only in so far as He enters into
relations with us.
Calvin too speaks of the Divine essence as incomprehensible. He holds
that God in the
depths of His Being is past finding out. Speaking of the knowledge of
the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.5">
quid</span> and of
the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.6">
qualis</span> of God, he says that it is rather useless to speculate about the
former, while
our practical interest lies in the latter. Says he: "They are
merely toying with frigid speculations whose mind is set on the question of what God is (<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.7">quid sit Deus</span>), when
what it really concerns us to know is rather what kind of a person He is
(<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.8">qualis sit</span>) and
what is appropriate to His nature."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.iii-p6.9" n="14" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.10">Inst.</span> I. 2.2.</note> While he feels that God cannot be known to perfection, he does not deny that we can know something of His Being or
nature. But
this knowledge cannot be obtained by<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.11">
a priori</span>
methods, but only
in an<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p6.12">
a posteriori</span> manner through the attributes, which he regards as real determinations of
the nature of God. They convey to us at least some knowledge of what God is, but
especially of what
He is in relation to us.</p>
<p id="iii.i.iii-p7" shownumber="no">
In dealing with our knowledge of the Being of God we must
certainly avoid the
position of Cousin, rather rare in the history of philosophy, that God
even in the depths of His Being is not at all incomprehensible but essentially
intelligible; but we must also
steer clear of the agnosticism of Hamilton and Mansel, according to
which we can have
no knowledge whatsoever of the Being of God. We cannot comprehend God,
cannot
have an absolute and exhaustive knowledge of Him, but we can undoubtedly
have a
relative or partial knowledge of the Divine Being. It is perfectly true
that this knowledge of God is possible only, because He has placed Himself in
certain relations to His moral
creatures and has revealed Himself to them, and that even this knowledge
is humanly
conditioned; but it is nevertheless real and true knowledge, and is at
least a partial
knowledge of the absolute nature of God. There is a difference between
an absolute knowledge, and a relative or partial knowledge of an absolute being. It
will not do at all
to say that man knows only the relations in which God stands to His
creatures. It would
not even be possible to have a proper conception of these relations
without knowing
something of both God and man. To say that we can know nothing of the
Being of God,
but can know only relations, is equivalent to saying that we cannot know
Him at all and cannot make Him the object of our religion. Dr. Orr says:
"We may not know God in the
depths of His absolute being. But we can at least know Him in so far as
He reveals
Himself in His relation to us. The question, therefore, is not as to the
possibility of a
knowledge of God in the unfathomableness of His being, but is: Can we
know God<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p7.1">
as He enters into relations</span> with the world and with ourselves? God has entered into relations with
us in His revelations of Himself, and supremely in Jesus Christ; and we Christians
humbly claim that through this Self-revelation we do know God to be the
true God, and
have real acquaintance with His character and will. Neither is it
correct to say that this
knowledge which we have of God is only a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p7.2"> relative knowledge.</span>
It is in part a knowledge
of the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p7.3">
absolute</span> nature of God as well."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.iii-p7.4" n="15" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p7.5">Side-Lights on Christian Doctrine,</span> p. 11</note> The last statements are probably intended to ward off the idea that all our knowledge of God is merely relative to
the human mind,
so that we have no assurance that it corresponds with the reality as it
exists in God.</p>

<h4 id="iii.i.iii-p7.6">C. THE BEING OF GOD REVEALED IN HIS ATTRIBUTES</h4>
<p id="iii.i.iii-p8" shownumber="no">From the simplicity of God it follows that God and His
attributes are one. The
attributes cannot be considered as so many parts that enter into the
composition of God,
for God is not, like men, composed of different parts. Neither can they
be regarded as something added to the Being of God, though the name, derived
from<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p8.1">
ad</span> and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p8.2">
tribuere</span>,
might seem to point in that direction, for no addition was ever made to
the Being of
God, who is eternally perfect. It is commonly said in theology that
God's attributes are
God Himself, as He has revealed Himself to us. The Scholastics stressed
the fact that
God is all that He has. He<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p8.3">
has</span>
life, light, wisdom, love,
righteousness, and it may be said
on the basis of Scripture that He<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p8.4">
is</span>
life, light, wisdom, love, and
righteousness. It was
further asserted by the Scholastics that the whole essence of God is
identical with each
one of the
attributes, so that God's knowing is God, God's willing is God, and so on.
Some of them even went so far as to say that each attribute is identical
with every other
attribute, and that there are no logical distinctions in God. This is a
very dangerous
extreme. While it may be said that there is an interpenetration of the
attributes in God,
and that they form a harmonious whole, we are moving in the direction of
Pantheism, when we rule out all distinctions in God, and say that His
self-existence is His infinity,
His knowing is His willing, His love is His righteousness, and vice
versa. It was
characteristic of the Nominalists that they obliterated all real
distinctions in God. They were afraid that by assuming real distinctions in Him, corresponding to
the attributes
ascribed to God, they would endanger the unity and simplicity of God, and
were
therefore motivated by a laudable purpose. According to them the
perfections of the
Divine Being exist only in our thoughts, without any corresponding
reality in the
Divine Being. The Realists, on the other hand, asserted the reality of
the divine
perfections. They realized that the theory of the Nominalists,
consistently carried out, would lead in the direction of a pantheistic denial of a personal God,
and therefore
considered it of the utmost importance to maintain the objective reality
of the attributes
in God. At the same time they sought to safeguard the unity and
simplicity of God by
maintaining that the whole essence is in each attribute: God is All in
all, All in each.
Thomas Aquinas had the same purpose in mind, when he asserted that the
attributes do
not reveal what God is in Himself, in the depths of His Being, but only
what He is in relation to His creatures.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iii-p9" shownumber="no">
Naturally, we should guard against separating the divine
essence and the divine
attributes or perfections, and also against a false conception of the
relation in which
they stand to each other. The attributes are real determinations of the
Divine Being or, in
other words, qualities that inhere in the Being of God. Shedd speaks of
them as "an
analytical and closer description of the essence."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.iii-p9.1" n="16" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p9.2">Dogm. Theol. I, p. </span>334.</note> In a sense they are identical, so
that it
can be said that God's perfections are God Himself as He has revealed
Himself to us. It
is possible to go even farther and say with Shedd, "The whole
essence is in each
attribute, and the attribute in the essence."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.iii-p9.3" n="17" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p9.4">Ibid. </span>p. 334</note> And because of the close relation
in which
the two stand to each other, it can be said that knowledge of the
attributes carries with it knowledge of the Divine Essence. It would be a mistake to conceive of
the essence of
God as existing by itself and prior to the attributes, and of the attributes
as additive and
accidental characteristics of the Divine Being. They are essential
qualities of God, which
inhere in His very Being and are co-existent with it. These qualities
cannot be altered
without altering the essential Being of God. And since they are
essential qualities, each one of them reveals to us some aspect of the Being of
God.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iii-p10" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: How can we
distinguish between the being, the
nature, and the essence of God? How do the philosophical views of the
essential Being
of God generally differ from the theological views? How about the
tendency to find the
essence of God in the absolute, in love, or in personality? What does
Otto mean when
he characterizes
it as "the Holy" or "the Numinous"? Why is it impossible
for man to comprehend God? Has sin in any way affected man's ability to know God?
Is there any
difference
between Luther's and Barth's conception of the "hidden God"? Does
Calvin differ from them on this point? Did Luther share the Nominalist views of
Occam, by
whom he was influenced in other respects? How did the Reformers,
in distinction from
the Scholastics, consider the problem of the existence of God? Could we
have any
knowledge of God, if He were pure attributeless being? What erroneous
views of the
attributes should be avoided? What is the proper view?</p>

<p id="iii.i.iii-p11" shownumber="no">
Literature: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span>
I, pp. 91-113,; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.2"> Dict. Dogm.</span>,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.3">
De Deo</span>
I, pp. 124-158; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.4"> Syst. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 335-374; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.5"> Dogm. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 152-194; Thornwell, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.6">Collected Works</span>, I, pp. 104-172; Dorner,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.7">
Syst. of Chr. Doct.</span>
I, pp.
187-212; Orr,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.8">
Chr. View of God and the World</span>, pp. 75-93; Otten,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.9"> Manual of the Hist. of Dogmas</span> I, pp. 254-260;
Clarke,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.10"> The Chr. Doct. of God</span>, pp. 56-70; Steenstra,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.11">
The Being of God as Unity and Trinity</span>, pp. 1-88;
Thomson, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.12">The Christian Idea of God</span>, pp. 117-159;
Hendry, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.13">
God the Creator</span> (from the Barthian standpoint); Warfield,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.14">
Calvin and Calvinism</span>
pp.
131-185 (<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iii-p11.15">
Calvin's
Doctrine of God</span>).</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.i.iv" next="iii.i.v" prev="iii.i.iii" title="IV. The Names of God">
<h2 id="iii.i.iv-p0.1">IV. The Names of God</h2>
<h4 id="iii.i.iv-p0.2">A. THE NAMES OF GOD IN GENERAL</h4>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p1" shownumber="no">While the Bible records several names of God, it also
speaks of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p1.1">
the name</span> of God in
the singular as, for instance in the following statements: "Thou
shalt not take the name
of the Lord thy
God in vain," <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.7" parsed="|Exod|20|7|0|0" passage="Ex. 20:7">Ex. 20:7</scripRef>; "How excellent is thy name in all the
earth," <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.8.1" parsed="|Ps|8|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 8:1">Ps. 8:1</scripRef>; "As is
thy name, O God, so is thy praise," <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p1.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.48.10" parsed="|Ps|48|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 48:10">Ps. 48:10</scripRef>; "His name is great in
Israel," <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p1.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.76.2" parsed="|Ps|76|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 76:2">Ps. 76:2</scripRef>; "The name of Jehovah is a strong tower; the righteous runneth
into it and is safe," <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p1.6" osisRef="Bible:Prov.18.10" parsed="|Prov|18|10|0|0" passage="Prov. 18:10">Prov. 18:10</scripRef>. In such cases "the name"
stands for the whole manifestation of God in His relation to His people, or simply for the person, so that it becomes
synonymous with
God. This usage is due to the fact that in oriental thought a name was
never regarded as
a mere vocable, but as an expression of the nature of the thing
designated. To know the
name of a person was to have power over him, and the names of the various
gods were used in incantations to exercise power over them. In the
most general sense of the word,
then, the name of God is His self-revelation. It is a designation of
Him, not as He exists
in the depths of His divine Being, but as He reveals Himself especially
in His relations
to man. For us the one general name of God is split up into many names,
expressive of
the many-sided Being of God. It is only because God has revealed Himself
in His name
(nomen editum), that we can now designate Him by that name in various
forms
(nomina indita). The names of God are not of human invention, but of
divine origin,
though they are all borrowed from human language, and derived from human
and
earthly relations. They are anthropomorphic and mark a condescending
approach of
God to man.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p2" shownumber="no">
The names of God constitute a difficulty for human
thought. God is the
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p2.1">Incomprehensible One</span>, infinitely exalted above all that is temporal; but in His names He descends to all that is finite and becomes like unto man. On the one
hand we cannot
name Him, and on the other hand He has many names. How can this be
explained? On
what grounds are these names applied to the infinite and
incomprehensible God? It
should be borne in mind that they are not of man's invention, and do not
testify to his
insight into the very Being of God. They are given by God Himself with
the assurance
that they contain in a measure a revelation of the Divine Being. This
was made possible
by the fact that the world and all its relations is and was meant to be
a revelation of
God. Because the Incomprehensible One revealed Himself in His creatures,
it is possible for man to name Him after the fashion of a creature. In order to
make Himself known to
man, God had to condescend to the level of man, to accommodate Himself
to the
limited and finite human consciousness, and to speak in human language.
If the naming
of God with anthropomorphic names involves a limitation of God, as some
say, then
this must be true to an even greater degree of the revelation of God in
creation. Then the
world does not reveal, but rather conceals, God; then man is not related
to God, but
simply forms an antithesis to Him; and then we are shut up to a hopeless
agnosticism.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p3" shownumber="no">
From what was said about the name of God in general it
follows that we can include under the names of God not only the appellatives by which He is
indicated as an
independent personal Being and by which He is addressed, but also the
attributes of
God; and then not merely the attributes of the Divine Being in general,
but also those
that qualify the separate Persons of the Trinity. Dr. Bavinck bases his
division of the
names of God on that broad conception of them, and distinguishes between
nomina
propria (proper names), nomina essentialia (essential names, or
attributes), and nomina
personalia (personal names, as Father, Son, and Holy Spirit). In the
present chapter we
limit ourselves to the discussion of the first class.</p>


<h4 id="iii.i.iv-p3.1">B. THE OLD TESTAMENT NAMES AND THEIR MEANING</h4>
<p id="iii.i.iv-p4" shownumber="no"> 1. 'EL 'ELOHIM, and 'ELYON. The most simple name by which God is designated in the Old Testament, is the name '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p4.1">El</span>
which is possibly derived
from '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p4.2">ul</span>, either in the
sense of being first, being lord, or in that of being strong and mighty.
The name '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p4.3">
Elohim </span>(sing. '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p4.4">Eloah</span>) is probably derived from the same root, or from '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p4.5">alah</span>, to be smitten with
fear; and therefore points to God as the strong and mighty One, or as
the object of fear.
The name seldom occurs in the singular, except in poetry. The plural is
to be regarded as
intensive, and therefore serves to indicate a fulness of power. The name
'<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p4.6">Elyon</span> is
derived from '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p4.7">
alah</span>, to go up, to be elevated, and designates God as the high and exalted One, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Gen.14.19" parsed="|Gen|14|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 14:19">Gen. 14:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:Gen.14.20" parsed="|Gen|14|20|0|0" passage="Gen 14:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:Num.24.16" parsed="|Num|24|16|0|0" passage="Num. 24:16">Num. 24:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.14.14" parsed="|Isa|14|14|0|0" passage="Isa. 14:14">Isa. 14:14</scripRef>. It is found especially in poetry. These names
are not yet<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p4.12">
nomina propria</span> in the strict sense of the word, for they are also used of idols, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.95.3" parsed="|Ps|95|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 95:3">Ps. 95:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.96.5" parsed="|Ps|96|5|0|0" passage="Ps 96:5">96:5</scripRef>,
of men, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.15" osisRef="Bible:Gen.33.10" parsed="|Gen|33|10|0|0" passage="Gen. 33:10">Gen. 33:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.16" osisRef="Bible:Exod.7.1" parsed="|Exod|7|1|0|0" passage="Ex. 7:1">Ex. 7:1</scripRef>, and of rulers, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.17" osisRef="Bible:Judg.5.8" parsed="|Judg|5|8|0|0" passage="Judg. 5:8">Judg. 5:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.18" osisRef="Bible:Exod.21.6" parsed="|Exod|21|6|0|0" passage="Ex. 21:6">Ex. 21:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.19" osisRef="Bible:Exod.22.8-Exod.22.10" parsed="|Exod|22|8|22|10" passage="Ex 22:8-10">22:8-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p4.20" osisRef="Bible:Ps.82" parsed="|Ps|82|0|0|0" passage="Ps. 82">Ps. 82</scripRef>. 1</p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p5" shownumber="no">'ADONAI. This name is related in meaning to the preceding ones. It is derived
from either<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p5.1">
dun</span> (<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p5.2">din</span>) or '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p5.3">adan</span>, both of which mean to judge, to rule, and thus points to God as the almighty Ruler, to whom everything is subject, and to whom man is
related as a
servant. In earlier times it was the usual name by which the people of
Israel addressed
God. Later on it was largely supplanted by the name Jehovah (<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p5.4">Yahweh</span>). All the names so far mentioned describe God as the high and exalted One, the transcendent
God. The
following names point to the fact that this exalted Being condescended
to enter into
relations with His creatures.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p6" shownumber="no"> 3. SHADDAI and 'EL SHADDAI. The name<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p6.1"> Shaddai</span> is derived from shadad, to be
powerful, and points to God as possessing all power in heaven and on
earth. Others,
however, derive it from<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p6.2">
shad</span>
lord. It differs in an
important point from '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p6.3">Elohim</span>, the God of creation and nature, in that it contemplates God as
subjecting all the powers of nature
and making them subservient to the work of divine grace. While it
stresses the
greatness of God, it does not represent Him as an object of fear and
terror, but as a
source of blessing and comfort. It is the name with which God appeared
unto Abraham,
the father of
the faithful, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Exod.6.2" parsed="|Exod|6|2|0|0" passage="Ex. 6:2">Ex. 6:2</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p7" shownumber="no"> 4. YAHWEH and YAHWEH TSEBHAOTH. It is
especially in the name<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.1"> Yahweh</span>, which gradually supplanted earlier names, that God reveals Himself as the God
of grace. It has
always been regarded as the most sacred and the most distinctive name of
God, the
incommunicable name. The Jews had a superstitious dread of using it,
since they read
<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Lev.24.16" parsed="|Lev|24|16|0|0" passage="Lev. 24:16">Lev. 24:16</scripRef> as
follows: "He that nameth the name of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.3">
Yahweh</span> shall surely be put to death." And
therefore in reading the Scriptures they substituted for it either '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.4">Adonai</span> or '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.5">
Elohim; </span>and the Massoretes, while leaving the consonants intact, attached to
them the vowels of
one of these names, usually those of '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.6">
Adonai.</span>
The real
derivation of the name and its original pronunciation and meaning are more or less lost in obscurity.
The Pentateuch
connects the name with the Hebrew verb<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.7">
hayah</span>
to be, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Exod.3.13" parsed="|Exod|3|13|0|0" passage="Ex. 3:13">Ex.
3:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Exod.3.14" parsed="|Exod|3|14|0|0" passage="Ex 3:14">14</scripRef>. On the strength of that passage we may assume that the name is in all probability derived
from an archaic
form of that verb, namely,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.10">
hawah.</span>
As far as the form
is concerned, it may be regarded as
a third person imperfect<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.11">
qal</span>
or<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.12"> hiphil.</span> Most likely, however, it is the former. The meaning is explained in <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:Exod.3.14" parsed="|Exod|3|14|0|0" passage="Ex. 3:14">Ex. 3:14</scripRef>, which is rendered "I am that I am,"
or "I shall be what I shall
be." Thus interpreted, the name points to the unchangeableness of
God. Yet it is not so
much the unchangeableness of His essential Being that is in view, as the
unchangeableness of His relation to His people. The name contains the
assurance that
God will be for the people of Moses' day what He was for their fathers,
Abraham, Isaac,
and Jacob. It stresses the covenant faithfulness of God, is His proper
name<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.14">
par excellence</span>,
<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p7.15" osisRef="Bible:Exod.15.3" parsed="|Exod|15|3|0|0" passage="Ex. 15:3">Ex. 15:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p7.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.83.19" parsed="|Ps|83|19|0|0" passage="Ps. 83:19">Ps.
83:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p7.17" osisRef="Bible:Hos.12.6" parsed="|Hos|12|6|0|0" passage="Hos. 12:6">Hos. 12:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p7.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.8" parsed="|Isa|42|8|0|0" passage="Isa. 42:8">Isa. 42:8</scripRef>, and is therefore used of no one but Israel's God. The exclusive character of the name appears from the fact that it never
occurs in the
plural or with a suffix. Abbreviated forms of it, found especially in
composite names,
are<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.19">
Yah</span> and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p7.20">
Yahu.</span></p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p8" shownumber="no">The name<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p8.1">
Yahweh</span>
is often
strengthened by the addition of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p8.2">
tsebhaoth.</span>
Origen and Jerome regard this as an apposition, because<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p8.3"> Yahweh</span> does not admit of a construct state. But this interpretation is not sufficiently warranted and hardly yields
an intelligible
sense. It is rather hard to determine to what the word<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p8.4">tsebhaoth</span>refers. There are especially three opinions:</p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p9" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p9.1">
The armies of Israel.</span>
But the
correctness of this view may well be doubted. Most of the passages quoted to support this idea do not prove the point; only
three of them
contain a
semblance of proof, namely, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.4.4" parsed="|1Sam|4|4|0|0" passage="I Sam. 4:4">I Sam. 4:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.17.45" parsed="|1Sam|17|45|0|0" passage="I Sam. 17:45">17:45</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.6.2" parsed="|2Sam|6|2|0|0" passage="II Sam. 6:2">II Sam. 6:2</scripRef>, while one of them,
<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.19.31" parsed="|2Kgs|19|31|0|0" passage="II Kings 19:31">II Kings 19:31</scripRef>, is rather unfavorable to this view. While the plural<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p9.6">
tsebhaoth</span> is used for the
hosts of the people of Israel, the army is regularly indicated by the
singular. This
militates against the notion, inherent in this view, that in the name
under consideration
the term refers to the army of Israel. Moreover, it is clear that in the
Prophets at least the
name "Jehovah of hosts" does not refer to Jehovah as the God
of war. And if the
meaning of the name changed, what caused the change?</p>
<p id="iii.i.iv-p10" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p10.1">
The stars.</span>
But in speaking of
the host of heaven Scripture always uses the singular, and never the plural. Moreover, while the stars are called the host of
heaven, they are
never designated the host of God.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p11" shownumber="no">The angels. This interpretation deserves preference.
The name<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p11.1">
Yahweh tsebhaoth</span> is often found in connections in which angels are mentioned: <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.4.4" parsed="|1Sam|4|4|0|0" passage="I Sam. 4:4">I Sam. 4:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.6.2" parsed="|2Sam|6|2|0|0" passage="II Sam. 6:2">II
Sam. 6:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.37.16" parsed="|Isa|37|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 37:16">Isa.
37:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Hos.12.4" parsed="|Hos|12|4|0|0" passage="Hos. 12:4">Hos.
12:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Hos.12.5" parsed="|Hos|12|5|0|0" passage="Hos 12:5">5</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.80.1" parsed="|Ps|80|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 80:1">Ps. 80:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.80.4" parsed="|Ps|80|4|0|0" passage="Ps 80:4">4</scripRef> f.; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89" parsed="|Ps|89|0|0|0" passage="Ps. 89">Ps. 89</scripRef>; 6-8. The angels are repeatedly represented as a host that
surrounds the throne of God, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Gen.28.12" parsed="|Gen|28|12|0|0" passage="Gen. 28:12">Gen. 28:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:Gen.32.2" parsed="|Gen|32|2|0|0" passage="Gen 32:2">32:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:Josh.5.14" parsed="|Josh|5|14|0|0" passage="Jos. 5:14">Jos. 5:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.13" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.22.19" parsed="|1Kgs|22|19|0|0" passage="I Kings 22:19">I Kings 22:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.68.17" parsed="|Ps|68|17|0|0" passage="Ps. 68:17">Ps.
68:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.21" parsed="|Ps|103|21|0|0" passage="Ps 103:21">103:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.148.2" parsed="|Ps|148|2|0|0" passage="Ps 148:2">148:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.17" osisRef="Bible:Isa.6.2" parsed="|Isa|6|2|0|0" passage="Isa. 6:2">Isa. 6:2</scripRef>. It is true that in this case also the singular
is generally used, but
this is no serious objection, since the Bible also indicates that there
were several
divisions of
angels, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.18" osisRef="Bible:Gen.32.2" parsed="|Gen|32|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 32:2">Gen. 32:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.19" osisRef="Bible:Deut.33.2" parsed="|Deut|33|2|0|0" passage="Deut. 33:2">Deut. 33:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.20" osisRef="Bible:Ps.68.17" parsed="|Ps|68|17|0|0" passage="Ps. 68:17">Ps. 68:17</scripRef>. Moreover, this interpretation is in
harmony with the meaning of the name, which has no martial flavor,
but is expressive
of the glory of
God as King, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.21" osisRef="Bible:Deut.33.2" parsed="|Deut|33|2|0|0" passage="Deut. 33:2">Deut. 33:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.22" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.22.19" parsed="|1Kgs|22|19|0|0" passage="I Kings 22:19">I Kings 22:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.23" osisRef="Bible:Ps.24.10" parsed="|Ps|24|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 24:10">Ps. 24:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.24" osisRef="Bible:Isa.6.3" parsed="|Isa|6|3|0|0" passage="Isa. 6:3">Isa. 6:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.25" osisRef="Bible:Isa.24.23" parsed="|Isa|24|23|0|0" passage="Isa 24:23">24:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p11.26" osisRef="Bible:Zech.14.16" parsed="|Zech|14|16|0|0" passage="Zech. 14:16">Zech. 14:16</scripRef>. Jehovah of hosts, then, is God as the King of glory, who is
surrounded by angelic hosts, who rules heaven and earth in the interest of His
people, and who receives glory from all His creatures.</p>

<h4 id="iii.i.iv-p11.27">C. THE NEW TESTAMENT NAMES AND THEIR INTERPRETATION</h4>
<p id="iii.i.iv-p12" shownumber="no"> 1. THEOS. The New Testament has the
Greek equivalents of the Old Testament
names. For '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.1">
El</span>, '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.2">
Elohim</span>, and '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.3">
Elyon</span>
it has<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.4">
Theos</span>
, which is the most common name applied
to God. Like '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.5">
Elohim</span>, it may by accommodation be used of heathen gods, though strictly
speaking it
expresses essential deity. '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.6">
Elyon</span>
is rendered<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.7">
Hupsistos Theos</span>, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:Mark.5.7" parsed="|Mark|5|7|0|0" passage="Mark 5:7">Mark 5:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.32" parsed="|Luke|1|32|0|0" passage="Luke 1:32">Luke 1:32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">35</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.75" parsed="|Luke|1|75|0|0" passage="Luke 1:75">75</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.48" parsed="|Acts|7|48|0|0" passage="Acts 7:48">Acts
7:48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.17" parsed="|Acts|16|17|0|0" passage="Acts 16:17">16:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.14" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.1" parsed="|Heb|7|1|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:1">Heb. 7:1</scripRef>. The names<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.15">
Shaddai</span>
and '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.16">El-Shaddai</span>
are rendered<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.17">
Pantokrator</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.18">
Theos
Pantokrator</span>, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.19" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.6.18" parsed="|2Cor|6|18|0|0" passage="II Cor. 6:18">II Cor. 6:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.20" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.8" parsed="|Rev|1|8|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:8">Rev. 1:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.21" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.8" parsed="|Rev|4|8|0|0" passage="Rev 4:8">4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.22" osisRef="Bible:Rev.11.17" parsed="|Rev|11|17|0|0" passage="Rev 11:17">11:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.23" osisRef="Bible:Rev.15.3" parsed="|Rev|15|3|0|0" passage="Rev 15:3">15:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.24" osisRef="Bible:Rev.16.7" parsed="|Rev|16|7|0|0" passage="Rev 16:7">16:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p12.25" osisRef="Bible:Rev.16.14" parsed="|Rev|16|14|0|0" passage="Rev 16:14">14</scripRef>. More
generally, however,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.26">
Theos</span>
is found with a
genitive of possession, such as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.27">
mou</span>,
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.28">sou</span>,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.29">
hemon</span>,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p12.30">
humon</span>, because in Christ God may be regarded as the God of all and of each
one
of His children. The national idea of the Old Testament has made place
for the
individual in religion.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p13" shownumber="no">2. KURIOS. The name<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p13.1">
Yahweh</span>
is explicated a few times by variations of a descriptive
kind, such as "the Alpha and the Omega," "who is and who
was and who is to come," "the
beginning and the end," "the first and the last," <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.4" parsed="|Rev|1|4|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:4">Rev. 1:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.8" parsed="|Rev|1|8|0|0" passage="Rev 1:8">8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.17" parsed="|Rev|1|17|0|0" passage="Rev 1:17">17</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.8" parsed="|Rev|2|8|0|0" passage="Rev 2:8">2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.6" parsed="|Rev|21|6|0|0" passage="Rev 21:6">21:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.22.13" parsed="|Rev|22|13|0|0" passage="Rev 22:13">22:13</scripRef>. For the rest, however the New Testament follows the Septuagint, which
substituted '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p13.8">Adonai </span>
for it, and rendered this by<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p13.9">
Kurios</span>
derived from<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p13.10">
kuros</span>
, power. This name does not have
exactly the same connotation as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p13.11">
Yahweh</span>
but designates
God as the Mighty One, the Lord, the Possessor, the Ruler who has legal power and authority. It is
used not only of
God, but also of Christ.</p>

<p id="iii.i.iv-p14" shownumber="no">3. PATER. It is often said that the New
Testament introduced a new name of God,
namely,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.iv-p14.1">Pater</span>
(Father). But this is hardly correct. The name Father is used of the
Godhead even in heathen religions. It is used repeatedly in the Old
Testament to
designate the
relation of God to Israel, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.6" parsed="|Deut|32|6|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:6">Deut. 32:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.13" parsed="|Ps|103|13|0|0" passage="Ps. 103:13">Ps. 103:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.63.16" parsed="|Isa|63|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 63:16">Isa. 63:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.64.8" parsed="|Isa|64|8|0|0" passage="Isa 64:8">64:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Jer.3.4" parsed="|Jer|3|4|0|0" passage="Jer. 3:4">Jer. 3:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Jer.3.19" parsed="|Jer|3|19|0|0" passage="Jer 3:19">19</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.9" parsed="|Jer|31|9|0|0" passage="Jer 31:9">31:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.9" osisRef="Bible:Mal.1.6" parsed="|Mal|1|6|0|0" passage="Mal. 1:6">Mal. 1:6</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.10" osisRef="Bible:Mal.2.10" parsed="|Mal|2|10|0|0" passage="Mal 2:10">2:10</scripRef>, while Israel is called the son of God, <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.11" osisRef="Bible:Exod.4.22" parsed="|Exod|4|22|0|0" passage="Ex. 4:22">Ex. 4:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.12" osisRef="Bible:Deut.14.1" parsed="|Deut|14|1|0|0" passage="Deut. 14:1">Deut. 14:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.13" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.19" parsed="|Deut|32|19|0|0" passage="Deut 32:19">32:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.14" osisRef="Bible:Isa.1.2" parsed="|Isa|1|2|0|0" passage="Isa. 1:2">Isa. 1:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.15" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.20" parsed="|Jer|31|20|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:20">Jer. 31:20</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.16" osisRef="Bible:Hos.1.10" parsed="|Hos|1|10|0|0" passage="Hos. 1:10">Hos. 1:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.17" osisRef="Bible:Hos.11.1" parsed="|Hos|11|1|0|0" passage="Hos 11:1">11:1</scripRef>. In such cases the name is expressive of the special theocratic relation in which God stands to Israel. In the general sense
of originator or creator it is used in the following New Testament passages: <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.18" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.6" parsed="|1Cor|8|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:6">I Cor. 8:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.19" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.15" parsed="|Eph|3|15|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:15">Eph. 3:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.20" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.9" parsed="|Heb|12|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:9">Heb.
12:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.iv-p14.21" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.18" parsed="|Jas|1|18|0|0" passage="James 1:18">James 1:18</scripRef>. In all other places it serves to express either the
special relation in which the first Person of the Trinity stands to Christ, as the Son of
God either in a metaphysical or a mediatorial sense, or the ethical relation in which
God stands to all believers as His spiritual children. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.i.v" next="iii.i.vi" prev="iii.i.iv" title="V. The Attributes of God in General">
<h2 id="iii.i.v-p0.1">V. The Attributes of God in General</h2>

<h4 id="iii.i.v-p0.2">A. EVALUATION OF THE TERMS USED</h4>
<p id="iii.i.v-p1" shownumber="no">
The name "attributes" is not ideal, since it
conveys the notion of adding or assigning something to one, and is therefore
apt to create the impression that something is added
to the divine Being. Undoubtedly the term "properties" is
better, as pointing to
something that is proper to God and to God only. Naturally, in so far as
some of the
attributes are communicable, the absolute character of the proprium is
weakened, for to
that extent some of the attributes are not proper to God in the absolute
sense of the
word. But even this term contains the suggestion of a distinction
between the essence or
nature of God and that which is proper to it. On the whole it is
preferable to speak of
the "perfections" or "virtues" of God, with the
distinct understanding, however, that in
this case the term "virtues" is not used in a purely ethical
sense. By so doing we (a) follow the usage
of the Bible, which uses the term<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p1.1">
arete</span>, rendered<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p1.2">
virtues</span>
or<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p1.3">
excellencies</span>, in <scripRef id="iii.i.v-p1.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.9" parsed="|1Pet|2|9|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:9">I Pet. 2:9</scripRef>; and (b) avoid the suggestion that something is added to
the Being of God.
His virtues are not added to His Being, but His Being is the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p1.5">
pleroma</span>
of His virtues and reveals itself
in them. They may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p1.6">
the perfections which are predicated of the Divine Being in Scripture, or are
visibly exercised by Him in His works of creation, providence, and redemption.</span>
If we still continue to use the name
"attributes," it is because it is commonly used and with the distinct understanding that the notion of
something added to the Being of God must be rigidly excluded.
</p>


<h4 id="iii.i.v-p1.7">B. METHOD OF DETERMINING THE ATTRIBUTES OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.v-p2" shownumber="no">Scholastics in their attempt to construct a system of
natural theology posited
three ways in which to determine the attributes of God, which they
designated as the <span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p2.1">
via causalitatis, via negationis, and
via eminentiae.</span>
By the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p2.2">
way of causality</span>
we rise from
the
effects which we see in the world round about us to the idea of a first
Cause, from the
contemplation of creation, to the idea of an almighty Creator, and from
the observation
of the moral government of the world, to the idea of a powerful and wise
Ruler.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p2.3">
By way of negation</span>
we remove from our idea of God all the imperfections seen in His
creatures,
as inconsistent with the idea of a Perfect Being, and ascribe to Him the
opposite
perfection. In reliance on that principle we speak of God as
independent, infinite,
incorporeal, immense, immortal, and incomprehensible. And finally,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p2.4">
by way of eminence </span>
we ascribe to
God<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p2.5"> in the most eminent manner</span>
the relative
perfections which we discover in man, according to the principle that what exists in an effect,
pre-exists in its cause,
and even in the most absolute sense in God as the most perfect Being.
This method may
appeal to some, because it proceeds from the known to the unknown, but
is not the
proper method of dogmatic theology. It takes its starting point in man,
and concludes
from what it finds in man to what is found in God. And in so far as it
does this it makes man the measure of God. This is certainly not a theological
method of procedure.
Moreover, it bases its knowledge of God on human conclusions rather than
on the self-
revelation of God in His divine Word. And yet this is the only adequate
source of the
knowledge of God. While that method might be followed in a so-called
natural
theology, it does not fit in a theology of revelation.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.v-p3" shownumber="no">
The same may be said of the methods suggested by modern
representatives of
experimental
theology. A typical example of this may be found in Macintosh's<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p3.1">
Theology
as an Empirical Science.</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.v-p3.2" n="18" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p3.3">p. 159 ff.</span></note> He also speaks of three methods
of procedure. We may begin with our intuitions of the reality of God, those unreasoned certitudes
which are firmly
rooted in immediate experience. One of these is that the Object of our
religious
dependence is absolutely sufficient for our imperative needs. Especially
may
deductions be drawn from the life of Jesus and the
"Christlike" everywhere. We may
also take our starting point, not in man's certainties, but in his
needs. The practically
necessary postulate is that God is absolutely sufficient and absolutely
dependable with
reference to the religious needs of man. On that basis man can build up
his doctrine of
the attributes of God. And, finally, it is also possible to follow a
more pragmatic method,
which rests on the principle that we can learn to a certain extent what
things and
persons are, beyond what they are immediately perceived to be, by
observing what they
do. Macintosh finds it necessary to make use of all three methods.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.v-p4" shownumber="no">
Ritschl wants us to start with the idea that God is love,
and would have us ask what is involved in this most characteristic thought of God. Since love is
personal, it implies
the personality of God, and thus affords us a principle for the
interpretation of the
world and of the life of man. The thought that God is love also carries
with it the
conviction that He can achieve His purpose of love, that is, that His
will is supremely
effective in the world. This yields the idea of an almighty Creator. And
by virtue of this
basic thought we also affirm God's eternity, since, in controlling all
things for the
realization of His Kingdom, He sees the end from the beginning. In a
somewhat similar
vein Dr. W. A. Brown says: "We gain our knowledge of the attributes
by analyzing the idea of God which we already won from the revelation in Christ; and we
arrange them
in such a way as to bring the distinctive features of that idea to
clearest expression."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.v-p4.1" n="19" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p4.2">Chr. Theol. in Outline,</span> p. 101.</note></p>


<p id="iii.i.v-p5" shownumber="no">
All these methods take their starting point in human
experience rather than in the Word of God. They deliberately ignore the clear self-revelation of God
in Scripture and
exalt the idea of the human discovery of God. They who rely on such
methods have an
exaggerated idea of their own ability to find out God and to determine
the nature of
God inductively by approved "scientific methods." At the same
time they close their
eyes to the only avenue through which they might obtain real knowledge of
God, that
is, His special revelation, apparently oblivious of the fact that only
the Spirit of God can
search and reveal the deep things of God and reveal them unto us. Their
very method
compels them to drag God down to the level of man, to stress His
immanence at the
expense of His transcendence, and to make Him continuous with the world.
And as the
final result of their philosophy we have a God made in the image of man.
James
condemns all intellectualism in religion, and maintains that philosophy
in the form of
scholastic
theology fails as completely to define God's attributes in a scientific way as
it does to establish His existence. After an appeal to the book of Job he
says:
"Ratiocination is a relatively superficial and unreal path to the
deity." He concludes his discussion with these significant words: "In all sincerity I think
we must conclude that
the attempt to demonstrate by purely intellectual processes the truth of
the deliverances
of direct religious experiences is absolutely hopeless."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.v-p5.1" n="20" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p5.2">Varieties of Religions Experience,</span> p.455</note>
He has more confidence in the
pragmatic method which seeks for a God that meets the practical needs of man.
In his
estimation it is sufficient to believe that "beyond each man and in
a fashion continuous
with him there exists a larger power which is friendly to him and to his
ideals. All that
the facts require is that the power should be other and larger than our
conscious selves.
Anything larger will do, if it only be large enough to trust for the
next step. It need not be infinite, it need not be solitary. It might
conceivably even be only a larger and more
godlike self, of which the present self would then be the mutilated
expression, and the
universe might conceivably be a collection of such selves, of different
degree and
inclusiveness, with no absolute unity realized in it at all."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.v-p5.3" n="21" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p5.4">Ibid.,</span> p.525</note>
Thus we are left with the idea of a finite
God.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.v-p5.5" n="22" place="foot">Cf. Baillie, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p5.6">Our Knowledge of God,</span> p.251 ff. on this matter.</note></p>


<p id="iii.i.v-p6" shownumber="no">The only proper way to obtain perfectly reliable knowledge of the divine
attributes
is by the study of God's self-revelation in Scripture. It is true that
we can acquire some
knowledge of the greatness and power, the wisdom and goodness of God
through the
study of nature, but for an adequate conception of even these attributes
it will be
necessary to turn to the Word of God. In the theology of revelation we
seek to learn
from the Word of God which are the attributes of the Divine Being. Man
does not elicit
knowledge from God as he does from other objects of study, but God
conveys
knowledge of Himself to man, a knowledge which man can only accept and
appropriate. For the appropriation and understanding of this revealed
knowledge it is,
of course, of the greatest importance that man is created in the image
of God, and
therefore finds helpful analogies in his own life. In distinction from
the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p6.1">
a priori</span>
method
of the Scholastics, who deduced the attributes from the idea of a
perfect Being, this
method may be called<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p6.2">
a posteriori</span>
since it takes
its starting point, not in an abstract
perfect Being, but in the fulness of the divine self-revelation, and in
the light of this
seeks to know the Divine Being.</p>

<h4 id="iii.i.v-p6.3">C. SUGGESTED DIVISIONS OF THE ATTRIBUTES</h4>

<p id="iii.i.v-p7" shownumber="no">The question of the classification of the divine
attributes has engaged the attention of
theologians for a long time. Several classifications have been
suggested, most of which
distinguish two general classes. These classes are designated by
different names and
represent different points of view, but are substantially the same in
the various
classifications. The following are the most important of these:</p>

<p id="iii.i.v-p8" shownumber="no">1. Some speak of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p8.1">
natural and moral attributes.</span>
The former,
such as self-existence, simplicity, infinity, etc., belong to the constitutional nature of God,
as distinguished
from His will. The latter, as truth, goodness, mercy, justice, holiness,
etc., qualify Him as
a moral Being. The objection to this classification is that the
so-called moral attributes
are just as truly natural (i.e. original) in God as the others. Dabney
prefers this division,
but admits, in view of the objection raised, that the terms are not
felicitous. He would
rather speak of moral and non-moral attributes.</p>

<p id="iii.i.v-p9" shownumber="no">2. Others distinguish between<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p9.1">
absolute and relative attributes.</span>
The former belong to the essence of God as considered in itself, while the latter belong to the
divine essence
considered in relation to His creation. The one class includes such
attributes as self-
existence, immensity, eternity; and the other, such attributes as
omnipresence and
omniscience. This division seems to proceed on the assumption that we
can have some
knowledge of God as He is in Himself, entirely apart from the relations
in which He stands to His creatures. But this is not so, and therefore, properly
speaking, all the
perfections of God are relative, indicating what He is in relation to
the world. Strong
evidently does not recognize the objection, and gives preference to this
division.</p>

<p id="iii.i.v-p10" shownumber="no">3. Still others divide the divine perfections into<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p10.1">
immanent or intransitive and emanent or transitive</span>
attributes. Strong combines this division with the preceding one, when
he  speaks
of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p10.2">
absolute or immanent</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p10.3">
relative or transitive</span>
attributes. The former are those which do not go forth and operate outside of the divine essence, but
remain immanent,
such as immensity, simplicity, eternity, etc.; and the latter are such
as issue forth and
produce effects external to God, as omnipotence, benevolence, justice,
etc. But if some of
the divine attributes are purely immanent, all knowledge of them would
seem to be
excluded. H. B. Smith remarks that every one of them must be both
immanent and transeunt.</p>

<p id="iii.i.v-p11" shownumber="no">4. The most common distinction is that between<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p11.1">
incommunicable and communicable</span> attributes. The former are those to which there is nothing analogous in
the creature, as
aseity, simplicity, immensity, etc.; the latter those to which the
properties of the human
spirit bear some analogy, as power, goodness, mercy, righteousness, etc.
This distinction
found no favor with the Lutherans, but has always been rather popular in
Reformed
circles, and is found in such representative works as those of the
Leyden Professors,<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.v-p11.2" n="23" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p11.3">Synopsis Purioris Theologiae.</span></note> Mastricht and Turretin. It was felt from the very beginning, however,
that the distinction was untenable without further qualification, since from one point of
view every attribute may be called communicable. None of the divine perfections are
communicable in the infinite perfection in which they exist in God, and
at the same time there are faint traces in man even of the so-called incommunicable
attributes of God. Among more recent Reformed theologians there is a tendency to discard
this distinction in favor of some other divisions. Dick, Shedd, and Vos retain the old
division. Kuyper expresses himself as dissatisfied with it, and yet reproduces it in his<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p11.4">
virtutes per antithesin</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p11.5">
virtutes per synthesin;</span>
and Bavinck, after following another order in the first edition of his Dogmatics, returns to it in the second edition.
Honig prefers to follow
the division given by Bavinck in his first edition. And, finally, the
Hodges, H. B. Smith,
and Thornwell follow a division suggested by the Westminster Catechism.
However,
the classification of the attributes under two main heads, as found in
the distinction
under consideration, is really inherent in all the other divisions, so
that they are all
subject to the objection that they apparently divide the Being of God
into two parts, that
first God as He is in Himself, God as the absolute Being, is discussed,
and then God as He is related to His creatures, God as a personal Being. It may be said
that such a
treatment does not result in a unitary and harmonious conception of the
divine
attributes. This difficulty may be obviated, however, by having it
clearly understood
that the two classes of attributes named are not strictly co-ordinate,
but that the
attributes belonging to the first class qualify all those belonging to
the second class, so
that it can be said that God is one, absolute, unchangeable and infinite
in His
knowledge and wisdom, His goodness and love, His grace and mercy, His
righteousness and holiness. If we bear this in mind, and also remember
that none of the
attributes of God are incommunicable in the sense that there is no trace
of them in man,
and that none of them are communicable in the sense that they are found
in man as they
are found in God, we see no reason why we should depart from the old
division which
has become so familiar in Reformed theology. For practical reasons it
seems more
desirable to retain it.
</p>


<p id="iii.i.v-p12" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY:
What objections are there to the use of the term
attributes as applied to God? Do the same objections apply to the German
"Eigenschaften"
and the Holland "eigenschappen"? What name does Calvin use for them? What objection is there to the conception of the attributes as
parts of God or as
additions to the Divine Being? What faulty conceptions of the attributes
were current in
the Middle Ages? Did the Scholastics in their search for the attributes
follow an<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p12.1">
a priori </span>
or an<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p12.2">
a posteriori</span>, a deductive or an inductive method? Why is their method inherently
foreign to the theology of revelation? What classifications of the
attributes were
suggested in addition to those mentioned in the text? Why is it
virtually out of the
question to give a faultless division? What division is suggested by the
Westminster
Catechism? </p>

<p id="iii.i.v-p13" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.1">Geref. Dogm.</span> II, pp. 100-123; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Deo</span>
I, pp. 268-287; Honig,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.3">
Geref. Dogm.</span>, pp. 182-185; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 368-376; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.5">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 334-338; Thornwell,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.6">
Collected Works</span>, I, pp. 158-172; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.7">
Lectures on Theol.</span>, pp. 147-151; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.8">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
I, pp. 524-536; Kaftan,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.9">
Dogm.</span>, pp. 168-181; Pope,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.10">
Chr. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 287-291; Steenstra,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.v-p13.11">
The Being of God as Unity and Trinity</span>, pp. 89-111.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.i.vi" next="iii.i.vii" prev="iii.i.v" title="VI.The Incommunicable Attributes">
<h2 id="iii.i.vi-p0.1">VI. The Incommunicable Attributes</h2>
<h4 id="iii.i.vi-p0.2">(God as the Absolute Being)</h4>
<p id="iii.i.vi-p1" shownumber="no">It has been quite common in theology to speak of God as
the absolute Being. At the same time the term "absolute" is more characteristic of
philosophy than it is of theology.
In metaphysics the term "the Absolute" is a designation of the
ultimate ground of all
existence; and because the theist also speaks of God as the ultimate
ground of all
existence, it is sometimes thought that the Absolute of philosophy and
the God of
theism are one and the same. But that is not necessarily so. In fact the
usual conception
of the Absolute renders it impossible to equate it with the God of the
Bible and of
Christian
theology. The term "Absolute" is derived from the Latin<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p1.1">
absolutus</span>, acompound of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p1.2">
ab</span> (from) and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p1.3">
solvere</span>
(to loosen), and thus means free as to condition, or
free from limitation or restraint. This fundamental thought was worked
out in various
ways, so that the Absolute was regarded as that which is free from all
conditions (the
Unconditioned or Self-Existent), from all relations (the (Unrelated),
from all
imperfections (the Perfect), or free from all phenomenal differences or
distinctions, such
as matter and spirit, being and attributes, subject and object,
appearance and reality (the Real, or
Ultimate Reality).</p>

<p id="iii.i.vi-p2" shownumber="no">The answer to the question, whether the Absolute of
philosophy can be identified
with the God of theology, depends on the conception one has of the
Absolute. If Spinoza
conceives of the Absolute as the one Self-subsistent Being of which all
particular things
are but transient modes, thus identifying God and the world, we cannot
share his view
of this Absolute as God. When Hegel views the Absolute as the unity of
thought and
being, as the totality of all things, which includes all relations, and
in which all the
discords of the present are resolved in perfect unity, we again find it
impossible to
follow him in regarding this Absolute as God. And when Bradley says that
his Absolute
is related to nothing, and that there cannot be any practical relation
between it and the
finite will, we agree with him that his Absolute cannot be the God of
the Christian religion, for this God does enter into relations with finite
creatures. Bradley cannot conceive of the God of religion as other than a finite God. But when the
Absolute is defined as the First Cause of all existing things, or as the ultimate
ground of all reality,
or as the one self-existent Being, it can be considered as identical
with the God of
theology. He is the Infinite One, who does not exist in any<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p2.1">
necessary</span>
relations, because He is self-sufficient, but at the same time can<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p2.2">
freely</span>
enter into various relations with His creation as a whole and with His creatures. While the incommunicable
attributes
emphasize the absolute Being of God, the communicable attributes stress
the fact that
He enters into various relations with His creatures. In the present
chapter the following
perfections of God come into consideration.
</p>


<h4 id="iii.i.vi-p2.3">A. THE SELFEXISTENCE OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.vi-p3" shownumber="no">God is self-existent, that is, He has the ground of His
existence in Himself. This idea
is sometimes expressed by saying that He is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p3.1">
causa sui</span>
(His own cause), but this
expression is hardly accurate, since God is the uncaused, who exists by
the necessity of
His own Being, and therefore necessarily. Man, on the other hand, does
not exist
necessarily, and
has the cause of his existence outside of himself. The idea of God's self-existence was generally expressed by the term<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p3.2">
aseitas</span>, meaning<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p3.3">
self-originated</span>, but
Reformed theologians quite generally substituted for it the word<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p3.4">
independentia </span> (independence), as expressing, not merely that God is independent in His
Being, but
also that He is independent in everything else: in His virtues, decrees,
works, and so on.
It may be said that there is a faint trace of this perfection in the
creature, but this can
only mean that the creature, though absolutely dependent, yet has its own
distinct
existence. But, of course, this falls far short of being self-existent.
This attribute of God is
generally recognized, and is implied in heathen religions and in the
Absolute of
philosophy. When the Absolute is conceived of as the self-existent and
as the ultimate
ground of all things, which voluntarily enters into various relations
with other beings, it
can be identified with the God of theology. As the self-existent God, He
is not only
independent in Himself, but also causes everything to depend on Him.
This self-
existence of God finds expression in the name Jehovah. It is only as the
self-existent and
independent One that God can give the assurance that He will remain
eternally the
same in relation to His people. Additional indications of it are found
in the assertion in
<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:John.5.26" parsed="|John|5|26|0|0" passage="John 5:26">John 5:26</scripRef>, "For as the Father hath life in Himself, even so gave He
to the Son also to
have life in Himself"; in the declaration that He is independent of
all things and that all
things exist
only through Him, <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.94.8" parsed="|Ps|94|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 94:8">Ps. 94:8</scripRef> ff.; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.18" parsed="|Isa|40|18|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:18">Isa. 40:18</scripRef> ff.; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.25" parsed="|Acts|7|25|0|0" passage="Acts 7:25">Acts 7:25</scripRef>; and in statements implying that He is independent in His thought, <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.33" parsed="|Rom|11|33|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:33">Rom. 11:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.34" parsed="|Rom|11|34|0|0" passage="Rom 11:34">34</scripRef>, and in His
will, <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.35" parsed="|Dan|4|35|0|0" passage="Dan. 4:35">Dan. 4:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.19" parsed="|Rom|9|19|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:19">Rom. 9:19</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.5" parsed="|Eph|1|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:5">Eph. 1:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.11" parsed="|Rev|4|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 4:11">Rev. 4:11</scripRef>. in His power, <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.115.3" parsed="|Ps|115|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 115:3">Ps. 115:3</scripRef>, and in His counsel, <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.11" parsed="|Ps|33|11|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:11">Ps. 33:11</scripRef>. </p>


<h4 id="iii.i.vi-p3.17">B. THE IMMUTABILITY OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.vi-p4" shownumber="no">The Immutability of God is a necessary concomitant of His
aseity. It is that
perfection of God by which He is devoid of all change, not only in His
Being, but also in
His perfections, and in His purposes and promises. In virtue of this
attribute He is
exalted above all becoming, and is free from all accession or diminution
and from all growth or decay in His Being or perfections. His knowledge and plans,
His moral
principles and volitions remain forever the same. Even reason teaches us
that no change
is possible in God, since a change is either for better or for worse.
But in God, as the
absolute Perfection, improvement and deterioration are both equally
impossible. This
immutability of God is clearly taught in such passages of Scripture as
<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Exod.3.14" parsed="|Exod|3|14|0|0" passage="Ex. 3:14">Ex. 3:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.26-Ps.102.28" parsed="|Ps|102|26|102|28" passage="Ps. 102:26-28">Ps. 102:26-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.41.4" parsed="|Isa|41|4|0|0" passage="Isa. 41:4">Isa. 41:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.48.12" parsed="|Isa|48|12|0|0" passage="Isa 48:12">48:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.6" parsed="|Mal|3|6|0|0" passage="Mal. 3:6">Mal. 3:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.23" parsed="|Rom|1|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:23">Rom. 1:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.11" parsed="|Heb|1|11|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:11">Heb. 1:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.12" parsed="|Heb|1|12|0|0" passage="Heb 1:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.17" parsed="|Jas|1|17|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:17">Jas. 1:17</scripRef>. At the same time there are many passages of Scripture which seem to ascribe change to
God. Did not He who dwelleth in eternity pass on to the creation of the world, become incarnate
in Christ, and in the Holy Spirit take up His abode in the Church? Is He
not represented as
revealing and hiding Himself, as coming and going, as repenting and
changing His
intention, and as dealing differently with man before and
after conversion? Cf. <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:Exod.32.10-Exod.32.14" parsed="|Exod|32|10|32|14" passage="Ex. 32:10-14">Ex. 32:10-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:Jonah.3.10" parsed="|Jonah|3|10|0|0" passage="Jonah 3:10">Jonah 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.12" osisRef="Bible:Prov.11.20" parsed="|Prov|11|20|0|0" passage="Prov. 11:20">Prov. 11:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.13" osisRef="Bible:Prov.12.22" parsed="|Prov|12|22|0|0" passage="Prov 12:22">12:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.18.26" parsed="|Ps|18|26|0|0" passage="Ps. 18:26">Ps. 18:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p4.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.18.27" parsed="|Ps|18|27|0|0" passage="Ps 18:27">27</scripRef>. The objection here implied is based to a certain extent on misunderstanding. The divine immutability should
not be understood as implying<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p4.16">
immobility</span>
as if there were no movement in God. It is even customary in theology to speak of God as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p4.17">
actus purus</span>, a God who is always in action. The Bible teaches us that God enters
into manifold relations with man and, as it were, lives their life with them. There is change round about Him, change in
the relations of
men to Him, but there is no change in His Being, His attributes, His
purpose, His
motives of action, or His promises. The purpose to create was eternal
with Him, and
there was no change in Him when this purpose was realized by a single
eternal act of His will. The incarnation brought no change in the Being or
perfections of God, nor in His purpose, for it was His eternal good pleasure to send the Son of His
love into the
world. And if Scripture speaks of His repenting, changing His intention,
and altering
His relation to sinners when they repent, we should remember that this is
only an
anthropopathic way of speaking. In reality the change is not in God, but
in man and in
man's relations to God. It is important to maintain the immutability of
God over against
the Pelagian and Arminian doctrine that God is subject to change, not
indeed in His
Being, but in His knowledge and will, so that His decisions are to a
great extent
dependent on the actions of man; over against the pantheistic notion
that God is an
eternal becoming rather than an absolute Being, and that the unconscious
Absolute is
gradually developing into conscious personality in man;
and over against the present tendency of some to speak of a finite, struggling, and gradually growing
God.</p>

<h4 id="iii.i.vi-p4.18">C. THE INFINITY OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.vi-p5" shownumber="no">The infinity of God is that perfection of God by which He
is free from all limitations. In ascribing it to God we deny that there are or can be any limitations
to the divine Being or attributes. It implies that He is in no way limited by the
universe, by this time-
space world, or confined to the universe. It does not involve His
identity with the sum-
total of existing things, nor does it exclude the co-existence of
derived and finite things, to which He bears relation. The infinity of God must be conceived as
intensive rather
than extensive, and should not be confused with boundless extension, as
if God were
spread out through the entire universe, one part being here and another
there, for God
has no body and therefore no extension. Neither should it be regarded as
a merely
negative concept, though it is perfectly true that we cannot form a
positive idea of it. It
is a reality in God fully comprehended only by Him. We distinguish
various aspects of
God's infinity.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vi-p6" shownumber="no">1. HIS ABSOLUTE PERFECTION.
This is the infinity of the Divine Being considered in itself. It should not be understood in a quantitative, but in a
qualitative sense; it
qualifies all the communicable attributes of God. Infinite power is not
an absolute
quantum, but an exhaustless potency of power; and infinite holiness is
not a boundless
quantum of holiness, but a holiness which is, qualitatively free from
all limitation or defect. The same may be said of infinite knowledge and
wisdom, and of infinite love and righteousness. Says Dr. Orr: "Perhaps we can say that infinity
in God is ultimately:
(a) internally and qualitatively, absence of all limitation and defect;
(b) boundless
potentiality."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vi-p6.1" n="24" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p6.2">Side-Lights on Christian Doctrine</span>, p. 26</note> In this sense of the word the
infinity of God is simply identical with the perfection of
His Divine Being. Scripture proof for it is found in <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Job.11.7-Job.11.10" parsed="|Job|11|7|11|10" passage="Job 11:7-10">Job 11:7-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.3" parsed="|Ps|145|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 145:3">Ps. 145:3</scripRef>;
.<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.48" parsed="|Matt|5|48|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:48">Matt. 5:48</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.i.vi-p7" shownumber="no">2. HIS ETERNITY. The infinity of God in relation to time is called His eternity. The
form in which the Bible represents God's eternity is simply that of
duration through
endless ages, <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.2" parsed="|Ps|90|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:2">Ps. 90:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.12" parsed="|Ps|102|12|0|0" passage="Ps 102:12">102:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.21" parsed="|Eph|3|21|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:21">Eph. 3:21</scripRef>. We should remember, however,
that in speaking
as it does the Bible uses popular language, and not the language of
philosophy. We
generally think of God's eternity in the same way, namely, as duration
infinitely
prolonged both backwards and forwards. But this is only a popular and
symbolical way
of representing that which in reality transcends time and differs from
it essentially.
Eternity in the strict sense of the word is abscribed to that which
transcends all temporal
limitations.
That it applies to God in that sense is at least intimated in II Pet. 3:8.
"Time," says Dr. Orr, "strictly has relation to the world of
objects existing in succession. God fills time; is in every part of it; but His eternity still is not really this
being in time. It is rather that to which time forms a contrast."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vi-p7.4" n="25" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p7.5">Ibid., p. 26</span></note> Our existence is marked off by days and weeks and months and years; not so the existence of God. Our life is divided
into a past,
present and future, but there is no such division in the life of God. He
is the eternal "I
am." His
eternity may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p7.6">
that
perfection of God whereby He is elevated above all temporal limits and all succession of
moments, and possesses the whole of His existence in one indivisible present.</span>
The relation of eternity to time
constitutes one of the most difficult problems in philosophy and theology, perhaps incapable of solution in
our present condition. </p>


<p id="iii.i.vi-p8" shownumber="no">3. HIS IMMENSITY. The infinity of
God may also be viewed with reference to space,
and is then called His immensity.
It may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p8.1">
that perfection of the Divine Being by which He transcends all spatial
limitations, and yet is present in every point of space with His whole Being.</span>
It has a negative and a positive side, denying all limitations of space
to the Divine Being, and asserting that God is above space and fills every
part of it<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p8.2">
with His whole Being.</span>
The last words are added, in order to ward off the idea that God is
diffused
through space, so that one part of His Being is present in one place,
and another part in
some other place. We distinguish three modes of presence in space.
Bodies are in space circumscriptively, because they are bounded by it; finite
spirits are in space definitively,
since they are not everywhere, but only in a certain definite place; and
in distinction
from both of these God is in space repletively, because He fills all
space. He is not absent
from any part of it, nor more present in one part than in another.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vi-p9" shownumber="no">In a certain sense the terms "immensity" and "omnipresence,"
as applied to God, denote the same thing, and can therefore be regarded as synonymous. Yet
there is a
point of difference that should be carefully noted.
"Immensity" points to the fact that God transcends all space and is not subject to its limitations, while
"omnipresence"
denotes that He nevertheless fills every part of space with His entire
Being. The former
emphasizes the transcendence, and the latter, the immanence of God. God
is immanent in all His creatures, in His entire creation, but is in no way
bounded by it. In connection with God's relation to the world we must avoid, on the one hand, the
error of Pantheism, so characteristic of a great deal of present day thinking,
with its denial of the
transcendence of God and its assumption that the Being of God is really
the substance
of all things; and, on the other hand, the Deistic conception that God
is indeed present
in creation<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p9.1">
per potentiam</span>
(with His power), but not<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p9.2">
per essentiam et naturam</span>
(with His very Being and nature), and acts upon the world from a distance. Though
God is distinct from the world and may not be identified with it, He is yet
present in every part
of His creation,
not only<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p9.3">
per potentiam</span>, but also<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p9.4">
per essentiam.</span>
This does not mean, however, that He is equally present and present in the same sense in all
His creatures.
The nature of His indwelling is in harmony with that of His creatures.
He does not dwell on earth as He does in heaven, in animals as He does in man, in
the inorganic as
He does in the organic creation, in the wicked as He does in the pious,
nor in the
Church as He does in Christ. There is an endless variety in the manner
in which He is
immanent in His creatures, and in the measure in which they reveal God to
those who
have eyes to see. The omnipresence of God is clearly revealed in
Scripture. Heaven and
earth cannot contain Him, <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.27" parsed="|1Kgs|8|27|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:27">I Kings 8:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.66.1" parsed="|Isa|66|1|0|0" passage="Isa. 66:1">Isa. 66:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.48" parsed="|Acts|7|48|0|0" passage="Acts 7:48">Acts 7:48</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.49" parsed="|Acts|7|49|0|0" passage="Acts 7:49">49</scripRef>; and at
the same time He
fills both and
is a God at hand, <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.7-Ps.139.10" parsed="|Ps|139|7|139|10" passage="Ps. 139:7-10">Ps. 139:7-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.23" parsed="|Jer|23|23|0|0" passage="Jer. 23:23">Jer. 23:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p9.11" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.24" parsed="|Jer|23|24|0|0" passage="Jer 23:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p9.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.27" parsed="|Acts|17|27|0|0" passage="Acts 17:27">Acts 17:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p9.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.28" parsed="|Acts|17|28|0|0" passage="Acts 17:28">28</scripRef>. </p>
<h4 id="iii.i.vi-p9.14">D. THE UNITY OF GOD </h4>
<p id="iii.i.vi-p10" shownumber="no">A distinction is made between the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p10.1">
unitas singularitatis</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p10.2"> unitas simplicitatis.</span>
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vi-p11" shownumber="no">1. THE UNITAS SINGULARITATIS. This
attribute stresses both the oneness and the
unicity of God, the fact that He is numerically one and that as such He
is unique. It
implies that there is but one Divine Being, that from the nature of the
case there can be
but one, and that all other beings exist of and through and unto Him.
The Bible teaches
us in several passages that there is but one true God. Solomon pleaded
with God to
maintain the cause of His people, "that all the peoples of the
earth may know that
Jehovah, He is God; there is none else," <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.60" parsed="|1Kgs|8|60|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:60">I Kings 8:60</scripRef>. And Paul
writes to the Corinthians, "But to us there is but one God, the Father, of whom are all
things, and we in Him; and one Lord Jesus Christ, by whom are all things, and we in Him," <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.6" parsed="|1Cor|8|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:6">I
Cor. 8:6</scripRef>. Similarly he
writes to Timothy, "For there is one God, and one Mediator between
God and men, the
man Christ Jesus," <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.5" parsed="|1Tim|2|5|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:5">I Tim. 2:5</scripRef>. Other passages do not stress the
numerical unity of God
as much as they do His uniqueness. This is the case in the well known
words of <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Deut.6.4" parsed="|Deut|6|4|0|0" passage="Deut. 6:4">Deut. 6:4</scripRef>, "Hear,
O Israel; Jehovah our God is one Jehovah." The Hebrew word '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p11.5">
echad</span>, translated by "one" may also be rendered "an only,"
the equivalent of the German "einig"
and the Dutch "eenig." And this would seem to be a better
translation. Keil stresses that fact that this passage does not teach the numerical unity
of God, but rather
that Jehovah is the only God that is entitled to the name Jehovah. This
is also the meaning of the term in <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Zech.14.9" parsed="|Zech|14|9|0|0" passage="Zech. 14:9">Zech. 14:9</scripRef>. The same idea is beautifully
expressed in the
rhetorical question of <scripRef id="iii.i.vi-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Exod.15.11" parsed="|Exod|15|11|0|0" passage="Ex. 15:11">Ex. 15:11</scripRef>, "Who is like unto thee, O
Jehovah, among the gods?
Who is like thee, glorious in holiness, fearful in praises, doing
wonders?" This excludes
all polytheistic conceptions of God.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vi-p12" shownumber="no">2. THE UNITAS SIMPLICITATIS. While the
unity discussed in the preceding sets God
apart from other beings, the perfection now under consideration is
expressive of the inner and qualitative unity of the Divine Being. When we speak of the
simplicity of God, we use the term to describe the state or quality of being simple,
the condition of being free from division into parts, and therefore from compositeness.
It means that God is not composite and is not susceptible of division in any sense of
the word. This
implies among other things that the three Persons in the Godhead are not
so many parts
of which the Divine essence is composed, that God's essence and
perfections are not
distinct, and that the attributes are not superadded to His essence.
Since the two are
one, the Bible can speak of God as light and life, as righteousness and
love, thus
identifying Him with His perfections. The simplicity of God follows from
some of His
other perfections; from His Self-existence, which excludes the idea that
something
preceded Him, as in the case of compounds; and from His immutability,
which could
not be predicated of His nature, if it were made up of parts. This
perfection was
disputed during the Middle Ages, and was denied by
Socinians and Arminians.
Scripture does not explicitly assert it, but implies it where it speaks
of God as
righteousness, truth, wisdom, light, life, love, and so on, and thus
indicates that each of
these properties, because of their absolute perfection, is identical
with His Being. In
recent works on theology the simplicity of God is seldom mentioned. Many
theologians positively deny it, either because it is regarded as a purely
metaphysical abstraction, or because, in their estimation, it conflicts with the doctrine of
the Trinity. Dabney believes that there is no composition in the substance of God, but denies that in
Him substance and attributes are one and the same. He claims that God is no more simple
in that respect than finite spirits.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vi-p12.1" n="26" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p12.2">Syst. and Polem. Theol., p.</span> 43f.</note></p>


<p id="iii.i.vi-p13" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. What different conceptions of
the Absolute do we
meet with in philosophy? Can the Absolute of philosophy always be
identified with the
God of theology? How does Bradley distinguish between the two? How is
the finite
God of James, Schiller, Ward, Wells and others, related to the Absolute?
How do the
incommunicable attributes of God link up with the Absolute? Does the
immutability of
God exclude all movement in God? In how far does it exclude changes of
action and
relations? Should the absolute perfection of God be regarded as an
attribute? Why does
the Bible represent God's eternity as endless duration? Is it possible
to harmonize the
transcendence and the immanence of God? How is transcendence frequently
interpreted in modern theology? What is implied in the simplicity of
God? </p>

<p id="iii.i.vi-p14" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.1">Geref. Dogm.</span> II, pp. 137-171; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.2">
Dict. Dogm., Deo</span>
I, pp.
287-318; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.3">
Syst. Theol. I</span>, pp. 380-393; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.4">
Dogm. Theol. I</span>, pp. 338-353; Dabney,
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.5">Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 151-154; Thornwell,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.6">
Collected Works</span>
I, pp. 189-205; Strong,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.7">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 254-260, 275-279; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.8">
Christl. Dogm.</span> I, pp. 536-543, 547-549; Knudson,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.9">
The Doct. of God</span>, pp. 242-284; Steenstra,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.10">
God as Unity and Trinity</span>, pp. 112-139;
Charnock, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vi-p14.11">Existence and
Attributes of God.</span>
pp. 276-405.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.i.vii" next="iii.i.viii" prev="iii.i.vi" title="VII. The Communicable">

<h2 id="iii.i.vii-p0.1">VII. The Communicable Attributes</h2>
<h4 id="iii.i.vii-p0.2">(God as a Personal Spirit)</h4>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p1" shownumber="no">If the attributes discussed in the previous chapter
stressed the absolute Being of God, those that remain to be considered
emphasize His personal nature. It is in the
communicable attributes that God stands out as a conscious, intelligent,
free, and moral
Being, as a Being that is personal in the highest sense of the word. The
question has long
engaged the attention of philosophers, and is still a subject of debate,
whether personal
existence is consistent with the idea of absoluteness. The answer to
that question
depends to a great extent on the meaning one ascribes to the word
"absolute." The word has been used in three different senses in philosophy, which may be
denominated
as the agnostic, the logical, and the causal sense. For the agnostic the
Absolute is the
unrelated, of which nothing can be known, since things are known only in
their relations. And if nothing can be known of it, personality cannot be
ascribed to it.
Moreover, since personality is unthinkable apart from relations, it
cannot be identified
with an Absolute which is in its very essence the unrelated. In the
logical Absolute the
individual is subordinated to the universal, and the highest universal
is ultimate reality.
Such is the absolute substance of Spinoza, and the absolute spirit of
Hegel. It may
express itself in and through the finite, but nothing that is finite can
express its essential
nature. To ascribe personality to it would be to limit it to one mode of
being, and would
destroy its absoluteness. In fact, such an absolute or ultimate is a
mere abstract and
empty concept, that is barren of all content. The causal view of the
Absolute represents
it as the ultimate ground of all things. It is not dependent on anything
outside of itself,
but causes all things to depend on it. Moreover, it is not necessarily
completely
unrelated, but can enter into various relations with finite creatures.
Such a conception of
the Absolute is not inconsistent with the idea of personality. Moreover,
we should bear
in mind that in their argumentation philosophers were always operating
with the idea
of personality as it is realized in man, and lost sight of the fact that
personality in God
might be something infinitely more perfect. As a matter of fact, perfect
personality is
found only in God, and what we see in man is only a finite copy of the
original. Still
more, there is a tripersonality in God, of which no analogy is found in
human beings.</p>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p2" shownumber="no">Several natural proofs, quite similar to those adduced
for the existence of God, have been urged to prove the personality of God. (1) Human personality demands
a personal God for its explanation. Man is not a self-existent and
eternal, but a finite being that has
a beginning and an end. The cause assumed must be sufficient to account
for the whole
of the effect. Since man is a personal product, the power originating
him must also be
personal. Otherwise there is something in the effect which is superior
to anything that is
found in the cause; and this would be quite impossible. (2) The world in
general bears
witness to the personality of God. In its whole fabric and constitution
it reveals the
clearest traces of an infinite intelligence, of the deepest, highest and
tenderest emotions,
and of a will that is all-powerful. Consequently, we are constrained to
mount from the
world to the world's Maker as a Being of intelligence, sensibility, and
will, that is, as a
person. (3) The moral and religious nature of man also points to the
personality of God.
His moral nature imposes on him a sense of obligation to do that which
is right, and this
necessarily implies the existence of a supreme Lawgiver. Moreover, his
religious nature
constantly prompts him to seek personal communion with some higher Being;
and all
the elements and activities of religion demand a personal God as their
object and final
end. Even so-called pantheistic religions often testify unconsciously to
belief in a
personal God. The fact is that all such things as penitence, faith and
obedience,
fellowship and love, loyalty in service and sacrifice, trust in life and
death, are meaningless unless they find their appropriate object in a personal
God.</p>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p3" shownumber="no">But while all these considerations are true and have some value as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p3.1">
testimonia</span>, they
are not the proofs on which theology depends in its doctrine of the
personality of God.
It turns for proof to God's Self-revelation in Scripture. The term "person" is not
applied to God in the Bible, though there are words, such as the Hebrew<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p3.2">
panim</span>
and the Greek
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p3.3">prosopon</span>, that come very close to expressing the idea. At the same time
Scripture testifies
to the personality of God in more than one way. The presence of God, as
described by
Old and New Testament writers, is clearly a personal presence. And the
anthropomorphic and anthropopathic representations of God in Scripture,
while they
must be interpreted so as not to militate against the pure spirituality
and holiness of God, can hardly be justified, except on the assumption that the
Being to whom they
apply is a real person, with personal attributes, even though it be
without human
limitations. God is represented throughout as a personal God, with whom
men can and
may converse, whom they can trust, who sustains them in their trials,
and fills their
hearts with the joy of deliverance and victory. And, finally, the
highest revelation of God to which the Bible testifies is a personal revelation. Jesus Christ
reveals the Father in
such a perfect way that He could say to Philip," He who hath seen
me hath seen the
Father," <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:John.14.9" parsed="|John|14|9|0|0" passage="John 14:9">John 14:9</scripRef>. More detailed proofs will appear in the
discussion of the
communicable attributes.</p>

<h4 id="iii.i.vii-p3.5">A. THE SPIRITUALITY OF GOD</h4>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p4" shownumber="no">The Bible does not give us a definition of God. The
nearest approach to anything like
it is found in the word of Christ to the Samaritan woman, "God is
Spirit," <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:John.4.24" parsed="|John|4|24|0|0" passage="John 4:24">John 4:24</scripRef>.
This is at least a statement purporting to tell us in a single word what
God is. The Lord
does not merely say that God is a spirit, but that He is Spirit. And
because of this clear
statement it is but fitting that we should discuss first of all the
spirituality of God. By
teaching the spirituality of God theology stresses the fact that God has
a substantial
Being all His own and distinct from the world, and that this substantial
Being is
immaterial, invisible, and without composition or extension. It includes
the thought that
all the essential qualities which belong to the perfect idea of Spirit
are found in Him:
that He is a self-conscious and self-determining Being. Since He is
Spirit in the most
absolute, and in the purest sense of the word, there is in Him no
composition of parts.
The idea of spirituality of necessity excludes the ascription of
anything like corporeity
to God, and thus condemns the fancies of some of the early Gnostics and
medieval
Mystics, and of all those sectarians of our own day who ascribe a body
to God. It is true
that the Bible speaks of the hands and feet, the eyes and ears, the
mouth and nose of
God, but in doing this it is speaking anthropomorphically or
figuratively of Him who
far transcends our human knowledge, and of whom we can only speak in a
stammering
fashion after the manner of men. By ascribing spirituality to God we
also affirm that He
has none of the properties belonging to matter, and that He cannot be
discerned by the
bodily senses. Paul speaks of Him as "the King eternal, immortal,
invisible" (<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.17" parsed="|1Tim|1|17|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:17">I Tim.
1:17</scripRef>), and again as "the King of kings, and Lord of lords, who only
hath immortality,
dwelling in light unapproachable; whom no man hath seen, nor can see: to
whom be
honor and power
eternal," <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.15" parsed="|1Tim|6|15|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:15">I Tim. 6:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.16" parsed="|1Tim|6|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:16">16</scripRef>.</p>


<h4 id="iii.i.vii-p4.5">B. INTELLECTUAL ATTRIBUTES</h4>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p5" shownumber="no">God is represented in Scripture as Light, and therefore
as perfect in His intellectual life. This category comprises two of the divine perfections, namely, the
knowledge and the wisdom of God. </p>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p6" shownumber="no"> 1. THE KNOWLEDGE OF GOD. The knowledge
of God may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p6.1">
that perfection of God whereby He, in an entirely
unique manner, knows Himself and all things possible and
actual in one eternal and most simple act.</span>
The Bible
testifies to the knowledge of God abundantly, as,
for instance, in <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.2.3" parsed="|1Sam|2|3|0|0" passage="I Sam. 2:3">I Sam. 2:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Job.12.13" parsed="|Job|12|13|0|0" passage="Job 12:13">Job 12:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.94.9" parsed="|Ps|94|9|0|0" passage="Ps. 94:9">Ps. 94:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.147.4" parsed="|Ps|147|4|0|0" passage="Ps 147:4">147:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.29.15" parsed="|Isa|29|15|0|0" passage="Isa. 29:15">Isa. 29:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.27" parsed="|Isa|40|27|0|0" passage="Isa 40:27">40:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.28" parsed="|Isa|40|28|0|0" passage="Isa 40:28">28</scripRef>.
In  connection with the knowledge of God
several points call for consideration.</p>


<p id="iii.i.vii-p7" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.1">Its nature.</span>
The knowledge of God differs in some important points from that of
men. It is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.2">archetypal</span>, which means that He knows the universe as it exists in His own
eternal idea previous to its existence as a finite reality in time and
space; and that His
knowledge is not, like ours, obtained from without. It is a knowledge
that is
characterized by<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.3">
absolute perfection.</span>
As such it
is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.4">
intuitive</span>
rather than demonstrative or
discursive. It is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.5">
innate and immediate</span>
and does
not result from observation or from a
process of reasoning. Being perfect, it is also<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.6">
simultaneous</span>
and not successive, so that He
sees things at once in their totality, and not piecemeal one after
another. Furthermore, it
is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.7">
complete and fully conscious</span>, while man's
knowledge is always partial, frequently indistinct, and often fails to rise into the clear light of
consciousness. A distinction is
made between the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.8">
necessary</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.9">
free</span>
knowledge of God. The former is the knowledge
which God has of Himself and of all things possible, a knowledge resting
on the consciousness of
His omnipotence. It is called<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.10">
necessary knowledge</span>, because it is not
determined by an action of the divine will. It is also known as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.11">
the knowledge of simple intelligence</span>, in view of the fact that it is purely an act of the divine intellect,
without any
concurrent action of the divine will.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.12">
The free knowledge of God</span>
is the knowledge which He
has of all things actual, that is, of things that existed in the past,
that exist in the present, or that will exist in the future. It is founded on God's infinite
knowledge of His own all
comprehensive and unchangeable eternal purpose, and is called free
knowledge,
because it is determined by a concurrent act of the will. It is also
called<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p7.13"> scientia visionis</span>, knowledge of vision.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p8" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p8.1"> Its extent.</span> The knowledge of
God is not only perfect in kind, but also in its inclusiveness. It is called<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p8.2">
omniscience</span>
because it is all-comprehensive. In order to
promote a proper estimate of it, we may particularize as follows: God
knows Himself
and in Himself all things that come from Him (internal knowledge). He
knows all
things as they actually come to pass, past, present, and future, and
knows them in their
real relations. He knows the hidden essence of things, to which the
knowledge of man
cannot penetrate. He sees not as man sees, who observes only the outward
manifestations of life, but penetrates to the depths of the human heart.
Moreover, He
knows what is possible as well as what is actual; all things that might
occur under
certain circumstances are present to His mind. The omniscience of God is
clearly taught
in several passages of Scripture. He is perfect in knowledge, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Job.37.16" parsed="|Job|37|16|0|0" passage="Job 37:16">Job 37:16</scripRef>,
looketh not on
outward
appearance but on the heart, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.7" parsed="|1Sam|16|7|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:7">I Sam. 16:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:1Chr.28.9" parsed="|1Chr|28|9|0|0" passage="I Chron. 28:9">I Chron. 28:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:1Chr.28.17" parsed="|1Chr|28|17|0|0" passage="I Chron. 28:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.1-Ps.139.4" parsed="|Ps|139|1|139|4" passage="Ps. 139:1-4">Ps. 139:1-4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Jer.17.10" parsed="|Jer|17|10|0|0" passage="Jer. 17:10">Jer. 17:10</scripRef>, observes the
ways of men, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Deut.2.7" parsed="|Deut|2|7|0|0" passage="Deut. 2:7">Deut. 2:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Job.23.10" parsed="|Job|23|10|0|0" passage="Job 23:10">Job 23:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Job.24.23" parsed="|Job|24|23|0|0" passage="Job 24:23">24:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:Job.31.4" parsed="|Job|31|4|0|0" passage="Job 31:4">31:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.1.6" parsed="|Ps|1|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 1:6">Ps. 1:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.119.168" parsed="|Ps|119|168|0|0" passage="Ps 119:168">119:168</scripRef>, knows the place of their habitation, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.13" parsed="|Ps|33|13|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:13">Ps. 33:13</scripRef>, and the days of their life, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p8.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.37.18" parsed="|Ps|37|18|0|0" passage="Ps. 37:18">Ps. 37:18</scripRef>. This doctrine of
the knowledge of God must be maintained over against all pantheistic
tendencies to
represent God as the unconscious ground of the phenomenal world, and of
those who,
like Marcion, Socinus and all who believe in a finite God, ascribe to
Him only a limited
knowledge.</p>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p9" shownumber="no">
There is one question, however, that calls for special
discussion. It concerns God's foreknowledge of the free actions of men, and therefore of conditional
events. We can understand how God can foreknow where necessity rules, but find it
difficult to
conceive of a previous knowledge of actions which man freely originates.
The difficulty
of this problem led some to deny the foreknowledge of free actions, and
others to deny
human freedom. It is perfectly evident that Scripture teaches the divine
foreknowledge
of contingent
events, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.23.10-1Sam.23.13" parsed="|1Sam|23|10|23|13" passage="I Sam. 23:10-13">I Sam. 23:10-13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.13.19" parsed="|2Kgs|13|19|0|0" passage="II Kings 13:19">II Kings 13:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.81.14" parsed="|Ps|81|14|0|0" passage="Ps. 81:14">Ps. 81:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.81.15" parsed="|Ps|81|15|0|0" passage="Ps 81:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.9" parsed="|Isa|42|9|0|0" passage="Isa. 42:9">Isa. 42:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.48.18" parsed="|Isa|48|18|0|0" passage="Isa 48:18">48:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:Jer.2.2" parsed="|Jer|2|2|0|0" passage="Jer. 2:2">Jer. 2:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Jer.2.3" parsed="|Jer|2|3|0|0" passage="Jer 2:3">3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Jer.38.17-Jer.38.20" parsed="|Jer|38|17|38|20" passage="Jer 38:17-20">38:17-20</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.3.6" parsed="|Ezek|3|6|0|0" passage="Ezek. 3:6">Ezek. 3:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p9.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.21" parsed="|Matt|11|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:21">Matt. 11:21</scripRef>. Moreover, it does not leave us in doubt as to the
freedom of man. It certainly does not permit the denial of either one of
the terms of the
problem. We are up against a problem here, which we cannot fully solve,
though it is
possible to make an approach to a solution. God has decreed all things,
and has decreed
them with their causes and conditions in the exact order in which they
come to pass;
and His foreknowledge of future things and also of contingent events
rests on His
decree. This solves the problem as far as the foreknowledge of God is
concerned.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p10" shownumber="no">But now the question arises, Is the predetermination of
things consistent with the free will of man? And the answer is that it certainly is not, if the
freedom of the will be
regarded as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p10.1">
indifferentia</span>
(arbitrariness), but this is an unwarranted conception of the
freedom of man. The will of man is not something altogether
indeterminate, something
hanging in the air that can be swung arbitrarily in either direction. It
is rather something
rooted in our very nature, connected with our deepest instincts and
emotions, and
determined by our intellectual considerations and by our very character.
And if we
conceive of our human freedom as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p10.2">
lubentia rationalis</span>
(reasonable
self-determination),
then we have no sufficient warrant for saying that it is inconsistent
with divine
foreknowledge. Says Dr. Orr: "A solution of this problem there is,
though our minds fail
to grasp it. In part it probably lies, not in denying freedom, but in a
revised conception
of freedom. For freedom, after all, is not arbitrariness. There is in
all rational action a
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p10.3">
why</span>
for acting —
a reason which decides action. The truly free man is not the uncertain,
incalculable man, but the man who is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p10.4">
reliable.</span>
In short, freedom
has its laws — spiritual
laws — and the omniscient Mind knows what these are. But an element of
mystery, it
must be acknowledged, still remains."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vii-p10.5" n="27" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p10.6">Side-Lights on Chr. Doct.,</span> p. 30.</note></p>


<p id="iii.i.vii-p11" shownumber="no">Jesuit, Lutheran, and Arminian theologians suggested the so-called<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p11.1">
scientia media</span>
as a solution of the problem. The name is indicative of the fact that it
occupies a middle
ground between the necessary and the free knowledge of God. It differs
from the former
in that its<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p11.2">
object</span>
is not all possible things,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p11.3">
but a special class of things actually future</span>; and
from the latter in that its<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p11.4"> ground</span>
is not the eternal purpose of God,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p11.5">
but the free action of the creature as simply foreseen.</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vii-p11.6" n="28" place="foot">A. A. Hodge, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p11.7">Outlines of Theol.,</span> p. 147</note> It is called<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p11.8">
mediate</span>,
says Dabney, "because they suppose God arrives at it, not directly by knowing His own purpose to effect it, but
indirectly by His
infinite insight into the manner in which the contingent second cause
will act, under
given outward circumstances, foreseen or produced by God."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vii-p11.9" n="29" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p11.10">Syst. and Polem. Theol.,</span> p. 156</note> But this is no solution of the problem at all. It is an attempt to reconcile two things which
logically exclude each
other, namely, freedom of action in the Pelagian sense and a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p11.11">
certain</span>
foreknowledge of
that action. Actions that are in no way determined by God, directly or
indirectly, but are
wholly dependent on the arbitrary will of man, can hardly be the object
of divine
foreknowledge. Moreover, it is objectionable, because it makes the
divine knowledge
dependent on the choice of man, virtually annuls the certainty of the
knowledge of
future events, and thus implicitly denies the omniscience of God. It is
also contrary to
such passages of
Scripture as <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p11.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.16" parsed="|Rom|9|16|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:16">Rom. 9:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p11.14" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:11">Eph. 1:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p11.15" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p12" shownumber="no">2. THE WISDOM OF GOD. The wisdom of God may be regarded as a particular
aspect
of His knowledge. It is quite evident that knowledge and wisdom are not
the same,
though they are closely related. They do not always accompany each
other. An
uneducated man may be superior to a scholar in wisdom. Knowledge is
acquired by
study, but wisdom results from an intuitive insight into things. The
former is theoretical,
while the latter is practical, making knowledge subservient to some
specific purpose.
Both are imperfect in man, but in God they are characterized by absolute
perfection.
God's wisdom is His intelligence as manifested in the adaptation of
means to ends. It
points to the fact that He always strives for the best possible ends,
and chooses the best
means for the realization of His purposes. H. B. Smith defines the
divine wisdom as
"that attribute of God whereby He produces the best possible
results with the best
possible
means." We may be a little more specific and call it<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p12.1">
that perfection of God whereby He applies His knowledge to the
attainment of His ends in a way which glorifies Him most.</span>
It implies a final end to which all secondary ends are subordinate; and
according to
Scripture this
final end is the glory of God, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.33" parsed="|Rom|11|33|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:33">Rom. 11:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.14.7" parsed="|Rom|14|7|0|0" passage="Rom 14:7">14:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.14.8" parsed="|Rom|14|8|0|0" passage="Rom 14:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:11">Eph. 1:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.12" parsed="|Eph|1|12|0|0" passage="Eph 1:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>.
Scripture refers to the wisdom of God in many passages, and even
represents it as personified in <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:Prov.8" parsed="|Prov|8|0|0|0" passage="Proverbs 8">Proverbs 8</scripRef>. This wisdom of God is seen particularly in
creation, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.19.1-Ps.19.7" parsed="|Ps|19|1|19|7" passage="Ps. 19:1-7">Ps. 19:1-7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.1-Ps.104.34" parsed="|Ps|104|1|104|34" passage="Ps 104:1-34">104:1-34</scripRef>; in providence, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.10" parsed="|Ps|33|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:10">Ps. 33:10</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.11" parsed="|Ps|33|11|0|0" passage="Ps 33:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.28" parsed="|Rom|8|28|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:28">Rom. 8:28</scripRef>; and in redemption, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.33" parsed="|Rom|11|33|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:33">Rom.
11:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.7" parsed="|1Cor|2|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:7">I Cor. 2:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p12.16" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.10" parsed="|Eph|3|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:10">Eph. 3:10</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p13" shownumber="no">3. THE VERACITY OF GOD. Scripture uses several words to express the veracity of
God: in the Old
Testament '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p13.1">emeth,</span>'<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p13.2"> amunah</span>, and '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p13.3">amen</span>, and in the New
Testament<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p13.4"> alethes (aletheia), alethinos</span>, and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p13.5">pistis.</span>
This already points to the fact that it
includes several ideas, such as truth, truthfulness, and faithfulness. When God is called
the truth, this is
to be understood in its most comprehensive sense. He is the truth first
of all in a
metaphysical sense, that is, in Him the idea of the Godhead is perfectly
realized; He is
all that He as God should be, and as such is distinguished from all
so-called gods,
which are called
vanity and lies, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.96.5" parsed="|Ps|96|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 96:5">Ps. 96:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.97.7" parsed="|Ps|97|7|0|0" passage="Ps 97:7">97:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.115.4-Ps.115.8" parsed="|Ps|115|4|115|8" passage="Ps 115:4-8">115:4-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.9" osisRef="Bible:Isa.44.9" parsed="|Isa|44|9|0|0" passage="Isa. 44:9">Isa. 44:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.10" osisRef="Bible:Isa.44.10" parsed="|Isa|44|10|0|0" passage="Isa 44:10">10</scripRef>. He is also the truth in an<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p13.11">
ethical</span> sense, and as such reveals Himself as He really is, so that His
revelation is
absolutely
reliable, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.12" osisRef="Bible:Num.23.19" parsed="|Num|23|19|0|0" passage="Num. 23:19">Num. 23:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.4" parsed="|Rom|3|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:4">Rom. 3:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.14" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.18" parsed="|Heb|6|18|0|0" passage="Heb. 6:18">Heb. 6:18</scripRef>. Finally, He is also the truth in a <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p13.15">
logical</span>
sense, and in virtue of this He knows things as they really are, and
has so
constituted the mind of man that the latter can know, not merely the
appearance, but
also the reality, of things. Thus the truth of God is the
foundation of all knowledge. It
should be borne in mind, moreover, that these three are but different
aspects of the
truth, which is one in God. In view of the preceding we may define the
veracity or truth
of God as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p13.16"> that perfection of His Being by virtue of which He fully answers to the idea of the Godhead, is perfectly reliable in
His revelation, and sees things as they really are.</span>
It is because
of this perfection that He is the source of all truth,
not only in the sphere of morals and
religion, but also in every field of scientific endeavor. Scripture is
very emphatic in its
references to
God as the truth, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.17" osisRef="Bible:Exod.34.6" parsed="|Exod|34|6|0|0" passage="Ex. 34:6">Ex. 34:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.18" osisRef="Bible:Num.23.19" parsed="|Num|23|19|0|0" passage="Num. 23:19">Num. 23:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.19" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.4" parsed="|Deut|32|4|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:4">Deut. 32:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.20" osisRef="Bible:Ps.25.10" parsed="|Ps|25|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 25:10">Ps. 25:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.21" osisRef="Bible:Ps.31.6" parsed="|Ps|31|6|0|0" passage="Ps 31:6">31:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.22" osisRef="Bible:Isa.65.16" parsed="|Isa|65|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 65:16">Isa. 65:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.23" osisRef="Bible:Jer.10.8" parsed="|Jer|10|8|0|0" passage="Jer. 10:8">Jer. 10:8</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.24" osisRef="Bible:Jer.10.10" parsed="|Jer|10|10|0|0" passage="Jer 10:10">10</scripRef>,
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.25" osisRef="Bible:Jer.10.11" parsed="|Jer|10|11|0|0" passage="Jer 10:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.26" osisRef="Bible:John.14.6" parsed="|John|14|6|0|0" passage="John 14:6">John 14:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.27" osisRef="Bible:John.17.3" parsed="|John|17|3|0|0" passage="John 17:3">17:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.28" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.2" parsed="|Titus|1|2|0|0" passage="Tit. 1:2">Tit. 1:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.29" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.18" parsed="|Heb|6|18|0|0" passage="Heb. 6:18">Heb. 6:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.30" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.20" parsed="|1John|5|20|0|0" passage="I John 5:20">I John 5:20</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.31" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.21" parsed="|1John|5|21|0|0" passage="I John 5:21">21</scripRef>. There is still
another aspect of this divine perfection, and one that is always regarded as of
the greatest
importance. It is generally called His<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p13.32">
faithfulness</span>
in virtue of
which He is ever mindful
of His covenant and fulfils all the promises which He has made to His
people. This
faithfulness of God is of the utmost practical significance to the
people of God. It is the
ground of their confidence, the foundation of their hope, and the cause
of their rejoicing.
It saves them from the despair to which their own unfaithfulness might
easily lead,
gives them courage to carry on in spite of their failures, and fills
their hearts with joyful
anticipations, even when they are deeply conscious of the fact that they
have forfeited
all the
blessings of God. <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.33" osisRef="Bible:Num.23.19" parsed="|Num|23|19|0|0" passage="Num. 23:19">Num. 23:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.34" osisRef="Bible:Deut.7.9" parsed="|Deut|7|9|0|0" passage="Deut. 7:9">Deut. 7:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.35" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.33" parsed="|Ps|89|33|0|0" passage="Ps. 89:33">Ps. 89:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.36" osisRef="Bible:Isa.49.7" parsed="|Isa|49|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 49:7">Isa. 49:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.37" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.9" parsed="|1Cor|1|9|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:9">I Cor. 1:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.38" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.13" parsed="|2Tim|2|13|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:13">II
Tim. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.39" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.17" parsed="|Heb|6|17|0|0" passage="Heb. 6:17">Heb. 6:17</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.40" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.18" parsed="|Heb|6|18|0|0" passage="Heb 6:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p13.41" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.23" parsed="|Heb|10|23|0|0" passage="Heb 10:23">10:23</scripRef>. </p>


<h4 id="iii.i.vii-p13.42">C. MORAL ATTRIBUTES</h4>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p14" shownumber="no">
The moral attributes of God are generally regarded as the
most glorious of the
divine perfections. Not that one attribute of God is in itself more
perfect and glorious
than another, but relatively to man the moral perfections of God shine
with a splendor
all their own. They are generally discussed under three heads: (1) the
goodness of God;
(2) the holiness of God; and (3) the righteousness of God.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p15" shownumber="no">1. THE GOODNESS OF GOD. This is generally treated as a generic conception,
including
several varieties, which are distinguished according to their objects.
The goodness of
God should not be confused with His kindness, which is a more restricted
concept. We
speak of something as good, when it answers in all parts to the ideal.
Hence in our
ascription of goodness to God the fundamental idea is that He is in
every way all that
He as God should be, and therefore answers perfectly to the ideal
expressed in the word
"God." He is good in the metaphysical sense of the word,
absolute perfection and
perfect bliss in Himself. It is in this sense that Jesus said to the
young ruler: "None is good save one, even God," <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.18" parsed="|Mark|10|18|0|0" passage="Mark 10:18">Mark 10:18</scripRef>. But since God is good in
Himself, He is also
good for His creatures, and may therefore be called the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p15.2">
fons omnium bonorum.</span>
He is the fountain of all good, and is so represented in a variety of ways
throughout the Bible.
The poet sings:
"For with thee is the fountain of life; in thy light shall we see
light," <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.36.9" parsed="|Ps|36|9|0|0" passage="Ps. 36:9">Ps. 36:9</scripRef>. All the good things which the creatures enjoy in the present and
expect in the
future, flow to them out of this inexhaustible fountain. And not
only that, but God is
also the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p15.4">
summum bonum</span>, the highest good, for all His creatures, though in different
degrees and according to the measure in which they answer to the purpose
of their
existence. In the present connection we naturally stress the ethical
goodness of God and
the different aspects of it, as these are determined by the nature of
its objects.</p>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p16" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p16.1">The goodness of God towards His creatures in general.</span>
This may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p16.2"> that perfection of God which prompts Him
to deal bountifully and kindly with all His creatures.</span> It is
the affection which the Creator feels towards His sentient creatures as
such. The Psalmist sings of it in the well known words: "Jehovah is good to
all; and His tender
mercies are over all His works. . . . The eyes of all wait for thee; and
thou givest them
their food in due season. Thou openest thy hand, and satisfiest the
desire of every living
thing," <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.9" parsed="|Ps|145|9|0|0" passage="Ps. 145:9">Ps.
145:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.15" parsed="|Ps|145|15|0|0" passage="Ps 145:15">15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.16" parsed="|Ps|145|16|0|0" passage="Ps 145:16">16</scripRef>. This benevolent interest of God is revealed in His care for the
creature's welfare, and is suited to the nature and the circumstances of
the creature. It
naturally varies in degree according to the capacity of the objects to
receive it. And
while it is not restricted to believers, they only manifest a proper
appreciation of its
blessings, desire to use them in the service of their God, and thus
enjoy them in a richer
and fuller measure. The Bible refers to this goodness of God in many
passages, such as
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.36.6" parsed="|Ps|36|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 36:6">Ps. 36:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.21" parsed="|Ps|104|21|0|0" passage="Ps 104:21">104:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.45" parsed="|Matt|5|45|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:45">Matt. 5:45</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.26" parsed="|Matt|6|26|0|0" passage="Matt 6:26">6:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p16.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.35" parsed="|Luke|6|35|0|0" passage="Luke 6:35">Luke 6:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p16.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.17" parsed="|Acts|14|17|0|0" passage="Acts 14:17">Acts 14:17</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p17" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p17.1"> The love of God.</span>
When the goodness
of God is exercised towards His rational
creatures, it assumes the higher character of love, and this love may
again be
distinguished according to the objects on which it terminates. In
distinction from the
goodness of God
in general, it may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p17.2">
that perfection of God by which He is eternally moved to self-communication.</span>
Since God is
absolutely good in Himself, His love cannot find complete satisfaction in any object that falls short of
absolute perfection. He
loves His rational creatures for His own sake, or, to express it
otherwise, He loves in
them Himself, His virtues, His work, and His gifts. He does not even
withdraw His love
completely from the sinner in his present sinful state, though the
latter's sin is an
abomination to Him, since He recognizes even in the sinner His
image-bearer. <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.44" parsed="|Matt|5|44|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:44">Matt. 5:44</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.45" parsed="|Matt|5|45|0|0" passage="Matt 5:45">45</scripRef>. At the same time He loves believers with a special love,
since He
contemplates them as His spiritual children in Christ. It is to them
that He
communicates Himself in the fullest and richest sense, with all the
fulness of His grace  and
mercy. <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:John.16.27" parsed="|John|16|27|0|0" passage="John 16:27">John 16:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.8" parsed="|Rom|5|8|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:8">Rom. 5:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.1" parsed="|1John|3|1|0|0" passage="I John 3:1">I John 3:1</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p18" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p18.1"> The grace of God.</span> The significant word "grace"
is a translation of the Hebrew<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p18.2">
chanan </span> and of the Greek<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p18.3">
charis.</span>
According to
Scripture it is manifested not only by God, but also by men, and then denotes the favor which one man shows another, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.33.8" parsed="|Gen|33|8|0|0" passage="Gen. 33:8">Gen. 33:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.33.10" parsed="|Gen|33|10|0|0" passage="Gen 33:10">10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.33.18" parsed="|Gen|33|18|0|0" passage="Gen 33:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.39.4" parsed="|Gen|39|4|0|0" passage="Gen 39:4">39:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.8" osisRef="Bible:Gen.47.25" parsed="|Gen|47|25|0|0" passage="Gen 47:25">47:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.9" osisRef="Bible:Ruth.2.2" parsed="|Ruth|2|2|0|0" passage="Ruth 2:2">Ruth 2:2</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.10" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.1.18" parsed="|1Sam|1|18|0|0" passage="I Sam. 1:18">I Sam. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.11" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.22" parsed="|1Sam|16|22|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:22">16:22</scripRef>. In such cases it is not necessarily implied that the
favor is undeserved. In general it can be said, however, that grace is
the free bestowal of
kindness on one who has no claim to it. This is particularly the case
where the grace
referred to is the grace of God. His love to man is always unmerited,
and when shown
to sinners, is even forfeited. The Bible generally uses the word to
denote<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p18.12">
the unmerited goodness or love of God to those who
have forfeited it, and are by nature under a sentence of condemnation.</span>
The grace of God is the source of all spiritual blessings that are
bestowed
upon sinners. As
such we read of it in <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.6" parsed="|Eph|1|6|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:6">Eph. 1:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.14" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.7" parsed="|Eph|1|7|0|0" passage="Eph 1:7">7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.15" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.7-Eph.2.9" parsed="|Eph|2|7|2|9" passage="Eph 2:7-9">2:7-9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.16" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.11" parsed="|Titus|2|11|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:11">Tit. 2:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.17" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.4-Titus.3.7" parsed="|Titus|3|4|3|7" passage="Tit 3:4-7">3:4-7</scripRef>. While the Bible
often speaks of the grace of God as saving grace, it also makes mention
of it in a broader
sense, as in
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.26.10" parsed="|Isa|26|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 26:10">Isa. 26:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.19" osisRef="Bible:Jer.16.13" parsed="|Jer|16|13|0|0" passage="Jer. 16:13">Jer. 16:13</scripRef>. The grace of God is of the greatest practical
significance
for sinful men. It was by grace that the way of redemption was opened
for them, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.24" parsed="|Rom|3|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:24">Rom. 3:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.21" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.9" parsed="|2Cor|8|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:9">II Cor. 8:9</scripRef>, and that the message of redemption went out
into the world, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.22" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.3" parsed="|Acts|14|3|0|0" passage="Acts 14:3">Acts 14:3</scripRef>. By grace sinners
receive the gift of God in Jesus Christ, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.23" osisRef="Bible:Acts.18.27" parsed="|Acts|18|27|0|0" passage="Acts 18:27">Acts 18:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.24" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8" parsed="|Eph|2|8|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:8">Eph. 2:8</scripRef>. By grace
they are
justified, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.25" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.24" parsed="|Rom|3|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:24">Rom. 3:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.26" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.16" parsed="|Rom|4|16|0|0" passage="Rom 4:16">4:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.27" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.7" parsed="|Titus|3|7|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:7">Tit. 3:7</scripRef>, they are enriched with spiritual
blessings, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.28" osisRef="Bible:John.1.16" parsed="|John|1|16|0|0" passage="John 1:16">John 1:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.29" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.9" parsed="|2Cor|8|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:9">II Cor. 8:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.30" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.16" parsed="|2Thess|2|16|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:16">II Thess. 2:16</scripRef>, and they finally inherit salvation, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.31" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8" parsed="|Eph|2|8|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:8">Eph. 2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p18.32" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.11" parsed="|Titus|2|11|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:11">Tit. 2:11</scripRef>. Seeing they have absolutely no merits of their own, they are altogether
dependent on
the grace of God in Christ. In modern theology, with its belief in the
inherent goodness
of man and his ability to help himself, the doctrine of salvation by
grace has practically
become a "lost chord," and even the word "grace" was
emptied of all spiritual meaning
and vanished from religious discourses. It was retained only in the
sense of
"graciousness," something that is quite external. Happily,
there are some evidences of a
renewed emphasis on sin, and of a newly awakened consciousness of the
need of divine
grace.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p19" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p19.1"> The mercy of God.</span>
Another important
aspect of the goodness and love of God is His mercy or tender compassion. The Hebrew word most generally used for this
is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p19.2">chesed. </span>
There is another word, however, which expresses a deep and tender
compassion,
namely, the word<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p19.3">
racham</span>
which is
beautifully rendered by "tender mercy" in our
English Bible. The Septuagint and the New Testament employ the Greek
word<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p19.4">
eleos</span>
to
designate the mercy of God. If the grace of God contemplates man as
guilty before God,
and therefore in need of forgiveness, the mercy of God contemplates him
as one who is
bearing the consequences of sin, who is in a pitiable condition, and who
therefore needs
divine help. It
may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p19.5">
the goodness or love of God shown to
those who are in misery or distress, irrespective of their deserts.</span>
In His mercy
God reveals Himself as a compassionate God, who pities those who are in misery and is ever ready
to relieve
their distress. This mercy is bountiful, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.6" osisRef="Bible:Deut.5.10" parsed="|Deut|5|10|0|0" passage="Deut. 5:10">Deut. 5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.57.10" parsed="|Ps|57|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 57:10">Ps. 57:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.86.5" parsed="|Ps|86|5|0|0" passage="Ps 86:5">86:5</scripRef>,
and the poets of Israel
delighted to sing of it as enduring forever, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.9" osisRef="Bible:1Chr.16.34" parsed="|1Chr|16|34|0|0" passage="I Chron. 16:34">I Chron. 16:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.10" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.7.6" parsed="|2Chr|7|6|0|0" passage="II Chron. 7:6">II Chron.
7:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.136" parsed="|Ps|136|0|0|0" passage="Ps. 136">Ps. 136</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.12" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.3.11" parsed="|Ezra|3|11|0|0" passage="Ezra 3:11">Ezra 3:11</scripRef>. In the New Testament it is often mentioned alongside of the grace
of God,
especially in
salutations, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.13" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.2" parsed="|1Tim|1|2|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:2">I Tim. 1:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.14" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.1" parsed="|2Tim|1|1|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:1">II Tim. 1:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.15" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.4" parsed="|Titus|1|4|0|0" passage="Titus 1:4">Titus 1:4</scripRef>. We are told repeatedly that it
is shown to them
that fear God, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.16" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.2" parsed="|Exod|20|2|0|0" passage="Ex. 20:2">Ex. 20:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.17" osisRef="Bible:Deut.7.9" parsed="|Deut|7|9|0|0" passage="Deut. 7:9">Deut. 7:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.18" osisRef="Bible:Ps.86.5" parsed="|Ps|86|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 86:5">Ps. 86:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.19" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.50" parsed="|Luke|1|50|0|0" passage="Luke 1:50">Luke 1:50</scripRef>. This does not mean,
however, that it is limited to them, though they enjoy it in a special
measure. God's
tender mercies are over all His works, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.20" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.9" parsed="|Ps|145|9|0|0" passage="Ps. 145:9">Ps. 145:9</scripRef>, and even those who do
not fear Him
share in them,
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.21" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.23" parsed="|Ezek|18|23|0|0" passage="Ezek. 18:23">Ezek. 18:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.22" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.32" parsed="|Ezek|18|32|0|0" passage="Ezek 18:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.23" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.33.11" parsed="|Ezek|33|11|0|0" passage="Ezek 33:11">33:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.24" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.35" parsed="|Luke|6|35|0|0" passage="Luke 6:35">Luke 6:35</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p19.25" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.36" parsed="|Luke|6|36|0|0" passage="Luke 6:36">36</scripRef>. The mercy of God may not be
represented as opposed to His justice. It is exercised only in harmony
with the strictest
justice of God, in view of the merits of Jesus Christ. Other terms used
for it in the Bible are "pity," "compassion," and
"lovingkindness."
</p>


<p id="iii.i.vii-p20" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p20.1"> The longsuffering of God.</span> The
longsuffering of God is still another aspect of His great goodness or love. The Hebrew uses the expression '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p20.2">erek</span>
'<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p20.3">aph</span>, which means literally "long of
face," and then also "slow to anger," while the Greek expresses
the same idea
by the word<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p20.4">
makrothumia.</span>
It is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p20.5">
that aspect of the goodness or love of God in virtue of which He bears with the froward and evil in
spite of their long continued disobedience.</span>
In the exercise of
this attribute the sinner is contemplated as continuing in sin,
notwithstanding the
admonitions and warnings that come to him. It reveals itself in the
postponement of the  merited
judgment. Scripture speaks of it in <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Exod.34.6" parsed="|Exod|34|6|0|0" passage="Ex. 34:6">Ex. 34:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.86.15" parsed="|Ps|86|15|0|0" passage="Ps. 86:15">Ps. 86:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.4" parsed="|Rom|2|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:4">Rom. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.22" parsed="|Rom|9|22|0|0" passage="Rom 9:22">9:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p20.10" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.20" parsed="|1Pet|3|20|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:20">I Pet. 3:20</scripRef>;
II Pet. 3:15. A synonymous term of a slightly different connotation is
the word
"forbearance."</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p21" shownumber="no">2. THE HOLINESS OF GOD. The Hebrew
word for "to be holy,"<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.1">quadash</span>, is derived from  the root<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.2">
qad</span>, which means to cut or to separate. It is one of the most prominent
religious
words of the Old Testament, and is applied primarily to God. The same
idea is
conveyed by the New Testament words<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.3"> hagiazo</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.4"> hagios.</span>
From this it already appears
that it is not correct to think of holiness primarily as a moral or
religious quality, as is
generally done. Its fundamental idea is that of a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.5">
position</span>
or<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.6">
relationship</span>
existing between
God and some person or thing.
a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.7">
Its nature.</span>
The Scriptural
idea of the holiness of God is twofold. In its original
sense it denotes that He is absolutely distinct from all His creatures,
and is exalted
above them in infinite majesty. So understood, the holiness of God is
one of His
transcendental attributes, and is sometimes spoken of as His central and
supreme
perfection. It does not seem proper to speak of one attribute of God as
being more
central and fundamental than another; but if this were permissible, the
Scriptural
emphasis on the holiness of God would seem to justify its selection. It
is quite evident,
however, that holiness in this sense of the word is not really a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.8">
moral</span>
attribute, which can
be co-ordinated with the others, such as love, grace and mercy, but is rather
something
that is co-extensive with, and applicable to, everything that can be
predicated of God.
He is holy in everything that reveals Him, in His goodness and grace as
well as in His justice and wrath. It may be called the
"majesty-holiness" of God, and is referred to in
such passages as
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p21.9" osisRef="Bible:Exod.15.11" parsed="|Exod|15|11|0|0" passage="Ex. 15:11">Ex. 15:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p21.10" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.2.2" parsed="|1Sam|2|2|0|0" passage="I Sam. 2:2">I Sam. 2:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p21.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.57.15" parsed="|Isa|57|15|0|0" passage="Isa. 57:15">Isa. 57:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p21.12" osisRef="Bible:Hos.11.9" parsed="|Hos|11|9|0|0" passage="Hos. 11:9">Hos. 11:9</scripRef>. It is this holiness of God
which Otto, in his important work on<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.13">
Das Heilige</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vii-p21.14" n="30" place="foot">Eng. tr. <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.15">"The Idea of the Holy"</span></note>
regards as that which is most
essential in God, and which he designates as "the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p21.16">
numinous.</span>
" He regards it as part of the
non-rational in God, which cannot be thought of conceptually, and which
includes such
ideas as
"absolute unapproachability" and "absolute
overpoweringness" or "aweful majesty."
It awakens in man a sense of absolute nothingness, a
"creature-consciousness" or
"creature-feeling," leading to absolute self-abasement.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p22" shownumber="no">But the holiness of God also has a specifically ethical
aspect in Scripture, and it is
with this aspect of it that we are more directly concerned in this
connection. The ethical
idea of the divine holiness may not be dissociated from the idea of
God's majesty-
holiness. The former developed out of the latter. The fundamental idea
of the ethical
holiness of God is also that of separation, but in this case it is a
separation from moral
evil or sin. In virtue of His holiness God can have no communion with
sin, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.34.10" parsed="|Job|34|10|0|0" passage="Job 34:10">Job 34:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Hab.1.13" parsed="|Hab|1|13|0|0" passage="Hab. 1:13">Hab. 1:13</scripRef>. Used
in this sense, the word "holiness" points to God's majestic purity,
or ethical majesty. But the idea of ethical holiness is not merely negative
(separation from
sin); it also has a positive content, namely, that of moral excellence,
or ethical perfection.
If man reacts to God's majestic-holiness with a feeling of utter
insignificance and awe,
his reaction to the ethical holiness reveals itself in a sense of impurity,
a consciousness of
sin, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.6.5" parsed="|Isa|6|5|0|0" passage="Isa. 6:5">Isa. 6:5</scripRef>. Otto also recognizes this element in the holiness of God,
though he stresses
the other, and says of the response to it: "Mere awe, mere need of
shelter from the
'tremendum', has
here been elevated to the feeling that man in his 'profaneness' is not <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p22.4">
worthy</span>
to stand in the presence of the Holy One, and that his entire personal
unworthiness might defile even holiness itself."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vii-p22.5" n="31" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p22.6">The Idea of the Holy</span>, p. 56.</note> This ethical holiness of God may
be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p22.7">
that erfection of God, in virtue of which He eternally wills and maintains His own moral excellence, abhors sin, and
demands purity in his moral creatures. </span>
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p23" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p23.1"> Its manifestation.</span> The
holiness of God is revealed in the moral law, implanted in
man's heart, and speaking through the conscience, and more particularly
in God's
special revelation. It stood out prominently in the law given to Israel.
That law in all its
aspects was calculated to impress upon Israel the idea of the holiness
of God, and to
urge upon the people the necessity of leading a holy life. This was the
purpose served
by such symbols and types as the holy nation, the holy land, the holy
city, the holy
place, and the holy priesthood. Moreover, it was revealed in the manner
in which God
rewarded the keeping of the law, and visited transgressors with dire
punishments. The
highest revelation of it was given in Jesus Christ, who is called
"the Holy and Righteous One," <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.14" parsed="|Acts|3|14|0|0" passage="Acts 3:14">Acts 3:14</scripRef>. He reflected in His life the perfect holiness of God. Finally, the
holiness of God is also revealed in the Church as the body of Christ. It is a
striking fact, to which
attention is often called, that holiness is ascribed to God with far
greater frequency in
the Old Testament than in the New, though it is done occasionally in the
New
Testament, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:John.17.11" parsed="|John|17|11|0|0" passage="John 17:11">John 17:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.16" parsed="|1Pet|1|16|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:16">I Pet. 1:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p23.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.8" parsed="|Rev|4|8|0|0" passage="Rev. 4:8">Rev. 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p23.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.10" parsed="|Rev|6|10|0|0" passage="Rev 6:10">6:10</scripRef>. This is probably due to the fact that the
New Testament appropriates the term more particularly to qualify the
third Person of
the Holy Trinity as the One whose special task it is, in the economy of
redemption, to
communicate holiness to His people.</p>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p24" shownumber="no">3. THE RIGHTEOUSNESS OF GOD. This attribute
is closely related to the holiness of
God. Shedd speaks of the justice of God as "a mode of His
holiness"; and Strong calls it
simply "transitive holiness." However, these terms apply only
to what is generally called the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p24.1">
relative</span>, in distinction from the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p24.2">
absolute</span>, justice of God. </p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p25" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p25.1"> The fundamental idea of righteousness.</span>
The fundamental
idea of righteousness is that
of strict adherence to the law. Among men it presupposes that there is a
law to which
they must conform. It is sometimes said that we cannot speak of
righteousness in God,
because there is no law to which He is subject. But though there is no
law above God,
there is certainly a law in the very nature of God, and this is the
highest possible
standard, by which all other laws are judged. A distinction is generally
made between
the absolute and
the relative justice of God. The former is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p25.2">
that rectitude of the divine nature, in virtue of which God is
infinitely righteous in Himself</span>
while the latter
is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p25.3">that perfection of God by which He
maintains Himself over against every violation of His holiness, and shows in every respect that He is the Holy One.</span>
It is to this
righteousness that the term "justice" more particularly applies. Justice mani fests itself
especially in giving every
man his due, in treating him according to his deserts. The inherent
righteousness of God
is naturally basic to the righteousness which He reveals in dealing with
His creatures,
but it is especially the latter, also called the justice of God, that
calls for special
consideration
here. The Hebrew terms for "righteous" and "righteousness"
are<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p25.4"> tsaddik, tsedhek</span>, and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p25.5"> tsedhakah</span>, and the corresponding Greek terms,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p25.6">
dikaios</span> and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p25.7">
dikaiosune</span>, all of which contain the idea of conformity to a standard. This perfection is
repeatedly
ascribed to God
in Scripture, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.9.15" parsed="|Ezra|9|15|0|0" passage="Ezra 9:15">Ezra 9:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.9" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.8" parsed="|Neh|9|8|0|0" passage="Neh. 9:8">Neh. 9:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.119.137" parsed="|Ps|119|137|0|0" passage="Ps. 119:137">Ps. 119:137</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.17" parsed="|Ps|145|17|0|0" passage="Ps 145:17">145:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.12" osisRef="Bible:Jer.12.1" parsed="|Jer|12|1|0|0" passage="Jer. 12:1">Jer. 12:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.13" osisRef="Bible:Lam.1.18" parsed="|Lam|1|18|0|0" passage="Lam. 1:18">Lam. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.14" osisRef="Bible:Dan.9.14" parsed="|Dan|9|14|0|0" passage="Dan. 9:14">Dan. 9:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.15" osisRef="Bible:John.17.25" parsed="|John|17|25|0|0" passage="John 17:25">John 17:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.16" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.8" parsed="|2Tim|4|8|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:8">II Tim. 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.17" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.29" parsed="|1John|2|29|0|0" passage="I John 2:29">I John 2:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.18" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.7" parsed="|1John|3|7|0|0" passage="I John 3:7">3:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p25.19" osisRef="Bible:Rev.16.5" parsed="|Rev|16|5|0|0" passage="Rev. 16:5">Rev. 16:5</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p26" shownumber="no"> b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p26.1">Distinctions applied to the justice of God.</span> There is first
of all a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p26.2">rectoral justice</span>
of God. This justice, as the very name implies, is the rectitude which God
manifests as the Ruler
of both the good and the evil. In virtue of it He has instituted a moral
government in the
world, and imposed a just law upon man, with promises of reward for the obedient,
and threats of punishment for the transgressor. God stands out
prominently in the Old
Testament as the Lawgiver of Israel, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.33.22" parsed="|Isa|33|22|0|0" passage="Isa. 33:22">Isa. 33:22</scripRef>, and of people in
general, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:Jas.4.12" parsed="|Jas|4|12|0|0" passage="Jas. 4:12">Jas. 4:12</scripRef>, and
His laws are righteous laws, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:Deut.4.8" parsed="|Deut|4|8|0|0" passage="Deut. 4:8">Deut. 4:8</scripRef>. The Bible refers to this rectoral
work of God also
in <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.99.4" parsed="|Ps|99|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 99:4">Ps. 99:4</scripRef>, and
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.32" parsed="|Rom|1|32|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:32">Rom. 1:32</scripRef>.  Closely
connected with the rectoral is the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p26.8">
distributive justice</span>
of God. This term usually serves to designate God's rectitude in the execution of the law,
and relates to the
distribution of rewards and punishments, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.9" osisRef="Bible:Isa.3.10" parsed="|Isa|3|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 3:10">Isa. 3:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.10" osisRef="Bible:Isa.3.11" parsed="|Isa|3|11|0|0" passage="Isa 3:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.6" parsed="|Rom|2|6|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:6">Rom. 2:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.12" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.17" parsed="|1Pet|1|17|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:17">I Pet. 1:17</scripRef>. It is of two kinds: (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p26.13">
Remunerative justice</span> which
manifests itself in the distribution of rewards to both men and
angels, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.14" osisRef="Bible:Deut.7.9" parsed="|Deut|7|9|0|0" passage="Deut. 7:9">Deut. 7:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.15" osisRef="Bible:Deut.7.12" parsed="|Deut|7|12|0|0" passage="Deut 7:12">12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.16" osisRef="Bible:Deut.7.13" parsed="|Deut|7|13|0|0" passage="Deut 7:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.17" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.6.15" parsed="|2Chr|6|15|0|0" passage="II Chron. 6:15">II Chron. 6:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.18" osisRef="Bible:Ps.58.11" parsed="|Ps|58|11|0|0" passage="Ps. 58:11">Ps. 58:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.19" osisRef="Bible:Mic.7.20" parsed="|Mic|7|20|0|0" passage="Micah 7:20">Micah 7:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.20" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.21" parsed="|Matt|25|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:21">Matt. 25:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.21" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.34" parsed="|Matt|25|34|0|0" passage="Matt 25:34">34</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.7" parsed="|Rom|2|7|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:7">Rom. 2:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.23" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.26" parsed="|Heb|11|26|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:26">Heb. 11:26</scripRef>. It is really an expression of the divine love,
dealing out its
bounties, not on the basis of strict merit, for the creature can
establish no absolute merit
before the Creator, but according to promise and agreement, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.24" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.10" parsed="|Luke|17|10|0|0" passage="Luke 17:10">Luke 17:10</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.25" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.4.7" parsed="|1Cor|4|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 4:7">I Cor. 4:7</scripRef>.
God's rewards are gracious and spring from a covenant relation which He
has
established. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p26.26">
Retributive justice</span>, which relates to the infliction
of penalties. It is an
expression of the divine wrath. While in a sinless world there would be
no place for its
exercise, it necessarily holds a very prominent place in a world full of
sin. On the whole
the Bible stresses the reward of the righteous more than the punishment
of the wicked;
but even the
latter is sufficiently prominent. <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.27" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.32" parsed="|Rom|1|32|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:32">Rom. 1:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.28" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.9" parsed="|Rom|2|9|0|0" passage="Rom 2:9">2:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.29" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.19" parsed="|Rom|12|19|0|0" passage="Rom 12:19">12:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.30" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.8" parsed="|2Thess|1|8|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:8">II Thess. 1:8</scripRef>, and
many other passages. It should be noted that, while
man does not merit the reward
which he receives, he does merit the punishment which is meted out to him.
Divine
justice is originally and necessarily obliged to punish evil, but not to
reward good, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.31" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.10" parsed="|Luke|17|10|0|0" passage="Luke 17:10">Luke 17:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.32" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.4.7" parsed="|1Cor|4|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 4:7">I Cor. 4:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p26.33" osisRef="Bible:Job.41.11" parsed="|Job|41|11|0|0" passage="Job 41:11">Job 41:11</scripRef>. Many deny the strict punitive justice of God and claim that
God punishes the sinner to reform him, or to deter others from sin; but
these positions
are not tenable. The primary purpose of the punishment of sin is the
maintenance of
right and justice. Of course, it may incidentally serve, and may even,
secondarily, be
intended, to reform the sinner and to deter others from sin.
</p>


<h4 id="iii.i.vii-p26.34">D. ATTRIBUTES OF SOVEREIGNTY</h4>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p27" shownumber="no">The sovereignty of God is strongly emphasized in
Scripture. He is represented as the
Creator, and His will as the cause of all things. In virtue of His
creative work heaven
and earth and all that they contain belong to Him. He is clothed with
absolute authority
over the hosts of heaven and the inhabitants of the earth. He upholds all
things with His
almighty power, and determines the ends which they are destined to serve.
He rules as
King in the most absolute sense of the word, and all things are dependent
on Him and
subservient to Him. There is a wealth of Scripture evidence for the
sovereignty of God,
but we limit our references here to a few of the most significant
passages: <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.14.19" parsed="|Gen|14|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 14:19">Gen. 14:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.18.11" parsed="|Exod|18|11|0|0" passage="Ex. 18:11">Ex. 18:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.3" osisRef="Bible:Deut.10.14" parsed="|Deut|10|14|0|0" passage="Deut. 10:14">Deut. 10:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.4" osisRef="Bible:Deut.10.17" parsed="|Deut|10|17|0|0" passage="Deut 10:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.5" osisRef="Bible:1Chr.29.11" parsed="|1Chr|29|11|0|0" passage="I Chron. 29:11">I Chron. 29:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.6" osisRef="Bible:1Chr.29.12" parsed="|1Chr|29|12|0|0" passage="I Chron. 29:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.7" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.20.6" parsed="|2Chr|20|6|0|0" passage="II Chron. 20:6">II Chron. 20:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.8" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.6" parsed="|Neh|9|6|0|0" passage="Neh. 9:6">Neh. 9:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.22.28" parsed="|Ps|22|28|0|0" passage="Ps. 22:28">Ps. 22:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.47.2" parsed="|Ps|47|2|0|0" passage="Ps 47:2">47:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.47.3" parsed="|Ps|47|3|0|0" passage="Ps 47:3">3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.47.7" parsed="|Ps|47|7|0|0" passage="Ps 47:7">7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.47.8" parsed="|Ps|47|8|0|0" passage="Ps 47:8">8</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.50.10-Ps.50.12" parsed="|Ps|50|10|50|12" passage="Ps. 50:10-12">Ps. 50:10-12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.95.3-Ps.95.5" parsed="|Ps|95|3|95|5" passage="Ps 95:3-5">95:3-5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.115.3" parsed="|Ps|115|3|0|0" passage="Ps 115:3">115:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.135.5" parsed="|Ps|135|5|0|0" passage="Ps 135:5">135:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.18" osisRef="Bible:Ps.135.6" parsed="|Ps|135|6|0|0" passage="Ps 135:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.19" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.11-Ps.145.13" parsed="|Ps|145|11|145|13" passage="Ps 145:11-13">145:11-13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.20" osisRef="Bible:Jer.27.5" parsed="|Jer|27|5|0|0" passage="Jer. 27:5">Jer. 27:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.21" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.53" parsed="|Luke|1|53|0|0" passage="Luke 1:53">Luke 1:53</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.22" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.24-Acts.17.26" parsed="|Acts|17|24|17|26" passage="Acts 17:24-26">Acts 17:24-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p27.23" osisRef="Bible:Rev.19.6" parsed="|Rev|19|6|0|0" passage="Rev. 19:6">Rev. 19:6</scripRef>.
Two attributes call for discussion under this head, namely (1) the
sovereign will of God, and (2) the sovereign power of God.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p28" shownumber="no">1. THE SOVEREIGN WILL OF GOD.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p29" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p29.1"> The will of God in general.</span>
The Bible
employs several words to denote the will of God, namely the Hebrew words<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p29.2">
chaphets, tsebhu</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p29.3">
ratson</span>
and the Greek words<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p29.4">
boule </span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p29.5">
thelema.</span>
The importance of the divine will appears in many ways in Scripture. It
is
represented as the final cause of all things. Everything is derived from
it; creation and
preservation,
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.135.6" parsed="|Ps|135|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 135:6">Ps. 135:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.7" osisRef="Bible:Jer.18.6" parsed="|Jer|18|6|0|0" passage="Jer. 18:6">Jer. 18:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.11" parsed="|Rev|4|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 4:11">Rev. 4:11</scripRef>, government, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.9" osisRef="Bible:Prov.21.1" parsed="|Prov|21|1|0|0" passage="Prov. 21:1">Prov. 21:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.10" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.35" parsed="|Dan|4|35|0|0" passage="Dan. 4:35">Dan. 4:35</scripRef>, election and reprobation,
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.15" parsed="|Rom|9|15|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:15">Rom. 9:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.16" parsed="|Rom|9|16|0|0" passage="Rom 9:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:11">Eph. 1:11</scripRef>, the sufferings of Christ, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.14" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.42" parsed="|Luke|22|42|0|0" passage="Luke 22:42">Luke 22:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.15" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef>, regeneration,
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.16" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.18" parsed="|Jas|1|18|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:18">Jas. 1:18</scripRef>, sanctification, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.17" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>, the sufferings of believers, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.18" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.17" parsed="|1Pet|3|17|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:17">I Pet. 3:17</scripRef>,
man's life and
destiny, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.19" osisRef="Bible:Acts.18.21" parsed="|Acts|18|21|0|0" passage="Acts 18:21">Acts 18:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.15.32" parsed="|Rom|15|32|0|0" passage="Rom. 15:32">Rom. 15:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.21" osisRef="Bible:Jas.4.15" parsed="|Jas|4|15|0|0" passage="Jas. 4:15">Jas. 4:15</scripRef>, and even the smallest things of
life, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p29.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.29" parsed="|Matt|10|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:29">Matt. 10:29</scripRef>. Hence Christian theology has always recognized the
will of God as the
ultimate cause of all things, though philosophy has sometimes shown an
inclination to
seek a deeper cause in the very Being of the Absolute. However, the
attempt to ground
everything in the very Being of God generally results in Pantheism.</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p30" shownumber="no">The word "will" as applied to God does not
always have the same connotation in
Scripture. It may denote (1) the whole moral nature of God, including
such attributes as
love, holiness, righteousness, etc.; (2) the faculty of
self-determination, i.e. the power to
determine self to a course of action or to form a plan; (3) the product
of this activity, that
is, the predetermined plan or purpose; (4) the power to execute this
plan and to realize
this purpose (the will in action or omnipotence); and (5) the rule of
life laid down for
rational creatures. It is primarily the will of God as the faculty of
self-determination
with which we
are concerned at present. It may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p30.1">
that perfection of His Being whereby He, in a most simple act,
goes out towards Himself as the highest good (i.e. delights in; Himself as such) and towards His
creatures for His own name's sake, and is thus the ground of their being and continued existence.</span>
With reference
to the universe and all the creatures which it contains this naturally includes the idea of causation.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p31" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.1"> Distinctions applied to the will of God.</span>
Several distinctions have been applied to the
will of God. Some of these found little favor in Reformed theology, such
as the
distinction between an<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.2">
antecedent</span>
and a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.3">
consequent</span>
will of God, and that between an
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.4">absolute</span>
and a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.5">
conditional</span>
will. These distinctions were not only liable to
misunderstanding, but were actually interpreted in objectionable ways.
Others,
however, were found useful, and were therefore more generally accepted.
They may be
stated as follows:
(1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.6"> The decretive and the preceptive
will of God.</span>
The former is that will of
God by which He purposes or decrees whatever shall come to pass, whether
He wills to accomplish it effectively (causatively), or to permit it to occur
through the unrestrained
agency of His rational creatures. The latter is the rule of life which
God has laid down
for His moral creatures, indicating the duties which He enjoins upon
them. The former
is always
accomplished, while the latter is often disobeyed. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.7">
The will of eudokia and the will of eurestia.</span>
This division was made, not so much in connection with the purpose to
do, as with respect to the pleasure in doing, or the desire to see
something done. It
corresponds with the preceding, however. in the fact that the will of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.8">
eudokia</span>, like that of
the decree, comprises what shall certainly be accomplished, while the
will of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.9">
eurestia</span>,
like that of the precept, embraces simply what God is pleased to have
His creatures do.
The word<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.10">
eudokia</span>
should not mislead us to think that the will of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.11">
eudokia</span>
has reference
only to good, and not to evil, cf. <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.26" parsed="|Matt|11|26|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:26">Matt. 11:26</scripRef>. It is hardly correct to
say that the element of
complacency or
delight is always present in it. (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.13">
The will of the beneplacitum and the will of the signum.</span>
The former again denotes the will of God as embodied in His hidden
counsel, until He makes it known by some revelation, or by the event
itself. Any will
that is so revealed becomes<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.14">
a signum.</span>
This distinction
is meant to correspond to that
between the decretive and the preceptive will of God, but can hardly be
said to do this.
The good pleasure of God also finds expression in His preceptive will;
and the decretive
will sometimes
also comes to our knowledge by a signum. (4)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p31.15">
The secret and the revealed will of God.</span>
This is the most common distinction.
The former is the will of God's decree, which is largely hidden in God, while the latter is the will of the
precept, which is
revealed in the law and in the gospel. The distinction is based on <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.16" osisRef="Bible:Deut.29.29" parsed="|Deut|29|29|0|0" passage="Deut. 29:29">Deut.
29:29</scripRef>. The secret  will
of God is mentioned in <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.115.3" parsed="|Ps|115|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 115:3">Ps. 115:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.18" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.17" parsed="|Dan|4|17|0|0" passage="Dan. 4:17">Dan. 4:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.19" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.25" parsed="|Dan|4|25|0|0" passage="Dan 4:25">25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.20" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.32" parsed="|Dan|4|32|0|0" passage="Dan 4:32">32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.21" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.35" parsed="|Dan|4|35|0|0" passage="Dan 4:35">35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.18" parsed="|Rom|9|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:18">Rom. 9:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.23" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.19" parsed="|Rom|9|19|0|0" passage="Rom 9:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.24" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.33" parsed="|Rom|11|33|0|0" passage="Rom 11:33">11:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.25" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.34" parsed="|Rom|11|34|0|0" passage="Rom 11:34">34</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.26" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.5" parsed="|Eph|1|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:5">Eph. 1:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.27" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.9" parsed="|Eph|1|9|0|0" passage="Eph 1:9">9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.28" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph 1:11">11</scripRef>; and
His revealed will, in <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.29" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.21" parsed="|Matt|7|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:21">Matt. 7:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.30" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.50" parsed="|Matt|12|50|0|0" passage="Matt 12:50">12:50</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.31" osisRef="Bible:John.4.34" parsed="|John|4|34|0|0" passage="John 4:34">John 4:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.32" osisRef="Bible:John.7.17" parsed="|John|7|17|0|0" passage="John 7:17">7:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.33" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.2" parsed="|Rom|12|2|0|0" passage="Rom. 12:2">Rom. 12:2</scripRef>. The latter
is accessible to
all and is not far from us, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.34" osisRef="Bible:Deut.30.14" parsed="|Deut|30|14|0|0" passage="Deut. 30:14">Deut. 30:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p31.35" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.8" parsed="|Rom|10|8|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:8">Rom. 10:8</scripRef>. The secret will of God
pertains to all things which He wills either to effect or to permit, and
which are
therefore absolutely fixed. The revealed will prescribes the duties of
man, and represents the way in which he can enjoy the blessings of God.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p32" shownumber="no"> c.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p32.1"> The freedom of God's will.</span>
The question is
frequently debated whether God, in the
exercise of His will, acts necessarily or freely. The answer to this
question requires
careful
discrimination. Just as there is a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p32.2">
scientia necessaria</span>
and a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p32.3">
scientia libera</span>, there is also a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p32.4">
voluntas necessaria</span>
(necessary will) and a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p32.5">
voluntas libera</span>
(free will) in God. God Himself is the object of the former. He<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p32.6">
necessarily</span>
wills Himself, His
holy nature, and the
personal distinctions in the Godhead. This means that He necessarily
loves Himself and
takes delight in the contemplation of His own perfections. Yet He is
under no
compulsion, but acts according to the law of His Being; and this, while
necessary, is also
the highest freedom. It is quite evident that the idea of causation is
absent here, and that
the thought of complacency or self-approval is in the foreground. God's
creatures,
however, are the
objects of His<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p32.7">
voluntas libera.</span>
God determines<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p32.8">
voluntarily</span>
what and whom He will create, and the times, places, and circumstances, of their
lives. He marks
out the path of all His rational creatures, determines their destiny,
and uses them for His
purposes. And though He endows them with freedom, yet His will controls
their
actions. The Bible speaks of this freedom of God's will in the most
absolute terms, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.9" osisRef="Bible:Job.11.10" parsed="|Job|11|10|0|0" passage="Job 11:10">Job 11:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.10" osisRef="Bible:Job.33.13" parsed="|Job|33|13|0|0" passage="Job 33:13">33:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.115.3" parsed="|Ps|115|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 115:3">Ps. 115:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.12" osisRef="Bible:Prov.21.1" parsed="|Prov|21|1|0|0" passage="Prov. 21:1">Prov. 21:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.13" osisRef="Bible:Isa.10.15" parsed="|Isa|10|15|0|0" passage="Isa. 10:15">Isa. 10:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.14" osisRef="Bible:Isa.29.16" parsed="|Isa|29|16|0|0" passage="Isa 29:16">29:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.15" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.9" parsed="|Isa|45|9|0|0" passage="Isa 45:9">45:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.15" parsed="|Matt|20|15|0|0" passage="Matt. 20:15">Matt.
20:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.15-Rom.9.18" parsed="|Rom|9|15|9|18" passage="Rom. 9:15-18">Rom. 9:15-18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.18" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.20" parsed="|Rom|9|20|0|0" passage="Rom 9:20">20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.19" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.21" parsed="|Rom|9|21|0|0" passage="Rom 9:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.20" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.11" parsed="|1Cor|12|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:11">I Cor. 12:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p32.21" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.11" parsed="|Rev|4|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 4:11">Rev. 4:11</scripRef>. The Church always defended this freedom, but also
emphasized
the fact that it may not be regarded as absolute indifference. Duns
Scotus applied the
idea of a will in no sense determined to God; but this idea of a blind
will, acting with
perfect indifference, was rejected by the Church. The freedom of God is
not pure
indifference, but rational self-determination. God has reasons for
willing as He does,
which induce Him to choose one end rather than another, and one set of
means to
accomplish one end in preference to others. There is in each case a
prevailing motive,
which makes the end chosen and the means selected the most pleasing to
Him, though
we may not be able to determine what this motive is. In general it may
be said that God
cannot will anything that is contrary to His nature, to His wisdom or
love, to His
righteousness or holiness. Dr. Bavinck points out that we can seldom
discern why God
willed one thing rather than another, and that it is not possible nor
even permissible for
us to look for some deeper ground of things than the will of God,
because all such
attempts result in seeking a ground for the creature in the very Being
of God, in robbing
it of its contingent character, and in making it necessary, eternal,
divine.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vii-p32.22" n="32" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p32.23">Geref. Dogm. II, p.241</span></note></p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p33" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p33.1">
God's will in relation to sin.</span>
The doctrine of
the will of God often gives rise to
serious questions. Problems arise here which have never yet been solved
and which are
probably incapable of solution by man. (1) It is said that if the decretive will of God also
determined the entrance of sin into
the world, God thereby becomes the author of sin and really wills
something that is
contrary to His moral perfections. Arminians, to escape the difficulty,
make the will of
God to permit sin dependent on His foreknowledge of the course which man
would
choose. Reformed theologians, while maintaining on the basis of such
passages as <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p33.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p33.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.8" parsed="|Acts|3|8|0|0" passage="Acts 3:8">3:8</scripRef>; etc.,
that God's decretive will also includes the sinful deeds of man, are always
careful to point out that this must be conceived
in such a way that God does not become
the author of sin. They frankly admit that they cannot solve the
difficulty, but at the
same time make some valuable distinctions that prove helpful. Most of
them insist on it
that God's will with respect to sin is simply a will to permit sin and
not a will to
effectuate it, as He does the moral good. This terminology is certainly
permissible,
provided it is understood correctly. It should be borne in mind that
God's will to permit
sin carries certainty with it. Others call attention to the fact that,
while the terms "will"
or "to will" may include the idea of complacency or delight,
they sometimes point to a
simple determination of the will; and that therefore the will of God to
permit sin need
not imply that He takes delight or pleasure in sin.
(2) Again, it is said that the decretive and preceptive
will of God are often
contradictory. His decretive will includes many things which He forbids
in His
preceptive will, and excludes many things which He commands in His
preceptive will,
cf. <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p33.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.22" parsed="|Gen|22|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 22">Gen. 22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p33.5" osisRef="Bible:Exod.4.21-Exod.4.23" parsed="|Exod|4|21|4|23" passage="Ex. 4:21-23">Ex. 4:21-23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p33.6" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.20.1-2Kgs.20.7" parsed="|2Kgs|20|1|20|7" passage="II Kings 20:1-7">II Kings 20:1-7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p33.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef>. Yet it is of great importance to maintain both the decretive and the preceptive will, but with the
definite understanding
that, while they appear to us as distinct, they are yet fundamentally
one in God. Though
a perfectly satisfactory solution of the difficulty is out of the
question for the present, it
is possible to make some approaches to a solution. When we speak of the
decretive and
the preceptive will of God, we use the word "will" in two
different senses. By the
former God has determined what He will do or what shall come to pass; in
the latter He
reveals to us what we are in duty bound to do.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vii-p33.8" n="33" place="foot">Cf. Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p33.9">Geref. Dogm.</span> II, pp. 246 ff.; Dabney, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p33.10">Syst. and Polem. Theol.,</span> p. 162</note>
At the same time we should
remember
that the moral law, the rule of our life, is also in a sense the
embodiment of the will of
God. It is an expression of His holy nature and of what this naturally
requires of all
moral creatures. Hence another remark must be added to the preceding. The
decretive
and preceptive will of God do not conflict in the
sense that in the former He does, and
according to the latter He does not, take pleasure in sin; nor in the
sense that according
to the former He does not, and according to the latter He does, will the
salvation of
every individual<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p33.11">
with a positive volition.</span>
Even according to the decretive will God takes
no pleasure in sin; and even according to the preceptive will He does
not will the  salvation
of every individual<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p33.12">
with a positive volition. </span>
</p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p34" shownumber="no">2. THE SOVEREIGN POWER OF GOD. The
sovereignty of God finds expression, not only
in the divine will, but also in the omnipotence of God or the power to
execute His will.
Power in God may be called the effective energy of His nature, or<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.1">
that perfection of His
Being by which He is the absolute and highest causality.</span>
It is customary
to distinguish between a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.2">
potentia Dei absoluta</span>
(absolute power of God) and a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.3">
potentia Dei ordinata&amp;gt;</span>
(ordered power of God). However, Reformed theology rejects this
distinction in the
sense in which it was understood by the Scholastics, who claimed that
God by virtue of
His absolute power could effect contradictions, and could even sin and
annihilate
Himself. At the same time it adopts the distinction as expressing a real
truth, though it does not always represent it in the same way. According to
Hodge and Shedd absolute
power is the divine efficiency, as exercised without the intervention of
second causes;
while ordinate power is the efficiency of God, as exercised by the
ordered operation of
second causes.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vii-p34.4" n="34" place="foot">Shedd, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.5">Dogm. theol.</span> I, pp.361f., Hodge, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.6">Syst. Theol.</span> 1, pp. 410f.</note> The more general view is stated
by Charnock as follows: "Absolute, is
that power whereby God is able to do that which He will not do, but is
possible to be
done; ordinate, is that power whereby God doth that which He hath decreed
to do, that
is, which He hath ordained or appointed to be exercised; which are not
distinct powers,
but one and the same power. His ordinate power is a part of His
absolute; for if He had not power to do everything that He could will, He might not have the power
to do
everything that
He doth will."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.vii-p34.7" n="35" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.8">Existence and Attributes of God</span> II, p. 12. Cf. also Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.9">Geref. Dogm.</span> II, p. 252: Kuyper, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.10">Dict. Dogm., De Deo</span> I, pp. 412f.</note>
The<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.11">
potentia ordinata</span>
can be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.12">
that perfection of God whereby He, through the mere
exercise of His will, can realize whatsoever is present in His will or counsel.</span>
The power of God in actual exercise limits itself to that which is
comprehended in His eternal decree. But the actual exercise of God's
power does not represent its limits. God could do more than that, if He were so
minded. In that sense
we can speak of the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.13">
potentia absoluta</span>
or absolute
power, of God. This position must be
maintained over against those who, like Schleiermacher and Strauss, hold
that God's
power is limited to that which He actually accomplishes. But in our
assertion of the
absolute power of God it is necessary to guard against misconceptions.
The Bible
teaches us on the one hand that the power of God extends beyond that
which is actually
realized, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.14" osisRef="Bible:Gen.18.14" parsed="|Gen|18|14|0|0" passage="Gen. 18:14">Gen.
18:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.15" osisRef="Bible:Jer.32.27" parsed="|Jer|32|27|0|0" passage="Jer. 32:27">Jer. 32:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.16" osisRef="Bible:Zech.8.6" parsed="|Zech|8|6|0|0" passage="Zech. 8:6">Zech. 8:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.17" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.9" parsed="|Matt|3|9|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:9">Matt. 3:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.18" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.53" parsed="|Matt|26|53|0|0" passage="Matt 26:53">26:53</scripRef>. We cannot say, therefore, that
what God does not bring to realization, is not possible for Him. But on
the other hand it
also indicates that there are many things which God cannot do. He can neither
lie, sin,
change, nor deny
Himself, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.19" osisRef="Bible:Num.23.19" parsed="|Num|23|19|0|0" passage="Num. 23:19">Num. 23:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.20" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.15.29" parsed="|1Sam|15|29|0|0" passage="I Sam. 15:29">I Sam. 15:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.21" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.13" parsed="|2Tim|2|13|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:13">II Tim. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.22" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.18" parsed="|Heb|6|18|0|0" passage="Heb. 6:18">Heb. 6:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.23" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.13" parsed="|Jas|1|13|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:13">Jas. 1:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.24" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.17" parsed="|Jas|1|17|0|0" passage="Jas 1:17">17</scripRef>.
There is no absolute power in Him that is divorced
from His perfections, and in virtue
of which He can do all kinds of things which are inherently
contradictory. The idea of God's
omnipotence is expressed in the name '<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p34.25">
El-Shaddai</span>; and the Bible
speaks of it in no uncertain terms,
<scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.26" osisRef="Bible:Job.9.12" parsed="|Job|9|12|0|0" passage="Job 9:12">Job 9:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.27" osisRef="Bible:Ps.115.3" parsed="|Ps|115|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 115:3">Ps. 115:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.28" osisRef="Bible:Jer.32.17" parsed="|Jer|32|17|0|0" passage="Jer. 32:17">Jer. 32:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.29" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.26" parsed="|Matt|19|26|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:26">Matt. 19:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.30" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.37" parsed="|Luke|1|37|0|0" passage="Luke 1:37">Luke 1:37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.31" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.20" parsed="|Rom|1|20|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:20">Rom. 1:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.32" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.19" parsed="|Eph|1|19|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:19">Eph. 1:19</scripRef>. God
manifests His power in creation, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.33" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.17" parsed="|Rom|4|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:17">Rom. 4:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.34" osisRef="Bible:Isa.44.24" parsed="|Isa|44|24|0|0" passage="Isa. 44:24">Isa. 44:24</scripRef>; in the works of
providence, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.35" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.3" parsed="|Heb|1|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:3">Heb. 1:3</scripRef>, and in the redemption of sinners, <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.36" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.24" parsed="|1Cor|1|24|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:24">I Cor. 1:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.vii-p34.37" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.16" parsed="|Rom|1|16|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:16">Rom. 1:16</scripRef>. </p>
<p id="iii.i.vii-p35" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. In what
different senses can we speak of the
foreknowledge of God? How do the Arminians conceive of this
foreknowledge? What
objections are there to the Jesuit idea of a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p35.1">
scientia media?</span>
How must we judge of the
modern emphasis on the love of God as the central and all-determining
attribute of  God?
What is Otto's conception of "the Holy" in God? What objection is
there to the position that the punishments of God simply serve to reform the sinner,
or to deter
others from sin? What is the Socinian and the Grotian conception of
retributive justice in
God? Is it correct to say that God can do everything in virtue of His
omnipotence? </p>

<p id="iii.i.vii-p36" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.1">Geref. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 171-259; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Deo</span>
I, pp. 355-417; Vos,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.3">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
I, pp. 2-36; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 393-441; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.5">
Dogm. Theol. I</span>, pp. 359-392; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.6">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 154-174; Pope,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.7">
Chr. Theol.</span> I, pp.
307-358; Watson,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.8">
Theol. Inst.</span>
Part II, Chap. II; Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.9">
Handbook of the Chr. Religion</span>, pp.
171-181; Harris,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.10">
God, Creator and Lord of All, I</span>, pp. 128-209;
Charnock,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.11">
The Existence and
Attributes of God</span>, Discourse III, VII-IX; Bates,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.12">
On the Attributes</span>; Clarke,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.13">
The Christian Doctrine of God</span>, pp. 56-115; Snowden,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.14">
The Personality of God</span>; Adeney,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.15">
The Christian Conception of God</span>, pp. 86-152; Macintosh,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.16">
Theology as an Empirical Science</span>, pp. 159-194;
Strong,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.vii-p36.17">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 282-303. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.i.viii" next="iii.ii" prev="iii.i.vii" title="VIII. The Holy Trinity">
<h2 id="iii.i.viii-p0.1">VIII. The Holy Trinity</h2>
<h4 id="iii.i.viii-p0.2">THE DOCTRINE OF THE TRINITY IN HISTORY</h4>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p1" shownumber="no">The doctrine of the Trinity has always bristled with
difficulties, and therefore it is no
wonder that the Church in its attempt to formulate it was repeatedly
tempted to
rationalize it and to give a construction of it which failed to do
justice to the Scriptural
data.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE PRE REFORMATION PERIOD. The Jews of
Jesus' days strongly emphasized the
unity of God, and this emphasis was carried over into the Christian
Church. The result
was that some ruled out the personal distinctions in the Godhead
altogether, and that
others failed to do full justice to the essential deity of the second
and third persons of
the Holy Trinity. Tertullian was the first to use the term
"Trinity" and to formulate the
doctrine, but his formulation was deficient, since it involved an
unwarranted
subordination of the Son to the Father. Origen went even farther in this
direction by
teaching explicitly that the Son is subordinate to the Father<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p2.1">
in respect to essence</span>, and that
the Holy Spirit is subordinate even to the Son. He detracted from the
essential deity of
these two persons in the Godhead, and furnished a steppingstone to the
Arians, who
denied the deity of the Son and of the Holy Spirit by representing the
Son as the first
creature of the Father, and the Holy Spirit as the first creature of the
Son. Thus the
consubstantiality of the Son and the Holy Spirit with the Father was
sacrificed, in order
to preserve the unity of God; and the three persons of the Godhead were
made to differ
in rank. The Arians still retained a semblance of the doctrine of three
persons in the
Godhead, but this was sacrificed entirely by Monarchianism, partly in
the interest of the unity of God and partly to maintain the deity of the Son.
Dynamic Monarchianism saw
in Jesus but a man and in the Holy Spirit a divine influence,
while Modalistic
Monarchianism regarded the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, merely
as three
modes of manifestation successively assumed by the Godhead. On the other
hand there
were also some who lost sight of the unity of God to such an extent that
they landed in
Tritheism. Some of the later Monophysites, such as John Ascunages and
John
Philoponus, fell into this error. During the Middle Ages the Nominalist,
Roscelinus, was
accused of the same error. The Church began to formulate its doctrine of
the Trinity in
the fourth century. The Council of Nicea declared the Son to be
co-essential with the
Father (325 A.D.), while the Council of Constantinople (381 A.D.)
asserted the deity of
the Holy Spirit, though not with the same precision. As to the
interrelation of the three it
was officially professed that the Son is generated by the Father, and
that the Holy Spirit
proceeds from the Father and the Son. In the East the doctrine of the
Trinity found its
fullest statement in the work of John of Damascus, and in the West, in
Augustine's great
work<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p2.2">
De Trinitate.</span>
The former still retains an element of subordination, which is entirely
eliminated by the latter.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE POST REFORMATION PERIOD. We have no further development of the doctrine
of the Trinity, but only encounter repeatedly some of the earlier
erroneous constructions
of it after the Reformation. The Arminians, Episcopius, Curcellæus, and
Limborgh,
revived the doctrine of subordination, chiefly again, so it seems,
to maintain the unity of
the Godhead. They ascribed to the Father a certain pre-eminence over the
other persons,
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p3.1">
in order, dignity, and power.</span>
A somewhat
similar position was taken by Samuel Clarke in
England and by the Lutheran theologian, Kahnis. Others followed the way
pointed out
by Sabellius by teaching a species of Modalism, as, for instance,
Emanuel Swedenborg,
who held that the eternal God-man became flesh in the Son, and
operated through the
Holy Spirit; Hegel, who speaks of the Father as God in Himself, of the
Son as God
objectifying Himself, and of the Holy Spirit as God returning unto
Himself; and
Schleiermacher, who regards the three persons simply as three aspects of
God: the
Father is God as the underlying unity of all things, the Son is God as
coming to
conscious personality in man, and the Holy Spirit is God as living in
the Church. The
Socinians of the days of the Reformation moved along Arian lines, but
even went
beyond Arius, by making Christ merely a man and the Holy
Spirit but a power or
influence. They were the forerunners of the Unitarians and also of
the liberal
theologians who speak of Jesus as a divine teacher, and identify the
Holy Spirit with the
immanent God. Finally, there were also some who, since they regarded the
statement of
the doctrine of an ontological Trinity as unintelligible, wanted to stop
short of it and rest
satisfied with the doctrine of an economic Trinity, a Trinity as
revealed in the work of
redemption and in human experience, as Moses Stuart, W. L. Alexander,
and W. A.
Brown. For a considerable time interest in the doctrine of the Trinity
waned, and
theological discussion centered more particularly on the personality of
God. Brunner
and Barth have again called attention to its importance. The latter
places it very much in
the foreground, discussing it in connection with the doctrine of
revelation, and devotes
220 pages of his Dogmatics to it. Materially, he derives the doctrine
from Scripture, but,
formally and logically, he finds that it is involved in the simple
sentence, "God speaks."
He is Revealer (Father), Revelation (Son) and Revealedness (Holy Spirit).
He reveals
Himself, He is the Revelation, and He is also the content of the
Revelation. God and His
revelation are identified. He remains God also in His revelation,
absolutely free and
sovereign. This view of Barth is not a species of Sabellianism, for he
recognizes three
persons in the Godhead. Moreover, he does not allow for any
subordination. Says he:
"Thus, to the same God who in unimpaired unity is Revealer,
Revelation, and
Revealedness, is also ascribed in unimpaired variety in Himself
precisely this threefold
mode of
being."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.viii-p3.2" n="36" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p3.3">The Doctrine of the Word of God, p.</span> 344</note></p>

<h4 id="iii.i.viii-p3.4">B. GOD AS TRINITY IN UNITY</h4>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p4" shownumber="no">The
word "Trinity" is not quite as expressive as the Holland word
"Drieeenheid,"
for it may simply denote the state of being three, without any
implication as to the unity
of the three. It is generally understood, however, that, as a technical
term in theology, it
includes that idea. It goes without saying that, when we speak of the
Trinity of God, we
refer to a trinity in unity, and to a unity that is trinal.
</p>


<p id="iii.i.viii-p5" shownumber="no">1. THE PERSONALITY OF GOD AND THE TRINITY. As stated in
the preceding, the
communicable attributes of God stress His personality, since they reveal
Him as a
rational and moral Being. His life stands out clearly before us in
Scripture as a personal
life; and it is, of course, of the greatest importance to maintain the
personality of God,
for without it there can be no religion in the real sense of the word: no
prayer, no
personal communion, no trustful reliance and no confident hope. Since
man is created
in the image of God, we learn to understand something of the personal
life of God from
the contemplation of personality as we know it in man. We should be
careful, however,
not to set up man's personality as a standard by which the personality
of God must be
measured. The original form of personality is not in man but in God; His
is archetypal, while man's is ectypal. The latter is not identical with the
former, but does contain faint
traces of similarity with it. We should not say that man is personal,
while God is super-
personal (a very unfortunate term), for what is super-personal is not
personal; but
rather, that what appears as imperfect in man exists in infinite
perfection in God. The
one outstanding difference between the two is that man is uni-personal,
while God is
tri-personal. And this tri-personal existence is a necessity in the
Divine Being, and not in
any sense the result of a choice of God. He could not exist in any other
than the tri-
personal form. This has been argued in various ways. It is very common
to argue it
from the idea of personality itself. Shedd bases his argument on the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p5.1">
general</span>
self-consciousness of the triune God, as distinguished from the particular
individual self- consciousness of each one of the Persons in the Godhead, for
in self-consciousness the
subject must know itself as an object, and also perceive that it does.
This is possible in God because of His trinal existence. He says that God could not be
self-contemplating,
self-cognitive, and self-communing, if He were not trinal in His
constitution.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.viii-p5.2" n="37" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p5.3">Dogm. theol.,</span> pp. 393 f., 251 ff., 178ff.</note>
Bartlett
presents in an interesting way a variety of considerations to prove that
God is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p5.4">
necessarily </span>
tri-personal.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.viii-p5.5" n="38" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p5.6">The Triune God, Part Two</span>.</note>
The argument from personality, to
prove at least a plurality in God, can
be put in some such form as this: Among men the ego awakens to
consciousness only
by contact with the non-ego. Personality does not develop nor exist in
isolation, but
only in association with other persons. Hence it is not possible to
conceive of
personality in God apart from an association of<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p5.7">
equal</span>
persons in Him. His contact with
His creatures would not account for His personality any more than man's
contact with
the animals would explain his personality. In virtue of the tri-personal
existence of God
there is an infinite fulness of divine life in Him. Paul speaks of this<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p5.8">
pleroma</span>
(fulness) of
the Godhead in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.19" parsed="|Eph|3|19|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:19">Eph. 3:19</scripRef> and <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.9" parsed="|Col|1|9|0|0" passage="Col. 1:9">Col. 1:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.9" parsed="|Col|2|9|0|0" passage="Col 2:9">2:9</scripRef>. In view of the fact that
there are three
persons in God, it is better to say that God is personal than to speak
of Him as a Person.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p6" shownumber="no">2. SCRIPTURAL PROOF FOR THE DOCTRINE OF THE TRINITY. The doctrine
of the Trinity is
very decidedly a doctrine of revelation. It is true that human reason
may suggest some
thoughts to substantiate the doctrine, and that men have sometimes on
purely
philosophical grounds abandoned the idea of a bare unity in God, and
introduced the
idea of living movement and self-distinction. And it is also true that
Christian
experience would seem to demand some such construction of the doctrine
of God. At
the same time it is a doctrine which we would not have known, nor have
been able to maintain with any degree of confidence, on the basis of experience
alone, and which is
brought to our knowledge only by God's special self-revelation.
Therefore it is of the
utmost importance that we gather the Scriptural proofs for it.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p7" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p7.1"> Old Testament proofs.</span>
Some of the early Church Fathers
and even some later
theologians, disregarding the progressive character of God's revelation,
gave the
impression that the doctrine of the Trinity was completely revealed in
the Old
Testament. On the other hand Socinians and Arminians were of the opinion
that it was
not found there at all. Both were mistaken. The Old Testament does not
contain a full
revelation of the trinitarian existence of God, but does contain several
indications of it.
And this is exactly what might be expected. The Bible never deals with
the doctrine of
the Trinity as an abstract truth, but reveals the trinitarian life in
its various relations as a
living reality, to a certain extent in connection with the works of
creation and
providence, but particularly in relation to the work of redemption. Its
most fundamental revelation is a revelation given in facts rather than in
words. And this
revelation increases in clarity in the measure in which the redemptive
work of God is
more clearly revealed, as in the incarnation of the Son and the
outpouring of the Holy
Spirit. And the more the glorious reality of the Trinity stands out in
the facts of history,
the clearer the statements of the doctrine become. The fuller revelation
of the Trinity in
the New Testament is due to the fact that the Word became flesh,
and that the Holy
Spirit took up His abode in the Church.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p8" shownumber="no">Proof for the Trinity has sometimes been found in the
distinction of Jehovah and Elohim, and also in the plural Elohim, but the former is entirely
unwarranted, and the latter is, to say the least, very dubious, though Rottenberg still
maintains it in his work  on<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p8.1">
De Triniteit in Israels Godsbegrip.</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.viii-p8.2" n="39" place="foot">pp. 19ff.</note> It is far more plausible that the passages in
which
God speaks of Himself in the plural, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.11.7" parsed="|Gen|11|7|0|0" passage="Gen 11:7">11:7</scripRef>, contain an
indication of personal
distinctions in God, though even these do not point to a trinity but
only to a plurality of
persons. Still clearer indications of such personal distinctions are
found in those
passages which refer to the Angel of Jehovah, who is on the one hand
identified with
Jehovah, and on the other hand distinguished from Him, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.16.7-Gen.16.13" parsed="|Gen|16|7|16|13" passage="Gen. 16:7-13">Gen. 16:7-13</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.18.1-Gen.18.21" parsed="|Gen|18|1|18|21" passage="Gen 18:1-21">18:1-21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.19.1-Gen.19.28" parsed="|Gen|19|1|19|28" passage="Gen 19:1-28">19:1-28</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.1" parsed="|Mal|3|1|0|0" passage="Mal. 3:1">Mal. 3:1</scripRef>; and also in passages in which the Word or Wisdom of God is
personified, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.4" parsed="|Ps|33|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:4">Ps.
33:4</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.6" parsed="|Ps|33|6|0|0" passage="Ps 33:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Prov.8.12-Prov.8.31" parsed="|Prov|8|12|8|31" passage="Prov. 8:12-31">Prov.
8:12-31</scripRef>. In some cases more than one person is mentioned, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.6" parsed="|Ps|33|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:6">Ps. 33:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.45.6" parsed="|Ps|45|6|0|0" passage="Ps 45:6">45:6</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.45.7" parsed="|Ps|45|7|0|0" passage="Ps 45:7">7</scripRef>
(comp. <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.8" parsed="|Heb|1|8|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:8">Heb. 1:8</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.16" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.9" parsed="|Heb|1|9|0|0" passage="Heb 1:9">9</scripRef>), and in others God is the speaker, and mentions both
the Messiah
and the Spirit, or the Messiah is the speaker who mentions both God and
the Spirit, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.17" osisRef="Bible:Isa.48.16" parsed="|Isa|48|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 48:16">Isa.
48:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.61.1" parsed="|Isa|61|1|0|0" passage="Isa 61:1">61:1</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.19" osisRef="Bible:Isa.63.9" parsed="|Isa|63|9|0|0" passage="Isa 63:9">63:9</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p8.20" osisRef="Bible:Isa.63.10" parsed="|Isa|63|10|0|0" passage="Isa 63:10">10</scripRef>. Thus the Old Testament contains a clear anticipation of the fuller
revelation of the Trinity in the New Testament.
</p>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p9" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p9.1"> New Testament proofs.</span>
The New Testament carries with
it a clearer revelation of the
distinctions in the Godhead. If in the Old Testament Jehovah is
represented as the
Redeemer and
Saviour of His people, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:Job.19.25" parsed="|Job|19|25|0|0" passage="Job. 19:25">Job. 19:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.19.14" parsed="|Ps|19|14|0|0" passage="Ps. 19:14">Ps. 19:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.78.35" parsed="|Ps|78|35|0|0" passage="Ps 78:35">78:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.106.21" parsed="|Ps|106|21|0|0" passage="Ps 106:21">106:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.41.14" parsed="|Isa|41|14|0|0" passage="Isa. 41:14">Isa. 41:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.3" parsed="|Isa|43|3|0|0" passage="Isa 43:3">43:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.11" parsed="|Isa|43|11|0|0" passage="Isa 43:11">11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.14" parsed="|Isa|43|14|0|0" passage="Isa 43:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:Isa.47.4" parsed="|Isa|47|4|0|0" passage="Isa 47:4">47:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.49.7" parsed="|Isa|49|7|0|0" passage="Isa 49:7">49:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.49.26" parsed="|Isa|49|26|0|0" passage="Isa 49:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.13" osisRef="Bible:Isa.60.16" parsed="|Isa|60|16|0|0" passage="Isa 60:16">60:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.14" osisRef="Bible:Jer.14.3" parsed="|Jer|14|3|0|0" passage="Jer. 14:3">Jer. 14:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.15" osisRef="Bible:Jer.50.14" parsed="|Jer|50|14|0|0" passage="Jer 50:14">50:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.16" osisRef="Bible:Hos.13.3" parsed="|Hos|13|3|0|0" passage="Hos. 13:3">Hos. 13:3</scripRef>, in the New Testament the Son
of God clearly
stands out in that capacity, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.17" osisRef="Bible:Matt.1.21" parsed="|Matt|1|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 1:21">Matt. 1:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.18" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.76-Luke.1.79" parsed="|Luke|1|76|1|79" passage="Luke 1:76-79">Luke 1:76-79</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.19" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.17" parsed="|Luke|2|17|0|0" passage="Luke 2:17">2:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.20" osisRef="Bible:John.4.42" parsed="|John|4|42|0|0" passage="John 4:42">John 4:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.21" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.3" parsed="|Acts|5|3|0|0" passage="Acts 5:3">Acts
5:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.22" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:13">Gal. 3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.23" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">4:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.24" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.30" parsed="|Phil|3|30|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:30">Phil. 3:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.25" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.13" parsed="|Titus|2|13|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:13">Tit. 2:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.26" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.14" parsed="|Titus|2|14|0|0" passage="Tit 2:14">14</scripRef>. And if in the Old Testament it is Jehovah that dwells
among Israel and
in the hearts of those that fear Him, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.27" osisRef="Bible:Ps.74.2" parsed="|Ps|74|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 74:2">Ps. 74:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.28" osisRef="Bible:Ps.135.21" parsed="|Ps|135|21|0|0" passage="Ps 135:21">135:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.29" osisRef="Bible:Isa.8.18" parsed="|Isa|8|18|0|0" passage="Isa. 8:18">Isa. 8:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.30" osisRef="Bible:Isa.57.15" parsed="|Isa|57|15|0|0" passage="Isa 57:15">57:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.31" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.43.7-Ezek.43.9" parsed="|Ezek|43|7|43|9" passage="Ezek. 43:7-9">Ezek. 43:7-9</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.32" osisRef="Bible:Joel.3.17" parsed="|Joel|3|17|0|0" passage="Joel 3:17">Joel 3:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.33" osisRef="Bible:Joel.3.21" parsed="|Joel|3|21|0|0" passage="Joel 3:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.34" osisRef="Bible:Zech.2.10" parsed="|Zech|2|10|0|0" passage="Zech. 2:10">Zech. 2:10</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.35" osisRef="Bible:Zech.2.11" parsed="|Zech|2|11|0|0" passage="Zech 2:11">11</scripRef>, in the New Testament it is the Holy Spirit that
dwells in the Church, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.36" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.4" parsed="|Acts|2|4|0|0" passage="Acts 2:4">Acts 2:4</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.37" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.9" parsed="|Rom|8|9|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:9">Rom. 8:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.38" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom 8:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.39" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.3.16" parsed="|1Cor|3|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 3:16">I Cor. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.40" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.6" parsed="|Gal|4|6|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:6">Gal. 4:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.41" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.22" parsed="|Eph|2|22|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:22">Eph. 2:22</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.42" osisRef="Bible:Jas.4.5" parsed="|Jas|4|5|0|0" passage="Jas. 4:5">Jas. 4:5</scripRef>. The New Testament offers the clear revelation of God sending His Son into
the world, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.43" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.44" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.45" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.6" parsed="|Heb|1|6|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:6">Heb. 1:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.46" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.9" parsed="|1John|4|9|0|0" passage="I John 4:9">I John 4:9</scripRef>; and of both the Father and the Son, sending the Spirit,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.47" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.48" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.49" osisRef="Bible:John.16.7" parsed="|John|16|7|0|0" passage="John 16:7">16:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.50" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.6" parsed="|Gal|4|6|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:6">Gal. 4:6</scripRef>. We find the Father addressing the Son, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.51" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.11" parsed="|Mark|1|11|0|0" passage="Mark 1:11">Mark 1:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.52" osisRef="Bible:Luke.3.22" parsed="|Luke|3|22|0|0" passage="Luke 3:22">Luke 3:22</scripRef>, the Son
communing with the Father, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.53" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.25" parsed="|Matt|11|25|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:25">Matt. 11:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.54" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.26" parsed="|Matt|11|26|0|0" passage="Matt 11:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.55" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.39" parsed="|Matt|26|39|0|0" passage="Matt 26:39">26:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.56" osisRef="Bible:John.11.41" parsed="|John|11|41|0|0" passage="John 11:41">John 11:41</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.57" osisRef="Bible:John.12.27" parsed="|John|12|27|0|0" passage="John 12:27">12:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.58" osisRef="Bible:John.12.28" parsed="|John|12|28|0|0" passage="John 12:28">28</scripRef>, and the Holy Spirit praying to God in the hearts of believers, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.59" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.26" parsed="|Rom|8|26|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:26">Rom. 8:26</scripRef>.
Thus the separate
persons of the Trinity are made to stand out clearly before our minds.
At the baptism of
the Son the Father speaks from heaven, and the Holy Spirit descends in
the form of a
dove, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.60" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.16" parsed="|Matt|3|16|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:16">Matt. 3:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.61" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.17" parsed="|Matt|3|17|0|0" passage="Matt 3:17">17</scripRef>. In the great commission Jesus mentions the three
persons: "... baptizing them into the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy
Spirit," <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.62" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:19">Matt. 28:19</scripRef>. They are
also named alongside of each other in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.63" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.4-1Cor.12.6" parsed="|1Cor|12|4|12|6" passage="I Cor. 12:4-6">I Cor. 12:4-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.64" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.13.14" parsed="|2Cor|13|14|0|0" passage="II Cor. 13:14">II Cor. 13:14</scripRef>; and <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.65" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Peter 1:2">I
Peter 1:2</scripRef>. The only passage speaking of tri-unity is <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p9.66" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.7" parsed="|1John|5|7|0|0" passage="I John 5:7">I John 5:7</scripRef> (Auth.
Ver.), but this is of
doubtful genuineness, and is therefore eliminated from the latest
critical editions of the
New Testament. </p>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p10" shownumber="no">3. STATEMENT OF THE DOCTRINE OF THE TRINITY. The doctrine
of the Trinity can best be discussed briefly in connection with various propositions, which
constitute an epitome of the faith of the Church on this point.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p11" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p11.1"> There is in the Divine Being but one indivisible essence (ousia, essentia).</span>
God is one in His essential being or constitutional nature. Some of the early Church
Fathers used the
term "<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p11.2">
substantia</span>" as synonymous with "essentia," but later writers
avoided this use of it
in view of the fact that in the Latin Church "<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p11.3">
substantia</span>" was used as a rendering of"<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p11.4">
hupostasis</span>" as well as of "<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p11.5">
ousia</span>
", and was therefore
ambiguous. At present the two
terms
"substance" and "essence" are often used interchangeably.
There is no objection
to this, provided we bear in mind that they have slightly different
connotations. Shedd distinguishes them as follows: "Essence is from<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p11.6">
esse</span>, to be, and denotes energetic being.
Substance is from<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p11.7">
substare</span>
and denotes the
latent possibility of being.... The term
essence describes God as a sum-total of infinite perfections; the term
substance
describes Him as the underlying ground of infinite activities. The first
is, comparatively,
an active word; the last, a passive. The first is, comparatively, a
spiritual, the last a
material term. We speak of material substance rather than of material
essence."<note anchored="yes" class="foot" id="iii.i.viii-p11.8" n="40" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p11.9">Dogm. Theol.,</span> I, p. 271.</note>
Since the unity of God was already discussed in the preceding, it is not
necessary to dwell on
it in detail in the present connection. This proposition respecting the
unity of God is
based on such passages as <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Deut.6.4" parsed="|Deut|6|4|0|0" passage="Deut. 6:4">Deut. 6:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.19" parsed="|Jas|2|19|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:19">Jas. 2:19</scripRef>, on the self-existence
and immutability of
God, and on the fact that He is identified with His perfections as when
He is called life, light, truth, righteousness, and so on.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p12" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p12.1"> In this one Divine Being there are three Persons or individual subsistences, Father, Son, and Holy Spirit.</span>
This is proved by the various passages referred to as substantiating
the
doctrine of the Trinity. To denote these distinctions in the Godhead,
Greek writers
generally employed the term<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p12.2">
hupostasis</span>
while Latin
authors used the term<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p12.3">
persona</span>, and
sometimes<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p12.4">
substantia.</span>
Because the former was apt to be misleading and the latter was
ambiguous, the Schoolmen coined the word<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p12.5">
subsistentia.</span>
The variety of the terms used
points to the fact that their inadequacy was always felt. It is
generally admitted that the word "person" is but an imperfect expression of the idea. In
common parlance it
denotes a separate rational and moral individual, possessed of
self-consciousness, and
conscious of his identity amid all changes. Experience teaches that
where you have a
person, you also have a distinct individual essence. Every person is a
distinct and
separate individual, in whom human nature is individualized. But in God
there are no
three individuals alongside of, and separate from, one another, but only
personal self-
distinctions within the Divine essence, which is not only generically,
but also
numerically, one. Consequently many preferred to speak of three
hypostases in God,
three different modes, not of manifestation, as Sabellius taught,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p12.6">
but of existence or subsistence.</span>
Thus Calvin says: "By person,
then, I mean a subsistence in the Divine
essence. — a subsistence which, while related to the other two, is
distinguished from
them by incommunicable properties."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.viii-p12.7" n="41" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p12.8">Inst. </span>I, XIII, 6</note> This is perfectly permissible and may ward off
misunderstanding, but should not cause us to lose sight of the fact that
the self-distinctions in
the Divine Being imply an "I" and "Thou" and
"He," in the Being of God, which
assume personal relations to one another. <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.16" parsed="|Matt|3|16|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:16">Matt. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.4.1" parsed="|Matt|4|1|0|0" passage="Matt 4:1">4:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:John.1.18" parsed="|John|1|18|0|0" passage="John 1:18">John 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p12.12" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p12.13" osisRef="Bible:John.5.20-John.5.22" parsed="|John|5|20|5|22" passage="John 5:20-22">5:20-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p12.14" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p12.15" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p12.16" osisRef="Bible:John.16.13-John.16.15" parsed="|John|16|13|16|15" passage="John 16:13-15">16:13-15</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p13" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p13.1"> The whole undivided essence of God belongs equally to each of the three persons.</span>
This means that the divine essence is not divided among the three persons,
but is wholly
with all its perfection in each one of the persons, so that they have a
numerical unity of
essence. The divine nature is distinguished from the human nature in
that it can subsist
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p13.2">
wholly</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p13.3">
indivisibly</span>
in more than one person. While three persons among men have
only a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p13.4">
specific</span>
unity of nature or essence, that is, share in the same kind of nature
or
essence, the persons in the Godhead have a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p13.5">
numerical</span>
unity of essence, that is, possess
the identical essence. Human nature or essence may be regarded as a
species, of which
each man has an individual part, so that there is a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p13.6">
specific</span>
(from species) unity; but the
divine nature is indivisible and therefore identical in the persons of
the Godhead. It is
numerically one and the same, and therefore the unity of the essence in
the persons is a
numerical unity. From this it follows that the divine essence is not an
independent
existence alongside of the three persons. It has no existence outside of
and apart from
the three persons. If it did, there would be no true unity, but a
division that would lead into tetratheism. The personal distinction is one within the divine
essence. This has, as it
is usually termed, three modes of subsistence. Another conclusion which
follows from
the preceding, is that there can be no subordination<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p13.7">
as to essential being</span>
of the one person
of the Godhead to the other, and therefore no difference in personal
dignity. This must
be maintained over against the subordinationism of Origen and other early
Church
Fathers, and the Arminians, and of Clarke and other
Anglican theologians. The only
subordination of which we can speak, is a subordination in respect to
order and
relationship. It is especially when we reflect on the relation of
the three persons to the
divine essence that all analogies fail us and we become deeply conscious
of the fact that
the Trinity is a mystery far beyond our comprehension. It is the
incomprehensible glory of the Godhead. Just as human nature is too rich and too
full to be embodied in a single
individual, and comes to its adequate expression only in humanity as a
whole so the
divine Being unfolds itself in its fulness only in its three fold
subsistence of Father, Son, and Holy Spirit.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p14" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p14.1"> The subsistence and operation of the three persons in the divine Being is marked by a certain definite order.</span>
There is a certain order in the
ontological Trinity. In personal
subsistence the Father is first, the Son second, and the Holy Spirit
third. It need hardly
be said that this order does not pertain to any priority of time or of
essential dignity, but
only to the logical order of derivation. The Father is neither begotten
by, nor proceeds
from any other person; the Son is eternally begotten of the Father, and
the Spirit
proceeds from the Father and the Son from all eternity. Generation and
procession take
place within the Divine Being, and imply a certain subordination as to
the manner of
personal subsistence, but no subordination as far as the possession of
the divine essence
is concerned. This ontological Trinity and its inherent order is the
metaphysical basis of
the economical Trinity. It is but natural, therefore, that the order
existing in the essential Trinity should be reflected in the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p14.2">
opera ad extra</span>
that are more particularly ascribed to
each one of the persons. Scripture clearly indicates this order in the
so-called
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p14.3">
praepositiones distinctionales, ek, dia</span>, and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p14.4">
en</span>, which are used in expressing the idea that all
things are out of the Father, through the Son, and in the Holy Spirit.
</p>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p15" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p15.1"> There are certain personal attributes by which the three persons are distinguished.</span>
These are also called<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p15.2">
opera ad intra</span>, because they are works within the Divine Being, which do
not terminate on the creature. They are personal operations, which are
not performed
by the three persons jointly and which are incommunicable. Generation is
an act of the
Father only; filiation belongs to the Son exclusively; and procession
can only be ascribed
to the Holy
Spirit. As<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p15.3">
opera ad intra</span>
these works are
distinguished from the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p15.4">
opera ad extra</span>,or those activities and effects by which the Trinity is manifested
outwardly. These are
never works of one person exclusively, but always works of the Divine
Being as a
whole. At the same time it is true that in the economical order of God's
works some of
the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p15.5">
opera ad extra</span>
are ascribed more particularly to one person, and some more
especially to another. Though they are all works of the three persons
jointly, creation is
ascribed primarily to the Father, redemption to the Son, and
sanctification to the Holy Spirit. This order in the divine operations points
back to the essential order in God and
forms the basis for what is generally known as the economic Trinity.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p16" shownumber="no">f.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p16.1"> The Church confesses the Trinity to be a mystery beyond the comprehension of man.</span>
The Trinity is a mystery, not merely in the Biblical sense that it is a
truth, which was
formerly hidden but is now revealed; but in the sense that man cannot
comprehend it
and make it intelligible. It is intelligible in some of its relations
and modes of
manifestation, but unintelligible in its essential nature. The many
efforts that were made
to explain the mystery were speculative rather than theological. They
invariably
resulted in the development of tritheistic or modalistic conceptions of
God, in the denial
of either the unity of the divine essence or the reality of the personal
distinctions within
the essence. The real difficulty lies in the relation in which the persons
in the Godhead
stand to the divine essence and to one another; and this is a difficulty
which the Church
cannot remove, but only try to reduce to its proper proportion by a
proper definition of
terms. It has never tried to explain the mystery of the Trinity, but
only sought to
formulate the doctrine of the Trinity in such a manner that the errors
which endangered it were warded off.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p17" shownumber="no">4. VARIOUS ANALOGIES SUGGESTED TO SHED LIGHT ON THE SUBJECT. From the very
earliest time of the Christian era attempts were made to shed light on
the trinitarian
Being of God, on the trinity in unity and the unity in trinity, by
analogies drawn from
several sources. While these are all defective, it cannot be denied that
they were of some
value in the trinitarian discussion. This applies particularly to those
derived from the
constitutional nature, or from the psychology, of man. In view of the
fact that man was
created in the image of God, it is but natural to assume that, if there
are some traces of
the trinitarian life in the creature, the clearest of these will be
found in man.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p18" shownumber="no">a. Some of these illustrations or analogies were taken
from inanimate nature or from
plant life, as the water of the fountain, the creek, and the river, or
of the rising mist, the
cloud, and the rain, or in the form of rain, snow, and ice; and as the
tree with its root,
trunk, and branches. These and all similar illustrations are very
defective. The idea of
personality is, of course, entirely wanting; and while they do furnish
examples of a common nature or substance, they are not examples of a common essence
which is
present, not merely in part, but in its entirety, in each of its constituent
parts or forms.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p19" shownumber="no">b. Others of greater importance were drawn from the life
of man, particularly from the constitution and the processes of the human mind.
These were considered to be of special significance, because man is the image-bearer of God. To this
class belong the psychological unity of the intellect, the affections, and the will
(Augustine); the logical
unity of thesis, antithesis, and synthesis (Hegel); and the metaphysical
unity of subject,
object, and subject-object (Olshausen, Shedd). In all of these we do
have a certain trinity
in unity, but no tri-personality in unity of substance.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p20" shownumber="no">c. Attention has also been called to the nature of love,
which presupposes a subject and an object, and calls for the union of these two, so that, when love
has its perfect work, three elements are included. But it is easy to see that this
analogy is faulty, since it co-ordinates two persons and a relationship. It does not illustrate a
tri-personality at all.
Moreover, it only refers to a quality and not at all to a substance
possessed in common
by the subject and the object.</p>

<h4 id="iii.i.viii-p20.1">C.THE THREE PERSONS CONSIDERED SEPARATELY</h4>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p21" shownumber="no">1. THE FATHER OR THE FIRST PERSON IN THE TRINITY.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p22" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p22.1"> The name "Father" as applied to God.</span> This name is
not always used of God in the same sense in Scripture. (1) Sometimes it is applied to the Triune God
as the origin of all created things, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.6" parsed="|1Cor|8|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:6">I Cor. 8:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.15" parsed="|Eph|3|15|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:15">Eph. 3:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.9" parsed="|Heb|12|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:9">Heb. 12:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.17" parsed="|Jas|1|17|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:17">Jas. 1:17</scripRef>. While in these cases the name
applies to the triune God, it does refer more particularly to the first
person, to whom the
work of creation is more especially ascribed in Scripture. (2) The name
is also ascribed
to the triune God to express the theocratic relation in which He stands
to Israel as His
Old Testament
people, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.6" parsed="|Deut|32|6|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:6">Deut. 32:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.63.16" parsed="|Isa|63|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 63:16">Isa. 63:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:Isa.64.8" parsed="|Isa|64|8|0|0" passage="Isa 64:8">64:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:Jer.3.4" parsed="|Jer|3|4|0|0" passage="Jer. 3:4">Jer. 3:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.10" osisRef="Bible:Mal.1.6" parsed="|Mal|1|6|0|0" passage="Mal. 1:6">Mal. 1:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.11" osisRef="Bible:Mal.2.10" parsed="|Mal|2|10|0|0" passage="Mal 2:10">2:10</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.12" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3" parsed="|Mal|3|0|0|0" passage="Mal 3">3</scripRef>) In the New
Testament the name is generally used to designate the triune God as the
Father in an
ethical sense of
all His spiritual children, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.45" parsed="|Matt|5|45|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:45">Matt. 5:45</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.6-Matt.6.15" parsed="|Matt|6|6|6|15" passage="Matt 6:6-15">6:6-15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.16" parsed="|Rom|8|16|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:16">Rom. 8:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.16" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.1" parsed="|1John|3|1|0|0" passage="I John 3:1">I John 3:1</scripRef>. (4) In
an entirely different sense, however, the name is applied to the first
person of the Trinity
in His relation
to the second person, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.17" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.18" osisRef="Bible:John.1.18" parsed="|John|1|18|0|0" passage="John 1:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.19" osisRef="Bible:John.5.17-John.5.26" parsed="|John|5|17|5|26" passage="John 5:17-26">5:17-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.20" osisRef="Bible:John.8.54" parsed="|John|8|54|0|0" passage="John 8:54">8:54</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.21" osisRef="Bible:John.14.12" parsed="|John|14|12|0|0" passage="John 14:12">14:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p22.22" osisRef="Bible:John.14.13" parsed="|John|14|13|0|0" passage="John 14:13">13</scripRef>. The first person
is the Father of the second in a metaphysical sense. This is the
original fatherhood of
God, of which all earthly fatherhood is but a faint reflection. </p>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p23" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p23.1"> The distinctive property of the Father.</span>
The personal
property of the Father is, negatively speaking, that He is not begotten or unbegotten, and
positively speaking, the generation of the Son and the spiration of the Holy Spirit. It is true
that spiration is also
a work of the Son, but in Him it is not combined with generation.
Strictly speaking, the
only work that is peculiar to the Father exclusively is that of active
generation.</p>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p24" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p24.1">The opera ad extra ascribed more particularly to the Father.</span>
All the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p24.2"> opera ad extra</span>
of God are works of the triune God, but in some of these works the Father is
evidently in the
foreground, such as: (1) Designing the work of redemption, including
election, of which  the
Son was Himself an object, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.7-Ps.2.9" parsed="|Ps|2|7|2|9" passage="Ps. 2:7-9">Ps. 2:7-9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.6-Ps.40.9" parsed="|Ps|40|6|40|9" passage="Ps 40:6-9">40:6-9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53.10" parsed="|Isa|53|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 53:10">Isa. 53:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.32" parsed="|Matt|12|32|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:32">Matt. 12:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.3-Eph.1.6" parsed="|Eph|1|3|1|6" passage="Eph. 1:3-6">Eph.
1:3-6</scripRef>. (2) The works of creation and providence, especially in their initial stages, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.6" parsed="|1Cor|8|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:6">I
Cor. 8:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.9" parsed="|Eph|2|9|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:9">Eph. 2:9</scripRef>.
(3) The work of representing the Trinity in the Counsel of Redemption,
as the holy and
righteous Being,
whose right was violated, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.7-Ps.2.9" parsed="|Ps|2|7|2|9" passage="Ps. 2:7-9">Ps. 2:7-9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.6-Ps.40.9" parsed="|Ps|40|6|40|9" passage="Ps 40:6-9">40:6-9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.12" osisRef="Bible:John.6.37" parsed="|John|6|37|0|0" passage="John 6:37">John 6:37</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.13" osisRef="Bible:John.6.38" parsed="|John|6|38|0|0" passage="John 6:38">38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p24.14" osisRef="Bible:John.17.4-John.17.7" parsed="|John|17|4|17|7" passage="John 17:4-7">17:4-7</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p25" shownumber="no">2. THE SON OR THE SECOND PERSON IN THE TRINITY.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p26" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p26.1"> The name "Son" as applied to the second person.</span>
The second
person in the Trinity is called
"Son" or "Son of God" in more than one sense of the word.
(1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p26.2">
In a metaphysical
sense.</span>
This must be maintained over against Socinians and Unitarians, who
reject the
idea of a tri-personal Godhead, see in Jesus a mere man, and regard the
name "Son of
God" as applied to Him primarily as an honorary title conferred
upon Him. It is quite evident that Jesus Christ is represented as the Son of
God in Scripture, irrespective of
His position and work as Mediator. (a) He is spoken of as the Son of God
from a pre-
incarnation
standpoint, for instance in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:John.1.18" parsed="|John|1|18|0|0" passage="John 1:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>. (b) He is called the
"only-begotten" Son of God or of the Father, a term that would not apply
to Him, if He were
the Son of God
only in an official or in an ethical sense, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:John.1.18" parsed="|John|1|18|0|0" passage="John 1:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.8" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">3:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.9" osisRef="Bible:John.3.18" parsed="|John|3|18|0|0" passage="John 3:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.10" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.9" parsed="|1John|4|9|0|0" passage="I John 4:9">I John 4:9</scripRef>.
Compare <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.11" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.7.14" parsed="|2Sam|7|14|0|0" passage="II Sam. 7:14">II Sam.
7:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.12" osisRef="Bible:Job.2.1" parsed="|Job|2|1|0|0" passage="Job 2:1">Job 2:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.7" parsed="|Ps|2|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 2:7">Ps. 2:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.14" osisRef="Bible:Luke.3.38" parsed="|Luke|3|38|0|0" passage="Luke 3:38">Luke 3:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.15" osisRef="Bible:John.1.12" parsed="|John|1|12|0|0" passage="John 1:12">John 1:12</scripRef>. (c) In some passages it is
abundantly evident from the context that the name is indicative of the
deity of Christ,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.16" osisRef="Bible:John.5.18-John.5.25" parsed="|John|5|18|5|25" passage="John 5:18-25">John 5:18-25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.17" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1" parsed="|Heb|1|0|0|0" passage="Heb. 1">Heb. 1</scripRef>. (d) While Jesus teaches His disciples to speak of
God, and to
address Him as "our Father," He Himself speaks of Him, and
addresses Him, simply as
"Father"
or "my Father," and thereby shows that He was conscious of a unique
relationship to
the Father, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.18" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.9" parsed="|Matt|6|9|0|0" passage="Matt. 6:9">Matt. 6:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.21" parsed="|Matt|7|21|0|0" passage="Matt 7:21">7:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.20" osisRef="Bible:John.20.17" parsed="|John|20|17|0|0" passage="John 20:17">John 20:17</scripRef>. (e) According to <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.21" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.27" parsed="|Matt|11|27|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:27">Matt. 11:27</scripRef>, Jesus
as the Son of God claims a unique knowledge of God, a knowledge such as
no one else
can possess. (f) The Jews certainly understood Jesus to claim that He
was the Son of
God in a metaphysical sense, for they regarded the manner in which He
spoke of
Himself as the
Son of God as blasphemy, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.63" parsed="|Matt|26|63|0|0" passage="Matt. 26:63">Matt. 26:63</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.23" osisRef="Bible:John.5.18" parsed="|John|5|18|0|0" passage="John 5:18">John 5:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.24" osisRef="Bible:John.10.36" parsed="|John|10|36|0|0" passage="John 10:36">10:36</scripRef>. —— (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p26.25">
In an official or Messianic sense.</span>
In some
passages this meaning of the name is combined with
the one previously mentioned. The following passages apply the name
"Son of God" to
Christ as Mediator, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.26" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.29" parsed="|Matt|8|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:29">Matt. 8:29</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.27" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.26" parsed="|Matt|8|26|0|0" passage="Matt 8:26">26</scripRef>:63 (where this meaning is combined
with the other);
27:40; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.28" osisRef="Bible:John.1.49" parsed="|John|1|49|0|0" passage="John 1:49">John 1:49</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.29" osisRef="Bible:John.11.27" parsed="|John|11|27|0|0" passage="John 11:27">11:27</scripRef>. This Messiah-Sonship is, of course, related to the original
Sonship
of Christ. It was only because He was the essential and eternal Son of God,
that He
could be called the Son of God as Messiah. Moreover, the Messiah-Sonship
reflects the
eternal Sonship of Christ. It is from the point of view of this
Messiah-Sonship that God
is even called the God of the Son, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.30" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.11.31" parsed="|2Cor|11|31|0|0" passage="II Cor. 11:31">II Cor. 11:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.31" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.3" parsed="|Eph|1|3|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:3">Eph. 1:3</scripRef>, and is
sometimes mentioned as
God in
distinction from the Lord, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.32" osisRef="Bible:John.17.3" parsed="|John|17|3|0|0" passage="John 17:3">John 17:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.33" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.6" parsed="|1Cor|8|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:6">I Cor. 8:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.34" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.5" parsed="|Eph|4|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:5">Eph. 4:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.35" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.6" parsed="|Eph|4|6|0|0" passage="Eph 4:6">6</scripRef>. —— (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p26.36">
In a nativistic
sense.</span>
The name "Son of God" is given to Jesus
also in view of the fact that He owed His
birth to the paternity of God. He was begotten, according to His human
nature, by the
supernatural operation of the Holy Spirit, and is in that sense the Son
of God. This is
clearly indicated in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.37" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.32" parsed="|Luke|1|32|0|0" passage="Luke 1:32">Luke 1:32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.38" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">35</scripRef>, and may probably be inferred also
from <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p26.39" osisRef="Bible:John.1.13" parsed="|John|1|13|0|0" passage="John 1:13">John 1:13</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p27" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p27.1"> The personal subsistence of the Son.</span>
The personal subsistence of the Son must be
maintained over against all Modalists, who in one way or another deny
the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p27.2">
personal</span>
distinctions in the Godhead. The personality of the Son may be
substantiated as follows:
(1) The way in which the Bible speaks of the Father and the Son
alongside of each other
implies that the one is just as personal as the other, and is also
indicative of a personal
relationship existing between the two. (2) The use of the appelatives
"only-begotten"
and "firstborn" imply that the relation between the Father and
the Son, while unique,
can nevertheless be represented approximately as one of generation and
birth. The
name
"firstborn" is found in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p27.3" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.15" parsed="|Col|1|15|0|0" passage="Col. 1:15">Col. 1:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p27.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.6" parsed="|Heb|1|6|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:6">Heb. 1:6</scripRef>, and emphasizes the fact
of the eternal
generation of the Son. It simply means that He was before all creation.
(3) The
distinctive use of the term "Logos" in Scripture points in the
same direction. This term
is applied to the Son, not in the first place to express His relation to
the world (which is quite secondary), but to indicate the intimate relation in
which He stands to the Father,
the relation like that of a word to the speaker. In distinction from
philosophy, the Bible
represents the Logos as personal and identifies Him with the Son of God,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p27.5" osisRef="Bible:John.1.1-John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|1|1|14" passage="John 1:1-14">John 1:1-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p27.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.1-1John.1.3" parsed="|1John|1|1|1|3" passage="I John 1:1-3">I
John 1:1-3</scripRef>. (4) The description of the Son as the image, or even as the
very image of God
in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p27.7" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.4.4" parsed="|2Cor|4|4|0|0" passage="II Cor. 4:4">II Cor. 4:4</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p27.8" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.15" parsed="|Col|1|15|0|0" passage="Col. 1:15">Col. 1:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p27.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.3" parsed="|Heb|1|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:3">Heb. 1:3</scripRef>. God clearly stands out in Scripture as a personal Being.
If the Son of God is the very image of God, He too
must be a person. </p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p28" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.1"> The eternal generation of the Son.</span>
The personal
property of the Son is that He is
eternally
begotten of the Father (briefly called "filiation"), and shares
with the Father in
the spiration of the Spirit. The doctrine of the generation of the Son
is suggested by the
Biblical representation of the first and second persons of the Trinity
as standing in the
relation of Father and Son to each other. Not only do the names
"Father" and "Son"
suggest the generation of the latter by the former, but the Son is also
repeatedly called
"the
only-begotten," <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.2" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.3" osisRef="Bible:John.1.18" parsed="|John|1|18|0|0" passage="John 1:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.4" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">3:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.5" osisRef="Bible:John.3.18" parsed="|John|3|18|0|0" passage="John 3:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.17" parsed="|Heb|11|17|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:17">Heb. 11:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.7" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.9" parsed="|1John|4|9|0|0" passage="I John 4:9">I John 4:9</scripRef>. Several
particulars
deserve emphasis in connection with the generation of the Son: (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.8">
It is a neceesary act of God.</span>
Origen, one of the very first to speak of the generation of the Son,
regarded it as an act dependent on the Father's will and therefore free. Others
at various times expressed
the same opinion. But it was clearly seen by Athanasius and others that
a generation
dependent on the optional will of the Father would make the existence of
the Son
contingent and thus rob Him of His deity. Then the Son would not be
equal to and
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.9">
homoousios</span>
with the Father, for the Father exists necessarily, and cannot be
conceived of
as non-existent. The generation of the Son must be regarded as a
necessary and
perfectly natural act of God. This does not mean that it is not related
to the Father's will
in any sense of the word. It is an act of the Father's necessary will,
which merely means
that His
concomitant will takes perfect delight in it. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.10">
It is an eternal act of the Father. </span>
This naturally follows from the preceding. If the generation of the Son
is a<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.11">
necessary</span>
act
of the Father, so that it is impossible to conceive of Him as not
generating, it naturally shares in the eternity of the Father. This does not
mean, however, that it is an act that
was completed in the far distant past, but rather that it is a timeless
act, the act of an
eternal present, an act always continuing and yet ever completed. Its
eternity follows
not only from the eternity of God, but also from the divine immutability
and from the
true deity of the Son. In addition to this it can be inferred from all
those passages of
Scripture which teach either the pre-existence of the Son or His
equality with the Father,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.12" osisRef="Bible:Mic.5.2" parsed="|Mic|5|2|0|0" passage="Mic. 5:2">Mic. 5:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.13" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.14" osisRef="Bible:John.1.18" parsed="|John|1|18|0|0" passage="John 1:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.15" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.16" osisRef="Bible:John.5.17" parsed="|John|5|17|0|0" passage="John 5:17">5:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.17" osisRef="Bible:John.5.18" parsed="|John|5|18|0|0" passage="John 5:18">18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.18" osisRef="Bible:John.5.30" parsed="|John|5|30|0|0" passage="John 5:30">30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.19" osisRef="Bible:John.5.36" parsed="|John|5|36|0|0" passage="John 5:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.20" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.33" parsed="|Acts|13|33|0|0" passage="Acts 13:33">Acts 13:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.21" osisRef="Bible:John.17.5" parsed="|John|17|5|0|0" passage="John 17:5">John 17:5</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.22" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.23" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.3" parsed="|Heb|1|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:3">Heb. 1:3</scripRef>. The
statement of <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.24" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.7" parsed="|Ps|2|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 2:7">Ps. 2:7</scripRef>, "Thou art my Son; this day have I begotten
thee," is generally
quoted to prove the generation of the Son, but, according to some, with
rather doubtful
propriety, cf. <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.25" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.33" parsed="|Acts|13|33|0|0" passage="Acts 13:33">Acts 13:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.26" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.5" parsed="|Heb|1|5|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:5">Heb. 1:5</scripRef>. They surmise that these words refer
to the raising up
of Jesus as Messianic King, and to the recognition of Him as Son of God
in an official
sense, and should probably be linked up with the promise found in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.27" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.7.14" parsed="|2Sam|7|14|0|0" passage="II Sam. 7:14">II
Sam. 7:14</scripRef>, just as
they are in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.28" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.5" parsed="|Heb|1|5|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:5">Heb.
1:5</scripRef>. (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.29">
It is a generation of the personal
subsistence rather than of the divine essence of the Son.</span>
Some have spoken as if the Father generated the essence of the Son,
but this is equivalent to saying that He generated His own essence, for
the essence of
both the Father and the Son is exactly the same. It is better to say
that the Father
generates the personal subsistence of the Son, but thereby also
communicates to Him
the divine essence in its entirety. But in doing this we should guard
against the idea that
the Father first generated a second person, and then communicated the
divine essence
to this person, for that would lead to the conclusion that the Son was
not generated out of the divine essence, but created out of nothing. In the
work of generation there was a
communication of essence; it was one indivisible act. And in virtue of
this
communication the Son also has life in Himself. This is in agreement
with the statement
of Jesus, "For as the Father hath life in Himself, even so gave He
to the Son also to have
-life in Himself," <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p28.30" osisRef="Bible:John.5.26" parsed="|John|5|26|0|0" passage="John 5:26">John 5:26</scripRef>. (4)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.31">
It is a generation that must be conceived of as
spiritual and divine.</span>
In opposition to the Arians, who insisted that the generation of the
Son
necessarily implied separation or division in the divine Being, the
Church Fathers
stressed the fact that this generation must not be conceived in a
physical and creaturely
way, but should be regarded as spiritual and divine, excluding all idea
of division or
change. It
brings<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.32">
distinctio</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.33">
distributio</span>, but no<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.34">
diversitas</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.35">
divisio</span>
in the divine
Being. (Bavinck) The most striking analogy of it is found in man's
thinking and
speaking, and the Bible itself seems to point to this, when it speaks of
the Son as the
Logos. (5) The following definition may be given of the generation of
the Son:<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p28.36">
It is that eternal and necessary act of the
first person in the Trinity, whereby He, within the divine Being, is the ground of a second personal
subsistence like His own, and puts this second person in possession of the whole divine
essence, without any division, alienation, or change. </span>
</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p29" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p29.1"> The deity of the Son.</span>
The deity
of the Son was denied in the early Church by the
Ebionites and the Alogi, and also by the dynamic Monarchians and the
Arians. In the
days of the Reformation the Socinians followed their example, and spoke
of Jesus as a
mere man. The same position is taken by Schleiermacher and Ritschl, by a
host of liberal
scholars, particularly in Germany, by the Unitarians, and by the
Modernists and
Humanists of the present day. This denial is possible only for those who
disregard the
teachings of Scripture, for the Bible contains an abundance of evidence
for the deity of
Christ.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.i.viii-p29.2" n="42" place="foot">This is very ably summed up in such works as Liddon's <span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p29.3">The Divinity of Our Lord,</span> Warfield's <span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p29.4">The Lord of Glory</span>, and Wm. C. Robinson's <span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p29.5">Our Lord.</span></note> We find that Scripture (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p29.6">
explicitly asserts the deity of the Son</span>
in such
passages as <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.7" osisRef="Bible:John.1.1" parsed="|John|1|1|0|0" passage="John 1:1">John 1:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.8" osisRef="Bible:John.20.28" parsed="|John|20|28|0|0" passage="John 20:28">20:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.5" parsed="|Rom|9|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:5">Rom. 9:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.10" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.6" parsed="|Phil|2|6|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:6">Phil. 2:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.11" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.13" parsed="|Titus|2|13|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:13">Tit. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.12" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.20" parsed="|1John|5|20|0|0" passage="I John 5:20">I John 5:20</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.13" osisRef="Bible:1John.2" parsed="|1John|2|0|0|0" passage="I John 2">2</scripRef>)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p29.14">
applies divine names to Him</span>,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.15" osisRef="Bible:Isa.9.6" parsed="|Isa|9|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 9:6">Isa. 9:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.16" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.3" parsed="|Isa|40|3|0|0" passage="Isa 40:3">40:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.17" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.5" parsed="|Jer|23|5|0|0" passage="Jer. 23:5">Jer. 23:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.18" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.6" parsed="|Jer|23|6|0|0" passage="Jer 23:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.19" osisRef="Bible:Joel.2.32" parsed="|Joel|2|32|0|0" passage="Joel 2:32">Joel 2:32</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.20" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.21" parsed="|Acts|2|21|0|0" passage="Acts 2:21">Acts 2:21</scripRef>); <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.21" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.16" parsed="|1Tim|3|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:16">I Tim. 3:16</scripRef>;
(<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.22" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3" parsed="|1Tim|3|0|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3">3</scripRef>)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p29.23">
ascribes to
Him divine attributes</span>, such as eternal existence, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.24" osisRef="Bible:Isa.9.6" parsed="|Isa|9|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 9:6">Isa. 9:6</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.25" osisRef="Bible:John.1.1" parsed="|John|1|1|0|0" passage="John 1:1">John 1:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.26" osisRef="Bible:John.1.2" parsed="|John|1|2|0|0" passage="John 1:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.27" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.8" parsed="|Rev|1|8|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:8">Rev. 1:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.28" osisRef="Bible:Rev.22.13" parsed="|Rev|22|13|0|0" passage="Rev 22:13">22:13</scripRef>, omnipresence,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.29" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.20" parsed="|Matt|18|20|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:20">Matt. 18:20</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.30" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.20" parsed="|Matt|28|20|0|0" passage="Matt 28:20">28:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.31" osisRef="Bible:John.3.13" parsed="|John|3|13|0|0" passage="John 3:13">John 3:13</scripRef>, omniscience, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.32" osisRef="Bible:John.2.24" parsed="|John|2|24|0|0" passage="John 2:24">John 2:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.33" osisRef="Bible:John.2.25" parsed="|John|2|25|0|0" passage="John 2:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.34" osisRef="Bible:John.21.17" parsed="|John|21|17|0|0" passage="John 21:17">21:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.35" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.23" parsed="|Rev|2|23|0|0" passage="Rev. 2:23">Rev. 2:23</scripRef>, omnipotence.
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.36" osisRef="Bible:Isa.9.6" parsed="|Isa|9|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 9:6">Isa. 9:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.37" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:21">Phil. 3:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.38" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.8" parsed="|Rev|1|8|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:8">Rev. 1:8</scripRef>, immutability, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.39" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.10-Heb.1.12" parsed="|Heb|1|10|1|12" passage="Heb. 1:10-12">Heb. 1:10-12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.40" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.8" parsed="|Heb|13|8|0|0" passage="Heb 13:8">13:8</scripRef>, and in general every
attribute
belonging to the Father, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.41" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.9" parsed="|Col|2|9|0|0" passage="Col. 2:9">Col. 2:9</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.42" osisRef="Bible:Col.4" parsed="|Col|4|0|0|0" passage="Col 4">4</scripRef>)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p29.43">speaks of Him as doing divine works</span>, as
creation, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.44" osisRef="Bible:John.1.3" parsed="|John|1|3|0|0" passage="John 1:3">John 1:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.45" osisRef="Bible:John.1.10" parsed="|John|1|10|0|0" passage="John 1:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.46" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.47" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.2" parsed="|Heb|1|2|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:2">Heb. 1:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.48" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.10" parsed="|Heb|1|10|0|0" passage="Heb 1:10">10</scripRef>, providence, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.49" osisRef="Bible:Luke.10.22" parsed="|Luke|10|22|0|0" passage="Luke 10:22">Luke 10:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.50" osisRef="Bible:John.3.35" parsed="|John|3|35|0|0" passage="John 3:35">John 3:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.51" osisRef="Bible:John.17.2" parsed="|John|17|2|0|0" passage="John 17:2">17:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.52" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|22|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:22">Eph. 1:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.53" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.17" parsed="|Col|1|17|0|0" passage="Col. 1:17">Col. 1:17</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.54" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.3" parsed="|Heb|1|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:3">Heb. 1:3</scripRef>, the forgiveness of sins, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.55" osisRef="Bible:Matt.9.2-Matt.9.7" parsed="|Matt|9|2|9|7" passage="Matt. 9:2-7">Matt. 9:2-7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.56" osisRef="Bible:Mark.2.7-Mark.2.10" parsed="|Mark|2|7|2|10" passage="Mark 2:7-10">Mark 2:7-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.57" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.13" parsed="|Col|3|13|0|0" passage="Col. 3:13">Col. 3:13</scripRef>,
resurrection and
judgment, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.58" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:31">Matt. 25:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.59" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.32" parsed="|Matt|25|32|0|0" passage="Matt 25:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.60" osisRef="Bible:John.5.19-John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|19|5|29" passage="John 5:19-29">John 5:19-29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.61" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.42" parsed="|Acts|10|42|0|0" passage="Acts 10:42">Acts 10:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.62" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.31" parsed="|Acts|17|31|0|0" passage="Acts 17:31">17:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.63" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:21">Phil. 3:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.64" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.1" parsed="|2Tim|4|1|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:1">II Tim. 4:1</scripRef>, the
final dissolution and renewal of all things, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.65" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.10-Heb.1.12" parsed="|Heb|1|10|1|12" passage="Heb. 1:10-12">Heb. 1:10-12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.66" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:21">Phil. 3:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.67" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.5" parsed="|Rev|21|5|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:5">Rev. 21:5</scripRef>, and (5)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p29.68">
accords Him
divine honour</span>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.69" osisRef="Bible:John.5.22" parsed="|John|5|22|0|0" passage="John 5:22">John 5:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.70" osisRef="Bible:John.5.23" parsed="|John|5|23|0|0" passage="John 5:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.71" osisRef="Bible:John.14.1" parsed="|John|14|1|0|0" passage="John 14:1">14:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.72" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.19" parsed="|1Cor|15|19|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:19">I Cor. 15:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.73" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.13.13" parsed="|2Cor|13|13|0|0" passage="II Cor. 13:13">II Cor. 13:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.74" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.6" parsed="|Heb|1|6|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:6">Heb. 1:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p29.75" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:19">Matt. 28:19</scripRef>.
</p>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p30" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p30.1"> The place of the Son in the economic Trinity.</span>
It should be
noted that the order of existence in the essential or ontological Trinity is reflected in
the economic Trinity. The Son occupies the
second place in the<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p30.2">
opera ad extra.</span>
If all things
are<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p30.3">
out of</span>
the Father,
they are<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p30.4">
through</span>
the Son, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.6" parsed="|1Cor|8|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:6">I Cor. 8:6</scripRef>. If the former is represented as the absolute cause
of all
things, the latter stands out clearly as the mediating cause. This
applies in the natural
sphere, where all things are created and maintained through the Son,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.6" osisRef="Bible:John.1.3" parsed="|John|1|3|0|0" passage="John 1:3">John 1:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.7" osisRef="Bible:John.1.10" parsed="|John|1|10|0|0" passage="John 1:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.2" parsed="|Heb|1|2|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:2">Heb.
1:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.3" parsed="|Heb|1|3|0|0" passage="Heb 1:3">3</scripRef>. He is the light that lighteth every man that cometh into the
world, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.10" osisRef="Bible:John.1.9" parsed="|John|1|9|0|0" passage="John 1:9">John 1:9</scripRef>. It
applies also to the work of redemption. In the Counsel of Redemption He
takes upon
Himself to be Surety for His people, and to execute the Father's plan of
redemption, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.7" parsed="|Ps|40|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 40:7">Ps.
40:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.8" parsed="|Ps|40|8|0|0" passage="Ps 40:8">8</scripRef>. He works this out more particularly in His incarnation,
sufferings, and death,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.3-Eph.1.14" parsed="|Eph|1|3|1|14" passage="Eph. 1:3-14">Eph. 1:3-14</scripRef>. In connection with His function the attributes of wisdom
and power, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.24" parsed="|1Cor|1|24|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:24">I Cor.
1:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.15" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.3" parsed="|Heb|1|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:3">Heb. 1:3</scripRef>,
and of mercy and grace, are especially ascribed to Him, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.16" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.13.13" parsed="|2Cor|13|13|0|0" passage="II Cor. 13:13">II Cor. 13:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.17" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.2" parsed="|Eph|5|2|0|0" passage="Eph. 5:2">Eph. 5:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p30.18" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.25" parsed="|Eph|5|25|0|0" passage="Eph 5:25">25</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p31" shownumber="no">3. THE HOLY SPIRIT OR THE THIRD PERSON IN THE TRINITY.</p>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p32" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p32.1"> The name applied to the third person of the Trinity.</span>
While we are
told in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.2" osisRef="Bible:John.4.24" parsed="|John|4|24|0|0" passage="John 4:24">John 4:24</scripRef> that God is Spirit, the name is applied more particularly to the third person
in the Trinity.
The Hebrew term by which He is designated is<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p32.3">
ruach</span>, and the Greek<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p32.4">
pneuma</span>, both of
which are, like the Latin<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p32.5">
spiritus</span>
derived from
roots which mean "to breathe." Hence
they can also be rendered
"breath," <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.17" parsed="|Gen|6|17|0|0" passage="Gen 6:17">6:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.37.5" parsed="|Ezek|37|5|0|0" passage="Ezek. 37:5">Ezek. 37:5</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.9" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.37.6" parsed="|Ezek|37|6|0|0" passage="Ezek 37:6">6</scripRef>, or "wind," <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.10" osisRef="Bible:Gen.8.1" parsed="|Gen|8|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 8:1">Gen. 8:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.11" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.19.11" parsed="|1Kgs|19|11|0|0" passage="I Kings 19:11">I Kings 19:11</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.12" osisRef="Bible:John.3.8" parsed="|John|3|8|0|0" passage="John 3:8">John 3:8</scripRef>. The Old Testament generally uses the term "spirit" without
any
qualification,
or speaks of "the Spirit of God" or "the Spirit of the
Lord," and employs
the term
"Holy Spirit" only in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.11" parsed="|Ps|51|11|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:11">Ps. 51:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.14" osisRef="Bible:Isa.63.10" parsed="|Isa|63|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 63:10">Isa. 63:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.15" osisRef="Bible:Isa.63.11" parsed="|Isa|63|11|0|0" passage="Isa 63:11">11</scripRef>, while in the New
Testament this
has become a far more common designation of the third person in the
Trinity. It is a
striking fact that, while the Old Testament repeatedly calls God
"the Holy One of
Israel,"
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.71.22" parsed="|Ps|71|22|0|0" passage="Ps. 71:22">Ps. 71:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.18" parsed="|Ps|89|18|0|0" passage="Ps 89:18">89:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.10.20" parsed="|Isa|10|20|0|0" passage="Isa. 10:20">Isa. 10:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.19" osisRef="Bible:Isa.41.14" parsed="|Isa|41|14|0|0" passage="Isa 41:14">41:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.20" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.3" parsed="|Isa|43|3|0|0" passage="Isa 43:3">43:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p32.21" osisRef="Bible:Isa.48.17" parsed="|Isa|48|17|0|0" passage="Isa 48:17">48:17</scripRef>, the New Testament seldom
applies
the adjective "holy" to God in general, but uses it frequently
to characterize the Spirit.
This is in all probability due to the fact that it was especially in the
Spirit and His
sanctifying work that God revealed Himself as the Holy One. It is the
Holy Spirit that
takes up His abode in the hearts of believers, that separates
them unto God, and that
cleanses them from sin.
</p>
<p id="iii.i.viii-p33" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.1"> The personality of the Holy Spirit.</span>
The terms
"Spirit of God" or "Holy Spirit" do not suggest personality as much as the term "Son" does. Moreover,
the person of the Holy
Spirit did not appear in a clearly discernible personal form among men,
as the person of
the Son of God did. As a result the personality of the Holy Spirit was
often called in
question, and therefore deserves special attention. The personality of
the Spirit was
denied in the early Church by the Monarchians and the Pneumatomachians.
In this
denial they were followed by the Socinians in the days of the
Reformation. Still later
Schleiermacher, Ritschl, the Unitarians, present-day Modernists, and all
modern
Sabellians reject the personality of the Holy Spirit. It is often said
in the present day that
those passages which seem to imply the personality of the Holy Spirit
simply contain
personifications. But personifications are certainly rare in the prose
writings of the New
Testament and can easily be recognized. Moreover, such an explanation
clearly destroys
the sense of
some of these passages, e.g. <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.2" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.3" osisRef="Bible:John.16.7-John.16.11" parsed="|John|16|7|16|11" passage="John 16:7-11">16:7-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.26" parsed="|Rom|8|26|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:26">Rom. 8:26</scripRef>. Scripture proof
for the personality of the Holy Spirit is quite sufficient: (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.5">
Designations that are proper to personality are given to Him.</span>
Though<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.6">
pneuma</span>
is neuter, yet the masculine pronoun<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.7">
ekeinos </span>is used of the Spirit in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.8" osisRef="Bible:John.16.14" parsed="|John|16|14|0|0" passage="John 16:14">John 16:14</scripRef>; and in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.14" parsed="|Eph|1|14|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:14">Eph. 1:14</scripRef> some of the best
authorities have the
masculine relative pronoun<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.10">
hos.</span>
Moreover, the name Parakletos
is applied to Him, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.11" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.12" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.13" osisRef="Bible:John.16.7" parsed="|John|16|7|0|0" passage="John 16:7">16:7</scripRef>, which cannot be translated by "comfort," or be regarded as the
name
of any abstract influence. That a person is meant is indicated by
the fact that the Holy
Spirit as Comforter is placed in juxtaposition with Christ as the
Comforter about to
depart, to whom the same term is applied in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.14" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.1" parsed="|1John|2|1|0|0" passage="I John 2:1">I John 2:1</scripRef>. It is true that
this term is
followed by the neuters<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.15">
ho</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.16">
auto</span>
in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.17" osisRef="Bible:John.14.16-John.14.18" parsed="|John|14|16|14|18" passage="John 14:16-18">John 14:16-18</scripRef>, but this is due to the fact that
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.18">pneuma</span>
intervenes. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.19">
The characteristics of a person are ascribed to Him</span>, such as
intelligence,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.20" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.21" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.16" parsed="|Rom|8|16|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:16">Rom. 8:16</scripRef>, will, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.23" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.7" parsed="|Acts|16|7|0|0" passage="Acts 16:7">Acts 16:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.24" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.11" parsed="|1Cor|12|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:11">I Cor. 12:11</scripRef>, and affections,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.25" osisRef="Bible:Isa.63.10" parsed="|Isa|63|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 63:10">Isa. 63:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.26" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.30" parsed="|Eph|4|30|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:30">Eph. 4:30</scripRef>. Moreover, He performs acts proper to personality. He
searches, speaks,
testifies, commands, reveals, strives, creates, makes intercession,
raises the dead, etc.,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.27" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.2" parsed="|Gen|1|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:2">Gen. 1:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.28" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.3" parsed="|Gen|6|3|0|0" passage="Gen 6:3">6:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.29" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.12" parsed="|Luke|12|12|0|0" passage="Luke 12:12">Luke 12:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.30" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.31" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.32" osisRef="Bible:John.16.8" parsed="|John|16|8|0|0" passage="John 16:8">16:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.33" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.29" parsed="|Acts|8|29|0|0" passage="Acts 8:29">Acts 8:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.34" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.2" parsed="|Acts|13|2|0|0" passage="Acts 13:2">13:2</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.35" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:11">Rom. 8:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.36" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.10" parsed="|1Cor|2|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:10">I Cor. 2:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.37" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.11" parsed="|1Cor|2|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:11">11</scripRef>.
What does all these things cannot be a mere power or influence,
but must be a person.
(3)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.38"> He is
represented as standing in such relations to other persons as imply His own
personality.</span>
He is placed in juxtaposition with the apostles in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.39" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.28" parsed="|Acts|15|28|0|0" passage="Acts 15:28">Acts 15:28</scripRef>, with
Christ in
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.40" osisRef="Bible:John.16.14" parsed="|John|16|14|0|0" passage="John 16:14">John 16:14</scripRef>, and
with the Father and the Son in <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.41" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:19">Matt. 28:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.42" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.13.13" parsed="|2Cor|13|13|0|0" passage="II Cor. 13:13">II Cor. 13:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.43" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.1" parsed="|1Pet|1|1|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:1">I Pet. 1:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.44" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.45" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.20 Bible:Jude.1.21" parsed="|Jude|1|20|0|0;|Jude|1|21|0|0" passage="Jude 20, 21">Jude 20, 21</scripRef>. Sound exegesis requires that in these passages the Holy Spirit
be regarded as a
-person. (4)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p33.46">
There are also
passages in which the Holy Spirit is distinguished from His own
power</span>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.47" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">Luke 1:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.48" osisRef="Bible:Luke.4.14" parsed="|Luke|4|14|0|0" passage="Luke 4:14">4:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.49" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.38" parsed="|Acts|10|38|0|0" passage="Acts 10:38">Acts 10:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.50" osisRef="Bible:Rom.15.13" parsed="|Rom|15|13|0|0" passage="Rom. 15:13">Rom. 15:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p33.51" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.4" parsed="|1Cor|2|4|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:4">I Cor. 2:4</scripRef>. Such passages would become
tautological, meaningless, and even absurd, if they were interpreted on
the principle
that the Holy Spirit is merely a power. This can be shown by
substituting for the name
"Holy Spirit" such a word as "power" or "influence."</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p34" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p34.1"> The relation of the Holy Spirit to the other persons in
the trinity.</span>
The early trinitarian controversies led to the conclusion that the Holy Spirit, as well as the
Son, is of the same
essence as the Father, and is therefore consubstantial with Him. And the
long drawn
dispute about the question, whether the Holy Spirit proceeded from the
Father alone or
also from the Son, was finally settled by the Synod of Toledo in 589 by
adding the word
"Filioque"
to the Latin version of the Constantinopolitan Creed: "<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p34.2">
Credimus in Spiritum Sanctum qui a Patre Filioque procedit</span>
" ("We
believe in the Holy Spirit, who proceeds from the Father and the Son"). This procession of the Holy Spirit, briefly
called spiration, is
his personal property. Much of what was said respecting the generation
of the Son also
applies to the spiration of the Holy Spirit, and need not be repeated.
The following
points of distinction between the two may be noted, however: (1)
Generation is the
work of the Father only; spiration is the work of both the Father and
the Son. (2) By
generation the Son is enabled to take part in the work of spiration, but
the Holy Spirit
acquires no such power. (3) In logical order generation precedes
spiration. It should be
remembered, however, that all this implies no essential subordination of
the Holy Spirit
to the Son. In spiration as well as in generation there is a
communication of the whole of
the divine essence, so that the Holy Spirit is on an equality with the
Father and the Son.
The doctrine of the procession of the Holy Spirit from the Father and
the Son is based
on <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p34.3" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">John 15:26</scripRef>, and on the fact that the Spirit is also called the Spirit
of Christ and of the
Son, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p34.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.9" parsed="|Rom|8|9|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:9">Rom. 8:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p34.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.6" parsed="|Gal|4|6|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:6">Gal. 4:6</scripRef>, and is sent by Christ into the world. Spiration
may be defined as
<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p34.6">that eternal and necessary act of
the first and second persons in the Trinity whereby they, within the divine Being, become the ground
of the personal subsistence of the Holy Spirit, and put the third person in possession of the
whole divine essence, without any division, alienation or change.</span>
</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p35" shownumber="no"><span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p35.1">The Holy Spirit
stands in the closest possible relation to the other persons.</span>
In virtue of His
procession from the Father and the Son the Spirit is represented as
standing in the
closest possible relation to both of the other persons.</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p36" shownumber="no">From <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p36.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.10" parsed="|1Cor|2|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:10">I Cor. 2:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p36.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.11" parsed="|1Cor|2|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:11">11</scripRef>, we may infer, not that the Spirit is
the same as the self-
consciousness of God, but that He is as closely connected with God the
Father as the
soul of man is with man. In <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p36.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.17" parsed="|2Cor|3|17|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:17">II Cor. 3:17</scripRef>, we read, "Now the Lord is
the Spirit, and where
the Spirit of the Lord is, there is liberty." Here the Lord
(Christ) is identified with the
Spirit, not with respect to personality, but as to manner of working. In
the same passage the Spirit is called "the Spirit of the Lord." The
work for which the Holy Spirit was sent
into the Church on the day of Pentecost was based on His unity with the
Father and the
Son. He came as the Parakletos to take the place of Christ and to do His
work on earth,
that is, to teach, proclaim, testify, bear witness, etc., as the Son had
done. Now in the
case of the Son this revelational work rested on His unity with the
Father. Just so the work of the Spirit is based on His unity with the Father
and the Son, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p36.4" osisRef="Bible:John.16.14" parsed="|John|16|14|0|0" passage="John 16:14">John 16:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p36.5" osisRef="Bible:John.16.15" parsed="|John|16|15|0|0" passage="John 16:15">15</scripRef>. Notice the words of Jesus in this passage: "He shall glorify me;
for He shall take of
mine, and shall declare it unto you. All things whatsoever the Father
hath are mine:
therefore said I, that He taketh of mine, and shall declare it unto
you." </p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p37" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p37.1"> The deity of the Holy Spirit.</span>
The deity of
the Holy Spirit may be established from
Scripture by a line of proof quite similar to that employed in
connection with the Son:
(1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p37.2">
Divine names
are given to Him</span>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.3" osisRef="Bible:Exod.17.7" parsed="|Exod|17|7|0|0" passage="Ex. 17:7">Ex. 17:7</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.3.7-Heb.3.9" parsed="|Heb|3|7|3|9" passage="Heb. 3:7-9">Heb. 3:7-9</scripRef>); <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.3" parsed="|Acts|5|3|0|0" passage="Acts 5:3">Acts 5:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.4" parsed="|Acts|5|4|0|0" passage="Acts 5:4">4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.3.16" parsed="|1Cor|3|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 3:16">I Cor. 3:16</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.8" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.16" parsed="|2Tim|3|16|0|0" passage="II Tim. 3:16">II Tim. 3:16</scripRef> (comp.
II Pet. 1:21). (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p37.9">
Divine perfections are ascribed to
Him</span>,
such as omnipresence,
<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.7-Ps.139.10" parsed="|Ps|139|7|139|10" passage="Ps. 139:7-10">Ps. 139:7-10</scripRef>, omniscience, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.13" parsed="|Isa|40|13|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:13">Isa. 40:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.14" parsed="|Isa|40|14|0|0" passage="Isa 40:14">14</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.34" parsed="|Rom|11|34|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:34">Rom. 11:34</scripRef>); <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.10" parsed="|1Cor|2|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:10">I Cor. 2:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.11" parsed="|1Cor|2|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:11">11</scripRef>,
omnipotence, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.16" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.11" parsed="|1Cor|12|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:11">I Cor. 12:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.15.19" parsed="|Rom|15|19|0|0" passage="Rom. 15:19">Rom. 15:19</scripRef>, and eternity, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.18" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.14" parsed="|Heb|9|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:14">Heb. 9:14</scripRef> (?). (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p37.19">
Divine works are performed by Him</span>, such as creation, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.20" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.2" parsed="|Gen|1|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:2">Gen. 1:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.21" osisRef="Bible:Job.26.13" parsed="|Job|26|13|0|0" passage="Job. 26:13">Job. 26:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.22" osisRef="Bible:Job.33.4" parsed="|Job|33|4|0|0" passage="Job 33:4">33:4</scripRef>, providential renovation, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.23" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.30" parsed="|Ps|104|30|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:30">Ps. 104:30</scripRef>,
regeneration, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.24" osisRef="Bible:John.3.5" parsed="|John|3|5|0|0" passage="John 3:5">John 3:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.25" osisRef="Bible:John.3.6" parsed="|John|3|6|0|0" passage="John 3:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.26" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.5" parsed="|Titus|3|5|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:5">Tit. 3:5</scripRef>, and the resurrection of the dead, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.27" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:11">Rom. 8:11</scripRef>. (4) <span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p37.28">Divine honour is also paid to Him</span>, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.29" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:19">Matt. 28:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.30" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.1" parsed="|Rom|9|1|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:1">Rom. 9:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p37.31" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.13.13" parsed="|2Cor|13|13|0|0" passage="II Cor. 13:13">II Cor. 13:13</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p38" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p38.1"> The work of the Holy Spirit in the divine economy.</span>
There are
certain works which are
more particularly ascribed to the Holy Spirit, not only in the general
economy of God,
but also in the special economy of redemption. In general it may be said
that it is the
special task of the Holy Spirit to bring things to completion by acting
immediately upon
and in the creature. Just as He Himself is the person who completes the
Trinity, so His
work is the completion of God's contact with His creatures and the
consummation of
the work of God in every sphere. It follows the work of the Son, just as
the work of the
Son follows that of the Father. It is important to bear this in mind,
for if the work of the
Holy Spirit is divorced from the objective work of the Son, false mysticism
is bound to
result. The work of the Holy Spirit includes the following in the
natural sphere: (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p38.2">
The generation of life.</span>
As being is out of the Father, and thought through the Son, so life is
mediated by the
Spirit, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.3" parsed="|Gen|1|3|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:3">Gen. 1:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.4" osisRef="Bible:Job.26.13" parsed="|Job|26|13|0|0" passage="Job. 26:13">Job. 26:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.6" parsed="|Ps|33|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:6">Ps. 33:6</scripRef> (?); <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.30" parsed="|Ps|104|30|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:30">Ps. 104:30</scripRef>. In that respect He
puts the
finishing touch to the work of creation. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p38.7">
The general inspiration and qualification of men.</span>
The Holy Spirit inspires and
qualifies men for their official tasks, for work in science
and art, etc., <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.8" osisRef="Bible:Exod.28.3" parsed="|Exod|28|3|0|0" passage="Ex. 28:3">Ex. 28:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.9" osisRef="Bible:Exod.31.2" parsed="|Exod|31|2|0|0" passage="Ex 31:2">31:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.10" osisRef="Bible:Exod.31.3" parsed="|Exod|31|3|0|0" passage="Ex 31:3">3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.11" osisRef="Bible:Exod.31.6" parsed="|Exod|31|6|0|0" passage="Ex 31:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.12" osisRef="Bible:Exod.35.35" parsed="|Exod|35|35|0|0" passage="Ex 35:35">35:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.13" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.11.6" parsed="|1Sam|11|6|0|0" passage="I Sam. 11:6">I Sam. 11:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.14" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.13" parsed="|1Sam|16|13|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:13">16:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.15" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.14" parsed="|1Sam|16|14|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:14">14</scripRef>.
Of even greater importance is the work of the Holy Spirit
in the sphere of
redemption. Here the following points may be mentioned: (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p38.16">
The preparation and qualification of Christ for His mediatorial work.</span>
He prepared
Christ a body and thus enabled Him to become a sacrifice for sin, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.17" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">Luke 1:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.18" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.5-Heb.10.7" parsed="|Heb|10|5|10|7" passage="Heb. 10:5-7">Heb. 10:5-7</scripRef>. In
the words "a body
thou didst prepare for me," the writer of Hebrews follows the
Septuagint. The meaning
is: Thou hast enabled me by the preparation of a holy body to become a
real sacrifice. At
His baptism Christ was anointed with the Holy Spirit, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.19" osisRef="Bible:Luke.3.22" parsed="|Luke|3|22|0|0" passage="Luke 3:22">Luke 3:22</scripRef>, and
received the
qualifying gifts
of the Holy Spirit without measure, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.20" osisRef="Bible:John.3.24" parsed="|John|3|24|0|0" passage="John 3:24">John 3:24</scripRef>. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p38.21">
The inspiration of Scripture.</span>
The Holy Spirit inspired Scripture, and thus brought to men the special
revelation of God, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.22" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.13" parsed="|1Cor|2|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:13">I Cor. 2:13</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:21, the knowledge of the work
of redemption
which is in
Christ Jesus. (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p38.23">
The formation and augmentation of
the Church.</span>
The Holy Spirit  forms and increases the
Church, the mystical body of Jesus Christ, by regeneration and sanctification,
and dwells in it as the principle of the new life, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.24" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|22|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:22">Eph. 1:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.25" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.23" parsed="|Eph|1|23|0|0" passage="Eph 1:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.26" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.22" parsed="|Eph|2|22|0|0" passage="Eph 2:22">2:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.27" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.3.16" parsed="|1Cor|3|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 3:16">I Cor. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.28" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.4" parsed="|1Cor|12|4|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:4">12:4</scripRef> ff.
(4)<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p38.29">
Teaching and guiding the Church.</span>
The Holy Spirit
testifies to Christ and leads the Church in all the truth. By doing this He manifests the glory
of God and of
Christ, increases the knowledge of the Saviour, keeps the Church from
error, and
prepares her for
her eternal destiny, <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.30" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.31" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.32" osisRef="Bible:John.16.13" parsed="|John|16|13|0|0" passage="John 16:13">16:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.33" osisRef="Bible:John.16.14" parsed="|John|16|14|0|0" passage="John 16:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.34" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.32" parsed="|Acts|5|32|0|0" passage="Acts 5:32">Acts 5:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.35" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.15" parsed="|Heb|10|15|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:15">Heb. 10:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.i.viii-p38.36" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.27" parsed="|1John|2|27|0|0" passage="I John 2:27">I  John 2:27</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p39" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. Does pagan
literature contain any analogies of the
doctrine of the Trinity? Does the development of the doctrine of the Trinity
start from
the ontological or from the economical Trinity? Can the economical
Trinity be
understood apart from the ontological? Why is the doctrine of the
Trinity discussed by
some as introductory to the doctrine of redemption? What is the Hegelian
conception of
the Trinity? How did Swedenborg conceive of it? Where do we find
Sabellianism in
modern theology? Why is it objectionable to hold that the Trinity is
purely economical?
What objections are there to the modern Humanitarian conception of the
Trinity? Why
does Barth treat of the Trinity in the Prolegomena to theology? What is
the practical
significance of
the doctrine of the Trinity? </p>

<p id="iii.i.viii-p40" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.1">
Geref Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 260-347; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Deo</span>
II, pp. 3-255; Vos.<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.3">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
I, pp. 36-81; Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.4">
Godgeleerdheit</span>
I, pp. 576-662; Turretin, <span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.5">Opera, Locus Tertius</span>
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.6">
Syst. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 442-534; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.7">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>
pp. 174-211;
Curtiss,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.8">
The Chr. Faith</span>, pp. 483-510;
Harris,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.9">
God, Creator and Lord of All</span>, I, pp. 194-407; Illingworth,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.10">
The Doctrine of the Trinity</span>; Adeney,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.11">
The Christian
Conception of God</span>,
pp. 215-246;
Steenstra,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.12">
The Being of God as Unity and
Trinity</span>,
pp. 159-269; Clarke,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.13">
The Chr. Doct. of God</span>, pp. 227-248; Bartlett,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.14">
The Triune God; Liddon, The Divinity of Our Lord</span>;
Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.15">
The Doctrine
of the Person of Jesus Christ</span>; Warfield,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.16"> The Lord of Glory; ibid, The Spirit of God in the Old Testament</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.17">
The Biblical
Doctrine of the Trinity</span>
(both in<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.18">
Biblical Doctrines)</span>, pp. 101 ff.; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.19">
Calvin's Doctrine of the Trinity</span>
(in<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.20">
Calvin and
Calvinism)</span>;
Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.21">
Het Werk van den Heiligen Geest</span>, cf. Index;
Owen,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.22">
A Discourse Concerning the Holy Spirit</span>, cf. Index; Smeaton,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.23">
The Doct. of the Holy Spirit</span>; Pohle-Preuss,<span class="ital" id="iii.i.viii-p40.24">
The Divine Trinity. </span></p>
</div3>
</div2>

      <div2 id="iii.ii" next="iii.ii.i" prev="iii.i.viii" title="The Works of God">
<h2 id="iii.ii-p0.1">THE WORKS OF GOD</h2>

        <div3 id="iii.ii.i" next="iii.ii.ii" prev="iii.ii" title="I. The Divine Decrees in General">
<h2 id="iii.ii.i-p0.1">I. The Divine Decrees in General</h2>

<h4 id="iii.ii.i-p0.2">THE DOCTRINE OF THE DECREES IN THEOLOGY</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.i-p1" shownumber="no">Reformed theology stresses the sovereignty of God in
virtue of which He has
sovereignly determined from all eternity whatsoever will come to pass,
and works His
sovereign will in His entire creation, both natural and spiritual,
according to His pre-
determined plan. It is in full agreement with Paul when he says that God
"worketh all
things after the counsel of His will," <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:11">Eph. 1:11</scripRef>. For that reason
it is but natural that, in passing from the discussion of the Being of God to
that of the works of God, it should
begin with a study of the divine decrees. This is the only proper
theological method. A
theological discussion of the works of God should take its starting
point in God, both in
the work of creation and in that of redemption or recreation. It is only
as issuing from,
and as related to, God that the works of God come into consideration as
a part of
theology.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p2" shownumber="no">In spite of this fact, however, Reformed theology stands
practically alone in its
emphasis on the doctrine of the decrees. Lutheran theology is less
theological and more
anthropological. It does not consistently take its starting point in God
and consider all
things as divinely pre-determined, but reveals a tendency to consider
things from below
rather than from above. And in so far as it does believe in
pre-determination, it is
inclined to limit this to the good that is in the world, and more
particularly to the
blessings of salvation. It is a striking fact that many Lutheran
theologians are silent, or
all but silent, respecting the doctrine of the decrees of God in general
and discuss only
the doctrine of pre-destination, and regard this as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p2.1">
conditional</span>
rather than absolute. In the doctrine of predestination Lutheran
theology shows strong affinity with Arminianism.
Krauth (an influential leader of the Lutheran Church in our
country) even says: "The
views of Arminius himself, in regard to the five points, were formed
under Lutheran
influences, and do not differ essentially from those of the
Lutheran Church; but on
many points in the developed system now known as Arminianism, the
Lutheran
Church has no affinity whatever with it, and on these points would
sympathize far
more with Calvinism, though she has never believed that in order to
escape from
Pelagianism, it is necessary to run into the doctrine of absolute
predestination. The
'Formula of
Concord' touches the five points almost purely on their practical sides, and
on them arrays itself against Calvinism, rather by the negation of the
inferences which
result logically from that system, than by express condemnation of its
fundamental
theory in its abstract form."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.i-p2.2" n="43" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p2.3">The Conservative Reformation and Its Theology,</span> pp. 127f.</note> In so far as Lutheran theologians include the
doctrine of
predestination in their system, they generally consider it in connection
with Soteriology.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p3" shownumber="no">Naturally, Arminian theology does not place the doctrine
of the decrees in the
foreground. That of the decrees in general is usually conspicuous by its
absence. Pope
brings in the doctrine of predestination only in passing, and Miley
introduces it as an
issue for discussion. Raymond discusses only the doctrine of election,
and Watson
devotes considerable space to this in considering the extent of the
atonement. One and
all reject the doctrine of absolute predestination, and substitute for
it a conditional
predestination. Modern liberal theology does not concern itself with the
doctrine of
predestination, since it is fundamentally anthropological. In the
"theology of crisis" it is
again recognized, but in a form that is neither Scriptural nor
historical. In spite of its
appeal to the Reformers, it departs widely from the doctrine of
predestination, as it was
taught by Luther and Calvin.</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.i-p3.1">B. SCRIPTURAL NAMES FOR THE DIVINE DECREES</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p4" shownumber="no">From the purely immanent works of God (<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p4.1">opera ad intra</span>) we must distinguish those
which bear directly on the creatures (<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p4.2">opera ad extra</span>). Some
theologians, in order to avoid misunderstanding, prefer to speak of<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p4.3">
opera immanentia</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p4.4">
opera exeuntia</span>, and subdivide
the former into
two classes,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p4.5">
opera immanentia per se</span>, which are the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p4.6">
opera personalia </span>
(generation,
filiation, spiration), and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p4.7">
opera
immanentia donec exeunt</span>, which are<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p4.8">
opera essentialia</span>, that is, works of the triune God, in distinction from works of any one
of the
persons of the Godhead, but are immanent in God, until they are realized
in the works
of creation, providence, and redemption. The divine decrees constitute
this class of
divine works. They are not described in the abstract in Scripture, but
are placed before
us in their historical realization. Scripture uses several terms for the
eternal decree of God.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p5" shownumber="no">1. OLD TESTAMENT TERMS. There are some
terms which stress the intellectual element
in the decree,
such as '<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p5.1">etsah</span>
from<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p5.2">
ya'ats</span>, to counsel, to give advice, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Job.38.2" parsed="|Job|38|2|0|0" passage="Job 38:2">Job 38:2</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.14.26" parsed="|Isa|14|26|0|0" passage="Isa. 14:26">Isa. 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.46.11" parsed="|Isa|46|11|0|0" passage="Isa 46:11">46:11</scripRef>;<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p5.6">
sod</span>
from<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p5.7">
yasad</span>,
to sit together in deliberation (niphal), <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.18" parsed="|Jer|23|18|0|0" passage="Jer. 23:18">Jer. 23:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.22" parsed="|Jer|23|22|0|0" passage="Jer 23:22">22</scripRef>; and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p5.10">
mezimmah</span>
from<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p5.11">
zamam</span>, to meditate, to have in mind, to purpose, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:Jer.4.28" parsed="|Jer|4|28|0|0" passage="Jer. 4:28">Jer. 4:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:Jer.51.12" parsed="|Jer|51|12|0|0" passage="Jer 51:12">51:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:Prov.30.32" parsed="|Prov|30|32|0|0" passage="Prov. 30:32">Prov. 30:32</scripRef>. Besides these there are terms which emphasize the volitional element,
such as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p5.15">
chaphets</span>,
inclination, will, good pleasure, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53.10" parsed="|Isa|53|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 53:10">Isa. 53:10</scripRef>; and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p5.17">
ratson</span>, to please, to be delighted, and
thus denoting delight, good pleasure, or sovereign will, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.18" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.19" parsed="|Ps|51|19|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:19">Ps. 51:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p5.19" osisRef="Bible:Isa.49.8" parsed="|Isa|49|8|0|0" passage="Isa. 49:8">Isa.
49:8</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p6" shownumber="no">2. NEW TESTAMENT TERMS. The New
Testament also contains a number of significant terms. The most general word is<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p6.1">
boule</span>
designating the
decree in general, but also
pointing to the fact that the purpose of God is based on counsel and
deliberation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts
2:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.28" parsed="|Acts|4|28|0|0" passage="Acts 4:28">4:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.17" parsed="|Heb|6|17|0|0" passage="Heb. 6:17">Heb. 6:17</scripRef>. Another rather general word is<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p6.5">
thelema</span>, which, as applied to the
counsel of God, stresses the volitional rather than the deliberative
element, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:11">Eph. 1:11</scripRef>.
The word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p6.7">
eudokia</span>
emphasizes more particularly the freedom of the purpose of God, and
the delight with which it is accompanied, though this idea is not always
present, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.26" parsed="|Matt|11|26|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:26">Matt. 11:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.14" parsed="|Luke|2|14|0|0" passage="Luke 2:14">Luke 2:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p6.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.5" parsed="|Eph|1|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:5">Eph. 1:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.9" parsed="|Eph|1|9|0|0" passage="Eph 1:9">9</scripRef>. Other words are used more especially to
designate that part
of the divine decree that pertains in a very special sense to God's
moral creatures, and is
known as predestination. These terms will be considered in connection
with the
discussion of that subject.</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.i-p6.12">C. THE NATURE OF THE DIVINE DECREES</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p7" shownumber="no">The decree of God may be defined with the Westminster
Shorter Catechism as "<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p7.1">
His eternal purpose according to the
counsel of His will, whereby, for His own glory, He hath foreordained whatsoever comes to
pass.</span>"</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p8" shownumber="no">1. THE DIVINE DECREE IS ONE. Though we
often speak of the decrees of God in the
plural, yet in its own nature the divine decree is but a single act of
God. This is already
suggested by the fact that the Bible speaks of it as a<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p8.1">
prothesis</span>, a purpose or counsel. It
follows also from the very nature of God. His knowledge is all immediate
and
simultaneous rather than successive like ours, and His comprehension of
it is always
complete. And the decree that is founded on it is also a single,
all-comprehensive, and
simultaneous act. As an eternal and immutable decree it could not be
otherwise. There
is, therefore, no series of decrees in God, but simply one comprehensive
plan,
embracing all that comes to pass. Our finite comprehension, however,
constrains us to
make distinctions, and this accounts for the fact that we often speak of
the decrees of
God in the plural. This manner of speaking is perfectly legitimate,
provided we do not
lose sight of the unity of the divine decree, and of the inseparable
connection of the various decrees as we conceive of them.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p9" shownumber="no">2. THE RELATION OF THE DECREE TO THE KNOWLEDGE OF GOD. The decree of God bears
the closest relation to the divine knowledge. There is in God, as we
have seen, a
necessary knowledge, including all possible causes and results. This
knowledge
furnishes the material for the decree; it is the perfect fountain out of
which God drew
the thoughts which He desired to objectify. Out of this knowledge of all
things possible
He chose, by an act of His perfect will, led by wise considerations,
what He wanted to
bring to realization, and thus formed His eternal purpose. The decree of
God is, in turn,
the foundation of His free knowledge or<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p9.1">
scientia libera.</span>
It is the
knowledge of things as
they are realized in the course of history. While the necessary
knowledge of God
logically precedes the decree, His free knowledge logically follows it.
This must be
maintained over against all those who believe in a conditional
predestination (such as
Semi-Pelagians and Arminians), since they make the pre-determinations of
God
dependent on His foreknowledge. Some of the words used to denote the
divine decree
point to an element of deliberation in the purpose of God. It would be a
mistake,
however, to infer from this that the plan of God is the result of any
deliberation which
implies short-sightedness or hesitation, for it is simply an indication
of the fact that
there is no blind decree in God, but only an intelligent and deliberate
purpose.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p10" shownumber="no">3. THE DECREE RELATES TO BOTH GOD AND MAN. The decree has reference, first of all,
to the works of
God. It is limited, however, to God's<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p10.1">
opera ad extra</span>
or transitive acts, and
does not pertain to the essential Being of God, nor to the immanent
activities within the
Divine Being which result in the trinitarian distinctions. God did not
decree to be holy
and righteous, nor to exist as three persons in one essence or to
generate the Son. These things are as they are<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p10.2">
necessarily</span>
and are not
dependent on the optional will of God.
That which is essential to the inner Being of God can form no part of
the contents of the
decree. This includes only the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p10.3">
opera ad extra</span>
or<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p10.4">
exeuntia.</span>
But while the decree pertains
primarily to the acts of God Himself, it is not limited to these, but
also embraces the
actions of His free creatures. And the fact that they are included in
the decree renders them absolutely certain, though they are not all effectuated
in the same manner. In the
case of some things God decided, not merely that they would come to
pass, but that He
Himself would bring them to pass, either immediately, as in the work of
creation, or
through the mediation of secondary causes, which are continually
energized by His
power. He Himself assumes the responsibility for their coming to pass.
There are other
things, however, which God included in His decree and thereby rendered
certain, but
which He did not decide to effectuate Himself, as the sinful acts of His
rational
creatures. The decree, in so far as it pertains to these acts, is
generally called God's
permissive decree. This name does not imply that the futurition of these
acts is not
certain to God, but simply that He permits them to come to pass by the
free agency of His rational creatures. God assumes no responsibility for these
sinful acts whatsoever.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p11" shownumber="no">4. THE DECREE TO ACT IS NOT THE ACT ITSELF.
The decrees are an internal manifestation
and exercise of the divine attributes, rendering the futurition of
things certain but this
exercise of the intelligent volition of God should not be confounded
with the realization
of its objects in creation, providence, and redemption. The decree to
create is not
creation itself, nor is the decree to justify justification itself. A
distinction must be made
between the decree and its execution. God's so ordering the universe
that man will
pursue a certain course of action, is also quite a different thing from
His commanding
him to do so. The decrees are not addressed to man, and are not of the
nature of a
statute law; neither do they impose compulsion or obligation on the
wills of men.</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.i-p11.1">D. THE CHARACTERISTICS OF THE DIVINE DECREE</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p12" shownumber="no"> 1. IT IS FOUNDED IN DIVINE WISDOM.
The word "counsel," which is one of the terms by which the decree is designated, suggests careful deliberation and
consultation. It may
contain a suggestion of an intercommunion between the three persons of
the Godhead.
In speaking of God's revelation of the mystery that was formerly hid in
Him, Paul says
that this was "to the intent that now unto the principalities and
the powers in the
heavenly places might be made known through the Church the manifold
wisdom of
God, according to the eternal purpose which He purposed
in Christ Jesus our Lord,"
<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.10" parsed="|Eph|3|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:10">Eph. 3:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.11" parsed="|Eph|3|11|0|0" passage="Eph 3:11">11</scripRef>. The wisdom of the decree also follows from the wisdom
displayed in the
realization of the eternal purpose of God. The poet sings in <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.24" parsed="|Ps|104|24|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:24">Ps. 104:24</scripRef>,
"O Jehovah, how
manifold are thy works! In wisdom hast thou made them all." The
same idea is
expressed in <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Prov.3.19" parsed="|Prov|3|19|0|0" passage="Prov. 3:19">Prov. 3:19</scripRef>, "Jehovah by wisdom founded the earth; by
understanding He
established the
heavens." Cf. also <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Jer.10.12" parsed="|Jer|10|12|0|0" passage="Jer. 10:12">Jer. 10:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Jer.51.15" parsed="|Jer|51|15|0|0" passage="Jer 51:15">51:15</scripRef>. The wisdom of the counsel of the
Lord can also be
inferred from the fact that it stands fast forever, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.11" parsed="|Ps|33|11|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:11">Ps. 33:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:Prov.19.21" parsed="|Prov|19|21|0|0" passage="Prov. 19:21">Prov. 19:21</scripRef>.
There may be a great deal in the decree that passes human understanding
and is
inexplicable to the finite mind, but it contains nothing that is
irrational or arbitrary. God
formed his determination with wise insight and knowledge. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p13" shownumber="no">2. IT IS ETERNAL.  The divine decree
is eternal in the sense that it lies entirely in
eternity. In a certain sense it can be said that all the acts of God are
eternal, since there is
no succession of moments in the Divine Being. But some of them terminate
in time, as,
for instance, creation and justification. Hence we do not call them
eternal but temporal
acts of God. The decree, however, while it relates to things outside of
God, remains in
itself an act within the Divine Being, and is therefore eternal in the
strictest sense of the
word. Therefore it also partakes of the simultaneousness and the
successionlessness of
the eternal,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.18" parsed="|Acts|15|18|0|0" passage="Acts 15:18">Acts 15:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:4">Eph. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.9" parsed="|2Tim|1|9|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:9">II Tim. 1:9</scripRef>. The eternity of the decree also implies that
the order in which the different elements in it stand to each other may
not be regarded
as temporal, but only as logical. There is a real chronological order in
the events as
effectuated, but not in the decree respecting them.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p14" shownumber="no">3. IT IS EFFICACIOUS. This does not
mean that God has determined to bring to pass
Himself by a direct application of His power all things which are
included in His
decree, but only that what He has decreed will certainly come to pass;
that nothing can thwart His purpose. Says Dr. A. A. Hodge: "The decree
itself provides in every case that
the event shall be effected by causes acting in a manner perfectly
consistent with the
nature of the event in question. Thus in the case of every free act of a
moral agent the
decree provides at the same time — (a) That the agent shall be a free
agent. (b) That his
antecedents and all the antecedents of the act in question shall be what
they are. (c) That
all the present<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p14.1">
conditions</span>
of the act shall be what they are. (d) That the act shall be
perfectly spontaneous and free on the part of the agent. (e) That it
shall be certainly
future. <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.11" parsed="|Ps|33|11|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:11">Ps. 33:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Prov.19.21" parsed="|Prov|19|21|0|0" passage="Prov. 19:21">Prov. 19:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.46.10" parsed="|Isa|46|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 46:10">Isa. 46:10</scripRef>."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.i-p14.5" n="44" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p14.6">Outlines of Theology</span>, p. 203.</note></p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p15" shownumber="no">4. IT IS IMMUTABLE. Man may and often
does alter his plans for various reasons. It
may be that in making his plan he lacked seriousness of purpose, that he
did not fully
realize what the plan involved, or that he is wanting the power to carry
it out. But in
God nothing of the kind is conceivable. He is not deficient in
knowledge, veracity, or
power. Therefore He need not change His decree because of a mistake of
ignorance, nor
because of inability to carry it out. And He will not change it, because
He is the
immutable God
and because He is faithful and true. <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.23.13" parsed="|Job|23|13|0|0" passage="Job 23:13">Job 23:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Job.23.14" parsed="|Job|23|14|0|0" passage="Job 23:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.11" parsed="|Ps|33|11|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:11">Ps. 33:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.46.10" parsed="|Isa|46|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 46:10">Isa. 46:10</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.22" parsed="|Luke|22|22|0|0" passage="Luke 22:22">Luke 22:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p16" shownumber="no">5. IT IS UNCONDITIONAL OR ABSOLUTE. This means that it is not dependent in any of its
particulars on anything that is not part and parcel of the decree
itself. The various
elements in the decree are indeed mutually dependent but nothing in the
plan is
conditioned by anything that is not in the decree. The execution of the
plan may require
means or be dependent on certain conditions, but then these means or
conditions have
also been determined in the decree. God did not simply decree to save
sinners without
determining the means to effectuate the decree. The means leading to the
pre-
determined end were also decreed, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8" parsed="|Eph|2|8|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:8">Eph. 2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">I Pet. 1:2</scripRef>. The
absolute character
of the decree follows from its eternity, its immutability, and its
exclusive dependence on the good pleasure of God. It is denied by all
Semi-Pelagians and Arminians.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p17" shownumber="no">6. IT IS UNIVERSAL OR ALL-COMPREHENSIVE. The decree
includes whatsoever comes to
pass in the world, whether it be in the physical or in the moral realm,
whether it be good or evil, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:11">Eph. 1:11</scripRef>. It includes: (a) the good actions of men, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.21" parsed="|Eph|21|0|0|0" passage="Eph. 21:0">Eph.
21:0</scripRef>; (b) their
wicked acts,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Prov.16.4" parsed="|Prov|16|4|0|0" passage="Prov. 16:4">Prov. 16:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.27" parsed="|Acts|4|27|0|0" passage="Acts 4:27">4:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.28" parsed="|Acts|4|28|0|0" passage="Acts 4:28">28</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.100" parsed="|Acts|100|0|0|0" passage="Acts 100">c</scripRef>) contingent events, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:Gen.45.8" parsed="|Gen|45|8|0|0" passage="Gen. 45:8">Gen. 45:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Gen.50.20" parsed="|Gen|50|20|0|0" passage="Gen 50:20">50:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:Prov.16.33" parsed="|Prov|16|33|0|0" passage="Prov. 16:33">Prov. 16:33</scripRef>; (d) the
means as well as the end, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.119.89-Ps.119.91" parsed="|Ps|119|89|119|91" passage="Ps. 119:89-91">Ps. 119:89-91</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.12" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.13" parsed="|2Thess|2|13|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:13">II Thess. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:4">Eph. 1:4</scripRef>; (e) the duration of
man's life, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.14" osisRef="Bible:Job.14.5" parsed="|Job|14|5|0|0" passage="Job 14:5">Job 14:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.39.4" parsed="|Ps|39|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 39:4">Ps. 39:4</scripRef>, and the place of his habitation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p17.16" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.26" parsed="|Acts|17|26|0|0" passage="Acts 17:26">Acts 17:26</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p18" shownumber="no">7. WITH REFERENCE TO SIN IT IS PERMISSIVE. It is customary to speak of the decree
of
God respecting moral evil as permissive. By His decree God rendered the
sinful actions
of man infallibly certain without deciding to effectuate them by acting
immediately
upon and in the finite will. This means that God does not positively
work in man "both
to will and to do," when man goes contrary to His revealed will. It
should be carefully
noted, however, that this permissive decree does not imply a passive
permission of
something which is not under the control of the divine will. It is a
decree which renders
the future sinful act absolutely certain, but in which God determines
(a) not to hinder
the sinful self-determination of the finite will; and (b) to regulate
and control the result
of this sinful
self-determination. <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.78.29" parsed="|Ps|78|29|0|0" passage="Ps. 78:29">Ps. 78:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.106.15" parsed="|Ps|106|15|0|0" passage="Ps 106:15">106:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.16" parsed="|Acts|14|16|0|0" passage="Acts 14:16">Acts 14:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.30" parsed="|Acts|17|30|0|0" passage="Acts 17:30">17:30</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.i-p18.5">E. OBJECTIONS TO THE DOCTRINE OF THE DECREES</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p19" shownumber="no">As was said in the preceding, only Reformed theology does
full justice to the
doctrine of the decrees. Lutheran theologians do not, as a rule,
construe it theologically
but soteriologically, for the purpose of showing how believers can
derive comfort from
it. Pelagians and Socinians reject it as unscriptural; and
Semi-Pelagians and Arminians
show it scant favor: some ignoring it altogether; others stating it only
to combat it; and
still others maintaining only a decree conditioned by the foreknowledge
of God. The objections raised to it are, in the main, always the same.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p20" shownumber="no">1. IT IS INCONSISTENT WITH THE MORAL FREEDOM OF MAN. Man is a free agent with the
power of rational self-determination. He can reflect upon, and in
an intelligent way
choose, certain ends, and can also determine his action with respect to
them. The decree
of God however, carries with it necessity. God has decreed to effectuate
all things or, if
He has not decreed that, He has at least determined that they must come
to pass. He has
decided the course of man's life for him.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.i-p20.1" n="45" place="foot">Cf. Watson, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p20.2">Theological Insitutes,</span> Part II, Chap. XXVIII; Miley, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p20.3">Systematic Theology</span> II, pp. 271 ff.</note> In answer to this objection it may be said
that
the Bible certainly does not proceed on the assumption that the divine
decree is
inconsistent with the free agency of man. It clearly reveals that God
has decreed the free
acts of man, but also that the actors are none the less free and
therefore responsible for
their acts, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.50.19" parsed="|Gen|50|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 50:19">Gen. 50:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.50.20" parsed="|Gen|50|20|0|0" passage="Gen 50:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.27" parsed="|Acts|4|27|0|0" passage="Acts 4:27">4:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.28" parsed="|Acts|4|28|0|0" passage="Acts 4:28">28</scripRef>. It was determined that
the Jews should bring
about the crucifixion of Jesus; yet they were perfectly free in their
wicked course of action, and were held responsible for this crime. There is not a single
indication in
Scripture that the inspired writers are conscious of a contradiction in
connection with
these matters. They never make an attempt to harmonize the two. This may
well
restrain us from assuming a contradiction here, even if we cannot
reconcile both truths.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p21" shownumber="no">Moreover, it should be borne in mind that God has not
decreed<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p21.1">
to effectuate
by His own direct action</span>
whatsoever must come to pass. The divine decree only brings certainty
into the events, but does not imply that God will actively effectuate
them, so that the
question really resolves itself into this, whether previous certainty is
consistent with free
agency. Now experience teaches us that we can be reasonably certain as
to the course a
man of character will pursue under certain circumstances, without
infringing in the least on his freedom. The prophet Jeremiah predicted that the
Chaldeans would take
Jerusalem. He knew the coming event as a certainty, and yet the
Chaldeans freely
followed their own desires in fulfilling the prediction. Such certainty
is indeed
inconsistent with the Pelagian liberty of indifference, according to
which the will of man
is not determined in any way, but is entirely indeterminate, so that in
every volition it can decide in opposition, not only to all outward
inducements, but also to all inward
considerations and judgments, inclinations and desires, and even to the
whole character
and inner state of man. But it is now generally recognized that such
freedom of the will
is a psychological fiction. However, the decree is not necessarily
inconsistent with
human freedom in the sense of rational self-determination, according to
which man
freely acts in harmony with his previous thoughts and judgments, his
inclinations and
desires, and his whole character. This freedom also has its laws, and
the better we are
acquainted with them, the more sure we can be of what a free agent will
do under
certain circumstances. God Himself has established these laws.
Naturally, we must
guard against all determinism, materialistic, pantheistic, and
rationalistic, in our conception of freedom in the sense of rational
self-determination.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p22" shownumber="no">The decree is no more inconsistent with free agency than
foreknowledge is, and yet
the objectors, who are generally of the Semi-Pelagian or Arminian type,
profess to
believe in divine foreknowledge. By His foreknowledge God<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p22.1">
knows</span>
from all eternity the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p22.2">
certain futurition</span>
of all events. It is based on His foreordination, by which He
determined
their future certainty. The Arminian will of course, say that he does
not believe in a
foreknowledge based on a decree which renders things certain, but in a
foreknowledge
of facts and events which are contingent on the free will of man, and
therefore
indeterminate. Now such a foreknowledge of the free actions of man may
be possible, if
man even in his freedom acts in harmony with divinely established laws,
which again
bring in the element of certainty; but it would seem to be impossible to
foreknow events
which are entirely dependent on the chance decision of an unprincipled
will, which can
at any time, irrespective of the state of the soul, of existing
conditions, and of the
motives that present themselves to the mind, turn in different
directions. Such events
can only be foreknown as bare possibilities.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p23" shownumber="no">2. IT TAKES AWAY ALL MOTIVES FOR HUMAN EXERTION. This objection is to the effect that
people will naturally say that, if all things are bound to happen as God
has determined
them, they need not concern themselves about the future and need not make
any efforts
to obtain salvation. But this is hardly correct. In the case of people
who speak after that
fashion this is generally the mere excuse of indolence and disobedience.
The divine
decrees are not addressed to men as a rule of action, and cannot be such
a rule, since
their contents become known only through, and therefore after, their
realization. There
is a rule of action, however, embodied in the law and in the gospel, and
this puts men
under obligation to employ the means which God has ordained.
This objection also ignores the logical relation,
determined by God's decree, between
the means and the end to be obtained. The decree includes not only the
various issues of
human life, but also the free human actions which are logically prior
to, and are
destined to bring about, the results. It was absolutely certain that all
those who were in
the vessel with Paul (<scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.27" parsed="|Acts|27|0|0|0" passage="Acts 27">Acts 27</scripRef>) were to be saved, but it was equally
certain that, in order
to secure this end, the sailors had to remain aboard. And since the
decree establishes an
interrelation between means and ends, and ends are decreed only as the
result of
means, they encourage effort instead of discouraging it. Firm belief in
the fact that,
according to the divine decrees, success will be the reward of toil, is
an inducement to
courageous and persevering efforts. On the very basis of the decree
Scripture urges us
to be diligent in using the appointed means, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.10" parsed="|Eph|2|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:10">Eph. 2:10</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.i-p24" shownumber="no">3. IT MAKES GOD THE AUTHOR OF SIN. This, if true, would
naturally be an insuperable
objection, for God cannot be the author of sin. This follows equally
from Scripture, <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p24.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.92.15" parsed="|Ps|92|15|0|0" passage="Ps. 92:15">Ps.
92:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p24.2" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.7.29" parsed="|Eccl|7|29|0|0" passage="Eccl. 7:29">Eccl. 7:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.13" parsed="|Jas|1|13|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:13">Jas. 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.i-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.5" parsed="|1John|1|5|0|0" passage="I John 1:5">I John 1:5</scripRef>, from the law of God which prohibits all sin, and
from the holiness of God. But the charge is not true; the decree merely
makes God the
author of free moral beings, who are themselves the authors of sin. God
decrees to
sustain their free agency, to regulate the circumstances of their life,
and to permit that
free agency to exert itself in a multitude of acts, of which some are
sinful. For good and
holy reasons He renders these sinful acts certain, but He does not
decree to work evil
desires or choices efficiently in man. The decree respecting sin is not
an efficient but a
permissive decree, or a decree to permit, in distinction from a decree
to produce, sin by
divine efficiency. No difficulty attaches to such a decree which does
not also attach to a
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.i-p24.5">mere</span>
passive permission of what He could very well prevent, such as the
Arminians,
who generally raise this objection, assume. The problem of God's
relation to sin remains
a mystery for us, which we are not able to solve. It may be said,
however, that His
decree to permit sin, while it renders the entrance of sin into the
world certain, does not
mean that He takes delight in it; but only that He deemed it wise, for
the purpose of His self-revelation, to permit moral evil, however abhorrent it
may be to His nature. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.ii.ii" next="iii.ii.iii" prev="iii.ii.i" title="II. Predestination">
<h2 id="iii.ii.ii-p0.1">II. Predestination</h2>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p1" shownumber="no">In passing from the discussion of the divine decree to
that of predestination, we are
still dealing with the same subject, but are passing from the general to
the particular.
The word "predestination" is not always used in the same
sense. Sometimes it is
employed simply as a synonym of the generic word "decree." In
other cases it serves to
designate the purpose of God respecting all His moral creatures. Most
frequently,
however, it denotes "the counsel of God concerning fallen men,
including the sovereign
election of some and the righteous reprobation of the rest. In the
present discussion it is
used primarily in the last sense, though not altogether to the exclusion
of the second
meaning. </p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.ii-p1.1">THE DOCTRINE OF PREDESTINATION IN HISTORY</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p2" shownumber="no">Predestination does not form an important subject of
discussion in history until the
time of Augustine. Earlier Church Fathers allude to it, but do not as
yet seem to have a
very clear conception of it. On the whole they regard it as the
prescience of God with
reference to human deeds, on the basis of which He determines their
future destiny.
Hence it was possible for Pelagius to appeal to some of those early
Fathers. "According
to Pelagius," says Wiggers, "foreordination to salvation or to
damnation, is founded on
prescience. Consequently he did not admit an 'absolute predestination,'
but in every
respect a 'conditional predestination'."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p2.1" n="46" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p2.2">Augustinism and Pelagianism</span>, p. 252</note>
At first, Augustine himself was inclined to
this view, but deeper reflection on the sovereign character of the good
pleasure of God led
him to see that predestination was in no way dependent on God's
foreknowledge of
human actions, but was rather the basis of the divine foreknowledge. His
representation
of reprobation is not as unambiguous as it might be. Some of his
statements are to the
effect that in predestination God foreknows what He will Himself do,
while He is also
able to foreknow what He will not do, as all sins; and speak of the
elect as subjects of
predestination, and of the reprobate as subjects of the divine
foreknowledge.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p2.3" n="47" place="foot">Cf. Wiggers, ibid., p. 239; Dijk. Om't Euwig Welbehagen, pp. 39f.; Polman, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p2.4">De Praedestinatieleer van Augustinus, Thomas van Aquino en Calvijn,</span> pp. 149ff.</note>
In other passages, however, he also speaks of the reprobate as subjects of
predestination, so that
there can be no doubt about it that he taught a double predestination.
However, he
recognized their difference, consisting in this that God did not
predestinate unto
damnation and the means unto it in the same way as He did to salvation,
and that predestination unto life is purely sovereign, while predestination unto
eternal death is
also judicial
and takes account of man's sin.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p2.5" n="48" place="foot">Cf. Dyk, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p2.6">ibid.,</span> p.40; Polman, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p2.7">ibid.,</span> p. 158.</note></p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p3" shownumber="no">Augustine's view found a great deal of opposition,
particularly in France, where the semi-Pelagians, while admitting the need of
divine grace unto salvation, reasserted the
doctrine of a predestination based on foreknowledge. And they who took up
the
defense of Augustine felt constrained to yield on some important points.
They failed to
do justice to the doctrine of a double predestination. Only Gottschalk
and a few of his
friends maintained this, but his voice was soon silenced, and
Semi-Pelagianism gained
the upper hand at least among the leaders of the Church. Toward the end
of the Middle
Ages it became quite apparent that the Roman Catholic Church would allow
a great
deal of latitude in the doctrine of predestination. As long as its
teachers maintained that
God willed the salvation of all men, and not merely of the elect, they
could with
Thomas Aquinas move in the direction of Augustinianism in the doctrine
of
predestination, or with Molina follow the course of Semi-Pelagianism, as
they thought
best. This means that even in the case of those who, like Thomas
Aquinas, believed in
an absolute and double predestination, this doctrine could not be carried
through
consistently, and could not be made determinative of the rest of their
theology.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p4" shownumber="no">The Reformers of the sixteenth century all advocated the
strictest doctrine of
predestination. This is even true of Melanchton in his earliest period.
Luther accepted
the doctrine of absolute predestination, though the conviction that God
willed that all
men should be saved caused him to soft-pedal the doctrine of
predestination somewhat
later in life. It gradually disappeared from Lutheran theology, which
now regards it
either wholly or in part (reprobation) as conditional. Calvin firmly
maintained the
Augustinian doctrine of an absolute double predestination. At the same
time he, in his
defense of the doctrine against Pighius, stressed the fact that the
decree respecting the
entrance of sin into the world was a permissive decree, and that the
decree of
reprobation should be so construed that God was not made the author of
sin nor in any
way responsible for it. The Reformed Confessions are remarkably
consistent in
embodying this doctrine, though they do not all state it with equal
fulness and
precision. As a result of the Arminian assault on the doctrine, the
Canons of Dort contain a clear and detailed statement of it. In churches of the
Arminian type the
doctrine of absolute predestination has been supplanted by the doctrine
of conditional
predestination. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p5" shownumber="no">Since the days of Schleiermacher the doctrine of predestination received
an entirely
different form. Religion was regarded as a feeling of absolute
dependence,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p5.1">
a Hinneigung zum Weltall</span>, a consciousness of utter dependence on the causality that is proper to
the
natural order with its invariable laws and second causes, which
predetermine all
human resolves and actions. And predestination was identified with this
predetermination by nature or the universal causal connection in the
world. The
scathing denunciation of this view by Otto is none too severe:
"There can be no more spurious product of theological speculation, no more fundamental
falsification of
religious conceptions than this; and it is certainly not against this
that the Rationalist
feels an antagonism, for it is itself a piece of solid Rationalism, but
at the same time a
complete
abandonment of the real religious idea of 'predestination'."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p5.2" n="49" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p5.3">The Idea of the Holy</span>, p. 90</note>
In modern
liberal theology the doctrine of predestination meets with little favor.
It is either rejected
or changed beyond recognition. G. B. Foster brands it as determinism;
Macintosh
represents it as a predestination of<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p5.4">
all men</span>
to be conformed to
the image of Jesus Christ;
and others reduce it to a predestination to certain offices or
privileges.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p6" shownumber="no">In our day Barth has again directed attention to the
doctrine of predestination, but
has given a construction of it which is not even distantly related to
that of Augustine
and Calvin. With the Reformers he holds that this doctrine stresses the
sovereign
freedom of God in His election, revelation, calling, and so on.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p6.1" n="50" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p6.2">The Doctine of the Word of God,</span> p. 168; <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p6.3">Roemerbrief</span> (2nd ed.), p. 332.</note> At the same time he
does not see in predestination a predetermined separation of men, and
does not
understand election like Calvin as particular election. This is evident
from what he says
on page 332 of
his<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p6.4">
Roemerbrief.</span>
Camfield
therefore says in his<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p6.5">
Essay in Barthian Theology</span>,
entitled<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p6.6">
Revelation and the Holy Spirit</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p6.7" n="51" place="foot">p. 92.</note>
"It needs to be emphasized that
predestination
does not mean the selection of a number of people for salvation and the
rest for
damnation according to the determination of an unknown and unknowable
will. That
idea does not belong to predestination proper." Predestination
brings man into crisis in
the moment of revelation and decision. It condemns him in the relation
in which he
stands to God by nature, as sinner, and in that relation rejects him,
but it chooses him in
the relation to which he is called in Christ, and for which he was
destined in creation. If
man responds to God's revelation by faith, he is what God intended him
to be, an elect;
but if he does not respond, he remains a reprobate. But since man is
always in crisis,
unconditional pardon and complete rejection continue to apply to every
one simultaneously. Esau may become Jacob, but Jacob may also become once
more Esau.
Says McConnachie: "For Barth, and as he believes, for St. Paul, the
individual is not the
object of election or reprobation, but rather the arena of election or
reprobation. The two
decisions meet within the same individual, but in such a way that, seen
from the human
side, man is always reprobate, but seen from the divine side, he is
always elect. . . . The
ground of election is faith. The ground of reprobation is want of faith.
But who is he
who believes? And who is he who disbelieves? Faith and unbelief are
grounded in God.
We stand at the
gates of mystery."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p6.8" n="52" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p6.9">The Significance of Karl Barth,</span> pp. 240f.</note></p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.ii-p6.10">B. SCRIPTURAL TERMS FOR PREDESTINATION</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p7" shownumber="no">The following terms come into consideration here:</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p8" shownumber="no">1. THE HEBREW WORD<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.1"> yada'</span> AND THE GREEK WORDS<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.2">ginoskein, proginoskein</span>, AND <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.3">prognosis.</span>
The word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.4">
yada</span>' may simply mean "to know" or "to
take cognizance" of
someone or something, but may also be used in the more pregnant sense of
"taking
knowledge of one with loving care," or "making one the object
of loving care or elective
love." In
this sense it serves the idea of election, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.18.19" parsed="|Gen|18|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 18:19">Gen. 18:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Amos.3.2" parsed="|Amos|3|2|0|0" passage="Amos 3:2">Amos 3:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Hos.13.5" parsed="|Hos|13|5|0|0" passage="Hos. 13:5">Hos. 13:5</scripRef>. The
meaning of the words<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.8">
proginoskein and prognosis</span>
in the New Testament is not determined
by their usage in the classics, but by the special meaning of<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.9">
yada'.</span>
They do not denote
simple intellectual foresight or prescience, the mere taking knowledge
of something
beforehand, but rather a selective knowledge which regards one with favor
and makes
one an object of love, and thus approaches the idea of foreordination,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef> (comp. 4:28); <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom. 8:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.2" parsed="|Rom|11|2|0|0" passage="Rom 11:2">11:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Peter 1:2">I Peter 1:2</scripRef>. These passages simply lose their meaning, if the words
 be taken in the sense of simply taking
knowledge of one in advance, for God foreknows
all men in that sense. Even Arminians feel constrained to give the words
a more
determinative meaning, namely, to foreknow one with absolute assurance
in a certain
state or condition. This includes the absolute certainty of that future
state, and for that
very reason comes very close to the idea of predestination. And not only
these words,  but
even the simple<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.14">
ginoskein</span>
has such a
specific meaning in some cases, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.3" parsed="|1Cor|8|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:3">I Cor. 8:3</scripRef>; Gal. .4:9; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p8.16" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.19" parsed="|2Tim|2|19|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:19">II Tim. 2:19</scripRef>.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.17" n="53" place="foot">Cf. Article of C. W. Hodge on <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.18">"Foreknow, Foreknowledge"</span> in the <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p8.19">International Standard Bible Encyclopaedia.</span></note></p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p9" shownumber="no">2. THE HEBREW WORD<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p9.1">
bachar</span>
AND THE
GREEK WORDS<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p9.2">
eklegesthai</span>
AND<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p9.3">
ekloge.</span>
These words stress the element of choice or selection in the decree of God
respecting the
eternal destiny of sinners, a choice accompanied with good pleasure.
They serve to
indicate the fact that God selects a certain number of the human race
and places them in
a special relation to Himself. Sometimes they include the idea of a call
to a certain
privilege, or of the call to salvation; but it is a mistake to think, as
some do, that this
exhausts their meaning. It is perfectly evident that they generally
refer to a prior and
eternal
election, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.11" parsed="|Rom|9|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:11">Rom. 9:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.5" parsed="|Rom|11|5|0|0" passage="Rom 11:5">11:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:4">Eph. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.13" parsed="|2Thess|2|13|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:13">II Thess. 2:13</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p10" shownumber="no">3. THE GREEK WORDS<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p10.1">
proorizein</span>
AND<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p10.2">
proorismos.</span>
These words always refer to absolute
predestination. In distinction from the other words, they really require
a complement.
The question naturally arises, Foreordained unto what? The words always
refer to the
foreordination of man to a certain end, and from the Bible it is evident
that the end may
be either good or bad, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.28" parsed="|Acts|4|28|0|0" passage="Acts 4:28">Acts 4:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.5" parsed="|Eph|1|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:5">Eph. 1:5</scripRef>. However, the end to which
they refer is not
necessarily the final end, but is even more frequently some end in time,
which is in turn  a
means to the final end, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.28" parsed="|Acts|4|28|0|0" passage="Acts 4:28">Acts 4:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom. 8:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.7" parsed="|1Cor|2|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:7">I Cor. 2:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.5" parsed="|Eph|1|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:5">Eph. 1:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p10.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph 1:11">11</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p11" shownumber="no">4. THE GREEK WORDS<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p11.1">
protithenai</span>
AND<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p11.2">
prothesis.</span>
In these words attention is directed to
the fact that God sets before Him a definite plan to which He
steadfastly adheres. They
clearly refer to God's purpose of predestinating men unto salvation in
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom. 8:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.11" parsed="|Rom|9|11|0|0" passage="Rom 9:11">9:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.9" parsed="|Eph|1|9|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:9">Eph. 1:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph 1:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.9" parsed="|2Tim|1|9|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:9">II Tim. 1:9</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.ii-p11.8">C. THE AUTHOR AND OBJECTS OF PREDESTINATION</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p12" shownumber="no">1. THE AUTHOR. The decree of predestination
is undoubtedly in all its parts the
concurrent act of the three persons in the Trinity, who are one in their
counsel and will.
But in the economy of salvation, as it is revealed in Scripture, the
sovereign act of
predestination is more particularly attributed to the Father, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:John.17.6" parsed="|John|17|6|0|0" passage="John 17:6">John
17:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:John.17.9" parsed="|John|17|9|0|0" passage="John 17:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom. 8:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:4">Eph. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">I Pet. 1:2</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p13" shownumber="no">2. THE OBJECTS OF PREDESTINATION. In distinction
from the decree of God in general,
predestination has reference to God's rational creatures only. Most
frequently it refers to
fallen men. Yet it is also employed in a wider sense, and we use it in
the more inclusive
sense here, in order to embrace all the objects of predestination. It
includes all God's
rational creatures, that is:</p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p14" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p14.1">
All men, both good and evil.</span>
These are included
not merely as groups, but as
individuals,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.28" parsed="|Acts|4|28|0|0" passage="Acts 4:28">Acts 4:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom. 8:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30" parsed="|Rom|8|30|0|0" passage="Rom 8:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.11-Rom.9.13" parsed="|Rom|9|11|9|13" passage="Rom 9:11-13">9:11-13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.5" parsed="|Eph|1|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:5">Eph. 1:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph 1:11">11</scripRef>. </p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p15" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p15.1">
The angels, both good and evil.</span>
The Bible
speaks not only of holy angels, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Mark.8.38" parsed="|Mark|8|38|0|0" passage="Mark 8:38">Mark 8:38</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.9.26" parsed="|Luke|9|26|0|0" passage="Luke 9:26">Luke 9:26</scripRef>, and of wicked angels, which kept not their first estate, II
Pet. 2:4; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.6" parsed="|Jude|1|6|0|0" passage="Jude 6">Jude 6</scripRef>; but
also makes explicit mention of elect angels, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.21" parsed="|1Tim|5|21|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:21">I Tim. 5:21</scripRef>, thereby
implying that there were
also non-elect angels. The question naturally arises, How are we to conceive
of the
predestination of angels? According to some it simply means that God
determined in
general that the angels which remained holy would be confirmed in a
state of bliss,
while the others would be lost. But this is not at all in harmony with
the Scriptural idea
of predestination. It rather means that God decreed, for reasons
sufficient unto Himself,
to give some angels, in addition to the grace with which they were
endowed by creation
and which included ample power to remain holy, a special grace of
perseverance; and to
withhold this from others. There are points of difference between the
predestination of
men and that of the angels: (1) While the predestination of men may be
conceived of as
infralapsarian, the predestination of the angels can only be understood
as
supralapsarian. God did not choose a certain number out of the fallen
mass of angels.
(2) The angels were not elected or predestined in Christ as Mediator,
but in Him as Head, that is, to stand in a ministerial relation to Him.
</p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p16" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p16.1">
Christ as Mediator.</span>
Christ was the object of
predestination in the sense that (1) a
special love of the Father, distinct from His usual love to the Son,
rested upon Him from
all eternity, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.20" parsed="|1Pet|1|20|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:20">I Pet. 1:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.4" parsed="|1Pet|2|4|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:4">2:4</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2" parsed="|1Pet|2|0|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2">2</scripRef>) in His quality as Mediator he was the object of God's good
pleasure, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.4" parsed="|1Pet|2|4|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:4">I Pet. 2:4</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3" parsed="|1Pet|3|0|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3">3</scripRef>) as Mediator He was adorned with the special
image of God, to
which believers were to be conformed, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom. 8:29</scripRef>; and (4) the Kingdom with
all its glory
and the means leading to its possession were ordained for Him, that He
might pass
these on to
believers, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.29" parsed="|Luke|22|29|0|0" passage="Luke 22:29">Luke 22:29</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.ii-p16.9">D. THE PARTS OF PREDESTINATION</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p17" shownumber="no">Predestination includes two parts, namely, election and
reprobation, the
predetermination of both the good and the wicked to their final end, and
to certain
proximate ends which are instrumental in the realization of their final
destiny. 1. ELECTION.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p18" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p18.1">The Biblical Idea of Election.</span>
The Bible
speaks of election in more than one sense.
There is (1) the election of Israel as a people for special privileges
and for special service,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Deut.4.37" parsed="|Deut|4|37|0|0" passage="Deut. 4:37">Deut. 4:37</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Deut.7.6-Deut.7.8" parsed="|Deut|7|6|7|8" passage="Deut 7:6-8">7:6-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Deut.10.15" parsed="|Deut|10|15|0|0" passage="Deut 10:15">10:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Hos.13.5" parsed="|Hos|13|5|0|0" passage="Hos. 13:5">Hos. 13:5</scripRef>. (2) The election of individuals to some office, or to
the  performance of some special service, as
Moses, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:Exod.3" parsed="|Exod|3|0|0|0" passage="Ex. 3">Ex. 3</scripRef>, the priests, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Deut.18.5" parsed="|Deut|18|5|0|0" passage="Deut. 18:5">Deut. 18:5</scripRef>; the kings, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.8" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.10.24" parsed="|1Sam|10|24|0|0" passage="I Sam. 10:24">I Sam. 10:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.78.70" parsed="|Ps|78|70|0|0" passage="Ps. 78:70">Ps. 78:70</scripRef>, the prophets, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.10" osisRef="Bible:Jer.1.5" parsed="|Jer|1|5|0|0" passage="Jer. 1:5">Jer. 1:5</scripRef>, and the apostles, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.11" osisRef="Bible:John.6.70" parsed="|John|6|70|0|0" passage="John 6:70">John 6:70</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.9.15" parsed="|Acts|9|15|0|0" passage="Acts 9:15">Acts 9:15</scripRef>. (3) The
election of individuals to be children of God and heirs of eternal
glory, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.14" parsed="|Matt|22|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:14">Matt. 22:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.5" parsed="|Rom|11|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:5">Rom. 11:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.27" parsed="|1Cor|1|27|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:27">I Cor. 1:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.16" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.28" parsed="|1Cor|1|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.17" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:4">Eph. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.18" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.1.4" parsed="|1Thess|1|4|0|0" passage="I Thess. 1:4">I Thess. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p18.19" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">I Pet. 1:2</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:10. The last is the
election that
comes into consideration here as a part of predestination. It may be
defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p18.20">
that eternal act of God whereby He, in His
sovereign good pleasure, and on account of no foreseen merit in them, chooses a certain
number of men to be the recipients of special grace and of eternal salvation.</span>
More briefly it may be said to be
God's eternal purpose to save some of the
human race in and by Jesus Christ.</p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p19" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p19.1"> The characteristics of election.</span>
The characteristics of election are identical with the
characteristics
of the decrees in general. The decree of election: (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p19.2">
Is an expression of the
sovereign will of God, His divine good pleasure.</span>
This means
among other things that Christ  as Mediator
is not the impelling, moving, or meritorious cause of election, as some have
asserted. He may be called the mediate cause of the realization of
election, and the
meritorious cause of the salvation unto which believers are elected, but
He is not the
moving or meritorious cause of election itself. This is impossible,
since He is Himself an
object of predestination and election, and because, when He took His
mediatorial work
upon Him in the Counsel of Redemption, there was already a fixed number
that was
given unto Him. Election logically precedes the Counsel of Peace. The
elective love of
God precedes the
sending of the Son, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.8" parsed="|Rom|5|8|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:8">Rom. 5:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.9" parsed="|2Tim|1|9|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:9">II Tim. 1:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.9" parsed="|1John|4|9|0|0" passage="I John 4:9">I John 4:9</scripRef>. By
saying that the decree of election originates in the divine good
pleasure the idea is also
excluded that it is determined by anything in man, such as foreseen
faith or good
works, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.11" parsed="|Rom|9|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:11">Rom. 9:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.8" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.9" parsed="|2Tim|1|9|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:9">II Tim. 1:9</scripRef>. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p19.9">
It is immutable, and therefore renders the salvation of
the
elect certain.</span>
God realizes the decree of election by
His own efficiency, by the saving
work which He accomplishes in Jesus Christ. It is His purpose that
certain individuals
should believe and persevere unto the end, and He secures this result by
the objective
work of Christ and the subjective operations of the Holy Spirit, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom.
8:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30" parsed="|Rom|8|30|0|0" passage="Rom 8:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.29" parsed="|Rom|11|29|0|0" passage="Rom 11:29">11:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.13" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.19" parsed="|2Tim|2|19|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:19">II Tim. 2:19</scripRef>. It is the firm foundation of God which standeth,
"having this seal, The Lord
knoweth them that are His." And as such it is the source of rich
comfort for all believers.
Their final salvation does not depend on their uncertain obedience, but
has its
guarantee in the
unchangeable purpose of God. (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p19.14">
It is eternal, that is, from eternity.</span>
This
divine election should never be identified with any<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p19.15">
temporal</span>
selection, whether it be for
the enjoyment of the special grace of God in this life, for special
privileges and
responsible services, or for the inheritance of glory hereafter, but
must be regarded as
eternal, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.16" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom.
8:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30" parsed="|Rom|8|30|0|0" passage="Rom 8:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.18" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:4">Eph. 1:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.19" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.5" parsed="|Eph|1|5|0|0" passage="Eph 1:5">5</scripRef>. (4)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p19.20">
It is
unconditional.</span>
Election does not in any way
depend on the foreseen faith or good works of man, as the Arminians
teach, but
exclusively on the sovereign good pleasure of God, who is also the
originator of faith  and
good works, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.21" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.11" parsed="|Rom|9|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:11">Rom. 9:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.22" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.48" parsed="|Acts|13|48|0|0" passage="Acts 13:48">Acts 13:48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.23" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.9" parsed="|2Tim|1|9|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:9">II Tim. 1:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.24" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">I Pet. 1:2</scripRef>. Since all men are
sinners
and have forfeited the blessings of God, there is no basis for such a
distinction in them;
and since even the faith and good works of the believers are the fruit
of the grace of
God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.25" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8" parsed="|Eph|2|8|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:8">Eph. 2:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.26" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.10" parsed="|Eph|2|10|0|0" passage="Eph 2:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.27" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.21" parsed="|2Tim|2|21|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:21">II Tim. 2:21</scripRef>, even these, as foreseen by God, could
not furnish such a
basis. (5)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p19.28">
It is
irresistible.</span>
This does not mean that man cannot oppose its execution
to a
certain degree, but it does mean that his opposition will not prevail.
Neither does it
mean that God in the execution of His decree overpowers the human will in
a manner
which is inconsistent with man's free agency. It does mean, however,
that God can and
does exert such an influence on the human spirit as to make it
willing, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.29" osisRef="Bible:Ps.110.3" parsed="|Ps|110|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 110:3">Ps. 110:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.30" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>. (6)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p19.31">
It is not chargeable with injustice.</span>
The fact that
God favors some and passes by
others, does not warrant the charge that He is guilty of injustice. We
can speak of
injustice only when one party has a claim on another. If God owed the
forgiveness of sin
and eternal life to all men, it would be an injustice if He saved only a
limited number of
them. But the sinner has absolutely no right or claim on the blessings
which flow from
divine election. As a matter of fact he has forfeited these blessings.
Not only have we no
right to call God to account for electing some and passing others by,
but we must admit that He would have been perfectly just, if He had not saved
any, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.32" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.14" parsed="|Matt|20|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 20:14">Matt. 20:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.33" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.15" parsed="|Matt|20|15|0|0" passage="Matt 20:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.34" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.14" parsed="|Rom|9|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:14">Rom. 9:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p19.35" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.15" parsed="|Rom|9|15|0|0" passage="Rom 9:15">15</scripRef>.</p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p20" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p20.1"> The purpose of election.</span>
The purpose of
this eternal election is twofold: (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p20.2">
The proximate purpose is the salvation of the elect.</span>
That man is
chosen or elected unto salvation
is clearly
taught in the Word of God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.7-Rom.11.11" parsed="|Rom|11|7|11|11" passage="Rom. 11:7-11">Rom. 11:7-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.13" parsed="|2Thess|2|13|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:13">II Thess. 2:13</scripRef>. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p20.5">
The final aim is the  glory
of God.</span>
Even the salvation of men is subordinate to this. That
the glory of God is
the highest purpose of the electing grace is made very emphatic in <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.6" parsed="|Eph|1|6|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:6">Eph.
1:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.12" parsed="|Eph|1|12|0|0" passage="Eph 1:12">12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.14" parsed="|Eph|1|14|0|0" passage="Eph 1:14">14</scripRef>. The
social gospel of our day likes to stress the fact that man is elected
unto service. In so far
as this is intended as a denial of man's election unto salvation and
unto the glory of
God, it plainly goes contrary to Scripture. Taken by itself, however,
the idea that the
elect are predestined unto service or good works is entirely Scriptural,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.10" parsed="|Eph|2|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:10">Eph. 2:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p20.10" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.21" parsed="|2Tim|2|21|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:21">II Tim.
2:21</scripRef>; but this end is subservient to the ends already indicated.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p21" shownumber="no">2. REPROBATION. Our confessional
standards speak not only of election, but also of reprobation.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p21.1" n="54" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p21.2">Conf. Belg.</span> Art. XVI; <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p21.3">Canons of Dort,</span> I, 15.</note>
Augustine taught the doctrine of
reprobation as well as that of election,
but this "hard doctrine" met with a great deal of opposition.
Roman Catholics, the great
majority of Lutherans, Arminians, and Methodists, generally reject this
doctrine in its
absolute form. If they still speak of reprobation, it is only of a
reprobation based on
foreknowledge. That Calvin was deeply conscious of the seriousness of
this doctrine, is
perfectly evident from the fact that he speaks of it as a "<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p21.4">
decretum horribile</span>
" (dreadful
decree).<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p21.5" n="55" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p21.6">Inst.</span> III. 23. 7.</note>
Nevertheless, he did not feel
free to deny what he regarded as an important
Scriptural truth. In our day some scholars who claim to be Reformed balk
at this
doctrine. Barth teaches a reprobation which is dependent on man's
rejection of God's
revelation in Christ. Brunner seems to have a more Scriptural conception
of election than Barth, but rejects the doctrine of reprobation entirely. He admits
that it logically
follows from the doctrine of election, but cautions against the guidance
of human logic
in this instance, since the doctrine of reprobation is not taught in
Scripture.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p21.7" n="56" place="foot"> <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p21.8">Our Faith,</span> pp. 32f.</note></p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p22" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p22.1">Statement of the doctrine.</span>
Reprobation may
be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p22.2">
that eternal decree of God whereby He has determined to pass
some men by with the operations of His special grace, and to
punish them for their sins, to the manifestation of His
justice.</span>
The following points deserve
special emphasis: (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p22.3">
It contains two elements.</span>
According to the most usual representation
in Reformed theology the decree of reprobation comprises two elements,
namely,
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p22.4">
preterition</span>
or the determination to pass by some men; and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p22.5">
condemnation</span>
(sometimes
called<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p22.6">
precondemnation</span>
) or the determination to punish those who are passed by for their
sins. As such it embodies a twofold purpose: (a) to pass by some in the
bestowal of
regenerating and saving grace; and (b) to assign them to dishonor and to
the wrath of
God for their sins. The Belgic Confession mentions only the former, but
the Canons of
Dort name the latter as well. Some Reformed theologians would omit the
second
element from the decree of reprobation. Dabney prefers to regard the
condemnation of
the wicked as the foreseen and intended result of their preterition, thus
depriving
reprobation of its positive character; and Dick is of the opinion that
the decree to
condemn ought to be regarded as a separate decree, and not as a part of
the decree of
reprobation. It seems to us, however, that we are not warranted in
excluding the second
element from the decree of reprobation, nor to regard it as a different
decree. The
positive side of reprobation is so clearly taught in Scripture as the
opposite of election
that we cannot regard it as something purely negative, <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.21" parsed="|Rom|9|21|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:21">Rom. 9:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.22" parsed="|Rom|9|22|0|0" passage="Rom 9:22">22</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.4" parsed="|Jude|1|4|0|0" passage="Jude 4">Jude 4</scripRef>. However,
we should notice several points of distinction between the two elements
of the decree of
reprobation: (a) Preterition is a sovereign act of God, an act of His
mere good pleasure,
in which the demerits of man do not come into consideration, while precondemnation
is
a judicial act, visiting sin with punishment. Even Supralapsarians are
willing to admit
that in condemnation sin is taken into consideration. (b) The reason for
preterition is not
known by man. It cannot be sin, for all men are sinners. We can only say
that God
passed some by for good and wise reasons sufficient unto Himself. On the
other hand
the reason for condemnation is known; it is sin. (c) Preterition is
purely passive, a simple passing by without any action on man, but condemnation
is efficient and
positive. Those who are passed by are condemned on account of their sin.
(2) We should
guard against the idea, however, that as election and reprobation both
determine with
absolute certainty the end unto which man is predestined and the means by
which that end is realized, they also imply that in the case of reprobation as well
as in that of
election God will bring to pass by His own direct efficiency whatsoever
He has decreed.
This means that, while it can be said that God is the author of the
regeneration, calling,
faith, justification, and sanctification, of the elect, and thus by
direct action on them
brings their election to realization, it cannot be said that He is also
the responsible
author of the fall, the unrighteous condition, and the sinful acts of
the reprobate by
direct action on them, and thus effects the realization of their
reprobation. God's decree
undoubtedly rendered the entrance of sin into the world certain, but He
did not
predestinate some unto sin, as He did others unto holiness. And as the
holy God He
cannot be the author of sin. The position which Calvin takes on this
point in his
Institutes is
clearly indicated in the following deliverances found in<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p22.10">
Calvin's Articles on
Predestination:</span></p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p23" shownumber="no">"Although the will of God is the supreme and first
cause of all things and God holds
the devil and all the impious subject to His will, God nevertheless
cannot be called the
cause of sin, nor the author of evil, neither is He open to any blame.</p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p24" shownumber="no">"Although the devil and reprobates are God's
servants and instruments to carry out
His secret decisions, nevertheless in an incomprehensible manner God so
works in them
and through them as to contract no stain from their vice, because their
malice is used in
a just and righteous way for a good end, although the manner is often
hidden from us. </p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p25" shownumber="no">"They act ignorantly and calumniously who say that
God is made the author of sin,
if all things come to pass by His will and ordinance; because they make
no distinction
between the depravity of men and the hidden appointments of God."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p25.1" n="57" place="foot">Quoted by Warfield,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p25.2">Studies in Theology</span>, p. 194.</note>
(3) It should be
noted that that with which God decided to pass some men by, is not His
common but
his special, His regenerating, grace, the grace that changes sinners
into saints. It is a
mistake to think that in this life the reprobate are entirely destitute
of God's favor. God
does not limit the distribution of His natural gifts by the purpose of election.
He does
not even allow election and reprobation to determine the measure of
these gifts. The
reprobate often enjoy a greater measure of the natural blessings of life
than the elect.
What effectively distinguishes the latter from the former is that<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p25.3">
they</span>
are made recipients
of the regenerating and saving grace of God. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p26" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p26.1">Proof for the doctrine of reprobation.</span>
The doctrine of
reprobation naturally follows
from the logic of the situation. The decree of election inevitably
implies the decree of
reprobation. If the all-wise God, possessed of infinite knowledge, has
eternally purposed to save some, then He<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p26.2">
ipso facto</span>
also purposed not
to save others. If He has
chosen or elected some, then He has by that very fact also rejected
others. Brunner
warns against this argument, since the Bible does not in a single word
teach a divine
predestination unto rejection. But it seems to us that the Bible does
not contradict but
justifies the logic in question. Since the Bible is primarily a
revelation of redemption, it naturally does not have as much to say about
reprobation as about election. But what it
says is quite
sufficient, cf. <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.25" parsed="|Matt|11|25|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:25">Matt. 11:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.26" parsed="|Matt|11|26|0|0" passage="Matt 11:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.13" parsed="|Rom|9|13|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:13">Rom. 9:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.17" parsed="|Rom|9|17|0|0" passage="Rom 9:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.18" parsed="|Rom|9|18|0|0" passage="Rom 9:18">18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.21" parsed="|Rom|9|21|0|0" passage="Rom 9:21">21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.22" parsed="|Rom|9|22|0|0" passage="Rom 9:22">22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.7" parsed="|Rom|11|7|0|0" passage="Rom 11:7">11:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.11" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.4" parsed="|Jude|1|4|0|0" passage="Jude 4">Jude 4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p26.12" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.8" parsed="|1Pet|2|8|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:8">I Pet. 2:8</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.ii-p26.13">E. SUPRA- AND INFRALAPSARIANISM</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p27" shownumber="no">The doctrine of predestination has not always been
presented in exactly the same
form. Especially since the days of the Reformation two different
conceptions of it
gradually emerged, which were designated during the Arminian controversy
as Infra-
and Supralapsarianism. Already existing differences were more sharply
defined and
more strongly accentuated as the results of the theological disputes of
that day.
According to Dr. Dijk the two views under consideration were in their
original form
simply a difference of opinion respecting the question, whether the fall
of man was also
included in the divine decree. Was the first sin of man, constituting
his fall,
predestinated, or was this merely the object of divine foreknowledge? In
their original
form Supralapsarianism held the former, and Infralapsarianism, the
latter. In this sense
of the word Calvin was clearly a Supralapsarian. The later development
of the
difference between the two began with Beza, the successor of Calvin at
Geneva. In it the
original point in dispute gradually retires into the background, and
other differences are
brought forward, some of which turn out to be mere differences of
emphasis. Later
Infralapsarians, such as Rivet, Walaeus, Mastricht, Turretin, à Mark,
and de Moor, all
admit that the fall of man was included in the decree; and of the later
Supralapsarians,
such as Beza, Gomarus, Peter Martyr, Zanchius, Ursinus, Perkins, Twisse,
Trigland,
Voetius, Burmannus, Witsius and Comrie, at least some are quite willing
to admit that
in the decree of Reprobation God in some way took sin into
consideration. We are
concerned at present with Supra- and Infralapsarianism in their more
developed form.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p28" shownumber="no">1. THE EXACT POINT AT ISSUE. It is quite
essential to have a correct view of the exact  point
or points at issue between the two. </p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p29" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p29.1">
Negatively, the difference is not found:</span> (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p29.2">
In divergent
views respecting the temporal
order of the divine decrees.</span>
It is admitted on all hands that the decree of God is one and in
all its parts equally eternal, so that it is impossible to ascribe any
temporal succession to
the various
elements which it includes. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p29.3">
In any essential difference as to whether the fall of
man was decreed or was merely the object of divine
foreknowledge.</span>
This may have been, as Dr.
Dijk says, the original point of difference; but, surely, anyone who
asserts that the fall
was not decreed but only foreseen by God, would now be said to be moving
along
Arminian rather than Reformed lines. Both Supra- and Infralapsarians
admit that the
fall is included in the divine decree, and that preterition is an act of
God's sovereign
will. (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p29.4">
In any
essential difference as to the question, whether the decree relative to sin is
permissive.</span>
There is some difference of emphasis on the qualifying adjective.
Supralapsarians (with few exceptions) are willing to admit that the
decree relative to sin
is permissive, but hasten to add that it nevertheless makes the entrance
of sin into the
world a certainty. And Infralapsarians (with few exceptions) will admit
that sin is
included in God's decree, but hasten to add that the decree, in so far
as it pertains to sin,
is permissive rather than positive. The former occasionally
over-emphasize the positive
element in the decree respecting sin, and thus expose themselves to the
charge that they
make God the author of sin. And the latter sometimes over-emphasize the
permissive
character of the decree, reducing it to a bare permission, and thus
expose themselves to
the charge of Arminianism. As a whole, however, Supralapsarians
emphatically
repudiate every interpretation of the decree that would make God the
author of sin; and
Infralapsarians are careful to point out explicitly that the permissive
decree of God
relative to sin
makes sin certainly future. (4)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p29.5">
In any essential difference as to the question,
whether the decree of reprobation takes account of sin.</span>
It is sometimes
represented as if God
destined some men for eternal destruction, simply by an act of His
sovereign will,
without taking account of their sin; as if, like a tyrant, He simply
decided to destroy a
large number of His rational creatures, purely for the manifestation of
His glorious
virtues. But Supralapsarians abhor the idea of a tyrannical God, and at
least some of
them explicitly state that, while preterition is an act of God's
sovereign will, the second
element of reprobation, namely, condemnation, is an act of justice and
certainly takes
account of sin. This proceeds on the supposition that logically
preterition precedes the
decree to create and to permit the fall, while condemnation follows
this. The logic of this
position may be questioned, but it at least shows that the
Supralapsarians who assume
it, teach that God takes account of sin in the decree of reprobation.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p30" shownumber="no"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p30.1">b. Positively, the difference does
concern:</span>
(1)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p30.2">
The extent of predestination.</span>
Supralapsarians
include the decree to create and to permit the fall in the decree of
predestination, while
Infralapsarians refer it to the decree of God in general, and exclude it
from the special
decree of predestination. According to the former, man appears in the
decree of
predestination,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p30.3">
not as created and fallen</span>, but<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p30.4">
as certain to be created and to fall;</span>
while
according to the latter, he appears in it as already created and fallen.
(2)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p30.5">
The logical
order of the decrees.</span>
The question is, whether the decrees to create and to permit the fall
were
means to the decree of redemption. Supralapsarians proceed on the
assumption that in
planning the rational mind passes from the end to the means in a
retrograde movement,
so that what is first in design is last in accomplishment. Thus they
determine upon the
following order: (a) The decree of God to glorify Himself, and
particularly to magnify
His grace and justice in the salvation of some and the perdition of
other rational
creatures, which exist in the divine mind as yet only as possibilities.
(b) The decree to
create those who were thus elected and reprobated. (c) The decree to
permit them to fall.
(d) The decree to justify the elect and to condemn the non-elect. On the
other hand the
Infralapsarians suggest a more historical order: (a) The decree to
create man in holiness
and blessedness. (b) The decree to permit man to fall by the
self-determination of his
own will. (c) The decree to save a certain number out of this guilty
aggregate. (d) The
decree to leave the remainder in their self-determination in sin, and to
subject them to
the righteous punishment which their sin deserves. (3)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p30.6">
The extension of the personal element of predestination to the
decrees to create and to permit the fall.</span>
According
to
Supralapsarians God, even in the decree to create and permit the fall,
had His eye fixed
on His elect individually, so that there was not a single moment in the
divine decree,
when they did not stand in a special relation to God as His beloved
ones.
Infralapsarians, on the other hand, hold that this personal element did
not appear in the
decree till after the decree to create and to permit the fall. In these
decrees themselves the elect are simply included in the whole mass of humanity,
and do not appear as the
-special objects of God's love.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p31" shownumber="no">2. THE SUPRALAPSARIAN POSITION.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p32" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p32.1"> Arguments in favor of it:</span>
(1) It appeals
to all those passages of Scripture which
emphasize the absolute sovereignty of God, and more particularly His
sovereignty in
relation to sin,
such as <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.115.3" parsed="|Ps|115|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 115:3">Ps. 115:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.3" osisRef="Bible:Prov.16.4" parsed="|Prov|16|4|0|0" passage="Prov. 16:4">Prov. 16:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.10.15" parsed="|Isa|10|15|0|0" passage="Isa. 10:15">Isa. 10:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.9" parsed="|Isa|45|9|0|0" passage="Isa 45:9">45:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.6" osisRef="Bible:Jer.18.6" parsed="|Jer|18|6|0|0" passage="Jer. 18:6">Jer. 18:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.25" parsed="|Matt|11|25|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:25">Matt. 11:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.26" parsed="|Matt|11|26|0|0" passage="Matt 11:26">26</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.15" parsed="|Matt|20|15|0|0" passage="Matt 20:15">20:15</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.17" parsed="|Rom|9|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:17">Rom. 9:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.19-Rom.9.21" parsed="|Rom|9|19|9|21" passage="Rom 9:19-21">19-21</scripRef>. Special emphasis is laid on the figure of the potter,
which is found in
more than one of these passages. It is said that this figure not merely
stresses the
sovereignty of God in general, but more especially His sovereignty in
determining the
quality of the vessels at creation. This means that Paul in <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9" parsed="|Rom|9|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 9">Rom. 9</scripRef>
speaks from a pre-
creation standpoint, an idea that is favored (a) by the fact that the
potter's work is
frequently used in Scripture as a figure of creation; and (b) by the
fact that the potter
determines each vessel for a certain use and gives it a corresponding
quality, which
might cause the vessel to ask, though without any right, Why didst Thou
make me
thus? (2) Attention is called to the fact that some passages of
Scripture suggest that the
work of nature or of creation in general was so ordered as to contain
already
illustrations of the work of redemption. Jesus frequently derives His
illustrations for the
elucidation of spiritual things from nature, and we are told in <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.35" parsed="|Matt|13|35|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:35">Matt.
13:35</scripRef> that this was
in fulfilment of the words of the prophet, "I will utter things
hidden from the
foundation of the world." Comp. <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.78.2" parsed="|Ps|78|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 78:2">Ps. 78:2</scripRef>. This is taken to mean
that they were<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p32.15">
hidden in nature</span>, but were brought to light in the parabolic teachings of Jesus.
<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p32.16" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.9" parsed="|Eph|3|9|0|0" passage="Ephesians 3:9">Ephesians 3:9</scripRef> is also
considered as an expression of the idea that the design of God in the
creation of the
world was directed to the manifestation of His wisdom, which would issue
in the New
Testament work of redemption. But the appeal to this passage seems, to
say the least,
very doubtful. (3) The order of the decrees, as accepted by the
Supralapsarians, is
regarded as the more ideal, the more logical and unified of the two. It
clearly exhibits
the rational order which exists between the ultimate end
and the intermediate means.
Therefore the Supralapsarians can, while the Infralapsarians cannot,
give a specific
answer to the question why God decreed to create the world and to permit
the fall.
They do full justice to the sovereignty of God and refrain from all
futile attempts to
justify God in the sight of men, while the Infralapsarians hesitate,
attempt to prove the justice of God's procedure, and yet in the end must come
to the same conclusion as the
Supralapsarians, namely, that, in the last analysis, the decree to
permit the fall finds its
explanation only in the sovereign good pleasure of God.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p32.17" n="58" place="foot">Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p32.18">Geref. Dogm.</span> II, p. 400.</note>
(4) The analogy of the
predestination of the angels would seem to favor the Supralapsarian
position, for it can
only be conceived as supralapsarian. God decreed, for reasons sufficient
to Himself, to
grant some angels the grace of perseverance and to withhold this from
others; and to
connect with this righteously the confirmation of the former in a state
of glory, and the
eternal perdition of the latter. This means, therefore, that the decree
respecting the fall of
the angels forms a part of their predestination. And it would seem
impossible to
conceive of it in any other way.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p33" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p33.1">
Objections to it:</span>
Notwithstanding
its seeming pretensions, it does not give a
solution of the problem of sin. It would do this, if it dared to say
that God decreed to
bring sin into
the world<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p33.2">
by His own direct efficiency.</span>
Some
Supralapsarians, it is true, do
represent the decree as the efficient cause of sin, but yet do not want
this to be
interpreted in such a way that God becomes the author of sin. The
majority of them do
not care to go beyond the statement that God willed to permit sin. Now
this is no
objection to the Supralapsarian in distinction from the Infralapsarian,
for neither one of
them solves the problem. The only difference is that the former makes
greater
pretensions in this respect than the latter. (2) According to its
representations man appears in the divine decree first as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p33.3">
creabilis et labilis</span>
(certain to
be created and to fall).
The objects of the decree are first of all men considered as mere
possibilities, as non-
existent entities. But such a decree necessarily has only a provisional
character, and
must be followed by another decree. After the election and reprobation
of these possible
men follows the decree to create them and to permit them to fall, and
this must be
followed by another decree respecting these men whose creation and fall
have now
been definitely determined, namely, the decree to elect some and to
reprobate the rest of
those who now appear in the divine purpose as real men. Supralapsarians
claim that
this is no insuperable objection because, while it is true that on their
position the actual
existence of men has not yet been determined when they are elected and
reprobated, they do exist in the divine idea. (3) It is said that
Supralapsarianism makes the eternal
punishment of the reprobate an object of the divine will in the same
sense and in the
same manner as the eternal salvation of the elect; and that it makes
sin, which leads to
eternal destruction, a means unto this end in the same manner and in the
same sense as
the redemption in Christ is a means unto salvation. If consistently
carried through, this
would make God the author of sin. It should be noted, however, that the
Supralapsarian
does not, as a rule, so represent the decree, and explicitly states that
the decree may not
be so interpreted as to make God the author of sin. He will speak of a
predestination
unto the grace of God in Jesus Christ, but not of a predestination unto
sin. (4) Again, it is
objected that Supralapsarianism makes the decree of reprobation just as
absolute as the decree of election. In other words, that it regards reprobation
as purely an act of God's
sovereign good pleasure, and not as an act of punitive justice.
According to its
representation sin does not come into consideration in the decree of
reprobation. But
this is hardly correct, though it may be true of some Supralapsarians.
In general,
however, it may be said that, while they regard preterition as an act of
God's sovereign
good pleasure, they usually regard precondemnation as an act of divine
justice which
does take sin into consideration. And the Infralapsarian himself cannot
maintain the
idea that reprobation is an act of justice pure and simple, contingent
on the sin of man.
In the last analysis, he, too, must declare that it is an act of God's
sovereign good
pleasure, if he wants to avoid the Arminian camp. (5) Finally, it is
said that it is not
possible to construe a serviceable doctrine of the covenant of grace and
of the Mediator
on the basis of the Supralapsarian scheme. Both the covenant and the
Mediator of the
covenant can only be conceived as infralapsarian. This is frankly
admitted by some
Supralapsarians. Logically, the Mediator appears in the divine decree
only after the
entrance of sin; and this is the only point of view from which the
covenant of grace can be construed. This will naturally have an important bearing on the
ministry of the Word.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p34" shownumber="no">3. THE INFRALAPSARIAN POSITION. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p35" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p35.1">Arguments in favor of it.</span>
(1)
Infralapsarians appeal more particularly to those
passages of Scripture in which the objects of election appear as in a
condition of sin, as being in close union with Christ, and as objects of God's
mercy and grace, such as <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p35.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.25" parsed="|Matt|11|25|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:25">Matt. 11:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p35.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.26" parsed="|Matt|11|26|0|0" passage="Matt 11:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p35.4" osisRef="Bible:John.15.19" parsed="|John|15|19|0|0" passage="John 15:19">John 15:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p35.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.28" parsed="|Rom|8|28|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:28">Rom. 8:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p35.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30" parsed="|Rom|8|30|0|0" passage="Rom 8:30">30</scripRef>; 9:15.16; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p35.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4-Eph.1.12" parsed="|Eph|1|4|1|12" passage="Eph. 1:4-12">Eph. 1:4-12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.ii-p35.8" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.9" parsed="|2Tim|1|9|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:9">II Tim. 1:9</scripRef>. These passages would
seem to imply that in the thought of God the fall of man preceded the
election of some
unto salvation. (2) It also calls attention to the fact that in its representation
the order of
the divine decrees is less philosophical and more natural than that
proposed by
Supralapsarians. It is in harmony with the historical order in the
execution of the
decrees, which would seem to reflect the order in the eternal
counsel of God. Just as in
the execution, so there is in the decree a causal order. It is more
modest to abide by this
order, just because it reflects the historical order revealed in
Scripture and does not
pretend to solve the problem of God's relation to sin. It is considered
to be less offensive in its presentation of the matter and to be far more in
harmony with the requirements of
practical life.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p35.9" n="59" place="foot">Cf. Edwards, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p35.10">Works</span> II, p. 543.</note>
(3) While Supralapsarians claim
that their construction of the doctrine of
the decrees is the more logical of the two, Infralapsarians make the
same claim for their
position. Says Dabney: "The Supralapsarian (scheme) under the
pretense of greater
symmetry, is in reality the more illogical of the two."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.ii-p35.11" n="60" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p35.12">Syst. and Polem. Theol,</span> p. 233</note>
It is pointed out that the
supralapsarian scheme is illogical in that it makes the decree of
election and preterition
refer to non-entities, that is, to men who do not exist, except as bare
possibilities, even in
the mind of God; who do not yet exist in the divine decree and are
therefore not
contemplated as created, but only as creatable. Again, it is said that
the supralapsarian
construction is illogical in that it necessarily separates the two
elements in reprobation, placing preterition before, and condemnation after,
the fall. (4) Finally, attention is also
called to the fact that the Reformed Churches in their official
standards have always
adopted the infralapsarian position, even though they have never condemned,
but
always tolerated, the other view. Among the members of the Synod of Dort
and of the
Westminster Assembly there were several Supralapsarians who were held in
high
honour (the presiding officer in both cases belonging to the number),
but in both the
Canons of Dort and the Westminster Confession the infralapsarian view
finds
expression.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p36" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p36.1">Objections to
it.</span>
The following are some of the most important objections
raised
against Infralapsarianism: (1) It does not give, nor does it claim to
give a solution of the
problem of sin. But this is equally true of the other view, so that, in
a comparison of the
two, this cannot very well be regarded as a real objection, though it is
sometimes raised.
The problem of the relation of God to sin has proved to be insoluble for
the one as well as for the other. (2) While Infralapsarianism may be actuated
by the laudable desire to
guard against the possibility of charging God with being the author of
sin, it is, in doing
this, always in danger of overshooting the mark, and some of its
representatives have
made this mistake. They are averse to the statement that God<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p36.2">
willed</span>
sin, and substitute
for it the assertion that He<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p36.3">
permitted it.</span>
But then the
question arises as to the exact meaning of this statement. Does it mean that
God merely took cognizance of the
entrance of sin, without in any way hindering it, so that the fall was
in reality a
frustration of His plan? The moment the Infralapsarian answers this
question in the
affirmative, he enters the ranks of the Arminians. While there have been
some who took
this stand, the majority of them feel that they cannot consistently take
this position, but must incorporate the fall in the divine decree. They speak
of the decree respecting sin as
a<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p36.4">
permissive
decree</span>, but with the distinct understanding that this decree
rendered the
entrance of sin into the world certain. And if the question be raised,
why God decreed
to permit sin and thus rendered it certain, they can only point to the
divine good
pleasure, and are thus in perfect agreement with the Supralapsarian. (3)
The same tendency to shield God reveals itself in another way and exposes one
to a similar
danger. Infralapsarianism really wants to explain reprobation as an act
of God's justice.
It is inclined to deny either explicitly or implicitly that it is an act
of the mere good
pleasure of God. This really makes the decree of reprobation a
conditional decree and
leads into the Arminian fold. But infralapsarians on the whole do not
want to teach a
conditional decree, and express themselves guardedly on this matter.
Some of them
admit that it is a mistake to consider reprobation purely as an act of
divine justice. And
this is perfectly correct. Sin is not the ultimate cause of reprobation
any more than faith
and good works are the cause of election, for all men are by nature dead
in sin and
trespasses. When confronted with the problem of reprobation,
Infralapsarians, too, can
find the answer only in the good pleasure of God. Their language may
sound more
tender than that of the Supralapsarians, but is also more apt to be
misunderstood, and
after all proves to convey the same idea. (4) The Infralapsarian
position does not do
justice to the unity of the divine decree, but represents the different
members of it too
much as disconnected parts. First God decrees to create the world for
the glory of His
name, which means among other things also that He determined that His
rational
creatures should live according to the divine law implanted in their
hearts and should
praise their Maker. Then He decreed to permit the fall, whereby sin
enters the world.
This seems to be a frustration of the original plan, or at least an
important modification
of it, since God no more decrees to glorify Himself by the voluntary
obedience of<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p36.5">
all</span>
His
rational creatures. Finally, there follow the decrees of election and
reprobation, which mean only a partial execution of the original plan.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p37" shownumber="no">4. From what was said it would seem to follow that we
cannot regard Supra- and
Infralapsarianism as absolutely antithetical. They consider the same
mystery from
different points of view, the one fixing its attention on the ideal or
teleological; the other,
on the historical, order of the decrees. To a certain extent they can
and must go hand in hand. Both find support in Scripture. Supralapsarianism in
those passages which stress
the sovereignty of God, and Infralapsarianism in those which emphasize
the mercy and
justice of God, in connection with election and reprobation. Each has
something in its
favor: the former that it does not undertake to justify God, but simply
rests in the
sovereign and holy good pleasure of God; and the latter, that it is more
modest and
tender, and reckons with the demands and requirements of practical life.
Both are
necessarily inconsistent; the former because it cannot regard sin as a
progression, but
must consider it as a disturbance of creation, and speaks of a<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p37.1">
permissive</span>
decree; and the
latter, since in the last analysis it must also resort to a permissive<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p37.2">
decree</span>, which makes
sin certain. But each one of them also emphasizes an element of truth.
The true element in Supralapsarianism is found in its emphasis on the
following: that the decree of God is
a unit; that God had<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p37.3">
one</span>
final aim in view; that He
willed sin in a certain sense; and that
the work of creation was immediately adapted to the recreative activity
of God. And the
true element in Infralapsarianism is, that there is a certain diversity
in the decrees of
God; that creation and fall cannot be regarded merely as means to an
end, but also had
great independent significance; and that sin cannot be regarded as an
element of
progress, but should rather be considered as an element of disturbance
in the world. In
connection with the study of this profound subject we feel that our
understanding is
limited, and realize that we grasp only fragments of the truth. Our
confessional
standards embody the infralapsarian position, but do not condemn
Supralapsarianism.
It was felt that this view was not necessarily
inconsistent with Reformed theology. And
the conclusions of Utrecht, adopted in 1908 by our Church, state that,
while it is not
permissible to represent the supralapsarian view as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p37.4">
the</span>
doctrine of the Reformed
churches in the Netherlands, it is just as little permissible to molest
any one who
cherishes that view for himself. </p>
<p id="iii.ii.ii-p38" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. Is a
foreknowledge of future events which is not
based on the decree possible in God? What is the inevitable result of
basing God's
decree on His foreknowledge rather than<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p38.1">
vice versa</span>
his foreknowledge
on His decree?
How does the doctrine of the decrees differ from fatalism and from
determinism? Does
the decree of predestination necessarily exclude the possibility of a
universal offer of
salvation? Are the decrees of election and reprobation equally absolute
and
unconditional or not? Are they alike in being causes from which human
actions proceed
as effects? How is the doctrine of predestination related to the
doctrine of the divine
sovereignty;— to the doctrine of total depravity;—to the doctrine of the
atonement;—to
the doctrine of the perseverance of the saints? Do the Reformed teach a
predestination
unto sin? </p>

<p id="iii.ii.ii-p39" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 347-425; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Deo</span>
III, pp. 80-258; Vos,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.3">
Geref. Dogm. I</span>, pp. 81-170; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 535-549; II, pp. 315-321; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.5">
Dogm. Theol. I</span>, pp. 393-462; Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.6">
Godgeleerdheit</span>, I, pp. 670-757;
Comrie en
Holtius,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.7">
Examen van het Ontwerp van
Tolerantie, Samenspraken VI and</span>
VII;
Turretin,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.8">
Opera</span>, I, pp. 279-382; Dabney,Syst.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.9">
and Polem Theol.</span>, pp. 211-246; Miley,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.10">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 245-266; Cunningham,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.11">
Hist. Theol.</span>, II, pp. 416-489; Wiggers,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.12">
Augustinism and Pelagianism</span>, pp. 237- 254; Girardeau,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.13">
Calvinism and Evangelical Arminianism</span>, pp. 14-412;
ibid.,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.14">
The Will in its Theological Relations;</span>
Warfield,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.15">
Biblical Doctrines</span>, pp. 3-67; ibid., <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.16">;Studies in Theology</span>, pp. 117-231; Cole,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.17">
Calvin's Calvinism</span>pp. 25-206; Calvin,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.18">
Institutes</span> III. Chap. XXI-XXIV; Dijk,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.19">
De Strijd over Infra-en Supralapsarisme in de
Gereformeerde Kerken van Nederland;</span> ibid.,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.20">
Om 't Eeuwig
Welbehagen;</span>
Fernhout,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.21">
De Leer der Uitverkiezing</span>; Polman,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.ii-p39.22">
De Praedestinatieleer van Augustinus, Thomas van Aquino en Calvijn. </span></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.ii.iii" next="iii.ii.iv" prev="iii.ii.ii" title="III. Creation in General">
<h2 id="iii.ii.iii-p0.1">III. Creation in General</h2>
<p id="iii.ii.iii-p1" shownumber="no">The discussion of the decrees naturally leads on to the
consideration of their
execution, and this begins with the work of creation. This is not only
first in order of
time, but is also a logical prius. It is the beginning and basis of all
divine revelation, and
consequently also the foundation of all ethical and religious life. The
doctrine of
creation is not set forth in Scripture as a philosophical solution of
the problem of the
world, but in its ethical and religious significance, as a revelation of
the relation of man
to his God. It stresses the fact that God is the origin of all things,
and that all things
belong to Him and are subject to Him. The knowledge of it is derived
from Scripture
only and is accepted by faith (<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.3" parsed="|Heb|11|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:3">Heb. 11:3</scripRef>), though Roman Catholics
maintain that it can
also be gathered from nature.</p>


<h4 id="iii.ii.iii-p1.2">A. THE DOCTRINE OF CREATION IN HISTORY</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.iii-p2" shownumber="no">While Greek philosophy sought the explanation of the
world in a dualism, which
involves the eternity of matter, or in a process of emanation, which
makes the world the
outward manifestation of God, the Christian Church from the very
beginning taught the
doctrine of creation<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.1">
ex nihilo</span>
and as a<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.2">
free</span>
act of God. This doctrine was accepted with
singular unanimity from the start. It is found in Justin Martyr,
Irenaeus, Tertullian,
Clement of Alexandria, Origen, and others. Theophilus was the first
Church Father to
stress the fact that the days of creation were literal days. This seems
to have been the
view of Irenaeus and Tertullian as well, and was in all probability the
common view in
the Church. Clement and Origen thought of creation as having been
accomplished<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.3">
in a single indivisible moment</span>, and conceived of its description as the work of several days
merely as a literary device to describe the origin of things in the
order of their worth or
of their logical connection. The idea of an eternal creation, as taught
by Origen, was
commonly rejected. At the same time some of the Church Fathers expressed
the idea
that God was always Creator, though the created universe began in time.
During the
trinitarian controversy some of them emphasized the fact that, in
distinction from the
generation of the Son, which was a<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.4">
necessary</span>
act of the Father,
the creation of the world
was a<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.5">
free</span>
act of the triune God. Augustine dealt with the work of creation more
in detail
than others did. He argues that creation was eternally in the will of
God, and therefore
brought no change in Him. There was no time before creation, since the
world was
brought into being<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.6">
with</span>
time rather than<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.7">
in</span>
time. The
question what God did in the
many ages before creation is based on a misconception of eternity. While
the Church in
general still seems to have held that the world was created in six
ordinary days,
Augustine suggested a somewhat different view. He strongly defended the
doctrine of
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.8">
creatio ex nihilo</span>, but distinguished two moments of creation: the production of matter
and spirits out of nothing, and the organization of the material
universe. He found it
difficult to say what kind of days the days of Genesis were, but was
evidently inclined
to think that God created all things<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.9">
in a moment of time</span>
and that
the thought of days was
simply introduced to aid the finite intelligence. The Scholastics
debated a great deal
about the possibility of eternal creation; some, such as, Alexander of
Hales,
Bonaventura, Albertus Magnus, Henry of Ghent, and the great majority of
the
Scholastics denying this; and others, such as Thomas Aquinas, Duns
Scotus, Durandus,
Biel, and others affirming it. Yet the doctrine of creation with or in
time carried the day.
Erigena and Eckhart were exceptional in teaching that the world
originated by
emanation. Seemingly the days of creation were regarded as ordinary days,
though
Anselm suggested that it might be necessary to conceive of them as
different from our
present days. The Reformers held firmly to the doctrine of creation out
of nothing by a
free act of God in or with time, and regarded the days of creation as
six literal days. This view is also generally maintained in the
Post-Reformation literature of the sixteenth and
seventeenth centuries, though a few theologians (as Maresius)
occasionally speak of
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p2.10">
continuous creation.</span>
In the eighteenth century, however, under the dominating influence
of Pantheism and Materialism, science launched an attack on the Church's
doctrine of
creation. It substituted the idea of evolution or development for that
of absolute
origination by a divine fiat. The world was often represented as a
necessary
manifestation of the Absolute. Its origin was pushed back thousands and
even millions
of years into an unknown past. And soon theologians were engaged in
various attempts
to harmonize the doctrine of creation with the teachings of science and
philosophy.
Some suggested that the first chapters of Genesis should be interpreted
allegorically or
mythically; others, that a long period elapsed between the primary
creation of <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p2.11" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.2" parsed="|Gen|1|2|0|0" passage="Gen 1:2">2</scripRef>
and the secondary creation of the following verses; and still others,
that the days of
creation were in fact long periods of time.
</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.iii-p2.13">B. SCRIPTURAL PROOF FOR THE DOCTRINE OF CREATION</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.iii-p3" shownumber="no">The Scriptural proof for the doctrine of creation is not
found in a single and limited
portion of the Bible, but is found in every part of the Word of God. It
does not consist of
a few scattered passages of doubtful interpretation, but of a large
number of clear and
unequivocal statements, which speak of the creation of the world as a
historical fact. We
have first of all the extended narrative of creation found in the first
two chapters of
Genesis, which will be discussed in detail when the creation of the
material universe is
considered. These chapters certainly appear to the unbiased reader as a
historical
narrative, and as the record of a historical fact. And the many
cross-references scattered
throughout the Bible do not regard them in any other light. They all
refer to creation as
a fact of history. The various passages in which they are found may be
classified as
follows: (1) Passages which stress the omnipotence of God in the work of
creation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.26" parsed="|Isa|40|26|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:26">Isa. 40:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.28" parsed="|Isa|40|28|0|0" passage="Isa 40:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Amos.4.13" parsed="|Amos|4|13|0|0" passage="Amos 4:13">Amos 4:13</scripRef>. (2) Passages which point to His exaltation above
nature as the great
and infinite
God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.2" parsed="|Ps|90|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:2">Ps. 90:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.26" parsed="|Ps|102|26|0|0" passage="Ps 102:26">102:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.27" parsed="|Ps|102|27|0|0" passage="Ps 102:27">27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.24" parsed="|Acts|17|24|0|0" passage="Acts 17:24">Acts 17:24</scripRef>. (3) Passages which refer to the wisdom
of God in the
work of creation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.12-Isa.40.14" parsed="|Isa|40|12|40|14" passage="Isa. 40:12-14">Isa. 40:12-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Jer.10.12-Jer.10.16" parsed="|Jer|10|12|10|16" passage="Jer. 10:12-16">Jer. 10:12-16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:John.1.3" parsed="|John|1|3|0|0" passage="John 1:3">John 1:3</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:John.4" parsed="|John|4|0|0|0" passage="John 4">4</scripRef>) Passages
regarding creation from the point of view of God's sovereignty and
purpose in creation,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.7" parsed="|Isa|43|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 43:7">Isa. 43:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.25" parsed="|Rom|1|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:25">Rom. 1:25</scripRef>. (5) Passages that speak of creation as a fundamental
work of God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.9" parsed="|1Cor|11|9|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:9">I Cor. 11:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>. One of the fullest and most beautiful statements
is that found in
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.6" parsed="|Neh|9|6|0|0" passage="Neh. 9:6">Neh. 9:6</scripRef>: "Thou art Jehovah, even thou alone; thou hast made
heaven, the heaven of
heavens, with all their host, the earth and all things that are thereon,
the seas and all
that is in them, and thou preservest them all; and the host of heaven
worshippeth thee."
This passage is typical of several other, less extensive, passages that
are found in the Bible, which emphasize the fact that Jehovah is the Creator of
the universe, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.5" parsed="|Isa|42|5|0|0" passage="Isa. 42:5">Isa. 42:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.18" parsed="|Isa|45|18|0|0" passage="Isa 45:18">45:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.19" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.20" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.11" parsed="|Rev|4|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 4:11">Rev. 4:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p3.21" osisRef="Bible:Rev.10.6" parsed="|Rev|10|6|0|0" passage="Rev 10:6">10:6</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.iii-p3.22">C. THE IDEA OF CREATION</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p4" shownumber="no">The faith of the Church in the creation of the world is
expressed in the very first
article of the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.1">
Apostolic Confession of Faith</span>, "I
believe in God the Father, Almighty, Maker
of heaven and earth." This is an expression of the faith of the
early Church, that God by
His almighty power brought forth the universe out of nothing. The words
"Maker of
heaven and earth" were not contained in the original form of the
creed, but represent a
later addition. It ascribes to the Father, that is, to the first person
in the Trinity, the
origination of all things. This is in harmony with the representation of
the New
Testament that all things are of the Father, through the Son, and in the
Holy Spirit. The
word "Maker" is a rendering of the word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.2">
poieten</span>, found in the Greek form of the
Apostolic Confession, while the Latin form has<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.3">
creatorem.</span>
Evidently, it is to be
understood as a synonymous term for "Creator." "To
create" was understood in the
early Church in the strict sense of "to bring forth something out
of nothing." It should
be noted that Scripture does not always use the Hebrew word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.4">
bara</span>' and the Greek term<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.5">
ktizein</span>
in that absolute sense. It also employs these terms to denote a
secondary creation,
in which God made use of material that was already in existence but
could not of itself
have produced
the result indicated, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.21" parsed="|Gen|1|21|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:21">Gen. 1:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.27" parsed="|Gen|1|27|0|0" passage="Gen 1:27">27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Gen.5.1" parsed="|Gen|5|1|0|0" passage="Gen 5:1">5:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.7" parsed="|Isa|45|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 45:7">Isa. 45:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.12" parsed="|Isa|45|12|0|0" passage="Isa 45:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.54.16" parsed="|Isa|54|16|0|0" passage="Isa 54:16">54:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.12" osisRef="Bible:Amos.4.13" parsed="|Amos|4|13|0|0" passage="Amos 4:13">Amos 4:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.9" parsed="|1Cor|11|9|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:9">I Cor. 11:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:Rev.10.6" parsed="|Rev|10|6|0|0" passage="Rev. 10:6">Rev. 10:6</scripRef>. It even uses them to designate that which comes
into existence
under the
providential guidance of God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.30" parsed="|Ps|104|30|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:30">Ps. 104:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.16" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.7" parsed="|Isa|45|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 45:7">Isa. 45:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.17" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.8" parsed="|Isa|45|8|0|0" passage="Isa 45:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.65.18" parsed="|Isa|65|18|0|0" passage="Isa 65:18">65:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.19" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.4" parsed="|1Tim|4|4|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:4">I Tim. 4:4</scripRef>. Two
other terms are
used synonymously with the term "to create," namely, "to
make" (Heb., '<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.20">asah;</span>
Greek,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.21">
poiein</span>)
and "to form" (Heb.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.22">
yatsar;</span>
Greek,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.23">
plasso</span>). The former is
clearly used in all the three senses indicated in the preceding: of primary creation
in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.24" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.4" parsed="|Gen|2|4|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:4">Gen. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.25" osisRef="Bible:Prov.16.4" parsed="|Prov|16|4|0|0" passage="Prov. 16:4">Prov. 16:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.26" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.24" parsed="|Acts|17|24|0|0" passage="Acts 17:24">Acts 17:24</scripRef>; more frequently of secondary creation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.27" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.7" parsed="|Gen|1|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:7">Gen. 1:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.28" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.16" parsed="|Gen|1|16|0|0" passage="Gen 1:16">16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.29" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen 1:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.30" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.22" parsed="|Gen|2|22|0|0" passage="Gen 2:22">2:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.31" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.47" parsed="|Ps|89|47|0|0" passage="Ps. 89:47">Ps. 89:47</scripRef>;
and of the work of providence in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.32" osisRef="Bible:Ps.74.17" parsed="|Ps|74|17|0|0" passage="Ps. 74:17">Ps. 74:17</scripRef>. The latter is used similarly
of primary
creation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.33" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.2" parsed="|Ps|90|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:2">Ps. 90:2</scripRef> (perhaps the only instance of this use); of secondary
creation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.34" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.35" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.19" parsed="|Gen|2|19|0|0" passage="Gen 2:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.36" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.26" parsed="|Ps|104|26|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:26">Ps. 104:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.37" osisRef="Bible:Amos.4.13" parsed="|Amos|4|13|0|0" passage="Amos 4:13">Amos 4:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.38" osisRef="Bible:Zech.12.1" parsed="|Zech|12|1|0|0" passage="Zech. 12:1">Zech. 12:1</scripRef>; and of the work of providence, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.39" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.18" parsed="|Deut|32|18|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:18">Deut. 32:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.40" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.1" parsed="|Isa|43|1|0|0" passage="Isa. 43:1">Isa. 43:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.41" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.7" parsed="|Isa|43|7|0|0" passage="Isa 43:7">7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.42" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.21" parsed="|Isa|43|21|0|0" passage="Isa 43:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.43" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.7" parsed="|Isa|45|7|0|0" passage="Isa 45:7">45:7</scripRef>. All three words are found together in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.44" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.7" parsed="|Isa|45|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 45:7">Isa. 45:7</scripRef>.
Creation in the strict sense
of the word may
be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.45">
that free act of God whereby He,
according to His sovereign; will and for His own glory, in the
beginning brought forth the whole visible and invisible; universe, without the use of
preexistent material, and thus gave it an existence, distinct from His
own and yet always dependent on Him.</span>
In view of the
Scriptural data indicated in the
preceding, it is quite evident, however, that this definition applies
only to what is
generally known as primary or immediate creation, that is, the creation
described in  <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.46" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef>. But the Bible clearly uses the word "create" also in cases in
which God did
make use of pre-existing materials, as in the creation of sun, moon, and
stars, of the
animals and of man. Hence many theologians add an element to the
definition of
creation. Thus
Wollebius defines: "<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p4.47">Creation
is that act by which God produces the world and all that is in it, partly out of
nothing and partly out of material that is by its very nature unfit,
for the manifestation of the glory of His power, wisdom,
and goodness.</span>"
Even so, however, the
definition does not cover those cases, also designated in Scripture as
creative work, in
which God works
through secondary causes, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.48" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.30" parsed="|Ps|104|30|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:30">Ps. 104:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.49" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.7" parsed="|Isa|45|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 45:7">Isa. 45:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.50" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.8" parsed="|Isa|45|8|0|0" passage="Isa 45:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.51" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.22" parsed="|Jer|31|22|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:22">Jer. 31:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p4.52" osisRef="Bible:Amos.4.13" parsed="|Amos|4|13|0|0" passage="Amos 4:13">Amos 4:13</scripRef>,
and produces results which only He could produce. The definition given
includes
several elements which call for further consideration.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p5" shownumber="no">1. CREATION IS AN ACT OF THE TRIUNE GOD. Scripture teaches us that the triune God is
the author of creation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.12" parsed="|Isa|40|12|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:12">Isa. 40:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.44.24" parsed="|Isa|44|24|0|0" passage="Isa 44:24">44:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.12" parsed="|Isa|45|12|0|0" passage="Isa 45:12">45:12</scripRef>, and this
distinguishes Him from
the idols, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.96.5" parsed="|Ps|96|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 96:5">Ps. 96:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.37.16" parsed="|Isa|37|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 37:16">Isa. 37:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Jer.10.11" parsed="|Jer|10|11|0|0" passage="Jer. 10:11">Jer. 10:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Jer.10.12" parsed="|Jer|10|12|0|0" passage="Jer 10:12">12</scripRef>. Though the Father is in the foreground in the
work of creation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.6" parsed="|1Cor|8|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:6">I Cor. 8:6</scripRef>, it is also clearly recognized as a work of
the Son and of the
Holy Spirit. The
Son's participation in it is indicated in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:John.1.3" parsed="|John|1|3|0|0" passage="John 1:3">John 1:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.6" parsed="|1Cor|8|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:6">I Cor. 8:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.15-Col.1.17" parsed="|Col|1|15|1|17" passage="Col. 1:15-17">Col. 1:15-17</scripRef>,
and the activity of the Spirit in it finds expression in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.2" parsed="|Gen|1|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:2">Gen. 1:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:Job.26.13" parsed="|Job|26|13|0|0" passage="Job 26:13">Job 26:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.15" osisRef="Bible:Job.33.4" parsed="|Job|33|4|0|0" passage="Job 33:4">33:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.30" parsed="|Ps|104|30|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:30">Ps. 104:30</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.17" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.12" parsed="|Isa|40|12|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:12">Isa. 40:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p5.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.13" parsed="|Isa|40|13|0|0" passage="Isa 40:13">13</scripRef>. The second and third persons are not dependent powers or
mere
intermediaries, but independent authors together with the Father. The
work was not
divided among the three persons, but the whole work, though from
different aspects, is
ascribed to each one of the persons. All things are at once<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p5.19">
out of</span>
the Father,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p5.20">
through</span>
the
Son, and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p5.21">
in</span>
the Holy Spirit. In general it may be said that<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p5.22">
being</span>
is out of the Father,
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p5.23">thought</span>
or the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p5.24">
idea</span>
out of the Son, and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p5.25">
life</span>
out of the Holy Spirit. Since
the Father takes
the initiative in the work of creation, it is often ascribed to Him
economically.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p6" shownumber="no">2. CREATION IS A FREE ACT OF GOD. Creation is
sometimes represented as a necessary
act of God rather than as a free act determined by His sovereign will.
The old theories of
emanation and their modern counterpart, the Pantheistic theories,
naturally make the
world but a mere moment in the process of divine evolution (Spinoza,
Hegel), and
therefore regard the world as a necessary act of God. And the necessity
which they have
in mind is not a relative necessity resulting from the divine decree,
but an absolute
necessity which follows from the very nature of God, from his
omnipotence (Origen) or
from His love (Rothe). However, this is not a Scriptural position. The
only works of God that are inherently necessary with a necessity resulting from
the very nature of God, are the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p6.1">
opera ad intra</span>, the works of the separate persons within the Divine Being: generation,
filiation, and procession. To say that creation is a necessary act of
God, is also to declare
that it is just as eternal as those immanent works of God. Whatever
necessity may be
ascribed to God's<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p6.2">
opera ad extra</span>
is a necessity
conditioned by the divine decree and the
resulting constitution of things. It is a necessity dependent on the
sovereign will of God,
and therefore no necessity in the absolute sense of the word. The Bible
teaches us that
God created all things, according to the counsel of His will, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:11">Eph. 1:11</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.11" parsed="|Rev|4|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 4:11">Rev. 4:11</scripRef>; and that
He is self-sufficient and is not dependent on His creatures in any way,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Job.22.2" parsed="|Job|22|2|0|0" passage="Job 22:2">Job 22:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Job.22.3" parsed="|Job|22|3|0|0" passage="Job 22:3">3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.25" parsed="|Acts|17|25|0|0" passage="Acts 17:25">Acts 17:25</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p7" shownumber="no">3. CREATION IS A TEMPORAL ACT OF GOD. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p8" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p8.1">
The teaching of Scripture on this point.</span>
The Bible
begins with the very simple
statement, "In the beginning God created the heavens and the
earth," <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef>. As
addressed to all classes of people, it employs the ordinary language of
daily life, and not
the technical
language of philosophy. The Hebrew term<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p8.3">
bereshith</span>
(lit. "in beginning") is
itself indefinite, and naturally gives rise to the question, In the
beginning of what? It
would seem best to take the expression in the absolute sense as an
indication of the
beginning of all temporal things and even of time itself; but Keil is of
the opinion that it
refers to the beginning of the work of creation. Technically speaking,
it is not correct to
assume that time was already in existence when God created the world, and
that He at
some point in that existing time, called "the beginning"
brought forth the universe.
Time is only one of the forms of all created existence, and therefore
could not exist
before creation. For that reason Augustine thought it would be more
correct to say that
the world was created<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p8.4">
cum tempore</span>
(with time) than
to assert that it was created<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p8.5">
in tempore</span>
(in time). The great significance of the opening statement of the Bible
lies in its
teaching that the world had a beginning. Scripture speaks of this
beginning also in other
places, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.4" parsed="|Matt|19|4|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:4">Matt. 19:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.8" parsed="|Matt|19|8|0|0" passage="Matt 19:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10" parsed="|Mark|10|0|0|0" passage="Mark 10">Mark 10</scripRef>;<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Mark.6" parsed="|Mark|6|0|0|0" passage="Mark 6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:John.1.1" parsed="|John|1|1|0|0" passage="John 1:1">John 1:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:John.1.2" parsed="|John|1|2|0|0" passage="John 1:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.10" parsed="|Heb|1|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:10">Heb. 1:10</scripRef>. That the world had a beginning is
also clearly implied in such passages as <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.2" parsed="|Ps|90|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:2">Ps. 90:2</scripRef>, "Before the
mountains were brought
forth, or ever thou hadst formed the earth and the world, even from
everlasting to
everlasting thou art God"; and <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.25" parsed="|Ps|102|25|0|0" passage="Ps. 102:25">Ps. 102:25</scripRef>, "Of old didst thou
lay the foundation of the
earth; and the heavens are the work of thy hands."</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p9" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p9.1">
Difficulties which burden this doctrine.</span>
Prior to the
beginning mentioned in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef>, we must postulate a beginningless eternity, during which God only
existed. How must
we fill up these blank ages in the eternal life of God? What did God do
before the
creation of the world? It is so far from possible to think of Him as a<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p9.3">
Deus otiosus</span>
(a God
who is not active), that He is usually conceived of as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p9.4">
actus purus</span>
(pure action). He is
represented in Scripture as always working, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:John.5.17" parsed="|John|5|17|0|0" passage="John 5:17">John 5:17</scripRef>. Can we then say
that He passed
from a state of inactivity to one of action? Moreover, how is the
transition from a non-
creative to a creative state to be reconciled with His immutability? And
if He had the
eternal purpose to create, why did He not carry it out at once? Why did
He allow a
whole eternity to elapse before His plan was put into execution?
Moreover, why did He
select that particular moment for His creative work?</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p10" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p10.1">
Suggested solutions of the problem.</span> (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p10.2">
The theory of
eternal creation.</span>
According to
some, such as Origen, Scotus Erigina, Rothe, Dorner, and Pfleiderer,
God has been
creating from all eternity, so that the world, though a creature and
dependent, is yet just
as eternal as God Himself. This has been argued from the omnipotence,
the
timelessness, the immutability, and the love of God; but neither one of
these necessarily
imply or involve it. This theory is not only contradicted by Scripture,
but is also
contrary to reason, for (a) creation from eternity is a contradiction in
terms; and (b) the
idea of eternal creation, as applied to the present world, which is
subject to the law of time, is based on an identification of time and eternity,
while these two are essentially
different. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p10.3">
The theory of the subjectivity of time and eternity.</span>
Some
speculative
philosophers, such as Spinoza, Hegel, and Green, claim that the
distinction of time and
eternity is purely subjective and due to our finite position. Hence they
would have us
rise to a higher point of vantage and consider things<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p10.4">
sub specie aeternitatis</span>
(from the point of view of eternity). What exists for our consciousness
as a time development,
exists for the divine consciousness only as an eternally complete whole.
But this theory
is contradicted by Scripture just as much as the preceding one, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen.
1:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.2" parsed="|Ps|90|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:2">Ps. 90:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.25" parsed="|Ps|102|25|0|0" passage="Ps 102:25">102:25</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:John.1.3" parsed="|John|1|3|0|0" passage="John 1:3">John 1:3</scripRef>. Moreover, it changes objective realities into subjective forms
of consciousness,
and reduces all history to an illusion. After all, time-development is a
reality; there is a
succession in our conscious life and in the life of nature round about
us. The things that
happened yesterday are not the things that are happening today.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.iii-p10.9" n="61" place="foot">Cf. Orr,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p10.10"> Christian View of God and the World</span>, p. 130.</note></p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p11" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p11.1">Direction in which the solution should be sought.</span>
In connection
with the problem
under consideration, Dr. Orr correctly says, "The solution must lie
in getting a proper
idea of the relation of eternity to time." He adds that, as far as
he can see, this has not yet been satisfactorily accomplished. A great deal of
the difficulty encountered here is
undoubtedly due to the fact that we think of eternity too much as an
indefinite
extension of time, as, for instance, when we speak of the ages of
comparative inaction in
God before the creation of the world. God's eternity is no indefinitely
extended time,
but something essentially different, of which we can form no conception.
His is a
timeless existence, an eternal presence. The hoary past and the most
distant future are
both present to Him. He acts in all His works, and therefore also in
creation, as the
Eternal One, and we have no right to draw creation<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p11.2">
as an act of God</span>
into the temporal
sphere. In a certain sense this can be called an eternal act, but only
in the sense in which
all the acts of God are eternal. They are all<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p11.3">
as acts of God</span>, works that are done in eternity.
However, it is not eternal in the same sense as the generation of the
Son, for this is an
immanent act of God in the absolute sense of the word, while creation
results in a
temporal existence and thus terminates in time.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.iii-p11.4" n="62" place="foot">Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p11.5"> Geref. Dogm.</span> II, p. 452.</note>
Theologians generally distinguish
between active and passive creation, the former denoting creation as an
act of God, and
the latter, its result, the world's being created. The former is not,
but the latter is, marked by temporal succession, and this temporal succession
reflects the order
determined in the decree of God. As to the objection that a creation in
time implies a
change in God,
Wollebius remarks that "creation is not the Creator's but the creature's
passage from potentiality to actuality."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.iii-p11.6" n="63" place="foot">Quoted by Warfield,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p11.7"> Calvin and Calvinism</span>, p. 294.</note></p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p12" shownumber="no">4. CREATION AS AN ACT BY WHICH SOMETHING IS BROUGHT FORTH OUT OF NOTHING. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p13" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p13.1"> The doctrine of creation is absolutely unique.</span>
There has been
a great deal of
speculation about the origin of the world, and several theories have
been proposed.
Some declared the world to be eternal, while others saw in it the
product of an
antagonistic spirit (Gnostics). Some maintained that it was made out of
pre-existing
matter which God worked up into form (Plato); others held that it
originated by
emanation out of the divine substance (Syrian Gnostics, Swedenborg); and
still others
regarded it as the phenomenal appearance of the Absolute, the hidden
ground of all things (Pantheism). In opposition to all these vain speculations of men
the doctrine of
Scripture stands out in grand sublimity: "In the beginning God<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p13.2">
created</span>
the heavens and
the earth."</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p14" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.1">
Scriptural terms for "to create."</span>
In the
narrative of creation, as was pointed out in
the preceding, three verbs are used, namely,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.2">
bara</span>', '<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.3">
asah</span>, and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.4">
yatsar</span>, and they are used
interchangeably in Scripture, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.27" parsed="|Gen|1|27|0|0" passage="Gen 1:27">27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen 2:7">2:7</scripRef>. The first word is the
most important. Its
original meaning
is<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.8">
to split, to cut, to divide;</span>
but in addition
to this it also means<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.9">
to fashion,
to create</span>, and in a more derivative sense,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.10">
to produce, to generate</span>, and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.11">
to regenerate.</span>
The word itself does not convey the idea of bringing forth something out of
nothing, for it is
even used of
works of providence, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.7" parsed="|Isa|45|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 45:7">Isa. 45:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.13" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.22" parsed="|Jer|31|22|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:22">Jer. 31:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.14" osisRef="Bible:Amos.4.13" parsed="|Amos|4|13|0|0" passage="Amos 4:13">Amos 4:13</scripRef>. Yet it has a distinctive
character: it is always used of divine and never of human production;
and it never has
an accusative of material, and for that very reason serves to stress the
greatness of the
work of God. The word '<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.15">
asah</span>
is more general, meaning<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.16">
to do</span>
or<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.17">
to make</span>, and is therefore
used in the
general sense of<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.18">
doing, making, manufacturing</span>, or<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.19">
fashioning.</span>
The word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.20">
yatsar </span>
has, more
distinctively, the meaning of<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.21">
fashioning out of pre-existent materials</span>, and is
therefore used of the potter's fashioning vessels out of clay. The New
Testament words
are<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.22">
ktizein</span>, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.23" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.19" parsed="|Mark|13|19|0|0" passage="Mark 13:19">Mark 13:19</scripRef>,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.24">
poiein</span>, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.25" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.4" parsed="|Matt|19|4|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:4">Matt. 19:4</scripRef>; <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.26">themelioun</span>, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.27" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.10" parsed="|Heb|1|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:10">Heb. 1:10</scripRef>,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.28">katartizein</span>, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.29" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.22" parsed="|Rom|9|22|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:22">Rom. 9:22</scripRef>,
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.30">kataskeuazein</span>, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.31" osisRef="Bible:Heb.3.4" parsed="|Heb|3|4|0|0" passage="Heb. 3:4">Heb. 3:4</scripRef>, and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p14.32">
plassein</span>, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p14.33" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.20" parsed="|Rom|9|20|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:20">Rom. 9:20</scripRef>. None of these words in
themselves
express the idea of creation out of nothing.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p15" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.1">
Meaning of the term "creation out of
nothing."</span>
The expression "to create or bring
forth out of nothing" is not found in Scripture. It is derived from
one of the Apocrypha,
namely, II. Macc. 7:28. The expression<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.2">
ex nihilo</span>
has been both
misinterpreted and
criticized. Some even considered the word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.3">
nihilum</span>
(nothing) as the designation of a
certain matter out of which the world was created, a matter without
qualities and
without form. But this is too puerile to be worthy of serious
consideration. Others took
the expression "to create out of nothing" to mean that the
world came into being
without a cause, and proceeded to criticize it as conflicting with
what is generally
regarded as an axiomatic truth,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.4">
ex nihilo nihil fit</span>
(out of
nothing comes nothing). But this
criticism is entirely unwarranted. To say that God created the world out
of nothing is
not equivalent to saying that the world came into being without a cause.
God Himself
or, more specifically, the will of God is the cause of the world.
Martensen expresses
himself in these words: "The nothing out of which God creates the
world are the eternal
possibilities of His will, which are the sources of all the actualities
of the world."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.5" n="64" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.6">Christian Dogmatics</span>., p. 116.</note>
If the
Latin phrase "<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.7">ex nihilo nihil fit</span>" be
taken to mean that no effect can be without a cause, its truth may be admitted, but it cannot be regarded as a valid
objection against the
doctrine of creation out of nothing. But if it be understood to express
the idea that
nothing can originate, except out of previously existing material, it
certainly cannot be
regarded as a self-evident truth. Then it is rather a purely arbitrary
assumption which,
as Shedd points out, does not even hold true of man's thoughts and
volitions, which are
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.8">ex nihilo.</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.9" n="65" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p15.10">Dogm. Theol.</span> I, p. 467</note>
But even if the phrase does
express a truth of common experience as far as
human works are concerned, this does not-yet prove its truth with respect
to the work
of the almighty power of God. However, in view of the fact that the
expression
"creation out of nothing" is liable to misunderstanding, and
has often been
misunderstood, it is preferable to speak of creation without the use of
pre-existing  material.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p16" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p16.1">
Scriptural basis for the doctrine of creation out of
nothing.</span>
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef> records the
beginning of the work of creation, and it certainly does not represent
God as bringing
the world forth out of pre-existent material. It was creation out of
nothing, creation in
the strict sense of the word, and therefore the only part of the work
recorded in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 1">Gen. 1</scripRef>
to which Calvin would apply the term. But even in the remaining part of
the chapter
God is represented as calling forth all things by the word of His power,
by a simple
divine fiat. The same truth is taught in such passages as <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.6" parsed="|Ps|33|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:6">Ps. 33:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.9" parsed="|Ps|33|9|0|0" passage="Ps 33:9">9</scripRef> and
148:5. The
strongest passage is <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.3" parsed="|Heb|11|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:3">Heb. 11:3</scripRef>, "By faith we understand that the
worlds have been
framed by the word of God, so that what is seen hath not been made out
of things
which appear." Creation is here represented as a fact which we
apprehend only by faith.
By faith we understand (perceive, not comprehend) that the world was
framed or
fashioned by the word of God, that is, the word of God's power, the
divine fiat, so that
the things which are seen, the visible things of this world, were not
made out of things
which do appear, which are visible, and which are at least occasionally
seen. According
to this passage the world certainly was not made out of
anything that is palpable to the
senses. Another passage that may be quoted in this connection is <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.7" parsed="|Rom|4|7|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:7">Rom.
4:7</scripRef>, which
speaks of God, "who quickeneth the dead, and calleth those things
which be not as
though they were" (Moffatt: "who makes the dead alive and
calls into being what does
not exist"). The apostle, it is true, does not speak of the
creation of the world in this
connection, but of the hope of Abraham that he would have a son.
However, the
description here given of God is general and is therefore also of a
general application. It
belongs to the very nature of God that He is able to call into being
what does not exist,
and does so call it into being. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p17" shownumber="no">5. CREATION GIVES THE WORLD A DISTINCT, YET ALWAYS DEPENDENT EXISTENCE.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p18" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p18.1">
The world has a distinct existence.</span>
This means that
the world is not God nor any part
of God, but something absolutely distinct from God; and that it differs
from God, not
merely in degree, but in its essential properties. The doctrine of
creation implies that,
while God is self-existent and self-sufficient, infinite and eternal,
the world is
dependent, finite, and temporal. The one can never change into the
other. This doctrine
is an absolute barrier against the ancient idea of emanation, as well as
against all
pantheistic theories. The universe is not the existence-form of God nor
the phenomenal
appearance of the Absolute; and God is not simply the life, or soul, or
inner law of the
world, but enjoys His own eternally complete life above the world, in
absolute
independence of it. He is the transcendent God, glorious in holiness,
fearful in praises,
doing wonders. This doctrine is supported by passages of Scripture which
(1) testify to
the distinct existence of the world, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.5" parsed="|Isa|42|5|0|0" passage="Isa. 42:5">Isa. 42:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.24" parsed="|Acts|17|24|0|0" passage="Acts 17:24">Acts 17:24</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2" parsed="|Acts|2|0|0|0" passage="Acts 2">2</scripRef>) speak of
the immutability of
God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.27" parsed="|Ps|102|27|0|0" passage="Ps. 102:27">Ps. 102:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.6" parsed="|Mal|3|6|0|0" passage="Mal. 3:6">Mal. 3:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.17" parsed="|Jas|1|17|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:17">Jas. 1:17</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.8" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3" parsed="|Jas|3|0|0|0" passage="Jas 3">3</scripRef>) draw a comparison between God
and the creature,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.2" parsed="|Ps|90|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:2">Ps. 90:2</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.25-Ps.102.27" parsed="|Ps|102|25|102|27" passage="Ps 102:25-27">102:25-27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.15-Ps.103.17" parsed="|Ps|103|15|103|17" passage="Ps 103:15-17">103:15-17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.2.21" parsed="|Isa|2|21|0|0" passage="Isa. 2:21">Isa. 2:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.13" osisRef="Bible:Isa.22.17" parsed="|Isa|22|17|0|0" passage="Isa 22:17">22:17</scripRef>, etc.; and (4) speak of the world as
lying in sin or sinful, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.18-Rom.1.32" parsed="|Rom|1|18|1|32" passage="Rom. 1:18-32">Rom. 1:18-32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p18.15" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.15-1John.2.17" parsed="|1John|2|15|2|17" passage="I John 2:15-17">I John 2:15-17</scripRef>, etc. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p19" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.1">
The world is always dependent on God.</span>
While God gave
the world an existence
distinct from His own, He did not withdraw from the world after its
creation, but
remained in the most intimate connection with it. The universe is not
like a clock which
was wound up by God and is now allowed to run off without any further
divine
intervention. This deistic conception of creation is neither biblical
nor scientific. God is
not only the transcendent God, infinitely exalted above all His
creatures; He is also the
immanent God, who is present in every part of His creation, and whose
Spirit is
operative in all the world. He is<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.2">
essentially</span>
and not merely<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.3">
per potentiam</span>, present in all
His creatures, but He is not present in every one of them in the same
manner. His
immanence should not be interpreted as boundless extension throughout all
the spaces
of the universe, nor as a partitive presence, so that He is partly here
and partly there.
God is Spirit, and just because He is Spirit He is everywhere present<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.4">
as a whole.</span>
He is
said to fill heaven and earth, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.7-Ps.139.10" parsed="|Ps|139|7|139|10" passage="Ps. 139:7-10">Ps. 139:7-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.6" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.24" parsed="|Jer|23|24|0|0" passage="Jer. 23:24">Jer. 23:24</scripRef>, to constitute
the sphere in which we
live and move and have our being, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.28" parsed="|Acts|17|28|0|0" passage="Acts 17:28">Acts 17:28</scripRef>, to renew the face of the
earth by His
Spirit, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.30" parsed="|Ps|104|30|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:30">Ps. 104:30</scripRef>, to dwell in those that are of a broken heart, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.11" parsed="|Ps|51|11|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:11">Ps. 51:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.10" osisRef="Bible:Isa.57.15" parsed="|Isa|57|15|0|0" passage="Isa. 57:15">Isa. 57:15</scripRef>,
and in
the Church as His temple, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.3.16" parsed="|1Cor|3|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 3:16">I Cor. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.19" parsed="|1Cor|6|19|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:19">6:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.22" parsed="|Eph|2|22|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:22">Eph. 2:22</scripRef>. Both
transcendence and
immanence find expression in a single passage of Scripture, namely, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p19.14" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.6" parsed="|Eph|4|6|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:6">Eph. 4:6</scripRef>, where the
apostle says
that we have "one God and Father of all, who is<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.15">
over all</span>, and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.16">
through all</span>,
and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.17">
in all.</span>
" The doctrine of divine immanence has been stretched to the point
of
Pantheism in a great deal of modern theology. The world, and especially
man, was
regarded as the phenomenal manifestation of God. At present there is a
strong reaction
to this position in the so-called "theology of crisis." It is
sometimes thought that this
theology, with its emphasis on the "infinite qualitative
difference" between time and
eternity, on God as the "wholly Other" and the hidden God, and
on the distance
between God and man, naturally rules out the immanence of God. Brunner
gives us the
assurance, however, that this is not so. Says he,
"Much nonsense has been talked about
the 'Barthian theology' having perception only for the transcendence of
God, not for His
immanence. As if we too were not aware of the fact that God the Creator
upholds all
things by His power, that He has set the stamp of His divinity on the
world and created
man to be His own image."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.18" n="66" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.19">The World and the World,</span> p. 7</note> And Barth says, "Dead were God Himself if
He moved
His world only from the outside, if He were a 'thing in Himself' and not
the One in all,
the Creator of all things visible and invisible, the beginning and the
ending."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.20" n="67" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p19.21">The World of God and the World of Man</span>, p. 291</note>
These
men oppose the modern pantheistic conception of the divine immanence, and
also the
idea that, in virtue of this immanence, the world is a luminous
revelation of God.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p20" shownumber="no">6. THE FINAL END OF GOD IN CREATION. The question
of the final end of God in the
work of creation has frequently been debated. In the course of history
the question has
received especially a twofold answer.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p21" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p21.1"> The happiness of man or of humanity.</span>
Some of the
earlier philosophers, such as Plato,
Philo, and Seneca, asserted that the goodness of God prompted Him to
create the world.
He desired to communicate Himself to His creatures; their happiness was
the end He had in view. Though some Christian theologians chimed in with this
idea, it became
prominent especially through the Humanism of the Reformation period and
the
Rationalism of the eighteenth century. This theory was often presented
in a very
superficial way. The best form in which it is stated is to the effect
that God could not
make Himself the end of creation, because He is sufficient unto Himself
and could need
nothing. And if He could not make Himself the end, then this can be
found only in the
creature, especially in man, and ultimately in his supreme happiness.
The teleological
view by which the welfare or happiness of man or humanity is made the
final end of
creation, was characteristic of the thinking of such influential
men as Kant,
Schleiermacher, and Ritschl, though they did not all present it in the
same way. But this
theory does not satisfy for several reasons: (1) Though God undoubtedly
reveals His
goodness in creation, it is not correct to say that His goodness or love
could not express
itself, if there were no world. The personal relations within the triune
God supplied all that was necessary for a full and eternal life of love. (2) It would
seem to be perfectly
self-evident that God does not exist for the sake of man, but man for
the sake of God.
God only is Creator and the supreme Good, while man is but a creature,
who for that
very reason cannot be the end of creation. The temporal finds its end in
the eternal, the
human in the divine, and not<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p21.2">
vice versa.</span>
(3) The theory
does not fit the facts. It is
impossible to subordinate all that is found in creation to this end, and
to explain all in
relation to human happiness. This is perfectly evident from a
consideration of all the
sufferings that are found in the world.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p22" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p22.1">
The declarative glory of God.</span>
The Church of
Jesus Christ found the true end of
creation, not in anything outside of God, but in God Himself, more
particularly in the
external manifestation of His inherent excellency. This does not mean
that God's
receiving glory from others is the final end. The receiving of glory
through the praises of
His moral creatures, is an end included in the supreme end, but is not
itself that end.
God did not create first of all to receive glory, but to make His glory
extant and
manifest. The glorious perfections of God are manifested in His entire
creation; and this manifestation is not intended as an empty show, a mere
exhibition to be admired by the
creatures, but also aims at promoting their welfare and perfect
happiness. Moreover, it
seeks to attune their hearts to the praises of the Creator, and to
elicit from their souls the
expression of their gratefulness and love and adoration. The supreme end
of God in
creation, the manifestation of His glory, therefore, includes, as
subordinate ends, the
happiness and salvation of His creatures, and the reception of praise
from grateful and
adoring hearts. This doctrine is supported by the following
considerations: (1) It is
based on the
testimony of Scripture, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.7" parsed="|Isa|43|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 43:7">Isa. 43:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.60.21" parsed="|Isa|60|21|0|0" passage="Isa 60:21">60:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.61.3" parsed="|Isa|61|3|0|0" passage="Isa 61:3">61:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.21" parsed="|Ezek|36|21|0|0" passage="Ezek. 36:21">Ezek. 36:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.22" parsed="|Ezek|36|22|0|0" passage="Ezek 36:22">22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.39.7" parsed="|Ezek|39|7|0|0" passage="Ezek 39:7">39:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.14" parsed="|Luke|2|14|0|0" passage="Luke 2:14">Luke
2:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.17" parsed="|Rom|9|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:17">Rom. 9:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.36" parsed="|Rom|11|36|0|0" passage="Rom 11:36">11:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.28" parsed="|1Cor|15|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:28">I Cor. 15:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.12" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.5" parsed="|Eph|1|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:5">Eph. 1:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.6" parsed="|Eph|1|6|0|0" passage="Eph 1:6">6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.14" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.9" parsed="|Eph|1|9|0|0" passage="Eph 1:9">9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.15" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.12" parsed="|Eph|1|12|0|0" passage="Eph 1:12">12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.16" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.14" parsed="|Eph|1|14|0|0" passage="Eph 1:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.17" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.9" parsed="|Eph|3|9|0|0" passage="Eph 3:9">3:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.18" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.10" parsed="|Eph|3|10|0|0" passage="Eph 3:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.19" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>.
(2) The infinite God
would hardly choose any but the highest end in creation, and this end
could only be
found in Himself. If whole nations, as compared with Him, are but as a
drop in a bucket
and as the small dust of the balance, then, surely, His declarative
glory is intrinsically of
far greater value than the good of His creatures, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.20" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.15" parsed="|Isa|40|15|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:15">Isa. 40:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.21" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.16" parsed="|Isa|40|16|0|0" passage="Isa 40:16">16</scripRef>. (3) The
glory of God is the
only end that is consistent with His independence and sovereignty.
Everyone is
dependent on whomsoever or whatsoever he makes his ultimate end. If God
chooses
anything in the creature as His final end, this would make Him dependent
on the
creature to that extent. (4) No other end would be sufficiently
comprehensive to be the
true end of all God's ways and works in creation. It has the advantage
of comprising, in
subordination, several other ends. (5) It is the only end that is
actually and perfectly
attained in the universe. We cannot imagine that a wise and omnipotent
God would choose an end destined to fail wholly or in part, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iii-p22.22" osisRef="Bible:Job.23.13" parsed="|Job|23|13|0|0" passage="Job 23:13">Job 23:13</scripRef>. Yet many of
His creatures
never attain to perfect happiness.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p23" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p23.1">
Objections to the doctrine that the glory of God is the
end of creation.</span>
The following are the most important of these: (1)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p23.2">
It makes the scheme of the universe a selfish scheme.</span>
But we
should distinguish between selfishness and reasonable self-regard or self-love.
The
former is an undue or exclusive care for one's own comfort or pleasure,
regardless of
the happiness or rights of others; the latter is a due care for one's
own happiness and
well-being, which is perfectly compatible with justice, generosity, and
benevolence
towards others. In seeking self-expression for the glory of His name,
God did not
disregard the well-being, the highest good of others, but promoted it.
Moreover, this objection draws the infinite God down to the level of finite and
even sinful man and
judges Him by human standards, which is entirely unwarranted. God has no
equal, and
no one can claim any right as over against Him. In making His
declarative glory the end
of creation, He has chosen the highest end; but when man makes himself
the end of all
his works, he is not choosing the highest end. He would rise to a higher
level, if he
chose the welfare of humanity and the glory of God as the end of his
life. Finally, this
objection is made primarily in view of the fact that the world is full
of suffering, and
that some of God's rational creatures are doomed to eternal destruction.
But this is not
due to the creative work of God, but to the sin of man, which thwarted
the work of God
in creation. The fact that man suffers the consequences of sin and
insurrection does not
warrant anyone in accusing God of selfishness. One might as well accuse
the
government of selfishness for upholding its dignity and the majesty of
the law against all wilful transgressors. (2)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p23.3">
It is contrary to God's self-sufficiency and
independence.</span>
By
seeking His honour in this way God shows that He needs the creature. The
world is
created to glorify God, that is, to add to His glory. Evidently, then,
His perfection is
wanting in some respects; the work of creation satisfies a want and
contributes to the
divine perfection. But this representation is not correct. The fact that
God created the
world for His own glory does not mean that He needed the world. It does
not hold
universally among men, that the work which they do not perform for
others, is
necessary to supply a want. This may hold in the case of the common
laborer, who is
working for his daily bread, but is scarcely true of the artist, who
follows the
spontaneous impulse of his genius. In the same way there is a good
pleasure in God,
exalted far above want and compulsion, which artistically embodies His
thoughts in
creation and finds delight in them. Moreover, it is not true that, when
God makes His
declarative glory the final end of creation, He aims primarily at
receiving something. The supreme end which He had in view, was not to receive
glory, but to manifest His
inherent glory in the works of His hands. It is true that in doing this,
He would also
cause the heavens to declare His glory, and the firmament to show His
handiwork, the
birds of the air and the beasts of the field to magnify Him, and the
children of men to
sing His praises. But by glorifying the Creator the creatures add
nothing to the
perfection of His being, but only acknowledge His greatness and ascribe
to Him the glory which is due unto Him.</p>
<h4 id="iii.ii.iii-p23.4">D. DIVERGENT THEORIES RESPECTING THE ORIGIN OF THE WORLD</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.iii-p24" shownumber="no">The Biblical doctrine is not the only view respecting the
origin of the world. Three
alternative theories, which were suggested, deserve brief consideration
at this point.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p25" shownumber="no">1. THE DUALISTIC THEORY. Dualism is not always presented in the same form, but
in
its most usual form posits two self-existent principles, God and matter,
which are
distinct from and co-eternal with each other. Original matter, however,
is regarded as
but a negative and imperfect substance (sometimes regarded as evil),
which is
subordinate to God and is made the instrument of His will (Plato,
Aristotle, the
Gnostics, the Manichaeans). According to this theory God is not the
creator, but only the
framer and artificer of the world. This view is objectionable for
several reasons. (a) It is
wrong in its fundamental idea
that there must have been some substance out of which
the world was created, since<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p25.1">
ex nihilo nihil fit.</span>
This maxim
is true only as an expression
of the idea that no event takes place without a cause, and is false if
it means to assert
that nothing can ever be made except out of pre-existing material. The
doctrine of
creation does not dispense with a cause, but finds the all-sufficient
cause of the world in
the sovereign will of God. (b) Its representation of matter as eternal
is fundamentally
unsound. If matter is eternal, it must be infinite for it cannot be
infinite in one way
(duration) and finite in other respects. But it is impossible that two
infinites or absolutes
should exist side by side. The absolute and the relative may exist
simultaneously, but
there can be only one absolute and self-existent being. (c) It is
unphilosophical to
postulate two eternal substances, when one self-existent cause is
perfectly adequate to
account for all the facts. For that reason philosophy does not rest
satisfied with a
dualistic explanation of the world, but seeks to give a monistic
interpretation of the
universe. (d) If the theory assumes — as it does in some of its forms —
the existence of
an eternal principle of evil, there is absolutely no guarantee that good
will triumph over
evil in the world. It would seem that what is eternally necessary is
bound to maintain
itself and can never go down.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p26" shownumber="no">2. THE EMANATION THEORY IN VARIOUS FORMS.
This theory is to the effect that the
world is a necessary emanation out of the divine being. According to it
God and the
world are essentially one, the latter being the phenomenal manifestation
of the former.
The idea of emanation is characteristic of all pantheistic theories,
though it is not always
represented in the same way. Here, again, we may register several
objections. (a) This view of the origin of the world virtually denies the
infinity and transcendence of God
by applying to Him a principle of evolution, of growth and progress,
which
characterizes only the finite and imperfect; and by identifying Him and
the world. All
visible objects thus become but fleeting modifications of a
self-existent, unconscious,
and impersonal essence, which may be called God, Nature, or the
Absolute. (b) It robs
God of His sovereignty by denuding Him of His power of
self-determination in relation
to the world. He is reduced to the hidden ground from which the creatures
necessarily
emanate, and which determines their movement by an inflexible
necessity of nature. At
the same time it deprives all rational creatures of their relative
independence, of their
freedom, and of their moral character. (c) It also compromises the
holiness of God in a
very serious manner. It makes God responsible for all that happens in
the world, for the
evil as well as for the good. This is, of course, a very serious
consequence of the theory,
from which Pantheists have never been able to escape.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iii-p27" shownumber="no">3. THE THEORY OF EVOLUTION. The theory of
evolution is sometimes spoken of as if it
could be a substitute for the doctrine of creation. But this is clearly
a mistake. It certainly
cannot be a substitute for creation in the sense of absolute
origination, since it
presupposes something that evolves, and this must in the last resort be
either eternal or
created, so that, after all, the evolutionist must choose between the
theory of the eternity
of matter and the doctrine of creation. At best, it might conceivably
serve as a substitute
for what is called secondary creation, by which the substance already in
existence is given a definite form. (a) Some evolutionists, as, for instance,
Haeckel, believe in the
eternity of matter, and ascribe the origin of life to spontaneous
generation. But belief in
the eternity of matter is not only decidedly un-Christian and even
atheistic; it is also
generally discredited. The idea that matter, with force as its universal
and inseparable
property, is quite sufficient for the explanation of the world, finds
little favor to-day in
scientific circles. It is felt that a material universe, composed of
finite parts (atoms,
electrons, and so on) cannot itself be infinite; and that that which is
subject to constant
change cannot be eternal. Moreover, it has become increasingly clear
that blind matter
and force or energy cannot account for life and personality, for
intelligence and free will.
And the idea of spontaneous generation is a pure hypothesis, not only
unverified, but  practically
exploded. The general law of nature seems to be "<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p27.1">
omne vivum e vivo</span>
" or "<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p27.2">
ex vivo.</span>" (b) Other evolutionists advocate what they call theistic
evolution. This postulates
the existence of God back of the universe, who works in it, as a rule
according to the
unalterable laws of nature and by physical forces only, but in some
cases by direct
miraculous intervention, as, for instance, in the case of the absolute
beginning, the
beginning of life, and the beginning of rational and moral existence.
This has often been
called derisively a "stop-gap" theory. It is really a child of
embarrassment, which calls
God in at periodic intervals to help nature over the chasms that yawn at
her feet. It is
neither the Biblical doctrine of creation, nor a consistent theory of
evolution, for
evolution is
defined as "a series of gradual progressive changes<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iii-p27.3">
effected by means of resident forces</span>
" (Le Conte). In fact, theistic
evolution is a contradiction in terms. It is just
as destructive of faith in the Biblical doctrine of creation as
naturalistic evolution is; and
by calling in the creative activity of God time and again it also
nullifies the evolutionary
hypothesis. Besides these two views we may also mention Bergson's
Creative evolution,
and C. Lloyd Morgan's Emergent evolution. The former is a vitalistic
pantheist, whose
theory involves the denial of the personality of God; and the latter in
the end comes to
the conclusion that he cannot explain his so-called emergents without
positing some
ultimate factor
which might be called "God."</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.ii.iv" next="iii.ii.v" prev="iii.ii.iii" title="IV. Creation of the Spiritual World">
<h2 id="iii.ii.iv-p0.1">IV. Creation of the Spiritual World </h2>

<h4 id="iii.ii.iv-p0.2">A. THE DOCTRINE OF THE ANGELS IN HISTORY</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.iv-p1" shownumber="no">There are clear evidences of belief in the existence of
angels from the very beginning
of the Christian era. Some of them were regarded as good, and others as
evil. The
former were held in high esteem as personal beings of a lofty order,
endowed with
moral freedom, engaged in the joyful service of God, and employed by God
to minister
to the welfare of men. According to some of the early Church Fathers
they had fine
ethereal bodies. The general conviction was that all angels were created
good, but that
some abused their freedom and fell away from God. Satan, who was
originally an angel
of eminent rank, was regarded as their head. The cause of his fall was
found in pride
and sinful ambition, while the fall of his subordinates was ascribed to
their lusting after
the daughters of men. This view was based on what was then the common
interpretation of <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.2" parsed="|Gen|6|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:2">Gen. 6:2</scripRef>. Alongside of the general idea that the good
angels ministered
to the needs and welfare of believers, the specific notion of guardian
angels for
individual churches and individual men was cherished by some. Calamities
of various
kinds, such as sicknesses, accidents, and losses, were frequently
ascribed to the baneful
influence of evil spirits. The idea of a hierarchy of angels
already made its appearance
(Clement of Alexandria), but it was not considered proper to worship any
of the angels.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p2" shownumber="no">As time went on the angels continued to be regarded as
blessed spirits, superior to
men in knowledge, and free from the encumbrance of gross material
bodies. While
some still ascribed to them fine ethereal bodies, there was an ever
increasing uncertainty
as to whether they had any bodies at all. They who still clung to the
idea that they were
corporeal did this, so it seems, in the interest of the truth that they
were subject to
spatial limitations. Dionysius the Areopagite divided the angels into
three classes: the
first class consisting of Thrones, Cherubim, and Seraphim; the second,
of Mights,
Dominions, and Powers; and the third, of Principalities, Archangels, and
Angels. The
first class is represented as enjoying the closest communion with God;
the second, as being enlightened by the first; and the third, as being
enlightened by the second. This
classification was adopted by several later writers. Augustine stressed
the fact that the
good angels were rewarded for their obedience by the gift of
perseverance, which
carried with it the assurance that they would never fall. Pride was
still regarded as the
cause of Satan's fall, but the idea that the rest of the angels fell as
the result of their
lusting after the daughters of men, though still held by some, was
gradually
disappearing under the influence of a better exegesis of <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.2" parsed="|Gen|6|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:2">Gen. 6:2</scripRef>.
A beneficent influence
was ascribed to the unfallen angels, while the fallen angels were
regarded as corrupting
the hearts of men, as stimulating to heresy. and as engendering diseases
and calamities.
The polytheistic tendencies of many of the converts to Christianity
fostered an
inclination to worship the angels. Such worship was formally condemned
by a council which convened at Laodicea in the fourth century.
</p>


<p id="iii.ii.iv-p3" shownumber="no">During the Middle Ages there were still a few who were
inclined to assume that the
angels have ethereal bodies, but the prevailing opinion was that they
were incorporeal.
The angelic appearances were explained by assuming that in such cases
angels adopted
temporal bodily forms for revelational purposes. Several points were in
debate among the Scholastics. As to the time of the creation of the angels the
prevailing opinion was
that they were created at the same time as the material universe. While
some held that
the angels were created in the state of grace, the more common opinion
was that they
were created in a state of natural perfection only. There was little
difference of opinion
respecting the question, whether angels can be said to be in a place. The
common
answer to this question was affirmative, though it was pointed out that
their presence in
space is not circumscriptive but definitive, since only bodies can be in
space
circumscriptively. While all the Scholastics agreed that the knowledge
of the angels is
limited, the Thomists and Scotists differed considerably respecting the
nature of this
knowledge. It was admitted by all that the angels received infused
knowledge at the
time of their creation, but Thomas Aquinas denied, while
Duns Scotus affirmed, that
they could acquire new knowledge through their own intellectual
activity. The former
held that the knowledge of the angels is purely intuitive, but the
latter asserted that it
may also be discursive. The idea of guardian angels found considerable
favor during
the Middle Ages.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p4" shownumber="no">The period of the Reformation brought nothing new
respecting the doctrine of the
angels. Both Luther and Calvin had a vivid conception of their ministry,
and
particularly of the presence and power of Satan. The latter stresses the
fact that he is
under divine control, and that, while he is sometimes the instrument of
God, he can
only work within prescribed limits. Protestant theologians generally
regarded the angels as pure spiritual beings, though Zanchius and Grotius still
speak of them as
having ethereal bodies. As to the work of the good angels the general
opinion was that
it is their special task to minister to the heirs of salvation. There
was no general
agreement, however, respecting the existence of guardian angels. Some
favored this
view, others opposed it, and still others refused to commit themselves
on this point. Our
Belgic Confession says in Article XII, which deals with creation:
"He also created the
angels good, to be His messengers and to serve His elect: some of whom
are fallen from
that excellency, in which God created them, into everlasting perdition;
and the others
have, by the grace of God, remained steadfast, and continued in their
primitive state.
The devils and evil spirits are so depraved that they are enemies of God
and every good
thing to the utmost of their power, as murderers watching to ruin the
Church and every
member thereof, and by their wicked stratagems to destroy all; and are
therefore, by
their own wickedness, adjudged to eternal damnation, daily expecting their
horrible
torments."</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p5" shownumber="no">Up to the present time Roman Catholics generally regarded
the angels as pure
spirits, while some Protestants, such as Emmons, Ebrard, Kurtz,
Delitzsch, and others,
still ascribe to them some special kind of bodies. But even the great
majority of the latter
take the opposite view. Swedenborg holds that all angels were originally
men and exist
in bodily form. Their position in the angelic world depends on their
life in this world.
Eighteenth century Rationalism boldly denied the existence of angels and
explained
what the Bible teaches about them as a species of accommodation. Some
modern liberal
theologians consider it worthwhile to retain the fundamental idea expressed
in the
doctrine of the angels. They find in it a symbolic representation of the
protecting care
and helpfulness of God.
</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.iv-p5.1">B. THE EXISTENCE OF THE ANGELS</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.iv-p6" shownumber="no">All religions recognize the existence of a spiritual
world. Their mythologies speak of
gods, half-gods, spirits, demons, genii, heroes, and so on. It was
especially among the
Persians that the doctrine of the angels was developed, and many
critical scholars assert
that the Jews derived their angelology from the Persians. But this is an
unproved and, to
say the least, very doubtful theory. It certainly cannot be harmonized
with the Word of
God, in which angels appear from the very beginning. Moreover, some
great scholars,
who made special study of the subject, came to the conclusion that the
Persian
angelology was derived from that current among the Hebrews. The Christian
Church
has always believed in the existence of angels, but in modern liberal
theology this belief
has been discarded, though it still regards the angel-idea as useful,
since it imprints
upon us "the living power of God in the history of redemption, His<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p6.1">
providentia
specialissima</span>
for His people, especially for the
'little ones.'"<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.iv-p6.2" n="68" place="foot">Foster, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p6.3">Christianity in Its Modern Expression,</span> p. 114</note>
Though such men as
Leibnitz and Wolff, Kant and Schleiermacher, admitted the possibility of
the existence of
an angelic world, and some of them even tried to prove this by rational
argumentation, it is quite evident that philosophy can neither prove nor disprove the
existence of
angels. From philosophy, therefore, we turn to Scripture, which makes no
deliberate
attempt to prove the existence of angels, but assumes this throughout,
and in its
historical books repeatedly shows us the angels in action. No one who
bows before the
authority of the Word of God can doubt the existence of angels.
</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.iv-p6.4">C. THE NATURE OF THE ANGELS</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p7" shownumber="no">Under this heading several points call for consideration.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p8" shownumber="no">1. IN DISTINCTION FROM GOD THEY ARE CREATED BEINGS. The creation of the angels has
sometimes been denied, but is clearly taught in Scripture. It is not
certain that those
passages which speak of the creation of the host of heaven (<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.1" parsed="|Gen|2|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:1">Gen. 2:1</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.6" parsed="|Ps|33|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:6">Ps. 33:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.6" parsed="|Neh|9|6|0|0" passage="Neh. 9:6">Neh. 9:6</scripRef>)
refer to the creation of the angels rather than to the creation of the
starry host; but <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.148.2" parsed="|Ps|148|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 148:2">Ps. 148:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.148.5" parsed="|Ps|148|5|0|0" passage="Ps 148:5">5</scripRef>, and
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef> clearly speak of the creation of the angels, (comp. <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.22.19" parsed="|1Kgs|22|19|0|0" passage="I Kings 22:19">I Kings 22:19</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.20" parsed="|Ps|103|20|0|0" passage="Ps. 103:20">Ps. 103:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.21" parsed="|Ps|103|21|0|0" passage="Ps 103:21">21</scripRef>). The
time of their creation cannot be fixed definitely. The opinion of some,
based on <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Job.38.7" parsed="|Job|38|7|0|0" passage="Job 38:7">Job 38:7</scripRef>, that they were created before all other things,
really finds no support
in Scripture. As far as we know, no creative work preceded the creation
of heaven and
earth. The passage in the book of Job (38:7) teaches, indeed, in a
poetic vein that they
were present at the founding of the world just as the stars were, but
not that they
existed before the primary creation of heaven and earth. The idea that
the creation of the
heavens was completed on the first day, and that the creation of the
angels was simply a
part of the day's work, is also an unproved assumption, though the fact
that the
statement in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.2" parsed="|Gen|1|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:2">Gen. 1:2</scripRef> applies to the earth only would seem to favor it.
Possibly the
creation of the heavens was not completed in a single moment any more
than that of the
earth. The only safe statement seems to be that they were created before
the seventh
day. This at
least follows from such passages as <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.1" parsed="|Gen|2|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:1">Gen. 2:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.11" parsed="|Exod|20|11|0|0" passage="Ex. 20:11">Ex. 20:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:Job.38.7" parsed="|Job|38|7|0|0" passage="Job 38:7">Job 38:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.6" parsed="|Neh|9|6|0|0" passage="Neh. 9:6">Neh. 9:6</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p9" shownumber="no">2. THEY ARE SPIRITUAL AND INCORPOREAL BEINGS. This has always been disputed. The
Jews and many of the early Church Fathers ascribed to them airy or fiery
bodies; but the Church of the Middle Ages came to the conclusion that they are
pure spiritual beings.
Yet even after that some Roman Catholic, Arminian, and even Lutheran and
Reformed
theologians ascribed to them a certain corporeity, most subtle and pure.
They regarded
the idea of a purely spiritual and incorporeal nature as metaphysically
inconceivable,
and also as incompatible with the conception of a creature. They also
appealed to the fact that the angels are subject to spatial limitations, move
about from place to place,
and were sometimes seen by men. But all these arguments are more than
counter-
balanced by the explicit statements of Scripture to the effect that the
angels are
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p9.1">pneumata</span>, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.16" parsed="|Matt|8|16|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:16">Matt. 8:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.45" parsed="|Matt|12|45|0|0" passage="Matt 12:45">12:45</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.7.21" parsed="|Luke|7|21|0|0" passage="Luke 7:21">Luke 7:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.8.2" parsed="|Luke|8|2|0|0" passage="Luke 8:2">8:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.11.26" parsed="|Luke|11|26|0|0" passage="Luke 11:26">11:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.12" parsed="|Acts|19|12|0|0" passage="Acts 19:12">Acts 19:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.6.12" parsed="|Eph|6|12|0|0" passage="Eph. 6:12">Eph. 6:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.14" parsed="|Heb|1|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:14">Heb. 1:14</scripRef>. They
have no flesh and bone, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.39" parsed="|Luke|24|39|0|0" passage="Luke 24:39">Luke 24:39</scripRef>, do not marry, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.30" parsed="|Matt|22|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:30">Matt. 22:30</scripRef>, can
be present in great
numbers in a very limited space, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.12" osisRef="Bible:Luke.8.30" parsed="|Luke|8|30|0|0" passage="Luke 8:30">Luke 8:30</scripRef>, and are invisible, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.13" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>. Such passages
as <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.4" parsed="|Ps|104|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:4">Ps. 104:4</scripRef>
(comp. <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.15" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.7" parsed="|Heb|1|7|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:7">Heb. 1:7</scripRef>); <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.30" parsed="|Matt|22|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:30">Matt. 22:30</scripRef>; and <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p9.17" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.10" parsed="|1Cor|11|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:10">I Cor. 11:10</scripRef> do not prove the corporeity of
the angels. Neither is this proved by the symbolical descriptions of the
angels in the prophecy of Ezekiel and in the book of Revelation, nor by their
appearance in bodily
forms, though it is difficult to say, whether the bodies which they
assumed on certain
occasions were real or only apparent. It is clear, however, that they
are creatures and
therefore finite and limited, though they stand in a freer relation to
time and space than
man. We cannot
ascribe to them an<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p9.18">
ubi repletivum</span>, nor an<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p9.19">
ubi circumscriptivum</span>, but only an<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p9.20">
ubi definitivum.</span>
They cannot be in two or more places
simultaneously. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p10" shownumber="no">3. THEY ARE RATIONAL, MORAL, AND IMMORTAL BEINGS.
This means that they are
personal beings endowed with intelligence and will. The fact that they
are intelligent
beings would seem to follow at once from the fact that they are spirits;
but it is also
taught
explicitly in Scripture, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.14.20" parsed="|2Sam|14|20|0|0" passage="II Sam. 14:20">II Sam. 14:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.36" parsed="|Matt|24|36|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:36">Matt. 24:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.10" parsed="|Eph|3|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:10">Eph. 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.12" parsed="|1Pet|1|12|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:12">I Pet. 1:12</scripRef>; II
Pet. 2:11.
While not omniscient, they are superior to men in knowledge, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.36" parsed="|Matt|24|36|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:36">Matt. 24:36</scripRef>.
Moreover,
they are possessed of moral natures, and as such are under moral
obligation; they are
rewarded for obedience, and are punished for disobedience. The Bible
speaks of the
angels which
remained loyal as "holy angels," <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:31">Matt. 25:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:Mark.8.38" parsed="|Mark|8|38|0|0" passage="Mark 8:38">Mark 8:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.9.26" parsed="|Luke|9|26|0|0" passage="Luke 9:26">Luke 9:26</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.22" parsed="|Acts|10|22|0|0" passage="Acts 10:22">Acts 10:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.14.10" parsed="|Rev|14|10|0|0" passage="Rev. 14:10">Rev. 14:10</scripRef>, and pictures those who fell away as lying and sinning, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.11" osisRef="Bible:John.8.44" parsed="|John|8|44|0|0" passage="John 8:44">John 8:44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.12" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.8-1John.3.10" parsed="|1John|3|8|3|10" passage="I John 3:8-10">I John 3:8-10</scripRef>. The good angels are also immortal in the sense that they
are not subject to
death. In that respect the saints in heaven are said to be like them,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.13" osisRef="Bible:Luke.20.35" parsed="|Luke|20|35|0|0" passage="Luke 20:35">Luke 20:35</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.14" osisRef="Bible:Luke.20.36" parsed="|Luke|20|36|0|0" passage="Luke 20:36">36</scripRef>. In
addition to all this, great power is ascribed to them. They form the
army of God, a host
of mighty
heroes, always ready to do the Lord's bidding, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.20" parsed="|Ps|103|20|0|0" passage="Ps. 103:20">Ps. 103:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.16" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.17" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.21" parsed="|Eph|1|21|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:21">Eph.
1:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.18" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.10" parsed="|Eph|3|10|0|0" passage="Eph 3:10">3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.19" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.14" parsed="|Heb|1|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:14">Heb. 1:14</scripRef>; and the evil angels form the army of Satan, bent on
destroying the work  of
the Lord, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.20" osisRef="Bible:Luke.11.21" parsed="|Luke|11|21|0|0" passage="Luke 11:21">Luke 11:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.21" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.9" parsed="|2Thess|2|9|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:9">II Thess. 2:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p10.22" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.8" parsed="|1Pet|5|8|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:8">I Pet. 5:8</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p11" shownumber="no">4. THEY ARE PARTLY GOOD AND PARTLY EVIL. The Bible furnishes very little information
respecting the original state of the angels. We read, however, that at
the end of His
creative work God saw everything that He had made and, behold, it was
very good.
Moreover, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:John.8.44" parsed="|John|8|44|0|0" passage="John 8:44">John 8:44</scripRef>; II Pet. 2:4; and <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.6" parsed="|Jude|1|6|0|0" passage="Jude 6">Jude 6</scripRef> presupposes an original
good condition of all angels. The good angels are called elect angels in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.21" parsed="|1Tim|5|21|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:21">I Tim. 5:21</scripRef>. They evidently received, in
addition to the grace with which all angels were endowed, and which was
sufficient to
enable them to retain their position, a special grace of perseverance, by
which they were
confirmed in their position. There has been a great deal of useless
speculation about the
time and character of the fall of the angels. Protestant theology,
however, was generally
satisfied with the knowledge that the good angels retained their
original state, were
confirmed in their position, and are now incapable of sinning. They are
not only called
holy angels, but also angels of light, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.11.14" parsed="|2Cor|11|14|0|0" passage="II Cor. 11:14">II Cor. 11:14</scripRef>. They always behold
the face of God,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.10" parsed="|Matt|18|10|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:10">Matt. 18:10</scripRef>, are our exemplars in doing the will of God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.10" parsed="|Matt|6|10|0|0" passage="Matt. 6:10">Matt. 6:10</scripRef>, and
possess
immortal life,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.20.36" parsed="|Luke|20|36|0|0" passage="Luke 20:36">Luke 20:36</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.iv-p11.8">D. THE NUMBER AND ORGANIZATION OF THE ANGELS</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.iv-p12" shownumber="no">1. THEIR NUMBER. The Bible contains no definite information respecting
the number
of the angels, but indicates very clearly that they constitute a mighty
army. They are
repeatedly called the host of heaven or of God, and this term itself
already points to a
goodly number. In <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Deut.33.2" parsed="|Deut|33|2|0|0" passage="Deut. 33:2">Deut. 33:2</scripRef> we read that "Jehovah came from Sinai... from the ten
thousands of holy ones," and in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.68.17" parsed="|Ps|68|17|0|0" passage="Ps. 68:17">Ps. 68:17</scripRef> the poet sings, "The
chariots of God are
twenty thousand, even thousands upon thousands: the Lord is among them,
as in Sinai,
in the sanctuary." In reply to the question of Jesus addressed to
an unclean spirit, the
answer was,
"my name is legion; for we are many," <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Mark.5.9" parsed="|Mark|5|9|0|0" passage="Mark 5:9">Mark 5:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.5.15" parsed="|Mark|5|15|0|0" passage="Mark 5:15">15</scripRef>. The Roman legion
was not always the same, but varied at different times all the way from 3000
to 6000, In
Gethsemane Jesus said to the band that came to take him captive,
"Or thinkest thou that
I cannot beseech my Father, and He shall even now send me more than
twelve legions  of
angels?" <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.53" parsed="|Matt|26|53|0|0" passage="Matt. 26:53">Matt. 26:53</scripRef>. And, finally, we read in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.5.11" parsed="|Rev|5|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 5:11">Rev. 5:11</scripRef>, "And I saw,
and I heard the
voice of many angels round about the throne and the living creatures and
the elders;
and the number of them was ten thousand times ten thousand, and thousands
of
thousands." In view of all these data it is perfectly safe to say
that the angels constitute
an innumerable company, a mighty host. They do not form an organism like
mankind,
for they are spirits, which do not marry and are not born
the one out of the other. Their
full number was created in the beginning; there has been no increase in
their ranks.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p13" shownumber="no">2. THEIR ORDERS. Though the angels
do not constitute an organism, they are
evidently organized in some way. This follows from the fact that,
alongside of the
general name
"angel," the Bible uses certain specific names to indicate different
classes
of angels. The name "angel," by which we designate the higher
spirits generally, is not a
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p13.1">nomen naturae</span>
in Scripture, but a<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p13.2">
nomen officii.</span>
The Hebrew word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p13.3">
mal'ak</span>
simply means
messenger, and serves to designate one sent by men, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Job.1.14" parsed="|Job|1|14|0|0" passage="Job 1:14">Job 1:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.11.3" parsed="|1Sam|11|3|0|0" passage="I Sam. 11:3">I Sam. 11:3</scripRef>, or by God,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Hag.1.13" parsed="|Hag|1|13|0|0" passage="Hag. 1:13">Hag. 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Mal.2.7" parsed="|Mal|2|7|0|0" passage="Mal. 2:7">Mal. 2:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.1" parsed="|Mal|3|1|0|0" passage="Mal 3:1">3:1</scripRef>. The Greek term<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p13.9">
aggelos</span>
is also
frequently applied to men, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.10" parsed="|Matt|11|10|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:10">Matt. 11:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.11" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.2" parsed="|Mark|1|2|0|0" passage="Mark 1:2">Mark 1:2</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.12" osisRef="Bible:Luke.7.24" parsed="|Luke|7|24|0|0" passage="Luke 7:24">Luke 7:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.13" osisRef="Bible:Luke.9.51" parsed="|Luke|9|51|0|0" passage="Luke 9:51">9:51</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.14" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.14" parsed="|Gal|4|14|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:14">Gal. 4:14</scripRef>. There is no general distinctive name for all
spiritual beings
in Scripture. They are called sons of God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.15" osisRef="Bible:Job.1.6" parsed="|Job|1|6|0|0" passage="Job 1:6">Job 1:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.16" osisRef="Bible:Job.2.1" parsed="|Job|2|1|0|0" passage="Job 2:1">2:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.29.1" parsed="|Ps|29|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 29:1">Ps. 29:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.18" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.6" parsed="|Ps|89|6|0|0" passage="Ps 89:6">89:6</scripRef>,
spirits, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.19" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.14" parsed="|Heb|1|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:14">Heb. 1:14</scripRef>, saints, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.20" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.5" parsed="|Ps|89|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 89:5">Ps. 89:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.21" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.7" parsed="|Ps|89|7|0|0" passage="Ps 89:7">7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.22" osisRef="Bible:Zech.14.5" parsed="|Zech|14|5|0|0" passage="Zech. 14:5">Zech. 14:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.23" osisRef="Bible:Dan.8.13" parsed="|Dan|8|13|0|0" passage="Dan. 8:13">Dan. 8:13</scripRef>, watchers, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.24" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.13" parsed="|Dan|4|13|0|0" passage="Dan. 4:13">Dan. 4:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.25" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.17" parsed="|Dan|4|17|0|0" passage="Dan 4:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p13.26" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.24" parsed="|Dan|4|24|0|0" passage="Dan 4:24">24</scripRef>. There are several specific names, however, which point to different
classes of angels.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p14" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p14.1">
Cherubim.</span>
Cherubim are repeatedly mentioned in Scripture. They guard the
entrance of
paradise, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.24" parsed="|Gen|3|24|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:24">Gen. 3:24</scripRef>, gaze upon the mercy-seat, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Exod.25.18" parsed="|Exod|25|18|0|0" passage="Ex. 25:18">Ex. 25:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.80.1" parsed="|Ps|80|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 80:1">Ps. 80:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.99.1" parsed="|Ps|99|1|0|0" passage="Ps 99:1">99:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.37.16" parsed="|Isa|37|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 37:16">Isa. 37:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.5" parsed="|Heb|9|5|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:5">Heb. 9:5</scripRef>, and constitute the chariot on which God descends to the
earth, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.22.11" parsed="|2Sam|22|11|0|0" passage="II Sam. 22:11">II Sam. 22:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.18.10" parsed="|Ps|18|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 18:10">Ps. 18:10</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.10" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.1" parsed="|Ezek|1|0|0|0" passage="Ezek. 1">Ezek. 1</scripRef> and <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p14.11" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4" parsed="|Rev|4|0|0|0" passage="Rev. 4">Rev. 4</scripRef> they are represented as living
beings in various
forms. These symbolical representations simply serve to bring out their
extraordinary power and majesty. More than other creatures they were destined
to reveal the power,
the majesty, and the glory of God, and to guard His holiness in the
garden of Eden, in
tabernacle and temple, and in the descent of God to the earth.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p15" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p15.1"> Seraphim.</span>
A related class of
angels are the Seraphim, mentioned only in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.6.2" parsed="|Isa|6|2|0|0" passage="Isa. 6:2">Isa. 6:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.6.6" parsed="|Isa|6|6|0|0" passage="Isa 6:6">6</scripRef>.
They are also symbolically represented in human form, but with six
wings, two
covering the face, two the feet, and two for the speedy execution of the
Lord's
commandments. In distinction from the Cherubim, they stand as servants
round about
the throne of the heavenly King, sing His praises, and are ever ready to
do His bidding.
While the Cherubim are the mighty ones, they might be called the nobles
among the
angels. While the former guard the holiness of God, they serve the
purpose of
reconciliation, and thus prepare men for the proper
approach to God.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p16" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p16.1"> Principalities, powers, thrones, and dominions.</span>
In addition to
the preceding the Bible
speaks of certain classes of angels, which occupy places of authority in
the angelic
world, as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p16.2">
archai</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p16.3">
exousiai</span>
(principalities and powers), <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.10" parsed="|Eph|3|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:10">Eph. 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.10" parsed="|Col|2|10|0|0" passage="Col. 2:10">Col. 2:10</scripRef>,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p16.6">
thronoi </span>
(thrones), <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p16.8">
kureotetoi</span>
(dominions),
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.21" parsed="|Eph|1|21|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:21">Eph. 1:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p16.10" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.16" parsed="|Col|1|16|0|0" passage="Col. 1:16">Col. 1:16</scripRef>, and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p16.11">
dunameis</span>
(powers), <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p16.12" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.21" parsed="|Eph|1|21|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:21">Eph. 1:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p16.13" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.22" parsed="|1Pet|3|22|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:22">I Pet. 3:22</scripRef>. These appellations do not point to different
kinds of angels, but
simply to differences of rank or dignity among them.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p17" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p17.1">
Gabriel and Michael.</span>
In distinction from all the other angels, these two are
mentioned by name. Gabriel appears in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Dan.8.16" parsed="|Dan|8|16|0|0" passage="Dan. 8:16">Dan. 8:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Dan.9.21" parsed="|Dan|9|21|0|0" passage="Dan 9:21">9:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.19" parsed="|Luke|1|19|0|0" passage="Luke 1:19">Luke 1:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.26" parsed="|Luke|1|26|0|0" passage="Luke 1:26">26</scripRef>. The
great majority
of commentators regard him as a created angel, but some of these deny
that the name
Gabriel is a proper name and look upon it as common noun,
meaning man of God, a
synonym for angel. But this is an untenable position.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.iv-p17.6" n="69" place="foot">Cf. especially Kuyper, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.iv-p17.7">De Engelen Gods,</span> p. 175</note>
Some earlier and later
commentators see in him an uncreated being, some even suggesting that he
might be
the third person of the Holy Trinity, while Michael was the second. But
a simple reading
of the passages in question shows the impossibility of this
interpretation. He may be
one of the seven angels that are said to stand before God in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.8.2" parsed="|Rev|8|2|0|0" passage="Rev. 8:2">Rev. 8:2</scripRef>
(comp. <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.19" parsed="|Luke|1|19|0|0" passage="Luke 1:19">Luke 1:19</scripRef>). It
seems to have been his special task to mediate and interpret divine
revelations. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p18" shownumber="no">The name Michael (lit., "who as God?") has been interpreted as
a designation of the
second person of the Trinity. But this is no more tenable than the
identification of
Gabriel with the
Holy Spirit. Michael is mentioned in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:Dan.10.13" parsed="|Dan|10|13|0|0" passage="Dan. 10:13">Dan. 10:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Dan.10.21" parsed="|Dan|10|21|0|0" passage="Dan 10:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.9" parsed="|Jude|1|9|0|0" passage="Jude 9">Jude 9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.12.7" parsed="|Rev|12|7|0|0" passage="Rev. 12:7">Rev. 12:7</scripRef>.
From the fact that he is called "the archangel" in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.9" parsed="|Jude|1|9|0|0" passage="Jude 9">Jude 9</scripRef>, and
from the expression used
in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.12.7" parsed="|Rev|12|7|0|0" passage="Rev. 12:7">Rev. 12:7</scripRef> it would seem that he occupies an important place among the
angels. The passages in Daniel also point to the fact that he is a prince among
them. We see in him
the valiant warrior fighting the battles of Jehovah against the enemies
of Israel and
against the evil powers in the spirit-world. It is not impossible that
the title "archangel"
also applies to Gabriel and a few other angels.
</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.iv-p18.7">E. THE SERVICE OF THE ANGELS</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p19" shownumber="no">We can distinguish between an ordinary and an extraordinary service of the angels.</p>


<p id="iii.ii.iv-p20" shownumber="no">1. THEIR ORDINARY SERVICE. This consists first of all in their praising God day and
night, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.38.7" parsed="|Job|38|7|0|0" passage="Job 38:7">Job 38:7</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.6" parsed="|Isa|6|0|0|0" passage="Isa. 6">Isa. 6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.20" parsed="|Ps|103|20|0|0" passage="Ps. 103:20">Ps. 103:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.148.2" parsed="|Ps|148|2|0|0" passage="Ps 148:2">148:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.5.11" parsed="|Rev|5|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 5:11">Rev. 5:11</scripRef>. Scripture gives the impression that they
do this audibly, as at the birth of Christ, though we can form no
conception of this
speaking and singing of the angels. Since the entrance of sin into the
world they are sent
forth to minister to them that are heirs of salvation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.14" parsed="|Heb|1|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:14">Heb. 1:14</scripRef>. They
rejoice at the
conversion of a
sinner, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.15.10" parsed="|Luke|15|10|0|0" passage="Luke 15:10">Luke 15:10</scripRef>, watch over believers, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.34.7" parsed="|Ps|34|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 34:7">Ps. 34:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.91.11" parsed="|Ps|91|11|0|0" passage="Ps 91:11">91:11</scripRef>, protect the little
ones, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.10" parsed="|Matt|18|10|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:10">Matt. 18:10</scripRef>, are present in the Church, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.10" parsed="|1Cor|11|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:10">I Cor. 11:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.12" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.21" parsed="|1Tim|5|21|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:21">I Tim. 5:21</scripRef>, learning from her
the manifold riches of the grace of God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.10" parsed="|Eph|3|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:10">Eph. 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.14" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.12" parsed="|1Pet|1|12|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:12">I Pet. 1:12</scripRef>, and
convey believers into
the bosom of Abraham, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.15" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.22" parsed="|Luke|16|22|0|0" passage="Luke 16:22">Luke 16:22</scripRef>. The idea that some of them serve as
guardians of
individual believers finds no support in Scripture. The statement in
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.10" parsed="|Matt|18|10|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:10">Matt. 18:10</scripRef> is too general to prove the point, though it seems to indicate that
there is a group of angels
who are particularly charged with the care of the little ones. Neither
is it proved by <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p20.17" osisRef="Bible:Acts.12.15" parsed="|Acts|12|15|0|0" passage="Acts 12:15">Acts
12:15</scripRef>, for this passage merely goes to show that there were some even
among the
disciples of that early day who believed in guardian angels.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p21" shownumber="no">2. THEIR EXTRAORDINARY SERVICE.
The extraordinary service of the angels was made
necessary by the fall of man, and forms an important element in the
special revelation of
God. They often mediate the special revelations of God, communicate
blessings to His
people, and execute judgment upon His enemies. Their activity is most
prominent in
the great turning points of the economy of salvation, as in the days of
the patriarchs, the
time of the lawgiving, the period of the exile and of the restoration,
and at the birth, the resurrection, and the ascension of the Lord. When the
period of God's special revelation
closed, the extraordinary service of the angels ceased, to be resumed
only at the return
of the Lord. </p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.iv-p21.1">F. THE EVIL ANGELS</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p22" shownumber="no">1. THEIR ORIGIN. Besides the good
there also are evil angels, who delight in opposing God and antagonizing His
work. Though they are also creatures of God, they were not
created as evil angels. God saw everything that He had created, and it
was very good,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.31" parsed="|Gen|1|31|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:31">Gen. 1:31</scripRef>. There are two passages in Scripture which clearly imply that
some of the
angels did not retain their original position, but fell from the state
in which they were
created, II Pet. 2:4; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.6" parsed="|Jude|1|6|0|0" passage="Jude 6">Jude 6</scripRef>. The special sin of these angels is not
revealed, but has
generally been thought to consist in this that they exalted themselves
over against God,
and aspired to supreme authority. If this ambition played an important
part in the life of
Satan and led to his downfall, it would at once explain why he tempted
man on this
particular point, and sought to lure him to his destruction by appealing
to a possible
similar ambition in man. Some of the early Church Fathers distinguished
between Satan
and the subordinate devils in explaining the cause of their fall. That
of the fall of Satan
was found in pride, but that of the more general fall in the angelic
world, in fleshly lust, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.2" parsed="|Gen|6|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:2">Gen. 6:2</scripRef>. That interpretation of <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.2" parsed="|Gen|6|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:2">Gen. 6:2</scripRef> was gradually discarded,
however, during the
Middle Ages. In view of this it is rather surprising to find that
several modern
commentators are reiterating the idea in their interpretation of II Pet. 2:4 and <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.6" parsed="|Jude|1|6|0|0" passage="Jude 6">Jude 6</scripRef> as,
for instance, Meyer, Alford, Mayor, Wohlenberg. It is an explanation,
however, that is
contrary to the spiritual nature of the angels, and to the fact that, as
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.30" parsed="|Matt|22|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:30">Matt. 22:30</scripRef> would
seem to imply, there is no sexual life among the angels. Moreover, on
that interpretation
we shall have to assume a double fall in the angelic world, first the
fall of Satan, and
then, considerably later, the fall resulting in the host of devils that
now serves Satan. It is
much more likely that Satan dragged the others right along with him in
his fall.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p23" shownumber="no">2. THEIR HEAD. Satan appears in Scripture as
the recognized head of the fallen angels. He was originally, it would seem, one
of the mightiest princes of the angelic world, and
became the leader of those that revolted and fell away from God. The
name "Satan"
points to him as "the Adversary," not in the first place of
man, but of God. He attacks
Adam as the crown of God's handiwork, works destruction and is therefore
called
Apollyon (the Destroyer), and assaults Jesus when He undertakes the work
of
restoration. After the entrance of sin into the world he became Diabolos
(the Accuser),
accusing the people of God continually, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:Rev.12.10" parsed="|Rev|12|10|0|0" passage="Rev. 12:10">Rev. 12:10</scripRef>. He is represented in
Scripture as the
originator of
sin, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.1" parsed="|Gen|3|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:1">Gen. 3:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.4" parsed="|Gen|3|4|0|0" passage="Gen 3:4">4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:John.8.44" parsed="|John|8|44|0|0" passage="John 8:44">John 8:44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.5" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.11.3" parsed="|2Cor|11|3|0|0" passage="II Cor. 11:3">II Cor. 11:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.8" parsed="|1John|3|8|0|0" passage="I John 3:8">I John 3:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.12.9" parsed="|Rev|12|9|0|0" passage="Rev. 12:9">Rev. 12:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.2" parsed="|Rev|20|2|0|0" passage="Rev 20:2">20:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.10" parsed="|Rev|20|10|0|0" passage="Rev 20:10">10</scripRef>, and
appears as the recognized head of those that fell away, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.41" parsed="|Matt|25|41|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:41">Matt. 25:41</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.9.34" parsed="|Matt|9|34|0|0" passage="Matt 9:34">9:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.12" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.2" parsed="|Eph|2|2|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:2">Eph. 2:2</scripRef>. He
remains the leader of the angelic hosts which he carried with him in his
fall, and
employs them in desperate resistance to Christ and His Kingdom. He is
also called
repeatedly
"the prince of this (not, "of the") world, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.13" osisRef="Bible:John.12.31" parsed="|John|12|31|0|0" passage="John 12:31">John 12:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.14" osisRef="Bible:John.14.30" parsed="|John|14|30|0|0" passage="John 14:30">14:30</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.15" osisRef="Bible:John.16.11" parsed="|John|16|11|0|0" passage="John 16:11">16:11</scripRef>, and even
"the god of this world," <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.16" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.4.4" parsed="|2Cor|4|4|0|0" passage="II Cor. 4:4">II Cor. 4:4</scripRef>. This does not mean that
he is in control of the world,
for God is in control, and He has given all authority to Christ, but it
does convey the
idea that he is in control of this evil world, the world in so far as it
is ethically separated
from God. This is clearly indicated in <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.17" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.2" parsed="|Eph|2|2|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:2">Eph. 2:2</scripRef>, where he is called
"the prince of the powers of the air, of the spirit that now worketh in
the sons of disobedience." He is
superhuman, but not divine; has great power, but is not omnipotent;
wields influence
on a large but restricted scale, <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.18" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.29" parsed="|Matt|12|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:29">Matt. 12:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.19" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.2" parsed="|Rev|20|2|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:2">Rev. 20:2</scripRef>, and is destined
to be cast into the
bottomless pit,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p23.20" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.10" parsed="|Rev|20|10|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:10">Rev. 20:10</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.iv-p24" shownumber="no">3. THEIR ACTIVITY. Like the good
angels, the fallen angels, too, are possessed of
superhuman power, but their use of it contrasts sadly with that of the
good angels.
While the latter perennially praise God, fight His battles, and serve
Him faithfully, they
as powers of darkness are bent on cursing God, battling against Him and
His Anointed,
and destroying His work. They are in constant revolt against God, seek
to blind and
mislead even the elect, and encourage sinners in their evil. But they
are lost and
hopeless spirits. They are even now chained to hell and pits of
darkness, and though
not yet limited to one place, yet, as Calvin says, drag their chains
with them wherever
they go, II Pet.
2:4; <scripRef id="iii.ii.iv-p24.1" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.6" parsed="|Jude|1|6|0|0" passage="Jude 6">Jude 6</scripRef>. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.ii.v" next="iii.ii.vi" prev="iii.ii.iv" title="V. Creation of the World">
<h4 id="iii.ii.v-p0.1">V. Creation of the Material World</h4>

<h4 id="iii.ii.v-p0.2">THE SCRIPTURAL ACCOUNT OF CREATION</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.v-p1" shownumber="no">Other nations, as well as the Hebrews, had their accounts
respecting the origin of the
material universe, and of the way in which the original chaos was
changed into a
cosmos or habitable world. Some of those accounts reveal traces of
similarity with the
Biblical record, but contain even more striking dissimilarities. They
are as a rule
characterized by dualistic or polytheistic elements, represent the
present world as the
result of a fierce struggle among the gods, and are far removed from the
simplicity and
sobriety of the Biblical account. It may be advisable to preface our
discussion of its details with a few general remarks.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE POINT OF VIEW FROM WHICH THE BIBLE CONTEMPLATES THE WORK OF CREATION. It
is a significant thing that the narrative of creation, while it mentions
the creation of the
heavens, devotes no further attention to the spiritual world. It
concerns the material
world only, and represents this primarily as the habitation of man and
as the theater of
his activities. It deals not with unseen realities such as spirits, but
with the things that
are seen. And because these things are palpable to the human senses,
they come up for
discussion, not only in theology, but also in other sciences and in
philosophy. But while
philosophy seeks to understand the origin and nature of all things by
the light of
reason, theology takes its starting point in God, allows itself to be
guided by His special
revelation respecting the work of creation, and considers everything in
relation to Him.
The narrative of creation is the beginning of God's self-revelation, and
acquaints us with
the fundamental relation in which everything, man included, stands to
Him. It stresses
the original position of man, in order that men of all ages might have a
proper
understanding of the rest of Scripture as a revelation of redemption.
While it does not
pretend to give us a complete philosophical cosmogony, it does contain
important
elements for the construction of a proper cosmogony. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE ORIGIN OF THE ACCOUNT OF CREATION. The question as to the origin of the
narrative of creation has been raised repeatedly, and the interest in it
was renewed by
the discovery of the Babylonian story of creation. This story, as it is
known to us, took
shape in the city of Babylon. It speaks of the generation of several
gods, of whom
Marduk proves supreme. He only was sufficiently powerful to overcome the
primeval
dragon Tiamat, and becomes the creator of the world, whom men worship.
There are
some points of similarity between the narrative of creation in Genesis
and this
Babylonian story. Both speak of a primeval chaos, and of a division of
the waters below
and above the firmament. Genesis speaks of seven days, and the
Babylonian account is
arranged in seven tablets. Both accounts connect the heavens with the
fourth epoch of
creation, and the creation of man with the sixth. Some of these
resemblances are of little
significance, and the differences of the two accounts are far more
important. The
Hebrew order differs on many points from the Babylonian. The greatest
difference is
found, however, in the religious conceptions of the two. The Babylonian
account, in
distinction from that of Scripture, is mythological and polytheistic.
The gods do not
stand on a high level, but scheme and plot and fight. And Marduk
succeeds only after a
prolonged struggle, which taxes his strength, in overcoming the evil
forces and
reducing chaos to order. In Genesis, on the other hand, we encounter the
most sublime
monotheism, and see God calling forth the universe and all created
things by the simple
word of His power. When the Babylonian account was discovered, many
scholars
hastily assumed that the Biblical narrative was derived from the
Babylonian source,
forgetting that there are at least two other possibilities, namely, (a)
that the Babylonian
story is a corrupted reproduction of the narrative in Genesis; or (b)
that both are derived
from a common, more primitive, source. But however this question may be
answered, it
does not settle the problem of the origin of the narrative. How did the
original, whether
written or oral, come into existence? Some regard it simply as the
natural product of
man's reflection on the origin of things. But this explanation is
extremely unlikely in
view of the following facts: (a) the idea of creation is
incomprehensible; (b) science and
philosophy both equally oppose the doctrine of creation out of nothing;
and (c) it is only
by faith that we understand that the worlds have been framed by the word
of God, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.3" parsed="|Heb|11|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:3">Heb. 11:3</scripRef>. We therefore come to the conclusion that the story of creation was
revealed to
Moses or to one of the earlier patriarchs. If this revelation was
pre-Mosaic, it passed in
tradition (oral or written) from one generation to another, probably
lost something of its
original purity, and was finally incorporated in a pure form, under the
guidance of the
Holy Spirit, in
the first book of the Bible. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p4" shownumber="no">3. THE INTERPRETATION OF GEN. 1:1,2. Some
regard <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef> as the superscription or
title of the whole narrative of creation. But this is objectionable for
three reasons: (a)
because the following narrative is connected with the first verse by the
Hebrew
conjunction<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p4.2">
waw</span>
(and), which would not be the case if the first verse were a title; (b)
because, on that supposition, there would be no account whatsoever of the
original and
immediate creation; and (c) since the following verses contain no
account of the creation
of heaven at all. The more generally accepted interpretation is that
<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef> records the
original and immediate creation of the universe, Hebraistically called
"heaven and
earth." In this expression the word "heaven" refers to
that invisible order of things in
which the glory of God reveals itself in the most perfect manner. It
cannot be regarded
as a designation of the cosmical heavens, whether of the clouds or of
the stars, for these
were created on the second and on the fourth day of the creative week.
Then in the
second verse the author describes the original condition of the earth
(comp. <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.5" parsed="|Ps|104|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:5">Ps. 104:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.6" parsed="|Ps|104|6|0|0" passage="Ps 104:6">6</scripRef>).
It is a debatable question, whether the original creation of matter
formed a part of the
work of the first day, or was separated from this by a shorter or longer
period of time.
Of those who would interpose a long period between the two, some hold
that the world
was originally a dwelling place of angels, was destroyed as the result
of a fall in the
angelic world, and was then reclaimed and turned into a fit habitation
for men. We shall refer to this restitution theory in another connection.
</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.v-p4.6">B. THE HEXAEMERON, OR THE WORK OF THE SEPARATE DAYS</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p5" shownumber="no">After the creation of the universe out of nothing in a
moment of time, the existing
chaos was gradually changed into a cosmos, a habitable world, in six
successive days.
Before the work of the separate days is indicated, the. question as to
the length of the
days of creation calls for a brief discussion.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p6" shownumber="no">1. CONSIDERATION OF THE THEORY THAT THEY WERE LONG PERIODS OF TIME. Some
scholars assume that the days of <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 1">Gen. 1</scripRef> were long periods of time, in
order to make
them harmonize with the geological periods. The opinion that these days
were not
ordinary days of twenty-four hours was not entirely foreign to early
Christian theology,
as E. C.
Messenger shows in detail in his learned work on<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p6.2">
Evolution and Theology.</span>
But some of the Church Fathers, who intimated that these days were probably
not to be
regarded as ordinary days, expressed the opinion that the whole work of
creation was
finished in a moment of time, and that the days merely constituted a
symbolical frame-
work, which facilitated the description of the work of creation in an
orderly fashion, so
as to make it more intelligible to finite minds. The opinion that the
days of creation were long periods came to the foreground again in recent
years, not, however, as the result of
exegetical studies, but under the influence of the disclosures of
science. Previous to the
nineteenth century the days of Genesis were most generally regarded as
literal days.
But, of course, human interpretation is fallible, and may have to be
revised in the light
of later discoveries. If traditional exegesis conflicts, not
merely with scientific theories — which are themselves interpretations —, but with
well established facts, re-thinking and
reinterpretation is naturally in order. It can hardly be maintained,
however, that the
assumed geological periods necessitate a change of front, since they are
by no means
generally recognized, even in scientific circles, as well established
facts. Some Christian
scholars, such as Harris, Miley, Bettex, and Geesink, assume that the
days of Genesis are
geological days, and both Shedd and Hodge call attention to the
remarkable agreement
between the record of creation and the testimony of the rocks, and are
inclined to regard
the days of Genesis as geological periods.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p7" shownumber="no">The question may be raised, whether it is exegetically
possible to conceive of the
days of Genesis as long periods of time. And then it must be admitted
that the Hebrew
word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p7.1">
yom</span>
does not always denote a period of twenty-four hours in Scripture, and
is not
always used in the same sense even in the narrative of creation. It may
mean daylight in
distinction from darkness, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.5" parsed="|Gen|1|5|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:5">Gen. 1:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.16" parsed="|Gen|1|16|0|0" passage="Gen 1:16">16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.18" parsed="|Gen|1|18|0|0" passage="Gen 1:18">18</scripRef>; day-light and darkness
together, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.5" parsed="|Gen|1|5|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:5">Gen. 1:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.8" parsed="|Gen|1|8|0|0" passage="Gen 1:8">8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.13" parsed="|Gen|1|13|0|0" passage="Gen 1:13">13</scripRef>
etc.; the six days taken together, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.4" parsed="|Gen|2|4|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:4">Gen. 2:4</scripRef>; and an indefinite period
marked in its entire length by some characteristic feature, as trouble, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.20.1" parsed="|Ps|20|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 20:1">Ps. 20:1</scripRef>, wrath, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.10" osisRef="Bible:Job.20.28" parsed="|Job|20|28|0|0" passage="Job 20:28">Job 20:28</scripRef>, prosperity,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.11" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.7.14" parsed="|Eccl|7|14|0|0" passage="Eccl. 7:14">Eccl. 7:14</scripRef>, or salvation <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.6.2" parsed="|2Cor|6|2|0|0" passage="II Cor. 6:2">II Cor. 6:2</scripRef>. Now some hold that the Bible
favors the idea that the
days of creation were indefinite periods of time, and call attention to
the following: (a)
The sun was not created until the fourth day, and therefore the length
of the previous
days could not yet be determined by the earth's relation to the sun.
This is perfectly
true, but does not prove the point. God had evidently, even previous to
the fourth day,
established a rhythmic alternation of light and darkness, and there is no
ground for the
assumption that the days so measured were of longer duration than the
later days. Why
should we assume that God greatly increased the velocity of the earth's
revolutions
after the light was concentrated in the sun? (b) The days referred to
are God's days, the
archetypal days, of which the days of men are merely ectypal copies; and
with God a
thousand years are as a single day, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.4" parsed="|Ps|90|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:4">Ps. 90:4</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:8. But this
argument is based on a
confusion of time and eternity. God<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p7.14">
ad intra</span>
has no days, but
dwells in eternity, exalted
far above all measurements of time. This is also the idea conveyed by
<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.4" parsed="|Ps|90|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:4">Ps. 90:4</scripRef>; and II Pet. 3:8. The only actual days of which God has knowledge are the days
of this time-
space world. How does it follow from the fact that God is exalted above
the limitations
of time, as they exist in this world, where time is measured by days and
weeks and
months and years, that a day may just as well be a period of 100,000
years as one of
twenty-four hours? (c) The seventh day, the day in which God rested from
His labours,
is said to continue up to the present time, and must therefore be
regarded as a period of
thousands of years. It is God's sabbath, and that sabbath never ends.
This argument
represents a similar confusion. The whole idea of God's beginning the
work of creation
at a certain point of time, and then ceasing it after a period of six days,
does not apply to
God as He is in Himself, but only to the temporal results of His
creative activity. He is
unchangeably the same from age to age. His sabbath is not an
indefinitely prolonged period of time; it is eternal. On the other hand, the
sabbath of the creation week was a
day equal in length to the other days. God not only rested on that day,
but He also
blessed and hallowed it, setting it aside as a day of rest for man, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p7.16" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.11" parsed="|Exod|20|11|0|0" passage="Ex. 20:11">Ex.
20:11</scripRef>. This would
hardly apply to the whole period from the time of creation up to the
rpesent day.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p8" shownumber="no">2. CONSIDERATION OF THE VIEW THAT THEY WERE LITERAL DAYS. The prevailing view
has always been that the days of <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Genesis 1">Genesis 1</scripRef> are to be understood as
literal days. Some of
the early Church Fathers did not regard them as real indications of the
time in which
the work of creation was completed, but rather as literary forms in
which the writer of
Genesis cast the narrative of creation, in order to picture the work of
creation — which
was really completed in a moment of time — in an orderly fashion for
human
intelligence. It was only after the comparatively new sciences of
geology and
palæontology came forward with their theories of the enormous age of the
earth, that
theologians began to show an inclination to identify the days of
creation with the long
geological ages. To-day some of them regard it as an established fact
that the days of
<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Genesis 1">Genesis 1</scripRef> were long geological periods; others are somewhat inclined to
assume this
position, but show considerable hesitation. Hodge, Sheldon, Van
Oosterzee, and
Dabney, some of whom are not entirely averse to this view, are all
agreed that this
interpretation of the days is<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p8.3">
exegetically</span>
doubtful, if not
impossible. Kuyper and Bavinck
hold that, while the first three days may have been of somewhat
different length, the
last three were certainly ordinary days. They naturally do not regard
even the first three
days as
geological periods. Vos in his<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p8.4">
Gereformeerde Dogmatiek</span>
defends the position that
the days of creation were ordinary days. Hepp takes the same position in
his<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p8.5">
Calvinism and the Philosophy of Nature.</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p8.6" n="70" place="foot">p. 215</note>
Noortzij in<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p8.7">
Gods Woord en der Eeuwen Getuigenis</span>,<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p8.8" n="71" place="foot">pp. 79f.</note>
asserts that the Hebrew word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p8.9">
yom</span>
(day) in <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 1">Gen. 1</scripRef> cannot
possibly designate anything else than
an ordinary day, but holds that the writer of Genesis did not attach any
importance to
the concept "day," but introduces it simply as part of a
frame-work for the narrative of creation, not to indicate historical sequence,
but to picture the glory of the creatures in
the light of the great redemptive purpose of God. Hence the sabbath is
the great
culminating point, in which man reaches his real destiny. This view
reminds us rather
strongly of the position of some of the early Church Fathers. The
arguments adduced
for it are not
very convincing, as Aalders has shown in his<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p8.11">
De Eerste Drie Hoofdstukken  van Genesis.</span><note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p8.12" n="72" place="foot">pp. 232-240</note>
This Old Testament scholar holds,
on the basis of <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.5" parsed="|Gen|1|5|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:5">Gen. 1:5</scripRef>, that the term
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p8.14">
yom</span>
in <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 1">Gen. 1</scripRef>
denotes simply the period of light, as distinguished from that of darkness;
but this view would seem to involve a rather unnatural interpretation of
the repeated
expression "and there was evening and there was morning." It
must then be interpreted
to mean, and there was evening preceded by a morning. According to Dr.
Aalders, too,
Scripture certainly favors the idea that the days of creation were
ordinary days, though
it may not be possible to determine their exact length, and the first
three days may have differed somewhat from the last three.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p9" shownumber="no">The literal interpretation of the term "day" in
<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 1">Gen. 1</scripRef> is favored by the following
considerations: (a) In its primary meaning the word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p9.2">
yom</span>
denotes a natural day; and it is
a good rule in exegesis, not to depart from the primary meaning of a
word, unless this is
required by the context. Dr. Noortzij stresses the fact that this word
simply does not
mean anything else than "day," such as this is known by man on
earth. (b) The author
of Genesis would seem to shut us up absolutely to the literal
interpretation by adding in
the case of every day the words, "and there was evening and there
was morning." Each
one of the days mentioned has just one evening and morning, something that
would
hardly apply to a period of thousands of years. And if it should be said
that the periods
of creation were extraordinary days, each one consisting of one long day
and one long
night, then the question naturally arises, What would become of all
vegetation during
the long, long night? (c) In <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.9-Exod.20.11" parsed="|Exod|20|9|20|11" passage="Ex. 20:9-11">Ex. 20:9-11</scripRef> Israel is commanded to labor
six days and to rest
on the seventh, because Jehovah made heaven and earth in six days and
rested on the
seventh day. Sound exegesis would seem to require that the word
"day" be taken in the
same sense in both instances. Moreover the sabbath set aside for rest
certainly was a
literal day; and the presumption is that the other days were of the same
kind. (d) The
last three days were certainly ordinary days, for they were determined by
the sun in the
usual way. While we cannot be absolutely sure that the preceding days
did not differ
from them at all in length, it is extremely unlikely that they differed
from them, as
periods of thousands upon thousands of years differ from ordinary days.
The question
may also be asked, why such a long period should be required, for
instance, for the
separation of light and darkness.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p10" shownumber="no">3. THE WORK OF THE SEPARATE DAYS. We notice in
the work of creation a definite
gradation, the work of each day leads up to and prepares for the work of
the next, the
whole of it culminating in the creation of man, the crown of God's
handiwork,
entrusted with the important task of making the whole of creation
subservient to the
glory of God. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p11" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p11.1"> The first day.</span>
On the first day
the light was created, and by the separation of light
and darkness day and night were constituted. This creation of light on
the first day has
been ridiculed in view of the fact that the sun was not created until
the fourth day, but
science itself silenced the ridicule by proving that light is not a
substance emanating
from the sun, but consists of ether waves produced by energetic
electrons. Notice also
that Genesis
does not speak of the sun as light (<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p11.2">or</span>), but as
light-bearer (<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p11.3">ma'or</span>), exactly
what science has discovered it to be. In view of the fact that light is
the condition of all
life, it was but natural that it should be created first. God also at
once instituted the
ordinance of the alternation of light and darkness, calling the light
day and the darkness
night. We are not told, however, how this alternation was effected. The
account of each
day's work closes with the words, "and there was evening and there
was morning." The
days are not reckoned from evening to evening, but from morning to
morning. After
twelve hours there was evening, and after another twelve
hours there was morning.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p12" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p12.1">The second day.</span>
The work of the
second day was also a work of separation: the
firmament was established by dividing the waters above and the waters
below. The
waters above are the clouds, and not, as some would have it, the sea of
glass, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.6" parsed="|Rev|4|6|0|0" passage="Rev. 4:6">Rev. 4:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Rev.15.2" parsed="|Rev|15|2|0|0" passage="Rev 15:2">15:2</scripRef>, and the river of life, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.22.1" parsed="|Rev|22|1|0|0" passage="Rev. 22:1">Rev. 22:1</scripRef>. Some have discredited the Mosaic
account on the
supposition that it represents the firmament as a solid vault; but this
is entirely
unwarranted, for the Hebrew word<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p12.5">
raqia</span>
does not denote a
solid vault at all, but is
equivalent to
our word "expanse." </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p13" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p13.1">
The third day.</span>
The separation is
carried still further in the separation of the sea from
the dry land, cf. <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.8" parsed="|Ps|104|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:8">Ps. 104:8</scripRef>. In addition to that the vegetable kingdom
of plants and trees
was established. Three great classes are mentioned, namely,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p13.3">
deshe</span>', that is flowerless
plants, which do not fructify one another in the usual way; '<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p13.4">
esebh</span>, consisting of
vegetables and grain yielding seed; and '<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p13.5">ets peri</span>
or fruit trees, bearing fruit according to
their kind. It should be noted here: (1) That, when God said, "Let
the earth put forth
grass" etc., this was not equivalent to saying: Let inorganic
matter develop<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p13.6">
by its own
inherent force</span>
into vegetable life. It was a word of power by which God
implanted the
principle of life in the earth, and thus enabled it to bring forth grass
and herbs and trees.
That it was a creative word is evident from <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.9" parsed="|Gen|2|9|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:9">Gen. 2:9</scripRef>. (2) That the
statement, "and the
earth brought forth grass, herbs yielding seed after their kind, and
trees bearing fruit,
wherein is the seed thereof, after their kind" (vs. 12), distinctly
favors the idea that the different species of plants were created by God, and
did not develop the one out of the
other. Each one brought forth seed after its kind, and could therefore
only reproduce its
kind. The doctrine of evolution, of course, negatives both of these
assertions; but it
should be borne in mind that both spontaneous generation and the
development of one
species from another, are unproved, and now largely discredited,
assumptions.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p13.8" n="73" place="foot">Cf. O'Toole, The Case Against Evolution, p. 28.</note></p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p14" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p14.1">
The fourth day.</span>
Sun, moon, and
stars, were created as light-bearers, to serve a
variety of purposes: (1) to divide the day and the night; (2) to be for
signs, that is, to
indicate the cardinal points, to presage changes of weather conditions,
and to serve as signs of important future events and coming judgments; (3) to
be for seasons, and for
days and years, that is, to serve the purpose of effecting the change of
seasons, the
succession of years, and the regular recurrence of special festive days;
and (4) to serve as
lights for the earth and thus to make the development of organic life on
earth possible.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p15" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p15.1">
The fifth day.</span>
This day brings the creation of the
birds and the fishes, the
inhabitants of the air and the waters. Birds and fishes belong together,
because there is a
great similarity in their organic structure. Moreover, they are
characterized by an
instability and mobility which they have in common with the element in
which they
move, in distinction from the solid ground. They also agree in their
method of
procreation. Notice that they, too, were created after their kind, that
is, the species were  created.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p16" shownumber="no">f.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p16.1">
The sixth day.</span>
This day brings
the climax of the work of creation. In connection with
the creation of the animals the expression is once more used, "Let
the earth bring forth,"
and this should again be interpreted as was indicated under (c). The
animals did not
naturally develop out of the earth, but were brought forth by the
creative fiat of God. We are told distinctly in the 25th verse that God<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p16.2">
made</span>
the beasts of the earth, the cattle
and the creeping things of the earth, after their kind. But even if the
expression did refer
to natural development, it would not be in harmony with the doctrine of
evolution,
since that does not teach that the animals developed directly out of the
mineral world.
The creation of man is distinguished by the solemn counsel that precedes
it: "Let us
make man in our own image, after our likeness"; and this is no
wonder, since all that
preceded was but a preparation for the coming of man, the crowning work
of God, the
king of creation; and because man was destined to be the image of God.
The words
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p16.3">
tselem</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p16.4">
demuth</span>
do not denote exactly the same thing, but are nevertheless used interchangeably. When it is said that man is created in the image of God,
this means that
God is the archetype of which man is is the ectype; and when it is added
that he is
created according to the likeness of God, this merely adds the idea that
the image is in
every way like the original. In his entire being man is the very image
of God.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p17" shownumber="no">Before passing on to the seventh day it may be well to call attention to
the
remarkable parallel between the work of the first, and that of the
second three days of
creation. </p>

<table id="iii.ii.v-p17.1">
<tr id="iii.ii.v-p17.2">
<td colspan="1" id="iii.ii.v-p17.3" rowspan="1">1. The creationof light.</td>
<td colspan="1" id="iii.ii.v-p17.4" rowspan="1">4. The creation of light-bearers.</td>
</tr>
<tr id="iii.ii.v-p17.5">
<td colspan="1" id="iii.ii.v-p17.6" rowspan="1">2. Creation of expanse and separation of waters. </td>
<td colspan="1" id="iii.ii.v-p17.7" rowspan="1">5. Creation of fowls of the air and fishes of the sea.</td>
</tr>
<tr id="iii.ii.v-p17.8">
<td colspan="1" id="iii.ii.v-p17.9" rowspan="1">3. Separation of waters and dry land, and preparation of the earth as a habitation for man and beast.</td>
<td colspan="1" id="iii.ii.v-p17.10" rowspan="1">6. Creation of the beasts of the field, the cattle, and all creeping things; and man. </td>
</tr>
</table>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p18" shownumber="no">g.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p18.1">
The seventh day.</span>
The rest of God on the seventh day
contains first of all a negative
element. God ceased from His creative work. But to this must be added a
positive
element, namely, that He took delight in His completed work. His rest
was as the rest of
the artist, after He has completed His masterpiece, and now gazes upon
it with
profound admiration and delight, and finds perfect satisfaction in the
contemplation of
His production. "And God saw everything that He had made, and,
behold, it was very
good." It answered the purpose of God and corresponded to the
divine ideal. Hence
God rejoices in His creation, for in it He recognizes the reflection
of His glorious
perfections. His radiant countenance shines upon it and is productive of
showers of
blessings. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p19" shownumber="no">4. NO SECOND ACCOUNT OF CREATION IN GENESIS 2. It is quite
common for advanced
higher criticism to assume that <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p19.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2" parsed="|Gen|2|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 2">Gen. 2</scripRef> contains a second and independent
account of
creation. The first account is regarded as the work of the Elohist, and
the second as that
of the Jehovist. The two, it is said, do not agree, but conflict
on several points. According
to the second account, as distinguished from the first, the earth is dry
before the creation
of plants; man is created before the animals, and that alone, not as man
and woman;
then God created the animals, in order to see whether they will be fit
companions for
man; seeing that they fail in that respect, He creates woman as a
helpmeet for man; and, finally, He places man in the garden which He had
prepared for him. But this is clearly a
complete misunderstanding of the second chapter. <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2" parsed="|Gen|2|0|0|0" passage="Genesis 2">Genesis 2</scripRef> is not, and
does not
pretend to be, a narrative of creation. The superscription '<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p19.3">eleh toledoth</span>, which is found
ten times in Genesis, never refers to the birth or origin of things, but
always to their
births, that is, their later history. The expression dates from a time
when history still consisted in the description of generations. The second
chapter of Genesis begins the
description of the history of man, arranges its material to suit this
purpose, and only
repeats so much of what was said in the previous chapter, without any
consideration of
chronological order, as is necessary for the author's purpose.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p20" shownumber="no">5. ATTEMPTS TO HARMONIZE THE NARRATIVE OF CREATION WITH THE FINDINGS OF SCIENCE.</p>


<p id="iii.ii.v-p21" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p21.1"> The ideal or allegorical interpretation.</span>
This gives
prominence to the idea rather than
to the letter of the narrative. It regards <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Genesis 1">Genesis 1</scripRef> as a poetic
description of the creative
work of God, representing this from different points of view. But (1) it
is quite evident
that the narrative is intended as a record of history, and is clearly so
regarded in
Scripture, cf.
<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.11" parsed="|Exod|20|11|0|0" passage="Ex. 20:11">Ex. 20:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.6" parsed="|Neh|9|6|0|0" passage="Neh. 9:6">Neh. 9:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.6" parsed="|Ps|33|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:6">Ps. 33:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.9" parsed="|Ps|33|9|0|0" passage="Ps 33:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p21.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.2-Ps.145.6" parsed="|Ps|145|2|145|6" passage="Ps 145:2-6">145:2-6</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p21.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2" parsed="|Ps|2|0|0|0" passage="Ps 2">2</scripRef>) the opening chapter of Genesis
"lacks nearly every element of acknowledged Hebrew poetry"
(Strong); and (3) this
narrative is inseparably connected with the succeeding history, and is
therefore most
naturally regarded as itself historical.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p22" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p22.1">
The mythical theory of modern philosophy.</span>
Modern
philosophy has advanced beyond
the preceding position. It rejects not only the historical narrative of
creation, but also the idea of creation, and regards the contents of <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Genesis 1">Genesis 1</scripRef>
as a myth embodying a religious
lesson. There is no intentional allegory here, it is said, but only a
naive mythical
representation with a religious core or nucleus. This is also contrary
to the fact that <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 1">Gen.
1</scripRef> certainly comes to us with the pretension of being a historical
narrative, and in the
cross references, referred to above, it certainly is not regarded as a
myth.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p23" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p23.1">
The restitution theory.</span>
Some theologians attempted to
reconcile the narrative of
creation with the discoveries of science in the study of the earth by
adopting the
restitution theory. It was advocated by Chalmers, Buckland, Wisemann,
and Delitzsch,
and assumes that a long period of time elapsed between the primary
creation
mentioned in <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef> and the secondary creation described in <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.3-Gen.1.31" parsed="|Gen|1|3|1|31" passage="Gen. 1:3-31">Gen.
1:3-31</scripRef>. This long
period was marked by several catastrophic changes, resulting in the
destruction
supposedly described in the words "waste and void." The second
verse should then
read, "And the earth became waste and void." This destruction
was followed by a
restitution, when God changed the chaos into a cosmos, a habitable world
for man. This
theory might offer some explanation of the different strata of the
earth, but it offers no
explanation of the fossils in the rocks, unless it is assumed that there
were also
successive creations of animals, followed by mass destructions. This
theory never found
favor in scientific circles, and finds no support in Scripture. The
Bible does not say that
the earth<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p23.4">
became</span>, but that it<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p23.5">
was</span>
waste and void. And even if the Hebrew verb<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p23.6">
hayetha </span>
can be rendered "became," the words "waste and void"
denote an unformed condition,
and not a condition resulting from destruction. Delitzsch combined with
this theory the
idea that the earth was originally inhabited by the angels, and that the
fall in the angelic
world was the cause of the destruction which resulted in the chaos
referred to in verse 2. For some reason or other this view finds considerable favor among
present day
dispensationalists, who find support for it in such passages as <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p23.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.24.1" parsed="|Isa|24|1|0|0" passage="Isa. 24:1">Isa. 24:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p23.8" osisRef="Bible:Jer.4.23-Jer.4.26" parsed="|Jer|4|23|4|26" passage="Jer. 4:23-26">Jer. 4:23-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p23.9" osisRef="Bible:Job.9.4-Job.9.7" parsed="|Job|9|4|9|7" passage="Job. 9:4-7">Job. 9:4-7</scripRef>; II Pet. 2:4. But even a careful reading of these passages is sufficient to convince
one that they do not prove the point in question at all. Moreover, the
Bible clearly
teaches us that God created heaven and earth "and all the host of
them" in six days, <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p23.10" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.1" parsed="|Gen|2|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:1">Gen. 2:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.v-p23.11" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.11" parsed="|Exod|20|11|0|0" passage="Ex. 20:11">Ex. 20:11</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p24" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p24.1"> The concordistic theory.</span>
This seeks to harmonize Scripture and science by assuming
that the days of creation were periods of thousands of years. In
addition to what was
said about this in discussing the days of creation, we may now add that
the idea that the
earth's strata positively point to long and successive periods of
development in the
history of its origin, is simply a theory of the geologists, and a
theory based on
unwarranted generalizations. We would call attention to the following
considerations:
(1) The science of geology is not only young, but it is still in bondage
to speculative
thought. It cannot be considered as an inductive science, since it is
largely the fruit of<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p24.2">
a priori</span>
or deductive reasoning. Spencer called it "Illogical Geology"
and ridiculed its
methods, and Huxley spoke of its grand hypotheses as "not proven
and not provable."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p24.3" n="74" place="foot">Price, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p24.4">The Fundamentals of Geology,</span> pp. 29, 32</note>
(2) Up to the present time it has done little more than scratch the
surface of the earth, and that in a very limited number of places. As a result
its conclusions are often mere
generalizations, based on insufficient data. Facts observed in some
places are
contradicted by those found in others. (3) Even if it had explored large
areas in all parts
of the globe, it could only increase our knowledge of the present
condition of the earth,
but would never be able to give us perfectly reliable information
respecting its past
history. You cannot write the history of a nation on the basis of the
facts observed in its
present constitution and life. (4) Geologists once proceeded on the
assumption that the
strata of rocks were found in the same order all over the globe; and
that by estimating
the length of time required by the formation of each it could determine
the age of the
earth. But (a) it was found that the order of the rocks differs in
various localities; (b) the
experiments made to determine the time required for the formation of the
different
strata, led to widely different results; and (c) the uniformitarian
theory of Lyell, that the
physical and chemical action of today are safe guides in estimating
those of all previous
times, was found to be unreliable.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p24.5" n="75" place="foot">Cf. More, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p24.6">The Dogma of Evolution,</span> p. 148</note> (5) When the attempt to determine the age of
the
various strata or rocks by their mineral and mechanical make-up failed,
geologists
began to make the fossils the determining factor. Palaeontology became
the really
important subject, and under the influence of the uniformitarian
principle of Lyell
developed into one of the important proofs of evolution. It is simply
assumed that certain fossils are older than others; and if the question is
asked on what basis the
assumption rests, the answer is that they are found in the older rocks.
This is just plain
reasoning in a circle. The age of the rocks is determined by the fossils
which they
contain, and the age of the fossils by the rocks in which they are
found. But the fossils
are not always found in the same order; sometimes the order is reversed.
(6) The order
of the fossils as now determined by geology does not correspond to the
order which the
narrative of creation leads us to expect, so that even the acceptance of
the geological
theory would not serve the purpose of harmonizing Scripture and science.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p25" shownumber="no">6. THE DOCTRINE OF CREATION AND THE THEORY OF EVOLUTION. The question
naturally arises in our day, How does the theory of evolution affect the
doctrine of
creation? </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p26" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p26.1">
The theory of evolution cannot take the place of the
doctrine of creation.</span>
Some speak as if
the hypothesis of evolution offered an explanation of the origin of the
world; but this is
clearly a mistake, for it does no such thing. Evolution is development,
and all
development presupposes the prior existence of an entity or principle or
force, out of
which something develops. The non-existent cannot<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p26.2">
develop</span>
into existence. Matter and
force could not have evolved out of nothing. It has been customary for
evolutionists to
fall back on the nebular hypothesis, in order to explain the origin of
the solar system,
though in present day science this is supplanted by the planetesimal
hypothesis. But
these only carry the problem one step farther back, and fail to solve
it. The evolutionist must either resort to the theory that matter is eternal,
or accept the doctrine of creation.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p27" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p27.1">The theory of naturalistic evolution is not in harmony with the narrative of creation.</span>
If evolution does not account for the origin of the world, does it not at
least give a rational
account of the development of things out of primordial matter, and thus
explain the
origin of the present species of plants and animals (including man), and
also the various
phenomena of life, such as sentiency, intelligence, morality, and
religion? Does it
necessarily conflict with the narrative of creation? Now it is
perfectly evident that
naturalistic evolution certainly does conflict with the Biblical
account. The Bible teaches
that plants and animals and man appeared on the scene at the creative
fiat of the Almighty; but according to the evolutionary hypothesis they evolved out
of the
inorganic world by a process of natural development. The Bible
represents God as
creating plants and animals after their kind, and yielding seed after
their kind, that is, so
that they would reproduce their own kind; but the theory of evolution
points to natural
forces, resident in nature, leading to the development of one species
out of another.
According to the narrative of creation, the vegetable and
animal kingdoms and man
were brought forth in a single week; but the hypothesis of evolution
regards them as the
product of a gradual development in the course of millions of years.
Scripture pictures
man as standing on the highest plane at the beginning of his career, and
then
descending to lower levels by the deteriorating influence of sin;
the theory of evolution, on the other hand, represents original man as only
slightly different from the brute, and
claims that the human race has risen, through its own inherent powers, to
ever higher
levels of
existence. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p28" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p28.1">
The theory of naturalistic evolution is not well
established and fails to account for the facts. </span>
The conflict referred to in the preceding would be a serious
matter, if the theory of
evolution were an established fact. Some think it is and confidently
speak of the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p28.2">
dogma </span>
of evolution. Others, however, correctly remind us of the fact that
evolution is still only
a hypothesis. Even so great a scientist as Ambrose Fleming says that
"the close analysis
of the ideas connected with the term Evolution shows them to be
insufficient as a
philosophic or scientific solution of the problems of reality and
existence."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p28.3" n="76" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p28.4">Evolution or Creation,</span> p. 29</note>
The very uncertainty which prevails in the camp of the evolutionists is proof
positive that
evolution is only a hypothesis. Moreover, it is frankly admitted to-day
by many who
still cling to the principle of evolution that they do not understand
its method of
operation. It was thought at one time that Darwin had furnished the key
to the whole
problem, but that key is now rather generally discarded. The foundation
pillars, on
which the Darwinian structure was reared, such as the principle of use
and disuse, the
struggle for existence, natural selection, and the transmission of
acquired characteristics,
have been removed one after another. Such evolutionists as Weissmann, De
Vries,
Mendel, and Bateson, all contributed to the collapse of the Darwinian
edifice.
Nordenskioeld,
in his<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p28.5">
History of Biology</span>, speaks of the
"dissolution of Darwinism" as an
established fact. Dennert calls us to the deathbed of Darwinism, and
O'Toole says,
"Darwinism is dead, and no grief of mourners can resuscitate the
corpse." Morton
speaks of "the bankruptcy of evolution," and Price of the
"phantom of organic
evolution." Darwinism, then, has admittedly failed to explain the
origin of species, and evolutionists have not been able to offer a better explanation. The
Mendelian law
accounts for variations, but not for the origin of new species. It
really points away from
the development of new species by a natural process. Some are of the
opinion that the
mutation theory of De Vries or Lloyd Morgan's theory of emergent
evolution points the
way, but neither one of these has proved to be a successful explanation
of the origin of
species by natural development pure and simple. It is now admitted that
the mutants of
De Vries are varietal rather than specific, and cannot be regarded as
the beginnings of
new species. And Morgan feels constrained to admit that he cannot
explain his
emergents without falling back upon some creative power that might be
called God.
Morton says: "The fact is that, besides creation, there is not even
a theory of origins to
hold the field
today."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p28.6" n="77" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p28.7">The Bankruptcy of Evolution.</span> p. 182</note></p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p29" shownumber="no">The hypothesis of evolution fails at several points. It
cannot explain the origin of life.
Evolutionists sought its explanation in spontaneous generation, an
unproved
assumption, which is now discredited. It is a well established fact in
science that life can
only come from antecedent life. Further, it has failed utterly to adduce
a single example
of one species producing another distinct (organic as distinguished from
varietal)
species. Bateson said in 1921: "We cannot see how the
differentiation in species came
about. Variations of many kinds, often considerable, we daily witness,
but no origin of
species.... Meanwhile, though our faith in evolution stands unshaken,
we have no
acceptable account of the origin of species."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p29.1" n="78" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p29.2">Science,</span> Jan. 20, 1922</note>
Neither has evolution been able
successfully to cope with the problems presented by the origin of man.
It has not even
succeeded in proving the physical descent of man from the brute. J. A.
Thomson, author
of<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p29.3">
The Outline of
Science</span>
and a leading evolutionist, holds that man really never
was an
animal, a fierce beastly looking creature, but that the first man sprang
suddenly, by a big
leap, from the primate stock into a human being. Much less has it been
able to explain
the psychical side of man's life. The human soul, endowed with
intelligence, self-
consciousness, freedom, conscience, and religious aspirations, remains
an unsolved
enigma. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p30" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p30.1">
Theistic evolution is not tenable in the light of
Scripture.</span>
Some Christian scientists and theologians seek to harmonize the doctrine of creation, as taught by
Scripture, and the theory of evolution by accepting what they call theistic
evolution. It is a protest against
the attempt to eliminate God, and postulates Him as the almighty worker
back of the
whole process of development. Evolution is regarded simply as God's
method of
working in the development of nature. Theistic evolution really amounts
to this, that
God created the world (the cosmos) by a process of evolution, a process
of natural
development, in which He does not miraculously intervene, except in
cases where this
is absolutely necessary. It is willing to admit that the absolute
beginning of the world
could only result from a direct creative activity of God; and, if it can
find no natural
explanation, will also grant a direct intervention of God in the
origination of life and of
man. It has been hailed as Christian evolution, though there is not
necessarily anything
Christian about it. Many, otherwise opposed to the theory of evolution,
have welcomed
it, because it recognizes God in the process and is supposed to be
compatible with the
Scriptural doctrine of creation. Hence it is freely taught in churches
and Sunday
Schools. As a matter of fact, however, it is a very dangerous hybrid.
The name is a
contradiction in terms, for it is neither theism nor naturalism, neither
creation nor
evolution in the accepted sense of the terms. And it does not require a
great deal of
penetration to see that Dr. Fairhurst is right in his conviction
"that theistic evolution
destroys the Bible as the inspired book of authority as effectively as
does atheistic
evolution."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p30.2" n="79" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p30.3">Theistic Evolution</span>, p. 7.</note>
Like naturalistic evolution it
teaches that it required millions of years to
produce the present habitable world; and that God did not create the
various species of
plants and animals, and that, so that they produced their own kind; that
man, at least on
his physical side, is a descendant of the brute and therefore began his
career on a low
level; that there has been no fall in the Biblical sense of the word,
but only repeated
lapses of men in their upward course; that sin is only a weakness,
resulting from man's
animal instincts and desires, and does not constitute guilt; that
redemption is brought
about by the ever-increasing control of the higher element in man over
his lower
propensities; that miracles do not occur, either in the natural or in
the spiritual world;
that regeneration, conversion, and sanctification are simply natural
psychological
changes, and so on. In a word, it is a theory that is absolutely
subversive of Scripture
truth. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p31" shownumber="no">Some
Christian scholars of the present day feel that Bergson's theory of<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p31.1">
Creative
Evolution</span>
commends itself to those who do not want to leave God out of consideration.
This French philosopher assumes an<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p31.2">
élan vital</span>
a vital impulse
in the world, as the
ground and animating principle of all life. This vital principle does
not spring from
matter, but is rather the originating cause of matter. It pervades
matter, overcomes its
inertia and resistance by acting as a living force on that which is
essentially dying, and
ever creates, not new material, but new movements adapted to ends of its
own, and thus creates very much as the artist creates. It is directive and
purposive and yet,
though conscious, does not work according to a preconceived plan, however
that may
be possible. It determines evolution itself as well as the direction in
which evolution
moves. This ever creating life, "of which every individual and
every species is an
experiment,"
is Bergson's God, a God who is finite, who is limited in power, and who is
seemingly impersonal, though Hermann says that
"we shall, perhaps, not go far wrong
in believing
that he will be 'the ideal tendency of things' made personal."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.v-p31.3" n="80" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p31.4">Eucken and Bergson,</span> p. 163</note>
Haas speaks
of Bergson as a vitalistic pantheist rather than a theist. At any rate,
his God is a God that
is wholly within the world. This view may have a special appeal for the
modern liberal
theologian, but is even less in harmony with the narrative of creation
than theistic  evolution.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p32" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. What is
the real alternative to the doctrine of
creation? Wherein lies the importance of the doctrine of creation?
Should the first
chapters of Genesis be allowed to have any bearing on the scientific
study of the origin
of things? Does the Bible in any way determine the time when the world
was created?
What extremes should be avoided as to the relation of God and the world
to each other?
Should the Bible always be interpreted in harmony with widely accepted
scientific
theories? What is the status of the hypothesis of evolution in the
scientific world today?
What is the characteristic element in the Darwinian theory of evolution?
How do you
account for its widespread repudiation at the present time? How does
Bergson's
Creative Evolution or the Neo-vitalism of Hans Driesch affect the
mechanistic view of
the universe? In what respect is theistic evolution an improvement over
naturalistic
evolution? </p>

<p id="iii.ii.v-p33" shownumber="no">LITERATURE. Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span> II. pp. 426-543; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.2">
Schepping of Ontwikkeling; </span>
Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.3">
Dict. Dogm., De Creatione</span>, pp. 3-127;<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.4">
De Creaturis</span>
A, pp. 5-54; B. pp. 3-42; ibid.,
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.5">Evolutie;</span>
Vos<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.6">
Geref. Dogm.</span> I,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.7">
De Schepping;</span>
Hodge.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.8">
Syst. Theol.</span> I, pp. 550-574; Shedd,
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.9">Dogm. Theol.</span> I, pp. 463-526; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.10">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 163-174;<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.11">
Dabney, Syst. and
Polemic Theol.</span>, pp. 247-274; Harris,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.12">
God, Creator and Lord of All</span>, I, pp. 463-518; Hepp, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.13">Calvinism and the Philosophy of Nature</span>, Chap. V;
Honig,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.14">Geref. Dogm.</span>, pp. 281-324;
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.15">Noordtzij, God's Woord en der Eeuwen
Getuigenis</span>, pp. 77-98; Aalders,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.16"> De Goddelijke Openbaring in de Eerste Drie
Hoofdstukken van Genesis;</span> Geesink,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.17"> Van's Heeren Ordinantien</span>,
Inleidend Deel, pp. 216-332; various works of Darwin, Wallace, Weissman,
Osborne,
Spencer, Haeckel, Thomson, and others on Evolution; Dennert,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.18">
The Deathbed of Darwinism;</span>
Dawson,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.19">
The Bible
Confirmed by Science;</span>
Fleming,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.20">
Evolution and Creation; </span>
Hamilton,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.21">
The Basis of Evolutionary Faith;</span>
Johnson,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.22">
Can the Christian Now Believe in Evolution?</span>
McCrady,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.23">
Reason and Revelation;</span>
More,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.24">
The Dogma of Evolution;</span>
Morton,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.25">
The Bankruptcy of Evolution;</span> O'Toole,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.26"> The Case
Against Evolution;</span> Price,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.27"> The Fundamentals of Geology;</span> ibid.,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.28">
The Phantom of
Organic Evolution;</span>
Messenger,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.29">
Evolution and Theology; </span> Rimmer,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.v-p33.30">
The Theory of
Evolution and the Facts of Science</span>.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iii.ii.vi" next="iv" prev="iii.ii.v" title="VI. Providence">
<h2 id="iii.ii.vi-p0.1">VI. Providence </h2>
<p id="iii.ii.vi-p1" shownumber="no">Christian theism is opposed to both a deistic separation
of God from the world and a pantheistic confusion of God with the world. Hence the doctrine of
creation is
immediately followed by that of providence, in which the Scriptural view
of God's
relation to the world is clearly defined. While the term
"providence" is not found in
Scripture, the doctrine of providence is nevertheless eminently
Scriptural. The word is
derived from the Latin<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p1.1">
providentia</span>
which corresponds
to the Greek<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p1.2">
pronoia.</span>
These words
mean primarily prescience or foresight, but gradually acquired other
meanings.
Foresight is associated, on the one hand, with plans for the future, and
on the other
hand, with the actual realization of these plans. Thus the word
"providence" has come
to signify the provision which God makes for the ends of His government,
and the
preservation and government of all His creatures. This is the sense in
which it is now
generally used in theology, but it is not the only sense in which
theologians have
employed it. Turretin defines the term in its widest sense as denoting
(1)
foreknowledge, (2) foreordination, and (3) the efficacious
administration of the things
decreed. In general usage, however, it is now generally restricted to
the last sense.</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.vi-p1.3">A. PROVIDENCE IN GENERAL</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.vi-p2" shownumber="no">1. HISTORY OF THE DOCTRINE OF PROVIDENCE. With its doctrine of providence the
Church took position against both, the Epicurean notion that the world is
governed by
chance, and the Stoic view that it is ruled by fate. From the very start
theologians took
the position that God preserves and governs the world. However, they did
not always
have an equally absolute conception of the divine control of all things.
Due to the close
connection between the two, the history of the doctrine of providence
follows in the
main that of the doctrine of predestination. The earliest Church Fathers
present no
definite views on the subject. In opposition to the Stoic doctrine of
fate and in their
desire to guard the holiness of God, they sometimes over-emphasized the
free will of
man, and to that extent manifested a tendency to deny the absolute
providential rule of
God with respect to sinful actions. Augustine led the way in the
development of this
doctrine. Over against the doctrines of fate and chance, he stressed the
fact that all
things are preserved and governed by the sovereign, wise, and beneficent
will of God.
He made no reservations in connection with the providence of God, but
maintained the
control of God over the good and the evil that is in the world alike. By
defending the
reality of second causes. he safeguarded the holiness of God and upheld
the
responsibility of man. During the Middle Ages there was very little
controversy on the
subject of divine providence. Not a single council expressed itself on
this doctrine. The
prevailing view was that of Augustine, which subjected everything to the
will of God.
This does not mean, however, that there were no dissenting views.
Pelagianism limited
providence to the natural life, and excluded the ethical life. And
Semi-Pelagians moved
in the same direction, though they did not all go equally far. Some of
the Scholastics considered the conservation of God as a continuation of His
creative activity, while
others made a real distinction between the two. Thomas Aquinas' doctrine
of divine
providence follows in the main that of Augustine, and holds that the
will of God, as
determined by His perfections, preserves and governs all things; while
Duns Scotus and
such Nominaltists as Biel and Occam made everything dependent on the
arbitrary will
of God. This was a virtual introduction of the rule of
chance.</p>
<p id="iii.ii.vi-p3" shownumber="no">The Reformers on the whole subscribed to the Augustinian
doctrine of divine
providence, though they differed somewhat in details. While Luther
believed in general
providence, he does not stress God's preservation and government of the
world in
general as much as Calvin does. He considers the doctrine primarily in
its soteriological
bearings. Socinians and Arminians, though not both to the same degree,
limited the
providence of God by stressing the independent power of man to initiate
action and
thus to control his life. The control of the world was really taken out
of the hands of
God, and given into the hands of man. In the eighteenth and nineteenth
centuries
providence was virtually ruled out by a Deism which represented God as
withdrawing
Himself from the world after the work of creation; and by
a Pantheism which identified
God and the world, obliterated the distinction between creation and
providence, and
denied the reality of second causes. And while Deism may now be
considered as a thing
of the past, its view of the control of the world is continued in the
position of natural
science that the world is controlled by an iron-clad system of laws. And
modern liberal
theology, with its pantheistic conception of the immanence of God, also
tends to rule
out the doctrine of divine providence.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p4" shownumber="no">2.THE IDEA OF PROVIDENCE. Providence may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p4.1">
that
continued exercise of the divine energy whereby the Creator
preserves all His creatures, is operative in all that comes to pass in the world, and directs all things to their
appointed end.</span>
This definition indicates that
there are three elements in providence, namely, preservation (<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p4.2">conservatio</span>,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p4.3"> sustentatio</span>),
concurrence or
cooperation (<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p4.4">concursus</span>,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p4.5"> co-operatio</span>), and government (<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p4.6">gubernatio</span>) Calvin,
the Heidelberg Catechism, and some of the more recent dogmaticians
(Dabney, the
Hodges, Dick, Shedd, McPherson) speak of only two elements, namely,
preservation
and government. This does not mean, however, that they want to exclude
the element
of concurrence but only that they regard it as included in the other two
as indicating the
manner in which God preserves and governs the world. McPherson seems to
think that
only some of the great Lutheran theologians adopted the threefold
division; but in this
he is mistaken, for it is very common in the works of Dutch dogmaticians
from the
seventeenth century on (Mastricht, à Marck, De Moor, Brakel, Francken,
Kuyper,
Bavinck, Vos, Honig). They departed from the older division, because
they wanted to
give the element of concurrence greater prominence, in order to guard
against the
dangers of both Deism and Pantheism. But while we distinguish three
elements in
providence, we should remember that these three are never separated in
the work of
God. While preservation has reference to the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p4.7">
being</span>, concurrence to the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p4.8">
activity</span>
and
government to the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p4.9">
guidance</span>
of all things,
this should never be understood in an
exclusive sense. In preservation there is also an element of government,
in government
an element of concursus, and in concursus an element of preservation.
Pantheism does
not distinguish between creation and providence, but theism stresses a
twofold
distinction: (a) Creation is the calling into existence of that which
did not exist before,
while providence continues or causes to continue what has already been
called into
existence. (b) In the former there can be no cooperation of the creature
with the Creator,
but in the latter there is a concurrence of the first Cause with second
causes. In Scripture
the two are always kept distinct.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p5" shownumber="no">3. MISCONCEPTIONS CONCERNING THE NATURE OF PROVIDENCE.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p6" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p6.1"> Limiting it to prescience or prescience plus
foreordination.</span>
This limitation is found in
some of the early Church Fathers. The fact is, however, that when we
speak of the
providence of God, we generally have in mind neither His prescience nor
His
foreordination, but simply His continued activity in the world for the
realization of His
plan. We realize that this cannot be separated from His eternal decree,
but also feel that
the two can and should be distinguished. The two have often been
distinguished as immanent and transeunt providence.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p7" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p7.1">
The deistic conception of divine providence.</span>
According to
Deism God's concern with
the world is not universal, special and perpetual, but only of a general
nature. At the
time of creation He imparted to all His creatures certain inalienable
properties, placed
them under invariable laws, and left them to work out their destiny by
their own
inherent powers. Meanwhile He merely exercises a general oversight, not
of the specific
agents that appear on the scene, but of the general laws which He has
established. The
world is simply a machine which God has put in motion, and not at all a
vessel which
He pilots from day to day. This deistic conception of providence is
characteristic of
Pelagianism, was adopted by several Roman Catholic theologians, was
sponsored by
Socinianism, and was only one of the fundamental errors of Arminianism.
It was
clothed in a philosophic garb by the Deists of the eighteenth century,
and appeared in a
new form in the nineteenth century, under the influence of the
theory of evolution and
of natural science, with its strong emphasis on the uniformity of nature
as controlled by
an inflexible
system of iron-clad laws. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p8" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p8.1"> The pantheistic view of divine providence.</span>
Pantheism does
not recognize the
distinction between God and the world. It either idealistically absorbs
the world in God,
or materialistically absorbs God in the world. In either case it leaves
no room for
creation and also eliminates providence in the proper sense of the word.
It is true that
Pantheists speak of providence, but their so-called providence is simply
identical with the course of nature, and this is nothing but the
self-revelation of God, a self-revelation
that leaves no room for the independent operation of second causes in
any sense of the
word. From this point of view the supernatural is impossible, or,
rather, the natural and
the supernatural are identical, the consciousness of free personal
self-determination in
man is a delusion, moral responsibility is a figment of the imagination,
and prayer and religious worship are superstition. Theology has always been
quite careful to ward off
the dangers of Pantheism, but during the last century this error
succeeded in
entrenching itself in a great deal of modern liberal theology under the
guise of the
doctrine of the immanence of God.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.vi-p8.2" n="81" place="foot">Cf. Randall, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p8.3">The Making of the Modern Mind</span>, p.538.</note></p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p9" shownumber="no">4. THE OBJECTS OF DIVINE PROVIDENCE.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p10" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p10.1"> The teachings of Scripture on this point.</span>
The Bible
clearly teaches God's providential
control (1) over
the universe at large, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.19" parsed="|Ps|103|19|0|0" passage="Ps. 103:19">Ps. 103:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Dan.5.35" parsed="|Dan|5|35|0|0" passage="Dan. 5:35">Dan. 5:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:11">Eph. 1:11</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2" parsed="|Eph|2|0|0|0" passage="Eph 2">2</scripRef>) over the
physical world,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:Job.37.5" parsed="|Job|37|5|0|0" passage="Job 37:5">Job 37:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:Job.37.10" parsed="|Job|37|10|0|0" passage="Job 37:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.14" parsed="|Ps|104|14|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:14">Ps. 104:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.135.6" parsed="|Ps|135|6|0|0" passage="Ps 135:6">135:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.45" parsed="|Matt|5|45|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:45">Matt. 5:45</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3" parsed="|Matt|3|0|0|0" passage="Matt 3">3</scripRef>) over the brute creation, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.21" parsed="|Ps|104|21|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:21">Ps. 104:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.28" parsed="|Ps|104|28|0|0" passage="Ps 104:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.26" parsed="|Matt|6|26|0|0" passage="Matt. 6:26">Matt.
6:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.29" parsed="|Matt|10|29|0|0" passage="Matt 10:29">10:29</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.4" parsed="|Matt|4|0|0|0" passage="Matt 4">4</scripRef>) over the affairs of nations, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.17" osisRef="Bible:Job.12.23" parsed="|Job|12|23|0|0" passage="Job 12:23">Job 12:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.18" osisRef="Bible:Ps.22.28" parsed="|Ps|22|28|0|0" passage="Ps. 22:28">Ps. 22:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.19" osisRef="Bible:Ps.66.7" parsed="|Ps|66|7|0|0" passage="Ps 66:7">66:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.20" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.26" parsed="|Acts|17|26|0|0" passage="Acts 17:26">Acts 17:26</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.21" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5" parsed="|Acts|5|0|0|0" passage="Acts 5">5</scripRef>) over
man's birth and lot in life, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.22" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.1" parsed="|1Sam|16|1|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:1">I Sam. 16:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.23" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.16" parsed="|Ps|139|16|0|0" passage="Ps. 139:16">Ps. 139:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.24" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.5" parsed="|Isa|45|5|0|0" passage="Isa. 45:5">Isa. 45:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.25" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.15" parsed="|Gal|1|15|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:15">Gal. 1:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.26" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.16" parsed="|Gal|1|16|0|0" passage="Gal 1:16">16</scripRef>;
(<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.27" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6" parsed="|Gal|6|0|0|0" passage="Gal 6">6</scripRef>) over the outward
successes and failures of men's lives, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.28" osisRef="Bible:Ps.75.6" parsed="|Ps|75|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 75:6">Ps. 75:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.29" osisRef="Bible:Ps.75.7" parsed="|Ps|75|7|0|0" passage="Ps 75:7">7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.30" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.52" parsed="|Luke|1|52|0|0" passage="Luke 1:52">Luke 1:52</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.31" osisRef="Bible:Luke.7" parsed="|Luke|7|0|0|0" passage="Luke 7">7</scripRef>) over
things seemingly
accidental or insignificant, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.32" osisRef="Bible:Prov.16.33" parsed="|Prov|16|33|0|0" passage="Prov. 16:33">Prov. 16:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.33" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.30" parsed="|Matt|10|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:30">Matt. 10:30</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.34" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8" parsed="|Matt|8|0|0|0" passage="Matt 8">8</scripRef>) in the protection
of the
righteous, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.35" osisRef="Bible:Ps.4.8" parsed="|Ps|4|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 4:8">Ps. 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.36" osisRef="Bible:Ps.5.12" parsed="|Ps|5|12|0|0" passage="Ps 5:12">5:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.37" osisRef="Bible:Ps.63.8" parsed="|Ps|63|8|0|0" passage="Ps 63:8">63:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.38" osisRef="Bible:Ps.121.3" parsed="|Ps|121|3|0|0" passage="Ps 121:3">121:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.39" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.28" parsed="|Rom|8|28|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:28">Rom. 8:28</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.40" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9" parsed="|Rom|9|0|0|0" passage="Rom 9">9</scripRef>) in supplying the wants of
God's
people, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.41" osisRef="Bible:Gen.22.8" parsed="|Gen|22|8|0|0" passage="Gen. 22:8">Gen. 22:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.42" osisRef="Bible:Gen.22.14" parsed="|Gen|22|14|0|0" passage="Gen 22:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.43" osisRef="Bible:Deut.8.3" parsed="|Deut|8|3|0|0" passage="Deut. 8:3">Deut. 8:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.44" osisRef="Bible:Phil.4.19" parsed="|Phil|4|19|0|0" passage="Phil. 4:19">Phil. 4:19</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.45" osisRef="Bible:Phil.10" parsed="|Phil|10|0|0|0" passage="Phil 10">10</scripRef>) in giving answers to prayer, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.46" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.1.19" parsed="|1Sam|1|19|0|0" passage="I Sam. 1:19">I Sam. 1:19</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.47" osisRef="Bible:Isa.20.5" parsed="|Isa|20|5|0|0" passage="Isa. 20:5">Isa. 20:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.48" osisRef="Bible:Isa.20.6" parsed="|Isa|20|6|0|0" passage="Isa 20:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.49" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.33.13" parsed="|2Chr|33|13|0|0" passage="II Chron. 33:13">II Chron. 33:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.50" osisRef="Bible:Ps.65.2" parsed="|Ps|65|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 65:2">Ps. 65:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.51" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.7" parsed="|Matt|7|7|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:7">Matt. 7:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.52" osisRef="Bible:Luke.18.7" parsed="|Luke|18|7|0|0" passage="Luke 18:7">Luke 18:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.53" osisRef="Bible:Luke.18.8" parsed="|Luke|18|8|0|0" passage="Luke 18:8">8</scripRef>; and (11) in the exposure and
punishment of the wicked, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.54" osisRef="Bible:Ps.7.12" parsed="|Ps|7|12|0|0" passage="Ps. 7:12">Ps. 7:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.55" osisRef="Bible:Ps.7.13" parsed="|Ps|7|13|0|0" passage="Ps 7:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p10.56" osisRef="Bible:Ps.11.6" parsed="|Ps|11|6|0|0" passage="Ps 11:6">11:6</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p11" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p11.1">
General and special providence.</span>
Theologians
generally distinguish between general
and special providence, the former denoting God's control of the
universe as a whole, and the latter, His care for each part of it in relation to the whole.
These are not two
kinds of providence, but the same providence exercised in two different
relations. The
term "special providence," however, may have a more specific
connotation, and in some
cases refers to God's special care for His rational creatures. Some even
speak of a very
special providence (<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p11.2">providentia specialissima</span>) with reference to those who stand in the
special relationship of sonship to God. Special providences are special
combinations in
the order of events, as in the answer to prayer, in deliverance out of
trouble, and in all
instances in which grace and help come in critical circumstances.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p12" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p12.1">
The denial of special providence.</span>
There are those
who are willing to admit a general
providence, an administration of the world under a fixed system of
general laws, but deny that there is also a special providence in which God
concerns Himself with the
details of history, the affairs of human life, and particularly the
experiences of the
righteous. Some hold that God is too great to concern Himself with the
smaller things of
life, while others maintain that He simply cannot do it, since the laws
of nature bind His
hands, and therefore smile significantly when they hear of God's
answering man's
prayers. Now it need not be denied that the relation of special
providence to the
uniform laws of nature constitutes a problem. At the same time it must
be said that it
involves a very poor, superficial, and un-Biblical view of God to say
that He does not
and cannot concern Himself with the details of life, cannot answer
prayer, give relief in
emergencies, or intervene miraculously in behalf of man. A ruler that
simply laid down
certain general principles and paid no attention to particulars, or a
business man who
failed to look after the details of his business, would soon come to
grief. The Bible
teaches that even the minutest details of life are of divine ordering.
In connection with
the question, whether we can harmonize the operation of the general laws
of nature and
special providence, we can only point to the following: (1) The laws of
nature should
not be represented as powers of nature absolutely controlling all
phenomena and
operations. They are really nothing more than man's, often deficient,
description of the
uniformity in variety discovered in the way in which the powers of
nature work. (2) The
materialistic conception of the laws of nature as a close-knit system,
acting
independently of God and really making it impossible for Him to
interfere in the course of the world, is absolutely wrong. The universe has a
personal basis, and the uniformity
of nature is simply the method ordained by a personal agent. (3) The
so-called laws of
nature produce the same effects only if all the conditions are the same.
Effects are not
generally the results of a single power, but of a combination of natural
powers. Even a
man can vary the effects by combining one power of nature with some
other power or
powers, while yet each one of these powers works in strict accordance
with its laws.
And if this is possible for man, it is infinitely more possible for God.
By all kinds of
combinations He can bring about the most varied results.
</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.vi-p12.2">B. PRESERVATION</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.vi-p13" shownumber="no">1. BASIS FOR THE DOCTRINE OF PRESERVATION. Proof for the doctrine of preservation
is
both direct and inferential.</p>
<p id="iii.ii.vi-p14" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p14.1">
Direct proof.</span>
The divine
preservation of all things is clearly and explicitly taught in
several passages of Scripture. The following are but a few of the many
passages that
might be
mentioned: <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Deut.33.12" parsed="|Deut|33|12|0|0" passage="Deut. 33:12">Deut. 33:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Deut.33.25-Deut.33.28" parsed="|Deut|33|25|33|28" passage="Deut 33:25-28">25-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.2.9" parsed="|1Sam|2|9|0|0" passage="I Sam. 2:9">I Sam. 2:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.6" parsed="|Neh|9|6|0|0" passage="Neh. 9:6">Neh. 9:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.107.9" parsed="|Ps|107|9|0|0" passage="Ps. 107:9">Ps. 107:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.127.1" parsed="|Ps|127|1|0|0" passage="Ps 127:1">127:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.14" parsed="|Ps|145|14|0|0" passage="Ps 145:14">145:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.15" parsed="|Ps|145|15|0|0" passage="Ps 145:15">15</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.29" parsed="|Matt|10|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:29">Matt. 10:29</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.28" parsed="|Acts|17|28|0|0" passage="Acts 17:28">Acts 17:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.12" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.17" parsed="|Col|1|17|0|0" passage="Col. 1:17">Col. 1:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.13" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.3" parsed="|Heb|1|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:3">Heb. 1:3</scripRef>. Very numerous are the passages that speak of
the Lord as
preserving His people, such as, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.14" osisRef="Bible:Gen.28.15" parsed="|Gen|28|15|0|0" passage="Gen. 28:15">Gen. 28:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.15" osisRef="Bible:Gen.49.24" parsed="|Gen|49|24|0|0" passage="Gen 49:24">49:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.16" osisRef="Bible:Exod.14.29" parsed="|Exod|14|29|0|0" passage="Ex. 14:29">Ex. 14:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.17" osisRef="Bible:Exod.14.30" parsed="|Exod|14|30|0|0" passage="Ex 14:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.18" osisRef="Bible:Deut.1.30" parsed="|Deut|1|30|0|0" passage="Deut. 1:30">Deut. 1:30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.19" osisRef="Bible:Deut.1.31" parsed="|Deut|1|31|0|0" passage="Deut 1:31">31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.20" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.20.15" parsed="|2Chr|20|15|0|0" passage="II Chron. 20:15">II Chron. 20:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.21" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.20.17" parsed="|2Chr|20|17|0|0" passage="II Chron. 20:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.22" osisRef="Bible:Job.1.10" parsed="|Job|1|10|0|0" passage="Job 1:10">Job 1:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.23" osisRef="Bible:Job.36.7" parsed="|Job|36|7|0|0" passage="Job 36:7">36:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.24" osisRef="Bible:Ps.31.20" parsed="|Ps|31|20|0|0" passage="Ps. 31:20">Ps. 31:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.25" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.6" parsed="|Ps|32|6|0|0" passage="Ps 32:6">32:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.26" osisRef="Bible:Ps.34.15" parsed="|Ps|34|15|0|0" passage="Ps 34:15">34:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.27" osisRef="Bible:Ps.34.17" parsed="|Ps|34|17|0|0" passage="Ps 34:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.28" osisRef="Bible:Ps.34.19" parsed="|Ps|34|19|0|0" passage="Ps 34:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.29" osisRef="Bible:Ps.37.15" parsed="|Ps|37|15|0|0" passage="Ps 37:15">37:15</scripRef>,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.30" osisRef="Bible:Ps.37.17" parsed="|Ps|37|17|0|0" passage="Ps 37:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.31" osisRef="Bible:Ps.37.19" parsed="|Ps|37|19|0|0" passage="Ps 37:19">19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.32" osisRef="Bible:Ps.37.20" parsed="|Ps|37|20|0|0" passage="Ps 37:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.33" osisRef="Bible:Ps.91.1" parsed="|Ps|91|1|0|0" passage="Ps 91:1">91:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.34" osisRef="Bible:Ps.91.3" parsed="|Ps|91|3|0|0" passage="Ps 91:3">3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.35" osisRef="Bible:Ps.91.4" parsed="|Ps|91|4|0|0" passage="Ps 91:4">4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.36" osisRef="Bible:Ps.91.7" parsed="|Ps|91|7|0|0" passage="Ps 91:7">7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.37" osisRef="Bible:Ps.91.9" parsed="|Ps|91|9|0|0" passage="Ps 91:9">9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.38" osisRef="Bible:Ps.91.10" parsed="|Ps|91|10|0|0" passage="Ps 91:10">10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.39" osisRef="Bible:Ps.91.14" parsed="|Ps|91|14|0|0" passage="Ps 91:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.40" osisRef="Bible:Ps.121.3" parsed="|Ps|121|3|0|0" passage="Ps 121:3">121:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.41" osisRef="Bible:Ps.121.4" parsed="|Ps|121|4|0|0" passage="Ps 121:4">4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.42" osisRef="Bible:Ps.121.7" parsed="|Ps|121|7|0|0" passage="Ps 121:7">7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.43" osisRef="Bible:Ps.121.8" parsed="|Ps|121|8|0|0" passage="Ps 121:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.44" osisRef="Bible:Ps.125.1" parsed="|Ps|125|1|0|0" passage="Ps 125:1">125:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.45" osisRef="Bible:Ps.125.2" parsed="|Ps|125|2|0|0" passage="Ps 125:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.46" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.11" parsed="|Isa|40|11|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:11">Isa. 40:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.47" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.2" parsed="|Isa|43|2|0|0" passage="Isa 43:2">43:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.48" osisRef="Bible:Isa.63.9" parsed="|Isa|63|9|0|0" passage="Isa 63:9">63:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.49" osisRef="Bible:Jer.30.7" parsed="|Jer|30|7|0|0" passage="Jer. 30:7">Jer. 30:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.50" osisRef="Bible:Jer.30.8" parsed="|Jer|30|8|0|0" passage="Jer 30:8">8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.51" osisRef="Bible:Jer.30.11" parsed="|Jer|30|11|0|0" passage="Jer 30:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.52" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.34.11" parsed="|Ezek|34|11|0|0" passage="Ezek. 34:11">Ezek. 34:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.53" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.34.12" parsed="|Ezek|34|12|0|0" passage="Ezek 34:12">12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.54" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.34.15" parsed="|Ezek|34|15|0|0" passage="Ezek 34:15">15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.55" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.34.16" parsed="|Ezek|34|16|0|0" passage="Ezek 34:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.56" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.1" parsed="|Dan|12|1|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:1">Dan. 12:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.57" osisRef="Bible:Zech.2.5" parsed="|Zech|2|5|0|0" passage="Zech. 2:5">Zech. 2:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.58" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.18" parsed="|Luke|21|18|0|0" passage="Luke 21:18">Luke 21:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.59" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.13" parsed="|1Cor|10|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:13">I Cor. 10:13</scripRef>; I. Pet. 3:12; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p14.60" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.10" parsed="|Rev|3|10|0|0" passage="Rev. 3:10">Rev. 3:10</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p15" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p15.1">
Inferential proof.</span>
The idea of
divine preservation follows from the doctrine of the
sovereignty of God. This can only be conceived of as absolute; but it
would not be
absolute, if anything existed or occurred independently of His will. It
can be maintained
only on condition that the whole universe and all that is in it, is in
its being and action
absolutely dependent on God. It follows also from the dependent
character of the
creature. It is characteristic of all that is creature, that it cannot
continue to exist in virtue
of its own inherent power. It has the ground of its being and
continuance in the will of
its Creator. Only He who created the world by the word of His power, can
uphold it by His omnipotence.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p16" shownumber="no">2. THE PROPER CONCEPTION OF DIVINE PRESERVATION. The doctrine of preservation
proceeds on the assumption that all created substances, whether they be
spiritual or
material, possess real and permanent existence, distinct from the
existence of God, and
have only such active and passive properties as they have derived from
God; and that
their active powers have a real, and not merely an apparent, efficiency
as second causes,
so that they are able to produce the effects proper to them. Thus it
guards against
Pantheism, with its idea of a continued creation, which virtually, if
not always expressly,
denies the distinct existence of the world, and makes God the sole agent
in the universe.
But it does not regard these created substances as self-existent, since self-existence
is the
exclusive property of God, and all creatures have the ground of their
continued
existence in Him and not in themselves. From this it follows that they
continue to exist,
not in virtue of a merely negative act of God, but in virtue of a
positive and continued
exercise of divine power. The power of God put forth in upholding all
things is just as
positive as that exercised in creation. The precise nature of His work
in sustaining all
things in being and action is a mystery, though it may be said that, in
His providential
operations, He accommodates Himself to the nature of His creatures. With
Shedd we
say: "In the material world, God immediately works in and through
material properties
and laws. In the mental world, God immediately works in
and through the properties of
mind. Preservation never runs counter to creation. God does not violate
in providence
what He has established in creation."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.vi-p16.1" n="82" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p16.2">Dogm. Theol.</span> I, p. 528</note>
Preservation may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p16.3">
that continuous work of God by which He maintains the
things which He created, together with the properties and powers with which He endowed
them. </span> </p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p17" shownumber="no">3. ERRONEOUS CONCEPTIONS OF DIVINE PRESERVATION. The nature of this work of God
is not always properly understood. There are two views of it which ought
to be
avoided: (a)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p17.1">
That it is purely negative.</span>
According to
Deism divine preservation consists in
this, that God does not destroy the work of His hands. By virtue of
creation God
endowed matter with certain properties, placed it under invariable laws,
and then left it
to shift for itself, independently of all support or direction from
without. This is an
unreasonable, irreligious, and an un-Biblical representation. It is
unreasonable, because
it implies that God communicated self-subsistence to the creature, while
self-subsistence
and self-sustenation are incommunicable properties, which characterize
only the
Creator. The creature can never be self-sustaining, but must be upheld
from day to day
by the almighty power of the Creator. Hence it would not require a
positive act of
omnipotence on the part of God to annihilate created existences. A
simple withdrawal
of support would naturally result in destruction. — This view is
irreligious, because it
removes God so far from His creation that communion with Him becomes a
practical
impossibility. History plainly testifies to the fact that it uniformly
spells death for
religion. — It is also un-Biblical, since it puts God altogether outside
of His creation,
while the Bible teaches us in many passages that He is not only
transcendent but also
immanent in the
works of His hands. (b)<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p17.2">
That it
is a continuous creation.</span>
Pantheism
represents preservation as a continuous creation, so that the creatures
or second causes
are conceived as having no real or continuous existence, but as
emanating in every
successive moment out of that mysterious Absolute which is the hidden
ground of all
things. Some who were not Pantheists had a similar view of preservation.
Descartes laid
the basis for such a conception of it, and Malebranche pushed this to
the farthest
extreme consistent with theism. Even Jonathan Edwards teaches it
incidentally in his work on Original Sin, and thus comes dangerously near to teaching
Pantheism. Such a
view of preservation leaves no room for second causes, and therefore
necessarily leads
to Pantheism. It is contrary to our original and necessary intuitions,
which assure us
that we are real, self-determining causes of action, and consequently
moral agents.
Moreover, it strikes at the very root of free agency, moral
accountability, moral
government, and therefore of religion itself. Some Reformed theologians
also use the
term "continuous creation,"<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.vi-p17.3" n="83" place="foot">Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p17.4">Geref. Dogm.</span> II, p. 654; Heppe, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p17.5">Dogm.,</span> p. 190; McPherson, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p17.6">Chr. Dogm.,</span> p. 177.</note>
but do not thereby mean to teach the doctrine
under
consideration. They simply desire to stress the fact that the world is
maintained by the
same power which created it. In view of the the fact that the expression
is liable to
misunderstanding, it is better to avoid it.
</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.vi-p17.7">C. CONCURRENCE</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.vi-p18" shownumber="no">1. THE IDEA OF DIVINE CONCURRENCE AND SCRIPTURAL PROOF FOR IT.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p19" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p19.1">
Definition and explanation.</span>
Concurrence may
be defined as<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p19.2">
the co-operation of the divine power with all subordinate
powers, according to the pre-established laws of their
operation, causing them to act and to act precisely as
they do.</span>
Some are inclined to limit its
operation, as far as man is concerned. to human actions that are morally
good and therefore commendable; others. more logically, extend it to actions of
every kind. It
should be noted at the outset that this doctrine implies two things: (1)
That the powers
of nature do not work by themselves, that is, simply by their own
inherent power, but
that God is immediately operative in every act of the creature. This
must be maintained
in opposition to the deistic position. (2) That second causes are real,
and not to be
regarded simply as the operative power of God. It is only on condition
that second
causes are real, that we can properly speak of a concurrence or
co-operation of the First
Cause with secondary causes. This should be stressed over against the
pantheistic idea
that God is the only agent working in the world.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p20" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p20.1">
Scripture proof for divine concurrence.</span>
The Bible
clearly teaches that the providence
of God pertains not only to the being but also to the actions or
operations of the
creature. The general truth that men do not work independently, but are
controlled by
the will of God, appears from several passages of Scripture. Joseph says
in <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.45.5" parsed="|Gen|45|5|0|0" passage="Gen. 45:5">Gen. 45:5</scripRef>
that God rather than his brethren had sent him to Egypt. In <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Exod.4.11" parsed="|Exod|4|11|0|0" passage="Ex. 4:11">Ex. 4:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:Exod.4.12" parsed="|Exod|4|12|0|0" passage="Ex 4:12">12</scripRef>
the Lord says
that He will be with Moses' mouth and teach him what to say; and in <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:Josh.11.6" parsed="|Josh|11|6|0|0" passage="Jos. 11:6">Jos.
11:6</scripRef> He gives Joshua the assurance that He will deliver the enemies to Israel.
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Prov.21.1" parsed="|Prov|21|1|0|0" passage="Proverbs 21:1">Proverbs 21:1</scripRef> teaches us
that "the king's heart is in the hand of Jehovah. . . . He turneth
it whithersoever He will"; and <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.6.22" parsed="|Ezra|6|22|0|0" passage="Ezra 6:22">Ezra 6:22</scripRef>, that Jehovah "had turned the heart of
the king of Assyria" unto
Israel. In <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Deut.8.18" parsed="|Deut|8|18|0|0" passage="Deut 8:18">Deut 8:18</scripRef> Israel is reminded of the fact that it was Jehovah
that gave it power
to get wealth. More particularly, it is also evident from Scripture that
there is some kind
of divine co-operation in that which is evil. According to <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.16.11" parsed="|2Sam|16|11|0|0" passage="II Sam. 16:11">II Sam. 16:11</scripRef>
Jehovah bade
Shimei to curse David. The Lord also calls the Assyrian "the rod of
mine anger, the staff in whose hand is mine indignation," <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.10" osisRef="Bible:Isa.10.5" parsed="|Isa|10|5|0|0" passage="Isa. 10:5">Isa. 10:5</scripRef>.
Moreover, He provided for a lying spirit
in the mouth of the prophets of Ahab, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p20.11" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.22.20-1Kgs.22.23" parsed="|1Kgs|22|20|22|23" passage="I Kings 22:20-23">I Kings 22:20-23</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p21" shownumber="no">2. ERRORS THAT SHOULD BE AVOIDED. There are several errors against which we should guard in connection with this doctrine.

a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p21.1">That it consists merely in a general communication of
power, without determining the specific action in any way.</span>
Jesuits,
Socinians, and Arminians maintain that the divine
concurrence is only a general and indifferent co-operation, so that it
is the second cause
that directs the action to its particular end. It is common alike to all
causes, quickening
them into action, but in a way that is entirely indeterminate. While it
stimulates the
second cause, it leaves this to determine its own particular kind and
mode of action. But
if this were the situation, it would be in the power of man to frustrate
the plan of God,
and the First Cause would become subservient to the second. Man would be
in control,
and there would be no divine providence.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p22" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p22.1">
That it is of such a nature that man does part of the
work and God a part.</span>
The cooperation of God and man is sometimes represented as if it were
something like the
joint efforts of a team of horses pulling together, each one doing his
part. This is a
mistaken view of the distribution of the work. As a matter of fact each
deed is in its
entirety both a deed of God and a deed of the creature. It is a deed of
God in so far as
there is nothing that is independent of the divine will, and in so far
as it is determined
from moment to moment by the will of God. And it is a deed of man in so
far as God
realizes it through the self-activity of the creature. There is
interpenetration here, but no
mutual limitation.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p23" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p23.1">
That the work of God and that of the creature in
concurrence are co-ordinate.</span>
This is
already excluded by what was said in the preceding. The work of God
always has the
priority, for man is dependent on God in all that he does. The statement
of Scripture,
"Without me ye can do nothing," applies in every field of
endeavor. The exact relation
of the two is best indicated in the following characteristics of the
divine concurrence.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p24" shownumber="no">3. CHARACTERISTICS OF THE DIVINE CONCURRENCE.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p25" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p25.1">
It is previous
and pre-determining, not in a temporal but in a logical sense.</span>
There is no
absolute principle of self-activity in the creature, to which God simply
joins His activity.
In every instance the impulse to action and movement proceeds from God.
There must
be an influence of divine energy before the creature can work. It
should be noted
particularly that this influence does not terminate on the
activity of the creature, but on
the creature itself. God causes everything in nature to work and to move
in the direction
of a pre-determined end. So God also enables and prompts His rational
creatures, as
second causes, to function, and that not merely by endowing them with
energy in a
general way, but by energizing them to certain specific acts. He worketh
all things in all,
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p25.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.6" parsed="|1Cor|12|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:6">I Cor. 12:6</scripRef>, and worketh all things, also in this respect, according to
the counsel of His
will, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p25.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.11" parsed="|Eph|1|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:11">Eph. 1:11</scripRef>. He gave Israel power to get wealth, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p25.4" osisRef="Bible:Deut.8.18" parsed="|Deut|8|18|0|0" passage="Deut. 8:18">Deut. 8:18</scripRef>, and
worketh in believers
both to will and to do according to His good pleasure, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p25.5" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>.
Pelagians and Semi-Pelagians of all kinds are generally willing to admit that the creature
cannot act apart
from an influx of divine power, but maintain that this is not so
specific that it determines the character of the action in any way.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p26" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p26.1">
It is also a simultaneous concurrence.</span>
After the
activity of the creature is begun, the efficacious will of God must accompany it at every moment, if it is to
continue. There is
not a single moment that the creature works independently of the will and
the power of
God. It is in Him that we live<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p26.2">
and move</span>
and have our
being, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.28" parsed="|Acts|17|28|0|0" passage="Acts 17:28">Acts 17:28</scripRef>. This divine
activity accompanies the action of man at every point, but without
robbing man in any
way of his freedom. The action remains the free act of man, an act for
which he is held
responsible. This simultaneous concurrence does not result in an
identification of the
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p26.4">
causa prima</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p26.5">
causa secunda.</span>
In a very real sense the operation is the product of
both causes. Man is and remains the real subject of the action. Bavinck
illustrates this by
pointing to the fact that wood burns, that God only causes it to burn,
but that formally
this burning cannot be ascribed to God but only to the wood as subject.
It is evident that
this simultaneous action cannot be separated from the previous and
pre-determining
concurrence, but should be distinguished from it. Strictly speaking it,
in distinction
from the previous concurrence, terminates, not on the creature, but on
its activity. Since
it does not terminate on the creature, it can in the abstract be
interpreted as having no
ethical bearings. This explains that the Jesuits taught that the divine
concurrence was
simultaneous only, and not previous and pre-determining, and that some
Reformed
theologians limited the previous concurrence to the good deeds of men,
and for the rest
satisfied themselves with teaching a simultaneous concurrence.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p27" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p27.1">
It is, finally, an immediate concurrence.</span>
In His
government of the world God employs
all kinds of means for the realization of His ends; but He does not so
work in the divine
concurrence. When He destroys the cities of the plain by fire, this is
an act of divine
government in which He employs means. But at the same time it is His
immediate
concurrence by which He enables the fire to fall, to burn, and to
destroy. So God also
works in man in endowing him with power, in the determination of his
actions, and in
sustaining his activities all along the line.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p28" shownumber="no">4. THE DIVINE CONCURRENCE AND SIN. Pelagians, Semi-Pelagians, and Arminians raise
a serious objection to this doctrine of providence. They maintain that a<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p28.1">
previous </span>
concurrence,
which is not merely general<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p28.2">
but
predetermines man to specific actions</span>, makes
God the responsible author of sin. Reformed theologians are well aware
of the difficulty
that presents itself here, but do not feel free to circumvent it by
denying God's absolute
control over the free actions of His moral creatures, since this is
clearly taught in Scripture, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.45.5" parsed="|Gen|45|5|0|0" passage="Gen. 45:5">Gen. 45:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.50.19" parsed="|Gen|50|19|0|0" passage="Gen 50:19">50:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.50.20" parsed="|Gen|50|20|0|0" passage="Gen 50:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.6" osisRef="Bible:Exod.10.1" parsed="|Exod|10|1|0|0" passage="Ex. 10:1">Ex. 10:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.7" osisRef="Bible:Exod.10.20" parsed="|Exod|10|20|0|0" passage="Ex 10:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.8" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.16.10" parsed="|2Sam|16|10|0|0" passage="II Sam. 16:10">II Sam. 16:10</scripRef>.11; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.9" osisRef="Bible:Isa.10.5-Isa.10.7" parsed="|Isa|10|5|10|7" passage="Isa. 10:5-7">Isa. 10:5-7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.23" parsed="|Acts|2|23|0|0" passage="Acts 2:23">Acts 2:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.27" parsed="|Acts|4|27|0|0" passage="Acts 4:27">4:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.28" parsed="|Acts|4|28|0|0" passage="Acts 4:28">28</scripRef>.
They feel constrained to teach: (a) that sinful acts are under divine
control and occur
according to God's pre-determination and purpose, but only by divine
permission, so
that He does not
efficiently cause men to sin, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.13" osisRef="Bible:Gen.45.5" parsed="|Gen|45|5|0|0" passage="Gen. 45:5">Gen. 45:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.14" osisRef="Bible:Gen.50.20" parsed="|Gen|50|20|0|0" passage="Gen 50:20">50:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.15" osisRef="Bible:Exod.14.17" parsed="|Exod|14|17|0|0" passage="Ex. 14:17">Ex. 14:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.16" osisRef="Bible:Isa.66.4" parsed="|Isa|66|4|0|0" passage="Isa. 66:4">Isa. 66:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.22" parsed="|Rom|9|22|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:22">Rom. 9:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.18" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.11" parsed="|2Thess|2|11|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:11">II Thess. 2:11</scripRef>; (b) that God often restrains the sinful works of the sinner, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.19" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.6" parsed="|Gen|3|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:6">Gen. 3:6</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.20" osisRef="Bible:Job.1.12" parsed="|Job|1|12|0|0" passage="Job 1:12">Job 1:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.21" osisRef="Bible:Job.2.6" parsed="|Job|2|6|0|0" passage="Job 2:6">2:6</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.22" osisRef="Bible:Ps.76.10" parsed="|Ps|76|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 76:10">Ps. 76:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.23" osisRef="Bible:Isa.10.15" parsed="|Isa|10|15|0|0" passage="Isa. 10:15">Isa. 10:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.24" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.51" parsed="|Acts|7|51|0|0" passage="Acts 7:51">Acts 7:51</scripRef>; and (c) that God in behalf of His own
purpose
overrules evil for good, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.25" osisRef="Bible:Gen.50.20" parsed="|Gen|50|20|0|0" passage="Gen. 50:20">Gen. 50:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.26" osisRef="Bible:Ps.76.10" parsed="|Ps|76|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 76:10">Ps. 76:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p28.27" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.13" parsed="|Acts|3|13|0|0" passage="Acts. 3:13">Acts. 3:13</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p29" shownumber="no">This does not mean, however, that they all agree in
answering the question. whether
there is a direct, immediate and physical energizing of the active power
of the creature,
disposing and pre-determining it efficaciously to the specific act, and
also enabling it to
do that act. Dabney, for instance, while admitting such a physical concurrence
in the
lower creation, denies it with respect to free agents. The great
majority, however,
maintain it also in the case of free moral beings. Even Dabney agrees
that God's control
over all of the acts of His creatures is certain, sovereign, and efficacious;
and therefore
must, along with the others, face the question as to the responsibility
of God for sin. He
gives his conclusion in the following words: "This, then, is my
picture of the
providential evolution of God's purpose as to sinful acts; so to arrange
and group
events and objects around free agents by his manifold wisdom and power,
as to place
each soul, at every step, in the presence of those circumstances, which,
He knows, will
be a sufficient objective inducement to it to do, of its own native,
free activity, just the
thing called for
by God's plan. Thus the act is man's alone, though its occurrence is
efficaciously
secured by God. And the sin is man's only. God's concern in it is holy, first,
because all His personal agency in arranging to secure its occurrence
was holy; and
second, His ends or purposes are holy. God does not will the sin of the
act, for the sake
of its sinfulness; but only wills the result to which the act is a
means, and that result is
always worthy of His holiness."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.vi-p29.1" n="84" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p29.2">Syst. and Polemic Theol.,</span> p. 288.</note>
The vast majority of Reformed theologians,
however,
maintain the concursus in question, and seek the solution of the
difficulty by
distinguishing between the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p29.3">
materia</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p29.4">
forma</span>
of the sinful act, and by ascribing the
latter exclusively to man. The divine concursus energizes man and
determines him
efficaciously to the specific act, but it is man who gives the act its
formal quality, and
who is therefore responsible for its sinful character. Neither one of
these solutions can
be said to give entire satisfaction, so that the problem of God's
relation to sin remains a
mystery.</p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.vi-p29.5">D. GOVERNMENT</h4>
<p id="iii.ii.vi-p30" shownumber="no">1. NATURE OF THE DIVINE GOVERNMENT. The divine government may be defined as
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p30.1">that continued activity of God
whereby He rules all things teleologically so as to secure the accomplishment of the divine purpose.</span>
This government
is not simply a part of divine
providence but, just as preservation and concurrence, the whole of it,
but now
considered from the point of view of the end to which God is guiding all
things in creation, namely, to the glory of His name.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p31" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p31.1">
It is the government of God as King of the universe.</span>
In the present
day many regard
the idea of God as King to be an antiquated Old Testament notion, and
would substitute
for it the New Testament idea of God as Father. The idea of divine
sovereignty must
make place for that of divine love. This is thought to be in harmony
with the
progressive idea of God in Scripture. But it is a mistake to think that
divine revelation,
as it rises to ever higher levels, intends to wean us gradually from the
idea of God as
King, and to substitute for it the idea of God as Father. This is
already contradicted by
the prominence of the idea of the Kingdom of God in the teachings of
Jesus. And if it be
said that this involves merely the idea of a special and limited
kingship of God, it may be replied that the idea of the Fatherhood of God in
the Gospels is subject to the same
restrictions and limitations. Jesus does not teach a universal
Fatherhood of God.
Moreover, the New Testament also teaches the universal kingship of God
in such
passages as
<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p31.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.25" parsed="|Matt|11|25|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:25">Matt. 11:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p31.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.24" parsed="|Acts|17|24|0|0" passage="Acts 17:24">Acts 17:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p31.4" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.17" parsed="|1Tim|1|17|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:17">I Tim. 1:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p31.5" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.15" parsed="|1Tim|6|15|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:15">6:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p31.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.6" parsed="|Rev|1|6|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:6">Rev. 1:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p31.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.19.6" parsed="|Rev|19|6|0|0" passage="Rev 19:6">19:6</scripRef>. He is both King and
Father, and is the source of all authority in heaven and on earth, the
King of kings and  the
Lord of lords. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p32" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p32.1">
It is a
government adapted to the nature of the creatures which He governs.</span>
In the
physical world He has established the laws of nature, and it is by means
of these laws
that He administers the government of the physical universe. In the
mental world He
administers His government mediately through the properties and laws of
mind, and
immediately, by the direct operation of the Holy Spirit. In the
government and control of moral agents He makes use of all kinds of moral influences,
such as circumstances,
motives, instruction, persuasion, and example, but also works directly
by the personal
operation of the Holy Spirit on the intellect, the will, and the heart.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p33" shownumber="no">2. THE EXTENT OF THIS GOVERNMENT. Scripture explicitly declares this divine
government to be
universal, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.22.28" parsed="|Ps|22|28|0|0" passage="Ps. 22:28">Ps. 22:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.22.29" parsed="|Ps|22|29|0|0" passage="Ps 22:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.17-Ps.103.19" parsed="|Ps|103|17|103|19" passage="Ps 103:17-19">103:17-19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.4" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.34" parsed="|Dan|4|34|0|0" passage="Dan. 4:34">Dan. 4:34</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.5" osisRef="Bible:Dan.4.35" parsed="|Dan|4|35|0|0" passage="Dan 4:35">35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.6" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.15" parsed="|1Tim|6|15|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:15">I Tim. 6:15</scripRef>. It is really
the execution of His eternal purpose, embracing
all His works from the beginning, all
that was or is or ever shall be. But while it is general, it also
descends to particulars. The
most insignificant things, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.29-Matt.10.31" parsed="|Matt|10|29|10|31" passage="Matt. 10:29-31">Matt. 10:29-31</scripRef>, that which is seemingly
accidental, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.8" osisRef="Bible:Prov.16.33" parsed="|Prov|16|33|0|0" passage="Prov. 16:33">Prov. 16:33</scripRef>,
the good deeds of men, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.9" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>, as well as their evil deeds, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.16" parsed="|Acts|14|16|0|0" passage="Acts 14:16">Acts
14:16</scripRef>, — they are all
under divine control. God is King of Israel, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.33.22" parsed="|Isa|33|22|0|0" passage="Isa. 33:22">Isa. 33:22</scripRef>, but He also
rules among the nations, <scripRef id="iii.ii.vi-p33.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.47.9" parsed="|Ps|47|9|0|0" passage="Ps. 47:9">Ps. 47:9</scripRef>. Nothing can be withdrawn from His
government. </p>

<h4 id="iii.ii.vi-p33.13">E. EXTRAORDINARY PROVIDENCES OR MIRACLES</h4>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p34" shownumber="no">1. THE NATURE OF MIRACLES.
A distinction is usually made between<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p34.1">
providentia ordinaria</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p34.2">
providentia extraordinaria.</span>
In the former God works through second causes
in strict accordance with the laws of nature, though He may vary the
results by different
combinations. But in the latter He works immediately or without the
mediation of
second causes in their ordinary operation. Says McPherson: "A
miracle is something
done without recourse to the ordinary means of production, a result
called forth directly
by the first cause without the mediation, at least in the usual way, of
second causes."<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.vi-p34.3" n="85" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p34.4">Chr. Dogm.,</span> p. 183. Cr. also Hodge, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p34.5">Outlines of Theol.,</span> p. 275.</note>
The distinctive thing in the miraculous deed is that it results from the
exercise of the
supernatural power of God. And this means, of course, that it is not
brought about by
secondary causes that operate according to the laws of nature. If it
were, it would not be
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p34.6">supernatural</span>
(above nature), that is, it would not be a miracle. If God in the
performance
of a miracle did sometimes utilize forces that were present in nature,
He used them in a
way that was out of the ordinary, to produce unexpected results, and it
was exactly this
that constituted the miracle.<note anchored="yes" id="iii.ii.vi-p34.7" n="86" place="foot">Cf. Mead, <span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p34.8">Supernatural Revelation,</span> p. 110.</note>
Every miracle is above the established order
of nature,
but we may distinguish different kinds, though not degrees, of miracles.
There are miracles which are altogether above nature, so that they are in no way
connected with
any means. But there are also miracles which are<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p34.9"> contra media</span>, in which means are
employed, but in such a way that something results which is quite
different from the
usual result of those means.</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p35" shownumber="no">2. THE POSSIBILITY OF MIRACLES.
Miracles are objected to especially on the ground that
they imply a violation of the laws of nature. Some seek to escape the
difficulty by
assuming with Augustine that they are merely exceptions to nature<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p35.1">
as we know</span>
it,
implying that, if we had a fuller knowledge of nature, we would be able
to account for
them in a perfectly natural way. But this is an untenable position,
since it assumes two
orders of nature, which are contrary to each other. According to the one
the oil in the cruse would decrease, but according to the other it did not
diminish; according to the
one the loaves would gradually be consumed, but according to the other
they
multiplied. It must further suppose that the one system is superior to
the other, for if it
were not, there would merely be a collision and nothing would result;
but if it were, it
would seem that the inferior order would gradually be overcome and
disappear.
Moreover, it robs the miracle of its exceptional character, while yet
miracles stand out as
exceptional events on the pages of Scripture.</p>
<p id="iii.ii.vi-p36" shownumber="no">There is undoubtedly a certain uniformity in nature;
there are laws controlling the
operation of second causes in the physical world. But let us remember
that these merely
represent God's<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p36.1">
usual</span>
method of working in nature. It is His good pleasure to work in
an orderly way and through secondary causes. But this does not mean that
He cannot
depart from the established order, and cannot produce an extraordinary
effect, which
does not result from natural causes, by a single volition, if He deems
it desirable for the
end in view. When God works miracles, He produces extraordinary effects
in a
supernatural way. This means that miracles are<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p36.2">
above</span>
nature. Shall we also say that they are contrary to nature? Older
Reformed theologians did not hesitate to speak of them as
a breach or a violation of the laws of nature. Sometimes they said that
in the case of a
miracle the order of nature was temporarily suspended. Dr. Bruin
maintains that this
view is correct
in his<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p36.3">
Het Christelijk Geloof en de
Beoefening der Natuur-wetenschap</span>, and
takes exception to the views of Woltjer, Dennert, and Bavinck. But the
correctness of that
older terminology may well be doubted. When a miracle is performed the
laws of
nature are not violated, but superseded at a particular point by a higher
manifestation
of the will of God. The forces of nature are not annihilated or
suspended, but are only
counteracted at a particular point by a force superior to the powers of
nature. </p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p37" shownumber="no">3. THE PURPOSE OF THE MIRACLES OF SCRIPTURE. It may be
assumed that the miracles
of Scripture were not performed arbitrarily, but with a definite
purpose. They are not
mere wonders, exhibitions of power, destined to excite amazement, but
have
revelational significance. The entrance of sin into the world makes the
supernatural
intervention of God in the course of events necessary for the
destruction of sin and for
the renewal of creation. It was by a miracle that God gave us both, His
special verbal
revelation in Scripture, and His supreme factual revelation in Jesus
Christ. The miracles
are connected with the economy of redemption, a redemption which they
often
prefigure and symbolize. They do not aim at a violation, but rather at a
restoration of
God's creative work. Hence we find cycles of miracles connected with
special periods in
the history of redemption, and especially during the time of Christ's
public ministry
and of the founding of the Church. These miracles did not yet result in
the restoration of
the physical universe. But at the end of time another series of miracles
will follow,
which will result in the renewal of nature to the glory of God, — the
final establishment
of the Kingdom of God in a new heaven and on a new earth.
</p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p38" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FORFURTHER STUDY.
Is the doctrine of divine providence an<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p38.1">
articulus purus</span>
or an<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p38.2">
articulus
mixtus</span>? Who was the first one of the Church Fathers to develop
this
doctrine? How do Luther and Calvin differ in their conception of divine
providence?
What accounts for the fact that the Arminians accept the Socinian
position on this point?
How must we judge of the assertion of some Reformed theologians that God
is the only
true cause in the world? What are second causes, and why is it important
to maintain
that they are real causes? Does the doctrine of divine concursus conflict
with the free
agency of man? What was Augustine's conception of miracles? Why is it
important to
maintain the miraculous? Do miracles admit of a natural explanation? Do
they imply a
suspension of the laws of nature? What is the special significance of
the miracles of the Bible? Can miracles happen even now? Do they still happen?
What about the miracles
of the Roman Catholic Church? </p>

<p id="iii.ii.vi-p39" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span> II, pp. 635-670; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.2"> Dict. Dogm., De Providentia</span>, pp. 3-246; Vos,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.3">
Geref. Dogm.</span>, I,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.4">
De Voorzienigheid;</span>
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.5">
Syst. Theol.</span> I, pp. 575-636; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.6">
Dogm. Theol.</span> I, pp. 527-545; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.7">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 276-291;
McPherson,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.8">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 174-184; Drummond,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.9"> Studies in Chr. Doct.</span>, pp. 187-202;
Pope,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.10">
Chr. Theol.</span>, I, pp. 437-456; Raymond,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.11">
Syst. Theol.</span>, I, pp. 497-527; Valentine,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.12">
Chr. Theol.</span>, pp. 363-382; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.13">
Christl. Dogm.</span>, I, pp. 587-600; Schmidt,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.14">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 179-201; Dijk,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.15">
De Voorzienigheid Gods;</span>
Mozley,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.16">
On Miracles;</span>
Thomson,
<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.17">
The Christian Miracles and the
Conclusions of Science;</span>
Mead,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.18"> Supernatural Revelation;</span>
Harris,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.19">
God, Creator and Lord of All</span>, I, pp. 519-579; Bruin,<span class="ital" id="iii.ii.vi-p39.20">
Het Christelijke Geloof en de Beoefening der Natuurwetenschap</span>, pp. 108-138. </p>
</div3>
</div2>
</div1>

    <div1 id="iv" next="iv.i" prev="iii.ii.vi" title="Part Two: The Doctrine of Man In Relation To God">
<h2 id="iv-p0.1">PART TWO: THE DOCTRINE OF MAN IN RELATION TO GOD</h2>

      <div2 id="iv.i" next="iv.i.i" prev="iv" title="Man In His Original State">
<h2 id="iv.i-p0.1">MAN IN HIS ORIGINAL STATE</h2>

        <div3 id="iv.i.i" next="iv.i.ii" prev="iv.i" title="I. The Origin of Man">
<h2 id="iv.i.i-p0.1">I. The Origin of Man</h2>
<h4 id="iv.i.i-p0.2">A. THE DOCTRINE OF MAN IN DOGMATICS</h4>

<p id="iv.i.i-p1" shownumber="no">The transition from Theology to Anthropology, that is,
from the study of God to the study of man, is a natural one. Man is not only
the crown of creation, but also the object
of God's special
care. And God's revelation in Scripture is a revelation that is not only
given to man, but also a revelation in which man is vitally concerned.
It is not a
revelation of God in the abstract, but a revelation of God in relation
to His creatures,
and particularly in relation to man. It is a record of God's dealings with
the human race,
and especially a revelation of the redemption which God has prepared
for, and for
which He seeks to prepare, man. This accounts for the fact that man
occupies a place of
central importance in Scripture, and that the knowledge of man in
relation to God is
essential to its proper understanding. The doctrine of man must follow
immediately
after the doctrine of God, since the knowledge of it is presupposed in
all the following
loci of Dogmatics. We should not confuse the present subject of study
with general
Anthropology or the science of mankind, which includes all those
sciences which have
men as the object of study. These sciences concern themselves with the
origin and
history of mankind, with the physiological structure and the psychical
characteristics of
man in general and of the various races of mankind in particular, with
their
ethnological, linguistic, cultural and religious development, and so on.
Theological
Anthropology is concerned only with what the Bible says respecting man
and the
relation in which he stands and should stand to God. It recognizes
Scripture only as its
source, and reads the teachings of human experience in the light of
God's Word.</p>

<h4 id="iv.i.i-p1.1">B. SCRIPTURAL ACCOUNT OF ORIGIN OF MAN.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.i-p2" shownumber="no">Scripture offers us a twofold account of the creation of
man, the one in <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.27" parsed="|Gen|1|27|0|0" passage="Gen 1:27">27</scripRef>, and the other in <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.21-Gen.2.23" parsed="|Gen|2|21|2|23" passage="Gen 2:21-23">21-23</scripRef>. Higher criticism is of the opinion that
the writer of
Genesis pieced together two creation narratives, the first found in <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.1" parsed="|Gen|1|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:1">Gen. 1:1</scripRef>—2:3, and the second in <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p2.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.4-Gen.2.25" parsed="|Gen|2|4|2|25" passage="Gen. 2:4-25">Gen. 2:4-25</scripRef>; and that these two are independent and
contradictory. Laidlaw in his work on<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p2.7">
The Bible
Doctrine of Man</span><note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.i-p2.8" n="1" place="foot">pp. 25f.</note>
is willing to admit that the
author of Genesis
made use of two sources, but refuses to find here two different accounts
of creation. He
very properly denies that in the second chapter we have "a
different account of creation,
for the plain reason that it takes no account of the creation at
large." In fact, the
introductory words of the narrative beginning with <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.4" parsed="|Gen|2|4|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:4">Gen. 2:4</scripRef>, "These
are the generations
of the heavens and of the earth, when they were created," seen in
the light of the
repeated use of the words "these are the generations" in the
book of Genesis, point to
the fact that we have something quite different here. The expression
invariably points,
not to the origin or beginning of those named, but to their family
history. The first narrative contains the account of the creation of all things
in the order in which it
occurred, while the second groups things in their relation to man,
without implying
anything respecting the chronological order of man's appearance in the
creative work of
God, and clearly indicates that everything preceding it served to
prepare a fit habitation
for man as the king of creation. It shows us how man was situated in
God's creation,
surrounded by the vegetable and animal world, and how he began his
history. There are
certain particulars in which the creation of man stands out in distinction
from that of
other living beings:
</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p3" shownumber="no">1. MAN'S CREATION WAS PRECEDED BY A SOLEMN DIVINE COUNSEL. Before the inspired
writer records the creation of man, he leads us back, as it were, into
the council of God,
acquainting us with the divine decree in the words, "Let us make
man in our image,
after our likeness," <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef>. The Church has generally
interpreted the plural "us" on
the basis of the trinitarian existence of God. Some scholars, however,
regard it as a
plural of majesty; others, as a plural of communication, in which God
includes the
angels with Himself; and still others, as a plural of self-exhortation.
Of these three
suggestions the first is very unlikely, since the plural of majesty
originated at a much
later date; the second is impossible, because it would imply that the
angels were cocreators with God, and that man is also created in the image of the
angels, which is an
un-Scriptural idea; and the third is an entirely gratuitous assumption,
for which no
reason can be assigned. Why should such a self-exhortation be in the
plural, except for
the reason that there is a plurality in God.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p4" shownumber="no">2. THE CREATION OF MAN WAS IN THE STRICTEST SENSE OF THE WORD AN IMMEDIATE ACT OF GOD. Some of the expressions used in the narrative preceding
that of the creation of
man indicate mediate creation in some sense of the word. Notice the
following
expressions: "And God said, Let the earth put forth grass, herbs,
yielding seed, and
fruit-trees bearing fruit after their kind" — "Let the waters
swarm with swarms of
living
creatures" ...and, "Let the earth bring forth living creatures
after their kind";
and compare these with the simple statement, "And God created
man." Whatever
indication of mediacy in the work of creation is contained in the former
expressions, is
entirely wanting in the latter. Evidently the work of God in the
creation of man was not
mediated in any sense of the word. He did make use of pre-existent
material in forming
the body of man, but even this was excluded in the creation of the soul.</p>
<p id="iv.i.i-p5" shownumber="no"> 3. IN DISTINCTION FROM THE LOWER CREATURES MAN WAS CREATED AFTER A DIVINE TYPE.
With respect to fishes, birds, and beasts we read that God created them<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p5.1">
after their kind</span>,
that is, on a typical form of their own. Man, however, was not so
created and much less
after the type of an inferior creature. With respect to him God said,
"Let us make man<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p5.2">
in
our image, after our likeness.</span>
" We shall
see what this implies, when we discuss the original
condition of man, and merely call attention to it here, in order to
bring out the fact that
in the narrative of creation the creation of man stands out as something
distinctive.</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p6" shownumber="no">4. THE TWO DIFFERENT ELEMENTS OF HUMAN NATURE ARE CLEARLY DISTINGUISHED. In
<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef> a clear distinction is made between the origin of the body and
that of the soul.
The body was formed out of the dust of the ground; in the production of
it God made
use of pre-existing material. In the creation of the soul, however,
there was no
fashioning of pre-existing materials, but the production of a new
substance. The soul of
man was a new production of God in the strict sense of the word. Jehovah
"breathed
into his (man's)
nostrils the breath of life; and man became a living soul." In these
simple words the twofold nature of man is clearly asserted, and their
teaching is
corroborated by
other passages of Scripture, such as, <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.12.7" parsed="|Eccl|12|7|0|0" passage="Eccl. 12:7">Eccl. 12:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.28" parsed="|Matt|10|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:28">Matt. 10:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.8.55" parsed="|Luke|8|55|0|0" passage="Luke 8:55">Luke 8:55</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.1-2Cor.5.8" parsed="|2Cor|5|1|5|8" passage="II Cor. 5:1-8">II Cor. 5:1-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.22-Phil.1.24" parsed="|Phil|1|22|1|24" passage="Phil. 1:22-24">Phil. 1:22-24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.9" parsed="|Heb|12|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:9">Heb. 12:9</scripRef>. The two elements are the body and
the breath or
spirit of life breathed into it by God, and by the combination of the
two man became "a
living
soul," which means in this connection simply "a living being." </p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p7" shownumber="no">5. MAN IS AT ONCE PLACED IN AN EXALTED POSITION. Man is represented as standing at
the apex of all the created orders. He is crowned as king of the lower
creation, and is
given dominion over all the inferior creatures. As such it was his duty
and privilege to
make all nature and all the created beings that were placed under his
rule, subservient
to his will and purpose, in order that he and his whole glorious dominion
might
magnify the almighty Creator and Lord of the universe,
<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.28" parsed="|Gen|1|28|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:28">Gen. 1:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.8.4-Ps.8.9" parsed="|Ps|8|4|8|9" passage="Ps. 8:4-9">Ps. 8:4-9</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="iv.i.i-p7.3">C. THE EVOLUTIONARY THEORY OF THE ORIGIN OF MAN.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.i-p8" shownumber="no">Among the various theories that have been broached to
explain the origin of man,
the theory of evolution at present holds the field, and therefore
deserves brief
consideration.</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p9" shownumber="no">1. STATEMENT OF THE THEORY. The theory of
evolution is not always stated in the
same form. It is sometimes represented as if man is a direct descendant
of one of the
species of anthropoid apes now in existence, and then again, as if man
and the higher
apes have a common ancestry. But whatever difference of opinion there
may be on this
point, it is certain that, according to thorough-going naturalistic
evolution, man
descended from the lower animals, body and soul, by a perfectly natural
process,
controlled entirely by inherent forces. One of the leading principles of
the theory is that
of strict continuity between the animal world and man. It cannot allow
for discontinuity
anywhere along the line, for every break is fatal to the theory. Nothing
that is absolutely
new and unpredictable can appear in the process. What is now found in man
must have
been potentially present in the original germ out of which all things
developed. And the
whole process must be controlled from start to finish by inherent
forces. Theistic
evolution, which seems more acceptable to many theologians, simply
regards evolution
as God's method of working. It is sometimes represented in a form in
which God is
merely called in to bridge the gaps between the inorganic and the
organic, and between
the irrational and the rational, creation. But to the extent to which a
special operation of
God is assumed, gaps are admitted which evolution cannot
bridge, and something new
is called into being, the theory naturally ceases to be a pure theory of
evolution. It is
sometimes held that only the body of man is derived by a process of
evolution from the
lower animals, and that God endowed this body with a rational soul. This
view meets
with considerable favor in Roman Catholic circles.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p10" shownumber="no">2. OBJECTIONS TO THE THEORY.
Several objections can be raised against the theory of the evolutionary descent of man from the lower animals.</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p11" shownumber="no">a. From the point of view of the theologian the greatest objection to
this theory is, of
course, that it is contrary to the explicit teachings of the Word of
God. The Bible could
hardly teach more clearly than it does that man is the product of a
direct and special
creative act of God, rather than of a process of development out of the
simian stock of
animals. It asserts that God formed man out of the dust of the ground,
<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>. Some theologians, in their eagerness to harmonize the teachings of
Scripture with the theory
of evolution, suggest that this may be interpreted to mean that God formed
the body of
man out of the
body of the animals,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p11.2">
which is after all but dust.</span>
But this is
entirely
unwarranted, since no reason can be assigned why the general expression
"of the dust
of the ground" should be used after the writer had already described
the creation of the animals and might therefore have made the statement far
more specific. Moreover, this
interpretation is also excluded by the statement in <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.19" parsed="|Gen|3|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:19">Gen. 3:19</scripRef>, "In
the sweat of thy face
shalt thou eat bread, till thou return unto the ground: for out of it
wast thou taken: for
dust thou art, and unto dust shalt thou return." This certainly does
not mean that man
shall return to his former animal state. Beast and man alike return
again to the dust.
<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.3.19" parsed="|Eccl|3|19|0|0" passage="Eccl. 3:19">Eccl. 3:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.3.20" parsed="|Eccl|3|20|0|0" passage="Eccl 3:20">20</scripRef>.
Finally, we are told explicitly in <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.39" parsed="|1Cor|15|39|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:39">I Cor. 15:39</scripRef> that "All flesh is
not the same
flesh: but
there is one flesh of men, and another flesh of beasts." As to
the spirit of man
the Bible teaches explicitly that it came directly from God, <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>,
and therefore
cannot be regarded as a natural development of some previously existing
substance. In
perfect harmony with this Elihu says, "The Spirit of God hath made
me, and the breath of the Almighty giveth me life," <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Job.33.4" parsed="|Job|33|4|0|0" passage="Job 33:4">Job 33:4</scripRef>. Furthermore,
Scripture also teaches that man
was at once separated from the lower creation by an enormous chasm. He
at once stood
on a high intellectual, moral, and religious level, as created in the
image of God and was
given dominion
over the lower creation, <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.27" parsed="|Gen|1|27|0|0" passage="Gen 1:27">27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.31" parsed="|Gen|1|31|0|0" passage="Gen 1:31">31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.19" parsed="|Gen|2|19|0|0" passage="Gen 2:19">2:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.13" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.20" parsed="|Gen|2|20|0|0" passage="Gen 2:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p11.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.8.5-Ps.8.8" parsed="|Ps|8|5|8|8" passage="Ps. 8:5-8">Ps. 8:5-8</scripRef>. By his fall in
sin, however, he fell from his high estate and became subject to a
process of
degeneration which sometimes results in bestiality. This is quite the
opposite of what
the evolutionary hypothesis teaches us. According to it man stood on the
lowest level at
the beginning of his career, but slightly removed from the brute, and
has been rising to
higher levels ever since.</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p12" shownumber="no">b. The second great objection is that the theory has no
adequate basis in well
established facts. It should be borne in mind that, as was pointed out
before, the
evolutionary theory in general, though often represented as an
established doctrine, is
up to the present time nothing but an unproved working hypothesis, and a
hypothesis
that has not yet given any great promise of success in demonstrating
what it set out to
prove. Many of the most prominent evolutionists frankly admit the
hypothetical
character of their theory. They still avow themselves to be firm
believers in the doctrine
of descent, but do not hesitate to say that they cannot speak with any
assurance of its
method of operation. When Darwin published his works, it was thought that
the key to
the process was found at last, but in course of time it was found that
the key did not fit
the lock. Darwin truly said that his theory depended entirely on the
possibility of
transmitting acquired characteristics, and it soon became one of the
corner-stones of
Weismann's biological theory that acquired characteristics are not
inherited. His opinion
received abundant confirmation by the later study of genetics. On the basis
of the
assumed transmission of acquired characteristics, Darwin spoke with
great assurance of
the transmutation of species and envisaged a continuous line of
development from the
primordial cell to man; but the experiments of De Vries, Mendel, and others
tended to
discredit his view. The gradual and imperceptible changes of Darwin made
place for the
sudden and unexpected mutations of De Vries. While Darwin assumed endless
variation in several directions, Mendel pointed out that the variations
or mutations
never take the organism outside of the species and are subject to a
definite law. And
modern cytology in its study of the cell, with its genes and chromosones
as the carriers
of the inherited characters, confirmed this idea. The so-called new
species of the
evolutionists were proved to be no true species at all, but only
varietal species, that is
varieties of the same species. Nordenskioeld in his<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p12.1">
History of Biology</span>
quotes the
following sentence from a popular account of the results of heredity
research, as
reflecting the true state of affairs: "For the very reason of
the great number of facts that
modern heredity-research has brought to light, chaos prevails at present
in regard to the
views on the formation of species," p. 613. Prominent evolutionists
now frankly admit
that the origin of species is a complete mystery to them. And as long as
that is so, there
is not much chance of their explaining the origin of man.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p13" shownumber="no">Darwin in his attempt to prove the descent of man from a
species of anthropoid
apes relied on (1) the argument from the structural similarity between
man and the
higher animals; (2) the embryological argument; and (3) the argument
from
rudimentary organs. To these three were added later on, (4) the argument
derived from
blood tests; and (5) the palaeontological argument. But none of these
arguments furnish
the desired proof. The argument from structural likeness unwarrantably
assumes that
the similarity can be explained in only one way. Yet it can very well be
accounted for by
the assumption that God in creating the animal world made certain
typical forms basic
throughout, so as to have unity in variety, just as a great musician
builds up his mighty
composition on a single theme, which is repeated time and again, and at
each repetition
introduces new variations. The principle of preformation gives an adequate
explanation
of the similarities under consideration. The
embryological similarity, such as it is, can be
explained on the same principle. Moreover recent biological studies
would seem to
indicate that no structural similarity but only a genetic relationship
can prove affinity or
descent. As far as the rudimentary organs are concerned, more than one
scientist has
expressed doubt as to their vestigial character. Instead of being the
useless remains of
animal organs, it may very well be that they serve a definite purpose in
the human organism. The blood tests in their original form, while pointing to a
certain likeness
between the blood of animals and man, do not prove genetic relationship,
since in these
tests only part of the blood, the sterile serum which contains no living
matter, was used,
while it is an established fact that the solid portion of the blood,
containing the red and
white cells, is the carrier of hereditary factors. Later tests, in which
the spectroscope was
called into use and the entire blood was examined, proved conclusively
that there is an
essential difference between the blood of animals and that of man. The palaeontological
argument is equally inconclusive. If man really descended from the
anthropoid apes, it
might be expected that the intermediate forms would be in existence
somewhere. But
Darwin was not able to find this missing link any more than the thousands
of missing links between the various species of animals. We are told that the
early progenitors of
man have long since died out. This being so, it was still possible that
they might be
found among the fossil remains. And to-day scientists actually claim
that they have
found some bones of very ancient men. They have reconstructed these men
for us, and
we can now enjoy looking at the imaginary photos of the reconstructed
Java man
(<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p13.1">Pithecanthropus erectus</span>), the Heidelberg man (<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p13.2">Homo Heidelbergensis</span>), the Neanderthal man (<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p13.3">Homo Neanderthalensis</span>), the Cro-Magnon, the Piltdown man, and others. These reconstructions seem to be taken seriously by some, but really have very
little value.
Since only a few bones were found of each, and even these were scattered
in some cases,
so that it is not certain that they belong to the same body, they merely
testify to the
ingenuity of the scientists who reconstructed them. In some cases the
specialists are by
no means agreed as to whether the bones in question belonged to a man or
to an
animal. Dr. Wood, professor of anatomy in the University of London, says
in a booklet
on the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p13.4">
Ancestry of Man</span>: "I find no occupation less worthy of the science of Anthropology
than the not unfashionable business of modelling, painting, or drawing
these nightmare
pictures of the imagination, and lending them in the process, an utterly
false value of
apparent reality."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.i-p13.5" n="2" place="foot">Quoted by Allen, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p13.6">Evolution in the Balances,</span> p. 110</note>
Fleming, one of
the most prominent present day scientists, says: "The
upshot of it all is that we cannot arrange all the known fossil remains
of supposed 'man'
in a lineal series gradually advancing in type or form from that of any
anthropoid ape,
or other mammal, up to the modern and now existing types of true man. Any
supposition or statement that it can be done, and is true, is certainly
incorrect. It is
certainly misleading and unspeakably pernicious to put forward in popular
magazines
or other publications read by children pictures of gorillas or
chimpanzees labelled
'Man's cousin' or 'Man's nearest relative,' or to publish perfectly
imaginary and
grotesque pictures of a supposed 'Java man' with brutish face as an
ancestor of modern
man, as is occasionally done. Those who do such things are guilty of
ignorance or
deliberate mis-representation. Neither is it justifiable for preachers
in the pulpit to tell
their congregations that there is general agreement among scientific men
as to the
evolutionary origin of Man from an animal ancestor."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.i-p13.7" n="3" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p13.8">The Origin of Mankind,</span> p. 75.</note>
But the body of man does not
even present the greatest difficulties to the evolutionist. These arise
from the
consideration of the spiritual element in man, or what is usually called
"the origin of
mind." It is at this point that his helplessness becomes most
painfully apparent. In spite
of all his attempts, he has signally failed to give a plausible
explanation of the origin of
the human mind, or intelligence (progressiveness), language, conscience,
and religion.
This might be pointed out in detail, but we do not deem it necessary.
There are many
who, like Dennert and Batison, still profess to believe in the doctrine
of descent, but
disown the Darwinian method of evolution and regard it as a well-nigh
complete
failure. Yet they know of no other method which might take its place.
This means that
for them evolution has ceased to be a science, and has become once more
a mere
philosophical
theory. Batison said: "We read his (Darwin's) scheme of evolution as we
would those of Lucretius or of Lamarck. . . . We
are just about where Boyle was in the
seventeenth century." The testimony of Dr. D. H. Scott is very
similar. In a presidential
address before the British Association for the Advancement of Science he
made the
following statements: "All is again in the melting-pot. . . . Is
evolution, then, not a
scientifically
established fact? No, it is not . . . It is an act of faith — because there is
no  alternative." Creation, of course,
is not to be thought of. He further said that there is in
natural science "a return to pre-Darwinian chaos." Dr.
Fleischmann of Erlangen writes:
"The Darwinian theory has not a single fact to support it . . . is
purely the product of the
imagination." Even stronger is the assertion of Dr. B. Kidd:
"Darwinism is a compound
of astonishing presumption and incomparable ignorance."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.i-p13.9" n="4" place="foot">Quotations taken from Zerbe, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p13.10">Christianity and False Evolution,</span> pp. 271f.</note>  Such scientists as Fleming,
Dawson, Kelly, and Price do not hesitate to reject the theory of evolution and
to accept
the doctrine of creation. Respecting the origin of man, Sir William
Dawson says: "I
know nothing about the origin of man, except what I am told in the
Scripture — that
God created him. I do not know anything more than that, and I do not know
of anyone who does."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.i-p13.11" n="5" place="foot">Quoted by W. Bell Dawson,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p13.12"> The Bible Confirmed by Science</span>, p. 146. Cf. also what the later Dawson says in Chap. VIII.</note>
Fleming says: "All that science can say
at present in the light of definitely
ascertained and limited human knowledge is that it does not know, and has
no certain
proof how, where, and when man was originated. If any true knowledge of
it is to come
to us, it must come from some source other than present modern
anthropology."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.i-p13.13" n="6" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p13.14">The Origin of Mankind</span>, p. 76</note></p>


<h4 id="iv.i.i-p13.15">D. THE ORIGIN OF MAN AND THE UNITY OF THE ROCE.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.i-p14" shownumber="no">1. SCRIPTURE TESTIMONY TO THE UNITY OF THE RACE. Scripture teaches that the whole
human race descended from a single pair. This is the obvious sense of
the opening
chapters of Genesis. God created Adam and Eve as the beginning of the
human species,
and commanded them to be fruitful and multiply, and replenish the earth.
Moreover,
the subsequent narrative in Genesis clearly shows that the following
generations down
to the time of the flood stood in unbroken genetic relation with
the first pair, so that the human race constitutes not only a specific unity, a
unity in the sense that all men share
the same human nature, but also a genetic or genealogical unity. This is
also taught by
Paul in <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.26" parsed="|Acts|17|26|0|0" passage="Acts 17:26">Acts 17:26</scripRef>, "And God made of one every nation of man to
dwell on all the face
of the earth." The same truth is basic to the organic unity of the
human race in the first
transgression, and of the provision for the salvation of the race in
Christ, <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12" parsed="|Rom|5|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:12">Rom. 5:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.19" parsed="|Rom|5|19|0|0" passage="Rom 5:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.21" parsed="|1Cor|15|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:21">I Cor. 15:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:22">22</scripRef>. This unity of the race is not to be understood
realistically, as it is
represented by Shedd, who says: "Human nature is a specific or
general substance
created in and with the first individuals of a human species, which is
not yet
individualized, but which by ordinary generation is subdivided into
parts, and those
parts are formed into distinct and separate individuals of the species.
The one specific
substance, by propagation, is metamorphosed into millions of individual
substances, or
persons. An individual is a fractional part of human nature separated from
the common
mass, and constituted a particular person, having all the essential
properties of human
nature."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.i-p14.6" n="7" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p14.7">Dogm. Theol.</span> II, p. 72</note>The objections to this view will
be stated in another connection.</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p15" shownumber="no">2. THE TESTIMONY OF SCIENCE TO THE UNITY OF THE RACE. Science in various ways
confirms the testimony of Scripture as to the unity of the human race.
Scientific men
have not always believed in this. The ancient Greeks had their theory of
autochtonism,
to the effect that men sprang from the earth by a sort of spontaneous
generation, a
theory that has no solid foundation whatever, since spontaneous
generation has never been proved but rather discredited. Agassiz propounded the theory of the
Coadamites,
which assumes that there were different centers of creation. As early as
1655 Peyrerius
developed the theory of the Preadamites, which proceeds on the assumption
that there
were men before Adam was created. This theory was revived by Winchell,
who did not
deny the unity of the race, but regarded Adam as the first ancestor of
the Jews rather
than as the head of the human race. And in recent years Fleming, without
being
dogmatic in the matter, says that there are reasons to assume that there
were inferior
races of man preceding the appearance of Adam on the scene about 5500
B.C. While
inferior to the Adamites, they already had powers distinct from those of
the animals.
The later Adamic man was endowed with greater and nobler powers and
probably
destined to bring the whole of the other existing humanity into
allegiance to the Creator.
He failed to preserve his own allegiance to God, and therefore God
provided for the
coming of a descendant who was human and yet far more than man, in order
that He
might accomplish what the Adamic man failed to do. The view which
Fleming has been
led to hold is "that the unquestionably Caucasian branch is alone
the derivation by
normal generation from the Adamic race, namely, from the God-worshipping
members
of the Adamic race which survived the flood — Noah and his sons
and daughters."8<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.i-p15.1" n="8" place="foot">Cf. <span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p15.2">The Origin of Mankind,</span> Chaps. VI and VII</note>
But these theories, one and all, find no support in Scripture, and are
contrary to <scripRef id="iv.i.i-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.26" parsed="|Acts|17|26|0|0" passage="Acts 17:26">Acts 17:26</scripRef>
and to all that the Bible teaches concerning the apostasy and
deliverance of man.
Moreover, science presents several arguments in favor of the unity of
the human race,
such as:</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p16" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p16.1"> The argument from history.</span> The traditions of the race of men point decisively to a
common origin and ancestry in Central Asia. The history of the
migrations of man tends
to show that there has been a distribution from a single center.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p17" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p17.1"> The argument from philology.</span>
The study of
the languages of mankind indicates a
common origin. The Indo-Germanic languages are traced to a common
primitive
tongue, an old remnant of which still exists in the Sanskrit language.
Moreover, there is
evidence which goes to show that the old Egyptian is the connecting link
between the
Indo-European and the Semitic tongue.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p18" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p18.1">
The argument from psychology.</span>
The soul is the
most important part of the
constitutional nature of man, and psychology clearly reveals the fact
that the souls of all
men, to whatever tribes or nations they may belong, are essentially the
same. They have
in common the same animal appetites, instincts, and passions, the same
tendencies and capacities, and above all the same higher qualities, the mental and
moral characteristics
that belong exclusively to man.</p>
<p id="iv.i.i-p19" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p19.1"> The argument from natural science or physiology.</span>
It is now the
common judgment of comparative physiologists that the human race constitutes but a single
species. The
differences that exist between the various families of mankind are
regarded simply as
varieties of this one species. Science does not positively assert that
the human race
descended from a single pair, but nevertheless demonstrates that this may
have been
the case and probably is.</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p20" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What can
be said against the view that we have in
<scripRef id="iv.i.i-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1" parsed="|Gen|1|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 1">Gen. 1</scripRef> and 2 two different and more or less contradictory accounts of
creation? Does it seem reasonable to think that the world existed millions of
years before man appeared on the scene? Is the hypothesis of theistic evolution in harmony with
the Scriptural
account of the origin of man? Is the notion that the body of man at
least is derived from
the animals tenable in the light of Scripture? Has evolution established
its case on this
point? What has it proved in connection with the far more difficult question
of the
derivation of the human soul? What becomes of the doctrine of the fall
in the theory of
evolution? What is the theological significance of the doctrine of the
unity of the human
race?</p>

<p id="iv.i.i-p21" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
II pp. 543-565,; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.2">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 3-41;
Litton,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.3">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 107-113; Miley,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.4">
Syst. Theol.</span> I, pp. 355-392; Alexander, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.5">Syst. of Bibl. Theol.</span> I, pp. 156-167; Laidlaw,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.6">
The Bible Doct. of Man</span>, pp. 24-46; Darwin, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.7">Descent of Man;</span> Drummond,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.8">
The Ascent of
Man;</span>
Fleming,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.9">
The Origin of Mankind;</span> O'Toole,
<span class="ital" id="iv.i.i-p21.10">The Case Against Evolution</span>, Part II,
Chaps. II and III. Cf. further the works on Evolution
referred to at the end of the previous chapter.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.i.ii" next="iv.i.iii" prev="iv.i.i" title="II. The Constitutional Nature of Man">
<h2 id="iv.i.ii-p0.1">II. The Constitutional Nature of Man</h2>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p1" shownumber="no">The previous chapter is of a more or less introductory
nature, and does not, strictly speaking, form an integral part of the systematic presentation of the
doctrine of man in
dogmatics. This explains why many treatises on systematic theology fail
to devote a
separate chapter to the origin of man. Yet it seemed desirable to insert
it here, since it
furnishes a fitting background for what follows. Under the present
caption we shall
consider the essential constituents of human nature, and the question of
the origin of the soul in the individuals that constitute the race. </p>

<h4 id="iv.i.ii-p1.1">THE CONSTITUENT ELEMENTS OF HUMAN NATURE.</h4>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE DIFFERENT VIEWS THAT WERE CURRENT IN HISTORY and DICHOTOMY AND TRICHOTOMY. It is customary, especially in Christian circles, to
conceive of man as
consisting of two. and only two, distinct parts, namely, body and soul.
This view is
technically called<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p2.1">
dichotomy.</span>
Alongside of it,
however, another made its appearance, to
the effect that human nature consists of three parts, body, soul, and
spirit. It is
designated by the term<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p2.2">
trichotomy.</span>
The tri-partite
conception of man originated in Greek
philosophy, which conceived of the relation of the body and the spirit
of man to each
other after the analogy of the mutual relation between the material
universe and God. It
was thought that, just as the latter could enter into communion with each
other only by
means of a third substance or an intermediate being, so the former could
enter into
mutual vital relationships only by means of a third or intermediate
element, namely, the
soul. The soul was regarded as, on the one hand, immaterial, and on the
other, adapted
to the body. In so far as it appropriated the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p2.3">
nous</span>
or pneuma, it was regarded as
immortal, but in so far as it was related to the body, as carnal and
mortal. The most
familiar but also the crudest form of trichotomy is that which takes the
body for the
material part of man's nature, the soul as the principle of animal life,
and the spirit as
the God-related rational and immortal element in man. The trichotomic
conception of
man found considerable favor with the Greek or Alexandrian Church
Fathers of the
early Christian centuries. It is found, though not always in exactly the
same form, in
Clement of Alexandria, Origen, and Gregory of Nyssa. But after
Apollinaris employed it in a manner impinging on the perfect humanity of Jesus,
it was gradually discredited.
Some of the Greek Fathers still adhered to it, though Athanasius and
Theodoret
explicitly repudiated it. In the Latin Church the leading theologians
distinctly favored
the twofold division of human nature. It was especially the psychology
of Augustine
that gave prominence to this view. During the Middle Ages it had become
a matter of
common belief. The Reformation brought no change in this respect, though
a few lesser
lights defended the trichotomic theory. The Roman Catholic Church
adhered to the
verdict of Scholasticism, but in the circles of Protestantism other
voices were heard.
During the nineteenth century trichotomy was revived in some form or
other by certain
German and English theologians, as Roos, Olshausen, Beck, Delitzsch,
Auberlen,
Oehler, White, and Heard; but it did not meet with great favor in the
theological world.
The recent advocates of this theory do not agree as to the nature of the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p2.4">
psuche</span>, nor as to
the relation in which it stands to the other elements in man's nature.
Delitzsch conceives
of it as an efflux of the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p2.5">
pneuma</span>
while Beck,
Oehler, and Heard, regard it as the point of
union between the body and the spirit. Delitzsch is not altogether
consistent and
occasionally seems to waver, and Beck and Oehler admit that the Biblical
representation
of man is fundamentally dichotomic. Their defense of a Biblical
trichotomy can hardly
be said to imply the existence of three distinct elements in man.
Besides these two
theological views there were, especially in the last century and a half,
also the
philosophical views of absolute Materialism and of absolute Idealism,
the former sacrificing the soul to the body, and the latter, the body to the
soul.</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE TEACHINGS OF SCRIPTURE AS TO THE CONSTITUENT ELEMENTS OF HUMAN NATURE. The prevailing representation of the nature of man in Scripture is
clearly dichotomic. On
the one hand the Bible teaches us to view the nature of man as a unity,
and not as a
duality, consisting of two different elements, each of which move along
parallel lines
but do not really unite to form a single organism. The idea of a mere
parallelism
between the two elements of human nature, found in Greek philosophy and
also in the
works of some later philosophers, is entirely foreign to Scripture.
While recognizing the
complex nature of man, it never represents this as resulting in a
twofold subject in man.
Every act of man is seen as an act of the whole man. It is not the soul
but man that sins;
it is not the body but man that dies; and it is not merely the soul, but
man, body and
soul, that is redeemed in Christ. This unity already finds expression in
the classical
passage of the Old Testament — the first passage to indicate the complex
nature of man
— namely, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>: "And Jehovah God formed man of the dust of the
ground, and
breathed into his nostrils the breath of life; and man became a living
soul." The whole
passage deals with man: "God formed man . . . and man became a
living soul." This
work of God should not be interpreted as a mechanical process, as if He
first formed a
body of clay and then put a soul into it. When God formed the body, He
formed it so
that by the breath of His Spirit man at once became a living soul. <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Job.33.4" parsed="|Job|33|4|0|0" passage="Job 33:4">Job
33:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Job.32.8" parsed="|Job|32|8|0|0" passage="Job 32:8">32:8</scripRef>. The
word "soul" in this passage does not have the meaning which we
usually ascribe to it
— a meaning rather foreign to the Old Testament — but denotes an
animated being,
and is a description of man as a whole. The very same Hebrew term,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p3.4">
nephesh chayyah </span>
(living soul or being) is also applied to the animals in <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.21" parsed="|Gen|1|21|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:21">Gen.
1:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.24" parsed="|Gen|1|24|0|0" passage="Gen 1:24">24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.30" parsed="|Gen|1|30|0|0" passage="Gen 1:30">30</scripRef>. So this passage,
while indicating that there are two elements in man, yet stresses the
organic unity of
man. And this is recognized throughout the Bible.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p4" shownumber="no">At the same time it also contains evidences of the dual
composition of man's nature.
We should be careful, however, not to expect the later distinction
between the body as
the material element, and the soul as the spiritual element, of human
nature, in the Old
Testament. This distinction came into use later on under the influence
of Greek
philosophy. The antithesis — soul and body — even in its New Testament
sense, is not
yet found in the Old Testament. In fact, the Hebrew has no word for the
body as an
organism. The Old Testament distinction of the two elements of human
nature is of a
different kind.
Says Laidlaw in his work on<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p4.1">
The
Bible Doctrine of Man</span>:<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.ii-p4.2" n="9" place="foot">p. 60.</note>
"The antithesis is
clearly that of lower and higher, earthly and heavenly, animal and
divine. It is not so
much two elements, as two factors uniting in a single and harmonious
result, — 'man
became a living
soul.'" It is quite evident that this is the distinction in <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>. Cf.
also <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Job.27.3" parsed="|Job|27|3|0|0" passage="Job 27:3">Job 27:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Job.32.8" parsed="|Job|32|8|0|0" passage="Job 32:8">32:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Job.33.4" parsed="|Job|33|4|0|0" passage="Job 33:4">33:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.12.7" parsed="|Eccl|12|7|0|0" passage="Eccl. 12:7">Eccl. 12:7</scripRef>. A variety of words is used in the Old
Testament to denote
the lower
element in man or parts of it, such as "flesh,"
"dust," "bones," "bowels,"
"kidneys,"
and also the metaphorical expression "house of clay," <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Job.4.19" parsed="|Job|4|19|0|0" passage="Job 4:19">Job 4:19</scripRef>. And
there are
also several
words to denote the higher element, such as "spirit,"
"soul," "heart," and
"mind." As soon as we pass from the Old to the New Testament,
we meet with the
antithetic expressions that are most familiar to us, as "body and
soul," "flesh and
spirit." The corresponding Greek words were undoubtedly moulded by
Greek
philosophical thought, but passed through the Septuagint into the New
Testament, and
therefore retained their Old Testament force. At the same time the
antithetic idea of the
material and the immaterial is now also connected with them.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p5" shownumber="no">Trichotomists seek support in the fact that the Bible, as
they see it, recognizes two
constituent parts of human nature in addition to the lower or material
element, namely,
the soul (Heb.,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.1">
nephesh;</span>
Greek,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.2">
psuche</span>)
and the spirit (Heb.,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.3">
ruach;</span>
Greek,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.4">
pneuma</span>). But
the fact that these terms are used with great frequency in Scripture
does not warrant the
conclusion that they designate component parts rather than different
aspects of human
nature. A careful study of Scripture clearly shows that it uses the
words interchangeably.
Both terms denote the higher or spiritual element in man, but
contemplate it from
different points of view. It should be pointed out at once, however,
that the Scriptural
distinction of the two does not agree with that which is rather common
in philosophy,
that the soul is the spiritual element in man, as it is related to the
animal world, while the spirit is that same element in its relation to the
higher spiritual world and to God.
The following facts militate against this philosophical distinction:<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.5">
Ruach-pneuma</span>, as well
as<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.6">
nephesh-psuche</span>, is used of the brute creation, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.3.21" parsed="|Eccl|3|21|0|0" passage="Eccl. 3:21">Eccl. 3:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.16.3" parsed="|Rev|16|3|0|0" passage="Rev. 16:3">Rev. 16:3</scripRef>. The word<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.9">
psuche</span>
is
even used with
reference to Jehovah, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.1" parsed="|Isa|42|1|0|0" passage="Isa. 42:1">Isa. 42:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Jer.9.9" parsed="|Jer|9|9|0|0" passage="Jer. 9:9">Jer. 9:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:Amos.6.8" parsed="|Amos|6|8|0|0" passage="Amos 6:8">Amos 6:8</scripRef> (Heb.); <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.38" parsed="|Heb|10|38|0|0" passage="Heb 10:38">Heb 10:38</scripRef>. The disembodied dead
are called<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.14">
psuchai</span>, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.15" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.9" parsed="|Rev|6|9|0|0" passage="Rev. 6:9">Rev. 6:9</scripRef>;<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.4" parsed="|Rev|20|4|0|0" passage="Rev 20:4">20:4</scripRef>.
The highest exercises of religion are ascribed to the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.17">
psuche</span>, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.18" osisRef="Bible:Mark.12.30" parsed="|Mark|12|30|0|0" passage="Mark 12:30">Mark 12:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.19" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.46" parsed="|Luke|1|46|0|0" passage="Luke 1:46">Luke 1:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.20" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.18" parsed="|Heb|6|18|0|0" passage="Heb. 6:18">Heb. 6:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.21" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.19" parsed="|Heb|6|19|0|0" passage="Heb 6:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.22" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.21" parsed="|Jas|1|21|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:21">Jas. 1:21</scripRef>. To lose the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.23">
psuche</span>
is to lose all. It is perfectly evident that the Bible uses the two words
interchangeably.
Notice the parallelism in <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.24" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.46" parsed="|Luke|1|46|0|0" passage="Luke 1:46">Luke 1:46</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.25" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.47" parsed="|Luke|1|47|0|0" passage="Luke 1:47">47</scripRef>: "My soul doth magnify the
Lord, and my spirit
hath rejoiced in God my Saviour." The Scriptural formula for man is
in some passages
"body and
soul," <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.26" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.25" parsed="|Matt|6|25|0|0" passage="Matt. 6:25">Matt. 6:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.27" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.28" parsed="|Matt|10|28|0|0" passage="Matt 10:28">10:28</scripRef>; and in others, "body and spirit,"
<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.28" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.12.7" parsed="|Eccl|12|7|0|0" passage="Eccl. 12:7">Eccl. 12:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.29" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.3" parsed="|1Cor|5|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:3">I Cor. 5:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.30" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.5" parsed="|1Cor|5|5|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:5">5</scripRef>. Death is sometimes described as the giving up of the soul, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.31" osisRef="Bible:Gen.35.18" parsed="|Gen|35|18|0|0" passage="Gen. 35:18">Gen. 35:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.32" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.17.21" parsed="|1Kgs|17|21|0|0" passage="I Kings 17:21">I Kings 17:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.33" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.26" parsed="|Acts|15|26|0|0" passage="Acts 15:26">Acts 15:26</scripRef>; and then again as the giving up of the spirit, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.34" osisRef="Bible:Ps.31.5" parsed="|Ps|31|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 31:5">Ps. 31:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.35" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.46" parsed="|Luke|23|46|0|0" passage="Luke 23:46">Luke 23:46</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.36" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.59" parsed="|Acts|7|59|0|0" passage="Acts 7:59">Acts 7:59</scripRef>. Moreover
both "soul" and "spirit" are used to designate the
immaterial element of
the dead, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.37" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.19" parsed="|1Pet|3|19|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:19">I Pet. 3:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.38" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.23" parsed="|Heb|12|23|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:23">Heb. 12:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.39" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.9" parsed="|Rev|6|9|0|0" passage="Rev. 6:9">Rev. 6:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.40" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.4" parsed="|Rev|20|4|0|0" passage="Rev 20:4">20:4</scripRef>. The main Scriptural distinction is as
follows: the word "spirit" designates the spiritual element in
man as the principle of life
and action which controls the body; while the word "soul"
denominates the same
element as the subject of action in man, and is therefore often used for
the personal
pronoun in the
Old Testament, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.41" osisRef="Bible:Ps.10.1" parsed="|Ps|10|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 10:1">Ps. 10:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.42" osisRef="Bible:Ps.10.2" parsed="|Ps|10|2|0|0" passage="Ps 10:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.43" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.1" parsed="|Ps|104|1|0|0" passage="Ps 104:1">104:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.44" osisRef="Bible:Ps.146.1" parsed="|Ps|146|1|0|0" passage="Ps 146:1">146:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.45" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.1" parsed="|Isa|42|1|0|0" passage="Is. 42:1">Is. 42:1</scripRef>; cf. also <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.46" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.19" parsed="|Luke|12|19|0|0" passage="Luke 12:19">Luke 12:19</scripRef>. In
several instances it, more specifically, designates the inner life as
the seat of the
affections. All this is quite in harmony with <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p5.47" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>, "And
Jehovah God . . . breathed
into his nostrils the breath of life; and man became a living
soul." Thus it may be said
that man<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.48">
has</span>
spirit, but<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p5.49">
is</span>
soul. The Bible therefore points to two, and only two,
constitutional elements in the nature of man, namely, body and spirit or
soul. This
Scriptural representation is also in harmony with the self-consciousness
of man. While
man is conscious of the fact that he consists of a material and a
spiritual element, no one
is conscious of possessing a soul in distinction from a spirit.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p6" shownumber="no">There are two passages, however, that seem to conflict
with the usual dichotomic
representation of Scripture, namely, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.23" parsed="|1Thess|5|23|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:23">I Thess. 5:23</scripRef>, "And the God of
peace Himself
sanctify you wholly; and may your spirit and soul and body be preserved
entire,
without blame at the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ"; and <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.12" parsed="|Heb|4|12|0|0" passage="Heb. 4:12">Heb.
4:12</scripRef>, "For the word of
God is living, and active, and sharper than any two-edged sword, and
piercing even to
the dividing of soul and spirit, of both joints and marrow, and quick to
discern the
thoughts and intents of the heart." But it should be noted that:
(a) It is a sound rule in
exegesis that exceptional statements should be interpreted in the light
of the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p6.3">
analogia Scriptura</span>, the usual representation of Scripture. In view of this fact some of
the
defenders of trichotomy admit that these passages do not necessarily
prove their point.
(b) The mere mention of spirit and soul alongside of each other does not
prove that,
according to Scripture, they are two distinct substances, any more than
<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.37" parsed="|Matt|22|37|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:37">Matt. 22:37</scripRef>
proves that Jesus regarded heart and soul and mind as three distinct
substances. (c) In <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.23" parsed="|1Thess|5|23|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:23">I
Thess. 5:23</scripRef> the apostle simply desires to strengthen the statement,
"And the God of
peace Himself sanctify you wholly," by an epexigetical statement,
in which the different
aspects of man's existence are summed up, and in which he feels
perfectly free to
mention soul and spirit alongside of each other, because the Bible
distinguishes between
the two. He cannot very well have thought of them as two different
substances here, because he speaks elsewhere of man as consisting of two parts,
<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.10" parsed="|Rom|8|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:10">Rom. 8:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.5" parsed="|1Cor|5|5|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:5">I Cor. 5:5</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.7.34" parsed="|1Cor|7|34|0|0" passage="I Cor. 7:34">7:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.1" parsed="|2Cor|7|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:1">II Cor. 7:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.3" parsed="|Eph|2|3|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:3">Eph. 2:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.5" parsed="|Col|2|5|0|0" passage="Col. 2:5">Col. 2:5</scripRef>. (d) <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p6.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.12" parsed="|Heb|4|12|0|0" passage="Heb. 4:12">Heb. 4:12</scripRef> should not be taken to mean that the
word of God, penetrating to the inner man, makes a separation between his
soul and his
spirit, which would naturally imply that these two are different
substances; but simply
as declaring that it brings about a separation in both between the
thoughts and intents
of the heart.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.ii-p6.13" n="10" place="foot">Cf. for a discussion of the psychology of Scripture especially, Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p6.14">Bijbelsche en Religionize Psychologie;</span> Laidlaw,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p6.15"> The Bible Doctrine of Man</span>, pp. 49-138; H. Wheeler Robinson,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p6.16">The Christian Doctrine of Man</span>, pp. 4-150; Delitzsch,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p6.17"> System of Biblical Psychology;</span> Dickson,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p6.18"> St. Paul's Use of Terms Flesh and Spirit. </span></note>
</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p7" shownumber="no">3. THE RELATION OF BODY AND SOUL TO EACH OTHER. The exact relation of body and
soul to each other has been represented in various ways, but remains to
a great extent a
mystery. The following are the most important theories relating to this
point:</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p8" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p8.1">Monistic.</span>There are theories which proceed on the assumption that body and soul
are of the same primitive substance. According to Materialism this
primitive substance
is matter, and spirit is a product of matter. And according to absolute
Idealism and
Spiritualism the primitive substance is spirit, and this becomes
objective to itself in what
is called matter. Matter is a product of the spirit. The objection to
this monistic view is
that things so different as body and soul cannot be deduced the one from
the other.</p>
<p id="iv.i.ii-p9" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p9.1"> Dualistic.</span>
Some theories
proceed on the assumption that there is an essential
duality of matter and spirit, and present their mutual relations in
various ways: (1)
<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p9.2">Occasionalism.</span>
According to this theory, suggested by Cartesius, matter and spirit
each
works, according to laws peculiar to itself, and these laws are so
different that there is
no possibility of joint action. What appears to be such can only be
accounted for on the
principle that, on the occasion of the action of the one, God by His
direct agency
produces a corresponding action in the other. (2)<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p9.3">
Parallelism.</span>
Leibnitz proposed the theory of pre-established harmony. This also rests on the assumption
that there is no
direct interaction between the material and the spiritual, but does not
assume that God
produces apparently joint actions by continual interference. Instead it
holds that God
made the body and the soul so that the one perfectly corresponds to the
other. When a
motion takes place in the body, there is a corresponding movement in the
soul,
according to a law of pre-established harmony. (3)<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p9.4">Realistic Dualism.</span>
The simple facts to
which we must always return, and which are embodied in the theory of
realistic
dualism, are the following: body and soul are distinct substances, which
do interact,
though their mode of interaction escapes human scrutiny and remains a
mystery for us.
The union between the two may be called a union of life: the two are
organically
related, the soul acting on the body and the body on the soul. Some of
the actions of the body are dependent on the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p9.5">
conscious</span>
operation of the
soul, while others are not. The
operations of the soul are connected with the body as its instrument in
the present life;
but from the continued conscious existence and activity of the soul
after death it
appears that it can also work without the body. This view is certainly
in harmony with
the representations of Scripture on this point. A great deal of present
day psychology is
definitely moving in the direction of materialism. Its most extreme form
is seen in
Behaviorism with its denial of the soul, of the mind, and even of
consciousness. All that
it has left as an object of study is human behavior.</p>

<h4 id="iv.i.ii-p9.6">B. THE ORIGIN OF THE SOUL IN THE INDIVIDUAL.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.ii-p10" shownumber="no">1. HISTORICAL VIEWS RESPECTING THE ORIGIN OF THE SOUL. Greek philosophy devoted
considerable attention to the problem of the human soul and did not fail
to make its
influence felt in Christian theology. The nature, the origin, and
the continued existence
of the soul, were all subjects of discussion. Plato believed in the
pre-existence and
transmigration of the soul. In the early Church the doctrine of the
pre-existence of the
soul was practically limited to the Alexandrian school. Origen was the
chief
representative of this view and combined it with the notion of a
pre-temporal fall. Two
other views at once made their appearance and proved to be far more
popular in
Christian circles. The theory of creationism holds that God creates a
new soul at the
birth of every individual. It was the dominant theory in the Eastern
Church, and also
found some advocates in the West. Jerome and Hilary of Pictavium were
its most
prominent representatives. In the Western Church the theory of
Traducianism gradually gained ground. According to this view the soul as well
as the body of man originates by
propagation. It is usually wedded to the realistic theory that human
nature was created
in its entirety by God and is ever-increasingly individualized as the
human race
multiplies. Tertullian was the first to state this theory of
Traducianism and under his
influence it continued to gain favor in the North African and
Western Church. It seemed to fit in best with the doctrine of the transmission
of sin that was current in those circles.
Leo the Great called it the teaching of the catholic faith. In the East
it found no favorable
reception. Augustine hesitated to choose between the two views. Some of
the earlier
Scholastics were somewhat undecided, though they regarded creationism as
the more
probable of the two; but in course of time it became the consensus of
opinion among the
Schoolmen that the individual souls were created. Says Peter the
Lombard: "The
Church teaches that souls are created at their infusion into the
body." And Thomas
Aquinas went even further by saying: "It is heretical to say that
the intellectual soul is
transmitted by way of generation." This remained the prevailing
view in the Roman
Catholic Church. From the days of the Reformation there was a difference
of opinion
among the Protestants. Luther expressed himself in favor of
Traducianism, and this
became the prevailing opinion in the Lutheran Church. Calvin, on the
other hand,
decidedly favored creationism. Says he in his commentary on <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.16" parsed="|Gen|3|16|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:16">Gen. 3:16</scripRef>:
"Nor is it
necessary to resort to that ancient figment of certain writers, that
souls are derived by
descent from our first parents." Ever since the days of the
Reformation this has been the
common view in Reformed circles. This does not mean that there were no
exceptions to
the rule. Jonathan Edwards and Hopkins in New England theology favored
Traducianism. Julius Mueller in his work on<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p10.2">
The Christian Doctrine of Sin</span>
again put up an
argument in favor of the pre-existence of the soul, coupled with that of
a pre-temporal fall, in order to explain the origin of sin.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p11" shownumber="no">2. PRE-EXISTENTIANISM. Some speculative
theologians, among whom Origen, Scotus
Erigena, and Julius Mueller are the most important, advocated the theory
that the souls
of men existed in a previous state, and that certain occurrences in that
former state
account for the condition in which those souls are now found. Origen
looks upon man's
present material existence, with all its inequalities and
irregularities, physical and
moral, as a punishment for sins committed in a previous existence.
Scotus Erigena also
holds that sin made its entrance into the world of humanity in the
pre-temporal state,
and that therefore man begins his career on earth as a sinner. And
Julius Mueller has
recourse to the theory, in order to reconcile the doctrines of the
universality of sin and of
individual guilt. According to him each person must have sinned
willingly in that
previous existence.
This theory is open to several objections. (a) It is
absolutely devoid of both
Scriptural and philosophical grounds, and is, at least in some of its
forms, based on the
dualism of matter and spirit as taught in heathen philosophy, making it a
punishment
for the soul to be connected with the body. (b) It really makes the body
something
accidental. The soul was without the body at first, and received this
later on. Man was
complete without the body. This virtually wipes out the distinction
between man and
the angels. (c) It destroys the unity of the human race, for it assumes
that all individual
souls existed long before they entered the present life. They do not
constitute a race. (d) It finds no support in the consciousness of man. Man has
absolutely no consciousness of
such a previous existence; nor does he feel that the body is a prison or
a place of
punishment for the soul. In fact, he dreads the separation of body and
soul as
something that is unnatural.</p>
<p id="iv.i.ii-p12" shownumber="no">3. TRADUCIANISM. According to
Traducianism the souls of men are propagated along
with the bodies by generation, and are therefore transmitted to the
children by the
parents. In the early Church Tertullian, Rufinus, Apollinarus, and
Gregory of Nvssa
were Traducianists. From the days of Luther Traducianism has been the
prevailing view
of the Lutheran Church. Among the Reformed it is favored by H. B. Smith
and Shedd.  A.
H. Strong also prefers it.</p>
<p id="iv.i.ii-p13" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p13.1">
Arguments in favor of Traducianism.</span>
Several
arguments are adduced in favor of this
theory. (1) It is said to be favored by the Scriptural representation
(a) that God but once
breathed into man's nostrils the breath of life, and then left it to man
to propagate the
species, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.28" parsed="|Gen|1|28|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:28">Gen.
1:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen 2:7">2:7</scripRef>; (b) that the creation of Eve's soul was included in that of Adam,
since she is
said to be "of the man" (<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.8" parsed="|1Cor|11|8|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:8">I Cor. 11:8</scripRef>), and nothing is said about the
creation of
her soul, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.23" parsed="|Gen|2|23|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:23">Gen. 2:23</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.100" parsed="|Gen|100|0|0|0" passage="Gen 100">c</scripRef>) that God ceased from the work of creation after
He had made
man, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.2" parsed="|Gen|2|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:2">Gen. 2:2</scripRef>; and (d) that descendants are said to be in the loins of
their fathers, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:Gen.46.26" parsed="|Gen|46|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 46:26">Gen.
46:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.9" parsed="|Heb|7|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:9">Heb.
7:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.10" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.10" parsed="|Heb|7|10|0|0" passage="Heb 7:10">10</scripRef>. Cf. also such passages as <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.11" osisRef="Bible:John.3.6" parsed="|John|3|6|0|0" passage="John 3:6">John 3:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.12" osisRef="Bible:John.1.13" parsed="|John|1|13|0|0" passage="John 1:13">1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.3" parsed="|Rom|1|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:3">Rom. 1:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.26" parsed="|Acts|17|26|0|0" passage="Acts 17:26">Acts 17:26</scripRef>. (2) It
is
supported by the analogy of vegetable and animal life, in which the
increase in numbers
is secured, not by a continually increasing number of immediate
creations, but by the
natural derivation of new individuals from a parent stock. But cf. <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p13.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.30" parsed="|Ps|104|30|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:30">Ps.
104:30</scripRef>. (3) It also
seeks support in the inheritance of mental peculiarities and family
traits, which are so
often just as noticeable as physical resemblances, and which cannot be
accounted for by
education or example, since they are in evidence even when parents do
not live to bring
up their children. (4) Finally, it seems to offer the best basis for the
explanation of the
inheritance of moral and spiritual depravity, which is a matter of the
soul rather than of
the body. It is quite common to combine with Traducianism the realistic
theory to
account for original sin.</p>
<p id="iv.i.ii-p14" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p14.1">
Objections to Traducianism.</span>
Several
objections may be urged against this theory. (1)
It is contrary to the philosophical doctrine of the simplicity of the
soul. The soul is a
pure spiritual substance that does not admit of division. The
propagation of the soul
would seem to imply that the soul of the child separates itself in some
way from the
soul of the parents. Moreover, the difficult question arises, whether it
originates from
the soul of the father or from that of the mother. Or does it come from
both; and if so, is it not a compositum? (2) In order to avoid the difficulty
just mentioned, it must resort to
one of three theories: (a) that the soul of the child had a previous
existence, a sort of pre-existence; (b) that the soul is potentially present in the seed of man
or woman or both,
which is materialism; or (c) that the soul is brought forth, that is,
created in some way,
by the parents, thus making them in a sense creators. (3) It proceeds on
the assumption that, after the original creation, God works only mediately.
After the six days of creation
His creative work ceased. The continued creation of souls, says
Delitzsch, is inconsistent
with God's relation to the world. But the question may be raised, What,
then, becomes
of the doctrine of regeneration, which is not effected by second causes?
(4) It is generally
wedded to the theory of realism, since this is the only way in which it
can account for
original guilt. By doing this it affirms the numerical unity of the
substance of all human souls, an untenable position; and also fails to give a
satisfactory answer to the question,
why men are held responsible only for the first sin of Adam, and not for
his later sins,
nor for the sins of the rest of their forebears. (5) Finally, in the
form just indicated it leads
to insuperable difficulties in Christology. If in Adam human nature as a
whole sinned,
and that sin was therefore the actual sin of every part of that human
nature, then the
conclusion cannot be escaped that the human nature of Christ was also
sinful and guilty
because it had actually sinned in Adam.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p15" shownumber="no">4. CREATIONISM. This view is to
the effect that each individual soul is to be regarded
as an immediate creation of God, owing its origin to a direct creative
act, of which the
time cannot be precisely determined. The soul is supposed to be created
pure, but
united with a depraved body. This need not necessarily mean that the
soul is created
first<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p15.1">
in separation
from the body</span>, and then polluted by being brought in contact with the
body, which would seem to assume that sin is something physical. It may
simply mean
that the soul, though called into being by a creative act of God, yet is
pre-formed in the
psychical life of the fœtus, that is, in the life of the parents, and
thus acquires its life not
above and outside of, but under and in, that complex of sin by which
humanity as a
whole is burdened.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.ii-p15.2" n="11" place="foot">Cf. Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p15.3">Geref. Dogm.</span> II, pp. 630 f.</note></p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p16" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p16.1"> Arguments in favor of Creationism.</span> The following
are the more important
considerations in favor of this theory: (1) It is more consistent with
the prevailing
representations of Scripture than Traducianism. The original account of
creation points to a marked distinction between the creation of the body and
that of the soul. The one is
taken from the earth, while the other comes directly from God. This
distinction is kept
up throughout the Bible, where body and soul are not only represented as
different
substances, but
also as having different origins, <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.12.7" parsed="|Eccl|12|7|0|0" passage="Eccl. 12:7">Eccl. 12:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.5" parsed="|Isa|42|5|0|0" passage="Isa 42:5">Isa 42:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Zech.12.1" parsed="|Zech|12|1|0|0" passage="Zech. 12:1">Zech. 12:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.9" parsed="|Heb|12|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:9">Heb. 12:9</scripRef>.
Cf. <scripRef id="iv.i.ii-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Num.16.22" parsed="|Num|16|22|0|0" passage="Num. 16:22">Num. 16:22</scripRef>. Of the passage in Hebrews even Delitzsch, though a
Traducianist, says,
"There can
hardly be a more classical proof text for creationism."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.ii-p16.7" n="12" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p16.8">Bibl. Psych.,</span> p. 137.</note>
(2) It is clearly far
more consistent with the nature of the human soul than Traducianism. The
immaterial
and spiritual, and therefore indivisible nature of the soul of man,
generally admitted by
all Christians, is clearly recognized by Creationism. The traducian
theory on the other
hand, posits a derivation of essence, which, as is generally admitted,
necessarily implies
separation or division of essence. (3) It avoids the pitfalls of
Traducianism in
Christology and does greater justice to the Scriptural representation of
the person of
Christ. He was very man, possessing a true human nature, a real body and
a rational
soul, was born of a woman, was made in all points like as
we are, — and yet, without
sin. He did not, like all other men, share in the guilt and pollution of
Adam's
transgression. This was possible, because he did not share the same
numerical essence
which sinned in Adam.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p17" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p17.1">
Objections to Creationism.</span>
Creationism is
open to the following objections: (1) The
most serious objection is stated by Strong in the following words:
"This theory, if it
allows that the soul is originally possessed of depraved tendencies,
makes God the
direct author of moral evil; if it holds the soul to have been created
pure, it makes God
indirectly the author of moral evil, by teaching that He put this pure
soul into a body
which will inevitably corrupt it." This is undoubtedly a serious
difficulty, and is
generally regarded as the decisive argument against Creationism.
Augustine already
called attention to the fact that the Creationist should seek to avoid
this pitfall. But it
should be borne in mind that the Creationist does not, like the
Traducianist, regard
original sin entirely as a matter of inheritance. The descendants of
Adam are sinners,
not as a result of their being brought into contact with a sinful body,
but in virtue of the
fact that God imputes to them the original disobedience of Adam. And it
is for that
reason that God withholds from them original righteousness, and the
pollution of sin
naturally follows. (2) It regards the earthly father as begetting only
the body of his child,
— certainly not the most important part of the child, — and therefore
does not account
for the re-appearance of the mental and moral traits of the parents in
the children.
Moreover, by taking this position it ascribes to the beast nobler powers
of propagation
than to man, for the beast multiplies itself after its kind. The last
consideration is one of
no great importance. And as far as mental and moral similarities of
parents and children
are concerned, it need not necessarily be assumed that these can be
accounted for only
on the basis of heredity. Our knowledge of the soul is still too
deficient to speak with absolute assurance on this point. But this similarity
may find its explanation partly in
the example of the parents, partly in the influence of the body on
the soul, and partly in
the fact that God does not create all souls alike, but creates in each
particular case a soul
adapted to the body with which it will be united and the complex
relationship into
which it will be introduced. (3) It is not in harmony with God's present
relationship to the world and His manner of working in it, since it teaches a
direct creative activity of
God, and thus ignores the fact that God now works through secondary
causes and
ceased from His creative work. This is not a very serious objection for
those who do not
have a deistic conception of the world. It is a gratuitous assumption
that God has ceased
from all creative activity in the world.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p18" shownumber="no">5. CONCLUDING REMARKS.</p>
<p id="iv.i.ii-p19" shownumber="no">a<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p19.1">.Caution required in speaking on the subject.</span>
It must be
admitted that the arguments
on both sides are rather well balanced. In view of this fact it is not
surprising that
Augustine found it rather hard to choose between the two. The Bible
makes no direct
statement respecting the origin of the soul of man, except in the case
of Adam. The few
Scriptural passages that are adduced as favoring the one theory or the
other, can hardly be called conclusive on either side. And because we have no
clear teaching of Scripture
on the point in question, it is necessary to speak with caution on the
subject. We ought
not to be wise above that which is written. Several theologians are of
the opinion that
there is an element of truth in both of these theories, which must be
recognized.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.ii-p19.2" n="13" place="foot">Cf. Smith,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p19.3"> Chr. Theol.</span>, p. 169; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p19.4"> Syst. and Polemic Theol.</span>, pp. 320 f.; Martensen,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p19.5"> Chr. Dogm.</span>, p. 141; Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p19.6"> Geref. Dogm.</span> II, p. 630; Raymond,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p19.7"> Syst. Theol.</span> II, pp. 35 f.</note>
Dorner even suggests the idea that each one of the three theories
discussed represents
one aspect of the whole truth: "Traducianism, generic
consciousness; Pre-
existentianism, self-consciousness or the interest of the personality as
a separate eternal
divine thought; Creationism, God-consciousness."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.ii-p19.8" n="14" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p19.9">Syst. of Chr. Doct.</span> II, p. 94</note></p>

<p id="iv.i.ii-p20" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p20.1"> Some form of Creationism deserves preference.</span>
It seems to us
that Creationism
deserves the preference, because (1) it does not encounter the
insuperable philosophical
difficulty with which Traducianism is burdened; (2) it avoids the
Christological errors
which Traducianism involves; and (3) it is most in harmony with our
covenant idea. At
the same time we are convinced that the creative activity of God in
originating human
souls must be conceived as being most closely connected with the natural
process in the
generation of new individuals. Creationism does not claim to be able to
clear up all
difficulties, but at the same time it serves as a warning against the
following errors: (1)
that the soul is divisible; (2) that all men are numerically of the same
substance; and (3)
that Christ assumed the same numerical nature which fell in Adam.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.ii-p20.2" n="15" place="foot">For further study of this subject confer especially the study of Dr. Honig on<span class="ital" id="iv.i.ii-p20.3"> Creatianisme en Traducianisme.</span></note></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.i.iii" next="iv.i.iv" prev="iv.i.ii" title="III. Man as the Image of God">
<h2 id="iv.i.iii-p0.1">III. Man as the Image of God</h2>

<h4 id="iv.i.iii-p0.2">A. HISTORICAL VIEWS OF THE IMAGE OF GOD IN MAN.</h4>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p1" shownumber="no">According to Scripture man was created in the image of
God, and is therefore God- related. Traces of this truth are found even in
Gentile literature. Paul pointed out to the
Athenians that some of their own poets have spoken of man as the
offspring of God,
<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.28" parsed="|Acts|17|28|0|0" passage="Acts 17:28">Acts 17:28</scripRef>. The early Church Fathers were quite agreed that the image of
God in man
consisted primarily in man's rational and moral characteristics, and in
his capacity for
holiness; but some were inclined to include also bodily traits. Irenæus
and Tertullian
drew a
distinction between the "image" and the "likeness" of God,
finding the former
in bodily traits, and the latter in the spiritual nature of man. Clement
of Alexandria and
Origen, however, rejected the idea of any bodily analogy, and held that
the word
"image"
denoted the characteristics of man as man, and the word "likeness,"
qualities  which are not essential to man,
but may be cultivated or lost. This view is also found in
Athanasius, Hilary, Ambrose, Augustine, and John of Damascus. According
to Pelagius
and his followers the image consisted merely in this, that man was
endowed with
reason, so that he could know God; with free will, so that he was able
to choose and do
the good; and with the necessary power to rule the lower creation. The
distinction
already made by some of the early Church Fathers between the image and
the likeness
of God, was continued by the Scholastics, though it was not always
expressed in the
same way. The former was conceived of as including the intellectual
powers of reason
and freedom, and the latter as consisting of original righteousness. To
this was added
another point of distinction, namely, that between the image of God as a
natural gift to man, something belonging to the very nature of man as man, and
the likeness of God,
or original righteousness, as a supernatural gift, which served as a
check on the lower
nature of man. There was a difference of opinion as to whether man was
endowed with
this original righteousness at once at creation, or received it later on
as a reward for a
temporary obedience. It was this original righteousness that enabled man
to merit
eternal life. The Reformers rejected the distinction between the image
and the likeness,
and considered original righteousness as included in the image of God,
and as
belonging to the very nature of man in its original condition. There was
a difference of
opinion, however, between Luther and Calvin. The former did not seek the
image of
God in any of the natural endowments of man, such as his rational and
moral powers,
but exclusively in original righteousness, and therefore regarded it as
entirely lost by
sin. Calvin, on the other hand, expresses himself as follows, after
stating that the image
of God extends to everything in which the nature of man surpasses that
of all other
species of
animals: "Accordingly, by this term ('image of God') is denoted the
integrity with which Adam was endued when his intellect was clear, his affections
subordinated
to reason, all his senses duly regulated, and when he truly ascribed all
his excellence to
the admirable gifts of his Maker. And though the primary seat of the
divine image was
in the mind and the heart, or in the soul and its powers, there was no
part even of the
body in which some rays of glory did not shine."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p1.2" n="16" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p1.3">Inst.</span> I. 15:3.</note>
It included both natural
endowments and those spiritual qualities designated as original
righteousness, that is,
true knowledge, righteousness, and holiness. The whole image was
vitiated by sin, but
only those spiritual qualities were completely lost. The Socinians and
some of the earlier
Arminians taught that the image of God consisted only in man's dominion
over the
lower creation. Schleiermacher rejected the idea of an original state of
integrity and of
original righteousness as a necessary doctrine. Since, as he sees it,
moral perfection or
righteousness and holiness can only be the result of development, he
regards it as a
contradiction in terms to speak of man as being created in a state of
righteousness and
holiness. Hence the image of God in man can only be a certain
receptivity for the divine,
a capacity to answer to the divine ideal, and to grow into God-likeness.
Such modern
theologians as Martensen and Kaftan are quite in line with this idea.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.i.iii-p1.4">B. SCRIPTURAL DATA RESPECTING THE IMAGE OF GOD IN MAN.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.iii-p2" shownumber="no">Scriptural teachings respecting the image of God in man
warrant the following
statements: </p>
<p id="iv.i.iii-p3" shownumber="no">1. The words "image" and "likeness" are used synonymously and
interchangeably,
and therefore do not refer to two different things. In <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef> both
words are used, but
in the twenty-seventh verse only the first. This is evidently considered
sufficient to
express the whole idea. In <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.5.1" parsed="|Gen|5|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 5:1">Gen. 5:1</scripRef> only the word "likeness"
occurs, but in the third
verse of that chapter both terms are again found. <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.6" parsed="|Gen|9|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 9:6">Gen. 9:6</scripRef> contains only
the word
"image" as a complete expression of the idea. Turning to the
New Testament, we find
-"image" and "glory" used in <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.7" parsed="|1Cor|11|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:7">I Cor. 11:7</scripRef>,
"image" alone in <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.10" parsed="|Col|3|10|0|0" passage="Col. 3:10">Col. 3:10</scripRef>, and "likeness" only
in <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.9" parsed="|Jas|3|9|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:9">Jas. 3:9</scripRef>. Evidently the two are used interchangeably in Scripture.
This naturally
implies that man was<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p3.7">
created</span>
also in the
likeness of God, and that this likeness was not
something with which he was endowed later on. The usual opinion is that
the word  "likeness"
was added to "image" to express the idea that the image was most
like, a perfect image. The idea is that by creation that which was archetypal in
God became ectypal in man. God was the original of which man was made a copy. This
means, of
course, that man not only bears the image of God, but is His very image.
This is clearly
stated in <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.7" parsed="|1Cor|11|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:7">I Cor. 11:7</scripRef>, but does not mean that he cannot also be said to
bear the image of
God, cf. <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.49" parsed="|1Cor|15|49|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:49">I Cor. 15:49</scripRef>. Some have considered the change of prepositions
in <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.27" parsed="|Gen|1|27|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:27">Gen. 1:27</scripRef>, "<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p3.11">
in</span>
our image,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p3.12">
after</span>
our likeness," as significant. Böhl even based on it the idea that
we are
created in the image as a sphere, but this is entirely unwarranted.
While the first
meaning of the Hebrew preposition<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p3.13">
be</span>
(rendered "in" here)
is undoubtedly "in," it can
also have the same meaning as the preposition<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p3.14">
le</span>
(rendered
"after"), and evidently has
that meaning here. Notice that we are said to be renewed "after the
image" of God in
<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.10" parsed="|Col|3|10|0|0" passage="Col. 3:10">Col. 3:10</scripRef>; and also that the prepositions used in <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef> are reversed
in <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:Gen.5.3" parsed="|Gen|5|3|0|0" passage="Gen. 5:3">Gen. 5:3</scripRef>.</p>
<p id="iv.i.iii-p4" shownumber="no">2. The image of God in which man was created certainly
includes what is generally
called "original righteousness," or more specifically, true
knowledge, righteousness,
and holiness. We
are told that God made man "very good," <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.31" parsed="|Gen|1|31|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:31">Gen. 1:31</scripRef>, and
"upright,"
<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.7.29" parsed="|Eccl|7|29|0|0" passage="Eccl. 7:29">Eccl. 7:29</scripRef>. The
New Testament indicates very specifically the nature of man's original
condition where it speaks of man as being renewed in Christ, that is, as
being brought
back to a former condition. The condition to which he is restored in
Christ is clearly not
one of neutrality, neither good nor bad, in which the will is in a state
of perfect
equilibrium, but one of true knowledge, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.10" parsed="|Col|3|10|0|0" passage="Col. 3:10">Col. 3:10</scripRef>, righteousness and
holiness, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.24" parsed="|Eph|4|24|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:24">Eph. 4:24</scripRef>.
These three elements constitute the original righteousness, which was
lost by sin, but is
regained in Christ. It may be called the moral image of God, or the
image of God in the
more restricted sense of the word. Man's creation in this moral image
implies that the
original condition of man was one of positive holiness, and not a state
of innocence or
moral neutrality.</p>
<p id="iv.i.iii-p5" shownumber="no">3. But the image of God is not to be restricted to the
original knowledge,
righteousness, and holiness which was lost by sin, but also includes
elements which belong to the natural constitution of man. They are elements
which belong to man as
man, such as intellectual power, natural affections, and moral freedom.
As created in the
image of God man has a rational and moral nature, which he did not lose
by sin and
which he could not lose without ceasing to be man. This part of the
image of God has
indeed been vitiated by sin, but still remains in man even after his
fall in sin. Notice that
man even after the fall, irrespective of his spiritual condition, is still
represented as the
image of God,
<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9" parsed="|Gen|9|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 9">Gen. 9</scripRef>;<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6" parsed="|Gen|6|0|0|0" passage="Gen 6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.7" parsed="|1Cor|11|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:7">I Cor. 11:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.9" parsed="|Jas|3|9|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:9">Jas. 3:9</scripRef>. The crime of murder owes its enormity to the
fact that it is an attack on the image of God. In view of these passages
of Scripture it is
unwarranted to say that man has completely lost the image of God. </p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p6" shownumber="no">4. Another element usually included in the image of God is that of
spirituality. God
is Spirit, and it is but natural to expect that this element of
spirituality also finds
expression in man as the image of God. And that this is so is already
indicated in the
narrative of man's creation. God "breathed into his nostrils the
breath of life; and man
became a living
soul." <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>. The "breath of life" is the principle of his life,
and the  "living soul" is the very
being of man. The soul is united with and adapted to a body,
but can, if need be, also exist without the body. In view of this we can
speak of man as a
spiritual being, and as also in that respect the image of God. In this
connection the
question may be raised, whether the body of man also constitutes a part
of the image.
And it would seem that this question should be answered in the
affirmative. The Bible
says that man — not merely the soul of man — was created in the image of
God, and
man, the "living soul," is not complete without the body.
Moreover, the Bible represents
murder as the destruction of the body, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.28" parsed="|Matt|10|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:28">Matt. 10:28</scripRef>, and also as the
destruction of the
image of God in man, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.6" parsed="|Gen|9|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 9:6">Gen. 9:6</scripRef>. We need not look for the image in the
material substance
of the body; it is found rather in the body as the fit instrument for
the self-expression of the soul. Even the body is destined to become in the end
a spiritual body, that is, a body
which is completely spirit-controlled, a perfect instrument of the soul.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p7" shownumber="no">5. Still another element of the image of God is
immortality. The Bible says that God
only hath immortality, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.16" parsed="|1Tim|6|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:16">I Tim. 6:16</scripRef>, and this would seem to exclude the
idea of human
immortality. But it is perfectly evident from Scripture that man is also
immortal in some
sense of the word. The meaning is that God alone hath immortality as an
essential
quality, has it in and of Himself, while man's immortality is an
endowment, is derived
from God. Man was created immortal, not merely in the sense that his
soul was
endowed with an endless existence, but also in the sense that he did not
carry within
himself the seeds of physical death, and in his original condition was
not subject to the
law of death. Death was threatened as a punishment for sin, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.17" parsed="|Gen|2|17|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:17">Gen. 2:17</scripRef>,
and that this
included bodily or physical death is evident from <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.19" parsed="|Gen|3|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:19">Gen. 3:19</scripRef>. Paul tells
us that sin
brought death into the world, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12" parsed="|Rom|5|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:12">Rom. 5:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.20" parsed="|1Cor|15|20|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:20">I Cor. 15:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.21" parsed="|1Cor|15|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:21">21</scripRef>; and that death
must be
regarded as the wages of sin, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.23" parsed="|Rom|6|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:23">Rom. 6:23</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p8" shownumber="no">6. There is considerable difference of opinion as to
whether man's dominion over
the lower creation also formed a part of the image of God. This is not
surprising in view
of the fact that Scripture does not express itself explicitly on this
point. Some regard the
dominion in question simply as an office conferred on man, and not as a
part of the
image. But notice that God mentions man's creation in the divine image
and his
dominion over the lower creation in a single breath, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef>. It is
indicative of the glory and honour with which man is crowned, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.8.5" parsed="|Ps|8|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 8:5">Ps. 8:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.8.6" parsed="|Ps|8|6|0|0" passage="Ps 8:6">6</scripRef>.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.i.iii-p8.4">C. MAN AS THE IMAGE OF GOD.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.iii-p9" shownumber="no">According to Scripture the essence of man consists in
this, that he is the image of God. As such he is distinguished from all other
creatures and stands supreme as the
head and crown of the entire creation. Scripture asserts that man was
created in the
image and after the likeness of God, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.27" parsed="|Gen|1|27|0|0" passage="Gen 1:27">27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.6" parsed="|Gen|9|6|0|0" passage="Gen 9:6">9:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.9" parsed="|Jas|3|9|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:9">Jas. 3:9</scripRef>, and
speaks of man as
being and as
bearing the image of God, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.7" parsed="|1Cor|11|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:7">I Cor. 11:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.49" parsed="|1Cor|15|49|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:49">15:49</scripRef>. The terms "image" and
"likeness" have been distinguished in various ways. Some were
of the opinion that
"image"
had reference to the body, and "likeness," to the soul. Augustine
held that the former referred to the intellectual, and the latter, to the moral
faculties of the soul.
Bellarmin
regarded "image" as a designation of the natural gifts of man, and
"likeness" as a description of that which was supernaturally added to man. Still
others asserted
that
"image" denoted the inborn, and "likeness," the acquired
conformity to God. It is far more likely, however, as was pointed out in the preceding, that both
words express
the same idea, and that "likeness" is merely an epexegetical
addition to designate the
image as most like or very similar. The idea expressed by the two words
is that of<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p9.7">
the very image of God.</span>
The doctrine of the image of God in man is of the greatest importance in
theology, for that image is the expression of that which is most distinctive in
man and
in his relation to God. The fact that man is the image of God
distinguishes him from the
animal and from every other creature. As far as we can learn from
Scripture even the
angels do not share that honor with him, though it is sometimes
represented as if they
do. Calvin goes so far as to say that "it cannot be denied that the
angels also were
created in the likeness of God, since, as Christ declares (<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.30" parsed="|Matt|22|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:30">Matt. 22:30</scripRef>),
our highest
perfection will consist in being like them."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p9.9" n="17" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p9.10">Inst.</span> I. 15.3.</note>
But in this statement the great
Reformer
does not have due regard for the point of comparison in the statement of
Jesus. In many
cases the assumption that the angels were also created in the image of
God results from
a conception of the image which limits it to our moral and intellectual
qualities. But the
image also includes the body of man and his dominion over the lower
creation. The
angels are never represented as lords of creation, but as ministering
spirits sent out for
the service of those that inherit salvation. The following are the most
important
conceptions of the image of God in man.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p10" shownumber="no">1. THE REFORMED CONCEPTION. The Reformed
Churches, following in the footsteps
of Calvin, have a far more comprehensive conception of the image of God
than either
the Lutherans or the Roman Catholics. But even they do not all agree as
to its exact
contents. Dabney, for instance, holds that it does not consist in
anything absolutely essential to man's nature, for then the loss of it would have resulted
in the destruction
of man's nature; but merely in some<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.1">
accidens.</span><note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p10.2" n="18" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.3">Syst. and Pole,. Theol.,</span> p. 293.</note>
McPherson, on the other hand, asserts
that it belongs to the essential nature of man, and says that
"Protestant theology would
have escaped much confusion and many needless and unconvincing doctrinal
refinements, if it had not encumbered itself with the idea that it was
bound to define sin
as the loss of the image, or of something belonging to the image. If the
image were lost
man would cease to be man."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p10.4" n="19" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.5">Chr. Dogm.,</span> p. 203.</note>
These two, then, would seem to be hopelessly
at
variance. Other differences are also in evidence in Reformed theology.
Some would limit
the image to the moral qualities of righteousness and holiness with which
man was
created, while others would include the whole moral and rational nature
of man, and
still others would also add the body. Calvin says that the proper seat
of the image of
God is in the soul, though some rays of its glory also shine in the
body. He finds that the
image consisted especially in that original integrity of man's nature,
lost by sin, which
reveals itself in true knowledge, righteousness, and holiness. At the
same time he adds
further "that the image of God extends to everything in which the nature
of man
surpasses that of all other species of animals."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p10.6" n="20" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.7">Inst.</span> I. 15.308.</note>
This broader conception of the
image of
God became the prevalent one in Reformed theology. Thus Witsius says:
"The image of
God consisted<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.8">
antecendenter</span>, in man's spiritual and immortal
nature;<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.9">
formaliter</span>, in his
holiness;<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.10">
consequenter</span>, in his dominion."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p10.11" n="21" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.12">On the Covenants.</span> 1. 2. 11.</note> A
very similar opinion is expressed by
Turretin.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p10.13" n="22" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.14">Opera, De Creatione, Quaestio X.</span></note>To sum up it may be said that the
image consists: (a) In the soul or spirit of
man, that is, in the qualities of simplicity, spirituality,
invisibility, and immortality. (b) In
the psychical powers or faculties of man as a rational and moral being,
namely, the
intellect and the will with their functions. (c) In the intellectual and
moral integrity of
man's nature, revealing itself in true knowledge, righteousness, and
holiness, <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p10.15" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.24" parsed="|Eph|4|24|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:24">Eph. 4:24</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p10.16" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.10" parsed="|Col|3|10|0|0" passage="Col. 3:10">Col. 3:10</scripRef>. (d) In the body, not as a material substance, but as the fit
organ of the soul,
sharing its immortality; and as the instrument through which man can
exercise
dominion over the lower creation. (e) In man's dominion over the earth.
In opposition
to the Socinians, some Reformed scholars went too far in the opposite
direction, when
they regarded this dominion as something that did not belong to the image
at all but
was the result of a special disposal of God. In connection with the
question, whether the image of God belongs to the very essence of man, Reformed theology does
not hesitate
to say that it<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p10.17">
constitutes</span>
the essence of man. It distinguishes, however, between those
elements in the image of God which man cannot lose without ceasing to be
man,
consisting in the essential qualities and powers of the human soul; and
those elements
which man can lose and still remain man, namely, the good ethical
qualities of the soul and its powers. The image of God in this restricted sense
is identical with what is called
original righteousness. It is the moral perfection of the image, which
could be, and was,
lost by sin. </p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p11" shownumber="no">2. THE LUTHERAN CONCEPTION. The prevailing
Lutheran conception of the image of
God differs materially from that of the Reformed. Luther himself
sometimes spoke as if
he had a broad conception of it, but in reality he had a restricted view
of it.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p11.1" n="23" place="foot">Koestlin, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p11.2">The Theology of Luther</span>  II, pp. 339-342.</note>
While there
were during the seventeenth century, and there are even now, some
Lutheran
theologians who have a broader conception of the image of God, the great
majority of
them restrict it to the spiritual qualities with which man was originally
endowed, that
is, what is called original righteousness. In doing this they do not
sufficiently recognize the essential nature of man as distinct from that of the
angels on the one hand, and from
that of the animals on the other hand. In the possession of this image
men are like the
angels, who also possess it; and in comparison with what the two have in
common,
their difference is of little importance. Man lost the image of God
entirely through sin,
and what now distinguishes him from the animals has very little
religious or theological significance. The great difference between the two lay
in the image of God, and this man
has lost entirely. In view of this it is also natural that the Lutherans
should adopt
Traducianism, and thus teach that the soul of man originates like that
of the animal, that
is, by procreation. It also accounts for the fact that the Lutherans
hardly recognize the
moral unity of the human race, but emphasize strongly its physical unity
and the
exclusively physical propagation of sin. Barth comes closer to the
Lutheran than to the
Reformed position when he seeks the image of God in "a point of
contact" between God
and man, a certain conformity with God, and then says that this was not
only ruined
but even annihilated by sin.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p11.3" n="24" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p11.4">The Doctrine of the World of god,</span> p. 273</note></p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p12" shownumber="no">3. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC VIEW. Roman Catholics do not altogether agree in their
conception of the image of God. We limit ourselves here to a statement
of the prevailing
view among them. They hold that God at creation endowed man with certain
natural
gifts, such as the spirituality of the soul, the freedom of the will,
and the immortality of the body. Spirituality, freedom, and immortality, are<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p12.1">
natural endowments</span>, and as such
constitute the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p12.2">
natural image</span>
of God. Moreover, God "attempered" (adjusted) the natural powers of man to one another, placing the lower in due subordination to
the higher. The
harmony thus established is called<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p12.3">
justitia</span>
— natural
righteousness. But even so there
remained in man a natural tendency of the lower appetites and passions to
rebel against
the authority of the higher powers of reason and conscience. This
tendency, called
concupiscence, is not itself sin, but becomes sin when it is consented
to by the will and
passes into voluntary action. In order to enable man to hold his lower nature
in check,
God added to the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p12.4">
dona naturalia</span>
certain<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p12.5">
dona supernaturalia.</span>
These included the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p12.6">
donum superadditum</span>
of original righteousness (the supernatural likeness to God), which was
added as a foreign gift to the original constitution of man, either
immediately at the
time of creation, or at some later point as a reward for the proper use
of the natural
powers. These supernatural gifts, including the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p12.7">
donum superadditum</span>
of original
righteousness, were lost by sin, but their loss did not disrupt the
essential nature of man.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p13" shownumber="no">4. OTHER VIEWS OF THE IMAGE OF GOD. According to
the Socinians and some of the
earlier Arminians the image of God consists in man's dominion over the
lower creation,
and in this only. Anabaptists maintained that the first man, as a finite
and earthly
creature, was not yet the image of God, but could become this only by
regeneration.
Pelagians, most of the Arminians, and Rationalists all, with little
variation, find the
image of God only in the free personality of man, in his rational
character, his ethico-
religious disposition, and his destiny to live in communion with God.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.i.iii-p13.1">D. THE ORIGINAL CONDITION OF MAN AS THE IMAGE OF GOD.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.iii-p14" shownumber="no">There is a very close connection between the image of God
and the original state of man, and therefore the two are generally considered
together. Once again we shall have
to distinguish between different historical views as to the original
condition of man.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p15" shownumber="no">1. THE PROTESTANT VIEW. Protestants teach
that man was created in a state of relative
perfection, a state of righteousness and holiness. This does not mean
that he had
already reached the highest state of excellence of which he was
susceptible. It is
generally assumed that he was destined to reach a higher degree of
perfection in the
way of obedience. He was, something like a child, perfect in parts, but
not yet in degree.
His condition was a preliminary and temporary one, which would either
lead on to
greater perfection and glory or terminate in a fall. He was<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p15.1">
by nature</span>
endowed with that
original righteousness which is the crowning glory of the image of God,
and
consequently lived in a state of positive holiness. The loss of that
righteousness meant
the loss of something that belonged to the very nature of man in its
ideal state. Man
could lose it and still remain man, but he could not lose it and remain
man in the ideal
sense of the word. In other words, its loss would really mean a
deterioration and
impairment of human nature. Moreover, man was created immortal. This
applies not
only to the soul, but to the whole person of man; and
therefore does not merely mean
that the soul was destined to have a continued existence. Neither does it
mean that man
was raised above the possibility of becoming a prey to death; this can
only be affirmed
of the angels and the saints in heaven. It does mean, however, that man,
as he was
created by God, did not bear within him the seeds of death and would not
have died <span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p15.2">
necessarily</span>
in virtue of the original constitution of his nature. Though the
possibility of
his becoming a victim of death was not excluded, he was not liable to
death as long as
he did not sin. It should be borne in mind that man's original
immortality was not
something purely negative and physical, but was something positive and
spiritual as
well. It meant life in communion with God and the enjoyment of the favor
of the Most High. This is the fundamental conception of life in Scripture, just
as death is primarily
separation from God and subjection to His wrath. The loss of this
spiritual life would
spell death, and would also result in physical death.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iii-p15.3" n="25" place="foot">Cf. especially, Kennedy, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p15.4">St. Paul's Conceptions of the Last Things,</span> Chap. III.</note></p>


<p id="iv.i.iii-p16" shownumber="no">2. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC VIEW. Roman Catholics naturally have a somewhat
different view of the original condition of man. According to them
original
righteousness did not belong to the nature of man in its integrity, but
was something
supernaturally added. In virtue of his creation man was simply endowed
with all the
natural powers and faculties of human nature as such, and by the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p16.1">
justitia naturalis</span>
these
powers were nicely adjusted to each other. He was without sin and lived
in a state of
perfect innocency. In the very nature of things, however, there was a
natural tendency of
the lower appetites and passions to rebel against the higher powers of
reason and
conscience. This tendency, called<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p16.2">
concupiscence</span>
was not itself
sin, but could easily
become the
occasion and fuel for sin. (But cf. <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.8" parsed="|Rom|7|8|0|0" passage="Rom. 7:8">Rom. 7:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.5" parsed="|Col|3|5|0|0" passage="Col. 3:5">Col. 3:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.5" parsed="|1Thess|4|5|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:5">I Thess. 4:5</scripRef>, Auth.
Ver.).
Man, then, as he was originally constituted, was by nature without
positive holiness,
but also without sin, though burdened with a tendency which might easily
result in sin. But now God added to the natural constitution of man the
supernatural gift of original
righteousness, by which he was enabled to keep the lower propensities and
desires in
due subjection. When man fell, he lost that original righteousness, but
the original
constitution of human nature remained intact. The natural man is now
exactly where Adam was before he was endowed with original righteousness, though with a
somewhat stronger bias towards evil.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p17" shownumber="no">3. RATIONALIZING VIEWS. Pelagians,
Socinians, Arminians, Rationalists, and
Evolutionists, all discount the idea of a primitive state of holiness
altogether. The first
four are agreed that man was created in a state of innocence, of moral
and religious
neutrality, but was endowed with a free will, so that he could turn in
either direction.
Evolutionists assert that man began his career in a state of barbarism,
in which he was
but slightly removed from the brute. Rationalists of all kinds believe
that a concreated
righteousness and holiness is a contradiction in terms. Man determines
his character by
his own free choice; and holiness can only result from a victorious
struggle against evil.
From the nature of the case, therefore, Adam could not have been created
in a state of
holiness. Moreover. Pelagians. Socinians, and Rationalists hold that man
was created
mortal. Death did not result from the entrance of sin into the world,
but was simply the
natural termination of human nature as it was constituted. Adam would
have died in
virtue of the original constitution of his nature. </p>

<p id="iv.i.iii-p18" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What is
the precise distinction which Delitzsch
makes between the soul and the spirit in man? How does Heard make use of
the
tripartite conception of man in the interpretation of original sin,
conversion, and
sanctification? What accounts for the fact that Lutherans are
prevailingly Traducianists,
and Reformed prevailingly Creationists? How about the objection that
Creationism
virtually destroys the unity of the human race? What objections are
there against
realism with its assumption of the numerical unity of human nature? What
criticism
would you offer on Dorner's view, that the theories of
Pre-existentianism,
Traducianism, and Creationism, are simply three different aspects of the
whole truth
respecting the origin of the soul? How do Roman Catholics generally
distinguish  between
the "image" and the "likeness" of God? Do they believe that
man lost his<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p18.1">
justitia</span>
or natural righteousness by the fall or not? How do those Lutherans who
restrict
the image of God to man's original righteousness explain <scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.6" parsed="|Gen|9|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 9:6">Gen. 9:6</scripRef> and
<scripRef id="iv.i.iii-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.9" parsed="|Jas|3|9|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:9">Jas. 3:9</scripRef>?</p>
<p id="iv.i.iii-p19" shownumber="no"> LITERATURE. Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>, II, pp. 566-635; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Creaturis </span>
C. pp. 3-131;
Vos,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.3">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 1-21;
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 42-116;
Dabney, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.5">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 292-302;
Shedd,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.6">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 4-114;
Litton,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.7">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 107-122; Dorner,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.8">
Syst, of Chr. Doct.</span>
II, pp. 68-96; Schmidt,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.9">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 225-238; Martensen,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.10">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 136-148; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.11"> Chr. Dogm. </span>
I, pp. 617-630;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.12">
Chr. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 383-415;
Pope,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.13">
Chr. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 421-436;
Raymond,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.14">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 7-49; Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.15">
Handbook of the Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 219-233;
Orr, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.16">God's Image in Man</span>, pp. 3-193; A. Kuyper, Jr.,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.17">
Het Beeld Gods</span> pp. 8-143; Talma,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.18"> De
Anthropologie van Calvijn</span>, pp. 29-68;
Heard,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.19">
The Tri-partite Nature of Man;</span>
Dickson,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.20">
St. Paul's Use of the Terms Flesh and
Spirit</span>, chaps. V-XI; Delitzsch,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.21"> Syst. of Bibl. Psych.</span>, pp.
103-144;
Laidlaw,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.22">
The Bibl. Doct. of Man</span>, pp. 49-108; H.
W. Robinson,<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iii-p19.23">
The Chr. Doct. of Man</span>
pp. 4-150.
</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.i.iv" next="iv.ii" prev="iv.i.iii" title="IV. Man in the Covenant of Works">
<h2 id="iv.i.iv-p0.1">IV. Man in the Covenant of Works</h2>
<p id="iv.i.iv-p1" shownumber="no">The discussion of the original state of man, the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p1.1">status integritatis</span>, would not be
complete without considering the mutual relationship
between God and man, and
especially the origin and nature of the religious life of man. That life
was rooted in a
covenant, just as the Christian life is today, and that covenant is
variously known as the
covenant of nature, the covenant of life, the Edenic covenant, and the
covenant of
works. The first name, which was rather common at first, was gradually
abandoned,
since it was apt to give the impression that this covenant was simply a
part of the
natural relationship in which man stood to God. The second and third
names are not
sufficiently specific, since both of them might also be applied to the
covenant of grace,
which is certainly a covenant of life, and also originated in Eden, <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.15" parsed="|Gen|3|15|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:15">Gen.
3:15</scripRef>. Consequently the name "Covenant of Works" deserves preference.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.i.iv-p1.3">A. THE DOCTRINE OF THE COVENANT OF WORKS IN HISTORY.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.iv-p2" shownumber="no">The history of the doctrine of the covenant of works is
comparatively brief. In the
early Church Fathers the covenant idea is seldom found at all, though
the elements
which it includes, namely, the probationary command, the freedom of
choice, and the
possibility of sin and death, are all mentioned. Augustine in his<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.1">
de Civitates Dei</span>
speaks
of the relation in which Adam originally stood to God as a covenant
(testamentum,
pactum), while some others inferred the original covenant relationship
from the well
known passage of <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Hos.6.7" parsed="|Hos|6|7|0|0" passage="Hos. 6:7">Hos. 6:7</scripRef>. In the scholastic literature and in the
writings of the
Reformers, too, all the elements which later on went into the
construction of the
doctrine of the covenant of works were already present, but the doctrine
itself was not
yet developed. Though they contain some expressions which point to the
imputation of
Adam's sin to his descendants, it is clear that on the whole the
transmission of sin was
conceived realistically rather than federally. Says Thornwell in his
analysis of Calvin's
<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.3">
Institutes</span>: "Federal representation was not seized as it should be, but a
mystic realism in
place of it."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iv-p2.4" n="26" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.5">Collected Writings</span> I, p. 619. Cf. Calvin, <span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.6">Institutes</span> II, 1.</note>
The development of the doctrine
of the covenant of grace preceded that of
the doctrine of the covenant of works and paved the way for it. When it
was clearly
seen that Scripture represented the way of salvation in the form of a
covenant, the
parallel which Paul draws in <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5" parsed="|Rom|5|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 5">Rom. 5</scripRef> between Adam and Christ soon gave
occasion for
thinking of the state of integrity also as a covenant. According to
Heppe the first work
which contained the federal representation of the way of salvation, was
Bullinger's <span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.8">Compendium of the Christian Religion;</span>
and Olevianus
was the real founder of a well
developed federal theology, in which the concept of the covenant became
for the first
time the constitutive and determinative principle of the entire system.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iv-p2.9" n="27" place="foot">Cf. the valuable chapter on <span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.10">Die Foederaltheologie der Reformirten Kirche</span> in Heppe's <span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.11">Geschichte des Pietismus,</span> pp. 204-240.</note>
From the
Reformed Churches of Switzerland and Germany federal theology passed over
to the
Netherlands and to the British Isles, especially Scotland. Its earliest
representatives in the Netherlands were Gomarus, Trelcatius, Ravensperger, and
especially Cloppenburg.
The latter is regarded as the forerunner of Coccejus, who is often
mistakenly called "the
father of federal theology." The real distinction of Coccejus lies,
at least partly, in the fact
that he sought to substitute for the usual scholastic method of studying
theology, which
was rather common in his day, what he considered a more Scriptural
method. He was
followed in that respect by Burmannus and Witsius.
Coccejus and his followers were
not the only ones to embrace the doctrine of the covenant of works. This
was done by
others as well, such as Voetius, Mastricht, à Marck, and De Moor. Ypeij
and Dermout
point out that in those days a denial of the covenant of works was
regarded as a
heresy.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iv-p2.12" n="28" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.13">Geschiedenis der Ned. Herv. Kerk, Aanteekeningen</span> I-11, p. 315.</note>
The Socinians rejected this
doctrine altogether, since they did not believe in the
imputation of Adam's sin to his descendants; and some of the Arminians,
such as
Episcopius, Limborgh, Venema, and J. Alting, who called it a human
doctrine, followed
suit. About the middle of the eighteenth century, when the doctrine of
the covenant in
the Netherlands had all but passed into oblivion, Comrie and Holtius in
their<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.14">
Examen van het Ontwerp van Tolerantie</span>
once more
brought it to the attention of the Church. In
Scotland several important works were written on the covenants, including
the
covenant of
works, such as those of Fisher (<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.15">Marrow
of Modern Divinity</span>),
Ball, Blake, Gib,
and Boston. Says Walker: "The old theology of Scotland might be
emphatically
described as<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.16">
covenant theology.</span>"<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iv-p2.17" n="29" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.18">Scottish Theology and Theologians,</span> p. 73.</note>
The doctrine found official recognition in the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.19">
Westminster Confession</span>, and in the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.20">
Formula Consensus Helvetica.</span>
It is
significant that the
doctrine of works met with very little response in Roman Catholic and
Lutheran
theology. This finds its explanation in their attitude to the doctrine
of the<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.21">
immediate imputation</span>
of the sin of Adam to his descendants. Under the influence of
Rationalism
and of Placæus' theory of<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.22">
mediate</span>
imputation, which
also found acceptance in New
England theology, the doctrine of the covenant gradually suffered
eclipse. Even such
conservative scholars as Doedes and Van Oosterzee in the Netherlands
rejected it; and
in New England theology it was short-lived. In Scotland the situation is
not much better. Hugh Martin already wrote in his work on<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p2.23">
The Atonement</span>
(published in 1887): "It
has come to pass, we fear, that the federal theology is at present
suffering a measure of
neglect which does not bode well for the immediate future of the Church
amongst us."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iv-p2.24" n="30" place="foot">p. 25</note>
And while in our own country such Presbyterian scholars as the Hodges,
Thornwell,
Breckenridge, and Dabney, take due account of the doctrine in their
theological works,
in the Churches which they represent it has all but lost its vitality.
In the Netherlands
there has been a revival of federal theology under the influence
of Kuyper and Bavinck,
and through the grace of God it still continues to be a living reality
in the hearts and
minds of the people.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.i.iv-p2.25">B. THE SCRIPTURAL FOUNDATION FOR THE DOCTRINE OF THE COVENANT OF WORKS.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.iv-p3" shownumber="no">The widespread denial of the covenant of works makes it
imperative to examine its
Scriptural foundation with care.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p4" shownumber="no">1. THE ELEMENTS OF A COVENANT ARE PRESENT IN THE EARLY NARRATIVE. It must be
admitted that the term "covenant" is not found in the first
three chapters of Genesis, but
this is not tantamount to saying that they do not contain the necessary
data for the
construction of a doctrine of the covenant. One would hardly infer from
the absence of
the term "trinity" that the doctrine of the Trinity is not
found in the Bible. All the
elements of a covenant are indicated in Scripture, and if the elements
are present, we are
not only warranted but, in a systematic study of the doctrine, also in
duty bound to
relate them to one another, and to give the doctrine so construed an appropriate
name.
In the case under consideration two parties are named, a condition is
laid down, a
promise of reward for obedience is clearly implied, and a penalty for
transgression is
threatened. It may still be objected that we do not read of the two
parties as coming to
an agreement, nor of Adam as accepting the terms laid down, but this is
not an
insuperable objection. We do not read of such an explicit agreement and
acceptance on
the part of man either in the cases of Noah and Abraham. God and man do
not appear
as equals in any of these covenants. All God's covenants
are of the nature of sovereign
dispositions imposed on man. God is absolutely sovereign in His dealings
with man,
and has the perfect right to lay down the conditions which the latter
must meet, in order
to enjoy His favor. Moreover Adam was, even in virtue of his natural
relationship, in
duty bound to obey God; and when the covenant relation was established,
this
obedience also became a matter of self-interest. When entering into
covenant relations with men, it is always God who lays down the terms, and they are very
gracious terms,
so that He has, also from that point of view, a perfect right to expect
that man will
assent to them. In the case under consideration God had but to announce
the covenant,
and the perfect state in which Adam lived was a sufficient guarantee for
his acceptance.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p5" shownumber="no">2. THERE WAS A PROMISE OF ETERNAL LIFE. Some deny that there is any Scripture
evidence for such a promise. Now it is perfectly true that no such
promise is explicitly
recorded, but it is clearly implied in the alternative of death as the
result of
disobedience. The clear implication of the threatened punishment is that
in the case of
obedience death would not enter, and this can only mean that life would
continue. It
has been objected that this would only mean a continuation of Adam's
natural life, and not what Scripture calls life eternal. But the Scriptural
idea of life is life in communion
with God; and this is the life which Adam possessed, though in his case
it was still
amissible. If Adam stood the test, this life would be retained not only,
but would cease
to be amissible, and would therefore be lifted to a higher plane. Paul
tells us explicitly in
<scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.10" parsed="|Rom|7|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 7:10">Rom. 7:10</scripRef> that the commandment, that is the law, was unto life. In
commenting on this
verse Hodge says: "The law was designed and adapted to secure life,
but became in fact
the cause of death." This is also clearly indicated in such passages
as <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.5" parsed="|Rom|10|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:5">Rom. 10:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:13">Gal.
3:13</scripRef>. Now it is generally admitted that this glorious promise of
unending life was in no
way implied in the natural relation in which Adam stood to God, but had a
different
basis. But to admit that there is something positive here, a special
condescension of
God, is an acceptance of the covenant principle. There may still be some
doubt as to the
propriety of the name "Covenant of Works," but there can be no
valid objection to the
covenant idea.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p6" shownumber="no">3. BASICALLY, THE COVENANT OF GRACE IS SIMPLY THE EXECUTION OF THE ORIGINAL AGREEMENT BY CHRIST AS OUR SURETY. He undertook
freely to carry out the will of God.  He
placed Himself under the law, that He might redeem them that were under the
law,
and were no more in a position to obtain life by their own fulfilment of
the law. He
came to do what Adam failed to do, and did it in virtue of a covenant
agreement. And if
this is so, and the covenant of grace is, as far as Christ is concerned,
simply the carrying
out of the original agreement, it follows that the latter must also have
been of the nature
of a covenant. And since Christ met the condition of the covenant of
works, man can
now reap the fruit of the original agreement by faith in Jesus Christ.
There are now two
ways of life, which are in themselves ways of life, the one is the way
of the law: "the
man that doeth the righteousness which is of the law shall live
thereby," but it is a way
by which man can no more find life; and the other is the way of faith in
Jesus Christ,
who met the demands of the law, and is now able to dispense the blessing
of eternal life.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p7" shownumber="no">4. THE PARALLEL BETWEEN ADAM AND CHRIST. The parallel
which Paul draws
between Adam and Christ in <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12-Rom.5.21" parsed="|Rom|5|12|5|21" passage="Rom. 5:12-21">Rom. 5:12-21</scripRef>, in connection with the doctrine
of
justification, can only be explained on the assumption that Adam, like
Christ, was the
head of a covenant. According to Paul the essential element in
justification consists in
this, that the righteousness of Christ is imputed to us, without any
personal work on
our part to merit it. And he regards this as a perfect parallel to the
manner in which the
guilt of Adam is imputed to us. This naturally leads to the conclusion
that Adam also
stood in covenant relationship to his descendants.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p8" shownumber="no">5. THE PASSAGE IN HOS. 6:7. In <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Hos.6.7" parsed="|Hos|6|7|0|0" passage="Hos. 6:7">Hos. 6:7</scripRef> we read: "But they like Adam have
transgressed the covenant." Attempts have been made to discredit
this reading. Some
have suggested the reading "at Adam," which would imply that
some well-known
transgression occurred at a place called Adam. But the preposition
forbids this
rendering. Moreover, the Bible makes no mention whatever of such a
well-known
historical transgression at Adam. The Authorized Version renders
"like men," which
would then mean, in human fashion. To this it may be objected that there
is no plural in
the original, and that such a statement would be rather inane, since man
could hardly
transgress in any other way. The rendering "like Adam" is
after all the best. It is favored
by the parallel passage in <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Job.31.33" parsed="|Job|31|33|0|0" passage="Job 31:33">Job 31:33</scripRef>; and is adopted by the American
Revised Version.</p>

<h4 id="iv.i.iv-p8.3">C. ELEMENTS OF THE COVENANT OF WORKS.</h4>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p9" shownumber="no">The following elements must be distinguished:</p>
<p id="iv.i.iv-p10" shownumber="no">1. THE CONTRACTING PARTIES. On the one hand
there was the triune God, the Creator
and Lord, and on the other hand, Adam as His dependent creature. A
twofold
relationship between the two should be distinguished:
</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p11" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p11.1"> The natural relationship.</span>
When God created man, He by that very fact established a
natural relationship between Himself and man. It was a relationship like
that between
the potter and the clay, between an absolute sovereign and a subject
devoid of any
claim. In fact, the distance between the two was so great that these
figures are not even
an adequate expression of it. It was such that a life in communion with
each other
seemed to be out of the question. As the creature of God man was
naturally under the
law, and was in duty bound to keep it. And while transgression of the law
would render
him liable to punishment, the keeping of it would not constitute an
inherent claim to a reward. Even if he did all that was required of him, he
would still have to say, I am but
an unprofitable servant, for I have merely done that which it was my
duty to do. Under
this purely natural relationship man could not have merited anything. But
though the
infinite distance between God and man apparently excluded a life of
communion with
each other, man was created for just such communion, and the possibility
of it was
already given in his creation in the image of God. In this natural
relationship Adam was
the father of the human race.</p>
<p id="iv.i.iv-p12" shownumber="no"> b.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p12.1">
The covenant relationship.</span>
From the very
beginning, however. God revealed
Himself, not only as an absolute Sovereign and Lawgiver, but also as a
loving Father,
seeking the welfare and happiness of His dependent creature. He
condescended to
come down to the level of man, to reveal Himself as a Friend, and to
enable man to
improve his condition in the way of obedience. In addition to the
natural relationship
He, by a positive enactment, graciously established a covenant
relationship. He entered
into a legal compact with man, which includes all the requirements and
obligations
implied in the creaturehood of man, but at the same time added some new
elements. (1)
Adam was constituted the representative head of the human race, so that
he could act
for all his descendants. (2) He was temporarily put on probation, in
order to determine
whether he would willingly subject his will to the will of God. (3) He
was given the
promise of eternal life in the way of obedience, and thus by the
gracious disposition of
God acquired certain conditional rights. This covenant enabled Adam to
obtain eternal
life for himself and for his descendants in the way of obedience.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p13" shownumber="no">2. THE PROMISE OF THE COVENANT. The great
promise of the covenant of works was
the promise of eternal life. They who deny the covenant of works
generally base their
denial in part on the fact that there is no record of such a promise in
the Bible. And it is
perfectly true that Scripture contains no explicit promise of eternal
life to Adam. But the
threatened penalty clearly implies such a promise. When the Lord says,
"for in the day
that thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely die," his statement
clearly implies that, if
Adam refrains from eating, he will not die, but will be raised above the
possibility of
death. The implied promise certainly cannot mean that, in the case of
obedience, Adam
would be permitted to live on in the usual way, that is, to continue the
ordinary natural
life, for that life was his already in virtue of his creation, and
therefore could not be held
out as a reward for obedience. The implied promise evidently was that of
life raised to
its highest development of perennial bliss and glory. Adam was indeed
created in a
state of positive holiness, and was also immortal in the sense that he
was not subject to
the law of death. But he was only at the beginning of his course and did
not yet possess
the highest privileges that were in store for man. He was not yet raised
above the
possibility of erring, sinning, and dying. He was not yet in possession
of the highest
degree of holiness, nor did he enjoy life in all its fulness. The image
of God in man was
still limited by the possibility of man's sinning against God, changing
from good to evil,
and becoming subject to the power of death. The promise of life in the
covenant of
works was a promise of the removal of all the limitations of life to
which Adam was still
subject, and of the raising of his life to the highest degree of
perfection. When Paul says
in <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.10" parsed="|Rom|7|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 7:10">Rom. 7:10</scripRef> that the commandment was unto life, he means life in the
fullest sense of
the word. The principle of the covenant of works was: the man that does
these things
shall live thereby; and this principle is reiterated time and again in
Scripture, <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Lev.18.5" parsed="|Lev|18|5|0|0" passage="Lev. 18:5">Lev. 18:5</scripRef>;
-<scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.20.11" parsed="|Ezek|20|11|0|0" passage="Ezek. 20:11">Ezek. 20:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.20.13" parsed="|Ezek|20|13|0|0" passage="Ezek 20:13">13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.20.20" parsed="|Ezek|20|20|0|0" passage="Ezek 20:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.10.28" parsed="|Luke|10|28|0|0" passage="Luke 10:28">Luke 10:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.5" parsed="|Rom|10|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:5">Rom. 10:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.12" parsed="|Gal|3|12|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:12">Gal. 3:12</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p14" shownumber="no">3. THE CONDITION OF THE COVENANT. The promise in the covenant of works was not
unconditional. The condition was that of implicit and perfect obedience.
The divine law
can demand nothing less than that, and the positive command not to eat of
the fruit of
the tree of the knowledge of good and evil, relating as it did, to a
thing indifferent in
itself, was clearly a test of pure obedience in the absolute sense of
the word. Man was, of
course, also subject to the moral law of God, which was written on the
tablets of his
heart. He knew this by nature, so that it did not have to be revealed
supernaturally, as
the special test was. Essentially, the moral law, as Adam knew it, was
undoubtedly like
the ten commandments, but the form was different. In its present form
the moral law
presupposes a knowledge of sin, and is therefore primarily negative; in
Adam's heart,
however, it must have had a positive character. But just because it was
positive, it did
not bring to his consciousness the possibility of sin. Therefore a
negative commandment
was added. Moreover, in order that the test of Adam might be a test of
pure obedience,
God deemed it necessary to add to the commandments of which Adam
perceived the
naturalness and reasonableness, a commandment which was in a certain
sense arbitrary
and indifferent. Thus the demands of the law were, so to say,
concentrated on a single
point. The great question that had to be settled was, whether man would
obey God
implicitly or follow the guidance of his own judgment. Dr. Bavinck says:
"Het
proefgebod belichaamde voor hem (Adam) het dilemma: God of de mensch,
Zijn gezag
of eigen inzicht, onvoorwaardelijke gehoorzaamheid of zelfstandig
onderzoek, geloof of twijfel."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.i.iv-p14.1" n="31" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p14.2">Geref. Dog.,</span> II, p. 618.</note></p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p15" shownumber="no">4. THE PENALTY OF THE COVENANT. The
penalty that was threatened was death, and
what this means can best be gathered from the general meaning of the
term as it is used
in Scripture, and from the evils that came upon the guilty in the
execution of the
penalty. Evidently death in the most inclusive sense of the word is
meant, including
physical, spiritual, and eternal death. The fundamental Scriptural idea
of death is not
that of extinction of being, but that of separation from the source of
life, and the resulting dissolution or misery and woe. Fundamentally, it consists in
the separation of
the soul from God, which manifests itself in spiritual misery, and
finally terminates in
eternal death. But it also includes the separation of body and soul and
the consequent
dissolution of the body. Undoubtedly the execution of the penalty began
at once after
the first transgression. Spiritual death entered instantly, and the
seeds of death also
began to operate in the body. The full execution of the sentence,
however, did not follow
at once, but was arrested, because God immediately introduced an economy
of grace
and restoration.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p16" shownumber="no">5. THE SACRAMENT(S) OF THE COVENANT. We have no
definite information in
Scripture respecting the sacrament(s) or seal(s) of this covenant. Hence
there is a great
variety of opinions on the subject. Some speak of four: the tree of
life, the tree of the
knowledge of good and evil, paradise, and the sabbath; others of three:
the two trees
and paradise; still others of two: the tree of life and paradise; and
still others of one: the
tree of life. The last opinion is the most prevalent one, and would seem
to be the only
one to find any support in Scripture. We should not think of the fruit
of this tree as
magically or medically working immortality in Adam's frame. Yet it was
in some way
connected with the gift of life. In all probability it must be conceived
of as an appointed
symbol or seal of life. Consequently, when Adam forfeited the promise,
he was
debarred from the sign. So conceived the words of <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.22" parsed="|Gen|3|22|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:22">Gen. 3:22</scripRef> must be
understood
sacramentally. </p>

<h4 id="iv.i.iv-p16.2">D. THE PRESENT STTATUS OF THE COVENANT OF WORKS.</h4>
<p id="iv.i.iv-p17" shownumber="no">With respect to the question, whether the covenant of
works is still in force or was
abrogated at the time of Adam's fall, there is considerable difference
of opinion between
Arminian and Reformed theologians. </p>
<p id="iv.i.iv-p18" shownumber="no">1. THE ARMINIAN VIEW. Arminians claim
that this legal covenant was wholly
abrogated at the fall of Adam, and argue this as follows: (a) The
promise was then
revoked and thus the compact annulled, and where there is no compact
there can be no
obligation. (b) God could not continue to exact obedience of man, when
the latter was
by nature unable, and was not enabled by the grace of God, to render the
required
service. (c) It would be derogatory to God's wisdom, holiness, and
majesty to call the
depraved creature to a service of holy and undivided love. They maintain
that God
established a new covenant and enacted a new law, the law
of faith and evangelical
obedience, which man in spite of his impaired powers can keep when
assisted by the
enabling helps of common or sufficient grace. However, the following
considerations
militate against this view: (a) Man's obligation to God was never rooted
merely in the
covenant requirement, but fundamentally in the natural relation in which
he stood to
God. This natural relationship was incorporated in the covenant
relationship. (b) Man's
inability is self-induced, and therefore does not relieve him of his
just obligation. His
self-imposed limitations, his criminal and voluntary hostility to God
did not deprive the
sovereign Ruler of the universe of the right to demand the hearty and
loving service
which is His due. (c) The<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p18.1">
reductio ad absurdum</span>
of the
Arminian view is that the sinner
can gain complete emancipation from righteous obligations by sinning.
The more a man
sins, the more he becomes a slave of sin, unable to do that which is
good; and the
deeper he sinks into this slavery which robs him of his capacity for
good, the less
responsible he becomes. If man continues to sin long enough, he will in
the end be
absolved of all moral responsibility.
</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p19" shownumber="no">2. THE REFORMED VIEW. Even some
Reformed theologians speak of the abrogation of the legal covenant, and seek
proof for this in such passages as <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p19.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.13" parsed="|Heb|8|13|0|0" passage="Heb. 8:13">Heb. 8:13</scripRef>. This naturally
raised the question, whether, and in how far, the covenant of works can
be considered as a thing of the past; or whether, and in how far, it must be
regarded as still in force. It
is generally agreed that no change in the legal status of man can ever
abrogate the
authority of the law; that God's claim to the obedience of His creatures
is not terminated
by their fall in sin and its disabling effects; that the wages of sin
continues to be death;
and that a perfect obedience is always required to merit eternal life.
This means with
respect to the question under consideration:
</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p20" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p20.1">That the covenant of works is not abrogated:</span>
(1) in so far
as the natural relation of man
to God was incorporated in it, since man always owes God perfect
obedience; (2) in so
far as its curse and punishment for those who continue in sin are
concerned; and (3) in
so far as the conditional promise still holds. God might have withdrawn
this promise,  but
did not, <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Lev.18.5" parsed="|Lev|18|5|0|0" passage="Lev. 18:5">Lev. 18:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.5" parsed="|Rom|10|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:5">Rom. 10:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.i.iv-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.12" parsed="|Gal|3|12|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:12">Gal. 3:12</scripRef>. It is evident, however, that after
the fall no
one can comply with the condition.</p>

<p id="iv.i.iv-p21" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.i.iv-p21.1"> That the covenant of works is abrogated:</span>
(1) in so far
as it contained new positive
elements, for those who are under the covenant of grace; this does not
mean that it is
simply set aside and disregarded, but that its obligations were met by
the Mediator for
His people; and (2) as an appointed means to obtain eternal life, for as
such it is
powerless after the fall of man.</p>
</div3>
</div2>

      <div2 id="iv.ii" next="iv.ii.i" prev="iv.i.iv" title="Man In The State of Sin">

<h2 id="iv.ii-p0.1">MAN IN THE STATE OF SIN</h2>

        <div3 id="iv.ii.i" next="iv.ii.ii" prev="iv.ii" title="I. The Origin of Sin">
<h2 id="iv.ii.i-p0.1">I. The Origin of Sin</h2>
<p id="iv.ii.i-p1" shownumber="no">THE PROBLEM of the origin of the evil that is in the
world has always been
considered as one of the profoundest problems of philosophy and
theology. It is a
problem that naturally forces itself upon the attention of man, since
the power of evil is
both great and universal, is an ever present blight on life in all its
manifestations, and is
a matter of daily experience in the life of every man. Philosophers were
constrained to
face the problem and to seek an answer to the question as to the origin
of all the evil,
and particularly of the moral evil, that is in the world. To some it
seemed to be so much
a part of life itself that they sought the solution for it in the
natural constitution of
things. Others, however, were convinced that it had a voluntary origin,
that is, that it
originated in the free choice of man, either in the present or in some
previous existence. These are much closer to the truth as it is revealed in the
Word of God.</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.i-p1.1">HISTORICAL VIEWS RESPECTING THE ORIGIN OF SIN.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.i-p2" shownumber="no">The earliest Church Fathers do not speak very definitely
on the origin of sin, though
the idea that it originated in the voluntary transgression and fall of
Adam in paradise is
already found in the writings of Irenæus. This soon became the
prevailing view in the
Church, especially in opposition to Gnosticism, which regarded evil as
inherent in
matter, and as such the product of the Demiurge. The contact of the
human soul with
matter at once rendered it sinful. This theory naturally robbed sin of
its voluntary and
ethical character. Origen sought to maintain this by his theory of
pre-existentianism.
According to him the souls of men sinned voluntarily in a previous
existence, and
therefore all enter the world in a sinful condition. This Platonic view
was burdened with too many difficulties to meet with wide acceptance. During
the eighteenth and
nineteenth centuries, however, it was advocated by Mueller and Rueckert,
and by such
philosophers as Lessing, Schelling, and J. H. Fichte. In general the
Greek Church Fathers
of the third and fourth centuries showed an inclination to discount the
connection
between the sin of Adam and those of his descendants, while the Latin
Church Fathers taught with ever-increasing clearness that the present sinful
condition of man finds its
explanation in the first transgression of Adam in paradise. The
teachings of the Eastern
Church finally culminated in Pelagianism, which denied that there was
any vital
connection between the two, while those of the Western Church reached
their
culmination in Augustinianism which stressed the fact that we are both
guilty and
polluted in Adam. Semi-Pelagianism admitted the Adamic connection, but
held that it
accounted only for the pollution of sin. During the Middle Ages the
connection was
generally recognized. It was sometimes interpreted in an Augustinian,
but more often in
a Semi-Pelagian manner. The Reformers shared the views of Augustine, and
the
Socinians those of Pelagius, while the Arminians moved in the direction
of Semi-
Pelagianism. Under the influence of Rationalism and evolutionary
philosophy the
doctrine of the fall of man and its fatal effects on the human race was
gradually
discarded. The idea of sin was replaced by that of evil, and this evil
was explained in
various ways. Kant regarded it as something belonging to the
supersensible sphere,
which he could not explain. For Leibnitz it was due to the necessary
limitations of the
universe. Schleiermacher found its origin in the sensuous nature of man,
and Ritschl, in
human ignorance, while the evolutionist ascribes it to the opposition of
the lower
propensities to a gradually developing moral consciousness. Barth speaks
of the origin
of sin as the mystery of predestination. Sin originated in the fall, but
the fall was not a
historical event; it belongs to superhistory (Urgeschichte). Adam was
indeed the first
sinner, but his disobedience cannot be regarded as the cause of the sin
of the world. The
sin of man is in some manner bound up with his creatureliness. The story
of paradise
simply conveys to man the cheering information that he need not
necessarily be a sinner.</p>
<h4 id="iv.ii.i-p2.1">B. SCRIPTURAL DATA RESPECTING THE ORIGIN OF SIN.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.i-p3" shownumber="no">In Scripture the moral evil that is in the world stands
out clearly as sin, that is, as
trangression of the law of God. Man ever appears in it as a transgressor
by nature, and
the question naturally arises, How did he acquire that nature? What does
the Bible
reveal on that point?
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p4" shownumber="no">1. GOD CANNOT BE REGARDED AS ITS AUTHOR. God's eternal decree certainly
rendered
the entrance of sin into the world certain, but this may not be interpreted
so as to make
God the cause of sin in the sense of being its responsible author. This
idea is clearly
excluded by Scripture. "Far be it from God, that He should do
wickedness, and from the
Almighty, that He should commit iniquity," <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.34.10" parsed="|Job|34|10|0|0" passage="Job 34:10">Job 34:10</scripRef>. He is the
holy God, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.6.3" parsed="|Isa|6|3|0|0" passage="Isa. 6:3">Isa. 6:3</scripRef>, and
there is absolutely no unrighteousness in Him, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.4" parsed="|Deut|32|4|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:4">Deut. 32:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.92.16" parsed="|Ps|92|16|0|0" passage="Ps. 92:16">Ps. 92:16</scripRef>. He
cannot be
tempted with evil, and He Himself tempteth no man, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.13" parsed="|Jas|1|13|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:13">Jas. 1:13</scripRef>. When He
created man,
He created Him good and in His image. He positively hates sin, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Deut.25.16" parsed="|Deut|25|16|0|0" passage="Deut. 25:16">Deut. 25:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.5.4" parsed="|Ps|5|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 5:4">Ps. 5:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.11.5" parsed="|Ps|11|5|0|0" passage="Ps 11:5">11:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:Zech.8.17" parsed="|Zech|8|17|0|0" passage="Zech. 8:17">Zech. 8:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.15" parsed="|Luke|16|15|0|0" passage="Luke 16:15">Luke 16:15</scripRef>, and made provision in Christ for man's deliverance from
sin. In the light of all this it would be blasphemous to speak of God as
the author of sin.
And for that reason all those deterministic views which represent sin as
a necessity
inherent in the very nature of things should be rejected. They by implication
make God
the author of sin, and are contrary, not only to Scripture, but also to
the voice of conscience, which testifies to the responsibility of man.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p5" shownumber="no">2. SIN ORIGINATED IN THE ANGELIC WORLD. The Bible teaches us that in the attempt to
trace the origin of sin, we must even go back of the fall of man as
described in <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3" parsed="|Gen|3|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 3">Gen. 3</scripRef>,
and fix the attention on something that happened in the angelic world.
God created a
host of angels, and they were all good as they came forth from the hand
of their Maker, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.31" parsed="|Gen|1|31|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:31">Gen. 1:31</scripRef>. But a fall occurred in the angelic world, in which
legions of angels fell away
from God. The exact time of this fall is not designated, but in <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:John.8.44" parsed="|John|8|44|0|0" passage="John 8:44">John
8:44</scripRef> Jesus speaks of
the devil as a
murderer from the beginning (<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p5.4">kat' arches</span>),
and John says in <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.8" parsed="|1John|3|8|0|0" passage="I John 3:8">I John 3:8</scripRef>, that
he sins from the beginning. The prevailing opinion is that this<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p5.6">
kat' arches</span>
means from the
beginning of the history of man. Very little is said about the sin that
caused the fall of
the angels. From Paul's warning to Timothy, that no novice should be
appointed as
bishop, "lest being puffed up he fall into the condemnation of the
devil," <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.6" parsed="|1Tim|3|6|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:6">I Tim. 3:6</scripRef>, we
may in all probability conclude that it was the sin of pride, of
aspiring to be like God in
power and authority. And this idea would seem to find corroboration in
<scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.6" parsed="|Jude|1|6|0|0" passage="Jude 6">Jude 6</scripRef>, where it
is said that the fallen angels "kept not their own principality,
but left their proper
habitation." They were not satisfied with their lot, with the
government and power
entrusted to them. If the desire to be like God was their peculiar
temptation, this would
also explain why they tempted man on that particular point.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p6" shownumber="no">3. THE ORIGIN OF SIN IN THE HUMAN RACE. With respect to the origin of sin in the
history of mankind, the Bible teaches that it began with the
transgression of Adam in paradise, and therefore with a perfectly voluntary act
on the part of man. The tempter
came from the spirit world with the suggestion that man, by placing
himself in
opposition to God, might become like God. Adam yielded to the temptation
and
committed the first sin by eating of the forbidden fruit. But the matter
did not stop
there, for by that first sin Adam became the bond-servant of sin. That
sin carried
permanent pollution with it, and a pollution which, because of the
solidarity of the
human race, would affect not only Adam but all his descendants as well.
As a result of
the fall the father of the race could only pass on a depraved human
nature to his
offspring. From that unholy source sin flows on as an impure
stream to all the
generations of men, polluting everyone and everything with which it
comes in contact.
It is exactly this state of things that made the question of Job so
pertinent, "Who can
bring a clean thing out of an unclean? not one." <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.14.4" parsed="|Job|14|4|0|0" passage="Job 14:4">Job 14:4</scripRef>. But even
this is not all. Adam
sinned not only as the father of the human race, but also as the
representative head of
all his descendants; and therefore the guilt of his sin is placed to
their account, so that
they are all liable to the punishment of death. It is primarily in that
sense that Adam's
sin is the sin of all. That is what Paul teaches us in <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12" parsed="|Rom|5|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:12">Rom. 5:12</scripRef>:
"Through one man sin
entered into the world, and
death through sin; and so death passed unto all men, for
that all sinned." The last words can only mean that they all sinned
in Adam, and sinned
in such a way as to make them all liable to the punishment of death. It
is not sin
considered merely as pollution, but sin as guilt that carries punishment
with it. God
adjudges all men to be guilty sinners in Adam, just as He adjudges all
believers to be righteous in Jesus Christ. That is what Paul means, when he
says: "So then as through
one trespass the judgment came unto all men to condemnation; even so
through one act
of righteousness the free gift came unto all men to justification of
life. For as through the
one man's disobedience the many were made sinners, even so through the
obedience of
the one shall the many be made righteous," <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.18" parsed="|Rom|5|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:18">Rom. 5:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.19" parsed="|Rom|5|19|0|0" passage="Rom 5:19">19</scripRef>.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.i-p6.5">C. THE NATURE OF THE FIRST SIN OR THE FALL OF MAN.</h4>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p7" shownumber="no">1. ITS FORMAL CHARACTER. It may be said
that, from a purely formal point of view,
man's first sin consisted in his eating of the tree of the knowledge of
good and evil. We
do not know what kind of tree this was. It may have been a date or a fig
tree, or any
other kind of fruit tree. There was nothing injurious in the fruit of
the tree as such.
Eating of it was not<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p7.1">
per se</span>
sinful. for it was
not a transgression of the moral law. This
means that it would not have been sinful, if God had not said, "Of
the tree of the
knowledge of good and evil thou shalt not eat." There is no
unanimous opinion as to
the reason why the tree was called the tree of the knowledge of good and
evil. A rather
common view is that the tree was so called, because the eating of it
would impart a
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p7.2">practical</span>
knowledge of good and evil; but this is hardly in keeping with the
Scriptural representation that man by eating it would become<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p7.3">
like God</span>
in knowing good and evil,
for God does not commit evil, and therefore has no<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p7.4">
practical</span>
knowledge of it. It is far
more likely that the tree was so called, because it was destined to
reveal (a) whether
man's future state would be good or evil; and (b) whether man would
allow God to
determine for him what was good and evil, or would undertake to determine
this for
himself. But whatever explanation may be given of the
name, the command given by
God not to eat of the fruit of the tree simply served the purpose of
testing the obedience
of man. It was a test of pure obedience, since God did not in any way
seek to justify or to explain the prohibition. Adam had to show his willingness to submit
his will to the
will of his God with implicit obedience.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p8" shownumber="no">2. ITS ESSENTIAL AND MATERIAL CHARACTER. The first sin of man was a typical
sin,
that is, a sin in which the real essence of sin clearly reveals itself.
The essence of that sin
lay in the fact that Adam placed himself in opposition to God, that he
refused to subject
his will to the will of God, to have God determine the course of his
life; and that he
actively attempted to take the matter out of God's hand, and to
determine the future for
himself. Man, who had absolutely no claim on God, and who could only
establish a
claim by meeting the condition of the covenant of works, cut loose from
God and acted
as if he possesed certain rights as over against God. The idea that the
command of God was really an infringement on the rights of man seems to have
been present already in
the mind of Eve when, in answer to the question of Satan, she added the
words,
"Neither shall ye touch it," <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.3" parsed="|Gen|3|3|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:3">Gen. 3:3</scripRef>. She evidently wanted to
stress the fact that the
command had been rather unreasonable. Starting from the pre-supposition
that he had
certain rights as over against God, man allowed the new center, which he
found in
himself, to operate against his Maker. This explains his desire to be
like God and his
doubt of the good intention of God in giving the command. Naturally
different
elements can be distinguished in his first sin. In the intellect it
revealed itself as unbelief
and pride, in the will, as the desire to be like God, and in the
affections, as an unholy
satisfaction in eating of the forbidden fruit.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.i-p8.2">D. THE FIRST SIN OR THE FALL AS OCCASIONED BY TEMPTATION.</h4>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p9" shownumber="no">1.THE PROCEDURE OF THE TEMPTER. The fall of man was occasioned by the
temptation of the serpent, who sowed in man's mind the seeds of distrust
and unbelief.
Though it was undoubtedly the intention of the tempter to cause Adam, the
head of the
covenant, to fall, yet he addressed himself to Eve, probably because (a)
she was not the
head of the covenant and therefore would not have the same sense of
responsibility; (b)
she had not received the command of God directly but only indirectly,
and would
consequently be more susceptible to argumentation and doubt; and (c) she
would
undoubtedly prove to be the most effective agent in reaching the heart
of Adam. The
course followed by the tempter is quite clear. In the first place he
sows the seeds of
doubt by calling the good intention of God in question and suggesting
that His
command was really an infringement of man's liberty and rights. When he
notices from
the response of Eve that the seed has taken root, he adds the seeds of
unbelief and
pride, denying that transgression will result in death, and clearly
intimating that the
command was prompted by the selfish purpose of keeping man in
subjection. He
asserts that by eating from the tree man would become like God. The high
expectations
thus engendered induced Eve to look intently at the tree, and the longer
she looked, the
better the fruit seemed to her. Finally, desire got the upper hand, and
she ate and also
gave unto her husband, and he ate.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p10" shownumber="no">2. INTERPRETATION OF THE TEMPTATION. Frequent attempts have been made and are
still being made to explain away the historical character of the fall.
Some regard the
whole narrative in <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3" parsed="|Gen|3|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 3">Gen. 3</scripRef> as an allegory, representing man's
self-depravation and
gradual change in a figurative way. Barth and Brunner regard the
narrative of man's
original state and of the fall as a myth. Creation and the fall both
belong, not to history,
but to super-history (Urgeschichte), and therefore both are equally
incomprehensible.
The story in Genesis merely teaches us that, though man is now unable to
do any good
and is subject to the law of death, this is not necessarily so. It is
possible for a man to be
free from sin and death by a life in communion with God. Such is the
life portrayed for
us in the story of paradise, and it prefigures the life that will be
granted to us in Him of
whom Adam was but a type, namely, Christ. But it is not the kind of life
that man now lives or ever has lived from the beginning of history. Paradise is
not a certain locality to
which we can point, but is there where God is Lord, and man and all
other creatures are
His willing subjects. The paradise of the past lies beyond the pale of
human history.
Says Barth: "When the history of man began; when man's time had its
beginning; when
time and history commenced where man has the first and the last word,
paradise had
disappeared."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.i-p10.2" n="32" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p10.3">God's Search for Man,</span> p. 98</note>
Brunner speaks in a similar vein
when he says: "Just as in respect of the
Creation we ask in vain. How, where and when has this taken place, so
also is it with
the Fall. The Creation and the Fall both lie behind the historical
visible reality."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.i-p10.4" n="33" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p10.5">Man in Revolt,</span> p. 142</note></p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p11" shownumber="no">Others who do not deny the historical character of the
narrative in Genesis,
maintain that the serpent at least should not be regarded as a literal
animal, but merely
as a name or a symbol for covetousness, for sexual desire, for erring
reason, or for Satan.
Still others assert that, to say the least, the speaking of the serpent
should be understood
figuratively. But all these and similar interpretations are untenable in
the light of
Scripture. The passages preceding and following <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.1-Gen.3.7" parsed="|Gen|3|1|3|7" passage="Gen. 3:1-7">Gen. 3:1-7</scripRef> are evidently
intended as a
plain historical narrative. That they were so understood by the Biblical
authors, can be  proved
by many cross-references, such as <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Job.31.33" parsed="|Job|31|33|0|0" passage="Job 31:33">Job 31:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.7.29" parsed="|Eccl|7|29|0|0" passage="Eccl. 7:29">Eccl. 7:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.27" parsed="|Isa|43|27|0|0" passage="Isa. 43:27">Isa. 43:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Hos.6.7" parsed="|Hos|6|7|0|0" passage="Hos. 6:7">Hos. 6:7</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12" parsed="|Rom|5|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:12">Rom. 5:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.18" parsed="|Rom|5|18|0|0" passage="Rom 5:18">18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.19" parsed="|Rom|5|19|0|0" passage="Rom 5:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.21" parsed="|1Cor|5|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:21">I Cor. 5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.11.3" parsed="|2Cor|11|3|0|0" passage="II Cor. 11:3">II Cor. 11:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.14" parsed="|1Tim|2|14|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:14">I Tim. 2:14</scripRef>, and therefore we have no right to hold
that these verses, which form an integral part of the narrative, should be
interpreted figuratively. Moreover, the serpent is certainly counted among the
animals in <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.1" parsed="|Gen|3|1|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:1">Gen. 3:1</scripRef>,
and it would not yield good sense to substitute for "serpent"
the word "Satan." The
punishment in <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.13" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.14" parsed="|Gen|3|14|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:14">Gen. 3:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.14" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.15" parsed="|Gen|3|15|0|0" passage="Gen 3:15">15</scripRef> presupposes a literal serpent, and Paul
conceives of the
serpent in no other way, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.15" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.11.3" parsed="|2Cor|11|3|0|0" passage="II Cor. 11:3">II Cor. 11:3</scripRef>. And while it may be possible to
conceive of the
serpent as saying something in a figurative sense by means of cunning
actions, it does not seem possible to think of him as carrying on the
conversation recorded in <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.16" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3" parsed="|Gen|3|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 3">Gen. 3</scripRef> in
that way. The whole transaction, including the speaking of the serpent,
undoubtedly
finds its explanation in the operation of some superhuman power, which
is not
mentioned in <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.17" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3" parsed="|Gen|3|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 3">Gen. 3</scripRef>. Scripture clearly intimates that the serpent was
but the instrument
of Satan, and that Satan was the real tempter, who was working in and
through the
serpent, just as at a later time he worked in men and
swine, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.18" osisRef="Bible:John.8.44" parsed="|John|8|44|0|0" passage="John 8:44">John 8:44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.19" osisRef="Bible:Rom.16.20" parsed="|Rom|16|20|0|0" passage="Rom. 16:20">Rom. 16:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.20" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.11.3" parsed="|2Cor|11|3|0|0" passage="II Cor. 11:3">II Cor. 11:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p11.21" osisRef="Bible:Rev.12.9" parsed="|Rev|12|9|0|0" passage="Rev. 12:9">Rev. 12:9</scripRef>. The serpent was a fit instrument for Satan, for he is the
personification of sin, and the serpent symbolizes sin (a) in its
cunning and deceptive
nature, and (b) in its poisonous sting by which it kills man.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p12" shownumber="no">3. THE FALL BY TEMPTATION AND MAN'S SALVABILITY. It has been suggested that the
fact that man's fall was occasioned by temptation from without, may be
one of the
reasons why man is salvable, in distinction from the fallen angels, who
were not subject
to external temptation, but fell by the promptings of their own inner
nature. Nothing
certain can be said on this point, however. But whatever the
significance of the
temptation in that respect may be, it certainly does not suffice to
explain how a holy being like Adam could fall in sin. It is impossible for us
to say how temptation could
find a point of contact in a holy person. And it is still more difficult
to explain the origin
of sin in the angelic world.</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.i-p12.1">E. THE EVOLUTIONARY EXPLANATION OF THE ORIGIN OF SIN.</h4>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p13" shownumber="no">Naturally, a consistent theory of evolution cannot admit
the doctrine of the fall, and a number of liberal theologians have rejected it as incompatible with
the theory of
evolution. It is true, there are some rather conservative theologians,
such as Denney,
Gore, and Orr, who accept, though with reservations, the evolutionary
account of the
origin of man, and feel that it leaves room for the doctrine of the fall
in some sense of
the word. But it is significant that they all conceive of the story of
the fall as a mythical
or allegorical representation of an ethical experience or of some actual
moral
catastrophe at the beginning of history which resulted in suffering and death.
This
means that they do not accept the narrative of the fall as a real
historical account of
what occurred in the garden of Eden. Tennant in his Hulsean Lectures on<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p13.1">
The Origin and Propagation of Sin</span><note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.i-p13.2" n="34" place="foot">Chap. III.</note>
gave a rather detailed and
interesting account of the origin of sin
from the evolutionary point of view. He realizes that man could not very
well derive sin
from his animal ancestors, since these had no sin. This means that the
impulses,
propensities, desires, and qualities which man inherited from the brute
cannot
themselves be called sin. In his estimation these constitute only the<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p13.3">
material</span>
of sin, and do not become actual sins until the moral consciousness
awakens in man, and they are
left in control in determining the actions of man, contrary to the voice
of conscience, and
to ethical sanctions. He holds that in the course of his development man
gradually
became an ethical being with an indeterminate will, without explaining
how such a will
is possible where the law of evolution prevails, and regards this will
as the only cause of
sin. He defines sin "as an activity of the will expressed in
thought, word, or deed
contrary to the individual's conscience. to his notion of what is good
and right, his
knowledge of the moral law and the will of God."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.i-p13.4" n="35" place="foot">p. 163.</note>
As the human race develops, the
ethical standards become more exacting and the heinousness of sin
increases. A sinful
environment adds to the difficulty of refraining from sin. This view of
Tennant leaves no room for the fall of man in the generally accepted sense of
the word. As a matter of
fact, Tennant explicitly repudiates the doctrine of the fall, which is
recognized in all the
great historical
confessions of the Church. Says W. H. Johnson: "Tennant's critics are
agreed that his theory leaves no room for that cry of the contrite heart
which not only
confesses to separate acts of sin, but declares; 'I was shapen in
iniquity; there is a law of death in my members.'"<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.i-p13.5" n="36" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p13.6">Can the Christian Now Believe in Evolution?</span> p. 136</note>
</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.i-p13.7">F. THE RESULTS OF THE FIRST SIN.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.i-p14" shownumber="no">The first transgression of man had the following results:</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p15" shownumber="no">1. The immediate concomitant of the first sin, and therefore hardly a
result of it in
the strict sense of the word, was the total depravity of human nature.
The contagion of
his sin at once spread through the entire man, leaving no part of his
nature untouched,
but vitiating every power and faculty of body and soul.
This utter corruption of man is
clearly taught in Scripture, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.5" parsed="|Gen|6|5|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:5">Gen. 6:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.14.3" parsed="|Ps|14|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 14:3">Ps. 14:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.18" parsed="|Rom|7|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 7:18">Rom. 7:18</scripRef>. Total
depravity here does not
mean that human nature was at once as thoroughly depraved as it could
possibly
become. In the will this depravity manifested itself as spiritual
inability. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p16" shownumber="no">2. Immediately connected with the preceding was the loss of communion
with God
through the Holy Spirit. This is but the reverse side of the utter
corruption mentioned in
the preceding paragraph. The two can be combined in the single statement
that man
lost the image of God in the sense of original righteousness. He broke
away from the
real source of life and blessedness, and the result was a condition of
spiritual death, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.1" parsed="|Eph|2|1|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:1">Eph. 2:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.5" parsed="|Eph|2|5|0|0" passage="Eph 2:5">5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.12" parsed="|Eph|2|12|0|0" passage="Eph 2:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.18" parsed="|Eph|4|18|0|0" passage="Eph 4:18">4:18</scripRef>.</p>
<p id="iv.ii.i-p17" shownumber="no">3. This change in the actual condition of man also reflected
itself in his
consciousness. There was, first of all, a consciousness of pollution,
revealing itself in the
sense of shame, and in the effort of our first parents to cover their
nakedness. And in the
second place there was a consciousness of guilt, which found expression
in an accusing conscience and in the fear of God which it inspired.
</p>
<p id="iv.ii.i-p18" shownumber="no">4. Not only spiritual death, but physical death as well
resulted from the first sin of
man. From a
state of<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p18.1">
posse non mori</span>
he descended to
a state of<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p18.2">
non posse non mori.</span>
Having
sinned, he was doomed to return to the dust from which he was taken,
<scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.19" parsed="|Gen|3|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:19">Gen. 3:19</scripRef>. Paul
tells us that by one man death entered the world and passed on to all
men, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12" parsed="|Rom|5|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:12">Rom. 5:12</scripRef>, and that the wages of sin is death, <scripRef id="iv.ii.i-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.23" parsed="|Rom|6|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:23">Rom. 6:23</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p19" shownumber="no">5. This change also resulted in a necessary change of
residence. Man was driven
from paradise, because it represented the place of communion with God,
and was a
symbol of the fuller life and greater blessedness in store for man, if
he continued
steadfast. He was barred from the tree of life, because it was the symbol
of the life promised in the covenant of works.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p20" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. What
different theories are there as to the origin of
sin? What Scriptural proof is there that sin originated in the angelic
world? Can the
allegorical interpretation of the narrative of the fall be maintained in
the light of
Scripture? Is there any place for the fall in the theory of evolution?
Did God will the fall
of man or did He merely permit it? Does our Reformed doctrine make God
the author
of sin? What objections are there to the notion that the souls of men
sinned in a previous
existence? Was God justified in making the spiritual state of mankind in
general
contingent on the obedience or non-obedience of the first man? What do
Barth and
Brunner mean when they speak of the fall of man as super-historical? Why
is it that the doctrine of the covenant of works finds so little acceptance
outside of Reformed circles?
What accounts for the widespread neglect of this doctrine in our day?
Why is it important to maintain this doctrine?</p>

<p id="iv.ii.i-p21" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 605-624; III, pp. 1-60;
Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Foedere</span>, pp. 23-117;<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.3">
De Peccato</span>, pp. 17-26; Vos.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.4">
Geref. Dogm.</span> II, pp. 32-54; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.5">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 117-129; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.6">
Syst. and Polem Theol.</span>, pp. 332-339; Alexander,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.7">
Syst. of Bibl. Theol. I</span>, pp. 183-196; 216-232; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.8">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Ch.</span>, pp. 239-242;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.9">
Chr. Theol.</span> I, pp. 416-420; Litton,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.10">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 133-136; Pope,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.11">
Chr. Theol.</span>, II, pp. 3-28; II, p. 108; Raymond,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.12">
Svst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 50-63; 99;111;<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.13">
Macintosh, Theol. as an Empirical Science</span>, pp. 216-229; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.14">
Chr. Dogm.</span>
pp. 220-242; Orr,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.15"> God's Image
in Man</span>; pp. 197-240; Candlish,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.16">
The Bibl. Doct. of Sin</span>, pp. 82-89; Talma,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.17">
De Anthropologie van Calvijn</span>, pp. 69-91; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.18">
Uit het Woord, De Leer der Verbonden</span>, pp. 3-221;
Tennant,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.19"> The Origin and Propagation of Sin;</span> ibid,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.i-p21.20">
The Concept of
Sin. </span></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.ii.ii" next="iv.ii.iii" prev="iv.ii.i" title="II. The Essential Character of Sin">
<h2 id="iv.ii.ii-p0.1">II. The Essential Character of Sin</h2>
<p id="iv.ii.ii-p1" shownumber="no">Sin is one of the saddest but also one of the most common
phenomena of human
life. It is a part of the common experience of mankind, and therefore
forces itself upon
the attention of all those who do not deliberately close their eyes to
the realities of
human life. Some may for a time dream of the essential goodness of man
and speak
indulgently of those separate words and actions that do not measure up to
the ethical
standards of good society as mere foibles and weaknesses, for which man
is not
responsible, and which readily yield to corrective measures; but as time
goes on, and all
measures of external reform fail, and the suppression of one evil merely
serves to
release another, such persons are inevitably disillusioned. They become
conscious of the
fact that they have merely been fighting the symptoms of some
deep-seated malady, and that they are confronted, not merely with the problem
of sins, that is, of separate
sinful deeds, but with the much greater and deeper problem of sin. of an
evil that is
inherent in human nature. This is exactly what we are beginning to
witness at the
present time. Many Modernists at present do not hesitate to say that the
doctrine of
Rousseau respecting the inherent goodness of man has proved to be one of
the most
pernicious teachings of the Enlightenment, and now call for a greater
measure of
realism in the recognition of sin Thus Walter Horton, who pleads for a
realistic theology
and believes that this calls for the acceptance of some Marxian
principles, says: "I
believe that orthodox Christianity represents a profound insight into the
whole human
predicament. I believe that the basic human difficulty<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p1.1">
is</span>
that
perversion of the will, that
betrayal of divine trust, which is called sin; and I believe that sin<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p1.2">
is</span>
in a sense
a racial
disease, transmissible from generation to generation In affirming these
things the
Christian Fathers and the Protestant Reformers spoke as realists, and
could have
assembled masses of empirical evidence to support their views."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.ii-p1.3" n="37" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p1.4">Realistic Theology,</span> p. 56</note>
In view of the fact
that sin is real and that no man can get away from it in this present
life, it is no wonder
that philosophers as well as theologians undertook to
grapple with the problem of sin,
though in philosophy it is known as the problem of evil rather than as
the problem of
sin. We shall briefly consider some of the most important
philosophical theories of evil
before we state the Scriptural doctrine of sin.</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.ii-p1.5">A. PHILOSOPHIC THEORIES RESPECTING THE NATURE OF EVIL.</h4>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE DUALISTIC THEORY. This is one of
the views that were current in Greek philosophy. In the form of Gnosticism it
found entrance into the early Church. It
assumes the existence of an eternal principle of evil, and holds that in
man the spirit
represents the principle of good, and the body, that of evil. It is
objectionable for several
reasons: (a) The position is philosophically untenable, that there is
something outside of
God that is eternal and independent of His will. (b) This theory robs
sin of its ethical
character by making it something purely physical and independent of the
human will,
and thereby really destroys the idea of sin. (c) It also does away with
the responsibility
of man by representing sin as a physical necessity. The only escape from
sin lies in
deliverance from the body.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE THEORY THAT SIN IS MERELY PRIVATION. According to Leibnitz the present
world
is the best possible one. The existence of sin in it must be considered
as unavoidable. It
cannot be referred to the agency of God, and therefore must be regarded
as a simple
negation or privation, for which no efficient cause is needed. The
limitations of the
creature render it unavoidable. This theory makes sin a necessary evil,
since creatures
are necessarily limited, and sin is an unavoidable consequence of this
limitation. Its
attempt to avoid making God the author of sin is not successful, for
even if sin is a mere
negation requiring no efficient cause, God is nevertheless the author of
the limitation
from which it results. Moreover, it tends to obliterate the distinction
between moral and
physical evil, since it represents sin as little more than a misfortune
which has befallen
man. Consequently, it has a tendency to blunt man's sense of the evil or
pollution of sin,
to destroy the sense of guilt, and to abrogate man's moral
responsibility.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p4" shownumber="no">3. THE THEORY THAT SIN IS AN ILLUSION. For Spinoza, as for Leibnitz, sin is simply a
defect, a limitation of which man is conscious; but while Leibnitz
regards the notion of
evil, arising from this limitation, as necessary, Spinoza holds that the
resulting
consciousness of sin is simply due to the inadequacy of man's knowledge,
which fails to
see everything<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p4.1">
sub specie
aeternitatis</span>, that is, in unity with the eternal and infinite essence
of God. If man's knowledge were adequate, so that he saw everything in
God, he would
have no conception of sin; it would simply be non-existent for him. But
this theory,
representing sin as something purely negative, does not account for its
terrible positive
results, to which the universal experience of mankind testifies in the
most convincing
manner. Consistently carried through, it abrogates all ethical
distinctions, and reduces
such concepts as
"moral character" and "moral conduct" to meaningless
phrases. In fact, it reduces the whole life of man to an illusion: his knowledge,
his experience, the
testimony of conscience, and so on, for all his knowledge is inadequate.
Moreover, it
goes contrary to the experience of mankind, that the greatest intellects
are often the
greatest sinners, Satan being the greatest of all.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p5" shownumber="no">4. THE THEORY THAT SIN IS A WANT OF GOD-CONSCIOUSNESS, DUE TO MAN'S SENSUOUS NATURE. This is the
view of Schleiermacher. According to him man's consciousness of
sin is dependent on his God-consciousness. When the sense of God awakens
in man, he
is at once conscious of the opposition of his lower nature to it. This
opposition follows
from the very constitution of his being, from his sensuous nature, from
the soul's
connection with a physical organism. It is therefore an inherent
imperfection, but one
which man feels as sin and guilt. Yet this does not make God the author
of sin, since
man wrongly conceives of this imperfection as sin. Sin has no objective
existence, but
exists only in man's consciousness. But this theory makes man
constitutionally evil. The
evil was present in man even in his original state, when the
God-consciousness was not
sufficiently strong to control the sensuous nature of man. It is in flagrant
opposition to
Scripture, when it holds that man wrongly adjudges this evil to be sin,
and thus makes
sin and guilt purely subjective. And though Schleiermacher wishes to
avoid this
conclusion, it does make God the responsible author of sin, for He is
the creator of
man's sensuous nature. It also rests upon an incomplete induction of
facts, since it fails
to take account of the fact that many of the most hateful sins of man do
not pertain to
his physical but to his spiritual nature, such as avarice, envy, pride,
malice, and others.
Moreover, it leads to the most absurd conclusions as, for instance, that
asceticism, by
weakening the sensuous nature, necessarily weakens the power of sin; that
man
becomes less sinful as his senses fail with age; that death is the only
redeemer; and that
disembodied spirits, including the devil himself, have no sin.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p6" shownumber="no">5. THE THEORY OF SIN AS WANT OF TRUST IN GOD AND OPPOSITION TO HIS KINGDOM, DUE TO IGNORANCE. Like Schleiermacher, Ritschl too stresses the fact that
sin is understood
only from the standpoint of the Christian consciousness. They who are
outside of the
pale of the Christian religion, and they who are still strangers to the
experience of
redemption, have no knowledge of it. Under the influence of the
redemptive work of
God man becomes conscious of his lack of trust in God and of his
opposition to the
Kingdom of God, which is the highest good. Sin is not determined by
man's attitude to
the law of God, but by his relation to the purpose of God, to establish
the Kingdom.
Man imputes his failure to make the purpose of God his own to himself as
guilt, but
God regards it merely as ignorance, and because it is ignorance, it is
pardonable. This
view of Ritschl reminds us by way of contrast of the Greek dictum that
knowledge is
virtue. It fails completely to do justice to the Scriptural position
that sin is above all
transgression of the law of God, and therefore renders man guilty in the
sight of God
and worthy of condemnation. Moreover, the idea that sin is ignorance
goes contrary to
the voice of Christian experience. The man who is burdened with the
sense of sin
certainly does not feel that way about it. He is grateful, too, that not
only the sins which
he committed in ignorance are pardonable, but all the others as well,
with the single exception of the blasphemy against the Holy Spirit.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p7" shownumber="no">6. THE THEORY THAT SIN IS SELFISHNESS. This position is taken among others by
Mueller and A. H. Strong. Some who take this position conceive of
selfishness merely as
the opposite of altruism or benevolence; others understand by it the
choice of self rather
than God as the supreme object of love. Now this theory, especially when
it conceives of
selfishness as a putting of self in the place of God, is by far the best
of the theories
named. Yet it can hardly be called satisfactory. Though all selfishness
is sin, and there is
an element of selfishness in all sin, it cannot be said that selfishness
is the essence of sin.
Sin can be properly defined only with reference to the law of God, a
reference that is
completely lacking in the definition under consideration. Moreover,
there is a great deal of sin in which selfishness is not at all the governing
principle. When a poverty-stricken
father sees his wife and children pine away for lack of food, and in his
desperate desire
to help them finally resorts to theft, this can hardly be called pure
selfishness. It may
even be that the thought of self was entirely absent. Enmity to God,
hardness of heart,
impenitence, and unbelief, are all heinous sins, but cannot simply be
qualified as
selfishness. And certainly the view that all virtue is disinterestedness
or benevolence,
which seems to be a necessary corollary of the theory under
consideration, at least in
one of its forms, does not hold. An act does not cease to be virtuous,
when its
performance meets and satisfies some demand of our nature. Moreover,
justice, fidelity,
humility, forbearance, patience, and other virtues may be cultivated or
practiced, not as
forms of benevolence, but as virtues inherently excellent, not merely as
promoting the
happiness of others, but for what they are in themselves.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p8" shownumber="no">7. THE THEORY THAT SIN CONSISTS IN THE OPPOSITION OF THE LOWER PROPENSITIES OF HUMAN NATURE TO A GRADUALLY DEVELOPING MORAL CONSCIOUSNESS. This view was
developed, as we pointed out in the preceding, by Tennant in his Hulsean
Lectures. It is
the doctrine of sin constructed according to the theory of evolution.
Natural impulses
and inherited qualities, derived from the brute, form the material of
sin, but do not
actually become sin until they are indulged in contrary to the gradually
awakening
moral sense of mankind. The theories of McDowall and Fiske move along
similar lines.
The theory as presented by Tennant halts somewhat between the Scriptural
view of man
and that presented by the theory of evolution, inclining now to the one
and anon to the
other side. It assumes that man had a free will even before the
awakening of his moral
consciousness, so that he was able to choose when he was placed before a
moral ideal;
but does not explain how we can conceive of a free and indeterminate
will in a process
of evolution. It limits sin to those transgressions of the moral law,
which are committed
with a clear consciousness of a moral ideal and are therefore condemned
by conscience
as evil. As a matter of fact, it is merely the old Pelagian view of sin
grafted into the
theory of evolution, and is therefore open to all the objections with
which Pelagianism is
burdened.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p9" shownumber="no">The radical defect in all these theories is that they
seek to define sin without taking
into consideration that sin is essentially a breaking away from God,
opposition to God,
and transgression of the law of God. Sin should always be defined in
terms of man's
relation to God and to His will as expressed in the moral law.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.ii-p9.1">B. THE SCRIPTURAL IDEA OF SIN.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.ii-p10" shownumber="no">In giving the Scriptural idea of sin it is necessary to
call attention to several particulars.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p11" shownumber="no">1. SIN IS A SPECIFIC KIND OF EVIL. At the present time we hear a great deal about evil,
and comparatively little about sin; and this is rather misleading. Not
all evil is sin. Sin
should not be confused with physical evil, with that which is injurious
or calamitous. It
is possible to speak not only of sin but also of sickness as an evil,
but then the word
"evil" is used in two totally different senses. Above the
physical lies the ethical sphere,
in which the contrast between moral good and evil applies, and it is
only in this sphere
that we can speak of sin. And even in this sphere it is not desirable to
substitute the
word
"evil" for "sin" without any further qualification, for the
latter is more specific
than the former. Sin is a moral evil. Most of the names that are used in
Scripture to
designate sin point to its moral character.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.1">
Chatta'th</span>
directs attention to it as an action
that misses the mark and consists in a deviation from the right way. '<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.2">
Avel</span>
and '<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.3">avon </span>
indicate that it is a want of integrity and rectitude, a departure from
the appointed path.
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.4">Pesha</span>' refers to it as a revolt or a refusal of subjection to rightful
authority, a positive
transgression of the law, and a breaking of the covenant. And<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.5">
resha</span>' points to it as a
wicked and guilty departure from the law. Furthermore, it is designated
as guilt by '<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.6">asham</span>, as unfaithfulness and treason, by<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.7">
ma'al</span>, as vanity, by '<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.8">
aven</span>, and as perversion
or  distortion of nature (crookedness) by '<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.9">avah.</span>
The corresponding New Testament words,
such as<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p11.10">
hamartia, adikia, parabasis, paraptoma, anomia, paranomia</span>, and others,
point to the
same ideas. In view of the use of these words, and of the way in which
the Bible usually
speaks of sin, there can be no doubt about its ethical character. It is
not a calamity that
came upon man unawares, poisoned his life, and ruined his happiness, but
an evil
course which man has deliberately chosen to follow and which carries
untold misery
with it. Fundamentally, it is not something passive, such as a weakness,
a fault, or an
imperfection, for which we cannot be held responsible, but an active
opposition to God, and a positive transgression of His law, which constitutes
guilt. Sin is the result of a free
but evil choice of man. This is the plain teaching of the Word of God,
<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.1-Gen.3.6" parsed="|Gen|3|1|3|6" passage="Gen. 3:1-6">Gen. 3:1-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.48.8" parsed="|Isa|48|8|0|0" passage="Isa. 48:8">Isa. 48:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p11.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.18-Rom.1.32" parsed="|Rom|1|18|1|32" passage="Rom. 1:18-32">Rom. 1:18-32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p11.14" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.4" parsed="|1John|3|4|0|0" passage="I John 3:4">I John 3:4</scripRef>. The application of the philosophy of
evolution to the
study of the Old Testament led some scholars to the conviction that the
ethical idea of
sin was not developed until the time of the prophets, but this view is
not borne out by the way in which the earliest books of the Bible speak of sin.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p12" shownumber="no">2. SIN HAS AN ABSOLUTE CHARACTER. In the ethical sphere the contrast between good
and evil is absolute. There is no neutral condition between the two.
While there are
undoubtedly degrees in both, there are no gradations between the good and
the evil.
The transition from the one to the other is not of a quantitative, but
of a qualitative
character. A moral being that is good does not become evil by simply
diminishing his
goodness, but only by a radical qualitative change, by turning to sin.
Sin is not a lesser
degree of goodness, but a positive evil. This is plainly taught in the
Bible. He who does
not love God is thereby characterized as evil. Scripture knows of no position
of
neutrality. It urges the wicked to turn to righteousness, and sometimes
speaks of the righteous as falling into evil; but it does not contain a single
indication that either the
one or the other ever lands in a neutral position. Man is either on the
right side or on the
wrong side,
<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.32" parsed="|Matt|10|32|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:32">Matt. 10:32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.33" parsed="|Matt|10|33|0|0" passage="Matt 10:33">33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.30" parsed="|Matt|12|30|0|0" passage="Matt 12:30">12:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.11.23" parsed="|Luke|11|23|0|0" passage="Luke 11:23">Luke 11:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.10" parsed="|Jas|2|10|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:10">Jas. 2:10</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p13" shownumber="no">3. SIN ALWAYS HAS RELATION TO GOD AND HIS WILL.
The older dogmaticians realized
that it was impossible to have a correct conception of sin without
contemplating it in
relation to God and His will, and therefore emphasized this aspect and
usually spoke of
sin as
"lack of conformity to the law of God." This is undoubtedly a correct<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p13.1">
formal </span>
definition of sin. But the question arises, Just what is the material
content of the law?
What does it demand? If this question is answered, it will be possible
to determine what
sin is in a<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p13.2">
material sense.</span>
Now there is no doubt about it that the great central demand of the law
is<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p13.3">
love to God.</span>
And if from the material point of view moral goodness consists in
love to God, then moral evil must consist in the opposite. It is
separation from God,
opposition to God, hatred of God, and this manifests itself in constant
transgression of
the law of God in thought, word, and deed. The following passages
clearly show that
Scripture contemplates sin in relation to God and His law, either as
written on the
tablets of the
heart, or as given by Moses, <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.32" parsed="|Rom|1|32|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:32">Rom. 1:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.12-Rom.2.14" parsed="|Rom|2|12|2|14" passage="Rom 2:12-14">2:12-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.15" parsed="|Rom|4|15|0|0" passage="Rom 4:15">4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.9" parsed="|Jas|2|9|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:9">Jas. 2:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.4" parsed="|1John|3|4|0|0" passage="I John 3:4">I John 3:4</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p14" shownumber="no">4. SIN INCLUDES BOTH GUILT AND POLLUTION. Guilt is the state of deserving
condemnation or of being liable to punishment for the violation of a law
or a moral
requirement. It expresses the relation which sin bears to justice or to
the penalty of the
law. But even so the word has a twofold meaning. It may denote an
inherent quality of
the sinner, namely, his demerit, ill-desert, or guiltiness, which
renders him worthy of punishment. Dabney speaks of this as "potential
guilt." It is inseparable from sin, is
never found in one who is not personally a sinner, and is permanent, so that
once
established, it cannot be removed by pardon. But it may also denote the
obligation to
satisfy justice,
to pay the penalty of sin, "actual guilt," as Dabney calls it.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.ii-p14.1" n="38" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p14.2">Christ Our Penal Substitute,</span> pp. 10 f.</note>
It is not
inherent in man, but is the penal enactment of the lawgiver, who fixes
the penalty of the guilt. It may be removed by the satisfaction of the just
demands of the law personally or
vicariously. While many deny that sin includes guilt, this does not
comport with the fact
that sin was threatened and is indeed visited with punishment, and
clearly contradicts
the plain
statements of Scripture, <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.12" parsed="|Matt|6|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 6:12">Matt. 6:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.19" parsed="|Rom|3|19|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:19">Rom. 3:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.18" parsed="|Rom|5|18|0|0" passage="Rom 5:18">5:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.3" parsed="|Eph|2|3|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:3">Eph. 2:3</scripRef>. By pollution we
understand the inherent corruption to which every sinner is subject.
This is a reality in the life of every individual. It is not conceivable
without guilt, though guilt as included
in a penal relationship, is conceivable without<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p14.7">
immediate</span>
pollution. Yet it is always
followed by pollution. Every one who is guilty in Adam is, as a result,
also born with a
corrupt nature. The pollution of sin is clearly taught in such passages
as <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:Job.14.4" parsed="|Job|14|4|0|0" passage="Job 14:4">Job 14:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p14.9" osisRef="Bible:Jer.17.9" parsed="|Jer|17|9|0|0" passage="Jer. 17:9">Jer. 17:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p14.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.15-Matt.7.20" parsed="|Matt|7|15|7|20" passage="Matt. 7:15-20">Matt. 7:15-20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p14.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.5-Rom.8.8" parsed="|Rom|8|5|8|8" passage="Rom. 8:5-8">Rom. 8:5-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p14.12" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.17-Eph.4.19" parsed="|Eph|4|17|4|19" passage="Eph. 4:17-19">Eph. 4:17-19</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p15" shownumber="no">5. SIN HAS ITS SEAT IN THE HEART. Sin does not reside in any one faculty of the soul,
but in the heart, which in Scriptural psychology is the central organ of
the soul, out of
which are the issues of life. And from this center its influence
and operations spread to
the intellect, the will, the affections, in short, to the entire man,
including his body. In his
sinful state the whole man is the object of God's displeasure. There is
a sense in which it
can be said that sin originated in the will of man, but then the will
does not designate
some actual volition as much as it does the volitional nature of man.
There was a
tendency of the heart underlying the actual volition when sin entered the
world. This
view is in perfect harmony with the representations of Scripture in such
passages as the
following: <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Prov.4.23" parsed="|Prov|4|23|0|0" passage="Prov. 4:23">Prov. 4:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Jer.17.9" parsed="|Jer|17|9|0|0" passage="Jer. 17:9">Jer. 17:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.15.19" parsed="|Matt|15|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 15:19">Matt. 15:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.15.20" parsed="|Matt|15|20|0|0" passage="Matt 15:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.45" parsed="|Luke|6|45|0|0" passage="Luke 6:45">Luke 6:45</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.3.12" parsed="|Heb|3|12|0|0" passage="Heb. 3:12">Heb. 3:12</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p16" shownumber="no">6. SIN DOES NOT CONSIST EXCLUSIVELY IN OVERT ACTS. Sin does not consist only in
overt acts, but also in sinful habits and in a sinful condition of the
soul. These three are
related to one another as follows: The sinful state is the basis of the
sinful habits, and
these manifest themselves in sinful deeds. There is also truth, however,
in the contention that repeated sinful deeds lead to the establishment of
sinful habits. The
sinful acts and dispositions of man must be referred to and find their
explanation in a
corrupt nature. The passages referred to in the preceding paragraph
substantiate this
view, for they clearly prove that the state or condition of man is
thoroughly sinful. And
if the question should still be raised, whether the thoughts and
affections of the natural
man, called "flesh" in Scripture, should be regarded as
constituting sin, it might be
answered by pointing to such passages as the following: <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.22" parsed="|Matt|5|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:22">Matt. 5:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.28" parsed="|Matt|5|28|0|0" passage="Matt 5:28">28</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.7" parsed="|Rom|7|7|0|0" passage="Rom. 7:7">Rom. 7:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.17" parsed="|Gal|5|17|0|0" passage="Gal. 5:17">Gal.
5:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.24" parsed="|Gal|5|24|0|0" passage="Gal 5:24">24</scripRef>, and others. In conclusion it may be said that sin may be
defined as<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p16.6">
lack of conformity to the moral law of God,
either in act, disposition, or state. </span>
</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.ii-p16.7">C. THE PELAGIAN VIEW OF SIN.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.ii-p17" shownumber="no">The Pelagian view of sin is quite different from that
presented above. The only point
of similarity lies in this that the Pelagian also considers sin in
relation to the law of God,
and regards it as a transgression of the law. But in all other
particulars his conception
differs widely from the Scriptural and Augustinian view.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p18" shownumber="no">1. STATEMENT OF THE PELAGIAN VIEW. Pelagius takes his startingpoint in the natural
ability of man. His fundamental proposition is: God has commanded man to
do that
which is good; hence the latter must have the ability to do it. This
means that man has a
free will in the absolute sense of the word, so that it is possible for
him to decide for or
against that which is good, and also to do the good as well as the evil.
The decision is
not dependent on any moral character in man, for the will is entirely
indeterminate.
Whether a man will do good or evil simply depends on his free and
independent will.
From this it follows, of course, that there is no such thing as a moral
development of the
individual. Good and evil are located in the separate actions of man.
From this
fundamental position the doctrinal teaching of Pelagius respecting sin
naturally follows.
Sin consists only in the separate acts of the will. There is no such
thing as a sinful
nature, neither are there sinful dispositions. Sin is always a
deliberate choice of evil by a
will which is perfectly free, and can just as well choose and follow the
good. But if this
is so, then the conclusion inevitably follows that Adam was not created
in a state of
positive holiness, but in a state of moral equilibrium. His condition
was one of moral
neutrality. He was neither good nor bad, and therefore had no moral
character; but he
chose the course of evil, and thus became sinful. Inasmuch as sin
consists only in
separate acts of the will, the idea of its propagation by procreation is
absurd. A sinful
nature, if such a thing should exist, might be passed on from father to
son, but sinful
acts cannot be so propagated. This is in the nature of the case an
impossibility. Adam
was the first sinner, but his sin was in no sense passed on to his
descendants. There is no
such thing as original sin. Children are born in a state of neutrality,
beginning exactly
where Adam began, except that they are handicapped by the evil examples
which they
see round about them. Their future course must be determined by their
own free choice.
The universality of sin is admitted, because all experience testifies to
it. It is due to
imitation and to the habit of sinning that is gradually formed. Strictly
speaking, there are, on the Pelagian standpoint, no sinners, but only separate
sinful acts. This makes a
religious conception of the history of the race utterly impossible.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p19" shownumber="no">2. OBJECTIONS TO THE PELAGIAN VIEW. There are several weighty objections to the
Pelagian view of sin, of which the following are the most important:
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p20" shownumber="no">a. The fundamental position that man is held responsible
by God only for what he is
able to do, is absolutely contrary to the testimony of conscience and to
the Word of God.
It is an undeniable fact that, as a man increases in sin, his ability to
do good decreases.
He becomes in an ever greater measure the slave of sin. According to the
theory under
consideration this would also involve a lessening of his responsibility.
But this is
equivalent to saying that sin itself gradually redeems its victims by
relieving them of
their responsibility. The more sinful a man, the less responsible he is.
Against this
position conscience registers a loud protest. Paul does not say that the
hardened sinners,
which he describes in <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.18-Rom.1.32" parsed="|Rom|1|18|1|32" passage="Rom. 1:18-32">Rom. 1:18-32</scripRef> were virtually without
responsibility, but regards
them as worthy of death. Jesus said of the wicked Jews who gloried in
their freedom,
but manifested their extreme wickedness by seeking to kill Him, that
they were bond-
servants of sin, did not understand His speech, because
they could not hear His word,
and would die in their sins, <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:John.8.21" parsed="|John|8|21|0|0" passage="John 8:21">John 8:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:John.8.22" parsed="|John|8|22|0|0" passage="John 8:22">22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:John.8.34" parsed="|John|8|34|0|0" passage="John 8:34">34</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:John.8.43" parsed="|John|8|43|0|0" passage="John 8:43">43</scripRef>. Though slaves of sin,
they were yet
responsible. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p21" shownumber="no">b. To deny that man has by nature a moral character, is
simply bringing him down
to the level of the animal. According to this view everything in the
life of man that is not
a conscious choice of the will, is deprived of all moral quality. But
the consciousness of
men in general testifies to the fact that the contrast between good and
evil also applies
to man's tendencies, desires, moods, and affections, and that these also
have a moral
character. In Pelagianism sin and virtue are reduced to superficial
appendages of man,
in no way connected with his inner life. That the estimate of Scripture
is quite different  appears
from the following passages: <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p21.1" osisRef="Bible:Jer.17.9" parsed="|Jer|17|9|0|0" passage="Jer. 17:9">Jer. 17:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.6" parsed="|Ps|51|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:6">Ps. 51:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.10" parsed="|Ps|51|10|0|0" passage="Ps 51:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.15.19" parsed="|Matt|15|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 15:19">Matt. 15:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:Jas.4.1" parsed="|Jas|4|1|0|0" passage="Jas. 4:1">Jas. 4:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.ii-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:Jas.4.2" parsed="|Jas|4|2|0|0" passage="Jas 4:2">2</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p22" shownumber="no">c. A choice of the will that is in no way determined by
man's character, is not only
psychologically unthinkable, but also ethically worthless. If a good
deed of man simply
happens to fall out as it does, and no reason can be given why it did not
turn out to be
the opposite, in other words, if the deed is not an expression of man's
character, it lacks
all moral value. It is only as an exponent of character that a deed has
the moral value
that is ascribed
to it. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p23" shownumber="no">d. The Pelagian theory can give no satisfactory account
of the universality of sin.
The bad example of parents and grandparents offers no real explanation.
The mere
abstract possibility of man's sinning, even when strengthened by the
evil example, does
not explain how it came to pass that all men actually sinned. How can it
be accounted
for that the will invariably turned in the direction of sin, and never
in the opposite
direction? It is far more natural to think of a general disposition to
sin.</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.ii-p23.1">D. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC VIEW OF SIN.</h4>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p24" shownumber="no">Though the Canons and Decrees of the Council of Trent are
somewhat ambigious in
the doctrine of sin, the prevailing Roman Catholic view of sin may be
expressed as
follows: Real sin always consists in a conscious act of the will. It is
true that the
dispositions and habits that are not in accord with the will of God, are
of a sinful
character; yet they cannot be called sins in the strict sense of the
word. The indwelling
concupiscence, which lies back of sin, gained the upper hand in man in
paradise, and
thus precipitated the loss of the<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p24.1">
donum superadditum</span>
of original
righteousness, cannot be
regarded as sin, but only as the<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p24.2">
fomes</span>
or fuel of sin.
The sinfulness of Adam's
descendants is primarily only a negative condition, consisting in the
absence of
something that ought to be present, that is, of original righteousness,
which is not
essential to human nature. Something essential is wanting only if, as
some hold, the
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p24.3">
justitia naturalis</span>
was also lost. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p25" shownumber="no">The objections to this view are perfectly evident from
what was said in connection
with the Pelagian theory. A bare reminder of them would seem to be quite
sufficient. In
so far as it holds that real sin consists only in a deliberate choice of
the will and in overt
acts, the objections raised against Pelagianism are pertinent. The idea
that original
righteousness was supernaturally added to man's natural constitution,
and that its loss
did not detract from human nature, is an un-Scriptural
idea, as was pointed out in our
discussion of the image of God in man. According to the Bible
concupiscence is sin, real
sin, and the root of many sinful actions. This was brought out when the
Biblical view of
sin was considered.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p26" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. Has
philosophy succeeded in explaining the origin
of sin? Does Scripture bear out the view that sin originally had no
ethical quality? What
objection is there to the view that sin is mere privation? Must we
conceive of sin as a
substance? With whose name is this view associated? Does this sin exist
apart from the
sinner? How can we prove that sin must always be judged by the law of
God? Did Paul
favor the old Greek dualism, when he spoke of "the body of
sin" and used the term
"flesh"
to denote man's sinful nature? Is the present tendency to speak of 'evil'
ratherthan of 'sin' commendable? What is meant by the social interpretation of
sin? Does this
recognize sin for what it is fundamentally?
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.ii-p27" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 121-158; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.2">
Dict. Dogm.</span>,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.3">
De Peccato</span>,
pp. 27-35;
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp.
130-192; Vos,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.5">
Geref. Dogm</span>, II, pp. 21-32;
Dabney, <span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.6">Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 306-317; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.7">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 257-264; Pope,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.8">
Chr. Theol. </span>
II, pp. 29-42;
Orchard,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.9">
Modern Theories of Sin;</span>
Moxon,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.10">
The Doctrine of Sin;</span>
Alexander,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.11">
Syst. of Bibl. Theol.</span>
I. pp. 232-265; Brown,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.12">
Chr. Theol. in Outline</span>, pp. 261-282; Clarke,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.13">
An Outline of Chr. Theol.</span> pp. 227-239; Orr,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.14">
God's Image in Man</span> pp. 197-246; Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.15">
Christianity and Sin</span>, cf. Index; Candlish,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.16">
The Bibl. Doct. of Sin.</span>
pp. 31-44; Talma,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.17">
De Anthropologie van Calvijn</span>, pp. 92-117; Tennant,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.ii-p27.18">
The Concept of Sin. </span></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.ii.iii" next="iv.ii.iv" prev="iv.ii.ii" title="III. The Transmission of Sin">
<h2 id="iv.ii.iii-p0.1">III. The Transmission of Sin</h2>
<p id="iv.ii.iii-p1" shownumber="no">Scripture and experience both teach us that sin is
universal, and according to the
Bible the explanation for this universality lies in the fall of Adam.
These two points, the
universality of sin, and the connection of Adam's sin with that of
mankind in general,
now call for consideration. While there has been rather general
agreement as to the
universality of sin, there have been different representations of the
connection between the sin of Adam and that of his descendants.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.iii-p1.1">A. HISTORICAL REVIEW.</h4>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p2" shownumber="no">1. BEFORE THE REFORMATION. The writings of the Apologists contain nothing definite
respecting original sin, while those of Irenaeus and Tertullian clearly
teach that our
sinful condition is the result of Adam's fall. But the doctrine of the
direct imputation of
Adam's sin to his descendants is foreign even to them. Tertullian had a
realistic
conception of mankind. The whole human race was potentially and
numerically present
in Adam, and therefore sinned when he sinned and became corrupt when he
became
corrupt. Human nature as a whole sinned in Adam, and therefore every
individualization of that nature is also sinful. Origen, who was
profoundly influenced
by Greek philosophy, had a different view of the matter, and scarcely
recognized any
connection between the sin of Adam and that of his descendants. He found
the
explanation of the sinfulness of the human race primarily in the
personal sin of each
soul in a pre-temporal state, though he also mentions some mystery of
generation.
Augustine shared the realistic conception of Tertullian. Though he also
spoke of
"imputation," he did not yet have in mind the direct or
immediate imputation of the
guilt of Adam to his posterity. His doctrine of original sin is not
entirely clear. This may
be due to the fact that he hesitated to choose between Traducianism and
Creationism.
While he stresses the fact that all men were seminally present in Adam
and actually
sinned in him, he also comes very close to the idea that they sinned in
Adam as their
representative. However, his main emphasis was on the transmission of
the<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p2.1">
corruption of sin.</span>
Sin is passed on by propagation, and this propagation of Adam's sin is
at the same
time a punishment for his sin. Wiggers states the idea very briefly
in these words: "The
corruption of human nature, in the whole race, was the righteous
punishment of the
transgression of the first man, in whom all men already existed."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.iii-p2.2" n="39" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p2.3">Augustinism and Pelagianism,</span> p. 88.</note>
Augustine's great
opponent, Pelagius, denied such a connection between the sin of Adam and
those of his posterity. As he saw it, the propagation of sin by generation involved
the Traducianist
theory of the origin of the soul, which he regarded as a heretical
error; and the
imputation of Adam's sin to anyone but himself would be in conflict
with the divine
rectitude. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p3" shownumber="no">The Pelagian view was rejected by the Church, and the
Scholastics in general
thought along the lines indicated by Augustine, the emphasis all the
while being on the
transmission of the pollution of Adam's sin rather than on that of his
guilt. Hugo St.
Victor and Peter the Lombard held that actual concupiscence stains the
semen in the act
of procreation, and that this stain in some way defiles the soul on its
union with the
body. Anselm, Alexander of Hales, and Bonaventura stressed the realistic
conception of the connection between Adam and his posterity. The whole human
race was seminally
present in Adam, and therefore also sinned in him. His disobedience was
the
disobedience of the entire human race. At the same time generation was
regarded as the
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p3.1">
sine qua non</span>
of the transmission of the sinful nature. In Bonaventura and others
after
him the distinction between original guilt and original pollution was
more clearly
expressed. The fundamental idea was, that the guilt of Adam's sin is
imputed to all his
descendants. Adam suffered the loss of original righteousness, and
thereby incurred the
divine displeasure. As a result all his descendants are deprived of
original
righteousness, and as such the objects of divine wrath. Moreover, the
pollution of
Adam's sin is in some way passed on to his posterity, but the manner of
this
transmission was a matter of dispute among the Scholastics. Since they
were not
Traducianists, and therefore could not say that the soul, which is after
all the real seat of
evil, was passed on from father to son by generation, they felt that
something more had
to be said to explain the transmission of inherent evil. Some said that
it is passed on
through the body, which in turn contaminates the soul as soon as it
comes in contact with it. Others, sensing the danger of this explanation sought
it in the mere fact that
every man is now born in the state in which Adam was before he was
endowed with
original righteousness, and thus subject to the struggle between the
unchecked flesh
and the spirit. In Thomas Aquinas the realistic strain again appears
rather strongly,
though in a modified form. He pointed out that the human race constitutes
an
organism, and that, just as the act of one bodily member — say, the hand
— is regarded
as the act of the person, so the sin of one member of the organism of
humanity is
imputed to the whole organism.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p4" shownumber="no">2. AFTER THE REFORMATION. While the Reformers did not agree with the Scholastics
as to the nature of original sin, their view of its transmission did not
contain any new
elements. The ideas of Adam as the representative of the human race, and
of the
"immediate" imputation of his guilt to his descendants are not
yet clearly expressed in
their works. According to Luther we are accounted guilty by God because
of the
indwelling sin inherited from Adam. Calvin speaks in a somewhat similar
vein. He
holds that, since Adam was not only the progenitor but the root of the
human race, all
his descendants are born with a corrupt nature; and that both the guilt
of Adam's sin
and their own inborn corruption are imputed to them as
sin. The development of the
federal theology brought the idea of Adam as the representative of the
human race to
the foreground, and led to a clearer distinction between the
transmission of the guilt
and of the pollution of Adam's sin. Without denying that our native
corruption also
constitutes guilt in the sight of God, federal theology stressed the
fact that there is an
"immediate" imputation of Adam's guilt to those whom he
represented as the head of
the covenant. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p5" shownumber="no">Socinians and Arminians both rejected the idea of the
imputation of Adam's sin to
his descendants. Placeus, of the school of Saumur, advocated the idea of
"mediate"
imputation. Denying all immediate imputation, he held that because we
inherit a sinful
nature from Adam, we are deserving of being treated as if we had
committed the
original offense. This was something new in Reformed theology, and Rivet
had no
difficulty in proving this by collecting a long line of testimonies. A
debate ensued in
which "immediate" and "mediate" imputation were
represented as mutually exclusive
doctrines; and in which it was made to appear as if the real question
was, whether man
is guilty in the sight of God solely on account of Adam's
sin, imputed to him, or solely
on account of his own inherent sin. The former was not the doctrine of
the Reformed
Churches, and the latter was not taught in them before the time of
Placeus. The
teachings of the latter found their way into New England theology, and
became
especially characteristic of the New School (New Haven) theology. In
modern liberal theology the doctrine of the transmission of sin from Adam to
his posterity is entirely
discredited. It prefers to seek the explanation of the evil that is in
the world in an animal
inheritance, which is not itself sinful. Strange to say, even Barth and
Brunner, though
violently opposed to liberal theology, do not regard the universal
sinfulness of the
human race as the result of Adam's sin. Historically, the latter
occupies a unique place  merely
as the first sinner. </p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.iii-p5.1">B. THE UNIVERSALITY OF SIN.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.iii-p6" shownumber="no">Few will be inclined to deny the presence of evil in the
human heart, however much
they may differ as to the nature of this evil and as to the way in which
it originated.
Even Pelagians and Socinians are ready to admit that sin is universal.
This is a fact that
forces itself upon the attention of every one.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p7" shownumber="no">1. THE HISTORY OF RELIGIONS AND OF PHILOSOPHY TESTIFY TO IT. The history of
religions testifies to the universality of sin. The question of Job,
"How shall a man be
just with God?" is a question that was asked not merely in the
realm of special
revelation, but also outside of it in the Gentile world. The heathen
religions testify to a
universal consciousness of sin and of the need of reconciliation with a
Supreme Being.
There is a general feeling that the gods are offended and must be
propitiated in some
way. There is a universal voice of conscience, testifying to the fact
that man falls short of
the ideal and stands condemned in the sight of some higher Power. Altars
reeking with
the blood of sacrifices, often the sacrifices of dear children, repeated
confessions of
wrongdoing, and prayers for deliverance from evil, — all point to the
consciousness of
sin. Missionaries find this wherever they go. The history of philosophy
is indicative of
the same fact. Early Greek philosophers were already wrestling with the
problem of
moral evil, and since their day no philosopher of name was able to
ignore it. They were all constrained to admit the universality of it, and that
in spite of the fact they were not
able to explain the phenomenon. There was, it is true, a superficial
optimism in the
eighteenth century, which dreamt of the inherent goodness of man, but in
its stupidity
flew in the face of the facts and was sharply rebuked by Kant.
Many liberal theologians
were induced to believe and to preach this inherent goodness of man as
gospel truth,
but to-day many of them qualify it as one of the most pernicious errors
of the past.
Surely, the facts of life do not warrant such optimism.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p8" shownumber="no">2. THE BIBLE CLEARLY TEACHES IT. There are direct statements of Scripture that point
to the universal
sinfulness of man, such as <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.46" parsed="|1Kgs|8|46|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:46">I Kings 8:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.143.2" parsed="|Ps|143|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 143:2">Ps. 143:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Prov.20.9" parsed="|Prov|20|9|0|0" passage="Prov. 20:9">Prov. 20:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.7.20" parsed="|Eccl|7|20|0|0" passage="Eccl. 7:20">Eccl. 7:20</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.1-Rom.3.12" parsed="|Rom|3|1|3|12" passage="Rom. 3:1-12">Rom. 3:1-12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.19" parsed="|Rom|3|19|0|0" passage="Rom 3:19">19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.20" parsed="|Rom|3|20|0|0" passage="Rom 3:20">20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.23" parsed="|Rom|3|23|0|0" passage="Rom 3:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.22" parsed="|Gal|3|22|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:22">Gal. 3:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.2" parsed="|Jas|3|2|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:2">Jas. 3:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.8" parsed="|1John|1|8|0|0" passage="I John 1:8">I John 1:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.10" parsed="|1John|1|10|0|0" passage="I John 1:10">10</scripRef>. Several passages of
Scripture teach
that sin is the heritage of man from the time of his birth, and is
therefore present in
human nature so early that it cannot possibly be considered as the
result of imitation,
<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.5" parsed="|Ps|51|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:5">Ps. 51:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:Job.14.4" parsed="|Job|14|4|0|0" passage="Job 14:4">Job 14:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:John.3.6" parsed="|John|3|6|0|0" passage="John 3:6">John 3:6</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.16" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.3" parsed="|Eph|2|3|0|0" passage="Ephesians 2:3">Ephesians 2:3</scripRef> Paul says of the Ephesians that they
"were
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p8.17">by nature</span>
children of wrath, even as the
rest." In this passage the term "by nature"
points to something inborn and original, as distinguished from what is
subsequently
acquired. Sin, then, is something original, in which all men
participate, and which
makes them guilty before God. Moreover, according to Scripture, death is
visited even
upon those who have never exercised a personal and conscious choice,
<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.18" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12-Rom.5.14" parsed="|Rom|5|12|5|14" passage="Rom. 5:12-14">Rom. 5:12-14</scripRef>.
This passage implies that sin exists in the case of infants prior to
moral consciousness.
Since infants die, and therefore the effect of sin is present in their
case, it is but natural to assume that the cause is also present. Finally,
Scripture also teaches that all men are
under condemnation and therefore need the redemption which is in Christ
Jesus.
Children are never made an exception to this rule, cf. the preceding
passages and also
<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.19" osisRef="Bible:John.3.3" parsed="|John|3|3|0|0" passage="John 3:3">John 3:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.20" osisRef="Bible:John.3.5" parsed="|John|3|5|0|0" passage="John 3:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.21" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.12" parsed="|1John|5|12|0|0" passage="I John 5:12">I John 5:12</scripRef>. This is not contradicted by those passages
which ascribe a certain
righteousness to
man, such as, <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.9.12" parsed="|Matt|9|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 9:12">Matt. 9:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.23" osisRef="Bible:Matt.9.13" parsed="|Matt|9|13|0|0" passage="Matt 9:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.24" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.35" parsed="|Acts|10|35|0|0" passage="Acts 10:35">Acts 10:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.25" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.14" parsed="|Rom|2|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:14">Rom. 2:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.26" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.6" parsed="|Phil|3|6|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:6">Phil. 3:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iii-p8.27" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.30" parsed="|1Cor|1|30|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:30">I Cor. 1:30</scripRef>,
for this may be either civil righteousness, ceremonial or covenant righteousness,
the righteousness of the law, or the righteousness which is in Christ Jesus.</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.iii-p8.28">C. THE CONNECTION OF ADAM'S SIN WITH THAT OF THE RACE.</h4>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p9" shownumber="no">1. THE DENIAL OF THIS CONNECTION. Some deny the causal connection of the sin of
Adam with the sinfulness of the human race either wholly or in part.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p10" shownumber="no">a. Pelagians and Socinians deny absolutely that there is
any necessary connection
between our sin and the sin of Adam. The first sin was Adam's sin only
and does not concern his posterity in any way. The most they will admit is that
the evil example of
Adam led to imitation.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p11" shownumber="no">b. Semi-Pelagians and the earlier Arminians teach that
man inherited a natural
inability from Adam, but is not responsible for this inability, so that
no guilt attaches to
it, and it may even be said that God is somewhat under obligation to
provide a cure for it. The Wesleyan Arminians admit that this inborn corruption
also involves guilt.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p12" shownumber="no">c. The New School (New Haven) theory teaches that man is
born with an inherent
tendency to sin, in virtue of which his moral preference is invariably
wrong; but that
this tendency cannot itself be called sin, since sin always consists
exclusively in
conscious and intentional transgression of the law.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p13" shownumber="no">d. The Theology of crisis stresses the solidarity of sin
in the human race, but denies
that sin originated in an act of Adam in paradise. The fall belongs to
pre- or super-
history, and is already a thing of the past when the historical Adam
appears upon the
scene. It is the secret of God's predestination. The story of the fall
is a myth. Adam
appears as the type of Christ in so far as it can be seen in him that
life without sin is
possible in communion with God. Says Brunner: "In Adam all have
sinned — that is the
Biblical statement; but how? The Bible does not tell us that. The
doctrine of original sin
is read into
it."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.iii-p13.1" n="40" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p13.2">Man in Revolt,</span> p. 142.</note>
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p14" shownumber="no">2. DIFFERENT THEORIES TO EXPLAIN THE CONNECTION.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p15" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p15.1">
The realistic
theory.</span>
The earliest method of explaining the connection between
the
sin of Adam and the guilt and pollution of all his descendants was the
realistic theory.
This theory is to the effect that human nature constitutes, not only
generically but
numerically as well, a single unit. Adam possessed the whole human
nature, and in him
it corrupted itself by its own voluntary apostatizing act in Adam.
Individual men are
not separate substances, but manifestations of the same general
substance; they are
numerically one. This universal human nature became corrupt and guilty in
Adam, and
consequently every individualization of it in the descendants of Adam is
also corrupt
and guilty from the very beginning of its existence. This means that all
men<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p15.2">
actually </span>
sinned in Adam before the individualization of human nature began. This
theory was
accepted by some of the early Church Fathers and by some of the
Scholastics, and was
defended in more recent times by Dr. Shedd. However, it is open to
several objections:
(1) By representing the souls of men as individualizations of the
general spiritual
substance that was present in Adam, it would seem to imply that the
substance of the soul is of a material nature, and thus to land us inevitably
in some sort of materialism.
(2) It is contrary to the testimony of consciousness and does not
sufficiently guard the
interests of human personality. Every man is conscious of being a
separate personality,
and therefore far more than a mere passing wave in the general ocean of
existence. (3) It
does not explain why Adam's descendants are held responsible for his
first sin only, and
not for his later sins, nor for the sins of all the generations of
forefathers that followed
Adam. (4) Neither does it give an answer to the important question, why
Christ was not
held responsible for the<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p15.3">
actual</span>
commission of sin
in Adam, for He certainly shared the
same human nature, the nature that<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p15.4">
actually</span>
sinned in Adam.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iii-p16" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p16.1">
The doctrine of the covenant of works.</span>
This implies
that Adam stood in a twofold
relationship to his descendants, namely, that of the natural head of all
mankind, and
that of the<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p16.2">
representative
head</span>
of the entire human race in the covenant of works. (1)<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p16.3">
The
natural relationship.</span>
In his natural relationship Adam was the father of all mankind. As
he was created by God he was subject to change, and had no rightful
claim to an
unchangeable state. He was in duty bound to obey God, and this obedience
did not
entitle him to any reward. On the other hand, if he sinned, he would
become subject to
corruption and to punishment, but the sin would be only his own, and
could not be
placed to the account of his descendants. Dabney holds that, according
to the law that
like begets like, his corruption would have passed on to his
descendants. But however
this may be — and it is rather useless to speculate about it — they
certainly could not have been held responsible for this corruption. They could
not have been considered
guilty in Adam merely in virtue of the natural relationship in which
Adam stood to the
race. The usual
Reformed representation is a different one. (2)<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p16.4">
The covenant relationship. </span>
To the natural relationship in which Adam stood to his descendants God
graciously
added a covenant relationship containing several positive elements: (a)<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p16.5">
An element of representation.</span>
God ordained that in this covenant Adam should not stand for himself
only, but as the representative of all his descendants. Consequently, he
was the head of
the race not
only in a parental, but also in a federal sense. (b)<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p16.6">
An element of probation. </span>
While apart from this covenant Adam and his descendants would have been
in a
continual state of trial, with a constant danger of sinning, the
covenant guaranteed that
persistent perseverance for a fixed period of time would be rewarded
with the
establishment of man in a permanent state of holiness and bliss. (c)<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p16.7">
An element of reward or punishment.</span>
According to the terms of the covenant Adam would obtain a rightful
claim to eternal life, if he fulfilled the conditions of the covenant.
And not only he, but
all his descendants as well would have shared in this blessing. In its
normal operation,
therefore, the covenant arrangement would have been of incalculable
benefit for
mankind. But there was a possibility that man would disobey, thereby
reversing the
operation of the covenant, and in that case the results would naturally
be
correspondingly disastrous. Transgression of the covenant commandment
would result
in death. Adam chose the course of disobedience, corrupted himself by
sin, became
guilty in the sight of God, and as such subject to the sentence of
death. And because he was the federal representative of the race, his
disobedience affected all his descendants.
In His righteous judgment God imputes the guilt of the first sin,
committed by the head
of the covenant, to all those that are federally related to him. And as
a result they are
born in a depraved and sinful condition as well, and this inherent
corruption also
involves guilt. This doctrine explains why only the first sin of Adam,
and not his
following sins nor the sins of our other forefathers, is imputed to us,
and also
safeguards the sinlessness of Jesus, for He was not a human person and
therefore not in
the covenant of works.</p>
<p id="iv.ii.iii-p17" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p17.1">
The theory of mediate imputation.</span>
This theory
denies that the guilt of Adam's sin is <span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p17.2">directly</span>
imputed to his descendants, and represents the matter as follows:
Adam's
descendants derive their innate corruption from him by a process of
natural generation,
and only on the basis of that inherent depravity which they share with
him are they also
considered guilty of his apostasy. They are not born corrupt because
they are guilty in
Adam, but they are considered guilty because they are corrupt. Their
condition is not
based on their legal status, but their legal status on their condition.
This theory, first advocated by Placeus, was adopted by the younger Vitringa
and Venema, by several
New England theologians, and by some of the New School theologians in
the
Presbyterian Church. This theory is objectionable for several reasons:
(1) A thing cannot
be mediated by its own consequences. The inherent depravity with which
the
descendants of Adam are born is already the result of Adam's sin, and
therefore cannot
be considered as the basis on which they are guilty of the sin of Adam.
(2) It offers no objective ground whatsoever for the transmission of Adam's
guilt and depravity to all
his descendants. Yet there must be some objective legal ground for this.
(3) If this theory
were consistent, it ought to teach the mediate imputation of the sins of
all previous
generations to those following, for their joint corruption is passed on
by generation. (4)
It also proceeds on the assumption that there can be moral corruption
that is not at the same time guilt, a corruption that does not in itself make
one liable to punishment. (5)
And finally, if the inherent corruption which is present in the
descendants of Adam can
be regarded as the<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iii-p17.3">
legal</span>
ground for the
explanation of something else, there is no more
need of any mediate imputation. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.ii.iv" next="iv.ii.v" prev="iv.ii.iii" title="IV. Sin in the Life of the Human Race">
<h2 id="iv.ii.iv-p0.1">IV. Sin in the Life of the Human Race</h2>

<h4 id="iv.ii.iv-p0.2">A. ORIGINAL SIN.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.iv-p1" shownumber="no">The sinful state and condition in which men are born is
designated in theology by
the name<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p1.1">
peccatum originale</span>,
which is literally translated in the English "original sin."
This term is better than the Holland name "erfzonde," since
the latter, strictly speaking,
does not cover all that belongs to original sin. It is not a proper
designation of original
guilt, for this is not inherited but imputed to us. This sin is called
"original sin," (1)
because it is derived from the original root of the human race; (2)
because it is present in
the life of every individual from the time of his birth, and therefore
cannot be regarded
as the result of imitation; and (3) because it is the inward root of all
the actual sins that
defile the life of man. We should guard against the mistake of thinking
that the term in
any way implies that the sin designated by it belongs to the original
constitution of
human nature, which would imply that God created man as a
sinner.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p2" shownumber="no">1. HISTORICAL REVIEW. The early Church
Fathers contain nothing very definite about
original sin. According to the Greek Fathers there is a physical
corruption in the human
race, which is derived from Adam, but this is not sin and does not
involve guilt. The
freedom of the will was not affected directly by the fall, but is
affected only indirectly by
the inherited physical corruption. The tendency apparent in the Greek
Church finally
culminated in Pelagianism, which flatly denied all original sin.
In the Latin Church a
different tendency appeared especially in Tertullian, according to whom
the
propagation of the soul involves the propagation of sin. He regarded
original sin as a
hereditary sinful taint or corruption, which did not exclude the
presence of some good
in man. Ambrose advanced beyond Tertullian by regarding original sin as
a state and by
distinguishing between the inborn corruption and the resulting guilt of
man. The free
will of man was weakened by the fall. It is especially in Augustine that
the doctrine of
original sin comes to fuller development. According to him the nature of
man, both
physical and moral, is totally corrupted by Adam's sin, so that he
cannot do otherwise than sin. This inherited corruption or original sin is a
moral punishment for the sin of
Adam. It is such a quality of the nature of man, that in his natural
state, he can and will
do evil only. He has lost the material freedom of the will, and it is
especially in this
respect that original sin constitutes a punishment. In virtue of this
sin man is already
under condemnation. It is not merely corruption, but also guilt.
Semi-Pelagianism
reacted against the absoluteness of the Augustinian view. It admitted
that the whole
human race is involved in the fall of Adam, that human nature is tainted
with
hereditary sin, and that all men are by nature inclined to evil and not
able, apart from
the grace of God, to complete any good work; but denied the<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p2.1">
total</span>
depravity of man, the
guilt of original sin, and the loss of the freedom of the will. This
became the prevalent
view during the Middle Ages, though there were some prominent Scholastics
who were
on the whole Augustinian in their conception of original sin. Anselm's
view of original
sin was altogether in harmony with that of Augustine. It represents original
sin as
consisting of the guilt of nature (the nature of the entire human race),
contracted by a
single act of Adam, and the resulting inherent corruption of human
nature, handed
down to posterity and manifesting itself in a tendency to sin. This sin
also involves the loss of the power of self-determination in the direction of
holiness (material freedom of
the will), and renders man a slave of sin. The prevailing opinion among
the Scholastics
was that original sin is not something positive, but rather the absence
of something that
ought to be present, particularly the privation of original
righteousness, though some
would add a positive element, namely, an inclination to evil. Thomas
Aquinas held that
original sin, considered in its material element, is concupiscence, but
considered in its
formal element, is the privation of original justice. There is a
dissolution of the harmony
in which original justice consisted, and in this sense original sin can
be called a languor
of nature. Speaking generally, the Reformers were in agreement with
Augustine, though
Calvin differed from him especially on two points, by stressing the fact
that original sin
is not something purely negative, and is not limited to the sensuous
nature of man. At
the time of the Reformation the Socinians followed the Pelagians in the
denial of
original sin, and in the seventeenth century the Arminians broke with
the Reformed
faith, and accepted the Semi-Pelagian view of original sin. Since that
time various
shades of opinion were advocated in the Protestant Churches both in
Europe and in  America.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE TWO ELEMENTS OF ORIGINAL SIN. Two elements must be distinguished in original sin, namely:
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p4" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p4.1">
Original guilt.</span>
The word "guilt" expresses
the relation which sin bears to justice or,
as the older theologians put it, to the penalty of the law. He who is
guilty stands in a
penal relation to the law. We can speak of guilt in a twofold sense,
namely, as<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p4.2">
reatus culpae</span>
and as<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p4.3">
reatus poenae.</span>
The former, which Turretin calls "potential guilt," is the
intrinsic moral ill-desert of an act or state. This is of the essence of
sin and is an
inseparable part of its sinfulness. It attaches only to those who have
themselves
committed sinful deeds, and attaches to them permanently. It cannot be
removed by
forgiveness, and is not removed by justification on the basis of the
merits of Jesus
Christ, and much less by mere pardon. Man's sins are inherently
ill-deserving even after
he is justified. Guilt in this sense cannot be transferred from one
person to another. The
usual sense, however, in which we speak of guilt in theology, is that of<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p4.4">
reatus poenae.</span>
By
this is meant desert of punishment, or obligation to render satisfaction
to God's justice
for self-determined violation of the law. Guilt in this sense is not of
the essence of sin,
but is rather a relation to the penal sanction of the law. If there had
been no sanction
attached to the disregard of moral relations, every departure from the
law would have
been sin, but would not have involved liability to punishment. Guilt in
this sense may
be removed by the satisfaction of justice, either personally or
vicariously. It may be
transferred from one person to another, or assumed by one person for
another. It is
removed from believers by justification, so that their sins, though
inherently ill-
deserving, do not make them liable to punishment. Semi-Pelagians and the
older
Arminians or Remonstrants deny that original sin involves guilt. The
guilt of Adam's
sin, committed by him as the federal head of the human race, is imputed
to all his
descendants. This is evident from the fact that, as the Bible teaches,
death as the
punishment of sin passes on from Adam to all his descendants. <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12-Rom.5.19" parsed="|Rom|5|12|5|19" passage="Rom. 5:12-19">Rom.
5:12-19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.3" parsed="|Eph|2|3|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:3">Eph. 2:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:22">I Cor. 15:22</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p5" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p5.1">
Original pollution.</span>
Original
pollution includes two things, namely, the absence of
original righteousness, and the presence of positive evil. It should be
noted: (1) That
original pollution is not merely a disease, as some of the Greek Fathers
and the
Arminians represent it, but sin in the real sense of the word. Guilt
attaches to it; he who
denies this does not have a Biblical conception of original corruption.
(2) That this
pollution is not to be regarded as a substance infused into the human
soul, nor as a
change of substance in the metaphysical sense of the word. This was the
error of the
Manichæans and of Flacius Illyricus in the days of the Reformation. If
the substance of the soul were sinful, it would have to be replaced by a new
substance in regeneration;
but this does not take place. (3) That it is not merely a privation. In
his polemic with the
Manichæans, Augustine not merely denied that sin was a substance, but
also asserted
that it was merely a privation. He called it a<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p5.2">
privatio boni.</span>
But original sin is not merely
negative; it is also an inherent positive disposition toward sin. This
original pollution
may be considered from more than one point of view, namely, as total
depravity and as
total inability.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p6" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p6.1">
Total depravity.</span>
In view of its
pervasive character, inherited pollution is called total
depravity. This phrase is often misunderstood, and therefore calls for
careful
discrimination. Negatively, it does not imply: (1) that every man is as
thoroughly
depraved as he can possibly become; (2 that the sinner has no innate
knowledge of the
will of God, nor a conscience that discriminates between good and evil;
(3) that sinful
man does not often admire virtuous character and actions in others, or
is incapable of
disinterested affections and actions in his relations with his
fellow-men; nor (4) that
every unregenerate man will, in virtue of his inherent sinfulness,
indulge in every form
of sin; it often happens that one form excludes the other. Positively,
it does indicate: (1)
that the inherent corruption extends to every part of man's nature, to
all the faculties
and powers of both soul and body; and (2) that there is no spiritual
good, that is, good
in relation to God, in the sinner at all, but only perversion. This
total depravity is denied
by Pelagians, Socinians, and seventeenth century Arminians, but is
clearly taught in
Scripture, <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:John.5.42" parsed="|John|5|42|0|0" passage="John 5:42">John 5:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.18" parsed="|Rom|7|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 7:18">Rom. 7:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.23" parsed="|Rom|7|23|0|0" passage="Rom 7:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.7" parsed="|Rom|8|7|0|0" passage="Rom 8:7">8:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.18" parsed="|Eph|4|18|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:18">Eph. 4:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.2-2Tim.3.4" parsed="|2Tim|3|2|3|4" passage="II Tim. 3:2-4">II Tim. 3:2-4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.15" parsed="|Titus|1|15|0|0" passage="Tit. 1:15">Tit. 1:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.3.12" parsed="|Heb|3|12|0|0" passage="Heb. 3:12">Heb. 3:12</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p7" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p7.1">
Total inability.</span>
With respect to its effect on man's
spiritual powers, it is called total
inability. Here, again, it is necessary to distinguish. By ascribing
total inability to the
natural man we do not mean to say that it is impossible for him to do
good in any sense
of the word. Reformed theologians generally say that he is still able to
perform: (1)
natural good; (2) civil good or civil righteousness; and (3) externally
religious good. It is
admitted that even the unrenewed possess some virtue, revealing itself
in the relations
of social life, in many acts and sentiments that deserve the sincere
approval and
gratitude of their fellow-men, and that even meet with the approval of
God to a certain
extent. At the same time it is maintained that these same actions and
feelings, when
considered in relation to God, are radically defective. Their fatal
defect is that they are not prompted by love to God, or by any regard for the
will of God as requiring them.
When we speak of man's corruption as total inability, we mean two
things: (1) that the
unrenewed sinner cannot do any act, however insignificant, which<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p7.2">
fundamentally</span>
meets
with God's approval and answers to the demands of God's holy law; and
(2) that he
cannot change his fundamental preference for sin and self to love for
God, nor even
make an approach to such a change. In a word, he is unable to do any
spiritual good.
There is
abundant Scriptural support for this doctrine: <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:John.1.13" parsed="|John|1|13|0|0" passage="John 1:13">John 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:John.3.5" parsed="|John|3|5|0|0" passage="John 3:5">3:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:John.6.44" parsed="|John|6|44|0|0" passage="John 6:44">6:44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:John.8.34" parsed="|John|8|34|0|0" passage="John 8:34">8:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:John.15.4" parsed="|John|15|4|0|0" passage="John 15:4">15:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:John.15.5" parsed="|John|15|5|0|0" passage="John 15:5">5</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.18" parsed="|Rom|7|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 7:18">Rom. 7:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.24" parsed="|Rom|7|24|0|0" passage="Rom 7:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.7" parsed="|Rom|8|7|0|0" passage="Rom 8:7">8:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.8" parsed="|Rom|8|8|0|0" passage="Rom 8:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.14" parsed="|1Cor|2|14|0|0" passage="1 Cor. 2:14">1 Cor. 2:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.14" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.5" parsed="|2Cor|3|5|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:5">II Cor. 3:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.15" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.1" parsed="|Eph|2|1|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:1">Eph. 2:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.16" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8-Eph.2.10" parsed="|Eph|2|8|2|10" passage="Eph 2:8-10">8-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p7.17" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.6" parsed="|Heb|11|6|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:6">Heb. 11:6</scripRef>. Pelagians, however,
believe in the plenary ability of man, denying that his moral faculties
were impaired by
sin. Arminians speak of a gracious ability, because they believe that
God imparts His common grace to all men, which enables them to turn to God and
believe. The New
School theologians ascribe to man natural as distinguished from moral
ability, a
distinction borrowed from Edwards' great work<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p7.18">
On the Will.</span>
The import of their
teaching is that man in his fallen state is still in possession of all
the natural faculties
that are required for doing spiritual good (intellect, will, etc.), but
lacks moral ability,
that is, the ability to give proper direction to those faculties, a
direction well-pleasing to
God. The distinction under consideration is advanced, in order to stress
the fact that
man is<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p7.19">
wilfully sinful</span>, and this may well be emphasized. But the New School theologians
assert that man would be able to do spiritual good if he only wanted to
do it. This
means that the "natural ability" of which they speak, is after
all an ability to do real
spiritual good.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.iv-p7.20" n="41" place="foot">Cf. Hodge, <span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p7.21">Syst. Theol.</span> II, p. 266.</note>
On the whole it may be said that
the distinction between natural and
moral ability is not a desirable one, for: (1) it has no warrant in
Scripture, which teaches
consistently that man is not able to do what is required of him; (2) it
is essentially
ambiguous and misleading: the possession of the requisite faculties to
do spiritual good
does not yet constitute an ability to do it; (3) "natural" is
not a proper antithesis of
"moral," for a thing may be both at the same time; and the
inability of man is also
natural in an important sense, that is, as being incident to his nature
in its present state
as naturally propagated; and (4) the language does not accurately express
the important
distinction intended; what is meant is that it is moral, and not either
physical or
constitutional; that it has its ground, not in the want of any faculty,
but in the corrupt
moral state of the faculties, and of the disposition of the heart.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p8" shownumber="no">3. ORIGINAL SIN AND HUMAN FREEDOM. In connection with the doctrine of the total
inability of man the question naturally arises, whether original sin
then also involves
the loss of freedom, or of what is generally called the<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p8.1"> liberum arbitrium</span>, the free will.
This question should be answered with discrimination for, put in this
general way, it
may be answered both negatively and positively. In a certain sense man
has not, and in
another sense he has, lost his liberty. There is a certain liberty that
is the inalienable
possession of a free agent, namely, the liberty to choose as he pleases,
in full accord with
the prevailing dispositions and tendencies of his soul. Man did not lose
any of the
constitutional faculties necessary to constitute him a responsible moral
agent. He still
has reason, conscience, and the freedom of choice. He has ability to
acquire knowledge,
and to feel and recognize moral distinctions and obligations; and his
affections,
tendencies, and actions are spontaneous, so that he chooses and refuses
as he sees fit.
Moreover, he has the ability to appreciate and do many things that are
good and
amiable, benevolent and just, in the relations he sustains to his
fellow-beings. But man
did lose his material freedom, that is, the rational power to determine
his course in the
direction of the highest good, in harmony with the original moral
constitution of his
nature. Man has by nature an irresistible bias for evil. He is not able
to apprehend and
love spiritual excellence, to seek and do spiritual things, the things
of God that pertain
to salvation. This position, which is Augustinian and Calvinistic, is flatly
contradicted by Pelagianism and Socinianism, and in part also by Semi-Pelagianism and
Arminianism. Modern liberalism, which is essentially Pelagian, naturally
finds the
doctrine, that man has lost the ability to determine his life in the
direction of real
righteousness and holiness, highly offensive, and glories in the ability
of man to choose
and do what is right and good. On the other hand the dialectical
theology (Barthianism)
strongly reasserts the utter inability of man to make even the slightest
move in a
Godward direction. The sinner is a slave of sin and cannot possibly turn
in the opposite
direction. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p9" shownumber="no">4. THE THEOLOGY OF CRISIS AND ORIGINAL SIN.
It may be well at this point to define
briefly the position of the Theology of Crisis or of Barthianism
with respect to the
doctrine of original sin. Walter Lowrie correctly says: "Barth has
much to say about the
Fall — but
nothing about 'original sin.' That man is<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p9.1">
fallen</span>
we can plainly see; but the Fall
is not an event we can point to in history, it belongs decidedly to
pre-history, <span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p9.2">Urgeschichte</span>, in a metaphysical sense."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.iv-p9.3" n="42" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p9.4">Our Concern with the Theology of Crisis,</span> p. 187</note>
Brunner has something to say about it in his
recent work on<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p9.5">
Man in Revolt.</span><note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.iv-p9.6" n="43" place="foot">chap. 6.</note>
He does not accept the doctrine
of original sin in the
traditional and ecclesiastical sense of the word. The first sin of Adam
was not and could
not be placed to the account of all his descendants; nor did this sin
result in a sinful
state, which is passed on to his posterity, and which is now the
fruitful root of all actual
sin. "Sin is never a state, but it is always an act. Even being a
sinner is not a state but an
act, because it is being a person." In Brunner's estimation the
traditional view has an
undesirable element of determinism in it, and does not sufficiently
safeguard the
responsibility of man. But his rejection of the doctrine of original sin
does not mean that
he sees no truth in it at all. It rightly stresses the solidarity of sin
in the human race, and
the transmission
"of the spiritual nature, of the 'character,' from parents to
children."
However, he seeks the explanation of the universality of sin in
something else than in
"original sin." The man whom God created was not simply some
one man, but a
responsible person created in and for community with others. The
isolated individual is
but an abstraction. "In the Creation we are an individualized,
articulated unity, one
body with many members." If one member suffers, all the members
suffer with it. He
goes on to say: "If that is our origin, then our opposition to this
origin cannot be an
experience, an act, of the individual as an individual.... Certainly
each individual is a
sinner as an individual; but he is at the same time the whole in its
united solidarity, the
body, actual humanity as a whole." There was therefore solidarity
in sinning; the human race fell away from God; but it belongs to the very nature of sin
that we deny
this solidarity in sin. The result of this initial sin is that man is
now a sinner; but the fact
that man is now a sinner should not be regarded as the cause of his
individual sinful
actions. Such a causal connection cannot be admitted, for every sin
which man commits
is a fresh decision against God. The statement that man is a sinner does
not mean that
he is in a state or condition of sin, but that he is actually engaged in
rebellion against
God. As Adam we turned away from God, and "he who commits this
apostasy can do
no other than repeat it continually, not because it has become a habit,
but because this is
the distinctive character of this act." Man cannot reverse the
course, but continues to sin
right along. The Bible never speaks of sin except as the act of turning
away from God.
"But in the
very concept of 'being a sinner' this act is conceived as one which
determines man's whole existence." There is much in this
representation that reminds
one of the realistic representation of Thomas Aquinas.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p10" shownumber="no">5. OBJECTIONS TO THE DOCTRINE OF TOTAL DEPRAVITY AND TOTAL INABILITY.</p>
<p id="iv.ii.iv-p11" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p11.1">
It is inconsistent with moral obligation.</span>
The most
obvious and the most plausible
objection to the doctrine of total depravity and total inability, is
that it is inconsistent
with moral obligation. It is said that a man cannot be held justly
responsible for
anything for which he has not the required ability. But the general
implication of this
principle is a fallacy. It may hold in cases of disability resulting
from a limitation which
God has imposed on man's nature; but it certainly does not apply in the
sphere of
morals and religion, as already pointed out in the preceding. We should
not forget that
the inability under consideration is self-imposed, has a moral origin,
and is not due to
any limitation which God has put upon man's being. Man is unable as a
result of the
perverted choice made in Adam.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p12" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p12.1">
It removes all motives for exertion.</span>
A second objection
is that this doctrine removes all motives for exertion and destroys all rational grounds for the use
of the means of
grace. If we know that we cannot accomplish a given end, why should we
use the
means recommended for its accomplishment? Now it is perfectly true that
the sinner,
who is enlightened by the Holy Spirit and is truly conscious of his own
natural inability,
ceases from work-righteousness. And this is exactly what is necessary.
But it does not
hold with respect to the natural man, for he is thoroughly
self-righteous. Moreover, it is
not true that the doctrine of inability naturally tends to foster
neglect in the use of the
means of grace ordained by God. On this principle the farmer might also
say, I cannot
produce a harvest; why should I cultivate my fields? But this would be
utter folly. In
every department of human endeavor the result depends on the co-operation
of causes
over which man has no control. The Scriptural grounds for the use of
means remain:
God commands the use of means; the means ordained by God are adapted to
the end
contemplated; ordinarily the end is not attained, except by the use of
the appointed
means; and God has promised to bless the use of those means.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p13" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p13.1">
It encourages delay in conversion.</span>
It is also
asserted that this doctrine encourages
delay in conversion. If a man believes that he cannot change his heart,
cannot repent
and believe the gospel, he will feel that he can only passively abide
the time when it will
please God to change the direction of his life. Now there may be, and
experience teaches
that there are, some who actually adopt that attitude; but as a rule the
effect of the
doctrine under consideration will be quite different. If sinners, to
whom sin has grown
very dear, were conscious of the power to change their lives at will,
they would be
tempted to defer it to the last moment. But if one is conscious of the
fact that a very
desirable thing is beyond the compass of his own powers, he will
instinctively seek help
outside of himself. The sinner who feels that way about salvation, will
seek help with
the great Physician of the soul, and thus acknowledge his own disability.</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.iv-p13.2">B. ACTUAL SIN.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.iv-p14" shownumber="no">Roman Catholics and Arminians minimized the idea of
original sin, and then
developed doctrines, such as those of the washing away of original sin
(though not only
that) by baptism, and of sufficient grace, by which its seriousness is
greatly obscured.
The emphasis is clearly altogether on actual sins. Pelagians, Socinians,
modern liberal
theologians, and — strange as it may seem — also the Theology of Crisis,
recognize only actual sins. It must be said, however, that this theology does
speak of sin in the
singular as well as in the plural, that is, it does recognize a
solidarity in sin, which some
of the others have not recognized. Reformed theology has always given
due recognition
to original sin and to the relation in which it stands to actual sins.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p15" shownumber="no">1. THE RELATION BETWEEN ORIGINAL AND ACTUAL SIN. The former originated in a free
act of Adam as the representative of the human race, a transgression of
the law of God
and a corruption of human nature, which rendered him liable to the
punishment of
God. In the sight of God his sin was the sin of all his descendants, so
that they are born
as sinners, that is in a state of guilt and in a polluted condition.
Original sin is both a
state and an inherent quality of pollution in man. Every man is guilty
in Adam, and is
consequently born with a depraved and corrupt nature. And this inner corruption
is the
unholy fountain of all actual sins. When we speak of actual sin or<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p15.1">
peccatum actuale</span>, we
use the word
"actual" or "actuale" in a comprehensive sense. The term
"actual sins" does not merely denote those external actions which are accomplished by
means of the
body, but all those conscious thoughts and volitions which spring from
original sin.
They are the individual sins of act in distinction from man's inherited
nature and
inclination. Original sin is one, actual sin is manifold. Actual sin may
be interior, such as
a particular conscious doubt or evil design in the mind, or a particular
conscious lust or desire in the heart; but they may also be exterior, such as
deceit, theft, adultery, murder,
and so on. While the existence of original sin has met with widespread
denial, the
presence of actual sin in the life of man is generally admitted. This
does not mean,
however, that people have always had an equally profound consciousness
of sin. We
hear a great deal nowadays about the "loss of the sense of
sin," though Modernists
hasten to assure us that, while we have lost the sense of<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p15.2">
sin</span>, we have gained the sense of
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p15.3">
sins</span>, in the plural, that is, of definite actual sins. But there is no doubt
about it that
people have to an alarming extent lost the sense of the heinousness of
sin, as committed
against a holy God, and have largely thought of it merely as an infringement
on the
rights of one's fellow-men. They fail to see that sin is a fatal power
in their lives which ever and anon incites their rebellious spirits, which
makes them guilty before God, and
which brings them under a sentence of condemnation. It is one of the
merits of the
Theology of Crisis that it is calling attention once more to the
seriousness of sin as a
revolt against God, as a revolutionary attempt to be like God.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p16" shownumber="no">2. CLASSIFICATION OF ACTUAL SINS. It is quite impossible to give a unified and
comprehensive classification of actual sins. They vary in kind and
degree, and can be
differentiated from more than one point of view. Roman Catholics make a
well-known
distinction between venial and mortal sins, but admit that it is
extremely difficult and
dangerous to decide whether a sin is mortal or venial. They were led to
this distinction
by the statement of Paul in <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.21" parsed="|Gal|5|21|0|0" passage="Gal. 5:21">Gal. 5:21</scripRef> that they "who do such things
(as he has
enumerated) shall not inherit the kingdom of God." One commits a
mortal sin when
one willfully violates the law of God in a matter which one believes or
knows to be
important. It renders the sinner liable to eternal punishment. And one
commits a venial
sin when one transgresses the law of God in a matter that is not of
grave importance, or
when the transgression is not altogether voluntary. Such a sin is
forgiven more easily, and even without confession. Forgiveness for mortal sins
can be obtained only by the
sacrament of penance. The distinction is not a Scriptural one, for
according to Scripture
every sin is essentially<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p16.2">
anomia</span>
(unrighteousness),
and merits eternal punishment.
Moreover, it has a deleterious effect in practical life, since it
engenders a feeling of
uncertainty, sometimes a feeling of morbid fear on the one hand, or of
unwarranted
carelessness on the other. The Bible does distinguish different kinds of
sins, especially in
connection with the different degrees of guilt attaching to them. The
Old Testament
makes an important distinction between sins committed presumptuously
(with a high
hand), and sins committed unwittingly, that is, as the result of
ignorance, weakness, or
error, <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Num.15.29-Num.15.31" parsed="|Num|15|29|15|31" passage="Num. 15:29-31">Num. 15:29-31</scripRef>. The former could not be atoned by sacrifice and
were punished
with great severity, while the latter could be so atoned and were judged
with far greater
leniency. The fundamental principle embodied in this distinction still
applies. Sins
committed on purpose, with full consciousness of the evil involved, and
with
deliberation, are greater and more culpable than sins resulting from
ignorance, from an
erroneous conception of things, or from weakness of character.
Nevertheless the latter
are also real
sins and make one guilty in the sight of God, <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.1" parsed="|Gal|6|1|0|0" passage="Gal. 6:1">Gal. 6:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.18" parsed="|Eph|4|18|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:18">Eph. 4:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.13" parsed="|1Tim|1|13|0|0" passage="I Tim 1:13">I Tim 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.24" parsed="|1Tim|5|24|0|0" passage="I Tim 5:24">5:24</scripRef>. The New Testament further clearly teaches us that the degree of
sin is to a great
extent determined by the degree of light possessed. The heathen are
guilty indeed, but
they who have God's revelation and enjoy the privileges of the gospel
ministry are far
more guilty,
<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.15" parsed="|Matt|10|15|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:15">Matt. 10:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.47" parsed="|Luke|12|47|0|0" passage="Luke 12:47">Luke 12:47</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.48" parsed="|Luke|12|48|0|0" passage="Luke 12:48">48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.11" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.34" parsed="|Luke|23|34|0|0" passage="Luke 23:34">23:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.12" osisRef="Bible:John.19.11" parsed="|John|19|11|0|0" passage="John 19:11">John 19:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.30" parsed="|Acts|17|30|0|0" passage="Acts 17:30">Acts 17:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.32" parsed="|Rom|1|32|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:32">Rom. 1:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.12" parsed="|Rom|2|12|0|0" passage="Rom 2:12">2:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.16" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.13" parsed="|1Tim|1|13|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:13">I Tim. 1:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.17" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.15" parsed="|1Tim|1|15|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:15">15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p16.18" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.16" parsed="|1Tim|1|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:16">16</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p17" shownumber="no">3. THE UNPARDONABLE SIN. Several passages
of Scripture speak of a sin that cannot
be forgiven, after which a change of heart is impossible, and for which
it is not
necessary to pray. It is generally known as the sin or blasphemy against
the Holy Spirit.
The Saviour speaks of it explicitly in <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.31" parsed="|Matt|12|31|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:31">Matt. 12:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.32" parsed="|Matt|12|32|0|0" passage="Matt 12:32">32</scripRef> and parallel
passages; and it is
generally thought that <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.4-Heb.6.6" parsed="|Heb|6|4|6|6" passage="Heb. 6:4-6">Heb. 6:4-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.26" parsed="|Heb|10|26|0|0" passage="Heb 10:26">10:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.27" parsed="|Heb|10|27|0|0" passage="Heb 10:27">27</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:John.5.16" parsed="|John|5|16|0|0" passage="John 5:16">John 5:16</scripRef> also refer to
this sin.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p18" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p18.1">
Unwarranted opinions respecting this sin.</span>
There has been
quite a variety of opinions
respecting the nature of the unpardonable sin. (1) Jerome and Chrysostom
thought of it
as a sin that could be committed only during Christ's sojourn on earth,
and held that it
was committed by those who were convinced in their hearts that Christ
performed His
miracles by the power of the Holy Spirit, but in spite of their
conviction refused to
recognize these miracles as such and ascribed them to the operation of
Satan. However,
this limitation is entirely unwarranted, as the passages in Hebrews and I
John would
seem to prove. (2) Augustine, the Melanchtonian dogmaticians of the
Lutheran Church,
and a few Scottish theologians (Guthrie, Chalmers) conceived of it as
consisting in
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p18.2">impoenitentia finalis</span>, that is, impenitence persisted
in to the end. A related view is that
expressed by some in our own day, that it consists in continued
unbelief, a refusal up to
the very end to accept Jesus Christ by faith. But on this supposition it
would follow that
every one who died in a state of impenitence and unbelief had committed
this sin, while
according to Scripture it must be something of a very specific nature.
(3) In connection
with their denial of the perseverance of the saints, later Lutheran
theologians taught
that only regenerate persons could commit this sin, and sought support
for this view in
<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.4-Heb.6.6" parsed="|Heb|6|4|6|6" passage="Heb. 6:4-6">Heb. 6:4-6</scripRef>. But this is an un-Scriptural position, and the Canons of
Dort reject, among
others, also the error of those who teach that the regenerate can commit
the sin against
the Holy Spirit.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p19" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p19.1">
The Reformed conception of this sin.</span>
The name
"sin against the Holy Spirit" is too
general, for there are also sins against the Holy Spirit that are
pardonable, <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.30" parsed="|Eph|4|30|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:30">Eph. 4:30</scripRef>. The
Bible speaks more specifically of a "speaking
against the Holy Spirit," <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.32" parsed="|Matt|12|32|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:32">Matt. 12:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.3.29" parsed="|Mark|3|29|0|0" passage="Mark 3:29">Mark 3:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.10" parsed="|Luke|12|10|0|0" passage="Luke 12:10">Luke 12:10</scripRef>. It is evidently a sin committed during the present life,
which makes
conversion and pardon impossible. The sin consists in the conscious,
malicious, and
willful rejection and slandering, against evidence and conviction, of
the testimony of the
Holy Spirit respecting the grace of God in Christ, attributing it out of
hatred and enmity to the prince of darkness. It presupposes, objectively, a
revelation of the grace of God in
Christ, and a powerful operation of the Holy Spirit; and, subjectively,
an illumination
and intellectual conviction so strong and powerful as to make an honest
denial of the
truth impossible. And then the sin itself consists, not in doubting the
truth, nor in a
simple denial of it, but in a contradiction of it that goes contrary to
the conviction of the
mind, to the illumination of the conscience, and even to the verdict of
the heart. In
committing that sin man willfully, maliciously, and intentionally
attributes what is
clearly recognized as the work of God to the influence and operation
of Satan. It is
nothing less than a decided slandering of the Holy Spirit, an audacious
declaration that
the Holy Spirit is the spirit of the abyss, that the truth is the lie,
and that Christ is Satan.
It is not so much a sin against the person of the Holy Spirit as a sin
against His official
work in revealing, both objectively and subjectively, the grace and
glory of God in
Christ. The root of this sin is the conscious and deliberate hatred of
God and of all that
is recognized as divine. It is unpardonable, not because its guilt
transcends the merits of
Christ, or because the sinner is beyond the renewing power of the Holy
Spirit, but
because there are also in the world of sin certain laws and ordinances,
established by
God and maintained by Him. And the law in the case of this particular
sin is, that it
excludes all repentance, sears the conscience, hardens the sinner, and
thus renders the
sin unpardonable. In those who have committed this sin we may therefore
expect to
find a pronounced hatred to God, a defiant attitude to Him and all that
is divine, delight
in ridiculing and slandering that which is holy, and absolute unconcern
respecting the
welfare of their soul and the future life. In view of the fact that this
sin is not followed
by repentance, we may be reasonably sure that they who fear that they
have committed
it and worry about this, and who desire the prayers of others for them,
have not
committed it. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p20" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p20.1">
Remarks on the passages in the Epistles that speak of it.</span>
Except in the
Gospels, this sin
is not mentioned by name in the Bible. Thus the question arises, whether
the passages
in <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.4-Heb.6.6" parsed="|Heb|6|4|6|6" passage="Heb. 6:4-6">Heb. 6:4-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.26" parsed="|Heb|10|26|0|0" passage="Heb 10:26">10:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.27" parsed="|Heb|10|27|0|0" passage="Heb 10:27">27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.29" parsed="|Heb|10|29|0|0" passage="Heb 10:29">29</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.16" parsed="|1John|5|16|0|0" passage="I John 5:16">I John 5:16</scripRef> also refer to it. Now it is quite evident that
they all speak of an unpardonable sin; and because Jesus says in <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.31" parsed="|Matt|12|31|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:31">Matt. 12:31</scripRef>, "Therefore
I say unto you, Every sin and blasphemy shall be forgiven unto men; but
the blasphemy
against the Spirit shall not be forgiven," thereby indicating that
there is but one
unpardonable sin, it is but reasonable to think that these passages
refer to the same sin.
It should be noted, however, that <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6" parsed="|Heb|6|0|0|0" passage="Heb. 6">Heb. 6</scripRef> speaks of a specific form of
this sin, such as
could only occur in the apostolic age, when the Spirit revealed itself
in extraordinary
gifts and powers. The fact that this was not borne in mind, often led to
the erroneous
opinion that this passage, with its unusually strong expressions,
referred to such as
were actually regenerated by the Spirit of God. But <scripRef id="iv.ii.iv-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.4-Heb.6.6" parsed="|Heb|6|4|6|6" passage="Heb. 6:4-6">Heb. 6:4-6</scripRef>, while
speaking of
experiences that transcend those of the ordinary temporal faith, yet do
not necessarily
testify to the presence of regenerating grace in the heart.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p21" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. What
objections are raised to the idea of the federal
headship of Adam? What Scriptural ground is there for the imputation of
Adam's sin to
his descendants? Was Placeus' theory of mediate imputation in any way
connected with
Amyraldus' view of universal atonement? What objection does Dabney raise
to the
doctrine of immediate imputation? Is the doctrine of inherited evil the
same as the
doctrine of original sin, and if not, how do they differ? How do
Pelagians, Semi-
Pelagians, and Arminians differ in their view of original sin? How does
the doctrine of
original sin affect the doctrine of infant salvation? Does the Bible
teach that one can be
lost purely as the result of orginal sin? What is the connection between
the doctrine of
original sin and that of baptismal regeneration? What becomes of the
doctrine of
original sin in modern liberal theology? How do you account for the
denial of original
sin in Barthian theology? Can you name some additional classes of actual
sins?</p>

<p id="iv.ii.iv-p22" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 61-120; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Peccato, </span>
pp. 36-50,
119-144; Vos,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.3">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 31-76;
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp.
192-308;
McPherson,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.5">
Chr. Dogma</span>, pp. 242-256; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.6">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 321-351; Litton,
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.7">Intro. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 136-174; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.8">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Ch.</span>, pp. 242-276;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.9">
Chr. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 420-476; Pope,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.10">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 47-86; Raymond,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.11">
Syst. Theol. </span>
II, pp. 64-172;
Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.12">
Handbook of the Chr. Religion</span>, pp. 235-238;
Mackintosh,
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.13">Christianity and Sin</span>, cf. Index; Girardeau,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.14">
The Will in its Theological Relations</span> Wiggers,
<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.15">Augustinism and Pelagianism</span>; Candlish,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.16">
The Bibl. Doct. of Sin</span>, pp. 90-128;<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.iv-p22.17">
Brunner, Man in Revolt</span>, pp. 114-166.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.ii.v" next="iv.iii" prev="iv.ii.iv" title="V. The Punishment of Sin">
<h2 id="iv.ii.v-p0.1">V. The Punishment of Sin</h2>
<p id="iv.ii.v-p1" shownumber="no">Sin is a very serious matter, and is taken seriously by
God, though men often make
light of it. It is not only a transgression of the law of God, but an
attack on the great
Lawgiver Himself, a revolt against God. It is an infringement on the
inviolable
righteousness of God, which is the very foundation of His throne (<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.97.2" parsed="|Ps|97|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 97:2">Ps.
97:2</scripRef>), and an
affront to the spotless holiness of God, which requires of us that we be
holy in all
manner of living (<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.16" parsed="|1Pet|1|16|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:16">I Pet. 1:16</scripRef>). In view of this it is but natural that
God should visit sin
with punishment. In a word of fundamental significance He says: "I
the Lord thy God
am a jealous God, visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children
unto the third
and fourth generation of them that hate me," <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.5" parsed="|Exod|20|5|0|0" passage="Ex. 20:5">Ex. 20:5</scripRef>. The Bible
abundantly testifies to
the fact that God punishes sin both in this life and in the life to
come.</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.v-p1.4">A. NATURAL AND POSITIVE PENALTIES.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.v-p2" shownumber="no">A rather common distinction applied to the punishments for
sin, is that between
natural and positive penalties. There are punishments which are the
natural results of
sin, and which men cannot escape, because they are the natural and
necessary
consequences of sin. Man is not saved from them by repentance and
forgiveness. In
some cases they may be mitigated and even checked by the means which God
has
placed at our disposal, but in other cases they remain and serve as a
constant reminder
of past transgressions. The slothful man comes to poverty, the drunkard
brings ruin
upon himself and his family, the fornicator contracts a loathsome and
incurable disease,
and the criminal is burdened with shame and even when leaving the prison
walls finds
it extremely hard to make a new start in life. The Bible speaks of such
punishments in
<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.4.8" parsed="|Job|4|8|0|0" passage="Job 4:8">Job 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.9.15" parsed="|Ps|9|15|0|0" passage="Ps. 9:15">Ps. 9:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.94.23" parsed="|Ps|94|23|0|0" passage="Ps 94:23">94:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:Prov.5.22" parsed="|Prov|5|22|0|0" passage="Prov. 5:22">Prov. 5:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:Prov.23.21" parsed="|Prov|23|21|0|0" passage="Prov 23:21">23:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.6" osisRef="Bible:Prov.24.14" parsed="|Prov|24|14|0|0" passage="Prov 24:14">24:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Prov.31.3" parsed="|Prov|31|3|0|0" passage="Prov 31:3">31:3</scripRef>. But there are also positive
punishments, and these are punishments in the more ordinary and legal
sense of the
word. They presuppose not merely the natural laws of life, but a
positive law of the
great Lawgiver with added sanctions. They are not penalties which
naturally result
from the nature of the transgression, but penalties which are attached
to the
transgressions by divine enactments. They are superimposed by the divine
law, which
is of absolute authority. It is to this type of punishment that the
Bible usually refers. This
is particularly evident in the Old Testament. God gave Israel a detailed
code of laws for
the regulation of its civil, moral, and religious life, and clearly
stipulated the
punishment to be meted out in the case of each transgression, cf. <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.8" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20" parsed="|Exod|20|0|0|0" passage="Ex. 20">Ex. 20</scripRef>-23. And though
many of the civil and religious regulations of this law were, in the
form in which they
were couched, intended for Israel only, the fundamental principles which
they embody
also apply in the New Testament dispensation. In a Biblical conception
of the penalty of
sin we shall have to take into account both the natural and necessary
outcome of wilful
opposition to God and the penalty legally affixed and adjusted to the
offense by God.
Now there are some Unitarians, Universalists, and Modernists who deny
the existence
of any punishment of sin, except such consequences as naturally result
from the sinful action. Punishment is not the execution of a sentence
pronounced by the divine Being
on the merits of the case, but simply the operation of a general law.
This position is
taken by J. F. Clarke, Thayer, Williamson, and Washington Gladden. The
latter says:
"The old theology made this penalty (penalty of sin) to consist in
suffering inflicted
upon the sinner by a judicial process in the future life . . . The
penalty of sin, as the new
theology teaches, consists in the natural consequences of sin. . . . The
penalty of sin is
sin. Whatsoever a man soweth<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p2.9">
that</span>
shall he also reap."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.ii.v-p2.10" n="44" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p2.11">Present Day theology,</span> pp. 78-80</note>
The idea is not new; it was
present to the mind of Dante, for in his famous poem the torments of
hell symbolize the
consequences of sin; and Schelling had it in mind, when he spoke of the
history of the
world as the judgment of the world. It is abundantly evident from
Scripture, however,
that this is an entirely un-Biblical view. The Bible speaks of
penalties, which are in no
sense the natural result or consequences of the sin committed, for
instance in <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:Exod.32.33" parsed="|Exod|32|33|0|0" passage="Ex. 32:33">Ex. 32:33</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.13" osisRef="Bible:Lev.26.21" parsed="|Lev|26|21|0|0" passage="Lev. 26:21">Lev. 26:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.14" osisRef="Bible:Num.15.31" parsed="|Num|15|31|0|0" passage="Num. 15:31">Num. 15:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.15" osisRef="Bible:1Chr.10.13" parsed="|1Chr|10|13|0|0" passage="I Chron. 10:13">I Chron. 10:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.11.6" parsed="|Ps|11|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 11:6">Ps. 11:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.75.8" parsed="|Ps|75|8|0|0" passage="Ps 75:8">75:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.1.24" parsed="|Isa|1|24|0|0" passage="Isa. 1:24">Isa. 1:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.19" osisRef="Bible:Isa.1.28" parsed="|Isa|1|28|0|0" passage="Isa 1:28">28</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.20" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.10" parsed="|Matt|3|10|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:10">Matt. 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p2.21" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.51" parsed="|Matt|24|51|0|0" passage="Matt 24:51">24:51</scripRef>. All
these passages speak of a punishment of sin by a direct act of God.
Moreover, according
to the view under consideration there is really no reward or punishment;
virtue and
vice both naturally include their various issues. Furthermore, on that
standpoint there is
no good reason for considering suffering as punishment, for it denies
guilt, and it is
exactly guilt that constitutes suffering a punishment. Then, too, it is
in many cases not
the guilty that receives the severest punishment, but the innocent as,
for instance, the
dependents of a drunkard or a debauchee. And, finally, on this view,
heaven and hell
are not places of future punishment, but states of mind or conditions in
which men find
themselves here and now. Washington Gladden expresses this very
explicitly.</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.v-p2.22">B. NATURE AND PURPOSE OF PUNISHMENTS.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.v-p3" shownumber="no">The word "punishment" is derived from the Latin
poena, meaning punishment,
expiation, or pain. It denotes pain or suffering inflicted because
of some misdeed. More
specifically, it may be defined as that pain or loss which is directly
or indirectly inflicted
by the Lawgiver, in vindication of His justice outraged by the violation
of the law. It
originates in the righteousness or punitive justice of God, by which He
maintains
Himself as the Holy One and necessarily demands holiness and
righteousness in all His
rational creatures. Punishment is the penalty that is naturally and
necessarily due from
the sinner because of his sin; it is, in fact, a debt that is due to the
essential justice of
God. The punishments of sin are of two different kinds. There is a punishment
that is
the necessary concomitant of sin, for in the nature of the case sin
causes separation
between God and man, carries with it guilt and pollution, and fills the
heart with fear
and shame. But there is also a kind of punishment that is superimposed on
man from
without by the supreme Lawgiver, such as all kinds of calamities in this
life and the
punishment of hell in the future.
Now the question arises as to the object or the purpose
of the punishment of sin.
And on this point there is considerable difference of opinion. We should
not regard the
punishment of sin as a mere matter of vengeance and as inflicted
with the desire to
harm one who has previously done harm. The following are the three most
important
views respecting the purpose of punishment.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.v-p4" shownumber="no">1. TO VINDICATE DIVINE RIGHTEOUSNESS OR JUSTICE. Turretin says: "If there be such
an
attribute as justice belonging to God, then sin must have its due, which
is punishment."
The law requires that sin be punished because of its inherent demerit,
irrespective of all
further considerations. This principle applies in the administration of
both human and
divine laws. Justice requires the punishment of the transgressor. Back
of the law stands
God, and therefore it may also be said that punishment aims at the
vindication of the
righteousness and holiness of the great Lawgiver. The holiness of God
necessarily reacts
against sin, and this reaction manifests itself in the punishment of
sin. This principle is
fundamental to all those passages of Scripture that speak of God as a
righteous Judge,
who renders unto every man according to his deserts. "He is the
rock, His work is
perfect: for all His ways are judgment: a God of truth and without
iniquity, just and
right is He," <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.4" parsed="|Deut|32|4|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:4">Deut. 32:4</scripRef>. "Far be it from God, that He should
do wickedness; and from
the Almighty, that He should commit iniquity. For the work of a man
shall He render
unto him, and
cause every man to find according to his ways," <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Job.34.10" parsed="|Job|34|10|0|0" passage="Job. 34:10">Job. 34:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Job.34.11" parsed="|Job|34|11|0|0" passage="Job 34:11">11</scripRef>. "Thou
renderest to every man according to his work," <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.62.12" parsed="|Ps|62|12|0|0" passage="Ps. 62:12">Ps. 62:12</scripRef>.
"Righteous art thou, O Lord,
and upright are thy judgments," <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.119.37" parsed="|Ps|119|37|0|0" passage="Ps. 119:37">Ps. 119:37</scripRef>. "I am the Lord
which exercise
lovingkindness, judgment, and righteousness in the earth," <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Jer.9.24" parsed="|Jer|9|24|0|0" passage="Jer. 9:24">Jer. 9:24</scripRef>. "And if ye call on
the Father, who without respect of persons judgest according to every
man's work, pass
the time of your sojourning here in fear," <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.17" parsed="|1Pet|1|17|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:17">I Pet. 1:17</scripRef>. The
vindication of the
righteousness and holiness of God, and of that just law which is the
very expression of
His being, is certainly the primary purpose of the punishment of sin.
There are two other views, however, which erroneously put something else in the
foreground.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.v-p5" shownumber="no">2. TO REFORM THE SINNER. The idea is very
much in the foreground at the present
time that there is no punitive justice in God which inexorably calls for
the punishment
of the sinner, and that God is not angry with the sinner but loves him,
and only inflicts
hardships upon him, in order to reclaim him and to bring him back to his
Father's
home. This is an un-Scriptural view, which obliterates the distinction
between
punishment and chastisement. The penalty of sin does not proceed from the
love and
mercy of the Lawgiver, but from His justice. If reformation follows the
infliction of
punishment, this is not due to the penalty as such, but is the fruit of
some gracious
operation of God by which He turns that which is in itself an evil for
the sinner into
something that is beneficial. The distinction between chastisement and
punishment
must be maintained. The Bible teaches us on the one hand that God loves
and chastens
-His people, <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.5.17" parsed="|Job|5|17|0|0" passage="Job 5:17">Job 5:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.6.1" parsed="|Ps|6|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 6:1">Ps. 6:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.94.12" parsed="|Ps|94|12|0|0" passage="Ps. 94:12">Ps. 94:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.118.18" parsed="|Ps|118|18|0|0" passage="Ps 118:18">118:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Prov.3.11" parsed="|Prov|3|11|0|0" passage="Prov. 3:11">Prov. 3:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.26.16" parsed="|Isa|26|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 26:16">Isa.
26:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.5-Heb.12.8" parsed="|Heb|12|5|12|8" passage="Heb. 12:5-8">Heb. 12:5-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.19" parsed="|Rev|3|19|0|0" passage="Rev. 3:19">Rev. 3:19</scripRef>;
and on the other hand, that He hates and punishes evil-doers, <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.5.5" parsed="|Ps|5|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 5:5">Ps. 5:5</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.7.11" parsed="|Ps|7|11|0|0" passage="Ps 7:11">7:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Nah.1.2" parsed="|Nah|1|2|0|0" passage="Nah. 1:2">Nah. 1:2</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.18" parsed="|Rom|1|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:18">Rom. 1:18</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.5" parsed="|Rom|2|5|0|0" passage="Rom 2:5">2:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.6" parsed="|Rom|2|6|0|0" passage="Rom 2:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11" parsed="|Rom|11|0|0|0" passage="Rom 11">11</scripRef> Thess. 1:6; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.26" parsed="|Heb|10|26|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:26">Heb. 10:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p5.17" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.27" parsed="|Heb|10|27|0|0" passage="Heb 10:27">27</scripRef>. Moreover, a punishment must be
recognized as just, that is, as according to justice, in order to be
reformatory. According
to this theory a sinner who has already reformed could no
more be punished; nor could
one beyond the possibility of reformation, so that there could be no
punishment for
Satan; the death penalty would have to be abolished, and eternal
punishment would
have no reason for existence.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.v-p6" shownumber="no">TO DETER MEN FROM SIN. Another theory
rather prevalent in our day is that the
sinner must be punished for the protection of society, by deterring
others from the
commission of similar offenses. There can be no doubt about it that this
end is often
secured in the family, in the state, and in the moral government of the
world, but this is
an incidental result which God graciously effects by the infliction
of the penalty. It
certainly cannot be the ground for the infliction of the penalty.
There is no justice
whatever in punishing an individual simply for the good of society. As a
matter of fact
the sinner is always punished for his sin, and incidentally this may be
for the good of
society. And here again it may be said that no punishment will have a
deterring effect, if
it is not just and right in itself. Punishment has a good effect only
when it is evident that
the person on whom it is afflicted really deserves punishment. If
this theory were true, a
criminal might at once be set free, if it were not for the possibility
that others might be
deterred from sin by his punishment. Moreover, a man might rightly
commit a crime, if
he were only willing to bear the penalty. According to this view
punishment is in no
sense grounded in the past, but is wholly prospective. But on that
supposition it is very
hard to explain how it invariably causes the repentant sinner to look
back and to confess
with contrite heart the sins of the past, as we notice in such passages
as the following:
<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.42.21" parsed="|Gen|42|21|0|0" passage="Gen. 42:21">Gen. 42:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Num.21.7" parsed="|Num|21|7|0|0" passage="Num. 21:7">Num. 21:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.15.24" parsed="|1Sam|15|24|0|0" passage="I Sam. 15:24">I Sam. 15:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.15.25" parsed="|1Sam|15|25|0|0" passage="I Sam. 15:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.12.13" parsed="|2Sam|12|13|0|0" passage="II Sam. 12:13">II Sam. 12:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.24.10" parsed="|2Sam|24|10|0|0" passage="II Sam. 24:10">24:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.9.6" parsed="|Ezra|9|6|0|0" passage="Ezra 9:6">Ezra 9:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.9.10" parsed="|Ezra|9|10|0|0" passage="Ezra 9:10">10</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.9.13" parsed="|Ezra|9|13|0|0" passage="Ezra 9:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.10" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.33-Neh.9.35" parsed="|Neh|9|33|9|35" passage="Neh. 9:33-35">Neh. 9:33-35</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:Job.7.21" parsed="|Job|7|21|0|0" passage="Job 7:21">Job 7:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.1-Ps.51.4" parsed="|Ps|51|1|51|4" passage="Ps. 51:1-4">Ps. 51:1-4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p6.13" osisRef="Bible:Jer.3.25" parsed="|Jer|3|25|0|0" passage="Jer. 3:25">Jer. 3:25</scripRef>. These examples might easily be multiplied. In opposition to
both of the theories considered it must be maintained that the punishment
of sin is
wholly retrospective in its primary aim, though the infliction of
the penalty may have
beneficial consequences both for the individual and for society.</p>

<h4 id="iv.ii.v-p6.14">C. THE ACTUAL PENALTY OF SIN.</h4>
<p id="iv.ii.v-p7" shownumber="no">The penalty with which God threatened man in paradise was
the penalty of death.
The death here intended is not the death of the body, but
the death of man as a whole,
death in the Scriptural sense of the word. The Bible does not know the
distinction, so
common among us, between a physical, a spiritual, and an eternal death;
it has a
synthetic view of death and regards it as separation from God. The
penalty was also
actually executed on the day that man sinned, though the full execution
of it was
temporarily stayed by the grace of God. In a rather un-Scriptural way
some carry their
distinction into the Bible, and maintain that physical death should not
be regarded as
the penalty of sin, but rather as the natural result of the physical
constitution of man.
But the Bible knows of no such exception. It acquaints us with the
threatened penalty,
which is death in the comprehensive sense of the word, and it informs us
that death
entered the world through sin (<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12" parsed="|Rom|5|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:12">Rom. 5:12</scripRef>), and that the wages of sin is
death (<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.23" parsed="|Rom|6|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:23">Rom.
6:23</scripRef>). The penalty of sin certainly includes physical death, but it
includes much more
than that. Making the distinction to which we have grown accustomed, we
may say that
it includes the following:</p>

<p id="iv.ii.v-p8" shownumber="no">1. SPIRITUAL DEATH. There is a
profound truth in the saying of Augustine that sin is
also the punishment of sin. This means that the sinful state and
condition in which man
is born by nature form part of the penalty of sin. They are, it is true,
the immediate
consequences of sin, but they are also a part of the threatened penalty.
Sin separates
man from God, and that means death, for it is only in communion with the
living God
that man can truly live. In the state of death, which resulted from the
entrance of sin
into the world, we are burdened with the guilt of sin, a guilt that can
only be removed
by the redemptive work of Jesus Christ. We are therefore under
obligation to bear the
sufferings that result from transgression of the law. The natural man
carries the sense of
the liability to punishment with him wherever he goes. Conscience is a
constant
reminder of his guilt, and the fear of punishment often fills the heart.
Spiritual death
means not only guilt, but also pollution. Sin is always a corrupting influence
in life, and
this is a part of our death. We are by nature not only unrighteous in
the sight of God,
but also unholy. And this unholiness manifests itself in our thoughts,
in our words, and
in our deeds. It is always active within us like a poisoned fountain
polluting the streams
of life. And if it were not for the restraining influence of the
common grace of God, it
would render social life entirely impossible.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.v-p9" shownumber="no">2. THE SUFFERINGS OF LIFE.
The sufferings of life, which are the result of the entrance
of sin into the world, are also included in the penalty of sin. Sin
brought disturbance in
the entire life of man. His physical life fell a prey to weaknesses and
diseases, which
result in discomforts and often in agonizing pains; and his mental life
became subject to
distressing disturbances, which often rob him of the joy of life,
disqualify him for his
daily task, and sometimes entirely destroy his mental equilibrium. His
very soul has
become a battle-field of conflicting thoughts, passions, and desires.
The will refuses to follow the judgment of the intellect, and the passions run
riot without the control of an
intelligent will. The true harmony of life is destroyed, and makes way
for the curse of
the divided life. Man is in a state of dissolution, which often carries
with it the most
poignant sufferings. And not only that, but with and on account of man
the whole
creation was made subject to vanity and to the bondage of corruption.
The evolutionists
especially have taught us to look upon nature as "red in tooth and
claw." Destructive
forces are often released in earthquakes, cyclones, tornadoes, volcanic
eruptions, and
floods, which bring untold misery on mankind. Now there are many,
especially in our
day, who do not see the hand of God in all this, and do not regard these
calamities as a
part of the penalty of sin. And yet that is exactly what they are in a
general sense.
However, it will not be safe to particularize, and to interpret them as
special
punishments for some grievous sins committed by those who live in the
stricken areas.
Neither will it be wise to ridicule the idea of such a causal connection
as existed in the
case of the Cities of the Plain (Sodom and Gomorrah), which were
destroyed by fire
from heaven. We should always bear in mind that there is a collective
responsibility, and that there are always sufficient reasons why God should
visit cities, districts or
nations with dire calamities. It is rather a wonder that He does not
more often visit
them in His wrath and in His sore displeasure. It is always well to bear
in mind what
Jesus once said to the Jews who brought to Him the report of a calamity
which had
befallen certain Galileans, and evidently intimated that these Galileans
must have been very sinful: "Think ye that these Galileans were sinners
above all the Galileans, because
they have suffered these things? I tell you, Nay: but except ye repent,
ye shall all in like
manner perish. Or those eighteen, upon whom the tower in Siloam fell,
and killed them,
think ye that they were offenders above all the men that dwell in
Jerusalem? I tell you
you, Nay: but, except ye repent, ye shall all likewise perish."
<scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:Luke.13.2-Luke.13.5" parsed="|Luke|13|2|13|5" passage="Luke 13:2-5">Luke 13:2-5</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.ii.v-p10" shownumber="no">3. PHYSICAL DEATH. The separation of
body and soul is also a part of the penalty of
sin. That the Lord had this in mind also in the threatened penalty is quite
evident from
the explication of it in the words, "dust thou art, and unto dust
thou shalt return," <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.19" parsed="|Gen|3|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:19">Gen. 3:19</scripRef>. It also appears from the whole argument of Paul in <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12-Rom.5.21" parsed="|Rom|5|12|5|21" passage="Rom. 5:12-21">Rom. 5:12-21</scripRef>
and in <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.12-1Cor.15.23" parsed="|1Cor|15|12|15|23" passage="I Cor. 15:12-23">I Cor. 15:12-23</scripRef>. The position of the Church has always been that death in the
full sense of the word, including physical death, is not only the consequence
but the penalty of sin. The
wages of sin is death. Pelagianism denied this connection, but the North
African
General Synod of Carthage (418) pronounced an anathema against any man
who says
"that Adam, the first man, was created mortal, so that whether he
sinned or not he
would have died, not as the wages of sin, but through the necessity of
nature."
Socinians and Rationalists continued the Pelagian error, and in even
more recent times it
was reproduced in the systems of those Kantian, Hegelian, or Ritschlian
theologians
who virtually make sin a necessary moment in man's moral and spiritual
development.
Their views found support in present day natural science, which regards
physical death
as a natural phenomenon of the human organism. Man's physical
constitution is such that he necessarily dies. But this view does not commend
itself in view of the fact that
man's physical organism is renewed every seven years, and that
comparatively few
people die in old age and from complete exhaustion. By far the greater
number of them
die as the result of sickness and accidents. It is also contrary to the
fact that man does
not feel that death is something natural, but fears it as an unnatural
separation of that which belongs together.</p>

<p id="iv.ii.v-p11" shownumber="no">4. ETERNAL DEATH. This may be
regarded as the culmination and completion of
spiritual death. The restraints of the present fall away, and the
corruption of sin has its
perfect work. The full weight of the wrath of God descends on the
condemned. Their
separation from God, the source of life and joy, is complete, and this
means death in the
most awful sense of the word. Their outward condition is
made to correspond with the
inward state of their evil souls. There are pangs of conscience and
physical pain. And
the smoke of their torment goeth up for ever and ever. <scripRef id="iv.ii.v-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Rev.14.11" parsed="|Rev|14|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 14:11">Rev. 14:11</scripRef>. The
further discussion
of this subject belongs to eschatology.
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.v-p12" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. Why do
many modern liberals deny all positive
punishments for sin? Is the position at all tenable that the punishments
of sin consist
exclusively in the natural consequences of sin? What objections do you
have to this
position? How do you account for the widespread aversion to the idea that
the
punishment of sin is a vindication of the law and of the righteousness
of God? Do the
punishments of sin also serve as deterrents, and as means of
reformation? What is the
Biblical conception of death? Can you prove from Scripture that it
includes physical
death? Is the doctrine of eternal death consistent with the idea that
the punishment of
sin serves merely as a means of reformation, or as a deterrent?
</p>

<p id="iv.ii.v-p13" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p13.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 158-198; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p13.2">
Dict. Dogm.</span>,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p13.3">
De Peccato</span>,
pp. 93-112;
Strong,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p13.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 652-660;
Raymond,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p13.5">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp.
175-184; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p13.6"> Doctrine of Endless Punishment</span>; Washington
Gladden,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p13.7">
Present Day Theology</span>, Chaps. IV and V; Kennedy,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p13.8">
St. Paul's
Conceptions of the Last Things</span>
pp. 103-157;
Dorner,<span class="ital" id="iv.ii.v-p13.9">
Syst. of Chr. Doct.</span> III, pp. 114-132. </p>
</div3>
</div2>

      <div2 id="iv.iii" next="iv.iii.i" prev="iv.ii.v" title="Man In The Covenant Of Grace">
<h2 id="iv.iii-p0.1">MAN IN THE COVENANT OF GRACE</h2>

        <div3 id="iv.iii.i" next="iv.iii.ii" prev="iv.iii" title="I. Name and Concept of the Covenant">
<h2 id="iv.iii.i-p0.1">I. Name and Concept of the Covenant</h2>

<h4 id="iv.iii.i-p0.2">A.THE NAME</h4>

<p id="iv.iii.i-p1" shownumber="no">1. IN THE OLD TESTAMENT. The Hebrew word for covenant
is always<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.1">
berith</span>, a word of
uncertain derivation. The most general opinion is that it is derived
from the Hebrew
verb<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.2">
barah</span>, to cut, and therefore contains a reminder of the ceremony mentioned in
<scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.15.17" parsed="|Gen|15|17|0|0" passage="Gen. 15:17">Gen. 15:17</scripRef>. Some, however, prefer to think that it is derived from the
Assyrian word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.4">
beritu</span>,
meaning "to bind." This would at once point to the covenant as
a bond. The question of
the derivation is of no great importance for the construction of the
doctrine. The word
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.5">berith</span>
may denote a mutual voluntary agreement (dipleuric), but also a
disposition or
arrangement imposed by one party on another (monopleuric). Its exact
meaning does
not depend on the etymology of the word, nor on the historical
development of the
concept, but simply on the parties concerned. In the measure in which
one of the parties is subordinate and has less to say, the covenant acquires
the character of a disposition or
arrangement imposed by one party on the other.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.6">
Berith</span>
then becomes synonymous with
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.7">choq</span>
(appointed statute or ordinance), <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.8" osisRef="Bible:Exod.34.10" parsed="|Exod|34|10|0|0" passage="Ex. 34:10">Ex. 34:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.9" osisRef="Bible:Isa.59.21" parsed="|Isa|59|21|0|0" passage="Isa. 59:21">Isa.
59:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.10" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.36" parsed="|Jer|31|36|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:36">Jer. 31:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.11" osisRef="Bible:Jer.33.20" parsed="|Jer|33|20|0|0" passage="Jer 33:20">33:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.12" osisRef="Bible:Jer.34.13" parsed="|Jer|34|13|0|0" passage="Jer 34:13">34:13</scripRef>. Hence
we also find that<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.13">
karath berith</span>
(to cut a covenant) is construed not only with the
prepositions '<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.14">
am</span>
and<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.15">
ben</span>
(with), but also with<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p1.16">
lamedh</span>
(to), <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.17" osisRef="Bible:Josh.9.6" parsed="|Josh|9|6|0|0" passage="Jos. 9:6">Jos. 9:6</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.55.3" parsed="|Isa|55|3|0|0" passage="Isa. 55:3">Isa. 55:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.19" osisRef="Bible:Isa.61.8" parsed="|Isa|61|8|0|0" passage="Isa 61:8">61:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p1.20" osisRef="Bible:Jer.32.40" parsed="|Jer|32|40|0|0" passage="Jer. 32:40">Jer. 32:40</scripRef>. Naturally, when God establishes a covenant with man, this
monopleuric character
is very much in evidence, for God and man are not equal parties. God is
the Sovereign
who imposes His ordinances upon His creatures.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.i-p2" shownumber="no">2. IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. In the
Septuagint the word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.1">
berith</span>
is rendered<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.2">
diatheke</span>
in
every passage where it occurs with the exception of <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Deut.9.15" parsed="|Deut|9|15|0|0" passage="Deut. 9:15">Deut. 9:15</scripRef> (<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.4">marturion</span>) and <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.11.11" parsed="|1Kgs|11|11|0|0" passage="I Kings 11:11">I Kings  11:11</scripRef>
(<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.6">entole</span>). The word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.7">
diatheke</span>
is confined to this usage, except in
four passages. This
use of the word seems rather peculiar in view of the fact that it is not
the usual Greek
word for covenant, but really denotes a<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.8">
disposition</span>
and consequently
also a<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.9">
testament. </span>
The ordinary word for covenant is<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.10">
suntheke.</span>
Did the
translators intend to substitute
another idea for the covenant idea? Evidently not, for in <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.28.15" parsed="|Isa|28|15|0|0" passage="Isa. 28:15">Isa. 28:15</scripRef>
they use the two
words synonymously, and there<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.12">
diatheke</span>
evidently means a
pact or an agreement. Hence
there is no doubt about it that they ascribe this meaning to<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.13">
diatheke.</span>
But the question
remains, Why did they so generally avoid the use of<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.14">
suntheke</span>
and substitute for it a
word which denotes a
disposition rather than an agreement? In all probability the
reason lies in the fact that in the Greek world the covenant idea
expressed by<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.15">
suntheke </span>
was based to such an extent on the legal equality of the parties, that
it could not,
without considerable modification, be incorporated in the Scriptural
system of thought.
The idea that the priority belongs to God in the establishment of the
covenant, and that
He sovereignly imposes His covenant on man was absent from
the usual Greek word.
Hence the substitution of the word in which this was very prominent. The
word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.16">
diatheke </span>
thus, like many other words, received a new meaning, when it became the
vehicle of
divine thought, This change is important in connection with the New
Testament use of
the word. There has been considerable difference of opinion respecting
the proper
translation of the word. In about half of the passages in which it
occurs the Holland and
the Authorized Versions render the word "covenant," while in
the other half they
render it
"testament." The American Revised Version, however, renders it
"covenant"throughout, except in <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.17" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.16" parsed="|Heb|9|16|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:16">Heb. 9:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.18" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.17" parsed="|Heb|9|17|0|0" passage="Heb 9:17">17</scripRef>. It is but natural, therefore, that
the question should
be raised, What is the New Testament meaning of the word? Some claim
that it has its
classical meaning of<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.19">
disposition</span>
or<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.20">
testament</span>, wherever it is found in the New Testament,
while others maintain that it means<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.21">
testament</span>
in some places,
but that in the great
majority of passages the<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.22">
covenant</span>
idea is
prominently in the foreground. This is
undoubtedly the correct view. We would expect<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.23">
a priorily</span>
that the New Testament usage
would be in general agreement with that of the LXX; and a careful study
of the relevant
passages shows that the American Revised Version is undoubtedly on the
right track,
when it
translates<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.24">
diatheke</span>
by "testament"
only in <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.25" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.16" parsed="|Heb|9|16|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:16">Heb. 9:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.26" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.17" parsed="|Heb|9|17|0|0" passage="Heb 9:17">17</scripRef>. In all probability there is
not a single other passage where this rendering would be correct, not
even <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.27" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.6" parsed="|2Cor|3|6|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:6">II Cor. 3:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.28" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.14" parsed="|2Cor|3|14|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:14">14</scripRef>.
The fact that several translations of the New Testament substituted
"testament" for
"covenant" in so many places is probably due to three causes:
(a) the desire to
emphasize the priority of God in the transaction; (b) the assumption that
the word had
to be rendered as much as possible in harmony with <scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.29" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.16" parsed="|Heb|9|16|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:16">Heb. 9:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.i-p2.30" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.17" parsed="|Heb|9|17|0|0" passage="Heb 9:17">17</scripRef>; and (c)
the influence
of the Latin translation, which uniformly rendered<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p2.31">
diatheke</span>
by "testamentum." </p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.i-p2.32">B. THE CONCEPT.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.i-p3" shownumber="no">The covenant idea developed in history before God made
any formal use of the
concept in the revelation of redemption. Covenants among men had been
made long
before God established His covenant with Noah and with Abraham, and this
prepared
men to understand the significance of a covenant in a world divided by
sin, and helped
them to understand the divine revelation, when it presented man's
relation to God as a covenant relation. This does not mean, however, that the
covenant idea originated with
man and was then borrowed by God as an appropriate form for the
description of the
mutual relationship between Himself and man. Quite the opposite is true;
the archetype
of all covenant life is found in the trinitarian being of God, and what
is seen among men
is but a faint copy (ectype) of this. God so ordered the life of man
that the covenant idea should develop there as one of the pillars of social
life, and after it had so developed, He
formally introduced it as an expression of the existing relation between
Himself and
man. The covenant relationship between God and man existed from the very
beginning,
and therefore long before the formal establishment of the covenant with
Abraham.
While the word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.i-p3.1">
berith</span>
is often used of
covenants among men, yet it always includes
a religious idea. A covenant is a pact or agreement between two or more
parties. It may
be, and among men most generally is, an agreement to which parties,
which can meet
on a footing of equality, voluntarily come after a careful stipulation
of their mutual
duties and privileges; but it may also be of the nature of a disposition
or arrangement
imposed by a superior party on one that is inferior and accepted by the
latter. It is generally confirmed by a solemn ceremony as in the presence of
God, and thereby
obtains an inviolable character. Each one of the parties binds himself
to the fulfilment of
certain promises on the basis of stipulated conditions. Now we should
not say that we
cannot properly speak of a covenant between God and man, because the
parties are too
unequal, and therefore proceed on the assumption that the covenant of
grace is nothing
but the promise of salvation in the form of a covenant. By doing that we
would fail to
do justice to the covenant idea as it is revealed in Scripture. It is
perfectly true that both
the covenant of works and (as the sequel will show) the covenant of
grace are
monopleuric in origin, that they are of the nature of arrangements
ordained and
instituted by God, and that God has the priority in both; but they are
nevertheless
covenants. God graciously condescended to come down to
the level of man, and to
honor him by dealing with him more or less on the footing of equality.
He stipulates His
demands and vouchsafes His promises, and man assumes the duties thus
imposed
upon him voluntarily and thus inherits the blessings. In the covenant of
works man
could meet the requirements of the covenant in virtue of his natural
endowments, but in
the covenant of grace he is enabled to meet them only by the
regenerating and
sanctifying influence of the Holy Spirit. God works in man both to
will and to do,
graciously bestowing upon him all that He requires of him. It is called
the covenant of
grace, because it is an unparalleled revelation of the grace of God, and
because man receives all its blessings as gifts of divine grace. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.iii.ii" next="iv.iii.iii" prev="iv.iii.i" title="II The Covenant of Redemption">
<h2 id="iv.iii.ii-p0.1">II. The Covenant of Redemption</h2>

<h4 id="iv.iii.ii-p0.2">A. SEPARATE DISCUSSION OF THIS DESIRABLE.</h4>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p1" shownumber="no">There are different representations respecting the
parties in the covenant of grace.
Some consider them to be the triune God and man, either without
qualification, or
qualified in
some way, as "the sinner," "the elect," or "man in
Christ"; others, God the
Father, as representing the Trinity, and Christ as representing the
elect;<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.1" n="45" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.2">Westm. Larger Cat.,</span> Q. 31</note>
and still others,
since the days of Coccejus, distinguish two covenants, namely, the
covenant of
redemption (<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.3">pactum salutis</span>) between the Father and the Son, and, as based on this, the
covenant of grace between the triune God and the elect, or the elect
sinner. The second
of these representations has a certain advantage from a systematic point
of view. It may
claim the support of such passages as <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p1.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12-Rom.5.21" parsed="|Rom|5|12|5|21" passage="Rom. 5:12-21">Rom. 5:12-21</scripRef> and <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p1.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.21" parsed="|1Cor|15|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:21">I Cor. 15:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p1.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:22">22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p1.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.47-1Cor.15.49" parsed="|1Cor|15|47|15|49" passage="I Cor. 15:47-49">47-49</scripRef>, and
stresses the inseparable connection between the<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.8">
pactum salutis</span>
and the covenant of
grace. It brings out the unity of the covenant in Christ, and is
advocated among others
by Boston, Gib, Dick, A. Kuyper Sr., H. Kuyper, and A. Kuyper, Jr. The
third
representation is more perspicuous, however, is easier to understand,
and is therefore
more serviceable in a practical discussion of the doctrine of the
covenant. It escapes a
great deal of confusion that is incidental to the other view, and is
followed by the
majority of Reformed theologians, such as Mastricht, à Marck, Turretin,
Witsius, Heppe,
the Hodges, Shedd, Vos, Bavinck, and Honig. There is no<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.9">
essential</span>
difference between
these two representations. Says Dr. Hodge: "There is no doctrinal
difference between
those who prefer the one statement and those who prefer the other;
between those who
comprise all the facts of Scripture relating to the subject under one
covenant between
God and Christ as the representative of His people, and those who
distribute them
under two."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.10" n="46" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.11">Syst. Theol.</span> II, p. 358; cf. also Dabney, <span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.12">Lect. on Theol.,</span> p. 432; Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.13">Geref. Dogm.</span> III, p. 240</note>
This being the case, the third
mode of representing the whole matter
undoubtedly deserves the preference. But in following it we should bear
in mind what
Shedd says: "Though this distinction (between the covenant of
redemption and the
covenant of grace) is favored by Scripture statements, it does not
follow that there are
two separate and independent covenants antithetic to the covenant of
works. The
covenant of grace and redemption are two modes or phases of the one
evangelical
covenant of
mercy."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.14" n="47" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p1.15">Dogm. Theol.</span> II, p. 360</note>
</p>


<h4 id="iv.iii.ii-p1.16">B. SCRIPTURAL DATA FOR THE COVENANT OF REDEMPTION.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.ii-p2" shownumber="no">The name "counsel of peace" is derived from
<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Zech.6.13" parsed="|Zech|6|13|0|0" passage="Zech. 6:13">Zech. 6:13</scripRef>. Coccejus and others found
in this passage a reference to an agreement between the Father and the
Son. This was
clearly a mistake, for the words refer to the union of the kingly and
priestly offices in
the Messiah. The Scriptural character of the name cannot be maintained,
but this, of
course, does not detract from the reality of the counsel of peace. The
doctrine of this eternal counsel rests on the following Scriptural basis.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p3" shownumber="no">1. Scripture clearly points to the fact that the plan of
redemption was included in the
eternal decree
or counsel of God, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:4">Eph. 1:4</scripRef> ff.; 3:11; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.13" parsed="|2Thess|2|13|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:13">II Thess. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.9" parsed="|2Tim|1|9|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:9">II Tim. 1:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.5" parsed="|Jas|2|5|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:5">Jas. 2:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">I Pet. 1:2</scripRef>, etc. Now we find that in the economy of redemption there is,
in a sense, a
division of labor: the Father is the originator, the Son the executor,
and the Holy Spirit the applier. This can only be the result of a voluntary
agreement among the persons of
the Trinity, so that their internal relations assume the form of a
covenant life. In fact, it is
exactly in the trinitarian life that we find the archetype of the
historical covenants, a
covenant in the proper and fullest sense of the word, the parties
meeting on a footing of
equality, a true<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p3.6">
suntheke. </span>
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p4" shownumber="no">2. There are passages of Scripture which not only point
to the fact that the plan of
God for the salvation of sinners was eternal, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:4">Eph. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.9" parsed="|Eph|3|9|0|0" passage="Eph 3:9">3:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.11" parsed="|Eph|3|11|0|0" passage="Eph 3:11">11</scripRef>, but also
indicate that it was
of the nature of a covenant. Christ speaks of promises made to Him
before his advent,
and repeatedly refers to a commission which He had received from the
Father, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:John.5.30" parsed="|John|5|30|0|0" passage="John 5:30">John 5:30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:John.5.43" parsed="|John|5|43|0|0" passage="John 5:43">43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:John.6.38-John.6.40" parsed="|John|6|38|6|40" passage="John 6:38-40">6:38-40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:John.17.4-John.17.12" parsed="|John|17|4|17|12" passage="John 17:4-12">17:4-12</scripRef>. And in <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12-Rom.5.21" parsed="|Rom|5|12|5|21" passage="Rom. 5:12-21">Rom. 5:12-21</scripRef> and <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:22">I Cor. 15:22</scripRef> He is clearly regarded
as a  representative head, that is, as the
head of a covenant. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p5" shownumber="no">3. Wherever we have the essential elements of a covenant,
namely, contracting
parties, a promise or promises, and a condition, there we have a
covenant. In <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.7-Ps.2.9" parsed="|Ps|2|7|2|9" passage="Ps. 2:7-9">Ps. 2:7-9</scripRef>
the parties are mentioned and a promise is indicated. The Messianic
character of this
passage is
guaranteed by <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.33" parsed="|Acts|13|33|0|0" passage="Acts 13:33">Acts 13:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.5" parsed="|Heb|1|5|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:5">Heb. 1:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.5" parsed="|Heb|5|5|0|0" passage="Heb 5:5">5:5</scripRef>. Again, in <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.7-Ps.40.9" parsed="|Ps|40|7|40|9" passage="Ps. 40:7-9">Ps. 40:7-9</scripRef>, also attested as
Messianic by the New Testament (<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.5-Heb.10.7" parsed="|Heb|10|5|10|7" passage="Heb. 10:5-7">Heb. 10:5-7</scripRef>), the Messiah expresses His readiness to
do the Father's will in becoming a sacrifice for sin. Christ repeatedly
speaks of a task
which the Father has entrusted to Him, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:John.6.38" parsed="|John|6|38|0|0" passage="John 6:38">John 6:38</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:John.6.39" parsed="|John|6|39|0|0" passage="John 6:39">39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:John.10.18" parsed="|John|10|18|0|0" passage="John 10:18">10:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:John.17.4" parsed="|John|17|4|0|0" passage="John 17:4">17:4</scripRef>. The
statement in <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.29" parsed="|Luke|22|29|0|0" passage="Luke 22:29">Luke
22:29</scripRef> is particularly significant: "I appoint unto you a kingdom,
even as my Father
appointed unto me." The verb used here is<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p5.12">
diatithemi</span>, the word from which<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p5.13">
diatheke</span>
is
derived, which means to appoint by will, testament or covenant.
Moreover, in <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:John.17.5" parsed="|John|17|5|0|0" passage="John 17:5">John 17:5</scripRef>
Christ claims a
reward, and in <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.15" osisRef="Bible:John.17.6" parsed="|John|17|6|0|0" passage="John 17:6">John 17:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:John.17.9" parsed="|John|17|9|0|0" passage="John 17:9">9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.17" osisRef="Bible:John.17.24" parsed="|John|17|24|0|0" passage="John 17:24">24</scripRef> (cf. also <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p5.18" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.9-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|9|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:9-11">Phil. 2:9-11</scripRef>) He refers to His
people and His future glory as a reward given Him by the Father.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p6" shownumber="no">4. There are two Old Testament passages which connect up the idea of the
covenant
immediately with the Messiah, namely, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.3" parsed="|Ps|89|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 89:3">Ps. 89:3</scripRef>, which is based on <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.7.12-2Sam.7.14" parsed="|2Sam|7|12|7|14" passage="II Sam. 7:12-14">II
Sam. 7:12-14</scripRef>, and
is proved to be a Messianic passage by <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.5" parsed="|Heb|1|5|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:5">Heb. 1:5</scripRef>; and <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.6" parsed="|Isa|42|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 42:6">Isa. 42:6</scripRef>, where
the person referred
to is the Servant of the Lord. The connection clearly shows that this
Servant is not
merely Israel. Moreover, there are passages in which the Messiah speaks
of God as<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p6.5">
His God</span>, thus using covenant language, namely, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.22.1" parsed="|Ps|22|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 22:1">Ps. 22:1</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.22.2" parsed="|Ps|22|2|0|0" passage="Ps 22:2">2</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.8" parsed="|Ps|40|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 40:8">Ps. 40:8</scripRef>.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.ii-p6.9">C. THE SON IN THE COVENANT OF REDEMPTION.</h4>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p7" shownumber="no">1. THE OFFICIAL POSITION OF CHRIST IN THIS COVENANT. The position of Christ in the
covenant of redemption is twofold. In the first place He is Surety (Gr. egguos), a word
that is used only in <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.22" parsed="|Heb|7|22|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:22">Heb. 7:22</scripRef>. The derivation of this word is
uncertain, and therefore
cannot aid us in establishing its meaning. But the meaning is not
doubtful. A surety is one who engages to become responsible for it that the
legal obligations of another will
be met. In the covenant of redemption Christ undertook to atone for the
sins of His
people by bearing the necessary punishment, and to meet the demands of
the law for
them. And by taking the place of delinquent man He became the last Adam,
and is as
such also the Head of the covenant, the Representative of all those whom
the Father has
given Him. In the covenant of redemption, then, Christ is both Surety
and Head. He
took upon Himself the responsibilities of His people. He is also their
Surety in the
covenant of grace, which develops out of the covenant of redemption. The
question has
been raised, whether the suretyship of Christ in the counsel of peace
was conditional or
unconditional. Roman jurisprudence recognizes two kinds of suretyship,
the one
designated<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.2">
fidejussor</span>, and the other<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.3">
expromissor.</span>
The former is conditional, and the latter
unconditional. The former is a surety who undertakes to pay for another,
provided this
person does not himself render satisfaction. The burden of guilt remains
on the guilty
party until the time of payment. The latter, however, is a surety who
takes upon himself
unconditionally to pay for another, thus relieving the guilty party of
his responsibility at
once. Coccejus and his school maintained that in the counsel of peace
Christ became a
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.4">fidejussor</span>, and that consequently Old Testament believers enjoyed no complete
forgiveness of sins. From <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.25" parsed="|Rom|3|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:25">Rom. 3:25</scripRef> they inferred that for those saints
there was only a
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.6">paresis</span>, an overlooking of sin, and no<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.7">
aphesis</span>
or complete
forgiveness, until Christ really
made atonement for sin. Their opponents asserted, however, that Christ
took upon
Himself<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.8">
unconditionally</span>
to render satisfaction for His people, and therefore became a
surety in the
specific sense of an<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.9">
expromissor.</span>
This is the
only tenable position, for: (a)
Old Testament believers received full justification or forgiveness,
though the knowledge
of it was not as full and clear as it is in the New Testament
dispensation. There was no
essential difference between the status of the Old, and that of the New
Testament believers, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.1" parsed="|Ps|32|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 32:1">Ps. 32:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.2" parsed="|Ps|32|2|0|0" passage="Ps 32:2">2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.5" parsed="|Ps|32|5|0|0" passage="Ps 32:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.1-Ps.51.3" parsed="|Ps|51|1|51|3" passage="Ps 51:1-3">51:1-3</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.9-Ps.51.11" parsed="|Ps|51|9|51|11" passage="Ps 51:9-11">9-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.3" parsed="|Ps|103|3|0|0" passage="Ps 103:3">103:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.12" parsed="|Ps|103|12|0|0" passage="Ps 103:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.17" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.25" parsed="|Isa|43|25|0|0" passage="Isa. 43:25">Isa. 43:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.18" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.3" parsed="|Rom|3|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:3">Rom.
3:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.19" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.6-Rom.3.16" parsed="|Rom|3|6|3|16" passage="Rom 3:6-16">6-16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.20" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.6-Gal.3.9" parsed="|Gal|3|6|3|9" passage="Gal. 3:6-9">Gal. 3:6-9</scripRef>. The
position of Coccejus reminds one of that of the Roman Catholics with
their<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.21">
Limbus Patrum.</span>
(b) Coccejus' theory makes the work of God in making provision for the
redemption of sinners dependent on the uncertain obedience of man in an
entirely
unwarranted way. There is no sense in saying that Christ became a
conditional surety,
as if it were still possible that the sinner should pay for himself.
God's provision for the
redemption of sinners is absolute. This is not the same as saying that
He does not treat
and address the sinner as personally guilty until he is justified by
faith, for this is
exactly what God does do. (c) In <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p7.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.25" parsed="|Rom|3|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:25">Rom. 3:25</scripRef>, the passage to which
Coccejus appeals, the apostle uses the word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.23">
paresis</span>
(overlooking or
passing over), not because the individual
believers in the Old Testament did not receive full pardon of sin, but
because during the
old dispensation the forgiveness of sin assumed the form of a<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p7.24">
paresis</span>, as long as sin had
not been adequately punished in Christ, and the absolute righteousness of
Christ had
not been revealed in the cross.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p8" shownumber="no">2. THE CHARACTER THIS COVENANT ASSUMED FOR CHRIST. Though the covenant of
redemption is the eternal basis of the covenant of grace, and, as far as
sinners are
concerned, also its eternal prototype, it was for Christ a covenant of
works rather than a
covenant of grace. For Him the law of the original covenant applied,
namely, that
eternal life could only be obtained by meeting the demands of the law.
As the last Adam
Christ obtains eternal life for sinners in reward for faithful
obedience, and not at all as
an unmerited gift of grace. And what He has done as the Representative
and Surety of
all His people, they are no more in duty bound to do. The work has been
done, the
reward is merited, and believers are made partakers of the fruits of
Christ's
accomplished work through grace.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p9" shownumber="no">3. CHRIST'S WORK IN THE COVENANT LIMITED BY THE DECREE OF ELECTION. Some have
identified the covenant of redemption and election; but this is clearly
a mistake. Election
has reference to the selection of the persons destined to be the heirs
of everlasting glory
in Christ. The counsel of redemption, on the other hand, refers to the
way in which and
the means by which grace and glory are prepared for sinners. Election,
indeed, also has reference to Christ and reckons with Christ, for believers are
said to be elected in Him.
Christ Himself is, in a sense, the object of election, but in the
counsel of redemption He
is one of the contracting parties. The Father deals with Christ as the
Surety of His
people. Logically, election precedes the counsel of redemption, because
the suretyship
of Christ, like His atonement, is particular. If there were no preceding
election, it would necessarily be universal. Moreover, to turn this around
would be equivalent to making
the suretyship of Christ the ground of election, while Scripture bases
election entirely on
the good pleasure of God.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p10" shownumber="no">4. CONNECTION OF THE SACRAMENTS USED BY CHRIST WITH THE COVENANT. Christ used
the sacraments of both the Old and the New Testament. It is evident,
however, that they
could not mean for Him what they do for believers. In His case they
could be neither
symbols nor seals of saving grace; nor could they be instrumental in
strengthening
saving faith. If we distinguish, as we are doing, between the covenant
of redemption
and the covenant of grace, then the sacraments were for Christ in all
probability
sacraments of the former rather than of the latter. Christ took upon
Himself in the
covenant of redemption to meet the demands of the law. These had assumed
a definite
form when Christ was on earth and also included positive religious
regulations. The
sacraments formed a part of this law, and therefore Christ had to
subject Himself to
them, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.15" parsed="|Matt|3|15|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:15">Matt. 3:15</scripRef>. At the same time they could serve as seals of the
promises which the
Father had given to the Son. The objection may be raised to this
representation that the
sacraments were indeed fit symbols and seals of the removal of sin and
of the
nourishment of spiritual life, but from the nature of the case could not
have this
meaning for Christ, who had no sin and needed no spiritual nourishment.
The objection
may be met, at least to a certain extent, by calling attention to the
fact that Christ
appeared on earth in a public and official capacity. Though He had no
personal sin, and
no sacrament could therefore signify and seal to Him its removal, yet He
was made to
be sin for His people, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.21" parsed="|2Cor|5|21|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:21">II Cor. 5:21</scripRef>, by being burdened with their guilt;
and consequently
the sacraments could signify the removal of this burden, according to
the promise of the
Father, after He had completed His atoning work. Again, though we cannot
speak of
Christ as exercising<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p10.3">
saving faith</span>
in the sense in
which this is required of us, yet as
Mediator He had to exercise faith in a wider sense by accepting the
promises of the
Father believingly, and by trusting the Father for their fulfilment. And
the sacraments
could serve as signs and seals to strengthen this faith as far as His
human nature was
concerned. </p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.ii-p10.4">D. REQUIREMENTS AND PROMISES IN THE COVENANT OF REDEMPTION.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.ii-p11" shownumber="no">1. REQUIREMENTS. The Father
required of the Son, who appeared in this covenant as
the Surety and Head of His people, and as the last Adam, that He should
make amends for the sin of Adam and of those whom the Father had given Him, and
should do what
Adam failed to do by keeping the law and thus securing eternal life for
all His spiritual
progeny. This requirement included the following particulars:
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p12" shownumber="no">a. That He should assume human nature by being born of a
woman, and thus enter
into temporal relations; and that He should assume this nature with its
present
infirmities,
though without sin, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.10" parsed="|Heb|2|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:10">Heb. 2:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.11" parsed="|Heb|2|11|0|0" passage="Heb 2:11">11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.14" parsed="|Heb|2|14|0|0" passage="Heb 2:14">14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.15" parsed="|Heb|2|15|0|0" passage="Heb 2:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.15" parsed="|Heb|4|15|0|0" passage="Heb 4:15">4:15</scripRef>. It was absolutely
essential that He should become one of the human
race. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p13" shownumber="no">b. That He, who as the Son of God was superior to the
law, should place Himself
under the law; that He should enter, not merely into the natural, but
also into the penal
and federal relation to the law, in order to pay the penalty for sin and
to merit
everlasting life
for the elect, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.8" parsed="|Ps|40|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 40:8">Ps. 40:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.17" parsed="|Matt|5|17|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:17">Matt. 5:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.18" parsed="|Matt|5|18|0|0" passage="Matt 5:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:John.8.28" parsed="|John|8|28|0|0" passage="John 8:28">John 8:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:John.8.29" parsed="|John|8|29|0|0" passage="John 8:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.6-Phil.2.8" parsed="|Phil|2|6|2|8" passage="Phil. 2:6-8">Phil. 2:6-8</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p14" shownumber="no">That He, after having merited forgiveness of sins and
eternal life for His own, should apply to them the fruits of His merits: complete pardon, and the
renewal of their
lives through the powerful operation of the Holy Spirit. By doing this
He would render
it absolutely certain that believers would consecrate their lives to
God, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:John.10.16" parsed="|John|10|16|0|0" passage="John 10:16">John 10:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:John.16.14" parsed="|John|16|14|0|0" passage="John 16:14">John 16:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:John.16.15" parsed="|John|16|15|0|0" passage="John 16:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:John.17.12" parsed="|John|17|12|0|0" passage="John 17:12">17:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:John.17.19-John.17.22" parsed="|John|17|19|17|22" passage="John 17:19-22">19-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2" parsed="|Heb|2|0|0|0" passage="Heb. 2">Heb. 2</scripRef>: 10-13; 7:25.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p15" shownumber="no">2. PROMISES. The promises of the Father
were in keeping with His requirements. He
promised the Son all that was required for the performance of His great
and
comprehensive task, thereby excluding all uncertainty in the operation
of this covenant.
These promises included the following:
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p16" shownumber="no">a. That He would prepare the Son a body, which would be a
fit tabernacle for him; a
body in part prepared by the immediate agency of God and uncontaminated
by sin, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">Luke 1:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.5" parsed="|Heb|10|5|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:5">Heb. 10:5</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p17" shownumber="no">b. That He would endow Him with the necessary gifts and
graces for the
performance of His task, and particularly would anoint Him for the
Messianic offices by
giving Him the Spirit without measure, a promise that was fulfilled
especially at the  time
of His baptism, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.1" parsed="|Isa|42|1|0|0" passage="Isa. 42:1">Isa. 42:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.2" parsed="|Isa|42|2|0|0" passage="Isa 42:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.61.1" parsed="|Isa|61|1|0|0" passage="Isa 61:1">61:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:John.3.31" parsed="|John|3|31|0|0" passage="John 3:31">John 3:31</scripRef>. </p>
<p id="iv.iii.ii-p18" shownumber="no">c. That He would support Him in the performance of His
work, would deliver Him
from the power of death, and would thus enable Him to destroy the
dominion of Satan
and to establish
the Kingdom of God, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.1-Isa.42.7" parsed="|Isa|42|1|42|7" passage="Isa. 42:1-7">Isa. 42:1-7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.49.8" parsed="|Isa|49|8|0|0" passage="Isa 49:8">49:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.8-Ps.16.11" parsed="|Ps|16|8|16|11" passage="Ps. 16:8-11">Ps. 16:8-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.25-Acts.2.28" parsed="|Acts|2|25|2|28" passage="Acts 2:25-28">Acts 2:25-28</scripRef>. </p>
<p id="iv.iii.ii-p19" shownumber="no">d. That He would enable Him, as a reward for His
accomplished work, to send out
the Holy Spirit for the formation of His spiritual body, and for the
instruction, guidance,
and protection
of the Church, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p19.1" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:John.16.13" parsed="|John|16|13|0|0" passage="John 16:13">16:13</scripRef>, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:John.16.14" parsed="|John|16|14|0|0" passage="John 16:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.33" parsed="|Acts|2|33|0|0" passage="Acts 2:33">Acts 2:33</scripRef>. </p>
<p id="iv.iii.ii-p20" shownumber="no">e. That He would give unto Him a numerous seed in reward for His
accomplished
work, a seed so numerous that it would be a multitude which no man could
number, so
that ultimately the Kingdom of the Messiah would embrace the people of
all nations
and tongues, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.22.27" parsed="|Ps|22|27|0|0" passage="Ps. 22:27">Ps. 22:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.72.17" parsed="|Ps|72|17|0|0" passage="Ps 72:17">72:17</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p21" shownumber="no">f. That He would commit to Him all power in heaven and on
earth for the
government of the world and of His Church, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p21.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.18" parsed="|Matt|28|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:18">Matt. 28:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20-Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|20|1|22" passage="Eph. 1:20-22">Eph. 1:20-22</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.9-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|9|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:9-11">Phil. 2:9-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.5-Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|5|2|9" passage="Heb. 2:5-9">Heb. 2:5-9</scripRef>; and would finally reward Him as Mediator with the glory which He
as the Son of
God had with the Father before the world was, <scripRef id="iv.iii.ii-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:John.17.5" parsed="|John|17|5|0|0" passage="John 17:5">John 17:5</scripRef>.
</p>


<h4 id="iv.iii.ii-p21.6">E. THE RELATION OF THIS COVENANT TO THE COVENANT OF GRACE</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.ii-p22" shownumber="no">The following points indicate the relation in which this
covenant stands to the
covenant of
grace: </p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p23" shownumber="no">1. The counsel of redemption is the eternal prototype of
the historical covenant of
grace. This accounts for the fact that many combine the two into a
single covenant. The
former is eternal, that is, from eternity, and the latter, temporal in
the sense that it is
realized in time. The former is a compact between the Father and the Son
as the Surety
and Head of the elect, while the latter is a compact between the triune
God and the elect  sinner
in the Surety. </p>
<p id="iv.iii.ii-p24" shownumber="no">2. The counsel of redemption is the firm and eternal
foundation of the covenant of
grace. If there had been no eternal counsel of peace between the Father
and the Son,
there could have been no agreement between the triune God and sinful men.
The
counsel of redemption makes the covenant of grace possible.
</p>
<p id="iv.iii.ii-p25" shownumber="no">3. The counsel of redemption consequently also gives
efficacy to the covenant of
grace, for in it the means are provided for the establishment and
execution of the latter.
It is only by faith that the sinner can obtain the blessings of the
covenant, and in the
counsel of redemption the way of faith is opened. The Holy Spirit, which
produces faith
in the sinner, was promised to Christ by the Father, and the acceptance
of the way of life
through faith was guaranteed by Christ.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.ii-p26" shownumber="no">The
covenant of redemption may be defined as<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.ii-p26.1">
the agreement between the Father, giving the Son as Head and Redeemer
of the elect, and the Son, voluntarily taking the place of those whom the Father had given Him.</span></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.iii.iii" next="iv.iii.iv" prev="iv.iii.ii" title="III. Nature of the Covenant of Grace">
<h2 id="iv.iii.iii-p0.1">III. Nature of the Covenant of Grace</h2>
<p id="iv.iii.iii-p1" shownumber="no">In a discussion of the nature of the covenant of grace
several points come up for
consideration, such as the distinction between it and the covenant of
works, the
contracting parties, the contents, the characteristics of the covenant,
and the place of
Christ in the covenant.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iii-p1.1">A. COMPARISON OF THE COVENANT OF GRACE AND THE COVENANT OF WORKS.</h4>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p2" shownumber="no">1. POINTS OF SIMILARITY. The points of
agreement are of a rather general nature. The
two covenants agree as to (a) the author: God is the author of both; He
only could
establish such covenants; (b) the contracting parties, which are in both
cases God and
man; (c) the external form, namely, condition and promise; (d) the
contents of the
promise which is in both cases eternal life; and (e) the general aim,
which is the glory of God.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p3" shownumber="no">2. POINTS OF DIFFERENCE. (a) In the
covenant of works God appears as Creator and
Lord; in the covenant of grace, as Redeemer and Father. The
establishment of the former
was prompted by God's love and benevolence; that of the latter, by His
mercy and
special grace. (b) In the covenant of works man appears simply as God's
creature,
rightly related to his God; in the covenant of grace he appears as a
sinner who has
perverted his ways, and can only appear as a party in Christ, the
Surety. Consequently,
there is no mediator in the former, while there is in the latter. (c)
The covenant of works
was contingent on the uncertain obedience of a changeable man, while the
covenant of
grace rests on the obedience of Christ as Mediator, which is absolute
and certain. (d) In
the covenant of works the keeping of the law is the way of life; in the
covenant of grace,
it is faith in Jesus Christ. Whatever faith was required in the covenant
of works was a
part of the righteousness of the law; in the covenant of grace, however,
it is merely the
organ by which we take possession of the grace of God in Jesus Christ.
(e) The covenant
of works was partly known by nature, since the law of God was written in
the heart of
man; but the covenant of grace is known exclusively through a special
positive  revelation.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iii-p3.1">B. THE CONTRACTING PARTIES.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.iii-p4" shownumber="no">Just as in the covenant of works, so in the covenant of
grace God is the first of the
contracting parties, the party that takes the initiative, and graciously
determines the
relation in which the second party will stand to Him. He appears in this
covenant,
however, not merely as a sovereign and a benevolent God, but also, and
especially, as a
gracious and forgiving Father, willing to pardon sin and to restore
sinners to His
blessed communion.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p5" shownumber="no">It is not easy to determine precisely who the second
party is. In general it may be
said that God naturally established the covenant of grace with fallen
man. Historically,
there is no definite indication of any limitation until we come to the
time of Abraham. In
course of time it became perfectly evident, however, that this new
covenant relation was
not meant to include all men. When God formally established the covenant
with
Abraham, He limited it to the patriarch and his seed. Consequently, the
question arises as to the exact limits of the covenant.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p6" shownumber="no">Reformed theologians are not unanimous in answering this
question. Some simply
say that God made the covenant with the sinner, but this suggests no
limitation
whatsoever, and therefore does not satisfy. Others assert that He
established it with
Abraham and his seed, that is, his natural, but especially his
spiritual, descendants; or, put in a more general form, with believers and
their seed. The great majority of them,
however, maintain that He entered into covenant relationship with the
elect or the elect
sinner in Christ. This position was taken by earlier as well as by later
representatives of
federal theology. Even Bullinger says the "covenant of God includes
the entire seed of
Abraham, that is, the believers." He finds this to be in harmony
with Paul's
interpretation of "the seed" in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3" parsed="|Gal|3|0|0|0" passage="Gal. 3">Gal. 3</scripRef>. At the same time he
also holds that the children of
believers are in a certain sense included in the covenant.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.iii-p6.2" n="48" place="foot">Cf. the quotations in A. J. Van't Hooft, <span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p6.3">De Theologie van Heinrich Bullinger,</span> pp. 47, 172.</note> And Olevianus, co-author
with Ursinus of the Heidelberg Catechism, says that God established the
covenant with
"all those whom God, out of the mass of lost men, has decreed to
adopt as children by
grace, and to endow them with faith."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.iii-p6.4" n="49" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p6.5">Van het Wezen des Genade-Verbondts Tesschen God ende de Uitverkorene.</span> Afd. I, par. 1.</note>
This is also the position of Mastricht,
Turretin,
Owen, Gib, Boston, Witsius, à Marck, Francken, Brakel, Comrie, Kuyper,
Bavinck,
Hodge, Vos, and others.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p7" shownumber="no">But now the question arises, What induced these
theologians to speak of the
covenant as made with the elect in spite of all the practical
difficulties involved? Were
they not aware of these difficulties? It appears from their writings
that they were fully conscious of them. But they felt that it was necessary to
contemplate the covenant first
of all in its most profound sense, as it is realized in the lives of
believers. While they
understood that others had a place in the covenant in some sense of the
word, they nevertheless felt that it was a subordinate place, and that their
relation to it was
calculated to be subservient to the full realization of it in a life of
friendship with God.
And this is no wonder in view of the following considerations:
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p8" shownumber="no">1. They who identified the covenant of redemption and the
covenant of grace, and
considered it un-Scriptural to distinguish the two, naturally thought of
it first of all as a
covenant established with Christ as the representative Head of all those
whom the
Father had given Him; a covenant in which He became the Surety of the
elect and thus
guaranteed their complete redemption. In fact, in the covenant of
redemption only the
elect come into consideration. The situation is practically the same in
the case of those
who distinguish two covenants, but insist on their close relationship and
represent the
covenant of redemption as the eternal basis of the
covenant of grace, for in the former
only the grace of God, as it is glorified and perfected in the elect, comes
into
consideration.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p9" shownumber="no">2. Even in the history of the establishment of the
covenant with Abraham,
interpreted in the light of the rest of Scripture, Reformed theologians
found abundant
evidence that fundamentally the covenant of grace is a covenant established
with those
who are in Christ. The Bible distinguishes a twofold seed of Abraham.
The beginning of
this is distinctly found in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.21.12" parsed="|Gen|21|12|0|0" passage="Gen. 21:12">Gen. 21:12</scripRef>, where we find God saying to
Abraham, "In Isaac
shall thy seed be called," thus ruling out Ishmael. Paul, in
interpreting these words
speaks of Isaac as a child of promise, and by "a child of
promise" he does not simply
mean a promised child, but a child that was not born in the ordinary
way, but, in virtue
of a promise, by a supernatural operation of God. He also connects with
it the idea of a
child to whom the promise belongs. According to him the expression,
"in Isaac shall thy
seed be called," indicates that "it is not the children of the
flesh that are children of God;
but the children of the promise are reckoned for a seed." <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.8" parsed="|Rom|9|8|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:8">Rom. 9:8</scripRef>.
The same idea is
expressed in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.28" parsed="|Gal|4|28|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:28">Gal. 4:28</scripRef>, "Now we, brethren, as Isaac was, are
children of promise," and
as such also heirs of the promised blessings, cf. vs. 30. This is
entirely in harmony with
what the apostle says in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.16" parsed="|Gal|3|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:16">Gal. 3:16</scripRef>: "Now to Abraham were the
promises spoken, and to
his seed. He saith not, And to seeds, as of many; but as of one, And to
thy seed, which is
Christ." But the seed is not limited to Christ, but includes all
believers. "And if ye are
Christ's, then are ye Abraham's seed, heirs
according to promise." <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.29" parsed="|Gal|3|29|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:29">Gal. 3:29</scripRef>. W. Strong
in his<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p9.6">
Discourse of the Two Covenants</span>
calls attention
to the following subordination in the
establishment of the covenant. He says that it was made "(1) first
and immediately with
Christ the second Adam: (2) in Him with all the faithful: (3) in them
with their seed."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.iii-p9.7" n="50" place="foot">p. 193</note></p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p10" shownumber="no">3. Still another factor should be taken into consideration. Reformed
theologians
were deeply conscious of the contrast between the covenant of works and
the covenant
of grace. They felt that in the former the reward of the covenant was
dependent on the
uncertain obedience of man and as a result failed to materialize, while
in the covenant
of grace the full realization of the promises is absolutely sure in
virtue of the perfect obedience of Jesus Christ. Its realization is sure
through the operation of the grace of
God, but, of course, sure only for those who are partakers of that
grace. They felt
constrained to stress this aspect of the covenant especially over against
the Arminians
and Neonomians, who virtually changed it into a new covenant of works,
and made
salvation once more dependent on the work of man, that is, on faith and
evangelical
obedience. For this reason they stressed the close connection between the
covenant of
redemption and the covenant of grace, and even hesitated to speak of
faith as the
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p10.1">
condition</span>
of the covenant of grace. Walker tells us that some of the Scottish
divines were
opposed to the distinction of two covenants, because they saw in it a
"tendency . . . to
Neonomianism, or, as the covenant of reconciliation (i.e., the covenant
of grace as
distinguished from that of redemption) was external in the visible
Church, even a sort
of bar to immediate dealing with the Saviour, and entrance by an
appropriating faith
into living union with Him."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.iii-p10.2" n="51" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p10.3">Scottish Theology and Thologians,</span> pp. 77 f.</note>
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p11" shownumber="no">4. All in all it would seem safe to say that Reformed
theology contemplated the
covenant, not primarily as a means ministering to an end, but as an end
in itself, a
relation of friendship; not first of all as representing and including a
number of external
privileges, a set of promises, conditionally held out to man, a good
merely offered unto
him; but primarily as the expression of blessings freely given, of
privileges improved by
the grace of God for spiritual ends, of promises accepted by a faith
which is the gift of
God, and of a good realized, at least in principle, through the
operation of the Holy
Spirit in the heart. And because in its estimation all this was included
in the covenant
idea, and the blessings of the covenant are realized only in those that
are actually saved,
it stressed the fact that the covenant of grace was established between
God and the
elect. But in doing this it did not intend to deny that the covenant
also has a broader aspect.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p12" shownumber="no">Dr. Vos says with reference to this view: "Het
behoeft nauwelijks herinnerd to
worden, hoe met dit alles geenszins bedoeld is, dat de verbondsbediening
van de
verkiezing uitgaat, noch ook dat alle niet-uitverkorenen buiten iedere
relatie tot deze
verbonds-bediening staan. Het is veelmeer zoo bedoeld, dat uit 't
gesterkt verbondsbewustzijn de zekerheid aangaande de verkiezing zich ontwikkelen moet;
dat door heel
de verbonds-bediening heen, ook de volstrekte, alomvattende beloften
Gods, zooals zij
uit de verkiezing voortvloeien moeten worden in het oog gehouden, bij
Woord en
Sacrament beide; dat eindelijk het wezen des verbonds, deszelfs volle
realiseering
slechts bij de ware kinderen Gods wordt aangetroffen, en dus niet wijder
is dan de
uitverkiezing. Vooral op het tweede punt dient gelet te worden. Behalve
dat er overal,
waar Gods verbond bediend wordt, eene verzegeling is van dezen inhoud: In
de
vooronderstelling der aanwezigheid van geloof, wordt u het recht op alle
verbondsgoederen verzekerd — behalve dat, zeggen wij, is er steeds een
plechtige
betuiging en verzegeling, dat God in alle uitverkorenen den geheelen
omvang des
verbonds will verwerkelijken."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.iii-p12.1" n="52" place="foot">
That is, "It need hardly be said that with all this it is not meant
that the administration of the covenant
originates from the election, nor that all who are not elect stand
outside of every relation to this
administration of the covenant. It is far more intended thus, that out
of the strengthened covenant
consciousness the certainty respecting the election must develop itself;
that through the entire
administration of the covenant, also the absolute, all-comprehensive
promises of God, as they issue from
the election, must be borne in mind in connection with both Word and
Sacrament; that, finally, the essence
of the covenant, its full realization, is found only in the true
children of God, and therefore is not more
extensive than the election. Attention should be paid especially to the
second point. Besides that
everywhere, where God's covenant is administered, there is a seal having
this content: In the supposition
of the presence of faith, you are assured of the right to all the
blessings of the covenant, — besides that,
we say, there is always a solemn testimony and seal, that God will
realize the whole content of the
covenant in the elect."<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p12.2">
De Verbondsleer in de Gereformeerde Theologie</span>, pp. 46 f.</note>
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p13" shownumber="no">The idea that the covenant is fully realized only in the
elect is a perfectly Scriptural
idea, as
appears, for instance, from <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.31-Jer.31.34" parsed="|Jer|31|31|31|34" passage="Jer. 31:31-34">Jer. 31:31-34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.8-Heb.8.12" parsed="|Heb|8|8|8|12" passage="Heb. 8:8-12">Heb. 8:8-12</scripRef>. Moreover, it is also
entirely 
in line with the relation in which the covenant of grace stands to the
covenant of
redemption. If in the latter Christ becomes Surety only for the elect,
then the real
substance of the former must be limited to them also. Scripture strongly
emphasizes the
fact that the covenant of grace, in distinction from the covenant of
works, is an
inviolable covenant, in which the promises of God are always realized,
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.54.10" parsed="|Isa|54|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 54:10">Isa. 54:10</scripRef>. This
cannot be intended conditionally, for then it would be no special
characteristic of the
covenant of grace, but would apply to the covenant of works as well. And
yet, this is
exactly one of the important points in which the former differs from the
latter, that it is
no more dependent on the uncertain obedience of man, but only on the
absolute
faithfulness of God. The covenant promises will surely be realized, but —
only in the
lives of the
elect. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p14" shownumber="no">But now the question arises, whether in the estimation of
these Reformed
theologians all the non-elect are outside of the covenant of grace<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.1">
in every sense of the word.</span>
Brakel virtually takes this position, but he is not in line with the
majority. They
realized very well that a covenant of grace, which in no sense of the
word included
others than the elect, would be purely individual, while the covenant of
grace is
represented in Scripture as an organic idea. They were fully aware of
the fact that,
according to God's special revelation in both the Old and the New
Testament, the
covenant as a historical phenomenon is perpetuated in
successive generations and
includes many in whom the covenant life is never realized. And whenever
they desired
to include this aspect of the covenant in their definition, they would
say that it was
established<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.2">
with believers
and their seed.</span>
It should be borne in mind, however, that this
description of the second party in the covenant does not imply that the
covenant is
established with
men<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.3">
in the quality of believers</span>, for faith
itself is a fruit of the covenant.
Dr. Bavinck correctly says: "Maar het verbond der genade gaat aan het
geloof vooraf.
Het geloof is geen voorwaarde<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.4">
tot</span>
het verbond, maar<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.5">
in</span>
het
verbond; de weg, om al de
andere goederen van dat verbond deelachtig te worden en te
genieten."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.6" n="53" place="foot">That is, "But the covenant of grace precedes faith. Faith is not a
condition<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.7">
to</span>
the covenant, but<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.8">
in</span>
the covenant; the way to obtain possession of and to enjoy all the other
blessings of the covenant."<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.9">
Roeping en Wedergeboorte</span>, p. 108.</note>
The description "believers and their seed" merely serves as a
convenient practical
designation of the limits of the covenant. The question of harmonizing
these two
aspects of the covenant will come up later on. The covenant of grace may
be defined as
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p14.10">that gracious agreement between the
offended God and the offending but elect sinner, in which God promises salvation through faith
in Christ, and the sinner accepts this believingly, promising a life of faith and
obedience. </span> </p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iii-p14.11">C. THE CONTENTS OF THE COVENANT OF GRACE.</h4>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p15" shownumber="no">1. THE PROMISES OF GOD. The main promise of God, which includes all other
promises, is contained in the oft-repeated words, "I will be a God
unto thee, and to thy
seed after thee." <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.7" parsed="|Gen|17|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 17:7">Gen. 17:7</scripRef>. This promise is found in several Old
and New Testament
passages which speak of the introduction of a new phase of the covenant
life, or refer to
a renewal of the
covenant, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.33" parsed="|Jer|31|33|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:33">Jer. 31:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Jer.32.38-Jer.32.40" parsed="|Jer|32|38|32|40" passage="Jer 32:38-40">32:38-40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.34.23-Ezek.34.25" parsed="|Ezek|34|23|34|25" passage="Ezek. 34:23-25">Ezek. 34:23-25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.34.30" parsed="|Ezek|34|30|0|0" passage="Ezek 34:30">30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.34.31" parsed="|Ezek|34|31|0|0" passage="Ezek 34:31">31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.25-Ezek.36.28" parsed="|Ezek|36|25|36|28" passage="Ezek 36:25-28">36:25-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.37.26" parsed="|Ezek|37|26|0|0" passage="Ezek 37:26">37:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.37.27" parsed="|Ezek|37|27|0|0" passage="Ezek 37:27">27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.10" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.6.16-2Cor.6.18" parsed="|2Cor|6|16|6|18" passage="II Cor. 6:16-18">II Cor. 6:16-18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.11" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.10" parsed="|Heb|8|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 8:10">Heb. 8:10</scripRef>. The promise is fully realized when at last the
new Jerusalem
descends out of heaven from God, and the tabernacle of God is pitched
among men.
Consequently we hear the last echo of it in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.12" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.3" parsed="|Rev|21|3|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:3">Rev. 21:3</scripRef>. This grand
promise is re-echoed
time and again in the jubilant exaltation of those who stand in covenant
relationship to
God, "Jehovah is my God." This one promise really includes all
other promises, such as (a) the promise of various temporal blessings, which
often serve to symbolize those of a spiritual kind; (b) the promise of justification, including the adoption
of children, and a
claim to life eternal; (c) the promise of the Spirit of God for the
application, full and free,
of the work of redemption and of all the blessings of salvation; and (d)
the promise of
final
glorification in a life that never ends. Cf. <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.13" osisRef="Bible:Job.19.25-Job.19.27" parsed="|Job|19|25|19|27" passage="Job 19:25-27">Job 19:25-27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.11" parsed="|Ps|16|11|0|0" passage="Ps. 16:11">Ps. 16:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.24-Ps.73.26" parsed="|Ps|73|24|73|26" passage="Ps 73:24-26">73:24-26</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.16" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.25" parsed="|Isa|43|25|0|0" passage="Isa. 43:25">Isa. 43:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.17" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.33" parsed="|Jer|31|33|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:33">Jer. 31:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.18" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.34" parsed="|Jer|31|34|0|0" passage="Jer 31:34">34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.19" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.27" parsed="|Ezek|36|27|0|0" passage="Ezek. 36:27">Ezek. 36:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.20" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.2" parsed="|Dan|12|2|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:2">Dan. 12:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.21" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.3" parsed="|Dan|12|3|0|0" passage="Dan 12:3">3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.22" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:5">Gal. 4:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.23" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.6" parsed="|Gal|4|6|0|0" passage="Gal 4:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.24" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.7" parsed="|Titus|3|7|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:7">Tit. 3:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.25" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.7" parsed="|Heb|11|7|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:7">Heb. 11:7</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p15.26" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.5" parsed="|Jas|2|5|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:5">Jas. 2:5</scripRef>.</p>
<p id="iv.iii.iii-p16" shownumber="no">2. THE RESPONSE OF MAN. The assent or
response of man to these promises of God
naturally appears in various forms, the nature of the response being
determined by the
promises. (a) In general the relation between the covenant God and the
single believer
or believers collectively is represented as the close relationship
between man and wife,
bridegroom and bride, a father and his children. This implies that the
response of those who share the covenant blessings will be one of true,
faithful, trustful, consecrated, and
devoted love. (b) To the general promise, "I will be thy God,"
man responds by saying,
"I will belong to thy people," and by casting his lot with the
people of God. (c) And to
the promise of justification unto the forgiveness of sins, the adoption
of children, and
eternal life, he responds by saving faith in Jesus Christ, by trust in
Him for time and eternity, and by a life of obedience and consecration to God.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iii-p16.1">D. THE CHARACTERISTICS OF THE COVENANT OF GRACE.</h4>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p17" shownumber="no">1. IT IS A GRACIOUS COVENANT. This
covenant may be called a gracious covenant, (a)
because in it God allows a Surety to meet our obligations; (b) because
He Himself
provides the Surety in the person of His Son, who meets the demands of
justice; and (c)
because by His grace, revealed in the operation of the Holy Spirit, He
enables man to
live up to His covenant responsibilities. The covenant originates in the
grace of God, is
executed in virtue of the grace of God, and is realized in the lives of
sinners by the grace
of God. It is grace from the beginning to the end for the sinner.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p18" shownumber="no">2. IT IS A TRINITARIAN COVENANT. The triune
God is operative in the covenant of
grace. It has its origin in the elective love and grace of the Father,
finds its judicial
foundation in the suretyship of the Son, and is fully realized in the
lives of sinners only
by the effective
application of the Holy Spirit, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:John.1.16" parsed="|John|1|16|0|0" passage="John 1:16">John 1:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.1-Eph.1.14" parsed="|Eph|1|1|1|14" passage="Eph. 1:1-14">Eph. 1:1-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8" parsed="|Eph|2|8|0|0" passage="Eph 2:8">2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">I Pet. 1:2</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p19" shownumber="no">3. IT IS AN ETERNAL AND THEREFORE UNBREAKABLE COVENANT. When we speak of it as
an eternal covenant, we have reference to a future rather than to a past
eternity, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p19.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.19" parsed="|Gen|17|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 17:19">Gen. 17:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.23.5" parsed="|2Sam|23|5|0|0" passage="II Sam. 23:5">II Sam. 23:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.20" parsed="|Heb|13|20|0|0" passage="Heb. 13:20">Heb. 13:20</scripRef>. Past eternity can be ascribed to it only, if we do not
distinguish between it and the covenant of redemption. The fact that the
covenant is
eternal also implies that it is inviolable; and this is one of the
reasons why it can be
called a testament, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.17" parsed="|Heb|9|17|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:17">Heb. 9:17</scripRef>. God remains forever true to His covenant
and will
invariably bring it to full realization in the elect. This does not
mean, however, that man
cannot and never will break the covenant relationship in which he
stands.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p20" shownumber="no">4. IT IS A PARTICULAR AND NOT A UNIVERSAL COVENANT. This means (a) that it will not
be realized in all men, as some Universalists claim, and also that God
did not intend
that it should be realized in the lives of all, as Pelagians, Arminians,
and Lutherans teach; (b) that even as an external covenant relation it does not
extend to all those to
whom the gospel is preached, for many of them are not willing to be
incorporated in the
covenant; and (c) that the offer of the covenant does not come to all,
since there have
been many individuals and even nations who were never made acquainted
with the
way of salvation. Some of the older Lutherans claim that the covenant
may be called
universal, because there have been periods in history when it was
offered to the human
race as a whole, as for instance, in Adam, in Noah and his family, and
even in the days
of the apostles. But there is no ground for making Adam and Noah<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p20.1">
representative </span>
recipients of the offer of the covenant; and the apostles certainly did
not evangelize the
whole world. Some Reformed theologians, as Musculus, Polanus, and
Wollebius, and  others,
spoke of a<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p20.2">
foedus generale</span>, in distinction
from the<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p20.3">
foedus speciale ac sempiternum</span>,
but in doing this they had in mind the general covenant of God with all
creatures, men
and beasts, established by Noah. The New Testament dispensation of the
covenant may
be called universal in the sense that in it the covenant is extended to
all nations, and is
no more limited to the Jews, as it was in the old dispensation.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p21" shownumber="no">5. IT IS ESSENTIALLY THE SAME IN ALL DISPENSATIONS, THOUGH ITS FORM OF ADMINISTRATION CHANGES. This is contradicted by all
those who claim that Old
Testament saints were saved in another manner than New Testament
believers, as for
instance, Pelagians and Socinians, who hold that God gave additional
help in the
example and teachings of Christ; the Roman Catholics, who maintain that
the Old
Testament saints
were in the<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p21.1">
Limbus Patrum</span>
until Christ's
descent into hades; the
followers of Coccejus, who assert that Old Testament believers enjoyed
only a<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p21.2">
paresis</span>
(a passing over) and no<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p21.3">
aphesis</span>
(full forgiveness of sins); and present-day
dispensationalists, who distinguish several different covenants
(Scofield mentions 7;
Milligan 9), and insist on the necessity of keeping them distinct. The
unity of the
covenant in all dispensations is proved by the following:</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p22" shownumber="no">a. The summary expression of the covenant is the same
throughout, both in the Old
and New Testament: "I will be thy God." It is the expression
of the essential content of
the covenant
with Abraham, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.7" parsed="|Gen|17|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 17:7">Gen. 17:7</scripRef>, of the Sinaitic covenant, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.19.5" parsed="|Exod|19|5|0|0" passage="Ex. 19:5">Ex. 19:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.1" parsed="|Exod|20|1|0|0" passage="Ex 20:1">20:1</scripRef>, of the
covenant of the Plains of Moab, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Deut.29.13" parsed="|Deut|29|13|0|0" passage="Deut. 29:13">Deut. 29:13</scripRef>, of the Davidic covenant, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.7.14" parsed="|2Sam|7|14|0|0" passage="II Sam. 7:14">II
Sam. 7:14</scripRef>, and
of the new covenant, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.33" parsed="|Jer|31|33|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:33">Jer. 31:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.10" parsed="|Heb|8|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 8:10">Heb. 8:10</scripRef>. This promise is really an
all-comprehensive
summary and contains a guarantee of the most perfect covenant blessings.
Christ infers
from the fact that God is called the God of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob,
that those
patriarchs are in possession of eternal life, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.32" parsed="|Matt|22|32|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:32">Matt. 22:32</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p23" shownumber="no">b. The Bible teaches that there is but a single gospel by
which men can be saved.
And because the gospel is nothing but the revelation of the covenant of
grace, it follows
that there is also but one covenant. This gospel was already heard in
the maternal
promise, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.15" parsed="|Gen|3|15|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:15">Gen. 3:15</scripRef>, was preached unto Abraham, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.8" parsed="|Gal|3|8|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:8">Gal. 3:8</scripRef>, and may not be
supplanted
by any Judaistic
gospel, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.8" parsed="|Gal|1|8|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:8">Gal. 1:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.9" parsed="|Gal|1|9|0|0" passage="Gal 1:9">9</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p24" shownumber="no">c. Paul argues at length over against the Judaists that
the way in which Abraham
obtained salvation is typical for New Testament believers, no matter
whether they be
Jews or
Gentiles, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p24.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.9-Rom.4.25" parsed="|Rom|4|9|4|25" passage="Rom. 4:9-25">Rom. 4:9-25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p24.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.7-Gal.3.9" parsed="|Gal|3|7|3|9" passage="Gal. 3:7-9">Gal. 3:7-9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.17" parsed="|Gal|3|17|0|0" passage="Gal 3:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.18" parsed="|Gal|3|18|0|0" passage="Gal 3:18">18</scripRef>. He speaks of Abraham as the father of believers, and clearly proves that the covenant with Abraham is still in
force. It is
perfectly clear from the argument of the apostle in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p24.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4" parsed="|Rom|4|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 4">Rom. 4</scripRef> and <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p24.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3" parsed="|Gal|3|0|0|0" passage="Gal. 3">Gal. 3</scripRef>
that the law has
not annulled nor altered the covenant. Cf. also <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p24.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.13-Heb.6.18" parsed="|Heb|6|13|6|18" passage="Heb. 6:13-18">Heb. 6:13-18</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p25" shownumber="no">d. The Mediator of the covenant is the same yesterday,
to-day, and forever, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p25.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.8" parsed="|Heb|13|8|0|0" passage="Heb. 13:8">Heb. 13:8</scripRef>. In none other is there salvation, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p25.2" osisRef="Bible:John.14.6" parsed="|John|14|6|0|0" passage="John 14:6">John 14:6</scripRef>; for neither is there
any other name
under heaven, that is given among men, whereby we must be saved, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p25.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.12" parsed="|Acts|4|12|0|0" passage="Acts 4:12">Acts 4:12</scripRef>. The seed
promised to Abraham is Christ, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p25.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.16" parsed="|Gal|3|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:16">Gal. 3:16</scripRef>, and those that are identified
with Christ are
the real heirs
of the covenant, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p25.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.16-Gal.3.29" parsed="|Gal|3|16|3|29" passage="Gal. 3:16-29">Gal. 3:16-29</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p26" shownumber="no">e. The way of salvation revealed in the covenant is the
same. Scripture insists on the
identical
conditions all along, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.15.6" parsed="|Gen|15|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 15:6">Gen. 15:6</scripRef>, compared with <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.11" parsed="|Rom|4|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:11">Rom. 4:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.4" parsed="|Heb|2|4|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:4">Heb. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.11" parsed="|Acts|15|11|0|0" passage="Acts 15:11">Acts 15:11</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.6" parsed="|Gal|3|6|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:6">Gal. 3:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.7" parsed="|Gal|3|7|0|0" passage="Gal 3:7">7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.9" parsed="|Heb|11|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:9">Heb. 11:9</scripRef>. The promises, for the realization of which the
believers hoped,
were also the
same, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.8" osisRef="Bible:Gen.15.6" parsed="|Gen|15|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 15:6">Gen. 15:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.12" parsed="|Ps|51|12|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:12">Ps. 51:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.17" parsed="|Matt|13|17|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:17">Matt. 13:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.11" osisRef="Bible:John.8.56" parsed="|John|8|56|0|0" passage="John 8:56">John 8:56</scripRef>. And the sacraments,
though differing in form have essentially the same signification in both
dispensations, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.11" parsed="|Rom|4|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:11">Rom. 4:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.7" parsed="|1Cor|5|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:7">I Cor. 5:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.14" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.11" parsed="|Col|2|11|0|0" passage="Col. 2:11">Col. 2:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p26.15" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.12" parsed="|Col|2|12|0|0" passage="Col 2:12">12</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p27" shownumber="no">f.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p27.1">
It is both conditional and unconditional.</span>
The question is
repeatedly asked, whether
the covenant is conditional or unconditional. This is a question that
cannot be answered
without careful discrimination, for the answer will depend on the point
of view from
which the covenant is considered.
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p27.2">On the one hand the covenant is
unconditional.</span>
There is in the covenant of grace no
condition that can be considered as<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p27.3">
meritorious.</span>
The sinner is
exhorted to repent and
believe, but his faith and repentance do not in any way merit the
blessings of the
covenant. This must be maintained in opposition to both the Roman
Catholic and the
Arminian position. Neither is it conditional in the sense that man is
expected to perform
in his own strength what the covenant requires of him. In placing him
before the
demands of the covenant, we must always remind him of the fact that he
can obtain the
necessary strength for the performance of his duty only from God. In a
sense it may be
said that God Himself fulfills the condition in the elect. That which
may be regarded as
a condition in the covenant, is for those who are chosen unto
everlasting life also a
promise, and therefore a gift of God. Finally, the covenant is not
conditional in the sense
that the reception of every separate blessing of the covenant is
dependent on a
condition. We
may say that faith is the<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p27.4">
conditio
sine qua non of</span>
justification, but the
reception of faith itself in regeneration is not dependent on any
condition, but only on the operation of the grace of God in Christ.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p28" shownumber="no"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p28.1">On the other hand the covenant may be
called conditional.</span>
There is a sense in which the
covenant is conditional. If we consider the basis of the covenant, it is
clearly conditional
on the suretyship of Jesus Christ. In order to introduce the covenant of
grace, Christ had
to, and actually did, meet the conditions originally laid down in the covenant
of works,
by His active and passive obedience. Again, it may be said that the
covenant is
conditional as far as the first conscious entrance into the covenant as
a real communion
of life is concerned. This entrance is contingent on faith, a faith,
however, which is itself
a gift of God. When we speak of faith as a condition here, we naturally
refer to faith as a
spiritual activity of the mind. It is only through faith that we can
obtain a<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p28.2">
conscious
enjoyment</span>
of the blessings of the covenant. Our experimental knowledge of the
covenant
life is entirely dependent on the exercise of faith. He who does not
live a life of faith is,
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p28.3">
as far as his consciousness is concerned</span>, practically
outside of the covenant. If in our
purview we include not only the beginning, but also the gradual unfolding
and
completion of the covenant life, we may regard sanctification as a
condition in addition to faith. Both are conditions, however, within the
covenant.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p29" shownumber="no">Reformed Churches have often objected to the use of the
word "condition" in
connection with the covenant of grace. This was largely due to a
reaction against
Arminianism, which employed the word "condition" in an
un-Scriptural sense, and
therefore to a failure to discriminate properly.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.iii-p29.1" n="54" place="foot">Cf. Dick, <span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p29.2">Theol. Lect.</span> XLVIII.</note> Bearing in mind what was said in
the preceding, it would seem to be perfectly proper to speak of a condition in
connection
with the covenant of grace, for (1) the Bible clearly indicates that the
entrance upon the
covenant life is
conditioned on faith, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p29.3" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p29.4" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p29.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.37" parsed="|Acts|8|37|0|0" passage="Acts 8:37">Acts 8:37</scripRef> (not found in some MSS.);
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p29.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.9" parsed="|Rom|10|9|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:9">Rom. 10:9</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p29.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2" parsed="|Rom|2|0|0|0" passage="Rom 2">2</scripRef>) Scripture often threatens covenant children, but these
threatenings apply exactly to those who ignore the condition, that is, who refuse to walk
in the way of the
covenant; and (3) if there were no condition, God only would be bound by
the covenant,
and there would be no "bond of the covenant" for man (but cf.
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p29.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.20.37" parsed="|Ezek|20|37|0|0" passage="Ezek. 20:37">Ezek. 20:37</scripRef>); and thus
the covenant of grace would lose its character as a covenant, for there
are two parts in
all covenants. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.iii-p30" shownumber="no">g.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p30.1">
The covenant may in a sense be called a testament.</span>
In view of the
fact that a testament
is an absolute declaration and knows of no conditions, the question is
raised whether it
is proper at all to apply the term "testament" to the
covenant. There is but one passage
in the New Testament where it seems to be justifiable to render the word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p30.2">
diatheke</span>
by
"testament,"
namely, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.16" parsed="|Heb|9|16|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:16">Heb. 9:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.17" parsed="|Heb|9|17|0|0" passage="Heb 9:17">17</scripRef>. There Christ is represented as the testator, in whose
death the covenant of grace, considered as a
testament, becomes effective. There was a
testamentary disposal of the blessings of the covenant, and this came
into force through
the death of Christ. This is the only passage in which the covenant is
explicitly referred
to as a testament. But the idea that believers receive the spiritual
blessings of the
covenant in a testamentary way is implied in several passages of
Scripture, though the
implied representation is slightly different from that in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.16" parsed="|Heb|9|16|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:16">Heb. 9:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.17" parsed="|Heb|9|17|0|0" passage="Heb 9:17">17</scripRef>.
It is God rather
than Christ who is testator. In both the Old and the New Testament, but
especially in the
latter, believers are represented as children of God, legally by
adoption, and ethically by
the new birth,
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.7" osisRef="Bible:John.1.12" parsed="|John|1|12|0|0" passage="John 1:12">John 1:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.15" parsed="|Rom|8|15|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:15">Rom. 8:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.16" parsed="|Rom|8|16|0|0" passage="Rom 8:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4-Gal.4.6" parsed="|Gal|4|4|4|6" passage="Gal. 4:4-6">Gal. 4:4-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.11" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.1-1John.3.3" parsed="|1John|3|1|3|3" passage="I John 3:1-3">I John 3:1-3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.12" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.9" parsed="|1John|3|9|0|0" passage="I John 3:9">9</scripRef>. Now the ideas of
heirship and inheritance are naturally associated with that of sonship,
and therefore it is no wonder that they are frequently found in Scripture. Paul
says: "And if children, then
heirs," <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.17" parsed="|Rom|8|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:17">Rom. 8:17</scripRef>; cf. also <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.14" parsed="|Rom|4|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:14">Rom. 4:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.15" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.29" parsed="|Gal|3|29|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:29">Gal. 3:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.16" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.1" parsed="|Gal|4|1|0|0" passage="Gal 4:1">4:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.17" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.7" parsed="|Gal|4|7|0|0" passage="Gal 4:7">7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.18" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.7" parsed="|Titus|3|7|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:7">Tit. 3:7</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.19" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.17" parsed="|Heb|6|17|0|0" passage="Heb. 6:17">Heb. 6:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.20" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.7" parsed="|Heb|11|7|0|0" passage="Heb 11:7">11:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.21" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.5" parsed="|Jas|2|5|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:5">Jas. 2:5</scripRef>. In
view of these passages there is no doubt that the covenant and the
covenant blessings
are represented in Scripture as an inheritance. But this representation
is again based on
the idea of a testament, with this difference, however, that the
confirmation of the covenant does not imply the death of the testator.
Believers are heirs of God (who
cannot die) and joint-heirs with Christ, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.17" parsed="|Rom|8|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:17">Rom. 8:17</scripRef>. It is perfectly
evident that for the
sinner the covenant has a testamentary side and can be regarded as an
inheritance; but
now the question arises, whether it can also assume this character for
Christ. An
affirmative answer would seem to be required in view of the fact that we
are called<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p30.23">
co-heirs</span>
with Christ. Is He then also an heir? This question may be answered in
the
affirmative in view of the statement found in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p30.24" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.29" parsed="|Luke|22|29|0|0" passage="Luke 22:29">Luke 22:29</scripRef>. The
inheritance referred to
here is the mediatorial glory of Christ, which He received as an
inheritance from the
Father, and which He, in turn, communicates as an inheritance to all
those that are His.
But though there is undoubtedly a testamentary side to the covenant, this
is but one
side of the matter, and does not preclude the idea that the covenant is
really a covenant.
It can be called a testament, because (1) it is as a whole a gift from
God; (2) the New
Testament dispensation of it was ushered in by the death of Christ; (3)
it is firm and
inviolable; and (4) in it God Himself gives what He demands of man. Yet
this should not
be interpreted to mean that there are no two sides to the covenant, and
that it is
therefore absolutely monopleuric. However unequal the parties in
themselves may be,
God condescends to come down to the level of man and by His grace
enables him to act
as the second party in the covenant. A monopleuric covenant in the
absolute sense of
the word is really a<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p30.25">
contradictio in adjecto.</span>
At the same time those theologians who stress
the monopleuric character of the covenant did this to emphasize an
important truth,
namely, that God and man do not meet each other half way in the
covenant, but that
God comes down to man and graciously establishes His covenant with him,
freely
giving all that He demands, and that man is really the only one that
profits by the
covenant. It is essential, however, that the dipleuric character of the
covenant be
maintained, because man really appears in it as meeting the demands of
the covenant in
faith and conversion, though it be only as God works in him both to will
and to do, according to His good pleasure.</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iii-p30.26">E. THE RELATION OF CHRIST TO THE COVENANT OF GRACE.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.iii-p31" shownumber="no">Christ is represented in Scripture as the Mediator of the
covenant. The Greek word
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p31.1">mesites</span>
is not found in classical Greek, but does occur in Philo and in later
Greek
authors. In the Septuagint it is found but once, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p31.2" osisRef="Bible:Job.9.33" parsed="|Job|9|33|0|0" passage="Job 9:33">Job 9:33</scripRef>. The English
word "Mediator,"
as well as the Holland "Middelaar" and the German
"Mittler," might lead us to think
that it (<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p31.3">mesites</span>) simply designates one who arbitrates between two parties, an
intermediary in the general sense of the word. It should be borne in
mind, however, that
the Scriptural idea is far more profound. Christ is Mediator in more
than one sense. He
intervenes between God and man, not merely to sue for peace and to
persuade to it, but
as armed with plenipotentiary power, to do all that is necessary to
establish peace. The
use of the word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p31.4">
mesites</span>
in the New Testament justifies our speaking of a twofold
Mediatorship of Christ, namely, that of surety and that of access (Gr.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p31.5">prosagoge</span>, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p31.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.2" parsed="|Rom|5|2|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:2">Rom. 5:2</scripRef>). In most of the passages in which the word is found in the New
Testament, it is
equal to<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p31.7">
egguos</span>, and therefore points to Christ as one who, by taking upon Himself the
guilt of sinners, terminated their penal relation to the law and
restored them to the right legal relationship to God. This is the meaning of
the word in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p31.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.6" parsed="|Heb|8|6|0|0" passage="Heb. 8:6">Heb. 8:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p31.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.15" parsed="|Heb|9|15|0|0" passage="Heb 9:15">9:15</scripRef>, and 12:24. In
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p31.10" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.22" parsed="|Heb|7|22|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:22">Heb. 7:22</scripRef> the term<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p31.11">
egguos</span>
itself is applied
to Christ. There is one passage, however, in
which the word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p31.12">
mesites</span>
has a meaning that is more in accord with the ordinary sense of
the word "mediator," as one who is called in to arbitrate
between two parties and to
reconcile them, namely, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p31.13" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.5" parsed="|1Tim|2|5|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:5">I Tim. 2:5</scripRef>. Here Christ is represented as
Mediator in the sense
that, on the basis of His sacrifice, He brings God and man together. The
work of Christ,
as indicated by the word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iii-p31.14">
mesites</span>
is twofold. He
labors in things pertaining to God and
in things pertaining to man, in the objective legal sphere, and in the
subjective moral
sphere. In the former He propitiates the just displeasure of God by
expiating the guilt of
sin, makes intercession for those whom the Father has given Him, and
actually makes
their persons and services acceptable to God. And in the latter He
reveals to men the
truth concerning God and their relation to Him with the conditions of
acceptable
service, persuades and enables them to receive the truth, and directs and
sustains them
in all circumstances of life, so as to perfect their deliverance. In
doing this work He employs the ministry of men, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iii-p31.15" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.20" parsed="|2Cor|5|20|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:20">II Cor. 5:20</scripRef>. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.iii.iv" next="iv.iii.v" prev="iv.iii.iii" title="IV. The Dual Aspect of the Covenant">
<h2 id="iv.iii.iv-p0.1">IV. The Dual Aspect of the Covenant</h2>
<p id="iv.iii.iv-p1" shownumber="no">In speaking of the contracting parties in the covenant of
grace it was already
intimated that the covenant may be considered from two different points
of view. There
are two different aspects of the covenant, and now the question arises,
In what relation
do these two stand to each other? This question has been answered in
different ways.</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iv-p1.1">A. AN EXTERNAL AND AN INTERNAL COVENANT.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.iv-p2" shownumber="no">Some have distinguished between an external and an
internal covenant. The
external covenant was conceived as one in which a person's status
depends entirely on
the performance of certain external religious duties. His position is
entirely correct, if he
does what is required of him, somewhat in the Roman Catholic sense.
Among Israel this
covenant assumed a national form. Perhaps no one worked out the doctrine
of an
external covenant with greater consistency than Thomas Blake. The
dividing line
between the external and the internal covenant was not always represented
in the same
way. Some connected baptism with the external, and confession of faith
and the Lord's
Supper, with the internal covenant; others thought of baptism and
confession as
belonging to the external covenant, and of the Lord's Supper as the
sacrament of the
internal covenant. But the trouble is that this whole representation
results in a dualism
in the conception of the covenant that is not warranted by Scripture; it
yields an external
covenant that is not interpenetrated by the internal. The impression is
created that there
is a covenant in which man can assume an entirely correct position
without saving faith;
but the Bible knows of no such covenant. There are, indeed, external
privileges and
blessings of the covenant, and there are persons who enjoy these only;
but such cases
are abnormalities that cannot be systematized. The distinction between
an external and
an internal covenant does not hold.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p3" shownumber="no">This view must not be confused with another and related
view, namely, that there is
an external and an internal aspect of the covenant of grace (Mastricht
and others).
According to this some accept their covenant responsibilities in a truly
spiritual way,
from the heart, while others accept them only by an external profession
with the mouth,
and therefore are only apparently in the covenant. Mastricht refers to
Judas Iscariot,
Simon the sorcerer, those who have temporal faith, and others. But the
trouble is that,
according to this view, the non-elect and non-regenerate are merely
external
appendages to the covenant, and are simply regarded as children of the
covenant<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iv-p3.1">
by us </span>
because of our short-sightedness, but are no covenant children at all<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iv-p3.2">
in the sight of God.</span>
They are not really in the covenant, and therefore cannot really become
covenant
breakers either. It offers no solution of the problem in what sense the
non-elect and non-
regenerate, who are members of the visible Church, are children of the
covenant<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iv-p3.3">
also in the sight of God</span>, and can therefore become covenant breakers.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iv-p3.4">B. THE ESSENCE AND THE ADMINISTRATION OF THE COVENANT.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.iv-p4" shownumber="no">Others, as for instance, Olevianus and Turretin,
distinguish between the essence and
the administration of the covenant. According to Turretin the former
corresponds to the
internal calling and the invisible Church formed by means of this
calling; and the latter,
to the external calling and the visible Church, as consisting of those
who are called
externally by the Word. The administration of the covenant consists only
in the offer of
salvation in the preaching of the Word, and in the other external
privileges in which all
share who have a place in the Church, including many non-elect. The
essence of the
covenant, however, also includes the spiritual reception of all the
blessings of the
covenant, the life in union with Christ, and therefore extends to the
elect only. This
distinction certainly contains an element of truth, but is not
altogether logical and clear.
While essence and form would constitute an antithesis, essence and administration
do
not. They may refer to the invisible and the visible
Church, as Turretin seems to intend,
or to the final end or realization and the announcement of the covenant,
as Olevianus
understands the distinction. But if the former is meant, it would be
better to speak of
essence and revelation; and if the latter is intended, it would be
preferable to speak of
the aim and the means of its realization. Here, too, the question
remains unanswered, whether and in how far the non-elect are covenant children<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iv-p4.1">
also in the sight of God.</span></p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iv-p4.2">C. A CONDITIONAL AND AN ABSOLUTE COVENANT.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.iv-p5" shownumber="no">Still others, as for instance, Koelman, speak of a
conditional and an absolute
covenant. Koelman emphasizes the fact that, when an external and an
internal covenant
are distinguished, only a single covenant is meant, and the terms
"external" and
"internal" simply serve to stress the fact that all are not in
the covenant in exactly the
same way. Some are in it merely by an external confession, to the
enjoyment of external
privileges, and others by a hearty acceptance of it, to the enjoyment of
the blessings of
salvation. Likewise, he wishes it to be clearly understood that, when he
says that some
are in the covenant externally and conditionally, he does not mean to
assert that they are
not really in the covenant, but only that they cannot obtain the
promised blessings of
the covenant, except by complying with the condition of the covenant.
This
representation, too, undoubtedly contains an element of truth, but in
Koelman it is
linked up in such a way with the notion of an external and an internal
covenant, that he
comes dangerously near to the error of accepting two covenants,
especially when he
claims that during the New Testament dispensation God incorporates whole
nations
and kingdoms in the covenant.</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iv-p5.1">D. THE COVENANT AS A PURELY LEGAL RELATIONSHIP AND AS A COMMUNION OF LIFE.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.iv-p6" shownumber="no">Reformed theologians, such as Kuyper, Bavinck, and Honig,
speak of two sides of
the covenant, the one external and the other internal. Dr. Vos uses
terms that are more
specific, when he distinguishes between the covenant as a purely legal
relationship and
the covenant as a communion of life. There is clearly a legal and a
moral side to the
covenant. The covenant may be regarded as an agreement between two
parties, with
mutual conditions and stipulations, and therefore as something in the
legal sphere. The
covenant in that sense may exist even when nothing is done to realize
its purpose,
namely the condition to which it points and for which it calls as the
real ideal. The
parties that live under this agreement are in the covenant, since they
are subject to the
mutual stipulations agreed upon. In the legal sphere everything is
considered and
regulated in a purely objective way. The determining factor in that
sphere is simply the
relation which has been established, and not the attitude which one
assumes to that
relation. The
relation exists independently of one's inclination or disinclination, one's
likes and dislikes, in connection with it. It would seem to be in the
light of this
distinction that the question should be answered, Who are in the
covenant of grace? If
the question is asked with the legal relationship, and that only, in
mind, and really
amounts to the query, Who are in duty bound to live in the covenant, and
of whom may
it be expected that they will do this? —the answer is, believers and
their children. But if
the question is asked with a view to the covenant as a communion of
life, and assumes
the quite different form, In whom does this legal relationship issue in
a living
communion with Christ? — the answer can only be, only in the regenerate,
who are endowed with the principle of faith, that is, in the elect.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p7" shownumber="no">This distinction is warranted by Scripture. It is hardly
necessary to cite passages
proving that the covenant is an objective compact in the legal sphere,
for it is perfectly
evident that we have such a compact wherever two parties agree as in the
presence of
God to perform certain things affecting their mutual relation, or one
party promises to bestow certain benefits on the other, provided the latter
fulfills the conditions that are
laid down. That the covenant of grace is such a compact is abundantly
evident from
Scripture. There
is the condition of faith, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.15.6" parsed="|Gen|15|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 15:6">Gen. 15:6</scripRef>, compared with <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.3" parsed="|Rom|4|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:3">Rom. 4:3</scripRef> ff., 20 ff.;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Hab.2.4" parsed="|Hab|2|4|0|0" passage="Hab. 2:4">Hab. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.14-Gal.3.28" parsed="|Gal|3|14|3|28" passage="Gal. 3:14-28">Gal. 3:14-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11" parsed="|Heb|11|0|0|0" passage="Heb. 11">Heb. 11</scripRef>; and there is also the promise of
spiritual and eternal
blessings, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.7" parsed="|Gen|17|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 17:7">Gen. 17:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.12.3" parsed="|Gen|12|3|0|0" passage="Gen 12:3">12:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.25" parsed="|Isa|43|25|0|0" passage="Isa. 43:25">Isa. 43:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.27" parsed="|Ezek|36|27|0|0" passage="Ezek. 36:27">Ezek. 36:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.5" parsed="|Rom|4|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:5">Rom. 4:5</scripRef> ff.; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.11" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.14" parsed="|Gal|3|14|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:14">Gal. 3:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.18" parsed="|Gal|3|18|0|0" passage="Gal 3:18">18</scripRef>. But it is also
clear that the covenant in its full realization is something more than
that, namely, a
communion of life. This may be already symbolically expressed in the act
of passing
between the parts of the animals slain at the establishment of the
covenant with
Abraham, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:Gen.15.9-Gen.15.17" parsed="|Gen|15|9|15|17" passage="Gen. 15:9-17">Gen. 15:9-17</scripRef>. Moreover, it is indicated in such passages as <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.25.14" parsed="|Ps|25|14|0|0" passage="Ps. 25:14">Ps. 25:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.33" parsed="|Ps|89|33|0|0" passage="Ps. 89:33">Ps. 89:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.34" parsed="|Ps|89|34|0|0" passage="Ps 89:34">34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.17" parsed="|Ps|103|17|0|0" passage="Ps 103:17">103:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.18" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.18" parsed="|Ps|103|18|0|0" passage="Ps 103:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.19" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.33" parsed="|Jer|31|33|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:33">Jer. 31:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.20" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.34" parsed="|Jer|31|34|0|0" passage="Jer 31:34">34</scripRef> (<scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.21" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.10-Heb.8.12" parsed="|Heb|8|10|8|12" passage="Heb. 8:10-12">Heb. 8:10-12</scripRef>); <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.22" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.25-Ezek.36.28" parsed="|Ezek|36|25|36|28" passage="Ezek. 36:25-28">Ezek. 36:25-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.23" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.6.16" parsed="|2Cor|6|16|0|0" passage="II Cor. 6:16">II Cor. 6:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.24" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.2" parsed="|Rev|21|2|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:2">Rev. 21:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p7.25" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.3" parsed="|Rev|21|3|0|0" passage="Rev 21:3">3</scripRef>.
Now the question arises as to the relation between the
sinner's being under the
"bond of the covenant" as a legal relationship and his living
in the communion of the covenant. The two cannot be conceived of as existing
alongside of each other without
some inner connection, but must be regarded as being most intimately
related to each
other, in order to avoid all dualism. When one takes the covenant
relation upon himself
voluntarily, the two must naturally go together; if they do not, a false
relation ensues.
But in the case of those who are<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iv-p7.26">
born</span>
in the covenant the question
is more difficult. Is the
one then possible without the other? Is the covenant in that case a bare
legal
relationship, in which that which ought to be — but is not — takes the
place of the
glorious realities for which the covenant stands? Is there any
reasonable ground to
expect that the covenant relation will issue in a living communion; that
for the sinner,
who is of himself unable to believe, the covenant will actually become a
living reality?
In answer to this question it may be said that God undoubtedly desires
that the
covenant relationship shall issue in a covenant life. And He Himself
guarantees by His
promises pertaining to the seed of believers that this will take place,
not in the case of
every individual, but in the seed of the covenant collectively. On the
basis of the
promise of God we may believe that, under a faithful administration of
the covenant, the covenant relation will, as a rule, be fully realized in a
covenant life.</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.iv-p7.27">E. MEMBERSHIP IN THE COVENANT AS A LEGAL RELATIONSHIP.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.iv-p8" shownumber="no">In discussing membership in the covenant as a legal
relationship, it should be borne
in mind that the covenant in this sense is not merely a system of
demands and
promises, demands that ought to be met, and promises that ought to be
realized; but
that it also includes a reasonable expectation that the external legal
relationship will
carry with it the glorious reality of a life in intimate communion with
the covenant God.
This is the only way in which the idea of the covenant is fully
realized. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p9" shownumber="no">1. ADULTS IN THE COVENANT. Adults can only
enter this covenant voluntarily by faith
and confession. From this it follows that in their case, unless their
confession be false,
entrance into the covenant as a legal relationship and into the covenant
as a communion
of life coincide. They not merely take upon themselves the performance
of certain
external duties; nor do they merely promise in addition to this, that
they will exercise saving faith in the future; but they confess that they accept
the covenant with a living
faith, and that it is their desire and intention to continue in this
faith. They enter upon
the full covenant life at once therefore, and this is the only way in
which they can enter
the covenant. This truth is implicitly or explicitly denied by all those
who connect the
confession of faith with a merely external covenant.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p10" shownumber="no">2. CHILDREN OF BELIEVERS IN THE COVENANT. With respect to the children of believers,
who enter the covenant by birth, the situation is, of course, somewhat
different.
Experience teaches that, though by birth they enter the covenant as a
legal relationship,
this does not necessarily mean that they are also at once in the
covenant as a
communion of life. It does not even mean that the covenant relation will
ever come to
its full realization in their lives. Yet even in their case there must
be a reasonable
assurance that the covenant is not or will not remain a mere legal
relationship, with
external duties and privileges, pointing to that which ought to be, but
is also or will in
time become a living reality. This assurance is based on the promise of
God, which is
absolutely reliable, that He will work in the hearts of the covenant
youth with His
saving grace and transform them into living members of the covenant. The
covenant is
more than the mere offer of salvation, more even than the offer of
salvation plus the
promise to believe the gospel. It also carries with it the assurance,
based on the promises
of God, who works in the children of the covenant "when, where, and
how He
pleaseth," that saving faith will be wrought in their hearts. As
long as the children of the
covenant do not reveal the contrary, we shall have to proceed on the
assumption that
they are in possession of the covenant life. Naturally, the course of
events may prove
that this life is not yet present; it may even prove that it is never
realized in their lives.
The promises of God are given to the seed of believers collectively, and
not individually.
God's promise to continue His covenant and to bring it to full realization
in the children of believers, does not mean that He will endow every last one
of them with saving faith.
And if some of them continue in unbelief, we shall have to bear in mind
what Paul says
in <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.6-Rom.9.8" parsed="|Rom|9|6|9|8" passage="Rom. 9:6-8">Rom. 9:6-8</scripRef>. They are not all Israel who are of Israel; the children
of believers are not
all children of promise. Hence it is necessary to remind even children
of the covenant
constantly of the necessity of regeneration and conversion. The mere
fact that one is in
the covenant does not carry with it the assurance of salvation. When the
children of
believers grow up and come to years of discretion, it is, of course,
incumbent on them to
accept their covenant responsibilities voluntarily by a true confession
of faith. Failure to
do this is, strictly speaking, a denial of their covenant relationship.
It may be said
therefore that the legal relationship in which the children of believers
stand, precedes
the covenant as a communion of life and is a means to its realization.
But in
emphasizing the significance of the covenant as a means to an end, we
should not stress
exclusively, nor even primarily, the demands of God and the resulting
duty of man, but
especially the promise of the effectual operation of the grace of God in
the hearts of
covenant children. If we stress the covenant responsibilities only or
excessively, and fail
to give due prominence to the fact that in the covenant God gives
whatsoever He
demands of us, in other words, that His promises cover all His
requirements, we are in
danger of falling into the snare of Arminianism.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p11" shownumber="no">3. UNREGENERATE IN THE COVENANT. From the
preceding it follows that even
unregenerate and unconverted persons may be in the covenant. Ishmael and
Esau were
originally in the covenant, the wicked sons of Eli were covenant
children, and the great
majority of the Jews in the days of Jesus and the apostles belonged to
the covenant
people and shared in the covenant promises, though they did not follow
the faith of
their father Abraham. Hence the question arises, in what sense such
persons may be
regarded as being in the covenant. Dr. Kuyper says that they are not
essential
participants of the covenant, though they are really in it; and Dr.
Bavinck says that they are<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iv-p11.1">
in foedere</span>
(in the covenant),
but not<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.iv-p11.2">
de foedere</span>
(of the covenant). The following may be
said regarding their position in the covenant:
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p12" shownumber="no">a. They are in the covenant as far as their
responsibility is concerned. Because they
stand in the legal covenant relationship to God, they are in duty bound
to repent and
believe. If they do not turn to God and accept Christ by faith, when
they come to years
of discretion, they will be judged as breakers of the covenant. The
special relationship in
which they are placed to God, therefore, means added responsibility.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p13" shownumber="no">b. They are in the covenant in the sense that they may
lay claim to the promises
which God gave when He established His covenant with believers and their
seed. Paul
even says of his wicked kinsmen, "whose is the adoption, and the
glory, and the
covenants, and the giving of the law, and the service of God, and the
promises," <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.4" parsed="|Rom|9|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:4">Rom. 9:4</scripRef>. As a rule God gathers the number of His elect out of those who
stand in this
covenant relationship.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p14" shownumber="no">c. They are in the covenant in the sense that they are
subject to the ministrations of
the covenant. They are constantly admonished and exhorted to live
according to the
requirements of the covenant. The Church treats them as covenant
children, offers them
the seals of the covenant, and exhorts them to a proper use of these.
They are the guests
who are first called to the supper, the children of the kingdom, to whom
the Word must
be preached
first of all, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.12" parsed="|Matt|8|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:12">Matt. 8:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Luke.14.16-Luke.14.24" parsed="|Luke|14|16|14|24" passage="Luke 14:16-24">Luke 14:16-24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.46" parsed="|Acts|13|46|0|0" passage="Acts 13:46">Acts 13:46</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p15" shownumber="no">d. They are in the covenant also as far as the common
covenant blessings are
concerned. Though they do not experience the regenerating influence
of the Holy Spirit,
yet they are subject to certain special operations and influences
of the Holy Spirit. The
Spirit strives with them in a special manner, convicts them of sin,
enlightens them in a
measure, and enriches them with the blessings of common grace, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.3" parsed="|Gen|6|3|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:3">Gen. 6:3</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.18-Matt.13.22" parsed="|Matt|13|18|13|22" passage="Matt. 13:18-22">Matt. 13:18-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.4-Heb.6.6" parsed="|Heb|6|4|6|6" passage="Heb. 6:4-6">Heb. 6:4-6</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.iv-p16" shownumber="no">It should be noted that, while the covenant is an eternal
and inviolable covenant,
which God never nullifies, it is possible for those who are in the
covenant to break it. If
one who stands in the legal covenant relationship does not enter upon
the covenant life,
he is nevertheless regarded as a member of the covenant. His failure to
meet the
requirements of the covenant involves guilt and constitutes him a
covenant breaker, <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.32" parsed="|Jer|31|32|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:32">Jer.
31:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.iv-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.44.7" parsed="|Ezek|44|7|0|0" passage="Ezek. 44:7">Ezek. 44:7</scripRef>. This explains how there may be, not merely a
temporary, but a final
breaking of the covenant, though there is no falling away of the saints.
</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="iv.iii.v" next="v" prev="iv.iii.iv" title="V. The Different Dispensations of the Covenant">
<h2 id="iv.iii.v-p0.1">V. The Different Dispensations of the Covenant</h2>

<h4 id="iv.iii.v-p0.2">A. THE PROPER CONCEPTION OF THE DIFFERENT DISPENSATIONS.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.v-p1" shownumber="no">The question arises, whether we ought to distinguish two
or three, or with the
modern Dispensationalists, seven or even more
dispensations.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE DISPENSATIONAL VIEW. According to Scofield "a dispensation is a period of
time during which man is tested in respect of obedience to some specific
revelation of
the will of God."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.v-p2.1" n="55" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p2.2">Scofield Bible,</span> p. 5.&amp;gt;</note>
In further
explanation of this he says on page 20 of his pamphlet on <span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p2.3">
Rightly Dividing the Word of Truth:</span>
"Each of
the dispensations may be regarded as a new
test of the natural man, and each ends in judgment, — marking his
failure." Every
dispensation has a character of its own, and is so distinct that it
cannot be commingled
with any of the others. Seven such dispensations are usually
distinguished, namely, the
dispensation of innocency, of conscience, of human government, of
promise, of the law, of grace, and of the kingdom. In answer to the question,
whether God is then so fickle-minded that He must change His will as regards man seven times, Frank E.
Gaebelein
replies: "It is not God who has vacillated. Though there are seven
dispensations, they
are all one in principle, being throughout based upon the single test of
obedience. And
had man been found able to keep the conditions laid down by the first
dispensation, the
other six would have been unnecessary. But man failed. Yet, instead of
casting off His
guilty creature, God was moved with compassion, and gave him a fresh
trial under new
conditions. Thus each dispensation ends with failure, and each
dispensation shows
forth God's
mercy."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.v-p2.4" n="56" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p2.5">Exploring the Bible,</span> p. 95</note> There are serious objections to this view. (a)
The word
"dispensation"
(<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p2.6">oikonomia</span>), which is a
Scriptural term (cf. <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.2-Luke.16.4" parsed="|Luke|16|2|16|4" passage="Luke 16:2-4">Luke 16:2-4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p2.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.9.17" parsed="|1Cor|9|17|0|0" passage="I Cor. 9:17">I Cor. 9:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.10" parsed="|Eph|1|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:10">Eph. 1:10</scripRef>; 3:2.9;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p2.10" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.25" parsed="|Col|1|25|0|0" passage="Col. 1:25">Col. 1:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p2.11" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.4" parsed="|1Tim|1|4|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:4">I Tim. 1:4</scripRef>) is here used in an un-Scriptural sense. It denotes a
stewardship, an arrangement, or an administration, but never a testing
time or a time of
probation. (b) The distinctions are clearly quite arbitrary. This is
evident already from
the fact that dispensationalists themselves sometimes speak of them as
overlapping.
The second dispensation is called the dispensation of conscience, but
according to Paul conscience was still the monitor of the Gentiles in his day, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.14" parsed="|Rom|2|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:14">Rom.
2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p2.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.15" parsed="|Rom|2|15|0|0" passage="Rom 2:15">15</scripRef>. The third is
known as the dispensation of human government, but the specific command
in it which
was disobeyed and therefore rendered man liable to judgment, was not the
command to
rule the world for God — of which there is no trace—, but the command to
replenish
the earth. The fourth is designated the dispensation of promise and is
supposed to
terminate with the giving of the law, but Paul says that the law did not
disannul the
promise, and
that this was still in effect in his own day, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p2.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.13-Rom.4.17" parsed="|Rom|4|13|4|17" passage="Rom. 4:13-17">Rom. 4:13-17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p2.15" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.15-Gal.3.29" parsed="|Gal|3|15|3|29" passage="Gal. 3:15-29">Gal. 3:15-29</scripRef>. The
so-called dispensation of the law is replete with glorious promises, and
the so-called
dispensation of grace did not abrogate the the law as a rule of life.
Grace offers escape
from the law only as a condition of salvation — as it is in the covenant
of works —, from
the curse of the law, and from the law as an extraneous power. (c)
According to the
usual representation of this theory man is on probation right along. He
failed in the first
test and thus missed the reward of eternal life, but God was
compassionate and in
mercy gave him a new trial. Repeated failures led to repeated manifestations
of the
mercy of God in the introduction of new trials, which, however, kept man
on probation all the time. This is not equivalent to saying that God<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p2.16">
in justice</span>
holds the natural man to
the condition of the covenant of works — which is perfectly true — but
that God<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p2.17">
in
mercy and compassion</span>
— and therefore seemingly to
save — gives man one chance after
another to meet the ever varying conditions, and thus to obtain eternal
life by rendering
obedience to God. This representation is contrary to Scripture, which
does not represent
fallen man as still on probation, but as an utter failure, totally
unable to render
obedience to God, and absolutely dependent on the grace of God for
salvation.
Bullinger, himself a dispensationalist, though of a somewhat different
type, is right
when he says: "Man was then (in the first dispensation) what is
called 'under
probation.' This marks off that Administration sharply and absolutely;
for<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p2.18">
man is not now
under probation.</span>
To suppose that he is so, is a popular fallacy which
strikes at the
root of the doctrines of grace. Man has been tried and tested, and has
proved to be a
ruin."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.v-p2.19" n="57" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p2.20">How to Enjoy the Bible,</span> p. 65</note>
(d) This theory is also divisive
in tendency, dismembering the organism of
Scripture with disastrous results. Those parts of Scripture that belong
to any one of the
dispensations are addressed to, and have normative significance for, the
people of that dispensation, and for no one else. This means in the words of
Charles C. Cook "that in
the Old Testament there is not one sentence that applies to the
Christian as a Rule of
Faith and Practice — not a single command that is binding on him, as
there is not a
single promise there given him at first hand, except what is included in
the broad flow of the Plan of Redemption as there taught in symbol and prophecy."<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.v-p2.21" n="58" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p2.22">Cod's Book Speaking For Itself.</span> p. 31.</note>
This does not
mean that we can derive no lessons from the Old Testament. The Bible is
divided into
two books, the Book of the Kingdom, comprising the Old Testament and
part of the
New, addressed to Israel; and the Book of the Church, consisting of the
remainder of the
New Testament, and addressed to us. Since the dispensations do not
intermingle, it
follows that in the dispensation of the law there is no revelation of
the grace of God, and
in the dispensation of grace there is no revelation of the law as
binding on the New
Testament people of God. If space permitted, it would not be difficult
to prove that this
is an entirely untenable position.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE THEORY OF THREE DISPENSATIONS. Irenæus spoke of three covenants, the first
characterized by the law written in the heart, the second, by the law as
an external
commandment given at Sinai, and the third, by the law restored to the
heart through the
operation of the Holy Spirit; and thus suggests the idea of three
dispensations. Coccejus
distinguished three dispensations of the covenant of grace, the first<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p3.1">
ante legem</span>, the
second<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p3.2">
sub lege</span>, and the third<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p3.3">
post legem.</span>
He made a sharp distinction, therefore,
between the administration of the covenant before and after Moses. Now
it is
undoubtedly true that there is considerable difference between the
administration of the
covenant before and after the giving of the law, but the similarity is
greater than the
difference, so that we are not justified in co-ordinating the work of
Moses with that of
Christ as a dividing-line in the administration of the covenant. The
following points of
difference may be noted:</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p4" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p4.1"> In the manifestation of the gracious character of the
covenant.</span>
In the patriarchal period
the gracious character of the covenant stood out more prominently than
in the later
period. The promise was more in the foreground, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.13" parsed="|Rom|4|13|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:13">Rom. 4:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.18" parsed="|Gal|3|18|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:18">Gal. 3:18</scripRef>.
Yet even this
should not be stressed unduly, as if there were no legal burdens, both
moral and
ceremonial, before the time of Moses, and no gracious promises during
the period of the
law. The substance of the law was in force before Moses, and sacrifices
were already
required. And gracious promises are found in great abundance in the
post-Mosaic
writings. The only real point of difference is this: because the law
constituted for Israel
an explicit reminder of the demands of the covenant of works, there was
a greater
danger of mistaking the way of the law for the way of salvation. And the
history of
Israel teaches us that it did not escape the danger.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p5" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p5.1"> In the emphasis on the spiritual character of the blessings.</span>
The spiritual character of the
blessings of the covenant stands out more clearly in the patriarchial
period. Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob were mere sojourners in the land of promise, dwelling
there as
strangers and pilgrims. The temporal promise of the covenant was not yet
fulfilled.
Hence there was less danger of fixing the mind too exclusively on the
material
blessings, as the Jews did later on. The early patriarchs had a clearer
understanding of
the symbolical significance of those temporal possessions, and looked
for a heavenly
city, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.25" parsed="|Gal|4|25|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:25">Gal. 4:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.26" parsed="|Gal|4|26|0|0" passage="Gal 4:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.9" parsed="|Heb|11|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:9">Heb. 11:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.10" parsed="|Heb|11|10|0|0" passage="Heb 11:10">10</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p6" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p6.1">
In the understanding of the universal destination of the
covenant.</span>
The universal
destination of the covenant was more clearly evident in the patriarchal
period. Abraham
was told that in his seed all the nations of the world would be blessed,
<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.22.18" parsed="|Gen|22|18|0|0" passage="Gen. 22:18">Gen. 22:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.13-Rom.4.77" parsed="|Rom|4|13|4|77" passage="Rom. 4:13-77">Rom. 4:13-77</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.8" parsed="|Gal|3|8|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:8">Gal. 3:8</scripRef>. The Jews gradually lost sight of this important fact,
and proceeded on
the assumption that the blessings of the covenant were to be restricted
to the Jewish
nation. The later prophets, however, stressed the universality of the promises,
and thus
revived the consciousness of the world-wide significance of the
covenant.
But while these differences existed, there were several
important points in which the
pre- and post-Mosaic periods agreed, and in which they together differed
from the
Christian dispensation. While their difference from each other is simply
one of degree,
their common difference from the New Testament dispensation is one of
contrast. As
over against the Christian dispensation, the two Old Testament periods
agree:</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p7" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p7.1">
In the representation of the Mediator as a seed that
was still future.</span>
The whole Old
Testament points forward to the coming Messiah. This forward look
characterizes the
protevangel, the promise given to the patriarchs, the whole Mosaic
ritual, and the
central messages of the prophets.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p8" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p8.1">
In prefiguring the coming Redeemer in ceremonies and
types.</span>
It s perfectly true that
these increased after the giving of the law, but they were present long
before that time.
Sacrifices were offered as early as the days of Cain and Abel, and also
had a piacular character, pointing forward to the great sacrifice of Jesus
Christ. Those who served as
priests foreshadowed the coming of the great High Priest. In distinction
from the Old
Testament, the New is commemorative rather than prefigurative.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p9" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p9.1"> In prefiguring the vicissitudes of those who were
destined to share in the spiritual realities of the covenant in the earthly career
of those groups which stood in covenant relationship with God.</span>
The pilgrimage of the patriarchs in the Holy Land, the servitude in
Egypt, the
entrance into Canaan, all pointed forward to higher spiritual things. In
the New
Testament all these types reach their fulfilment and therefore cease. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p10" shownumber="no">On the basis of all that has been said it is preferable to follow the
traditional lines by
distinguishing just two dispensations or administrations, namely, that of
the Old, and
that of the New Testament; and to subdivide the former into several
periods or stages in
the revelation of the covenant of grace.
</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.v-p10.1">B. THE OLD TESTAMENT DISPENSATION.</h4>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p11" shownumber="no">1. THE FIRST REVELATION OF THE COVENANT. The first revelation of the covenant
is
found in the protevangel, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.15" parsed="|Gen|3|15|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:15">Gen. 3:15</scripRef>. Some deny that this has any
reference to the
covenant; and it certainly does not refer to any formal establishment of
a covenant. The
revelation of such an establishment could only follow after the covenant
idea had been
developed in history. At the same time <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.15" parsed="|Gen|3|15|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:15">Gen. 3:15</scripRef> certainly contains a
revelation of the
essence of the covenant. The following points should be noted:
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p12" shownumber="no">a. By putting enmity between the serpent and the woman
God establishes a relation,
as He always does in making a covenant. The fall brought man in league
with Satan, but
God breaks that newly formed alliance by turning man's friendship with
Satan into
enmity and re-establishing man in friendship with Himself; and this is
the covenant
idea. This rehabilitation of man included the promise of sanctifying
grace, for it was
only by such grace that man's friendship with Satan could be turned into
enmity. God
Himself had to reverse the condition by regenerating grace. In all
probability He at once
wrought the grace of the covenant in the hearts of our first parents.
And when God by
His saving power generates enmity to Satan in the heart of man, this
implies that He
chooses the side
of man, that He becomes<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p12.1">
man's
confederate</span>
in the struggle with Satan,  and thus
virtually establishes an offensive and defensive covenant. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p13" shownumber="no">b. This relationship between God and man on the one side
and Satan on the other
side, is not limited to the individuals, but extends to their seed. The
covenant is organic
in its operation and includes the generations. This is an essential
element in the
covenant idea. There will not only be a seed of man. but also a seed of
the serpent, that
is, of the devil, and there will be a prolonged struggle between the
two, in which the
seed of man will be victorious.
c. The struggle, then, will not be indecisive. Though the
heel of the woman's seed
will be bruised, the head of the serpent will be crushed. It can only
bite the heel, and by
doing this endangers its very head. There will be suffering on the part
of the seed of the woman, but the deadly sting of the serpent will terminate in
its own death. The death of
Christ, who is in a preeminent sense the seed of the woman, will mean
the defeat of
Satan. The prophecy of redemption is still impersonal in the
protevangel, but it is
nevertheless a Messianic prophecy. In the last analysis the seed of the
woman is Christ,
who assumes human nature, and, being put to death on the cross, gains the
decisive
victory over Satan. It goes without saying that our first parents did
not understand all
this.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p14" shownumber="no">2. THE COVENANT WITH NOAH. The covenant with Noah is evidently of a very
general nature: God promises that He will not again destroy all flesh
by the waters of a
flood, and that the regular succession of seed time and harvest,
cold and heat, winter
and summer, day and night will continue. The forces of nature are
bridled, the powers
of evil are put under greater restraint, and man is protected against
the violence of both
man and beast. It is a covenant conferring only natural blessings, and
is therefore often
called the covenant of nature or of common grace. There is no objection
to this
terminology, provided it does not convey the impression that this
covenant is
dissociated altogether from the covenant of grace. Though the two
differ, they are also
most intimately connected.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p15" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p15.1">Points of difference.</span>
The following points of
difference should be noted: (1) While the covenant of grace pertains primarily, though not exclusively, to
spiritual blessings,
the covenant of nature assures man only of earthly and temporal
blessings. (2) While
the covenant of grace in the broadest sense of the word includes only
believers and their
seed, and is fully realized only in the lives of the elect, the covenant
with Noah was not
only universal in its inception, but was destined to remain all-inclusive.
Up to the days
of the covenant transaction with Abraham there was no seal of the
covenant of grace,
but the covenant with Noah was confirmed by the token of the rainbow, a
seal quite
different from those that were later on connected with the covenant of
grace.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p16" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p16.1">Points of connection.</span>
Notwithstanding the differences just mentioned, there is a
most intimate connection between the two covenants. (1) The covenant of
nature also originated in the grace of God. In this covenant, just as in the
covenant of grace, God
bestows on man not only unmerited favors, but blessings that were
forfeited by sin. By
nature man has no claim whatsoever on the natural blessings promised in
this covenant.
(2) This covenant also rests on the covenant of grace. It was
established more
particularly with Noah and his seed, because there were clear evidences
of the
realization of
the covenant of grace in this family, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.9" parsed="|Gen|6|9|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:9">Gen. 6:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.7.1" parsed="|Gen|7|1|0|0" passage="Gen 7:1">7:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.9" parsed="|Gen|9|9|0|0" passage="Gen 9:9">9:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.26" parsed="|Gen|9|26|0|0" passage="Gen 9:26">26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.27" parsed="|Gen|9|27|0|0" passage="Gen 9:27">27</scripRef>. (3) It is also
a necessary appendage (Witsius: "aanhangsel") of the covenant of
grace. The revelation of
the covenant of grace in <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.16-Gen.3.19" parsed="|Gen|3|16|3|19" passage="Gen. 3:16-19">Gen. 3:16-19</scripRef> already pointed to earthly and temporal
blessings.
These were absolutely necessary for the realization of the covenant of
grace. In the covenant with Noah the general character of these blessings is clearly
brought out, and
their continuance is confirmed.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p17" shownumber="no">3. THE COVENANT WITH ABRAHAM. With Abraham we enter upon a new epoch in the
Old Testament revelation of the covenant of grace. There are several
points that deserve
attention here:</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p18" shownumber="no">a. Up to the time of Abraham there was no formal
establishment of the covenant of
grace. While <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.15" parsed="|Gen|3|15|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:15">Gen. 3:15</scripRef> already contains the elements of this covenant,
it does not record
a formal transaction by which the covenant was established. It does not
even speak
explicitly of a covenant. The establishment of the covenant with Abraham
marked the
beginning of an institutional Church. In pre-Abrahamic times there was
what may be called "the church in the house." There were families in
which the true religion found
expression, and undoubtedly also gatherings of believers, but there was
no definitely
marked body of believers, separated from the world, that might be called
the Church.
There were
"sons of God" and "sons of men," but these were not yet
separated by a
visible line of demarcation. At the time of Abraham, however,
circumcision was
instituted as a sealing ordinance, a badge of membership, and a seal of
the
righteousness of faith.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p19" shownumber="no">b. In the transaction with Abraham the particularistic
Old Testament administration
of the covenant had its beginning, and it becomes perfectly evident that
man is a party
in the covenant and must respond to the promises of God by faith. The
great central fact
emphasized in Scripture, is that Abraham believed God and it was reckoned
unto him
for righteousness. God appears unto Abraham again and again, repeating
His promises,
in order to engender faith in his heart and to prompt its activity. The
greatness of his
faith was apparent in his believing against hope, in his trusting in the
promise even
when its fulfilment seemed to be a physical impossibility.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p20" shownumber="no">c. The spiritual blessings of the covenant of grace
become far more apparent in the
covenant with Abraham than they were before. The best Scriptural
exposition of the
Abrahamic covenant is contained in <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3" parsed="|Rom|3|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 3">Rom. 3</scripRef> and 4, and <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3" parsed="|Gal|3|0|0|0" passage="Gal. 3">Gal. 3</scripRef>. In
connection with the
narrative found in Genesis these chapters teach that Abraham received in
the covenant
justification, including the forgiveness of sins and adoption into the
very family of God, and also the gifts of the Spirit unto sanctification and
eternal glory.
d. The covenant with Abraham already included a
symbolical element. On the one
hand it had reference to temporal blessings, such as the land of Canaan,
a numerous
offspring, protection against and victory over the enemies; and on the
other, it referred
to spiritual blessings. It should be borne in mind, however, that the
former were not coordinate with, but subordinate to, the latter. These temporal blessings
did not constitute
an end in themselves, but served to symbolize and typify spiritual and
heavenly things.
The spiritual promises were not realized in the natural descendants of
Abraham as
such, but only in those who followed in the footsteps of Abraham.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p21" shownumber="no">e. In view of this establishment of the covenant of grace
with Abraham, he is
sometimes considered as the head of the covenant of grace. But the word
"head" is
rather ambiguous, and therefore liable to misunderstanding. Abraham
cannot be called
the representative head of the covenant of grace, just as Adam was of
the covenant of
works, for (1) the Abrahamic covenant did not include the believers that
preceded him
and who were yet in the covenant of grace, and (2) he could not accept
the promises for
us nor believe in our stead, thereby exempting us from these duties. If
there is a
representative head in the covenant of grace, it can only be Christ (cf.
Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p21.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span> III, pp. 239,241); but, strictly speaking, we can consider Him as the
Head only on
the assumption that the covenant of redemption and the covenant of grace
are one.
Abraham can be called the head of the covenant only in the sense that it
was formally established with him, and that he received the promise of its
continuance in the line of
his natural, but above all, of his spiritual, descendants. Paul speaks
of him as "the father
of all them that
believe," <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.11" parsed="|Rom|4|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:11">Rom. 4:11</scripRef>. It is clear that the word "father" can only
be
understood figuratively here, for believers do not owe their spiritual
life to Abraham.
Says Dr. Hodge
in his Commentary of Romans (4:11): "The word<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p21.3">
father</span>
expresses community of character, and is often applied to the head or founder of
any school or
class of men, whose character is determined by the relation to the
person so designated;
as <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.4.20" parsed="|Gen|4|20|0|0" passage="Gen. 4:20">Gen. 4:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.4.21" parsed="|Gen|4|21|0|0" passage="Gen 4:21">21</scripRef>. . . . Believers are called the children of Abraham,
because of this identity
of religious nature or character, as he stands out in Scripture as<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p21.6">
the</span>
believer; and because
it was with him that the covenant of grace, embracing all the children
of God, whether
Jews or Gentiles, was re-enacted; and because they are his heirs,
inheriting the blessings
promised to
him." </p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p22" shownumber="no">f. Finally, we must not lose sight of the fact that the
stage of the Old Testament
covenant revelation which is most normative for us in the New Testament
dispensation,
is not that of the Sinaitic covenant, but that of the covenant
established with Abraham.
The Sinaitic covenant is an interlude, covering a period in which the
real character of
the covenant of grace, that is, its free and gracious character, is
somewhat eclipsed by all
kinds of external ceremonies and forms which, in connection with the
theocratic life of
Israel, placed the demands of the law prominently in the foreground, cf.
<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3" parsed="|Gal|3|0|0|0" passage="Gal. 3">Gal. 3</scripRef>. In the
covenant with Abraham, on the other hand, the promise and the faith that
responds to
the promise are made emphatic.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p23" shownumber="no">4. THE SINAITIC COVENANT. The covenant
of Sinai was<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p23.1">
essentially</span>
the same as
that
established with Abraham, though the form differed somewhat. This is not
always
recognized, and is not recognized by present day dispensationalists.
They insist on it
that it was a different covenant, not only in form but in essence.
Scofield speaks of it as a
legal covenant, a "conditional Mosaic covenant of works,"<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.v-p23.2" n="59" place="foot">Ref. Bib., p. 95.</note>
under which the point of
testing was legal obedience as the condition of salvation.<note anchored="yes" id="iv.iii.v-p23.3" n="60" place="foot">Ibid, p. 1115</note>
If that covenant was a
covenant of works, it certainly was not the covenant of grace. The
reason why it is
sometimes regarded as an entirely new covenant is that Paul repeatedly
refers to the
law and the promise as forming an antithesis, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.13" parsed="|Rom|4|13|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:13">Rom. 4:13</scripRef> ff.; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p23.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.17" parsed="|Gal|3|17|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:17">Gal. 3:17</scripRef>.
But it should be
noted that the apostle does not contrast with the covenant of Abraham
the Sinaitic
covenant as a whole, but only the law as it functioned in this covenant,
and this
function only as it was misunderstood by the Jews. The only apparent
exception to that
rule is <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p23.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.21" parsed="|Gal|4|21|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:21">Gal. 4:21</scripRef> ff., where two covenants are indeed compared. But
these are not the
Abrahamic and the Sinaitic covenants. The covenant that proceeds from
Sinai and
centers in the earthly Jerusalem, is placed over against the covenant
that proceeds from
heaven and centers in the Jerusalem that is above, that is, — the
natural and the
spiritual. </p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p24" shownumber="no">There are clear indications in Scripture that the
covenant with Abraham was not
supplanted by the Sinaitic covenant, but remained in force. Even at
Horeb the Lord
reminded the people of the covenant with Abraham, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.1" osisRef="Bible:Deut.1.8" parsed="|Deut|1|8|0|0" passage="Deut. 1:8">Deut. 1:8</scripRef>; and when
the Lord
threatened to destroy the people after they had made the golden calf,
Moses based his
plea for them on that covenant, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.32.13" parsed="|Exod|32|13|0|0" passage="Ex. 32:13">Ex. 32:13</scripRef>. He also assured them
repeatedly that,
whenever they repented of their sins and returned unto Him, He would be
mindful of
His covenant with Abraham, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:Lev.26.42" parsed="|Lev|26|42|0|0" passage="Lev. 26:42">Lev. 26:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:Deut.4.31" parsed="|Deut|4|31|0|0" passage="Deut. 4:31">Deut. 4:31</scripRef>. The two covenants are
clearly
represented in their unity in <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.105.8-Ps.105.10" parsed="|Ps|105|8|105|10" passage="Ps. 105:8-10">Ps. 105:8-10</scripRef>: "He hath remembered His
covenant forever,
the word which He commanded to a thousand generations, the covenant which
He
made with Abraham, and His oath to Isaac, and confirmed the same unto
Jacob for a
statute,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p24.6">
to Israel for an everlasting covenant.</span>
"This
unity also follows from the argument of
Paul in <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3" parsed="|Gal|3|0|0|0" passage="Gal. 3">Gal. 3</scripRef>, where he stresses the fact that an unchangeable God does
not arbitrarily
alter the essential nature of a covenant once confirmed; and that the
law was not
intended to supplant but to serve the gracious ends of the promise, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.15-Gal.3.22" parsed="|Gal|3|15|3|22" passage="Gal. 3:15-22">Gal. 3:15-22</scripRef>. If the
Sinaitic covenant was indeed a covenant of works, in which legal obedience
was the
way of salvation, then it certainly was a curse for Israel, for it was
imposed on a people that could not possibly obtain salvation by works. But this covenant is
represented in
Scripture as a
blessing bestowed upon Israel by a loving Father, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.9" osisRef="Bible:Exod.19.5" parsed="|Exod|19|5|0|0" passage="Ex. 19:5">Ex. 19:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.10" osisRef="Bible:Lev.26.44" parsed="|Lev|26|44|0|0" passage="Lev. 26:44">Lev. 26:44</scripRef>,<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.11" osisRef="Bible:Lev.26.45" parsed="|Lev|26|45|0|0" passage="Lev 26:45">45</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.12" osisRef="Bible:Deut.4.8" parsed="|Deut|4|8|0|0" passage="Deut. 4:8">Deut. 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p24.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.148.20" parsed="|Ps|148|20|0|0" passage="Ps. 148:20">Ps. 148:20</scripRef>. But though the covenant with Abraham and the
Sinaitic covenant
were essentially the same, yet the covenant of Sinai had certain
characteristic features.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p25" shownumber="no">a. At Sinai the covenant became a truly national
covenant. The civil life of Israel was
linked up with the covenant in such a way that the two could not be
separated. In a
large measure Church and State became one. To be in the Church was to be
in the
nation, and<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p25.1">
vice versa;</span>
and to leave the Church was to leave the nation. There was no
spiritual excommunication; the ban meant cutting off by death.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p26" shownumber="no">b. The Sinaitic covenant included a service that
contained a positive reminder of the
strict demands of the covenant of works. The law was placed very much in
the
foreground, giving prominence once more to the earlier legal element.
But the covenant
of Sinai was not a renewal of the covenant of works; in it the law was
made subservient
to the covenant of grace. This is indicated already in the introduction
to the ten
commandments, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p26.1" osisRef="Bible:Exod.20.2" parsed="|Exod|20|2|0|0" passage="Ex. 20:2">Ex. 20:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p26.2" osisRef="Bible:Deut.5.6" parsed="|Deut|5|6|0|0" passage="Deut. 5:6">Deut. 5:6</scripRef>, and further in <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.20" parsed="|Rom|3|20|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:20">Rom. 3:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.24" parsed="|Gal|3|24|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:24">Gal. 3:24</scripRef>.
It is true that at
Sinai a conditional element was added to the covenant, but it was not
the salvation of
the Israelite but his theocratic standing in the nation, and the
enjoyment of external
blessings that was made dependent on the keeping of the law, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:Deut.28.1-Deut.28.14" parsed="|Deut|28|1|28|14" passage="Deut. 28:1-14">Deut.
28:1-14</scripRef>. The law
served a twofold purpose in connection with the covenant of grace: (1)
to increase the
consciousness of
sin, <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.20" parsed="|Rom|3|20|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:20">Rom. 3:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.15" parsed="|Rom|4|15|0|0" passage="Rom 4:15">4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p26.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.19" parsed="|Gal|3|19|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:19">Gal. 3:19</scripRef>; and (2) to be a tutor unto Christ, Gal. .3:24.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p27" shownumber="no">c. The covenant with the nation of Israel included a<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p27.1">
detailed</span>
ceremonial and typical
service. To some extent this was also present in the earlier period, but
in the measure in
which it was introduced at Sinai it was something new. A separate
priesthood was
instituted, and a<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p27.2">
continuous</span>
preaching of the
gospel in symbols and types was
introduced. These symbols and types appear under two different aspects:
as the
demands of God imposed on the people; and as a divine message of
salvation to the
people. The Jews lost sight of the latter aspect, and fixed their
attention exclusively on
the former. They regarded the covenant ever increasingly, but
mistakenly, as a covenant
of works, and saw in the symbols and types a mere appendage to this.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p28" shownumber="no">d. The law in the Sinaitic covenant also served Israel as
a rule of life, so that the one
law of God assumed three different aspects, designated as the moral, the
civil, and the
ceremonial or religious law. The civil law is simply the application of
the principles of
the moral law to the social and civic life of the people in all its
ramifications. Even the social and civil relations in which the people stood to each other had
to reflect the
covenant relation in which they stood.
There have been several deviating opinions respecting the
Sinaitic covenant which deserve attention.
a. Coccejus saw in the decalogue a summary expression of
the covenant of grace,
particularly applicable to Israel. When the people, after the
establishment of this
national covenant of grace, became unfaithful and made a golden calf,
the legal
covenant of the ceremonial service was instituted as a stricter and
harsher dispensation
of the covenant of grace. Thus the revelation of grace is found
particularly in the
decalogue, and that of servitude in the ceremonial law. Before the
covenant of Sinai the fathers lived under the promise. There were sacrifices,
but these were not obligatory.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p29" shownumber="no">b. Others regarded the law as the formula of a new
covenant of works established
with Israel. God did not really intend that Israel should merit life by
keeping the law,
since this had become utterly impossible. He simply wanted them to try
their strength
and to bring them to a consciousness of their own inability. When they
left Egypt, they stood strong in the conviction that they could do all that the
Lord commanded; but at
Sinai they soon discovered that they could not. In view of their
consciousness of guilt
the Lord now reestablished the Abrahamic covenant of grace, to which
also the
ceremonial law belonged. This reverses the position of Coccejus. The
element of grace is
found in the ceremonial law. This is somewhat in line with the view of
present day
dispensationalists, who regard the Sinaitic covenant as a
"conditional Mosaic covenant
of works" (Scofield), containing in the ceremonial law, however,
some adumbrations of
the coming redemption in Christ.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p30" shownumber="no">c. Still others are of the opinion that God established
three covenants at Sinai, a
national covenant, a covenant of nature or of works, and a covenant of
grace. The first
was made with all the Israelites, and was the continuation of the
particularistic line
which began with Abraham. In it God demands external obedience, and
promises
temporal blessings. The second was a repetition of the covenant of works
by the giving
of a decalogue. And the last a renewal of the covenant of grace, as it
was established
with Abraham, in the giving of the ceremonial law.
These views are all objectionable for more than one
reason: (1) They are contrary to
Scripture in their multiplication of the covenants. It is un-Scriptural
to assume that more
than one covenant was established at Sinai, though it was a covenant
with various
aspects. (2) They are mistaken in that they seek to impose undue
limitations on the
decalogue and on the ceremonial law. It is very evident that the
ceremonial law has a
double aspect; and it is clear also that the decalogue, though placing
the demands of the
law clearly in the foreground, is made subservient to the covenant of
grace.</p>

<h4 id="iv.iii.v-p30.1">C. THE NEW TESTAMENT DISPENSATION.</h4>
<p id="iv.iii.v-p31" shownumber="no">Little need be said respecting the New Testament
dispensation of the covenant. The
following points should be noted:</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p32" shownumber="no">1. The covenant of grace, as it is revealed in the New
Testament, is essentially the
same as that which governed the relation of Old Testament believers to
God. It is
entirely unwarranted to represent the two as forming an<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p32.1">
essential</span>
contrast, as is done by
present day dispensationalism. This is abundantly evident from <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p32.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4" parsed="|Rom|4|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 4">Rom. 4</scripRef>
and <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p32.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3" parsed="|Gal|3|0|0|0" passage="Gal. 3">Gal. 3</scripRef>. If it
is sometimes spoken of as a new covenant, this is sufficiently explained
by the fact that
its administration differs in several particulars from that of the Old
Testament. The following points will indicate what is meant.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p33" shownumber="no">2. The New Testament dispensation differs from that of
the Old in that it is
universal, that is, extends to all nations. The covenant of grace was
originally universal;
its particularism began with Abraham, and was continued and intensified
in the Sinaitic
covenant. This particularism, however, was not intended to be permanent,
but to
disappear after it had served its purpose. Even during the period of the
law it was
possible for Gentiles to join the people of Israel and thus to share in
the blessings of the
covenant. And when Christ brought His sacrifice, the blessing of Abraham
flowed out
to the nations; — those that were afar off were brought nigh.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p34" shownumber="no">3. The New Testament dispensation places greater emphasis
on the gracious
character of the covenant. The promise is very much in the foreground.
In fact, it is
clearly brought out that in the covenant of grace God freely gives what
He demands. In
this respect the new dispensation connects up with the Abrahamic rather
than with the
Sinaitic covenant, as Paul clearly brings out in <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p34.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4" parsed="|Rom|4|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 4">Rom. 4</scripRef> and <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p34.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3" parsed="|Gal|3|0|0|0" passage="Gal. 3">Gal. 3</scripRef>. This
does not mean,
however, that there were no gracious promises during the period of the
law. When Paul
in <scripRef id="iv.iii.v-p34.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3" parsed="|2Cor|3|0|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3">II Cor. 3</scripRef> contrasts the ministry of the law with that of the gospel,
he has in mind
particularly the ministry of the law as it was understood by the later
Jews, who turned
the Sinaitic covenant into a covenant of works.
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p35" shownumber="no">4. Finally, the New Testament dispensation brings richer
blessings than the Old
Testament dispensation. The revelation of God's grace reached its
climax, when the
Word became flesh and dwelt among men "full of grace and
truth." The Holy Spirit is
poured out upon the Church, and out of the fulness of the grace of God
in Christ
enriches believers with spiritual and eternal blessings. The present
dispensation of the
covenant of grace will continue until the return of Christ, when the
covenant relation
will be realized in the fullest sense of the word in a life of intimate
communion with
God.</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p36" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. How did
the introduction of the doctrine of the
covenant affect the presentation of the truth in Reformed theology? Why
did this doctrine meet with little favor outside of Reformed circles? Who were
the first to
introduce this doctrine? What characterized the federal theology of
Coccejus? Why did
some insist on treating the covenant of redemption and the covenant of
grace as a single
covenant? Why do others prefer to treat them separately? What can be
said in answer to
the flippant rejection of the covenant idea as a legal fiction?
How can Christ be both
party and surety in the same covenant? What can be said against the idea
of Blake that
the covenant of grace is a purely external relationship? What objections
are there to the
idea of two covenants, the one external, and the other internal? Why
does Kuyper
maintain that Christ, and Christ only, is the second party in the
covenant of grace? In
what sense does he regard the covenant of grace as an eternal covenant?
What must we
think of the tendency of modern Premillennialism, to multiply the
covenants and the
dispensations? How did modern dispensationalism originate? How does it
conceive of
the relation between the Old and the New Testament?
</p>

<p id="iv.iii.v-p37" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 199-244; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Foedere</span>, pp. 118-154; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.3">
Uit het Woord, De Leer der Verbonden</span>; Vos,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.4">
Geref. Dogm.</span> II, pp. 76-140;
ibid.,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.5">
De Verbondsleer in de Geref. Theol.</span>; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.6">
Syst. Theol.</span>, II, pp. 354-377; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.7">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 429-463; H. H. Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.8">
Hamabdil, van de Heiligheid van het Genadeverbond</span>; A. Kuyper, Jr.,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.9">
De Vastigheid des Verbonds</span>; Van den Bergh,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.10">
Calvijn over het Genadeverbond</span>; Heppe,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.11">
Dogm. der Ev-Ref. Kirche</span>, pp. 268-293;
ibid.,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.12">
Dogm. des Deutschen Protestantismus</span>, II, pp. 215-221; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.13">
Geschichte des Pietismus.</span>
pp. 205-240;
Mastricht,
<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.14">Godgeleerdheit</span>, II, pp. 363-412; a Marck,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.15">
Godgeleerdheid</span>, pp. 463-482; Witsius, De
Verbonden, pp. 255-299; Turretin,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.16">
Opera, Locus</span>
XII Q. 1-12;
Brakel,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.17">
Redelijke Godsdienst</span>, I,
pp. 351-382;
Pictet,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.18">
Theol.</span>, pp. 280-284;
Strong,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.19">
Discourse on the Covenant</span>, pp. 113-447; Owen,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.20">
The Covenant
of Grace</span>; Gib,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.21">
Sacred Contemplations</span>
pp. 171-389; Ball,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.22">
A Treatise of the Covenant of Grace</span>; Boston,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.23">
The Covenant of Grace</span>; Girardeau,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.24">
The Federal Theology: Its Import and its Regulative Influence</span>
(in the<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.25">
Memorial Volume
of the Semi-Centennial of Columbia Seminary</span>); W. L. Newton,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.26">
Notes on the Covenant, A Study in the Theology of the Prophets</span>
(Roman Catholic); Aalders,<span class="ital" id="iv.iii.v-p37.27">
Het Verbond Gods. </span></p>
</div3>
</div2>
</div1>

    <div1 id="v" next="v.i" prev="iv.iii.v" title="Part Three: The Doctrine of The Person and The Work of Christ">
<h2 id="v-p0.1">PART THREE: 1.THE DOCTRINE OF THE PERSON and THE WORK OF CHRIST</h2>

      <div2 id="v.i" next="v.i.i" prev="v" title="The Person of Christ">
<h2 id="v.i-p0.1">1. THE PERSON OF CHRIST</h2>

        <div3 id="v.i.i" next="v.i.ii" prev="v.i" title="I. The Doctrine of Christ in History">
<h2 id="v.i.i-p0.1">I. The Doctrine of Christ in History</h2>
<h4 id="v.i.i-p0.2">THE RELATION BETWEEN ANTHROPOLOGY AND CHRISTOLOGY.</h4>

<p id="v.i.i-p1" shownumber="no">THERE is a very close connection between the doctrine of
man and the doctrine of
Christ. The former deals with man, created in the image of God and
endowed with true
knowledge, righteousness and holiness, but through wilful transgression
of the law of
God despoiled of his true humanity and transformed into a sinner. It
points to man as a
highly privileged creature of God, still bearing some of the traces of
his original glory,
but yet as a creature that has lost its birthright, its true freedom,
and its original
righteousness and holiness. This means that it directs attention, not
merely, nor even
primarily, to the creatureliness, but to the sinfulness of man. It
emphasizes the<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p1.1">
ethical </span>
distance between God and man, the distance resulting from the fall of
man, which
neither man nor angels can bridge; and is as such virtually a cry for
divine help.
Christology is in part the answer to that cry. It acquaints us with the
objective work of
God in Christ to bridge the chasm, and to remove the distance. It shows
us God coming
to man, to remove the barriers between God and man by meeting the
conditions of the
law in Christ, and to restore man to His blessed communion. Anthropology
already
directs attention to the gracious provision of God for a covenant of
friendship with man,
which provides for a life of blessed communion with God; but it is a
covenant which is
effective only in and through Christ. And therefore the doctrine of
Christ, as the
Mediator of the covenant, must necessarily follow. Christ, typified and
predicted in the
Old Testament as the Redeemer of man, came in the fulness of time, to
tabernacle among men and to effect an eternal reconciliation.
</p>

<h4 id="v.i.i-p1.2">B. THE DOCTRINE OF CHRIST BEFORE THE REFORMATION.</h4>

<p id="v.i.i-p2" shownumber="no">1. UP TO THE COUNCIL OF CHALCEDON. In the early Christian
literature Christ stands
out as both human and divine, the Son of Man, but also the Son of God.
His sinless
character is maintained, and He is regarded as a proper object of
worship. Naturally, the
problem presented by Christ, as at once God and man, and the
difficulties involved in
such a conception, were not fully felt by the early Christian mind and
only dawned on it
in the light of controversy. It was but natural that Judaism, with its
strong emphasis on
monotheism, should exercise considerable influence on the early
Christians of Jewish
extraction. The Ebionites (or part of them) felt constrained, in the
interest of
monotheism, to deny the deity of Christ. They regarded Him as a mere
man, the son of Joseph and Mary, who was qualified at His baptism to be the
Messiah, by the descent of
the Holy Spirit upon Him. There were others in the early Church whose
doctrine of
Christ was constructed on similar lines. The Alogi, who rejected the
writings of John,
because they regarded his doctrine of the Logos as in conflict
with the rest of the New
Testament, also saw in Jesus a mere man, though miraculously born of a
virgin, and
taught that Christ descended on Him at baptism, conferring on Him
supernatural
powers. In the main this was also the position of the Dynamic
Monarchians. Paul of
Samosata, its main representative, distinguished between Jesus and the
Logos. He
regarded the former as a man like every other man, born of Mary, and the
latter, as the
impersonal divine reason, which took up its abode in Christ in a
pre-eminent sense,
from the time of His baptism, and thus qualified Him for His great task.
In view of this
denial it was part of the task of the early Apologetes to defend the
doctrine of the deity
of Christ. </p>

<p id="v.i.i-p3" shownumber="no">If there were some who sacrificed the deity to the
humanity of Christ, there were
others who reversed the order. The Gnostics were profoundly influenced
by the
dualistic conception of the Greeks, in which matter as inherently evil
is represented as
utterly opposed to spirit; and by a mystic tendency to regard earthly
things as
allegorical representations of great cosmic redeeming processes. They
rejected the idea
of an incarnation, a manifestation of God in a visible form, since it
involved a direct
contact of spirit with matter. Harnack says that the majority of them
regarded Christ as
a Spirit consubstantial with the Father. According to some He descended
upon the man
Jesus at the time of His baptism, but left Him again before His
crucifixion; while
according to others He assumed a merely phantasmal body. The Modalistic
Monarchians also denied the humanity of Christ, partly in the interest
of His deity, and
partly to preserve the unity of the Divine Being. They saw in Him merely
a mode or
manifestation of the one God, in whom they recognized no distinction of
persons. The
Anti-Gnostic and Alexandrian Fathers took up the defense of the deity of
Christ, but in
their defense did not altogether escape the error of representing Him as
subordinate to
the Father. Even Tertullian taught a species of subordination, but
especially Origen, who
did not hesitate to speak of a subordination<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p3.1">
as to essence.</span>
This became a steppingstone
for Arianism, in which Christ is distinguished from the Logos as the
divine reason, and
is represented as a pre-temporal, superhuman creature, the first of the
creatures, not
God and yet more than man. Athanasius took issue with Arius, and strongly
defended
the position that the Son is consubstantial with, and of the same
essence as, the Father, a
position that was officially adopted by the council of Nicea in 321.
Semi-Arianism
proposed a<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p3.2">
via media</span>
by declaring the Son to be of a<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p3.3">
similar</span>
essence as the Father.</p>

<p id="v.i.i-p4" shownumber="no">When the doctrine of the deity of the Son was officially
established, the question
naturally arose as to the relation in which the two natures in Christ
stand to each other.
Apollinaris offered a solution of the problem. Accepting the Greek
trichotomic
conception of man as consisting of body, soul, and spirit, he took the
position that the
Logos took the place of the spirit (<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p4.1">pneuma</span>) in man, which he
regarded as the seat of sin.
His chief interest was to secure the unity of the person in Christ, without
sacrificing His
real deity; and also to guard the sinlessness of Christ. But he did so
at the expense of the
complete humanity of the Saviour, and consequently his position was
explicitly
condemned by the Council of Constantinople in 381. One of the things for
which
Apollinaris contended was the unity of the person in Christ. That this
was really in
danger became quite apparent in the position taken by the school of
Antioch, which
exaggerated the distinction of the two natures in Christ. Theodore of
Mopsuestia and
Nestorius stressed the complete manhood of Christ, and conceived of the
indwelling of
the Logos in Him as a mere moral indwelling, such as believers also
enjoy, though not
to the same degree. They saw in Christ a man side by side with God, in
alliance with
God, sharing the purpose of God, but not one with Him in the oneness of
a single
personal life, — a Mediator consisting of two persons. In opposition to
them Cyril of
Alexandria strongly emphasized the unity of the person in Christ, and in
the estimation
of his opponents denied the two natures. While they in all probability
misunderstood
him, Eutychus and his followers certainly appealed to him, when they took
up the
position that the human nature of Christ was absorbed by the divine, or
that the two
were fused into a single nature, a position involving the denial of the
two natures in
Christ. The Council of Chalcedon in 451 condemned both of these views
and
maintained the unity of the person as well as the duality of the
natures.</p>

<p id="v.i.i-p5" shownumber="no">2. AFTER THE COUNCIL OF CHALCEDON. For some time the Eutychian
error was
continued by the Monophysites and the Monothelites, but was finally
overcome by the
Church. The further danger that the human nature of Christ would be
regarded as
entirely impersonal was warded off by Leontius of Byzantium, when he
pointed out
that it is not impersonal but in-personal, having its personal
subsistence in the person of
the Son of God. John of Damascus, in whom the Christology of the East
reached its
highest development, added the idea that there is a circumincession of
the divine and
the human in Christ, a communication of the divine attributes to the
human nature, so
that the latter is deified and we may also say that God suffered in the flesh.
He shows a
tendency to reduce the human nature to the position of a mere organ or
instrument of
the Logos, yet he admits that there is a co-operation of the two
natures, and that the one
person acts and wills in each nature, though the human will is always
subject to the
divine. </p>

<p id="v.i.i-p6" shownumber="no">In the Western Church Felix, bishop of Urgella, advocated
adoptionism. He
regarded Christ as to His divine nature, that is, the Logos, as the
onlybegotten Son of
God in the natural sense, but considered Christ on His human side as a
Son of God
merely by adoption. He sought to preserve the unity of the person by
stressing the fact
that, from the time of His conception, the Son of Man was taken up into
the unity of the
person of the Son of God. Thus a distinction was made between a natural
and an
adoptive sonship, and the latter did not begin with the natural birth of
Christ, but had
its inception at the time of His baptism and was consummated in the
resurrection. It
was a spiritual birth that made Christ the adopted Son of God. The Church
saw the
unity of the person in Christ once more endangered by this view, and
therefore it was
condemned by the Synod of Frankfort in 794 A.D.</p>

<p id="v.i.i-p7" shownumber="no">The Middle Ages added very little to the doctrine of the
person of Christ. Due to
various influences, such as the emphasis on the imitation of
Christ, the theories of the
atonement, and the development of the doctrine of the mass, the Church
retained a
strong grasp on the full humanity of Christ. "The deity of
Christ," says Mackintosh,
"came into view rather as the infinite co-efficient raising human
action and passion to
an infinite value." And yet some of the Scholastics in their
Christology set forth a
docetic view of Christ. Peter the Lombard did not hesitate to say that
in respect of His
humanity Christ was nothing at all. But this Nihilism was condemned by
the Church.
Some new points were stressed by Thomas Aquinas. According to him the
person of the
Logos became composite at the incarnation, and its union with the manhood
"hindered" the latter from arriving at an independent
personality. The human nature of
Christ received a twofold grace in virtue of its union with the Logos,
(a) the<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p7.1">
gratia unionis</span>, imparting to it a special dignity, so that it even became an object of
worship,
and (b) the<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p7.2">
gratia
habitualis</span>, which sustained it in its relationship to God. The
human
knowledge of Christ was twofold, namely, an infused and an acquired
knowledge.
There are two wills in Christ, but ultimate causality belongs to the
divine will, to which the human will is always subject.
</p>

<h4 id="v.i.i-p7.3">C. THE DOCTRINE OF CHRIST AFTER THE REFORMATION.</h4>

<p id="v.i.i-p8" shownumber="no">1. UP TO THE NINETEENTH CENTURY. The
Reformation did not bring any great changes
in the doctrine of the person of Christ. Both the Church of Rome and the
Churches of
the Reformation subscribed to the doctrine of Christ as it was
formulated by the Council
of Chalcedon. Their important and deep-seated differences lay elsewhere.
There is one peculiarity of Lutheran Christology that deserves special mention.
Luther's doctrine of
the physical presence of Christ in the Lord's supper led to the
characteristically
Lutheran view of
the<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p8.1">
communicatio idiomatum</span>, to the effect
"that each of Christ's natures
permeates the other (perichoresis), and that His humanity participates in
the attributes
of His divinity."<note anchored="yes" id="v.i.i-p8.2" n="1" place="foot">Neve, <span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p8.3">Lutheran Symbolics,</span> p. 132.</note>It is held that
the attributes of omnipotence, omniscience, and
omnipresence were communicated to the human nature of Christ at the time
of the
incarnation. The question naturally arose, how this could be harmonized
with what we
know of the earthly life of Jesus. This question led to a difference of
opinion among
Lutheran theologians. Some held that Christ laid aside the divine
attributes received in
the incarnation, or used them only occasionally, while others said that
He continued in possession of them during His entire earthly life, but
concealed them or used them only
secretly. Some Lutherans now seem inclined to discard this doctrine.
</p>

<p id="v.i.i-p9" shownumber="no">Reformed theologians saw in this Lutheran doctrine a
species of Eutychianism or of
the fusion of the two natures in Christ. Reformed theology also teaches
a
communication of attributes, but conceives of it in a different way. It
believes that, after
the incarnation, the properties of both natures can be attributed to the
one person of
Christ. The person of Christ can be said to be omniscient, but also, to
have but limited knowledge; can be regarded as omnipresent, but also as being limited at
any particular
time to a single place. Hence we read in the Second Helvetic Confession:
"We
acknowledge, therefore, that there be in one and the same Jesus our Lord
two natures —
the divine and the human nature; and we say that these are so conjoined
or united that
they are not swallowed up, confounded, or mingled together, but rather
united or
joined together in one person (the properties of each being safe and
remaining still), so
that we do worship one Christ, our Lord, and not two. . . . Therefore we
do not think
nor teach that the divine nature in Christ did suffer, or that Christ,
according to His
human nature, is yet in the world, and so in every place."<note anchored="yes" id="v.i.i-p9.1" n="2" place="foot">Chap. XI.</note></p>

<p id="v.i.i-p10" shownumber="no">2. IN THE NINTEENTH CENTURY. About the
beginning of the nineteenth century a great
change took place in the study of the person of Christ. Up to that time
the point of
departure had been prevailingly theological, and the resulting
Christology was
theocentric; but during the last part of the eighteenth century there
was a growing
conviction that better results could be attained by starting closer at
home, namely, with
the study of the historical Jesus. Thus the so-called "second
Christological period" was
ushered in. The new point of view was anthropological, and the result
was
anthropocentric. It proved to be destructive of the faith of the Church.
A far-reaching
and pernicious distinction was made between the historical Jesus,
delineated by the
writers of the Gospels, and the theological Christ, who was the fruit of
the fertile
imagination of theological thinkers, and whose image is now reflected
in the creeds of
the Church. The supernatural Christ made way for a human
Jesus; and the doctrine of
the two natures, for the doctrine of a divine man.
</p>

<p id="v.i.i-p11" shownumber="no">Schleiermacher stood at the head of the new development.
He regarded Christ as a
new creation, in which human nature is elevated to the plane of ideal
perfection. Yet his
Christ can hardly be said to rise above the human level. The uniqueness
of His person
consists in the fact that He possesses a perfect and unbroken sense of
union with the
divine, and also realizes to the full the destiny of man in His
character of sinless
perfection. His supreme dignity finds its explanation in a special
presence of God in
Him, in His unique God-consciousness. Hegel's conception of Christ is
part and parcel
of his pantheistic system of thought. The Word become flesh means
for him God
become incarnate in humanity, so that the incarnation really expresses
the oneness of
God and man. The incarnation of Christ was, so it seems, merely the
culmination of a
racial process. While mankind in general regards Jesus only as a human
teacher, faith
recognizes Him as divine and finds that by His coming into the world the
transcendence of God is changed into immanence. Here we meet with a
pantheistic
identification of the human and the divine in the doctrine of Christ.</p>

<p id="v.i.i-p12" shownumber="no">Something of this is also seen in the Kenotic theories,
which represent a rather remarkable attempt to improve on the construction of
the doctrine of the person of
Christ. The term<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p12.1">
kenosis</span>
is derived from
<scripRef id="v.i.i-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.7" parsed="|Phil|2|7|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:7">Phil. 2:7</scripRef>, which teaches that Christ "emptied
(<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p12.3">ekenosen</span>) Himself, taking the form of a servant." The Kenoticists take this
to mean that
the Logos literally became, that is, was changed into a man by reducing
(depotentiating)
Himself, either wholly or in part, to the dimensions of a man, and then
increased in
wisdom and power until at last He again became God. This theory appeared
in various
forms, of which the most absolute is that of Gess, and for a time
enjoyed considerable popularity. It aimed at maintaining the reality and
integrity of the manhood of Christ,
and to throw into strong relief the greatness of His humiliation in that
He, being rich,
for our sakes became poor. It involves, however, a pantheistic
obliteration of the line of
demarcation between God and man. Dorner, who was the greatest
representative of the
Mediating school, strongly opposed this view, and substituted for it the
doctrine of a
progressive incarnation. He saw in the humanity of Christ a new humanity
with a
special receptivity for the divine. The Logos, the principle of
self-bestowal in God,
joined Himself to this humanity; the measure in which He did this was
determined at
every stage by the ever-increasing receptivity of the human nature for
the divine, and
did not reach its final stage until the resurrection. But this is merely
a new and subtle form of the old Nestorian heresy. It yields a Christ
consisting of two persons.
</p>

<p id="v.i.i-p13" shownumber="no">With the exception of Schleiermacher, no one has
exercised greater influence on
present day theology than Albrecht Ritschl. His Christology takes its
starting point in
the work, rather than in the person of Christ. The work of Christ
determines the dignity
of His person. He was a mere man, but in view of the work which He
accomplished and the service He rendered, we rightly attribute to Him the
predicate of Godhead. He rules
out the pre-existence, the incarnation, and the virgin birth of Christ,
since this finds no
point of contact in the believing consciousness of the Christian
community. Christ was
the founder of the kingdom of God, thus making the purpose of God His
own, and now
in some way induces men to enter the Christian community and to live a
life that is motivated entirely by love. He redeems man by His teaching,
example, and unique
influence, and is therefore worthy to be called God. This is
virtually a renewal of the
doctrine of Paul of Samosata.</p>

<p id="v.i.i-p14" shownumber="no">On the basis of the modern pantheistic idea of the
immanence of God, the doctrine
of Christ is to-day often represented in a thoroughly naturalistic way.
The
representations may vary greatly, but the fundamental idea is generally
the same, that
of an essential unity of God and man. The doctrine of the two natures of
Christ has
disappeared from modern theology, and instead we have a pantheistic
identification of
God and man. Essentially all men are divine, since they all have a
divine element in
them; and they are all sons of God, differing from Christ only in
degree. Modern
teaching about Christ is all based on the doctrine of the continuity of
God and man.
And it is exactly against this doctrine that Barth and those who are
like-minded with
him have raised their voice. There are in some circles to-day signs of a
return to the two-
nature doctrine. Micklem confesses in his<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p14.1">
What Is the Faith?</span>
that for many years he
confidently asserted that the ascription to Christ of two natures in one
person had to be
abandoned, but now sees that this rested on a misunderstanding.<note anchored="yes" id="v.i.i-p14.2" n="3" place="foot">p. 155</note></p>

<p id="v.i.i-p15" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. What was
the background of the Christological
controversy in the early centuries? What ancient errors were revived by
Roscelinus and
Abelard? What was the Christological Nihilism in vogue among the
disciples of
Abelard? How did Peter the Lombard view Christ? Did the Scholastics
bring any new
points to the fore? Where do we find the official Lutheran Christology?
How can we
account for the seemingly inconsistent representations of the formula of
Concord? What
objections are there to the Lutheran view that divine attributes may be
predicated of the
human nature? How did the Lutherans and the Reformed differ in their
interpretation
of <scripRef id="v.i.i-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.5-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|5|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:5-11">Phil. 2:5-11</scripRef>? How does the Reformed Christology differ from the
Lutheran? What is the main difference between recent and earlier Christologies?
What objections are there
to the Kenosis doctrine? What are the objectionable features of modern
Christology?
How do Barth and Brunner view Christ?
</p>

<p id="v.i.i-p16" shownumber="no">LITERATURE:<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.1"> The Formula of Concord and the Second Helvetic Confession</span>; Seeberg,
<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.2">History of Doctrine</span>
II, pp. 65, 109 f., 154 f., 229 f., 321
f., 323 f., 374, 387; Hagenbach,
<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.3">History of Doctrine</span>
II, pp. 267-275; III, pp. 197-209, 343-353; Thomasius,<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.4">
Dogmengeschichte </span>
II, pp. 380-385;
388-429; Otten,<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.5">
Manual of the History of Dogmas</span>
II, pp.
171-195; Heppe, <span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.6">Dogmatik des deutschen
Protestantismus</span>
II, pp. 78-178; Dorner,<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.7">
History of Protestant
Theology</span>, pp. 95 f., 201 f., 322 f.; Bruce,<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.8">
The Humiliation of Christ</span>, pp. 74-355;
Mackintosh,
<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.9">The Doctrine of the Person of Jesus
Christ</span>, pp. 223-284; Ottley,<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.10">
The Doctrine of the Incarnation</span>, pp. 485-553, 587-671; Sanday,<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.11">
Christologies Ancient and Modern</span>, pp. 59-83; Schweitzer,<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.12">
The Quest of
the Historical Jesus</span>; La Touche,<span class="ital" id="v.i.i-p16.13">
The Person of Christ in Modern Thought. </span></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.i.ii" next="v.i.iii" prev="v.i.i" title="II The Names and Natures of Christ">
<h2 id="v.i.ii-p0.1">II. The Names and Natures of Christ</h2>

<h4 id="v.i.ii-p0.2">A. THE NAMES OF CHRIST.</h4>
<p id="v.i.ii-p1" shownumber="no">There are especially five names that call for a brief
discussion at this point. They are
partly descriptive of His natures, partly of His official position, and
partly of the work
for which He came into the world. </p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE NAME JESUS. The name Jesus
is the Greek form of the Hebrew<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.1">
Jehoshua</span>,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.2">
Joshua</span>,
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Josh.1.1" parsed="|Josh|1|1|0|0" passage="Josh. 1:1">Josh. 1:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:Zech.3.1" parsed="|Zech|3|1|0|0" passage="Zech. 3:1">Zech. 3:1</scripRef>, or<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.5">
Jeshua</span>
(regular form
in the post exilic historical books), <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p2.6" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.2.2" parsed="|Ezra|2|2|0|0" passage="Ezra 2:2">Ezra 2:2</scripRef>.
The derivation of this common name of the Saviour is veiled in
obscurity. The generally
accepted opinion is that it is derived from the root<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.7">
yasha</span>', hiph.,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.8">
hoshia</span>', to save, but it is
not easy to explain how<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.9">
Jehoshua</span>' became<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.10">
Jeshua</span>'. Probably<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.11">
Hoshea</span>', derived from the
infinitive, was the original form (cf. <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:Num.13.8" parsed="|Num|13|8|0|0" passage="Num. 13:8">Num. 13:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p2.13" osisRef="Bible:Num.13.16" parsed="|Num|13|16|0|0" passage="Num 13:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p2.14" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.44" parsed="|Deut|32|44|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:44">Deut. 32:44</scripRef>),
expressing merely the
idea of redemption. The<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.15">
yod</span>
which is the sign of the
imperfect, may have been added to express the certainty of redemption. This
would best agree with the interpretation of the
name given in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p2.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.1.21" parsed="|Matt|1|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 1:21">Matt. 1:21</scripRef>. For another derivation from<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.17">
Jeho</span>
(Jehovah) and<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.18">
shua</span>, that is
help (Gotthilf) cf. Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.19">
Dict. Dogm.</span><note anchored="yes" id="v.i.ii-p2.20" n="4" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p2.21">De Christo,</span> I, pp. 56 f.</note>
The name was borne by two well known types
of Jesus in the
Old Testament. </p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE NAME CHRIST. If Jesus is
the personal, Christ is the official, name of the
Messiah. It is the equivalent of the Old Testament Mashiach (from<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p3.1">
mashach</span>, to anoint),
and thus means "the anointed one." Kings and priests were
regularly anointed during
the old
dispensation, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.29.7" parsed="|Exod|29|7|0|0" passage="Ex. 29:7">Ex. 29:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Lev.4.3" parsed="|Lev|4|3|0|0" passage="Lev. 4:3">Lev. 4:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:Judg.9.8" parsed="|Judg|9|8|0|0" passage="Judg. 9:8">Judg. 9:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.9.16" parsed="|1Sam|9|16|0|0" passage="I Sam. 9:16">I Sam. 9:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.10.1" parsed="|1Sam|10|1|0|0" passage="I Sam. 10:1">10:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.19.10" parsed="|2Sam|19|10|0|0" passage="II Sam. 19:10">II Sam. 19:10</scripRef>.
The King was called
"the anointed of Jehovah," <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.24.10" parsed="|1Sam|24|10|0|0" passage="I Sam. 24:10">I Sam. 24:10</scripRef>. Only a single instance of
the anointing of a prophet is recorded, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.19.16" parsed="|1Kgs|19|16|0|0" passage="I Kings 19:16">I Kings 19:16</scripRef>, but there are
probably references to it in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.105.15" parsed="|Ps|105|15|0|0" passage="Ps. 105:15">Ps. 105:15</scripRef> and <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.61.1" parsed="|Isa|61|1|0|0" passage="Isa. 61:1">Isa. 61:1</scripRef>. The oil used in
anointing these officers symbolized the Spirit
of God, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.61.1" parsed="|Isa|61|1|0|0" passage="Isa. 61:1">Isa. 61:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Zech.4.1-Zech.4.6" parsed="|Zech|4|1|4|6" passage="Zech. 4:1-6">Zech. 4:1-6</scripRef>, and the anointing represented the
transfer of the Spirit to
the consecrated
person, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.10.1" parsed="|1Sam|10|1|0|0" passage="I Sam. 10:1">I Sam. 10:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.10.6" parsed="|1Sam|10|6|0|0" passage="I Sam. 10:6">6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.10.10" parsed="|1Sam|10|10|0|0" passage="I Sam. 10:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.13" parsed="|1Sam|16|13|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:13">16:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.14" parsed="|1Sam|16|14|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:14">14</scripRef>. The anointing was a visible sign of (a)
an appointment to office; (b) the establishment of a sacred relationship
and the
consequent sacrosanctness of the person anointed, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.19" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.24.6" parsed="|1Sam|24|6|0|0" passage="I Sam. 24:6">I Sam. 24:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.20" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.26.9" parsed="|1Sam|26|9|0|0" passage="I Sam. 26:9">26:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.21" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.1.14" parsed="|2Sam|1|14|0|0" passage="II Sam. 1:14">II
Sam. 1:14</scripRef>; and (c)
a communication
of the Spirit to the anointed one, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.22" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.13" parsed="|1Sam|16|13|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:13">I Sam. 16:13</scripRef>, cf. also <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.23" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.1.21" parsed="|2Cor|1|21|0|0" passage="II Cor. 1:21">II Cor. 1:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.24" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.1.22" parsed="|2Cor|1|22|0|0" passage="II Cor. 1:22">22</scripRef>.
The Old Testament refers to the anointing of the Lord in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.25" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.2" parsed="|Ps|2|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 2:2">Ps. 2:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.26" osisRef="Bible:Ps.45.7" parsed="|Ps|45|7|0|0" passage="Ps 45:7">45:7</scripRef>,
and the New
Testament, in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.27" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.27" parsed="|Acts|4|27|0|0" passage="Acts 4:27">Acts 4:27</scripRef> and 10:38. Formerly references to it were also
found in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.28" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.6" parsed="|Ps|2|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 2:6">Ps. 2:6</scripRef>
and <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.29" osisRef="Bible:Prov.8.23" parsed="|Prov|8|23|0|0" passage="Prov. 8:23">Prov. 8:23</scripRef>, but to-day Hebraists assert that the word<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p3.30">
nasak</span>, used in these passages, means "to
set up" rather than "to anoint." But even cf. also <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.31" osisRef="Bible:Isa.11.2" parsed="|Isa|11|2|0|0" passage="Isa. 11:2">Isa. 11:2</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.32" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.1" parsed="|Isa|42|1|0|0" passage="Isa 42:1">42:1</scripRef>. Christ was set
up or appointed to His offices from so the word points to the reality of
the first thing
symbolized in the anointing, eternity, but historically His anointing
took place when He
was conceived by the Holy Spirit, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.33" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">Luke 1:35</scripRef>, and when he received the
Holy Spirit,
especially at
the time of His baptism, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.34" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.16" parsed="|Matt|3|16|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:16">Matt. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.35" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.10" parsed="|Mark|1|10|0|0" passage="Mark 1:10">Mark 1:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.36" osisRef="Bible:Luke.3.22" parsed="|Luke|3|22|0|0" passage="Luke 3:22">Luke 3:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.37" osisRef="Bible:John.1.32" parsed="|John|1|32|0|0" passage="John 1:32">John 1:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p3.38" osisRef="Bible:John.3.34" parsed="|John|3|34|0|0" passage="John 3:34">3:34</scripRef>. It
served to qualify Him for His great task. The name "Christ"
was first applied to the
Lord as a common noun with the article, but gradually developed into a
proper noun,
and was used without the article.</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p4" shownumber="no">3. THE NAME SON OF MAN. In the Old Testament this name is found in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.8.4" parsed="|Ps|8|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 8:4">Ps. 8:4</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Dan.7.13" parsed="|Dan|7|13|0|0" passage="Dan. 7:13">Dan. 7:13</scripRef>, and frequently in the Prophecy of Ezekiel. It is also found in the
Apochrypha,
Enoch 46 and 62, and <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:2Esd.13" parsed="|2Esd|13|0|0|0" passage="II Esdras 13">II Esdras 13</scripRef>. The dependence of the New Testament
usage of it on
the passage in Daniel is now quite generally admitted, though in that
prophecy it is
merely a descriptive phrase, and not yet a title. The transition from
the one to the other
was made later on, and was apparently already an accomplished fact when
the book of
Enoch was written. It was the most common self-designation of Jesus. He
applied the
name to Himself on more than forty occasions, while others all but
refrained from
employing it. The only exception in the Gospels is in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:John.12.34" parsed="|John|12|34|0|0" passage="John 12:34">John 12:34</scripRef>, where
it appears in an
indirect quotation of a word of Jesus; and in the rest of the New
Testament only Stephen
and John employ
it, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.56" parsed="|Acts|7|56|0|0" passage="Acts 7:56">Acts 7:56</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.13" parsed="|Rev|1|13|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:13">Rev. 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.14.14" parsed="|Rev|14|14|0|0" passage="Rev 14:14">14:14</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p5" shownumber="no">Dr. Vos in his work on<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p5.1">
The Self-Disclosure of Jesus</span>
divides the
passages in which the
name occurs into four classes: (a) Passages which clearly refer to the
eschatological
coming of the
Son of Man, as for instance, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.27" parsed="|Matt|16|27|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:27">Matt. 16:27</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.28" parsed="|Matt|16|28|0|0" passage="Matt 16:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.8.38" parsed="|Mark|8|38|0|0" passage="Mark 8:38">Mark 8:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.26" parsed="|Mark|13|26|0|0" passage="Mark 13:26">13:26</scripRef>, etc. and
parallels. (b) Passages which speak particularly of Jesus' sufferings,
death, and
(sometimes)
resurrection, as, for instance, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.17.22" parsed="|Matt|17|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 17:22">Matt. 17:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.18" parsed="|Matt|20|18|0|0" passage="Matt 20:18">20:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.19" parsed="|Matt|20|19|0|0" passage="Matt 20:19">19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.28" parsed="|Matt|20|28|0|0" passage="Matt 20:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.40" parsed="|Matt|12|40|0|0" passage="Matt 12:40">12:40</scripRef>, etc. and
parallels. (c) Passages in the Fourth Gospel, in which the heavenly
superhuman side  and
the pre-existence of Jesus is stressed, as for instance, 1:51; 3:13,14; 6:27,53,62; 8:28,
and so on. (d) A small group of passages, in which Jesus reflects
upon His human
nature, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Mark.2.27" parsed="|Mark|2|27|0|0" passage="Mark 2:27">Mark 2:27</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:Mark.2.28" parsed="|Mark|2|28|0|0" passage="Mark 2:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:John.5.27" parsed="|John|5|27|0|0" passage="John 5:27">John 5:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:John.6.27" parsed="|John|6|27|0|0" passage="John 6:27">6:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.15" osisRef="Bible:John.6.51" parsed="|John|6|51|0|0" passage="John 6:51">51</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:John.6.62" parsed="|John|6|62|0|0" passage="John 6:62">62</scripRef>. It is hard to determine
why Jesus preferred
this name as a self-designation. Formerly the name was generally
regarded as a cryptic
title, by the use of which Jesus intended to veil rather than to reveal
His Messiahship.
This explanation was discarded when more attention was paid to the
eschatological
element in the Gospels, and to the use of the name in the apocalyptic
literature of the
Jews. Dalman revived the idea and regarded the title once more as
"an intentional
veiling of the Messianic character under a title which affirms the
humanity of Him who bore it."<note anchored="yes" id="v.i.ii-p5.17" n="5" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p5.18">Words of Jesus,</span> p. 253</note>
The supposed proof for this is found in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.13" parsed="|Matt|16|13|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:13">Matt. 16:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p5.20" osisRef="Bible:John.12.34" parsed="|John|12|34|0|0" passage="John 12:34">John 12:34</scripRef>. But the proof is
doubtful; the latter passage even shows that the people understood the
name
Messianically. Dr. Vos is of the opinion that Jesus probably preferred
the name, because
it stood farthest removed from every possible Jewish prostitution of the
Messianic
office. By calling Himself the Son of Man, Jesus imparted to the
Messiahship His own
heaven-centered spirit. And the height to which He thus lifted His person
and work
may well have had something to do with the hesitancy of His early
followers to name
Him with the most celestial of all titles.<note anchored="yes" id="v.i.ii-p5.21" n="6" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p5.22">The Self-Disclosure of Jesus,</span> pp. 251 ff.</note></p>


<p id="v.i.ii-p6" shownumber="no">4. THE NAME SON OF GOD. The name
"Son of God" was variously applied in the Old
Testament: (a)
to the people of Israel, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Exod.4.22" parsed="|Exod|4|22|0|0" passage="Ex. 4:22">Ex. 4:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.9" parsed="|Jer|31|9|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:9">Jer. 31:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Hos.11.1" parsed="|Hos|11|1|0|0" passage="Hos. 11:1">Hos. 11:1</scripRef>; (b) to officials among
Israel, especially to the promised king of the house of David, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.7.14" parsed="|2Sam|7|14|0|0" passage="II Sam. 7:14">II Sam. 7:14</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.27" parsed="|Ps|89|27|0|0" passage="Ps. 89:27">Ps. 89:27</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.100" parsed="|Ps|100|0|0|0" passage="Ps 100">c</scripRef>)
to angels, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Job.1.6" parsed="|Job|1|6|0|0" passage="Job 1:6">Job 1:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Job.2.1" parsed="|Job|2|1|0|0" passage="Job 2:1">2:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:Job.38.7" parsed="|Job|38|7|0|0" passage="Job 38:7">38:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.29.1" parsed="|Ps|29|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 29:1">Ps. 29:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.6" parsed="|Ps|89|6|0|0" passage="Ps 89:6">89:6</scripRef>; and (d) to pious people in general, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.12" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.2" parsed="|Gen|6|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:2">Gen. 6:2</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.15" parsed="|Ps|73|15|0|0" passage="Ps. 73:15">Ps. 73:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p6.14" osisRef="Bible:Prov.14.26" parsed="|Prov|14|26|0|0" passage="Prov. 14:26">Prov. 14:26</scripRef>. Among Israel the name acquired theocratic
significance. In the New
Testament we find Jesus appropriating the name, and others also
ascribing it to Him.
The name is applied to Jesus in four different senses, which are not
always kept distinct
in Scripture but are sometimes combined. The name is applied to Him:
</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p7" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p7.1">
In the official or Messianic sense</span>, as a
description of the office rather than of the
nature of Christ. The Messiah could be called Son of God as God's heir
and
representative. The demons evidently understood the name Messianically,
when they
applied it to Jesus. It seems to have this meaning also in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.36" parsed="|Matt|24|36|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:36">Matt. 24:36</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.32" parsed="|Mark|13|32|0|0" passage="Mark 13:32">Mark 13:32</scripRef>. Even
the name, as uttered by the voice at the baptism of Jesus and at His
transfiguration,
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.17" parsed="|Matt|3|17|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:17">Matt. 3:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.17.5" parsed="|Matt|17|5|0|0" passage="Matt 17:5">17:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.11" parsed="|Mark|1|11|0|0" passage="Mark 1:11">Mark 1:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Mark.9.7" parsed="|Mark|9|7|0|0" passage="Mark 9:7">9:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.3.22" parsed="|Luke|3|22|0|0" passage="Luke 3:22">Luke 3:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.9.35" parsed="|Luke|9|35|0|0" passage="Luke 9:35">9:35</scripRef>, can be so interpreted, but in all
probability has a deeper meaning. There are several passages in which
the Messianic
sense is combined with the trinitarian sense, cf. under (b).
</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p8" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p8.1">
In the trinitarian sense.</span>
The name is sometimes used to denote the essential deity of
Christ. As such it points to a pre-existent sonship, which absolutely
transcends the
human life of Christ and His official calling as Messiah. Instances of
this use are found
in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.27" parsed="|Matt|11|27|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:27">Matt. 11:27</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.14.28-Matt.14.33" parsed="|Matt|14|28|14|33" passage="Matt 14:28-33">14:28-33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.16" parsed="|Matt|16|16|0|0" passage="Matt 16:16">16:16</scripRef>, and parallels; 21:33-46, and parallels; 22:41-46; 26:63, and
parallels. In some of these cases the idea of the Messianic sonship also
enters more or
less. We find the ontological and the Messianic sonship interwoven also
in several
Johannine passages, in which Jesus clearly intimates that He is the Son
of God, though
He does not use
the name, as in 6:69; 8:16,18,23; 10:15,30; 14:20, and so on. In the
Epistles Christ is frequently designated as the Son of God in the
metaphysical sense,
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.3" parsed="|Rom|1|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:3">Rom. 1:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.3" parsed="|Rom|8|3|0|0" passage="Rom 8:3">8:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.1" parsed="|Heb|1|1|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:1">Heb. 1:1</scripRef>, and many other passages. In modern
liberal theology it
is customary to deny the metaphysical sonship of Christ.
</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p9" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p9.1">
In the nativistic sense.</span>
Christ is also
called the Son of God in virtue of His
supernatural birth. The name is so applied to Him in the well known
passage in the
Gospel of Luke, in which the origin of His human nature is ascribed to
the direct,
supernatural paternity of God, namely, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">Luke 1:35</scripRef>. Dr. Vos also finds
indications of this
sense of the name in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.1.18-Matt.1.24" parsed="|Matt|1|18|1|24" passage="Matt. 1:18-24">Matt. 1:18-24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:John.1.13" parsed="|John|1|13|0|0" passage="John 1:13">John 1:13</scripRef>. Naturally, this meaning
of the name is also
denied by modern liberal theology, which does not believe in the virgin
birth, nor in the
supernatural conception of Christ.</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p10" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p10.1">
In the ethico-religious sense.</span>
It is in this
sense that the name "sons" or "children of
God" is applied to believers in the New Testament. It is possible
that we have an
example of the application of the name "Son of God" to Jesus
in that ethico-religious
sense in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.17.24-Matt.17.27" parsed="|Matt|17|24|17|27" passage="Matt. 17:24-27">Matt. 17:24-27</scripRef>. This depends on the question, whether Peter is
here represented
as also exempt from the templetax. It is especially in this sense that
modern liberal
theology ascribes the name to Jesus. It finds that the sonship of Jesus
is only an ethico- religious sonship, somewhat heightened indeed, but not
essentially different from that
of His
disciples. </p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p11" shownumber="no">5. THE NAME LORD (<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p11.1">Kurios</span>). The name "Lord" is applied to God in
the Septuagint,
(a) as the equivalent of Jehovah; (b) as the rendering of<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p11.2">
Adonai</span>; and (c) as the translation
of a human
honorific title applied to God (chiefly<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p11.3">
Adon</span>),
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Josh.3.11" parsed="|Josh|3|11|0|0" passage="Josh. 3:11">Josh. 3:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.97.5" parsed="|Ps|97|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 97:5">Ps. 97:5</scripRef>. In the New Testament we find a somewhat similar threefold application of the name
to Christ, (a) as
a polite and respectful form of address, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.2" parsed="|Matt|8|2|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:2">Matt. 8:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.33" parsed="|Matt|20|33|0|0" passage="Matt 20:33">20:33</scripRef>; (b) as
expressive of ownership
and authority, without implying anything as to Christ's divine character
and authority,
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.3" parsed="|Matt|21|3|0|0" passage="Matt. 21:3">Matt. 21:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.42" parsed="|Matt|24|42|0|0" passage="Matt 24:42">24:42</scripRef>; and (c) with the highest connotation of authority,
expressive of an
exalted
character, and in fact practically equivalent to the name "God," <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Mark.12.36" parsed="|Mark|12|36|0|0" passage="Mark 12:36">Mark 12:36</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:Mark.12.37" parsed="|Mark|12|37|0|0" passage="Mark 12:37">37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.11" parsed="|Luke|2|11|0|0" passage="Luke 2:11">Luke 2:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.13" osisRef="Bible:Luke.3.4" parsed="|Luke|3|4|0|0" passage="Luke 3:4">3:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.36" parsed="|Acts|2|36|0|0" passage="Acts 2:36">Acts 2:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.3" parsed="|1Cor|12|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:3">I Cor. 12:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.16" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|11|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:11">Phil. 2:11</scripRef>. In some cases it
is hard to determine the
exact connotation of the title. Undoubtedly, after the exaltation of
Christ, the name was
generally applied to Him in the most exalted sense. But there are
instances of its use
even before the resurrection, where the specifically divine import of
the title has
evidently already been reached, as in <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.17" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.22" parsed="|Matt|7|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:22">Matt. 7:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.18" osisRef="Bible:Luke.5.8" parsed="|Luke|5|8|0|0" passage="Luke 5:8">Luke 5:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p11.19" osisRef="Bible:John.20.28" parsed="|John|20|28|0|0" passage="John 20:28">John 20:28</scripRef>.
There is a great
difference of opinion among scholars respecting the origin and
development of this title
as applied to Jesus. In spite of all that has been advanced to the
contrary, there is no
reason to doubt that the use of the name, as applied to Jesus, is rooted
in the Old
Testament. There is one constant element in the history of the
conception, and that is the
element of<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p11.20">
authoritative
ownership.</span>
The Epistles of Paul suggest the additional idea that it
is an authority
and ownership<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p11.21">
resting on antecedently acquired
rights.</span>
It is doubtful,
whether this element is already present in the Gospels.
</p>

<h4 id="v.i.ii-p11.22">B. THE NATURES OF CHRIST.</h4>
<p id="v.i.ii-p12" shownumber="no">From the earliest times, and more particularly since the
Council of Chalcedon, the Church confessed the doctrine of the two natures of
Christ. The Council did not solve
the problem presented by a person who was at once human and divine, but
only sought
to ward off some of the solutions which were offered and were clearly
recognized as
erroneous. And the Church accepted the doctrine of the two natures in
one person, not
because it had a complete understanding of the mystery, but because it
clearly saw in it
a mystery revealed by the Word of God. It was and remained ever since
for the Church
an article of faith, far beyond human comprehension. Rationalistic
attacks on the
doctrine were not entirely wanting, but the Church remained firm in the
confession of
this truth, in spite of the fact that it was once and again declared to
be contrary to
reason. In this confession Roman Catholics and Protestants stand
shoulder to shoulder.
But from the last part of the eighteenth century on this doctrine was
made the butt of
persistent attacks. The Age of Reason set in, and it was declared to be
unworthy of man to accept on the authority of Scripture what was clearly
contrary to human reason. That
which did not commend itself to this new arbiter was simply declared to
be erroneous.
Individual philosophers and theologians now tried their hand at solving
the problem
presented by Christ, in order that they might offer the Church a
substitute for the two-
nature doctrine. They took their starting point in the human Jesus, and
even after a
century of painstaking research found in Jesus no more than a man with a
divine
element in Him. They could not rise to the recognition of Him as their
Lord and their
God. Schleiermacher spoke of a man with a supreme God-consciousness,
Ritschl, of a
man having the value of a God, Wendt, of a man standing in a continual
inward
fellowship of love with God, Beyschlag, of a God-filled man, and Sanday,
of a man with
an inrush of the divine in the sub-consciousness; — but Christ is and
remains merely a
man. To-day the liberal school represented by Harnack, the
eschatological school of
Weiss and Schweitzer, and the more recent school of comparative
religion, headed by
Bousset and Kirsopp Lake, all agree in denuding Christ of His true
deity, and in
reducing Him to human dimensions. To the first our Lord is merely a
great ethical teacher; to the second, an apocalyptic seer; and to the third a
peerless leader to an
exalted destiny. They regard the Christ of the Church as the creation of
Hellenism, or of
Judaism, or of the two combined. To-day, however, the whole epistemology
of the
previous century is called in question, and the sufficiency of human
reason for the
interpretation of ultimate truth is seriously questioned. There is a new
emphasis on
revelation. And influential theologians, such as Barth and
Brunner, Edwin Lewis and
Nathaniel Micklem, do not hesitate to confess faith once more in the
doctrine of the two
natures. It is of the utmost importance to maintain this doctrine, as it
was formulated by
the Council of Chalcedon and is contained in our Confessional Standards.<note anchored="yes" id="v.i.ii-p12.1" n="7" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p12.2">Conf. Belg.,</span> Art. XIX; <span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p12.3">Heidelberg Cat.,</span> Qs. 15-18; <span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p12.4">Canons of Dort</span> II, Art. IV.</note></p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p13" shownumber="no">1. SCRIPTURE PROOFS FOR THE DEITY OF CHRIST. In view of the
widespread denial of
the deity of Christ, it is of the utmost importance to be thoroughly
conversant with the
Scripture proof for it. The proof is so abundant that no one who accepts
the Bible as the
infallible Word of God can entertain any doubt on this point. For the
ordinary
classification of the Biblical proofs, as derived from the divine names,
the divine
attributes, the divine works, and the divine honor ascribed to Him, we
would refer to
the chapter on the Trinity. A somewhat different arrangement is followed
here in view
of the recent trend of historical criticism.
</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p14" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p14.1"> In the Old Testament.</span>
Some have shown
an inclination to deny that the Old
Testament contains predictions of a divine Messiah, but this denial is
quite untenable in
view of such
passages as <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.6-Ps.2.12" parsed="|Ps|2|6|2|12" passage="Ps. 2:6-12">Ps. 2:6-12</scripRef> (<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.5" parsed="|Heb|1|5|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:5">Heb. 1:5</scripRef>); 45:6,7 (<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.8" parsed="|Heb|1|8|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:8">Heb. 1:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.9" parsed="|Heb|1|9|0|0" passage="Heb 1:9">9</scripRef>); 110:1 (<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.13" parsed="|Heb|1|13|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:13">Heb. 1:13</scripRef>); <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.9.6" parsed="|Isa|9|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 9:6">Isa. 9:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.6" parsed="|Jer|23|6|0|0" passage="Jer. 23:6">Jer. 23:6</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.9" osisRef="Bible:Dan.7.13" parsed="|Dan|7|13|0|0" passage="Dan. 7:13">Dan. 7:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.10" osisRef="Bible:Mic.5.2" parsed="|Mic|5|2|0|0" passage="Mic. 5:2">Mic. 5:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.11" osisRef="Bible:Zech.13.7" parsed="|Zech|13|7|0|0" passage="Zech. 13:7">Zech. 13:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p14.12" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.1" parsed="|Mal|3|1|0|0" passage="Mal. 3:1">Mal. 3:1</scripRef>. Several of the latest historical
scholars strongly insist on the fact that the doctrine of a superhuman
Messiah was
native to pre-Christian Judaism. Some even find in it the explanation
for the
supernatural Christology of parts of the New Testament.
</p>


<p id="v.i.ii-p15" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p15.1">
In the writings of John and Paul.</span>
It has been
found quite impossible to deny that
both John and Paul teach the deity of Christ. In the Gospel of John the
most exalted
view of the person of Christ is found, as appears from the following
passages: <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:John.1.1-John.1.3" parsed="|John|1|1|1|3" passage="John 1:1-3">John 1:1-3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:John.1.18" parsed="|John|1|18|0|0" passage="John 1:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:John.2.24" parsed="|John|2|24|0|0" passage="John 2:24">2:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:John.2.25" parsed="|John|2|25|0|0" passage="John 2:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16-John.3.18" parsed="|John|3|16|3|18" passage="John 3:16-18">3:16-18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:John.3.35" parsed="|John|3|35|0|0" passage="John 3:35">35</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.10" osisRef="Bible:John.4.14" parsed="|John|4|14|0|0" passage="John 4:14">4:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.11" osisRef="Bible:John.4.15" parsed="|John|4|15|0|0" passage="John 4:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.12" osisRef="Bible:John.5.18" parsed="|John|5|18|0|0" passage="John 5:18">5:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.13" osisRef="Bible:John.5.20" parsed="|John|5|20|0|0" passage="John 5:20">20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.14" osisRef="Bible:John.5.21" parsed="|John|5|21|0|0" passage="John 5:21">21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.15" osisRef="Bible:John.5.22" parsed="|John|5|22|0|0" passage="John 5:22">22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.16" osisRef="Bible:John.5.25-John.5.27" parsed="|John|5|25|5|27" passage="John 5:25-27">25-27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.17" osisRef="Bible:John.11.41-John.11.44" parsed="|John|11|41|11|44" passage="John 11:41-44">11:41-44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.18" osisRef="Bible:John.20.28" parsed="|John|20|28|0|0" passage="John 20:28">20:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.19" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.3" parsed="|1John|1|3|0|0" passage="I John 1:3">I John 1:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.20" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.23" parsed="|1John|2|23|0|0" passage="I John 2:23">2:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.21" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.14" parsed="|1John|4|14|0|0" passage="I John 4:14">4:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.22" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.15" parsed="|1John|4|15|0|0" passage="I John 4:15">15</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.23" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.5" parsed="|1John|5|5|0|0" passage="I John 5:5">5:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.24" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.10-1John.5.13" parsed="|1John|5|10|5|13" passage="I John 5:10-13">10-13</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.25" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.20" parsed="|1John|5|20|0|0" passage="I John 5:20">20</scripRef>. A similar view is found in the Pauline Epistles and in the
Epistle to the
Hebrews, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.26" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.7" parsed="|Rom|1|7|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:7">Rom. 1:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.27" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.5" parsed="|Rom|9|5|0|0" passage="Rom 9:5">9:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.28" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.1-1Cor.1.3" parsed="|1Cor|1|1|1|3" passage="I Cor. 1:1-3">I Cor. 1:1-3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.29" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.8" parsed="|1Cor|2|8|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:8">2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.30" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.10" parsed="|2Cor|5|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:10">II Cor. 5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.31" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.20" parsed="|Gal|2|20|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:20">Gal. 2:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.32" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal 4:4">4:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.33" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.6" parsed="|Phil|2|6|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:6">Phil. 2:6</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.34" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.9" parsed="|Col|2|9|0|0" passage="Col. 2:9">Col. 2:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.35" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.16" parsed="|1Tim|3|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:16">I Tim. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.36" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.1-Heb.1.3" parsed="|Heb|1|1|1|3" passage="Heb. 1:1-3">Heb. 1:1-3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.37" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.5" parsed="|Heb|1|5|0|0" passage="Heb 1:5">5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.38" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.8" parsed="|Heb|1|8|0|0" passage="Heb 1:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.39" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.14" parsed="|Heb|4|14|0|0" passage="Heb 4:14">4:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p15.40" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.8" parsed="|Heb|5|8|0|0" passage="Heb 5:8">5:8</scripRef>, and so on. Critical scholars sought escape
from the doctrine clearly taught in these writings in various ways as,
for instance, by
denying the historicity of the Gospel of John and the authenticity of
many of the
Epistles of Paul; by regarding the representations of John, Paul, and
Hebrews as
unwarranted interpretations, in the case of John and Hebrews especially
under the
influence of the Philonic Logos doctrine, and in the case of Paul
under the same
influence, or under that of his pre-Christian, Jewish views; or by
ascribing to Paul a
lower view than is found in John, namely, that of Christ as a
pre-existent, heavenly man. </p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p16" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p16.1"> In the Synoptics.</span>
Some maintain that the Synoptics only furnish us with a
true
picture of Christ. They, it is said, portray the human, the truly
historical Jesus, as
contrasted with the idealized picture of the Fourth Gospel. But it is
perfectly evident
that the Christ of the Synoptics is just as truly divine as the Christ
of John. He stands out
as a supernatural person throughout, the Son of Man and the Son of God.
His character and works justify His claim. Notice particularly the following
passages: <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.17" parsed="|Matt|5|17|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:17">Matt. 5:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.9.6" parsed="|Matt|9|6|0|0" passage="Matt 9:6">9:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.1-Matt.11.6" parsed="|Matt|11|1|11|6" passage="Matt 11:1-6">11:1-6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.27" parsed="|Matt|11|27|0|0" passage="Matt 11:27">27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.14.33" parsed="|Matt|14|33|0|0" passage="Matt 14:33">14:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.16" parsed="|Matt|16|16|0|0" passage="Matt 16:16">16:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.17" parsed="|Matt|16|17|0|0" passage="Matt 16:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.18" parsed="|Matt|28|18|0|0" passage="Matt 28:18">28:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt 25:31">25:31</scripRef> ff.; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p16.11" osisRef="Bible:Mark.8.38" parsed="|Mark|8|38|0|0" passage="Mark 8:38">Mark 8:38</scripRef>, and many similar and parallel passages. Dr.
Warfield's<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p16.12">
The Lord of Glory</span>
is very
illuminating on this point. </p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p17" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p17.1">
In the self-consciousness of Jesus.</span>
In recent years
there has been a tendency to go
back to the<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p17.2">
self-consciousness of Jesus</span>
and to deny that He was
conscious of being the Messiah or the Son of God. Naturally, it is not possible
to have any knowledge of the
consciousness of Jesus, except through His words, as these are recorded
in the Gospels;
and it is always possible to deny that they correctly express the mind
of Jesus. For those
who accept the Gospel testimony there can be no doubt as to the fact
that Jesus was
conscious of being the very Son of God. The following passages bear
witness to this:  <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.27" parsed="|Matt|11|27|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:27">Matt.
11:27</scripRef> (<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.10.22" parsed="|Luke|10|22|0|0" passage="Luke 10:22">Luke 10:22</scripRef>); 21:37,38 (<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Mark.12.6" parsed="|Mark|12|6|0|0" passage="Mk. 12:6">Mk. 12:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.20.13" parsed="|Luke|20|13|0|0" passage="Luke 20:13">Luke 20:13</scripRef>); 22:41-46 (<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.35-Mark.13.37" parsed="|Mark|13|35|13|37" passage="Mk. 13:35-37">Mk. 13:35-37</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.20.41-Luke.20.44" parsed="|Luke|20|41|20|44" passage="Luke 20:41-44">Luke 20:41-44</scripRef>); 24:36 (<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.32" parsed="|Mark|13|32|0|0" passage="Mk. 13:32">Mk. 13:32</scripRef>); 28:19. Some of these passages testify to Jesus' Messianic
consciousness; others to the fact that He was conscious of being the Son
of God in the
most exalted sense. There are several passages in Matthew and Luke, in
which He
speaks of the
first person of the Trinity as "my Father," <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.21" parsed="|Matt|7|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:21">Matt. 7:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.32" parsed="|Matt|10|32|0|0" passage="Matt 10:32">10:32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.33" parsed="|Matt|10|33|0|0" passage="Matt 10:33">33</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.27" parsed="|Matt|11|27|0|0" passage="Matt 11:27">11:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.50" parsed="|Matt|12|50|0|0" passage="Matt 12:50">12:50</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.15.13" parsed="|Matt|15|13|0|0" passage="Matt 15:13">15:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.17" parsed="|Matt|16|17|0|0" passage="Matt 16:17">16:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.17" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.10" parsed="|Matt|18|10|0|0" passage="Matt 18:10">18:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.18" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.19" parsed="|Matt|18|19|0|0" passage="Matt 18:19">19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.35" parsed="|Matt|18|35|0|0" passage="Matt 18:35">35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.20" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.23" parsed="|Matt|20|23|0|0" passage="Matt 20:23">20:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.21" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.34" parsed="|Matt|25|34|0|0" passage="Matt 25:34">25:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.29" parsed="|Matt|26|29|0|0" passage="Matt 26:29">26:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.23" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.53" parsed="|Matt|26|53|0|0" passage="Matt 26:53">53</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.24" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.49" parsed="|Luke|2|49|0|0" passage="Luke 2:49">Luke 2:49</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.25" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.29" parsed="|Luke|22|29|0|0" passage="Luke 22:29">22:29</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.26" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.49" parsed="|Luke|24|49|0|0" passage="Luke 24:49">24:49</scripRef>. In the Gospel of
John the consciousness of being the very Son of God is even more apparent
in such
passages as <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.27" osisRef="Bible:John.3.13" parsed="|John|3|13|0|0" passage="John 3:13">John 3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.28" osisRef="Bible:John.5.17" parsed="|John|5|17|0|0" passage="John 5:17">5:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.29" osisRef="Bible:John.5.18" parsed="|John|5|18|0|0" passage="John 5:18">18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.30" osisRef="Bible:John.5.19-John.5.27" parsed="|John|5|19|5|27" passage="John 5:19-27">19-27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.31" osisRef="Bible:John.6.37-John.6.40" parsed="|John|6|37|6|40" passage="John 6:37-40">6:37-40</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.32" osisRef="Bible:John.6.57" parsed="|John|6|57|0|0" passage="John 6:57">57</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.33" osisRef="Bible:John.8.34-John.8.36" parsed="|John|8|34|8|36" passage="John 8:34-36">8:34-36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.34" osisRef="Bible:John.10.17" parsed="|John|10|17|0|0" passage="John 10:17">10:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.35" osisRef="Bible:John.10.18" parsed="|John|10|18|0|0" passage="John 10:18">18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.36" osisRef="Bible:John.10.30" parsed="|John|10|30|0|0" passage="John 10:30">30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.37" osisRef="Bible:John.10.35" parsed="|John|10|35|0|0" passage="John 10:35">35</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p17.38" osisRef="Bible:John.10.36" parsed="|John|10|36|0|0" passage="John 10:36">36</scripRef>, and other
passages.</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p18" shownumber="no">2. SCRIPTURE PROOF FOR THE REAL HUMANITY OF CHRIST. There has been a time, when
the reality (Gnosticism) and the<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p18.1">
natural</span>
integrity (Docetism,
Apollinarianism) of the
human nature of Christ was denied, but at present no one seriously
questions the real
humanity of Jesus Christ. In fact, there is at present an extreme
emphasis on His
veritable humanity, an ever-growing humanitarianism. The only divinity
many still
ascribe to Christ, is simply that of His perfect humanity. This modern
tendency is, no doubt, in part a protest against a one-sided emphasis on the
deity of Christ. Men have
sometimes forgotten the human Christ in their reverence for the divine.
It is very
important to maintain the reality and integrity of the humanity of Jesus
by admitting his
human development and human limitations. The splendor of His deity should
not be
stressed to the extent of obscuring His real humanity. Jesus called
Himself man, and is  so
called by others, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:John.8.40" parsed="|John|8|40|0|0" passage="John 8:40">John 8:40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.22" parsed="|Acts|2|22|0|0" passage="Acts 2:22">Acts 2:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.15" parsed="|Rom|5|15|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:15">Rom. 5:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.21" parsed="|1Cor|15|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:21">I Cor. 15:21</scripRef>. The most
common self-designation of Jesus, "the Son of Man," whatever connotation
it may have, certainly
also indicates the veritable humanity of Jesus. Moreover, it is said
that the Lord came or
was manifested
in the flesh, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.16" parsed="|1Tim|3|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:16">I Tim. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.8" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.2" parsed="|1John|4|2|0|0" passage="I John 4:2">I John 4:2</scripRef>. In these passages the
term
"flesh" denotes human nature. The Bible clearly
indicates that Jesus possessed the
essential elements of human nature, that is, a material body and a
rational soul, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.26" parsed="|Matt|26|26|0|0" passage="Matt. 26:26">Matt. 26:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.28" parsed="|Matt|26|28|0|0" passage="Matt 26:28">28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.38" parsed="|Matt|26|38|0|0" passage="Matt 26:38">38</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.12" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.46" parsed="|Luke|23|46|0|0" passage="Luke 23:46">Luke 23:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.13" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.39" parsed="|Luke|24|39|0|0" passage="Luke 24:39">24:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.14" osisRef="Bible:John.11.33" parsed="|John|11|33|0|0" passage="John 11:33">John 11:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.15" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.14" parsed="|Heb|2|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:14">Heb. 2:14</scripRef>. There are also passages which show
that Jesus was subject to the ordinary laws of human development, and to
human wants
and sufferings, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.16" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.40" parsed="|Luke|2|40|0|0" passage="Luke 2:40">Luke 2:40</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.17" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.52" parsed="|Luke|2|52|0|0" passage="Luke 2:52">52</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.18" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.10" parsed="|Heb|2|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:10">Heb. 2:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.19" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.18" parsed="|Heb|2|18|0|0" passage="Heb 2:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.20" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.8" parsed="|Heb|5|8|0|0" passage="Heb 5:8">5:8</scripRef>. It is brought out in
detail that the normal
experiences of
man's life were His, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.21" osisRef="Bible:Matt.4.2" parsed="|Matt|4|2|0|0" passage="Matt. 4:2">Matt. 4:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.24" parsed="|Matt|8|24|0|0" passage="Matt 8:24">8:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.23" osisRef="Bible:Matt.9.36" parsed="|Matt|9|36|0|0" passage="Matt 9:36">9:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.24" osisRef="Bible:Mark.3.5" parsed="|Mark|3|5|0|0" passage="Mk. 3:5">Mk. 3:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.25" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.44" parsed="|Luke|22|44|0|0" passage="Lk. 22:44">Lk. 22:44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.26" osisRef="Bible:John.4.6" parsed="|John|4|6|0|0" passage="John 4:6">John 4:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.27" osisRef="Bible:John.11.35" parsed="|John|11|35|0|0" passage="John 11:35">11:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.28" osisRef="Bible:John.12.27" parsed="|John|12|27|0|0" passage="John 12:27">12:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.29" osisRef="Bible:John.19.28" parsed="|John|19|28|0|0" passage="John 19:28">19:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.30" osisRef="Bible:John.19.30" parsed="|John|19|30|0|0" passage="John 19:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p18.31" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.7" parsed="|Heb|5|7|0|0" passage="Heb. 5:7">Heb. 5:7</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p19" shownumber="no">3.SCRIPTURE PROOF FOR THE SINLESS HUMANITY OF CHRIST. We ascribe to Christ not
only natural, but also moral, integrity or moral perfection, that is
sinlessness. This
means not merely that Christ could avoid sinning (<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p19.1">potuit non peccare</span>), and did actually
avoid it, but also that it was impossible for Him to sin (<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p19.2">non potuit peccare</span>) because of the
essential bond between the human and the divine natures. The sinlessness
of Christ has been denied by Martineau, Irving, Menken, Holsten, and Pfleiderer,
but the Bible clearly
testifies to it
in the following passages: <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">Luke 1:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:John.8.46" parsed="|John|8|46|0|0" passage="John 8:46">John 8:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:John.14.30" parsed="|John|14|30|0|0" passage="John 14:30">14:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.6" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.21" parsed="|2Cor|5|21|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:21">II Cor. 5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.15" parsed="|Heb|4|15|0|0" passage="Heb. 4:15">Heb. 4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.14" parsed="|Heb|9|14|0|0" passage="Heb 9:14">9:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.9" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.22" parsed="|1Pet|2|22|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:22">I Pet. 2:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.10" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.5" parsed="|1John|3|5|0|0" passage="I John 3:5">I John 3:5</scripRef>. While Christ was made to be sin judicially, yet ethically He
was free from both hereditary depravity and actual sin. He never makes a
confession of
moral error; nor does He join His disciples in praying, "Forgive us
our sins." He is able to challenge His enemies to convince Him of sin.
Scripture even represents Him as the
one in whom the
ideal man is realized, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.11" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.8" parsed="|Heb|2|8|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:8">Heb. 2:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|9|0|0" passage="Heb 2:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.45" parsed="|1Cor|15|45|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:45">I Cor. 15:45</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.14" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.18" parsed="|2Cor|3|18|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:18">II Cor. 3:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p19.15" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:21">Phil. 3:21</scripRef>.
Moreover, the name "Son of Man," appropriated by Jesus, seems
to intimate that He
answered to the perfect ideal of humanity.
</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p20" shownumber="no">4. THE
NECESSITY OF THE TWO NATURES IN CHRIST. It appears from the preceding that,
in the present day, many do not recognize the necessity of assuming two
natures in
Christ. To them Jesus is but a man; yet at the same time they feel
constrained to ascribe
to Him the value of a God, or to claim divinity for Him in virtue of the
immanence of
God in Him, or of the indwelling Spirit. The necessity of the two
natures in Christ
follows from what is essential to the Scriptural doctrine of the
atonement.</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p21" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p21.1"> The necessity of His manhood.</span>
Since man
sinned, it was necessary that the penalty
should be borne by man. Moreover, the paying of the penalty involved
suffering of
body and soul, such as only man is capable of bearing, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:John.12.27" parsed="|John|12|27|0|0" passage="John 12:27">John 12:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.18" parsed="|Acts|3|18|0|0" passage="Acts 3:18">Acts 3:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.14" parsed="|Heb|2|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:14">Heb. 2:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.22" parsed="|Heb|9|22|0|0" passage="Heb 9:22">9:22</scripRef>. It was necessary that Christ should assume human nature, not only
with all its
essential properties, but also with all the infirmities to which it is
liable after the fall, and
should thus descend to the depths of degradation to which man had fallen,
<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.17" parsed="|Heb|2|17|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:17">Heb. 2:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.18" parsed="|Heb|2|18|0|0" passage="Heb 2:18">18</scripRef>. At the same time, He had to be a sinless man, for a man who was
himself a
sinner and who had forfeited his own life, certainly could not atone for
others, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.26" parsed="|Heb|7|26|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:26">Heb. 7:26</scripRef>. Only such a truly human Mediator, who had experimental knowledge
of the woes
of mankind and rose superior to all temptations, could enter
sympathetically into all the
experiences, the trials, and the temptations of man, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.17" parsed="|Heb|2|17|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:17">Heb. 2:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.10" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.18" parsed="|Heb|2|18|0|0" passage="Heb 2:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.11" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.15-Heb.5.2" parsed="|Heb|4|15|5|2" passage="Heb 4:15-5:2">4:15-5:2</scripRef>, and be a
perfect human example for His followers, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.29" parsed="|Matt|11|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:29">Matt. 11:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.13" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.39" parsed="|Mark|10|39|0|0" passage="Mk. 10:39">Mk. 10:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.14" osisRef="Bible:John.13.13-John.13.15" parsed="|John|13|13|13|15" passage="John 13:13-15">John 13:13-15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.15" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.5-Phil.2.8" parsed="|Phil|2|5|2|8" passage="Phil. 2:5-8">Phil. 2:5-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.16" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.2-Heb.12.4" parsed="|Heb|12|2|12|4" passage="Heb. 12:2-4">Heb. 12:2-4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p21.17" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.21" parsed="|1Pet|2|21|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:21">I Pet. 2:21</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p22" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p22.1"> The necessity of His Godhead.</span>
In the divine
plan of salvation it was absolutely
essential that the Mediator should also be very God. This was necessary,
in order that
(1) He might bring a sacrifice of infinite value and render perfect
obedience to the law of
God; (2) He might bear the wrath of God redemptively, that is, so as to
free others from
the curse of the law; and (3) He might be able to apply the fruits of
His accomplished
work to those who accepted Him by faith. Man with his bankrupt life can
neither pay
the penalty of sin, nor render perfect obedience to God. He can bear the
wrath of God
and, except for the redeeming grace of God, will have to bear it
eternally, but he cannot
bear it so as to
open a way of escape, <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.7-Ps.49.10" parsed="|Ps|49|7|49|10" passage="Ps. 49:7-10">Ps. 49:7-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.ii-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.130.3" parsed="|Ps|130|3|0|0" passage="Ps 130:3">130:3</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p23" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. What Old Testament persons bore the name 'Jesus,'
and in what respect did they typify the Saviour? Is the bare title 'the
Messiah,' without a
genitive or a pronominal suffix, ever found in the Old Testament? How
does Dalman
account for its occurence in Jewish apocalyptic literature? Do the terms
'the anointed of
Jehovah,' 'His
anointed,' and 'my anointed' always have the same meaning in the Old
Testament? Whence comes the idea that believers share the anointing of
Christ? What
about the idea that the name 'Son of Man,' reduced to its probable
Aramaic original,
simply means 'man'? How about the idea of Weiss and Schweitzer that
Jesus employed the name only in a futuristic sense? Did He use it before
Peter's confession at Cæsarea-Philippi? How do the liberals square their conception of Jesus as the
Son of God only in
a religious and ethical sense with the data of Scripture? What is the
usual view of the
origin of the<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p23.1">
Kurios</span>-title? What theory was broached by Bousset and other liberal
scholars? What accounts for the opposition to the two-natures doctrine?
Is it a necessary
doctrine, or is there some other doctrine that might take its place?
What objections are
there to the adoptionist doctrine;—to the Kenotic theories;—to the idea
of a gradual
incarnation;—to the Ritschlian view;—to Sanday's theory?
</p>

<p id="v.i.ii-p24" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 259-265, 328-335, 394-396;
Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Christo I</span>, pp. 44-61, 128-153; II, pp. 2-23;
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.3">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp.
378-387; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.4">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>
pp. 464-477; Vos,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.5">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 1-31; ibid.<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.6">
The Self-Disclosure of Jesus</span>, pp. 104-256; ibid. on the<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.7">
Kurios-title Princeton Theol. Review</span>, Vol. XIII,
pp. 151 ff.;
Vol. XV, pp. 21 ff.; Dalman,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.8">
The Words of Jesus</span>,
pp. 234-331; Warfield,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.9">
The Lord of Glory</span>, cf. Index; Liddon,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.10">
The Divinity of our Lord</span>, Lect. V;
Rostron,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.11">
The Christology of St. Paul</span>, pp. 154 ff.; Machen,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.12">
The Origin of Paul's Religion</span>, pp. 293-317; Stanton,<span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.13">
The Jewish </span><span class="ital" id="v.i.ii-p24.14">
and
the Christian</span>
Messiah, pp. 239-250.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.i.iii" next="v.ii" prev="v.i.ii" title="III. The Unipersonality of Christ">
<h2 id="v.i.iii-p0.1">III. The Unipersonality of Christ</h2>
<p id="v.i.iii-p1" shownumber="no">In the year 451 A.D. the Council of Chalcedon met and
formulated the faith of the
Church respecting the person of Christ, and declared Him "to be
acknowledged in two
natures, inconfusedly, unchangeably, indivisibly, inseperably; the
distinction of the
natures being in no wise taken away by the union, but rather the property
of each
nature being preserved, and concurring in one Person and one Subsistence,
not parted
or divided into two persons." This formulation is
mainly negative, and simply seeks to
guard the truth against various heretical views. It clearly states the
faith of the early
Church respecting the person of Christ, but makes no attempt to explain
the mystery
involved, a mystery that is not susceptible of a natural explanation.
The great central
miracle of history was permitted to stand forth in all its grandeur, the
supreme paradox,
to use Barthian language, God and man in one person. We
are simply told what Jesus is,
without any attempt to show how He became what He is. The great truth
enunciated is
that the eternal Son of God took upon Himself our humanity, and not, as
Brunner
reminds us, that the man Jesus acquired divinity. The deliverance of the
Council of
Chalcedon testifies to a movement from God to man, rather than vice
versa. Centuries
have gone by since that time, but, barring certain explications, the
Church has really
never gotten beyond the formula of Chalcedon. It has always recognized
the
incarnation as a mystery which defies explanation. And so it will
remain, because it is
the miracle of miracles. Several attempts have been made in course of
time to give a
psychological explanation of the person of Jesus Christ, but they were
all bound to fail,
because He is the Son of God, Himself very God, and a psychological
explanation of
God is out of the question. The following paragraphs are intended as a
brief statement
of the doctrine of the Church.</p>

<h4 id="v.i.iii-p1.1">A. STATEMENT OF THE CHURCH'S VIEW RESPECTING THE PERSON OF CHRIST.</h4>
<p id="v.i.iii-p2" shownumber="no">1. DEFINITION OF THE TERMS "NATURE" AND "PERSON." With a
view to the proper
understanding of the doctrine, it is necessary to know the exact meaning
of the terms
"nature"
and "person," as used in this connection. The term "nature"
denotes the sum-
total of all the essential qualities of a thing, that which makes it
what it is. A nature is a
substance possessed in common, with all the essential qualities of such
a substance. The
term "person" denotes a complete substance endowed with
reason, and, consequently, a
responsible subject of its own actions. Personality is not an essential
and integral part of
a nature, but is, as it were, the terminus to which it tends. A person
is a nature with
something added, namely, independent subsistence, individuality. Now the
Logos
assumed a human nature that was not personalized, that did not exist by
itself.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p3" shownumber="no">2. PROPOSITIONS IN WHICH THE VIEW OF THE CHURCH MAY BE STATED.</p>
<p id="v.i.iii-p4" shownumber="no">a. There is but one person in the Mediator, the unchangeable Logos. The
Logos
furnishes the basis for the personality of Christ. It would not be
correct, however, to say
that the person of the mediator is divine only. The incarnation
constituted Him a
complex person, constituted of two natures. He is the Godman.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p5" shownumber="no">b. The human nature of Christ as such does not constitute
a human person. The
Logos did not adopt a human person, so that we have two persons in the
Mediator, but
simply assumed a human nature. Brunner declares that it is the mystery
of the person of
Jesus Christ that at the point where we have a sinful person, He has, or
rather is, the
divine person of the Logos. </p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p6" shownumber="no">c. At the same time it is not correct to speak of the
human nature of Christ as
impersonal. This is true only in the sense that this nature has no
independent
subsistence of its own. Strictly speaking, however, the human nature of
Christ was not
for a moment impersonal. The Logos assumed that nature into personal
subsistence
with Himself. The human nature has its personal existence in the person
of the Logos. It
is in-personal rather than impersonal.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p7" shownumber="no">d. For that very reason we are not warranted to speak of
the human nature of Christ
as imperfect or incomplete. His human nature is not lacking in any of
the essential
qualities belonging to that nature, and also has individuality, that is,
personal
subsistence, in the person of the Son of God.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p8" shownumber="no">e. This personal subsistence should not be confused with
consciousness and free
will. The fact that the human nature of Christ, in and by itself, has no
personal
subsistence, does not mean that it has no consciousness and will. The
Church has taken
the position that these belong to the nature rather than to the person.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p9" shownumber="no">f. The one divine person, who possessed a divine nature
from eternity, assumed a
human nature, and now has both. This must be maintained over against
those who,
while admitting that the divine person assumed a human nature, jeopardize
the
integrity of the two natures by conceiving of them as having been fused
or mixed into a
<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p9.1">tertium quid</span>, a sort of divine-human nature. </p>

<h4 id="v.i.iii-p9.2">B. SCRIPTURAL PROOF FOR THE UNIPERSONALITY OF CHRIST.</h4>
<p id="v.i.iii-p10" shownumber="no">The doctrine of the two natures in one person transcends
human reason. It is the
expression of a supersensible reality, and of an incomprehensible
mystery, which has no
analogy in the life of man as we know it, and finds no support in human
reason, and
therefore can only be accepted by faith on the authority of the Word of
God. For that
reason it is doubly necessary to pay close attention to the teachings of
Scripture on this  point.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p11" shownumber="no">1. NO EVIDENCE OF A DUAL PERSONALITY IN SCRIPTURE. In the first place there is a
negative consideration of considerable importance. If there had been a
dual personality
in Jesus, we would naturally expect to find some traces of it in
Scripture; but there is not
a single trace
of it. There is no distinction of an "I" and a "Thou" in
the inner life of the
Mediator, such as we find in connection with the triune Being of God,
where one person
addresses the
other, <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.7" parsed="|Ps|2|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 2:7">Ps. 2:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.7" parsed="|Ps|40|7|0|0" passage="Ps 40:7">40:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.8" parsed="|Ps|40|8|0|0" passage="Ps 40:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:John.17.1" parsed="|John|17|1|0|0" passage="John 17:1">John 17:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:John.17.4" parsed="|John|17|4|0|0" passage="John 17:4">4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:John.17.5" parsed="|John|17|5|0|0" passage="John 17:5">5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:John.17.21-John.17.24" parsed="|John|17|21|17|24" passage="John 17:21-24">21-24</scripRef>. Moreover, Jesus never uses the
plural in referring to Himself, as God does in <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.26" parsed="|Gen|1|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:26">Gen. 1:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.22" parsed="|Gen|3|22|0|0" passage="Gen 3:22">3:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Gen.11.7" parsed="|Gen|11|7|0|0" passage="Gen 11:7">11:7</scripRef>. It
might seem as if
<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:John.3.11" parsed="|John|3|11|0|0" passage="John 3:11">John 3:11</scripRef> were a case in point. The plural is peculiar, but in all
probability refers to Jesus
and those who were associated with Him, in opposition to Nicodemus and
the group
which he represented.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p12" shownumber="no">2. BOTH NATURES ARE REPRESENTED IN SCRIPTURE AS UNITED IN ONE PERSON. There are
passages of Scripture which refer to both natures in Christ, but in
which it is perfectly
evident that only one person is intended, <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.3" parsed="|Rom|1|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:3">Rom. 1:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.4" parsed="|Rom|1|4|0|0" passage="Rom 1:4">4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.6-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|6|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:6-11">Phil. 2:6-11</scripRef>. In several
passages both natures are set forth as united. The Bible nowhere teaches
that divinity in the abstract, or some divine power, was united to, or
manifested in, a human nature; but
always that the divine nature in the concrete, that is, the divine
person of the Son of
God, was united
to a human nature, <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.3" parsed="|Rom|8|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:3">Rom. 8:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:Gal.9.5" parsed="|Gal|9|5|0|0" passage="Gal 9:5">9:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.16" parsed="|1Tim|3|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:16">I Tim. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.11-Heb.2.14" parsed="|Heb|2|11|2|14" passage="Heb. 2:11-14">Heb. 2:11-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.12" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.2" parsed="|1John|4|2|0|0" passage="I John 4:2">I John 4:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p12.13" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.3" parsed="|1John|4|3|0|0" passage="I John 4:3">3</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p13" shownumber="no">3. THE ONE PERSON IS SPOKEN OF IN TERMS TRUE OF EITHER ONE OF THE NATURES.
Repeatedly the attributes of one nature are predicated of the person,
while that person
is designated by a title derived from the other nature. On the one hand
human
attributes and actions are predicated of the person while he is
designated by a divine
title, <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.28" parsed="|Acts|20|28|0|0" passage="Acts 20:28">Acts 20:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.8" parsed="|1Cor|2|8|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:8">I Cor. 2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.13" parsed="|Col|1|13|0|0" passage="Col. 1:13">Col. 1:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.14" parsed="|Col|1|14|0|0" passage="Col 1:14">14</scripRef>. And on the other hand
divine attributes and
actions are predicated of the person while he is designated by a human
title, <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:John.3.13" parsed="|John|3|13|0|0" passage="John 3:13">John 3:13</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:John.6.62" parsed="|John|6|62|0|0" passage="John 6:62">6:62</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.5" parsed="|Rom|9|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:5">Rom. 9:5</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="v.i.iii-p13.8">C. THE EFFECTS OF THE UNION OF THE TWO NATURES IN ONE PERSON.</h4>
<p id="v.i.iii-p14" shownumber="no">1. NO ESSENTIAL CHANGE IN THE DIVINE NATURE. The doctrine of creation and the
doctrine of the incarnation always constituted a problem in connection
with the
immutability of God. This was already pointed out in the discussion of
that attribute.
However this problem may be solved, it should be maintained that the
divine nature
did not undergo any essential change in the incarnation. This also means
that it
remained impassible, that is, incapable of suffering and death, free
from ignorance, and
insusceptible to weakness and temptation. It is well to stress the fact
that the incarnation
was a<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p14.1">
personal act.</span>
It is better to say that the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p14.2">
person</span>
of the Son of God
became incarnate
than to say that the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p14.3">
divine nature</span>
assumed human flesh.
If Reformed theologians do
occasionally speak of the divine nature as incarnate, they speak of it
"not immediately
but mediately," to use the language of scholastic theology; they
consider this nature not
absolutely and in itself, but in the person of the Son of God. The
result of the incarnation
was that the divine Saviour could be ignorant and weak, could be tempted,
and could
suffer and die, not in His divine nature, but derivatively, by virtue of
His possession of a
human nature.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p15" shownumber="no">2. A THREEFOLD COMMUNICATION RESULTED FROM THE INCARNATION.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p16" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p16.1">A communicatio idiomatum, or communication of properties.</span>
This means that
the
properties of both, the human and the divine natures, are now the
properties of the
person, and are therefore ascribed to the person. The person can be said
to be almighty,
omniscient, omnipresent, and so on, but can also be called a man of
sorrows, of limited
knowledge and power, and subject to human want and miseries. We must be
careful not
to understand the term to mean that anything peculiar to the divine
nature was
communicated to the human nature, or vice versa; or that there is an
interpenetration of
the two natures, as a result of which the divine is humanized, and the
human is deified
(Rome). The deity cannot share in human weaknesses; neither can man
participate in any of the essential perfections of the Godhead.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p17" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p17.1">A communicatio apotelesmatum or operationum.</span>
This means that
the redemptive work of Christ, and particularly the final result of that work, the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p17.2">
apotelesma</span>, bears a
divine-human character. Analyzing this, we can say that it means: (1)
that the efficient
cause of the redemptive work of Christ is the one undivided personal
subject in Christ;
(2) that it is brought about by the co-operation of both natures; (3)
that each of these natures works with its own special<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p17.3">
energeia;</span>
and (4) that,
notwithstanding this, the result
forms an undivided unity, because it is the work of a single person.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p18" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p18.1">
A communicatio charismatum or gratiarum.</span>
This means that
the human nature of
Christ, from the very first moment of its existence, was adorned with
all kinds of rich
and glorious
gifts, as for instance, (1) the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p18.2">
gratia unionis cum persona tou Logou</span>, that is, the
grace and glory of being united to the divine Logos, also called the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p18.3">
gratia eminentiae</span>, by
which the human nature is elevated high above all creatures, and even
becomes the
object of
adoration; and (2) the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p18.4">
gratia habitualis</span>, consisting of
those gifts of the Spirit,
particularly of the intellect, of the will, and of power, by which the
human nature of
Christ was exalted high above all intelligent creatures. His
impeccability, the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p18.5">
non posse
peccare</span>, especially should be mentioned here.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p19" shownumber="no">3. THE GOD-MAN IS THE OBJECT OF PRAYER. Another effect of the union is, that the
Mediator just as He now exists, that is, in both natures, is the object
of our prayer. It
should be borne in mind that the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p19.1">
honor adorationis</span>
does not belong to
the human nature
as such, but belongs to it only in virtue of its union with the divine
Logos, who is in His
very nature<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p19.2">
adorabilis.</span>
We must distinguish between the object and the ground of this
adoration. The object of our religious worship is the God-man Jesus
Christ, but the
ground on which we adore Him lies in the person of the Logos.
</p>

<h4 id="v.i.iii-p19.3">D. THE UNIPERSONALITY OF CHRIST A MYSTERY.</h4>
<p id="v.i.iii-p20" shownumber="no">The union of the two natures in one person is a mystery
which we cannot grasp, and
which for that very reason is often denied. It has sometimes been
compared with the
union of body and soul in man; and there are some points of similarity.
In man there are
two substances, matter and spirit, most closely united and yet not
mixed; so also in the
Mediator. In man the principle of unity, the person, does not have its
seat in the body
but in the soul; in the Mediator, not in the human, but in the divine
nature. As the
influence of the soul on the body and of the body on the soul is a
mystery, so also the connection of the two natures in Christ and their mutual
influence on each other.
Everything that happens in the body and in the soul is ascribed to the
person; so all that
takes place in the two natures of Christ is predicated of the person.
Sometimes a man is
denominated according to his spiritual element, when something is
predicated of him
that applies more particularly to the body, and<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p20.1">
vice versa.</span>
Similarly things that apply
only to the human
nature of Christ are ascribed to Him when He is named after His
divine nature, and<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p20.2">
vice versa.</span>
As it is an honor
for the body to be united with the soul, so
it is an honor for the human nature of Christ to be united with the
person of the Logos.
Of course, the comparison is defective. It does not illustrate the union
of the divine and
the human, of the infinite and the finite. It does not even illustrate
the unity of two
spiritual natures in a single person. In the case of man the body is
material and the soul
is spiritual. It is a wonderful union, but not as wonderful as the union
of the two
natures in Christ.
</p>

<h4 id="v.i.iii-p20.3">E. THE LUTHERAN DOCTRINE OF THE COMMUNICATION OF ATTRIBUTES.</h4>
<p id="v.i.iii-p21" shownumber="no">1. STATEMENT OF THE LUTHERANPOSITION. The Lutherans differ from the Reformed
in their doctrine of the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p21.1">
communicatio idiomatum.</span>
They teach that the attributes of one
nature are ascribed to the other on the basis of an actual transference,
and feel that it is
only by such a transference that the real unity of the person can be
secured. This
position does not involve a denial of the fact that the attributes of
both natures can be ascribed to the person, but adds something to that in the
interest, as they see it, of the
unity of the person. They did not always state their doctrine in the
same form. Luther
and some of the early Lutherans occasionally spoke of a communication in
both
directions, from the divine nature to the human, and also from the human
to the divine.
In the subsequent development of the doctrine, however, the communication
from the human nature to the divine soon receded from sight, and only that from
the divine to
the human nature was stressed. A still greater limitation soon followed.
Lutheran
scholastics distinguished between the operative attributes of God
(omnipotence,
omnipresence, and omniscience), and His quiescent attributes
(infinitude, eternity, etc.),
and taught that only the former were transferred to the human nature.
They were all
agreed that the communication took place at the time of the incarnation.
But the
question naturally arose how this could be squared with the picture of
Christ in the
Gospels, which is not the picture of an omniscient and omnipresent man.
This gave rise
to a difference of opinion. According to some, Christ necessarily
exercised these
attributes during His humiliation, but did it secretly; but according to
others their
exercise was subject to the will of the divine person, who voluntarily
left them
inoperative during the period of His humiliation. Opposition to this
doctrine repeatedly
manifested itself in the Lutheran Church. It was pointed out that it is
inconsistent with
the idea of a truly human development in the life of Christ, so clearly
taught by Luther
himself. The great Reformer's insistence on the communication of
attributes finds its
explanation partly in his mystical tendencies, and partly in his
teachings respecting the
physical
presence of Christ in the Lord's Supper. </p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p22" shownumber="no">2. OBJECTIONS TO THIS LUTHERAN DOCTRINE. There are
serious objections to the
Lutheran
doctrine of the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p22.1">
communicatio idiomatum.</span></p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p23" shownumber="no">a. It has no Scriptural foundation. If it is inferred
from such a statement as that in
<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:John.3.13" parsed="|John|3|13|0|0" passage="John 3:13">John 3:13</scripRef>, then, in consistency, it ought also to be concluded from <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.8" parsed="|1Cor|2|8|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:8">I
Cor. 2:8</scripRef> that the
ability to suffer was communicated to the divine nature. Yet the
Lutherans shrink back from that conclusion.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p24" shownumber="no">b. It implies a fusion of the divine and the human
natures in Christ. Lutherans speak
as if the attributes can be abstracted from the nature, and can be
communicated while
the natures remain separate, but substance and attributes cannot be so
separated. By a
communication of divine attributes to the human nature that nature<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p24.1">
as such</span>
ceases to
exist. Omnipresence and omniscience are not compatible with humanity.
Such a
communication results in a mixture of the divine and the human, which
the Bible keeps
strictly separate.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p25" shownumber="no">c. In the form in which the doctrine is now generally
accepted by the Lutherans, the
doctrine suffers from inconsistency. If the divine attributes are
communicated to the
human nature, the human must also be communicated to the divine. And if
some
attributes are communicated, they must all be communicated. But the
Lutherans
evidently do not dare to go the full length, and therefore stop half
way.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p26" shownumber="no">d. It is inconsistent with the picture of the incarnate
Christ during the time of His
humiliation, as we find it in the Gospels. This is not the picture of a
man who is
omnipresent and omniscient. The Lutheran explanations of this
inconsistency failed to
commend themselves to the mind of the Church in general, and even to
some of the
followers of
Luther. </p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p27" shownumber="no">e. It virtually destroys the incarnation. Lutherans
distinguish between the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p27.1">
incarnatio
and the exinanitio.</span>
The Logos is the subject only of the former. He makes the human
nature receptive for the inhabitation of the fulness of the Godhead and
communicates to
it some of the divine attributes. But by doing this He virtually
abrogates the human
nature by assimilating it to the divine. Thus only the divine remains.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p28" shownumber="no">f. It also practically obliterates the distinction
between the state of humiliation and
the state of exaltation. Brenz even says that these were not successive
states, but states
that co-existed during the earthly life of Christ. To escape the
difficulty here, the
Lutherans brought in the doctrine of the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p28.1">
exinanitio</span>, of which not the Logos but the God-man is the subject, to the effect that He practically emptied Himself,
or laid aside the divine attributes. Some spoke of a constant but secret, and others of an
intermittent use
of them. </p>

<h4 id="v.i.iii-p28.2">F. THE KENOSIS DOCTRINE IN VARIOUS FORMS.</h4>

<p id="v.i.iii-p29" shownumber="no">About the middle of the nineteenth century a new form of
Christology made its
appearance in the Kenotic theories. It found favor especially among the
Lutherans, but
also with some Reformed theologians. It represents part of an attempt to
bring the
Lutheran and the Reformed sections of the Church closer together. The
advocates of this
new view desired to do full justice to the reality and integrity of the
manhood of Christ,
and to stress the magnitude of His self-denial and self-sacrifice.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p30" shownumber="no">1. STATEMENT OF THE DOCTRINE. The term "kenosis" is used in a two-fold sense in
theology. Originally it was used by Lutheran theologians to denote the
self-limitation, not of the Logos, but of the God-man, whereby He, in the
interest of His humiliation,
laid aside the actual use of His divine attributes. In the teachings of
the Kenoticists,
however, it signalized the doctrine that the Logos at the incarnation
was denuded of His
transitive or of all His attributes, was reduced to a mere potentiality,
and then, in union
with the human nature, developed again into a divine-human person. The
main forms
in which this doctrine were taught are the following:
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p31" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p31.1">
The theory of Thomasius, Delitzsch and Crosby.</span>
Thomasius
distinguishes between the absolute and essential attributes of God, such as absolute power,
holiness, truth, and
love, and His relative attributes, which are not essential to the
Godhead, such as
omnipotence, omnipresence, and omniscience; and maintains that the Logos
while
retaining His divine self-consciousness, laid the latter aside, in order
to take unto
Himself veritable human nature.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p32" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p32.1">
The theory of Gess and H. W. Beecher.</span>
This is far
more thorough-going. La Touche
speaks of it as "incarnation by divine suicide." The Logos so
depotentiated Himself of
all His divine attributes that He literally ceased from His cosmic
functions and His
eternal consciousness during the years of His earthly life. His
consciousness became
purely that of a human soul, and consequently He could and did take the
place of the
human soul in Christ. Thus the true manhood of Christ, even to the
extent of His
peccability, was
secured. </p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p33" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p33.1">
The theory of Ebrard.</span>
Ebrard
agrees with Gess in making the incarnate Logos take
the place of the human soul. The eternal Son gave up the form of
eternity, and in full
self-limitation assumed the existence-form of a human life-center. But
with him this self-
reduction does not amount to a complete depotentiation of the Logos. The
divine
properties were retained, but were possessed by the God-man in the
time-form
appropriate to a human mode of existence.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p34" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p34.1">
The theory of Martensen and Gore.</span>
Martensen
postulated the existence of a double
life in the incarnate Logos from two non-communicating life-centers. As
being in the
bosom of God, He continued to function in the trinitarian life and also
in His cosmic
relations to the world as Creator and Sustainer. But at the same time
He, as the
depotentiated Logos, united with a human nature, knew nothing of His
trinitarian and
cosmic functions, and only knew Himself to be God in such a sense as
that knowledge
is possible to the faculties of manhood.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p35" shownumber="no">2. SUPPOSED SCRIPTURAL BASIS FOR THE DOCTRINE. The Kenotics seek Scriptural
support for their doctrine, especially in <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p35.1" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.6-Phil.2.8" parsed="|Phil|2|6|2|8" passage="Phil. 2:6-8">Phil. 2:6-8</scripRef>, but also in <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p35.2" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.9" parsed="|2Cor|8|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:9">II
Cor. 8:9</scripRef> and <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p35.3" osisRef="Bible:John.17.5" parsed="|John|17|5|0|0" passage="John 17:5">John 17:5</scripRef>.
The term
"kenosis" is derived from the main verb in <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p35.4" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.7" parsed="|Phil|2|7|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:7">Phil. 2:7</scripRef>,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.5">
ekenosen.</span>
This is rendered
in the American
Revised Version, "emptied Himself." Dr. Warfield calls this a
mistranslation.<note anchored="yes" id="v.i.iii-p35.6" n="8" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.7">Christology and Criticism</span>, p. 375</note>
The verb is found in only four
other New Testament passages, namely,
<scripRef id="v.i.iii-p35.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.14" parsed="|Rom|4|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:14">Rom. 4:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p35.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.17" parsed="|1Cor|1|17|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:17">I Cor. 1:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p35.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.9.15" parsed="|1Cor|9|15|0|0" passage="I Cor. 9:15">9:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p35.11" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.3" parsed="|2Cor|9|3|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:3">II Cor. 9:3</scripRef>. In all of these it is used figuratively and means
"to make void," "of no effect," "of no account,"
"of no reputation."<note anchored="yes" id="v.i.iii-p35.12" n="9" place="foot">Cf. Auth. Ver. in <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p35.13" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.7" parsed="|Phil|2|7|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:7">Phil. 2:7</scripRef>.</note>
If we so understand the
word here, it simply means that Christ made Himself of no account, of no
reputation,
did not assert His divine prerogative, but took the form of a servant.
But even if we take
the word in its literal sense, it does not support the Kenosis theory.
It would, if we
understood that which He laid aside to be the<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.14">
morphe theou</span>
(form of God), and then
conceived of<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.15">
morphe</span>
strictly as the essential or specific character of the Godhead. In all
probability<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.16">
morphe</span>
must be so understood, but the verb<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.17">
ekenosen</span>
does not refer to<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.18">
morphe theou</span>, but to<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.19">
einai isa theoi</span>
(dat.) that is, His being on an equality with God. The fact that
Christ took the form of a servant does not involve a laying aside of the
form of God.
There was no exchange of the one for the other. Though He pre-existed in
the form of
God, Christ did not count the being on an equality with God as a prize
which He must
not let slip, but emptied Himself, taking the form of a servant. Now
what does His
becoming a servant involve? A state of subjection in which one is called
upon to render
obedience. And the opposite of this is a state of sovereignty in which
one has the right
to command. The being on an equality with God does not denote a mode of
being, but a
state which Christ exchanged for another state.<note anchored="yes" id="v.i.iii-p35.20" n="10" place="foot">Cf. Kennedy, in <span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.21">Exp. Gk. Test.;</span> Ewald, in <span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.22">Zahn's comm.;</span> Vos, <span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.23">Notes on Christology of Paul;</span> Cooke, <span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p35.24">The Incarnation and Recent Criticism,</span> pp. 201 ff.</note></p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p36" shownumber="no">3. OBJECTIONS TO THE KENOSIS DOCTRINE.</p>
<p id="v.i.iii-p37" shownumber="no">a. The theory is based on the pantheistic conception that God and man
are not so
absolutely different but that the one can be transformed into the other.
The Hegelian
idea of<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p37.1">
becoming</span>
is applied to God, and the absolute line of demarcation is obliterated.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p38" shownumber="no">b. It is altogether subversive of the doctrine of the
immutability of God, which is
plainly taught in Scripture, <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p38.1" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.6" parsed="|Mal|3|6|0|0" passage="Mal. 3:6">Mal. 3:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.i.iii-p38.2" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.17" parsed="|Jas|1|17|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:17">Jas. 1:17</scripRef>, and which is also
implied in the very idea
of God. Absoluteness and mutability are mutually exclusive; and a
mutable God is
certainly not the God of Scripture.</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p39" shownumber="no">c. It means a virtual destruction of the Trinity, and
therefore takes away our very
God. The humanized Son, self-emptied of His divine attributes, could no
longer be a divine subsistence in the trinitarian life.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p40" shownumber="no">d. It assumes too loose a relation between the divine
mode of existence, the divine
attributes, and the divine essence, when it speaks of the former as if
they might very
well be separated from the latter. This is altogether misleading, and
involves the very
error that is condemned in connection with the Roman Catholic doctrine
of transubstantiation. </p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p41" shownumber="no">e. It does not solve the problem which it was intended to
solve. It desired to secure
the unity of the person and the reality of the Lord's manhood. But,
surely, the personal
unity is not secured by assuming a human Logos as co-existent with a
human soul. Nor
is the reality of the manhood maintained by substituting for the human
soul a
depotentiated Logos. The Christ of the Kenotics is neither God nor man.
In the words of
Dr. Warfield His
human nature is "just shrunken deity."</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p42" shownumber="no">The Kenotic theory enjoyed great popularity in Germany
for a while, but has now
practically died out there. When it began to disappear in Germany, it
found supporters
in England in
such scholars as D. W. Forrest, W. L. Walker, P. T. Forsyth, Ch. Gore, R. L.
Ottley, and H. R. Mackintosh. It finds very little
support at the present time. </p>

<h4 id="v.i.iii-p42.1">G. THE THEORY OF GRADUAL INCARNATION.</h4>
<p id="v.i.iii-p43" shownumber="no">Dorner was one of the first and the greatest of the
opponents of the Kenosis
doctrine. He set himself the task of suggesting another theory which,
while escaping the
errors of Kenoticism, would do full justice to the humanity of Christ.
He proposed to
solve the problem by the theory of a gradual or progressive incarnation.
According to
him the incarnation was not an act consummated at the
moment of the conception of
Jesus, but a gradual process by which the Logos joined Himself in an
ever-increasing
measure to the unique and representative Man (virtually a new creation),
Christ Jesus,
until the full union was finally consummated at the time of the
resurrection. The union
resulted in the God-man with a single consciousness and a single will.
In this God-man
the Logos does not supply the personality, but gives it its divine
quality. This theory
finds no support in Scripture, which always represents the incarnation
as a momentary
fact rather than as a process. It logically leads to Nestorianism or the
doctrine of two
persons in the Mediator. And since it finds the real seat of the
personality in the man
Jesus, it is utterly subversive of the real pre-existence of our Lord.
Rothe and Bovon are
two of the most important supporters of this doctrine.
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p44" shownumber="no">The crucial difference between the ancient and the really
modern theories respecting
the person of Christ, lies in the fact that the latter, as appears also
from the theory of
Dorner, distinguish the person of the Logos, conceived as a special mode
of the personal
life of God, from the personality of Christ as a concrete human person
uniquely divine
in quality. According to modern views it is not the Logos but the man
Jesus that
constitutes the ego in Christ. The personality of Jesus is human in type
of consciousness
and also in moral growth, but at the same time uniquely receptive for
the divine, and
thus really the climax of an incarnation of which humanity itself is the
general cosmic
expression. This is true also of the theory suggested by Sanday in his<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p44.1">
Christologies Ancient and Modern</span>, a theory which seeks to give a psychological explanation of the
person of Jesus, which will do justice to both the human and the divine
in Jesus. He
stresses the fact that the subliminal consciousness is the proper seat
of all divine
indwelling, or divine action upon the human soul; and holds that the same
or a
corresponding subliminal self is also the proper seat or locus of the
deity of the
incarnate Christ. The ordinary consciousness of Jesus was the human
consciousness, but
there appeared in Him occasionally an uprush of the divine consciousness
from the
subliminal self. This theory has rightly been criticized severely. It
ascribes a significance
to the subliminal in the life of man which it does not possess, wrongly
supposes that the
deity can be located in some particular place in the person of Christ,
and suggests a
picture of Christ, as being only intermittently conscious of His deity,
which is not in
harmony with the data of Scripture. It reveals once more the folly of
trying to give a psychological explanation of the person of Christ. Besides
Sanday some of the more
influential representatives of modern Christology are Kunze,
Schaeder, Kaehler,
Moberly, and Du
Bose. </p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p45" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY. What
change did the eighteenth century effect in
Christology? What causes contributed to the present widespread denial of
the deity of Christ? How do negative critics deal with the Scriptural proofs
for the deity of Christ?
Did the Liberal-Jesus-School succeed in presenting a tolerable picture
of Jesus, which
really squares with the facts? What is the distinction between the Jesus
of history and
the Christ of faith, and what purpose did it serve? What about the
argument<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p45.1">
aut Deus
auto homo non bonus?</span>
How is the reality of Christ's
manhood sometimes endangered?
Was there a single or a double self-consciousness in Christ? One or two
wills? On what grounds is the Messianic consciousness of Jesus denied? How can
it be defended? Did
Jesus regard the Messiahship merely as a dignity that would be His in
the future? Has
the eschatological school any advantages over the liberal school? How do
the Reformed,
the Lutheran, and the Roman Catholic conceptions of the union of the two
natures in
Christ differ? What does the Formula Concordiae teach on this point?
What was the
Giessen-Tuebingen controversy? How did Kant, Hegel, and Schleiermacher
conceive of
this union? In what respect do the Kenosis theories reveal the influence
of Hegel? How
did the modern conception of the immanence of God affect more recent
Christologies?
Is Sanday's psychological theory an acceptable construction?
</p>

<p id="v.i.iii-p46" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>, III, pp. 264-349; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.2">
Dict. Dogm.</span>,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.3">
De Christo</span> I,
pp. 62—II, p. 58; Vos,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.4">
The Self-Disclosure of Jesus</span>, pp. 35-103;
Temple,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.5">
The Boyhood Consciousness of Christ</span>; Orr,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.6">
The Christian
View of God and the World</span>
pp. 248-257; H. R. Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.7">
The Doct. of the Person of Jesus Christ</span>, pp. 141-284;
Liddon,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.8">
The Divinity of our Lord</span>; Relton,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.9"> A Study in
Christology</span>, pp. 3-222; Warfield,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.10">
Christology and Criticism</span>,
Lectures
VI-VIII; Rostron,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.11">
The Christology of St. Paul</span>, pp. 196-229;
Schweitzer,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.12">
The Quest of the Historical Jesus;</span> La Touche,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.13">
The Person of
Christ in Modern Thought;</span>
Gore,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.14"> The
Reconstruction of Belief</span>, pp. 297-526; Honig,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.15">
De Persoon Van den Middelaar in de Nieuwere Duitsche Dogmatiek;</span>
Sheldon,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.16">
Hist. of Chr.
Doct.</span>
II, 134-137, 348-353; Krauth,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.17">
Conservative Reformation and Its Theology</span>, pp. 456-517; Bruce,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.18">
The Humiliation of Christ</span>, Lectures III, IV and V; Loofs,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.19">
What Is the
Truth about Jesus Christ?</span>
chap. VI; Sanday,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.20">, Christologies, Ancient and Modern</span>, Chaps. III, IV, VII; Cooke,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.21">
The Incarnation and Recent Criticism</span>, Chap. X;
Brunner,<span class="ital" id="v.i.iii-p46.22">
The Mediator</span>, especially Chap. XII. </p>
</div3>
</div2>

      <div2 id="v.ii" next="v.ii.i" prev="v.i.iii" title="The States of Christ">
<h2 id="v.ii-p0.1">THE STATES OF CHRIST</h2>

        <div3 id="v.ii.i" next="v.ii.ii" prev="v.ii" title="I. The State of Humiliation">
<h2 id="v.ii.i-p0.1">I. The State of Humiliation</h2>

<h4 id="v.ii.i-p0.2">A. INTRODUCTORY: THE DOCTRINE OF THE STATES OF CHRIST IN GENERAL.</h4>
<p id="v.ii.i-p1" shownumber="no">1. THE DISTINCTION BETWEEN A STATE AND A CONDITION. It should be borne in mind
that, though the word "state" is sometimes used synonymously
with "condition," the
word as applied to Christ in this connection denotes a relationship
rather than a
condition. In general a state and a condition may be distinguished as
follows: A state is
one's position or status in life, and particularly the forensic
relationship in which one
stands to the law, while a condition is the mode of one's existence,
especially as
determined by the circumstances of life. One who is found guilty in a
court of justice is
in a state of guilt or condemnation, and this is usually followed by a
condition of
incarceration with all its resulting deprivation and shame. In theology
the states of the
Mediator are generally considered as including the resulting conditions.
In fact, the
different stages of the humiliation and of the exaltation, as usually
stated, have a
tendency to make the conditions stand out more prominently than the
states. Yet the
states are the more fundamental of the two and should be so considered.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p1.1" n="11" place="foot">Cf. Kuyper, <span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p1.2">Dict. Dogm., De Christo</span> II, pp. 59 ff.</note> In the state of
humiliation Christ was under the law, not only as a rule of life, but as
the condition of
the covenant of works, and even under the condemnation of the law; but
in the state of
exaltation He is free from the law, having met the condition of the
covenant of works
and having paid the penalty for sin.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE DOCTRINE OF THE STATES OF CHRIST IN HISTORY. The doctrine of the states of
Christ really dates from the seventeenth century, though traces of it
are already found in
the writings of the Reformers, and even in some of the early Church
Fathers. It was first
developed among the Lutherans when they sought to bring their doctrine of
the
<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p2.1">
communicatio idiomatum</span>
in harmony with the humiliation of Christ as it is pictured in the
Gospels, but was soon adopted also by the Reformed. They differed,
however, as to the
real<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p2.2">
subject</span>
of the states. According to the Lutherans it is the human nature of
Christ, but according to the Reformed, the person of the Mediator. There was
considerable
difference of opinion even among the Lutherans on the subject. Under the
influence of
Schleiermacher the idea of the states of the Mediator gradually
disappeared from
theology. By his pantheizing tendency the lines of demarcation between
the Creator and
the creature were practically obliterated. The emphasis was shifted from
the
transcendent to the immanent God; and the sovereign God whose law is the
standard of
right disappeared. In fact, the idea of objective right was banished
from theology, and
under such conditions it became impossible to maintain the idea of a
judicial position,
that is, of a state of the Mediator. Moreover, in the measure in which
the humanity of
Christ was stressed to the exclusion of His deity, and on the one hand
His pre-existence,
and on the other, His resurrection was denied, all speaking about the
humiliation and
exaltation of Christ lost its meaning. The result is that in many
present day works on
Dogmatics we look in vain for a chapter on the states of Christ.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p3" shownumber="no">3. THE NUMBER OF THE STATES OF THE MEDIATOR. There is a difference of opinion as to
the number of the states of the Mediator. Some are of the opinion that,
if we assume that the person of the Mediator is the subject of the states,
strict logic requires that we speak
of three states or modes of existence: the pre-existent state of eternal
divine being, the
earthly state of temporal human existence, and the heavenly state of
exaltation and
glory.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p3.1" n="12" place="foot">Cf. McPherson, <span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p3.2">Chr. Dogm.,</span> p. 322; Valentine, <span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p3.3">Chr. Theol.</span> II, p. 88.</note>
But since we can speak of the
humiliation and exaltation of the person of Christ
only in connection with Him as the God-man, it is best to speak of only
two states.
Reformed theologians do find an anticipation of both the humiliation and
the exaltation
of Christ in His pre-existent state: of His humiliation in that He
freely took upon
Himself in the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p3.4">
pactum salutis</span>
to merit and administer our salvation; and of His exaltation
in the glory which He as our prospective Mediator enjoyed before the
incarnation, cf.
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:John.17.5" parsed="|John|17|5|0|0" passage="John 17:5">John 17:5</scripRef>. The
two states are clearly indicated in <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.9" parsed="|2Cor|8|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:9">II Cor. 8:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.6-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|6|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:6-11">Phil. 2:6-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:9">Heb. 2:9</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="v.ii.i-p3.11">B. THE STATE OF HUMILIATION.</h4>
<p id="v.ii.i-p4" shownumber="no">On the basis of <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.7" parsed="|Phil|2|7|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:7">Phil. 2:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.8" parsed="|Phil|2|8|0|0" passage="Phil 2:8">8</scripRef>, Reformed theology
distinguishes two elements in the
humiliation of Christ, namely, (1) the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p4.3">
kenosis</span>
(emptying,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p4.4"> exinanitio</span>), consisting in this
that He laid aside the divine majesty, the majesty of the sovereign
Ruler of the universe,
and assumed human nature in the form of a servant; and (2) the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p4.5">
tapeinosis</span> (<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p4.6">humiliatio</span>),
consisting in that He became subject to the demands and to the curse of
the law, and in
His entire life became obedient in action and suffering to the very limit
of a shameful death. On the basis of the passage in Philippians it may be said that
the essential and
central element in the state of humiliation is found in the fact that He
who was the Lord
of all the earth, the supreme Lawgiver, placed Himself under the law, in
order to
discharge its federal and penal obligations in behalf of His people. By
doing this He
became legally responsible for our sins and liable to the curse of the
law. This state of
the Saviour,
briefly expressed in the words of <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>, "born under the
law," is reflected
in the corresponding condition, which is described in the various stages
of the
humiliation. While Lutheran theology speaks of as many as eight stages
in the
humiliation of Christ, Reformed theology generally names only five,
namely: (1)
incarnation, (2) suffering, (3) death, (4) burial, and (5) descent into
hades.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p5" shownumber="no">1. THE INCARNATION AND BIRTH OF CHRIST. Under this general heading
several points deserve attention.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p6" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p6.1"> The subject of the incarnation.</span> It was not the
triune God but the second person of the
Trinity that assumed human nature. For that reason it is better to say
that the Word
became flesh than that God became man. At the same time we should
remember that
each of the divine persons was active in the incarnation, <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.1.20" parsed="|Matt|1|20|0|0" passage="Matt. 1:20">Matt. 1:20</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">Luke 1:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.30" parsed="|Acts|2|30|0|0" passage="Acts 2:30">Acts 2:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.3" parsed="|Rom|8|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:3">Rom. 8:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.7" parsed="|Phil|2|7|0|0" passage="Phil 2:7">Phil 2:7</scripRef>. This also means that the incarnation was not
something that merely happened to the Logos, but was an active
accomplishment on
His part. In speaking of the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p6.9">
incarnation</span>
in distinction
from the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p6.10">
birth</span>
of the Logos, His
active participation in this historical fact is stressed, and His
pre-existence is assumed. It
is not possible to speak of the incarnation of one who had no previous
existence. This
pre-existence is clearly taught in Scripture: "In the beginning was
the Word, and the
Word was with God, and the Word was God," <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:John.1.1" parsed="|John|1|1|0|0" passage="John 1:1">John 1:1</scripRef>. "I am come
down from
heaven," <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.12" osisRef="Bible:John.6.38" parsed="|John|6|38|0|0" passage="John 6:38">John 6:38</scripRef>. "For ye know the grace of our Lord Jesus
Christ, that, though He
was rich, yet
for our sakes He became poor," <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.13" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.9" parsed="|2Cor|8|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:9">II Cor. 8:9</scripRef>. "Who, existing in the
form of
God, counted not the being on an equality with God a thing to be grasped,
but emptied
Himself, taking the form of a servant, being made in the likeness of
men," <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.14" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.6" parsed="|Phil|2|6|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:6">Phil. 2:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.15" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.7" parsed="|Phil|2|7|0|0" passage="Phil 2:7">7</scripRef>.
"But when
the fulness of the time came God sent forth His Son," <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p6.16" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>. The pre-existent Son of God assumes human nature and takes to Himself human flesh
and
blood, a miracle that passes our limited understanding. It clearly shows
that the infinite can and does enter into finite relations, and that the
supernatural can in some way enter
the historical life of the world.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p7" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p7.1"> The necessity of the incarnation.</span>
Since the days
of Scholasticism the question has
been debated, whether the incarnation should be regarded as involved in
the idea of
redemption, or as already involved in the idea of creation. Popularly
stated, the
question was, whether the Son of God would have come in the flesh
even if man had
not sinned. Rupert of Deutz was the first to assert clearly and
positively that He would
have become incarnate irrespective of sin. His view was shared by
Alexander of Hales
and Duns Scotus, but Thomas Aquinas took the position that the reason
for the
incarnation lay in the entrance of sin into the world. The Reformers
shared this view,
and the Churches of the Reformation teach that the incarnation was
necessitated by the
fall of man. Some Lutheran and Reformed scholars, however, such as
Osiander, Rothe,
Dorner, Lange, Van Oosterzee, Martensen, Ebrard, and Westcott, were of
the contrary
opinion. The arguments adduced by them are such as the following: Such a
stupendous
fact as the incarnation cannot be contingent, and cannot find its cause
in sin as an
accidental and arbitrary act of man. It must have been included in the
original plan of
God. Religion before and after the fall cannot be essentially different.
If a Mediator is
necessary now, He must have been necessary also before the fall.
Moreover, Christ's
work is not limited to the atonement and His saving operations. He is
Mediator, but
also Head; He is
not only the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p7.2">
arche</span>, but also the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p7.3">
telos</span>
of creation, <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.45-1Cor.15.47" parsed="|1Cor|15|45|15|47" passage="I Cor. 15:45-47">I Cor. 15:45-47</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.10" parsed="|Eph|1|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:10">Eph. 1:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.21-Eph.1.23" parsed="|Eph|1|21|1|23" passage="Eph 1:21-23">21-23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.31" parsed="|Eph|5|31|0|0" passage="Eph 5:31">5:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.32" parsed="|Eph|5|32|0|0" passage="Eph 5:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.15-Col.1.17" parsed="|Col|1|15|1|17" passage="Col. 1:15-17">Col. 1:15-17</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p8" shownumber="no">However, it should be noted that Scripture invariably
represents the incarnation as
conditioned by human sin. The force of such passages as <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.10" parsed="|Luke|19|10|0|0" passage="Luke 19:10">Luke 19:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.8" parsed="|1John|3|8|0|0" passage="I John 3:8">I John 3:8</scripRef>; and <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.5-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|5|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:5-11">Phil. 2:5-11</scripRef> is not easily broken. The idea, sometimes
expressed, that the
incarnation in itself was fitting and necessary for God, is apt to lead
to the pantheistic notion of an eternal self-revelation of God in the world.
The difficulty connected with
the plan of God, supposed to burden this view, does not exist, if we
consider the matter
<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p8.6">sub specie aeternitatis.</span>
There is but one plan of God, and this plan includes sin and the
incarnation from the very beginning. In the last analysis, of course,
the incarnation, as
well as the whole work of redemption was contingent, not on sin, but on
the good
pleasure of God. The fact that Christ also has cosmical significance need
not be denied,
but this too is linked up with His redemptive significance in <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.10" parsed="|Eph|1|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:10">Eph. 1:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20-Eph.1.23" parsed="|Eph|1|20|1|23" passage="Eph 1:20-23">20-23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.14-Col.1.20" parsed="|Col|1|14|1|20" passage="Col. 1:14-20">Col. 1:14-20</scripRef>.</p>
<p id="v.ii.i-p9" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p9.1"> The change effected in the incarnation.</span>
When we are
told that the Word became flesh,
this does not mean that the Logos ceased to be what He was before. As to
His essential being the Logos was exactly the same before and after the
incarnation. The verb<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p9.2">
egeneto </span>
in <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef> (the Word<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p9.4">
became</span>
flesh)
certainly does not mean that the Logos changed into
flesh, and thus altered His essential nature, but simply that He
took on that particular
character, that He acquired an additional form, without in any way
changing His
original nature. He remained the infinite and unchangeable Son of God.
Again, the
statement that the Word became<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p9.5">
flesh</span>
does not
mean that He took on a human<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p9.6">
person</span>,
nor, on the other hand, merely that He took on<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p9.7">
a human body.</span>
The word<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p9.8">
sarx</span>
(flesh) here
denotes human nature, consisting of body and soul. The word is used in a
somewhat
similar sense in
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.3" parsed="|Rom|8|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:3">Rom. 8:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.16" parsed="|1Tim|3|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:16">I Tim. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p9.11" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.2" parsed="|1John|4|2|0|0" passage="I John 4:2">I John 4:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p9.12" osisRef="Bible:2John.1.7" parsed="|2John|1|7|0|0" passage="II John 7">II John 7</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p9.13" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.7" parsed="|Phil|2|7|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:7">Phil. 2:7</scripRef>). </p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p10" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p10.1"> The incarnation constituted Christ one of the human race.</span>
In opposition
to the
teachings of the Anabaptists, our Confession affirms that Christ assumed
His human
nature from the substance of His mother. The prevailing opinion among
the Anabaptists
was that the Lord brought His human nature from heaven, and that Mary was
merely
the conduit or channel through which it passed. On this view His human
nature was
really a new creation, similar to ours, but not organically connected
with it. The
importance of opposing this view will be readily seen. If the human
nature of Christ was not derived from the same stock as ours but merely
resembled it, there exists no
such relation between us and Him as is necessary to render His mediation
available for
our good. </p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p11" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p11.1">
The incarnation effected by a supernatural conception
and a virgin birth.</span>
Our Confession affirms that the human nature of Christ was "conceived
in the womb of the blessed virgin Mary by the power of the Holy Ghost, without
the means of man." This
emphasizes the fact that the birth of Christ was not at all an ordinary
but a supernatural
birth, in virtue of which He was called "the Son of God." The
most important element
in connection with the birth of Jesus was the supernatural operation of
the Holy Spirit,
for it was only through this that the virgin birth became possible. The
Bible refers to this
particular
feature in <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.1.18-Matt.1.20" parsed="|Matt|1|18|1|20" passage="Matt. 1:18-20">Matt. 1:18-20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.34" parsed="|Luke|1|34|0|0" passage="Luke 1:34">Luke 1:34</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.5" parsed="|Heb|10|5|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:5">Heb. 10:5</scripRef>. The work of the Holy Spirit
in connection with the conception of Jesus was twofold: (1) He was the
efficient cause of
what was conceived in the womb of Mary, and thus excluded the activity
of man as an
efficient factor. This was entirely in harmony with the fact that the
person who was born
was not a human person, but the person of the Son of God, who as such
was not
included in the covenant of works and was in Himself free from the guilt
of sin. (2) He
sanctified the human nature of Christ in its very inception, and thus
kept it free from the
pollution of sin. We cannot say exactly how the Holy Spirit accomplished
this
sanctifying work, because it is not yet sufficiently understood just how
the pollution of
sin ordinarily passes from parent to child. It should be noted, however,
that the
sanctifying influence of the Holy Spirit was not limited to the
conception of Jesus, but
was continued throughout His life, <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:John.3.34" parsed="|John|3|34|0|0" passage="John 3:34">John 3:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.14" parsed="|Heb|9|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:14">Heb. 9:14</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p12" shownumber="no">It was only through this supernatural conception of
Christ that He could be born of
a virgin. The doctrine of the virgin birth is based on the following passages
of Scripture:
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Isa.7.14" parsed="|Isa|7|14|0|0" passage="Isa. 7:14">Isa. 7:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.1.18" parsed="|Matt|1|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 1:18">Matt. 1:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.1.20" parsed="|Matt|1|20|0|0" passage="Matt 1:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.34" parsed="|Luke|1|34|0|0" passage="Luke 1:34">Luke 1:34</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.35" parsed="|Luke|1|35|0|0" passage="Luke 1:35">35</scripRef>, and is also favored by <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>. This doctrine was
confessed in the Church from the earliest times. We meet with it already
in the original
forms of the Apostolic Confession, and further in all the great
Confessions of the Roman
Catholic and Protestant Churches. Its present denial is not due to the
lack of Scriptural
evidence for it, nor to any want of ecclesiastical sanction, but to the
current general
aversion to the supernatural. The passages of Scripture on which the
doctrine is based
are simply ruled out of court on critical grounds which are far from
convincing; and
that in spite of the fact that the integrity of the narratives is proved
to be beyond
dispute; and it is gratuitously assumed that the silence of the other
New Testament
writers respecting the virgin birth proves that they were not acquainted
with the
supposed fact of the miraculous birth. All kinds of ingenious attempts
are made to explain how the story of the virgin birth arose and gained
currency. Some seek it in
Hebrew, and others in Gentile, traditions. We cannot enter upon a
discussion of the
problem here, and therefore merely refer to such works as Machen,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p12.7">
The Virgin Birth of Christ;</span>
Orr,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p12.8">
The Virgin
Birth of Christ;</span>
Sweet,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p12.9">
The Birth and Infancy of Jesus Christ;</span>
Cooke,
<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p12.10">Did Paul Know the Virgin Birth?</span>
Knowling,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p12.11">
The Virgin
Birth. </span> </p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p13" shownumber="no">The question is sometimes asked, whether the virgin birth
is a matter of doctrinal
importance. Brunner declares that he is not interested in the subject at
all. He rejects the
doctrine of the miraculous birth of Christ and holds that it was purely
natural, but is not
sufficiently interested to defend his view at length. Moreover, he says:
"The doctrine of
the virgin birth would have been given up long ago were it not for the
fact that it
seemed as though dogmatic interests were concerned in its
retention."<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p13.1" n="13" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p13.2">The Mediator</span>, p. 324.</note> Barth
recognizes the miracle of the virgin birth, and sees in it a token of
the fact that God has
creatively established a new beginning by condescending to become man.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p13.3" n="14" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p13.4">The Doctrine of the Word of God,</span> p. 556; <span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p13.5">Credo,</span>, pp. 63 <span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p13.6">ff.; Revelation,</span> pp. 65 f.</note>
He also
finds in it
doctrinal significance. According to him the "sin-inheritance" is
passed on by the male parent, so that Christ could assume "creatureliness"
by being born of Mary,
and at the same time escape the "sin-inheritance" by the
elimination of the human
father.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p13.7" n="15" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p13.8">Credo,</span> pp. 70 f.</note> In answer to the question,
whether the virgin birth has doctrinal significance, it
may be said that it would be inconceivable that God should cause Christ
to be born in
such an extraordinary manner, if it did not serve some purpose. Its
doctrinal purpose
may be stated as follows: (1) Christ had to be constituted the Messiah
and the Messianic
Son of God. Consequently, it was necessary that He should be born of a
woman, but
also that He should not be the fruit of the will of man, but should be
born of God. What is born of flesh is flesh. In all probability this wonderful
birth of Jesus was in the
background of the mind of John when he wrote as he did in <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p13.9" osisRef="Bible:John.1.13" parsed="|John|1|13|0|0" passage="John 1:13">John 1:13</scripRef>. (2)
If Christ had
been generated by man, He would have been a human person, included in the
covenant
of works, and as such would have shared the common guilt of mankind. But
now that
His subject, His ego, His person, is not out of Adam, He is not in the
covenant of works and is free from the guilt of sin. And being free from the
guilt of sin, His human nature
could also be kept free, both before and after His birth, from the
pollution of sin.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p14" shownumber="no">f.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p14.1">
The incarnation itself part of the humiliation of Christ.</span>
Was the
incarnation itself a part
of the humiliation of Christ or not? The Lutherans, with their
distinction between the
<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p14.2">incarnatio</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p14.3">
exinanitio</span>, deny that it was, and base their denial on the fact that His
humiliation was limited to His earthly existence, while His humanity
continues in
heaven. He still has His human nature, and yet is no more in a state of
humiliation.
There was some difference of opinion on this point even among Reformed
theologians.
It would seem that this question should be answered with discrimination.
It may be
said that the incarnation, altogether in the abstract, the mere fact
that God in Christ
assumed a human nature, though an act of condescension, was not in
itself a
humiliation, though Kuyper thought it was.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p14.4" n="16" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p14.5">De Christo</span> II, pp. 68 ff.</note>
But it certainly was a humiliation that the
Logos assumed "flesh," that is, human nature as it is
since the fall, weakened and
subject to suffering and death, though free from the taint of sin. This
would seem to be
implied in such
passages as <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.3" parsed="|Rom|8|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:3">Rom. 8:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.9" parsed="|2Cor|8|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:9">II Cor. 8:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.6" parsed="|Phil|2|6|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:6">Phil. 2:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p14.9" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.7" parsed="|Phil|2|7|0|0" passage="Phil 2:7">7</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p15" shownumber="no">2. THE SUFFERINGS OF THE SAVIOUR. Several points
should be stressed in connection
with the sufferings of Christ.</p>
<p id="v.ii.i-p16" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p16.1">
He suffered during His entire life.</span>
In view of the
fact that Jesus began to speak of His
coming sufferings towards the end of His life, we are often inclined to
think that the
final agonies constituted the whole of His sufferings. Yet His whole
life was a life of
suffering. It was the servant-life of the Lord of Hosts, the life of the
Sinless One in daily
association with sinners, the life of the Holy One in a sin-cursed
world. The way of
obedience was for Him at the same time a way of suffering. He suffered
from the
repeated assaults of Satan, from the hatred and unbelief of His own
people, and from
the persecution of His enemies. Since He trod the wine-press alone, His
loneliness must
have been oppressive, and His sense of responsibility, crushing. His
suffering was
consecrated suffering, increasing in severity as He approached the end.
The suffering
that began in the incarnation finally reached its climax in the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p16.2">
passio magna</span>
at the end of
His life. Then all the wrath of God against sin bore down upon Him. </p>
<p id="v.ii.i-p17" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p17.1">
He suffered in body and soul.</span>
There has been
a time when the attention was fixed too exclusively on the bodily sufferings of the Saviour. It was not the
blind physical pain
as such that constituted the essence of His suffering, but that pain
accompanied with
anguish of soul and with a mediatorial consciousness of the sin of
humanity with which
He was burdened. Later on it became customary to minimize the importance
of the bodily sufferings, since it was felt that sin, being of a spiritual
nature, could only be
atoned for by purely spiritual sufferings. These one-sided views must be
avoided. Both
body and soul were affected by sin, and in both the punishment had to be
borne.
Moreover, the Bible clearly teaches that Christ suffered in both. He
agonized in the
garden, where His soul was "exceeding sorrowful, even unto
death," and He was buffeted and scourged and crucified.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p18" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p18.1"> His sufferings resulted from various causes.</span>
In the last
analysis all the sufferings of
Christ resulted from the fact that He took the place of sinners
vicariously. But we may
distinguish several proximate causes, such as: (1) The fact that He who
was the Lord of
the universe had to occupy a menial position, even the position of a
bond-servant or
slave, and that He who had an inherent right to command
was in duty bound to obey.
(2) The fact that He who was pure and holy had to live in a sinful,
polluted atmosphere,
in daily association with sinners, and was constantly reminded of the
greatness of the
guilt with which He was burdened by the sins of His contemporaries. (3)
His perfect
awareness and clear anticipation, from the very beginning of His life,
of the extreme sufferings that would, as it were, overwhelm Him in the end. He
knew exactly what
was coming, and the outlook was far from cheerful. (4) Finally, also the
privations of
life, the temptations of the devil, the hatred and rejection of the
people, and the
maltreatment and persecutions to which He was subjected. </p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p19" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p19.1"> His sufferings were unique.</span>
We sometimes
speak of the "ordinary" sufferings of
Christ, when we think of those sufferings that resulted from the
ordinary causes of
misery in the world. But we should remember that these causes were far
more
numerous for the Saviour than they are for us. Moreover, even these
common sufferings
had an extraordinary character in His case, and were therefore unique.
His capacity for
suffering was commensurate with the ideal character of His humanity,
with His ethical perfection, and with His sense of righteousness and holiness
and veracity. No one could
feel the poignancy of pain and grief and moral evil as Jesus could. But
besides these
more common sufferings there were also the sufferings caused by the fact
that God
caused our iniquities to come upon Him like a flood. The
sufferings of the Saviour were
not purely natural, but also the result of a positive deed of God, <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53.6" parsed="|Isa|53|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 53:6">Isa. 53:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53.10" parsed="|Isa|53|10|0|0" passage="Isa 53:10">10</scripRef>. To the more
special sufferings of the Saviour may also be reckoned the temptations
in the desert,
and the agonies of Gethsemane and Golgotha.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p20" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p20.1">
His sufferings in temptations.</span>
The temptations
of Christ formed an integral part of  His
sufferings. They are temptations that are encountered in the pathway of
suffering,
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.4.1-Matt.4.11" parsed="|Matt|4|1|4|11" passage="Matt. 4:1-11">Matt. 4:1-11</scripRef>
(and parallels); <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.28" parsed="|Luke|22|28|0|0" passage="Luke 22:28">Luke 22:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:John.12.27" parsed="|John|12|27|0|0" passage="John 12:27">John 12:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.15" parsed="|Heb|4|15|0|0" passage="Heb. 4:15">Heb. 4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.7" parsed="|Heb|5|7|0|0" passage="Heb 5:7">5:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.8" parsed="|Heb|5|8|0|0" passage="Heb 5:8">8</scripRef>. His public ministry
began with a period of temptation, and even after
that time temptations were repeated
at intervals right on into dark Gethsemane. It was only by entering into
the very trials of
men, into their temptations, that Jesus could become a truly sympathetic
High Priest
and attain to the heights of a proved and triumphant perfection, <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.15" parsed="|Heb|4|15|0|0" passage="Heb. 4:15">Heb.
4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.7-Heb.5.9" parsed="|Heb|5|7|5|9" passage="Heb 5:7-9">5:7-9</scripRef>. We
may not detract from the reality of the temptations of Jesus as the last
Adam, however
difficult it may be to conceive of one who could not sin as being
tempted. Various
suggestions have been made to relieve the difficulty, as for instance,
that in the human
nature of
Christ, as in that of the first Adam, there was the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p20.10">
nuda possibilitas peccandi</span>, the
bare abstract possibility of sinning (Kuyper); that Jesus' holiness was
an ethical holiness,
which had to come to high development through, and maintain itself in,
temptation
(Bavinck); and that the things with which Christ was tempted were in
themselves
perfectly lawful, and appealed to perfectly natural instincts and
appetites (Vos). But in
spite of all this the problem remains, How was it possible that one who<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p20.11">
in concreto</span>, that
is, as He was actually constituted, could not sin nor even have an
inclination to sin,
nevertheless be subject to real temptation?
</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p21" shownumber="no">3. THE DEATH OF THE SAVIOUR. The sufferings
of the Saviour finally culminated in His
death. In connection with this the following points should be
emphasized:</p>
<p id="v.ii.i-p22" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p22.1">
The extent of His death.</span>
It is but natural that, when we speak of the death of Christ
in this connection, we have in mind first of all physical death, that
is, the separation of
body and soul. At the same time we should remember that this does not
exhaust the
idea of death as it is represented in Scripture. The Bible takes a
synthetic view of death,
and regards physical death merely as one of its manifestations. Death is
separation from
God, but this separation can be viewed in two different ways. Man
separates himself
from God by sin, and death is the natural result, so that it can even be
said that sin is
death. But it was not in that way that Jesus became subject to death,
since He had no
personal sin. In this connection it should be borne in mind that death
is not merely the
natural consequence of sin, but above all the judicially imposed and inflicted
punishment of sin. It is God's withdrawing Himself with the blessings of
life and
happiness from man and visiting man in wrath. It is from this judicial
point of view that
the death of Christ must be considered. God imposed the punishment of
death upon the
Mediator judicially, since the latter undertook voluntarily to pay the
penalty for the sin
of the human race. Since Christ assumed human nature with all its
weaknesses, as it
exists after the fall, and thus became like us in all things, sin only
excepted, it follows
that death worked in Him from the very beginning and manifested itself in
many of the
sufferings to which He was subject. He was a man of sorrows and
acquainted with
grief. The Heidelberg Catechism correctly says that "all the time
He lived on earth, but
especially at the end of His life, He bore, in body and soul, the wrath
of God against the
sin of the whole human race."<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p22.2" n="17" place="foot">Q. 37</note>
These sufferings were followed by His death on
the
cross. But this was not all; He was subject not only to physical, but
also to eternal death,
though He bore this intensively and not extensively, when He agonized in
the garden and when He cried out on the cross, "My God, my God, why hast
thou forsaken me?"
In a short period of time He bore the infinite wrath against sin to the
very end and came
out victoriously. This was possible for Him only because of His exalted
nature. At this
point we should guard against misunderstanding, however. Eternal death in
the case of
Christ did not consist in an abrogation of the union of the Logos with
the human nature,
nor in the divine nature's being forsaken of God, nor in the withdrawal
of the Father's
divine love or good pleasure from the person of the Mediator. The Logos
remained
united with the human nature even when the body was in the grave; the
divine nature
could not possibly be forsaken of God; and the person of the Mediator
was and ever
continued to be the object of divine favor. It revealed itself in the
human consciousness of the Mediator as a feeling of Godforsakenness. This
implies that the human nature for
a moment missed the conscious comfort which it might derive from its
union with the
divine Logos, and the sense of divine love, and was painfully conscious
of the fulness of
the divine wrath which was bearing down upon it. Yet there was no
despair, for even in
the darkest hour, while He exclaims that He is forsaken, He directs His
prayer to God.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p23" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p23.1">
The judicial character of His death.</span>
It was quite
essential that Christ should die
neither a natural nor an accidental death; and that He should not die by
the hand of an
assassin, but under a judicial sentence. He had to be counted with the
transgressors, had
to be condemned as a criminal. Moreover, it was providentially arranged
by God that
He should be tried and sentenced by a Roman judge. The Romans had a
genius for law
and justice, and represented the highest judicial power in the world. It
might be
expected that a trial before a Roman judge would serve to bring out
clearly the
innocence of Jesus, which it did, so that it became perfectly clear that
He was not
condemned for any crime which He had committed. It was a testimony to
the fact that, as the Lord says, "He was cut off out of the land of the living for
the transgression of my
people, to whom the stroke was due." And when the Roman judge
nevertheless
condemned the innocent, he, it is true, also condemned himself and human
justice as he
applied it, but at the same time imposed sentence on Jesus as the
representative of the
highest judicial power in the world, functioning by the grace of God and
dispensing
justice in God's name. The sentence of Pilate was also the sentence of
God, though on
entirely different grounds. It was significant too that Christ was not
beheaded or stoned
to death. Crucifixion was not a Jewish but a Roman form of punishment.
It was
accounted so infamous and ignominious that it might not be applied to
Roman citizens,
but only to the scum of mankind, to the meanest criminals and slaves. By
dying that
death, Jesus met the extreme demands of the law. At the same time He
died an accursed
death, and thus gave evidence of the fact that He became a curse for us,
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Deut.21.23" parsed="|Deut|21|23|0|0" passage="Deut. 21:23">Deut. 21:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:13">Gal. 3:13</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p24" shownumber="no">4. THE BURIAL OF THE SAVIOUR. It might seem that the death of Christ was the last
stage of His humiliation, especially in view of one of the last words
spoken on the cross,  "It
is finished." But that word in all probability refers to His active
suffering, that is, the suffering in which He Himself took an active part. This was indeed
finished when He
died. It is clear that His burial also formed a part of His humiliation.
Notice especially
the following: (a) Man's returning to the dust from which he is taken,
is represented in
Scripture as part of the punishment of sin, <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p24.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.19" parsed="|Gen|3|19|0|0" passage="Gen. 3:19">Gen. 3:19</scripRef>. (b) Several
statements of Scripture
imply that the
Saviour's abode in the grave was a humiliation, <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p24.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.10" parsed="|Ps|16|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 16:10">Ps. 16:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.27" parsed="|Acts|2|27|0|0" passage="Acts 2:27">Acts 2:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.31" parsed="|Acts|2|31|0|0" passage="Acts 2:31">31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p24.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.34" parsed="|Acts|13|34|0|0" passage="Acts 13:34">13:34</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p24.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.35" parsed="|Acts|13|35|0|0" passage="Acts 13:35">35</scripRef>. It was a descent into<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p24.7">
hades</span>
in itself dismal
and dreary, a place of corruption,
though in it He was kept from corruption. (c) Burial is a going down,
and therefore a
humiliation. The burial of dead bodies was ordered by God to symbolize
the
humiliation of the sinner. (d) There is a certain agreement between the
stages in the
objective work of redemption and the order in the subjective application
of the work of
Christ. The Bible speaks of the sinner's being buried with Christ. Now
this belongs to
the putting off of the old man, and not to the putting on of the new,
cf. <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p24.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.1-Rom.6.6" parsed="|Rom|6|1|6|6" passage="Rom. 6:1-6">Rom. 6:1-6</scripRef>.
Consequently also the burial of Jesus forms a part of His humiliation.
His burial,
moreover, did not merely serve to prove that Jesus was really dead, but
also to remove the terrors of the grave for the redeemed and to sanctify the
grave for them.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p25" shownumber="no">5. THE SAVIOUR'S DESCENT INTO HADES.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p26" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p26.1">
This doctrine in the Apostolic Confession.</span>
After the
Apostolic Confession has
mentioned the sufferings, death, and burial, of the Lord, it continues
with the words,
"He descended into hell (hades)." This statement was not in
the Creed as early nor as
universally as the others. It was first used in the Aquileian form of
the Creed (c. 390
A.D.), "<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p26.2">
descendit in inferna.</span>
" Among the Greeks some
translated "inferna" by "hades,"
and others by "lower parts." Some forms of the Creed in which
these words were found
did not mention the burial of Christ, while the Roman and Oriental forms
generally
mentioned the burial but not the descent into hades. Rufinus remarks
that they
contained the idea of the descent in the word "buried." Later
on, however, the Roman
form of the Creed added the statement in question after its mention of
the burial. Calvin
correctly argues that for those who added them after the word
"buried," they must have
denoted something additional.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p26.3" n="18" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p26.4">Inst.</span> Bk. II, XVI, 8.; cf. also Pearson, <span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p26.5">On the Creed</span>.</note> It should be borne in mind that these words
are not
found in Scripture, and are not based on such direct statements of the
Bible as the rest of the articles of the Creed.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p27" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p27.1">
Scriptural basis for the expression.</span>
There are
especially four passages of Scripture
that come into consideration here. (1) <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.9" parsed="|Eph|4|9|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:9">Eph. 4:9</scripRef>, "Now this, He
ascended, what is it but
that He also descended into the lower parts of the earth?" They who
seek support in
this passage
take the expression "lower parts of the earth" as the equivalent of
"hades."
But this is a doubtful interpretation. The apostle argues that the
ascent of Christ
presupposes a descent. Now the opposite of the ascension is the
incarnation, cf. <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.3" osisRef="Bible:John.3.13" parsed="|John|3|13|0|0" passage="John 3:13">John
3:13</scripRef>. Hence the majority of commentators take the expression as
referring simply to the
earth. The expression may be derived from <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.15" parsed="|Ps|139|15|0|0" passage="Ps. 139:15">Ps. 139:15</scripRef> and refer more
particularly to the
incarnation. (2) <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.5" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.18" parsed="|1Pet|3|18|0|0" passage="I Peter 3:18">I Peter 3:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.6" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.19" parsed="|1Pet|3|19|0|0" passage="I Peter 3:19">19</scripRef>, which speaks of Christ as "being
put to death in the
flesh, but made alive in the spirit, in which He also went and
preached unto the spirits
in prison." This passage is supposed to refer to the descent into
hades and to state the
purpose of it. The Spirit referred to is then understood to be the soul
of Christ, and the
preaching mentioned must have taken place between His death and
resurrection. But
the one is just as impossible as the other. The Spirit mentioned is not
the soul of Christ
but the quickening Spirit, and it was by that same life-giving Spirit
that Christ preached.
The common Protestant interpretation of this passage is that in the Spirit
Christ
preached through Noah to the disobedient that lived before the flood,
who were spirits
in prison when Peter wrote, and could therefore be designated as such.
Bavinck
considers this untenable and interprets the passage as referring to the
ascension, which he regards as a rich, triumphant, and powerful preaching to
the spirits in prison.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p27.7" n="19" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p27.8">Geref. Dogm.</span> III, p. 547. For still another interpretation, cf. Brown, <span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p27.9">Comm. on Peter in loco.</span></note> (3) <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.10" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.4.4-1Pet.4.6" parsed="|1Pet|4|4|4|6" passage="I Pet. 4:4-6">I Pet. 4:4-6</scripRef>, particularly verse 6, which reads as follows: "For unto
this end was the gospel
preached even to the dead, that they might be judged indeed according to
men in the
flesh, but live according to God in the spirit." In this
connection the apostle warns the
readers that they should not live the rest of their life in the flesh
to the lusts of men, but
to the will of God, even if they should give offense to their former
companions and be
slandered by them, since they shall have to give an account of their
doing to God, who
is ready to judge the living and the dead. The "dead" to whom
the gospel was preached
were evidently not yet dead when it was preached unto
them, since the purpose of this
preaching was in part "that they might be judged according to men
in the flesh." This
could only take place during their life on earth. In all probability the
writer refers to the
same spirits in prison of which he spoke in the preceding chapter. (4)
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.8-Ps.16.10" parsed="|Ps|16|8|16|10" passage="Ps. 16:8-10">Ps. 16:8-10</scripRef> (comp.
<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.25-Acts.2.27" parsed="|Acts|2|25|2|27" passage="Acts 2:25-27">Acts 2:25-27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.30" parsed="|Acts|2|30|0|0" passage="Acts 2:30">30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.31" parsed="|Acts|2|31|0|0" passage="Acts 2:31">31</scripRef>). It is especially the 10th verse that comes into
consideration here, "For thou wilt not leave my soul in Sheol; neither
wilt thou suffer thy holy one to see
corruption." From this passage Pearson concludes that the soul of
Christ was in hell
(hades) before the resurrection, for we are told that it was not left
there.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p27.15" n="20" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p27.16">Expos. of the Creed, in loco.</span></note>
But we should
note the following: (a) The word<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p27.17">
nephesh</span>
(soul) is often
used in Hebrew for the personal
pronoun, and<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p27.18">
sheol</span>, for the state of death. (b) If we so understand these words here, we
have a clear synonymous parallelism. The idea expressed would be that Jesus was
not
left to the power of death. (c) This is in perfect harmony with the
interpretation of Peter
in <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.19" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.30" parsed="|Acts|2|30|0|0" passage="Acts 2:30">Acts 2:30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.20" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.31" parsed="|Acts|2|31|0|0" passage="Acts 2:31">31</scripRef>, and of Paul in <scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.21" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.34" parsed="|Acts|13|34|0|0" passage="Acts 13:34">Acts 13:34</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.i-p27.22" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.35" parsed="|Acts|13|35|0|0" passage="Acts 13:35">35</scripRef>. In both instances the
psalm is quoted to
prove the resurrection of Jesus.</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p28" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p28.1">
Different interpretations of the creedal expression.</span>
(1) The
Catholic Church takes it to
mean that, after His death, Christ went into the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p28.2">
Limbus Patrum</span>, where the Old
Testament saints were awaiting the revelation and application of His
redemption,
preached the gospel to them, and brought them out to heaven. (2) The
Lutherans regard
the descent into hades as the first stage of the exaltation of Christ.
Christ went into the
underworld to reveal and consummate His victory over Satan and the powers
of
darkness, and to pronounce their sentence of condemnation. Some
Lutherans place this
triumphal march between the death of Christ and His resurrection; others,
after the
resurrection. (3) The Church of England holds that, while Christ's body
was in the
grave, the soul went into hades, more particularly into paradise, the
abode of the souls
of the righteous, and gave them a fuller exposition of the truth. (4)
Calvin interprets the phrase metaphorically,<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p28.3" n="21" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p28.4">Inst.</span> Bk. II, XVI, 8 ff.</note> as referring to the penal sufferings of Christ
on the cross, where
He really suffered the pangs of hell. Similarly, the Heidelberg
Catechism.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.i-p28.5" n="22" place="foot">Q. 44.</note>
According to the usual Reformed position the words refer not only to the sufferings
on the cross, but
also to the agonies of Gethsemane. (5) Scripture certainly does not
teach a literal descent
of Christ into hell. Moreover, there are serious objections to this
view. He cannot have
descended into hell according to the body, for this was in the grave. If
He really did
descend into hell, it can only have been as to His soul, and this would
mean that only half of His human nature shared in this stage of His humiliation
(or exaltation).
Moreover, as long as Christ had not yet risen from the dead, the time
had not come for a
triumphal march such as the Lutherans assume. And, finally, at the time
of His death
Christ commended His spirit to His Father. This seems to indicate that
He would be
passive rather than active from the time of His death until He arose
from the grave. On
the whole it seems best to combine two thoughts: (a) that Christ
suffered the pangs of
hell before His death, in Gethsemane and on the cross; and (b) that He
entered the
deepest humiliation of the state of death.
</p>
<p id="v.ii.i-p29" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: How were
state and condition related to each other
in the case of Adam, when he fell? In the case of the Word becoming flesh?
How are
they related in the redemption of sinners? Do one's state and condition
always
correspond? How should the state of humiliation be defined? What does
Kuyper mean,
when he distinguishes between the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p29.1">
status generis</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p29.2">
status modi</span>? What stages does he distinguish in the state of humiliation? Is there any biblical proof
for the virgin birth,
except in the Gospels of Matthew and Luke? What are the doctrinal
bearings of this doctrine? Have the theories of the mythical origin of the idea
of the virgin birth been
found adequate? What do we understand by Christ's subjection to the law?
In what
legal relation did He stand as Mediator during His humiliation? Was the
human nature
of Christ inherently subject to the law of death? Did eternal death in
the case of Christ
include all the elements that are included in the eternal death of
sinners? How can the
burial of the Saviour be conceived of as a proof that He really died?
</p>

<p id="v.ii.i-p30" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.1">
Geref Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 455-469; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Christo</span>
II,
pp. 59-108;
ibid.,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.3">
De Vleeschwording des Woords;</span>
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 612-625;
Shedd,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.5">
Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 330-348; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.6">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 321-326; Litton,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.7">
Introd to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 175-191; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.8">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 358-378; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.9">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 383-406;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.10">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 88-95;
Heppe,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.11">
Dogm. der
ev.-ref.</span>
Kirche, pp. 351-356; Ebrard,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.12">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 189-226; Mastricht,
<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.13">Godgeleerdheit</span>, II, pp. 601-795;<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.14">
Synopsis Purioris</span>
pp.
262-272; Turretin,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.15">
Opera, Locus</span> XIII, Q. IX-XVI; Machen,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.16">
The Virgin Birth of Christ;</span> Orr,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.17">
The Virgin
Birth of Christ;</span>
Sweet,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.18">
The Birth and Infancy of Jesus Christ;</span>
Cooke,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.19">
Did Paul Know
the Virgin Birth?</span>
Knowling,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.20">
The Virgin
Birth;</span>
Barth,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.21">
Credo</span>, pp. 62-94;
Brunner,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.i-p30.22">
The Mediator</span>, pp. 303-376.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.ii.ii" next="v.iii" prev="v.ii.i" title="II. The State of Exaltation">
<h2 id="v.ii.ii-p0.1">II.The State of Exaltation</h2>
<h4 id="v.ii.ii-p0.2">A. GENERAL REMARKS ON THE STATE OF EXALTATION.</h4>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p1" shownumber="no">1.THE SUBJECT AND NATURE OF THE EXALTATION. As already indicated in the
preceding, there is a difference of opinion between Lutheran and
Reformed theology on
the subject of the states of Christ. The former deny that the Logos, and
assert that the
human nature of Christ, is the subject of the states of humiliation and
exaltation. Hence
they exclude the incarnation from the humiliation of Christ, and
maintain that the state
of humiliation consists in this, "that Christ for a time renounced
(truly and really, yet
freely) the plenary exercise of the divine majesty, which His human
nature had acquired
in the personal union, and, as a lowly man, endured what was far beneath
the divine
majesty (that He might suffer and die for the love of the world)."<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p1.1" n="23" place="foot">Baier, quoted by Schmid, <span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p1.2">Doctrinal Theology of the Evangelical Lutheran Church,</span> p. 383.</note>
They hold that the state of exaltation became manifest first of all to the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p1.3"> lower</span>
world in the descent into
hades, and further to<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p1.4">
this</span>
world in the resurrection and
ascension, reaching its
completion in the session at the right hand of God. The exaltation,
then, consists in this
that the human nature assumed the plenary exercise of the divine
attributes that were
communicated to it at the incarnation, but were used only occasionally
or secretly.
Reformed theology, on the other hand, regards the person of the
Mediator, that is, the
God-man, as the subject of the exaltation, but stresses the fact that it
was, of course, the
human nature in which the exaltation took place. The divine nature is
not capable of
humiliation or exaltation. In the exaltation the God-man, Jesus Christ,
(a) passed from
under the law in its federal and penal aspects, and consequently from
under the burden
of the law as the condition of the covenant of works, and from under the
curse of the
law; (b) exchanged the penal for the righteous relation to the law, and
as Mediator
entered into possession of the blessings of salvation which He merited
for sinners; and
(c) was crowned with a corresponding honor and glory. It had to appear
also in His
condition that the curse of sin was lifted. His exaltation was also His
glorification.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE EXALTATION OF CHRIST BOTH SCRIPTURAL AND REASONABLE.
There is abundant
Scriptural proof for the exaltation of Christ. The gospel story clearly
shows us that the
humiliation of Christ was followed by His exaltation. The classical
passage to prove the
latter is found in <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.9-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|9|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:9-11">Phil. 2:9-11</scripRef>: "Wherefore also God highly exalted
Him, and gave unto
Him the name which is above every name; that in the name of Jesus every
knee should
bow, of things in heaven and things on earth, and that every tongue
should confess that Jesus Christ is Lord, to the glory of God the Father." But in
addition to this there are
several others,
such as <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.19" parsed="|Mark|16|19|0|0" passage="Mark 16:19">Mark 16:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.26" parsed="|Luke|24|26|0|0" passage="Luke 24:26">Luke 24:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:John.7.39" parsed="|John|7|39|0|0" passage="John 7:39">John 7:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.33" parsed="|Acts|2|33|0|0" passage="Acts 2:33">Acts 2:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.31" parsed="|Acts|5|31|0|0" passage="Acts 5:31">5:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.17" parsed="|Rom|8|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:17">Rom. 8:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.34" parsed="|Rom|8|34|0|0" passage="Rom 8:34">34</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20" parsed="|Eph|1|20|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:20">Eph. 1:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.10" parsed="|Eph|4|10|0|0" passage="Eph 4:10">4:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.11" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.16" parsed="|1Tim|3|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:16">I Tim. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.3" parsed="|Heb|1|3|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:3">Heb. 1:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.13" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|9|0|0" passage="Heb 2:9">2:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p2.14" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.12" parsed="|Heb|10|12|0|0" passage="Heb 10:12">10:12</scripRef>. There is a close connection between the
two states. The state of exaltation must be regarded as the judicial
result of the state of
humiliation. In His capacity as Mediator Christ met the demands of the
law in its federal and penal aspects, paying the penalty of sin and meriting
everlasting life.
Therefore His justification had to follow and He had to be put in
possession of the
reward. Since He was a public person and accomplished His work publicly,
justice
required that the exaltation should also be a public matter. The
exaltation of Christ has a
threefold significance. Each one of the stages was a virtual declaration
of God that
Christ met the demands of the law, and was therefore entitled to His
reward. The first
two stages also had exemplary significance, since they symbolized what
will take place
in the life of believers. And, finally, all four stages were destined to
be instrumental in
the perfect
glorification of believers.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p3" shownumber="no">3. THE STATE OF EXALTATION IN MODERN LIBERAL THEOLOGY. Modern liberal theology,
of course, knows of no state of exaltation in the life of Christ. Not
only has it discarded
the legal idea of the states of Christ altogether, but it has also ruled
out all the
supernatural in the life of the Saviour. Rauschenbusch closes his<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p3.1">
Theology for the Social Gospel</span>
with a discussion of the death of Christ. Macintosh says that "the
difficulties in
the way of
accepting the ordinary traditional notion of the 'resurrection' of Jesus, as a
reanimation of the dead body, its miraculous transformation and final
ascension to
'heaven,' are,
to the scientific habit of thought, practically insuperable. . . . An
undischarged burden of proof still rests upon those who maintain that it
(the body of
Christ) did not suffer disintegration, like the bodies of all others who
have died."<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p3.2" n="24" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p3.3">Theology as an Emipirical Science,</span> pp. 77, 78.</note>
Beckwith admits that the Bible, and particularly Paul, speaks of the
exaltation of Christ,
but says: "If we translate the Apostle's notion of exaltation into
its modern equivalent,
we shall find him saying that Christ is superior to all the forces of
the universe and to all
known orders of rational beings, even the highest, saving only the
Father."<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p3.4" n="25" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p3.5">Realities of Christian Theology,</span> p. 138.</note>
And George Burman Foster frankly declares: "According to orthodoxy, the
Son of God laid
aside his divine glory and then took it up again; he alienated from
himself certain divine qualities, and then integrated them again. What is meant
is at bottom good,
namely, that the great and merciful God serves us, and is not too good
for our daily
human food. Perhaps the form of the orthodox doctrine was necessary when
the doctrine was excogitated, but that terrible being, the modern man, cannot
do anything with it."<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p3.6" n="26" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p3.7">Christianity in Its Modern Expression,</span> p. 144.</note></p>

<h4 id="v.ii.ii-p3.8">B. THE STAGES OF THE STATE OF EXALTATION.</h4>
<p id="v.ii.ii-p4" shownumber="no">Reformed theology distinguishes four stages in the exaltation of Christ.</p>
<p id="v.ii.ii-p5" shownumber="no">1. THE RESURRECTION.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p6" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p6.1">
The nature of the resurrection.</span>
The
resurrection of Christ did not consist in the mere
fact that He came to life again, and that body and soul were re-united.
If this were all
that it
involved, He could not be called "the first-fruits of them that
slept," <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.20" parsed="|1Cor|15|20|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:20">I Cor. 15:20</scripRef>,
nor "the
firstborn of the dead," <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.18" parsed="|Col|1|18|0|0" passage="Col. 1:18">Col. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.5" parsed="|Rev|1|5|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:5">Rev. 1:5</scripRef>, since others were restored to
life
before Him. It consisted rather in this that in Him human nature, both
body and soul,
was restored to its pristine strength and perfection and even raised to
a higher level,
while body and soul were re-united in a living organism. From the
analogy of the
change which, according to Scripture, takes place in the body of
believers in the general
resurrection, we may gather something as to the transformation that must
have
occurred in Christ. Paul tells us in <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.42-1Cor.15.44" parsed="|1Cor|15|42|15|44" passage="I Cor. 15:42-44">I Cor. 15:42-44</scripRef> that the future
body of believers will
be incorruptible, that is, incapable of decay; glorious, which means
resplendent with
heavenly brightness; powerful, that is, instinct with energy and perhaps
with new
faculties; and spiritual, which does not mean immaterial or ethereal,
but adapted to the
spirit, a perfect instrument of the spirit. From the Gospel story we
learn that the body of
Jesus had undergone a remarkable change, so that He was not easily
recognized and
could suddenly appear and disappear in a surprising manner, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.31" parsed="|Luke|24|31|0|0" passage="Luke 24:31">Luke 24:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.36" parsed="|Luke|24|36|0|0" passage="Luke 24:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:John.20.13" parsed="|John|20|13|0|0" passage="John 20:13">John 20:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:John.20.19" parsed="|John|20|19|0|0" passage="John 20:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.10" osisRef="Bible:John.21.7" parsed="|John|21|7|0|0" passage="John 21:7">21:7</scripRef>; but that it was nevertheless a material and very real
body, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.39" parsed="|Luke|24|39|0|0" passage="Luke 24:39">Luke 24:39</scripRef>.
This does not
conflict with <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.50" parsed="|1Cor|15|50|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:50">I Cor. 15:50</scripRef>, for "flesh and blood" is a
description of human
nature in its present material, mortal, and corruptible state. But the
change that takes
place in believers is not only bodily but also spiritual. Similarly,
there was not only a
physical but also a psychical change in Christ. We cannot say that any
religious or
ethical change took place in Him; but He was endowed with new qualities
perfectly
adjusted to His future heavenly environment. Through the resurrection He
became the
life-giving
Spirit, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.45" parsed="|1Cor|15|45|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:45">I Cor. 15:45</scripRef>. The resurrection of Christ had a threefold significance:
(1)
It constituted a declaration of the Father that the last enemy had been
vanquished, the
penalty paid, and the condition on which life was promised, met. (2) It
symbolized
what was destined to happen to the members of Christ's mystical body in
their
justification,
spiritual birth, and future blessed resurrection, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.4" parsed="|Rom|6|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:4">Rom. 6:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.5" parsed="|Rom|6|5|0|0" passage="Rom 6:5">5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.16" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.9" parsed="|Rom|6|9|0|0" passage="Rom 6:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom 8:11">8:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.18" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.14" parsed="|1Cor|6|14|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:14">I Cor. 6:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.19" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.20-1Cor.15.22" parsed="|1Cor|15|20|15|22" passage="I Cor. 15:20-22">15:20-22</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.20" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.4.10" parsed="|2Cor|4|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 4:10">II Cor. 4:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.21" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.4.11" parsed="|2Cor|4|11|0|0" passage="II Cor. 4:11">11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.22" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.4.14" parsed="|2Cor|4|14|0|0" passage="II Cor. 4:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.23" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.12" parsed="|Col|2|12|0|0" passage="Col. 2:12">Col. 2:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.24" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.14" parsed="|1Thess|4|14|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:14">I Thess. 4:14</scripRef>. (3) It is also connected
instrumentally with their justification, regeneration, and final
resurrection, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.25" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.25" parsed="|Rom|4|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:25">Rom. 4:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.26" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.10" parsed="|Rom|5|10|0|0" passage="Rom 5:10">5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.27" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20" parsed="|Eph|1|20|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:20">Eph. 1:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.28" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.10" parsed="|Phil|3|10|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:10">Phil. 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p6.29" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.3" parsed="|1Pet|1|3|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:3">I Pet. 1:3</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p7" shownumber="no"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p7.1">b. The Author of the resurrection.</span>
In distinction
from others who were raised from the
dead, Christ arose through His own power. He spoke of Himself as the
resurrection and
the life, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:John.11.25" parsed="|John|11|25|0|0" passage="John 11:25">John 11:25</scripRef>, declared that He had the power to lay down His
life, and to take it
up again, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:John.10.18" parsed="|John|10|18|0|0" passage="John 10:18">John 10:18</scripRef>, and even predicted that He would rebuild the
temple of His body,
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:John.2.19-John.2.21" parsed="|John|2|19|2|21" passage="John 2:19-21">John 2:19-21</scripRef>. But the resurrection was not a work of Christ alone; it is
frequently
ascribed to the
power of God in general, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.24" parsed="|Acts|2|24|0|0" passage="Acts 2:24">Acts 2:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.32" parsed="|Acts|2|32|0|0" passage="Acts 2:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.26" parsed="|Acts|3|26|0|0" passage="Acts 3:26">3:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.30" parsed="|Acts|5|30|0|0" passage="Acts 5:30">5:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.14" parsed="|1Cor|6|14|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:14">I Cor. 6:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20" parsed="|Eph|1|20|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:20">Eph. 1:20</scripRef>, or,
more
particularly, to the Father, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.4" parsed="|Rom|6|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:4">Rom. 6:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.1" parsed="|Gal|1|1|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:1">Gal. 1:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.3" parsed="|1Pet|1|3|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:3">I Pet. 1:3</scripRef>. And if the resurrection
of
Christ can be called a work of God, then it follows that the Holy Spirit
was also
operative in it, for all the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p7.14">
opera ad extra</span>
are works of the
triune God. Moreover, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p7.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:11">Rom. 8:11</scripRef>
also implies
this.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p8" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p8.1">
Objection to the doctrine of the resurrection.</span>
One great
objection is urged against the
doctrine of a physical resurrection, namely, that after death the body
disintegrates, and the various particles of which it is composed enter into the
composition of other bodies,
vegetable, animal, and human. Hence it is impossible to restore these
particles to all the
bodies of which, in the course of time, they formed a part. Macintosh
asks, "What
became of the atoms of carbon, oxygen, nitrogen, hydrogen and other
elements which
composed the earthly body of Jesus?"<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p8.2" n="27" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p8.3">theology as an Empirical Science</span> p. 77</note> Now we admit that the resurrection defies
explanation. It is a miracle. But at the same time we should bear in
mind that the
identity of a resurrection body with the body that descended into the
grave does not
require that it be composed of exactly the same particles. The
composition of our bodies
changes right along, and yet they retain their identity. Paul in <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15" parsed="|1Cor|15|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15">I Cor. 15</scripRef> maintains the
<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p8.5">essential</span>
identity of the body that descends into the grave with that which is
raised up,
but also declares emphatically that the form changes. That which man
sows in the earth
passes through a process of death, and is then quickened; but in form
the grain which
he puts into the ground is not the same as that which he reaps in due
time. God gives to
each seed a body of its own. So it is also in the resurrection of the
dead. It may be that
there is some nucleus, some germ, that constitutes the essence of the
body and
preserves its identity. The argument of the apostle in <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.35-1Cor.15.38" parsed="|1Cor|15|35|15|38" passage="I Cor. 15:35-38">I Cor. 15:35-38</scripRef>
seems to imply
something of the kind.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p8.7" n="28" place="foot">Cf. Kuyper, <span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p8.8">E Voto</span> II, pp. 248 ff.; Milligan, <span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p8.9">The Resurrection of the Dead,</span> pp 117 ff.</note>
It should be borne
in mind that the real, the fundamental
objection to the resurrection, is its supernatural character. It is not
lack of evidence, but the fundamental tenet that miracles cannot happen, that stands in the way
of its
acceptance. Even liberal scholars admit that no fact is better attested
than the
resurrection of Christ — though others, of course, deny this. But this
makes little
difference to the modern scholar. Says Dr. Rashdall: "Were the
testimony fifty times
stronger than it is, any hypothesis would be more possible than
that." Yet at the present
time many eminent scientists frankly declare that they are not in a
position to say that
miracles cannot happen.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p9" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p9.1">
Attempts to explain away the fact of the resurrection.</span>
In their denial
the anti-
supernaturalists always run up against the story of the resurrection in
the Gospels. The
story of the empty tomb and of the appearances of Jesus after the
resurrection present a
challenge to them, and they accept the challenge and attempt to explain
these without
accepting the fact of the resurrection. The following attempts are some
of the most
important.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p10" shownumber="no">(1)<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p10.1">
The falsehood theory.</span>
This is to the effect that the
disciples practiced deliberate
deception by stealing the body from the grave and then declaring that the
Lord had
risen. The soldiers who watched the grave were instructed to circulate
that story, and
Celsus already urged it in explanation of the empty tomb. This theory,
of course,
impugns the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p10.2">
veracity</span>
of the early witnesses, the apostles, the women, the five hundred
brethren, and others. But it is extremely unlikely that the
faint-hearted disciples would
have had the courage to palm off such a falsehood upon a hostile world.
It is impossible to believe that they would have persisted in suffering for
such a bare falsehood.
Moreover, only the facts of the resurrection can explain the indomitable
courage and
power which they reveal in witnessing to the resurrection of Christ.
These
considerations soon led to the abandonment of this view.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p11" shownumber="no">(2)<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p11.1">
The swoon theory.</span>
According to this theory, Jesus did not
really die, but merely
fainted, while it was thought that He had actually died. But this
naturally raises several
questions that are not easy to answer. How can it be explained that so
many people
were deceived, and that the spear thrust did not kill Jesus? How could
Jesus in His
exhausted condition roll away the stone from the grave and then walk
from Jerusalem
to Emmaus and back. How is it that the disciples did not treat Him as a
sick person, but saw in Him the powerful Prince of Life? And what became of
Jesus after that? With the
resurrection the ascension is naturally ruled out also. Did He then
return to some
unknown place and live in secret the rest of His life? This theory is
burdened with so
many improbabilities that even Strauss ridiculed it. </p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p12" shownumber="no">(3)<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p12.1">
The vision
theory.</span>
This was presented in two forms. (a) Some speak of
purely
subjective visions. In their excited state of mind the disciples dwelt
so much on the
Saviour and on the possibility of His return to them, that at last they
actually thought
they saw Him. The spark was applied by the nervous and excitable Mary
Magdalene,
and soon the flame was kindled and spread. This has been the
favorable theory for a
long time, but it too is freighted with difficulties. How could such
visions arise, seeing
that the disciples did not expect the resurrection? How could they appear
while the
disciples were about their ordinary business and not given to prayer or
meditation?
Could the rapture or ecstacy required for the creation of subjective
visions have started
as early as the third day? Would not the disciples in such visions have
seen Jesus, either
as surrounded with a halo of heavenly glory, or just as
they had known Him and eager
to renew fellowship with them? Do subjective visions ever present
themselves to
several persons simultaneously? How can we account for the visionary
conversations?
(b) In view of the extreme weakness of this theory some scholars
presented a different
version of it. They claim that the disciples saw real objective visions,
miraculously sent
by God, to persuade them to go on with the preaching of the gospel. This
does really
avoid some of the difficulties suggested, but encounters others. It
admits the
supernatural; and if this is necessary, why not grant the resurrection,
which certainly
explains all the facts? Moreover, this theory asks us to believe that
these divinely sent
visions were such as to mislead the apostles. Does God seek to work His
ends by
deception? </p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p13" shownumber="no">(4)<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p13.1">
Mythical theories.</span>
A new mythical school has come into
existence, which discards,
or at least dispenses with, theories of vision and apparition, and seeks
to account for the
resurrection legend by the help of conceptions imported into Judaism
from Babylonia
and other oriental countries. This school claims not only that the
mythology of the
ancient oriental religions contains analogies of the resurrection story,
but that this story
was actually derived from pagan myths. This theory has been worked out in
several
forms, but is equally baseless in all its forms. It is characterized by
great arbitrariness in
bolstering up a connection of the gospel story with heathen myths, and
has not
succeeded in linking them together. Moreover, it reveals an extreme
disregard of the facts as they are found in Scripture.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p14" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p14.1">
The doctrinal bearing of the resurrection.</span>
The question
arises, Does it make any difference, whether we believe in the physical resurrection of Christ,
or merely in an
ideal resurrection? For modern liberal theology the resurrection of
Jesus, except in the
sense of a spiritual survival, has no real importance for Christian
faith. Belief in the
bodily resurrection is not essential, but can very well be dropped
without affecting the
Christian religion. Barth and Brunner are of a different opinion. They
do believe in the
historical fact of the resurrection, but maintain that as such it is
merely a matter of
history, with which the historian may deal to the best of his ability,
and not as a matter
of faith. The important element is that in the resurrection the divine
breaks into the
course of history, that in it the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p14.2">
incognito</span>
of Jesus is
removed and God reveals Himself. The historian cannot describe it, but the
believer accepts it by faith.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p15" shownumber="no">Belief in the resurrection certainly has doctrinal
bearings. We cannot deny the
physical resurrection of Christ without impugning the veracity of the
writers of
Scripture, since they certainly represent it as a fact. This means that
it affects our belief
in the trustworthiness of Scripture. Moreover the resurrection of Christ
is represented as
having evidential value. It was the culminating proof that Christ was a
teacher sent
from God (the sign of Jonah), and that He was the very Son of God, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.4" parsed="|Rom|1|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:4">Rom. 1:4</scripRef>. It was also
the supreme attestation of the fact of immortality. What is still more
important, the
resurrection enters as a constitutive element into the very essence of
the work of
redemption, and therefore of the gospel. It is one of the great
foundation stones of the
Church of God. The atoning work of Christ, if it was to be effective at
all, had to
terminate, not in death, but in life. Furthermore, it was the Father's
seal on the
completed work of Christ, the public declaration of its acceptance. In
it Christ passed
from under the law. Finally, it was His entrance on a new life as the
risen and<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p15.2"> exalted
Head of the Church</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p15.3">
universal Lord.</span>
This enabled Him to apply the fruits of
His  redemptive work.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p16" shownumber="no">2. THE ASCENSION.</p>
<p id="v.ii.ii-p17" shownumber="no">a. The ascension of Christ does not stand out as boldly on the pages of
the Bible as
the resurrection does. This is probably due to the fact that the latter
rather than the
former was the real turning point in the life of Jesus. In a certain
sense the ascension may be called the necessary complement and completion of
the resurrection. Christ's
transition to the higher life of glory, begun in the resurrection, was
perfected in the
ascension. This does not mean that the ascension was devoid of
independent
significance. But though the Scripture proof for the ascension is not as
abundant as that
for the resurrection, it is quite sufficient. Luke gives a double
account of it, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.50-Luke.24.53" parsed="|Luke|24|50|24|53" passage="Luke 24:50-53">Luke
24:50-53</scripRef>, and
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.6-Acts.1.11" parsed="|Acts|1|6|1|11" passage="Acts 1:6-11">Acts 1:6-11</scripRef>. Mark refers to it in 16:19, but this passage is contested. Jesus
spoke of it time
and again before His death, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:John.6.62" parsed="|John|6|62|0|0" passage="John 6:62">John 6:62</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:John.14.2" parsed="|John|14|2|0|0" passage="John 14:2">14:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:John.14.12" parsed="|John|14|12|0|0" passage="John 14:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:John.16.5" parsed="|John|16|5|0|0" passage="John 16:5">16:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:John.16.10" parsed="|John|16|10|0|0" passage="John 16:10">10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:John.16.17" parsed="|John|16|17|0|0" passage="John 16:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:John.16.28" parsed="|John|16|28|0|0" passage="John 16:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:John.17.5" parsed="|John|17|5|0|0" passage="John 17:5">17:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.11" osisRef="Bible:John.20.17" parsed="|John|20|17|0|0" passage="John 20:17">20:17</scripRef>.
Paul refers to
it repeatedly, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.12" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20" parsed="|Eph|1|20|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:20">Eph. 1:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.8-Eph.4.10" parsed="|Eph|4|8|4|10" passage="Eph 4:8-10">4:8-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p17.14" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.16" parsed="|1Tim|3|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:16">I Tim. 3:16</scripRef>; and the Epistle to the Hebrews
calls attention
to its significance, 1:3; 4:14; 9:24. </p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p18" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p18.1">
The nature of the ascension.</span>
The ascension
may be described as the visible ascent of
the person of the Mediator from earth to heaven, according to His human
nature. It was
a local transition, a going from place to place. This implies, of
course, that heaven is a
place as well as earth. But the ascension of Jesus was not merely a
transition from one
place to another; it also included a further change in the human nature
of Christ. That
nature now passed into the fulness of heavenly glory and
was perfectly adapted to the
life of heaven. Some Christian scholars of recent date consider heaven
to be a condition
rather than a place, and therefore do not conceive of the ascension
locally.<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p18.2" n="29" place="foot">Cf. Milligan,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p18.3"> The Ascension and Heavenly Priesthood of our Lord</span>, pp. 24 ff;
Swete,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p18.4"> The Ascended Christ</span>, pp. 8f.;
Gore,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p18.5"> The Reconstruction of Belief</span>, pp. 272 f.</note>
They will
admit that there was a momentary lifting up of Christ in the sight of
the Eleven, but
regard this only as a symbol of the lifting up of our humanity to a
spiritual order far
above our present life. The local conception, however, is favored by the
following
considerations: (1) Heaven is represented in Scripture as the dwelling
place of created
beings (angels, saints, the human nature of Christ). These are all in
some way related to
space; only God is above all spatial relations. Of course, the laws that
apply in heavenly
space may differ from those that apply in earthly space. (2) Heaven and
earth are
repeatedly placed in juxtaposition in Scripture. From this it would seem
to follow that,
if the one is a place, the other must be a place also. It would be
absurd to put a place
and a condition in juxtaposition in that way. (3) The Bible teaches us
to think of heaven
as a place. Several passages direct our thought<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p18.6">
upward</span>
to heaven and<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p18.7">
downward</span>
to hell,
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p18.8" osisRef="Bible:Deut.30.12" parsed="|Deut|30|12|0|0" passage="Deut. 30:12">Deut. 30:12</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p18.9" osisRef="Bible:Josh.2.11" parsed="|Josh|2|11|0|0" passage="Jos. 2:11">Jos. 2:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p18.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.8" parsed="|Ps|139|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 139:8">Ps. 139:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p18.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.6" parsed="|Rom|10|6|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:6">Rom. 10:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p18.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.7" parsed="|Rom|10|7|0|0" passage="Rom 10:7">7</scripRef>. This would have no meaning if the two
were not to be regarded as local in some sense of the word. (4) The
Saviour's entrance
into heaven is pictured as an ascent. The disciples see Jesus ascending
until a cloud
intercepts Him and hides Him from their sight. The same local coloring
is present to the
mind of the writer of Hebrews in 4:14.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p19" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p19.1">
The Lutheran conception of the ascension.</span>
The Lutheran
conception of the ascension
differs from that of the Reformed. They regard it, not as a local
transition, but as a
change of condition, whereby the human nature of Christ passed into the
full enjoyment
and exercise of the divine perfections, communicated to it at the
incarnation, and thus
became permanently omnipresent. In connection with the idea that Christ
began His
session at the right hand of God at the ascension, they maintain that
this right hand (which is merely a symbol of power) is everywhere. Lutherans,
however, do not all
think alike on the subject of the ubiquity of Christ's human nature.
Some deny it
altogether, and others believe that, while the ascension resulted in the
ubiquity of Christ, it also included a local movement, whereby Christ withdrew His
visible
presence from the earth.</p>
<p id="v.ii.ii-p20" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p20.1">
The doctrinal significance of the ascension.</span>
Barth says that
the question may well be  asked why the
ascension should have a place among the main articles of the Christian
faith, seeing that it is mentioned less frequently and emphatically than
the resurrection,
and where it is mentioned appears only as a natural
transition from the resurrection to
the session at God's right hand. It is exactly in this transition that
he finds the real
significance of the ascension. Hence he does not care to stress the
ascension as a visible
exaltation, a
"vertical elevation in space" before the eyes of the disciples, since
that is
evidently not the way to the session at the right hand of God, which is
no place. Just as
the historical facts of the virgin birth and of the resurrection are
regarded by him merely
as signs of a revelation of Christ, so too the ascension as a sign and
wonder is merely a
"<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p20.2">
pointer</span>
to the revelation, that occurred in the resurrection, of Jesus Christ
as the bearer
of all power in heaven and earth."<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p20.3" n="30" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p20.4">Credo,</span> p. 113</note></p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p21" shownumber="no">It may be said that the ascension had a threefold
significance. (1) It clearly embodied
the declaration that the sacrifice of Christ was a sacrifice to God,
which as such had to
be presented to Him in the inner sanctuary; that the Father regarded the
Mediatorial
work of Christ as sufficient and therefore admitted Him to the heavenly
glory; and that
the Kingdom of the Mediator was not a kingdom of the Jews, but a
universal kingdom.
(2) It was also exemplary in that it was prophetic of the ascension of
all believers, who
are already set with Christ in heavenly places, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p21.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.6" parsed="|Eph|2|6|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:6">Eph. 2:6</scripRef>, and are
destined to be with Him
forever, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:John.17.24" parsed="|John|17|24|0|0" passage="John 17:24">John 17:24</scripRef>; and also in that it revealed the initial
restoration of the original
kingship of man, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.7" parsed="|Heb|2|7|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:7">Heb. 2:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|9|0|0" passage="Heb 2:9">9</scripRef>. (3) Finally, it was also instrumental in
preparing a place for
those who are in Christ. The Lord Himself points to the necessity of going
to the Father,
in order to prepare a place for His disciples, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:John.14.2" parsed="|John|14|2|0|0" passage="John 14:2">John 14:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:John.14.3" parsed="|John|14|3|0|0" passage="John 14:3">3</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p22" shownumber="no">3. THE SESSION AT THE RIGHT HAND OF GOD. </p>
<p id="v.ii.ii-p23" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p23.1">
Scriptural proof for the session.</span>
When Christ
stood before the high priest He predicted that He would sit at the right hand of power, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.64" parsed="|Matt|26|64|0|0" passage="Matt. 26:64">Matt. 26:64</scripRef>.
Peter makes
mention of it in his sermons, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.33-Acts.2.36" parsed="|Acts|2|33|2|36" passage="Acts 2:33-36">Acts 2:33-36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.31" parsed="|Acts|5|31|0|0" passage="Acts 5:31">5:31</scripRef>. In both of these
passages the dative<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p23.5">
tei dexiai</span>
may have to be taken in its more usual instrumental sense, though in
the first of the two the quotation in verse 34 favors the local interpretation.
It is also referred to in
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20-Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|20|1|22" passage="Eph. 1:20-22">Eph. 1:20-22</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.12" parsed="|Heb|10|12|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:12">Heb. 10:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.8" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.22" parsed="|1Pet|3|22|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:22">I Pet. 3:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.21" parsed="|Rev|3|21|0|0" passage="Rev. 3:21">Rev. 3:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.22.1" parsed="|Rev|22|1|0|0" passage="Rev 22:1">22:1</scripRef>. Besides these passages there are
several that
speak of Christ's reigning as King, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.14.9" parsed="|Rom|14|9|0|0" passage="Rom. 14:9">Rom. 14:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.24-1Cor.15.28" parsed="|1Cor|15|24|15|28" passage="I Cor. 15:24-28">I Cor. 15:24-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.13" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.7" parsed="|Heb|2|7|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:7">Heb. 2:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p23.14" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.8" parsed="|Heb|2|8|0|0" passage="Heb 2:8">8</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p24" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p24.1">
The significance of the session.</span>
Naturally, the
expression "right hand of God" is
anthropomorphic and cannot be taken literally. The expression, as used
in this
connection, is derived from <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p24.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.110.1" parsed="|Ps|110|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 110:1">Ps. 110:1</scripRef>, "Sit thou at my right hand,
until I make thine
enemies thy footstool." To be seated at the right hand of the king
might be merely a
mark of honour, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.2.19" parsed="|1Kgs|2|19|0|0" passage="I Kings 2:19">I Kings 2:19</scripRef>, but might also denote participation in
government, and
consequently in honour and glory. In the case of Christ it was
undoubtedly an
indication of the fact that the Mediator received the reigns of
government over the
Church and over the universe, and is made to share in the corresponding
glory. This
does not mean that Christ was not King of Zion up to this time, but that
He is now
publicly inaugurated as Godman, and as such receives the government of
the Church
and of heaven and earth, and enters solemnly upon the actual
administration of the
power committed to Him. This is entirely in agreement with what Calvin
says, namely,
that the statement that Christ was seated at the right hand of God is
equivalent to
saying "that He was installed in the government of heaven and
earth, and formally
admitted to possession of the administration committed to Him, and not
only admitted
for once, but to continue until He descend to
judgment."<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p24.4" n="31" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p24.5">Inst.,</span> Bk. II. XVI. 15.</note> It is perfectly evident that it
would be a
mistake to infer from the fact that the Bible speaks of Christ's
"sitting" at the
right hand of God, that the life to which the risen Lord ascended is a
life of rest. It is and
continues to be a life of constant activity. The statements of Scripture
vary. Christ is not
only represented as<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p24.6">
sitting</span>
at the right hand
of God, but also simply as<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p24.7">
being</span>
at His right
hand, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p24.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.34" parsed="|Rom|8|34|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:34">Rom. 8:34</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p24.9" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.22" parsed="|1Pet|3|22|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:22">I Pet. 3:22</scripRef>, or as<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p24.10">
standing</span>
there, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p24.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.56" parsed="|Acts|7|56|0|0" passage="Acts 7:56">Acts 7:56</scripRef>, and even as<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p24.12">
walking</span>
in the
midst of the seven golden candlesticks. And it would be equally wrong to
conclude
from the emphasis on the royal dignity and government of Christ,
naturally suggested
by the idea of His sitting at the right hand of God, that the work in
which He is engaged
during His heavenly session is exclusively governmental, and therefore
neither prophetical nor priestly.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p25" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p25.1">
The work of Christ during His session.</span>
It deserves
emphasis that Christ, while He is
seated at the right hand of God, is not merely a passive recipient of
divine dominion
and power, majesty and glory, but is actively engaged in the
continuation of His
mediatorial work.
(1) Since the Bible most frequently connects the session
with the kingly rule of
Christ, it is natural to think first of all of His work as King. He
rules and protects His
Church by His Spirit, and also governs it through His appointed
officers. He has all the
forces of heaven under His command: the angels are His messengers,
always ready to convey His blessings to the saints, and to guard them against surrounding
dangers. He
exercises authority over the forces of nature, and over all the powers
that are hostile to
the Kingdom of God; and will so continue to reign until He has subjected
the last enemy.</p>
<p id="v.ii.ii-p26" shownumber="no">(2) However, His work is not limited to His kingly rule.
He is priest forever after the
order of Melchizedek. When He cried out on the cross, "It is
finished," He did not mean
to say that His priestly work was at an end, but only that His active
suffering had
reached its termination. The Bible also connects priestly work with
Christ's session at
the right hand
of God, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p26.1" osisRef="Bible:Zech.6.13" parsed="|Zech|6|13|0|0" passage="Zech. 6:13">Zech. 6:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p26.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.14" parsed="|Heb|4|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 4:14">Heb. 4:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.24" parsed="|Heb|7|24|0|0" passage="Heb 7:24">7:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.25" parsed="|Heb|7|25|0|0" passage="Heb 7:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.1-Heb.8.6" parsed="|Heb|8|1|8|6" passage="Heb 8:1-6">8:1-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.11-Heb.9.15" parsed="|Heb|9|11|9|15" passage="Heb 9:11-15">9:11-15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.24-Heb.9.26" parsed="|Heb|9|24|9|26" passage="Heb 9:24-26">24-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p26.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.19-Heb.10.22" parsed="|Heb|10|19|10|22" passage="Heb 10:19-22">10:19-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p26.9" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.2" parsed="|1John|2|2|0|0" passage="I John 2:2">I John 2:2</scripRef>. Christ is continually presenting His completed sacrifice to the
Father as the sufficient basis for the bestowal of the pardoning grace of God.
He is constantly
applying His sacrificial work, and making it effective in the
justification and
sanctification of sinners. Moreover, He is ever making intercession for
those that are
His, pleading for their acceptance on the basis of His completed
sacrifice, and for their
safe-keeping in the world, and making their prayers and services
acceptable to God.
The Lutherans stress the fact that the intercession of Christ is<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p26.10">
vocalis et realis</span>
, while the
Reformed emphasize the fact that it consists primarily in the presence
of Christ in man's
nature with the Father, and that the prayers are to be considered as the
presentation of
legitimate claims rather than as supplications.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p27" shownumber="no">(3) Christ also continues His prophetical work through
the Holy Spirit. Before He
parted with His disciples He promised them the Holy Spirit, to aid their
memories,
teach them new truths, guide them in all the truth, and enrich them out
of the fulness of
Christ, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p27.1" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p27.2" osisRef="Bible:John.16.7-John.16.15" parsed="|John|16|7|16|15" passage="John 16:7-15">16:7-15</scripRef>. The promise was fulfilled on the day of
Pentecost; and from
that day on Christ, through the Spirit, was active as our great Prophet
in various ways:
in the inspiration of Scripture; in and through the preaching of the
apostles and of the
ministers of the Word; in the guidance of the Church, making it the
foundation and
pillar of the truth; and in making the truth effective in the hearts and
lives of believers.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p28" shownumber="no">4. THE PHYSICAL RETURN OF CHRIST.</p>
<p id="v.ii.ii-p29" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p29.1">
The return as a stage in the exaltation.</span>
The return of
Christ is sometimes omitted
from the stages of His exaltation, as if the session at the right hand
of God were the
culminating point. But this is not correct. The highest point is not
reached until He who
suffered at the hands of man, returns in the capacity of Judge. He
himself pointed to this
as a special mediatorial prerogative, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.2" osisRef="Bible:John.5.22" parsed="|John|5|22|0|0" passage="John 5:22">John 5:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.3" osisRef="Bible:John.5.27" parsed="|John|5|27|0|0" passage="John 5:27">27</scripRef>, and so did the
apostles, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.42" parsed="|Acts|10|42|0|0" passage="Acts 10:42">Acts 10:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.31" parsed="|Acts|17|31|0|0" passage="Acts 17:31">17:31</scripRef>. Besides the passages that speak of Christ's appointment as Judge,
there are several that
refer to His judicial activity, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.28" parsed="|Matt|19|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:28">Matt. 19:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31-Matt.25.34" parsed="|Matt|25|31|25|34" passage="Matt 25:31-34">25:31-34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.3.17" parsed="|Luke|3|17|0|0" passage="Luke 3:17">Luke 3:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.16" parsed="|Rom|2|16|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:16">Rom. 2:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.14.9" parsed="|Rom|14|9|0|0" passage="Rom 14:9">14:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.11" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.10" parsed="|2Cor|5|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:10">II Cor. 5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.12" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.1" parsed="|2Tim|4|1|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:1">II Tim. 4:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p29.13" osisRef="Bible:Jas.5.9" parsed="|Jas|5|9|0|0" passage="Jas. 5:9">Jas. 5:9</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p30" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p30.1">
Scriptural terms for the return.</span>
Several terms
are used to designate the future
coming of Jesus Christ. The term "<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p30.2">
parousia</span>
" is the most
common of these. It means in the
first place
simply "presence," but also serves to designate<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p30.3">
a coming preceding a presence. </span>
The latter is the common meaning of the term, when it is used in
connection with the
return of Jesus
Christ, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.3" parsed="|Matt|24|3|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:3">Matt. 24:3</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.27" parsed="|Matt|24|27|0|0" passage="Matt 24:27">27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.37" parsed="|Matt|24|37|0|0" passage="Matt 24:37">37</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.39" parsed="|Matt|24|39|0|0" passage="Matt 24:39">39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.23" parsed="|1Cor|15|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:23">I Cor. 15:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.9" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.2.19" parsed="|1Thess|2|19|0|0" passage="I Thess. 2:19">I Thess. 2:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.10" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.3.13" parsed="|1Thess|3|13|0|0" passage="I Thess. 3:13">3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.11" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.15" parsed="|1Thess|4|15|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:15">4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.12" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.23" parsed="|1Thess|5|23|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:23">5:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.13" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.1" parsed="|2Thess|2|1|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:1">II Thess. 2:1</scripRef>; Jas.5; 7,8; II Pet. 3:4. A second term is "<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p30.14">
apocalupsis</span>," which
stresses the fact that the return will be a<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p30.15">
revealing</span>
of Jesus Christ.
It points to the uncovering of
something that was previously hidden from view, in this case, of the
concealed glory
and majesty of
Jesus Christ, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.16" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:7">II Thess. 1:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.17" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.7" parsed="|1Pet|1|7|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:7">I Pet. 1:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.18" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.13" parsed="|1Pet|1|13|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.19" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.4.13" parsed="|1Pet|4|13|0|0" passage="I Pet. 4:13">4:13</scripRef>. A third term is "<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p30.20">
epiphaneia," the glorious appearing</span>
of the Lord. The implication is that what is uncovered is something
glorious, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.21" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.8" parsed="|2Thess|2|8|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:8">II Thess. 2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.22" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.14" parsed="|1Tim|6|14|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:14">I Tim. 6:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.23" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.1-2Tim.4.8" parsed="|2Tim|4|1|4|8" passage="II Tim. 4:1-8">II Tim. 4:1-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p30.24" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.13" parsed="|Titus|2|13|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:13">Tit. 2:13</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p31" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p31.1">
The manner of Christ's return.</span>
Some place the
return of Christ in the past, claiming
that the promise of His coming again was realized when He returned in
the Holy Spirit.
They refer to the promise in <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.2" osisRef="Bible:John.14" parsed="|John|14|0|0|0" passage="John 14">John 14</scripRef>-16, and interpret the word "<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p31.3">
parousia</span>
" as meaning
simply "presence."<note anchored="yes" id="v.ii.ii-p31.4" n="32" place="foot">Warren. <span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p31.5">The Parousia;</span> J.M. Campbell, <span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p31.6">The Second Coming of Christ.</span></note>
Now it may be said that, in a sense, Christ
did return in the Holy
Spirit, and as such is now present in the Church. But this was a
spiritual return, while
the Bible teaches us to look for a physical and visible return of
Christ, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.11" parsed="|Acts|1|11|0|0" passage="Acts. 1:11">Acts. 1:11</scripRef>. Even
after Pentecost we are taught to look forward to the coming of Christ, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.7" parsed="|1Cor|1|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:7">I Cor. 1:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.4.5" parsed="|1Cor|4|5|0|0" passage="I Cor. 4:5">4:5</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.26" parsed="|1Cor|11|26|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:26">11:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.11" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.20" parsed="|Phil|3|20|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:20">Phil. 3:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.12" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.4" parsed="|Col|3|4|0|0" passage="Col. 3:4">Col. 3:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.13" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.15-1Thess.4.17" parsed="|1Thess|4|15|4|17" passage="I Thess. 4:15-17">I Thess. 4:15-17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.14" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7-2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|1|10" passage="II Thess. 1:7-10">II Thess. 1:7-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.15" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.13" parsed="|Titus|2|13|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:13">Tit. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p31.16" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.7" parsed="|Rev|1|7|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:7">Rev. 1:7</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p32" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p32.1">
The purpose of His return.</span>
The second
coming of Jesus Christ will be for the
purpose of judging the world and perfecting the salvation of His people.
Men and
angels, the living and the dead, will appear before Him to be judged
according to the
record which was kept of them, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p32.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.30" parsed="|Matt|24|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:30">Matt. 24:30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p32.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.31" parsed="|Matt|24|31|0|0" passage="Matt 24:31">31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p32.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt 25:31">25:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p32.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.32" parsed="|Matt|25|32|0|0" passage="Matt 25:32">32</scripRef>. It will be a
coming with terrible judgments upon the wicked, but also with blessings of
eternal glory for the saints, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p32.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.33-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|33|25|46" passage="Matt. 25:33-46">Matt. 25:33-46</scripRef>. While He will sentence the wicked to everlasting punishment,
He will publicly
justify His own and lead them into the perfect joy of His eternal
Kingdom. This will
signalize the completed victory of Jesus Christ.
</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p33" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p33.1">
Objection to the doctrine of the return.</span>
The great
objection to the doctrine of the return of Jesus Christ is of a piece with the objection to the doctrine
of the physical
resurrection of Christ. If there can be no physical resurrection and
ascension, there can
be no physical return from heaven. Both are equally impossible, and the
Biblical teachings respecting them are merely crude representations of an
unscientific age. Jesus
evidently shared the carnal views of His day, and these colored His
prophetic
delineations of the future. The only return of which we can speak and
for which we can
hope is a return in power, in the establishment of an ethical kingdom on
earth.</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p34" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What
historical proofs have we for the resurrection
of Christ? Does <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.8" parsed="|1Cor|15|8|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:8">I Cor. 15:8</scripRef> prove that the appearances were subjective
visions? What
myths are supposed to have entered into the shaping of the story of the
resurrection?
What light do the following passages shed on the post-resurrection
condition of Jesus? <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.17" parsed="|1Cor|6|17|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:17">I Cor. 6:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.17" parsed="|2Cor|3|17|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:17">II Cor. 3:17</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.4" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.18" parsed="|2Cor|3|18|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.5" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.16" parsed="|1Tim|3|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:16">I Tim. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.3" parsed="|Rom|1|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:3">Rom. 1:3</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.4" parsed="|Rom|1|4|0|0" passage="Rom 1:4">4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.14" parsed="|Heb|9|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:14">Heb. 9:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.9" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.18" parsed="|1Pet|3|18|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:18">I Pet. 3:18</scripRef>. What is the
difference
between a<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p34.10"> soma psychicon</span>, a<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p34.11">
soma pneumatikon</span>, and a<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p34.12">
soma tes sarkos?</span>
Are
"spirit"
and "spiritual" antithetical to "body" and
"bodily" in the New Testament? Does
science really make it impossible to think of heaven as a place? Is it
true that in Scripture
the words "heaven" and "heavenly" indicate a state
rather than a place? Does modern
theology think of heaven only as a condition to be entered upon after
death? Does its
position really find support in such a passage as <scripRef id="v.ii.ii-p34.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.6" parsed="|Eph|2|6|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:6">Eph. 2:6</scripRef>? Does the Old
Testament
contain any references to the ascension and the session at the right
hand of God? What
serious objections are there to the Lutheran doctrine of the ubiquity of
the human
nature of Christ? Does the Bible teach us to regard the return of Christ
as imminent?</p>

<p id="v.ii.ii-p35" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span> III, pp. 469-504; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.2">
Dict. Dogm.</span>,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.3">
De Christo</span> II,
pp. 109-114;<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.4">
E Voto</span> I, pp. 469-493; II, pp. 5-69;
Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.5">
Godgeleerdheit</span>
III, pp. 1-100;
<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.6"> Synopsis Purioris Theol.</span>, pp. 272-281;
Turretin,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.7">
Opera</span>, Locus XIII, Q.
XVII-XIX; Hodge,
<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.8">Syst. Theol.</span> II, pp. 626-638; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.9">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 385, 386,
406-413;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.10">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 91-95;
Milligan,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.11">
The Resurrection of our Lord;</span>
Orr,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.12">
The Resurrection of Jesus;</span> Gore,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.13">
The
Reconstruction of Belief</span>
pp. 226-273; Swete,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.14"> The Ascended Christ;</span>
Milligan,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.15">
The Ascension
and Heavenly Priesthood of Our Lord;</span>
Tait,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.16"> The Heavenly Session of Our Lord;</span>
A. M. Berkhoff,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.17">
De Wederkomst van Christus;</span>
Brown,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.18"> The Second
Advent;</span>
Snowden,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.19">
The Coming of the Lord;</span>
Brunner,<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.20"> The Mediator</span>, pp. 561-590; Barth,
<span class="ital" id="v.ii.ii-p35.21">Credo</span>, pp. 95-126.</p>
</div3>
</div2>

      <div2 id="v.iii" next="v.iii.i" prev="v.ii.ii" title="The Offices of Christ">
<h2 id="v.iii-p0.1">THE OFFICES OF CHRIST</h2>

        <div3 id="v.iii.i" next="v.iii.ii" prev="v.iii" title="I. Introduction; The Prophetic Office">
<h2 id="v.iii.i-p0.1">I. Introduction; The Prophetic Office</h2>

<h4 id="v.iii.i-p0.2">A. INTRODUCTORY REMARKS ON THE OFFICES IN GENERAL.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.i-p1" shownumber="no">1.THE IDEA OF THE OFFICES IN HISTORY. It has become customary to speak of three
offices in connection with the work of Christ, namely the prophetic, the
priestly, and the
kingly office. While some of the early Church Fathers already speak of the
different
offices of Christ, Calvin was the first to recognize the importance of
distinguishing the
three offices of the Mediator and to call attention to it in a separate
chapter of his
<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p1.1">Institutes.</span><note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.i-p1.2" n="33" place="foot">Bk. II, Chap. XV.</note>
Among the Lutherans Gerhard was
the first to develop the doctrine of the
three offices, Quenstedt regarded the threefold distinction as rather
unessential and
called attention to the fact that some Lutheran theologians
distinguished only two
offices, combining the prophetical with the priestly office. Since the
days of the
Reformation the distinction was quite generally adopted as one of the
commonplaces of
theology, though there was no general agreement as to the relative
importance of the
offices, nor as to their interrelation. Some placed the prophetical,
others the priestly, and
still others the kingly, office in the foreground. There were those who
applied the idea of
a chronological succession to them, and thought of Christ functioning as
prophet during
his public ministry on earth, as priest in his final sufferings and
death on the cross, and
as king now that He is seated at the right hand of God. Others, however,
correctly
stressed the fact that He must be conceived as functioning in His
threefold capacity both
in His state of humiliation and in His state of exaltation. The
Socinians really recognized
only two offices: Christ functioned as prophet on earth, and functions
as king in heaven.
While they also spoke of Christ as priest, they subsumed His priestly
under His kingly work, and therefore did not recognize His earthly priesthood.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.i-p2" shownumber="no">In the Lutheran Church considerable opposition appeared to
the doctrine of the
three offices of Christ. Ernesti gives a summary of the objections that
were raised.
According to him the division is a purely artificial one; the terms
prophet, priest, and
king are not used in Scripture in the sense implied in this division; it
is impossible to discriminate the one function clearly from the other in the work of
Christ; and the terms
as used in Scripture are applied to Christ only in a tropical sense, and
therefore should
not have precise meanings affixed to them, designating particular parts
of the work of
Christ. In answer to this it may be said that there is little force in
the criticism of the use
of the terms, since they are used throughout the Old Testament as
designations of those who in the offices of prophet, priest, and king typified Christ.
The only really significant
criticism is due to the fact that in Christ the three offices are united
in one person. The
result is that we cannot sharply discriminate between the different
functions in the
official work of Christ. The mediatorial work is always a work of the
entire person; not a
single work can be limited to any one of the offices. Of the later
Lutheran theologians
Reinhard, Doederlein, Storr and Bretschneider rejected the distinction.
Ritschl also
objected to it, and held that the term "vocation" should take
the place of the misleading
word "office." He further regarded the kingly function or
activity of Christ as primary,
and the priestly and prophetic as secondary and subordinate, the former
indicating
man's relation to the world, and the latter, his relation to God. He
further stressed the fact that the prophetic and priestly kingship should be
asserted equally of the state of
humiliation and the state of exaltation. Haering follows Ritschl in his
denial of the three
offices, and in his emphasis on calling. Modern theology is averse to
the whole idea,
partly because it dislikes the terminology of the schools, and partly
because it refuses to
think of Christ as an<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p2.1">
official</span>
character. It is
so much in love with Christ as the ideal Man,
the loving Helper, and the Elder Brother, so truly human, that it fears
to consider Him
as a formal mediatorial functionary, since this would be apt to
dehumanize Him.</p>

<p id="v.iii.i-p3" shownumber="no">2. IMPORTANCE OF THE DISTINCTION.
The distinction of the three offices of Christ is a
valuable one and ought to be retained, in spite of the fact that its
consistent application
to both of the states of Christ is not always easy and has not always
been equally
successful. The fact that Christ was anointed to a threefold office
finds its explanation in
the fact that man was originally intended for this threefold office and
work. As created
by God, he was prophet, priest, and king, and as such was endowed with
knowledge
and understanding, with righteousness and holiness, and with dominion
over the lower
creation. Sin affected the entire life of man and manifested itself not
only as ignorance,
blindness, error, and untruthfulness; but also as unrighteousness, guilt,
and moral
pollution; and in addition to that as misery, death, and destruction.
Hence it was
necessary that Christ, as our Mediator, should be prophet, priest, and
king. As Prophet
He represents God with man; as Priest He represents man in the presence
of God, and
as King He exercises dominion and restores the original dominion of man.
Rationalism recognizes only His prophetic office; Mysticism, only His priestly
office; and Chiliasm
places a one-sided emphasis on His future kingly office.
</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.i-p3.1">B. THE PROPHETIC OFFICE.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.i-p4" shownumber="no">1. THE SCRIPTURAL IDEA OF A PROPHET.</p>
<p id="v.iii.i-p5" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.1">
The terms used in Scripture.</span>
The Old
Testament uses three words to designate a
prophet, namely,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.2">
nabhi</span>,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.3"> ro'eh</span>, and<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.4">
chozeh.</span>
The radical meaning of the word<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.5">
nabhi</span>
is
uncertain, but it is evident from such passages as <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:Exod.7.1" parsed="|Exod|7|1|0|0" passage="Ex. 7:1">Ex. 7:1</scripRef> and <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Deut.18.18" parsed="|Deut|18|18|0|0" passage="Deut. 18:18">Deut. 18:18</scripRef> that the word
designates one who comes with a message from God to the people. The
words<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.8">
ro'eh</span>
and<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.9">
chozeh</span>
stress the fact that the prophet is one who receives revelations from
God,
particularly in the form of visions. These words are used
interchangeably. Other
designations are
"man of God", "messenger of the Lord", and
"watchman". These
appellatives indicate that the prophets are in the special service of
the Lord, and watch
for the spiritual interests of the people. In the New Testament the word<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.10">
prophetes</span>
is used, which is composed of<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.11">
pro</span>
and<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.12">
phemi.</span>
The preposition is not temporal in this case.
Consequently,
the word<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p5.13">
prophemi</span>
does not mean
"to speak beforehand", but "to speak
forth". The prophet is one who speaks forth from God. From these
names, taken
together, we gather that a prophet is one who sees things, that is, who
receives
revelations, who is in the service of God, particularly as a messenger,
and who speaks in
His name. </p>

<p id="v.iii.i-p6" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p6.1">
The two elements combined in the idea.</span>
The classical
passages, <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.7.1" parsed="|Exod|7|1|0|0" passage="Ex. 7:1">Ex. 7:1</scripRef> and <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Deut.18.18" parsed="|Deut|18|18|0|0" passage="Deut. 18:18">Deut. 18:18</scripRef>
indicate that there are two elements in the prophetic function, the one
passive, and the
other active, the one receptive, and the other productive. The prophet
receives divine
revelations in dreams, visions, or verbal communications; and passes
these on to the
people, either
orally, or visibly in prophetical actions, <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Num.12.6-Num.12.8" parsed="|Num|12|6|12|8" passage="Num. 12:6-8">Num. 12:6-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.6" parsed="|Isa|6|0|0|0" passage="Isa. 6">Isa. 6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Jer.1.4-Jer.1.10" parsed="|Jer|1|4|1|10" passage="Jer. 1:4-10">Jer. 1:4-10</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.i-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.3.1-Ezek.3.4" parsed="|Ezek|3|1|3|4" passage="Ezek. 3:1-4">Ezek. 3:1-4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.i-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.3.17" parsed="|Ezek|3|17|0|0" passage="Ezek 3:17">17</scripRef>. Of these two elements the passive is the most important,
because it
controls the active element. Without receiving, the prophet cannot give,
and he cannot give more than he receives. But the active is also an integral
element. One who receives
a revelation is not yet necessarily a prophet. Think of Abimelech,
Pharaoh, and
Nebuchadnezzar, who all received revelations. What constitutes one a
prophet, is the
divine calling, the instruction, to communicate the divine revelation to
others.</p>

<p id="v.iii.i-p7" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p7.1">
The duty of the prophets.</span>
It was the duty
of the prophets to reveal the will of God to
the people. This might be done in the form of instruction, admonition
and exhortation,
glorious promises, or stern rebukes. They were the ministerial monitors
of the people,
the interpreters of the law, especially in its moral and spiritual
aspects. It was their duty
to protest against mere formalism, to stress moral duty, to urge the
necessity of spiritual
service, and to promote the interests of truth and righteousness. If the
people departed
from the path of duty, they had to call them back to the law and to the
testimony, and to
announce the coming terror of the Lord upon the wicked. But their work
was also
intimately related to the promise, the gracious promises of God for the
future. It was
their privilege to picture the glorious things which God had in store
for His people. It is
also evident from Scripture that the true prophets of Israel typified
the great coming
prophet of the future, <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Deut.18.15" parsed="|Deut|18|15|0|0" passage="Deut. 18:15">Deut. 18:15</scripRef>, cf. <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.22-Acts.3.24" parsed="|Acts|3|22|3|24" passage="Acts 3:22-24">Acts 3:22-24</scripRef>, and that He was
already functioning
through them in the days of the Old Testament, <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.11" parsed="|1Pet|1|11|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:11">I Pet. 1:11</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.i-p8" shownumber="no">2. DISTINCTIONS APPLIED TO THE PROPHETICAL WORK OF CHRIST. Christ functions as
prophet in various ways:</p>

<p id="v.iii.i-p9" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p9.1">
Both before and after the incarnation.</span>
The Socinians
were mistaken in limiting the
prophetical work of Christ to the time of His public ministry. He was
active as prophet
even in the old dispensation, as in the special revelations of the angel
of the Lord, in the
teachings of the prophets, in whom He acted as the spirit of revelation
(<scripRef id="v.iii.i-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.11" parsed="|1Pet|1|11|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:11">I Pet. 1:11</scripRef>), and
in the spiritual illumination of believers. He appears in <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Prov.8" parsed="|Prov|8|0|0|0" passage="Proverbs 8">Proverbs 8</scripRef> as
wisdom
personified, teaching the children of men. And after the incarnation He
carries on His
prophetical work in His teachings and miracles, in the preaching of the
apostles and of
the ministers of the Word, and also in the illumination and instruction
of believers as
the indwelling Spirit. He continues His prophetical activity from heaven
through the
operation of the Holy Spirit. His teachings are both verbal and factual,
that is, He
teaches not only by verbal communications, but also by the facts of
revelation, such as
the incarnation, His atoning death, the resurrection, and ascension; and
even during the
Old Testament period by types and ceremonies, by the miracles of the
history of
redemption, and by the providential guidance of the people of Israel.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.i-p10" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p10.1">
Both immediately and mediately.</span>
He exercised
His prophetical office immediately, as
the Angel of the Lord in the Old Testament period, and as the incarnate
Lord by His
teachings and
also by His example, <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:John.13.15" parsed="|John|13|15|0|0" passage="John 13:15">John 13:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.5" parsed="|Phil|2|5|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:5">Phil. 2:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.22" parsed="|1Pet|2|22|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:22">I Pet. 2:22</scripRef>. And He exercised it
mediately through the operation of the Holy Spirit, by means of the
teachings of the Old
Testament prophets, and of the New Testament apostles, and exercises it
even now through the indwelling Spirit in believers, and by the agency of the
ministers of the
gospel. This also means that He carries on His prophetical work both
objectively and
externally and subjectively and internally by the Spirit, which is
described as the Spirit
of Christ.</p>

<p id="v.iii.i-p11" shownumber="no">3. SCRIPTURE PROOF FOR THE PROPHETIC OFFICE OF CHRIST. Scripture testifies in more
than one way to the prophetical office of Christ. He is foretold as a
prophet in <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Deut.18.15" parsed="|Deut|18|15|0|0" passage="Deut. 18:15">Deut. 18:15</scripRef>, a passage that is applied to Christ in <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.22" parsed="|Acts|3|22|0|0" passage="Acts 3:22">Acts 3:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.23" parsed="|Acts|3|23|0|0" passage="Acts 3:23">23</scripRef>. He speaks of
Himself as a
prophet in <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.13.33" parsed="|Luke|13|33|0|0" passage="Luke 13:33">Luke 13:33</scripRef>. Moreover, He claims to bring a message from the
Father, <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:John.8.26-John.8.28" parsed="|John|8|26|8|28" passage="John 8:26-28">John 8:26-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:John.12.49" parsed="|John|12|49|0|0" passage="John 12:49">12:49</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:John.12.50" parsed="|John|12|50|0|0" passage="John 12:50">50</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:John.14.10" parsed="|John|14|10|0|0" passage="John 14:10">14:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:John.14.24" parsed="|John|14|24|0|0" passage="John 14:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:John.15.15" parsed="|John|15|15|0|0" passage="John 15:15">15:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:John.17.8" parsed="|John|17|8|0|0" passage="John 17:8">17:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:John.17.20" parsed="|John|17|20|0|0" passage="John 17:20">20</scripRef>, foretells future things, <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.3-Matt.24.35" parsed="|Matt|24|3|24|35" passage="Matt. 24:3-35">Matt. 24:3-35</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.14" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.41-Luke.19.44" parsed="|Luke|19|41|19|44" passage="Luke 19:41-44">Luke 19:41-44</scripRef>, and speaks with singular authority, <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.29" parsed="|Matt|7|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:29">Matt. 7:29</scripRef>. His mighty
works served to
authenticate His message. In view of all this it is no wonder that the
people recognized
Him as a
prophet, <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.11" parsed="|Matt|21|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 21:11">Matt. 21:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.17" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.46" parsed="|Matt|21|46|0|0" passage="Matt 21:46">46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.18" osisRef="Bible:Luke.7.16" parsed="|Luke|7|16|0|0" passage="Luke 7:16">Luke 7:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.19" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.19" parsed="|Luke|24|19|0|0" passage="Luke 24:19">24:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.20" osisRef="Bible:John.3.2" parsed="|John|3|2|0|0" passage="John 3:2">John 3:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.21" osisRef="Bible:John.4.19" parsed="|John|4|19|0|0" passage="John 4:19">4:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.22" osisRef="Bible:John.6.14" parsed="|John|6|14|0|0" passage="John 6:14">6:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.23" osisRef="Bible:John.7.40" parsed="|John|7|40|0|0" passage="John 7:40">7:40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.i-p11.24" osisRef="Bible:John.9.17" parsed="|John|9|17|0|0" passage="John 9:17">9:17</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.iii.i-p12" shownumber="no">4. MODERN EMPHASIS ON THE PROPHETIC OFFICE OF CHRIST. It is one of the main
characteristics of the liberal school, both of the older liberalism,
represented by Renan,
Strauss, and Keim, and of the later liberalism, represented by such men
as Pfleiderer,
Weinel, Wernle, Wrede, Juelicher, Harnack, Bouset, and others, that it
places the chief
emphasis on Jesus as a teacher. His significance as such is emphasized
to the exclusion
of the other aspects of His person and work. There is a rather marked
difference,
however, between these two branches of liberalism. According to the
older liberalism
Jesus derives all His significance from His teachings, but according to
the later
liberalism it is the unique personality of Jesus that lends weight to
His teachings. This is
undoubtedly a welcome advance, but the gain is not as great as it may
seem. In the
words of La Touche: "Indeed, its recognition of the real
significance of His personality
rather than His teaching is little more than an exaltation of pedagogy
by example over pedagogy by precept." Christ is after all only a great
teacher. Present day Modernism is
entirely under the sway of this liberal school. Even in Barthian
theology there is an
emphasis which might seem to bring it very much in line with modern
theology. Walter
Lowrie correctly says: "It is characteristic of the Barthian
Theology that it thinks
predominantly of the Mediator as Revealer."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.i-p12.1" n="34" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p12.2">Our concern with the Theology of Crisis.</span> p. 152.</note>
We are told repeatedly by Barth
and
Brunner that the revelation<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p12.3"> is</span>
the reconciliation, and
sometimes it seems as if they
regard the incarnation as in itself already the reconciliation. Then
again the
reconciliation is represented as the revelation. In the recent Symposium
on<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p12.4">
Revelation</span>
Barth says:
"Jesus Christ is the revelation, because in His existence He is<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p12.5">
the reconciliation.</span> ... The existence of Jesus Christ is
the reconciliation, and therefore the  bridging
of the gulf that has opened here."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.i-p12.6" n="35" place="foot">pp. 55 f.</note> The cross is sometimes defined as the
revelation of the absolute contradiction, the final conflict
between this world and the
other. Consequently Zerbe says that the death of Christ, according to
Barth, is not exactly an atonement of the second person of the Godhead for the sin of
the world, but
"a message of God to man, indeed the final message; the fundamental
negation; the
judgment on all human possibility, especially the religious." But
while it is true that in
Barthian theology the Mediator is primarily the Revealer, this does not
mean that it fails
to do justice to His sacrificial and atoning work.<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.i-p12.7" n="36" place="foot">Cf. especially Brunner, <span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p12.8">The Mediator,</span> Chapters XVII-XXI.</note>
Sydney Cave even says in his<span class="ital" id="v.iii.i-p12.9">The Doctrine of of the Work of Christ:</span>
"For Barth
the cross is central in the Christian message. 'Everything shines in the light of His death, and is illuminated by
it.'"<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.i-p12.10" n="37" place="foot">p. 244.</note></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.iii.ii" next="v.iii.iii" prev="v.iii.i" title="II. The Priestly Office">
<h2 id="v.iii.ii-p0.1">II. The Priestly Office</h2>
<h4 id="v.iii.ii-p0.2">A. THE SCRIPTURAL IDEA OF A PRIEST.</h4>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p1" shownumber="no">1. THE TERMS USED IN SCRIPTURE. The Old
Testament word for priest is almost
without exception<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p1.1">
kohen.</span>
The only
exceptions are found in passages which refer to
idolatrous priests, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.23.5" parsed="|2Kgs|23|5|0|0" passage="II Kings 23:5">II Kings 23:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Hos.10.5" parsed="|Hos|10|5|0|0" passage="Hos. 10:5">Hos. 10:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p1.4" osisRef="Bible:Zeph.1.4" parsed="|Zeph|1|4|0|0" passage="Zeph. 1:4">Zeph. 1:4</scripRef>, where the word<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p1.5">
chemarim</span>
is found.
The original meaning of<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p1.6">
kohen</span>
is uncertain. It
is not impossible that in early times it
could denote a
civil as well as an ecclesiastical functionary, cf. <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p1.7" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.4.5" parsed="|1Kgs|4|5|0|0" passage="I Kings 4:5">I Kings 4:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p1.8" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.8.18" parsed="|2Sam|8|18|0|0" passage="II Sam. 8:18">II Sam. 8:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p1.9" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.20.26" parsed="|2Sam|20|26|0|0" passage="II Sam. 20:26">20:26</scripRef>. It is clear that the word always denoted someone who occupied an
honorable and
responsible position, and was clothed with authority over others; and
that it almost
without exception serves to designate an ecclesiastical officer. The New
Testament word
for priest is<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p1.10">
hiereus</span>, which originally seems to have denoted "a mighty one," and
later
on "a
sacred person," "a person dedicated to God." </p>
<p id="v.iii.ii-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE DISTINCTION BETWEEN A PROPHET AND A PRIEST. The Bible makes a broad but
important distinction between a prophet and a priest. Both receive their
appointment
from God, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Deut.18.18" parsed="|Deut|18|18|0|0" passage="Deut. 18:18">Deut. 18:18</scripRef> f; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.4" parsed="|Heb|5|4|0|0" passage="Heb. 5:4">Heb. 5:4</scripRef>. But the prophet was appointed to be
God's
representative with the people, to be His messenger, and to interpret
His will. He was
primarily a religious teacher. The priest, on the other hand, was man's
representative
with God. He had the special privilege of approach to God, and of
speaking and acting
in behalf of the people. It is true that the priests were also teachers
during the old
dispensation, but their teaching differed from that of the prophets.
While the latter
emphasized the moral and spiritual duties, responsibilities, and
privileges, the former
stressed the ritual observances involved in the proper approach to God.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p3" shownumber="no">3. THE FUNCTIONS OF THE PRIEST AS INDICATED IN SCRIPTURE. The classical passage in
which the true characteristics of a priest are given and his work is
partly designated, is
<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.1" parsed="|Heb|5|1|0|0" passage="Heb. 5:1">Heb. 5:1</scripRef>. The following elements are indicated here: (a) the priest is
taken from among
men to be their representative; (b) he is appointed by God, cf. verse 4;
(c) he is active in
the interest of men in things that pertain to God, that is, in religious
things; (d) his
special work is to offer gifts and sacrifices for sins. But the work of
the priest included
even more than that. He also made intercession for the people (<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.25" parsed="|Heb|7|25|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:25">Heb.
7:25</scripRef>), and blessed
them in the name
of God, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Lev.9.22" parsed="|Lev|9|22|0|0" passage="Lev. 9:22">Lev. 9:22</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p4" shownumber="no">4. SCRIPTURAL PROOF FOR THE PRIESTLY OFFICE OF CHRIST. The Old Testament predicts
and prefigures the priesthood of the coming Redeemer. There are clear
references to it in
<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.110.4" parsed="|Ps|110|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 110:4">Ps. 110:4</scripRef> and <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Zech.6.13" parsed="|Zech|6|13|0|0" passage="Zech. 6:13">Zech. 6:13</scripRef>. Moreover, the Old Testament priesthood, and
particularly the
high priest, clearly pre-figured a priestly Messiah. In the New
Testament there is only a
single book in which He is called priest, namely, the Epistle to the
Hebrews, but there
the name is
applied to Him repeatedly, 3:1; 4:14; 5:5; 6:20; 7:26; 8:1. At the same time
many other New Testament books refer to the priestly work of Christ, as
we shall see in
the discussion of this subject.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.ii-p4.3">B. THE SACRIFICIAL WORK OF CHRIST.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.ii-p5" shownumber="no">The priestly work of Christ was twofold according to
Scripture. His foremost task
was to offer an all-sufficient sacrifice for the sin of the world. It belonged to the office of
a priest that he should offer gifts and sacrifices for sin.</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p6" shownumber="no">1. THE SACRIFICIAL IDEA IN SCRIPTURE. The
sacrificial idea occupies a very important
place in Scripture. Various theories have been suggested as to the
origin and
development of this idea, of which the following are the most important:</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p7" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p7.1">
The gift-theory</span>
which holds that
sacrifices were originally presents to the deity,
given with the intention of establishing good relations and of securing
favors. This is
based on an extremely low conception of God, one that is altogether out
of harmony
with the Scriptural representation of God. Moreover, it does not explain
why the gift
should always be brought in the form of a slain animal. The Bible does
speak of offering
gifts to God (<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.1" parsed="|Heb|5|1|0|0" passage="Heb. 5:1">Heb. 5:1</scripRef>), but only as expressions of gratitude and not
for the purpose of
courting the favor of God.</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p8" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p8.1"> The sacramental-communion theory</span>, based on the
totemistic idea of reverencing an
animal which was supposed to share in the divine nature. On solemn
occasions such an
animal would be slain to furnish a meal for man, who would thus
literally eat his God
and assimilate the divine qualities. There is absolutely nothing in the
book of Genesis,
however, to suggest such an utterly unspiritual and crassly material
view. It is totally at
variance with the Biblical representation as a whole. This, of course,
does not mean that
some pagans may not have held that view later on, but it does mean that
it is entirely unwarranted to regard this as the original view.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p9" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p9.1"> The homage-theory</span>, according to which sacrifices were
originally expressions of
homage and dependence. Man was prompted to seek closer communion with
God, not
by a sense of guilt, but by a feeling of dependence and a desire to
render homage to
God. This theory does not do justice to the facts in the case of such
early sacrifices as
those of Noah and Job; nor does it explain why this homage should be
rendered in the
form of slaying an animal.</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p10" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p10.1"> The symbol-theory</span>, which regards the offerings as symbols of restored
communion
with God. The killing of the animal took place only to secure the blood,
which as a
symbol of life was brought upon the altar, signifying communion of life
with God (Keil).
This theory certainly does not square with the facts in the case of the
sacrifices of Noah
and Job, nor with those in the case of Abraham, when he placed Isaac
upon the altar.
Neither does it explain why in later days so much importance was attached
to the
killing of the
animal. </p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p11" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p11.1">
The piacular theory</span>, which regards sacrifices as
being originally expiatory or
atoning. On this theory the fundamental idea in the slaying of the
animal was that of
vicarious atonement for the sins of the offerer. In the light of
Scripture this theory
certainly deserves preference. The idea that, whatever other elements
may have been
present, such as an expression of gratitude to God, or of communion with
Him, the
piacular element was also present and was even the most prominent
element, is favored
by the following considerations: (a) The recorded effect of Noah's
burnt-offerings is
expiatory, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.8.21" parsed="|Gen|8|21|0|0" passage="Gen. 8:21">Gen. 8:21</scripRef>. (b) The occasion for the sacrifice of Job lay in the sins of his
children, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Job.1.5" parsed="|Job|1|5|0|0" passage="Job 1:5">Job 1:5</scripRef>. (c) This theory accounts for the fact that the
sacrifices were regularly
brought in the form of slain animals, and that they were bloody,
involving the suffering
and death of the victim. (d) It is fully in harmony with the fact that
the sacrifices which
prevailed among heathen nations generally, were certainly regarded as
expiatory. (e) It
is further in perfect agreement with the undoubted presence of several
promises of the
coming Redeemer in the pre-Mosaic period. This should be borne in mind
by those who
regard the piacular idea of sacrifices as too advanced for that time.
(f) Finally, it also fits
in well with the fact that, when the Mosaic sacrificial ritual was
introduced, in which
the expiatory element was certainly the most prominent, it was in no way
represented
as something entirely new.</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p12" shownumber="no">Among those who believe that the piacular element was
present even in the pre-
Mosaic sacrifices, there is a difference of opinion as to the origin of
this type of
sacrifices. Some are of the opinion that God instituted them by a direct
divine
command, while others hold that they were brought in obedience to a
natural impulse
of man, coupled with reflection. The Bible does not record any
special statement to the
effect that God commanded man to serve Him with sacrifices in those
early days. And it
is not impossible that man expressed His gratitude and devotion in
sacrifices, even
before the fall, led by the inner promptings of his own nature. But it
would seem that
the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p12.1">
expiatory</span>
sacrifices after the fall could originate only in a divine appointment.
There
is considerable
force in the arguments of Dr. A. A. Hodge. Says he: "(1) It is
inconceivable that either the propriety or probable utility of
presenting material gifts to
the invisible God, and especially of attempting to propitiate God by the
slaughter of His
irrational creatures, should ever have occurred to the human mind as a
spontaneous
suggestion. Every instinctive sentiment and every presumption of reason
must, in the
first instance, have appeared to exclude them. (2) On the hypothesis
that God intended
to save men, it is inconceivable that He should have left them without
instruction upon
a question so vital as that concerned in the means whereby they might
approach into
His presence and
conciliate His favor. (3) It is characteristic of all God's self-revelations,
under every dispensation, that He discovers Himself as jealous of any
use by man of
unauthorized methods of worship or service. He uniformly insists upon
this very point
of His sovereign right of dictating methods of worship and service, as
well as terms of
acceptance. (4) As a matter of fact, the very first recorded instance of
acceptable worship
in the family of Adam brings before us bleeding sacrifices, and seals
them with the
divine approbation. They appear in the first act of worship, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.4.3" parsed="|Gen|4|3|0|0" passage="Gen. 4:3">Gen. 4:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.4.4" parsed="|Gen|4|4|0|0" passage="Gen 4:4">4</scripRef>.
They are
emphatically approved by God as soon as they appear."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.ii-p12.4" n="38" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p12.5">The Atonement,</span> pp. 123 f.</note>
The Mosaic sacrifices were
clearly of divine appointment.</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p13" shownumber="no">2. THE SACRIFICIAL WORK OF CHRIST SYMBOLIZED AND TYPIFIED. The sacrificial work of
Christ was symbolized and typified in the Mosaic sacrifices. In
connection with these
sacrifices the following points deserve attention.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p14" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p14.1">
Their expiatory and vicarious nature.</span>
Various
interpretations have been given of the
Old Testament sacrifices: (1) that they were gifts to please God, to
express gratitude to
Him, or to placate His wrath; (2) that they were essentially sacrificial
meals symbolizing
communion of man with God; (3) that they were divinely appointed means of
confessing the heinousness of sin; or (4) that, in so far as they
embodied the idea of
substitution, they were merely symbolic expressions of the fact that God
accepts the
sinner, in lieu of actual obedience, in the sacrifice which expresses
his desire to obey and
his longing for salvation. However, Scripture testifies to the fact that
all the animal
sacrifices among Israel were piacular, though this feature was not
equally prominent in
all of them. It was most prominent in the sin- and trespass-offerings,
less prominent in
the burnt-offering, and least in evidence in the peace-offerings. The
presence of that
element in those
sacrifices appears (1) from the clear statements in <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Lev.1.4" parsed="|Lev|1|4|0|0" passage="Lev. 1:4">Lev. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Lev.4.29" parsed="|Lev|4|29|0|0" passage="Lev 4:29">4:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Lev.4.31" parsed="|Lev|4|31|0|0" passage="Lev 4:31">31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Lev.4.35" parsed="|Lev|4|35|0|0" passage="Lev 4:35">35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Lev.5.10" parsed="|Lev|5|10|0|0" passage="Lev 5:10">5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Lev.16.7" parsed="|Lev|16|7|0|0" passage="Lev 16:7">16:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:Lev.17.11" parsed="|Lev|17|11|0|0" passage="Lev 17:11">17:11</scripRef>;
(<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.9" osisRef="Bible:Lev.2" parsed="|Lev|2|0|0|0" passage="Lev 2">2</scripRef>) from the laying on of hands which, in spite of Cave's assertion to
the contrary, certainly served to symbolize the transfer of sin and guilt,
<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.10" osisRef="Bible:Lev.1.4" parsed="|Lev|1|4|0|0" passage="Lev. 1:4">Lev. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.11" osisRef="Bible:Lev.16.21" parsed="|Lev|16|21|0|0" passage="Lev 16:21">16:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.12" osisRef="Bible:Lev.16.22" parsed="|Lev|16|22|0|0" passage="Lev 16:22">22</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.13" osisRef="Bible:Lev.3" parsed="|Lev|3|0|0|0" passage="Lev 3">3</scripRef>)
from the sprinkling of the blood on the altar and on the mercy-seat as a
covering for sin,
<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.14" osisRef="Bible:Lev.16.27" parsed="|Lev|16|27|0|0" passage="Lev. 16:27">Lev. 16:27</scripRef>; and (4) from the repeatedly recorded effect of the
sacrifices, namely the pardoning of the sins of the offerer, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.15" osisRef="Bible:Lev.4.26" parsed="|Lev|4|26|0|0" passage="Lev. 4:26">Lev. 4:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.16" osisRef="Bible:Lev.4.31" parsed="|Lev|4|31|0|0" passage="Lev 4:31">31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p14.17" osisRef="Bible:Lev.4.35" parsed="|Lev|4|35|0|0" passage="Lev 4:35">35</scripRef>. New Testament
proofs could easily
be added, but these will suffice.</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p15" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p15.1"> Their typico-prophetical nature.</span>
The Mosaic
sacrifices had not only ceremonial and
symbolical, but also spiritual and typical significance. They were of a
prophetical
character, and represented the gospel in the law. They were designed to
prefigure the
vicarious sufferings of Jesus Christ and His atoning death. The
connection between
them and Christ is already indicated in the Old Testament. In <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.6-Ps.40.8" parsed="|Ps|40|6|40|8" passage="Psalm 40:6-8">Psalm 40:6-8</scripRef> the Messiah
is introduced as saying: "Sacrifice and offering thou hast no
delight in: Mine eyes hast
thou opened; burnt-offering and sin-offering hast thou not required.
Then said I, Lo, I come; in the roll of the book it is written of me; I delight to do thy
will O my God, yea thy law is within my heart." In these words the Messiah
Himself substitutes His own
great sacrifice for those of the Old Testament. The shadows pass away
when the reality,
which they adumbrated, arrives, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.5-Heb.10.9" parsed="|Heb|10|5|10|9" passage="Heb. 10:5-9">Heb. 10:5-9</scripRef>. In the New Testament there
are numerous
indications of the fact that the Mosaic sacrifices were typical of the
more excellent
sacrifice of Jesus Christ. There are clear indications, and even express
statements, to the effect that the Old Testament sacrifices prefigured Christ
and His work, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.17" parsed="|Col|2|17|0|0" passage="Col. 2:17">Col. 2:17</scripRef>, where
the apostle
clearly has the whole Mosaic system in mind; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.23" parsed="|Heb|9|23|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:23">Heb. 9:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.24" parsed="|Heb|9|24|0|0" passage="Heb 9:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.1" parsed="|Heb|10|1|0|0" passage="Heb 10:1">10:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.11" parsed="|Heb|13|11|0|0" passage="Heb 13:11">13:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.12" parsed="|Heb|13|12|0|0" passage="Heb 13:12">12</scripRef>.
Several passages teach that Christ accomplished for sinners in a higher
sense what the
Old Testament sacrifices were said to effect for those who brought them,
and that He
accomplished it
in a similar way, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.10" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.21" parsed="|2Cor|5|21|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:21">II Cor. 5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.11" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:13">Gal. 3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.12" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.7" parsed="|1John|1|7|0|0" passage="I John 1:7">I John 1:7</scripRef>. He is called "the
Lamb of God", <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.13" osisRef="Bible:John.1.29" parsed="|John|1|29|0|0" passage="John 1:29">John 1:29</scripRef>, clearly in view of <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.14" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53" parsed="|Isa|53|0|0|0" passage="Isa. 53">Isa. 53</scripRef> and of the paschal
lamb, "a Lamb without
blemish and without spot," <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.15" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.19" parsed="|1Pet|1|19|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:19">I Pet. 1:19</scripRef>, and even "our
Passover" that was slain for us, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p15.16" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.7" parsed="|1Cor|5|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:7">I Cor. 5:7</scripRef>. And because the Mosaic sacrifices were typical, they naturally
shed some light
on the nature of the great atoning sacrifice of Jesus Christ. A great
many scholars under
the influence of the Graf-Wellhausen school deny the penal and
substitutionary
character of the Old Testament sacrifices, though some of them are
willing to admit that
this character was sometimes ascribed to them during the Old Testament
period,
though at a comparatively late date and without sufficient warrant.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p16" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p16.1">
Their purpose.</span>
In view of the
preceding it may be said that the Old Testament
sacrifices had a twofold purpose. As far as the theocratic, the
covenant, relation was
concerned, they were the appointed means whereby the offender could be
restored to
the outward place and privileges, enjoyed as a member of the theocracy,
which he had
forfeited by neglect and transgression. As such they accomplished their
purpose
irrespective of the temper and spirit in which they were brought.
However, they were
not in themselves efficacious to expiate moral transgressions. They were
not the real
sacrifice that could atone for moral guilt and remove moral pollution,
but only shadows
of the coming reality. Speaking of the tabernacle, the writer of Hebrews
says: "Which is
a figure for the time present; according to which are offered both gifts
and sacrifices that
cannot,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p16.2">
as touching the conscience</span>, make the
worshipper perfect", <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.9" parsed="|Heb|9|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:9">Heb. 9:9</scripRef>. In the
following chapter he points out that they could not make the offerers
perfect, 10:1, and
could not take away sins, 10:4. From the spiritual point of view they
were typical of the vicarious sufferings and death of Christ, and obtained
forgiveness and acceptance with
God only as they were offered in true penitence, and with faith in God's
method of
salvation. They had saving significance only in so far as they fixed the
attention of the
Israelite on the coming Redeemer and the promised redemption.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p17" shownumber="no">3. SCRIPTURAL PROOF FOR THE SACRIFICIAL WORK OF CHRIST. The striking thing in the
Scriptural representations of the priestly work of Christ, is that
Christ appears in them
as both priest and sacrifice. This is in perfect harmony with the
reality as we see it in
Christ. In the Old Testament the two were necessarily separate, and in
so far these types
were imperfect. The priestly work of Christ is most clearly represented
in the Epistle to
the Hebrews, where the Mediator is described as our only real, eternal,
and perfect
High Priest, appointed by God, who takes our place vicariously, and by
His self-
sacrifice
obtains a real and perfect redemption, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.1-Heb.5.10" parsed="|Heb|5|1|5|10" passage="Heb. 5:1-10">Heb. 5:1-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.1-Heb.7.28" parsed="|Heb|7|1|7|28" passage="Heb 7:1-28">7:1-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.11-Heb.9.15" parsed="|Heb|9|11|9|15" passage="Heb 9:11-15">9:11-15</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.24-Heb.9.28" parsed="|Heb|9|24|9|28" passage="Heb 9:24-28">24-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.11-Heb.10.14" parsed="|Heb|10|11|10|14" passage="Heb 10:11-14">10:11-14</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.19-Heb.10.22" parsed="|Heb|10|19|10|22" passage="Heb 10:19-22">19-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.24" parsed="|Heb|12|24|0|0" passage="Heb 12:24">12:24</scripRef>, and particularly the following verses, 5:5; 7:26; 9:14. This Epistle is
the only one in which Christ is called priest, but His priestly work is
also clearly
represented in
the Epistles of Paul, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.24" parsed="|Rom|3|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:24">Rom. 3:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.25" parsed="|Rom|3|25|0|0" passage="Rom 3:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.6-Rom.5.8" parsed="|Rom|5|6|5|8" passage="Rom 5:6-8">5:6-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.7" parsed="|1Cor|5|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:7">I Cor. 5:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.3" parsed="|1Cor|15|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:3">15:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.2" parsed="|Eph|5|2|0|0" passage="Eph. 5:2">Eph. 5:2</scripRef>. The
same
representation is found in the writings of John, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.14" osisRef="Bible:John.1.29" parsed="|John|1|29|0|0" passage="John 1:29">John 1:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.15" osisRef="Bible:John.3.14" parsed="|John|3|14|0|0" passage="John 3:14">3:14</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.16" osisRef="Bible:John.3.15" parsed="|John|3|15|0|0" passage="John 3:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.17" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.2" parsed="|1John|2|2|0|0" passage="I John 2:2">I John 2:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.18" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.10" parsed="|1John|4|10|0|0" passage="I John 4:10">4:10</scripRef>.
The symbol of the brazen serpent is significant. As the brazen serpent
was not itself
poisonous, but yet represented the embodiment of sin, so Christ, the
sinless One, was
made sin for us. As the lifting up of the serpent signified the removal
of the plague, so
the lifting up of Christ on the cross effected the removal of sin. And
as a believing look
at the serpent brought healing, so faith in Christ heals to the saving
of the soul. The
representation of Peter, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.19" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.24" parsed="|1Pet|2|24|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:24">I Pet. 2:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.20" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.18" parsed="|1Pet|3|18|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:18">3:18</scripRef>, and of Christ Himself, <scripRef id="v.iii.ii-p17.21" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.45" parsed="|Mark|10|45|0|0" passage="Mark 10:45">Mark 10:45</scripRef>, corresponds
with the preceding. The Lord plainly tells us that His sufferings were
vicarious.</p>

<p id="v.iii.ii-p18" shownumber="no">4. THE PRIESTLY WORK OF CHRIST IN MODERN THEOLOGY. As was said in the preceding
chapter, the doctrine of the offices of Christ does not meet with great
favor in present
day theology. As a matter of fact it is generally conspicuous by its
absence. It can hardly
be denied that the Bible speaks of Christ as prophet, priest, and king,
but it is commonly
held that these terms, as applied to Christ, are only so many figurative
descriptions of
the different aspects of Christ's work. Christ is not regarded as a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p18.1">
real</span>
prophet, a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p18.2">
real </span>
priest, and a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p18.3">
real</span>
king. And if any one of the aspects of the work of Christ is made to
stand out as pre-eminent, it is the prophetical rather than the priestly
aspect. The
modern spirit is quite averse to the official Christ, and while it may
be greatly in love
with the self-denying and self-sacrificing Jesus, it absolutely refuses
to recognize His
official priesthood. In view of this it should be emphasized at the
outset that, according
to Scripture, Jesus is a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p18.4">
real</span>
priest. As over against the
priests of the Old Testament, who
were merely shadows and types, He may be called<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p18.5">
the only real priest.</span>
He was revealed
among men as the truth, that is, the reality of all the shadows of the
Old Testament, and
therefore also of the Old Testament priesthood. The seventh chapter of
the Epistle to the
Hebrews stresses the fact that His priesthood is vastly superior to that
of Aaron.
Consequently it is a sad mistake to assume that He is priest only in
some figurative
sense, in the sense in which devotees of literature and art are
sometimes called priests.
This is an entirely unwarranted use of the word "priest", and
one that is entirely foreign
to Scripture. When Jehovah swore, "Thou art a priest forever after
the order of
Melchizedek," He constituted the Messiah a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.ii-p18.6">
real</span>
priest.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.iii.iii" next="v.iii.iv" prev="v.iii.ii" title="III. The Cause and Necessity of the Atonement">
<h2 id="v.iii.iii-p0.1">III. The Cause and Necessity of the Atonement</h2>
<p id="v.iii.iii-p1" shownumber="no">The great and central part of the priestly work of Christ
lies in the atonement, but this, of course, is not complete without the
intercession. His sacrificial work on earth
calls for His service in the heavenly sanctuary. The two are
complementary parts of the
priestly task of the Saviour. This and the following three chapters will
be devoted to a
discussion of the doctrine of the atonement, which is often called
"the heart of the gospel."</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.iii-p1.1">THE MOVING CAUSE OF THE ATONEMENT.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.iii-p2" shownumber="no">This lies:</p>
<p id="v.iii.iii-p3" shownumber="no">1. IN THE GOOD PLEASURE OF GOD. It is sometimes represented as if the moving cause
of the atonement lay in the sympathetic love of Christ for sinners. He
was so good and
loving that the very idea that sinners would be hopelessly lost, was
abhorrent to Him.
Therefore He offered Himself as a victim in their stead, paid the
penalty by laying down
His life for transgressors, and thus pacified an angry God. In some
cases this view
prompts men to laud Christ for His supreme self-sacrifice, but at the
same time, to
blame God for demanding and accepting such a price. In others it simply
causes men to
overlook God, and to sing the praises of Christ in unqualified terms.
Such a
representation is certainly all wrong, and often gives the opponents of
the penal
substitutionary doctrine of the atonement occasion to say that this
doctrine presupposes
a schism in the trinitarian life of God. On this view Christ apparently
receives His due,
but God is robbed of His honour. According to Scripture the moving cause
of the
atonement is found in the good pleasure of God to save sinners by a
substitutionary
atonement. Christ Himself is the fruit of this good pleasure of God. It
was predicted that
He would come into the world to carry out the good pleasure of God, . . . "and the
pleasure of the Lord shall prosper in His hand", <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53.10" parsed="|Isa|53|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 53:10">Isa. 53:10</scripRef>. At His
birth the angels sang,
"Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace among men in whom
He is well
pleased",
<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.14" parsed="|Luke|2|14|0|0" passage="Luke 2:14">Luke 2:14</scripRef>. The glorious message of <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef> is that "God so loved the
world,
that He gave His only begotten Son, that whosoever believeth on Him
should not
perish, but have eternal life." Paul says that Christ "gave
Himself for our sins, that He
might deliver us
out of this present evil world,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p3.4">
according to the will of our God and Father</span>",
<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.4" parsed="|Gal|1|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:4">Gal. 1:4</scripRef>. And again, "For it was the good pleasure of the Father
that in Him should all
the fulness dwell; and through Him to reconcile all things unto
Himself", <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.19" parsed="|Col|1|19|0|0" passage="Col. 1:19">Col. 1:19</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.20" parsed="|Col|1|20|0|0" passage="Col 1:20">20</scripRef>. It
would not be difficult to add other similar passages.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p4" shownumber="no">2. NOT IN THE ARBITRARY WILL OF GOD. The question may be raised, whether this
good pleasure of God is to be regarded as an arbitrary will, or as a
will that is rooted in
the very nature of God and is in harmony with the divine perfections. It
has been
represented by Duns Scotus as if it were merely an arbitrary expression
of the absolute
sovereignty of God. But it is more in harmony with Scripture to say that
the good
pleasure of God to save sinners by a substitutionary atonement was
founded in the love
and justice of God. It was the love of God that provided a way of escape
for lost sinners,
<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef>. And it was the justice of God which required that this way
should be of such
a nature as to meet the demands of the law, in order that God
"might be just, and the
justifier of him
which believeth in Jesus," <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.26" parsed="|Rom|3|26|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:26">Rom. 3:26</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.24" parsed="|Rom|3|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:24">Rom. 3:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.25" parsed="|Rom|3|25|0|0" passage="Rom 3:25">25</scripRef>, we find both
elements combined: "Being justified freely<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p4.5">
by His grace</span>
through the redemption that is in
Christ Jesus: whom God set forth to be a propitiation through faith in
His blood,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p4.6">
to declare His righteousness</span>
for the remission of sins that are past, through the forbearance of
God." This representation guards against the idea of an arbitrary will.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p5" shownumber="no">3. IN LOVE AND JUSTICE COMBINED. It is
necessary to avoid all one-sidedness in this
respect. If we represent the atonement as founded only in the
righteousness and justice
of God, we fail to do justice to the love of God as a moving cause of
the atonement, and
afford a pretext to those enemies of the satisfaction theory of the
atonement who like to represent it as implying that God is a vindictive being,
who is concerned only about His
own honour. If, on the other hand, we consider the atonement purely as
an expression
of the love of God, we fail to do justice to the righteousness and
veracity of God, and we
reduce the sufferings and the death of Christ to an unexplained enigma.
The fact that
God gave up His only begotten Son to bitter sufferings and to a shameful
death cannot be explained on the principle of His love only.
</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.iii-p5.1">B. HISTORICAL VIEWS RESPECTING THE NECESSITY OF THE ATONEMENT.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.iii-p6" shownumber="no">On this subject there has been considerable difference of
opinion. The following
positions should be distinguished:</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p7" shownumber="no">1. THAT THE ATONEMENT WAS NOT NECESSARY. The Nominalists of the Middle Ages
generally regarded it as something purely arbitrary. According to Duns
Scotus it was not inherently necessary, but was determined by the arbitrary
will of God. He denied
the infinite value of the sufferings of Christ, and regarded them as a
mere equivalent for
the satisfaction due, which God was pleased to accept as such. In his
estimation God
might have accepted any other substitute, and might even have carried on
the work of
redemption without demanding any satisfaction at all. Socinus also
denied the necessity
of the atonement. He removed the foundation pillar for such a necessity
by the denial of
such justice in God as required absolutely and inexorably that sin be
punished. For him the justice of God meant only His moral equity and rectitude,
by virtue of which there is
no depravity or iniquity in any of His works. Hugo Grotius followed his
denial on the
basis of the consideration that the law of God was a positive enactment
of His will,
which He could relax and could also set aside altogether. The Arminians
shared his
views on this point. One and all denied that it was necessary for God to
proceed in a
judicial way in the manifestation of His grace, and maintained that He
might have
forgiven sin without demanding satisfaction. Schleiermacher and Ritschl,
who had a
dominating influence on modern theology, broke completely with the
judicial
conception of the atonement. As advocates of the mystical and moral influence
theories
of the atonement, they deny the fact of an objective atonement, and
therefore by
implication also its necessity. With them and with modern liberal
theology in general
atonement becomes merely at-one-ment or reconciliation effected by changing
the
moral condition of the sinner. Some speak of a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p7.1">
moral</span>
necessity, but refuse to recognize
any<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p7.2">
legal</span>
necessity. </p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p8" shownumber="no">2. THAT IT WAS RELATIVELY OR HYPOTHETICALLY NECESSARY. Some of the most
prominent Church Fathers, such as Athanasius, Augustine, and Aquinas,
denied the
absolute necessity of the atonement and ascribed to it merely a
hypothetical necessity.
Thomas Aquinas thus differed from Anselm on the one hand, but also from
Duns Scotus
on the other hand. This is also the position taken by the Reformers.
Principal Franks
says that Luther, Zwingli, and Calvin all avoided the Anselmian doctrine
of the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p8.1">
absolute </span>
necessity of the atonement, and ascribed to it only a relative or
hypothetical necessity,
based on the sovereign free will of God, or in other words, on the
divine decree. This
opinion is shared by Seeberg, Mosley, Stevens, Mackintosh, Bavinck,
Honig, and others.
Cf. also
Turretin, on<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p8.2">
The Atonement of Christ</span>, p. 14. Calvin
says: "It deeply concerned us,
that He who was to be our Mediator should be very God and very man. If
the necessity
be inquired into, it was not what is commonly called simple or absolute,
but flowed
from the divine decree, on which the salvation of man depended. What was
best for us
our Merciful Father determined."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iii-p8.3" n="39" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p8.4">Inst.</span> II, 12.1.</note> The atonement was necessary, therefore,
because
God sovereignly determined to forgive sin on no other condition. This
position naturally served to exalt the sovereign free will of God in making
provision for the
redemption of man. Some later theologians, such as Beza, Zanchius, and
Twisse, shared
this opinion, but according to Voetius the first of these changed his
opinion in later life.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p9" shownumber="no">3. THAT IT WAS ABSOLUTELY NECESSARY. In the early Church Irenaeus already taught the absolute necessity of the atonement, and this was stressed by Anselm
in the Middle
Ages in his<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p9.1">
Cur Deus Homo?</span>
Reformed theology in general rightly shows a decided
preference for this view. Whatever may be true of Beza in later life, it
is certain that such
scholars as Voetius, Mastricht, Turretin, à Marck, and Owen, all
maintain the absolute
necessity of the atonement and ground it particularly in the justice of
God, that moral
perfection by which He necessarily maintains His holiness over against
sin and the
sinner and inflicts due punishment on transgressors. They regard
it as the only way in
which God could pardon sin and at the same time satisfy His justice. This
is also the
position of our Confessional Standards.<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iii-p9.2" n="40" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p9.3">Heidelberg Catechism,</span> Q. 40; and <span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p9.4">Canons of Dort</span> II, Art. 1.</note>
This view is undoubtedly the most satisfying,
and would seem to be most in harmony with the teachings of Scripture.
The denial of it
really involves a denial of the punitive justice of God as one of the
inherent perfections of the divine Being, though the Reformers, of course, did
not mean to deny this at all.
</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.iii-p9.5">C. PROOFS FOR THE NECESSITY OF THE ATONEMENT.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.iii-p10" shownumber="no">The proofs for the necessity of the atonement are mostly
of an inferential character,
but are nevertheless of considerable importance.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p11" shownumber="no">1. It would seem to be the clear teaching of Scripture
that God, in virtue of His
divine righteousness and holiness, cannot simply overlook defiance to
His infinite
majesty, but must needs visit sin with punishment. We are told
repeatedly that He will
by no means clear the guilty, <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Exod.34.7" parsed="|Exod|34|7|0|0" passage="Ex. 34:7">Ex. 34:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Num.14.18" parsed="|Num|14|18|0|0" passage="Num. 14:18">Num. 14:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Nah.1.3" parsed="|Nah|1|3|0|0" passage="Nah. 1:3">Nah. 1:3</scripRef>. He hates
sin with a divine
hatred; His whole being reacts against it, <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.5.4-Ps.5.6" parsed="|Ps|5|4|5|6" passage="Ps. 5:4-6">Ps. 5:4-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Nah.1.2" parsed="|Nah|1|2|0|0" passage="Nah. 1:2">Nah. 1:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.18" parsed="|Rom|1|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:18">Rom.
1:18</scripRef>. Paul argues in
<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.25" parsed="|Rom|3|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:25">Rom. 3:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.26" parsed="|Rom|3|26|0|0" passage="Rom 3:26">26</scripRef>, that it was necessary that Christ should be offered as an
atoning sacrifice
for sin, in order that God might be just while justifying the sinner.
The important thing was that the justice of God should be maintained. This
clearly points to the fact that the
necessity of the atonement follows from the divine nature.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p12" shownumber="no">2. This leads right on to the second argument. The
majesty and absolute
immutability of the divine law as inherent in the very nature of God
made it necessary
for Him to demand satisfaction of the sinner. The transgression of the
law inevitably
carries with it a penalty. It is inviolable exactly because it is
grounded in the very nature of God and is not, as Socinus would have it, a product of His free will,
<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.18" parsed="|Matt|5|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:18">Matt. 5:18</scripRef>. The
general principle of the law is expressed in these words: "Cursed
be he that confirmeth
not the words of this law to do them," <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Deut.27.26" parsed="|Deut|27|26|0|0" passage="Deut. 27:26">Deut. 27:26</scripRef>. And if God
wanted to save the
sinner, in spite of the fact that the latter could not meet the demands
of the law, He had
to make provision for a vicarious satisfaction as a ground for the
sinner's justification.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p13" shownumber="no">3. The necessity of the atonement also follows from the
veracity of God, who is a
God of truth and cannot lie. "God is not a man, that He should lie;
neither the son of
man, that He should repent; hath He said it, and shall He not do it? or
hath He spoken,
and shall He not
make it good?" <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Num.23.19" parsed="|Num|23|19|0|0" passage="Num. 23:19">Num. 23:19</scripRef>. "Let God be found true," says Paul,
"but
every man a liar." <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.4" parsed="|Rom|3|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:4">Rom. 3:4</scripRef>. When He entered into the covenant of
works with man, He
decreed that death would be the penalty of disobedience. That principle
finds
expression in many other words of Scripture, such as <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.4" parsed="|Ezek|18|4|0|0" passage="Ezek. 18:4">Ezek. 18:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.23" parsed="|Rom|6|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:23">Rom.
6:23</scripRef>. The veracity
of God demanded that the penalty should be executed, and if sinners were
to be saved,
should be executed in the life of a substitute.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p14" shownumber="no">4. The same conclusion may be drawn from the nature of
sin as guilt. If sin were
merely a moral weakness, a remnant of a pre-human state, which is
gradually brought
into subjection to the higher nature of man, it would require no
atonement. But
according to Scripture sin is something far more heinous than that.
Negatively, it is
lawlessness, and positively, transgression of the law of God, and
therefore guilt, <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.4" parsed="|1John|3|4|0|0" passage="I John 3:4">I John 3:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.25" parsed="|Rom|2|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:25">Rom. 2:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.27" parsed="|Rom|2|27|0|0" passage="Rom 2:27">27</scripRef>, and guilt makes one a debtor to the law and requires
either a personal or a vicarious atonement.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p15" shownumber="no">5. The amazing greatness of the sacrifice which God
Himself provided also implies
the necessity of the atonement. God gave His only-begotten Son, to be
subjected to
bitter sufferings and to a shameful death. Now it is not conceivable
that God would do
this
unnecessarily. Dr. A. A. Hodge correctly says: "This sacrifice would be
most
painfully irrelevant if it were anything short of absolutely necessary
in relation to the
end designed to be attained—that is, unless it be indeed the only
possible means to the
salvation of sinful man. God surely would not have made His Son a wanton
sacrifice to
a bare point of will."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iii-p15.1" n="41" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p15.2">The Atonement,</span> p. 237.</note>
It is also worthy of note that Paul argues in
<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.21" parsed="|Gal|3|21|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:21">Gal. 3:21</scripRef> that Christ
would not have been sacrificed, if the law could have given life.
Scripture explicitly  speaks
of the sufferings of Christ as necessary in <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.26" parsed="|Luke|24|26|0|0" passage="Luke 24:26">Luke 24:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.10" parsed="|Heb|2|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:10">Heb. 2:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.3" parsed="|Heb|8|3|0|0" passage="Heb 8:3">8:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.22" parsed="|Heb|9|22|0|0" passage="Heb 9:22">9:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.23" parsed="|Heb|9|23|0|0" passage="Heb 9:23">23</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.iii-p15.9">D. OBJECTIONS TO THE DOCTRINE OF THE ABSOLUTE NECESSITY OF THE ATONEMENT.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.iii-p16" shownumber="no">There are especially two objections that are often raised
to the idea that God had to
demand satisfaction, in order that He might be able to pardon sin, and
because there
was no other way, constituted His only begotten Son a sacrifice for the
sin of the world.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p17" shownumber="no">1. THIS MAKES GOD INFERIOR TO MAN. Man can and often does freely forgive those
who wrong him, but, according to the view under consideration, God cannot
forgive
until He has received satisfaction. This means that He is
less good and less charitable
than sinful men. But they who raise this objection fail to observe that
God cannot
simply be compared to a private individual, who can without injustice
forget about his
personal grievances. He is the Judge of all the earth, and in that
capacity must maintain
the law and exercise strict justice. A judge may be very kind-hearted,
generous, and forgiving as a private individual, but in his official capacity
he must see to it that the
law takes its course. Moreover, this objection utterly ignores the fact
that God was not
under obligation to open up a way of redemption for disobedient and
fallen man, but
could with perfect justice have left man to his self-chosen doom. The
ground of His
determination to redeem a goodly number of the human race, and in them
the race
itself, can only be found in His good pleasure. The love to sinners
revealed in it was not
awakened by any consideration of satisfaction, but was entirely sovereign
and free. The
Mediator Himself was a gift of the Father's love, which naturally could
not be
contingent on the atonement. And, finally, it should not be forgotten
that God Himself
wrought the atonement. He had to make a tremendous sacrifice, the
sacrifice of His only begotten and beloved Son, in order to save His enemies.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iii-p18" shownumber="no">2. The objection just considered often goes hand in hand
with another, namely, that
this view of the absolute necessity of the atonement assumes a schism in
the trinitarian
life of God, and this is a rather monstrous idea. Says David Smith, the
author of<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p18.1">
In the Days of His Flesh</span>: "It (the penal theory of
satisfaction) places a gulf between God and
Christ, representing God as the stern Judge who insisted on the
execution of justice, and
Christ as the pitiful Saviour who interposed and satisfied His legal
demand and
appeased His righteous wrath. They are not one either in their attitudes
toward sinners
or in the parts which they play. God is propitiated; Christ propitiates;
God inflicts the
punishment, Christ suffers it; God exacts the debt, Christ pays
it."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iii-p18.2" n="42" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.iii-p18.3">The Atonement in the Light of History and the Modern Spirit,</span> p. 106</note>
This objection is also based on a misunderstanding, a misunderstanding for which those
Christians are, at least in part, to blame who speak and sing as if Christ, rather than
the triune God,
were exclusively the author of their salvation. The Bible teaches us
that the triune God
provided freely for the salvation of sinners. There was nothing to
constrain Him. The
Father made the sacrifice of His Son, and the Son willingly offered
Himself. There was
no schism but the most beautiful harmony between the Father and the Son.
Cf. <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.6-Ps.40.8" parsed="|Ps|40|6|40|8" passage="Ps. 40:6-8">Ps. 40:6-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.47-Luke.1.50" parsed="|Luke|1|47|1|50" passage="Luke 1:47-50">Luke 1:47-50</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.78" parsed="|Luke|1|78|0|0" passage="Luke 1:78">78</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.3-Eph.1.14" parsed="|Eph|1|3|1|14" passage="Eph. 1:3-14">Eph. 1:3-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p18.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.4-Eph.2.10" parsed="|Eph|2|4|2|10" passage="Eph 2:4-10">2:4-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iii-p18.9" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">I Pet. 1:2</scripRef>. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.iii.iv" next="v.iii.v" prev="v.iii.iii" title="IV. The Nature of the Atonement">
<h2 id="v.iii.iv-p0.1">IV. The Nature of the Atonement</h2>
<p id="v.iii.iv-p1" shownumber="no">The doctrine of the atonement here presented is the penal
substitutionary or
satisfaction doctrine, which is the doctrine clearly taught by the Word
of God.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.iv-p1.1">A. STATEMENT OF THE PENAL SUBSTITUTIONARY DOCTRINE OF THE ATONEMENT.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.iv-p2" shownumber="no">In the discussion of this view several particulars should be stressed.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p3" shownumber="no">1. THE ATONEMENT IS OBJECTIVE. This means
that the atonement makes its primary
impression on the person to whom it is made. If a man does wrong and
renders
satisfaction, this satisfaction is intended to influence the
person wronged and not the
offending party. In the case under consideration it means that the
atonement was
intended to propitiate God and to reconcile Him to the sinner. This is
undoubtedly the
primary idea, but does not imply that we can not also speak of the
sinner's being
reconciled to God. Scripture does this in more than one place, <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.10" parsed="|Rom|5|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:10">Rom.
5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.19" parsed="|2Cor|5|19|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:19">II Cor. 5:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.20" parsed="|2Cor|5|20|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:20">20</scripRef>.
But it should be borne in mind that this is not equivalent to saying
that the sinner is
atoned, which would mean that God made amends or reparation, that He
rendered
satisfaction to the sinner. And even when we speak of the sinner as
being reconciled,
this must be understood as something that is secondary. The reconciled
God justifies the
sinner who accepts the reconciliation, and so operates in his heart by
the Holy Spirit,
that the sinner also lays aside his wicked alienation from God, and thus
enters into the
fruits of the perfect atonement of Christ. In other words, the fact that
Christ reconciles
God to the sinner results in a reflex action on the sinner, in
virtue of which the sinner
may be said to be reconciled to God. Since the objective atonement by
Christ is an
accomplished fact, and it is now the duty of the ambassadors of Christ
to induce sinners to accept the atonement and to terminate their hostility to
God, it is no wonder that the
secondary and subjective side of the reconciliation is somewhat
prominent in Scripture.
This statement of the objective character of the atonement is placed in
the foreground,
because it represents the main difference between those who accept the
satisfaction
doctrine of the atonement and all those who prefer some other theory.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p4" shownumber="no">Now the question arises, whether this conception of the
atonement is supported by
Scripture. It would seem to find ample support there. The following
particulars should
be noted:</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p5" shownumber="no">a. The fundamental character of the priesthood clearly points in that
direction.
While the prophets represented God among men, the priests in their
sacrificial and
intercessory work represented men in the presence of God, and therefore
looked in a
Godward direction. The writer of Hebrews expresses it thus: "For
every high priest,
taken from among
men, is ordained for men<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p5.1"> in things pertaining to God</span>, " 5:1. This
statement contains the following elements: (1) The priest is taken from
among men, is
one of the human race, so as to be able to represent men; (2) he is
appointed for men,
that is, to be active in the interests of men; and (3) he is appointed
to represent men in
things pertaining to God, that is, in things that have a Godward
direction, that look to
God, that terminate on God. This is a clear indication of the fact that
the work of the priest looks primarily to God. It does not exclude the idea
that the priestly work also
has a reflex
influence on men.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p6" shownumber="no">b. The same truth is conveyed by the general idea of the
sacrifices. These clearly
have an objective reference. Even among the Gentiles they are brought,
not to men, but
to God. They were supposed to produce an effect on God. The Scriptural
idea of
sacrifice does
not differ from this in its objective reference. The sacrifices of the Old
Testament were brought to God primarily to atone for sin, but also as
expressions of
devotion and gratitude. Hence the blood had to be brought into the very
presence of
God. The writer of Hebrews says that the "things pertaining to
God" consist in offering
"both gifts
and sacrifices for sin." The friends of Job were urged to bring
sacrifices, "lest
I," says
the Lord, "deal with you after your folly." <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.42.8" parsed="|Job|42|8|0|0" passage="Job 42:8">Job 42:8</scripRef>. The sacrifices
were to be
instrumental in stilling the anger of the Lord.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p7" shownumber="no">c. The Hebrew word<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.1">
kipper</span>
(piel) expresses
the idea of atonement for sin by the
covering of sin or of the sinner. The blood of the sacrifice is
interposed between God
and the sinner, and in view of it the wrath of God is turned aside. It
has the effect,
therefore, of warding off the wrath of God from the sinner. In the
Septuagint and in the
New Testament the terms<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.2">
hilaskomai</span>
and<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.3">
hilasmos</span>
are used in a related sense. The verb
means "to
render propitious," and the noun, "an appeasing" or "the
means of
appeasing." They are terms of an objective character. In classical
Greek they are often
construed with the accusative of<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.4">
theos</span>
(God), though
there is no example of this in the
Bible. In the New Testament they are construed with the accusative of
the thing
(<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.5">hamartias</span>), <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.17" parsed="|Heb|2|17|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:17">Heb. 2:17</scripRef>, or with<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.7">
peri</span>
and the genitive of the thing (hamartion), <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.2" parsed="|1John|2|2|0|0" passage="I John 2:2">I John 2:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.10" parsed="|1John|4|10|0|0" passage="I John 4:10">4:10</scripRef>. The first passage is best interpreted in the light of the use of
the Hebrew<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.10">
kipper;</span>
the
last can be interpreted similarly, or with<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.11">
theon</span>
as the object understood. There are so
many passages of Scripture which speak of the wrath of God and of God as
being angry
with sinners, that we are perfectly justified in speaking of a
propitiation of God, <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.18" parsed="|Rom|1|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:18">Rom. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.10" parsed="|Gal|3|10|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:10">Gal. 3:10</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p7.14" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.3" parsed="|Eph|2|3|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:3">Eph. 2:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p7.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.9" parsed="|Rom|5|9|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:9">Rom. 5:9</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p7.16" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.10" parsed="|Rom|5|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:10">Rom. 5:10</scripRef> and 11:28 sinners are called "enemies of
God" (<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.17">echthroi</span>) in a passive sense, indicating, not that they are hostile to God, but
that
they are the objects of God's holy displeasure. In the former passage this
sense is
demanded by its connection with the previous verse; and in the latter by
the fact that
<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.18">
echtroi</span>
is contrasted with<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.19">
agapetoi</span>, which does not mean "<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p7.20">
lovers</span>
of God," but "beloved of God."</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p8" shownumber="no">d. The words<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p8.1"> katalasso</span> and<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p8.2">
katalage</span>
signify "to reconcile" and
"reconciliation." They
point to an action by which enmity is changed to friendship, and surely
have, first of all,
an objective signification. The offender reconciles, not himself, but
the person whom he
has offended. This is clearly brought out in <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.23" parsed="|Matt|5|23|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:23">Matt. 5:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.24" parsed="|Matt|5|24|0|0" passage="Matt 5:24">24</scripRef>:
"Therefore if thou bring thy
gift before the altar, and there remember that thy brother hath aught
against thee; leave
thy gift there before the altar, and go thy way; first be reconciled to
thy brother (which
in this
connection can only mean,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p8.5">
reconcile thy brother to thyself</span>, which is objective), and
then come and offer thy gift." The brother who had done the
supposed injury is called
upon to remove the grievance. He must propitiate or reconcile his
brother to himself by
whatsoever compensation may be required. In connection with the work of
Christ the
words under consideration in some instances certainly denote the
effecting of a change
in the judicial relation between God and the sinner by removing the
judicial claim.
According to <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.19" parsed="|2Cor|5|19|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:19">II Cor. 5:19</scripRef> the fact that God reconciled the world to
Himself is evident
from this that He does not reckon unto them their sins. This does not
point to any moral
change in man, but to the fact that the demands of the law are met, and
that God is
satisfied. In
<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.10" parsed="|Rom|5|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:10">Rom. 5:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.11" parsed="|Rom|5|11|0|0" passage="Rom 5:11">11</scripRef> the term "reconciliation" can only be understood in an
objective sense,
for (1) it is said to have been effected by<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p8.9">
the death of Christ</span>, while
subjective reconciliation is the result of the work of the Spirit; (2)
it was effected while
we were yet enemies, that is, were still objects of God's wrath; and (3)
it is represented in verse 11 as something objective which we receive.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p9" shownumber="no">e. The terms<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p9.1">
lutron</span>
and<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p9.2">
antilutron</span>
are also objective terms. Christ is the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p9.3">
Goel</span>, the
liberator, <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.28" parsed="|Acts|20|28|0|0" passage="Acts 20:28">Acts 20:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.20" parsed="|1Cor|6|20|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:20">I Cor. 6:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.7.23" parsed="|1Cor|7|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 7:23">7:23</scripRef>. He redeems sinners from the demands of God's
retributive justice. The price is paid to God by Christ as the
representative of the sinner.
Clearly, the Bible abundantly justifies us in ascribing an objective
character to the
atonement. Moreover, strictly speaking, atonement in the proper sense of
the word is
always objective. There is no such thing as subjective atonement. In
atonement it is
always the party that has done wrong that makes amends to the one who was
wronged.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p10" shownumber="no">2. IT IS A VICARIOUS ATONEMENT.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p11" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p11.1"> The meaning of the term</span> "<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p11.2">vicarious atonement.</span>" There is a difference
between
personal and vicarious atonement. We are interested particularly in the
difference
between the two in connection with the atonement of Christ. When man
fell away from
God, he as such owed God reparation. But he could atone for his sin only
by suffering eternally the penalty affixed to transgression. This is what God
might have required in
strict justice, and would have required, if He had not been actuated by
love and
compassion for the sinner. As a matter of fact, however, God appointed a
vicar in Jesus
Christ to take man's place, and this vicar atoned for sin and obtained
an eternal
redemption for man. Dr. Shedd calls attention to the following points of
difference in
this case: (1) Personal atonement is provided by the offending party;
vicarious
atonement by the offended party. (2) Personal atonement would have
excluded the
element of mercy; vicarious atonement represents the highest form of
mercy. (3)
Personal atonement would have been forever in the making and hence could
not result
in redemption; vicarious atonement leads to reconciliation and life
everlasting.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p12" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p12.1">
The possibility of vicarious atonement.</span>
All those who
advocate a subjective theory of
the atonement raise a formidable objection to the idea of vicarious
atonement. They
consider it unthinkable that a just God should transfer His wrath against
moral
offenders to a perfectly innocent party, and should treat the innocent
judicially as if he
were guilty. There is undoubtedly a real difficulty here, especially in
view of the fact
that this seems to be contrary to all human analogy. We cannot conclude
from the
possibility of the transfer of a pecuniary debt to that of the transfer
of a penal debt. If
some beneficent person offers to pay the pecuniary debt of another, the
payment must
be accepted, and the debtor is<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p12.2">
ipso facto</span>
freed from all
obligation. But this is not the case
when someone offers to atone vicariously for the transgression of
another. To be legal,
this must be expressly permitted and authorized by the lawgiver. In
reference to the law
this is called relaxation, and in relation to the sinner it is known as
remission. The judge
need not, but can permit this; yet he can permit it only under certain
conditions, as (1)
that the guilty party himself is not in a position to bear the penalty
through to the end,
so that a righteous relation results; (2) that the transfer does not
encroach upon the
rights and privileges of innocent third parties, nor cause them to suffer
hardships and
privations; (3) that the person enduring the penalty is not himself
already indebted to
justice, and does not owe all his services to the government; and (4)
that the guilty party
retains the consciousness of his guilt and of the fact that the
substitute is suffering for
him. In view of all this it will be understood that the transfer of
penal debt is well-nigh,
if not entirely, impossible among men. But in the case of Christ, which
is altogether
unique, because in it a situation obtained which has no parallel, all
the conditions
named were met. There was no injustice of any kind.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p13" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p13.1">
Scriptural proof for the vicarious atonement of Christ.</span>
The Bible
certainly teaches that  the sufferings and
death of Christ were vicarious, and vicarious in the strict sense of the
word that He took the place of sinners, and that their guilt was imputed,
and their
punishment transferred, to Him. This is not at all what Bushnell means,
when he speaks
of the "vicarious sacrifice" of Christ. For him it simply
means that Christ bore our sins
"on His feeling, became inserted into their bad lot by His sympathy
as a friend, yielded
up Himself and His life, even, to an effort of restoring mercy; in a
word that He bore our
sins in just the same sense as He bore our sicknesses."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iv-p13.2" n="43" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p13.3">Vicarious Sacrifice,</span> p. 46</note>
The sufferings of Christ were
not just the sympathetic sufferings of a friend, but the substitutionary
sufferings of the
Lamb of God for the sin of the world. The Scriptural proofs for this may
be classified as
follows:</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p14" shownumber="no">(1) The Old Testament teaches us to regard the sacrifices
that were brought upon the
altar as vicarious. When the Israelite brought a sacrifice to the Lord,
he had to lay his
hand on the head of the sacrifice and confess his sin. This action
symbolized the transfer
of sin to the offering, and rendered it fit to atone for the sin of the
offerer, <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:Lev.1.4" parsed="|Lev|1|4|0|0" passage="Lev. 1:4">Lev. 1:4</scripRef>. Cave
and others regard this action merely as a symbol of dedication.<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iv-p14.2" n="44" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p14.3">The Scriptural Doctrine of Sacrifice,</span> pp. 129 f.</note>
But this does not
explain how the laying on of hands made the sacrifice fit to make
atonement for sin.
Neither is it in harmony with what we are taught respecting the
significance of the
laying on of hands in the case of the scape-goat in <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Lev.16.20-Lev.16.22" parsed="|Lev|16|20|16|22" passage="Lev. 16:20-22">Lev. 16:20-22</scripRef>. After
the laying on of
hands death was vicariously inflicted on the sacrifice. The
significance of this is clearly
indicated in the
classical passage that is found in <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Lev.17.11" parsed="|Lev|17|11|0|0" passage="Lev. 17:11">Lev. 17:11</scripRef>: "For the life of the flesh
is in
the blood; and I have given it to you to make atonement for your souls:
for it is the
blood that
maketh atonement by reason of the life." Says Dr. Vos, "The sacrificial
animal
in its death takes the place of the death due to the offerer. It is
forfeit for forfeit." The
sacrifices so brought were pre-figurations of the one great sacrifice of
Jesus Christ.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p15" shownumber="no">(2) There are several passages in Scripture which speak
of our sins as being "laid
upon"
Christ, and of His "bearing" sin or iniquity, <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53.6" parsed="|Isa|53|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 53:6">Isa. 53:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53.12" parsed="|Isa|53|12|0|0" passage="Isa 53:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:John.1.29" parsed="|John|1|29|0|0" passage="John 1:29">John 1:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.21" parsed="|2Cor|5|21|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:21">II Cor. 5:21</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:13">Gal. 3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.28" parsed="|Heb|9|28|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:28">Heb. 9:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.24" parsed="|1Pet|2|24|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:24">I Pet. 2:24</scripRef>. On the basis of Scripture we can, therefore, say that our
sins are imputed to Christ. This does not mean that our sinfulness was
transferred to
Him — something that is in itself utterly impossible — but that the
guilt of our sin was
imputed to Him. Says Dr. A. A. Hodge: "Sin may be considered (1) in
its formal nature
as transgression of the law, <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.4" parsed="|1John|3|4|0|0" passage="I John 3:4">I John 3:4</scripRef>; or (2) as a moral quality
inherent in the agent
(macula), <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.11-Rom.6.13" parsed="|Rom|6|11|6|13" passage="Rom. 6:11-13">Rom. 6:11-13</scripRef>; or (3) in respect to its legal obligation to
punishment (reatus). In
this last sense alone is it ever said that the sin of one is laid upon or
borne by another."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iv-p15.10" n="45" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p15.11">Outlines of Theology,</span> p. 408.</note>
Strictly speaking, then, the guilt of sin<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p15.12">
as liability to punishment</span>
was imputed to Christ;
and this could be transferred, because it did not inhere in the person
of the sinner, but was something objective.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p16" shownumber="no">(3) Finally, there are several passages in which the
prepositions<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p16.1">
peri, huper</span>, and<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p16.2">
anti </span>
are used in connection with the work of Christ for sinners. The
substitutionary idea is
expressed least by the first, and most by the last preposition. But even
in the
interpretation of<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p16.3">
huper</span>
and<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p16.4">
anti</span>
we shall have to depend largely on the context, for while
the former really means "in behalf of," it may, and in some
cases does, express the idea of substitution, and while the latter may mean "instead of,"
it does not always have that
meaning. It is rather interesting to notice that, according to
Deissmann, several
instances have been found on the inscriptions of the use of<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p16.5">
huper</span>
with the meaning "as
representative of."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iv-p16.6" n="46" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p16.7">Light From the Ancient East</span></note>
We find a similar
use of it in <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:Phlm.1.13" parsed="|Phlm|1|13|0|0" passage="Philemon 13">Philemon 13</scripRef>. In such passages as <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.6-Rom.5.8" parsed="|Rom|5|6|5|8" passage="Rom. 5:6-8">Rom.  5:6-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.32" parsed="|Rom|8|32|0|0" passage="Rom 8:32">8:32</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.11" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.20" parsed="|Gal|2|20|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:20">Gal. 2:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:9">Heb. 2:9</scripRef> it probably means "instead of," though it can
also be rendered
"in behalf of"; but in <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.13" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.13" parsed="|Gal|2|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:13">Gal. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.14" osisRef="Bible:John.11.50" parsed="|John|11|50|0|0" passage="John 11:50">John 11:50</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.15" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.15" parsed="|2Cor|5|15|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:15">II Cor. 5:15</scripRef> it
certainly means
"instead of." Robertson says that only violence to the text
can get rid of that meaning
here. The
preposition<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p16.16">
anti</span>
clearly means
"instead of" in <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.17" osisRef="Bible:Matt.2.22" parsed="|Matt|2|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 2:22">Matt. 2:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.18" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.38" parsed="|Matt|5|38|0|0" passage="Matt 5:38">5:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.28" parsed="|Matt|20|28|0|0" passage="Matt 20:28">20:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.20" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.45" parsed="|Mark|10|45|0|0" passage="Mark 10:45">Mark 10:45</scripRef>. According to Robertson any other meaning of the term is out of
the question here.  The
same idea is expressed in <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p16.21" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.6" parsed="|1Tim|2|6|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:6">I Tim. 2:6</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p17" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p17.1">
Objections to the idea of a vicarious atonement.</span>
Several
objections are raised against the idea of vicarious atonement.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p18" shownumber="no">(1)<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p18.1">
Substitution in penal matters is illegal.</span>
It is generally
admitted that in cases of a
pecuniary debt payment by a substitute is not only permissible, but must
be accepted
and at once cancels all further obligation on the part of the original
debtor. However, it
is said that penal debt is so personal that it does not admit of any
such transfer. But it is
quite evident that there are other than pecuniary cases in which the law
has made
provision for substitution. Armour in his work on<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p18.2">
Atonement and Law</span>
mentions three
kinds of such cases. The first is that of substitution in cases of work
for the public benefit required by law, and the second, that of substitution in
the case of military
service required
in behalf of one's country. Respecting the third he says "Even in the
case of<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p18.3">
crime</span>, law, as understood and administered by men in all lands, provides that
the penalty may be met by a substitute, in all cases in which the
penalty prescribed is
such that a substitute may meet it consistently with the obligations he
is already
under."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iv-p18.4" n="47" place="foot">p. 129.</note>
It is perfectly evident that the
law does recognize the principle of substitution,
though it may not be easy to cite instances in which innocent persons
were permitted to
act as substitutes for criminals and to bear the penalties imposed on
these. This finds a sufficient explanation in the fact that it is usually
impossible to find men who meet all
the requirements stated under (b) above. But the fact that it is
impossible to find men
who meet these requirements, is no proof that Jesus Christ could not
meet them. In fact,
He could and did, and was therefore an acceptable substitute.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p19" shownumber="no">(2)<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p19.1"> The innocent is made to suffer for the wicked.</span>
It is perfectly
true that, according to the
penal substitutionary doctrine of the atonement Christ suffered as
"the righteous for the
unrighteous" (<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.18" parsed="|1Pet|3|18|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:18">I Pet. 3:18</scripRef>), but this can hardly be urged as an
objection to the doctrine of
vicarious atonement. In the form in which it is often stated it
certainly has very little
force. To say that this doctrine makes the innocent suffer the consequences
of the guilt
of the wicked, and is therefore unacceptable, is tantamount to raising
an objection
against the moral government of God in general. In actual life the
innocent often suffer
as a result of the transgression of others. Moreover, in this form the
objection would
hold against all the so-called theories of the atonement, for they all
represent the
sufferings of Christ as being in some sense the result of the sins of
mankind. Sometimes
it is said that a moral agent cannot become reasonably responsible for
any sin, except by doing it personally; but this is contradicted by the facts
of life. One who hires another to
commit a crime is held responsible; so are all accessories to a crime.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p20" shownumber="no">(3)<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p20.1">
God the Father is made guilty of injustice.</span>
It appears that
all the objections are really
variations on the same theme. The third is virtually the same as the
second put in a
more legal form. The doctrine of vicarious atonement, it is said,
involves an injustice on
the part of the Father in that He simply sacrifices the Son for the sins
of mankind. This
objection was already raised by Abelard, but loses sight of several
pertinent facts. It was
not the Father but the triune God that conceived the plan of redemption.
There was a
solemn agreement between the three persons in the Godhead. And in this
plan the Son
<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p20.2">voluntarily</span>
undertook to bear the penalty for sin and to satisfy the demands of the
divine law. And not only that, but the sacrificial work of Christ also
brought immense
gain and glory to Christ as Mediator. It meant for Him a numerous seed,
loving
worship, and a glorious kingdom. And, finally, this objection acts as a
boomerang, for it
returns with vengeance on the head of all those who, like Abelard, deny
the necessity of an objective atonement, for they are all agreed that the Father sent the
Son into the
world for bitter suffering and a shameful death which, while beneficial,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p20.3">
was yet unnecessary.</span>
This would have been cruel indeed!</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p21" shownumber="no">4.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p21.1">
There is no such union as would justify a vicarious
atonement.</span>
It is said that, if a vicar
is to remove the guilt of an offender there must be some real union
between them which
would justify such a procedure. It may be admitted that
there must be some antecedent
union between a vicar and those whom he represents, but the idea that
this must be an
organic union, such as the objectors really have in mind, cannot be
granted. As a matter
of fact the required union should be legal rather than organic, and
provision was made
for such a union in the plan of redemption. In the depths of eternity
the Mediator of the
new covenant freely undertook to be the representative of His people,
that is, of those
whom the Father gave unto Him. A federal relationship was established in
virtue of
which He became their Surety. This is the basic and the most fundamental
union
between Christ and His own, and on the basis of this a mystical union was
formed,
ideally in the counsel of peace, to be realized in the course of history
in the organic
union of Christ and His Church. Therefore Christ could act as the legal
representative of
His own, and being mystically one with them, can also convey to them the
blessings of
salvation.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p22" shownumber="no">3. IT INCLUDES CHRIST'S ACTIVE AND PASSIVE OBEDIENCE. It is customary to distinguish between the active and passive obedience of Christ. But in discriminating
between the
two, it should be distinctly understood that they cannot be separated.
The two
accompany each other at every point in the Saviour's life. There is a
constant
interpenetration of the two. It was part of Christ's active obedience,
that He subjected
Himself voluntarily to sufferings and death. He Himself says: "No
man taketh my life
from me, I lay it down of myself," <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:John.10.18" parsed="|John|10|18|0|0" passage="John 10:18">John 10:18</scripRef>. On the other hand it
was also part of
Christ's passive obedience, that He lived in subjection to the law. His
moving about in
the form of a servant constituted an important element of His
sufferings. Christ's active
and passive obedience should be regarded as complementary parts of an
organic whole.
In discussing it, account should be taken of a threefold relation in
which Christ stood to
the law, namely, the natural, the federal, and the penal relation. Man
proved a failure in each one of these. He did not keep the law in its natural
and federal aspects, and is not
now in a position to pay the penalty, in order to be restored in the
favor of God. While
Christ naturally entered the first relation by His incarnation, He
vicariously entered
only the second and third relations. And it is with these that we are
particularly
concerned in this connection.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p23" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p23.1">
The active obedience of Christ.</span>
Christ as
Mediator entered the federal relation in
which Adam stood in the state of integrity, in order to merit eternal
life for the sinner.
This constitutes the active obedience of Christ, consisting in all that
Christ did to
observe the law in its federal aspect, as the condition for obtaining
eternal life. The
active obedience of Christ was necessary to make His passive obedience
acceptable with
God, that is, to make it an object of God's good pleasure. It is only on
account of it that
God's estimate of the sufferings of Christ differs from His estimate of
the sufferings of
the lost. Moreover, if Christ had not rendered active obedience, the
human nature of
Christ itself would have fallen short of the just demands of God, and He
would not
have been able to atone for others. And, finally, if Christ had suffered
only the penalty
imposed on man, those who shared in the fruits of His work would have
been left
exactly where Adam was before he fell. Christ merits more for sinners
than the
forgiveness of sins. According to <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">5</scripRef> they are through Christ set
free from the law
as the condition of life, are adopted to be sons of God, and as sons are
also heirs of
eternal life, <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.7" parsed="|Gal|4|7|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:7">Gal. 4:7</scripRef>. All this is conditioned primarily on the active
obedience of Christ.
Through Christ the righteousness of faith is substituted for the
righteousness of the law,
<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p23.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.3" parsed="|Rom|10|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:3">Rom. 10:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p23.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.4" parsed="|Rom|10|4|0|0" passage="Rom 10:4">4</scripRef>. Paul tells us that by the work of Christ "the righteousness
of the law is
fulfilled in
us," <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p23.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.3" parsed="|Rom|8|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:3">Rom. 8:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p23.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.4" parsed="|Rom|8|4|0|0" passage="Rom 8:4">4</scripRef>; and that we are made "the righteousness of God in
Him," <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p23.9" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.21" parsed="|2Cor|5|21|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:21">II Cor. 5:21</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p24" shownumber="no">According to Anselm Christ's life of obedience had no
redemptive significance,
since He owed this to God for Himself. Only the sufferings of the
Saviour constituted a
claim on God and were basic to the sinner's redemption. Thinking along
somewhat
similar lines Piscator, the seventeenth century Arminians, Richard
Watson, R. N. Davies,
and other Arminian scholars deny that the active obedience of Christ has
the
redemptive significance which we ascribe to it. Their denial rests
especially on two
considerations: (1) Christ needed His active obedience for Himself as
man. Being under
the law, He was in duty bound to keep it for Himself. In answer to this
it may be said
that Christ, though possessing a human nature, was yet a divine person,
and as such
was not subject to the law in its federal aspect, the law as the
condition of life in the
covenant of works. As the last Adam, however, He took the place of the
first. The first
Adam was by nature under the law of God, and the keeping
of it as such gave him no
claim to a reward. It was only when God graciously entered into a
covenant with him
and promised him life in the way of obedience, that the keeping of the
law was made
the condition of obtaining eternal life for himself and for his
descendants. And when
Christ voluntarily entered the federal relationship as the last Adam,
the keeping of the
law naturally acquired the same significance for Him and for those whom
the Father
had given Him. (2) God demands, or can demand, only one of two things of
the sinner:
either obedience to the law, or subjection to the penalty, but not both.
If the law is
obeyed, the penalty cannot be inflicted; and if the penalty is
borne, nothing further can
be demanded. There is some confusion here, however, which results in
misunderstanding. This "either . . . or" applied to the case
of Adam before the fall, but
ceased to apply the moment he sinned and thus entered the penal
relationship of the
law. God continued to demand obedience of man, but in addition to that
required of
him that he pay the penalty for past transgression. Meeting this double
requirement
was the only way of life after sin entered the world. If Christ had
merely obeyed the law
and had not also paid the penalty, He would not have won a title to
eternal life for
sinners; and if He had merely paid the penalty, without meeting the
original demands
of the law, He would have left man in the position of Adam before the
fall, still
confronted with the task of obtaining eternal life in the way of
obedience. By His active
obedience, however, He carried His people beyond that point and gave
them a claim to
everlasting
life. </p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p25" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p25.1">
The passive obedience of Christ.</span>
Christ as
Mediator also entered the penal relation to
the law, in order to pay the penalty in our stead. His passive obedience
consisted in His
paying the penalty of sin by His sufferings and death, and thus
discharging the debt of
all His people. The sufferings of Christ, which have already been
described, did not
come upon Him accidentally, nor as the result of purely natural
circumstances. They were judicially laid upon Him as our representative, and
were therefore really penal
sufferings. The redemptive value of these sufferings results from the
following facts:
They were borne by a divine person who, only in virtue of His deity,
could bear the
penalty through to the end and thus obtain freedom from it. In view of
the infinite value
of the person who undertook to pay the price and to bear the curse, they
satisfied the justice of God essentially and intensively. They were strictly
moral sufferings, because
Christ took them upon Himself voluntarily, and was perfectly innocent and
holy in
bearing them. The passive obedience of Christ stands out prominently in
such passages
as the
following: <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53.6" parsed="|Isa|53|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 53:6">Isa. 53:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.25" parsed="|Rom|4|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:25">Rom. 4:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.24" parsed="|1Pet|2|24|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:24">I Pet. 2:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.5" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.18" parsed="|1Pet|3|18|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:18">3:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.2" parsed="|1John|2|2|0|0" passage="I John 2:2">I John 2:2</scripRef>, while His
active
obedience is
taught in such passages at <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.15" parsed="|Matt|3|15|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:15">Matt. 3:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.17" parsed="|Matt|5|17|0|0" passage="Matt 5:17">5:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.18" parsed="|Matt|5|18|0|0" passage="Matt 5:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.10" osisRef="Bible:John.15.10" parsed="|John|15|10|0|0" passage="John 15:10">John 15:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.11" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.12" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.13" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.7-Heb.10.9" parsed="|Heb|10|7|10|9" passage="Heb. 10:7-9">Heb. 10:7-9</scripRef>, in connection with the passages which teach us that Christ is
our righteousness,
<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.4" parsed="|Rom|10|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:4">Rom. 10:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.15" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.21" parsed="|2Cor|5|21|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:21">II Cor. 5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.16" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.9" parsed="|Phil|3|9|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:9">Phil. 3:9</scripRef>; and that He secured for us eternal
life, the adoption of
sons, and an
eternal inheritance, <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.17" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:13">Gal. 3:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.18" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.14" parsed="|Gal|3|14|0|0" passage="Gal 3:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.19" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal 4:4">4:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.20" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.21" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.3-Eph.1.12" parsed="|Eph|1|3|1|12" passage="Eph. 1:3-12">Eph. 1:3-12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p25.22" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.25-Eph.5.27" parsed="|Eph|5|25|5|27" passage="Eph 5:25-27">5:25-27</scripRef>. Arminians are willing to admit that Christ, by His passive obedience merited for us
the forgiveness of
sins, but refuse to grant that He also merited for us positive
acceptance with God, the adoption of children, and everlasting life.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.iv-p25.23">B. OBJECTIONS TO THE SATISFACTION OR PENAL SUBSTITUTIONARY DOCTRINE OF THE ATONEMENT.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.iv-p26" shownumber="no">There are many circles in which this doctrine of the
atonement is not popular. There
always has been opposition to it, and in our day the opposition is
particularly strong.
The main objections are the following:
</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p27" shownumber="no">1. SUCH AN ATONEMENT WAS ENTIRELY UNNECESSARY. Some hold that such an
atonement was entirely unnecessary, either because sin is not guilt and
therefore does not call for an atonement, or because there can be no obstacle
to the free forgiveness of
sin in God, who is our heavenly Father and is essentially a God of love.
If a man can,
and often does, forgive the penitent without demanding and receiving
satisfaction, God,
our perfect exemplar, surely can and will do this. This is the common
objection of all
those who advocate a purely subjective theory of the atonement. It may
be answered,
however, that the Bible certainly teaches us to regard sin as guilt; and
because it is guilt,
it makes man subject to the wrath of God and renders him liable to divine
punishment.
Moreover, the idea of a universal Fatherhood of God, in virtue of which
He loves all
men with a redemptive love, is entirely foreign to Scripture. And if God
is a Father, He
is also a Judge; if He is a God of love, He is also a God of justice and
holiness. There is
no one attribute in God which dominates and determines the expression of
all the other
divine perfections. And, finally, it should not be forgotten that what
man can do as a
private individual, he is not always able to do when acting in the
capacity of a judge.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p28" shownumber="no">2. SUCH AN ATONEMENT WOULD DEROGATE FROM THE CHARACTER OF GOD. Closely
connected with the preceding objection is that which holds that such an
atonement
would derogate from the character of God: from His justice, because He
punishes the
innocent for the guilty; from His love, because He acts as a stern,
severe, and relentless
being, who demands blood to appease His wrath; and from His pardoning
grace, since
He demands payment before He can or will forgive. But Christ<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p28.1">
voluntarily</span>
took the place
of sinners, so that this substitution involved no injustice on the part
of God. If God had
been actuated by strict justice only, and not by compassionate love and
mercy as well,
He would have left the sinner to perish in His sin. Moreover, it is
entirely incorrect to
say that, according to the satisfaction doctrine of the atonement, the
love and the
pardoning grace of God could not flow forth until satisfaction was
rendered, because
God Himself provided the ransom, and by giving His Son already gave evidence
of His infinite love and pardoning grace. His love precedes even the repentance
of sinners and
calls this into
action.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p29" shownumber="no">3. SUCH AN ATONEMENT ASSUMES AN IMPOSSIBLE TRANSFER OF WRATH. It is pointed out
that this doctrine of the atonement holds that God transferred His wrath
against the
sinner to the Mediator, which is unthinkable; and that He also
transferred the
punishment of the sinner to Christ, which is manifestly illegal. In
answer to this it may
be said, however, that the wrath of God does not partake of the nature
of personal
vindictiveness, such as we witness among men, and which they would find
it hard to
transfer from the object of their hatred to a perfectly innocent person.
It is God's holy
displeasure against sin, a displeasure to which the sinner is also
exposed as long as the
guilt of sin is not removed. It is also quite natural that, when the
guilt of sin as liability
to punishment was transferred to Jesus Christ, the wrath of God against
sin was
similarly transferred. Moreover, it cannot be said that the transfer of
the punishment to
Christ was manifestly illegal, because, as a matter of fact, He
identified Himself with
His people. He made satisfaction as the responsible Head of a community
for those who
in union with Him constituted one legal corporate body. This responsible
union was
constituted, says Hodge, (a) by His own voluntary assumption of the
legal
responsibilities of His people, (b) by the recognition of His
sponsorship by God, and (c)
by His assumption of our nature.</p>

<p id="v.iii.iv-p30" shownumber="no">4. SUCH AN ATONEMENT IS NOT TAUGHT IN THE GOSPELS. Some are of the opinion that
the Bible teaches no vicarious atonement or, if the Bible does, the
Gospels certainly do
not. And after all, it is what Jesus taught, and not what Paul said,
that counts. We need
not enter upon a lengthy discussion of this matter, since we have
already shown that
there is abundant proof for a vicarious atonement in Scripture. It is
true that it does not
stand out so clearly in the teachings of the Gospels as in those of the
Epistles, but this is
due to the fact (to express it in the words of Crawford) "that the
purpose of our Lord's
personal ministry in His life and death were not so much the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p30.1">
full preaching</span>
of the
atonement, as the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p30.2">
full accomplishment</span>
of the
atonement in order to the preaching of it."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.iv-p30.3" n="48" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.iv-p30.4">The Atonement,</span> p. 385</note>
Yet even the
Gospels contain sufficient evidence for it, <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p30.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.28" parsed="|Matt|20|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 20:28">Matt. 20:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p30.6" osisRef="Bible:John.1.29" parsed="|John|1|29|0|0" passage="John 1:29">John 1:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p30.7" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p30.8" osisRef="Bible:John.10.11" parsed="|John|10|11|0|0" passage="John 10:11">10:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p30.9" osisRef="Bible:John.15.13" parsed="|John|15|13|0|0" passage="John 15:13">15:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p30.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.27" parsed="|Matt|26|27|0|0" passage="Matt. 26:27">Matt. 26:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.iv-p30.11" osisRef="Bible:John.6.51" parsed="|John|6|51|0|0" passage="John 6:51">John 6:51</scripRef>.</p>
<p id="v.iii.iv-p31" shownumber="no">5. SUCH A DOCTRINE IS IMMORAL AND INJURIOUS. It is also claimed that this view of
the
atonement is immoral and injurious in its practical tendency. It is said
to undermine the
authority of the moral law, and to weaken, if not destroy, the force of
our obligations
and inducements to personal holiness. This objection was already made to
the doctrine
of free grace in the days of Paul. The charge is not true, however, for
this theory more
than any other upholds the majesty of the law, and in no way minimizes
the obligation of the redeemed sinner to render full obedience to the law. On the
contrary, it offers
several incentives to personal holiness, by emphasizing the exceeding
sinfulness of sin,
by displaying the unspeakable love of God and of Jesus Christ, and by
the assurance of
divine aid in the struggle of life, and of the acceptance of our
imperfect services in
Christ. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.iii.v" next="v.iii.vi" prev="v.iii.iv" title="V. Divergent Theories of the Atonement">
<h2 id="v.iii.v-p0.1">V. Divergent Theories of the Atonement</h2>
<p id="v.iii.v-p1" shownumber="no">Since the atonement is clearly something objective,
something that has a Godward
direction, strictly speaking only those theories can come into
consideration here that
represent the work of Christ as intended primarily to ward off the wrath
of God and
divine punishment from sinners rather than to change the sinner's
attitude to God from
one of hostility to one of friendship. Theories that are entirely
subjective and conceive of the work of Christ exclusively as bearing on the
sinner's moral condition might, in strict
logic, be left out of consideration altogether. They might conceivably
be considered as
theories of reconciliation, but can hardly be regarded as theories of
atonement. Miley
argues that there really can be no more than two theories of atonement.
He points out
that the atonement, as an objective ground for the forgiveness of sins,
must answer to a necessity which will naturally determine its nature. This
necessity must lie, either in the
requirement of an absolute justice which must punish sin, or in the
rectoral office of
justice as an obligation to conserve the interests of moral government.
In the first case
one arrives at the satisfaction theory; in the second, at the
governmental theory, which is
preferred by Miley and finds great favor with the Methodists in general.
Alfred Cave ascribes an objective character also to the theory of the early
Arminians, in which the
death of Christ is regarded as a substitute for the penalty imposed on
sinners; and to the
theory of McLeod Campbell, which finds the real significance of the work
of Christ in
His vicarious repentance. And it is undoubtedly true that both of these
do contain an
objective element. But in addition to these there are several purely
subjective theories.
Though these are not, strictly speaking, theories of atonement, yet they
call for
consideration, since they are considered as such in many circles. The
following are the
most important theories:</p>
<h4 id="v.iii.v-p1.1">A. THEORIES OF THE EARLY CHURCH.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.v-p2" shownumber="no">There were two theories in the early Church that call for brief mention.</p>
<p id="v.iii.v-p3" shownumber="no">1. THE RANSOM TO SATAN THEORY. This is based on the singular notion that the
death of Christ constituted a ransom paid to Satan, in order to cancel
the just claims
which the latter had on man. Origen, one of the chief advocates of this
theory, held that
Satan was deceived in the bargain, since the outcome proved that he
could not stand in
the presence of the holy Christ, and was not able to retain his hold on
Him. This theory
found favor with several of the early Church Fathers, though they did not
always state
it in exactly the same form. It proved to be rather tenacious, for the
echo of it was still
heard in the days of Anselm. Yet it was found to be so incongruous that
it gradually
disappeared for lack of intelligent support. Mackintosh speaks of this
theory as the
<span class="ital" id="v.iii.v-p3.1">exoteric</span>
theory of the early Church. </p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p4" shownumber="no">2. THE RECAPITULATION THEORY. Irenæus, who also expresses the idea that the death
of Christ satisfied the justice of God and thus liberated man,
nevertheless gave great prominence to the recapitulation theory, that is, to
the idea, as Orr expresses it, "that
Christ recapitulates in Himself all the stages of human life, including
those which
belong to our state as sinners." By His incarnation and human life
He reverses the
course on which Adam by his sin started humanity and thus becomes a new
leaven in
the life of mankind. He communicates immortality to those who are united
to Him by
faith and effects an ethical transformation in their lives, and by His
obedience
compensates for the disobedience of Adam. This, according to Mackintosh,
was the
<span class="ital" id="v.iii.v-p4.1">
esoteric</span>
theory of the early Church. </p>

<h4 id="v.iii.v-p4.2">B. THE SATISFACTION THEORY OF ANSELM (COMMERCIAL THEORY).</h4>
<p id="v.iii.v-p5" shownumber="no">The theory of Anselm is sometimes identified with that of
the Reformers, which is
also known as the satisfaction theory, but the two are not identical.
Some seek to
prejudice others against it by calling it "the commercial
theory." Anselm stressed the
absolute necessity of the atonement by grounding it in the very nature
of God.
According to him sin consists in the creature's withholding from God the
honor which
is His due. By the sin of man God was robbed of His honor, and it was
necessary that
this should be vindicated. This could be done in either of two ways: by
punishment or
by satisfaction. The mercy of God prompted Him to seek it in the way of
satisfaction,
and more particularly through the gift of His Son, which was the only
way, since an
infinite satisfaction was required. Christ rendered obedience to the
law, but since this
was nothing more than His duty as man, it did not constitute any merit on
His part. In
addition to that, however, He also suffered and died in the performance
of His duty; and since He as a sinless being was under no obligation to suffer
and to die, He thus
brought infinite glory to God. This was a work of supererogation on the
part of Christ,
which merited, and also brought, a reward; but since Christ as the Son
of God needed
nothing for Himself, the reward was passed on to sinners in the form of
the forgiveness
of sins and of future blessedness for all those who live according to
the commandments
of the gospel. Anselm was the first to work out a rather complete
doctrine of the atonement, and in many respects his theory points in the right
direction. However, it is
open to several points of criticism.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p6" shownumber="no">1. It is not consistent in its representation of the
necessity of the atonement. It
ostensibly does not ground this necessity in the justice of God which
cannot brook sin,
but in the honor of God which calls for amends or reparation. He really
starts out with
the principle of "private law" or custom, according to which
an injured party may
demand whatever satisfaction he sees fit; and yet argues for the
necessity of the
atonement in a way which only holds on the standpoint of public law.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p7" shownumber="no">2. This theory really has no place for the idea that
Christ by suffering endured the
<span class="ital" id="v.iii.v-p7.1">penalty</span>
of sin, and that His suffering was strictly vicarious. The death of
Christ is merely
a tribute offered voluntarily to the honor of the Father. It constitutes
a supererogatory
merit, compensating for the demerits of others; and this is really the
Roman Catholic
doctrine of penance applied to the work of Christ.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p8" shownumber="no">3. The scheme is also one-sided and therefore
insufficient in that it bases redemption
exclusively on the death of Christ, conceived as a material contribution
to the honor of God, and excludes the active obedience of Christ as a
contributing factor to His atoning
work. The whole emphasis is on the death of Christ, and no justice is
done to the
redemptive
significance of His life. </p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p9" shownumber="no">4. In Anselm's representation there is merely an external
transfer of the merits of
Christ to man. It contains no indication of the way in which the work of
Christ for man is communicated to man. There is no hint of the mystical union
of Christ and believers,
nor of faith as accepting the righteousness of Christ. Since the whole
transaction
appears to be rather commercial, the theory is often called the
commercial theory.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.v-p9.1">C. THE MORAL INFLUENCE THEORY.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.v-p10" shownumber="no">This theory was first advocated by Abelard in opposition
to Anselm, and since his
day found many ardent supporters. The fundamental idea is always the
same, though it
has assumed different forms at the hands of such men as Young, Maurice,
Bushnell,
Stevens, David Smith, and many others. The fundamental idea is that
there is no
principle of the divine nature which necessarily calls for satisfaction
on the part of the
sinner; and that the death of Christ should not be regarded as an
expiation for sin. It
was merely a manifestation of the love of God, suffering in and with His
sinful
creatures, and taking upon Himself their woes and griefs. This suffering
did not serve to
satisfy the divine justice, but to reveal the divine love, so as to
soften human hearts and
to lead them to repentance. It assures sinners that there is no obstacle
on the part of God
which would prevent Him from pardoning their sins. Not only can He do
this without
receiving satisfaction, but He is even eager to do it. The only
requirement is that sinners
come to Him with penitent hearts. The following objections may be urged
against this
theory: </p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p11" shownumber="no">1. This theory is contrary to the plain teachings of
Scripture, which represents the
atoning work of Christ as necessary, not primarily to reveal the love of
God, but to
satisfy His justice; regards the sufferings and death of Christ as
propitiatory and penal;
and teaches that the sinner is not susceptible to the moral influence
of the sacrificial
work of Christ until the righteousness of Christ has become his own by
faith.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p12" shownumber="no">2. While it is undoubtedly true that the cross of Christ
was the supreme
manifestation of the love of God, it can be regarded as such only from
the point of view
of the penal substitutionary doctrine of the atonement, according to
which the
sufferings and death of Christ were absolutely necessary for the
salvation of sinners.
But according to the moral influence theory they merely served the
purpose of making
an impression on man, which God might have done in many other ways; and
therefore
were not necessary. And if they were not necessary, they were indeed a
cruel
manifestation of God's love, — a contradiction in terms. The sufferings
and death of
Christ were a manifestation of God's love only, if it was the only way
to save sinners.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p13" shownumber="no">3. This theory robs the atonement of its objective
character, and thereby ceases to be
a real theory of the atonement. It is at most only a one-sided theory of
reconciliation. In
fact, it is not even that, for subjective reconciliation is only
possible on the basis of an
objective
reconciliation. It really confounds God's method of saving man with man's
experience of being saved, by making the atonement itself to consist in
its effects in the
life of the believer, in union with Christ.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p14" shownumber="no">4. Finally, this theory fails on its own principle. It is
undoubtedly true that necessary
suffering, that is, suffering for some saving purpose which could not be
realized in any
other way, is apt to make a deep impression. But the effect of a
voluntary suffering,
which is entirely unnecessary and uncalled for, is quite different. As a
matter of fact, it is
disapproved by the Christian conscience.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.v-p14.1">D. THE EXAMPLE THEORY.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.v-p15" shownumber="no">This theory was advocated by the Socinians in the
sixteenth century, in opposition
to the doctrine of the Reformers, that Christ vicariously atoned for the
sin of mankind.
Its fundamental principle is, that there is no retributive justice in
God which requires
absolutely and inexorably that sin be punished. His justice does not
prevent Him from
pardoning whom He will without demanding any satisfaction. The death of
Christ did
not atone for sin, neither did it move God to pardon sin. Christ saves
men by revealing
to them the way of faith and obedience as the way of eternal life, by
giving them an
example of true obedience both in His life and in His death, and by
inspiring them to
lead a similar life. This view really establishes no direct connection
between the death of
Christ and the salvation of sinners. Yet it holds that the death of
Christ may be said to
expiate the sins of man in view of the fact that Christ, as a reward for
His obedience
unto death, received power to bestow eternal life on believers. This
theory is
objectionable for various reasons.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p16" shownumber="no">1. It is really a revival and concoction of several
ancient heresies: of Pelagianism,
with its denial of human depravity and its assertion of the natural
ability of man to save
himself; of the adoptionist doctrine, with its belief that the man
Christ was adopted to
be the Messianic Son of God on account of His obedience; of the Scotist
doctrine of an
arbitrary will in God; and of the emphasis of some of the early Church
Fathers on the
saving efficacy of the example of Christ. Consequently it is open to all
the objections that militate against these views.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p17" shownumber="no">2. It is entirely un-Scriptural in its conception of
Christ as a mere man of exceptional
qualities; in its view of sin, in which the character of sin as guilt,
so strongly emphasized
by the Word of God, is entirely ignored; in its one-sided emphasis on
the redemptive
significance of the life of Christ; and in its representation of the
death of Christ as a
martyr's death, while failing to account for the unmartyrlike anguish of
Christ on the cross.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p18" shownumber="no">3. It fails to account for the salvation of those who
lived before the incarnation and
of infants. If the life and sufferings of Christ merely save men by their
exemplary
character, the question naturally arises, how they who lived prior to
the coming of
Christ, and they who die in infancy can derive any benefit from them.
Yet there is clear
Scriptural evidence for the fact that the work of Christ was also retrospective
in its
efficacy, and that little children also share in the benefits of His
atoning death.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p19" shownumber="no">4. Moreover, while it is perfectly true that Christ is
also represented as an example in
Scripture, He is nowhere represented as an example after which
unbelieving sinners
must pattern, and which will save them if they do; and yet this is the
necessary
assumption of the theory under consideration. The example of Christ is
one which only
His people can follow, and to which even they can make but a slight
approach. He is
our Redeemer before He can be our example. </p>

<h4 id="v.iii.v-p19.1">E. THE GOVERNMENTAL THEORY.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.v-p20" shownumber="no">The governmental theory was intended to be a mean between
the doctrine of the
atonement, as taught by the Reformers, and the Socinian view. It denies
that the justice
of God necessarily demands that all the requirements of the law be met.
The law is
merely the product of God's will, and He can alter or even abrogate it,
just as He
pleases. While in strict justice the sinner deserved eternal death, that
sentence is not strictly executed, for believers are set free. For them the
penalty is set aside, and that
without strict satisfaction. Christ did indeed render a certain
satisfaction, but this was
only a nominal equivalent of the penalty due to man; something which God
was
pleased to accept as such. If the question is asked, why God did not
remit the penalty
outright, as He might have done, the answer is that He had to reveal in
some way the
inviolable nature of the law and His holy displeasure
against sin, in order that He, the
moral Ruler of the universe, might be able to maintain His moral
government. This
theory, first advocated by Grotius, was adopted by Wardlaw and several
New England
theologians, and is also supported in such recent works as those of
Dale, A. Cave, Miley,
Creighton, and others. It is open to the following objections:</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p21" shownumber="no">1. It clearly rests upon certain false principles.
According to it the law is not an
expression of the essential nature of God, but only of His arbitrary
will, and is therefore
subject to change; and the aim of the so-called penalty is not to
satisfy justice, but only
to deter men from future offenses against the law.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p22" shownumber="no">2. While it may be said to contain a true element,
namely, that the penalty inflicted
on Christ is also instrumental in securing the interests of the divine
government, it
makes the mistake of substituting for the main purpose of the atonement
one which
can, in the light of Scripture, only be regarded as a subordinate
purpose.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p23" shownumber="no">3. It gives an unworthy representation of God. He originally threatens man, in order
to deter him from transgression, and does not execute the threatened
sentence, but substitutes something else for it in the punishment inflicted
on Christ. And now He
again threatens those who do not accept Christ. But how is it possible
to have any
assurance that He will actually carry out His threat?</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p24" shownumber="no">4. It is also contrary to Scripture, which certainly
represents the atonement of Christ
as a necessary revelation of the righteousness of God, as an execution
of the penalty of
the law, as a sacrifice by which God is reconciled to the sinner, and as
the meritorious
cause of the salvation of sinners. </p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p25" shownumber="no">5. Like the moral influence and the example theories, it also
fails to explain how the
Old Testament saints were saved. If the punishment inflicted on
Christ was merely for
the purpose of deterring men from sin, it had no retroactive
significance. How then
were people saved under the old dispensation; and how was the moral
government of
God maintained at that time?</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p26" shownumber="no">6. Finally, this theory, too, fails on its own principle.
A real execution of the penalty
might make a profound impression on the sinner, and might act as a real
deterrent, if
man's sinning or not sinning were, even in his natural state, merely
contingent on the
human will, which it is not; but such an impression would hardly be made
by a mere
sham exhibition of justice, designed to show God's high regard for the
law.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.v-p26.1"> F. THE MYSTICAL THEORY.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.v-p27" shownumber="no">The mystical theory has this in common with the moral influence
theory, that it conceives of the atonement exclusively as exercising influence
on man and bringing
about a change in him. At the same time it differs from the moral influence
theory in
that it conceives of the change wrought in man, not primarily as an
ethical change in the
conscious life of man, but as a deeper change in the subconscious life
which is brought about in a mystical way. The basic principle of this theory is
that, in the incarnation, the
divine life entered into the life of humanity, in order to lift it to
the plane of the divine.
Christ possessed human nature with its inborn corruption and
predisposition to moral
evil; but through the influence of the Holy Spirit He was kept
from manifesting this
corruption in actual sin, gradually purified human nature, and in His
death completely extirpated this original depravity and reunited that nature to
God. He entered the life of
mankind as a transforming leaven, and the resulting transformation
constitutes His
redemption. This is in effect, though with differences of detail, the
theory of
Schleiermacher, Edward Irving, Menken, and Stier. Even Kohlbruegge
seemed inclined
to accept it in a measure. It is burdened, however, with the following
difficulties:</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p28" shownumber="no">1. It takes no account of the guilt of man. According to
Scripture the guilt of man
must be removed, in order that he may be purified of his pollution; but
the mystical
theory, disregarding the guilt of sin, concerns itself only with the
expulsion of the
pollution of sin. It knows of no justification, and conceives of
salvation as consisting in
subjective
sanctification.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p29" shownumber="no">2. It rests upon false principles, where it finds in the
natural order of the universe an
exhaustive expression of the will and nature of God, regards sin
exclusively as a power
of moral evil in the world, which involves no guilt and deserves no
punishment, and
looks upon punishment as a mere reaction of the law of the universe
against the
transgressor, and not at all as a revelation of the personal wrath of
God against sin.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p30" shownumber="no">3. It contradicts Scripture where it makes Christ share
in the pollution of sin and
hereditary depravity, and deduces the necessity of His death from the
sinfulness of His
own nature (not all do this). By doing this, it makes it impossible to
regard Him as the
sinless Saviour who, just because of His sinlessness, could take the
place of sinners and
pay the penalty for them.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p31" shownumber="no">4. It has no answer to the question, how those who lived
before the incarnation can
share in the redemption of Jesus Christ. If Christ in some realistic way
drove out the
pollution of sin during the time of His sojourn on earth, and now
continues to drive it
out; and if the salvation of man depends on this subjective process, how
then could the
Old Testament saints share in this salvation?</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.v-p31.1">G. THE THEORY OF VICARIOUS REPENTANCE.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.v-p32" shownumber="no">This theory of McLeod Cambell is also called the theory
of sympathy and
identification. It proceeds on the gratuitous assumption that a perfect
repentance would
have availed as a sufficient atonement for sin, if man had only been
capable of an
adequate repentance, which he was not. Now Christ offered to God, in
behalf of
humanity, the requisite repentance, and by so doing fulfilled the
conditions of
forgiveness. His work really consisted in the vicarious confession of
sin in behalf of
man. The question naturally arises, how the death of Christ is related
to this vicarious
repentance and confession. And the answer is that Christ, by His
suffering and death,
entered sympathetically into the Father's condemnation of sin, brought
out the
heinousness of sin and condemned sin; and this was viewed by the Father
as a perfect
confession of our sins. This condemnation of sin is also calculated to
produce in man
that holiness which God demands of sinful humanity. This theory labors
under the
following
difficulties. </p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p33" shownumber="no">1. It can readily be understood that Christ as man could
enter sympathetically into
our afflictions and temptations, and into the feeling of our
infirmities; but it is not at all
clear how the incarnation enabled Him to enter into a fellow-feeling
with us<span class="ital" id="v.iii.v-p33.1">
with respect to our sins.</span>
He was sinless, a total stranger to sin as a corrupting power in His
life, and
therefore could hardly identify Himself in a moral sense with sinners.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p34" shownumber="no">2. While it may be admitted that, according to Scripture,
Christ did sympathize with
the sinners whom He came to save, this sympathy is certainly not
represented as being
the whole or even the most important part of His redemptive work. All the
emphasis is
on the fact that He vicariously endured the penalties that were due to
sinners and met
the requirements of the law in a life of obedience. Yet this theory,
while recognizing the
retributive justice of God and the demerit of sin, denies the necessity
and possibility of
penal substitution, and asserts that the work of Christ in behalf of
sinners consisted, not
in His suffering for them, but in the vicarious confession of their sins.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p35" shownumber="no">3. The theory proceeds on erroneous principles, namely,
that sin does not necessarily
make men liable to punishment; that the justice and holiness of God did
not, as a matter
of course, call for an objective atonement; and that the only necessity
for redemptive
help followed from the inability of man to repent in true fashion.</p>

<p id="v.iii.v-p36" shownumber="no">4. Finally, a vicarious confession, such as this theory
implies, is really a contradiction
in terms. Confession is something altogether subjective, and to be valid
must be
personal. It is the outcome of a personal consciousness of sin, and is
also personal in its
effects. It is hard to see how such a vicarious repentance can release
others from the
obligation to repent. Moreover, this theory has no Scriptural
foundation.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.iii.vi" next="v.iii.vii" prev="v.iii.v" title="VI.The Purpose and the Extent of the Atonement">
<h2 id="v.iii.vi-p0.1">VI. The Purpose and the Extent of the Atonement</h2>
<h4 id="v.iii.vi-p0.2">A. THE PURPOSE OF THE ATONEMENT.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.vi-p1" shownumber="no">The atonement was destined to affect the relation of God
to the sinner, the state and condition of Christ as the Mediatorial author of
salvation, and the state and condition of
the sinner.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p2" shownumber="no">1. ITS EFFECT WITH REFERENCE TO GOD. It should be emphasized first of all that the
atonement effected no change in the inner being of God, which is
unchangeable. The
only change that was brought about was a change in the relation of God
to the objects of
His atoning love. He was reconciled to those who were the objects of His
judicial wrath.
This means that His wrath was warded off by the sacrificial covering of
their sin. The
atonement should not be represented as the moving cause of the love of
God, for it was
already an expression of His love. It is often represented as if, on the
satisfaction theory,
God could not love the sinner until His just demands were met. But then
the fact is
overlooked that Christ is already the gift of God's love, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef>. At
the same time it is
perfectly true that the atonement did remove obstacles to the
manifestation of God's
redeeming love in the pardoning of sinners and in their sanctification,
by satisfying the
justice of God and the demands of the law, both in its federal and penal
aspects.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p3" shownumber="no">2. ITS EFFECT WITH RESPECT TO CHRIST. The atonement secured a manifold reward for
Christ as Mediator. He was constituted the life-giving Spirit, the
inexhaustible source of
all the blessings of salvation for sinners. He received:</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p4" shownumber="no">a. All that belonged to His glorification, including His
present Messianic glory.
Hence He prayed, when in His high priestly prayer He by anticipation
already thought
of His work as completed, "And now, O Father, glorify thou me with
thine own self
with the glory which I had with thee before the world was," <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:John.17.5" parsed="|John|17|5|0|0" passage="John 17:5">John 17:5</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p5" shownumber="no">b. The fulness of those gifts and graces which He imparts
to His people. Thus we
read in <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.68.18" parsed="|Ps|68|18|0|0" passage="Ps. 68:18">Ps. 68:18</scripRef>: "Thou hast ascended on high, thou hast led
captivity captive; thou
hast received gifts for men; yea for the rebellious also, that the Lord
might dwell among  them."
Paul applies this to Christ in <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.8" parsed="|Eph|4|8|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:8">Eph. 4:8</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p6" shownumber="no">c. The gift of the Holy Spirit for the formation of His mystical body
and the
subjective application of the fruits of His atoning work. This is
evident from the words
of Peter on the day of Pentecost: "Therefore being by the right
hand of God exalted, and
having received of the Father the promise of the Holy Spirit, He hath
shed forth this
which ye now see
and hear," <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.33" parsed="|Acts|2|33|0|0" passage="Acts 2:33">Acts 2:33</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p7" shownumber="no">d. The ends of the earth for His possession and the world
for His dominion. This
was one of the promises made unto Him: "Ask of me, and I shall give
thee the heathen
for thine inheritance, and the uttermost parts of the earth for thy
possession," <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.8" parsed="|Ps|2|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 2:8">Ps. 2:8</scripRef>.
That this promise was fulfilled is quite evident from <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.6-Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|6|2|9" passage="Heb. 2:6-9">Heb. 2:6-9</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p8" shownumber="no">3. ITS EFFECT AS FAR AS THE SINNER IS CONCERNED.</p>
<p id="v.iii.vi-p9" shownumber="no">a. The atonement not only made salvation possible for the sinner, but
actually
secured it. On this point Calvinists join issue with the Roman
Catholics, the Lutherans,
the Arminians, and all those who teach a universal atonement. These hold
that the
atonement of Christ merely made salvation possible, and not certain, for
those for
whom it was offered. But the Calvinist teaches that the atonement
meritoriously
secured the application of the work of redemption to those for whom it
was intended
and thus rendered their complete salvation certain.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p10" shownumber="no">b. It secured for those for whom it was made: (1) A
proper judicial standing through
justification. This includes the forgiveness of sin, the adoption of
children, and the right
to an eternal inheritance. (2) The mystical union of believers with
Christ through
regeneration and sanctification. This comprises the gradual
mortification of the old
man, and the gradual putting on of the new man created in Christ Jesus.
(3) Their final
bliss in communion with God through Jesus Christ, in subjective
glorification, and in
the enjoyment of eternal life in a new and perfect creation. All this
clearly obviates the
objection so often raised against the penal substitutionary doctrine of
the atonement,
namely, that it has no ethical bearings and offers no basis for the
ethical life of the
redeemed. It may even be said that it is the only doctrine of the
atonement that offers a
secure basis for a real ethical life, a life that is rooted in the heart
through the operation
of the Holy Spirit. Justification leads right on to sanctification.
</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.vi-p10.1">B. THE EXTENT OF THE ATONEMENT.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.vi-p11" shownumber="no">1. THE EXACT POINT AT ISSUE. The
question with which we are concerned at this point
is not (a) whether the satisfaction rendered by Christ was in itself
sufficient for the
salvation of all men, since this is admitted by all; (b) whether the
saving benefits are
actually applied to every man, for the great majority of those who teach
a universal
atonement do not believe that all are actually saved; (c) whether the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p11.1">
bona fide</span>
offer of
salvation is made to all that hear the gospel, on the condition of
repentance and faith,
since the Reformed Churches do not call this in question; nor (d)
whether any of the
fruits of the death of Christ accrue to the benefit of the non-elect in
virtue of their close
association with the people of God, since this is explicitly taught by
many Reformed scholars. On the other hand, the question does relate to the
design of the atonement.
Did the Father in sending Christ, and did Christ in coming into the
world, to make
atonement for
sin,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p11.2">
do this with the design or for the
purpose of saving only the elect or all men? </span>
That is the question, and that only is the question.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p12" shownumber="no">2. STATEMENT OF THE REFORMED POSITION.
The Reformed position is that Christ died
for the purpose of actually and certainly saving the elect, and the
elect only. This is
equivalent to saying that He died for the purpose of saving only those to
whom He
actually applies the benefits of His redemptive work. Various attempts
have been made
in circles that claimed to be Reformed to modify this position. The
Dutch Arminians
maintained that Christ died for the purpose of making salvation possible
for all men without exception, though they will not all be saved. Salvation is
offered to them on
lower terms than it was to Adam, namely on condition of faith and
evangelical
obedience, a condition which they can meet in virtue of God's gift of
common or
sufficient grace to all men. The Calvinistic Universalists sought to
mediate between the
Reformed position and that of the Arminians. They distinguished a
twofold decree of
God: (a) A decree to send Christ into the world to save all men by His
atoning death on
condition of faith in Him. However, because God saw that this purpose
would fail,
since no one would accept Christ by faith, He followed up the first by a
second decree.
(b) A decree to give a certain elect number special grace, in order to
engender faith in
their hearts and to secure their salvation. This dubious and very
unsatisfactory view
was held by the school of Saumur (Cameron, Amyraldus, and Testardus),
and also by
such English scholars as Wardlaw, John Brown, and James Richards. Some
New
England theologians, such as Emmons, Taylor, Park, and Beman held a
somewhat
similar view. The Marrow-men of Scotland were perfectly orthodox in
maintaining that
Christ died for the purpose of saving only the elect, though some of
them used
expressions which also pointed to a more general reference of the
atonement. They said
that Christ did not die for all men, but that He is dead, that is,
available, for all. God's
giving love, which is universal, led Him to make a deed of gift and
grant to all men; and
this is the foundation for the universal offer of salvation. His
electing love, however,
which is special, results in the salvation of the elect only. The most
important of the Marrowmen were Hog, Boston, and the two Erskines.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p13" shownumber="no">3. PROOF FOR THE DOCTRINE OF A LIMITED ATONEMENT. The following proofs may be
given for the doctrine of particular atonement:
</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p14" shownumber="no">a. It may be laid down, first of all, as a general
principle, that the designs of God are
always surely efficacious and cannot be frustrated by the actions of
man. This applies
also to the purpose of saving men through the death of our Lord Jesus
Christ. If it had been His intention to save all men, this purpose could not
have been frustrated by the
unbelief of man. It is admitted on all hands that only a limited number
is saved. Consequently, they are the only ones whom God has determined to save.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p15" shownumber="no">b. Scripture repeatedly qualifies those for whom Christ
laid down His life in such a
way as to point to a very definite limitation. Those for whom He
suffered and died are
variously called
"His sheep," <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:John.10.11" parsed="|John|10|11|0|0" passage="John 10:11">John 10:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:John.10.15" parsed="|John|10|15|0|0" passage="John 10:15">15</scripRef>, "His Church," <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.28" parsed="|Acts|20|28|0|0" passage="Acts 20:28">Acts 20:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.25-Eph.5.27" parsed="|Eph|5|25|5|27" passage="Eph. 5:25-27">Eph. 5:25-27</scripRef>, "His people," <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.1.21" parsed="|Matt|1|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 1:21">Matt. 1:21</scripRef>, and "the elect," <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.32-Rom.8.35" parsed="|Rom|8|32|8|35" passage="Rom. 8:32-35">Rom. 8:32-35</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p16" shownumber="no">c. The sacrificial work of Christ and His intercessory
work are simply two different
aspects of His atoning work, and therefore the scope of the one can be
no wider than
that of the other. Now Christ very definitely limits His intercessory
work, when He
says: "I pray not for the world, but for those whom thou hast given
me." <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:John.17.9" parsed="|John|17|9|0|0" passage="John 17:9">John 17:9</scripRef>. Why
should He limit His intercessory prayer, if He had actually paid the
price for all?
d. It should also be noted that the doctrine that Christ
died for the purpose of saving
all men, logically leads to absolute universalism, that is, to the
doctrine that all men are
actually saved. It is impossible that they for whom Christ paid the
price, whose guilt He
removed, should be lost on account of that guilt. The Arminians cannot
stop at their
half-way station, but must go all the way.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p17" shownumber="no">e. If it be said, as some do say, that the atonement was
universal, but that the
application of it is particular; that He made salvation possible for
all, but actually saves
only a limited number, — it should be pointed out that there is an
inseparable
connection between the purchase and the actual bestowal of salvation.
The Bible clearly
teaches that the design and effect of the atoning work of Christ is not
merely to make
salvation possible, but to reconcile God and man, and to put men in
actual possession of
eternal salvation, a salvation which many fail to obtain, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.11" parsed="|Matt|18|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:11">Matt. 18:11</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.10" parsed="|Rom|5|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:10">Rom. 5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.21" parsed="|2Cor|5|21|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:21">II Cor. 5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.4" parsed="|Gal|1|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:4">Gal. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal 3:13">3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.7" parsed="|Eph|1|7|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:7">Eph. 1:7</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p18" shownumber="no">f. And if the assertion be made that the design of God
and of Christ was evidently
conditional, contingent on the faith and obedience of man, attention
should be called to
the fact that the Bible clearly teaches that Christ by His death
purchased faith,
repentance, and all the other effects of the work of the Holy Spirit,
for His people.
Consequently these are no conditions of which the fulfilment is simply
dependent on
the will of man. The atonement also secures the fulfilment of the
conditions that must be
met, in order to
obtain salvation, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.4" parsed="|Rom|2|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:4">Rom. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:13">Gal. 3:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.14" parsed="|Gal|3|14|0|0" passage="Gal 3:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.3" parsed="|Eph|1|3|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:3">Eph. 1:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph 1:4">4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8" parsed="|Eph|2|8|0|0" passage="Eph 2:8">2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.29" parsed="|Phil|1|29|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:29">Phil. 1:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p18.8" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.5" parsed="|2Tim|3|5|0|0" passage="II Tim. 3:5">II Tim. 3:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p18.9" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.6" parsed="|2Tim|3|6|0|0" passage="II Tim. 3:6">6</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p19" shownumber="no">4. OBJECTIONS TO THE DOCTRINE OF A LIMITED ATONEMENT. These may be classified as follows:</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p20" shownumber="no">a. There are passages which teach that Christ died for
the world, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:John.1.29" parsed="|John|1|29|0|0" passage="John 1:29">John 1:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:John.6.33" parsed="|John|6|33|0|0" passage="John 6:33">6:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:John.6.51" parsed="|John|6|51|0|0" passage="John 6:51">51</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.12" parsed="|Rom|11|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:12">Rom. 11:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.15" parsed="|Rom|11|15|0|0" passage="Rom 11:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.19" parsed="|2Cor|5|19|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:19">II Cor. 5:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.2" parsed="|1John|2|2|0|0" passage="I John 2:2">I John 2:2</scripRef>. The objection based on these passages
proceeds on the unwarranted assumption that the word "world"
as used in them means
"all the individuals that constitute the human race." If this
were not so, the objection
based on them would have no point. But it is perfectly evident from
Scripture that the
term "world" has a variety of meanings, as a mere reading of
the following passages
will prove
conclusively, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.1" parsed="|Luke|2|1|0|0" passage="Luke 2:1">Luke 2:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.10" osisRef="Bible:John.1.10" parsed="|John|1|10|0|0" passage="John 1:10">John 1:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.11.28" parsed="|Acts|11|28|0|0" passage="Acts 11:28">Acts 11:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.27" parsed="|Acts|19|27|0|0" passage="Acts 19:27">19:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.24.5" parsed="|Acts|24|5|0|0" passage="Acts 24:5">24:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.8" parsed="|Rom|1|8|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:8">Rom. 1:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.15" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.6" parsed="|Col|1|6|0|0" passage="Col. 1:6">Col. 1:6</scripRef>.
It
also appears that, when it is used of men, it does not always include
all men, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.16" osisRef="Bible:John.7.4" parsed="|John|7|4|0|0" passage="John 7:4">John 7:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.17" osisRef="Bible:John.12.19" parsed="|John|12|19|0|0" passage="John 12:19">12:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.18" osisRef="Bible:John.14.22" parsed="|John|14|22|0|0" passage="John 14:22">14:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.19" osisRef="Bible:John.18.20" parsed="|John|18|20|0|0" passage="John 18:20">18:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.12" parsed="|Rom|11|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:12">Rom. 11:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.21" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.15" parsed="|Rom|11|15|0|0" passage="Rom 11:15">15</scripRef>; in some of these passages it cannot possibly denote all
men. If it had that meaning in <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.22" osisRef="Bible:John.6.33" parsed="|John|6|33|0|0" passage="John 6:33">John 6:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.23" osisRef="Bible:John.6.51" parsed="|John|6|51|0|0" passage="John 6:51">51</scripRef>, it
would follow that Christ<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p20.24">
actually gives life to all men</span>, that is,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p20.25">
saves them all.</span>
This is more than the opponents themselves believe. In
<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.26" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.12" parsed="|Rom|11|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:12">Rom. 11:12</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.27" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.15" parsed="|Rom|11|15|0|0" passage="Rom 11:15">15</scripRef>
the word "world" cannot be all-inclusive, since the context clearly excludes Israel; and because on that supposition these passages too
would prove more
than is
intended, namely,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p20.28">
that the fruits of the atoning work
of Christ are actually applied to all.</span>
We do find in these passages, however, an indication of the fact that
the word
"world" is sometimes used to indicate that the Old Testament
particularism belongs to
the past, and made way for New Testament universalism. The blessings of
the gospel
were extended to
all nations, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.29" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.14" parsed="|Matt|24|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:14">Matt. 24:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.30" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">Mark 16:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.31" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.5" parsed="|Rom|1|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:5">Rom. 1:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.32" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.18" parsed="|Rom|10|18|0|0" passage="Rom 10:18">10:18</scripRef>. This is probably
the key to the
interpretation of the word "world" in such passages as <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.33" osisRef="Bible:John.1.29" parsed="|John|1|29|0|0" passage="John 1:29">John 1:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.34" osisRef="Bible:John.6.33" parsed="|John|6|33|0|0" passage="John 6:33">6:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.35" osisRef="Bible:John.6.51" parsed="|John|6|51|0|0" passage="John 6:51">51</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.36" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.19" parsed="|2Cor|5|19|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:19">II Cor. 5:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.37" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.2" parsed="|1John|2|2|0|0" passage="I John 2:2">I John 2:2</scripRef>. Dr. Shedd assumes that the word means "all nations" in such passages as
<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.38" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.13" parsed="|Matt|26|13|0|0" passage="Matt. 26:13">Matt. 26:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.39" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.40" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.21" parsed="|1Cor|1|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:21">I Cor. 1:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.41" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.19" parsed="|2Cor|5|19|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:19">II Cor. 5:19</scripRef>; and <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.42" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.2" parsed="|1John|2|2|0|0" passage="I John 2:2">I John 2:2</scripRef>; but holds
that
in other passages it denotes the world of believers, or the Church, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.43" osisRef="Bible:John.6.33" parsed="|John|6|33|0|0" passage="John 6:33">John
6:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.44" osisRef="Bible:John.6.51" parsed="|John|6|51|0|0" passage="John 6:51">51</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.45" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.13" parsed="|Rom|4|13|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:13">Rom. 4:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.46" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.12" parsed="|Rom|11|12|0|0" passage="Rom 11:12">11:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p20.47" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.15" parsed="|Rom|11|15|0|0" passage="Rom 11:15">15</scripRef>. Kuyper and Van Andel also assume that this is the
meaning of the word
in some passages.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p21" shownumber="no">b. Closely related to the passages to which we referred
in the preceding, are those in
which it is said
that Christ died for all men, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.18" parsed="|Rom|5|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:18">Rom. 5:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:22">I Cor. 15:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.14" parsed="|2Cor|5|14|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:14">II Cor. 5:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.4" parsed="|1Tim|2|4|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:4">I Tim. 2:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.6" parsed="|1Tim|2|6|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.11" parsed="|Titus|2|11|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:11">Tit. 2:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:9">Heb. 2:9</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:9. Naturally, each of these passages must be
considered
in the connection in which it is found. For instance, the context
clearly shows that the
"all"
or "all men" of <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.18" parsed="|Rom|5|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:18">Rom. 5:18</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:22">I Cor. 15:22</scripRef> includes only those who
are in Christ, as contrasted with all who are in Adam. If the word "all" in
these passages is not
interpreted in a limited sense, they would teach, not merely that Christ
made salvation
possible for all men, but that He actually saves all without exception.
Thus the
Arminian would again be forced into the camp of the absolute
Universalist, where he
does not want to be. A similar limitation must be applied in the
interpretation of <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.10" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.14" parsed="|2Cor|5|14|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:14">II Cor. 5:14</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.11" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:9">Heb. 2:9</scripRef>, cf. verse 10. Otherwise they would prove too much,
and therefore
prove nothing. In all these passages the "all" are simply all
those who are in Christ. In the case of <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.12" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.11" parsed="|Titus|2|11|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:11">Tit. 2:11</scripRef>, which speaks of the appearance of the grace of
God, "bringing
salvation to all
men," the context clearly shows that "all men" really means all
classes of men. If the "all" is not restricted, this passage too would
teach universal salvation. The
passages in <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.13" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.4-1Tim.2.6" parsed="|1Tim|2|4|2|6" passage="I Tim. 2:4-6">I Tim. 2:4-6</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p21.14" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.9" parsed="|Heb|2|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:9">Heb. 2:9</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:9 refer to the revealed
will of God that both
Jews and Gentiles should be saved, but imply nothing as to the universal
intent of the
atonement. Even Moses Stuart, who believes in universal atonement,
admits that in
these cases the word "all" cannot be taken in a universal
sense.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p22" shownumber="no">c. A third class of passages which seem to militate
against the idea of a limited
atonement consists of those which are said to imply the possibility that
those for whom
Christ died fail to obtain salvation. <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.14.15" parsed="|Rom|14|15|0|0" passage="Rom. 14:15">Rom. 14:15</scripRef> and the parallel
passage in <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.8.11" parsed="|1Cor|8|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 8:11">I Cor. 8:11</scripRef>
may be mentioned first of all. Some commentators are of the opinion that
these passages
do not refer to eternal destruction, but it is more likely that they do.
The apostle simply
wants to bring the uncharitable conduct of some of the stronger brethren
in the Church
into strong relief. They were likely to offend the weaker brethren, to
cause them to
stumble, to override their conscience, and thus to enter upon the
downward path, the
natural result of which, if continued, would be destruction. While
Christ paid the price
of His life to save such persons, they by their conduct tended to
destroy them. That this
destruction will not actually follow, is evident from <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.14.4" parsed="|Rom|14|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 14:4">Rom. 14:4</scripRef>; by the
grace of God they
will be upheld. We have here then, as Dr. Shedd expresses it, "a
supposition, for the
sake of argument, of something that does not and cannot happen,"
just as in <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.13.1-1Cor.13.3" parsed="|1Cor|13|1|13|3" passage="I Cor. 13:1-3">I Cor.
13:1-3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.8" parsed="|Gal|1|8|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:8">Gal. 1:8</scripRef>. Another, somewhat similar, passage is found in II Pet.
2:1, with which
<scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.29" parsed="|Heb|10|29|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:29">Heb. 10:29</scripRef> may also be classed. The most plausible explanation of these
passages is that
given by Smeaton, as the interpretation of Piscator and of the Dutch
annotations,
namely, "that these false teachers are described according to their
own profession and
the judgment of charity. They gave themselves out as redeemed men, and
were so
accounted in the judgment of the Church while they abode in her
communion."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.vi-p22.7" n="49" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p22.8">The Doctrine of the Atonement as Taught by the Apostles,</span> p. 447</note></p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p23" shownumber="no">d. Finally,
there is an objection derived from the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p23.1">
bona fide</span>
offer of salvation. We
believe that God "unfeignedly," that is, sincerely or in good
faith, calls all those who are
living under the gospel to believe, and offers them salvation in the way
of faith and
repentance. Now the Arminians maintain that such an offer of salvation
cannot be made
by those who believe that Christ died only for the elect. This objection
was already
raised at the time of the Synod of Dort, but its validity was not
granted. The following
remarks may be made in reply: (a) The offer of salvation in the way of
faith and
repentance does not pretend to be a revelation of the secret counsel of
God, more
specifically, of His design in giving Christ as an atonement for sin. It
is simply the
promise of salvation to all those who accept Christ by faith. (2) This
offer, in so far as it is universal, is always conditioned by faith and
conversion. Moreover, it is contingent
on a faith and repentance such as can only be wrought in the heart of
man by the
operation of the Holy Spirit. (3) The universal offer of salvation does
not consist in the
declaration that Christ made atonement for every man that hears the
gospel, and that
God really intends to save each one. It consists in (a) an exposition of
the atoning work of Christ as in itself sufficient for the redemption of all
men; (b) a description of the real
nature of the repentance and faith that are required in coming to
Christ; and (c) a
declaration that each one who comes to Christ with true repentance and
faith will
obtain the blessings of salvation. (4) It is not the duty of the preacher
to harmonize the
secret counsel of God respecting the redemption of sinners with His
declarative will as
expressed in the universal offer of salvation. He is simply an official
ambassador, whose
duty it is to carry out the will of the Lord in preaching the gospel to
all men
indiscriminately.
(5) Dr. Shedd says: "The universal offer of the benefits of Christ's
atonement springs out of God's will of complacency, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.33.11" parsed="|Ezek|33|11|0|0" passage="Ezek. 33:11">Ezek. 33:11</scripRef>.... God
may properly
call upon the non-elect to do a thing that God delights in, simply
because He does
delight in it. The divine desire is not altered by the divine decree of
preterition."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.vi-p23.3" n="50" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p23.4">Dogm. Theol.</span> II, p. 484.</note>
He also quotes a very similar statement from Turretin. (6) The universal
offer of salvation
serves the purpose of disclosing the aversion and obstinacy of man in
his opposition to
the gospel, and of removing every vestige of excuse. If it were not
made, sinners might
say that they would gladly have accepted the gift of God, if it only had
been offered to
them.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.vi-p24" shownumber="no">5. THE WIDER BEARING OF THE ATONEMENT. The question may be raised, whether the
atonement wrought by Christ for the salvation of the elect, and of the
elect only, has any
wider bearing. The question is often discussed in Scottish theology,
whether Christ did not die,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.1">
in some other than a saving sense</span>, also for the
non-elect. It was discussed by
several of the older theologians, such as Rutherford, Brown, Durham, and
Dickson, but
was answered by them in the negative. "They held, indeed,"
says Walker, "the intrinsic
sufficiency of Christ's death to save the world, or worlds; but that was
altogether
irrespective of Christ's purpose, or Christ's accomplishment. The phrase
that Christ
died sufficiently for all was not approved, because the 'for' seemed to
imply some
reality of actual substitution."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.vi-p24.2" n="51" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.3">Scottish Theology and Theologians,</span> p. 80</note>
Durham denied that any mercy bestowed upon the
reprobate, and enjoyed by them, could be said to be the proper fruit of,
or the purchase
of, Christ's death; but at the same time maintained that certain
consequences of Christ's
death of an advantageous kind must reach wicked men, though it is
doubtful whether
these can be regarded as a blessing for them. This was also the position
taken by
Rutherford and Gillespie. The Marrow-men of Scotland, while holding that
Christ died
for the purpose of saving only the elect, concluded from the universal
offer of salvation
that the work of Christ also had a wider bearing, and that, to use their
own words,
"God the Father, moved by nothing but His free love to mankind
lost, hath made a deed of gift and grant unto all men of His Son Jesus
Christ." According to them all sinners are
legatees under
Christ's testament, not indeed in the essence but<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.4">
in the administration</span>
of the covenant of grace, but the testament becomes effectual only in the
case of the elect.
Their position was condemned by the Church of Scotland. Several Reformed
theologians hold that, though Christ suffered and died only for the
purpose of saving
the elect, many benefits of the cross of Christ do
actually — and that also according to
the plan of God — accrue to the benefit of those who do not accept
Christ by faith. They
believe that the blessings of common grace also result from the atoning
work of Christ.<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.vi-p24.5" n="52" place="foot">Cf. Witsius,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.6"> De Verbonden</span> II, 9.4; Turretin,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.7"> Loc.</span> XIV, Q. 14, Sec. 11; Cunningham,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.8"> Hist. Theol.</span> II, p. 332; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.9"> The Atonement</span>, 358 and elsewhere; Grosheide in the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.10"> Evangelical Quarterly</span>, April, 1940, p. 127. Cf. also Strong,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.11"> Syst. Theol.</span>, p. 772.</note>
That the atoning work of Christ also had significance for
the angelic world would
seem to follow from <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p24.12" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.10" parsed="|Eph|1|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:10">Eph. 1:10</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p24.13" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.20" parsed="|Col|1|20|0|0" passage="Col. 1:20">Col. 1:20</scripRef>. Things on earth and things
in heaven are
summed up in Christ as a Head (<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vi-p24.14">anakephalaiosasthai</span>), <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p24.15" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.10" parsed="|Eph|1|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:10">Eph. 1:10</scripRef>, and are reconciled to God through the blood of the cross, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p24.16" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.20" parsed="|Col|1|20|0|0" passage="Col. 1:20">Col. 1:20</scripRef>. Kuyper holds that the
angelic world,
which lost its head when Satan fell away, is reorganized under Christ as
Head. This
would reconcile or bring together the angelic world and the world of
humanity under a
single Head. Naturally, Christ is not the Head of the angels in the
organic sense in
which He is the Head of the Church. Finally, the atoning work of Christ
will also result
in a new heaven and a new earth in which dwelleth righteousness, a fit
dwellingplace for the new and glorified humanity, and in the glorious liberty in which
the lower
creation will
also share, <scripRef id="v.iii.vi-p24.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.19-Rom.8.22" parsed="|Rom|8|19|8|22" passage="Rom. 8:19-22">Rom. 8:19-22</scripRef>. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.iii.vii" next="v.iii.viii" prev="v.iii.vi" title="VII. The Intercessory Work of Christ">
<h2 id="v.iii.vii-p0.1">VII. The Intercessory Work of Christ </h2>
<p id="v.iii.vii-p1" shownumber="no">The priestly work of Christ is not limited to the
sacrificial offering of Himself on the cross. The representation is sometimes
given that, while Christ was a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p1.1">
Priest</span>
on earth, He
is a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p1.2">
King</span>
in heaven. This creates the impression that His priestly work is
finished, which
is by no means correct. Christ is not only an earthly but also, and
especially, a heavenly
High Priest. He is even while seated at the right hand of God in
heavenly majesty, "a
minister of the sanctuary, and of the true tabernacle, which the Lord
pitched, not man."
<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.2" parsed="|Heb|8|2|0|0" passage="Heb. 8:2">Heb. 8:2</scripRef>. He only began His priestly work on earth, and is completing it
in heaven. In
the strict sense of the word He is not reckoned among the earthly
priests, who were but
shadows of a coming reality, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p1.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.4" parsed="|Heb|8|4|0|0" passage="Heb. 8:4">Heb. 8:4</scripRef>. He is the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p1.5">
true</span>, that is, the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p1.6">
real</span>
Priest, serving at the
<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p1.7">real sanctuary</span>, of which the tabernacle of Israel was but an imperfect shadow. At the
same time He is now the Priest upon the throne, our Intercessor with the
Father.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.vii-p1.8">A. SCRIPTURAL PROOF FOR THE INTERCESSORY WORK OF CHRIST.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.vii-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE INTERCESSORY WORK OF CHRIST SYMBOLIZED. While the sacrificial work of
Christ was symbolized primarily by the priestly functions at the brazen
altar and the
sacrifices that were brought upon it, His intercessory work was
prefigured by the daily
burning of incense on the golden altar in the Holy Place. The constantly
rising cloud of
incense was not only a symbol of the prayers of Israel, but also a type
of the high
priestly prayer of our great High Priest. This symbolic action of
burning incense was
not dissociated from, but most closely connected with, the bringing of
the sacrifices at
the brazen altar. It was connected with the application of the blood of
the more
important sin offerings, which was applied to the horns of the golden
altar, also called
the altar of incense, was sprinkled towards the veil, and on the great
Day of Atonement
was even brought within the Holy of Holies and sprinkled upon the
mercy-seat. This
manipulation of the blood symbolized the presentation of the sacrifice
to God, who
dwelt between the cherubim. The Holy of Holies was clearly a symbol and
type of the
city four-square, the heavenly Jerusalem. There is still another
connection between the sacrificial work at the brazen altar and the symbolical
intercession at the golden altar.
The fact that the incense might be burned only on living coals taken
from the altar of
burnt-offering was an indication of the fact that the intercession was
based on the
sacrifice and would be effective in no other way. This clearly indicates
that the intercessory work of Christ in heaven is based on His accomplished
sacrificial work,
and is acceptable only on that basis.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p3" shownumber="no">2. NEW TESTAMENT INDICATIONS OF CHRIST'S INTERCESSORY WORK. The term<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p3.1">
parakletos </span>
is applied to
Christ. The word is found only in <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:John.14.16" parsed="|John|14|16|0|0" passage="John 14:16">John 14:16</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:John.26.7" parsed="|John|26|7|0|0" passage="John 26:7">26:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.1" parsed="|1John|2|1|0|0" passage="I John 2:1">I John 2:1</scripRef>. It
is
rendered
"Comforter" wherever it is found in the Gospel of John, but
"Advocate" in the  single passage
in which it is found in the First Epistle of John. The form is a passive, and
can therefore,
says Westcott, "properly mean only 'one called to the side of another,'
and
that with the secondary notion of counseling or aiding him."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.vii-p3.7" n="53" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p3.8">Commentary on the Gospel of John, Additional Note after ChapterXVI.</span></note>
He points out that the
word has that meaning in classical Greek, in Philo, and also in the
writings of the
Rabbis. Many of the Greek Fathers, however, gave the word an active
sense, rendered it
"Comforter," and thus gave undue prominence to what is but a
secondary application
of the term, though they felt that this meaning would not fit in <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.1" parsed="|1John|2|1|0|0" passage="I John 2:1">I John 2:1</scripRef>. The word,
then, denotes<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p3.10">
one who is
called in for aid, an advocate, one who pleads the cause of another and
also gives him wise counsel.</span>
Naturally, the work of such an advocate may bring comfort,
and therefore he can also in a secondary sense be called a comforter.
Christ is explicitly
called our Advocate only in <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.1" parsed="|1John|2|1|0|0" passage="I John 2:1">I John 2:1</scripRef>, but by implication also in <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:John.14.16" parsed="|John|14|16|0|0" passage="John 14:16">John 14:16</scripRef>. The
promise, "And I will pray the Father, and He shall give you<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p3.13">
another</span>
Comforter, that He
may be with you forever," clearly implied that Christ was also a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p3.14">
parakletos.</span>
The Gospel
of John regularly applies the term to the Holy Spirit. There are
therefore two Advocates,
Christ and the Holy Spirit. Their work is partly identical and partly
different. When
Christ was on earth, He was the Advocate of the disciples, pleading
their cause against
the world and serving them with wise counsel, and the Holy Spirit is now
continuing
that work in the Church. In so far the work is identical, but there is
also a difference.
Christ as our Advocate pleads the believer's cause with the Father
against Satan, the
accuser (<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Zech.3.1" parsed="|Zech|3|1|0|0" passage="Zech. 3:1">Zech. 3:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.25" parsed="|Heb|7|25|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:25">Heb. 7:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.1" parsed="|1John|2|1|0|0" passage="I John 2:1">I John 2:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Rev.12.10" parsed="|Rev|12|10|0|0" passage="Rev. 12:10">Rev. 12:10</scripRef>), while the Holy Spirit not only
pleads the cause of believers against the world (<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.19" osisRef="Bible:John.16.8" parsed="|John|16|8|0|0" passage="John 16:8">John 16:8</scripRef>), but also
pleads the cause of
Christ with believers and serves them with wise counsel, (<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.20" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.21" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.22" osisRef="Bible:John.16.14" parsed="|John|16|14|0|0" passage="John 16:14">16:14</scripRef>).
Briefly, we can also say that Christ pleads our cause with God,
while the Holy Spirit
pleads God's cause with us. Other New Testament passages which speak of
the
intercessory
work of Christ are found in <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.23" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.24" parsed="|Rom|8|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:24">Rom. 8:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.24" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.25" parsed="|Heb|7|25|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:25">Heb. 7:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p3.25" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.24" parsed="|Heb|9|24|0|0" passage="Heb 9:24">9:24</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.vii-p3.26">B. THE NATURE OF CHRIST'S INTERCESSORY WORK.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.vii-p4" shownumber="no">It is evident that this work of Christ may not be
dissociated from His atoning
sacrifice, which forms its necessary basis. It is but the continuation
of the priestly work of Christ, carrying it to completion. Compared with the sacrificial work
of Christ His
ministry of intercession receives but little attention. Even in
evangelical circles the
impression is often given, though perhaps without intending it, that the
work
accomplished by the Saviour on earth was far more important than the
services which
He now renders in heaven. It seems to be little understood that in the
Old Testament the
daily ministration at the temple culminated in the burning of incense,
which
symbolized the ministry of intercession; and that the annual ritual on
the great Day of
Atonement reached its highest point, when the high priest passed beyond
the veil with
the atoning blood. Neither can it be said that the ministry of
intercession is sufficiently
understood. This may be the cause, but may also be the result, of the
widespread failure
of Christians to rivet the attention on it. The prevailing idea is that
the intercession of
Christ consists exclusively in the prayers which He offers for His
people. Now it cannot
be denied that these form an important part of the intercessory work of
Christ, but they
are not the whole of it. The fundamental point to remember is that the
ministry of
intercession should not be dissociated from the atonement, since they
are but two
aspects of the same redemptive work of Christ, and the two may be said
to merge into
one. Martin finds that the two constantly appear in juxtaposition and
are so closely
related in Scripture, that he feels justified in making the following
statement: "The
essence of the Intercession<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p4.1">
is</span>
Atonement; and the Atonement<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p4.2">
is</span>
essentially
an
Intercession. Or, perhaps, to put the paradox more mildly: The Atonement
is real, —
real sacrifice and offering, and not mere passive endurance, — because
it is in its very
nature an active and infallible intercession; while, on the other hand,
the Intercession is
real intercession, — judicial, representative, and priestly
intercession, and not a mere
exercise of influence, — because it is essentially an Atonement or
substitutionary
oblation, once perfected on Calvary, now perpetually presented and
undergoing
perpetual acceptance in heaven."<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.vii-p4.3" n="54" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p4.4">The Atonement,</span> p. 115</note>
Analyzing it, we find the following elements
in the
intercession of
Christ: </p>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p5" shownumber="no">1. Just as the high priest on the great Day of Atonement
entered the Holy of Holies
with the completed sacrifice, to present it to God, so Christ entered
the heavenly Holy
Place with His completed, perfect, and all-sufficient sacrifice, and
offered it to the
Father. And just as the high priest, on entering the Holy Place, came
into the presence of
God, symbolically bearing the tribes of Israel on His breast, so Christ
appeared before
God as the representative of His people, and thus reinstated humanity in
the presence
of God. It is to this fact that the writer of Hebrews refers when he
says: "For Christ entered not into a holy place made with hands, like in pattern to the
true; but into
heaven itself, now to appear before the face of God for us," <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.24" parsed="|Heb|9|24|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:24">Heb. 9:24</scripRef>. Reformed
theologians often directed attention to it that the perpetual presence
of the completed
sacrifice of Christ before God contains in itself an element of
intercession as a constant
reminder of the perfect atonement of Jesus Christ. It is something like
the blood of the passover, of which the Lord said: "And the blood shall be
to you for a token upon the
houses where ye are: and when I see the blood, I will pass over
you." <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.12.13" parsed="|Exod|12|13|0|0" passage="Ex. 12:13">Ex. 12:13</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p6" shownumber="no">2. There is also a judicial element in the intercession,
just as there is in the
atonement. Through the atonement Christ met all the just demands of the
law, so that
no legal charges can justly be brought against those for whom He paid
the price.
However, Satan the accuser is ever bent on bringing charges against the
elect; but Christ
meets them all by pointing to His completed work. He is the Paraklete,
the Advocate,
for His people, answering all the charges that are brought against them.
We are
reminded of this not only by the name "Paraklete," but also by
the words of Paul in
<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.33" parsed="|Rom|8|33|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:33">Rom. 8:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.34" parsed="|Rom|8|34|0|0" passage="Rom 8:34">34</scripRef>:
"Who shall lay anything to the charge of God's elect? It is God that
justifieth; who is he that condemneth? It is Jesus Christ that died, yea
rather, that was
raised from the dead, who is at the right hand of God, who also maketh
intercession for
us." Here
the judicial element is clearly present. Cf. also <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Zech.3.1" parsed="|Zech|3|1|0|0" passage="Zech. 3:1">Zech. 3:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Zech.3.2" parsed="|Zech|3|2|0|0" passage="Zech 3:2">2</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p7" shownumber="no">3. Not only does the intercessory work of Christ bear on
our judicial state; it also
relates to our moral condition, our gradual sanctification. When we
address the Father
in His name, He sanctifies our prayers. They need this, because they are
often so
imperfect, trivial, superficial, and even insincere, while they are
addressed to One who
is perfect in holiness and majesty. And besides rendering our prayers
acceptable, He
also sanctifies our services in the Kingdom of God. This is also
necessary, because we
are often conscious of the fact that they do not spring from the purest
motives; and that
even when they do, they are far from that perfection that would make
them, in
themselves, acceptable to a holy God. The blight of sin rests upon them
all. Therefore
Peter says: "Unto whom coming, a living stone, rejected indeed of
men, but with God
elect, precious, ye also as living stones are built up a spiritual
house, to be a holy
priesthood, to
offer up spiritual sacrifices,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p7.1">
acceptable to God through Jesus Christ.</span>
" Christ's
ministry of intercession is also a ministry of loving care for His
people. He helps them
in their difficulties, their trials, and their temptations. "For we
have not a high priest
which cannot be touched with the feeling of our infirmities; but one
that hath been in all
points tempted like as we are, yet without sin: for in that He himself
hath suffered,
being tempted, He is able to succor them that are tempted." <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.15" parsed="|Heb|4|15|0|0" passage="Heb. 4:15">Heb. 4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.18" parsed="|Heb|2|18|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:18">Heb. 2:18</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p8" shownumber="no">4. And in and through it all there is, finally, also the element of
prayer for the people
of God. If the intercession is of a piece with the atoning work of
Christ, it follows that
the prayer of intercession must have reference to the things pertaining
to God (<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.1" parsed="|Heb|5|1|0|0" passage="Heb. 5:1">Heb. 5:1</scripRef>), to the completion of the work of redemption. That this element is
included, is quite
evident from the intercessory prayer in <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:John.17" parsed="|John|17|0|0|0" passage="John 17">John 17</scripRef>, where Christ explicitly
says that He
prays for the apostles and for those who through their word will believe
in Him. It is a
consoling thought that Christ is praying for us, even when we are
negligent in our
prayer life; that He is presenting to the Father those spiritual needs
which were not
present to our minds and which we often neglect to include in our
prayers; and that He
prays for our protection against the dangers of which we are not even
conscious, and against the enemies which threaten us, though we do not notice
it. He is praying that
our faith may not cease, and that we may come out victoriously in the
end.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.vii-p8.3">C. THE PERSONS FOR WHOM AND THE THINGS FOR WHICH HE INTERCEDES.</h4>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p9" shownumber="no">1. THE PERSONS FOR WHOM HE INTERCEDES. The intercessory work is, as has been
said, simply the complement of His redemptive priestly work, and is
therefore equal to
it in extent. Christ intercedes for<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p9.1">
all</span>
those for whom He has made
atonement, and for those<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p9.2">
only.</span>
This may be
inferred from the limited character of the atonement, and also
from such
passages as <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.34" parsed="|Rom|8|34|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:34">Rom. 8:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.25" parsed="|Heb|7|25|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:25">Heb. 7:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.24" parsed="|Heb|9|24|0|0" passage="Heb 9:24">9:24</scripRef>, in every one of which the word
"us"
refers to believers. Moreover, in the high priestly prayer, recorded in
<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:John.17" parsed="|John|17|0|0|0" passage="John 17">John 17</scripRef>, Jesus tells
us that He prays for His immediate disciples and "for them also
that believe on me
through their word," <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:John.17.9" parsed="|John|17|9|0|0" passage="John 17:9">John 17:9</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:John.17.20" parsed="|John|17|20|0|0" passage="John 17:20">20</scripRef>. In the 9th verse He makes a
very explicit statement respecting the limitation of His high priestly prayer:
"I pray for them: I pray not for the
world, but for those whom thou hast given me." And from the 20th
verse we can learn
that He does not intercede for present believers only, but for all the
elect, whether they
are already believers, or will believe some time in the future. The
intercessor is mindful
of each one of those that are given unto Him, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.32" parsed="|Luke|21|32|0|0" passage="Luke 21:32">Luke 21:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.5" parsed="|Rev|3|5|0|0" passage="Rev. 3:5">Rev. 3:5</scripRef>.
Lutherans distinguish
between a general intercession of Christ for all men, and a special
intercession for the
elect only. For proof they appeal to <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.11" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.34" parsed="|Luke|23|34|0|0" passage="Luke 23:34">Luke 23:34</scripRef>, which contains Christ's
prayer for His
enemies, but that prayer need not be considered as a part of the
official intercessory
work of Christ. Dabney believes that it was, and that the objects of
this prayer were later
on converted. But it is also possible that this prayer was simply a
prayer such as Christ
taught all his followers to pray for their enemies, a prayer to ward off
an immediate and
terrible punishment for the enormous crime committed. Cf. <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p9.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.44" parsed="|Matt|5|44|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:44">Matt. 5:44</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p10" shownumber="no">2. THE THINGS FOR WHICH CHRIST INTERCEDES. Christ has a great deal to pray for in
His intercessory prayer. We can only give a brief indication of some of
the things for
which He prays. He prays that the elect who have not yet come to Him may
be brought
into a state of grace; that those who have already come may receive
pardon for their
daily sins, that is, may experience the continued application to them of
the fruits of
justification; that believers may be kept from the accusations and
temptations of Satan;
that the saints may be progressively sanctified, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:John.17.17" parsed="|John|17|17|0|0" passage="John 17:17">John 17:17</scripRef>; that their
intercourse with
heaven may be kept up, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.14" parsed="|Heb|4|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 4:14">Heb. 4:14</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.16" parsed="|Heb|4|16|0|0" passage="Heb 4:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.21" parsed="|Heb|10|21|0|0" passage="Heb 10:21">10:21</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.22" parsed="|Heb|10|22|0|0" passage="Heb 10:22">22</scripRef>; that the services of
the people of God
may be accepted, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.5" parsed="|1Pet|2|5|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:5">I Pet. 2:5</scripRef>; and that they may at last enter upon their
perfect inheritance
in heaven, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:John.17.24" parsed="|John|17|24|0|0" passage="John 17:24">John 17:24</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.vii-p10.8">D. THE CHARACTERISTICS OF HIS INTERCESSION.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.vii-p11" shownumber="no">There are especially three characteristics of the
intercessory work of Christ, to which
attention should be directed:</p>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p12" shownumber="no">1. THE CONSTANCY OF HIS INTERCESSION. We need not only a Saviour who has
completed an objective work for us in the past, but also one who is
daily engaged in
securing for His own the subjective application of the fruits of the
accomplished
sacrifice, Tens of thousands of people call for His attention at once,
and a moment's
intermission would prove fatal to their interests. Therefore He is
always on the alert. He
is alive to all their wants, and none of their prayers escape Him.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p13" shownumber="no">2. THE AUTHORITATIVE CHARACTER OF HIS INTERCESSION. It is not altogether correct to
represent Him as a suppliant at the throne of God, begging favors of His
Father for His people. His prayer is not the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p13.1">
petition</span>
of the creature to
the Creator, but the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p13.2">
request</span>
of the
Son to the Father. "The consciousness of His equal dignity, of His
potent and prevailing
intercession, speaks out in this, that as often as He asks, or declares
that He will ask,
anything of the Father, it is always<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p13.3">
eroto, eroteso</span>
an asking, that
is, as upon equal terms
(<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:John.14.16" parsed="|John|14|16|0|0" passage="John 14:16">John 14:16</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:John.16.26" parsed="|John|16|26|0|0" passage="John 16:26">16:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:John.17.9" parsed="|John|17|9|0|0" passage="John 17:9">17:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:John.17.15" parsed="|John|17|15|0|0" passage="John 17:15">15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:John.17.20" parsed="|John|17|20|0|0" passage="John 17:20">20</scripRef>), never<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p13.9">
aiteo</span>
or<span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p13.10">
aiteso.</span>"<note anchored="yes" id="v.iii.vii-p13.11" n="55" place="foot">Trench, <span class="ital" id="v.iii.vii-p13.12">New Testament Synonyms,</span> p. 136.</note>
Christ stands before the Father as
an authorized intercessor, and as one who can present legal claims. He
can say: "Father,
I desire that they also whom thou hast given me, be with me where I
am," <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p13.13" osisRef="Bible:John.17.24" parsed="|John|17|24|0|0" passage="John 17:24">John 17:24</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.vii-p14" shownumber="no">3. THE EFFICACY OF HIS INTERCESSION. The intercessory prayer of Christ is a prayer
that never fails. At the grave of Lazarus the Lord expressed the
assurance that the
Father always hears Him, <scripRef id="v.iii.vii-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:John.11.42" parsed="|John|11|42|0|0" passage="John 11:42">John 11:42</scripRef>. His intercessory prayers for His
people are based
on His atoning work; He has merited all that He asks, and therein lies
the assurance that those prayers are effective. They will accomplish all that He desires.
The people of God
may derive comfort from the fact that they have such a prevailing
intercessor with the Father. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="v.iii.viii" next="vi" prev="v.iii.vii" title="VIII. The Kingly Office">
<h2 id="v.iii.viii-p0.1">VIII.The Kingly Office </h2>
<p id="v.iii.viii-p1" shownumber="no">As the Second Person in the Holy Trinity, the eternal
Son, Christ naturally shares the dominion of God over all His creatures. His
throne is established in the heavens and His
Kingdom ruleth over all, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.19" parsed="|Ps|103|19|0|0" passage="Ps. 103:19">Ps. 103:19</scripRef>. This kingship differs from the
mediatorial kingship
of Christ, which is a conferred and economical kingship, exercised by
Christ, not merely
in His divine nature, but as Theanthropos (the God-man). The latter is
not a kingship
that was Christ's by original right, but one with which He is invested.
It does not
pertain to a new realm, one that was not already under His control as
Son of God, for
such a realm can nowhere be found. It is rather, to speak in the words
of Dick, His
original kingship, "invested with a new form, wearing a new aspect,
administered for a
new end." In general we may define the mediatorial kingship of
Christ as His official
power to rule all things in heaven and on earth, for the glory of God,
and for the
execution of God's purpose of salvation. We must distinguish, however,
between a <span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p1.2">regnum gratiae</span> and a<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p1.3"> regnum potentiae.</span></p>

<h4 id="v.iii.viii-p1.4">A. THE SPIRITUAL KINGSHIP OF CHRIST.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.viii-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE NATURE OF THIS KINGSHIP. The spiritual kingship of Christ is His royal rule
over the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p2.1"> regnum gratiae</span>, that is over His people or the Church. It is a spiritual kingship,
because it relates to a spiritual realm. It is the mediatorial rule as it is
established in the
hearts and lives of believers. Moreover, it is spiritual, because it
bears directly and
immediately on a spiritual end, the salvation of His people. And,
finally, it is spiritual,
because it is administered, not by force or external means, but by the
Word and the
Spirit, which is the Spirit of truth and wisdom, of justice and
holiness, of grace and
mercy. This kingship reveals itself in the gathering of the Church, and
in its
government, protection, and perfection. The Bible speaks of it in many
places, such as, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.6" parsed="|Ps|2|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 2:6">Ps. 2:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.45.6" parsed="|Ps|45|6|0|0" passage="Ps 45:6">45:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.45.7" parsed="|Ps|45|7|0|0" passage="Ps 45:7">7</scripRef> (cf. <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.8" parsed="|Heb|1|8|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:8">Heb. 1:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.6" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.9" parsed="|Heb|1|9|0|0" passage="Heb 1:9">9</scripRef>); 132:11; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.9.6" parsed="|Isa|9|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 9:6">Isa. 9:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.8" osisRef="Bible:Isa.9.7" parsed="|Isa|9|7|0|0" passage="Isa 9:7">7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.5" parsed="|Jer|23|5|0|0" passage="Jer. 23:5">Jer. 23:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.10" osisRef="Bible:Jer.23.6" parsed="|Jer|23|6|0|0" passage="Jer 23:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.11" osisRef="Bible:Mic.5.2" parsed="|Mic|5|2|0|0" passage="Mic. 5:2">Mic. 5:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:Zech.6.13" parsed="|Zech|6|13|0|0" passage="Zech. 6:13">Zech. 6:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.13" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.33" parsed="|Luke|1|33|0|0" passage="Luke 1:33">Luke 1:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.14" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.27" parsed="|Luke|19|27|0|0" passage="Luke 19:27">19:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.15" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.38" parsed="|Luke|19|38|0|0" passage="Luke 19:38">38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.16" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.29" parsed="|Luke|22|29|0|0" passage="Luke 22:29">22:29</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.17" osisRef="Bible:John.18.36" parsed="|John|18|36|0|0" passage="John 18:36">John 18:36</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.18" osisRef="Bible:John.18.37" parsed="|John|18|37|0|0" passage="John 18:37">37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.19" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.30-Acts.2.36" parsed="|Acts|2|30|2|36" passage="Acts 2:30-36">Acts 2:30-36</scripRef>, and other places. The spiritual nature of this
kingship is indicated, among others, by the fact that Christ is
repeatedly called the Head
of the Church,
<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.20" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|22|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:22">Eph. 1:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.21" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.15" parsed="|Eph|4|15|0|0" passage="Eph 4:15">4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.22" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.23" parsed="|Eph|5|23|0|0" passage="Eph 5:23">5:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.23" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.18" parsed="|Col|1|18|0|0" passage="Col. 1:18">Col. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.24" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.19" parsed="|Col|2|19|0|0" passage="Col 2:19">2:19</scripRef>. This term, as applied to Christ, is in
some cases practically equivalent to "King" (Head in a
figurative sense, one clothed with authority),
as in <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.25" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.3" parsed="|1Cor|11|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:3">I Cor. 11:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.26" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|22|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:22">Eph. 1:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.27" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.23" parsed="|Eph|5|23|0|0" passage="Eph 5:23">5:23</scripRef>; in other cases, however, it is used in a
literal and organic sense, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.28" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.15" parsed="|Eph|4|15|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:15">Eph. 4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.29" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.18" parsed="|Col|1|18|0|0" passage="Col. 1:18">Col. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.30" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.19" parsed="|Col|2|19|0|0" passage="Col 2:19">2:19</scripRef>, and in part also
<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.31" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|22|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:22">Eph. 1:22</scripRef>. The word
is never used (except it be in <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p2.32" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.3" parsed="|1Cor|11|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:3">I Cor. 11:3</scripRef>) without the implication of
this organic
conception. The two ideas are most intimately connected. It is just
because Christ is the
Head of the Church that He can rule it as King in an organic and
spiritual way. The
relation between the two may be indicated as follows: (1) The headship
of Christ points
to the mystical union between Christ and His body, the Church, and
therefore belongs
to the sphere of being. His kingship, however, implies that He is
clothed with authority,
and belongs to the judicial sphere. (2) The headship of Christ is
subservient to His
kingship. The Spirit which Christ, as the Head of the Church, imparts to
it, is also the
means by which He exercises His royal power in and over the Church. Present
day
Premillenarians strongly insist that Christ is the Head of the Church,
but as a rule deny
that He is its King. This is tantamount to saying that He is not the
authoritative Ruler of
the Church, and that the officers of the Church do not represent Him in
the government
of the Church. They not only refuse to admit that He is the King<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p2.33">
of the Church</span>, but deny His present kingship altogether, except, perhaps, as a
kingship<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p2.34">
de jure</span>, a kingship which
is His by right but has not yet become effective. At the same time their
practice is better
than their theory, for in practical life they do, rather inconsistently,
recognize the
authority of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE KINGDOM OVER WHICH IT EXTENDS. This kingdom has the following
characteristics:</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p4" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p4.1"> It is grounded in the work of redemption.</span> The<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p4.2"> regnum gratiae</span> did not originate in the
creative work of God but, as the name itself indicates, in His redeeming
grace. No one is
a citizen of this kingdom in virtue of his humanity. Only the redeemed
have that honour
and privilege. Christ paid the ransom for those that are His, and by His
Spirit applies to
them the merits of His perfect sacrifice. Consequently, they now belong
to Him and
recognize Him as their Lord and King.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p5" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p5.1"> It is a spiritual Kingdom.</span> In the Old Testament dispensation this kingdom was
adumbrated in the theocratic kingdom of Israel. Even in the old
dispensation the reality
of this kingdom was found only in the inner life of believers. The
national kingdom of Israel, in which God was King, Lawgiver, and Judge, and the
earthly king was only the
vicegerent of Jehovah, appointed to represent the King, to carry out His
will, and to
execute His judgments, was only a symbol, and a shadow and type of that
glorious
reality, especially as it was destined to appear in the days of the New
Testament. With
the coming of the new dispensation all the Old Testament shadows passed
away, and
among them also the theocratic kingdom. Out of the womb of Israel the
spiritual reality
of the kingdom came forth and assumed an existence independent of the Old
Testament
theocracy. Hence the spiritual character of the kingdom stands forth far
more clearly in
the New Testament than it does in the Old. The<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p5.2">
regnum gratiae</span>
of Christ is identical with
what the New Testament calls the kingdom of God or of heaven. Christ is its
mediatorial King. Premillenarians mistakenly teach that the terms
"kingdom of God"
and "kingdom of heaven," as they are used in the Gospels,
refer to two different
realities, namely, to the universal kingdom of God and the future
mediatorial kingdom
of Christ. It is perfectly evident, as some of their own leaders feel
constrained to admit,
that the two terms are used interchangeably in the Gospels. This appears
from the fact
that, while Matthew and Luke often report the same statements of Jesus,
the former
represents Him as using the term "kingdom of heaven," and the
latter substitutes for it
the term "kingdom of God," compare <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13" parsed="|Matt|13|0|0|0" passage="Matt. 13">Matt. 13</scripRef> with <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.4" parsed="|Mark|4|0|0|0" passage="Mark 4">Mark 4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.8.1-Luke.8.10" parsed="|Luke|8|1|8|10" passage="Luke 8:1-10">Luke 8:1-10</scripRef>, and many
other passages. The spiritual nature of the kingdom is brought out in
several ways.
Negatively, it is clearly indicated that the kingdom is not an external
and natural
kingdom of the
Jews, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.11" parsed="|Matt|8|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:11">Matt. 8:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.12" parsed="|Matt|8|12|0|0" passage="Matt 8:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.43" parsed="|Matt|21|43|0|0" passage="Matt 21:43">21:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.21" parsed="|Luke|17|21|0|0" passage="Luke 17:21">Luke 17:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:John.18.36" parsed="|John|18|36|0|0" passage="John 18:36">John 18:36</scripRef>. Positively, we are
taught that it can be entered only by regeneration, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:John.3.3" parsed="|John|3|3|0|0" passage="John 3:3">John 3:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:John.3.5" parsed="|John|3|5|0|0" passage="John 3:5">5</scripRef>; that it
is like a seed cast
into the earth, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:Mark.4.26-Mark.4.29" parsed="|Mark|4|26|4|29" passage="Mark 4:26-29">Mark 4:26-29</scripRef>, like a mustard seed, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:Mark.4.30" parsed="|Mark|4|30|0|0" passage="Mark 4:30">Mark 4:30</scripRef>, and like a
leaven, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.33" parsed="|Matt|13|33|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:33">Matt. 13:33</scripRef>. It is in the hearts of people, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.21" parsed="|Luke|17|21|0|0" passage="Luke 17:21">Luke 17:21</scripRef>, "is righteousness
and peace and joy in the
Holy Spirit," <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.14.17" parsed="|Rom|14|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 14:17">Rom. 14:17</scripRef>, and is not of this world, but a kingdom
of the truth, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.18" osisRef="Bible:John.18.36" parsed="|John|18|36|0|0" passage="John 18:36">John 18:36</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p5.19" osisRef="Bible:John.18.37" parsed="|John|18|37|0|0" passage="John 18:37">37</scripRef>. The citizens of the kingdom are described as the poor in
spirit, the meek, the
merciful, the peacemakers, the pure in heart, and those that hunger and
thirst for
righteousness. The spiritual nature of the Kingdom should be stressed
over against all
those who deny the present reality of the mediatorial kingdom of God and
hold that it
will take the form of a re-established theocracy at the return of Jesus
Christ.</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p6" shownumber="no">In connection with the present day tendency to regard the
kingdom of God simply
as a new social condition, an ethical kingdom of ends, to be established
by human
endeavors, such as education, legal enactments, and social reforms, it
is well to bear in
mind that the term "kingdom of God" is not always used in the
same sense.
Fundamentally, the term denotes an abstract rather than a concrete idea,
namely, the
rule of God established and acknowledged in the hearts of sinners. If
this is clearly
understood, the futility of all human efforts and of all mere externals
is at once
apparent. By no mere human endeavors can the rule of God be established
in the heart
of a single man, nor can any man be brought to a recognition of that
rule. In the
measure in which God establishes His rule in the hearts of sinners, He
creates for
Himself a realm in which He rules and in which He dispenses the greatest
privileges
and the choicest blessings. And, again, in the proportion in which man
responds to the
rule of God and obeys the laws of the kingdom, a new condition of things
will naturally
result. In fact, if all those who are now citizens of the Kingdom would
actually obey its
laws in every domain of life, the world would be so different that it
would hardly be
recognized. In view of all that has been said, it causes no surprise
that the term
"kingdom of God" is used in various senses in Scripture, as,
for instance, to denote the
kingship of God or of the Messiah, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.10" parsed="|Matt|6|10|0|0" passage="Matt. 6:10">Matt. 6:10</scripRef>; the realm over which this
rule extends
and the condition of things to which it gives rise, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.21" parsed="|Matt|7|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:21">Matt. 7:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.23" parsed="|Matt|19|23|0|0" passage="Matt 19:23">19:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.24" parsed="|Matt|19|24|0|0" passage="Matt 19:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.12" parsed="|Matt|8|12|0|0" passage="Matt 8:12">8:12</scripRef>; the totality of
the blessings and privileges that flow from the reign of God or of
the Messiah, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.44" parsed="|Matt|13|44|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:44">Matt. 13:44</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.45" parsed="|Matt|13|45|0|0" passage="Matt 13:45">45</scripRef>; and the condition of things that marks the triumphant
culmination of the  reign
of God in Christ, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.2-Matt.22.14" parsed="|Matt|22|2|22|14" passage="Matt. 22:2-14">Matt. 22:2-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.14.16-Luke.14.24" parsed="|Luke|14|16|14|24" passage="Luke 14:16-24">Luke 14:16-24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p6.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.13.29" parsed="|Luke|13|29|0|0" passage="Luke 13:29">13:29</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p7" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p7.1">
It is a kingdom that is both present and future.</span>
It is on the
one hand a present, ever
developing, spiritual reality in the hearts and lives of men, and as
such exercises
influence in a constantly widening sphere. Jesus and the apostles
clearly refer to the
kingdom as already present in their time, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.28" parsed="|Matt|12|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:28">Matt. 12:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.21" parsed="|Luke|17|21|0|0" passage="Luke 17:21">Luke 17:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.13" parsed="|Col|1|13|0|0" passage="Col. 1:13">Col. 1:13</scripRef>. This must be maintained over against the great majority of present day
Premillenarians. On the
other hand it is also a future hope, an eschatological reality; in fact,
the eschatological
aspect of the kingdom is the more prominent of the two, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.21" parsed="|Matt|7|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:21">Matt. 7:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.22" parsed="|Matt|7|22|0|0" passage="Matt 7:22">22</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.23" parsed="|Matt|19|23|0|0" passage="Matt 19:23">19:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.2-Matt.22.14" parsed="|Matt|22|2|22|14" passage="Matt 22:2-14">22:2-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.1-Matt.25.13" parsed="|Matt|25|1|25|13" passage="Matt 25:1-13">25:1-13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.34" parsed="|Matt|25|34|0|0" passage="Matt 25:34">34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.11" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.29" parsed="|Luke|22|29|0|0" passage="Luke 22:29">Luke 22:29</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.30" parsed="|Luke|22|30|0|0" passage="Luke 22:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.9" parsed="|1Cor|6|9|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:9">I Cor. 6:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.50" parsed="|1Cor|15|50|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:50">15:50</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.15" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.21" parsed="|Gal|5|21|0|0" passage="Gal. 5:21">Gal. 5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.16" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.5" parsed="|Eph|5|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 5:5">Eph. 5:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.17" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.2.12" parsed="|1Thess|2|12|0|0" passage="I Thess. 2:12">I Thess. 2:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.18" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.18" parsed="|2Tim|4|18|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:18">II Tim. 4:18</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.19" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.28" parsed="|Heb|12|28|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:28">Heb. 12:28</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:11. Essentially the future kingdom will consist,
like that of the
present, in the rule of God established and acknowledged in the hearts
of men. But at
the glorious coming of Jesus Christ this establishment and
acknowledgment will be
perfected, the hidden forces of the kingdom will stand revealed, and the
spiritual rule of
Christ will find its consummation in a visible and majestic reign. It is
a mistake,
however, to assume that the present kingdom will develop almost
imperceptibly into
the kingdom of the future. The Bible clearly teaches us that the future
kingdom will be
ushered in by
great cataclysmic changes, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.20" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.21-Matt.24.44" parsed="|Matt|24|21|24|44" passage="Matt. 24:21-44">Matt. 24:21-44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.21" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.22-Luke.17.37" parsed="|Luke|17|22|17|37" passage="Luke 17:22-37">Luke 17:22-37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.22" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.5-Luke.21.33" parsed="|Luke|21|5|21|33" passage="Luke 21:5-33">21:5-33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.23" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.2" parsed="|1Thess|5|2|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:2">I Thess. 5:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p7.24" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.3" parsed="|1Thess|5|3|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:3">3</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:10-12.</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p8" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p8.1"> It is closely related to the Church, though not altogether identical with it.</span>
The citizenship of the kingdom is co-extensive with the membership in the
invisible Church.
Its field of operation, however, is wider than that of the Church, since
it aims at the
control of life in all its manifestations. The visible Church is the
most important, and the
only divinely instituted, external organization of the kingdom. At the
same time it is
also the God-given means<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p8.2">
par excellence</span>
for the extension
of the kingdom of God on
earth. It is well to note that the term "kingdom of God" is
sometimes employed in a
sense which makes it practically equivalent to the visible Church, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.12" parsed="|Matt|8|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:12">Matt. 8:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.24-Matt.13.30" parsed="|Matt|13|24|13|30" passage="Matt 13:24-30">13:24-30</scripRef>, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.47-Matt.13.50" parsed="|Matt|13|47|13|50" passage="Matt 13:47-50">47-50</scripRef>. While the Church and the kingdom must be distinguished, the
distinction should
not be sought along the lines indicated by Premillennialism, which
regards the kingdom
as essentially a kingdom of Israel, and the Church as the body of
Christ, gathered in the
present dispensation out of Jews and Gentiles. Israel was the Church of
the Old
Testament and in its spiritual essence constitutes a unity with the
Church of the New
Testament, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.38" parsed="|Acts|7|38|0|0" passage="Acts 7:38">Acts 7:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.11-Rom.11.24" parsed="|Rom|11|11|11|24" passage="Rom. 11:11-24">Rom. 11:11-24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.7-Gal.3.9" parsed="|Gal|3|7|3|9" passage="Gal. 3:7-9">Gal. 3:7-9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.29" parsed="|Gal|3|29|0|0" passage="Gal 3:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.11-Eph.2.22" parsed="|Eph|2|11|2|22" passage="Eph. 2:11-22">Eph. 2:11-22</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p9" shownumber="no">3. T HE DURATION OF THIS KINGSHIP.</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p10" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p10.1"> Its beginning.</span> Opinions differ on this point. Consistent Premillenarians deny the
present mediatorial kingship of Christ, and believe that He will not be
seated upon the throne as Mediator until He ushers in the millennium at the
time of His second advent.
And the Socinians claim that Christ was neither priest nor king before
His ascension.
The generally accepted position of the Church is that Christ received
His appointment
as mediatorial King in the depths of eternity, and that He began to
function as such
immediately after the fall, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Prov.8.23" parsed="|Prov|8|23|0|0" passage="Prov. 8:23">Prov. 8:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.6" parsed="|Ps|2|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 2:6">Ps. 2:6</scripRef>. During the old
dispensation He carried on
His work as King partly through the judges of Israel, and partly through
the typical
kings. But though He was permitted to rule as Mediator even before His
incarnation,
He did not publicly and formally assume His throne and inaugurate His
spiritual
kingdom until the time of His ascension and elevation at the right hand
of God, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.29-Acts.2.36" parsed="|Acts|2|29|2|36" passage="Acts 2:29-36">Acts 2:29-36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.5-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|5|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:5-11">Phil. 2:5-11</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p11" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p11.1">
Its termination</span>
(?). The
prevailing opinion is that the spiritual kingship of Christ
over His Church will, as to its essential character, continue eternally,
though it will
undergo important changes in its mode of operation at the consummation of
the world.
The eternal duration of the spiritual kingship of Christ would seem to
be explicitly
taught in the
following passages: <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.45.6" parsed="|Ps|45|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 45:6">Ps. 45:6</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.8" parsed="|Heb|1|8|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:8">Heb. 1:8</scripRef>); 72:17; 89:36,37; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.9.7" parsed="|Isa|9|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 9:7">Isa. 9:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Dan.2.44" parsed="|Dan|2|44|0|0" passage="Dan. 2:44">Dan. 2:44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.7.13" parsed="|2Sam|7|13|0|0" passage="II Sam. 7:13">II Sam. 7:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.7.16" parsed="|2Sam|7|16|0|0" passage="II Sam. 7:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.33" parsed="|Luke|1|33|0|0" passage="Luke 1:33">Luke 1:33</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:11. The Heidelberg Catechism also speaks of
Christ as
"our eternal king." Similarly the Belgic Confession in article XXVII.
Moreover,
the kingship and the headship of Christ are inextricably bound up
together. The latter is
subservient to the former, and is sometimes clearly represented as
including the former,
<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.21" parsed="|Eph|1|21|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:21">Eph. 1:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|22|0|0" passage="Eph 1:22">22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.22-Eph.5.24" parsed="|Eph|5|22|5|24" passage="Eph 5:22-24">5:22-24</scripRef>. But, surely, Christ will never cease to be the Head of His Church,
leaving the Church as a body without a Head. Finally, the fact that
Christ is a priest
forever, after the order of Melchizedek, would also seem to argue in
favor of the eternal
duration of the spiritual kingship of Christ, since His mediatorial
office is after all a unit.
Dick and Kuyper, however, argue that this kingship of Christ will cease
when He has
accomplished the salvation of His people. The only passage of Scripture
to which they appeal is <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.24-1Cor.15.28" parsed="|1Cor|15|24|15|28" passage="I Cor. 15:24-28">I Cor. 15:24-28</scripRef>, but this passage evidently does not
refer to Christ's spiritual
kingship, but to His kingship over the universe.</p>

<h4 id="v.iii.viii-p11.13">B. THE KINGSHIP OF CHRIST OVER THE UNIVERSE.</h4>
<p id="v.iii.viii-p12" shownumber="no">1. THE NATURE OF THIS KINGSHIP. By the<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p12.1">
regnum potentiae</span>
we mean the
dominion of
the God-man, Jesus Christ, over the universe, His providential and
judicial
administration of all things in the interest of the Church. As King of
the universe the
Mediator so guides the destinies of individuals, of social groups, and
of nations, as to
promote the growth, the gradual purification, and the final perfection
of the people
which He has redeemed by His blood. In that capacity He also protects
His own against
the dangers to which they are exposed in the world, and vindicates His
righteousness
by the subjection and destruction of all His enemies. In this kingship
of Christ we find
the initial restoration of the original kingship of man. The idea that
Christ now rules the
destinies of individuals and nations in the interest of His blood-bought
Church, is a far
more comforting thought than the notion that He is now "a refugee
on the throne of
heaven."</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p13" shownumber="no">2. THE RELATION OF THE REGNUM POTENTIAE TO THE REGNUM GRATIAE. The Kingship
of Christ over the universe is subservient to His spiritual kingship. It
is incumbent on
Christ, as the anointed King, to establish the spiritual kingdom of God,
to govern it, and
to protect it against all hostile forces. He must do this in a world
which is under the
power of sin and is bent on thwarting all spiritual endeavors. If that
world were beyond
His control, it might easily frustrate all His efforts. Therefore God
invested Him with
authority over it, so that He is able to control all powers and forces
and movements in
the world, and can thus secure a safe footing for His people in the
world, and protect
His own against all the powers of darkness. These cannot defeat His
purposes, but are
even constrained to serve them. Under the beneficent rule of Christ even
the wrath of
man is made to praise God.</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p14" shownumber="no">3. THE DURATION OF THIS KINGSHIP. Christ was formally invested with this kingship
over the universe when He was exalted at the right hand of God. It was a
promised  reward
of His labors, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.8" parsed="|Ps|2|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 2:8">Ps. 2:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.2.9" parsed="|Ps|2|9|0|0" passage="Ps 2:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.18" parsed="|Matt|28|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:18">Matt. 28:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20-Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|20|1|22" passage="Eph. 1:20-22">Eph. 1:20-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.9-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|9|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:9-11">Phil. 2:9-11</scripRef>. This
investiture
was part of the exaltation of the God-man. It did not give Him any power
or authority
which He did not already possess as the Son of God; neither did it
increase His territory.
But the God-man, the Mediator, was now made the possessor of this
authority, and His
human nature was made to share in the glory of this royal dominion.
Moreover, the
government of the world was now made subservient to the interests of the
Church of
Jesus Christ. And this kingship of Christ will last until the victory
over the enemies is
complete and even death has been abolished, <scripRef id="v.iii.viii-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.24-1Cor.15.28" parsed="|1Cor|15|24|15|28" passage="I Cor. 15:24-28">I Cor. 15:24-28</scripRef>. At the
consummation of all
things the God-man will give up the authority conferred on Him for a
special purpose,
since it will no more be needed. He will return His commission to God,
that God may
be all in all. The purpose is accomplished; mankind is redeemed; and
thereby the
original kingship of man is restored.
</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p15" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: In whom
was Christ typified as prophet in the Old
Testament? How were the true prophets distinguished from the false? How
did
prophets and priests differ as teachers? What was characteristic of the
priesthood after
the order of Melchizedek? Were the sacrifices of Cain and Abel piacular?
On what
grounds do Jowett, Maurice, Young, and Bushnell deny the vicarious and
typico-
prophetical character of the Mosaic sacrifices? What is the difference
between
atonement, propitiation, reconciliation, and redemption? What accounts
for the
widespread aversion to the objective character of the atonement? What
arguments are
advanced to disprove the necessity of the atonement? Why is penal
substitution
practically impossible among men? Does the universal offer of salvation
necessarily
imply a universal atonement? What becomes of the doctrine of the
atonement in
modern liberal theology? What two<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p15.1">
parakletoi</span>
have we according
to Scripture, and how
does their work differ? What is the nature of the intercessory work of
Christ? Are our
intercessory
prayers like those of Christ? Is Christ ever called "King of the
Jews"? Do
Premillenarians deny only the present spiritual kingship of Christ or
also His Kingship
over the universe?
</p>

<p id="v.iii.viii-p16" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 394-455, 538-550; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Christo</span>, III, pp. 3-196; Vos,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.3">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 93-197; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 455-609;
Shedd,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.5">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 353-489; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.6">
Syst. and Polemic Theol.</span>, pp. 483-553;
Dorner, <span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.7">Syst. of Chr. Doct.</span>
III, pp. 381-429; IV, pp. 1-154;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.8">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 96-185;
Pope, <span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.9">Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 196-316; Calvin,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.10">
Institutes</span>, Bk. II, chaps. XV-XVII: Watson,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.11">
Institutes</span>
II,
pp. 265-496;
Schmid,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.12">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 344-382;
Micklem,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.13">
What Is the Faith?</span>, pp. 188-205; Brunner,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.14">
The Mediator</span>, pp. 399-590; Stevenson,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.15">
The Offices of Christ</span>; Milligan,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.16">
The Ascension and Heavenly Priesthood of our Lord</span>; Meeter,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.17">
The Heavenly High-Priesthood of Christ</span>; A. Cave,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.18">
The Scriptural Doctrine of Sacrifice</span>; Faber,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.19">
The Origin of Expiatory Sacrifice; Davison, The
Origin and Intent of Primitive Sacrifice;</span>
Symington,
<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.20">Atonement and Intercession</span>; Stevens,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.21">
The Christian Doctrine of Salvation</span>; Franks,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.22">
History of the Doctrine of the Work of Christ</span> (2 vols.); D. Smith,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.23">
The Atonement in the Light of History and the Modern Spirit</span>; Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.24">
Historic Theories of the Atonement</span>; McLeod
Campbell, <span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.25">The Nature of the Atonement</span>; Bushnell,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.26">
Vicarious Sacrifice</span>; Denney,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.27">
The Christian Doctrine of Reconciliation</span>; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.28">
Dat de Genade Particulier Is</span>; Bouma,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.29">
Geen Algemeene Verzoening;</span> De Jong,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.30">
De Leer der Verzoening in de Amerikaansche Theologie;</span> S.
Cave,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.31"> The Doctrine of the Work of Christ</span>; Smeaton,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.32">
Our Lord's
Doctrine of the Atonement</span>; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.33">; The Apostles' Doctrine
of the Atonement</span>; Cunningham,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.34">
Historical Theology</span>
II, pp. 237-370; Creighton,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.35">
Law and the Cross</span>; Armour,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.36">
Atonement and Law</span>;
Mathews,<span class="ital" id="v.iii.viii-p16.37">
The Atonement and the Social Process</span>; and further works on the Atonement by Martin, A. A. Hodge, Crawford, Dale,
Dabney, Miley, Mozley, and Berkhof.</p>
</div3>
</div2>
</div1>

    <div1 id="vi" next="vi.i" prev="v.iii.viii" title="Part Four: The Doctrine of The Application of The Work of Redemption">
<h2 id="vi-p0.1">PART FOUR: THE DOCTRINE OF THE APPLICATION OF THE WORK OF REDEMPTION</h2>

      <div2 id="vi.i" next="vi.ii" prev="vi" title="I. Soteriologu in General">
<h2 id="vi.i-p0.1">I. Soteriology in General</h2>
<h4 id="vi.i-p0.2">A. CONNECTION BETWEEN SOTERIOLOGY AND THE PRECEDING LOCI.</h4>
<p id="vi.i-p1" shownumber="no">SOTERIOLOGY deals with the communication of the blessings
of salvation to the
sinner and his restoration to divine favor and to a life in intimate
communion with God.
It presupposes knowledge of God as the all-sufficient source of the
life, the strength,
and the happiness of mankind, and of man's utter dependence on Him for
the present
and the future. Since it deals with restoration, redemption, and
renewal, it can only be
understood properly in the light of the original condition of man as
created in the image
of God, and of the subsequent disturbance of the proper relationship
between man and
his God by the entrance of sin into the world. Moreover, since it treats
of the salvation of
the sinner wholly as a work of God, known to Him from all eternity, it
naturally carries
our thoughts back to the eternal counsel of peace and the covenant of
grace, in which
provision was made for the redemption of fallen men. It proceeds on the
assumption of
the completed work of Christ as the Mediator of redemption. There is the
closest
possible connection between Christology and Soteriology. Some, as, for
instance,
Hodge, treat of both under the common heading "Soteriology."
Christology then
becomes objective, as distinguished from subjective, Soteriology. In
defining the
contents of
Soteriology, it is better to say that it deals with the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p1.1">
application of the work of redemption</span>
than to say that it treats of the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p1.2">
appropriation of salvation.</span>
The matter
should be studied theologically rather than anthropologically. The work of God
rather than the
work of man is definitely in the foreground. Pope objects to the use of
the former term,
since in using it "we are in danger of the predestinarian error
which assumes that the
finished work of Christ is applied to the individual according to the
fixed purpose of an
election of grace." This is the very reason why a Calvinist prefers
to use that term. To do Pope justice, however, it should be added that he also
objects to the other term, because
it "tends to the other and Pelagian extreme, too obviously making
the atoning provision
of Christ a matter of individual free acceptance or rejection." He
prefers to speak of "<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p1.3">
the administration of redemption</span>," which is indeed a very good term.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.i-p1.4" n="1" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.i-p1.5">Christian Theology,</span> II, p. 309</note></p>

<h4 id="vi.i-p1.6">B. THE ORDO SALUTIS, (ORDER OF SALVATION).</h4>
<p id="vi.i-p2" shownumber="no">The Germans speak of "<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.1">Heilsaneignung</span>," the
Dutch, of "<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.2">Heilsweg</span>" and
"<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.3">Orde des Heils</span>," and the English, of the "<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.4">Way of Salvation.</span>" The<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.5">
ordo salutis</span>
describes the process
by which the work of salvation, wrought in Christ, is subjectively
realized in the hearts
and lives of sinners. It aims at describing in their logical order, and
also in their
interrelations, the various movements of the Holy Spirit in the
application of the work
of redemption. The emphasis is not on what man does in appropriating the
grace of
God, but on what God does in applying it. It is but natural that
Pelagians should object
to this view.
The desire to simplify the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.6">
ordo salutis</span>
often led to unwarranted limitations.
Weizsaecker would include in it only the operations of the Holy Spirit
wrought in the
heart of man, and holds that neither calling nor justification can
properly be included
under this category.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.i-p2.7" n="2" place="foot">Cf. McPherson, <span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.8">Chr. Dogm.,</span> p. 368.</note>
Kaftan, the most
prominent Ritschlian dogmatician, is of the
opinion that the traditional<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.9">
ordo salutis</span>
does not
constitute an inner unity and therefore
ought to be dissolved. He treats of calling under the Word as a means of
grace; of
regeneration, justification, and the mystical union, under the
redemptive work of Christ;
and relegates conversion and sanctification to the domain of Christian
ethics. The result
is that only faith is left, and this constitutes the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.10">
ordo salutis.</span><note anchored="yes" id="vi.i-p2.11" n="3" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.12">Dogm.,</span> p. 651</note>
According to him the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.13">
ordo
salutis</span>
should include only what is required on the part of man unto salvation,
and this
is faith,<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p2.14">
faith only</span>, — a purely anthropological point of view, which probably finds its
explanation in the tremendous emphasis of Lutheran theology on active
faith. </p>

<p id="vi.i-p3" shownumber="no">When we speak of an<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p3.1">
ordo salutis</span>
we do not forget
that the work of applying the
grace of God to the individual sinner is a unitary process, but simply
stress the fact that
various movements can be distinguished in the process, that the work of
the application
of redemption proceeds in a definite and reasonable order, and that God
does not
impart the fulness of His salvation to the sinner in a single act. Had
He done this, the
work of redemption would not have come to the consciousness of God's
children in all
its aspects and in all its divine fulness. Neither do we lose sight of
the fact that we often
use the terms employed to describe the various movements in a more
limited sense than
the Bible does. </p>

<p id="vi.i-p4" shownumber="no">The question may be raised, whether the Bible ever
indicates a definite<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p4.1">
ordo salutis. </span>
The answer to that question is that, while it does not explicitly
furnish us with a
complete order of salvation, it offers us a sufficient basis for such an
order. The nearest
approach found in Scripture to anything like an<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p4.2">
ordo salutis</span>, is the statement of Paul in
<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom. 8:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30" parsed="|Rom|8|30|0|0" passage="Rom 8:30">30</scripRef>. Some of the Lutheran theologians based their enumeration
of the various
movements in the application of redemption rather artificially on <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.26.17" parsed="|Acts|26|17|0|0" passage="Acts 26:17">Acts 26:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.26.18" parsed="|Acts|26|18|0|0" passage="Acts 26:18">18</scripRef>. But while the Bible does not give us a clear-cut<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p4.7"> ordo salutis</span>, it does do two things which
enable us to construe such an order. (1) It furnishes us with a very
full and rich
enumeration of the operations of the Holy Spirit in applying the work of
Christ to
individual sinners, and of the blessings of salvation imparted to them.
In doing this, it
does not always use the very terms employed in Dogmatics, but frequently
resorts to
the use of other names and to figures of speech. Moreover, it often
employs terms which
have now acquired a very definite technical meaning in Dogmatics, in a
far wider sense.
Such words as<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p4.8">
regeneration, calling, conversion, and renewal</span>
repeatedly
serve to designate
the whole change that is brought about in the inner life of man. (2) It
indicates in many
passages and in various ways the relation in which the different
movements in the work
of redemption stand to each other. It teaches that we are justified by
faith and not by
works, <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.30" parsed="|Rom|3|30|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:30">Rom. 3:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.1" parsed="|Rom|5|1|0|0" passage="Rom 5:1">5:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16-Gal.2.20" parsed="|Gal|2|16|2|20" passage="Gal. 2:16-20">Gal. 2:16-20</scripRef>; that, being justified, we have peace with God and
access to Him, <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.1" parsed="|Rom|5|1|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:1">Rom. 5:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.2" parsed="|Rom|5|2|0|0" passage="Rom 5:2">2</scripRef>; that we are set free from sin to become
servants of
righteousness, and to reap the fruit of sanctification, <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.18" parsed="|Rom|6|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:18">Rom. 6:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.22" parsed="|Rom|6|22|0|0" passage="Rom 6:22">22</scripRef>;
that when we are
adopted as children, we receive the Spirit who gives us assurance, and
also become co- heirs with Christ, <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.16" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.15-Rom.8.17" parsed="|Rom|8|15|8|17" passage="Rom. 8:15-17">Rom. 8:15-17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.17" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.4" parsed="|Gal|4|4|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:4">Gal. 4:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.18" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.19" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.6" parsed="|Gal|4|6|0|0" passage="Gal 4:6">6</scripRef>; that faith comes
by the hearing of the word
of God, <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.17" parsed="|Rom|10|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:17">Rom. 10:17</scripRef>; that death unto the law results in life unto God,
<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.21" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.19" parsed="|Gal|2|19|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:19">Gal. 2:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.22" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.20" parsed="|Gal|2|20|0|0" passage="Gal 2:20">20</scripRef>; that
when we believe, we are sealed with the Spirit of God, <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.23" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.13" parsed="|Eph|1|13|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:13">Eph. 1:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.24" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.14" parsed="|Eph|1|14|0|0" passage="Eph 1:14">14</scripRef>;
that it is necessary
to walk worthily of the calling with which we are called, <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.25" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.1" parsed="|Eph|4|1|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:1">Eph. 4:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.26" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.2" parsed="|Eph|4|2|0|0" passage="Eph 4:2">2</scripRef>;
that having
obtained the righteousness of God by faith, we share the sufferings of
Christ, and also the power of His resurrection, <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.27" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.9" parsed="|Phil|3|9|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:9">Phil. 3:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.i-p4.28" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.10" parsed="|Phil|3|10|0|0" passage="Phil 3:10">10</scripRef>; and that we are
begotten again through the
Word of God, <scripRef id="vi.i-p4.29" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.23" parsed="|1Pet|1|23|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:23">I Pet. 1:23</scripRef>. These and similar passages indicate the
relation of the various
movements of the redemptive work to one another, and thus afford a basis
for the
construction of
an<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p4.30">
ordo salutis. </span>
</p>

<p id="vi.i-p5" shownumber="no">In view of the fact that the Bible does not specify the
exact order that applies in the
application of the work of redemption, there is naturally considerable
room for a
difference of opinion. And as a matter of fact the Churches are not all
agreed as to the
<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p5.1">ordo salutis.</span>
The doctrine of the order of salvation is a fruit of the Reformation.
Hardly
any semblance of it is found in the works of the Scholastics. In
pre-Reformation
theology scant justice is done to soteriology in general. It does not
constitute a separate
locus, and its constituent parts are discussed under other rubrics, more
or less as<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p5.2">
disjecta membra.</span>
Even the greatest of the Schoolmen, such as Peter the Lombard and
Thomas
Aquinas, pass on at once from the discussion of the incarnation to that
of the Church
and the sacraments. What may be called their soteriology consists of
only two chapters,
<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p5.3">de Fide et de Poenitentia.</span>
The<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p5.4">
bona opera</span>
also receive considerable attention.
Since
Protestantism took its start from the criticism and displacement of the
Roman Catholic conception of faith, repentance, and good works, it was but
natural that the interest of
the Reformers should center on the origin and development of the new
life in Christ.
Calvin was the first to group the various parts of the order of
salvation in a systematic
way, but even his representation, says Kuyper, is rather subjective,
since it formally
stresses the human activity rather than the divine.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.i-p5.5" n="4" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.i-p5.6">Dict. Dogm., De Salute,</span> pp. 17 f.</note>
Later Reformed theologians
corrected this defect. The following representations of the order of
salvation reflect the
fundamental conceptions of the way of salvation that characterize the
various Churches
since the Reformation. </p>

<p id="vi.i-p6" shownumber="no">1. THE REFORMED VIEW. Proceeding on the
assumption that man's spiritual condition
depends on his state, that is, on his relation to the law; and that it
is only on the basis of
the imputed righteousness of Jesus Christ that the sinner can be
delivered from the
corrupting and destructive influence of sin, — Reformed
Soteriology takes its starting
point in the union established in the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p6.1">
pactum salutis</span>
between Christ and
those whom the
Father has given Him, in virtue of which there is an eternal imputation
of the
righteousness of Christ to those who are His. In view of this precedence
of the legal over
the moral some theologians, such as Maccovius, Comrie, A. Kuyper Sr.,
and A. Kuyper
Jr., begin the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p6.2">
ordo salutis</span>
with justification rather than regeneration. In doing this they
apply the name "justification" also to the ideal imputation of
the righteousness of Christ
to the elect in the eternal counsel<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p6.3">
of</span>
God. Dr. Kuyper further says
that the Reformed
differ from the Lutherans in that the former teach justification<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p6.4">
per justitiam Christi</span>, while
the latter represent the justification<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p6.5">
per fidem</span>
as completing the
work of Christ.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.i-p6.6" n="5" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.i-p6.7">Dict. Dogm., De Salute,</span> p. 69.</note>
The great majority of Reformed theologians, however, while presupposing the
imputation of
the righteousness of Christ in the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p6.8">
pactum salutis</span>
discuss only
justification by faith in the
order of salvation, and naturally take up its discussion in connection
with or
immediately after that of faith. They begin the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p6.9">
ordo salutis</span>
with regeneration or with
calling, and thus emphasize the fact that the application of the
redemptive work of
Christ is in its incipiency a work of God. This is followed by a
discussion of conversion,
in which the work of regeneration penetrates to the conscious life of
the sinner, and he
turns from self, the world, and Satan, to God. Conversion includes
repentance and faith,
but because of its great importance the latter is generally treated
separately. The
discussion of faith naturally leads to that of justification, inasmuch
as this is mediated to
us by faith. And because justification places man in a new relation to
God, which carries
with it the gift of the Spirit of adoption, and which obliges man to a
new obedience and
also enables him to do the will of God from the heart, the work of
sanctification next
comes into consideration. Finally, the order of salvation is concluded
with the doctrine
of the perseverance of the saints and their final glorification.
</p>

<p id="vi.i-p7" shownumber="no">Bavinck distinguishes three groups in the blessings of
salvation. He starts out by
saying that sin is guilt, pollution, and misery, for it involves a
breaking of the covenant
of works, a loss of the image of God, and a subjection to the power of
corruption. Christ delivered us from these three by His suffering, His meeting
the demands of the law, and
His victory over death. Consequently, the blessings of Christ consist in
the following: (a)
He restores the right relation of man to God and to all creatures by
justification,
including the forgiveness of sins, the adoption of children, peace with
God, and
glorious liberty. (b) He renews man in the image of God by regeneration,
internal
calling, conversion, renewal, and sanctification. (c) He preserves man
for his eternal
inheritance, delivers him from suffering and death, and puts him in
possession of
eternal salvation by preservation, perseverance, and glorification. The
first group of
blessings is granted unto us by the illumination of the Holy Spirit, is
accepted by faith,
and sets our conscience free. The second is imparted to us by the
regenerating work of the Holy Spirit, renews us, and redeems us from the power
of sin. And the third flows
to us by the preserving, guiding, and sealing work of the Holy Spirit as
the earnest of
our complete redemption, and delivers us, body and soul, from the dominion
of misery
and death. The first group anoints us as prophets, the second, as
priests, and the third, as kings. In connection with the first we look back to the completed
work of Christ on
the cross, where our sins were atoned; in connection with the second we
look up to the
living Lord in heaven, who as High Priest is seated at the right hand of
the Father; and
in connection with the third we look forward to the future coming of
Jesus Christ, in
which He will subject all enemies and will surrender the kingdom to the
Father.</p>

<p id="vi.i-p8" shownumber="no">There are some things that should be borne in mind in
connection with the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p8.1">
ordo
salutis</span>, as it appears in Reformed theology.
</p>

<p id="vi.i-p9" shownumber="no">a. Some of the terms are not always used in the same
sense. The term<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p9.1">
justification</span>
is
generally limited to what is called justification by faith, but is
sometimes made to cover
an objective justification of the elect in the resurrection of Jesus
Christ, and the
imputation of the righteousness of Christ to them in the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p9.2">
pactum salutis.</span>
Again, the word
<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p9.3">regeneration</span>, which now generally designates that act of God by which He imparts the
principle of the new life to man, is also used to designate the new
birth or the first
manifestation of the new life, and in the theology of the seventeenth
century frequently
occurs as
synonymous with<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p9.4">
conversion</span>
or even<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p9.5">
sanctification.</span>
Some speak of it as<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p9.6">
passive </span>conversion in distinction from conversion proper, which is then called<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p9.7">
active</span>
conversion.</p>

<p id="vi.i-p10" shownumber="no">b. Several other distinctions also deserve attention. We
should carefully distinguish
between the judicial and the recreative acts of God, the former (as
justification) altering
the state, and the latter (as regeneration, conversion), the condition
of the sinner; —
between the work of the Holy Spirit in the subconscious (regeneration),
and that in the conscious life (conversion); — between that which pertains to
the putting away of the
old man (repentance, crucifying of the old man), and that which
constitutes the putting
on of the new man (regeneration and in part sanctification); — and
between the
beginning of the application of the work of redemption (in regeneration
and conversion
proper), and the continuation of it (in daily conversion and
sanctification).</p>

<p id="vi.i-p11" shownumber="no">c. In connection with the various movements in the work
of application we should
bear in mind that the judicial acts of God constitute the basis for His
recreative acts, so
that justification, though not temporally, is yet logically prior to all
the rest; — that the
work of God's grace in the subconscious, precedes that in the conscious
life, so that
regeneration precedes conversion; — and that the judicial acts of God
(justification,
including the forgiveness of sins and the adoption of children) always
address
themselves to the consciousness, while of the recreative acts one,
namely, regeneration,
takes place in the subconscious life.
</p>

<p id="vi.i-p12" shownumber="no">2. THE LUTHERAN VIEW. The Lutherans,
while not denying the doctrines of election,
the mystical union, and the imputation of the righteousness of Christ,
do not take their
starting point in any one of these. They fully recognize the fact that
the subjective
realization of the work of redemption in the hearts and lives of sinners
is a work of
divine grace, but at the same time give a representation of the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p12.1">
ordo salutis</span>
which places
the main emphasis on what is done a<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p12.2">
parte hominis</span>
(on the part of
man) rather than on
what is done a<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p12.3">
parte Dei</span>
(on the part of God). They see in faith first of all a gift of God,
but at the same time make faith, regarded more particularly as an active
principle in
man and as an activity of man, the all-determining factor in their order
of salvation.
Says Pieper: "So kommt denn hinsichtlich der Heilsaneignung alles
darauf an, dass im
Menschen der Glaube an das Evangelium entstehe."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.i-p12.4" n="6" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.i-p12.5">Christl. Dogm.</span> II, p. 477. Cf. also Valentine, <span class="ital" id="vi.i-p12.6">Chr. Theol.</span> II, pp. 258 ff.</note>
Attention was already called to
the fact that Kaftan regards faith as the whole of the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p12.7">
ordo salutis.</span>
This emphasis on faith
as an active principle is undoubtedly due to the fact that in the
Lutheran Reformation
the doctrine of justification by faith — often called the material
principle of the
Reformation — was very much in the foreground. According to Pieper the
Lutheran
takes his starting point in the fact that in Christ God is reconciled to
the world of
humanity. God announces this fact to man in the gospel and offers to put
man subjectively in possession of that forgiveness of sins or justification
which was
objectively wrought in Christ. This calling is always accompanied with a
certain
measure of illumination and of quickening, so that man receives the
power to not-resist
the saving operation of the Holy Spirit. It frequently results in
repentance, and this may
issue in regeneration, by which the Holy Spirit endows the sinner with
saving grace. Now all these, namely, calling, illumination, repentance, and
regeneration, are really
only preparatory, and are strictly speaking not yet blessings of the
covenant of grace.
They are experienced apart from any living relation to Christ, and
merely serve to lead
the sinner to Christ. "Regeneration is conditioned by the conduct
of man with regard to
the influence exerted upon him," and therefore "will
take place at once or gradually, as man's resistance is greater or less."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.i-p12.8" n="7" place="foot">Schmid, <span class="ital" id="vi.i-p12.9">Doct. Theol.,</span> p. 464.</note>
In it man is endowed with a
saving faith by which
he appropriates the forgiveness or justification that is objectively
given in Christ, is
adopted as a child of God, is united to Christ in a mystical union, and
receives the spirit
of renewal and sanctification, the living principle of a life of
obedience. The<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p12.10">
permanent </span>
possession of all these blessings depends on the continuance of faith, —
on an active
faith on the part of man. If man continues to believe, he has peace and
joy, life and
salvation; but if he ceases to exercise faith, all this becomes
doubtful, uncertain, and
amissible. There is always a possibility that the believer will lose all
that he possesses. </p>

<p id="vi.i-p13" shownumber="no">3. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC VIEW. In Roman Catholic theology the doctrine of the
Church precedes the discussion of the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p13.1">
ordo salutis.</span>
Children are
regenerated by baptism,
but they who first become acquainted with the gospel in later life
receive a<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p13.2">
gratia sufficiens</span>, consisting in an illumination of the mind and a strengthening of the
will. Man
can resist this grace, but can also assent to it. If he assents to it,
it turns into a<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p13.3">
gratia co-
operans</span>, in which man co-operates to prepare himself for
justification. This preparation
consists of seven parts: (a) a believing acceptance of the Word of God,
(b) an insight into
one's sinful condition, (c) hope in the mercy of God, (d) the beginning
of love to God,
(e) an abhorrence of sin, (f) a resolve to obey the commandments of God,
and (g) a
desire for baptism. It is quite evident that faith does not occupy a
central place here, but is simply co-ordinated with the other preparations. It
is merely an intellectual assent to
the doctrines of the Church (<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p13.4">fides informis</span>) and acquires its
justifying power only
through the love
that is imparted in the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p13.5">
gratia
infusa</span>
(<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p13.6">fides caritate formata</span>). It can be
called justifying faith only in the sense that it is the basis and root
of all justification as
the first of the preparations named above. After this preparation
justification itself follows in baptism. This consists in the infusion of
grace, of supernatural virtues,
followed by the forgiveness of sins. The measure of this forgiveness is
commensurate
with the degree in which sin is actually overcome. It should be borne in
mind that
justification is given freely, and is not merited by the preceding
preparations. The gift of
justification is preserved by obeying the commandments and by doing good
works. In
the<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p13.7">
gratia infusa</span>
man receives the supernatural strength to do good works and thus to
merit (with a merit<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p13.8">
de condigno</span>
that is, real
merit) all following grace and even
everlasting life. The grace of God thus serves the purpose of enabling
man once more to
merit salvation. But it is not certain that man will retain the
forgiveness of sins. The
grace of justification may be lost, not only through unbelief, but
through any mortal sin.
It may be regained, however, by the sacrament of penance, consisting of
contrition (or,
attrition) and confession, together with absolution and works of
satisfaction. Both the
guilt of sin and eternal punishment are removed by absolution, but
temporal penalties
can be canceled only by works of satisfaction.</p>

<p id="vi.i-p14" shownumber="no">4. THE ARMINIAN VIEW. The Arminian
order of salvation, while ostensibly ascribing
the work of salvation to God, really makes it contingent on the attitude
and the work of
man. God opens up the possibility of salvation for man, but it is up to
man to improve
the opportunity. The Arminian regards the atonement of Christ "as
an oblation and
satisfaction for the sins of the whole world" (Pope), that is, for
the sins of every
individual of the human race. He denies that the guilt of Adam's sin is
imputed to all
his descendants, and that man is by nature totally depraved, and
therefore unable to do
any spiritual good; and believes that, while human nature is undoubtedly
injured and
deteriorated as the result of the fall, man is still able, by nature, to
do that which is
spiritually good and to turn to God. But because of the evil bias, the
perverseness, and
the sluggishness of sinful human nature, God imparts to it gracious
assistance. He
bestows sufficient grace upon all men to enable them, if they choose, to
attain to the full possession of spiritual blessings, and ultimately to
salvation. The gospel offer comes to
all men indiscriminately and exerts a merely moral influence on
them, while they have
it in their power to resist it or to yield to it. If they yield to it,
they will turn to Christ in
repentance and faith. These movements of the soul are not (as in
Calvinism) the results
of regeneration, but are merely introductory to the state of grace
properly so called. When their faith really terminates in Christ, this faith
is, for the sake of the merits of
Christ, imputed to them for righteousness. This does not mean that the
righteousness of
Christ is imputed to them as their very own, but that, in view of what
Christ did for
sinners, their faith, which involves the principle of obedience, honesty
of heart, and
good dispositions, is accepted in lieu of a perfect obedience and is
reckoned to them for
righteousness. On this basis, then, they are justified, which in the
Arminian scheme
generally simply means that their sins are pardoned, and not that they
are accepted as
righteous. Arminians often put it in this form: The forgiveness of sins
is based on the
merits of Christ, but acceptance with God rests on man's obedience to
the law or
evangelical obedience. Faith not only serves to justify, but also to
regenerate sinners. It
insures to man the grace of evangelical obedience and this, if allowed
to function
through life, issues in the grace of perseverance. However, the grace of
God is always
resistible and amissible.</p>

<p id="vi.i-p15" shownumber="no">The so-called Wesleyan or Evangelical Arminian does not
entirely agree with the
Arminianism of the seventeenth century. While his position shows greater
affinity with
Calvinism than the original Arminianism does, it is also more
inconsistent. It admits
that the guilt of Adam's sin is imputed to all his descendants, but at
the same time holds
that all men are justified in Christ, and that therefore this guilt is
at once removed, at
birth. It also admits the entire moral depravity of man in the state of nature,
but goes on
to stress the fact that no man exists in that state of nature, since
there is a universal
application of the work of Christ through the Holy Spirit, by which the
sinner is enabled
to co-operate with the grace of God. It emphasizes the necessity of<span class="ital" id="vi.i-p15.1">
a supernatural</span>
(hyper-
physical) work of grace to effect the sinner's renovation and
sanctification. Moreover, it
teaches the doctrine of Christian perfection or entire sanctification in
the present life. It
may be added that, while Arminius made the bestowal on man of an ability
to co-
operate with God a matter of justice, Wesley regarded this as a matter
of pure grace.
This is the type of Arminianism with which we mostly come in contact. We
meet with it,
not only in the Methodist Church, but also in large sections of other
Churches, and
especially in the many undenominational Churches of the present day. </p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.ii" next="vi.iii" prev="vi.i" title="II. The Operations of the Holy Spirit in General">
<h2 id="vi.ii-p0.1">II. The Operations of the Holy Spirit in General</h2>

<h4 id="vi.ii-p0.2">A. TRANSITION TO THE WORK OF THE HOLY SPIRIT.</h4>
<p id="vi.ii-p1" shownumber="no">As already intimated in the preceding, in passing from
Christology to Soteriology,
we pass from the objective to the subjective, from the work which God
accomplished<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p1.1">
for
us</span>
in Christ
and which is in its sacrificial aspect a finished work, to the work which He
realizes as time
goes on<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p1.2">
in the hearts and lives of believers</span>, and in which they
are
permitted, and also expected, to co-operate. And in the construction of
this doctrine, too, we should be guided by Scripture. Dr. Bavinck calls
attention to a difficulty that
arises here, since the Bible seems to teach on the one hand that the whole
work of
redemption is finished in Christ, so that nothing remains for man to do;
and on the
other hand, that the really decisive thing must still be accomplished in
and through
man. Its teaching respecting the way of redemption seems to be both<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p1.3">
autosoteric</span>
and
<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p1.4">
heterosoteric.</span>
Therefore it is necessary to guard against all one-sidedness, and to
avoid
both the Scylla of Nomism, as it appears in Pelagianism,
Semi-Pelagianism,
Arminianism, and Neonomism, and the Charybdis of Antinomianism, as it
reared its
head, sometimes as a specific doctrine and sometimes as a mere doctrinal
tendency, in
some of the sects, such as the Nicolaitans, the Alexandrian Gnostics,
the Brethren of the
Free Spirit, the Anabaptists of the more fanatic type, the followers of
Agricola, the
Moravians, and some of the Plymouth brethren. Nomism denies the
sovereign election
of God by which He has infallibly determined, not on the basis of the
foreseen attitude
or works of men, but according to His good pleasure, who would and would
not be
saved; rejects the idea that Christ by His atoning death, not only made
salvation
possible, but actually secured it for all those for whom He laid down
His life, so that
eternal life is in the most absolute sense of the word a free gift of
God, and in its
bestowal human merits are not taken into consideration; and maintains,
either that man
can save himself without the aid of renewing grace (Pelagianism), or can
accomplish
this with the assistance of divine grace (Semi-Pelagianism and
Arminianism). On the
other hand Antinomianism, which is sometimes said to be favored by
hyper-Calvinism,
holds that the imputation of our sins to Christ made Him personally a
sinner, and that
the application of His righteousness to us makes us personally
righteous, so that God
sees no sin in us any more; that the union of believers with Christ is a
"union of
identity" and makes them in all respects one with Him; that the
work of the Holy Spirit
is quite superfluous, since the sinner's redemption was completed
on the cross, or —
even more extreme — that the work of Christ was also unnecessary, since
the whole
matter was settled in the eternal decree of God; that the sinner is
justified in the
resurrection of Christ or even in the counsel of redemption, and
therefore does not need
justification by faith or receives in this merely a declaration of a
previously
accomplished justification; and that believers are free from the law,
not only as a
condition of the covenant of works, but also as a rule of life. It
virtually denies the
personality and work of the Holy Spirit, and in some cases even the
objective atonement
through Christ. Both atonement and justification are from eternity. The
penitent sinner
wrongly proceeds on the assumption that God is angry with him and merely
needs
information on that point. Moreover, he should realize that whatever
sins he may
commit cannot affect his standing with God.
</p>

<p id="vi.ii-p2" shownumber="no">Scripture teaches us to recognize a certain economy in
the work of creation and
redemption and warrants our speaking of the Father and our creation, of
the Son and
our redemption, and of the Holy Spirit and our
sanctification. The Holy Spirit has not
only a personality of His own, but also a distinctive method of working;
and therefore
we should distinguish between the work of Christ in meriting salvation
and the work of
the Holy Spirit in applying it. Christ met the demands of divine justice
and merited all
the blessings of salvation. But His work is not yet finished. He
continues it in heaven, in
order to put those for whom He laid down His life in possession of all
that He has
merited for them. Even the work of application is a work of Christ, but
a work which
He accomplishes through the agency of the Holy Spirit. Though this work
stands out in
the economy of redemption as the work of the Holy Spirit, it cannot for
a moment be
separated from the work of Christ. It is rooted in the redemptive work
of Jesus Christ and carries this to completion, and that not without the
co-operation of the subjects of
redemption. Christ Himself points out the close connection when He says:
"Howbeit
when He, the Spirit of truth, is come, He shall guide you into all the
truth: for He shall
not speak from Himself; but what things soever He shall hear, these
shall He speak: and
He shall declare unto you the things that are to come. He shall glorify
me, for He shall  take
of mine, and shall declare it unto you." <scripRef id="vi.ii-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:John.16.13" parsed="|John|16|13|0|0" passage="John 16:13">John 16:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:John.16.14" parsed="|John|16|14|0|0" passage="John 16:14">14</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="vi.ii-p2.3">B. GENERAL AND SPECIAL OPERATIONS OF THE HOLY SPIRIT.</h4>
<p id="vi.ii-p3" shownumber="no">Scripture clearly shows that not all the operations of
the Holy Spirit are part and
parcel of the saving work of Jesus Christ. Just as the Son of God is not
only the Mediator
of redemption, but also the Mediator of creation, so the Holy Spirit, as
represented in
Scripture, is operative, not only in the work of redemption, but also in
the work of
creation. Naturally, Soteriology is concerned with His redemptive work
only, but for its
proper understanding it is highly desirable to take some account of His
more general
operations. </p>

<p id="vi.ii-p4" shownumber="no">1. THE GENERAL OPERATIONS OF THE HOLY SPIRIT. It is a well
known fact that the
trinitarian distinctions are not as clearly revealed in the Old
Testament as in the New.
The term "Spirit of God," as it is employed in the Old
Testament, does not always
denote a person, and even in cases in which the personal idea is clearly
present, does
not always specifically point to the third person of the Holy Trinity.
It is sometimes used
figuratively to denote the breath of God, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.32.8" parsed="|Job|32|8|0|0" passage="Job 32:8">Job 32:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.6" parsed="|Ps|33|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:6">Ps. 33:6</scripRef>, and in
some instances is
simply a synonym
for "God," <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.7" parsed="|Ps|139|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 139:7">Ps. 139:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.8" parsed="|Ps|139|8|0|0" passage="Ps 139:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.13" parsed="|Isa|40|13|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:13">Isa. 40:13</scripRef>. It serves very commonly to
designate the power of life, the principle that causes the creatures to
live, and that is in a
unique way peculiar to God. The spirit dwelling in the creatures, and on
which their
very existence depends, is from God and binds them to God, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Job.32.8" parsed="|Job|32|8|0|0" passage="Job 32:8">Job 32:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Job.33.4" parsed="|Job|33|4|0|0" passage="Job 33:4">33:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Job.34.14" parsed="|Job|34|14|0|0" passage="Job 34:14">34:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:Job.34.15" parsed="|Job|34|15|0|0" passage="Job 34:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104" parsed="|Ps|104|0|0|0" passage="Ps. 104">Ps. 104</scripRef>;<scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.29" parsed="|Ps|29|0|0|0" passage="Ps 29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.5" parsed="|Isa|42|5|0|0" passage="Isa. 42:5">Isa. 42:5</scripRef>. God is called the "God (or, "Father") of the spirits of
all flesh," <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.13" osisRef="Bible:Num.16.22" parsed="|Num|16|22|0|0" passage="Num. 16:22">Num. 16:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:Num.27.16" parsed="|Num|27|16|0|0" passage="Num 27:16">27:16</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.15" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.9" parsed="|Heb|12|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:9">Heb. 12:9</scripRef>. In some of these cases it is quite evident that the Spirit of God is
not a mere power but a person. The very first passage in which the
Spirit is mentioned,
<scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.16" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.2" parsed="|Gen|1|2|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:2">Gen. 1:2</scripRef>, already calls attention to this life-giving function, and this
is particularized in
connection with the creation of man, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.17" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>. The Spirit of God
generates life and
carries the
creative work of God to completion, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.18" osisRef="Bible:Job.33.4" parsed="|Job|33|4|0|0" passage="Job 33:4">Job 33:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.19" osisRef="Bible:Job.34.14" parsed="|Job|34|14|0|0" passage="Job 34:14">34:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.20" osisRef="Bible:Job.34.15" parsed="|Job|34|15|0|0" passage="Job 34:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.21" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.29" parsed="|Ps|104|29|0|0" passage="Ps. 104:29">Ps. 104:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.22" osisRef="Bible:Ps.104.30" parsed="|Ps|104|30|0|0" passage="Ps 104:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p4.23" osisRef="Bible:Isa.42.5" parsed="|Isa|42|5|0|0" passage="Isa. 42:5">Isa. 42:5</scripRef>.
It is evident from the Old Testament that the origin of life, its
maintenance, and its
development depend on the operation of the Holy Spirit. The withdrawal of
the Spirit
means death.</p>

<p id="vi.ii-p5" shownumber="no">Extraordinary exhibitions of power, feats of strength and
daring, are also referred to
the Spirit of God. The judges whom God raised up for the deliverance of
Israel were
evidently men of considerable ability and of unusual daring and strength,
but the real
secret of their accomplishments lay not in themselves, but in a
supernatural power that
came upon them. It is said repeatedly that "the spirit of Jehovah
came (mightily) upon
them,"
<scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Judg.3.10" parsed="|Judg|3|10|0|0" passage="Judg. 3:10">Judg. 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Judg.6.34" parsed="|Judg|6|34|0|0" passage="Judg 6:34">6:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Judg.11.29" parsed="|Judg|11|29|0|0" passage="Judg 11:29">11:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Judg.13.25" parsed="|Judg|13|25|0|0" passage="Judg 13:25">13:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Judg.14.6" parsed="|Judg|14|6|0|0" passage="Judg 14:6">14:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:Judg.14.19" parsed="|Judg|14|19|0|0" passage="Judg 14:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Judg.15.14" parsed="|Judg|15|14|0|0" passage="Judg 15:14">15:14</scripRef>. It was the Spirit of God that
enabled
them to work deliverance for the people. There is also a clear recognition
of the
operation of the Holy Spirit in the intellectual sphere. Elihu speaks of
this when he says:
"But there is a spirit in man, and the breath of the Almighty
giveth them
understanding." <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Job.32.8" parsed="|Job|32|8|0|0" passage="Job 32:8">Job 32:8</scripRef>. Intellectual insight, or the ability to
understand the problems
of life, is ascribed to an illuminating influence of the Holy
Spirit. The heightening of
artistic skill
is also ascribed to the Spirit of the Lord, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:Exod.28.3" parsed="|Exod|28|3|0|0" passage="Ex. 28:3">Ex. 28:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:Exod.31.3" parsed="|Exod|31|3|0|0" passage="Ex 31:3">31:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Exod.35.30" parsed="|Exod|35|30|0|0" passage="Ex 35:30">35:30</scripRef> ff. Certain
men,
characterized by special endowments, were qualified for the finer work
that was to be
done in connection with the construction of the tabernacle and the
adornment of the
priestly garments, cf. also <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.20" parsed="|Neh|9|20|0|0" passage="Neh. 9:20">Neh. 9:20</scripRef>. Again, the Spirit of the Lord is
represented as
qualifying men for various offices. The Spirit was put, and rested, upon
the seventy
who were appointed to assist Moses in ruling and judging the people of
Israel, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:Num.11.17" parsed="|Num|11|17|0|0" passage="Num. 11:17">Num. 11:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:Num.11.25" parsed="|Num|11|25|0|0" passage="Num 11:25">25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.15" osisRef="Bible:Num.11.26" parsed="|Num|11|26|0|0" passage="Num 11:26">26</scripRef>. These also received the spirit of prophecy temporarily, to
attest their calling.
Joshua was chosen as the successor of Moses, because he had the Spirit
of the Lord,
<scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:Num.27.18" parsed="|Num|27|18|0|0" passage="Num. 27:18">Num. 27:18</scripRef>. When Saul and David were anointed as kings, the Spirit of
the Lord came
upon them, to qualify them for their important task, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.17" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.10.6" parsed="|1Sam|10|6|0|0" passage="I Sam. 10:6">I Sam. 10:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.18" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.10.10" parsed="|1Sam|10|10|0|0" passage="I Sam. 10:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.19" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.13" parsed="|1Sam|16|13|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:13">16:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.20" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.14" parsed="|1Sam|16|14|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:14">14</scripRef>. Finally, the
Spirit of God also clearly operated in the prophets as the Spirit of
revelation. David
says, "The Spirit of Jehovah spake by me, and His word was upon my
tongue," <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.21" osisRef="Bible:2Sam.23.2" parsed="|2Sam|23|2|0|0" passage="II Sam. 23:2">II Sam. 23:2</scripRef>. Nehemiah testifies in <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.22" osisRef="Bible:Neh.9.30" parsed="|Neh|9|30|0|0" passage="Neh. 9:30">Neh. 9:30</scripRef>: "Yet many years didst thou
bear with them, and
testifiedst against them by thy Spirit through the prophets: yet they
would not give ear."
Ezekiel speaks of a vision by the Spirit of Jehovah, 11:24, and in <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.23" osisRef="Bible:Zech.7.12" parsed="|Zech|7|12|0|0" passage="Zech. 7:12">Zech. 7:12</scripRef> we read:
"Yea, they made their heart as an adamant stone, lest they should
hear the law, and the
words which Jehovah of hosts had sent in His Spirit by the former prophets."
Cf. also <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.24" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.22.24" parsed="|1Kgs|22|24|0|0" passage="I Kings 22:24">I Kings 22:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p5.25" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.11" parsed="|1Pet|1|11|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:11">I Pet. 1:11</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:21. </p>

<p id="vi.ii-p6" shownumber="no">2. THE RELATION BETWEEN THE GENERAL AND THE SPECIAL OPERATIONS OF THE HOLY SPIRIT. There is a certain similarity
between the general and the special operations of the
Holy Spirit. By His general operations He originates, maintains,
strengthens, and guides
all life, organic, intellectual, and moral. He does this in different
ways and in harmony with the objects concerned. Something similar may be said
of His special operation. In
the redemptive sphere He also originates the new life, fructifies it,
guides it in its
development, and leads it to its destiny. But in spite of this
similarity, there is
nevertheless an essential difference between the operations of the Holy
Spirit in the
sphere of creation and those in the sphere of redemption or re-creation.
In the former He
originates, maintains, develops and guides<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p6.1">
the life of the natural creation</span>, restrains for the
present the deteriorating and devastating influence of sin in the
lives of men and of
society, and enables men to maintain a certain order and decorum in
their communal
life, to do what is outwardly good and right in their relations to each
other, and to
develop the talents with which they were endowed at creation. In the
latter, on the other
hand, He originates, maintains, develops, and guides<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p6.2">
the new life</span>
that is born from
above, is nourished from above, and will be perfected above, — a life
that is heavenly in
principle, though lived on earth. By His special operation the Holy
Spirit overcomes
and destroys the power of sin, renews man in the image of God, and
enables him to
render spiritual obedience to God, to be the salt of the earth, the
light of the world, and a spiritual leaven in every sphere of life. While the
work of the Holy Spirit in creation in
general undoubtedly has a certain independent significance, yet it is
made subordinate
to the work of redemption. The entire life of the elect, also that
preceding their new
birth, is determined and governed by God with a view to their final
destiny. Their
natural life is so regulated that, when it is renewed, it will answer to
the purpose of
God.</p>

<h4 id="vi.ii-p6.3">C. THE HOLY SPIRIT AS THE DISPENSER OF DIVINE GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vi.ii-p7" shownumber="no">As the covenant in which God made provision for the
salvation of sinners is called
the covenant of grace, and as the Mediator of the covenant is said to
have appeared
"full of
grace," so that we can receive out of His fulness "grace for
grace," <scripRef id="vi.ii-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:John.1.16" parsed="|John|1|16|0|0" passage="John 1:16">John 1:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:John.1.17" parsed="|John|1|17|0|0" passage="John 1:17">17</scripRef>,
so the Holy
Spirit is called "the Spirit of grace," since He takes the
"grace of Christ" and confers it on
us. </p>

<p id="vi.ii-p8" shownumber="no">1. THE BIBLICAL USE OF THE TERM "GRACE". The word
"grace" is not always used in
the same sense in Scripture, but has a variety of meanings. In the Old
Testament we
have the word<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.1">
chen</span>
(adj.<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.2">
chanun</span>), from the root<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.3">
chanan.</span>
The noun may
denote <span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.4">gracefulness</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.5">
beauty</span>,
<scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Prov.22.11" parsed="|Prov|22|11|0|0" passage="Prov. 22:11">Prov. 22:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Prov.31.30" parsed="|Prov|31|30|0|0" passage="Prov 31:30">31:30</scripRef>, but most generally means<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.8">
favour</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.9">
good-will. </span>
The Old Testament repeatedly speaks of finding favour in the eyes of God
or of man.
The favour so found carries with it the bestowal of favours or
blessings. This means that
grace is not an abstract quality, but is an active, working principle,
manifesting itself in
beneficent acts, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.8" parsed="|Gen|6|8|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:8">Gen. 6:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Gen.19.19" parsed="|Gen|19|19|0|0" passage="Gen 19:19">19:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:Gen.33.15" parsed="|Gen|33|15|0|0" passage="Gen 33:15">33:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:Exod.33.12" parsed="|Exod|33|12|0|0" passage="Ex. 33:12">Ex. 33:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:Exod.34.9" parsed="|Exod|34|9|0|0" passage="Ex 34:9">34:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.1.18" parsed="|1Sam|1|18|0|0" passage="I Sam. 1:18">I Sam. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.16" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.27.5" parsed="|1Sam|27|5|0|0" passage="I Sam. 27:5">27:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.17" osisRef="Bible:Esth.2.7" parsed="|Esth|2|7|0|0" passage="Esth. 2:7">Esth. 2:7</scripRef>. The
fundamental idea is, that the blessings graciously bestowed are<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.18">
freely</span>
given, and not in
consideration of any claim or merit. The New Testament word<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.19">
charis</span>, from<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.20">
chairein</span>, "to rejoice," denotes first of all<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.21">
a pleasant external appearance, "loveliness</span>," "<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.22">agreeableness</span>-,"
"<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.23">acceptableness</span>," and has some such meaning in
<scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.24" osisRef="Bible:Luke.4.22" parsed="|Luke|4|22|0|0" passage="Luke 4:22">Luke 4:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.25" osisRef="Bible:Col.4.6" parsed="|Col|4|6|0|0" passage="Col. 4:6">Col. 4:6</scripRef>. A more prominent
meaning of the
word, however, is<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.26">
favour</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.27">
good-will</span>, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.28" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.30" parsed="|Luke|1|30|0|0" passage="Luke 1:30">Luke 1:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.29" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.40" parsed="|Luke|2|40|0|0" passage="Luke 2:40">2:40</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.30" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.52" parsed="|Luke|2|52|0|0" passage="Luke 2:52">52</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.31" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.47" parsed="|Acts|2|47|0|0" passage="Acts 2:47">Acts 2:47</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.32" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.46" parsed="|Acts|7|46|0|0" passage="Acts 7:46">7:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.33" osisRef="Bible:Acts.24.27" parsed="|Acts|24|27|0|0" passage="Acts 24:27">24:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.34" osisRef="Bible:Acts.25.9" parsed="|Acts|25|9|0|0" passage="Acts 25:9">25:9</scripRef>. It
may denote the kindness or beneficence of our Lord, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.35" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.9" parsed="|2Cor|8|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:9">II Cor. 8:9</scripRef>, or the
favour manifested or bestowed by God, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.36" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.8" parsed="|2Cor|9|8|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:8">II Cor. 9:8</scripRef> (referring to material
blessings); <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.37" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.10" parsed="|1Pet|5|10|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:10">I Pet. 5:10</scripRef>. Furthermore, the word is expressive of the emotion awakened in the
heart of the
recipient of
such favour, and thus acquires the meaning "<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.38">gratitude</span>" or "<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.39">thankfulness</span>,"
<scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.40" osisRef="Bible:Luke.4.22" parsed="|Luke|4|22|0|0" passage="Luke 4:22">Luke 4:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.41" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.30" parsed="|1Cor|10|30|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:30">I Cor. 10:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.42" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.57" parsed="|1Cor|15|57|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:57">15:57</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.43" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.2.14" parsed="|2Cor|2|14|0|0" passage="II Cor. 2:14">II Cor. 2:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.44" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.16" parsed="|2Cor|8|16|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:16">8:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.45" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.12" parsed="|1Tim|1|12|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:12">I Tim. 1:12</scripRef>. In most of the passages,
however, in which the word<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p8.46">
charis</span>
is used in the New
Testament, it signifies the
unmerited operation of God in the heart of man, effected through the agency
of the
Holy Spirit. While we sometimes speak of grace as an inherent quality,
it is in reality the
active communication of divine blessings by the inworking of the Holy
Spirit, out of the
fulness of Him
who is "full of grace and truth," <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.47" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.24" parsed="|Rom|3|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:24">Rom. 3:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.48" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.2" parsed="|Rom|5|2|0|0" passage="Rom 5:2">5:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.49" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.15" parsed="|Rom|5|15|0|0" passage="Rom 5:15">15</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.50" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.17" parsed="|Rom|5|17|0|0" passage="Rom 5:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.51" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.20" parsed="|Rom|5|20|0|0" passage="Rom 5:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.52" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.1" parsed="|Rom|6|1|0|0" passage="Rom 6:1">6:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.53" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.4" parsed="|1Cor|1|4|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:4">I Cor. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.54" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.6.1" parsed="|2Cor|6|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 6:1">II Cor. 6:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.55" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.9" parsed="|2Cor|8|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:9">8:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.56" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.7" parsed="|Eph|1|7|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:7">Eph. 1:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.57" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.5" parsed="|Eph|2|5|0|0" passage="Eph 2:5">2:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.58" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8" parsed="|Eph|2|8|0|0" passage="Eph 2:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.59" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.7" parsed="|Eph|3|7|0|0" passage="Eph 3:7">3:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.60" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.7" parsed="|1Pet|3|7|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:7">I Pet. 3:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p8.61" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.12" parsed="|1Pet|5|12|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:12">5:12</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.ii-p9" shownumber="no">2. THE GRACE OF GOD IN THE WORK OF REDEMPTION. A discussion of the grace of God
in connection with the work of redemption again calls for several
distinctions, which
should be borne in mind.</p>

<p id="vi.ii-p10" shownumber="no">a. In the first place grace is an attribute of God, one
of the divine perfections. It is
God's free, sovereign, undeserved favour or love to man, in his state of
sin and guilt, which manifests itself in the forgiveness of sin and deliverance
from its penalty. It is
connected with the mercy of God as distinguished from His justice. This
is redemptive
grace in the most fundamental sense of the word. It is the ultimate
cause of God's
elective purpose, of the sinner's justification, and of his spiritual
renewal; and the
prolific source of all spiritual and eternal blessings.</p>

<p id="vi.ii-p11" shownumber="no">b. In the second place the term "grace" is used
as a designation of the objective
provision which God made in Christ for the salvation of man. Christ as
the Mediator is
the living embodiment of the grace of God. "The Word became flesh,
and dwelt among
us ... full of grace and truth," <scripRef id="vi.ii-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|14|0|0" passage="John 1:14">John 1:14</scripRef>. Paul has the appearance
of Christ in mind,
when he says: "For the grace of God hath appeared, bringing
salvation to all men," <scripRef id="vi.ii-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.11" parsed="|Titus|2|11|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:11">Tit.
2:11</scripRef>. But the term is applied not only to what Christ<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p11.3">
is</span>
but also
to what He<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p11.4">
merited</span>
for
sinners. When the apostle speaks repeatedly in the closing salutations
of his Epistles of
"the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ," he has in mind the grace
of which Christ is the
meritorious cause. John says: "The law was given through Moses, but
grace and truth
came through
Jesus Christ," <scripRef id="vi.ii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:John.1.17" parsed="|John|1|17|0|0" passage="John 1:17">John 1:17</scripRef>. Cf. also <scripRef id="vi.ii-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.7" parsed="|Eph|2|7|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:7">Eph. 2:7</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.ii-p12" shownumber="no">c. In the third place the word "grace" is used
to designate the favour of God as it is
manifested in the application of the work of redemption by the Holy
Spirit. It is applied
to the pardon which we receive in justification, a pardon freely given
by God, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.24" parsed="|Rom|3|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:24">Rom. 3:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.2" parsed="|Rom|5|2|0|0" passage="Rom 5:2">5:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.21" parsed="|Rom|5|21|0|0" passage="Rom 5:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.15" parsed="|Titus|3|15|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:15">Tit. 3:15</scripRef>. But in addition to that it is also a comprehensive name for all the
gifts of the grace of God, the blessings of salvation, and the spiritual
graces which are wrought in the hearts and lives of believers through the
operation of the Holy Spirit, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.11.23" parsed="|Acts|11|23|0|0" passage="Acts 11:23">Acts 11:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.18.27" parsed="|Acts|18|27|0|0" passage="Acts 18:27">18:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.17" parsed="|Rom|5|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:17">Rom. 5:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.10" parsed="|1Cor|15|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:10">I Cor. 15:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.14" parsed="|2Cor|9|14|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:14">II Cor. 9:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.7" parsed="|Eph|4|7|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:7">Eph. 4:7</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:Jas.4.5" parsed="|Jas|4|5|0|0" passage="Jas. 4:5">Jas. 4:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.12" osisRef="Bible:Jas.4.6" parsed="|Jas|4|6|0|0" passage="Jas 4:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.13" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.7" parsed="|1Pet|3|7|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:7">I Pet. 3:7</scripRef>.
Moreover, there are clear indications of the fact that it is not a mere
passive quality, but
also an active
force, a power, something that labours, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.10" parsed="|1Cor|15|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:10">I Cor. 15:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.15" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.12.9" parsed="|2Cor|12|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 12:9">II Cor. 12:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.16" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.1" parsed="|2Tim|2|1|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:1">II Tim. 2:1</scripRef>.
In this sense of the word it is something like a synonym for the Holy
Spirit, so that there
is little
difference between "full of the Holy Spirit" and "full of grace
and power" in
<scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.17" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6.5" parsed="|Acts|6|5|0|0" passage="Acts 6:5">Acts 6:5</scripRef> and 8.
The Holy Spirit is called "the Spirit of grace" in <scripRef id="vi.ii-p12.18" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.29" parsed="|Heb|10|29|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:29">Heb. 10:29</scripRef>. It is
especially in connection with the teachings of Scripture respecting the
application of the
grace of God to the sinner by the Holy Spirit, that the doctrine of
grace was developed
in the Church.</p>

<p id="vi.ii-p13" shownumber="no">3. THE DOCTRINE OF GRACE IN THE CHURCH. The teachings of Scripture respecting the
grace of God stress the fact that God distributes His blessings to men<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p13.1">
in a free and
sovereign manner, and not in consideration of any inherent
merit of men</span>;
that men owe all the blessings of life to a beneficent, forbearing, and longsuffering God;
and especially that
all the blessings of the work of salvation are freely given of God, and
are in no way
determined by supposed merits of men. This is clearly expressed by Paul
in the
following words: "For by grace have ye been saved through faith;
and that not of
yourselves, it is the gift of God; not of works, that no man should
glory," <scripRef id="vi.ii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8" parsed="|Eph|2|8|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:8">Eph. 2:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.9" parsed="|Eph|2|9|0|0" passage="Eph 2:9">9</scripRef>. He
strongly emphasizes the fact that salvation is not by works, <scripRef id="vi.ii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.20-Rom.3.28" parsed="|Rom|3|20|3|28" passage="Rom. 3:20-28">Rom.
3:20-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.16" parsed="|Rom|4|16|0|0" passage="Rom 4:16">4:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.ii-p14" shownumber="no">This doctrine did not go entirely unchallenged. In some
of the early Church Fathers,
particularly of the Eastern Church, we already meet with a strain of
moralism that is not
in harmony with the Pauline emphasis. The tendency that became apparent
in that
section of the Church, finally culminated in Pelagianism. Pelagius'
conception of grace
was rather unusual. According to Wiggers he comprehended under grace:
(a) "The
power of doing
good (<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p14.1">possibilitas boni</span>), and therefore
especially free will itself." (b) "The
revelation, the law, and the example of Christ, by which the practice of
virtue is made
easier for man." (c) "Our being so made as to be able, by our
own will, to abstain from
sin, and in God's giving us the help of His law and His commands, and<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p14.2">
in His pardoning
the previous sins of those who return to Him.</span>
" (d)
"Supernatural influences on the
Christian, by which his understanding is enlightened and the practice of
virtue is
rendered easy to him."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.ii-p14.3" n="8" place="foot">Augustinian and Pelagianism, pp. 179-183.</note>
He recognized no<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p14.4">
direct</span>
operation of the Spirit of God on the
will of man, but only an<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p14.5">
indirect</span>
operation on the
will through the enlightened
conscience. In his view the operation of the grace of God was primarily,
though not
exclusively, external and natural. In opposition to the Pelagian view,
that of Augustine
is often designated as "the theology of grace." While
Augustine admitted that the word
"grace" could be used in a wider sense (natural grace), and
that even in the state of
integrity it was the grace of God that made it possible for Adam to
retain his
uprightness, his main emphasis is always on grace as the gift of God to
fallen man,
which manifests itself in the forgiveness of sin and in the renewal and
sanctification of
human nature. In view of the total depravity of man he regards this
grace as absolutely necessary unto salvation. It is wrought in man by the
operation of the Holy Spirit, who
dwells and works in the elect and is the principle of all the blessings
of salvation. He
distinguished
between<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p14.6">
operating</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p14.7">
prevenient</span>, and<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p14.8">
co-operating</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p14.9">
subsequent</span>
grace. The
former enables the will to choose the good, and the latter co-operates
with the already
enabled will, to do the good. In his struggle with Semi-Pelagianism
Augustine
emphasized the entirely gratuitous and irresistible character of the
grace of God.</p>
<p id="vi.ii-p15" shownumber="no">In the subsequent struggles the Augustinian doctrine of
grace was only partly
victorious.
Seeberg expresses himself as follows: "Thus the doctrine of 'grace alone'
came off victorious; but the Augustinian doctrine of predestination was
abandoned. The irresistible grace of predestination was driven from the field
by the sacramental grace of
baptism."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.ii-p15.1" n="9" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.2">History of Doctrine,</span> I, p. 382.</note>
During the Middle Ages the
Scholastics paid considerable attention to the
subject of grace, but did not always agree as to the details of the
doctrine. Some
approached the Augustinian, and others the Semi-Pelagian conception of
grace. In
general it may be said that they conceived of grace as mediated through
the sacraments,
and that they sought to combine with the doctrine of grace a doctrine of
merit which
seriously compromised the former. The emphasis was not on grace as the
favor of God
shown to sinners, but on grace as a quality of the soul, which might be
regarded as both
uncreated (i.e., as the Holy Spirit), or as increated, or wrought in the
hearts of men by
the Holy Spirit. This infused grace is basic to the development of the
Christian virtues,
and enables man to acquire merit with God, to merit further grace, though
he cannot
merit the grace of perseverance. This can only be obtained as a free
gift of God. The
Scholastics did not, like Augustine, maintain the logical connection
between the
doctrine of grace and the doctrine of predestination.
The Reformers went back to the Augustinian conception of
grace, but avoided his
sacramentarianism. They placed the emphasis once more on grace as the
unmerited
favour of God shown to sinners, and represented it in a manner which
excluded all
merit on the
part of the sinner. Says Smeaton: "The term<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.3">
grace</span>, which in Augustine's
acceptation intimated the inward exercise of love, awakened by the
operations of the
Holy Spirit (<scripRef id="vi.ii-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.5" parsed="|Rom|5|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:5">Rom. 5:5</scripRef>), and which in the scholastic theology had come to
denote a quality of the soul, or the inner endowments, and infused habits of
faith, love, and
hope, was now taken in the more scriptural and wider sense for the free,
the efficacious
<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.5">
favour</span>
which is in the divine mind."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.ii-p15.6" n="10" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.7">The Doctrine of the Holy Spirit,</span> p. 346.</note>
While the Reformers used the term<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.8">
grace</span>
in
connection with justification, in other connections they often used the
phrase, "the work
of the Holy Spirit," instead of the term<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.9">
grace.</span>
While they all emphasized grace in the
sense of the internal and saving operation of the Holy Spirit, Calvin
especially
developed the idea of common grace, that is, a grace which, while it is
the expression of
the favour of God, does not have a saving effect. According to the
splendid dogma-
historical study of Dr. H. Kuiper on<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.10">
Calvin on Common Grace,</span><note anchored="yes" id="vi.ii-p15.11" n="11" place="foot">pp. 179 ff.</note>
he even distinguished
three kinds of common grace, namely, universal common grace, general
common grace,
and covenant common grace. The Arminians departed from the doctrine of
the
Reformation on this point. According to them God gives sufficient
(common) grace to
all men, and thereby enables them to repent and believe. If the human
will concurs or
co-operates with the Holy Spirit and man actually repents and believes,
God confers on
man the further grace of evangelical obedience and the grace of
perseverance. Thus the
work of the grace of God is made to depend on the consent of the will of
man. There is
no such thing as irresistible grace. Says Smeaton in the work already
quoted: "It was
held that every one could obey or resist; that the cause of conversion
was not the Holy
Spirit so much as the human will concurring or co-operating; and that
this was the
immediate cause of conversion."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.ii-p15.12" n="12" place="foot">p. 357.</note>
Amyraldus of the School of Saumur did not
really
improve on the Arminian position by his assumption, in connection with
the general
decree of God, that the sinner, while devoid of the moral ability, yet
has the natural
ability to believe, an unfortunate distinction, which was also carried
over into New
England by Edwards, Bellamy and Fuller. Pajon, a disciple of Amyraldus,
denied the
necessity of the work of the Holy Spirit in the internal illumination of
sinners, in order
to their saving conversion. The only thing which he regarded as
necessary was that the
understanding, which has in itself a sufficiency of clear ideas, should
be struck by the
light of
external revelation. Bishop Warburton in his work on<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.13">
The Doctrine of Grace, or the
Office and Operations of the Holy Spirit</span>
knows of no
saving grace in the accepted sense of
the word, but limits the word "grace" to the extraordinary
operations of the Spirit in the
apostolic age. And Junckheim in his important work denied the
supernatural character
of God's work in the conversion of the sinner, and affirmed that the
moral power of the
word effected all. The Methodist Revival in England and the Great
Awakening in our
own country brought with them a restoration of the doctrine of saving
grace, though in
some cases tinged more or less with Arminianism. For Schleiermacher the
problem of
the guilt of sin was practically non-existent, since he denied the
objective existence of
guilt. And consequently he knows little or nothing of the saving grace
of God. Says
Mackintosh: "This central Biblical truth (of divine mercy to
sinners) Schleiermacher for the most part passes by in silence, or mentions
only in a perfunctory fashion that shows
how little he understands it."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.ii-p15.14" n="13" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.15">Types of Modern theology,</span> p. 96.</note>
The doctrine of divine grace is also
necessarily obscured
in the theology of Albrecht Ritschl. And it may be said to be
characteristic of the whole
of modern liberal theology, with its emphasis on the goodness of man,
that it has lost
sight of the necessity of the saving grace of God. The word
"grace" has gradually
disappeared from the written and spoken word of many theologians, and
many of the
common people in our day attach no other meaning to the term than that of
gracefulness or graciousness. Even Otto calls attention to it in his
work on<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p15.16">
The Idea of the
Holy</span>
that people fail to sense the deeper meaning of the
word.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.ii-p15.17" n="14" place="foot">pp. 32 ff., 145.</note>
The Theology of Crisis
deserves credit for stressing anew the need of divine grace, with the
result that the word
is once more coming into use.</p>

<p id="vi.ii-p16" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY:
On which elements of the<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p16.1">
ordo
salutis</span>
did the
emphasis fall in the first three centuries? In how far did these
centuries reveal a drift
towards moralism and ceremonialism? How was the doctrine of
justification
understood? How did Augustine conceive of it? What was his conception of
faith? How
many kinds of grace did he distinguish? Did grace exclude all merit in
his system? Did
he conceive of saving grace as amissible? What factors favored the
development of the
doctrine of good works? How did the Scholastics represent the doctrine
of justification? How did the<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p16.2">
ordo salutis</span>
fare in the hands
of the Antinomians? How did the rationalistic
and pietistic neonomians conceive of it? What other than saving
operations are ascribed
to the Holy
Spirit in Scripture? Which are the different meanings of the word 'grace' in
Scripture? What does it designate in connection with the work of
redemption? What is
the relation between the doctrines of free will and grace in history?</p>

<p id="vi.ii-p17" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 551-690; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Salute</span>, pp. 15-20; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.3">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 367-371; Kaftan,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.4">
Dogmatik</span>, pp. 525-532, 651-661;
-Warfield,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.5">
The Plan of
Salvation</span>; Seeberg,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.6">
Heilsordnung</span>
(Art. in Hauck's<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.7">; Realencyclopaedie</span>);
Pieper,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.8">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
II, pp.. 473-498; H. Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.9">
Doct. Theol.</span>, pp. 413-416; K. Dijk,
<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.10">Heilsorde</span>
(Art. in<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.11"> Chr. Enc.</span>); Pope,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.12">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 348-367; Neil,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.13">
Grace</span>
(Art. in<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.14">
A Protestant Dictionary</span>); Easton,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.15">
Grace</span>
(Art. in the<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.16"> Intern. Standard Bible Ec.</span>); Smeaton,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.17">
The Doctrine of the Holy Spirit</span>, pp. 1-99, 291-414; Buchanan,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.18">
The Doctrine of Justification</span>, pp. 339-364; Moffatt,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.19">
Grace in the New Testament</span>; Bryan, W. S.,<span class="ital" id="vi.ii-p17.20">
An Inquiry into the Need of the Grace of God.</span></p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.iii" next="vi.iv" prev="vi.ii" title="III. Common Grace">
<h2 id="vi.iii-p0.1">III. Common Grace</h2>
<p id="vi.iii-p1" shownumber="no">In connection with the general operations of the Holy
Spirit the subject of common
grace also calls for attention. It should be understood, however, that
Reformed theology
does not, like Arminian theology, regard the doctrine of common grace as
a part of
Soteriology. At the same time it does recognize a close connection
between the
operations of the Holy Spirit in the sphere of creation and in that of
redemption, and therefore feels that they should not be entirely dissociated.</p>

<h4 id="vi.iii-p1.1">A. ORIGIN OF THE DOCTRINE OF COMMON GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vi.iii-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE PROBLEM WITH WHICH IT DEALS. The origin of the doctrine of common grace
was occasioned by the fact that there is in the world, alongside of the
course of the
Christian life with all its blessings, a natural course of life, which
is not redemptive and
yet exhibits many traces of the true, the good, and the beautiful. The
question arose,
How can we explain the comparatively orderly life in the world, seeing
that the whole
world lies under the curse of sin? How is it that the earth yields
precious fruit in rich
abundance and does not simply bring forth thorns and thistles? How can we
account
for it that sinful man still "retains some knowledge of God, of
natural things, and of the
difference between good and evil, and shows some regard for virtue and
for good
outward behavior"? What explanation can be given of the special
gifts and talents with
which the natural man is endowed, and of the development of science and
art by those
who are entirely devoid of the new life that is in Christ Jesus? How can
we explain the
religious aspirations of men everywhere, even of those who did not come
in touch with
the Christian religion? How can the unregenerate still speak the truth,
do good to
others, and lead outwardly virtuous lives? These are some of the
questions to which the
doctrine of common grace seeks to supply the answer.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p3" shownumber="no">2. AUGUSTINE'S ATTITUDE TOTHIS PROBLEM. Augustine did not teach the doctrine of
common grace, though he did not use the word "grace"
exclusively as a designation of
saving grace. He spoke of a grace which Adam enjoyed before the fall,
and even
admitted that man's existing as a living, sentient, and rational being
might be termed
grace. But over against Pelagius, who stressed the natural ability of
man and recognized
no other grace than that consisting in the natural endowments of man, the
law and the
gospel, the example of Christ, and the illumination of the understanding
by a gracious
influence of God, — he emphasized the total inability of man and
his absolute
dependence on the grace of God as an inner renewing power, which not
only illumines
the mind but also acts directly on the will of man, either as operating
or as co-operating
grace. He employs the word "grace" almost exclusively in this
sense, and regards this
grace as the necessary condition to the performance of each good act.
When the
Pelagians pointed to the virtues of the heathen, who "merely
through the power of
innate freedom" were often merciful, discreet, chaste, and
temperate, he answered that these so-called virtues were sins, because they did
not spring from faith. He admits that
the heathen can perform certain acts which are in themselves good and
from a lower
point of view even praiseworthy, but yet considers these deeds,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p3.1">
as the deeds of unregenerate persons</span>, to be sin, because they do not spring from the motive of love to
God or of faith, and do not answer to the right purpose, the glory of
God.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p3.2" n="15" place="foot">Cf. Polman,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p3.3"> De Predestinatieleer van Augustinus, Thomas van Aquino en Calvijn,</span> pp. 77 f.; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p3.4"> History of Christian Doctrine</span> II, pp. 75 f.</note> He denies that such deeds are the
fruit of any natural goodness in man.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p4" shownumber="no">3. THE VIEW THAT DEVELOPED DURING THE MIDDLE AGES. During the Middle Ages the
Augustinian
antithesis of<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p4.1">
sin and grace</span>
gave way to
that of<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p4.2">
nature and grace.</span>
This was
based on another antithesis which played an important part in Roman
Catholic
theology, namely, that of the natural and the supernatural. In the state
of integrity man
was endowed with the supernatural gift of original righteousness, which
served as a
bridle to hold the lower nature in check. As the result of the fall, man
lost this
supernatural gift, but his real nature remained or was but slightly
affected. A sinful bias
developed, but this did not prohibit man from producing much that was
true, and
good, and beautiful. However, without the infusion of the grace of God,
all this did not suffice to give one a claim to life eternal. In connection
with the antithesis of the natural
and the supernatural, the Roman Catholic Church developed the distinction
between
the moral virtues of humility, obedience, meekness, liberality, temperance,
chastity, and
diligence in what is good, which men can gain for themselves by their
own labors, and
with the timely aid of divine grace; and the theological virtues of
faith, hope, and
charity, which are infused into man by sanctifying grace. Anabaptism and
Socinianism
suffer from the same antithesis, but with the distinction that the
former exalts grace at
the expense of nature, while the latter exalts nature at the expense of
grace.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p5" shownumber="no">4. THE POSITION OF THE REFORMERS AND OF REFORMED THEOLOGY. On this, as on some
other points of doctrine, Luther did not entirely escape the leaven of
Roman
Catholicism. While he did return to the Augustinian antithesis of sin
and grace, he drew
a sharp distinction between the lower earthly sphere and the higher
spiritual sphere,
and maintained that fallen man is by nature capable of doing much that is
good and praiseworthy in the lower or earthly sphere, though he is utterly
incapable of doing any
spiritual good. With an appeal to Augustine the Augsburg Confession
teaches "that
man's will hath some liberty to work a civil righteousness, and to
choose such things as
reason can reach unto; but that it hath no power to work the
righteousness of God."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p5.1" n="16" place="foot">Art. XVIII.</note>
The Article contains a quotation from Augustine, in which many of the
good works
pertaining to the present life, which the natural man can do, are named.
Zwingli
conceived of sin as pollution rather than as guilt, and consequently
regarded the grace
of God as sanctifying, rather than as pardoning, grace. This sanctifying
influence, which
penetrated in a measure even into the Gentile world, accounts for the
true, the good,
and the beautiful that is in the world. Calvin did not agree with the
position of Luther,
nor with that of Zwingli. He firmly maintained that the natural man can<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p5.2">
of himself</span>
do no
good work whatsoever and strongly insisted on the particular nature of
saving grace.
He developed alongside of the doctrine of particular grace the doctrine
of common
grace. This is a grace which is communal, does not pardon nor purify
human nature,
and does not effect the salvation of sinners. It curbs the destructive
power of sin,
maintains in a measure the moral order of the universe, thus making an
orderly life
possible, distributes in varying degrees gifts and talents among men,
promotes the
development of science and art, and showers untold blessings upon the
children of
men. Since the days of Calvin the doctrine of common grace was generally
recognized
in Reformed theology, though it also met with occasional opposition. For
a long time, however, little was done to develop the doctrine. This was in all
probability due to the
fact that the rise and prevalence of Rationalism made it necessary to
place all emphasis
on special grace. Up to the present Kuyper and Bavinck did more than any
one else for
the development of the doctrine of common grace.</p>

<h4 id="vi.iii-p5.3">B. NAME AND CONCEPT OF COMMON GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vi.iii-p6" shownumber="no">1. NAME. The name "common grace" as a designation of
the grace now under
discussion cannot be said to owe its origin to Calvin. Dr. H. Kuiper in
his work on
<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.1">Calvin on Common Grace</span>
says that he found only four
passages in Calvin's works in
which the
adjective "common" is used with the noun "grace," and in
two of these the
Reformer is speaking of saving grace.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p6.2" n="17" place="foot">Cf. p. 178</note>
In later Reformed theology, however, the name
<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.3">gratia communis</span>
came into general use to express the idea that this grace extends to
all
men, in contrast with the<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.4">
gratia particularis</span>
which is
limited to a part of mankind, namely, to the elect. In course of time it became evident that the term
"communis"
admitted of various interpretations. In Dutch theology it is often
regarded as equivalent
to
"general," and as a result it became customary to speak of
"general grace" (<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.5">algemeene genade</span>) in the Netherlands. Strictly speaking, however, the term<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.6">
communis</span>, as applied to
grace, while implying that it is general in some sense of the word,
stresses the fact that this grace is communal, that is, possessed in common by
all creatures, or by all men, or
by those who live under the administration of the gospel. Thus Dr. H.
Kuiper classifies
the common grace of which Calvin speaks under three heads, namely: (1)
Universal
Common Grace, a grace that extends to all creatures; (2) General Common
Grace, that is
a grace which applies to mankind in general and to every member of the
human race;
and (3) Covenant Common Grace, a grace that is common to
all those who live in the
sphere of the covenant, whether they belong to the elect or not. It is
quite evident that
Reformed theologians also subsumed under the term "common
grace" a grace that is
not general, namely, the external privileges of those who are living
under the
administration of the gospel, including the external universal calling.
At the same time they point out that this grace, in distinction from general
common grace, belongs to the
economy of redemption.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p6.7" n="18" place="foot">Cf. Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.8"> God geleerdheit</span> I, p. 441; Brakel,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.9"> Redelijke Godsdienst</span> I, pp. 729 f.; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.10"> Syst. Theol.</span> II, p. 654; A. A. Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.11"> Outlines of Theol.</span>, p. 449; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.12"> Calvinism Pure and Mixed</span>, pp. 98 f.;Vos,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.13"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 13 f.</note>
Finally, it should
be noted that the term<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.14">
gratia communis</span>
is
susceptible of, and has actually received, not only a quantitative, but
also a qualitative
interpretation. It may denote a grace that is common in the sense of<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.15">
ordinary.</span>
The
ordinary, in distinction from the special, operations of the Holy Spirit
are called
common. His natural or usual operations are contrasted with those which
are unusual
and supernatural. This is the meaning of the term "common" in
the<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.16">
Westminister
Confession</span>
X. 4; and the<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.17">
Westminster Larger Catechism</span>, Q. 60. W. L.
Alexander declares of
the common grace enjoyed by those who live under the gospel: "The
grace thus
bestowed is common, not in the sense of being given to all men in
common, but in the
sense of producing effects which are ordinary, and may fall short of a
real saving
efficacy."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p6.18" n="19" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p6.19">System of Bib. Theol. II</span>, p. 352.</note>
So understood, the grace of God
may be common without being general or
universal. </p>

<p id="vi.iii-p7" shownumber="no">2. CONCEPT. The distinction between
common and special grace is not one that
applies to grace as an attribute in God. There are no two kinds of grace
in God, but only
one. It is that perfection of God in virtue of which he shows unmerited
and even
forfeited favour to man. This one grace of God manifests itself,
however, in different gifts and operations. The richest manifestation of it is seen in those
gracious operations
of God which aim at, and result in, the removal of the guilt, the
pollution, and the
punishment of sin, and the ultimate salvation of sinners. But while this
is the crowning
work of the grace of God, it is not its only manifestation. It appears
also in the natural
blessings which God showers upon man in the present life, in spite of
the fact that man has forfeited them and lies under the sentence of death. It
is seen in all that God does to
restrain the devastating influence and development of sin in the
world, and to maintain
and enrich and develop the natural life of mankind in general and of
those individuals
who constitute the human race. It should be emphasized that these natural
blessings are
manifestations of the<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p7.1">
grace</span>
of God to man in
general. Some prefer to say that they are
expressions of His goodness, kindness, benevolence, mercy, or
longsuffering, but seem
to forget that He could not be good, kind, or benevolent to the<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p7.2">
sinner</span>
unless He were
first of all<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p7.3">
gracious.</span>
It should be borne in mind, however,
that the term<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p7.4">
gratia communis</span>,
though generally designating a grace that is common to the whole of
mankind, is also
used to denote a grace that is common to the elect and the non-elect
that are living under the gospel, such as the external gospel call that comes
to both alike, and that
inner illumination and those gifts of the Spirit of which we read in
<scripRef id="vi.iii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.4-Heb.6.6" parsed="|Heb|6|4|6|6" passage="Heb. 6:4-6">Heb. 6:4-6</scripRef>. It is
understood, however, that these privileges can be called common grace
only in the
sense that they are enjoyed by the elect and the reprobate
indiscriminately, and that they
do not constitute special, in the sense of saving, grace. In distinction
from the more
general manifestations of common grace they, while they do not
constitute a part of the
grace of God that necessarily leads to salvation, are nevertheless
related to the
soteriological
process. They are sometimes called "special" grace, but then
"special" is
not equivalent to "saving." In general it may be said that,
when we speak of "common grace," we
have in mind, either (a)<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p7.6">
those
general operations of the Holy Spirit whereby He, without renewing the heart,
exercises such a moral influence on man through His general or special revelation, that sin is
restrained, order is maintained in social life, and civil righteousness is promoted;</span> or, (b)<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p7.7">those general
blessings, such as rain and sunshine, food and drink, clothing and shelter, which God imparts to all
men indiscriminately where and in what measure it seems good to Him. </span></p>

<p id="vi.iii-p8" shownumber="no">The following points of distinction between special (in
the sense of saving) and
common grace should be noted:</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p9" shownumber="no">a. The extent of special grace is determined by the
decree of election. This grace is
limited to the elect, while common grace is not so limited, but is
granted to all men
indiscriminately. The decree of election and reprobation has no
determining influence on it. It cannot even be said that the elect
receive a greater measure of common grace
than the non-elect. It is a matter of common knowledge, and has
frequently been
observed, that the wicked often possess a greater measure of common
grace and have a
greater share in the natural blessings of life than the pious.
</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p10" shownumber="no">b. Special grace removes the guilt and penalty of sin,
changes the inner life of man,
and gradually cleanses him from the pollution of sin by the supernatural
operation of
the Holy Spirit. Its work invariably issues in the salvation of the
sinner. Common grace,
on the other hand, never removes the guilt of sin, does not renew human
nature, but
only has a restraining effect on the corrupting influence of sin
and in a measure
mitigates its results. It does not effect the salvation of the sinner,
though in some of its
forms (external calling and moral illumination) it may be closely
connected with the economy of redemption and have a soteriological aspect.
</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p11" shownumber="no">c. Special grace is irresistible. This does not mean that
it is a deterministic force
which compels man to believe against his will, but that by changing the
heart it makes
man perfectly willing to accept Jesus Christ unto salvation and to yield
obedience to the
will of God. Common grace is resistible, and as a matter of fact is
always more or less resisted. Paul shows in <scripRef id="vi.iii-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1" parsed="|Rom|1|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 1">Rom. 1</scripRef> and 2 that neither the
Gentiles nor the Jews were living
up to the light which they had. Says Shedd: "In common grace the
call to believe and
repent is invariably ineffectual, because man is averse to faith and
repentance and in
bondage to sin."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p11.2" n="20" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p11.3">Calvinism Pure and Mixed,</span> p. 99.</note>
It is ineffectual
unto salvation because it leaves the heart unchanged.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p12" shownumber="no">d. Special grace works in a spiritual and re-creative
way, renewing the whole nature
of man, and thus making man able and willing to accept the offer of
salvation in Jesus
Christ, and to produce spiritual fruits. Common grace, to the contrary, operates
only in
a rational and moral way by making man in a general way receptive for the
truth, by
presenting motives to the will, and by appealing to the natural desires
of man. This is
equivalent to saying that special (saving) grace is immediate and
supernatural, since it
is wrought directly in the soul by the immediate energy of the Holy
Spirit, while
common grace is mediate, since it is the product of the mediate
operation of the Holy
Spirit through the truth of general or special revelation and by moral
persuasion.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p13" shownumber="no">This conception of common grace should be carefully
distinguished from that of the
Arminians, who regard common grace as a link in the<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p13.1">
ordo salutis</span>
and ascribe to it<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p13.2">
saving </span>
significance. They hold that, in virtue of the common grace of God, the
unregenerate
man is perfectly able to perform a certain measure of spiritual good, to
turn to God in
faith and repentance, and thus to accept Jesus unto salvation. They go even
farther than that, and maintain that common grace by the illumination of the mind and
the
persuasive influence of the truth incites the sinner to accept
Jesus Christ and to turn to
God in faith and repentance, and will certainly achieve this end, unless
the sinner
obstinately resists the operation of the Holy Spirit. The Canons of Dort
have this in
mind where they reject the error of those who teach "that the
corrupt and natural man
can so well use the common grace (by which they understand the light of
nature), or the
gifts still left him after the fall, that he can gradually gain by their
good use a greater,
that is, the evangelical or saving grace, and salvation itself."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p13.3" n="21" place="foot">III-IV. Rejection of errors 5.</note></p>

<h4 id="vi.iii-p13.4">C. COMMON GRACE AND THE ATONING WORK OF CHRIST.</h4>
<p id="vi.iii-p14" shownumber="no">The question naturally arises, whether the manifestation
of common grace is in any
way connected with the atoning work of Christ. As far as we know, Dr.
Kuyper does not
posit such a connection. According to him Christ as the Mediator of
creation, the light
that lighteth every man coming into the world, is the source of common
grace. This
means that the blessings of common grace flow from the work of
creation. But this
hardly suffices to answer the question, how it is to be explained that a
holy and just God
extends grace to, and bestows favors upon, sinners who have forfeited
everything, even when they have no share in the righteousness of Christ and
prove finally impenitent.
The question is exactly, How can God continue to bestow those blessings
of creation on
men who are under the sentence of death and condemnation? As far as the
elect are
concerned this question is answered by the cross of Christ, but how
about the
reprobate? Perhaps it can be said that it is not necessary to assume a
specific judicial basis for the bestowal of common grace on man in view of the
fact (a) that it does not
remove the guilt of sin and therefore does not carry pardon with it; and
(b) that it does
not lift the sentence of condemnation, but only postpones the execution.
Perhaps the
divine good pleasure to stay the revelation of His wrath and to endure
"with much
longsuffering vessels of wrath fitted unto destruction," offers a
sufficient explanation for the blessings of common grace.
</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p15" shownumber="no">Reformed theologians generally hesitate to say that
Christ by His atoning blood
merited these blessings for the impenitent and reprobate. At the same
time they do
believe that important natural benefits accrue to the whole human race
from the death
of Christ, and that in these benefits the unbelieving, the impenitent,
and the reprobate
also share. In every covenant transaction recorded in Scripture it
appears that the
covenant of grace carries with it not only spiritual but also material
blessings, and those material blessings are generally of such a kind that they are naturally
shared also by
unbelievers. Says Cunningham: "Many blessings flow to mankind
at large from the
death of Christ, collaterally and incidentally, in consequence of the
relation in which
men, viewed collectively, stand to each other."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p15.1" n="22" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p15.2">Hist. Theol.</span> II, p. 333.</note>
And it is but natural that this
should be
so. If Christ was to save an elect race, gradually called out of the
world of humanity in
the course of centuries, it became necessary for God to exercise
forbearance, to check the
course of evil, to promote the development of the natural powers of man,
to keep alive
within the hearts of men a desire for civil righteousness, for external
morality and good
order in society, and to shower untold blessings upon mankind in
general. Dr. Hodge
expresses it thus: "It is very plain that any plan designed to secure
the salvation of an
elect portion of a race propagated by generation and living in
association, as is the case
with mankind, cannot secure its end without greatly affecting, for
better or for worse,
the character and destiny of all the rest of the race not elected."
He quotes Dr. Candlish
to the effect that "the entire history of the human race, from the
apostasy to the final
judgment, is a dispensation of forbearance in respect to the reprobate,
in which many blessings, physical and moral, affecting their characters and
destinies forever, accrue
even to the heathen, and many more to the educated and refined citizens
of Christian
communities. These come to them through the mediation of Christ, and
coming to them
now, must have been designed for them from the beginning."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p15.3" n="23" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p15.4">The Atonement,</span> pp. 358 f.</note>
These general blessings
of mankind, indirectly resulting from the atoning work of Christ, were
not only foreseen
by God, but designed by Him as blessings for all concerned. It is
perfectly true, of
course, that the design of God in the work of Christ pertained primarily
and directly,
not to the temporal well-being of men in general, but to the redemption
of the elect; but
secondarily and indirectly it also included the natural blessings
bestowed on mankind
indiscriminately. All that the natural man receives other than curse and
death is an
indirect result of the redemptive work of Christ.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p15.5" n="24" place="foot">Cf Turretin, <span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p15.6">Opera, Locus</span> XIV, Q. XIV, par. XI; Witsius, <span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p15.7">De Verbonden,</span> B. II, Kap. 9, s. 4; Cunningham, <span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p15.8">Hist. Theol.</span> II, p. 332; Symington,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p15.9"> Atonement and Intercession,</span> p. 255; Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p15.10">Geref. Dogm.</span> III, p. 535; Vos, <span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p15.11">Ger. Dogm.</span> III, p. 150.</note></p>

<h4 id="vi.iii-p15.12">D. THE RELATION BETWEEN SPECIAL AND COMMON GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vi.iii-p16" shownumber="no">Several questions may be raised respecting this relation,
of which the following are
some of the most important.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p17" shownumber="no">1. DO SPECIAL AND COMMON GRACE DIFFER ESSENTIALLY OR ONLY IN DEGREE?
Arminians recognize alongside of sufficient (common) grace the grace of
evangelical
obedience, but aver that these two differ only in degree and not in
essence. They are
both soteriological in the sense that they form part of the saving work
of God. The
former makes it possible for man to repent and believe, while the
latter, in co-operation
with the will, causes man to repent and believe. Both can be resisted,
so that even the
latter is not necessarily effectual unto salvation. Reformed theology,
however, insists on
the<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p17.1">
essential</span>
difference between common and special grace. Special grace is
supernatural
and spiritual: it removes the guilt and pollution of sin and lifts the
sentence of
condemnation. Common grace, on the other hand, is natural; and while
some of its
forms may be closely connected with saving grace, it does not remove sin
nor set man
free, but merely restrains the outward manifestations of sin and promotes
outward
morality and decency, good order in society and civic righteousness, the
development
of science and art, and so on. It works only in the natural, and not in
the spiritual
sphere. It should be maintained therefore that, while the two are
closely connected in
the present life, they are yet<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p17.2">
essentially</span>
different, and do
not differ merely in degree. No
amount of common grace can ever introduce the sinner into the new life
that is in Christ
Jesus. However, common grace does sometimes reveal itself in forms that
can hardly be
distinguished by man from the manifestations of special grace as, for
instance, in the
case of temporal faith. Dr. Shedd does not seem to bear the essential
difference between
the two in mind especially when he says: "The non-elect receives
common grace, and
common grace would incline the human will if it were not defeated by the
human will.
If the sinner should make no hostile opposition, common grace would be
equivalent to
saving grace." In a note he adds: "To say that common grace,
if not resisted by the
sinner, would be equivalent to regenerating grace, is not the same as to
say that
common grace, if<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p17.3">
assisted</span>
by the sinner,
would be equivalent to regenerating grace. In
the first instance, God would be the sole author of regeneration; in the
second He would
not be."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p17.4" n="26" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p17.5">Calvinism Pure and Mixed,</span> p. 101.</note>
This reminds one of Lutheran
theology, but the author's meaning is not
entirely clear, for elsewhere he also ascribes the non-resistance of the
sinner to the
operation of the Holy Spirit.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p17.6" n="26" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p17.7">Calvinism Pure and Mixed,</span> p. 101</note></p>

<p id="vi.iii-p18" shownumber="no">2. WHICH ONE OF THE TWO IS PRIMARY, COMMON OR SPECIAL GRACE? To this question it
must be answered that in a temporal sense neither one of them can be
said to be prior to
the other. The third chapter of Genesis clearly reveals that both of
them go into operation at once after the fall. Logical priority should be ascribed to
special grace,
however, because common grace is made subservient to this in its
operation in the
world. </p>

<p id="vi.iii-p19" shownumber="no">3. DOES COMMON GRACE SERVE AN INDEPENDENT PURPOSE OR NOT? It cannot be
doubted that common grace finds its purpose in part in the redemptive
work of Jesus
Christ; it is subservient to the execution of the plan of God in the
life of the elect and in
the development of the Church. But in addition to that it also serves an
independent
purpose, namely, to bring to light and to harness for the service of man
the hidden
forces of nature, and to develop the powers and talents that are latent
in the human
race, in order that man may ever-increasingly exercise dominion over the
lower
creation, to the glory of God the Creator.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p19.1" n="27" place="foot">Cf. Kuyper, <span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p19.2">Gemeene Gratie</span> II, pp. 622, 628, 633; Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p19.3">De Algemeene Genade,</span> p. 45.</note></p>

<p id="vi.iii-p20" shownumber="no">4. DO SPECIAL AND COMMON GRACE EACH HAVE A PECULIAR SPHERE ENTIRELY DISTINCT FROM THAT OF THE OTHER? It may be said that in a
certain sense special grace has its own
peculiar sphere in the organized Church, though it is not necessarily
limited to this, and
common grace is also operative in the Church for it is granted to all
men. Both operate in the world, but while common grace in the more usual sense
of the term pertains to
the things of the natural world and this present life, special grace
bears on the things of
the new creation. They cannot but influence each other. Common
grace enriches the
Church with its blessings; and the Church raises the fruits of common
grace to a higher
level by bringing them under the influence of the regenerate life.</p>

<h4 id="vi.iii-p20.1">E. THE MEANS BY WHICH COMMON GRACE OPERATES.</h4>
<p id="vi.iii-p21" shownumber="no">Several means can be distinguished by which common grace
effects its work. Calvin
suggests some of these when he, in speaking of the restraining influence
of common
grace says: "Hence, how much soever men may disguise their
impurity, some are
restrained only by shame, others by fear of the laws, from breaking out
into many kinds
of wickedness. Some aspire to an honest life, as deeming it most
conducive to their
interest, while others are raised above the vulgar lot, that, by the
dignity of their station,
they may keep inferiors to their duty. Thus God by his providence, curbs
the
perverseness of nature, preventing it from breaking forth into action,
yet without
rendering it inwardly pure."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p21.1" n="28" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p21.2">Inst.</span> II. 3,3.</note>
The following are some of the most important
means
through which common grace effects its work.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p22" shownumber="no">1. THE LIGHT OF GOD'S REVELATION. This is
fundamental for without it all other
means would be impossible, and even if possible, would fail to function
properly. We
have in mind here primarily the light of God's revelation that shines in
nature and
lightens every man coming into the world. It is itself the fruit of
common grace, but in
turn becomes a means for the further manifestation of it, since it
serves to guide the
conscience of the natural man. Paul speaks of the Gentiles who do by
nature the things
of the law, "in that they show the word of the law written in their
hearts, their
conscience bearing witness therewith, and their thoughts one with another
accusing or
else excusing them." <scripRef id="vi.iii-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.14" parsed="|Rom|2|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:14">Rom. 2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.15" parsed="|Rom|2|15|0|0" passage="Rom 2:15">15</scripRef>. Calvin in commenting on this
passage says that such
Gentiles "prove that there is imprinted on their hearts a
discrimination and judgment
by which they distinguish between what is just and unjust, between what
is honest and
dishonest."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p22.3" n="29" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p22.4">Comm. on Tomans in loco.</span></note>
In addition to this, however, it
may be said that common grace in a more
restricted sense also operates in the light of God's special revelation,
which is not itself
the fruit of common, but of special, grace.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p23" shownumber="no">2. GOVERNMENTS. Of these too it
may be said that they are at once the fruit and the
means of common grace. According to <scripRef id="vi.iii-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.13" parsed="|Rom|13|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 13">Rom. 13</scripRef> governments are ordained of
God, to
maintain good order in society. To resist them is to resist the
ordinance of God. The
ruler, says
Paul, "is a minister of God to thee for good." <scripRef id="vi.iii-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.13.4" parsed="|Rom|13|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 13:4">Rom. 13:4</scripRef>. He finds
support in
the conscience of man (verse 5) and for the rest "beareth not the
sword in vain." On this
point the Belgic Confession says: "We believe that our gracious
God, because of the
depravity of mankind, hath appointed kings, princes, and magistrates,
willing that the
world should be governed by certain laws and policies; to the end that
the dissoluteness
of men might be restrained, and all things carried on among them with
good order and decency."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p23.3" n="30" place="foot">Art. XXXVI.</note>
</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p24" shownumber="no">3. PUBLIC OPINION. The natural light that shines in the hearts of men,
especially
when re-enforced by the influence of God's special revelation,
results in the forming of a
public opinion that is in external conformity with the law of God; and
this has a
tremendous influence on the conduct of men who are very sensitive
to the judgment of
public opinion. Naturally public opinion will be a means of common grace
only when it
is formed under the influence of God's revelation. If it is not
controlled by conscience,
acting in harmony with the light of nature, or by the Word of God, it
becomes a mighty
influence
for evil. </p>

<p id="vi.iii-p25" shownumber="no">4. DIVINE PUNISHMENTS AND REWARDS. The providential arrangements of God,
whereby He visits the iniquity of men upon them in this life, and rewards
deeds that are
in outward conformity with the divine law, serve an important purpose in
curbing the
evil that is in the world. punishments have a deterring effect, and the
rewards serve as
incentives. By these means, whatever there is of moral goodness in the
world is greatly
encouraged. Many shun evil and seek that which is good, not because they
fear the
Lord, but because they feel that good brings its own reward and best
serves their
interests. </p>

<h4 id="vi.iii-p25.1">F. THE FRUITS OF COMMON GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vi.iii-p26" shownumber="no">In the preceding it was already intimated that what is
left to us of the light of nature,
is still operative only in virtue of the common grace of God. It is one
of the most
important fruits of common grace, without which some of the others would
not be
conceivable. The following fruits may be mentioned here:</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p27" shownumber="no">1. THEEXECUTION OF THE SENTENCE IS STAYED. God pronounced the sentence of death
on the sinner. Speaking of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil,
He said. "In the
day that thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely die." Man did eat of
it, and the sentence went into execution to a certain extent, but clearly was
not fully executed at once. It is
due to common grace that God did not at once fully execute the sentence
of death on
the sinner, and does not do so now, but maintains and prolongs the
natural life of man
and gives him time for repentance. He does not at once cut short the
life of the sinner,
but affords him an opportunity to repent, thereby removing all excuse
and justifying the
coming manifestation of His wrath upon those who persist in sin unto the
end. That
God acts on this principle is abundantly evident from such passages as
<scripRef id="vi.iii-p27.1" osisRef="Bible:Isa.48.9" parsed="|Isa|48|9|0|0" passage="Isa. 48:9">Isa. 48:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p27.2" osisRef="Bible:Jer.7.23-Jer.7.25" parsed="|Jer|7|23|7|25" passage="Jer. 7:23-25">Jer. 7:23-25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p27.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.13.6-Luke.13.9" parsed="|Luke|13|6|13|9" passage="Luke 13:6-9">Luke 13:6-9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p27.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.4" parsed="|Rom|2|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:4">Rom. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p27.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.22" parsed="|Rom|9|22|0|0" passage="Rom 9:22">9:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p27.6" osisRef="Bible:2Pet.3.9" parsed="|2Pet|3|9|0|0" passage="II Peter 3:9">II Peter 3:9</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p28" shownumber="no">2. THE RESTRAINT OF SIN. Through the
operation of common grace sin is restrained in
the lives of individuals and in society. The element of corruption that
entered the life of the human race is not permitted, for the present, to
accomplish its disintegrating work.
Calvin says: "But we ought to consider that, notwithstanding the
corruption of our
nature, there is some room for divine grace, such grace as, without
purifying it, may lay
it under internal restraint. For, did the Lord let every mind loose to
wanton in its lusts,
doubtless there is not a man who would not show that his nature is
capable of all the
crimes with which Paul charges it, (<scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3" parsed="|Rom|3|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 3">Rom. 3</scripRef> compared with <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.14.3" parsed="|Ps|14|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 14:3">Ps. 14:3</scripRef>
ff)."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p28.3" n="31" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p28.4">Inst.</span> II. 3,3.</note>
This restraint
may be external or internal or both, but does not change the heart.
There are passages of Scripture which speak of a striving of the Spirit of God with men which
does not lead to
repentance, <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.3" parsed="|Gen|6|3|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:3">Gen. 6:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.63.10" parsed="|Isa|63|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 63:10">Isa. 63:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.51" parsed="|Acts|7|51|0|0" passage="Acts 7:51">Acts 7:51</scripRef>; of operations of the Spirit that are finally
withdrawn, <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.8" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.16.14" parsed="|1Sam|16|14|0|0" passage="I Sam. 16:14">I Sam. 16:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.4-Heb.6.6" parsed="|Heb|6|4|6|6" passage="Heb. 6:4-6">Heb. 6:4-6</scripRef>; and of the fact that in some cases
God finally gives
up men to the lusts of their own hearts, <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.81.12" parsed="|Ps|81|12|0|0" passage="Ps. 81:12">Ps. 81:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.24" parsed="|Rom|1|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:24">Rom. 1:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.26" parsed="|Rom|1|26|0|0" passage="Rom 1:26">26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.28" parsed="|Rom|1|28|0|0" passage="Rom 1:28">28</scripRef>. In
addition to the
preceding passages there are some which are clearly indicative of the
fact that God  restrains
sin in various ways, such as <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.14" osisRef="Bible:Gen.20.6" parsed="|Gen|20|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 20:6">Gen. 20:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.15" osisRef="Bible:Gen.31.7" parsed="|Gen|31|7|0|0" passage="Gen 31:7">31:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.16" osisRef="Bible:Job.1.12" parsed="|Job|1|12|0|0" passage="Job 1:12">Job 1:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.17" osisRef="Bible:Job.2.6" parsed="|Job|2|6|0|0" passage="Job 2:6">2:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.18" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.19.27" parsed="|2Kgs|19|27|0|0" passage="II Kings 19:27">II Kings 19:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.19" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.19.28" parsed="|2Kgs|19|28|0|0" passage="II Kings 19:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p28.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.13.1-Rom.13.4" parsed="|Rom|13|1|13|4" passage="Rom. 13:1-4">Rom. 13:1-4</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p29" shownumber="no">3. THE PRESERVATION OF SOME SENSE OF TRUTH, MORALITY AND RELIGION. It is due to
common grace that man still retains some sense of the true, the good,
and the beautiful,
often appreciates these to a rather surprising degree, and reveals a
desire for truth, for external morality, and even for certain forms of
religion. Paul speaks of Gentiles who
"show the work of the law written in their hearts, their conscience
bearing witness
therewith, and their thoughts one with another accusing or else excusing
them," <scripRef id="vi.iii-p29.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.15" parsed="|Rom|2|15|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:15">Rom.
2:15</scripRef>, and even says of those who gave free vent to their wicked lives
that they knew the
truth of God, though they hindered the truth in unrighteousness and
exchanged it for a
lie, <scripRef id="vi.iii-p29.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.18-Rom.1.25" parsed="|Rom|1|18|1|25" passage="Rom. 1:18-25">Rom. 1:18-25</scripRef>. To the Athenians, who were devoid of the fear of God, he said,
"Ye men of Athens, in all things I perceive that ye are very
religious," <scripRef id="vi.iii-p29.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.22" parsed="|Acts|17|22|0|0" passage="Acts 17:22">Acts 17:22</scripRef>. The
Canons of Dort express themselves as follows on this point: "There
remain, however, in
man since the fall, the glimmerings of natural light, whereby he retains
some
knowledge of God, of natural things, and of the difference between good
and evil, and shows some regard for virtue and for good outward behavior. But
so far is this light of
nature from being sufficient to bring him to a saving knowledge of God
and true
conversion that he is incapable of using it aright even in things
natural and civil. Nay,
further, this light, such as it is, man in various ways renders wholly
polluted, and
hinders in unrighteousness, by doing which he becomes inexcusable before
God." III-IV. 4.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p30" shownumber="no">4. THE PERFORMANCE OF OUTWARD GOOD AND CIVIL RIGHTEOUSNESS. Common grace
enables man to perform what is generally called<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p30.1">
justitia civilis</span>, that is, that which is right
in civil or natural affairs, in distinction from that which is right in
religious matters,
natural good works especially in social relations, works that are outwardly
and
objectively in harmony with the law of God, though entirely destitute of
any spiritual
quality. This is in harmony with our Reformed Confession. Art. XIV of
the Belgic
Confession speaks in its title of man's incapacity to perform what is<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p30.2">
truly</span>
good, says
that man retained only small remains of his excellent gifts, so as to
render him without
excuse, and rejects only the Pelagian error that man can of himself
perform spiritual or
saving good. The
Canons of Dort III-IV, Art. 3, speak in a similar vein: "Therefore all men are conceived in sin, and are by nature children of wrath, incapable
of<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p30.3">
saving</span>
good"
etc. It may be objected that the Heidelberg Catechism speaks in absolute
terms when it
says in Question 8 that we are incapable of doing any good unless we are
regenerated.
But it is quite evident from the Commentary of Ursinus himself that he
would not deny
that man can do civil good, but only that he can perform good works such
as are
defined in Question 91 of the Catechism. Reformed theologians generally
maintain that
the unregenerate can perform natural good, civil good, and outwardly
religious good.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p30.4" n="32" place="foot">Cf. Calvin,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p30.5"> Inst.</span> III. 14,2; Van Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p30.6"> Godgeleerdheid</span>, Bk. IV. 4,11,12; Voetius,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p30.7"> Catechisatie</span> I, p. 168-172; Ursinus,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p30.8"> Comm. on the Catechism, Lord's Day</span> II, p. 77; Charnock,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p30.9"> On the Attributes</span> II, pp. 303,304; Brakel, <span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p30.10">Redelijke Godsdienst</span> I, p. 338.</note>
They call attention to the fact, however, that, while such works of the
unregenerate are
good from a material point of view, as works which God commanded, they
cannot be
called good from a formal point of view, since they do not spring from
the right motive
and do not aim at the right purpose. The Bible repeatedly speaks of
works of the
unregenerate as
good and right, <scripRef id="vi.iii-p30.11" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.10.29" parsed="|2Kgs|10|29|0|0" passage="II Kings 10:29">II Kings 10:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p30.12" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.10.30" parsed="|2Kgs|10|30|0|0" passage="II Kings 10:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p30.13" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.12.2" parsed="|2Kgs|12|2|0|0" passage="II Kings 12:2">12:2</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="vi.iii-p30.14" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.24.17-2Chr.24.25" parsed="|2Chr|24|17|24|25" passage="II Chron. 24:17-25">II Chron. 24:17-25</scripRef>); 14:3,14-16,20,27 (comp. <scripRef id="vi.iii-p30.15" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.25.2" parsed="|2Chr|25|2|0|0" passage="II Chron. 25:2">II Chron. 25:2</scripRef>); <scripRef id="vi.iii-p30.16" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.33" parsed="|Luke|6|33|0|0" passage="Luke 6:33">Luke 6:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p30.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.14" parsed="|Rom|2|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:14">Rom. 2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p30.18" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.15" parsed="|Rom|2|15|0|0" passage="Rom 2:15">15</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p31" shownumber="no">5. MANY NATURAL BLESSINGS. To common grace
man further owes all the natural
blessings which he receives in the present life. Though he has forfeited
all the blessings of God, he receives abundant tokens of the goodness of God
from day to day. There are
several passages of Scripture from which it appears abundantly that God
showers many
of His good gifts on all men indiscriminately, that is, upon the good
and the bad, the
elect and the
reprobate, such as: <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.20" parsed="|Gen|17|20|0|0" passage="Gen. 17:20">Gen. 17:20</scripRef> (comp. vs. 18); 39:5; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.9" parsed="|Ps|145|9|0|0" passage="Ps. 145:9">Ps. 145:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.15" parsed="|Ps|145|15|0|0" passage="Ps 145:15">15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.145.16" parsed="|Ps|145|16|0|0" passage="Ps 145:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.44" parsed="|Matt|5|44|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:44">Matt. 5:44</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.45" parsed="|Matt|5|45|0|0" passage="Matt 5:45">45</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.35" parsed="|Luke|6|35|0|0" passage="Luke 6:35">Luke 6:35</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.36" parsed="|Luke|6|36|0|0" passage="Luke 6:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.16" parsed="|Acts|14|16|0|0" passage="Acts 14:16">Acts 14:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.17" parsed="|Acts|14|17|0|0" passage="Acts 14:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.11" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.10" parsed="|1Tim|4|10|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:10">I Tim. 4:10</scripRef>. And these gifts are intended as blessings,
not only for the good but also for the evil. In the light of Scripture
the position is
untenable that God never blesses the reprobate, though He does give them many
gifts
which are good in themselves. In <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.12" osisRef="Bible:Gen.39.5" parsed="|Gen|39|5|0|0" passage="Gen. 39:5">Gen. 39:5</scripRef> we read that "Jehovah
blessed the
Egyptian's house
for Joseph's sake; and the blessing of Jehovah was upon all that he
had in the house and in the field." And in <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.44" parsed="|Matt|5|44|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:44">Matt. 5:44</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.45" parsed="|Matt|5|45|0|0" passage="Matt 5:45">45</scripRef> Jesus
exhorts His disciples in
these words, "Bless those that curse you . . . that ye may be
children of your Father who
is in heaven." This can only mean one thing, namely, that God also
blesses those who
curse Him. Cf.
also <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.15" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.35" parsed="|Luke|6|35|0|0" passage="Luke 6:35">Luke 6:35</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.16" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.36" parsed="|Luke|6|36|0|0" passage="Luke 6:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p31.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.4" parsed="|Rom|2|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:4">Rom. 2:4</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="vi.iii-p31.18">G. OBJECTIONS TO THE REFORMED DOCTRINE OF COMMON GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vi.iii-p32" shownumber="no">Several objections have been and are even now raised by
some against the doctrine of common grace as it is presented in the preceding.
The following are some of the most
important of these:</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p33" shownumber="no">1. Arminians are not satisfied with it, because it does
not go far enough. They regard
common grace as an integral part of the saving process. It is that
sufficient grace that
enables man to repent and believe in Jesus Christ unto salvation,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p33.1">
and which in the purpose of God is intended to lead men to faith and repentance</span>, though it may
be frustrated by men.
A grace that is not so intended and does not actually minister to the
salvation of men is
a contradiction in terms. Hence Pope, a Wesleyan Arminian, speaks of
common grace in
the Calvinistic system as "being universal and not particular;
being necessarily, or at
least actually, inoperative for salvation in the purpose of God,"
and calls this a "wasted
influence." He further says: "Grace is no more grace, if
it does not include the saving intention of the Giver."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p33.2" n="33" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p33.3">Christian Theology</span> II, pp. 387 f.</note>
But, surely, the Bible does not so limit the
use of the term
"grace."
Such passages as <scripRef id="vi.iii-p33.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.8" parsed="|Gen|6|8|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:8">Gen. 6:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p33.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.19.19" parsed="|Gen|19|19|0|0" passage="Gen 19:19">19:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p33.6" osisRef="Bible:Exod.33.12" parsed="|Exod|33|12|0|0" passage="Ex. 33:12">Ex. 33:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p33.7" osisRef="Bible:Exod.33.16" parsed="|Exod|33|16|0|0" passage="Ex 33:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p33.8" osisRef="Bible:Num.32.5" parsed="|Num|32|5|0|0" passage="Num. 32:5">Num. 32:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p33.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.40" parsed="|Luke|2|40|0|0" passage="Luke 2:40">Luke 2:40</scripRef>, and many
others do not refer to what we call "saving grace," nor to
what the Arminian calls
"sufficient grace."</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p34" shownumber="no">2. It is sometimes argued that the Reformed doctrine of
common grace involves the
doctrine of universal atonement, and therefore leads into the Arminian
camp. But there
is no good ground for this assertion. It neither says nor implies that
it is the purpose of
God to save all men through the atoning blood of Jesus Christ. The
objection is based particularly on the universal proclamation of the gospel,
which is considered possible
only on the basis of a universal atonement. It was already suggested by
the Arminians
themselves at the time of the Synod of Dort, when they asserted that the
Reformed with
their doctrine of particular atonement could not preach the gospel to
all men
indiscriminately. But the Synod of Dort did not recognize the implied
contradiction. The Canons teach particular atonement,<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p34.1" n="34" place="foot">II. 8.</note>
and also require the universal
proclamation of the
gospel.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p34.2" n="35" place="foot">II. 5 and III. 8.</note>
And this is in perfect harmony
with Scripture, which teaches on the one hand,
that Christ
atoned only for the elect, <scripRef id="vi.iii-p34.3" osisRef="Bible:John.10.15" parsed="|John|10|15|0|0" passage="John 10:15">John 10:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p34.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.28" parsed="|Acts|20|28|0|0" passage="Acts 20:28">Acts 20:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p34.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.32" parsed="|Rom|8|32|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:32">Rom. 8:32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p34.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.33" parsed="|Rom|8|33|0|0" passage="Rom 8:33">33</scripRef>; cf. also <scripRef id="vi.iii-p34.7" osisRef="Bible:John.17.9" parsed="|John|17|9|0|0" passage="John 17:9">John
17:9</scripRef>; and on the other hand, that the gospel call must be extended to
all men indiscriminately,
<scripRef id="vi.iii-p34.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.2-Matt.22.14" parsed="|Matt|22|2|22|14" passage="Matt. 22:2-14">Matt. 22:2-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p34.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt 28:19">28:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p34.10" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.15" parsed="|Mark|16|15|0|0" passage="Mark 16:15">Mark 16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p34.11" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16</scripRef>. If it be objected that we cannot
fully harmonize the indiscriminate and sincere offer of salvation on
condition of faith
and repentance with the doctrine of particular atonement, this may be
admitted but
with the distinct understanding that the truth of a doctrine does not
depend on our
ability to harmonize it with every other doctrine of Scripture.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p35" shownumber="no">3. Another objection to the doctrine of common grace is
that it presupposes a certain
favorable disposition in God even to reprobate sinners, while we have no
right to
assume such a disposition in God. This stricture takes its starting
point in the eternal
counsel of God, in His election and reprobation. Along the line of His
election God
reveals His love, grace, mercy, and longsuffering, leading to salvation;
and in the historical realization of His reprobation He gives expression only
to His aversion,
disfavor, hatred, and wrath, leading to destruction. But this looks like
a rationalistic
over-simplification of the inner life of God, which does not take
sufficient account of His
self-revelation. In speaking on this subject we ought to be very careful
and allow
ourselves to be guided by the explicit statements of Scripture rather
than by our bold
inferences from the secret counsel of God. There is far more in God than
we can reduce
to our logical
categories. Are the elect in this life the objects of God's love only, and
never in any sense the objects of His wrath? Is Moses thinking of the
reprobate when he
says: "For we are consumed in thine anger, and in thy wrath are we
troubled"? <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.7" parsed="|Ps|90|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:7">Ps. 90:7</scripRef>.
Does not the statement of Jesus that the wrath of God<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p35.2">
abideth</span>
on them that obey not the
Son imply that it is removed from the others when,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p35.3">
and not until</span>, they submit to the
beneficent rule of Christ? <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.4" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">John 3:36</scripRef>. And does not Paul say to the
Ephesians that they
"were by nature children of wrath even as the rest"? <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.3" parsed="|Eph|2|3|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:3">Eph. 2:3</scripRef>.
Evidently the elect can
not be regarded
as<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p35.6">
always</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p35.7">
exclusively</span>
the objects of God's love. And if they
who are
the objects of God's redeeming love can also in some sense of the word
be regarded as
the objects of His wrath, why should it be impossible that they who are
the objects of
His wrath should also in some sense share His divine favor? A father who
is also a
judge may loathe the son that is brought before him as a criminal, and
feel constrained
to visit his judicial wrath upon him, but may yet pity him and show him
acts of
kindness while he is under condemnation. Why should this be impossible in
God?
General Washington hated the traitor that was brought before him and
condemned him
to death, but at the same time showed him compassion by serving him with
the dainties
from his own table. Cannot God have compassion even on the condemned
sinner, and
bestow favors upon him? The answer need not be uncertain, since the
Bible clearly
teaches that He showers untold blessings upon all men and also clearly
indicates that
these are the expression of a favorable disposition in God, which falls
short, however, of
the positive volition to pardon their sin, to lift their sentence, and
to grant them
salvation. The following passages clearly point to such a favorable
disposition: <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.8" osisRef="Bible:Prov.1.24" parsed="|Prov|1|24|0|0" passage="Prov. 1:24">Prov. 1:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.9" osisRef="Bible:Isa.1.18" parsed="|Isa|1|18|0|0" passage="Isa. 1:18">Isa. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.10" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.23" parsed="|Ezek|18|23|0|0" passage="Ezek. 18:23">Ezek. 18:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.11" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.32" parsed="|Ezek|18|32|0|0" passage="Ezek 18:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.12" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.33.11" parsed="|Ezek|33|11|0|0" passage="Ezek 33:11">33:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.43-Matt.5.45" parsed="|Matt|5|43|5|45" passage="Matt. 5:43-45">Matt. 5:43-45</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.23.37" parsed="|Matt|23|37|0|0" passage="Matt 23:37">23:37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.15" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.21" parsed="|Mark|10|21|0|0" passage="Mark 10:21">Mark 10:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.16" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.35" parsed="|Luke|6|35|0|0" passage="Luke 6:35">Luke 6:35</scripRef>: <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.4" parsed="|Rom|2|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:4">Rom. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iii-p35.18" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.4" parsed="|1Tim|2|4|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:4">I Tim. 2:4</scripRef>. If such passages do not testify to a favorable disposition
in God, it would
seem that language has lost its meaning, and that God's revelation is
not dependable on  this
subject. </p>

<p id="vi.iii-p36" shownumber="no">4. Anabaptists object to the doctrine of common grace,
because it involves the
recognition of good elements in the natural order of things, and this is
contrary to their
fundamental position. They regard the natural creation with contempt,
stress the fact
that Adam was of the earth earthy, and see only impurity in the natural
order as such.
Christ established a new supernatural order of things, and
to that order the regenerate
man, who is not merely a renewed, but an entirely new man, also belongs.
He has
nothing in common with the world round about him and should therefore
take no part
in its life: never swear an oath, take no part in war, recognize no
civil authority, avoid
worldly clothing, and so on. On this position there is no other grace
than saving grace. This view was shared by Labadism, Pietism, the Moravian
brethren, and several other
sects. Barth's denial of common grace seems to be following along these
same lines. This
is no wonder, since for him too creaturliness and sinfulness are
practically identical.
Brunner gives
the following summary of Barth's view: "It follows from the
acknowledgment of Christ as the only saving grace of God that there
exists no creative and sustaining grace which has been operative ever since the
creation of the world and
which manifests itself to us in God's maintenance of the world, since in
that case we
should have to recognize two or even three kinds of grace, and that would
stand in
contradistinction with the singleness of the grace of Christ. . . .
Similarly, the new
creation is in no wise a fulfilment but exclusively a replacement
accomplished by a
complete annihilation of what went before, a<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p36.1">
substitution</span>
of the new man for the old.
The proposition,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p36.2">
gratia non tollit naturam sed perficit</span>, is not true in
any sense but is
altogether an arch-heresy."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iii-p36.3" n="36" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p36.4">Natur und Gnade,</span> p. 8</note>
Brunner rejects this view and is more in line
with the
Reformed thought on this point.</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p37" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Do the Hebrew and Greek words for 'grace' always
denote saving grace? Are they ever used as a designation of what we call
'common
grace'? Does the doctrine of common grace presuppose the doctrine of
universal
atonement? Does it imply a denial of the fact that man is by nature
subject to the wrath
of God? Does it involve a denial of man's total depravity, and of his
inability to do
spiritual good? Is the good which the natural man can do good only in
the sight of man
or also in the sight of God? Does the doctrine of common grace destroy
the antithesis
between the world and the kingdom of God? If not, how do you explain
this?</p>

<p id="vi.iii-p38" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Calvin,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.1">
Institutes</span>
II. 2 and 3; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.2">
De Gemeene Gratie;</span>
Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.3">
De Algemeene Genade;</span> ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.4">
Calvin and Common Grace</span>
(in,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.5"> Calvin and the Reformation</span>); Shedd,
<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.6">Calvinism Pure and Mixed</span>, pp. 96-106; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.7">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
I, pp. 432, 435; II, pp. 483 ff.;
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.8">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 654-675; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.9">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
IV, pp. 11-17; Alexander,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.10">
Syst. of Bib.
Theol. II.</span>
pp. 343-361; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.11">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 583-588; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.12">
Discussions</span>, pp. 282-313 (<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.13">God's Indiscriminate Proposals of Mercy</span>); H. Kuiper,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.14">;. Calvin on Common Grace; </span>
Berkhof,<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.15">
De Drie Punten in Alle Deelen Gereformeerd;</span>
Hepp, Art.<span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.16">
Gemeene Gratie</span>
in the <span class="ital" id="vi.iii-p38.17">Christelijke Encyclopaedie.</span></p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.iv" next="vi.v" prev="vi.iii" title="IV. The Mystical Union">
<h2 id="vi.iv-p0.1">IV. The Mystical Union</h2>
<p id="vi.iv-p1" shownumber="no">Calvin repeatedly expresses the idea that the sinner
cannot share in the saving
benefits of Christ's redemptive work, unless he be in union with Him,
and thus
emphasizes a very important truth. As Adam was the representative head of
the old
humanity, so Christ is the representative head of the new humanity. All
the blessings of
the covenant of grace flow from Him who is the Mediator of the
covenant. Even the
very first blessing of the saving grace of God which we receive already
presupposes a
union with the Person of the Mediator. It is exactly at this point that
we find one of the
most characteristic differences between the operations and blessings of
special and
those of common grace. The former can be received and enjoyed only by
those who are
in union with Christ, while the latter can be and are enjoyed also by
those who are not reckoned in Christ, and therefore are not one with Him. Every
spiritual blessing which
believers receive flows to them out of Christ. Hence Jesus in
speaking of the coming
Paraklete could say unto His disciples: "He shall glorify me; for
He shall take of mine,
and shall declare it unto you," <scripRef id="vi.iv-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:John.16.14" parsed="|John|16|14|0|0" passage="John 16:14">John 16:14</scripRef>. Subjectively, the union
between Christ and
believers is effected by the Holy Spirit in a mysterious and
supernatural way, and for that reason is generally designated as the<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p1.2">
unio mystica</span>
or mystical union.</p>

<h4 id="vi.iv-p1.3">A. NATURE OF THE MYSTICAL UNION.</h4>
<p id="vi.iv-p2" shownumber="no">Lutherans generally treat the doctrine of the mystical
union<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p2.1">
anthropologically</span>, and
therefore conceive of it as established by faith. Hence they naturally
take it up at a later
point in their soteriology. But this method fails to do full justice to
the idea of our union
with Christ, since it loses sight of the eternal basis of the union and
of its objective
realization in Christ, and deals exclusively with the subjective
realization of it in our
lives, and even so only with our personal conscious entrance into this
union. Reformed
theology, on the other hand, deals with the union of believers with
Christ<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p2.2">
theologically</span>,
and as such does far greater justice to this important subject. In doing
so it employs the
term "mystical union" in a broad sense as a designation not
only of the subjective union of Christ and believers, but also of the union
that lies back of it, that is basic to it, and of
which it is only the culminating expression, namely, the federal union
of Christ and
those who are His in the counsel of redemption, the mystical union
ideally established
in that eternal counsel, and the union as it is objectively effected in
the incarnation and
the redemptive work of Christ. </p>

<p id="vi.iv-p3" shownumber="no">1. THE FEDERAL UNION OF CHRIST WITH THOSE WHOM THE FATHER HAS GIVEN HIM, IN THE COUNSEL OF REDEMPTION. In the counsel of
peace Christ voluntarily took upon
Himself to be the Head and Surety of the elect, destined to constitute
the new humanity,
and as such to establish their righteousness before God by paying the
penalty for their
sin and by rendering perfect obedience to the law and thus securing
their title to
everlasting life. In that eternal covenant the sin of His people was
imputed to Christ,
and His righteousness was imputed to them. This imputation of the
righteousness of
Christ to His people in the counsel of redemption is sometimes
represented as a
justification from eternity. It is certainly the eternal basis of our
justification by faith, and
is the ground on which we receive all spiritual blessings and the gift
of life eternal. And
this being so, it is basic to the whole of soteriology, and even to the
first stages in the
application of the work of redemption, such as regeneration and internal
calling.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p4" shownumber="no">2. THE UNION OF LIFE IDEALLY ESTABLISHED IN THE COUNSEL OF REDEMPTION. In the case
of the first Adam there was not only a federal, but also a natural and
organic union
between him and his descendants. There was the tie of a common life
between him and all his progeny, and this made it possible that the blessings
of the covenant of works, if
these had eventuated, could have been passed on to the whole organism of
mankind in
an organic way. A somewhat similar situation obtained in the case of the
last Adam as
the representative Head of the covenant of redemption. Like the first
Adam, He did not
represent a conglomeration of disjointed individuals, but a body of men
and women
who were to derive their life from Him, to be united by spiritual ties,
and thus to form a
spiritual organism. Ideally this body, which is the Church, was already
formed in the
covenant of redemption, and formed in union with Christ, and this union
made it
possible that all the blessings merited by Christ could be passed on to
those whom He
represented in an organic way. They were conceived of as a glorious
body, a new humanity, sharing the life of Jesus Christ. It was in virtue of
that union, as it was
realized in the course of history, that Christ could say: "Behold,
I and the children
whom God hath
given me," <scripRef id="vi.iv-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.13" parsed="|Heb|2|13|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:13">Heb. 2:13</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p5" shownumber="no">3. THE UNION OF LIFE OBJECTIVELY REALIZED IN CHRIST. In virtue of the legal or
representative union established in the covenant of redemption Christ
became incarnate
as the substitute for His people, to merit all the blessings of
salvation for them. Since
His children were sharers in flesh and blood, "He also in
like manner partook of the
same; that through death He might bring to nought him that had the power
of death,
that is the devil; and might deliver all them who through fear of death
were all their
lifetime subject to bondage," <scripRef id="vi.iv-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.14" parsed="|Heb|2|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:14">Heb. 2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.15" parsed="|Heb|2|15|0|0" passage="Heb 2:15">15</scripRef>. He could merit
salvation for them just
because He already stood in relation to them as their Surety and
Mediator, their Head
and Substitute. The whole Church was included in Him as her Head. In an
objective
sense she was crucified with Christ, she died with Him, she arose in Him
from the dead,
and was made to sit with Him in the heavenly places. All the blessings
of saving grace
lie ready for the Church in Christ; man can add nothing to them; and
they now only
await their subjective application by the operation of the Holy Spirit,
which is also merited by Christ and is sure of progressive realization in the
course of history.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p6" shownumber="no">4. THE UNION OF LIFE SUBJECTIVELY REALIZED BY THE OPERATION OF THE HOLY SPIRIT.
The work of Christ was not finished when He had merited salvation for
His people and
had obtained actual possession of the blessings of salvation. In the
counsel of
redemption He took it upon Himself to put all His people in possession
of all these blessings, and He does this through the operation of the Holy
Spirit, who takes all
things out of Christ, and gives them unto us. We should not conceive of
the subjective
realization of the mystical union in the Church atomistically, as if it
were effected by
bringing now this and then that individual sinner to Christ. It should be
seen from the
point of view of Christ. Objectively, the whole Church is in Him, and is
born out of Him
as the Head. It is not a mechanism, in which the parts precede the whole,
but an
organism, in which the whole is prior to the parts. The parts come forth
out of Christ
through the regenerating work of the Holy Spirit, and then continue in
living
relationship with Him. Jesus calls attention to this organic
relationship when He says: "I
am the vine, ye are the branches: he that abideth in me and I in him,
the same beareth
much fruit: for apart from me ye can do nothing," <scripRef id="vi.iv-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:John.15.5" parsed="|John|15|5|0|0" passage="John 15:5">John 15:5</scripRef>. In
view of what was said, it
is quite evident that it is not correct to say that the mystical union
is the fruit of man's
believing acceptance of Christ, as if faith were not one of the
blessings of the covenant
which flow unto us from the fulness of Christ, but a condition
which man must meet
partly or wholly in his own strength, in order to enter into living
relationship with Jesus
Christ. Faith is first of all a gift of God, and as such a part of the
treasures that are
hidden in Christ. It enables us to appropriate on our part what is given
unto us in
Christ, and to enter ever-increasingly into conscious enjoyment of the
blessed union
with Christ, which is the source of all our spiritual riches.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p7" shownumber="no">This union may be defined as<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p7.1">
that
intimate, vital, and spiritual union between Christ and His people, in virtue of which He is
the source of their life and strength, of their blessedness and
salvation.</span>
That it is a very intimate union appears abundantly from the figures
that are
used in Scripture to describe it. It is a union as of the vine and the
branches, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:John.15.5" parsed="|John|15|5|0|0" passage="John 15:5">John 15:5</scripRef>,
as of a foundation and the building that is reared on it, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.4" parsed="|1Pet|2|4|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:4">I Pet. 2:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.5" parsed="|1Pet|2|5|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:5">5</scripRef>,
as of husband and
wife, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.23-Eph.5.32" parsed="|Eph|5|23|5|32" passage="Eph. 5:23-32">Eph. 5:23-32</scripRef>, and as of the head and the members of the body, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.15" parsed="|Eph|4|15|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:15">Eph. 4:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.16" parsed="|Eph|4|16|0|0" passage="Eph 4:16">16</scripRef>. And
even these figures fail to give full expression to the reality. It is a
union that passes
understanding. Says Dr. Hodge: "The technical designation of this
union in theological
language is
'mystical,' because it so far transcends all the analogies of earthly
relationships, in the intimacy of its connection, in the transforming
power of its
influence, and in the excellence of its consequences."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.iv-p7.8" n="37" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p7.9">Outlines of theology,</span> p. 483</note>
If the discussion of this aspect of
the mystical union is taken up first of all in the<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p7.10">
ordo salutis</span>, it should be borne in mind
(a) that it would seem to be desirable to consider it in connection with
what precedes it,
ideally in the counsel of redemption, and objectively in the work of
Christ; and (b) that
the order is logical rather than chronological. Since the believer is
"a new creature" (<scripRef id="vi.iv-p7.11" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.17" parsed="|2Cor|5|17|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:17">II Cor. 5:17</scripRef>), or
is "justified" (<scripRef id="vi.iv-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.39" parsed="|Acts|13|39|0|0" passage="Acts 13:39">Acts 13:39</scripRef>) only in Christ, union with Him logically
precedes
both regeneration and justification by faith, while yet,
chronologically, the moment
when we are united with Christ is also the moment of our regeneration
and justification.</p>

<h4 id="vi.iv-p7.13">B. CHARACTERISTICS OF THE MYSTICAL UNION.</h4>
<p id="vi.iv-p8" shownumber="no">From the preceding it appears that the term
"mystical union" can be, and often is,
used in a broad sense, including the various aspects (legal, objective,
subjective) of the
union between Christ and believers. Most generally, however, it denotes
only the
crowning aspect of that union, namely, its subjective realization by the
operation of the
Holy Spirit, and it is this aspect of it that is naturally in the
foreground in soteriology.
All that is said in the rest of this chapter bears on this subjective union.
The following
are the main characteristics of this union:</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p9" shownumber="no">1. IT IS AN ORGANIC UNION. Christ and the
believers form one body. The organic
character of this union is clearly taught in such passages as <scripRef id="vi.iv-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:John.15.5" parsed="|John|15|5|0|0" passage="John 15:5">John 15:5</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.iv-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.15-1Cor.6.19" parsed="|1Cor|6|15|6|19" passage="I Cor. 6:15-19">I Cor. 6:15-19</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.iv-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|22|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:22">Eph. 1:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.23" parsed="|Eph|1|23|0|0" passage="Eph 1:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.15" parsed="|Eph|4|15|0|0" passage="Eph 4:15">4:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.16" parsed="|Eph|4|16|0|0" passage="Eph 4:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.29" parsed="|Eph|5|29|0|0" passage="Eph 5:29">5:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.30" parsed="|Eph|5|30|0|0" passage="Eph 5:30">30</scripRef>. In this organic union Christ ministers to the believers, and
the believers minister to Christ. Every part of the body serves and is
served by every
other part, and together they are subservient to the whole in a union
that is
indissoluble. </p>

<p id="vi.iv-p10" shownumber="no">2. IT IS A VITAL UNION. In this union
Christ is the vitalizing and dominating principle
of the whole body of believers. It is none other than the life of Christ
that indwells and
animates believers, so that, to speak with Paul, "Christ is
formed" in them, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.19" parsed="|Gal|4|19|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:19">Gal. 4:19</scripRef>. By
it Christ becomes the formative principle of their life, and leads it in
a Godward
direction, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.10" parsed="|Rom|8|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:10">Rom. 8:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.13.5" parsed="|2Cor|13|5|0|0" passage="II Cor. 13:5">II Cor. 13:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.19" parsed="|Gal|4|19|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:19">Gal. 4:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.20" parsed="|Gal|4|20|0|0" passage="Gal 4:20">20</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.iv-p11" shownumber="no">3. IT IS A UNION MEDIATED BY THE HOLY SPIRIT. The Holy Spirit was in a special
capacity a part of the Mediator's reward, and as such was poured out on
the day of Pentecost for the formation of the spiritual body of Jesus Christ.
Through the Holy
Spirit Christ now dwells in believers, unites them to Himself, and knits
them together in
a holy unity, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.17" parsed="|1Cor|6|17|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:17">I Cor. 6:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.13" parsed="|1Cor|12|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:13">12:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.17" parsed="|2Cor|3|17|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:17">II Cor. 3:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.18" parsed="|2Cor|3|18|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.2" parsed="|Gal|3|2|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:2">Gal. 3:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.3" parsed="|Gal|3|3|0|0" passage="Gal 3:3">3</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.iv-p12" shownumber="no">4. IT IS A UNION THAT IMPLIES RECIPROCAL ACTION. The initial act is that of Christ, who
unites believers to himself by regenerating them and thus producing faith
in them. On
the other hand, the believer also unites himself to
Christ by a conscious act of faith, and
continues the union, under the influence of the Holy Spirit, by
the constant exercise of
faith, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:John.14.23" parsed="|John|14|23|0|0" passage="John 14:23">John 14:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:John.15.4" parsed="|John|15|4|0|0" passage="John 15:4">15:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:John.15.5" parsed="|John|15|5|0|0" passage="John 15:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.20" parsed="|Gal|2|20|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:20">Gal. 2:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.17" parsed="|Eph|3|17|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:17">Eph. 3:17</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.iv-p13" shownumber="no">5. IT IS A PERSONAL UNION. Every believer is
personally united directly to Christ. The
representation that the life which is in the Church through Christ flows
from the Church into the individual believer is decidedly unScriptural, not
only in its sacramentarian but
also in its pantheistic form (Rome, Schleiermacher, and many modern
theologians).
Every sinner who is regenerated is directly connected with Christ and
receives his life
from Him. Consequently the Bible always emphasizes the bond with Christ,
<scripRef id="vi.iv-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:John.14.20" parsed="|John|14|20|0|0" passage="John 14:20">John 14:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:John.15.1-John.15.7" parsed="|John|15|1|15|7" passage="John 15:1-7">15:1-7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.17" parsed="|2Cor|5|17|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:17">II Cor. 5:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.20" parsed="|Gal|2|20|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:20">Gal. 2:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.17" parsed="|Eph|3|17|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:17">Eph. 3:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.18" parsed="|Eph|3|18|0|0" passage="Eph 3:18">18</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p14" shownumber="no">6. IT IS A TRANSFORMING UNION. By this
union believers are changed into the image of
Christ<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p14.1">
according to his human nature.</span>
What Christ
effects in His people is in a sense a
replica or reproduction of what took place with Him. Nor only
objectively, but also in a
subjective sense they suffer, bear the cross, are crucified, die, and
are raised in newness
of life, with Christ. They share in a measure the experiences of their
Lord, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.24" parsed="|Matt|16|24|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:24">Matt. 16:24</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.iv-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.5" parsed="|Rom|6|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:5">Rom. 6:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.20" parsed="|Gal|2|20|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:20">Gal. 2:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.24" parsed="|Col|1|24|0|0" passage="Col. 1:24">Col. 1:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.12" parsed="|Col|2|12|0|0" passage="Col 2:12">2:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.1" parsed="|Col|3|1|0|0" passage="Col 3:1">3:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.4.13" parsed="|1Pet|4|13|0|0" passage="I Pet. 4:13">I Pet. 4:13</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="vi.iv-p14.9">C. ERRONEOUS CONCEPTIONS OF THE MYSTICAL UNION.</h4>
<p id="vi.iv-p15" shownumber="no">There are several erroneous conceptions of the mystical
union, against which we
should be on our guard. Errors on this point should not be regarded as
inconsequential
and therefore unimportant, for they are fraught with danger for a true
understanding of
the Christian
life. </p>

<p id="vi.iv-p16" shownumber="no">1. RATIONALISTIC ERROR. We must avoid the
error of the Rationalist who would
identify the mystical union with the union of Christ as the Logos with
the whole
creation or with the immanence of God in all human spirits. This is
found in the
following statement, which A. H. Strong quotes from Campbell,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p16.1">
The indwelling Christ</span>:
"In the immanence of Christ in nature we find the ground of his
immanence in human
nature. . . . A man may be out of Christ, but Christ is never out of
him. Those who
banish him he does not abandon." In this view the mystical union is
robbed of its
soteriological
significance.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p17" shownumber="no">2. MYSTICAL ERROR. Another dangerous
error is that of the Mystics who understand
the mystical union as an identification of the believer with Christ.
According to this
view there is in it a union of essence, in which the personality of the
one is simply
merged into that of the other, so that Christ and the believer do not
remain two distinct
persons. Even some of the Lutherans went to that extreme. One extremist
did not
hesitate to say, "I am Christ Jesus, the living Word of God; I have
redeemed thee by my
sinless
sufferings."</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p18" shownumber="no">3. SOCINIAN AND ARMINIAN ERROR. Quite another extreme is found in the teachings
of Socinians and Arminians, who represent the mystical union as a mere
moral union,
or a union of love and sympathy, like that existing between a teacher
and his pupils or
between friend and friend. Such a union does not involve any
interpenetration of the
life of Christ and that of believers. It would involve no more than
loving adherence to
Christ, friendly service freely rendered to him, and ready acceptance of
the message of
the Kingdom of God. It is a union that does not call for a Christ within
us.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p19" shownumber="no">4. SACRAMENTARIAN ERROR. Another error to
be avoided is that of the
sacramentarians, represented by the Roman Catholic Church and by some
Lutherans
and High Church Episcopalians. Strong speaks of this as "perhaps
the most pernicious
misinterpretation of the nature of this union." It makes the grace
of God something
substantial, of which the Church is the depositary, and which can be
passed on in the
sacraments; and completely loses sight of the fact that the sacraments
cannot effect this union, because they already presuppose it.</p>

<h4 id="vi.iv-p19.1">D. THE SIGNIFICANCE OF THE MYSTICAL UNION.</h4>

<p id="vi.iv-p20" shownumber="no">1. The mystical union in the sense in which we are now
speaking of it is not the judicial ground, on the basis of which we become
partakers of the riches that are in
Christ. It is sometimes said that the merits of Christ cannot be imputed
to us as long as
we are not in Christ, since it is only on the basis of our oneness with
Him that such an
imputation could be reasonable. But this view fails to distinguish
between our legal
unity with Christ and our spiritual oneness with Him, and is a
falsification of the
fundamental element in the doctrine of redemption, namely, of the
doctrine of
justification. Justification is always a declaration of God, not on the
basis of an existing
condition, but on that of a gracious imputation, — a declaration which
is not in
harmony with the existing condition of the sinner. The judicial ground
for all the special
grace which we receive lies in the fact that the righteousness of Christ
is freely imputed to us.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p21" shownumber="no">2. But this state of affairs, namely, that the sinner has nothing in
himself and receives
everything freely from Christ, must be reflected in the
consciousness of the sinner. And
this takes place through the mediation of the mystical union. While the
union is effected
when the sinner is renewed by the operation of the Holy Spirit, he does
not become
cognizant of it and does not actively cultivate it until the conscious
operation of faith
begins. Then he becomes aware of the fact that he has no righteousness
of his own, and
that the righteousness by which he appears just in the sight of God is
imputed to him.
But even so something additional is required. The sinner must feel his
dependence on
Christ in the very depths of his being, — in the sub-conscious life.
Hence he is
incorporated in Christ, and as a result experiences that all the grace
which he receives flows from Christ. The constant feeling of dependence
thus engendered, is an antidote
against all self-righteousness.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p22" shownumber="no">3. The mystical union with Christ also secures for the
believer the continuously
transforming power of the life of Christ, not only in the soul but also
in the body. The
soul is gradually renewed in the image of Christ, as Paul expresses it,
"from glory to
glory, even as by the Spirit of the Lord." <scripRef id="vi.iv-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.18" parsed="|2Cor|3|18|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:18">II Cor. 3:18</scripRef>. And the
body is consecrated in the
present to be a fit instrument of the renewed soul, and will at last be
raised up in the
likeness of
Christ's glorified body, <scripRef id="vi.iv-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:21">Phil. 3:21</scripRef>. Being in Christ, believers share in all
the blessings which He merited for his people. He is for them a perennial
fountain
springing into everlasting life.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p23" shownumber="no">4. In virtue of this union believers have fellowship with
Christ. Just as Christ shared
the labours, the sufferings, and the temptations of His people, they are
now made to
share His experiences. His sufferings are, in a measure, reproduced and
completed in
the lives of His followers. They are crucified with Him, and also arise
with Him in
newness of life The final triumph of Christ also becomes their triumph.
<scripRef id="vi.iv-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.5" parsed="|Rom|6|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:5">Rom. 6:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.8" parsed="|Rom|6|8|0|0" passage="Rom 6:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.17" parsed="|Rom|8|17|0|0" passage="Rom 8:17">8:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.1.7" parsed="|2Cor|1|7|0|0" passage="II Cor. 1:7">II Cor. 1:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p23.5" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.10" parsed="|Phil|3|10|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:10">Phil. 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p23.6" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.4.13" parsed="|1Pet|4|13|0|0" passage="I Pet. 4:13">I Pet. 4:13</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p24" shownumber="no">5. Finally, the union of believers with Christ furnishes
the basis for the spiritual
unity of all believers, and consequently for the communion of the
saints. They are
animated by the same spirit, are filled with the same love, stand in the
same faith, are
engaged in the same warfare, and are bound for the same goal. Together
they are interested in the things of Christ and His Church, of God and His
Kingdom. <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.1" osisRef="Bible:John.17.20" parsed="|John|17|20|0|0" passage="John 17:20">John 17:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.2" osisRef="Bible:John.17.21" parsed="|John|17|21|0|0" passage="John 17:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.42" parsed="|Acts|2|42|0|0" passage="Acts 2:42">Acts 2:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.15" parsed="|Rom|12|15|0|0" passage="Rom. 12:15">Rom. 12:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.2" parsed="|Eph|4|2|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:2">Eph. 4:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.3" parsed="|Eph|4|3|0|0" passage="Eph 4:3">3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.7" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.16" parsed="|Col|3|16|0|0" passage="Col. 3:16">Col. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.8" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.18" parsed="|1Thess|4|18|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:18">I Thess. 4:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.9" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.11" parsed="|1Thess|5|11|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:11">5:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.10" osisRef="Bible:Heb.3.13" parsed="|Heb|3|13|0|0" passage="Heb. 3:13">Heb. 3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.11" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.24" parsed="|Heb|10|24|0|0" passage="Heb 10:24">10:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.25" parsed="|Heb|10|25|0|0" passage="Heb 10:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.13" osisRef="Bible:Jas.5.16" parsed="|Jas|5|16|0|0" passage="Jas. 5:16">Jas. 5:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.14" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.3" parsed="|1John|1|3|0|0" passage="I John 1:3">I John 1:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.iv-p24.15" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.7" parsed="|1John|1|7|0|0" passage="I John 1:7">7</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p25" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What is the meaning of the term 'mystical' as
applied to the union with Christ? What is the relation between grace in
the legal, and
that in the moral sphere? How should we answer the contention that the
sinner cannot
become a participant in the blessings of God's special grace until he is
subjectively
incorporated in Christ? What can be said in reply to the assertion that
faith precedes
regeneration, because it effects the union with Christ, while
regeneration is the fruit of
this union? Does the mystical union suppress or does it preserve the
personality of
man? Cf. <scripRef id="vi.iv-p25.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.13" parsed="|Eph|4|13|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:13">Eph. 4:13</scripRef>. Do all believers derive equal benefits from this
union? If this union
is indissoluble, how must <scripRef id="vi.iv-p25.2" osisRef="Bible:John.15.1-John.15.7" parsed="|John|15|1|15|7" passage="John 15:1-7">John 15:1-7</scripRef> be understood? What is
Schleiermacher's
conception of the believer's union with Christ?</p>

<p id="vi.iv-p26" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 594 f.; IV, pp. 114, 226 f.,
268 f.; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.2"> Het Werk van den Heiligen Geest</span> II, pp. 163-182; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.3">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp.
612-617; Strong,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 795-808; Dick,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.5">
Theol.</span>, pp. 36-365; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.6">
Outlines</span>, pp.
482-486; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.7">
The Atonement</span>, pp. 198-211; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.8">
Chr. Theol.</span>, pp. 402-404; Valentine,
<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.9">Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 275-277; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.10">
Doct. Theol.</span>, pp. 485-491; Litton,<span class="ital" id="vi.iv-p26.11">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 321-322. </p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.v" next="vi.vi" prev="vi.iv" title="V. Calling in General and External Calling">
<h2 id="vi.v-p0.1">V. Calling in General and External Calling</h2>
<h4 id="vi.v-p0.2">A. REASONS FOR DISCUSSING CALLING FIRST.</h4>
<p id="vi.v-p1" shownumber="no">The question of the relative order of calling and
regeneration has frequently been
discussed, and the discussion has often suffered from a lack of
discrimination and a
resulting misunderstanding. The terms "calling" and
"regeneration" were not always
used in the same sense. Consequently, it was possible to maintain,
without
inconsistency, on the one hand that calling precedes regeneration, and
on the other, that regeneration is prior to calling. We shall briefly
consider (1) the representations found in
Scripture and in our confessional standards; (2) the order generally
followed by
Reformed theologians; and (3) the reasons that may be advanced in favor
of a separate
discussion of the external calling through the Word, as preceding both
regeneration and
internal
calling. </p>

<p id="vi.v-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE BIBLICAL REPRESENTATION. The Biblical order is chiefly indicated in a few well
known passages. There is first of all the vision of the dry bones in
<scripRef id="vi.v-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.37.1-Ezek.37.14" parsed="|Ezek|37|1|37|14" passage="Ezekiel 37:1-14">Ezekiel 37:1-14</scripRef>. While
Ezekiel prophesied over the dry bones of the house of Israel, the breath
of life came into
them. This passage refers to the civil restoration and the spiritual
revival of the house of
Israel, and probably also contains a hint respecting the resurrection of
its dead. It
represents the prophetic word as preceding the origin of the new life of
the people of
Israel. Naturally, this does not yet mean that the former was causally
related to the
latter. . . . A very instructive passage is found in <scripRef id="vi.v-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.14" parsed="|Acts|16|14|0|0" passage="Acts 16:14">Acts 16:14</scripRef>, which
speaks of the
conversion of Lydia. During the preaching of Paul the Lord opened the
heart of Lydia to
give heed to the things that were spoken by the apostle. It is clearly
intimated that the
opening of the heart is preceded by the external, and is followed by the
internal calling.
The unity of the twofold calling is clearly seen. . . . The statement of
Paul in <scripRef id="vi.v-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.17" parsed="|Rom|4|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:17">Rom. 4:17</scripRef> is
also frequently quoted in this connection, but can hardly be considered
relevant,
because it does not refer to either the external or the internal calling
by the preaching of
the Word of God, but either to the creative fiat of God, by which things
are called into
being, or to His command issued to things that are not, as though they
were, and
reaching even the dead. . . . Another passage is found in <scripRef id="vi.v-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.18" parsed="|Jas|1|18|0|0" passage="James 1:18">James 1:18</scripRef>,
"Of His own will
He brought us forth by the word of truth, that we should be a kind of
firstfruits of His
creatures." It can hardly be doubted that the word of truth
mentioned here is the word
of preaching, and the assumption is that this word precedes the new birth
and is in
some sense instrumental to it. . . . And, finally, there is a well known
passage in <scripRef id="vi.v-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.23" parsed="|1Pet|1|23|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:23">I Pet. 1:23</scripRef>, in which the apostle speaks of believers as "having been
begotten again, not of
corruptible seed, but of incorruptible, through the word of God, which
liveth and
abideth." In view of verse 25 the word here referred to can hardly
be anything else than
the word of the gospel preached among the readers. This word of Peter
too implies that
the word of preaching precedes regeneration and is instrumentally
connected with it. In
view of these passages the conclusion is perfectly warranted that in the
case of adults
external calling by the preaching of the word generally precedes
regeneration. Whether
they also warrant the assertion that internal calling is prior to the
implanting of the new
life, is a question that need not be considered at this point.
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE VIEW REPRESENTED IN OUR CONFESSIONAL STANDARDS. Our confessional
standards also imply that in the case of adults the preaching of the
word precedes
regeneration, but it should be borne in mind that they do not use the
word
"regeneration" in the limited sense in which it is employed
to-day. The Belgic
Confession says in Art. XXIV: "We believe that this true faith,
being wrought in man by
the hearing of the Word of God and the operation of the Holy Ghost, doth
regenerate
and make him a new man, causing him to live a new life, and freeing him
from the
bondage of sin." Faith is wrought in man by the hearing of the Word
and, in turn, works
regeneration, that is, the renewal of man in conversion and
sanctification. The Canons of
Dort contain a somewhat more detailed description in III and IV,
Articles 11 and 12:
"But when God accomplishes His good pleasure in the elect, or works
in them true
conversion, He not only causes the gospel to be externally preached to
them, and
powerfully illumines their minds by His Holy Spirit, that they may
rightly understand
and discern the things of the Spirit of God, but by the efficacy of the
same regenerating
Spirit He pervades the innermost recesses of the man; . . . And this is
the regeneration so
highly celebrated in Scripture and denominated a new creation: a
resurrection from the
dead; a making alive, which God works in us without our aid. But this is
nowise
effected merely by the external preaching of the gospel, by moral suasion,
or such a
mode of operation that, after God has performed His part, it still
remains in the power
of man to be regenerated or not, to be converted or to continue
unconverted," etc. In
these articles
the words "regeneration" and "conversion" are used
interchangeably. It is
quite evident, however, that they denote the fundamental change in the
governing
disposition of the soul as well as the resulting change in the outward
manifestations of
life. And this change is brought about not merely, but at least in part,
by the preaching
of the gospel. Consequently this precedes.
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p4" shownumber="no">3. THE ORDER GENERALLY FOLLOWED BY REFORMED THEOLOGIANS. Among the
Reformed it has been quite customary to place calling before
regeneration, though a few
have reversed the order. Even Maccovius, Voetius, and Comrie, all
Supralapsarians,
follow the usual order. Several considerations prompted Reformed
theologians in
general to place calling before regeneration.</p>

<p id="vi.v-p5" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p5.1">
Their doctrine of the covenant of grace.</span>
They considered
the covenant of grace as the
great and all-comprehensive good which God in infinite mercy grants unto
sinners, a good including all the blessings of salvation, and therefore also
regeneration. But this
covenant is inseparably connected with the gospel. It is announced and
made known in
the gospel, of which Christ is the living center, and therefore does not
exist without it.
Where the gospel is not known the covenant is not realized, but where it
is preached
God establishes His covenant and glorifies His grace. Both the preaching
of the gospel
and the administration of the covenant precede the saving operations of
the Holy Spirit,
and the believer's participation in the salvation wrought by Christ.
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p6" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p6.1">
Their conception of the relation between the work of
Christ and that of the Holy Spirit. </span>
The Anabaptists failed to do justice to this relation. Christ and His
redemptive work are
presented to us in the gospel. And it is from Christ, as the Mediator of
God and man and as the meritorious cause of our salvation, that the Holy Spirit
derives everything
which He communicates to sinners. Consequently, He joins His work to the
preaching
of the gospel and operates in a saving way only where the divine message
of
redemption is brought. The Holy Spirit does not work apart from the
Christ presented
in the gospel. </p>

<p id="vi.v-p7" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p7.1">
Their reaction against the mysticism of the Anabaptists.</span>
The Anabaptists
proceeded on
the assumption that regeneration effected not merely a renewal of human
nature, but an
entirely new creation. And this being so, they regarded it as impossible
that anything
belonging to this natural creation as, for instance, the human language
in which the
Word of God is brought to man, could in any way be instrumental in
communicating
the new life to sinners. As they saw it, regeneration<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p7.2">
eo ipso</span>
excluded the use of the Word
as a means, since this was after all only a dead letter. This mystical
tendency was
strongly opposed by Reformed theologians.</p>

<p id="vi.v-p8" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p8.1">
Their experience in connection with the spiritual renewal
of adults.</span>
While it was a
settled opinion that covenant children who die in infancy are reborn and
therefore
saved, there was no unanimous opinion as to the time when those who grew
up became
partakers of the grace of regeneration. Some shared the opinion of
Voetius that all elect
children are regenerated before baptism, and that the new life can, even
in adults,
remain concealed for many years. The great majority, however, were loath
to take that
position, and held that the new life, if present, would reveal itself in
some way.
Experience taught them that many gave no evidences of the new life until
after they had
heard the gospel for many years.</p>

<p id="vi.v-p9" shownumber="no">4. REASONS FOR A SEPARATE DISCUSSION OF EXTERNAL CALLING AS PRECEDING REGENERATION.</p>
<p id="vi.v-p10" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p10.1">
Clearness of presentation.</span>
External and
internal calling are essentially one; yet they
can and should be carefully distinguished. A dispute may arise
respecting the one that
does not directly concern the other. It may be doubted, whether internal
calling logically
precedes regeneration in the case of adults, while there is no
uncertainty whatsoever in
this respect concerning the external calling through the gospel. Hence
it may be
considered desirable to treat of the external calling first, and then to
take up the discussion of internal calling in connection with that of
regeneration.</p>

<p id="vi.v-p11" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p11.1">
The preparatory nature of external calling..</span>
If we proceed
on the assumption that the
<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p11.2">ordo salutis</span>
deals with the effective application of the redemption wrought by
Christ, we
feel at once that the external calling by the Word of God can, strictly
speaking, hardly be
called one of its stages. As long as this calling does not, through the accompanying
operation of the Holy Spirit, turn into an internal and effectual calling, it
has only a
preliminary and preparatory significance. Several Reformed theologians
speak of it as a
kind of common grace, since it does not flow from the eternal
election and the saving
grace of God, but rather from His common goodness; and since, while it
sometimes
produces a certain illumination of the mind, it does not enrich the
heart with the saving
grace of God.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.v-p11.3" n="38" place="foot">Cf. references above, pp. 304 f. and also a Marck, <span class="ital" id="vi.v-p11.4">Godgeleerdheid.</span> XXIII. 3.</note></p>

<p id="vi.v-p12" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p12.1">
The general nature of external calling.</span>
While all the
other movements of the Holy
Spirit in the<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p12.2">
ordo salutis</span>
terminate on the elect only, the external calling by the gospel has
a wider bearing. Wherever the gospel is preached, the call comes to the
elect and the
reprobate alike. It serves the purpose, not merely of bringing the elect
to faith and
conversion, but also of revealing the great love of God to sinners in
general. By means
of it God maintains His claim on the obedience of all His rational
creatures, restrains the
manifestation of sin, and promotes civic righteousness, external
morality, and even
outward religious exercises.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.v-p12.3" n="39" place="foot">Cf. Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="vi.v-p12.4">Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 7 f.</note>

</p>

<h4 id="vi.v-p12.5">B. CALLING IN GENERAL.</h4>
<p id="vi.v-p13" shownumber="no">Since external calling is but an aspect of calling in
general, we shall have to consider this briefly before entering upon a
discussion of external calling.</p>

<p id="vi.v-p14" shownumber="no">1. THE AUTHOR OF OUR CALLING. Our calling is a
work of the triune God. It is first of
all a work of
the Father, <scripRef id="vi.v-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.9" parsed="|1Cor|1|9|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:9">I Cor. 1:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.2.12" parsed="|1Thess|2|12|0|0" passage="I Thess. 2:12">I Thess. 2:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.10" parsed="|1Pet|5|10|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:10">I Pet. 5:10</scripRef>. But the Father works all
things through the Son; and so this calling is also ascribed to the Son,
<scripRef id="vi.v-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.28" parsed="|Matt|11|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:28">Matt. 11:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.5.32" parsed="|Luke|5|32|0|0" passage="Luke 5:32">Luke 5:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:John.7.37" parsed="|John|7|37|0|0" passage="John 7:37">John 7:37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.6" parsed="|Rom|1|6|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:6">Rom. 1:6</scripRef>(?). And Christ, in turn, calls through His
Word and Spirit, <scripRef id="vi.v-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.20" parsed="|Matt|10|20|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:20">Matt. 10:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p14.9" osisRef="Bible:John.15.26" parsed="|John|15|26|0|0" passage="John 15:26">John 15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p14.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.31" parsed="|Acts|5|31|0|0" passage="Acts 5:31">Acts 5:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p14.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.32" parsed="|Acts|5|32|0|0" passage="Acts 5:32">32</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.v-p15" shownumber="no">2. VOCATIO REALIS AND VERBALIS. Reformed theologians generally speak of a<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p15.1">
vocatio realis</span>, as distinguished from the<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p15.2">
vocatio verbalis.</span>
By this they mean
the external call that
comes to men through God's general revelation, a revelation of the law
and not of the
gospel, to acknowledge, fear, and honour God as their Creator. It comes
to them in
things (<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p15.3">res</span>) rather than in words: in nature and history, in the environment in
which
they live, and in the experiences and vicissitudes of their lives, <scripRef id="vi.v-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.19.1-Ps.19.4" parsed="|Ps|19|1|19|4" passage="Ps. 19:1-4">Ps. 19:1-4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.16" parsed="|Acts|16|16|0|0" passage="Acts 16:16">Acts 16:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.17" parsed="|Acts|16|17|0|0" passage="Acts 16:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.27" parsed="|Acts|17|27|0|0" passage="Acts 17:27">17:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.19-Rom.1.21" parsed="|Rom|1|19|1|21" passage="Rom. 1:19-21">Rom. 1:19-21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.14" parsed="|Rom|2|14|0|0" passage="Rom 2:14">2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p15.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.15" parsed="|Rom|2|15|0|0" passage="Rom 2:15">15</scripRef>. This call knows nothing of Christ, and therefore cannot lead
to salvation. At the same time it is of the greatest importance in
connection with the
restraint of sin, the development of the natural life, and the
maintenance of good order
in society. This is not the calling with which we are concerned at
present. In soteriology
only the<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p15.11">
vocatio
verbalis</span>
comes into consideration; and this may be defined as<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p15.12">
that gracious act of God whereby He
invites sinners to accept the salvation that is offered in Christ Jesus. </span>
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p16" shownumber="no">3. DIFFERENT CONCEPTIONS OF THE VOCATIO VERBALIS. The<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p16.1">
vocatio verbalis</span>
is, as the
term itself suggests, the divine call that comes to man through the
preaching of the
Word of God. According to Roman Catholics it can also come to man
through the
administration of baptism. In fact, they regard the sacrament as the
most important
means in bringing man to Christ, and ascribe a decidedly subordinate
significance to
the preaching of the gospel. Not the pulpit, but the altar is central
with Rome. In course
of time considerable difference of opinion became apparent on the
question, why the
gospel call proves efficacious in some cases and not in others. Pelagius
sought the
explanation for this in the arbitrary will of man. Man has by nature a
perfectly free will,
so that he can accept or reject the gospel, as he sees fit, and thus
either obtain or fail to obtain the blessings of salvation. Augustine, on the
other hand, ascribed the difference
to the operation of the grace of God. Said he: "The hearing of the
divine call, is
produced by divine grace itself, in him who before resisted; and then
the love of virtue
is kindled in him when he no longer resists." Semi-Pelagianism
sought to mediate
between the two and to avoid both the Augustinian denial of free will
and the Pelagian
depreciation of divine grace. It assumed the presence of the seeds of
virtue in man,
which of themselves tended to bear good fruit, but held that these needed
the
fructifying influence of divine grace for their development. The
grace necessary for this
is given to all men gratuitously, so that they are with the aid of it
able to accept the
gospel call unto salvation. The call will therefore be effective
provided man, aided by
divine grace, accepts it. This became the prevailing doctrine of the
Roman Catholic
Church. Some later Roman Catholics, of whom Bellarmin was one of the
most
important, brought in the doctrine of congruism, in which the acceptance
of the gospel
call is made dependent on the circumstances in which it comes to man. If
these are congruous, that is, fit or favorable, he will accept it, but if not,
he will reject it. The
character of the circumstances will, of course, largely depend on the
operation of
prevenient grace. Luther developed the idea that, while the law worked
repentance, the
gospel call carried with it the gift of the Holy Spirit. The Holy Spirit
is in the Word, and
therefore the call is in itself always sufficient and in its intention
always efficacious. The
reason why this call does not always effect the desired and intended
result lies in the
fact that men in many cases place a stumbling block in the way, so that,
after all, the
result is determined by the negative attitude of man. While some
Lutherans still speak
of external and internal calling, they insist on it that the former
never comes to man
apart from the latter. The call is essentially always efficacious, so
that there is really no
room for the distinction. Luther's strong insistence on the efficacious
character of the
gospel call was due to the Anabaptist depreciation of it. The
Anabaptists virtually set
aside the Word of God as a means of grace, and stressed what they called
the internal
word, the "inner light," and the illumination of the Holy
Spirit. To them the external
word was but the letter that killeth, while the internal word was spirit
and life. External
calling meant little or nothing in their scheme. The distinction between
external and
internal calling is already found in Augustine, was borrowed from him by
Calvin, and
thus made prominent in Reformed theology. According to Calvin the gospel
call is not
in itself effective, but is made efficacious by the operation of the
Holy Spirit, when He
savingly applies the Word to the heart of man; and it is so applied only
in the hearts and
lives of the elect. Thus the salvation of man remains the work of God
from the very
beginning. God by His saving grace, not only enables, but causes man to
heed the
gospel call unto salvation. The Arminians were not satisfied with this
position, but
virtually turned back to the Semi-Pelagianism of the Roman Catholic
Church.
According to them the universal proclamation of the gospel is
accompanied by a
universal sufficient grace, — "gracious assistance actually and
universally bestowed,
sufficient to enable all men, if they choose, to attain to the full
possession of spiritual
blessings, and ultimately to salvation."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.v-p16.2" n="40" place="foot">Cunningham, <span class="ital" id="vi.v-p16.3">Hist. Theol.</span> II, p. 396.</note>
The work of salvation is once
more made
dependent on man. This marked the beginning of a rationalistic return to
the Pelagian
position, which entirely denies the necessity of an internal operation
of the Holy Spirit
unto salvation.</p>

<h4 id="vi.v-p16.4">C. EXTERNAL CALLING.</h4>
<p id="vi.v-p17" shownumber="no">The Bible does not use the term "external," but
clearly speaks of a calling that is not
efficacious. It is presupposed in the great commission, as it is found
in <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.15" parsed="|Mark|16|15|0|0" passage="Mark 16:15">Mark 16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16</scripRef>,
"Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel to the whole
creation. He that believeth
and is baptized shall be saved; but he that disbelieveth shall be
condemned." The
parable of the marriage feast in <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.2-Matt.22.14" parsed="|Matt|22|2|22|14" passage="Matt. 22:2-14">Matt. 22:2-14</scripRef> clearly teaches that some
who were invited did not come, and concludes with the well-known words:
"For many are called, but few
chosen." The same lesson is taught in the parable of the great
supper, <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.14.16-Luke.14.24" parsed="|Luke|14|16|14|24" passage="Luke 14:16-24">Luke 14:16-24</scripRef>.
Other passages
speak explicitly of a rejection of the gospel, <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">John 3:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.46" parsed="|Acts|13|46|0|0" passage="Acts 13:46">Acts 13:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.8" parsed="|2Thess|1|8|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:8">II Thess. 1:8</scripRef>. Still others speak of the terrible sin of unbelief in a way
which clearly shows
that it was
committed by some, <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.15" parsed="|Matt|10|15|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:15">Matt. 10:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.21-Matt.11.24" parsed="|Matt|11|21|11|24" passage="Matt 11:21-24">11:21-24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:John.5.40" parsed="|John|5|40|0|0" passage="John 5:40">John 5:40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.11" osisRef="Bible:John.16.8" parsed="|John|16|8|0|0" passage="John 16:8">16:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p17.12" osisRef="Bible:John.16.9" parsed="|John|16|9|0|0" passage="John 16:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p17.13" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.10" parsed="|1John|5|10|0|0" passage="I John 5:10">I John 5:10</scripRef>. The external call
consists<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p17.14">
in the presentation and offering of
salvation in Christ to sinners, together with an earnest exhortation to accept
Christ by faith, in order to obtain the forgiveness of sins
and life eternal. </span>
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p18" shownumber="no">1. THE ELEMENTS COMPRISED IN IT.</p>
<p id="vi.v-p19" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p19.1"> A presentation of the gospel facts and of the doctrine of redemption.</span> The way of
redemption revealed in Christ must be set forth clearly in all its
relations. God's plan of
redemption, the saving work of Christ, and the renewing and transforming
operations
of the Holy Spirit, should all be interpreted in their mutual relations.
It should be borne
in mind, however, that a mere presentation of the truths of redemption,
no matter how
well done, does not yet constitute the gospel call. It is not only
fundamental to it, but
even constitutes a very important part of it. At the same time it is by
no means the
whole of that call. According to our Reformed conception the following
elements also
belong to it. </p>

<p id="vi.v-p20" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p20.1"> An invitation to accept Christ in repentance and faith.</span>
The representation of the way
of salvation must be supplemented by an earnest invitation (<scripRef id="vi.v-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.11" parsed="|2Cor|5|11|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:11">II Cor. 5:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.20" parsed="|2Cor|5|20|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:20">20</scripRef>) and even a solemn command (<scripRef id="vi.v-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:John.6.28" parsed="|John|6|28|0|0" passage="John 6:28">John 6:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:John.6.29" parsed="|John|6|29|0|0" passage="John 6:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.4" parsed="|Acts|19|4|0|0" passage="Acts 19:4">Acts 19:4</scripRef>) to repent and believe,
that is to accept Christ
by faith. But, in order that this coming to Christ may not be understood
in a superficial
sense, as it is often represented by revivalists, the true nature of the
repentance and the
faith required should be clearly set forth. It must be made perfectly
clear that the sinner
cannot of himself truly repent and believe, but that it is God who
worketh in him "both
to will and to work, for His good pleasure."
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p21" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p21.1">
A promise of forgiveness and salvation.</span>
The external
call also contains a promise of
acceptance for all those who comply with the conditions, not in their
own strength, but
by the power of the grace of God wrought in their hearts by the Holy
Spirit. They who
by grace repent of their sins and accept Christ by faith receive the
assurance of the
forgiveness of sins and of eternal salvation. This promise, it should be
noticed, is never
absolute, but always conditional. No one can expect its fulfilment,
except in the way of a
faith and repentance that is truly wrought by God.</p>

<p id="vi.v-p22" shownumber="no">From the fact that these elements are included in
external calling, it may readily be
inferred that they who reject the gospel not merely refuse to believe
certain facts and
ideas, but resist the general operation of the Holy Spirit, which is
connected with this
calling, and are guilty of the sin of obstinate disobedience. By their
refusal to accept the
gospel, they increase their responsibility, and treasure up wrath for
themselves in the
day of judgment, <scripRef id="vi.v-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.4" parsed="|Rom|2|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:4">Rom. 2:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.5" parsed="|Rom|2|5|0|0" passage="Rom 2:5">5</scripRef>. That the above elements are actually
included in the
external calling, is quite evident from the following passages of
Scripture: (a) According
to <scripRef id="vi.v-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.27" parsed="|Acts|20|27|0|0" passage="Acts 20:27">Acts 20:27</scripRef> Paul considers the declaration of the whole counsel of God
as a part of the
call; and in <scripRef id="vi.v-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.7-Eph.3.11" parsed="|Eph|3|7|3|11" passage="Eph. 3:7-11">Eph. 3:7-11</scripRef> he recounts some of the details which he had
declared unto the
readers. (b) Examples of the call to repent and believe are found in
such passages as
<scripRef id="vi.v-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.33.11" parsed="|Ezek|33|11|0|0" passage="Ezek. 33:11">Ezek. 33:11</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.v-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.15" parsed="|Mark|1|15|0|0" passage="Mark 1:15">Mark 1:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:John.6.29" parsed="|John|6|29|0|0" passage="John 6:29">John 6:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.20" parsed="|2Cor|5|20|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:20">II Cor. 5:20</scripRef>. (c) And the promise is contained in the
following
passages, <scripRef id="vi.v-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16-John.3.18" parsed="|John|3|16|3|18" passage="John 3:16-18">John 3:16-18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p22.10" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p22.11" osisRef="Bible:John.5.24" parsed="|John|5|24|0|0" passage="John 5:24">5:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p22.12" osisRef="Bible:John.5.40" parsed="|John|5|40|0|0" passage="John 5:40">40</scripRef>.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.v-p22.13" n="41" place="foot">Cf. also the <span class="ital" id="vi.v-p22.14">Canons o fDort</span> II, 5,6; III and IV, 8.</note></p>

<p id="vi.v-p23" shownumber="no">2. THE CHARACTERISTICS OF EXTERNAL CALLING.</p>

<p id="vi.v-p24" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p24.1"> It is general or universal.</span>
This is not to
be understood in the sense in which it was
maintained by some of the old Lutheran theologians, namely, that that call
actually
came to all the living more than once in the past, as, for instance, in
the time of Adam, in
that of Noah, and in the days of the apostles. McPherson correctly says:
"A universal
call of this kind is not a fact, but a mere theory invented for a
purpose."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.v-p24.2" n="42" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.v-p24.3">Chr. Dogm.</span> p. 377.</note>  In this representation the terms "general" or "universal"
are not used in the sense in which
they are intended, when it is said that the gospel call is general or
universal. Moreover,
the representation is at least in part contrary to fact. External
calling is general only in
the sense that it comes to all men to whom the gospel is preached,
indiscriminately. It is
not confined to any age or nation or class of men. It comes to both the
just and the
unjust, the elect and the reprobate. The following passages testify to
the general nature
of this call: <scripRef id="vi.v-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.55.1" parsed="|Isa|55|1|0|0" passage="Isa. 55:1">Isa. 55:1</scripRef>, "Ho, every one that thirsteth, come ye to
the waters, and he that
hath no money; some ye, buy and eat; yea, come, buy wine
and milk without money
and without price," cf. also verses 6,7. In connection with this
passage one might
conceivably say that only spiritually qualified sinners are called; but
this certainly
cannot be said of <scripRef id="vi.v-p24.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.45.22" parsed="|Isa|45|22|0|0" passage="Isa. 45:22">Isa. 45:22</scripRef>, "Look unto me, and be ye saved, all
the ends of the earth;
for I am God, and there is none else." Some also interpret the
familiar invitation of Jesus in <scripRef id="vi.v-p24.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.28" parsed="|Matt|11|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:28">Matt. 11:28</scripRef>, "Come unto me, all ye that
labor and are heavy laden, and I will give you
rest," as limited to such as are truly concerned about their sins
and really repentant; but
there is no warrant for such a limitation. The last book of the Bible
concludes with a
beautiful general invitation: "And the Spirit and the bride say,
Come. And he that
heareth, let him say, Come. And he that is athirst, let him come: he
that will, let him take
of the water of
life freely," <scripRef id="vi.v-p24.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.22.17" parsed="|Rev|22|17|0|0" passage="Rev. 22:17">Rev. 22:17</scripRef>. That the gospel invitation is not limited to the
elect, as some
hold, is quite evident from such passages as <scripRef id="vi.v-p24.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.81.11-Ps.81.13" parsed="|Ps|81|11|81|13" passage="Ps. 81:11-13">Ps. 81:11-13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p24.9" osisRef="Bible:Prov.1.24-Prov.1.26" parsed="|Prov|1|24|1|26" passage="Prov. 1:24-26">Prov. 1:24-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p24.10" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.3.19" parsed="|Ezek|3|19|0|0" passage="Ezek. 3:19">Ezek. 3:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p24.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.2-Matt.22.8" parsed="|Matt|22|2|22|8" passage="Matt. 22:2-8">Matt. 22:2-8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p24.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.14" parsed="|Matt|22|14|0|0" passage="Matt 22:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p24.13" osisRef="Bible:Luke.14.16-Luke.14.24" parsed="|Luke|14|16|14|24" passage="Luke 14:16-24">Luke 14:16-24</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p25" shownumber="no">The general character of this calling is also taught in the<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p25.1">
Canons of Dort.</span><note anchored="yes" id="vi.v-p25.2" n="43" place="foot">II, 5; III and IV, 8.</note>
Yet this
doctrine repeatedly met with opposition by individuals and groups in the
Reformed
Churches. In the Scottish Church of the seventeenth century some denied
the
indiscriminate invitation and offer of salvation altogether, while
others wanted to limit
it to the confines of the visible Church. Over against these the Marrow
men, such as
Boston and the Erskines, defended it. In the Netherlands this point was
disputed
especially in the eighteenth century. They who maintained the universal
offer were
called preachers of the<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p25.3">
new light</span>
while they who
defended the particular offer, the offer
to those who already gave evidence of a measure of special grace and
could therefore be
reckoned as among the elect, were known as the preachers of the<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p25.4">
old light.</span>
Even in the
present day we occasionally meet with opposition on this point. It is
said that such a
general invitation and offer is inconsistent with the doctrine of
predestination and of particular atonement, doctrines in which, it is thought,
the preacher should take his
starting point. But the Bible does not teach that the preacher of the
gospel should take
his starting point in these doctrines, however important they may be. His
starting point
and warrant lie in the commission of his King: "Go ye into all the
world, and preach the gospel to every creature. He that believeth and is baptized shall be
saved: but he that
believeth not shall be damned." <scripRef id="vi.v-p25.5" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.15" parsed="|Mark|16|15|0|0" passage="Mark 16:15">Mark 16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p25.6" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16</scripRef>. Moreover, it is an
utter impossibility that
anyone, in preaching the gospel, should limit himself to the elect, as
some would have
us do, since he does not know who they are. Jesus did know them, but He
did not so
limit the offer
of salvation, <scripRef id="vi.v-p25.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.3-Matt.22.8" parsed="|Matt|22|3|22|8" passage="Matt. 22:3-8">Matt. 22:3-8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p25.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.14" parsed="|Matt|22|14|0|0" passage="Matt 22:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p25.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.14.16-Luke.14.21" parsed="|Luke|14|16|14|21" passage="Luke 14:16-21">Luke 14:16-21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p25.10" osisRef="Bible:John.5.38-John.5.40" parsed="|John|5|38|5|40" passage="John 5:38-40">John 5:38-40</scripRef>. There would be
a real contradiction between the Reformed doctrines of predestination and
particular
atonement on the one hand, and the universal offer of salvation on the
other hand, if
this offer included the declaration that God purposed to save every
individual hearer of
the gospel, and that Christ really atoned for the sins of each one of
them. But the gospel
invitation involves no such declaration. It is a gracious calling to
accept Christ by faith,
and a<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p25.11">
conditional</span>
promise of salvation. The condition is fulfilled only in the elect, and
therefore they only obtain eternal life.
</p>
<p id="vi.v-p26" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p26.1">
It is a bona fide calling.</span>
The external
calling is a calling in good faith, a calling that is
seriously meant. It is not an invitation coupled with the hope that it
will not be
accepted. When God calls the sinner to accept Christ by faith, He
earnestly desires this;
and when He promises those who repent and believe eternal life, His
promise is
dependable. This follows from the very nature, from the veracity, of
God. It is
blasphemous to think that God would be guilty of equivocation and
deception, that He
would say one thing and mean another, that He would earnestly plead with
the sinner
to repent and believe unto salvation, and at the same time not desire it
in any sense of
the word. The<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p26.2">
bona fide</span>
character of the external call is proved by the following passages
of Scripture:
<scripRef id="vi.v-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Num.23.19" parsed="|Num|23|19|0|0" passage="Num. 23:19">Num. 23:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.81.13-Ps.81.16" parsed="|Ps|81|13|81|16" passage="Ps. 81:13-16">Ps. 81:13-16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:Prov.1.24" parsed="|Prov|1|24|0|0" passage="Prov. 1:24">Prov. 1:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.1.18-Isa.1.20" parsed="|Isa|1|18|1|20" passage="Isa. 1:18-20">Isa. 1:18-20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.23" parsed="|Ezek|18|23|0|0" passage="Ezek. 18:23">Ezek. 18:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p26.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.32" parsed="|Ezek|18|32|0|0" passage="Ezek 18:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p26.9" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.33.11" parsed="|Ezek|33|11|0|0" passage="Ezek 33:11">33:11</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.v-p26.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.37" parsed="|Matt|21|37|0|0" passage="Matt. 21:37">Matt. 21:37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p26.11" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.13" parsed="|2Tim|2|13|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:13">II Tim. 2:13</scripRef>. The Canons of Dort also assert it explicitly in III and IV, 8. Several
objections have
been offered to the idea of such a<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p26.12">
bona fide</span>
offer of salvation. (1) One
objection is derived from the veracity of God. It is said that,
according to this doctrine,
He offers the forgiveness of sins and eternal life to those for whom He
has not intended
these gifts. It need not be denied that there is a real difficulty at
this point, but this is the
difficulty with which we are always confronted, when we seek to harmonize
the
decretive and the preceptive will of God, a difficulty which even the
objectors cannot
solve and often simply ignore. Yet we may not assume that the two are
really
contradictory. The decretive will of God determines what will most
certainly come to
pass (without necessarily implying that God really takes delight in all
of it, as, for
instance, in all kinds of sin), while the preceptive will is man's rule
of life, informing
him as to what is well pleasing in the sight of God. Furthermore, it
should be borne in
mind that God does not offer sinners the forgiveness of sins and eternal
life
unconditionally, but only in the way of faith and conversion; and that
the righteousness
of Christ, though not intended for all, is yet sufficient for all. (2) A
second objection is
derived from the spiritual inability of man. Man, as he is by nature,
cannot believe and
repent, and therefore it looks like mockery to ask this of him. But in
connection with this
objection we should remember that in the last analysis man's inability
in spiritual things
is rooted in his unwillingness to serve God. The actual condition of
things is not such
that many would like to repent and believe in Christ, if they only
could. All those who
do not believe are not willing to believe, <scripRef id="vi.v-p26.13" osisRef="Bible:John.5.40" parsed="|John|5|40|0|0" passage="John 5:40">John 5:40</scripRef>. Moreover, it is no
more unreasonable
to require repentance and faith in Christ of men than it is to demand of
them that they
keep the law. Very inconsistently some of those who oppose the general
offer of
salvation on the basis of man's spiritual inability, do not hesitate to
place the sinner before the demands of the law and even insist on doing this.
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p27" shownumber="no">3. THE SIGNIFICANCE OF EXTERNAL CALLING. The question may be asked, why God
comes to all men indiscriminately, including even the reprobate, with
the offer of
salvation. This external calling answers more than one purpose.
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p28" shownumber="no">a. In it God maintains His claim on the sinner. As the
sovereign Ruler of the
universe He is entitled — and this is a matter of absolute right — to
the service of man.
And though man tore away from God in sin and is now incapable of
rendering spiritual
obedience to his rightful Sovereign, his wilful transgression did not
abrogate the claim
of God on the service of His rational creatures. The right of God to
demand absolute
obedience remains, and He asserts this right in both the law and the
gospel. His claim
on man also finds expression in the call to faith and repentance. And if
man does not
heed this call, he disregards and slights the just claim of God and
thereby increases his guilt. </p>

<p id="vi.v-p29" shownumber="no">b. It is the divinely appointed means of bringing sinners
to conversion. In other
words, it is the means by which God gathers the elect out of the nations
of the earth. As such it must necessarily be general or universal, since no man
can point out the elect.
The final result is, of course, that the elect, and they only, accept
Christ by faith. This
does not mean that missionaries can go out and give their hearers the
assurance that
Christ died for each one of them and that God intends to save each one;
but it does
mean that they can bring the joyful tidings that Christ died for
sinners, that He invites
them to come unto Him, and that He offers salvation to all those who
truly repent of
their sins and accept him with a living faith.
</p>

<p id="vi.v-p30" shownumber="no">c. It is also a revelation of God's holiness, goodness,
and compassion. In virtue of
His holiness God dissuades sinners everywhere from sin, and in virtue of
His goodness
and mercy He warns them against self-destruction, postpones the
execution of the
sentence of death, and blesses them with the offer of salvation. There
is no doubt about
it that this gracious offer is in itself a blessing and not, as some
would have it, a curse
for sinners. It clearly reveals the divine compassion for them, and is
so represented in
the Word of God,
<scripRef id="vi.v-p30.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.81.13" parsed="|Ps|81|13|0|0" passage="Ps. 81:13">Ps. 81:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p30.2" osisRef="Bible:Prov.1.24" parsed="|Prov|1|24|0|0" passage="Prov. 1:24">Prov. 1:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p30.3" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.23" parsed="|Ezek|18|23|0|0" passage="Ezek. 18:23">Ezek. 18:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.v-p30.4" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.32" parsed="|Ezek|18|32|0|0" passage="Ezek 18:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p30.5" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.33.11" parsed="|Ezek|33|11|0|0" passage="Ezek 33:11">33:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p30.6" osisRef="Bible:Amos.8.11" parsed="|Amos|8|11|0|0" passage="Amos 8:11">Amos 8:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p30.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.20-Matt.11.24" parsed="|Matt|11|20|11|24" passage="Matt. 11:20-24">Matt. 11:20-24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.v-p30.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.23.37" parsed="|Matt|23|37|0|0" passage="Matt 23:37">23:37</scripRef>. At the same time it is true that man by his opposition to it may
turn even this
blessing into a curse. It naturally heightens the responsibility of the
sinner, and, if not
accepted and improved, will increase his judgment.</p>

<p id="vi.v-p31" shownumber="no">d. Finally, it clearly accentuates the righteousness of
God. If even the revelation of
God in nature serves the purpose of forestalling any excuse which
sinners might be
inclined to make, <scripRef id="vi.v-p31.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.20" parsed="|Rom|1|20|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:20">Rom. 1:20</scripRef>, this is all the more true of the special
revelation of the way of salvation. When sinners despise the forbearance of God
and reject His gracious offer
of salvation, the greatness of their corruption and guilt, and the
justice of God in their
condemnation, stands out in the clearest light. </p>

<p id="vi.v-p32" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: In what
cases do the Reformed assume that
regeneration precedes even external calling? How do they connect
external calling up
with the doctrine of the covenant? On what grounds did the
Arminians at the time of
the Synod of Dort assert that the Reformed churches could not
consistently teach that
God seriously calls sinners indiscriminately to salvation? How do Roman
Catholics
conceive of the calling by the Word? What is the Lutheran conception of
calling? Is it
correct to say
(with Alexander,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p32.1">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 357
ff.) that the Word by itself is  adequate to
effect a spiritual change, and that the Holy Spirit merely removes the obstruction to its reception?</p>

<p id="vi.v-p33" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.1">; Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 1-15; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.2">
Roeping en Wedergeboorte </span> Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.3"> Dict. Dogm., De Salute</span>, pp. 84-92; Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.4">
Godgeleerdheit</span>
III, pp. 192-214 à
Marck,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.5">
Godgeleerdheid</span>, pp. 649-651; Witsius,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.6">
De Verbonden</span>
III, c. 5; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.7">
Syst. Theol</span>
II. pp. 639-653; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.8">
Theology.</span>, pp. 553-559; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.9">
Doct. Theol.</span>, pp. 448-456; Valentine
<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.10"> Chr. Theol.</span> II, pp. 194-204; Pope,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.11">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 335-347; W. L. Alexander,<span class="ital" id="vi.v-p33.12">
Syst. of Bibl. Theol.</span> II, pp. 357-361. </p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.vi" next="vi.vii" prev="vi.v" title="VI. Regeneration and Effectual Calling">
<h2 id="vi.vi-p0.1">VI. Regeneration and Efectual Calling</h2>
<h4 id="vi.vi-p0.2">A. THE SCRIPTURAL TERMS FOR REGENERATION AND THEIR IMPLICATIONS.</h4>
<p id="vi.vi-p1" shownumber="no">1. THE TERMS THAT COME INTO CONSIDERATION. The Greek word for
"regeneration"
(<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.1">palingenesia</span>) is found only
in <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.28" parsed="|Matt|19|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:28">Matt. 19:28</scripRef> and <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.5" parsed="|Titus|3|5|0|0" passage="Titus 3:5">Titus 3:5</scripRef>; and only in the
last named passage does it refer to the beginning of the new life in the
individual
Christian. The idea of this beginning is more commonly expressed by the
verb<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.4">
gennao </span>
(with<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.5">
anothen</span>
in <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.6" osisRef="Bible:John.3.3" parsed="|John|3|3|0|0" passage="John 3:3">John 3:3</scripRef>), or its compositum<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.7">
anagennao.</span>
These words mean
either<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.8">
to beget, to beget again</span>, or<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.9">
to bear or
give birth</span>, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.10" osisRef="Bible:John.1.13" parsed="|John|1|13|0|0" passage="John 1:13">John 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.11" osisRef="Bible:John.3.3" parsed="|John|3|3|0|0" passage="John 3:3">3:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.12" osisRef="Bible:John.3.4" parsed="|John|3|4|0|0" passage="John 3:4">4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.13" osisRef="Bible:John.3.5" parsed="|John|3|5|0|0" passage="John 3:5">5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.14" osisRef="Bible:John.3.6" parsed="|John|3|6|0|0" passage="John 3:6">6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.15" osisRef="Bible:John.3.7" parsed="|John|3|7|0|0" passage="John 3:7">7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.16" osisRef="Bible:John.3.8" parsed="|John|3|8|0|0" passage="John 3:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.17" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.23" parsed="|1Pet|1|23|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:23">I Pet. 1:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.18" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.29" parsed="|1John|2|29|0|0" passage="I John 2:29">I John 2:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.19" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.9" parsed="|1John|3|9|0|0" passage="I John 3:9">3:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.20" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.7" parsed="|1John|4|7|0|0" passage="I John 4:7">4:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.21" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.1" parsed="|1John|5|1|0|0" passage="I John 5:1">5:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.22" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.4" parsed="|1John|5|4|0|0" passage="I John 5:4">4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.23" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.18" parsed="|1John|5|18|0|0" passage="I John 5:18">18</scripRef>. In one passage, namely, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.24" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.18" parsed="|Jas|1|18|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:18">Jas. 1:18</scripRef>, the word<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.25">
apokueo, to bear</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.26">
bring forth</span>,
is employed. Furthermore, the thought of the production of a new life is
expressed by
the word<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.27">
ktizo, to create</span>, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.28" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.10" parsed="|Eph|2|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:10">Eph. 2:10</scripRef>, and the product of this
creation is called a<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.29">
kaine ktisis </span>
(a new
creature), <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.30" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.17" parsed="|2Cor|5|17|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:17">II Cor. 5:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.31" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.15" parsed="|Gal|6|15|0|0" passage="Gal. 6:15">Gal. 6:15</scripRef>, or<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.32">
a kainos anthropos</span>
(a new man), <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.33" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.24" parsed="|Eph|4|24|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:24">Eph. 4:24</scripRef>.
Finally, the
term<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p1.34">
suzoopoieo, to make alive with, to
quicken with</span>,
is also used in a couple of passages, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.35" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.5" parsed="|Eph|2|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:5">Eph. 2:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p1.36" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.13" parsed="|Col|2|13|0|0" passage="Col. 2:13">Col. 2:13</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.vi-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE IMPLICATIONS OF THESE TERMS. These terms carry with them several important
implications, to which attention should be directed. (a) Regeneration is
a creative work
of God, and is
therefore<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p2.1">
a work in which man is purely
passive</span>,
and in which there is no  place for human
co-operation. This is a very important point, since it stresses the fact
that salvation is wholly of God. (b) The creative work of God produces a<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p2.2">
new life</span>, in
virtue of which man, made alive with Christ, shares the resurrection
life, and can be
called a new creature, "created in Christ Jesus for good works,
which God afore
prepared that we should walk in them," <scripRef id="vi.vi-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.10" parsed="|Eph|2|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:10">Eph. 2:10</scripRef>. (c) Two elements
must be
distinguished in
regeneration, namely,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p2.4">
generation or the begetting of the
new life</span>,
and<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p2.5"> bearing or bringing forth,</span>
by which the new life is brought forth out of its hidden depths.
Generation implants the principle of the new life in the soul, and the
new birth causes
this principle to begin to assert itself in action. This distinction is
of great importance for
a proper understanding of regeneration.</p>

<h4 id="vi.vi-p2.6">B. THE USE OF THE TERM "REGENERATION" IN THEOLOGY.</h4>

<p id="vi.vi-p3" shownumber="no">1. IN THE EARLY CHURCH AND IN ROMAN CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. In the mind of
the
early Church the term "regeneration" did not stand for a
sharply defined concept. It
was used to denote a change closely connected with the washing away of
sins, and no
clear distinction was made between regeneration and justification. As
identified with
baptismal grace, the former was understood especially as a designation
of the remission
of sin, though the idea of a certain moral renovation was not excluded.
Even Augustine
did not draw a sharp line here, but did distinguish between regeneration
and
conversion. To him regeneration included, in addition to the remission
of sin, only an
<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p3.1">
initial</span>
change of the heart, followed by conversion later on. He conceived of
it as a
strictly monergistic work of God, in which the human subject cannot
cooperate, and
which man cannot resist. For Pelagius, of course,
"regeneration" did not mean the birth
of a new nature, but the forgiveness of sins in baptism, the
illumination of the mind by
the truth, and the stimulation of the will by divine promises. The
confusion of
regeneration and justification, already apparent in Augustine, became
even more
pronounced in Scholasticism. In fact, justification became the more
prominent concept
of the two, was thought of as including regeneration, and was conceived
of as an act in
which God and man co-operate. Justification, according to the common
representation,
included the infusion of grace, that is, the birth of a new creature or
regeneration, and
the forgiveness of sin and the removal of the guilt attaching to it.
There was a difference
of opinion, however, as to which of these two elements is the logical
prius. According to
Thomas Aquinas the infusion of grace is first, and the forgiveness of
sins is, at least in a
certain sense, based on this; but according to Duns Scotus the
forgiveness of sin is first,
and is basic to the infusion of grace. Both elements are effected by
baptism<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p3.2">
ex opere
operato.</span>
The opinion of Thomas Aquinas gained the upper hand in the Church. Up
to the
present time there is a certain confusion of regeneration and
justification in the Roman
Catholic Church, which is, no doubt, largely due to the fact that
justification is not
conceived as a forensic act, but as an act or process of renewal. In it
man is not<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p3.3">
declared </span>
but<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p3.4">
made</span>
just. Says Wilmers in his<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p3.5">
Handbook of the Christian Religion</span>: "As
justification is a  spiritual renewal and
regeneration, it follows that sin is really<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p3.6">
destroyed</span>
by it, and not, as
the Reformers
maintained, merely<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p3.7">
covered</span>, or<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p3.8">
no longer imputed.</span>" </p>

<p id="vi.vi-p4" shownumber="no">2. BY THE REFORMERS AND IN THE PROTESTANT CHURCHES. Luther did not
entirely
escape the confusion of regeneration with justification. Moreover, he
spoke of
regeneration or the new birth in a rather broad sense. Calvin also used
the term in a
very comprehensive sense as a designation of the whole process by which
man is
renewed, including, besides the divine act which originates the new
life, also conversion
(repentance and faith) and sanctification.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p4.1" n="44" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p4.2">Inst.</span> III. 3,0.</note>
Several seventeenth century authors fail to
distinguish between regeneration and conversion, and use the two terms interchangeably, treating of what we now call regeneration under
vocation or effectual
calling. The Canons of Dort also use the two words synonymously,<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p4.3" n="45" place="foot">III and IV. 11,12</note>
and the Belgic
Confession seems to speak of regeneration in an even wider sense.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p4.4" n="46" place="foot">Art. XXIV.</note>
This
comprehensive use of the term "regeneration" often led to
confusion and to the
disregard of very necessary distinctions. For instance, while
regeneration and
conversion were identified, regeneration was yet declared to be
monergistic, in spite of
the fact that in conversion man certainly co-operates. The distinction
between
regeneration and justification had already become clearer, but it
gradually became
necessary and customary also to employ the term "regeneration"
in a more restricted
sense. Turretin
defines two kinds of conversion: first, a "habitual" or passive
conversion, the production of a disposition or habit of the soul, which,
he remarks,
might better be
called "regeneration"; and, secondly, an "actual" or
"active" conversion,
in which this implanted habit or disposition becomes active in faith and
repentance. In
present day Reformed theology the word "regeneration" is
generally used in a more
restricted sense, as a designation of that divine act by which the sinner
is endowed with
new spiritual life, and by which the principle of that new life is first
called into action.
So conceived, it
includes both the "begetting again" and the "new birth," in
which the
new life becomes manifest. In strict harmony, however, with the literal
meaning of the
word "regeneration" the term is sometimes employed in an even
more limited sense, to
denote simply the implanting of the new life in the soul, apart from the
first
manifestations of this life. In modern liberal theology the term
"regeneration' acquired a
different meaning. Schleiermacher distinguished two aspects of
regeneration, namely,
conversion and justification, and held that in regeneration "a new
religious
consciousness is produced in the believer by the common Christian spirit
of the
community, and
new life, or 'sanctification,' is prepared for." (Pfleiderer.) That
"Christian spirit of the community" is the result of an influx
of the divine life, through
Christ, into the Church, and is called "the Holy Spirit" by
Schleiermacher. The Modern
view is well stated in these words of Youtz: "Modern interpretation
inclines to return to
the symbolical use of the conception of Regeneration. Our ethical
realities deal with
transformed characters. Regeneration expresses thus a radical, vital,
ethical change,
rather than an absolutely new metaphysical beginning. Regeneration is a
vital step in
the natural development of the spiritual life, a radical readjustment to
the moral
processes of life."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p4.5" n="47" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p4.6">A Dictionary of Religion and Ethics,</span> Art. <span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p4.7">Regeneration.</span></note>
Students of the
Psychology of Religion generally fail to distinguish between regeneration and conversion. They regard it as a process in
which man's
attitude to life changes from the autocentric to the heterocentric. It
finds its explanation
primarily in the sub-conscious life, and does not necessarily involve
anything
supernatural. James says: "To be converted, to be regenerated, to
receive grace, to
experience religion, to gain an assurance, are so many phrases which
denote the
process, gradual or sudden, by which a self hitherto divided, and
consciously wrong,
inferior and unhappy, becomes unified and consciously right, superior
and happy, in
consequence of its firmer hold upon religious realities."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p4.8" n="48" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p4.9">Varieties of Religious Experience,</span> p. 189</note>
According to Clark,
"Students
have agreed in discerning three distinct steps in conversion: (1) A
period of 'storm and
stress,' or sense of sin, or feeling of inward disharmony, known to
theology as
'conviction of
sin' and designated by James as 'soul sickness.' (2) An emotional crisis
which marks a turning point. (3) A succeeding relaxation attended by a
sense of peace,
rest, inner harmony, acceptance with God, and not infrequently motor and
sensory
reflexes
of various sorts."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p4.10" n="49" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p4.11">The Psychology of Religious Awakening,</span> p. 38</note></p>

<h4 id="vi.vi-p4.12">C. THE ESSENTIAL NATURE OF REGENERATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vi-p5" shownumber="no">Relative to the nature of regeneration there are several
misconceptions which should
be avoided. It may be well to mention these first, before stating the
positive
qualifications of this re-creative work of God.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p6" shownumber="no">1. MISCONCEPTIONS. (a) Regeneration
is not a change in the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p6.1">
substance</span>
of human
nature, as was taught by the Manichæans and in the days of the
Reformation by Flacius
Illyricus, who conceived of original sin as a substance, to be replaced
by another
substance in regeneration. No new physical seed or germ is implanted in
man; neither is
there any addition to, or subtraction from, the faculties of the soul.
(b) Neither is it
simply a change
in<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p6.2">
one or more of the faculties of the</span>
soul, as, for
instance, of the emotional
life (feeling or heart), by removing the aversion to divine things, as
some evangelicals
conceive of it; or of the intellect, by illuminating the mind that is
darkened by sin, as the Rationalists regard it. It affects the heart,
understood in the Scriptural sense of the word,
that is, as the central and all-controlling organ of the soul, out of
which are the issues of
life. This means that it affects human nature as a whole. (c) Nor is it
a complete or
perfect change of the whole nature of man, or of any part of it, so that
it is no more
capable of sin, as was taught by the extreme Anabaptists and by some
other fanatical
sects. This does not mean that it does not in principle affect the
entire nature of man, but only that it does not constitute the whole change that is wrought in man
by the
operation of the Holy Spirit. It does not comprise conversion and
sanctification.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p7" shownumber="no">2. POSITIVE CHARACTERISTICS OF REGENERATION. The following positive assertions
may be made respecting regeneration:</p>
<p id="vi.vi-p8" shownumber="no">a. Regeneration consists in the implanting of the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p8.1">
principle</span>
of the new spiritual life in
man, in a radical change of the governing disposition of the soul,
which, under the
influence of the Holy Spirit, gives birth to a life that moves in
a Godward direction. In
principle this
change affects the whole man: the intellect, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.14" parsed="|1Cor|2|14|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:14">I Cor. 2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.15" parsed="|1Cor|2|15|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.4.6" parsed="|2Cor|4|6|0|0" passage="II Cor. 4:6">II Cor. 4:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.18" parsed="|Eph|1|18|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:18">Eph. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.10" parsed="|Col|3|10|0|0" passage="Col. 3:10">Col. 3:10</scripRef>;
the will, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.110.3" parsed="|Ps|110|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 110:3">Ps. 110:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.3.5" parsed="|2Thess|3|5|0|0" passage="II Thess. 3:5">II Thess. 3:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.21" parsed="|Heb|13|21|0|0" passage="Heb. 13:21">Heb. 13:21</scripRef>; and the feelings or
emotions, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.42.1" parsed="|Ps|42|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 42:1">Ps. 42:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.42.2" parsed="|Ps|42|2|0|0" passage="Ps 42:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.4" parsed="|Matt|5|4|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:4">Matt. 5:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.8" parsed="|1Pet|1|8|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:8">I Pet. 1:8</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p9" shownumber="no">b. It is an<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p9.1">
instantaneous</span>
change of man's
nature, affecting at once the whole man,
intellectually, emotionally, and morally. The assertion that
regeneration is an
instantaneous change implies two things: (1) that it is not a work that
is gradually
prepared in the soul, as the Roman Catholics and all Semi-Pelagians
teach; there is no
intermediate stage between life and death; one either lives or is dead;
and (2) that it is
not a gradual process like sanctification. It is true that some Reformed
authors have
occasionally used the term "regeneration" as including even
sanctification, but that was
in the days when the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p9.2">
ordo salutis</span>
was not as fully
developed as it is to-day.
</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p10" shownumber="no">c. It is in its most limited sense a change that occurs in the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p10.1">
sub-conscious</span>
life. It is a
secret and inscrutable work of God that is never<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p10.2">
directly</span>
perceived by man. The change may take place without man's being
conscious of it momentarily, though this is not the
case when regeneration and conversion coincide; and even later on he can
perceive it
<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p10.3">
only in its effects.</span>
This explains the fact that a Christian may, on the one hand, struggle
for a long time with doubts and uncertainties, and can yet, on the other
hand, gradually
overcome these and rise to the heights of assurance.
</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p11" shownumber="no">3. DEFINITION OF REGENERATION. From what
was said in the preceding respecting the
present use of the word "regeneration," it follows that
regeneration may be defined in
two ways. In the
strictest sense of the word we may say:<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p11.1">
Regeneration is that act of God by which the principle of the new life
is implanted in man, and the governing disposition of the soul
is made holy.</span>
But in order to include the idea of the new birth as well as that of
the
"begetting again," it will be necessary to complement the
definition with the following
words: . . . "<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p11.2">
and the first holy exercise of this new disposition is
secured.</span>
"
</p>

<h4 id="vi.vi-p11.3">D. EFFECTUAL CALLING IN RELATION TO EXTERNAL CALLING AND REGENERATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vi-p12" shownumber="no">1. ITS INSEPARABLE CONNECTION WITH EXTERNAL CALLING. The calling of God may be
said to be one, and the distinction between an external and an internal
or effectual
calling merely calls attention to the fact that this one calling has two
aspects. This does
not mean that these two aspects are always united and always go
together. We do not
aver with the Lutherans that "the inner call is always concurrent
with the hearing of the word."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p12.1" n="50" place="foot">Valentine, <span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p12.2">Chr. Theol.</span> II, pp. 197 f.</note>
It does mean, however, that where the inner
call comes to adults, it is mediated
by the preaching of the Word. It is the same Word that is heard in the
external call, and
that is made effective in the heart in the internal calling. Through the
powerful
application of the Holy Spirit the external call passes right into the internal.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p12.3" n="51" place="foot">Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p12.4">Roeping en Wedergeborte,</span> p. 215.</note>
But while
this calling is closely connected with the external call and forms a
unit with it, there are  certain
points of difference: (a) It is a calling by the Word,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p12.5">
savingly applied by the operation
of the Holy Spirit</span>, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.23" parsed="|1Cor|1|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:23">I Cor. 1:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.24" parsed="|1Cor|1|24|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.9" parsed="|1Pet|2|9|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:9">I Pet. 2:9</scripRef>; (b) it is<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p12.9">
a powerful</span>
calling, that is, a calling that
is effectual
unto salvation, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.48" parsed="|Acts|13|48|0|0" passage="Acts 13:48">Acts 13:48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.23" parsed="|1Cor|1|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:23">I Cor. 1:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p12.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.24" parsed="|1Cor|1|24|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:24">24</scripRef>; and (c) it is<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p12.13">
without repentance</span>, that
is, it is a call that is not subject to change and that is never
withdrawn, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p12.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.29" parsed="|Rom|11|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:29">Rom. 11:29</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p13" shownumber="no">2. CHARACTERISTICS OF THE INTERNAL CALL. The following characteristics should be
noted: </p>
<p id="vi.vi-p14" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p14.1"> It works by moral suasion plus the powerful operation
of the Holy Spirit.</span>
The question
arises, whether in this calling (as distinguished from regeneration) the
Word of God
works in a creative way, or by moral suasion. Now there is no doubt
about it that the
Word of God is
sometimes said to work in a creative manner, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.1.3" parsed="|Gen|1|3|0|0" passage="Gen. 1:3">Gen. 1:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.6" parsed="|Ps|33|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:6">Ps. 33:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.9" parsed="|Ps|33|9|0|0" passage="Ps 33:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.147.15" parsed="|Ps|147|15|0|0" passage="Ps 147:15">147:15</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.vi-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.17" parsed="|Rom|4|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:17">Rom. 4:17</scripRef> (though this may be interpreted differently). But these
passages refer to the
word of God's power, to His authoritative command, and not to the word
of preaching
with which we are concerned here. The Spirit of God operates through the
preaching of
the Word only in a morally persuasive way, making its persuasions
effective, so that
man listens to the voice of his God. This follows from the very nature
of the Word,
which addresses itself to the understanding and the will.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p14.7" n="52" place="foot">Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p14.8">Roeping en Wedergeboorte,</span> pp. 217,219,221.</note>
It should be borne in mind,
however, that this moral suasion does not yet constitute the whole of
the internal call;
there must be in addition to this a powerful operation of the Holy
Spirit, applying the
Word to the heart.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p15" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p15.1">
It operates in the conscious life of man.</span>
This point is
most intimately connected with
the preceding. If the word of preaching does not operate creatively, but
only in a moral
and persuasive way, it follows that it can work only in the conscious
life of man. It
addresses the understanding, which the Spirit endows with spiritual
insight into the
truth, and through the understanding influences the will
effectively, so that the sinner
turns to God. The internal calling necessarily issues in conversion,
that is, in a conscious
turning away from sin in the direction of holiness.
</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p16" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p16.1">
It is teleological.</span>
Internal calling is of a
teleological character, that is, it calls man to
a certain end: to the great goal to which the Holy Spirit is leading the
elect, and,
consequently also to the intermediate stages on the way to this final
destiny. It is a
calling to the
fellowship of Jesus Christ, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.9" parsed="|1Cor|1|9|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:9">I Cor. 1:9</scripRef>; to inherit blessing, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.9" parsed="|1Pet|3|9|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:9">I Pet. 3:9</scripRef>; to
liberty,
<scripRef id="vi.vi-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.13" parsed="|Gal|5|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 5:13">Gal. 5:13</scripRef>; to
peace, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.7.15" parsed="|1Cor|7|15|0|0" passage="I Cor. 7:15">I Cor. 7:15</scripRef>; to holiness, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.7" parsed="|1Thess|4|7|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:7">I Thess. 4:7</scripRef>; to one hope, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.4" parsed="|Eph|4|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:4">Eph. 4:4</scripRef>; to
eternal
life, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.12" parsed="|1Tim|6|12|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:12">I Tim. 6:12</scripRef>; and to God's kingdom and glory, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.2.12" parsed="|1Thess|2|12|0|0" passage="I Thess. 2:12">I Thess. 2:12</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p17" shownumber="no">3. THE RELATION OF EFFECTUAL CALLING TO REGENERATION.</p>
<p id="vi.vi-p18" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p18.1"> The identification of the two in seventeenth century theology.</span> It is a well known fact
that in seventeenth century theology effectual calling and regeneration
are often
identified, or if not entirely identified, then at least in so far that
regeneration is
regarded as included in calling. Several of the older theologians have a
separate chapter
on calling, but none on regeneration. According to the Westminster
Confession, X. 2,
effectual calling includes regeneration. This view finds some
justification in the fact that
Paul, who uses the term "regeneration" but once, evidently
conceives of it as included
in calling in <scripRef id="vi.vi-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30" parsed="|Rom|8|30|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:30">Rom. 8:30</scripRef>. Moreover, there is a sense in which calling and
regeneration are
related as cause and effect. It should be borne in mind, however, that
in speaking of calling as including, or as being causally related to,
regeneration, we do not have in
mind merely what is technically termed internal or effectual calling,
but calling in
general, including even a creative calling. The extensive use in
Post-Reformation times
of the term "calling" rather than "regeneration," to
designate the beginning of the work
of grace in the life of sinners, was due to a desire to stress the close
connection between
the Word of God and the operation of His grace. And the prevalence of
the term
"calling"
in the apostolic age finds its explanation and justification in the fact that,
in the
case of those who were in that missionary period gathered into the
Church,
regeneration and effectual calling were generally simultaneous, while
the change was
reflected in their conscious life as a powerful calling from God.
In a systematic
presentation of the truth, however, we should carefully discriminate
between calling
and regeneration.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p19" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p19.1"> Points of difference between regeneration and effectual
calling.</span>
Regeneration in the
strictest sense of the word, that is, as<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p19.2">
the begetting again</span>, takes place in the sub-conscious
life of man, and is quite independent of any attitude which he may assume
with reference to it. Calling, on the other hand, addresses itself to the
consciousness, and
implies a certain disposition of the conscious life. This follows from
the fact that
regeneration works from within, while calling comes from without. In the
case of
children we speak of regeneration rather than calling. Furthermore,
regeneration is a
creative, a hyper-physical operation of the Holy Spirit, by which man is
brought from
one condition into another, from a condition of spiritual death into a
condition of
spiritual life. Effectual calling, on the other hand, is teleological,
draws out the new life
and points it in a God-ward direction. It secures the exercises of the
new disposition and
brings the new life into action.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p20" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p20.1">
The relative order of calling and regeneration.</span>
This is perhaps
best understood, if we
note the following stages: (1) Logically, the external call in the
preaching of the Word
(except in the case of children) generally precedes or coincides with
the operation of the
Holy Spirit, by which the new life is produced in the soul of man. (2)
Then by a creative
word God generates the new life, changing the inner disposition of the
soul,
illuminating the mind, rousing the feelings, and renewing the will. In
this act of God the ear is implanted that enables man to hear the call of God
to the salvation of his soul. <span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p20.2">This is regeneration in the most restricted sense of the
word.</span>
In it man is entirely passive. (3)
Having received the spiritual ear, the call of God in the gospel is now
heard by the
sinner, and is brought home effectively to the heart. The desire to resist
has been
changed to a desire to obey, and the sinner yields to the persuasive influence
of the  Word
through the operation of the Holy Spirit.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p20.3">
This is the effectual calling through the instrumentality of the word of
preaching, effectively applied by the Spirit of God.</span>
(4) This
effectual calling, finally, secures, through the truth as a means, the
first holy exercises of
the new disposition that is born in the soul. The new life begins to
manifest itself; the
implanted life
issues in the new birth.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p20.4">
This is
the completion of the work of regeneration in  the
broader sense of the word, and the point at which it turns into conversion.</span></p>

<p id="vi.vi-p21" shownumber="no">Now we should not make the mistake of regarding this
logical order as a temporal
order that will apply in all cases. The new life is often implanted in
the hearts of
children long before they are able to hear the call of the gospel; yet
they are endowed
with this life only where the gospel is preached. There is, of course,
always a creative call of God by which the new life is produced. In the case of
those who live under the
administration of the gospel the possibility exists that they receive
the seed of
regeneration long before they come to years of discretion and therefore
also long before
the effectual calling penetrates to their consciousness. It is very
unlikely, however, that,
being regenerated, they will live in sin for years, even after they have
come to maturity,
and give no evidences at all of the new life that is in them. On the other
hand, in the
case of those who do not live under the administration of the covenant,
there is no
reason to assume an interval between the time of their regeneration and
that of their
effectual calling. In the effectual call they at once become conscious
of their renewal,
and immediately find the seed of regeneration germinating into the new
life. This
means that regeneration, effective calling, and conversion all coincide.</p>

<h4 id="vi.vi-p21.1">E. THE NECESSITY OF REGENERATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vi-p22" shownumber="no">1. THIS NECESSITY IS DENIED BY MODERN LIBERAL THEOLOGY. The necessity of
regeneration, as this is understood by the Christian Church, is
naturally denied in
modern liberal theology. It is not in accord with the teaching of
Rousseau, that man is
by nature good. Any<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p22.1">
radical change</span>
or complete
turnabout in the life of a man who is
<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p22.2">essentially</span>
good, would be a change for the worse. Liberals speak of salvation by
character, and the only regeneration of which they know is a
regeneration conceived as
"a vital step in the natural development of the spiritual life, a
radical readjustment to
the moral processes of life." (Youtz.) Many teach a series of
ethical renewals. Emerton
says: "The character thus gained and proven and held fast is
redemption. There is no
other worthy definition of the word. It is the redemption of man's lower
self by the
domination of his higher self. It is the spiritual redeeming the
material, the divine that is
in every man redeeming the animal."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p22.3" n="53" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p22.4">Unitarian Thought,</span> p. 193.</note></p>

<p id="vi.vi-p23" shownumber="no">2. IT FOLLOWS FROM WHAT SCRIPTURE TEACHES CONCERNING THE NATURAL CONDITION OF MAN. Holiness or conformity to the divine law is the
indispensable condition of
securing divine favor, attaining peace of conscience, and enjoying
fellowship with God.
<scripRef id="vi.vi-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.14" parsed="|Heb|12|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:14">Heb. 12:14</scripRef>. Now the condition of man by nature is, according to
Scripture, both in
disposition and act, exactly the opposite of that holiness which is so
indispensable. Man
is described as dead through trespasses and sins, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.1" parsed="|Eph|2|1|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:1">Eph. 2:1</scripRef>, and this
condition calls for
nothing less than a restoration to life. A radical internal change is
necessary, a change by
which the whole disposition of the soul is altered.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p24" shownumber="no">3. IT
IS ALSO EXPRESSLY ASSERTED BY
SCRIPTURE. Scripture does not leave us in doubt
about the necessity of regeneration, but asserts this in the clearest
terms. Jesus says:
"Verily, verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born again he
cannot see the kingdom of
God," <scripRef id="vi.vi-p24.1" osisRef="Bible:John.3.3" parsed="|John|3|3|0|0" passage="John 3:3">John 3:3</scripRef>.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p24.2" n="54" place="foot">Cf. also the verses 5-7.</note>
This statement of
the Saviour is absolute and leaves no room for
exceptions. The same truth is clearly brought out in some of the
statements of Paul, as, for instance, in <scripRef id="vi.vi-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.14" parsed="|1Cor|2|14|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:14">I Cor. 2:14</scripRef>: "But the natural man
receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God, for they are foolishness unto him: neither can he know them,
because they are
spiritually
discerned"; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.15" parsed="|Gal|6|15|0|0" passage="Gal. 6:15">Gal. 6:15</scripRef>: "For in Christ Jesus neither is circumcision
anything,
nor
uncircumcision, but a new creature." Cf. also <scripRef id="vi.vi-p24.5" osisRef="Bible:Jer.13.23" parsed="|Jer|13|23|0|0" passage="Jer. 13:23">Jer. 13:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p24.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.11" parsed="|Rom|3|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:11">Rom. 3:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p24.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.3" parsed="|Eph|2|3|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:3">Eph. 2:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p24.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.4" parsed="|Eph|2|4|0|0" passage="Eph 2:4">4</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="vi.vi-p24.9">F. THE EFFICIENT CAUSE OF REGENERATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vi-p25" shownumber="no">There are only three fundamentally different views that
come into consideration
here, and all the others are modifications of these.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p26" shownumber="no">1. THE HUMAN WILL. According to the
Pelagian conception regeneration is solely an
act of the human will, and is practically identical with
self-reformation. With some
slight differences this is the view of modern liberal theology. A
modification of this view
is that of the Semi-Pelagian and Arminian, who regard it as, at least in
part, an act of
man, co-operating with divine influences applied through the
truth. This is the
synergistic theory of regeneration. Both of these views involve a denial
of the total
depravity of man, so plainly taught in the Word of God, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p26.1" osisRef="Bible:John.5.42" parsed="|John|5|42|0|0" passage="John 5:42">John 5:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p26.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.9-Rom.3.18" parsed="|Rom|3|9|3|18" passage="Rom. 3:9-18">Rom. 3:9-18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.18" parsed="|Rom|7|18|0|0" passage="Rom 7:18">7:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.23" parsed="|Rom|7|23|0|0" passage="Rom 7:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.7" parsed="|Rom|8|7|0|0" passage="Rom 8:7">8:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.4" parsed="|2Tim|3|4|0|0" passage="II Tim. 3:4">II Tim. 3:4</scripRef>, and of the Scripture truth that it is God who inclines
the will, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.16" parsed="|Rom|9|16|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:16">Rom. 9:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p26.8" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p27" shownumber="no">2. THE TRUTH. According to this view the
truth as a system of motives, presented to
the human will by the Holy Spirit, is the immediate cause of the change
from
unholiness to holiness. This was the view of Lyman Beecher and of
Charles G. Finney. It
assumes that the work of the Holy Spirit differs from that of the
preacher only in
degree. Both work by persuasion only. But this theory is quite
unsatisfactory. The truth
can be a motive to holiness only if it is loved, while the natural man
does not love the
truth, but hates it, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p27.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.18" parsed="|Rom|1|18|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:18">Rom. 1:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p27.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.25" parsed="|Rom|1|25|0|0" passage="Rom 1:25">25</scripRef>. Consequently the truth, presented
externally, cannot be
the efficient
cause of regeneration. </p>

<p id="vi.vi-p28" shownumber="no">3. THE HOLY SPIRIT. The only adequate view is
that of the Church of all ages, that the Holy Spirit is the efficient cause of
regeneration. This means that the Holy Spirit works
directly on the heart of man and changes its spiritual condition. There
is no co-operation
of the sinner in this work whatsoever. It is the work of the Holy Spirit
directly and
exclusively,
<scripRef id="vi.vi-p28.1" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.11.19" parsed="|Ezek|11|19|0|0" passage="Ezek. 11:19">Ezek. 11:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p28.2" osisRef="Bible:John.1.13" parsed="|John|1|13|0|0" passage="John 1:13">John 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p28.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.14" parsed="|Acts|16|14|0|0" passage="Acts 16:14">Acts 16:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p28.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.16" parsed="|Rom|9|16|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:16">Rom. 9:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p28.5" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>. Regeneration, then,
is to be conceived monergistically. God alone works, and the sinner has
no part in it
whatsoever. This, of course, does not mean, that man does not co-operate
in later stages
of the work of redemption. It is quite evident from Scripture that he
does.</p>

<h4 id="vi.vi-p28.6">G. THE USE OF THE WORD OF GOD AS AN INSTRUMENT IN REGENERATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vi-p29" shownumber="no">The question arises, whether the Word of God is used as a means in
regeneration or
not; or, as it is frequently put, whether regeneration is mediate or
immediate.</p>
<p id="vi.vi-p30" shownumber="no">1. THE PROPER IMPORT OF THE QUESTION. Careful discrimination is required, in order
to avoid misunderstanding.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p31" shownumber="no">a. When the older Reformed theologians insisted on the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p31.1">
immediate</span>
character of
regeneration, they often gave the term "immediate" a
connotation which it does not
have to-day. Some of the representatives of the school of Saumur, as
Cameron and
Pajon, taught that in regeneration the Holy Spirit supernaturally
illumines and
convinces the mind or the intellect in such a powerful manner that the
will cannot fail to
follow the prevalent dictate of the practical judgment. He works
immediately only on
the intellect,
and through this mediately on the will.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p31.2">
According to them there is no
immediate operation of the Holy Spirit on the will of man.</span>
In opposition
to these men,
Reformed theologians generally stressed the fact that in regeneration
the Holy Spirit
also<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p31.3">
operates directly on the will of man</span>, and not merely
through the mediation of the
intellect. Today the question of mediate or immediate regeneration is a
slightly different,
though related, one. It is the question of the use of the Word of God as
a means in the
work of regeneration.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p32" shownumber="no">b. The exact form of the question ought to be carefully
noted. The question is not,
whether God works regeneration by means of a<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p32.1">
creative</span>
word. It is generally admitted
that He does. Neither is it, whether He employs the word of truth, the
word of
preaching in the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p32.2">
new birth</span>
as distinguished
from<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p32.3">
the divine
begetting</span>
of the new man,
that is, in securing the first holy exercises of the new life. The real
question is, whether
God, in implanting or generating the new life, employs the word of
Scripture or the
word of preaching as an instrument or means. The discussion of this
matter often
suffered in the past from the lack of proper discrimination.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p33" shownumber="no">2. CONSIDERATIONS THAT FAVOR A NEGATIVE ANSWER. Dr. Shedd says: "The influence
of the Holy Spirit is distinguishable from that of the truth; from that
of man upon man;
and from that of any instrument or means whatever. His energy acts
directly upon the
human soul itself. It is the influence of spirit upon spirit; of
one of the trinitarian
persons upon a human person. Neither the truth, nor a fellow-man, can
thus operate
directly upon the essence of the soul itself."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p33.1" n="55" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p33.2">Dogm. Theol.</span> II, p. 500.</note>
The following considerations favor this view:</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p34" shownumber="no">a. Regeneration is a creative act, by which the spiritually dead sinner
is restored to
life. But the truth of the gospel can only work in a moral and
persuasive way. Such an
instrument has no effect on the dead. To assert its use would seem to
imply a denial of
the spiritual death of man; which, of course, is not intended by those
who take this
position. </p>

<p id="vi.vi-p35" shownumber="no">b. Regeneration takes place in the sphere of the
sub-conscious, that is, outside of the
sphere of conscious attention, while the truth addresses itself to the
consciousness of
man. It can exercise its persuasive influence only when man's
attention is fixed on it.
</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p36" shownumber="no">c. The Bible distinguishes the influence of the
Holy Spirit from that of the Word of
God, and declares that such an influence is necessary for the
proper reception of the
truth, <scripRef id="vi.vi-p36.1" osisRef="Bible:John.6.64" parsed="|John|6|64|0|0" passage="John 6:64">John
6:64</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p36.2" osisRef="Bible:John.6.65" parsed="|John|6|65|0|0" passage="John 6:65">65</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p36.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.14" parsed="|Acts|16|14|0|0" passage="Acts 16:14">Acts 16:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p36.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.12-1Cor.2.15" parsed="|1Cor|2|12|2|15" passage="I Cor. 2:12-15">I Cor. 2:12-15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p36.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.17-Eph.1.20" parsed="|Eph|1|17|1|20" passage="Eph. 1:17-20">Eph. 1:17-20</scripRef>. Notice particularly the case
of Lydia, of whom Luke says: "She heard us (<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p36.6">ekouen</span>, impf.), whose heart the Lord opened
(<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p36.7">dienoixen</span>, aor., single act), that she attended<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p36.8"> (prosechein</span> inf. of result or purpose) unto
the things which were spoken of Paul."</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p37" shownumber="no">3. SCRIPTURE PASSAGES THAT SEEM TO PROVE THE CONTRARY.</p>
<p id="vi.vi-p38" shownumber="no">a. In <scripRef id="vi.vi-p38.1" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.18" parsed="|Jas|1|18|0|0" passage="James 1:18">James 1:18</scripRef> we read: "Of his own will he brought us forth by
the word of truth,
that we should be a kind of firstfruits of His creatures." This
passage does not prove
that the new generation is mediated by the Word of God, for the term
here used is
<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p38.2">apokuesen</span>, which does not refer to begetting, but to giving birth. They who
believe in
immediate regeneration do not deny that the new birth, in which the new
life first becomes manifest, is secured by the Word.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p39" shownumber="no">b. Peter exhorts believers to love one another fervently
in view of the fact that they have been "begotten again, not of corruptible seed, but of
incorruptible, through the Word of God, which liveth and abideth." <scripRef id="vi.vi-p39.1" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.23" parsed="|1Pet|1|23|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:23">I Pet. 1:23</scripRef>. It is not
correct to say, as some have
done, that "the Word" in this verse is the creative word, or
the second person in the Trinity, for Peter himself informs us that he has in
mind the word that was preached
unto the readers, vs. 25. But it is perfectly in order to point out that
even<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p39.2">
gennao</span>
(the word here used) does not always refer to the masculine begetting, but
may also denote
the feminine giving birth to children. This is perfectly evident from
such passages as
<scripRef id="vi.vi-p39.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.13" parsed="|Luke|1|13|0|0" passage="Luke 1:13">Luke 1:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vi-p39.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.57" parsed="|Luke|1|57|0|0" passage="Luke 1:57">57</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p39.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.29" parsed="|Luke|23|29|0|0" passage="Luke 23:29">23:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p39.6" osisRef="Bible:John.16.21" parsed="|John|16|21|0|0" passage="John 16:21">John 16:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vi-p39.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.24" parsed="|Gal|4|24|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:24">Gal. 4:24</scripRef>. Consequently, there is no warrant for the
assertion that Peter in this passage refers to the initial act in
regeneration, namely, the
begetting. And if it refers to regeneration in a broader sense, then the
passage offers no
difficulty whatsoever in connection with the matter under consideration.
The idea that
it refers to the new birth here, is favored by the fact that the readers
are represented as
having been born again out of a seed that was evidently already implanted
in the soul,
cf. <scripRef id="vi.vi-p39.8" osisRef="Bible:John.1.13" parsed="|John|1|13|0|0" passage="John 1:13">John 1:13</scripRef>. It is not necessary to identify the seed with the Word.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p40" shownumber="no">c. The Parable of the Sower is sometimes urged in favor
of the idea that regeneration takes place through the Word. The seed in this
parable is the word of the kingdom. The
argument is that the life is in the seed and comes forth out of the
seed. Consequently,
the new life comes forth out of the seed of the Word of God. But, in the
first place, this is
over-shooting the mark, for it will hardly do to say that the Spirit or
the principle of the
new life is shut up in the Word, just as the living germ is shut up in
the seed. This
reminds one somewhat of the Lutheran conception of calling, according to
which the
Spirit is in the Word so that the call would always be effective, if man
did not put a
stumbling-block in the way. And, in the second place, this is pressing a
point which is
not at all in the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p40.1">
tertium comparationis.</span>
The Saviour
wants to explain in this parable how it
comes about that the seed of the Word bears fruit in some cases, and not
in others. It
bears fruit only in those cases in which it falls in good ground, in
hearts so prepared
that they understand the truth.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p41" shownumber="no">4. THE RELEVANT TEACHINGS OF OUR CONFESSIONAL STANDARDS. The following
passages come
into consideration here:<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.1">
Conf.
Belg.</span>,
Articles XXIV and XXXV;<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.2">
Heid.
Cat.</span>,
Q. 54;<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.3">
Canons of Dort</span>, III and IV, Articles 11,12,17; and,
finally, the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.4">
Conclusions of Utrecht</span>,
adopted by our Church in 1908. From these passages it is perfectly
evident that our
confessional writings speak of regeneration in a broad sense, as
including both the
origin of the new life and its manifestation in conversion. We are even
told that faith
regenerates the sinner.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p41.5" n="56" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.6">Conf. Belg.,</span> Art. XXIV.</note>
There are passages
which seem to say that the Word of God is
instrumental in the work of regeneration.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p41.7" n="57" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.8">Conf. Belg.</span>, Art XXIV, and especially Art. XXVI;<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.9"> Canons of Dort</span> III and IV, Articles 12,17.</note>
Yet they are couched in such language that it
still remains doubtful, whether they actually teach that the principle
of the new life is
implanted in the soul by the instrumentality of the Word. They fail to
discriminate
carefully between the various elements which we distinguish in
regeneration. In the
<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.10">Conclusions of Utrecht</span>
we read: "As far as the
third point, that of<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.11">
immediate regeneration</span>, is
concerned, Synod declares that this expression can be used in a good
sense, in so far as
our churches have always confessed, over against the Lutheran and the
Roman Catholic
Church, that regeneration is not effected through the Word or the
Sacraments as such,
but by the almighty regenerating work of the Holy Spirit; that this
regenerating work of
the Holy Spirit, however, may not in that sense be divorced from the
preaching of the
Word, as if both were separated from each other; for, although our
Confession teaches that we need not be in doubt respecting the salvation of our children
which die in
infancy, though they have not heard the preaching of the gospel, and our
confessional
standards nowhere express themselves as to the manner in which
regeneration is
effected in the case of these and other children, — yet it is, on the
other hand, certain
that the gospel is a power of God unto salvation for every one who
believes, and that in the case of adults the regenerating work of the Holy
Spirit accompanies the preaching of the gospel."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p41.12" n="58" place="foot">The following Reformed theologians teach immediate regeneration;<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.13"> Synopsis Puriosis Theologie</span> (of the Leyden Professors), 31:9; Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.14"> Godgeleerdheit</span> VI. 3,26; Brakel,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.15"> Redelijke Godsdienst</span> I, p. 738. These three authorities, however, apparently use the term "immediate" in a different sense. Further: Turretin, <span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.16">Opera</span> XV. 4,23 f.; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.17"> Dogm. Theol. II</span>, pp. 500, 506; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.18"> Syst. Theol.</span> III, p. 31; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.19"> Dict Dogm., De  Salute</span>, p. 74; Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.20"> Roeping en Wedergeboorte</span>, pp. 219 ff.; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p41.21"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 46 ff.</note></p>

<h4 id="vi.vi-p41.22">H. DIVERGENT VIEWS OF REGENERATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vi-p42" shownumber="no">1. THE PELAGIAN VIEW. According to the
Pelagians man's freedom and personal
responsibility implies that he is at all times just as able to desist
from sin as to commit
sin. Only acts of conscious volition are regarded as sin. Consequently,
regeneration simply consists in moral reformation. It means that the man who
formerly chose to
transgress the law, now chooses to live in obedience to it.</p>
<p id="vi.vi-p43" shownumber="no">2. BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. This is not always represented in the same way.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p44" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p44.1"> In the Church of Rome.</span> According to the Roman Catholic Church regeneration
includes not only spiritual renewal, but also justification or the
forgiveness of sins, and
is effected by means of baptism. In the case of children the work of
regeneration is
always effective; not so in the case of adults. These can gratefully
accept and utilize the
grace of regeneration, but can also resist it and make it ineffective.
Moreover, it is
always possible that they who have appropriated it will lose it again.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p45" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p45.1">
In the Anglican Church.</span>
The Church of England is not unanimous on this point, but
represents two different tendencies. The so-called Puseyites are in
essential agreement
with the Church of Rome. But there is also an influential party in
the Church which
distinguishes two kinds of regeneration: the one consisting merely in a
change of one's
relation to the Church and the means of grace; and the other, in a
fundamental change
of human nature. According to this party only the former is effected by
baptism. This
regeneration includes no spiritual renewal. By means of it man merely
enters into a new
relation to the Church, and becomes a child of God in the same sense in
which the Jews
became children of God through the covenant of which circumcision was a
seal.</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p46" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p46.1"> In the Lutheran
Church.</span>
Luther and his followers did not succeed in purging
their
Church from the leaven of Rome on this point. On the whole the Lutherans
maintain, in
opposition to Rome, the monergistic character of regeneration. They
regard man as
entirely passive in regeneration and incapable of contributing anything
to it, though
adults can resist it for a long time. At the same time some teach that
baptism, working
<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p46.2">
ex opere operato</span>, is the usual means by which God effects regeneration. It is the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p46.3">
usual</span>, but
<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p46.4">not the only</span>
means, for the preaching of the Word may also produce it. They speak of
two kinds of regeneration, namely,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p46.5">
regeneratio prima</span>
by which the new
life is begotten,
and the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p46.6">
regeneratio secunda</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p46.7">renovatio</span>, by which the new life is led in a
God-ward
direction. While children receive the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p46.8">
regeneratio prima</span>
by means of
baptism, adults, who receive the first regeneration by means of the Word,
become partakers of the<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p46.9">
regeneratio secunda</span>
through baptism. According to the Lutherans regeneration is amissible.
But
through the grace of God it can be restored in the heart of the penitent
sinner, and that
without re-baptism. Baptism is a pledge of God's continued readiness to
renew the
baptized and to pardon his sins. Moreover, regeneration is not always
accomplished at once, but is often a gradual process in the life of adults.
</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p47" shownumber="no">3. THE ARMINIAN VIEW. According to the
Arminians regeneration is not exclusively a
work of God, nor exclusively a work of man. It is the fruit of man's
choice to co-operate
with the divine influences exerted by means of the truth. Strictly
speaking, the work of
man is prior to that of God. They do not assume that there is a
preceding work of God by which the will is inclined to the good. Naturally,
they also believe that the grace of
regeneration can be lost. The Wesleyan Arminians altered this view in so
far that they
stress the fact that regeneration is the work of the Holy Spirit, be it
in co-operation with
the human will. They do assume a prior operation of the Holy Spirit to
enlighten,
awaken, and draw man. However, they also believe that man can resist
this work of the Holy Spirit, and that, as long as he does this, he remains in
his unregenerate condition.
</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p48" shownumber="no">4. THE VIEW OF THE MEDIATING THEOLOGIANS. This is cast in a pantheistic mold.
After
the incarnation there are no two separate natures in Christ, but only a
divine-human
nature, a fusion of divine and human life. In regeneration a part of that
divine-human
life passes over into the sinner. This does not require a separate
operation of the Holy
Spirit whenever a sinner is regenerated. The new life has been
communicated to the
Church once for all, is now the permanent possession of the Church, and
passes from
the Church into the individual. Communion with the Church also insures
participation
of the new life. This view ignores the legal aspect of the work of
Christ entirely.
Moreover, it makes it impossible to hold that any one could be
regenerated before the
divine-human life of Christ came into existence. The Old Testament
saints cannot have
been regenerated. Schleiermacher is the father of this view.
</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p49" shownumber="no">5. THE TRICHOTOMIC VIEW. Some theologians
constructed a peculiar theory of
regeneration on the basis of the trichotomic view of human nature. This
view proceeds
on the assumption that man consists of three parts, — body, soul, and
spirit. It is
generally assumed, though there are variations on this point, that sin
has its seat only in
the soul, and not in the spirit<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p49.1">
(pneuma).</span>
If it had
penetrated to the spirit, man would
have been irretrievably lost, just as the devils, who are pure spiritual
beings. The spirit
is the higher, divine life in man, destined to control the lower life.
By the entrance of sin
into the world the influence of the spirit on the lower life is
weakened very much; but
by regeneration it is strengthened again and harmony is restored in the
life of man. This
is, of course, a purely rationalistic theory.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vi-p49.2" n="59" place="foot">Cf. <span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p49.3">Heard, The Tripartite Nature of Man</span></note></p>

<p id="vi.vi-p50" shownumber="no">6. THE VIEW OF MODERN LIBERALISM. The liberal theologians of the present day do not
all have the same view of regeneration. Some of them speak in terms that
remind one of
Schleiermacher. More generally, however, they sponsor a purely
naturalistic view. They are averse to the idea that regeneration is a
supernatural and recreative work of God. In
virtue of the immanent God every man has a divine principle within him
and thus
possesses potentially all that is necessary unto salvation. The one
thing that is necessary,
is that man become conscious of his potential divinity, and that he
consciously yield to
the guidance of the higher principle within him. Regeneration is simply
an ethical  change
of character. </p>

<p id="vi.vi-p51" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What other
terms and expressions does the Bible use
to designate the work of regeneration? Does the Bible sharply
distinguish between
calling, regeneration, conversion, and sanctification? How do you
account for it that the
Roman Catholic Church includes even justification in regeneration? How
do
regeneration and conversion differ? Is there such a thing as prevenient
grace, preceding
and preparing for regeneration? What is active, as distinguished from
passive,
regeneration? Does man's passivity in regeneration last for any length
of time? Does not
the view that the Word of God is not instrumental in effecting
regeneration, make the
preaching of the Word seem futile and quite unnecessary? Does it not
lead to the verge
of mysticism?</p>

<p id="vi.vi-p52" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.1">
Dict. Dogm., De Salute</span>, pp. 70-83; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.2">
Het Werk van den Heiligen Geest</span>, II, pp. 140-162; Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.3">
Geref. Dogm</span>
IV, pp. 11-82;
ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.4">
Roeping en Wedergeboorte;</span>
Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.5">
Godgeleerdheit</span>, VI, 3; Dick,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.6">
Theology</span>, Lect. LXVI; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.7">
Dogm. Theol.</span> II, pp. 490-528; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.8">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, Lect. XLVII; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.9">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
IV,
pp. 32-65;
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.10">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 1-40;
McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.11">
Chr. Dogma</span>, pp. 397-401;
Alexander,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.12">
Syst. of Bib. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 370-384; Litton, I<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.13">
ntrod. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 313-321;
Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.14">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 463-470;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.15">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 242-271;
Raymond,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.16">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp.
344-359; Pope,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.17">
Chr. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 5-13;
Strong,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.18">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 809-828; Boyce,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.19">
Abstract of Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 328-334;
Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.20">
Handbook of the Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 314-322; Anderson,<span class="ital" id="vi.vi-p52.21">
Regeneration. </span></p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.vii" next="vi.viii" prev="vi.vi" title="VII. Conversion">
<h2 id="vi.vii-p0.1">VII. Conversion</h2>
<p id="vi.vii-p1" shownumber="no">From the discussion of regeneration and effectual calling
there is a natural transition
to that of conversion. By a special operation of the Holy Spirit the
former issues in the
latter. Conversion may be a sharply marked crisis in the life of the
individual, but may
also come in the form of a gradual process. In the psychology of
religion the two are
generally identified. All this points to the close relation between the
two.</p>

<h4 id="vi.vii-p1.1">A. THE SCRIPTURAL TERMS FOR CONVERSION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vii-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE OLD TESTAMENT WORDS. The Old Testament
employs especially two words for
conversion, namely:
</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p3" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p3.1">
Nacham</span>
which serves to
express a deep feeling, either of sorrow (niphal) or of
relief (piel). In<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p3.2">
niphal</span>
it means<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p3.3">
to repent</span>, and this repentance is often accompanied with a
change of plan
and of action, while in<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p3.4">
piel</span>
it signifies<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p3.5">
to comfort</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p3.6">
to comfort one's self.</span>
As a designation
of repentance—and this is the meaning with which we are concerned here
—it is used not
only of man but also of God, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.6" parsed="|Gen|6|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:6">Gen. 6:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.7" parsed="|Gen|6|7|0|0" passage="Gen 6:7">7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Exod.32.14" parsed="|Exod|32|14|0|0" passage="Ex. 32:14">Ex. 32:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Judg.2.18" parsed="|Judg|2|18|0|0" passage="Judg. 2:18">Judg. 2:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.15.11" parsed="|1Sam|15|11|0|0" passage="I Sam. 15:11">I Sam. 15:11</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p4" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p4.1">
Shubh</span>
which is the most
common word for conversion, means<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p4.2">
to turn, to turn
about</span>, and<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p4.3">
to return.</span>
It is often used in a literal sense of both God and man, but soon
acquired a religious and ethical signification. This meaning is most prominent
in the
prophets, where it refers to Israel's return to the Lord, after it has
departed from Him.
The word clearly shows that, what the Old Testament calls conversion, is
a return to
Him from whom sin has separated man. This is a very important element in
conversion.
It finds expression in the words of the prodigal son, "I will
return, and go to my father."</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p5" shownumber="no">2. THE NEW TESTAMENT WORDS. There are
especially three words that come into
consideration here:
</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p6" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.1">
Metanoia</span>
(verbal form,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.2"> metanoeo</span>). This is the most common word for conversion in
the New Testament, and is also the most fundamental of the terms
employed. The word
is composed of<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.3">
meta</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.4">
nous</span>, which is again connected with the verb<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.5">
ginosko</span>
(Lat.
<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.6">noscere;</span>
Eng.,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.7">
to know</span> ),
all of which refers to the conscious life of man. In the English Bible the word is translated "<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.8">
repentance</span>
" but this
rendering hardly does justice to the
original, since it gives undue prominence to the emotional element.
Trench points out
that in the
classics the word means: (1)<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.9">
to know
after, after-knowledge;</span>
(2)<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.10">
to change the mind as the result of this after-knowledge;</span>
(3) in
consequence of this change of mind,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.11">
to regret the course pursued;</span>
and (4)<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.12">
a change of conduct for the future</span>, springing from
all the preceding.
It might indicate a change for the worse as well as for the better,
however, and did not
necessarily include a<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.13">
resipiscentia</span>
— a becoming wise
again. In the New Testament,
however, its meaning is deepened, and it denotes primarily a change of
mind, taking a
<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.14">wiser</span>
view of the past, including regret for the ill then done, and leading
to a change of life for the better. Here the element of<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.15">
resipiscentia</span>
is present. Walden in his work on<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.16">
The
Great Meaning of Metanoia</span>
comes to the
conclusion that it conveys the idea of "a<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.17">
general</span>
change of mind, which becomes in its fullest development an<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.18">
intellectual and moral regeneration.</span>"<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p6.19" n="60" place="foot">p. 107.</note>
While maintaining that the word
denotes primarily a change of mind,
we should not lose sight of the fact that its meaning is not limited to
the intellectual, theoretical consciousness, but also includes the moral
consciousness, the conscience.
Both the mind
and the conscience are defiled, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p6.20" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.15" parsed="|Titus|1|15|0|0" passage="Tit. 1:15">Tit. 1:15</scripRef>, and when a person's<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.21">
nous</span>
is
changed, he not only receives new knowledge, but the direction of his
conscious life, its
moral quality, is also changed. To become more particular, the change
indicated by his
word has
reference, (1)<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.22">
to the intellectual life</span>, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p6.23" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.25" parsed="|2Tim|2|25|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:25">II Tim. 2:25</scripRef>,
to a better knowledge of God
and His truth, and a saving acceptance of it (identical with the action
of faith); (2)<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.24">
to the conscious volitional life</span>, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p6.25" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.22" parsed="|Acts|8|22|0|0" passage="Acts 8:22">Acts 8:22</scripRef>, to
a turning from self to God (thus again including an
action of
faith); and (3)<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.26">
to the emotional life</span>, in so far as
this change is accompanied with
godly sorrow, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p6.27" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.10" parsed="|2Cor|7|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:10">II Cor. 7:10</scripRef>, and opens new fields of enjoyment for the
sinner. In all these
respects<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.28">
metanoia</span>
includes a conscious opposition to the former condition. This is an
essential element in it, and therefore deserves careful attention. To be
converted, is not
merely to pass from one conscious direction to another, but to do it
with a clearly
perceived aversion to the former direction. In other words<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.29">
metanoia</span>
has not only a
positive but also a negative side; it looks backward as well as forward.
The converted
person becomes conscious of his ignorance and error, his wilfulness and
folly. His
conversion includes both faith and repentance. Sad to say, the Church
gradually lost
sight of the original meaning of<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.30">
metanoia.</span>
In Latin theology
Lactantius rendered it
"<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.31">
resipiscentia</span>," a becoming-wise-again, as if the word were derived from<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.32">
meta</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.33">
anoia</span>,
and denoted a return from madness or folly. The majority of Latin
writers, however,
preferred to render it "<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.34">
poenitentia</span>
" a word that
denotes the sorrow and regret which
follows when one has made a mistake or has committed an error of any
kind. This word
passed into the Vulgate as the rendering of<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.35">
metanoia</span>, and, under the influence of the
Vulgate, the English translators rendered the Greek word by
"repentance," thus
stressing the emotional element and making<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.36">
metanoia</span>
equivalent to<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.37">
metameleia.</span>
In some
cases the deterioration went even farther. The Roman Catholic Church
externalized the idea of repentance in its sacrament of penance so that the<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.38">
metanoeite</span>
of the Greek
Testament (<scripRef id="vi.vii-p6.39" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.2" parsed="|Matt|3|2|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:2">Matt. 3:2</scripRef>) became<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p6.40">
poenitentiam agite</span>, — "do
penance," in the Latin Version. </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p7" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.1">
Epistrophe</span>
(verbal form,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.2"> epistrepho</span>). This word is next in importance to<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.3">
metanoia.</span>
While in the Septuagint<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.4">
metanoia</span>
is one of the
renderings of<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.5">
nacham</span>, the words<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.6">
epistrophe </span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.7">
epistrepho</span>
serve to render the Hebrew words<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.8">
teshubhah</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.9">
shubh.</span>
They are
constantly used in the sense of<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.10">
turning again</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.11">
turning back.</span>
The Greek words must be
read in the light of the Hebrew, in order to bring out the important
point that the
turning indicated is in reality a<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.12">
re-turning.</span>
In the New
Testament the noun<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.13">
epistrophe</span>
is
used but once, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p7.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.3" parsed="|Acts|15|3|0|0" passage="Acts 15:3">Acts 15:3</scripRef>, while the verb occurs several times. It has a
somewhat wider
signification than<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.15">
metanoeo</span>
and really
indicates the final act of conversion. It denotes
not merely a change of the<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.16">
nous</span>
or mind, but stresses the fact
that a new relation is
established, that the active life is made to move in another direction.
This must be borne
in mind in the interpretation of <scripRef id="vi.vii-p7.17" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.19" parsed="|Acts|3|19|0|0" passage="Acts 3:19">Acts 3:19</scripRef>, where the two are used
alongside of each
other. Sometimes<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.18">
metanoeo</span>
contains the idea
of repentance only, while<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.19">
epistrepho</span>
always
includes the element of faith.<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.20">
Metanoeo</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.21">
pisteuein</span>
can be used alongside of each
other; not so<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.22">
epistrepho</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p7.23">
pisteuein. </span> </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p8" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.1">
Metameleia</span>
(verbal form,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.2"> metamelomai</span>). Only the verbal form is used in the
New Testament, and
literally means<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.3">
to become a care to one afterwards.</span>
It is one of
the renderings of the Hebrew<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.4">
nicham</span>
in the Septuagint.
In the New Testament it is found
only five times,
namely, in <scripRef id="vi.vii-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.29" parsed="|Matt|21|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 21:29">Matt. 21:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.32" parsed="|Matt|21|32|0|0" passage="Matt 21:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.27.3" parsed="|Matt|27|3|0|0" passage="Matt 27:3">27:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.10" parsed="|2Cor|7|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:10">II Cor. 7:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.21" parsed="|Heb|7|21|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:21">Heb. 7:21</scripRef>. It is evident from
these passages that the word stresses the element of repentance, though
this is not
necessarily<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.10">
true</span>
repentance. In it the negative, retrospective and emotional element is
uppermost, while<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.11">
metanoeo</span>
also includes a
volitional element and denotes an energetic
turn-about of the will. While<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.12">
metanoeo</span>
is sometimes used
in the imperative, this is never
the case with<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.13">
metamelomai.</span>
The feelings do not permit themselves to be commanded. This word
corresponds more nearly to the Latin<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.14">
poenitentia</span>
than does<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p8.15">
metanoeo.</span>
</p>

<h4 id="vi.vii-p8.16">B. THE BIBLICAL IDEA OF C.ONVERSION. DEFINITION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vii-p9" shownumber="no">The doctrine of conversion is, of course, like all other
doctrines, based on Scripture
and should be accepted on that ground. Since conversion is a conscious
experience in
the lives of many, the testimony of experience can be added to that of
the Word of God,
but this testimony, however valuable it may be, does not add to the
certainty of the
doctrine taught in the Word of God. We may be grateful that in recent
years the
Psychology of Religion paid considerable attention to the fact of
conversion, but should
always bear in mind that, while it has brought some interesting facts to
our attention, it
did little or
nothing to<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p9.1">
explain</span>
conversion as a<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p9.2">
religious phenomenon.</span>
The Scriptural
doctrine of conversion is based not merely on the passages containing
one or more of
the terms mentioned in the preceding, but also on many others in which
the
phenomenon of conversion is described or represented concretely in
living examples.
The Bible does not always speak of conversion in the same sense. We may
distinguish
the following: </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p10" shownumber="no">1. NATIONAL CONVERSIONS. In the days of
Moses, Joshua, and the Judges, the people
of Israel repeatedly turned their backs upon Jehovah, and after
experiencing the
displeasure of God, repented of their sin and returned unto the Lord;
there was a
national conversion in the kingdom of Judah in the days of Hezekiah and
again in the
days of Josiah. Upon the preaching of Jonah the Ninevites repented of
their sins and
were spared by the Lord, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Jonah.3.10" parsed="|Jonah|3|10|0|0" passage="Jonah 3:10">Jonah 3:10</scripRef>. These national conversions were
merely of the
nature of moral reformations. They may have been accompanied with some
real
religious conversions of individuals, but fell far short of the true
conversion of all those
that belonged to the nation. As a rule they were very superficial. They
made their
appearance under the leadership of pious rulers, and when these were
succceeded by
wicked men, the people at once fell back into their old habits.
</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p11" shownumber="no">2. TEMPORARY CONVERSIONS. The Bible also
refers to conversions of individuals that
represent no change of the heart, and are therefore of only passing
significance. In the
parable of the sower Jesus speaks of such as hear the word and at once
receive it with
joy, but have no root in themselves, and therefore endure but for a
while. When
tribulations and trials and persecutions come, they are speedily
offended and fall away.
<scripRef id="vi.vii-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.20" parsed="|Matt|13|20|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:20">Matt. 13:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.21" parsed="|Matt|13|21|0|0" passage="Matt 13:21">21</scripRef>. Paul makes mention of Hymenaeus and Alexander, who
"made
shipwreck
concerning the faith," <scripRef id="vi.vii-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.19" parsed="|1Tim|1|19|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:19">I Tim. 1:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.20" parsed="|1Tim|1|20|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:20">20</scripRef>. Cf. also <scripRef id="vi.vii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.17" parsed="|2Tim|2|17|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:17">II Tim. 2:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.18" parsed="|2Tim|2|18|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:18">18</scripRef>. And in <scripRef id="vi.vii-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.10" parsed="|2Tim|4|10|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:10">II Tim. 4:10</scripRef> he refers to Demas who left him, because the love of the present
world gained the
upper hand. And the writer of Hebrews speaks of some as falling away
"who were once
enlightened and tasted of the heavenly gift, and were made partakers of
the Holy Spirit,
and tasted the good word of God, and the powers of the age to
come," <scripRef id="vi.vii-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6" parsed="|Heb|6|0|0|0" passage="Heb. 6">Heb. 6</scripRef>.4-6.
Finally, John says of some who had turned their backs upon the faithful:
"They went out
from us, but they were not of us; for if they had been of us, they would
have continued with us," <scripRef id="vi.vii-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.19" parsed="|1John|2|19|0|0" passage="I John 2:19">I John 2:19</scripRef>. Such temporary conversions may for a
time have the appearance
of true conversions.</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p12" shownumber="no">3. TRUE CONVERSION (CONVERSIS ACTUALIS PRIMA).
True conversion is born of godly
sorrow, and issues in a life of devotion to God, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.10" parsed="|2Cor|7|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:10">II Cor. 7:10</scripRef>. It is a
change that is rooted in
the work of regeneration, and that is effected in the conscious life of
the sinner by the
Spirit of God; a change of thoughts and opinions, of desires and
volitions, which
involves the conviction that the former direction of life was unwise and
wrong and
alters the entire course of life. There are two sides to this
conversion, the one active and
the other passive; the former being the act of God, by which He changes
the conscious
course of man's
life, and the latter, the result of this action as seen in man's changing his
course of life and turning to God. Consequently, a twofold definition
must be given of
conversion: (a)
Active conversion is<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p12.2">
that act of God whereby He causes
the regenerated sinner, in His conscious life, to turn to Him in
repentance and faith.</span>
(b) Passive conversion is <span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p12.3">the resulting conscious act of the
regenerated sinner whereby he, through the grace of God, turns
to God in repentance and faith.</span>
This true
conversion is the conversion with which we are
primarily concerned in theology. The Word of God contains several
striking examples of
it, as, for instance, the conversions of Naaman, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.5.15" parsed="|2Kgs|5|15|0|0" passage="II Kings 5:15">II Kings 5:15</scripRef>;
Manasseh, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.33.12" parsed="|2Chr|33|12|0|0" passage="II Chron. 33:12">II Chron. 33:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.33.13" parsed="|2Chr|33|13|0|0" passage="II Chron. 33:13">13</scripRef>; Zaccheus, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.8" parsed="|Luke|19|8|0|0" passage="Luke 19:8">Luke 19:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.9" parsed="|Luke|19|9|0|0" passage="Luke 19:9">9</scripRef>; the man born blind, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:John.9.38" parsed="|John|9|38|0|0" passage="John 9:38">John 9:38</scripRef>; the
Samaritan woman,
<scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:John.4.29" parsed="|John|4|29|0|0" passage="John 4:29">John 4:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:John.4.39" parsed="|John|4|39|0|0" passage="John 4:39">39</scripRef>;
the eunuch, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.30" parsed="|Acts|8|30|0|0" passage="Acts 8:30">Acts 8:30</scripRef> ff.; Cornelius, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.44" parsed="|Acts|10|44|0|0" passage="Acts 10:44">Acts 10:44</scripRef> ff.; Paul, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.9.5" parsed="|Acts|9|5|0|0" passage="Acts 9:5">Acts 9:5</scripRef> ff.;
Lydia,
<scripRef id="vi.vii-p12.15" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.14" parsed="|Acts|16|14|0|0" passage="Acts 16:14">Acts 16:14</scripRef>. and
others. </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p13" shownumber="no">4. REPEATED CONVERSION. The Bible also
speaks of a repeated conversion, in which a
converted person, after a temporary lapse into the ways of sin, turns
back to God.
Strong prefers not to use the word "conversion" for this
change, but to employ such
words and phrases as "breaking off, forsaking, returning from,
neglects or
transgressions," and "coming back to Christ, trusting Him
anew." But Scripture itself
uses the word
"conversion" for such cases, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.32" parsed="|Luke|22|32|0|0" passage="Luke 22:32">Luke 22:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.5" parsed="|Rev|2|5|0|0" passage="Rev. 2:5">Rev. 2:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.16" parsed="|Rev|2|16|0|0" passage="Rev 2:16">16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.21" parsed="|Rev|2|21|0|0" passage="Rev 2:21">21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.22" parsed="|Rev|2|22|0|0" passage="Rev 2:22">22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.3" parsed="|Rev|3|3|0|0" passage="Rev 3:3">3:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.19" parsed="|Rev|3|19|0|0" passage="Rev 3:19">19</scripRef>.
It should
be understood, however, that conversion in the strictly soteriological
sense of the word
is never repeated. They who have experienced a true conversion may
temporarily fall
under the spell of evil and fall into sin; they may at times even wander
far from home;
but the new life is bound to re-assert itself and will eventually cause
them to return to God with penitent hearts.</p>

<h4 id="vi.vii-p13.8">C. THE CHARACTERISTICS OF CONVERSION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vii-p14" shownumber="no">Conversion is simply one part of the saving process. But
because it is a part of an
organic process, it is naturally closely connected with every other
part. Sometimes a
tendency becomes apparent, especially in our country, to identify it
with some of the
other parts of the process or to glorify it as if it were by far the
most important part of
the process. It is a well known fact that some, in speaking of their
redemption, never get
beyond the story of their conversion and forget to tell about their
spiritual growth in
later years. This is undoubtedly due to the fact that in their
experience conversion
stands out as a sharply marked crisis, and a crisis which called for
action on their part.
In view of the present day tendency to lose sight of the lines of
demarcation in the
saving process, it is well to remind ourselves of the truth of the old
Latin adage, "<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p14.1">
Qui bene distinguet, bene docet.</span>
" We should
note the following characteristics of conversion: </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p15" shownumber="no">1. Conversion belongs to the re-creative rather than to
the judicial acts of God. It
does not alter the state but the condition of man. At the same time it
is closely connected with the divine operations in the judicial sphere. In
conversion man becomes conscious
of the fact that he is worthy of condemnation and is also brought to a
recognition of that
fact. While this already presupposes faith, it also leads to a greater
manifestation of faith
in Jesus Christ, a confident trusting in Him for salvation. And this
faith, in turn, by
appropriating the righteousness of Jesus Christ, is instrumental in the
sinner's
justification. In conversion man awakens to the joyous assurance that
all his sins are
pardoned on the basis of the merits of Jesus Christ.
</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p16" shownumber="no">2. As the word<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p16.1">
metanoia</span>
clearly indicates,
conversion takes place, not in the
subconscious, but in the conscious life of the sinner. This does not
mean that it is not
rooted in the subconscious life. Being a direct effect of regeneration,
it naturally includes a transition in the operations of the new life from the
subconscious to the conscious life.
In view of this it may be said that conversion begins below
consciousness, but that, as a
completed act, it certainly falls within the range of the conscious
life. This brings out the
close connection between regeneration and conversion. A conversion that
is not rooted
in regeneration is no true conversion.
</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p17" shownumber="no">3. Conversion marks the conscious beginning, not only of
the putting away of the
old man, a fleeing from sin, but also of the putting on of the new
man, a striving for
holiness of life. In regeneration the sinful principle of the old life
is already replaced by
the holy principle of the new life. But it is only in conversion that
this transition
penetrates into the conscious life, turning it into a new and Godward
direction. The
sinner consciously forsakes the old sinful life and turns to a life in
communion with and
devoted to God. This does not mean, however, that the struggle between
the old and the
new is at once ended; it will continue as long as man lives.</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p18" shownumber="no">4. If we take the word "conversion" in its most specific sense, it denotes a
momentary change and not a process like sanctification. It is a change
that takes place once and that cannot be repeated, though, as stated above, the
Bible also speaks of the
Christian's
return to God, after he has fallen into sin, as conversion. It is the
believer's
turning to God and holiness again, after he has temporarily lost sight
of these. In
connection with regeneration we cannot possibly speak of repetition; but
in the conscious life of the Christian there are ups and downs, seasons of
close communion
with God and seasons of estrangement from Him.
</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p19" shownumber="no">5. Over against those who think of conversion only as a
definite crisis in life, it
should be noted that, while conversion may be such a sharply marked
crisis, it may also
be a very gradual change. Older theology has always distinguished between
sudden
and gradual conversions (as in the cases of Jeremiah,
John the Baptist, and Timothy);
and in our day the psychology of conversion stresses the same
distinction. Crisis
conversions are most frequent in days of religious declension, and in
the lives of those
who have not enjoyed the privileges of a real religious education, and
who have
wandered far from the path of truth, of righteousness, and of holiness.
</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p20" shownumber="no">6. Finally, in our day, in which many psychologists show
an inclination to reduce
conversion to a general and natural phenomenon of the adolescent period
of life, it
becomes necessary to point out that, when we speak of conversion, we
have in mind a
<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p20.1">supernatural</span>
work of God, resulting in a<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p20.2">
religious change.</span>
The psychologists sometimes
intimate that conversion is but a natural phenomenon by calling
attention to the fact
that sudden changes also occur in the intellectual and moral life of
man. Some of them
hold that the emergence of the idea of sex plays an important part in
conversion. Over
against this rationalistic and naturalistic tendency the specific
character of religious
conversion must be maintained.</p>

<h4 id="vi.vii-p20.3">D. THE DIFFERENT ELEMENTS IN CONVERSION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vii-p21" shownumber="no">It already appears from the preceding that conversion
comprises two elements,
namely, repentance and faith. Of these the former is retrospective, and
the latter
prospective. Repentance is directly connected with sanctification, while
faith is closely,
though not exclusively, related to justification. In view of the fact
that faith will be
discussed in a separate chapter, we limit ourselves to repentance here,
and define it as
<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p21.1">that change wrought in the conscious
life of the sinner, by which he turns away from sin. </span>
</p>
<p id="vi.vii-p22" shownumber="no">1. THE ELEMENTS OF REPENTANCE. We distinguish three elements in repentance:</p>
<p id="vi.vii-p23" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p23.1">An intellectual element.</span>
There is a
change of view, a recognition of sin as involving
personal guilt, defilement, and helplessness. It is designated in
Scripture as<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p23.2">
epignosis
hamartias</span>
(knowledge of sin), <scripRef id="vi.vii-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.20" parsed="|Rom|3|20|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:20">Rom. 3:20</scripRef>, cf. 1:32. If this is not accompanied by the
following elements, it may manifest itself as fear of punishment, while
there is as yet no  hatred
of sin. </p>
<p id="vi.vii-p24" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p24.1">
An emotional element.</span>
There is a change of feeling,
manifesting itself in sorrow for
sin committed against a holy and just God, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p24.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.2" parsed="|Ps|51|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:2">Ps. 51:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.10" parsed="|Ps|51|10|0|0" passage="Ps 51:10">10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.14" parsed="|Ps|51|14|0|0" passage="Ps 51:14">14</scripRef>. This element
of repentance is
indicated by the word<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p24.5">
metamelomai.</span>
If it is
accompanied by the following element, it is a
<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p24.6">lupe kata theou</span>
(godly sorrow), but if it is not so
accompanied, it is a<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p24.7">
lupe tou kosmou </span>
(sorrow of the world), manifesting itself in remorse and despair, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p24.8" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.9" parsed="|2Cor|7|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:9">II Cor. 7:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p24.9" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.10" parsed="|2Cor|7|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p24.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.27.3" parsed="|Matt|27|3|0|0" passage="Matt. 27:3">Matt. 27:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p24.11" osisRef="Bible:Luke.18.23" parsed="|Luke|18|23|0|0" passage="Luke 18:23">Luke 18:23</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p25" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p25.1">
A volitional element.</span>
There is also a volitional
element, consisting in a change of
purpose, an inward turning away from sin, and a disposition to seek
pardon and
cleansing, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p25.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.5" parsed="|Ps|51|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:5">Ps. 51:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p25.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.7" parsed="|Ps|51|7|0|0" passage="Ps 51:7">7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p25.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.10" parsed="|Ps|51|10|0|0" passage="Ps 51:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p25.5" osisRef="Bible:Jer.25.5" parsed="|Jer|25|5|0|0" passage="Jer. 25:5">Jer. 25:5</scripRef>. This includes the two other
elements, and is therefore
the most important aspect of repentance. It is indicated in Scripture by
the word <span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p25.6">metanoia</span>, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p25.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.38" parsed="|Acts|2|38|0|0" passage="Acts 2:38">Acts 2:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p25.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.4" parsed="|Rom|2|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:4">Rom. 2:4</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p26" shownumber="no">2. THE SACRAMENT OF PENANCE IN THE CHURCH OF ROME. The Church of Rome has
externalized the idea of repentance entirely. The most important
elements in its
sacrament of
penance are<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p26.1">
contrition, confession, satisfaction</span>, and<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p26.2">
absolution.</span>
Of these four<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p26.3">
contrition</span>
is the only one that properly belongs to repentance, and even from this
the
Romanist excludes all sorrow for inborn sin, and retains only that for
personal
transgressions. And because only few experience real<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p26.4">
contrition</span>, he is also satisfied with
<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p26.5">attrition.</span>
This is "the mental conviction that sin deserves punishment, but
does not
include trust in God and a purpose to turn away from sin. It is the fear
of hell."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p26.6" n="60" place="foot">Schaff, <span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p26.7">Our Fathers' Faith and Ours,</span> p. 358</note>
Confession in the Roman Catholic Church is confession to the priest, who
absolves, not
declaratively, but judicially. Moreover, satisfaction consists in the
sinner's doing
penance, that is, enduring something painful, or performing some
difficult or distasteful
task. The central thought is that such outward performances really
constitute a
satisfaction for
sin. </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p27" shownumber="no">3. THE SCRIPTURAL VIEW OF REPENTANCE. Over against this external view of
repentance the Scriptural idea should be maintained. According to
Scripture repentance
is wholly an inward act, and should not be confounded with the change of
life that
proceeds from it. Confession of sin and reparation of wrongs are<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p27.1">
fruits</span>
of repentance.
Repentance is only a negative condition, and not a positive means of
salvation. While it
is the sinner's present duty, it does not offset the claims of the law
on account of past
transgressions. Moreover, true repentance never exists except in
conjunction with faith,
while, on the other hand, wherever there is true faith, there is also
real repentance. The
two are but different aspects of the same turning, — a turning away from
sin in the
direction of God. Luther sometimes spoke of a repentance preceding
faith, but seems nevertheless to have agreed with Calvin in regarding true repentance as
one of the fruits
of faith. Lutherans are wont to stress the fact that repentance is
wrought by the law and
faith by the gospel. It should be borne in mind, however, that the two
cannot be
separated; they are simply complementary parts of the same process.
</p>

<h4 id="vi.vii-p27.2">E. THE PSYCHOLOGY OF CONVERSION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vii-p28" shownumber="no">During recent years psychologists have made a special study of the phenomena of conversion. </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p29" shownumber="no">1. THE NATURE OF THIS STUDY. The nature
of this study can best be learned from such
works as those
of Coe,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.1">
The Spiritual Life;</span>
Starbuck,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.2">
The Psychology of Religion;</span>
James,
<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.3">
Varieties of Religious Experience;</span>
Ames,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.4">
The Psychology
of Religious Experience;</span>
Pratt,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.5">; The Religious Consciousness;</span>
Clark,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.6">
The Psychology
of Religious Awakening;</span>
Hughes,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.7">; The New Psychology and Religious
Experience;</span>
and Horton,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.8">
The Psychological Approach to Theology. </span>
For a long time Psychology neglected the facts of the religious life
altogether, but for
more than a quarter of a century now it has taken notice of them. At
first the attention
was focussed primarily — not to say exclusively — on what must have
appeared to be
the great central fact of religious experience, the fact of conversion.
Psychologists have
studied many cases of conversion inductively and have attempted to
classify the
various forces at work in conversion, to distinguish the different types
of religious
experience, to determine the period of life in which conversion is most
apt to occur, and
to discover the laws that control the phenomena of conversion. While
they presented
their study as a purely inductive investigation into the phenomena of
religion as shown
in individual experience, and in some cases expressed the
laudable desire and intention
to keep their own philosophical and religious convictions in the
background, they
nevertheless in several instances clearly revealed a tendency to look
upon conversion as
a purely natural process, just as amenable to the ordinary laws of
psychology as any
other psychical fact; and to overlook, if not to deny explicitly, its
supernatural aspect.
The more careful scholars among them ignore, but do not deny, the
supernatural in
conversion. They explain their silence respecting the deeper aspects of
this central fact
in religious experience by calling attention to their limitations as
psychologists. They
can only deal with observed facts and the psychical laws which evidently
control them,
but have no right to probe into the possible or probable spiritual
background, in which
these facts find their explanation. They have pointed out that
conversion is not a
specifically Christian phenomenon, but is also found in other religions;
and that it is not
necessarily a religious phenomenon, but also occurs in non-religious
spheres. In fact, it
is but one of the many changes that occur in the period of adolescence,
"a sudden
readjustment to a larger spiritual environment," a surrender of the
old self to a truer
one. "At its best," says Starbuck, "it is the individual
will coming into harmony with
what it feels to be the divine will."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p29.9" n="62" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.10">The Psychology of Religion</span>, p. 162.</note>
As Pratt understands it, "the essential
thing about
conversion is just the unification of character, the achievement of a
new self."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p29.11" n="63" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.12">The Religious Consciousness,</span> p. 123.</note>
As to the
question, whether there is anything supernatural about conversion, there
is a difference
of opinion among the psychologists. Coe puts the question: "Shall
we therefore
conclude that conversion is practically an automatic performance?" And
he answers:
"Not unless we first define conversion so as to ignore its profound
relation to God and
to the principle of a good life.... The substance of religious
experiences as far transcends
their emotional forms as a man transcends the clothes he wears."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p29.13" n="64" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.14">The Spiritual Life,</span> p. 140.</note>
James feels that an
orthodox Christian might ask him, whether his reference of the phenomena
of conversion to the subliminal self does not exclude the notion of the
direct presence of
the Deity in it altogether; and he replies in these words: "I have
to say frankly that as a
psychologist I do not see why it necessarily should."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p29.15" n="65" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.16">The Varieties of Religious Experience,</span> p. 242.</note>
He finds that, "if there are
higher
powers able to impress us, they may gain access only through the subliminal
door."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p29.17" n="66" place="foot">p. 243.</note>
The representatives of the New Psychology, that is, of
the Behaviourist School and of
the School of Psychoanalysis, frankly take the position that conversion
may come about
in a perfectly natural way, without any supernatural influence.
James and others hold
that the real secret of the sudden change in conversion lies in some
activity of the
subliminal self, which may or may not be subject to some divine influence.
Students of Psychology are rather generally agreed that there are three distinct
steps in conversion,
which Ames describes as follows: "First, a sense of perplexity and
uneasiness; second, a
climax and turning point; and third, a relaxation marked by rest and
joy."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p29.18" n="67" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p29.19">The Psychology of Religious Experience,</span> p. 258</note>
It is quite
generally agreed that there are at least two outstanding types of
conversion, which are
designated in various ways. Speaking of these two kinds of conversion,
Starbuck says that the one is accompanied with a violent sense of sin, and the
other, with a feeling of
incompleteness, a struggle after a larger life, and a desire for
spiritual illumination. A
distinction is made between childhood and adult conversion, between
gradual and
sudden (violent) conversions, and between intellectual and emotional
conversions.
These are but different names for the two recognized types of
conversion. While
conversion in general may be regarded as a rather normal experience, it
is sometimes
found to take on an abnormal aspect, especially during revivals, and
then becomes a
pathological phenomenon. As far as the time of conversion is concerned,
it is pointed
out that conversion does not occur with the same frequency at all
periods of life, but
belongs almost exclusively to the years between 10 and 25, and is
extremely rare after
30. This means that it is peculiarly characteristic of the period of
adolescence.
Environment, education, and religious training, all affect the nature
and the frequency
of its
occurrence. </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p30" shownumber="no">2. EVALUATION OF THESE STUDIES. The value of these psychological studies of
conversion need not be denied. It would be folly to brush them aside as
of little or no
significance, or to ignore them just because they do not take due
account of the
supernatural in conversion. They shed a welcome light on some of the
laws that apply
in the psychical life of man, on some of the phenomena that accompany
the spiritual
crisis in the conscious life of man, and on the various types of
conversion and the
factors that determine these. They deepen our insight into the different
types of
conversion, which have always been recognized in Reformed theology,
confirm our
conviction respecting the three elements that are found in conversion,
and are quite in
agreement with the theological conviction that conversion is rooted in
the subconscious
life; though they do not explicitly affirm, and in some cases even deny
that it finds its
explanation in a divine work of the Holy Spirit below the threshold of
consciousness, —
the work of regeneration. At the same time we should not overrate these
studies. Some
of them, as, for instance, the work of James is decidedly one-sided,
since it is based
entirely on the study of extraordinary conversions, which he found most
interesting.
Moreover, they have not escaped the danger of carrying the idea of the
operation of
psychical law in conversion too far, and of overlooking the divine and
supernatural side
of the important process of conversion. James deals with it all as a
moral change and
defines it in a general way as "the process, gradual or sudden, by
which a self hitherto
divided, and consciously wrong, inferior and unhappy, becomes unified
and
consciously right, superior, and happy, in consequence of its firmer
hold upon religious
realities."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p30.1" n="68" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p30.2">Op. cit.,</span> p. 189.</note>
Others reduce it to a purely
natural phenomenon, and even explain it
materialistically, as controlled by physical laws. They do not, and even
from the nature
of the case cannot, go down to the root of the matter, do not and cannot
penetrate to the
hidden depths from which conversion springs. There is an obvious tendency
to challenge the old, orthodox idea of conversion, regarding it as
unscientific to teach that
the religious nature of man is miraculously implanted. They do not
accept the light of
the Word of God, and therefore have no standard by which to judge the
deeper things
of life. Snowden says: "As some psychologists have tried to work
out a psychology of
the soul without any soul, so some of them have endeavored to construct
a psychology
of religion without religion. Under their treatment of it religion has
evaporated into a
mere subjective feeling or delusion without any objective reality, and
such a psychology
of religion is baseless and worthless both as psychology and as
religion."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p30.3" n="69" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p30.4">The Psychology of Religion,</span> p. 20.</note></p>

<h4 id="vi.vii-p30.5">F. THE AUTHOR OF CONVERSION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vii-p31" shownumber="no">1. GOD THE AUTHOR OF CONVERSION. God only
can be called the author of
conversion. This is the clear teaching of Scripture. In <scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.85.4" parsed="|Ps|85|4|0|0" passage="Ps. 85:4">Ps. 85:4</scripRef> the
poet prays, "Turn us, O
God of our salvation," and in <scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.2" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.18" parsed="|Jer|31|18|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:18">Jer. 31:18</scripRef> Ephraim prays, "Turn
thou me, and I shall be
turned." A similar prayer is found in <scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.3" osisRef="Bible:Lam.5.21" parsed="|Lam|5|21|0|0" passage="Lam. 5:21">Lam. 5:21</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.11.18" parsed="|Acts|11|18|0|0" passage="Acts 11:18">Acts 11:18</scripRef>
Peter calls attention to the
fact that God has granted unto the Gentiles repentance unto life. A
similar statement is
found in <scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.5" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.25" parsed="|2Tim|2|25|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:25">II Tim. 2:25</scripRef>. There is a twofold operation of God in the
conversion of sinners,
the one moral and the other hyper-physical. In general it may be said
that He works
repentance by means of the law, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.19.7" parsed="|Ps|19|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 19:7">Ps. 19:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.20" parsed="|Rom|3|20|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:20">Rom. 3:20</scripRef>, and faith by means
of the gospel,
<scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.17" parsed="|Rom|10|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:17">Rom. 10:17</scripRef>. Yet we cannot separate these two, for the law also contains
a presentation of
the gospel, and the gospel confirms the law and threatens with its terrors,
<scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.9" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.11" parsed="|2Cor|5|11|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:11">II Cor. 5:11</scripRef>.
But God also works in an immediate, hyperphysical manner in conversion.
The new
principle of life that is implanted in the regenerate man, does not
issue into conscious
action by its own inherent power, but only through the illuminating and
fructifying
influence
of the Holy Spirit. Cf. <scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.10" osisRef="Bible:John.6.44" parsed="|John|6|44|0|0" passage="John 6:44">John 6:44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p31.11" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>. To teach otherwise would be
Lutheran and Arminian.
</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p32" shownumber="no">2. MAN CO-OPERATES IN CONVERSION. But though God only is the author of
conversion, it is of great importance to stress the fact, over against a
false passivity, that
there is also a certain co-operation of man in conversion. Dr. Kuyper
calls attention to
the fact that in the Old Testament<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p32.1">
shubh</span>
is used 74 times of
conversion as a deed of man,
and only 15 times, of conversion as a gracious act of God; and that the
New Testament
represents conversion as a deed of man 26 times, and speaks of it only 2
or 3 times as an
act of God.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.vii-p32.2" n="70" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p32.3">Dict. Dogm., De Salute,</span> p. 94.</note>
It should be borne in mind,
however, that this activity of man always
results from a previous work of God in man, <scripRef id="vi.vii-p32.4" osisRef="Bible:Lam.5.21" parsed="|Lam|5|21|0|0" passage="Lam. 5:21">Lam. 5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p32.5" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>. That
man is active in conversion is
quite evident from such passages as <scripRef id="vi.vii-p32.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.55.7" parsed="|Isa|55|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 55:7">Isa. 55:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p32.7" osisRef="Bible:Jer.18.11" parsed="|Jer|18|11|0|0" passage="Jer. 18:11">Jer. 18:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p32.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.23" parsed="|Ezek|18|23|0|0" passage="Ezek. 18:23">Ezek. 18:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.vii-p32.9" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.18.32" parsed="|Ezek|18|32|0|0" passage="Ezek 18:32">32</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.vii-p32.10" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.33.11" parsed="|Ezek|33|11|0|0" passage="Ezek 33:11">33:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p32.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.38" parsed="|Acts|2|38|0|0" passage="Acts 2:38">Acts 2:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p32.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.30" parsed="|Acts|17|30|0|0" passage="Acts 17:30">17:30</scripRef>, and others. </p>

<h4 id="vi.vii-p32.13">G. THE NECESSITY OF CONVERSION.</h4>
<p id="vi.vii-p33" shownumber="no">The Bible speaks in absolute terms of the necessity of
regeneration; not so of the
necessity of conversion. It tells us plainly that, "Except a man be
born again (anew, or,
from above), he cannot see the kingdom of God," <scripRef id="vi.vii-p33.1" osisRef="Bible:John.3.3" parsed="|John|3|3|0|0" passage="John 3:3">John 3:3</scripRef>, but does
not speak of the
need of conversion in the same general way, which allows of no
exceptions. Naturally,
they who identify the two cannot admit this distinction. Undoubtedly
there are
passages of Scripture which contain a call to conversion, in order to
enjoy the blessings
of God, such as <scripRef id="vi.vii-p33.2" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.33.11" parsed="|Ezek|33|11|0|0" passage="Ezek. 33:11">Ezek. 33:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.vii-p33.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.55.7" parsed="|Isa|55|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 55:7">Isa. 55:7</scripRef>, and these imply the necessity of
conversion in the
case of those addressed or mentioned there. The passage that comes
nearest to an
absolute declaration is found in <scripRef id="vi.vii-p33.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.3" parsed="|Matt|18|3|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:3">Matt. 18:3</scripRef>, "Verily, I say unto
you, Except ye turn and
become as little children, ye shall in no wise enter into the kingdom of
heaven." But
even in this case one might insist that this refers only to the persons
addressed. The
expressed or implied exhortations to turn about, found in Scripture,
come only to those
to whom they are addressed and do not necessarily mean that every one
must pass
through a conscious conversion, in order to be saved. The question as to
the necessity of
conversion should be answered with discrimination. Those who die in
infancy must be
regenerated, in order to be saved, but cannot very well experience
conversion, a
conscious turning from sin unto God. In the case of adults, however,
conversion is
absolutely essential, but it need not appear in each one's life as a
strongly marked crisis. Such a definite crisis can, as a rule, be expected only
in the lives of those who, after a life
of sin and shame, are arrested in their evil course by the regenerating
power of the Holy
Spirit and by the effectual call to conversion. In them the life of
conscious enmity is at
once transformed into a life of friendship with God. It can hardly be
looked for,
however, in the lives of those who, like John the Baptist and Timothy,
served the Lord from early youth. At the same time, conversion is necessary in
the case of all adults in
the sense that its elements, namely, repentance and faith must be
present in their lives.
This means that they must in some form experience the essence of
conversion.</p>

<h4 id="vi.vii-p33.5">H. RELATION OF CONVERSION TO OTHER STAGES OF THE SAVING PROCESS.</h4>
<p id="vi.vii-p34" shownumber="no">1. TO REGENERATION. This has already
been indicated to some extent. The two words
"regeneration"
and "conversion" are used synonymously by some. Yet in present day
theology they generally refer to different, though closely related
matters. The principle
of the new life implanted in regeneration comes into active expression
in the conscious
life of the sinner when he is converted. The change that is effected in
the subconscious
life in regeneration passes into the conscious life in conversion.
Logically, conversion
follows regeneration. In the case of those who are regenerated in
infancy, there is
necessarily a temporal separation of the two, but in the case of those
who are
regenerated after they have come to years of discretion, the two
generally coincide. In
regeneration the sinner is entirely passive, but in conversion he is
both passive and
active. The former can never be repeated, but the latter can to a
certain extent, though
the<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p34.1">
conversio actualis prima</span>
occurs but
once. </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p35" shownumber="no">2. TO EFFECTUAL CALLING. Conversion is the
direct result of internal calling. As an
effect in man, internal calling and the beginning of conversion really
coincide. The
situation is not such that God calls the sinner, and that then the
sinner in his own
strength turns to God. It is exactly in the internal calling that man
becomes conscious of
the fact that God is working conversion in him. The truly converted man
will feel all
along that his conversion is the work of God. This distinguishes him
from the man who
aims at superficial moral improvement. The latter works in his own
strength.</p>

<p id="vi.vii-p36" shownumber="no">3. TO FAITH. As already indicated,
conversion consists in repentance and faith, so
that faith is really a part of conversion. Yet we should distinguish
here. There are two
kinds of true faith, each having a distinct object, namely, (a) a
recognition of the truth of
God's revelation of redemption, not merely in a detached, historical
sense, but in such a
way that it is recognized as a reality that cannot be ignored with
impunity, because it
affects life in a vital way; and (b) a recognition and acceptance of the
salvation offered in
Jesus Christ, which is saving faith in the proper sense of the word. Now
there is no
doubt that faith in the former sense is present at once in conversion.
The Holy Spirit
causes the sinner to see the truth as it applies to his own life, so
that he comes under
"conviction," and thus becomes conscious of his sin. But he
may remain in this stage for
some time, so that it is hard to say in how far saving faith, that is,
trust in Christ unto
salvation, is at once included in conversion. There is no doubt that,
logically, repentance
and the knowledge of sin precedes the faith that yields to Christ in trusting
love.</p>

<h4 id="vi.vii-p36.1">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY:</h4>
<p id="vi.vii-p37" shownumber="no">Why did Beza prefer to call conversion<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p37.1">
resipiscentia </span>
rather than<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p37.2">
poenitentia?</span>
Why is the term 'repentance' inadequate
to express the idea of conversion? How did Luther's conception of repentance differ from that
of Calvin? Is
conversion
always preceded by 'conviction of sin'? Can we speak of prevenient grace
relative to conversion? Is conversion an instantaneous act or is it a
process? What is
meant by the
term 'daily conversion'? What is the proper view of the necessity of
conversion? Does covenant preaching have a tendency to silence the call
to conversion?
What is the Methodist conception of conversion? Are the methods of the
revival
meetings commendable? What about the lasting character of the
conversions of which
they boast? Do the statistics of the Psychology of conversion give us
any information on
this point? </p>

<p id="vi.vii-p38" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 127-181; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Salute</span>,
pp. 93-97;
ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.3">
Het Werk van den Heiligen Geest</span>
II, pp.
197-203; A. A. Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.4">
Outlines of Theology</span>, pp. 487-495;
Strong,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.5">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 829-849;
McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.6">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp.
393-397; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.7">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 529-537; Alexander,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.8">
Syst. of Bib. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 38-384; Litton,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.9">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 249-258; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.10">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
IV, pp. 66-81;
Pope,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.11">
Chr. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 367-376; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.12">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 465, 466, 470-484;
Drummond,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.13">
Studies in Chr. Doct.</span>, pp. 488-491; Macintosh,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.14">
Theol. as an Empirical Science</span>,
pp. 134-136;
Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.15">
Godgeleerdheit</span>, IV, 4; Walden,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.16">
The Great Meaning of Metanoia; </span>
Jackson,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.17">
The Fact of Conversion;</span>
Coe,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.18">
The Spiritual Life;</span>
Starbuck,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.19">
The Psychology of Religion; James, The Varieties of
Religious Experience</span>, pp. 189-258; Ames,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.20">
The Psychology of Religious Experience</span>, pp. 257-276; Clark,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.21">
The Psychology of Religious Awakening;</span> Pratt,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.22">
The Religious Consciousness</span>, pp. 122-164; Steven,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.23">
The Psychology of the Christian Soul</span>, pp.
142-298; Hughes,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.24">
The New Psychology and Religious Experience</span>, pp. 213-241;
Snowden,<span class="ital" id="vi.vii-p38.25">
The Psychology of Religion</span>, pp. 143-199.</p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.viii" next="vi.ix" prev="vi.vii" title="VIII. Faith">
<h2 id="vi.viii-p0.1">VIII. Faith</h2>
<p id="vi.viii-p1" shownumber="no">The preceding chapter dealt with conversion in general,
and also gave a brief
description of the negative element of conversion, namely, repentance.
The present
chapter will be devoted to a discussion of the positive element, which
is faith. This is of
such central significance in soteriology that it calls for separate
treatment. It is best
taken up at this point, not only because faith is a part of conversion,
but also because it is instrumentally related to justification. Its discussion
forms a natural transition to the
doctrine of
justification<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p1.1">
by faith.</span></p>

<h4 id="vi.viii-p1.2">A. SCRIPTURAL TERMS FOR FAITH</h4>
<p id="vi.viii-p2" shownumber="no">1. THE OLD TESTAMENT TERMS AND THEIR MEANING.
The Old Testament contains no
noun for faith, unless<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.1">
emunah</span>
be so considered
in <scripRef id="vi.viii-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Hab.2.4" parsed="|Hab|2|4|0|0" passage="Hab. 2:4">Hab. 2:4</scripRef>. This word ordinarily means
"faithfulness,"
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.4" parsed="|Deut|32|4|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:4">Deut. 32:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.36.5" parsed="|Ps|36|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 36:5">Ps. 36:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.37.3" parsed="|Ps|37|3|0|0" passage="Ps 37:3">37:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p2.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.40.11" parsed="|Ps|40|11|0|0" passage="Ps 40:11">40:11</scripRef>, but the way in which the statement of
Habakkuk is applied in the New Testament, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.17" parsed="|Rom|1|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:17">Rom. 1:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p2.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.11" parsed="|Gal|3|11|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:11">Gal. 3:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.38" parsed="|Heb|10|38|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:38">Heb. 10:38</scripRef>, would
seem to indicate that the prophet used the term in the sense of faith.
The most common
Old Testament
word for "to believe" is<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.10">
he'emin</span>,
the hiphil form of '<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.11">
aman.</span>
In<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.12">
qal</span>
it means "to nurse" or "to nourish"; in<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.13">; niphal</span>, "to be firm" or "established,"
"steadfast"; and in
<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.14">hiphil</span>, "to consider established," "to
regard as true," or "to believe." The word is
construed with the prepositions<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.15">
beth</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.16">
lamedh.</span>
Construed with the former, it evidently
refers to a confident resting on a person or thing or testimony; while,
with the latter, it
signifies the assent given to a testimony, which is accepted as true. —
The word next in
importance is<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.17">
batach</span>, which is construed with<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.18">
beth</span>
and means "to confide in," "to lean
upon," or "to trust." It does not emphasize the element
of intellectual assent, but rather
that of
confident reliance. In distinction from<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.19">
he'emin</span>,
which is generally rendered by
<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.20">pisteuo</span>
in the Septuagint, this word is usually translated by<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.21">
elpizo</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.22">
peithomai.</span>
The man
who trusts in God is one who fixes all his hope for the present and for
the future on
Him. — There is still another word, namely,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p2.23">
chasah</span>, which is used less frequently, and
means "to
hide one's self," or "to flee for refuge." In this, too,
the element of trust is  clearly in the
foreground.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p3" shownumber="no">2. THE NEW TESTAMENT TERMS AND THEIR MEANING. Two words are used throughout
the New Testament, namely,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p3.1">
pistis</span>
and the cognate
verb<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p3.2">
pisteuein.</span>
These do not always
have exactly the same connotation.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p4" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.1"> The different meanings of pistis.</span>
(1)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.2">
In classical Greek.</span>
The word<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.3">
pistis</span>
has two meanings in classical Greek. It denotes: (a) a conviction based on
confidence in a person
and in his testimony, which as such is distinguished from knowledge
resting on
personal investigation; and (b) the confidence itself on which such a
conviction rests.
This is more than a mere intellectual conviction that a person is
reliable; it presupposes
a personal
relation to the object of confidence, a going out of one's self, to rest in
another. The Greeks did not ordinarily use the word in this sense, to
express their
relation to the gods, since they regarded these as hostile to men, and
therefore as objects
of fear rather than of trust.—(2)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.4">
In the Septuagint.</span>
The
transition from the use of the
word<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.5">
pistis</span>
in classical Greek to the New Testament usage, in which the meaning
"confidence"
or "trust" is all-important, is found in the Septuagint use of the
verb
<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.6">pisteuein</span>
rather than in that of the noun<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.7">
pistis</span>
which occurs in
it but once with anything
like its New Testament meaning. The verb<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.8">
pisteuein</span>
generally serves as a rendering of
the word<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.9">
he'emin</span>, and thus expresses the idea of faith both in the sense of assent to
the
Word of God and
of confident trusting in Him. — (3)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p4.10">
In the New Testament.</span>
There are a
few instances in which the word has a passive meaning, namely, that of
"fidelity" or
"faithfulness,"
which is its usual meaning in the Old Testament, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.3" parsed="|Rom|3|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:3">Rom. 3:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.12" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.22" parsed="|Gal|5|22|0|0" passage="Gal. 5:22">Gal. 5:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.13" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.10" parsed="|Titus|2|10|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:10">Tit. 2:10</scripRef>. It is generally used in an active sense. The following special
meanings should be
distinguished: (a) an intellectual belief or conviction, resting on the
testimony of
another, and therefore based on trust in this other rather than on
personal investigation,
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.27" parsed="|Phil|1|27|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:27">Phil. 1:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.15" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.4.13" parsed="|2Cor|4|13|0|0" passage="II Cor. 4:13">II Cor. 4:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.16" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.13" parsed="|2Thess|2|13|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:13">II Thess. 2:13</scripRef>, and especially in the writings of John; and (b) a
confiding trust or confidence in God or, more particularly, in Christ
with a view to
redemption from sin and to future blessedness. So especially in the
Epistles of Paul,
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.22" parsed="|Rom|3|22|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:22">Rom. 3:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.18" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.25" parsed="|Rom|3|25|0|0" passage="Rom 3:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.19" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.1" parsed="|Rom|5|1|0|0" passage="Rom 5:1">5:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.2" parsed="|Rom|5|2|0|0" passage="Rom 5:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.21" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.30" parsed="|Rom|9|30|0|0" passage="Rom 9:30">9:30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.32" parsed="|Rom|9|32|0|0" passage="Rom 9:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.23" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.24" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8" parsed="|Eph|2|8|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:8">Eph. 2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p4.25" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.12" parsed="|Eph|3|12|0|0" passage="Eph 3:12">3:12</scripRef>, and many other passages. This trust
must be distinguished from that on which the intellectual trust mentioned
under (a) above, rests. The order in the successive stages of faith is as follows:
(a) general confidence in God and Christ; (b) acceptance of their testimony on the
basis of that
trust; and (c) yielding to Christ and trusting in Him for the salvation
of the soul. The last
is specifically
called saving faith. </p>

<p id="vi.viii-p5" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p5.1">
The different constructions of pisteuein and their
meaning.</span>
We have the following constructions:
(1)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p5.2"> Pisteuein with the dative.</span>
This generally
denotes believing assent. If the
object is a person, it is ordinarily employed in a somewhat pregnant
sense, including the deeply religious idea of a devoted, believing trust. When
the object is a thing, it is
usually the Word of God, and when it is a person, it is generally either
God or Christ, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:John.4.50" parsed="|John|4|50|0|0" passage="John 4:50">John 4:50</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:John.5.47" parsed="|John|5|47|0|0" passage="John 5:47">5:47</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.34" parsed="|Acts|16|34|0|0" passage="Acts 16:34">Acts 16:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.3" parsed="|Rom|4|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:3">Rom. 4:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.12" parsed="|2Tim|1|12|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:12">II Tim. 1:12</scripRef>. — (2)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p5.8"> Pisteuein followed by hoti.</span>
In this
construction the conjunction generally serves to introduce what is
believed. On the
whole this construction is weaker than the preceding. Of the twenty
passages in which
it is found, fourteen occur in the writings of John. In a couple of
cases the matter
believed hardly rises into the religious sphere, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:John.9.18" parsed="|John|9|18|0|0" passage="John 9:18">John 9:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.9.26" parsed="|Acts|9|26|0|0" passage="Acts 9:26">Acts 9:26</scripRef>,
while in some of the
others it is
decidedly of soteriological import, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.9.28" parsed="|Matt|9|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 9:28">Matt. 9:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.9" parsed="|Rom|10|9|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:9">Rom. 10:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.14" parsed="|1Thess|4|14|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:14">I Thess. 4:14</scripRef>. — (3)
<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p5.14">Pisteuein with prepositions.</span>
Here the deeper
meaning of the word, that of firm trustful
reliance, comes to its full rights. The following constructions come
into consideration:
(a)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p5.15">
Construction
with en.</span>
This is the most frequent construction in the
Septuagint, though
it is all but absent from the New Testament. The only certain case is
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.15" parsed="|Mark|1|15|0|0" passage="Mark 1:15">Mark 1:15</scripRef>, where
the object is the gospel. Other possible instances are <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.17" osisRef="Bible:John.3.15" parsed="|John|3|15|0|0" passage="John 3:15">John 3:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.18" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.13" parsed="|Eph|1|13|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:13">Eph.
1:13</scripRef>, where the
object would be Christ. The implication of this construction seems to be
that of a firmly
fixed confidence
in its object. (b)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p5.19">
Construction with epi and the
dative.</span>
It is found only in
the quotation from <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.20" osisRef="Bible:Isa.28.16" parsed="|Isa|28|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 28:16">Isa. 28:16</scripRef>, which appears in three passages, namely,
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.21" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.33" parsed="|Rom|9|33|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:33">Rom. 9:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.11" parsed="|Rom|10|11|0|0" passage="Rom 10:11">10:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.23" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.6" parsed="|1Pet|2|6|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:6">I Pet. 2:6</scripRef>, and
in <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.24" osisRef="Bible:Luke.24.25" parsed="|Luke|24|25|0|0" passage="Luke 24:25">Luke 24:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.25" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.16" parsed="|1Tim|1|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:16">I Tim. 1:16</scripRef>. It expresses the idea of a steady and restful
repose, a
reliance on its object. (c)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p5.26">
Construction with epi and the accusative.</span>
This is used seven times in the New Testament. In a couple of cases the object is
God, as He operates
in the saving of the soul in Christ; in all the others it is Christ.
This construction includes
the idea of moral motion, of mental direction towards the object. The
main idea is that  of
turning with confident trust to Jesus Christ. (d)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p5.27">
Construction with eis.</span>
This is the most
characteristic construction of the New Testament. It occurs forty-nine
times. About
fourteen of these instances are Johannine, and the remainder Pauline.
Except in one
case, the object is always a person, rarely God, and most commonly
Christ. This
construction has a very pregnant meaning, expressing, as it does,
"an absolute
transference of trust from ourselves to another, a complete
self-surrender to God." Cf.
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.28" osisRef="Bible:John.2.11" parsed="|John|2|11|0|0" passage="John 2:11">John 2:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.29" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">3:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.30" osisRef="Bible:John.3.18" parsed="|John|3|18|0|0" passage="John 3:18">18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.31" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.32" osisRef="Bible:John.4.39" parsed="|John|4|39|0|0" passage="John 4:39">4:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.33" osisRef="Bible:John.14.1" parsed="|John|14|1|0|0" passage="John 14:1">14:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.34" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.14" parsed="|Rom|10|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:14">Rom. 10:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.35" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p5.36" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.29" parsed="|Phil|1|29|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:29">Phil. 1:29</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="vi.viii-p5.37">B. FIGURATIVE EXPRESSIONS USED TO DESCRIBE THE ACTIVITY OF FAITH</h4>
<p id="vi.viii-p6" shownumber="no">There are several figurative expressions of the activity
of faith in Scripture. The following are some of the most important.
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p7" shownumber="no">1. It is spoken of as a looking to Jesus, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:John.3.14" parsed="|John|3|14|0|0" passage="John 3:14">John 3:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:John.3.15" parsed="|John|3|15|0|0" passage="John 3:15">15</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="vi.viii-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Num.21.9" parsed="|Num|21|9|0|0" passage="Num. 21:9">Num. 21:9</scripRef>). This is
a very
appropriate figure, because it comprises the various elements of faith,
especially when it
refers to a steadfast looking to anyone, as in the passage indicated.
There is in it an act
of perception (intellectual element), a deliberate fixing of the eye on
the object
(volitional element), and a certain satisfaction to which this
concentration testifies
(emotional element).</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p8" shownumber="no">2. It is also represented as a hungering and thirsting,
an eating and drinking, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.6" parsed="|Matt|5|6|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:6">Matt. 5:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:John.6.50-John.6.58" parsed="|John|6|50|6|58" passage="John 6:50-58">John 6:50-58</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:John.4.14" parsed="|John|4|14|0|0" passage="John 4:14">4:14</scripRef>. When men really hunger and thirst spiritually,
they feel that
something is wanting, are conscious of the indispensable character of
that which is
lacking, and endeavor to obtain it. All this is characteristic of the
activity of faith. In
eating and drinking we not only have the conviction that the necessary
food and drink
is present, but also the confident expectation that it will satisfy us,
just as in
appropriating Christ by faith we have a certain measure of confidence
that He will save
us.
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p9" shownumber="no">3. Finally, there are also the figures of coming to
Christ and receiving Him, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:John.5.40" parsed="|John|5|40|0|0" passage="John 5:40">John 5:40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:John.7.37" parsed="|John|7|37|0|0" passage="John 7:37">7:37</scripRef> (cf. vs. 38); 6:44,65; 1:12. The figure of coming to Christ pictures faith as an
action in which man looks away from himself and his own merits, to be
clothed with
the righteousness of Jesus Christ; and that of receiving Christ stresses
the fact that faith is an appropriating organ.</p>

<h4 id="vi.viii-p9.3">C. THE DOCTRINE OF FAITH IN HISTORY.</h4>
<p id="vi.viii-p10" shownumber="no">1. BEFORE THE REFORMATION. From the very earliest times of the Christian Church
faith stood out in the minds of the leaders as the one great condition
of salvation.
Alongside of it repentance also soon became rather prominent. At the
same time there
was little reflection at first on the nature of faith and but
little understanding of the
relation of faith to the other parts of the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p10.1">
ordo salutis.</span>
There was no current definition of
faith. While there was a tendency to use the word "faith" to
denote the acceptance of the
truth on testimony, it was also in some cases employed in a deeper
sense, so as to
include the idea of self-surrender to the truth intellectually received.
The Alexandrians
contrasted<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p10.2">
pistis</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p10.3">
gnosis</span>, and regarded the former primarily as initial and imperfect knowledge.
Tertullian stressed the fact that faith accepts a thing on authority, and not
because it is warranted by human reason. He also used the term in an
objective sense, as
a designation of that which must be believed, — the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p10.4">
regula fidei.</span>
Even up to the time of
Augustine little attention was devoted to the nature of faith, though it
was always
acknowledged to be the pre-eminent means in the appropriation of
salvation.
Augustine, however, gave the matter a greater measure of consideration.
He spoke of
faith in more than one sense. Sometimes he regarded it as nothing more
than intellectual
assent to the truth. But he conceived of evangelical or justifying faith
as including also
the elements of self-surrender and love. This faith is perfected in love
and thus becomes
the principle of good works. He did not have a proper conception,
however, of the relation between faith and justification. This is partly due to
the fact that he did not
carefully distinguish between justification and sanctification. The
deeper conception of
faith that is found in Augustine was not shared by the Church in
general. There was a
tendency to confound faith with orthodoxy, that is, with the holding of an
orthodox
faith. The Scholastics distinguished between a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p10.5">
fides informis</span>, that is, a mere intellectual
assent to the
truth taught by the Church, and a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p10.6">
fides formata</span>
(<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p10.7">charitate</span>), that is, a
faith
informed (given a characteristic form) by love, and regarded the latter
as the only faith
that justifies,
since it involves an infusion of grace. It is only as<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p10.8">
fides formata</span>
that faith
becomes active for good and becomes the first of the theological virtues
by which man
is placed in the right relation to God. Strictly speaking it is the love
by which faith is
perfected that justifies. Thus in faith itself a foundation was laid for
human merit. Man
is justified, not exclusively by the imputation of the merits of Christ,
but also by
inherent grace. Thomas Aquinas defines the virtue of faith as a
"habit of the mind, by
reason of which eternal life has its inception in us, inasmuch as it
causes the intellect to
give its assent to things that are not seen."
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p11" shownumber="no">2. AFTER THE REFORMATION. While the Roman Catholics stressed the fact that
justifying faith is merely assent and has its seat in the understanding,
the Reformers
generally regarded it as<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p11.1">
fiducia</span>
(trust), having
its seat in the will. On the relative
importance of the elements in faith there have been differences,
however, even among Protestants. Some regard the definition of Calvin as
superior to that of the Heidelberg
Catechism. Says Calvin: "We shall now have a full definition of
faith if we say that it is a
firm and sure knowledge of the divine favour toward us, founded on the
truth of a free
promise in Christ, and revealed to our minds, and sealed in our hearts,
by the Holy
Spirit."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p11.2" n="71" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p11.3">Inst.</span> III. 2,7.</note>
The Heidelberg Catechism, on the
other hand, also brings in the element of
confidence when
it answers the question, "What is true faith?" as follows: "True
faith is
not only a sure knowledge whereby I hold for truth all that God has
revealed to us in
His Word, but also a firm confidence which the Holy Spirit works in my
heart by the
gospel, that not only to others, but to me also, remission of sins,
everlasting
righteousness and salvation are freely given by God, merely of grace,
only for the sake
of Christ's merits."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p11.4" n="72" place="foot">Q. 21.</note>
But it is quite
evident from the connection that Calvin means to
include the element of confidence in the "firm and sure
knowledge" of which he speaks.
Speaking of the boldness with which we may approach God in prayer, he
even says:
"Such boldness springs only from confidence in the divine favour
and salvation. So true
is this, that the term<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p11.5">
faith</span>
is often used as
equivalent to<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p11.6">
confidence.</span>
"<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p11.7" n="73" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p11.8">Ibid.,</span> III. 2,15.</note>
He absolutely
rejects the fiction of the Schoolmen who insist "that faith is an
assent with which any despiser of God may receive what is delivered in Scripture."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p11.9" n="74" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p11.10">Ibid.</span> III. 2,8.</note>
But there is an even more
important point of difference between the Reformers' conception of faith
and that of the
Scholastics. The latter recognized in faith itself some real and even
meritorious efficacy
(<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p11.11">meritum ex congruo</span>) in disposing to, and in procuring or obtaining
justification. The
Reformers, on the other hand, were unanimous and explicit in teaching
that justifying faith does not justify by any meritorious or inherent efficacy
of its own, but only as the
instrument for receiving or laying hold on what God has provided in the
merits of
Christ. They regarded this faith primarily as a gift of God and only secondarily
as an
activity of man in dependence on God. The Arminians revealed a
Romanizing tendency,
when they conceived of faith as a meritorious work of man, on the basis
of which he is
accepted in favor by God. Schleiermacher, the father of modern theology,
hardly
mentions saving faith and knows absolutely nothing of faith as childlike
trust in God.
He says that faith "is nothing but the incipient experience of the
satisfaction of our
spiritual need by Christ." It is a new psychological experience, a
new consciousness,
rooted in a feeling, not of Christ, nor of any doctrine, but of the
harmony of the Infinite, of the Whole of things, in which the soul finds God.
Ritschl agreed with Schleiermacher
in holding that faith springs up as the result of contact with the
divine reality, but finds
its object, not in any idea or doctrine, nor in the whole of things, but
in the Person of
Christ, as the supreme revelation of God. It is not a passive assent,
but an active
principle. In it man makes God's self-end, that is, the kingdom of God,
his own, begins
to work for the kingdom, and in doing this finds salvation. The views of
Schleiermacher
and Ritschl characterize a great deal of modern liberal theology. Faith,
in this theology,
is not a heaven-wrought experience, but a human achievement; not the
mere receiving
of a gift, but a meritorious action; not the acceptance of a doctrine,
but a "making Christ
Master" in an attempt to pattern one's life after the example of
Christ. This view met with strong opposition, however, in the theology of
crisis, which stresses the fact that
saving faith is never a merely natural psychological experience, is
strictly speaking an
act of God rather than of man, never constitutes a permanent possession
of man, and is
in itself merely a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p11.12">
hohlraum</span>
(empty space),
quite incapable of effecting salvation. Barth
and Brunner regard faith simply as the divine response, wrought in man by
God, to the
Word of God in Christ, that is, not so much to any doctrine, as to the
divine command
or the divine act in the work of redemption. It is the affirmative
answer, the "yes" to the
call of God, a
"yes" that is elicited by God Himself.</p>

<h4 id="vi.viii-p11.13">D. THE IDEA OF FAITH IN SCRIPTURE.</h4>
<p id="vi.viii-p12" shownumber="no">1. IN THE OLD TESTAMENT. Evidently the New Testament
writers, in stressing faith as
the fundamental principle of the religious life, were not conscious of
shifting ground
and of departing from the Old Testament representation. They regard
Abraham as the
type of all true believers (<scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4" parsed="|Rom|4|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 4">Rom. 4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3" parsed="|Gal|3|0|0|0" passage="Gal. 3">Gal. 3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11" parsed="|Heb|11|0|0|0" passage="Heb. 11">Heb. 11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2" parsed="|Jas|2|0|0|0" passage="Jas. 2">Jas. 2</scripRef>), and those
who are of faith as
the true sons of
Abraham (<scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.28" parsed="|Rom|2|28|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:28">Rom. 2:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.29" parsed="|Rom|2|29|0|0" passage="Rom 2:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.12" parsed="|Rom|4|12|0|0" passage="Rom 4:12">4:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.16" parsed="|Rom|4|16|0|0" passage="Rom 4:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.9" parsed="|Gal|3|9|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:9">Gal. 3:9</scripRef>). Faith is never treated as a
novelty of the new covenant, nor is any distinction drawn between the
faith of the two
covenants. There is a sense of continuity, and the proclamation of faith
is regarded as
the same in both
dispensations, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:John.5.46" parsed="|John|5|46|0|0" passage="John 5:46">John 5:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:John.12.38" parsed="|John|12|38|0|0" passage="John 12:38">12:38</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.12" osisRef="Bible:John.12.39" parsed="|John|12|39|0|0" passage="John 12:39">39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.13" osisRef="Bible:Hab.2.4" parsed="|Hab|2|4|0|0" passage="Hab. 2:4">Hab. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.17" parsed="|Rom|1|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:17">Rom. 1:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.16" parsed="|Rom|10|16|0|0" passage="Rom 10:16">10:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.16" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.11" parsed="|Gal|3|11|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:11">Gal. 3:11</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p12.17" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.38" parsed="|Heb|10|38|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:38">Heb. 10:38</scripRef>. In both Testaments faith is the same radical self-commitment
to God, not
merely as the highest good of the soul, but as the gracious Saviour of
the sinner. The
only difference that is apparent, is due to the progressive work of
redemption, and this
is more or less evident even within the confines of the Old Testament
itself.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p13" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p13.1">
In the patriarchal period.</span>
In the earlier
portions of the Old Testament there is but little in the line of abstract statement respecting the way of
salvation. The essence of the
religion of the patriarchs is exhibited to us in action. The promise of
God is in the
foreground, and the case of Abraham is designed to set forth the idea
that the proper
response to it is that of faith. The whole life of Noah was determined
by trust in God
and in His promises, but it is especially Abraham that is set before us
as the typical
believer, who commits himself to God with unwavering trust in His
promises and is
justified by
faith. </p>

<p id="vi.viii-p14" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p14.1">
In the period of the law.</span>
The giving of
the law did not effect a fundamental change
in the religion of Israel, but merely introduced a change in its
external form. The law
was not substituted for the promise; neither was faith supplanted by
works. Many of
the Israelites, indeed, looked upon the law in a purely legalistic
spirit and sought to
base their claim to salvation on a scrupulous fulfilment of it as a body
of external
precepts. But in the case of those who understood its real nature, who
felt the
inwardness and spirituality of the law, it served to deepen the sense of
sin and to
sharpen the conviction that salvation could be expected only from the
grace of God. The
essence of real piety was ever-increasingly seen to consist in a
confident trust in the God
of salvation. While the Old Testament clearly stresses the fear of the
Lord, a large
number of expressions, such as hoping, trusting, seeking refuge in God,
looking to Him,
relying on Him, fixing the heart on Him, and cleaving to Him — make it
abundantly
evident that this fear is not a craven but a child-like, reverent fear,
and emphasize the
necessity of that loving self-commitment to God which is the essence of
saving faith.
Even in the period of the law faith is distinctly soteriological,
looking to the Messianic
salvation. It is a trusting in the God of salvation, and a firm reliance
on His promises for
the future. </p>

<p id="vi.viii-p15" shownumber="no">2. IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. When the Messiah came in
fulfilment of the prophecies,
bringing the hoped-for salvation, it became necessary for the vehicles
of God's
revelation to direct God's people to the person of their Redeemer. This
was all the more
necessary in view of the fact that the fulfilment came in a form which
many did not
expect, and which apparently did not correspond with the promise.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p16" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p16.1">
In the Gospels.</span>
The demand for
faith in Jesus as the Redeemer, promised and
hoped for, appeared as something characteristic of the new age. "To
believe" meant to
become a Christian. This demand seemed to create a gulf between the old
dispensation
and the new. The beginning of the latter is even called "the coming
of faith," <scripRef id="vi.viii-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.23" parsed="|Gal|3|23|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:23">Gal.
3:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.25" parsed="|Gal|3|25|0|0" passage="Gal 3:25">25</scripRef>. It is the characteristic thing of the Gospels that in them
Jesus is constantly
offering Himself as the object of faith, and that in connection with the
highest concerns
of the soul. The Gospel of John stresses the higher aspects of this
faith more than the  Synoptics.
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p17" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p17.1">
In the Acts.</span>
In the Acts of the
Apostles faith is required in the same general sense.
By the preaching of the apostles men are brought to the obedience of
faith in Christ; and
this faith becomes the formative principle of the new community.
Different tendencies
developed in the Church and gave rise to the different modes of dealing
with faith that became apparent in the writings of the New Testament.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p18" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p18.1">
In the Epistle of James.</span>
James had to
rebuke the Jewish tendency to conceive of the
faith that was well pleasing to God as a mere intellectual assent to the
truth, a faith that
did not yield appropriate fruit. His idea of the faith that justifies
does not differ from
that of Paul, but he stresses the fact that this faith must manifest
itself in good works. If it does not, it is a dead faith, and is, in fact,
non-existent.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p19" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p19.1">
In the Epistles of Paul.</span>
Paul had to contend particularly with the ingrained legalism
of Jewish thought. The Jew boasted of the righteousness of the law.
Consequently, the
apostle had to vindicate the place of faith as the only instrument of
salvation. In doing
this, he naturally dwelt a great deal on Christ as the object of faith,
since it is from this
object only that faith derives its efficacy. Faith justifies and saves
only because it lays
hold on Jesus Christ.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p20" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p20.1">
In the Epistle to the Hebrews.</span>
The writer of
Hebrews also regards Christ as the
proper object of saving faith, and teaches that there is no
right-eousness except through
faith, 10:38; 11:7. But the danger against which the writer of this
letter had to guard was
not that of falling from faith into works, but rather that of falling
from faith into despair.
He speaks of faith as "the assurance of things hoped for, the
conviction of things not
seen," 11:1. He exhorts the readers to an attitude of faith, which
will enable them to rise
from the seen to the unseen, from the present to the future, from the
temporal to the eternal, and which will enable them to be patient in the midst
of sufferings.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p21" shownumber="no">f.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p21.1">
In the Epistles of Peter.</span>
Peter also writes to readers that were in danger of becoming
discouraged, though not of falling back into Judaism. The circumstances
in which they
found themselves prompted him to lay special emphasis on the relation of
faith to the
consummated salvation, in order to quicken within their hearts the hope
that would
sustain them in their present trials, the hope of an unseen and eternal
glory. The Second
Epistle stresses the importance of the knowledge of faith as a safeguard
against
prevailing errors.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p22" shownumber="no">g.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p22.1">
In the Writings of John.</span>
John had to contend with an incipient Gnosticism, which
falsely emphasized knowledge (<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p22.2">gnosis</span>) and despised
simple faith. The former was
supposed to carry with it a far greater degree of blessedness than the
latter. Hence John
makes it a point to magnify the blessings of faith. He insists, not so
much on the
certainty and glory of the future inheritance which faith secures, as on
the fulness of the
present enjoyment of salvation which it brings. Faith embraces knowledge
as a firm
conviction and makes believers at once possessors of the new life and of
eternal
salvation. Meanwhile John does not neglect the fact that it also reaches
out into the
future. </p>

<h4 id="vi.viii-p22.3">E. FAITH IN GENERAL.</h4>
<p id="vi.viii-p23" shownumber="no">The word "faith" is not exclusively a religious
and theological term. It is often used
in a general and non-religious sense, and even so has more than one
connotation. The
following uses of the term deserve particular attention. It may denote:
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p24" shownumber="no">1. FAITH AS LITTLE MORE THAN MERE OPINION. The word "faith" is
sometimes used in
a rather loose and popular sense, to denote a persuasion of the truth
which is stronger
than mere opinion, and yet weaker than knowledge. Even Locke defined
faith as "the
assent of the mind to propositions which are probably, but not
certainly, true." In
popular language we often say of that of which we are not absolutely
sure, but which we at the same time feel constrained to recognize as true:
"I believe that, but I am not
sure of it." Consequently some philosophers have found the
distinguishing characteristic of faith in the lesser degree of certainty which it
yields—Locke, Hume,
Kant, and others.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p25" shownumber="no">2. FAITH AS IMMEDIATE CERTAINTY. In connection with science faith is often spoken of
as<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p25.1">
immediate</span>
certainty. There is a certainty which man obtains by means of
perception,
experience, and logical deduction, but there is also an intuitive
certainty. In every
science there are axioms that cannot be demonstrated and intuitive
convictions that are
not acquired by perception or logical deduction. Dr. Bavinck says
"Het gebied der
onmiddelijke zekerheid is veel grooter dan dat der demonstratieve, en
deze laatste is
altijd weer op de eerste gebouwd, en staat en valt met deze. Ook is deze
intuitieve
zekerheid niet minder maar grooter dan die, welke langs den weg van
waarneming en
logische demonstratie verkregen wordt." The sphere
of immediate certainty is greater
than that of demonstrative certainty. In both cases now mentioned faith
is regarded
exclusively as an activity of the intellect.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p26" shownumber="no">3. FAITH AS A CONVICTION BASED ON TESTIMONY AND INCLUDING TRUST. In common
parlance the word "faith" is often used to denote the
conviction that the testimony of
another is true, and that what he promises will be done; a conviction
based only on his
recognized veracity and fidelity. It is really a believing acceptance of
what another says
on the basis of the confidence which he inspires. And this faith, this
conviction based on
confidence, often leads to a further confidence: trust in a friend in
time of need, in the
ability of a doctor to give aid in times of sickness, and in that of a pilot
to guide the vessel into the harbor, and so on. In this case faith is more than
a mere matter of the
intellect. The will is brought into play, and the element of trust comes
to the foreground.</p>

<h4 id="vi.viii-p26.1">F. FAITH IN THE RELIGIOUS SENSE AND PARTICULARLY SAVING FAITH.</h4>
<p id="vi.viii-p27" shownumber="no">The distinguishing characteristics of faith in the
theological sense have not always been stated in the same way. This will become
evident, when we consider the concept,
the elements, the object, and the ground of faith.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p28" shownumber="no">1. THE CONCEPT OF FAITH: FOUR KINDS OF FAITH DISTINGUISHED. As a psychological
phenomenon faith in the religious sense does not differ from faith in
general. If faith in
general is a persuasion of the truth founded on the testimony of one in
whom we have
confidence and on whom we rely, and therefore rests on authority,
Christian faith in the
most comprehensive sense is man's persuasion of the truth of Scripture
on the basis of
the authority of God. The Bible does not always speak of religious faith
in the same
sense, and this gave rise to the following distinctions in theology.
</p>


<p id="vi.viii-p29" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p29.1">
Historical
faith.</span>
This is a purely intellectual apprehension of the truth,
devoid of
any moral or spiritual purpose. The name does not imply that it embraces
only
historical facts and events to the exclusion of moral and spiritual
truths; nor that it is
based on the testimony of history, for it may have reference to
contemporaneous facts or
events, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p29.2" osisRef="Bible:John.3.2" parsed="|John|3|2|0|0" passage="John 3:2">John 3:2</scripRef>. It is rather expressive of the idea that this faith
accepts the truths of
Scripture as one might accept a history in which one is not personally
interested. This
faith may be the result of tradition, of education, of public opinion,
of an insight into the
moral grandeur of Scripture, and so on, accompanied with the general
operations of the
Holy Spirit. It may be very orthodox and Scriptural, but is not rooted
in the heart, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p29.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.26" parsed="|Matt|7|26|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:26">Matt. 7:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p29.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.26.27" parsed="|Acts|26|27|0|0" passage="Acts 26:27">Acts 26:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p29.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.26.28" parsed="|Acts|26|28|0|0" passage="Acts 26:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p29.6" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.19" parsed="|Jas|2|19|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:19">Jas. 2:19</scripRef>. It is a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p29.7">
fides humana</span>
and not a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p29.8"> fides divina.</span>
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p30" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p30.1">
Miraculous faith.</span>
The so-called
miraculous faith is a persuasion wrought in the
mind of a person that a miracle will be performed by him or in his
behalf. God can give
a person a work to do that transcends his natural powers and enable him
to do it. Every
attempt to perform a work of that kind requires faith. This is very
clear in cases in
which man appears merely as the instrument of God or as the one who
announces that
God will work a miracle, for such a man must have full confidence that
God will not
put him to shame. In the last analysis God only works miracles, though
He may do it
through human
instrumentality.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p30.2">
This is faith of miracles in the
active sense</span>,
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p30.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.17.20" parsed="|Matt|17|20|0|0" passage="Matt. 17:20">Matt. 17:20</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p30.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.17" parsed="|Mark|16|17|0|0" passage="Mark 16:17">Mark 16:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p30.5" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.18" parsed="|Mark|16|18|0|0" passage="Mark 16:18">18</scripRef>. It is not necessarily, but may be, accompanied with
saving faith.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p30.6">
The faith of miracles may also be passive</span>, namely, the
persuasion that God will work a miracle in  one's
behalf. It, too, may or may not be accompanied with saving faith, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p30.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.10-Matt.8.13" parsed="|Matt|8|10|8|13" passage="Matt. 8:10-13">Matt. 8:10-13</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.viii-p30.8" osisRef="Bible:John.11.22" parsed="|John|11|22|0|0" passage="John 11:22">John 11:22</scripRef> (comp. verses 25-27); 11:40; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p30.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.9" parsed="|Acts|14|9|0|0" passage="Acts 14:9">Acts 14:9</scripRef>. The question is often raised, whether
such a faith has a legitimate place in the life of man to-day. Roman
Catholics answer this
question affirmatively, while Protestants are inclined to give a
negative answer. They
point out that there is no Scriptural basis for such a faith, but do not
deny that miracles may still occur. God is entirely sovereign also in this
respect, and the Word of God leads
us to expect another cycle of miracles in the future.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p31" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p31.1">
Temporal faith.</span>
This is a
persuasion of the truths of religion which is accompanied
with some promptings of the conscience and a stirring of the affections,
but is not
rooted in a regenerate heart. The name is derived from <scripRef id="vi.viii-p31.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.20" parsed="|Matt|13|20|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:20">Matt. 13:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p31.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.21" parsed="|Matt|13|21|0|0" passage="Matt 13:21">21</scripRef>.
It is called a
temporary faith, because it is not permanent and fails to maintain
itself in days of trial
and persecution. This does not mean that it may not last as long as life
lasts. It is quite
possible that it will perish only at death, but then it surely ceases.
This faith is
sometimes called a hypocritical faith, but that is not entirely correct,
for it does not
necessarily involve conscious hypocrisy. They who possess this faith
usually believe that they have the true faith. It might better be called an
imaginary faith, seemingly
genuine, but evanescent in character. It differs from historical faith
in the personal
interest it shows in the truth and in the reaction of the feelings upon
it. Great difficulty
may be experienced in attempting to distinguish it from true saving
faith. Christ says of
the one who so
believes: "He hath no root in himself," <scripRef id="vi.viii-p31.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.21" parsed="|Matt|13|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:21">Matt. 13:21</scripRef>. It is a faith
that does
not spring from the root implanted in regeneration, and therefore is not
an expression of
the new life that is embedded in the depths of the soul. In general it may
be said that
temporal faith is grounded in the emotional life and seeks personal
enjoyment rather
than the glory of God.
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p32" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p32.1">
True Saving faith.</span>
True saving
faith is a faith that has its seat in the heart and is
rooted in the regenerate life. A distinction is often made between the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p32.2">
habitus</span>
and the
<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p32.3">actus</span>
of faith. Back of both of these, however, lies the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p32.4">
semen fidei.</span>
This faith is not first of
all an activity of man, but a potentiality wrought by God in the heart
of the sinner. The
seed of faith is implanted in man in regeneration. Some theologians
speak of this as the
<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p32.5">habitus</span>
of faith, but others more correctly
call it the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p32.6">
semen fidei.</span>
It is only
after God has
implanted the seed of faith in the heart that man can exercise faith.
This is apparently
what Barth has in mind also, when he, in his desire to stress the fact
that salvation is
exclusively a work of God, says that God rather than man is the subject
of faith. The
conscious exercise of faith gradually forms a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p32.7">
habitus</span>, and this acquires a fundamental
and determining significance for the further exercise of faith. When the
Bible speaks of
faith, it generally refers to faith as an activity of man, though born
of the work of the
Holy Spirit.
Saving faith may be defined as<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p32.8">
a certain conviction, wrought in the heart by the Holy Spirit, as to the truth of the
gospel, and a hearty reliance (trust) on the promises of God in Christ.</span>
In the last analysis, it is true, Christ is the object of saving faith,
but He is offered
to us only in the gospel.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p33" shownumber="no">2. THE ELEMENTS OF FAITH. In speaking of
the different elements of faith we should
not lose sight of the fact that faith is an activity of man as a whole,
and not of any part of
man. Moreover, the soul functions in faith through its ordinary
faculties, and not
through any special faculty. It is an exercise of the soul which has
this in common with
all similar exercises, that it appears simple, and yet on closer
scrutiny is found to be
complex and intricate. And therefore, in order to obtain a proper
conception of faith, it is necessary to distinguish between the various
elements which it comprises.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p34" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p34.1">
An intellectual element (notitia).</span>
There is an
element of knowledge in faith, in
connection with which the following points should be considered:</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p35" shownumber="no">(1)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p35.1">
The character of this knowledge.</span>
The knowledge
of faith consists in a positive
recognition of the truth, in which man accepts as true whatsoever God
says in His
Word, and especially what He says respecting the deep depravity of man
and the
redemption which is in Christ Jesus. Over against Rome the position must
be
maintained that this sure knowledge belongs to the essence of faith; and
in opposition
to such theologians as Sandeman, Wardlaw, Alexander, Chalmers, and
others, that a
mere intellectual acceptance of the truth is not the whole of faith. On
the one hand it
would be an over-estimation of the knowledge of faith, if it were
regarded as a complete
comprehension of the objects of faith. But on the other hand it would
also be an under-
estimation of it, if it were considered as a mere taking notice of the
things believed,
without the conviction that they are true. Some modern liberals take
this view and
consequently like to speak of faith as a venture. It is a spiritual
insight into the truths of the Christian religion that find response in the
heart of the sinner.</p>
<p id="vi.viii-p36" shownumber="no">(2)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p36.1">
The certainty of this knowledge.</span>
The knowledge
of faith should not be regarded as
less certain than other knowledge. Our Heidelberg Catechism assures us
that true faith
is among other things also "a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p36.2">
certain</span>
(sure,
incontestable) knowledge."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p36.3" n="75" place="foot">Q. 21</note>
This is in
harmony with <scripRef id="vi.viii-p36.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.1" parsed="|Heb|11|1|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:1">Heb. 11:1</scripRef>, which speaks of it as "the assurance of
things hoped for, a
conviction of things not seen" It makes future and unseen things
subjectively real and
certain for the believer. The knowledge of faith is mediated for, and
imparted to, us by
the testimony of God in His Word, and is accepted by us as certain and
reliable on the
basis of the veracity of God. The certainty of this knowledge has its
warrant in God
Himself, and consequently nothing can be more certain. And it is quite
essential that
this should be so, for faith is concerned with spiritual and eternal
things, in which
certainty is needed, if anywhere. There must be certainty as to the
reality of the object of
faith; if there is not, faith is in vain. Machen deplores the fact that
many lose sight of this
fact in the present day. Says he: "The whole trouble is that faith
is being considered as a
beneficent quality of the soul without respect to the reality or
unreality of its object; and the moment faith comes to be considered in that
way, in that moment it is destroyed."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p36.5" n="76" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p36.6">What Is Faith?</span> p. 174.</note></p>

<p id="vi.viii-p37" shownumber="no">(3)<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p37.1">
The measure of this knowledge.</span>
It is
impossible to determine with precision just
how much knowledge is absolutely required in saving faith. If saving
faith is the
acceptance of Christ as He is offered in the gospel, the question
naturally arises, How
much of the gospel must a man know, in order to be saved? Or, to put it
in the words of
Dr. Machen: "What, to put it baldly, are the minimum doctrinal
requirements, in order
that a man may be a Christian?"<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p37.2" n="77" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p37.3">Op cit.,</span> p. 155.</note>
In general it may be said that it must be
sufficient to give the believer some idea of the object of faith. All true saving
faith must contain at
least a minimum of knowledge, not so much of the divine revelation in
general as of the
Mediator and His gracious operations. The more real knowledge one has of
the truths of
redemption, the richer and fuller one's faith will be, if all other
things are equal.
Naturally one who accepts Christ by a true faith, will also be ready and
willing to
accept God's testimony as a whole. It is of the utmost importance,
especially in our day,
that the churches should see to it that their members have a fairly
good, and not merely
a hazy, understanding of the truth. Particularly in this undogmatic age,
they should be
far more diligent than they are in the indoctrination of their youth.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p38" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p38.1">
An emotional element (assensus).</span>
Barth calls
attention to the fact that the time when man accepts Christ by faith is the existential moment of his life, in
which he ceases to
consider the object of faith in a detached and disinterested way, and
begins to feel a
lively interest in it. It is not necessary to adopt Barth's peculiar
construction of the
doctrine of faith, to admit the truth of what he says on this point.
When one embraces
Christ by faith, he has a deep conviction of the truth and reality of
the object of faith,
feels that it meets an important need in his life, and is conscious of
an absorbing interest
in it, — and this is assent. It is very difficult to distinguish this
assent from the
knowledge of faith just described, because, as we have seen, it is
exactly the
distinguishing characteristic of the knowledge of saving faith, that it
carries with it a
conviction of the truth and reality of its object. Hence some
theologians have shown an
inclination to limit the knowledge of faith to a mere taking cognizance
of the object of
faith; but (1) this is contrary to experience, for in true faith there
is no knowledge that
does not include a hearty conviction of the truth and reality of its
object and an interest
in it; and (2) this would make the knowledge in saving faith identical
with that which is
found in a purely historical faith, while the difference between
historical and saving
faith lies in part exactly at this point. Because it is so difficult to
make a clear distinction,
some theologians prefer to speak of only two elements in saving faith,
namely,
knowledge and personal trust. These are the two elements mentioned in the
Heidelberg
Catechism when it says that true faith "is not only<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p38.2">
a certain knowledge</span>
whereby I hold for
true all that God has revealed to us in His Word, but also<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p38.3">
a hearty trust</span>
which the Holy
Ghost works in me by the gospel."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p38.4" n="78" place="foot">Q. 21</note>
It probably deserves preference to regard
knowledge and assent simply as two aspects of the same element in faith.
Knowledge
may then be regarded as its more passive and receptive side, and assent
as its more
active and transitive side.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p39" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p39.1">
A volitional element (fiducia).</span>
This is the
crowning element of faith. Faith is not
merely a matter of the intellect, nor of the intellect and the emotions
combined; it is also
a matter of the will, determining the direction of the soul, an act of
the soul going out
towards its object and appropriating this. Without this activity the object
of faith, which
the sinner recognizes as true and real and entirely applicable to his
present needs,
remains outside of him. And in saving faith it is a matter of life and
death that the object
be appropriated. This third element consists in a personal trust in
Christ as Saviour and
Lord, including a surrender of the soul as guilty and defiled to Christ,
and a reception
and appropriation of Christ as the source of pardon and of spiritual
life. Taking all these
elements in consideration, it is quite evident that the seat of faith
cannot be placed in the
intellect, nor in the feelings, nor in the will exclusively, but only in
the heart, the central
organ of man's spiritual being, out of which are the issues of life. In
answer to the
question whether this<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p39.2">
fiducia</span>
(trust)
necessarily includes an element of personal
assurance, it may be said, in opposition to the Roman Catholics and
Arminians, that this
is undoubtedly the case. It naturally carries with it a certain feeling
of safety and
security, of gratitude and joy. Faith, which is in itself certainty,
tends to awaken a sense
of security and a feeling of assurance in the soul. In the majority of
cases this is at first
more implicit and hardly penetrates into the sphere of conscious
thought; it is
something vaguely felt rather than clearly perceived. But in the measure
in which faith
grows and the activities of faith increase, the consciousness of the
security and safety
which it brings also becomes greater. Even what theologians generally
call "refuge-
seeking trust" (toevluchtnemend vertrouwen) conveys to the soul a
certain measure of
security. This is quite different from the position of Barth, who
stresses the fact that faith
is a constantly repeated act, is ever anew a leap of despair and a leap
in the dark, and
never becomes a continuous possession of man; and who therefore rules
out the possibility of any subjective assurance of faith.
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p40" shownumber="no">3. THE OBJECT OF FAITH. In giving an
answer to the question as to what is the object of
true saving faith, we shall have to speak with discrimination, since it
is possible to
speak of this faith in a general and in a special sense. There is:
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p41" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p41.1">
A fides generalis.</span>
By this is meant saving faith in the
more general sense of the
word. Its object is the whole divine revelation as contained in the Word
of God.
Everything that is explicitly taught in Scripture or can be deduced from
it by good and
necessary inference, belongs to the object of faith in this general
sense. According to the
Church of Rome it is incumbent on its members to believe whatsoever the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p41.2">
ecclesia docens </span>
declares to be a part of God's revelation, and this includes the
so-called apostolic
tradition. It is true that the "teaching church" does not
claim the right to make new
articles of faith, but it does claim the right to determine
authoritatively what the Bible
teaches and what, according to tradition, belongs to the teachings of
Christ and His
apostles. And this affords a great deal of latitude.
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p42" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p42.1">
A fides specialis.</span>
This is saving faith in the more
limited sense of the word. While
true faith in the Bible as the Word of God is absolutely necessary, that
is not yet the
specific act of faith which justifies and therefore saves directly. It
must and as a matter of
fact does lead on to a more special faith. There are certain doctrines
concerning Christ
and His work, and certain promises made in Him to sinful men, which the
sinner must
receive and which must lead him to put his trust in Christ. The object
of special faith,
then, is Jesus Christ and the promise of salvation through Him. The
special act of faith consists in receiving Christ and resting on Him as He is
presented in the gospel, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p42.2" osisRef="Bible:John.3.15" parsed="|John|3|15|0|0" passage="John 3:15">John 3:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p42.3" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p42.4" osisRef="Bible:John.3.18" parsed="|John|3|18|0|0" passage="John 3:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p42.5" osisRef="Bible:John.6.40" parsed="|John|6|40|0|0" passage="John 6:40">6:40</scripRef>. Strictly speaking, it is not the act of faith as such,
but rather that which is received by faith, which justifies and therefore saves the sinner.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p43" shownumber="no">4. THE GROUND OF FAITH. The ultimate
ground on which faith rests, lies in the
veracity and faithfulness of God, in connection with the promises of the
gospel. But
because we have no knowledge of this apart from the Word of God, this
can also be, and
frequently is, called the ultimate ground of faith. In distinction from
the former,
however, it might be called the proximate ground. The means by which we
recognize
the revelation embodied in Scripture as the very Word of God is, in the
last analysis, the
testimony of the
Holy Spirit, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p43.1" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.7" parsed="|1John|5|7|0|0" passage="I John 5:7">I John 5:7</scripRef> (Am. Rev. Version): "And it is the Spirit which
beareth witness because the Spirit is the truth." Cf. also <scripRef id="vi.viii-p43.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.20" parsed="|Rom|4|20|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:20">Rom. 4:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p43.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.21" parsed="|Rom|4|21|0|0" passage="Rom 4:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p43.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.16" parsed="|Rom|8|16|0|0" passage="Rom 8:16">8:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p43.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.13" parsed="|Eph|1|13|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:13">Eph. 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p43.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.13" parsed="|1John|4|13|0|0" passage="I John 4:13">I John 4:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p43.7" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.10" parsed="|1John|5|10|0|0" passage="I John 5:10">5:10</scripRef>. Roman Catholics find the ultimate ground of faith in
the Church;
Rationalists acknowledge only reason as such; Schleiermacher seeks it in
Christian
experience; and Kant, Ritschl, and many modern liberals place it in the
moral needs of
human nature.</p>

<h4 id="vi.viii-p43.8">G. FAITH AND ASSURANCE.</h4>
<p id="vi.viii-p44" shownumber="no">A very important question arises here, namely, whether
assurance belongs to the essence of faith, or is something additional that is
not included in faith. Because the
expression "assurance of faith" is not always used in the same
sense, it is necessary to
discriminate carefully. There is a twofold assurance, namely, (1) The
objective assurance
of faith, which is "the certain and undoubting conviction that
Christ is all He professes
to be, and will do all He promises." It is generally agreed that
this assurance is of the
essence of faith. (2) The subjective assurance of faith, or the
assurance of grace and
salvation, which consists in a sense of security and safety, rising in
many instances to
the height of an "assured conviction that the individual believer
has had his sins
pardoned and his soul saved." As to the relation of this assurance
to the essence of faith
opinions differ.
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p45" shownumber="no">1. The Roman Catholic Church denies, not only that
personal assurance belongs to
the essence of
faith, but even that this is an<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p45.1">
actus reflexus</span>
or fruit of faith. It teaches that
believers cannot be sure of their salvation, except in those rare cases
in which assurance
is given by special revelation. This is a natural result of the
Semi-Pelagianism and of the
confessional system of Rome. The early Arminians, who shared the
Semi-Pelagian
position of Rome, took a very similar stand. Their view was condemned by
the Synod of Dort.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p46" shownumber="no">2. The Reformers reacted against the unsound and
pernicious position of the Church
of Rome. In their protest they occasionally stressed assurance
one-sidedly as the most
important element of faith. They sometimes spoke as if one who lacks the
assurance of
salvation, the positive conviction that his sins are forgiven, did not
possess true faith.
The<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p46.1">
fiducia</span>
of faith was sometimes represented by them as the assured trust of the
sinner
that all his sins are pardoned for the sake of Christ. Yet it is quite
evident from their
writings, (a) that they did not mean to teach that this<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p46.2">
fiducia</span>
did not include other
elements; and (b) that they did not intend to deny that true children of
God must
frequently struggle with all kinds of doubts and uncertainties.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p46.3" n="79" place="foot">Cf. my <span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p46.4">The Assurance of Faith,</span> pp. 23 f.</note></p>

<p id="vi.viii-p47" shownumber="no">3. The Reformed confessional standards vary somewhat. The
Heidelberg Catechism
teaches, also in reaction to Rome, that the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p47.1">
fiducia</span>
of faith consists in the assurance of the
forgiveness of sins. It places itself entirely on the standpoint of the
Reformers, and
conceives of the assurance of salvation as belonging to the essence of
faith. The Canons
of Dort take the position that this assurance in the elect is not the
fruit of a special
revelation, but springs from faith in God's promises, from the testimony
of the Holy
Spirit, and from the exercise of a good conscience and the doing of good
works, and is
enjoyed according to the measure of faith. This certainly implies that
it belongs in some
measure to the essence of faith. It is explicitly stated, however, that
believers frequently
have to struggle with carnal doubts, so that they are not always
sensible of the
assurance of faith. The Westminster Confession, speaking of the full
assurance of faith,
asserts that this does not so belong to the essence of faith that a true
believer may not
have to wait for it a long time. This has given some Presbyterian
theologians occasion to
deny that personal assurance belongs to the essence of faith. Yet the
Confession does not say this, and there are reasons to think that it did not intend to teach
this. The
Marrowmen in Scotland certainly gave a different interpretation of its
position.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p47.2" n="80" place="foot">Cf. <span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p47.3">The Assurance of Faith,</span> pp. 24-29</note></p>

<p id="vi.viii-p48" shownumber="no">4. After the confessional period there were several departures from this
position.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p49" shownumber="no">a. Antinomians considered this assurance to be the whole of the essence
of faith.
They ignored all other activities of faith, and regarded faith simply as
an intellectual
acceptance of the proposition: Thy sins are forgiven thee. De Labadie
(Dutch
theologian) recognized no one as a member of the Church who was not
fully assured.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p49.1" n="81" place="foot">Cf. Heppe, <span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p49.2">Geschichte des Pietesmus</span>, pp. 240-374.</note></p>
<p id="vi.viii-p50" shownumber="no">b. On the other hand a pietistic Nomism asserted that
assurance does not belong to
the very being, but only to the well-being of faith; and that it can be
secured, except by
special revelation, only by continuous and conscientious introspection.
All kinds of
"marks of the spiritual life," derived not from Scripture but
from the lives of approved
Christians, became the standard of self-examination. The outcome proved,
however,
that this method was not calculated to produce assurance, but rather
tended to lead to
ever-increasing doubt, confusion, and uncertainty.
</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p51" shownumber="no">c. The Methodists aim at a methodical conversion that
carries immediate certainty
with it. They place men before the law, cause them to see their utter
sinfulness and
terrible guilt, and frighten them with the terrors of the Lord. And
after they have thus
brought them under the terrifying influence of the law, they at
once introduce them to
the full and free gospel of redemption, which merely calls for a willing
acceptance of
Christ as their Saviour. In a single moment sinners are transported on
waves of emotion from the deepest sorrow into the most exalted joy. And this
sudden change carries with
it an immediate assurance of redemption. He who believes, is also sure
that he is
redeemed. This does not mean, however, that he is also certain of
ultimate salvation.
This is a certainty to which the consistent Methodist cannot attain
since he believes in a
falling away of the saints.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p52" shownumber="no">d. Among Reformed theologians there is a difference of
opinion. Many
Presbyterians deny that faith itself includes assurance; and in Reformed
circles some
share this denial. Kuyper, Bavinck, and Vos, however, correctly hold
that true faith, as
including trust, carries with it a sense of security, which may vary in
degree. There is
also an assurance of faith, however, that is the fruit of reflection.
It is possible to make faith itself an object of reflection, and thus to
arrive at a subjective assurance that does
not belong to the essence of faith. In that case we conclude from what
we experience in our own life to the presence of the work of the Holy Spirit within us,
cf. <scripRef id="vi.viii-p52.1" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.9-1John.2.11" parsed="|1John|2|9|2|11" passage="I John 2:9-11">I John 2:9-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p52.2" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.9" parsed="|1John|3|9|0|0" passage="I John 3:9">3:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p52.3" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.10" parsed="|1John|3|10|0|0" passage="I John 3:10">10</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vi.viii-p52.4" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.18" parsed="|1John|3|18|0|0" passage="I John 3:18">18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p52.5" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.19" parsed="|1John|3|19|0|0" passage="I John 3:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.viii-p52.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.7" parsed="|1John|4|7|0|0" passage="I John 4:7">4:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.viii-p52.7" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.20" parsed="|1John|4|20|0|0" passage="I John 4:20">20</scripRef>.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.viii-p52.8" n="82" place="foot">Cf. further, <span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p52.9">The Assurance of Faith,</span> chap. III.</note></p>

<h4 id="vi.viii-p52.10"> H. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CONCEPTION OF FAITH.</h4>
<p id="vi.viii-p53" shownumber="no">Three points deserve our attention here:</p>
<p id="vi.viii-p54" shownumber="no">1. The Church of Rome obliterates the distinction between historical and
saving
faith by teaching that faith consists in a mere assent to the doctrines
of the Church. This
faith is one of the seven preparations for justification in baptism, and
therefore
necessarily precedes this; but as a purely intellectual activity it
naturally does not lead
to salvation. A man may have true, that is, Biblical faith, and yet be
lost. In so far the
Church of Rome applies her principle of externalization also to faith.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p55" shownumber="no">2. It has also virtually removed the element of knowledge
from faith. One may be
considered a true believer, if one is but ready to believe what the
Church teaches,
without really knowing what this is. Such a faith is called a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p55.1">
fides implicita</span>
in distinction
from the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p55.2">
fides explicita</span>, which includes knowledge. By teaching
that it is sufficient to
believe what the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p55.3">
ecclesia docens</span>
teaches, the Roman
Catholic Church applies the
principle of
clericalism. </p>

<p id="vi.viii-p56" shownumber="no">3. There is still another point which characterizes the
Roman Catholic doctrine of
faith, namely, the distinction between a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p56.1">
fides
informis</span>
and a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p56.2">
fides formata.</span>
The former is the mere assent to the doctrine of the Church, while the other is a
faith which includes
love as a formative principle and is perfected in love. This is the
faith that really justifies.</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p57" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What was
the conception of faith in the early
Church? Did Augustine's view differ from that of the earlier fathers?
How did the
distinction
between a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p57.1">
fides informis</span>
and a<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p57.2">
fides formata</span>
arise? How did Luther and Calvin
differ as to the order of faith and repentance? Do the Lutherans and the
Reformed agree
as to the order of faith and regeneration? Why is it important to
maintain the proper
order? How did the distinction between the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p57.3">
actus</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p57.4">
habitus</span>
of faith arise, and why
is it important? Can the proposition, "I am saved," ever be
the object of saving faith?
What conception of faith is found in Schleiermacher and Ritschl? Why is
it very
appropriate that salvation should be contingent on faith? How does the
excessive
<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p57.5">activism</span>
of Barth affect his doctrine of faith? What does he mean when he says
that man is never a believer or a Christian, but always a sinner? How do you
account for his
denial that faith includes assurance?</p>

<p id="vi.viii-p58" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
IV, pp. 83-127; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Salute</span>, pp. 98-131; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.3">
Het Werk van
den Heiligen Geest</span>
II, pp. 233-297; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.4">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
IV., pp. 82-154; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.5">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 41-113; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.6">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 531-534; Dabney, <span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.7">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 600-612; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.8">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 388-393; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.9">
Doct.
Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Ch.</span>, pp. 416-430;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.10">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II. pp.
232-241; Kaftan,
<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.11">Dogm.</span>, pp. 656-681: Litton,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.12">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 282-296: Pope,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.13">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 376-385; Pictet,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.14">
Theol.</span>, pp. 298-309; Inge,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.15">
Faith and Its Psychology;</span>
Machen,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.16">
What is Faith?; </span>O'Brian,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.17">
The Nature and
Effects of Faith;</span>
Moehler,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.18">
Symbolism or Doctrinal Differences; </span>
Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.19">
De Zekerheid
des Geloofs;</span>
Berkhof,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.20">
The Assurance of Faith;</span>
Wernecke, "<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.21">
Faith" in the New Testament;</span> Warfield,<span class="ital" id="vi.viii-p58.22">
The Biblical
Doctrine of Faith (in Biblical Doctrines</span> VIII). </p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.ix" next="vi.x" prev="vi.viii" title="IX. Justification">
<h2 id="vi.ix-p0.1">IX. Justification</h2>
<h4 id="vi.ix-p0.2">A. THE SCRIPTURAL TERMS FOR JUSTIFICATION AND THEIR MEANING.</h4>

<p id="vi.ix-p1" shownumber="no">1. THE OLD TESTAMENT TERM. The Hebrew
term for "to justify" is<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p1.1">
hitsdik</span>,
which in  the great majority of cases means
"to declare judicially that one's state is in harmony
with the demands
of the law, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.23.7" parsed="|Exod|23|7|0|0" passage="Ex. 23:7">Ex. 23:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Deut.25.1" parsed="|Deut|25|1|0|0" passage="Deut. 25:1">Deut. 25:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.4" osisRef="Bible:Prov.17.15" parsed="|Prov|17|15|0|0" passage="Prov. 17:15">Prov. 17:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.5.23" parsed="|Isa|5|23|0|0" passage="Isa. 5:23">Isa. 5:23</scripRef>. The<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p1.6">
piel tsiddek </span>
occasionally has the same meaning, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.7" osisRef="Bible:Jer.3.11" parsed="|Jer|3|11|0|0" passage="Jer. 3:11">Jer. 3:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.16.50" parsed="|Ezek|16|50|0|0" passage="Ezek. 16:50">Ezek. 16:50</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.9" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.16.51" parsed="|Ezek|16|51|0|0" passage="Ezek 16:51">51</scripRef>. The
meaning of these words
is therefore strictly forensic or legal. Since Roman Catholics, such
representatives of the
moral influence theory of the atonement as John Young of Edinburgh
and Horace
Bushnell, and also the Unitarians and modern liberal theologians, deny
the legal
meaning of the
term "to justify," and ascribe to it the moral sense of "to make
just or
righteous," it becomes important to take careful notice of the
considerations that may be
urged in favor of the legal meaning. That this is the proper denotation
of the word
appears (a) from the terms placed in contrast with it, as, for instance
"condemnation,"
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.10" osisRef="Bible:Deut.25.1" parsed="|Deut|25|1|0|0" passage="Deut. 25:1">Deut. 25:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.11" osisRef="Bible:Prov.17.15" parsed="|Prov|17|15|0|0" passage="Prov. 17:15">Prov. 17:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.5.23" parsed="|Isa|5|23|0|0" passage="Isa. 5:23">Isa. 5:23</scripRef>; (b) from the correlative terms placed in juxtaposition
with it and which often imply a process of judgment, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.13" osisRef="Bible:Gen.18.25" parsed="|Gen|18|25|0|0" passage="Gen. 18:25">Gen. 18:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.14" osisRef="Bible:Ps.143.2" parsed="|Ps|143|2|0|0" passage="Ps. 143:2">Ps. 143:2</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.100" parsed="|Ps|100|0|0|0" passage="Ps 100">c</scripRef>) from the
equivalent expressions that are sometimes used, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.16" osisRef="Bible:Gen.15.6" parsed="|Gen|15|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 15:6">Gen. 15:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.1" parsed="|Ps|32|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 32:1">Ps. 32:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.18" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.2" parsed="|Ps|32|2|0|0" passage="Ps 32:2">2</scripRef>;
and (d) from the
fact that a passage like <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.19" osisRef="Bible:Prov.17.15" parsed="|Prov|17|15|0|0" passage="Prov. 17:15">Prov. 17:15</scripRef> would yield an impossible sense, if
the word meant "to make just." The meaning would then be: He who
morally improves the life of the
wicked is an abomination to the Lord. There are a couple of passages,
however, in
which the word means more than simply "to declare righteous,"
namely, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.20" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53.11" parsed="|Isa|53|11|0|0" passage="Isa. 53:11">Isa. 53:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p1.21" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.3" parsed="|Dan|12|3|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:3">Dan. 12:3</scripRef>. But even
in these cases the sense is not "to make good or holy," but rather
"to alter the condition so that man can be considered righteous."</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE NEW TESTAMENT TERMS AND THEIR USE. Here we have: </p>
<p id="vi.ix-p3" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p3.1">
The verb dikaio-o.</span>
This verb means in general "to
declare a person to be just.
Occasionally it refers to a personal declaration that one's moral
character is in
conformity with
the law, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.37" parsed="|Matt|12|37|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:37">Matt. 12:37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.7.29" parsed="|Luke|7|29|0|0" passage="Luke 7:29">Luke 7:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.4" parsed="|Rom|3|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:4">Rom. 3:4</scripRef>. In the Epistles of Paul the
soteriological meaning of the term is clearly in the foreground. It is
"to declare
forensically that the demands of the law as a condition of life are
fully satisfied with
regard to a
person, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.39" parsed="|Acts|13|39|0|0" passage="Acts 13:39">Acts 13:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.1" parsed="|Rom|5|1|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:1">Rom. 5:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.9" parsed="|Rom|5|9|0|0" passage="Rom 5:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30-Rom.8.33" parsed="|Rom|8|30|8|33" passage="Rom 8:30-33">8:30-33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.11" parsed="|1Cor|6|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:11">I Cor. 6:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.11" parsed="|Gal|3|11|0|0" passage="Gal 3:11">3:11</scripRef>. In the
case
of this word, just as in that of<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p3.12">
hitsdik</span>
the forensic
meaning of the term is proved by the
following facts:
(a) in many instances it can bear no other sense, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.20-Rom.3.28" parsed="|Rom|3|20|3|28" passage="Rom. 3:20-28">Rom. 3:20-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.5-Rom.4.7" parsed="|Rom|4|5|4|7" passage="Rom 4:5-7">4:5-7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.1" parsed="|Rom|5|1|0|0" passage="Rom 5:1">5:1</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.11" parsed="|Gal|3|11|0|0" passage="Gal 3:11">3:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.4" parsed="|Gal|5|4|0|0" passage="Gal 5:4">5:4</scripRef>; (b) it is placed in antithetic relation to "condemnation" in
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.19" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.33" parsed="|Rom|8|33|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:33">Rom. 8:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.34" parsed="|Rom|8|34|0|0" passage="Rom 8:34">34</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.21" osisRef="Bible:Rom.100" parsed="|Rom|100|0|0|0" passage="Rom 100">c</scripRef>) equivalent and interchangeable expressions convey a
judicial or legal idea,
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.22" osisRef="Bible:John.3.18" parsed="|John|3|18|0|0" passage="John 3:18">John 3:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.23" osisRef="Bible:John.5.24" parsed="|John|5|24|0|0" passage="John 5:24">5:24</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.24" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.6" parsed="|Rom|4|6|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:6">Rom. 4:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.25" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.7" parsed="|Rom|4|7|0|0" passage="Rom 4:7">7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p3.26" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.19" parsed="|2Cor|5|19|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:19">II Cor. 5:19</scripRef>; and (d) if it does not bear this meaning, there is
no distinction between justification and sanctification.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p4" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p4.1">
The word dikaios.</span>
This word,
connected with the verb just discussed, is peculiar in
that it never expresses what a thing is in itself, but always what it is
in relation to
something else, to some standard outside of it, to which it ought to
correspond. In that
respect it
differs from<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p4.2">
agathos.</span>
In classical
Greek, for instance,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p4.3">
dikaios</span>
is applied to a
wagon, a horse, or something else to indicate that it is fit for its
intended use.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p4.4">
Agathos </span>
expresses the idea that a thing in itself answers to the ideal. In
Scripture a man is called
<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p4.5"> dikaios</span>
when, in the judgment of God, his relation to the law is what it ought
to be, or
when his life is such as is required by his judicial relation to God.
This may include the
idea that he is good, but only from a certain point of view, namely,
that of his judicial
relation to God.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p5" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p5.1">
The noun dikaiosis, justification.</span>
This is found
in only two places in the New
Testament,
namely, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.25" parsed="|Rom|4|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:25">Rom. 4:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.18" parsed="|Rom|5|18|0|0" passage="Rom 5:18">5:18</scripRef>. It denotes the act of God's declaring men free from
guilt and acceptable to Him. The resulting state
is denoted by the word<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p5.4">
dikaiosune. </span>
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p6" shownumber="no">3.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p6.1">
The resulting idea of justification.</span> Our word<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p6.2">
justification</span> (from the Latin<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p6.3"> justificare</span>
composed of<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p6.4"> justus</span> and<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p6.5"> facere</span>, and therefore meaning "to make righteous"), just as the
Holland<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p6.6">
rechtvaardigmaking</span>, is apt to give the impression that justification
denotes a
change that is brought about in man, which is not the case. In the use
of the English
word the danger is not so great, because the people in
general do not understand its
derivation, and in the Holland language the danger may be averted by
employing the
related words<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p6.7">
rechtvaardigen</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p6.8">
rechtvaardiging.</span>
"To justify" in the Scriptural sense of the word, is to effect an objective relation, the state of
righteousness, by a judicial
sentence. This can be done in a twofold way: (a) by bringing into
account the actual
subjective condition of a person (to justify the just or the righteous),
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.21" parsed="|Jas|2|21|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:21">Jas. 2:21</scripRef>; or (b) by
imputing to a person the righteousness of another, that is, by
accounting him righteous
though he is inwardly unrighteous. The latter is the usual sense of
justification in the
New Testament. </p>

<h4 id="vi.ix-p6.10">B. THE DOCTRINE OF JUSTIFICATION INHISTORY.</h4>
<p id="vi.ix-p7" shownumber="no">The doctrine of justification by faith was not always
clearly understood. In fact, it
did not find its classical expression until the days of the Reformation.
We shall briefly
consider:</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p8" shownumber="no">1. THE DOCTRINE BEFORE THE REFORMATION. Some of the
earliest Church Fathers
already speak of justification by faith, but it is quite evident that
they had no clear
understanding of it and of its relation to faith. Moreover, they did not
sharply
distinguish between regeneration and justification. A rather common
representation
was that regeneration takes place in baptism and includes the
forgiveness of sins. Even
Augustine does not seem to have had an accurate understanding of
justification as a
legal act, as distinguished from the moral process of sanctification,
though it is quite
evident from the whole tenor of his teachings and also from separate
statements, that he
regarded the grace of God in the redemption of sinners as free,
sovereign, and
efficacious, and in no way dependent on any merits of men. The
confounding of
justification and sanctification continued into the Middle Ages and
gradually acquired a
more positive and doctrinal aspect. According to the prevailing
teachings of the
Scholastics, justification includes two elements: man's sins are
forgiven, and he is made
just or righteous. There was a difference of opinion as to the logical
order of these two
elements, some reversing the order just indicated. This was also done by
Thomas
Aquinas, and his view became the prevalent one in the Roman Catholic
Church. Grace
is infused in man. whereby he is made just, and partly on the basis of
this infused grace,
his sins are pardoned. This was already an approach to the evil doctrine
of merit, which
was gradually developed in the Middle Ages in connection with the
doctrine of
justification. The idea found favor ever-increasingly that man is
justified in part on the
basis of his own good works. The confounding of justification and
sanctification also led
to divergent opinions on another point. Some of the Scholastics speak of
justification as
an instantaneous act of God, while others describe it as a process. In
the Canons and
Decrees of the
Council of Trent we find the following in Chap. XVI, Canon IX: "If any
one saith, that by faith alone the impious is justified in such wise as
to mean, that
nothing else is required to co-operate in order to the obtaining of the
grace of
justification, and that it is not in any way necessary, that he be prepared
and disposed
by the movement of his own will: let him be anathema." And Canon
XXIV speaks of an
increase in justification and therefore conceives of it as a process:
"If any one saith, that
the justice received is not preserved and also increased before God
through good works; but that the said works are merely the fruits and signs of
justification obtained, but not a
cause of the increase thereof: let him be anathema."
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p9" shownumber="no">2. THE DOCTRINE AFTER THE REFORMATION. The doctrine
of justification was the great
material principle of the Reformation. With respect to the nature of
justification the
Reformers corrected the error of confounding justification with
sanctification by
stressing its legal character and representing it as an act of God's
free grace, whereby He
pardons our sins and accepts us as righteous in His sight, but does not
change us
inwardly. As far as the ground of justification is concerned, they
rejected the idea of
Rome that this lies, at least in part, in the inherent righteousness of
the regenerate and
in good works, and substituted for it the doctrine that it is found only
in the imputed
righteousness of the Redeemer. And in connection with the means of
justification they emphasized the fact that man is justified freely by that
faith which receives and rests in
Christ only for salvation. Moreover, they rejected the doctrine of a
progressive
justification, and held that it was instantaneous and complete, and did
not depend for
its completion on some further satisfaction for sin. They were opposed
by the Socinians,
who held that sinners obtain pardon and acceptance with God, through His
mercy, on
the ground of their own repentance and reformation. The Arminians do not
all agree on
the subject, but in general it may be said that they limit the scope of
justification, so as to
include only the forgiveness of sins on the basis of the passive
obedience of Christ, and
to exclude the adoption of the sinner in favor by God or the basis of
the imputed
righteousness of Jesus Christ. The sinner is accounted righteous only on
the basis of his
faith or his life of obedience. The Neonomians in England were in
general agreement
with them on this point. For Schleiermacher and Ritschl justification
meant little more
than the sinner's becoming conscious of his mistake in thinking that God
was angry
with him. And in modern liberal theology we again meet with the idea that
God
justifies the sinner by the moral improvement of his life. This
conception of it is found,
for instance, in Bushnell's<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p9.1">; Vicarious Sacrifice</span> and in Macintosh's<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p9.2">
Theology as an Empirical Science. </span>
</p>

<h4 id="vi.ix-p9.3">C. THE NATURE AND CHARACTERISTICS OF JUSTIFICATION</h4>
<p id="vi.ix-p10" shownumber="no"><span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p10.1">Justification is a judicial act of God, in which He declares, on the basis of the
righteousness of Jesus Christ, that all the claims of the law are satisfied with respect to the sinner.</span> It is unique in
the application of the work of redemption in that it is a judicial act
of God, a declaration
respecting the sinner, and not an act or process of renewal, such as
regeneration,
conversion, and sanctification. While it has respect to the sinner, it
does not change his
inner life. It does not affect his condition, but his state, and in that
respect differs from
all the other principal parts of the order of salvation. It involves the
forgiveness of sins,
and restoration to divine favor. The Arminian holds that it includes
only the former, and
not the latter; but the Bible clearly teaches that the fruit of
justification is much more
than pardon.
They who are justified have "peace with God," "assurance of
salvation,"
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.1-Rom.5.10" parsed="|Rom|5|1|5|10" passage="Rom. 5:1-10">Rom. 5:1-10</scripRef>, and
an "inheritance among them that are sanctified," <scripRef id="vi.ix-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.26.18" parsed="|Acts|26|18|0|0" passage="Acts 26:18">Acts 26:18</scripRef>. The following points of difference between justification and sanctification
should be
carefully noted:
</p>
<p id="vi.ix-p11" shownumber="no">1. Justification removes the guilt of sin and restores
the sinner to all the filial rights involved in his state as a child of God,
including an eternal inheritance. Sanctification
removes the pollution of sin and renews the sinner ever-increasingly in
conformity with  the
image of God. </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p12" shownumber="no">2. Justification takes place outside of the sinner in the
tribunal of God, and does not
change his inner life, though the sentence is brought home to him
subjectively.
Sanctification, on the other hand, takes place in the inner life of man
and gradually
affects his
whole being. </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p13" shownumber="no">3. Justification takes place once for all. It is not
repeated, neither is it a process; it is
complete at once and for all time. There is no more or less in
justification; man is either
fully justified,
or he is not justified at all. In distinction from it sanctification is a
continuous process, which is never completed in this life.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p14" shownumber="no">4. While the meritorious cause of both lies in the merits
of Christ, there is a
difference in the efficient cause. Speaking economically, God the Father
declares the
sinner righteous, and God the Holy Spirit sanctifies him.
</p>

<h4 id="vi.ix-p14.1">D. THE ELEMENTS OF JUSTIFICATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.ix-p15" shownumber="no">We distinguish two elements in justification, the one
negative, and the other  positive.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p16" shownumber="no">1.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p16.1">
The negative element.</span>
There is first of all a negative
element in justification, namely,
the remission of sins on the ground of the atoning work of Jesus Christ.
This element is
based more particularly, though not exclusively, on the passive
obedience of the
Saviour. Calvin and some of the older Reformed theologians occasionally
speak as if
this were the whole of justification. This is partly due to the Old
Testament
representation, in which this side of justification is decidedly in the
foreground, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.1" parsed="|Ps|32|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 32:1">Ps. 32:1</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.43.25" parsed="|Isa|43|25|0|0" passage="Isa. 43:25">Isa. 43:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.44.22" parsed="|Isa|44|22|0|0" passage="Isa 44:22">44:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.34" parsed="|Jer|31|34|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:34">Jer. 31:34</scripRef>, and partly to their reaction against
Rome, which did not do
justice to the element of grace and free pardon. In opposition to
Arminianism, however,
Reformed theology has always maintained that justification is more than
pardon. That
the forgiveness of sins is an important element in justification is
evident, not only from
the Old, but also from the New Testament, as appears from such passages
as <scripRef id="vi.ix-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.5-Rom.4.8" parsed="|Rom|4|5|4|8" passage="Rom. 4:5-8">Rom. 4:5-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.18" parsed="|Rom|5|18|0|0" passage="Rom 5:18">5:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.19" parsed="|Rom|5|19|0|0" passage="Rom 5:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.17" parsed="|Gal|2|17|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:17">Gal. 2:17</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p17" shownumber="no">The pardon granted in justification applies to all sins, past, present,
and future, and
thus involves the removal of all guilt and of every penalty. This
follows from the fact
that justification does not admit of repetition, and from such passages
as <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.21" parsed="|Rom|5|21|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:21">Rom. 5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.1" parsed="|Rom|8|1|0|0" passage="Rom 8:1">8:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.32-Rom.8.34" parsed="|Rom|8|32|8|34" passage="Rom 8:32-34">32-34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.14" parsed="|Heb|10|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:14">Heb. 10:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.12" parsed="|Ps|103|12|0|0" passage="Ps. 103:12">Ps. 103:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.44.22" parsed="|Isa|44|22|0|0" passage="Isa. 44:22">Isa. 44:22</scripRef>, which assure us that no one can lay anything
to the charge of the justified man, that he is exempt from condemnation,
and that he is
constituted an heir of eternal life. It is also implied in the answer to
the 60th question of
our Heidelberg Catechism. This conception of justification, though
eminently Scriptural,
is not devoid of
difficulty. Believers continue to sin after they are justified, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.2" parsed="|Jas|3|2|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:2">Jas. 3:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.8" parsed="|1John|1|8|0|0" passage="I John 1:8">I John 1:8</scripRef>, and, as Scripture examples clearly show, frequently fall into grievous
sins. Hence it
is no wonder that Barth likes to stress the fact that the justified man
remains a sinner,
though a justified sinner. Christ taught His disciples to pray daily for
the forgiveness of
sins, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.12" parsed="|Matt|6|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 6:12">Matt. 6:12</scripRef>, and the Bible saints are often pleading for pardon and
obtaining it, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.5" parsed="|Ps|32|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 32:5">Ps. 32:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.1-Ps.51.4" parsed="|Ps|51|1|51|4" passage="Ps 51:1-4">51:1-4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.130.3" parsed="|Ps|130|3|0|0" passage="Ps 130:3">130:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.130.4" parsed="|Ps|130|4|0|0" passage="Ps 130:4">4</scripRef>. Consequently it is not surprising that some felt
constrained to speak
of a repeated justification. The Church of Rome infers from the data to
which we called
attention that believers must in some way atone for sins committed after
baptism, and
therefore also believes in an increasing justification. Antinomians, on
the other hand,
desiring to honour the unlimited pardoning grace of God, maintain that
the sins of
believers are not accounted as such to the new man but only to the old,
and that it is
quite unnecessary for them to pray for the forgiveness of sins. For fear
of this
Antinomian position even some Reformed theologians had scruples about
teaching that
the future sins of believers are also pardoned in justification, and
spoke of a repeated
and even daily justification.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.ix-p17.14" n="83" place="foot">Cf. Brakel,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p17.15"> Redelijke Godsdienst</span> I, pp. 876 ff.</note>
The usual position of Reformed theology,
however, is that
in justification God indeed removes the guilt, but not the culpability
of sin, that is, He
removes the sinner's just amenability to punishment, but not the
inherent guiltiness of
whatever sins he may continue to perform. The latter remains and
therefore always
produces in believers a feeling of guilt, of separation from God, of
sorrow, of
repentance, and so on. Hence they feel the need of confessing their
sins, even the sins of
their youth, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p17.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.25.7" parsed="|Ps|25|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 25:7">Ps. 25:7</scripRef>: 51:5-9. The believer who is really conscious of
his sin feels within
him an urge to confess it and to seek the comforting assurance of
forgiveness. Moreover,
such confession and prayer is not only a subjectively felt need, but
also an objective
necessity. Justification is essentially an objective declaration respecting
the sinner in the
tribunal of God, but it is not merely that; it is also an<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p17.17">
actus transiens</span>, passing into the
consciousness of the believer. The divine sentence of acquittal is
brought home to the
sinner and awakens the joyous consciousness of the forgiveness of sins
and of favor
with God. Now this consciousness of pardon and of a renewed filial
relationship is often disturbed and obscured by sin, and is again quickened and
strengthened by
confession and prayer, and by a renewed exercise of faith.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p18" shownumber="no">2. THE POSITIVE ELEMENT. There is also a positive element in justification which is
based more particularly on the active obedience of Christ. Naturally
they who, like
Piscator and the Arminians, deny the imputation of the active obedience
of Christ to the
sinner, thereby also deny the positive element in justification. According
to them
justification leaves man without any claim on life eternal, simply
places him in the
position of Adam before the fall, though according to the Arminians
under a different
law, the law of evangelical obedience, and leaves it to man to merit
acceptance with God
and eternal life by faith and obedience. But it is quite evident from
Scripture that
justification is more than mere pardon. Unto Joshua, the high priest,
who stood, as the
representative of Israel, with filthy garments before the Lord, Jehovah
said: "Behold, I
have caused thine iniquity to pass from thee (negative element), and I
will clothe thee
with rich apparel" (positive element), <scripRef id="vi.ix-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:Zech.3.4" parsed="|Zech|3|4|0|0" passage="Zech. 3:4">Zech. 3:4</scripRef>. According to <scripRef id="vi.ix-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.26.18" parsed="|Acts|26|18|0|0" passage="Acts 26:18">Acts
26:18</scripRef> we obtain by faith "remission of sins<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p18.3">
and an inheritance among them that are sanctified.</span>" <scripRef id="vi.ix-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.1" parsed="|Rom|5|1|0|0" passage="Romans 5:1">Romans 5:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.2" parsed="|Rom|5|2|0|0" passage="Romans 5:2">2</scripRef>
teaches us that justification
by faith brings not only peace with God,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p18.6">
but also access to God and joy in the hope of glory.</span>
And according
to <scripRef id="vi.ix-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:5">Gal. 4:5</scripRef> Christ was born under the law
also "<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p18.8">
that we might receive the adoption of sons."</span>
In this
positive element two parts may be
distinguished:</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p19" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p19.1">
The adoption of children.</span>
Believers are
first of all children of God by adoption. This
implies, of course, that they are not children of God by nature, as
modern liberals would
have us believe, for one cannot well adopt his own children. This
adoption is a legal act,
whereby God places the sinner in the status of a child, but does not
change him
inwardly any more than parents by the mere act of adoption change the
inner life of an
adopted child. The change that is effected concerns the relation in
which man stands to God. By virtue of their adoption believers are as it were
initiated into the very family of
God, come under the law of filial obedience, and at the same time become
entitled to all
the privileges of sonship. The sonship by adoption should be carefully
distinguished
from the moral sonship of believers, their sonship by regeneration and
sanctification.
They are not only adopted to be children of God, but are also born of
God. Naturally
these two cannot be separated. They are mentioned together in <scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:John.1.12" parsed="|John|1|12|0|0" passage="John 1:12">John 1:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.15" parsed="|Rom|8|15|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:15">Rom. 8:15</scripRef>.16; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.26" parsed="|Gal|3|26|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:26">Gal. 3:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.27" parsed="|Gal|3|27|0|0" passage="Gal 3:27">27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal 4:5">4:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.6" parsed="|Gal|4|6|0|0" passage="Gal 4:6">6</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.15" parsed="|Rom|8|15|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:15">Rom. 8:15</scripRef> the term<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p19.9">
huiothesia</span>
(from<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p19.10"> huios</span> and<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p19.11"> tithenai</span>) is used,
which literally means "placing as a son," and in classical
Greek is always employed to
denote an objective placing in the status of a child. The following
verse contains the
word<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p19.12">
tekna</span>
(from<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p19.13"> tikto</span>, "to beget"), which designates believers as those who are
begotten
of God. In <scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.14" osisRef="Bible:John.1.12" parsed="|John|1|12|0|0" passage="John 1:12">John 1:12</scripRef> the idea of adoption is expressed by the words,
"But as many as
received Him, to them gave He the right (<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p19.15">exousian edoken</span>) to become children of God."
The Greek expression here used means "to give legal right."
Immediately thereafter, in
the 13th verse, the writer speaks of ethical sonship by regeneration.
The connection
between the two is clearly brought out in <scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.16" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.5" parsed="|Gal|4|5|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:5">Gal. 4:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p19.17" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.6" parsed="|Gal|4|6|0|0" passage="Gal 4:6">6</scripRef> . . . "that we
might receive the
adoption of sons. And because ye are sons (by adoption), God sent forth
the Spirit of
His Son into our hearts, crying, Abba, Father." That Spirit
regenerates and sanctifies us
and prompts us to address God full of confidence as Father.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p20" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p20.1">
The right to eternal life.</span>
This element is virtually included in the preceding one.
When sinners are adopted to be children of God, they are invested with
all the legal
filial rights, and become heirs of God and co-heirs with Christ, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.17" parsed="|Rom|8|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:17">Rom. 8:17</scripRef>. This means first of all that they become heirs of all the blessings of
salvation in the present life, the
most fundamental of which is described in the words, "the promise
of the Spirit," that
is, the promised blessing in the form of the Spirit, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.14" parsed="|Gal|3|14|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:14">Gal. 3:14</scripRef>; and in
the slightly different
phrase,
"the Spirit of His Son," <scripRef id="vi.ix-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.6" parsed="|Gal|4|6|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:6">Gal. 4:6</scripRef>. And in and with the Spirit they
receive all the
gifts of Christ. But this is not all; their inheritance also includes
the eternal blessings of the future life. The glory of which Paul speaks in
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.17" parsed="|Rom|8|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:17">Rom. 8:17</scripRef> follows after the sufferings
of the present time. According to <scripRef id="vi.ix-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.23" parsed="|Rom|8|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:23">Rom. 8:23</scripRef> the redemption of the body,
which is there
called "the
adoption," also belongs to the future inheritance. And in the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p20.7">
ordo salutis</span>
of
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom. 8:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30" parsed="|Rom|8|30|0|0" passage="Rom 8:30">30</scripRef>
glorification connects up immediately with justification. Being justified by
faith, believers are heirs of life eternal.
</p>

<h4 id="vi.ix-p20.10">E. THE SPHERE IN WHICH JUSTIFICATION OCCURS.</h4>
<p id="vi.ix-p21" shownumber="no">The question as to the sphere in which justification
occurs, must be answered with
discrimination. It is customary to distinguish between an<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p21.1">
active</span>
and a<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p21.2">
passive</span>, also called
an<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p21.3">
objective</span>
and a<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p21.4">
subjective</span> ,
justification, each having its own sphere. </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p22" shownumber="no">1. ACTIVE OR OBJECTIVE JUSTIFICATION. This is justification in the most fundamental
sense of the word. It is basic to what is called subjective
justification, and consists in a
declaration which God makes respecting the sinner, and this declaration
is made in the
tribunal of God. This declaration is not a declaration in which God
simply acquits the
sinner, without taking any account of the claims of justice, but is
rather a divine
declaration that, in the case of the sinner under consideration, the
demands of the law
are met. The sinner is declared righteous in view of the fact that the
righteousness of
Christ is imputed to him. In this transaction God appears, not as an
absolute Sovereign
who simply sets the law aside, but as a righteous Judge, who
acknowledges the infinite
merits of Christ as a sufficient basis for justification, and as a
gracious Father, who freely
forgives and accepts the sinner. This active justification logically
precedes faith and
passive
justification. We<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p22.1">
believe</span>
the forgiveness
of sins. </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p23" shownumber="no">2. PASSIVE OR SUBJECTIVE JUSTIFICATION. Passive or subjective justification takes place
in the heart or conscience of the sinner. A purely objective
justification that is not
brought home to the sinner would not answer the purpose. The granting of
a pardon would mean nothing to a prisoner, unless the glad tidings were
communicated to him
and the doors of the prison were opened. Moreover, it is exactly at this
point that the
sinner learns to understand better than anywhere else that salvation is
of free grace.
When the Bible speaks of justification, it usually refers to what is
known as passive
justification. It should be borne in mind, however, that the two cannot
be separated. The
one is based on the other. The distinction is simply made to facilitate
the proper
understanding of the act of justification. Logically, passive
justification follows faith; we
are justified by
faith. </p>

<h4 id="vi.ix-p23.1">F. THE TIME OF JUSTIFICATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.ix-p24" shownumber="no">Some theologians separate active and passive
justification temporally. The active
justification is then said to have taken place in eternity or in the
resurrection of Christ,
while passive justification takes place by faith and therefore, it is
said, follows the other
in a temporal sense. We shall consider successively justification from
eternity,
justification in the resurrection of Christ, and justification by faith.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p25" shownumber="no">1. JUSTIFICATION FROM ETERNITY. The Antinomians held that the justification of the
sinner took place in eternity, or in the resurrection of Christ. They
either confounded it with the eternal decree of election, or with the objective
justification of Christ when He
was raised from the dead. They did not properly distinguish between the divine
purpose in eternity and its execution in time, nor between the work of
Christ in
procuring, and that of the Holy Spirit in applying the blessings of
redemption.
According to this position we are justified even before we believe,
though we are
unconscious of it, and faith simply conveys to us the declaration of
this fact. Moreover,
the fact that our sins were imputed to Christ made Him personally a
sinner, and the
imputation of His righteousness to us makes us personally righteous, so
that God can
see no sin in believers at all. Some Reformed theologians also speak of
justification from
eternity, but at the same time refuse to subscribe to the Antinomian
construction of this doctrine. The grounds on which they believe in justification
from eternity deserve brief
consideration.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p26" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p26.1"> Grounds for the doctrine of justification from eternity. </span></p>

<p id="vi.ix-p27" shownumber="no">(1) Scripture speaks of a grace or mercy of God which is
from ever-lasting, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p27.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.25.6" parsed="|Ps|25|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 25:6">Ps. 25:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p27.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.103.17" parsed="|Ps|103|17|0|0" passage="Ps 103:17">103:17</scripRef>. Now all grace or mercy that is from eternity must have as its
judicial or legal
basis a justification that is from eternity. But in answer to this it
may be said that there
are eternal mercies and lovingkindnesses of God which are not based on
any
justification of the sinner, as, for instance, His plan of redemption,
the gift of His Son,
and the willing suretyship of Christ in the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p27.3">
pactum salutis. </span>
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p28" shownumber="no">(2) In the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p28.1">
pactum salutis</span>
the guilt of the
sins of the elect was transferred to Christ,
and the righteousness of Christ was imputed to them. This means that the
burden of sin
was lifted from their shoulders and that they were justified. Now there
is no doubt
about it that there was a certain imputation of the righteousness of
Christ to the sinner
in the counsel of redemption, but not all imputation can be called
justification in the
Scriptural sense of the term. We must distinguish between what was
merely ideal in the
counsel of God and what is realized in the course of history.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p29" shownumber="no">(3) The sinner receives the initial grace of regeneration
on the basis of the imputed
righteousness of Christ. Consequently, the merits of Christ must have
been imputed to
him before his regeneration. But while this consideration leads to the
conclusion that
justification logically precedes regeneration, it does not prove the
priority of justification
in a temporal sense. The sinner can receive the grace of regeneration on
the basis of a
justification, ideally existing in the counsel of God and certain to be
realized in the life  of
the sinner. </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p30" shownumber="no">(4) Children also need justification, in order to be
saved, and yet it is quite
impossible that they should experience justification by faith. But
though it is perfectly
true that children, who have not yet come to maturity, cannot experience
passive
justification, they can be actively justified in the tribunal of God and
thus be in possession of that which is absolutely essential.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p31" shownumber="no">(5) Justification is an immanent act of God, and as such
must be from eternity. It is
hardly correct, however, to speak of justification as an<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p31.1">
actus immanens</span>
in God; it is rather an<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p31.2"> actus transiens</span>, just as creation, incarnation, and so on. The advocates of
justification
from eternity feel the weight of this consideration, and therefore
hasten to give us the
assurance that they do not mean to teach that the elect are justified
from eternity
<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p31.3">
actualiter</span>, but only in the intention of God, in the divine decree. This leads us
back to the
usual distinction between the counsel of God and its execution. If this
justification in the
intention of God warrants our speaking of a justification from eternity,
then there is
absolutely no reason why we should not speak of a creation from eternity
as well.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p32" shownumber="no">.b.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p32.1"> Objections against the doctrine of justification from eternity. </span></p>

<p id="vi.ix-p33" shownumber="no">(1) The Bible teaches uniformly that justification takes
place by faith or out of faith.
This, of course, applies to passive or subjective justification, which,
however, cannot be
separated temporally from active or objective justification except in
the case of children.
But if justification takes place by faith, it certainly does not precede
faith in a temporal
sense. Now it is true that the advocates of a justification from
eternity also speak of a
justification by faith. But in their representation this can only mean
that man by faith
becomes conscious of what God has done in eternity.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p34" shownumber="no">(2)
In <scripRef id="vi.ix-p34.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.29" parsed="|Rom|8|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:29">Rom. 8:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p34.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30" parsed="|Rom|8|30|0|0" passage="Rom 8:30">30</scripRef>, where we find some of the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p34.3">
scalae</span>
of the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p34.4">
ordo salutis</span>, justification
stands between two acts of God in time, namely, calling and
glorification, which begins
in time but is completed in a future eternity. And these three together
are the result of
two others which are explicitly indicated as eternal. Dr. Kuyper is not
warranted in
saying that <scripRef id="vi.ix-p34.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.30" parsed="|Rom|8|30|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:30">Rom. 8:30</scripRef> refers to what took place with the regenerated
before they were
born, as even Dr. De Moor, who also believes in a justification from
eternity, is quite
willing to admit.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.ix-p34.6" n="84" place="foot">Cf. his<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p34.7"> De Rechtvaardigmaking Van Eeuwigheid</span>, p. 20.</note></p>

<p id="vi.ix-p35" shownumber="no">(3) In teaching justification from eternity, the decree
of God respecting the
justification of
the sinner, which is an<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p35.1">
actus
immanens</span> ,
is identified with justification
itself, which is an<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p35.2">
actus transiens.</span>
This only leads to
confusion. What took place in the
<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p35.3">pactum salutis</span>
cannot be identified with what results from it. All imputation is not
yet
justification.
Justification is one of the fruits of Christ's redemptive work, applied to
believers by the Holy Spirit. But the Spirit did not and could not apply
this or any other
fruit of the work of Christ from eternity.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p36" shownumber="no">2. JUSTIFICATION IN THE RESURRECTION OF CHRIST. The idea that
sinners are in some
sense of the word justified in the resurrection of Christ was stressed
by some
Antinomians, is taught by those Reformed theologians who believe in a
justification
from eternity, and is also held by some other Reformed scholars. This
view is based on
the following grounds:
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p37" shownumber="no">a. By His atoning work Christ satisfied all the demands
of the law for His people. In
the resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead the Father publicly
declared that all the
requirements of the law were met for all the elect and thereby justified
them. But here
too careful distinction is required. Even though it be true that there
was an objective
justification of Christ and of the whole body of Christ in His
resurrection, this should
not be confounded with the justification of the sinner of which
Scripture speaks. It is not true that, when Christ rendered full satisfaction to the Father for all
His people, their
guilt naturally terminated. A penal debt is not like a pecuniary debt in
this respect. Even
after the payment of a ransom, the removal of guilt may depend on
certain conditions,
and does not follow as a matter of course. The elect are not personally
justified in the
Scriptural sense until they accept Christ by faith and thus appropriate
His merits.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p38" shownumber="no">b. In <scripRef id="vi.ix-p38.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.25" parsed="|Rom|4|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:25">Rom. 4:25</scripRef> we read that Christ was "raised up
for (<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p38.2">dia</span>, causal, on account of)
our justification," that is, to effect our justification. Now it is
undoubtedly true that<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p38.3">
dia </span> with the accusative is causal here. At the same time it need not be
retrospective, but can
also be prospective and therefore mean "with a view to our
justification," which is
equivalent to saying, "in order that we may be justified." The
retrospective
interpretation would be in conflict with the immediately following
context, which
clearly shows (1) that Paul is not thinking of the objective
justification of the whole body
of Christ, but of the personal justification of sinners; and (2) that he
conceives of this as
taking place through faith.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p39" shownumber="no">c. In <scripRef id="vi.ix-p39.1" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.19" parsed="|2Cor|5|19|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:19">II Cor. 5:19</scripRef> we read: "God was in Christ
reconciling the world unto Himself,
not reckoning unto them their trespasses." From this passage the
inference is drawn that
the objective reconciliation of the world in Christ involves the
non-imputation of sin to
the sinner. But this interpretation is not correct. The evident meaning
of the apostle is:
God was in Christ reconciling the world unto Himself, as appears from
the fact that He
does not impute to men their sins, and that He has entrusted to His
servants the word
of reconciliation. Notice that<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p39.2">
me logizomenos</span>
(present tense) refers to what is constantly
going on. This cannot be conceived as a part of the objective
reconciliation, for then the
following clause, "and having committed to us the word of
reconciliation," would also
have to be so interpreted, and this is quite impossible.
In connection with this matter it may be said that we can
speak of a justification of
the body of Christ as a whole in His resurrection, but this is purely
objective and should
not be confounded with the personal justification of the sinner.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p40" shownumber="no">3. JUSTIFICATION BY FAITH.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p41" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p41.1"> The relation of faith to justification.</span> Scripture says
that we are justified<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p41.2">
dia pisteos, ek
pisteos, or pistei</span>
(dative), <scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.25" parsed="|Rom|3|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:25">Rom. 3:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.28" parsed="|Rom|3|28|0|0" passage="Rom 3:28">28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.30" parsed="|Rom|3|30|0|0" passage="Rom 3:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.1" parsed="|Rom|5|1|0|0" passage="Rom 5:1">5:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.8" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.9" parsed="|Phil|3|9|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:9">Phil. 3:9</scripRef>. The preposition<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p41.9">
dia </span>
stresses the fact that faith is the instrument by which
we appropriate Christ and His
righteousness. The preposition<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p41.10">
ek</span>
indicates that faith logically
precedes our personal
justification, so that this, as it were, originates in faith. The dative
is used in an
instrumental sense. Scripture never says that we are justified<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p41.11">
dia ten pistin</span>, on account of
faith. This means that faith is never represented as the ground of our
justification. If this
were the case, faith would have to be regarded as a meritorious work of
man. And this
would be the introduction of the doctrine of justification by works, which
the apostle
opposes
consistently, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.21" parsed="|Rom|3|21|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:21">Rom. 3:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.27" parsed="|Rom|3|27|0|0" passage="Rom 3:27">27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.28" parsed="|Rom|3|28|0|0" passage="Rom 3:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.3" parsed="|Rom|4|3|0|0" passage="Rom 4:3">4:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.16" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.4" parsed="|Rom|4|4|0|0" passage="Rom 4:4">4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.17" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.18" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.21" parsed="|Gal|2|21|0|0" passage="Gal 2:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.19" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.11" parsed="|Gal|3|11|0|0" passage="Gal 3:11">3:11</scripRef>. We are told indeed
that
Abraham's faith was reckoned unto him for righteousness, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.3" parsed="|Rom|4|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:3">Rom. 4:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.21" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.9" parsed="|Rom|4|9|0|0" passage="Rom 4:9">9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.22" parsed="|Rom|4|22|0|0" passage="Rom 4:22">22</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p41.23" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.6" parsed="|Gal|3|6|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:6">Gal. 3:6</scripRef>, but in
view of the whole argument this surely cannot mean that in his case
faith itself as a
work took the place of the righteousness of God in Christ. The apostle
does not leave it
doubtful that, strictly speaking, only the righteousness of Christ
imputed to us, is the
ground of our justification. But faith is so thoroughly receptive in the
appropriation of
the merits of Christ, that it can be put figuratively for the merits of
Christ which it
receives. "Faith" then is equivalent to the contents of faith,
that is, to the merits or the righteousness of Christ.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p42" shownumber="no">It is often said, however, that the teachings of James
conflict with those of Paul on
this point, and clearly support the doctrine of justification by works
in <scripRef id="vi.ix-p42.1" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.14-Jas.2.26" parsed="|Jas|2|14|2|26" passage="Jas. 2:14-26">Jas. 2:14-26</scripRef>.
Various attempts have been made to harmonize the two. Some proceed on
the
assumption that both Paul and James speak of the justification of the
sinner, but that James stresses the fact that a faith which does not manifest
itself in good works is no
true faith, and therefore is not a faith that justifies. This is
undoubtedly true. The
difference between the representations of Paul and James is
unquestionably due partly
to the nature of the adversaries with which they had to deal. Paul had to
contend with
legalists who sought to base their justification, at least in part, on
the works of the law.
James, on the other hand, joined issue with Antinomians, who claimed to
have faith, but
whose faith was merely an intellectual assent to the truth (2:19), and
who denied the
necessity of good works. Therefore he stresses the fact that faith
without works is a
dead faith, and consequently not at all a faith that justifies. The
faith that justifies is a
faith that is fruitful in good works. But it may be objected that this
does not explain the whole difficulty, since James explicitly says in verse 24
that a man is justified by works
and not only by faith, and illustrates this by the example of Abraham,
who was
"justified
by works in that he offered up Isaac" (verse 21). "Thou seest,"
says he in verse
24, "that faith wrought with his works, and by works was faith made
perfect." It is quite
evident, however, that in this case the writer is not speaking of the
justification of the
sinner, for Abraham the sinner was justified long before he offered up
Isaac (cf. <scripRef id="vi.ix-p42.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.15" parsed="|Gen|15|0|0|0" passage="Gen. 15">Gen. 15</scripRef>),
but of a further justification of the believing Abraham. True faith will
manifest itself in
good works, and these works will testify before men of the righteousness
(that is, the
righteousness of life) of him that possesses such a faith. The
justification of the just by
works confirms the justification by faith. If James actually meant to
say in this section of
his letter that
Abraham and Rahab were justified with the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p42.3"> justificatio peccatoris</span>, on the
basis of their good works, he would not only be in conflict with
Paul, but would also be
self-contradictory, for he explicitly says that Abraham was justified by
faith.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p43" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p43.1">
Theological terms to express the relation of faith to
justification.</span>
There are especially
three terms
that come into consideration here.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p44" shownumber="no">(1)<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p44.1">
Instrumental cause.</span>
This name
was very generally used at first, but afterwards met
with considerable opposition. The question was raised, whether it was
God's
instrument or
man's. And it was said: It cannot be God's, since the faith referred to is
not God's faith;
neither can it be man's, for justification is not a deed of man, but of
God. We should bear in mind, however, (a) that according to the plain
teaching of the
Bible we are justified by faith,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p44.2">
dia pisteos</span>
and that this<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p44.3">
dia</span>
can only be understood in an
instrumental
sense, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p44.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.28" parsed="|Rom|3|28|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:28">Rom. 3:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p44.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.8" parsed="|Gal|3|8|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:8">Gal. 3:8</scripRef>; (b) that the Bible explicitly says that<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p44.6">
God</span>
justifies
the sinner by faith, and therefore represents faith as God's instrument,
<scripRef id="vi.ix-p44.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.30" parsed="|Rom|3|30|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:30">Rom. 3:30</scripRef>; and
(c) that faith is also represented as the instrument of man, as the
means by which he
receives justification, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p44.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>. Faith can be regarded as the
instrument of God in a
twofold sense. It is a gift of God wrought in the sinner unto
justification. Moreover, by
working faith in the sinner, God carries the declaration of pardon into
his heart or
conscience. But faith is also an instrument of man by which he
appropriates Christ and
all His precious gifts, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p44.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.5" parsed="|Rom|4|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:5">Rom. 4:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p44.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>. This is also the representation
of the matter
which we find in
the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p44.11">
Belgic Confession</span>,<note anchored="yes" id="vi.ix-p44.12" n="85" place="foot">Art. XXII.</note>
and in the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p44.13">
Heidelberg Catechism.</span><note anchored="yes" id="vi.ix-p44.14" n="86" place="foot">Questions 60 and 61.</note>
By faith we
embrace Christ and remain in contact with Him who is our righteousness.
The name
"instrumental cause" is regularly used in
Protestant Confessions. Yet some Reformed
theologians prefer to avoid it, in order to guard themselves against the
danger of giving
the impression that justification is in any way dependent on faith as a
work of man.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p45" shownumber="no">(2)<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p45.1">
Appropriating organ.</span>
This name expresses the idea
that by faith the sinner
appropriates the righteousness of Christ and establishes a conscious
union between
himself and Christ. The merits of Christ constitute the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p45.2">
dikaioma</span>, the legal basis on which
the formal declaration of God in justification rests. By faith the
sinner appropriates the
righteousness of the Mediator already imputed to him ideally in the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p45.3">
pactum salutis;</span>
and
on the basis of this he is now formally justified before God. Faith
justifies in so far as it
takes possession of Christ. The name "appropriating organ"
includes the instrumental
idea, and is therefore perfectly in harmony with the statements found in
our
confessional standards. It has an advantage over the more common name in
that it
excludes the idea that faith is in any sense the basis for
justification. It can be called an appropriating organ in a twofold sense: (a) It is the organ by which we
lay hold on and
appropriate the merits of Christ, and accept these as the meritorious
ground of our
justification. As such it logically precedes justification. (b) It is
also the organ by which
we consciously apprehend our justification and obtain possession of
subjective
justification. In this sense it logically follows justification. On the
whole this name
deserves preference, though it should be borne in mind that, strictly
speaking, faith is
the organ by which we appropriate the righteousness of Christ as the
ground of our
justification, rather than the organ by which we appropriate
justification itself.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p46" shownumber="no">(3)<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p46.1">
Conditio sine qua non.</span>
This name,
suggested by some Reformed theologians, did
not meet with great favor. It expresses the idea, which is perfectly
true in itself, that man
is not justified apart from faith, and that faith is an indispensable
condition of
justification. The name expresses nothing positive, and is, moreover,
liable to
misunderstanding.</p>

<h4 id="vi.ix-p46.2">G. THE GROUND OF JUSTIFICATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.ix-p47" shownumber="no">One of the most important points of controversy between
the Church of Rome and
the Reformers, and between Reformed theology and the Arminians,
concerned the
ground of justification. With respect to this the Reformers taught:
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p48" shownumber="no">1. Negatively, that this cannot be found in any virtue of
man, nor in his good works.
This position must also be maintained at present over against Rome and
the
Pelagianizing tendencies of various Churches. Rome teaches that the
sinner is justified
on the basis of the inherent righteousness that has been infused into
his heart, and
which, in turn, is the fruit of the co-operation of the human will with
prevenient grace.
This applies to what is called the first justification; in all following
justification the good
works of man come into consideration as the formal cause or ground of
justification. It
is impossible, however, that the inherent righteousness of the regenerate
man and his
good works should constitute the ground of his justification, for (a)
this righteousness is
and remains during this life a very imperfect righteousness; (b) it is
itself already the
fruit of the righteousness of Christ and of the grace of God; and (c)
even the best works
of believers are polluted by sin. Moreover, Scripture teaches us very
clearly that man is
justified freely by the grace of God, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p48.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.24" parsed="|Rom|3|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:24">Rom. 3:24</scripRef>, and that he cannot
possibly be justified
by the works of
the law, <scripRef id="vi.ix-p48.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.28" parsed="|Rom|3|28|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:28">Rom. 3:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p48.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.16" parsed="|Gal|2|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:16">Gal. 2:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p48.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.11" parsed="|Gal|3|11|0|0" passage="Gal 3:11">3:11</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p49" shownumber="no">2. Positively, that the ground of justification can be
found only in the perfect
righteousness of Jesus Christ, which is imputed to the sinner in
justification. This is
plainly taught
in several passages of Scripture, such as <scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.24" parsed="|Rom|3|24|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:24">Rom. 3:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.9" parsed="|Rom|5|9|0|0" passage="Rom 5:9">5:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.19" parsed="|Rom|5|19|0|0" passage="Rom 5:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.1" parsed="|Rom|8|1|0|0" passage="Rom 8:1">8:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.4" parsed="|Rom|10|4|0|0" passage="Rom 10:4">10:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.30" parsed="|1Cor|1|30|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:30">I Cor. 1:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.11" parsed="|1Cor|6|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:11">6:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.8" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.21" parsed="|2Cor|5|21|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:21">II
Cor. 5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.9" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.9" parsed="|Phil|3|9|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:9">Phil. 3:9</scripRef>. In the passive obedience of Christ, who became a curse for us (<scripRef id="vi.ix-p49.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:13">Gal. 3:13</scripRef>) we find the ground for the forgiveness of sins; and
in His active
obedience, by which He merited all the gifts of grace, including eternal
life, the ground
for the adoption of children, by which sinners are constituted heirs of
life eternal. The
Arminian goes contrary to Scripture when he maintains that we are
accepted in favor by God only on the ground of our faith or evangelical
obedience.</p>

<h4 id="vi.ix-p49.11">H. OBJECTIONS TO THE DOCTRINE OF JUSTIFICATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.ix-p50" shownumber="no">Modern liberal theology, with its rationalizing
tendencies, raises several objections
to the doctrine of justification as such, which deserve brief
consideration.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p51" shownumber="no">1. Some, who still believe in salvation by grace,
ostensibly object to justification in
the interest of the recognition of the grace of God. Justification, it
is said, is a legal
transaction and as such excludes grace, while the Bible clearly teaches
that the sinner is
saved by grace. But it can easily be shown that justification with all its
antecedents and
consequents is a gracious work of God. The substitute allowed for guilty
sinners, the
vicarious sufferings and obedience of Christ, the imputation of His
righteousness to
unworthy transgressors, and God's dealing with believers as righteous, —
it is all free  grace
from start to finish. </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p52" shownumber="no">2. Justification is sometimes called an impious
procedure, because it declares sinners
to be righteous contrary to fact. But this objection does not hold,
because the divine
declaration is not to the effect that these sinners are righteous in
themselves, but that
they are clothed with the perfect righteousness of Jesus Christ. This
righteousness
wrought by Christ, is freely imputed to them. It is not the personal
subjective
righteousness of Christ, but His vicarious covenant righteousness, that
is imputed to
those who are in themselves unrighteous, and all to the glory of God.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p53" shownumber="no">3. It is often said this doctrine is ethically
subversive, because it leads to
licentiousness. But there is no truth in this whatsoever, as even the
lives of the justified
clearly show. In justification the sure foundation is laid for that
vital spiritual union
with Christ which secures our sanctification. It really leads right on
to the only
conditions under which we can be truly holy in principle. The man who is
justified also
receives the spirit of sanctification, and is the only one who can
abound in good works
which will glorify God.
</p>

<h4 id="vi.ix-p53.1">I. DIVERGENT VIEWS OF JUSTIFICATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.ix-p54" shownumber="no">1. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC VIEW. The Roman
Catholic view confounds justification
and sanctification. It includes the following elements in justification
(a) the expulsion of
indwelling sin; (b) the positive infusion of divine grace; and (c) the forgiveness
of sins.
The sinner is prepared for justification by prevenient grace, without
any merits on his
part. This prevenient grace leads the sinner to a<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p54.1">
fides informis</span>, to conviction of sin, to
repentance, to a confident reliance on the grace of God in Christ, to
the beginnings of a
new life, and to a desire for baptism. Justification really consists in
the infusion of new
virtues after the pollution of sin has been removed in baptism. After
the expulsion of
indwelling sin, the forgiveness of sin or the removal of the guilt of
sin necessarily
follows. And after that the Christian advances from virtue to virtue, is
able to perform
meritorious works, and receives as a reward a greater measure of grace
and a more
perfect justification. The grace of justification can be lost, but can
also be restored by the
sacrament of penance.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p55" shownumber="no">2. THE VIEW OF PISCATOR. Piscator taught that only the passive obedience of
Christ is
imputed to the sinner in justification, unto the forgiveness of sins;
and that His active
obedience could not possibly be imputed to him, unto the adoption of
children and an
eternal inheritance, because the man Christ Jesus owed this to God for
Himself.
Moreover, if Christ had fulfilled the law for us, we could no more be
held responsible
for the keeping of the law. Piscator regarded the bearing of the penalty
of sin and the
keeping of the law as alternatives, of which the one excludes the other.
He left the door
open for regarding the sinner's own personal obedience as the only
ground of his future
hope. This view is very much like that of the Arminians, and is quite in
line with the
doctrine of Anselm in the Middle Ages.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p56" shownumber="no">3. THE VIEW OF OSIANDER. Osiander revealed a tendency to revive in the Lutheran
Church the essentials of the Roman Catholic conception of justification,
though with a
characteristic difference. He asserted that justification does not
consist in the imputation
of the vicarious righteousness of Christ to the sinner, but in the
implanting of a new
principle of life. According to him the righteousness by which we are
justified is the
eternal righteousness of God the Father, which is imparted to or infused
into us by His
Son Jesus
Christ. </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p57" shownumber="no">4. THE ARMINIAN VIEW. The Arminians hold that Christ did not render strict
satisfaction to the justice of God, but yet offered a real propitiation
for sin, which was
graciously accepted and acted on as satisfactory by God in pardoning sin
and thus
justifying the sinner. While this only squares past accounts, God also
makes provision
for the future. He just as graciously imputes the believer's faith to
him for
righteousness, that faith, namely, as including the entire religious
life of the believer, —
his evangelical obedience. On this view faith is no more the mere
instrument of the
positive element of justification, but the graciously admitted ground on
which it rests.
Justification, then, is not a judicial but a sovereign act of God.
</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p58" shownumber="no">5. THE BARTHIAN VIEW. While Barth
does speak of justification as a momentary act,
yet he does not regard it as an act accomplished once for all, and which
is then followed
by sanctification. According to him justification and sanctification go
hand in hand all
along the line. Pauck says that according to Barth justification is not
a growth or an
ethical development; it occurs ever anew, whenever man has reached the
point of
complete despair as to the beliefs and values upon which he has built
his life.
Thurneysen also rejects the view that justification takes place once for
all, calls it the
view of Pietism, and claims that it is fatal to the doctrine of the
Reformation.</p>

<p id="vi.ix-p59" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What does the verb<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p59.1">
dikaio-o</span>
mean in
classical Greek?
Is justification a creative or a declarative act? Is it possible to
think of justification with
respect to past sins in any other sense than that of a judicial
acquittal? Should
justification be thought of exclusively as something objective and
external to man?
What is meant in theology by the<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p59.2">
formal</span>
cause of
justification? How do the Romanists
and Protestants differ on this point? Is the justification of the Roman
Catholics by the
<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p59.3">fides formata</span>
really a justification by faith, or a
justification by love under the guise of
faith? What is the Antinomian doctrine of justification from eternity?
Is the distinction made by Buchanan and Cunningham between active and passive
justification as being
actual and declarative justification correct or not? Can we say that in
declarative
justification (passive justification) God simply declares the sinner to
be what he is?
What becomes of the doctrine of justification in Schleiermacher, Ritchl,
and modern
liberal
theology? </p>

<p id="vi.ix-p60" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span>, IV, pp. 182-245; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Salute</span>,
pp. 45-69;
ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.3">
Het Werk van den Heiligen Geest</span>
II, pp.
204-232; Comrie,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.4">
Brief over de Rechtvaardigmaking;</span>
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.5">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 114-212; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.6">
Dogm.
Theol.</span>
II, pp.
538-552; Dick,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.7">
Theology, Lectures</span>
LXXI-LXXIII; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.8">
Syst and Polem. Theol.</span>
pp. 618-650;
Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.9">
Godgeleerdheit</span>
VI. 6 and 7;
Buchanan,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.10">
The Doctrine of Justification; </span>
Owen,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.11">
On Justification;</span>
Litton,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.12">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 259-313; Girardeau,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.13">
Calvinism and Evangelical Arminianism</span>, pp. 413-566; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.14">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 606-672;
Vos,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.15">
Geref. Dogm.</span> IV., pp. 154-210; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.16">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 430-448;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.17">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 214-241; Strong,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.18">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 849-868; Dorner,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.19">
Syst. of Chr.
Doct.</span>
IV, pp. 194-238; Watson,<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.20">
Theological Institutes</span>, II, pp. 406-475; De Moor,
<span class="ital" id="vi.ix-p60.21">Rechtvaardigmaking van Eeuwigheid. </span></p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.x" next="vi.xi" prev="vi.ix" title="X. Sanctification">
<h2 id="vi.x-p0.1">X. Sanctification</h2>

<h4 id="vi.x-p0.2">A. THE SCRIPTURAL TERMS FOR SANCTIFICATION AND HOLINESS.</h4>

<p id="vi.x-p1" shownumber="no">1. THE OLD TESTAMENT TERMS. The Old
Testament word for 'to sanctify' is<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.1">
qadash</span>,
a verb that is used in the<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.2">
niphal,
piel, hiphil</span>,
and<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.3">
hithpa'el</span>
species. The
corresponding noun
is<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.4">
qodesh</span>, while the adjective is<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.5">
qadosh.</span>
The verbal forms
are derived from the nominal and adjectival forms. The original meaning of these words is uncertain.
Some are of the
opinion that the
word<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.6">
qadash</span>
is related to<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.7"> chadash</span>, meaning 'to shine.' This would be in
harmony with the qualitative aspect of the Biblical idea of holiness,
namely, that of
purity. Others, with a greater degree of probability, derive the word
from the root<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.8">
qad</span>,
meaning 'to cut.' This would make the idea of separation the original
idea. The word
would then point to aloofness, separateness, or majesty. Though this
meaning of the
words
'sanctification' and 'holiness' may seem unusual to us, it is in all
probability the fundamental idea expressed by them. Says Girdlestone: "The
terms 'sanctification' and
'holiness' are now used so frequently to represent moral and spiritual
qualities, that
they hardly convey to the reader the idea of<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.9">
position or relationship</span>
as existing between
God and some person or thing consecrated to Him; yet this appears to be
the real
meaning of the word."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.x-p1.10" n="87" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.11">Old Testament Synonyms,</span> p. 283</note>
Similarly, Cremer-Koegel calls attention to
the fact that the idea
of separation is fundamental to that of holiness. "Heiligkeit ist
ein verhaeltnisbegriff."
At the same time it is admitted that the two ideas of holiness and
separation do not
merge, are not absorbed in each other, but that the former in a measure
serves to qualify
the latter.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.x-p1.12" n="88" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.x-p1.13">Biblisch-Theologisches Woerterbuch</span> (10th ed.) p. 41.</note></p>

<p id="vi.x-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE NEW TESTAMENT TERMS.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p3" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p3.1">
The verb hagiazo and its various meanings.</span>
The verb<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p3.2">
hagiazo</span>
is a derivative of<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p3.3">
hagios</span>,
which like the Hebrew<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p3.4">
qadosh</span>
expresses
primarily the idea of separation. It is used in
several different senses, however, in the New Testament. We may
distinguish the
following: (1) It is used in a mental sense of persons or things, <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.9" parsed="|Matt|6|9|0|0" passage="Matt. 6:9">Matt. 6:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.11.2" parsed="|Luke|11|2|0|0" passage="Luke 11:2">Luke 11:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.15" parsed="|1Pet|3|15|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:15">I Pet. 3:15</scripRef>. In such
cases it means "to regard an object as holy," "to ascribe
holiness to it," or "to acknowledge its holiness by word or deed." (2) It is also
employed occasionally in a
ritual sense, that is, in the sense of "separating from ordinary
for sacred purposes," or of
"setting
aside for a certain office," <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.23.17" parsed="|Matt|23|17|0|0" passage="Matt. 23:17">Matt. 23:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.23.19" parsed="|Matt|23|19|0|0" passage="Matt 23:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:John.10.36" parsed="|John|10|36|0|0" passage="John 10:36">John 10:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.21" parsed="|2Tim|2|21|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:21">II Tim. 2:21</scripRef>. (3)
Again it is
used to denote that operation of God by which He, especially through His
Spirit, works
in man the
subjective quality of holiness, <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:John.17.17" parsed="|John|17|17|0|0" passage="John 17:17">John 17:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.32" parsed="|Acts|20|32|0|0" passage="Acts 20:32">Acts 20:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.26.18" parsed="|Acts|26|18|0|0" passage="Acts 26:18">26:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.2" parsed="|1Cor|1|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:2">I Cor. 1:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.23" parsed="|1Thess|5|23|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:23">I Thess. 5:23</scripRef>. (4) Finally, in the Epistle to the Hebrews it seems to be used in
an expiatory sense,
and also in the
related sense of the Pauline<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p3.17">
dikaio-o</span>, <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.13" parsed="|Heb|9|13|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:13">Heb. 9:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.19" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.10" parsed="|Heb|10|10|0|0" passage="Heb 10:10">10:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p3.20" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.29" parsed="|Heb|10|29|0|0" passage="Heb 10:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p3.21" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.12" parsed="|Heb|13|12|0|0" passage="Heb 13:12">13:12</scripRef>.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.x-p3.22" n="89" place="foot">Cf. Denney,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p3.23"> The Death of Christ</span>, p. 220; Kennedy,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p3.24"> The Theology of the Epistles</span>, p. 214.</note></p>

<p id="vi.x-p4" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.1">The adjectives expressive of the idea of holiness.</span>
(1)<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.2">
Hieros.</span>
The word that is used least
and that is also the least expressive, is the word<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.3">
hieros.</span>
It is found only in <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.9.13" parsed="|1Cor|9|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 9:13">I Cor. 9:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.15" parsed="|2Tim|3|15|0|0" passage="II Tim. 3:15">II Tim. 3:15</scripRef>, and then not of persons but of things. It does not express
moral excellence,
but is expressive of the inviolable character of the thing referred to,
which springs from
the relation in which it stands to God. It is best translated by the
English word
"sacred."
(2)<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.6">
Hosios.</span>
The word<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.7">
hosios</span>
is of more frequent occurrence. It is
found in <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.27" parsed="|Acts|2|27|0|0" passage="Acts 2:27">Acts 2:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.34" parsed="|Acts|13|34|0|0" passage="Acts 13:34">13:34</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.35" parsed="|Acts|13|35|0|0" passage="Acts 13:35">35</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.x-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.8" parsed="|1Tim|2|8|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:8">I Tim. 2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.12" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.8" parsed="|Titus|1|8|0|0" passage="Tit. 1:8">Tit. 1:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.13" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.26" parsed="|Heb|7|26|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:26">Heb. 7:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:Rev.15.4" parsed="|Rev|15|4|0|0" passage="Rev. 15:4">Rev. 15:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.15" osisRef="Bible:Rev.16.5" parsed="|Rev|16|5|0|0" passage="Rev 16:5">16:5</scripRef>, and is applied not only to
things, but also to God and to Christ. It describes a person or thing as
free from
defilement or wickedness, or more actively (of persons) as religiously
fulfilling every
moral
obligation. (3)<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.16">
Hagnos.</span>
The word<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.17">
hagnos</span>
occurs in <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.18" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.11" parsed="|2Cor|7|11|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:11">II Cor. 7:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.19" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.11.2" parsed="|2Cor|11|2|0|0" passage="II Cor. 11:2">11:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.20" osisRef="Bible:Phil.4.8" parsed="|Phil|4|8|0|0" passage="Phil. 4:8">Phil. 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.21" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.22" parsed="|1Tim|5|22|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:22">I Tim. 5:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.22" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.17" parsed="|Jas|3|17|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:17">Jas. 3:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.23" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.2" parsed="|1Pet|3|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:2">I Pet. 3:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.24" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.3" parsed="|1John|3|3|0|0" passage="I John 3:3">I John 3:3</scripRef>. The fundamental idea of
the word seems to be that of
freedom from impurity and defilement in an ethical sense. (4)<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.25">
Hagios.</span>
The really
characteristic word of the New Testament, however, is<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.26">
hagios.</span>
Its primary meaning is
that of separation in consecration and devotion to the service of God.
With this is
connected the idea that what is set aside from the world for God, should
also separate  itself
from the world's defilement and share in God's purity. This explains the fact
that
<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p4.27">hagios</span>
speedily acquired an ethical signification. The word does not always have
the
same meaning in the New Testament. (a) It is used to designate an
external official
relation, a being set aside from ordinary purposes for the service of
God, as for instance,
when we read of
"holy prophets," <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.28" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.70" parsed="|Luke|1|70|0|0" passage="Luke 1:70">Luke 1:70</scripRef>, "holy apostles," <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.29" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.5" parsed="|Eph|3|5|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:5">Eph. 3:5</scripRef>, and
"holy men
of God" II Pet. 1:21. (b) More often, however, it is employed in an ethical sense to
describe the quality that is necessary to stand in close relation to God
and to serve Him
acceptably, <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.30" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.4" parsed="|Eph|1|4|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:4">Eph. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.31" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.27" parsed="|Eph|5|27|0|0" passage="Eph 5:27">5:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.32" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.22" parsed="|Col|1|22|0|0" passage="Col. 1:22">Col. 1:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p4.33" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.15" parsed="|1Pet|1|15|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:15">I Pet. 1:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p4.34" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.16" parsed="|1Pet|1|16|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:16">16</scripRef>. It should be borne in mind that in
treating of sanctification we use the word primarily in the latter
sense. When we speak
of holiness in connection with sanctification, we have in mind both an
external relation and an inner subjective quality.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p5" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p5.1">
The nouns denoting sanctification and holiness.</span>
The New
Testament word for
sanctification
is<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p5.2">
hagiasmos.</span>
It occurs ten
times, namely, in <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.19" parsed="|Rom|6|19|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:19">Rom. 6:19</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.22" parsed="|Rom|6|22|0|0" passage="Rom 6:22">22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.30" parsed="|1Cor|1|30|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:30">I Cor. 1:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.3" parsed="|1Thess|4|3|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:3">I Thess. 4:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.4" parsed="|1Thess|4|4|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:4">4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.7" parsed="|1Thess|4|7|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:7">7</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.x-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.13" parsed="|2Thess|2|13|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:13">II Thess. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.15" parsed="|1Tim|2|15|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:15">I Tim. 2:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.14" parsed="|Heb|12|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:14">Heb. 12:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">I Pet. 1:2</scripRef>. While it denotes ethical purification, it includes the idea of separation, namely, "the
separation of the spirit from
all that is impure and polluting, and a renunciation of the sins towards
which the
desires of the flesh and of the mind lead us." While<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p5.13">
hagiasmos</span>
denotes the work of
sanctification, there are two other words that describe the result of
the process, namely,
<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p5.14">hagiotes</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p5.15">
hagiosune.</span>
The former is found in <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.30" parsed="|1Cor|1|30|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:30">I Cor. 1:30</scripRef> and <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.17" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.10" parsed="|Heb|12|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:10">Heb. 12:10</scripRef>; and the latter in
<scripRef id="vi.x-p5.18" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.4" parsed="|Rom|1|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:4">Rom. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.19" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.1" parsed="|2Cor|7|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:1">II Cor. 7:1</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="vi.x-p5.20" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.3.13" parsed="|1Thess|3|13|0|0" passage="I Thess. 3:13">I Thess. 3:13</scripRef>. These passages show that the
quality of holiness
or freedom from pollution and impurity is essential to God, was
exhibited by Jesus
Christ, and is imparted to the Christian.</p>

<h4 id="vi.x-p5.21">B. THE DOCTRINE OF SANCTIFICATION IN HISTORY.</h4>

<p id="vi.x-p6" shownumber="no">1. BEFORE THE REFORMATION. In the
historical unfolding of the doctrine of
sanctification, the Church concerned itself primarily with three
problems: (a) the
relation of the grace of God in sanctification to faith; (b) the
relation of sanctification to
justification; and (c) the degree of sanctification in this present
life. The writings of the
early Church Fathers contain very little respecting the doctrine of
sanctification. A strain
of moralism is quite apparent in that man was taught to depend for
salvation on faith
and good works. Sins committed before baptism were washed away in
baptism, but for those after baptism man must provide by penance and good
works. He must lead a life
of virtue and thus merit the approval of the Lord. "Such
dualism," says Scott in his<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p6.1">
The Nicene Theology</span>,<note anchored="yes" id="vi.x-p6.2" n="90" place="foot">p. 200.</note>
"left the domain of sanctification only
indirectly related to the
redemption of Christ; and this was the field in which grew up,
naturally, defective
conceptions of sin, legalism, Sacramentarianism, priestcraft, and all
the excesses of
monkish devotion." Asceticism came to be regarded as of the
greatest importance. There
was also a tendency to confound justification and sanctification.
Augustine was the first
one to develop rather definite ideas of sanctification, and his views
had a determining
influence on the Church of the Middle Ages. He did not clearly
distinguish between
justification and sanctification, but conceived of the latter as
included in the former. Since he believed in the total corruption of human
nature by the fall, he thought of
sanctification as a new supernatural impartation of divine life, a new
infused energy,
operating exclusively within the confines of the Church and through the
sacraments.
While he did not lose sight of the importance of personal love to Christ
as a constituent
element in sanctification, he manifested a tendency to take a
metaphysical view of the
grace of God in sanctification, — to regard it as a deposit of God in
man. He did not
sufficiently stress the necessity of a constant preoccupation of faith
with the redeeming Christ, as the most important factor in the transformation of the
Christian's life. The
tendencies apparent in the teachings of Augustine came to fruitage in
the theology of
the Middle Ages, which is found in its most developed form in the
writings of Thomas
Aquinas. Justification and sanctification are not clearly distinguished,
but the former is
made to include the infusion of divine grace, as something substantial,
into the human
soul. This grace
is a sort of<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p6.3">
donum superadditum</span>, by which the
soul is lifted to a new level
or a higher order of being, and is enabled to achieve its heavenly
destiny of knowing,
possessing, and enjoying God. The grace is derived from the
inexhaustible treasury of
the merits of Christ and is imparted to believers by the sacraments.
Looked at from the
divine point of view, this sanctifying grace within the soul secures the
remission of
original sin, imparts a permanent habit of inherent righteousness, and
carries within
itself the potency of further development, and even of perfection. Out
of it the new life
develops with all its virtues. Its good work can be neutralized or
destroyed by mortal
sins; but the guilt contracted after baptism can be removed by the eucharist
in the case
of venial sins, and by the sacrament of penance in the case of mortal
sins. Considered
from the human point of view, the supernatural works of
faith working through love
have merit before God, and secure an increase of grace. Such works are
impossible,
however, without the continuous operation of the grace of God. The
result of the whole
process was known as justification rather than as sanctification; it
consisted in making
man just before God. These ideas are embodied in the Canons and Decrees
of the  Council
of Trent. </p>

<p id="vi.x-p7" shownumber="no">2. AFTER THE REFORMATION. The Reformers in speaking of sanctification emphasized
the antithesis of sin and redemption rather than that of nature and
supernature. They
made a clear distinction between justification and sanctification,
regarding the former as
a legal act of divine grace, affecting the judicial status of man, and
the latter, as a moral
or re-creative work, changing the inner nature of man. But while they
made a careful
distinction between the two, they also stressed their inseparable
connection. While
deeply convinced that man is justified by faith alone, they also
understood that the faith
which justifies is not alone. Justification is at once followed by
sanctification, since God
sends out the Spirit of His Son into the hearts of His own as soon as
they are justified,
and that Spirit is the Spirit of sanctification. They did not regard the
grace of
sanctification as a supernatural essence infused in man through the
sacraments, but as a
supernatural and gracious work of the Holy Spirit, primarily through the
Word and
secondarily through the sacraments, by which He delivers us more and more
from the
power of sin and enables us to do good works. Though in no way
confounding
justification and sanctification, they felt the necessity of preserving
the closest possible
connection between the former, in which the free and forgiving grace of
God is strongly
emphasized, and the latter, which calls for the co-operation of man, in
order to avoid
the danger of work-righteousness. In Pietism and Methodism great emphasis
was
placed on constant fellowship with Christ as the great means of
sanctification. By
exalting sanctification at the expense of justification, they did not
always avoid the
danger of self-righteousness. Wesley did not merely distinguish
justification and
sanctification, but virtually separated them, and spoke of entire
sanctification as a
second gift of grace, following the first, of justification by faith,
after a shorter or longer
period. While he also spoke of sanctification as a process, he yet held that
the believer
should pray and look for full sanctification at once by a separate act
of God. Under the
influence of Rationalism and of the moralism of Kant
sanctification ceased to be
regarded as a supernatural work of the Holy Spirit in the renewal of
sinners, and was
brought down to the level of a mere moral improvement by the natural
powers of man.
For Schleiermacher it was merely the progressive domination of the
God-consciousness
within us over the merely sentient and ever morally defective world-consciousness.
And for Ritschl it was the moral perfection of the Christian life to
which we attain by
fulfilling our vocation as members of the Kingdom of God. In a great
deal of modern
liberal theology sanctification consists only in the ever-increasing
redemption of man's
lower self by the domination of his higher self. Redemption by character
is one of the
slogans of the present day, and the term "sanctification" has
come to stand for mere moral improvement.</p>

<h4 id="vi.x-p7.1">C. THE BIBLICAL IDEA OF HOLINESS AND SANCTIFICATION.</h4>

<p id="vi.x-p8" shownumber="no">1. IN THE OLD TESTAMENT. In Scripture
the quality of holiness applies first of all to
God, and as applied to Him its fundamental idea is that of
unapproachableness. And
this unapproachableness is based on the fact that God is divine and
therefore absolutely
distinct from the creature. Holiness in this sense is not merely an
attribute to be co-
ordinated with others in God. It is rather something that is predicable
of everything that
is found in God. He is holy in His grace as well as in His
righteousness, in His love as
well as in His wrath. Strictly speaking, holiness becomes an attribute
only in the later
ethical sense of the word. The ethical meaning of the term developed out
of the majesty-
meaning. This development starts with the idea that a sinful being is
more keenly
conscious of the majesty of God than a sinless being. The sinner becomes
aware of his
impurity as over against the majestic purity of God, cf. <scripRef id="vi.x-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Isa.6" parsed="|Isa|6|0|0|0" passage="Isa. 6">Isa. 6</scripRef>. Otto
speaks of holiness in
the original sense as the numenous, and proposes to call the
characteristic reaction to it
"creature-feeling, or creature-consciousness," a disvaluation
of self into nothingness,
while he speaks of the reaction to holiness in the derived ethical sense
as a "feeling of
absolute profaneness." Thus the idea of holiness as majestic purity
or ethical sublimity
was developed. This purity is an active principle in God, that must
vindicate itself and
uphold its honor. This accounts for the fact that holiness is
represented in Scripture also
as the light of
the divine glory turned into a devouring fire. <scripRef id="vi.x-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Isa.5.24" parsed="|Isa|5|24|0|0" passage="Isa. 5:24">Isa. 5:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.10.17" parsed="|Isa|10|17|0|0" passage="Isa 10:17">10:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.33.14" parsed="|Isa|33|14|0|0" passage="Isa 33:14">33:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.33.15" parsed="|Isa|33|15|0|0" passage="Isa 33:15">15</scripRef>.
Over against the holiness of God man feels himself to be, not merely
insignificant, but
positively impure and sinful, and as such an object of God's wrath. God
revealed His
holiness in the Old Testament in various ways. He did it in terrible
judgments upon the
enemies of Israel, <scripRef id="vi.x-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Exod.15.11" parsed="|Exod|15|11|0|0" passage="Ex. 15:11">Ex. 15:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Exod.15.12" parsed="|Exod|15|12|0|0" passage="Ex 15:12">12</scripRef>. He did it also by separating unto
Himself a people,
which He took out of the world, <scripRef id="vi.x-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Exod.19.4-Exod.19.6" parsed="|Exod|19|4|19|6" passage="Ex. 19:4-6">Ex. 19:4-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.20.39-Ezek.20.44" parsed="|Ezek|20|39|20|44" passage="Ezek. 20:39-44">Ezek. 20:39-44</scripRef>. By taking
this people out of
the impure and ungodly world, He protested against that
world and its sin. Moreover,
He did it repeatedly in sparing His unfaithful people, because He did not
want the
unholy world to rejoice at what it might consider the failure of His
work, <scripRef id="vi.x-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Hos.11.9" parsed="|Hos|11|9|0|0" passage="Hos. 11:9">Hos. 11:9</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p9" shownumber="no">In a derivative sense the idea of holiness is also
applied to things and persons that
are placed in a special relation to God. The land of Canaan, the city of
Jerusalem, the
temple-mount, the tabernacle and temple, the sabbaths and the solemn
feasts of Israel,
— they are all called holy, since they are consecrated to God and are
placed within the
radiance of His majestic holiness. Similarly, the prophets, the Levites,
and the priests are
called holy as persons that were set aside for the special service of
the Lord. Israel had
its sacred places, its sacred seasons, its sacred rites, and its sacred
persons. This is not
yet the ethical idea of holiness, however. One might be a sacred person,
and yet be
entirely devoid of the grace of God in his heart. In the old
dispensation, as well as in the
new, ethical holiness results from the renewing and sanctifying influence
of the Holy
Spirit. It should be remembered, however, that even where the conception
of holiness is
thoroughly spiritualized, it is always expressive of a relation. The
idea of holiness is
never that of moral goodness, considered in itself, but always that of
ethical goodness
seen in relation to God.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p10" shownumber="no">2. IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. In passing from the Old
Testament to the New we
become aware of a striking difference. While in the Old Testament there
is not a single
attribute of God that stands out with anything like the same prominence
as His
holiness, in the New Testament holiness is seldom ascribed to God.
Except in a few Old
Testament
quotations, it is done only in the writings of John, <scripRef id="vi.x-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:John.17.11" parsed="|John|17|11|0|0" passage="John 17:11">John 17:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.20" parsed="|1John|2|20|0|0" passage="I John 2:20">I John 2:20</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.x-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.10" parsed="|Rev|6|10|0|0" passage="Rev. 6:10">Rev. 6:10</scripRef>. In all probability the explanation for this lies in the fact that
in the New Testament
holiness stands forth as the special characteristic of the Spirit of
God, by whom
believers are sanctified, are qualified for service, and are led to
their eternal destiny, <scripRef id="vi.x-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.13" parsed="|2Thess|2|13|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:13">II Thess. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.5" parsed="|Titus|3|5|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:5">Tit. 3:5</scripRef>. The word<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p10.6">
hagios</span>
is used in connection with the Spirit of God well
nigh a hundred times. The conception of holiness and sanctification,
however, is no
other in the New Testament than it is in the Old. In the former as well
as in the latter
holiness is ascribed in a derived sense to man. In the one as well as in
the other ethical
holiness is not mere moral rectitude, and sanctification is never mere
moral
improvement. These two are often confused in the present day, when
people speak of
salvation by character. A man may boast of great moral improvement, and
yet be an
utter stranger to sanctification. The Bible does not urge moral
improvement pure and
simple, but moral improvement in relation to God, for God's sake, and
with a view to
the service of God. It insists on sanctification. At this very point
much ethical preaching
of the present day is utterly misleading; and the corrective for it lies
in the presentation
of the true
doctrine of sanctification. Sanctification may be defined as<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p10.7">
that gracious and continuous operation of the Holy
Spirit, by which He delivers the justified sinner from the
pollution of sin, renews his whole
nature in the image of God, and enables him to perform good
works. </span>
</p>

<h4 id="vi.x-p10.8">D. THE NATURE OF SANCTIFICATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.x-p11" shownumber="no">1. IT IS A SUPERNATURAL WORK OF GOD. Some have the
mistaken notion that
sanctification consists merely in the drawing out of the new life,
implanted in the soul
by regeneration, in a persuasive way by presenting motives to the will.
But this is not
true. It consists fundamentally and primarily in a divine operation in
the soul, whereby
the holy disposition born in regeneration is strengthened and its holy
exercises are
increased. It is essentially a work of God, though in so far as He
employs means, man
can and is expected to co-operate by the proper use of these means.
Scripture clearly
exhibits the supernatural character of sanctification in several ways.
It describes it as a
work of God, <scripRef id="vi.x-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.23" parsed="|1Thess|5|23|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:23">I Thess. 5:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.20" parsed="|Heb|13|20|0|0" passage="Heb. 13:20">Heb. 13:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.21" parsed="|Heb|13|21|0|0" passage="Heb 13:21">21</scripRef>, as a fruit of the union of life with Jesus Christ,
<scripRef id="vi.x-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:John.15.4" parsed="|John|15|4|0|0" passage="John 15:4">John 15:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.20" parsed="|Gal|2|20|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:20">Gal. 2:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.19" parsed="|Gal|4|19|0|0" passage="Gal 4:19">4:19</scripRef>, as a work that is wrought in man from within
and which for
that very reason cannot be a work of man, <scripRef id="vi.x-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.16" parsed="|Eph|3|16|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:16">Eph. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.11" parsed="|Col|1|11|0|0" passage="Col. 1:11">Col. 1:11</scripRef>, and
speaks of its
manifestation in Christian virtues as the work of the Spirit, <scripRef id="vi.x-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.22" parsed="|Gal|5|22|0|0" passage="Gal. 5:22">Gal. 5:22</scripRef>.
It should never be
represented as a merely natural process in the spiritual development of
man, nor
brought down to the level of a mere human achievement, as is done in a
great deal of
modern liberal theology.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p12" shownumber="no">2. IT CONSISTS OF TWO PARTS.
The two parts of sanctification are represented in
Scripture as:</p>

<p id="vi.x-p13" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p13.1"> The mortification of the old man, the body of sin.</span>
This Scriptural
term denotes that act
of God whereby the pollution and corruption of human nature that results
from sin is
gradually removed. It is often represented in the Bible as the
crucifying of the old man,
and is thus connected with the death of Christ on the cross. The old man
is human
nature in so far as it is controlled by sin, <scripRef id="vi.x-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.6" parsed="|Rom|6|6|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:6">Rom. 6:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.24" parsed="|Gal|5|24|0|0" passage="Gal. 5:24">Gal. 5:24</scripRef>. In the
context of the
passage of Galatians Paul contrasts the works of the flesh and the
works of the Spirit,
and then says: "And they who are of Christ Jesus have crucified the
flesh with the passions and the lusts thereof." This means that in
their case the Spirit has gained
predominance.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p14" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p14.1">
The quickening of the new man, created in Christ Jesus
unto good works.</span>
While the
former part of sanctification is negative in character, this is
positive. It is that act of God
whereby the holy disposition of the soul is strengthened, holy exercises
are increased,
and thus a new course of life engendered and promoted. The old structure
of sin is
gradually torn down, and a new structure of God is reared in its stead.
These two parts
of sanctification are not successive but contemporaneous. Thank God, the
gradual
erection of the new building need not wait until the old one is
completely demolished.
If it had to wait for that, it could never begin in this life. With the
gradual dissolution of
the old the new makes its appearance. It is like the airing of a house
filled with
pestiferous odors. As the old air is drawn out, the new rushes in. This
positive side of
sanctification
is often called "a being raised together with Christ," <scripRef id="vi.x-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.4" parsed="|Rom|6|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:4">Rom. 6:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.5" parsed="|Rom|6|5|0|0" passage="Rom 6:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.12" parsed="|Col|2|12|0|0" passage="Col. 2:12">Col. 2:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.1" parsed="|Col|3|1|0|0" passage="Col 3:1">3:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.2" parsed="|Col|3|2|0|0" passage="Col 3:2">2</scripRef>. The new
life to which it leads is called "a life unto God," <scripRef id="vi.x-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.11" parsed="|Rom|6|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:11">Rom. 6:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.19" parsed="|Gal|2|19|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:19">Gal. 2:19</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.x-p15" shownumber="no">3. IT AFFECTS THE WHOLE MAN: BODY AND SOUL; INTELLECT, AFFECTIONS AND WILL.
This
follows from the nature of the case, because sanctification takes place
in the inner life of
man, in the heart, and this cannot be changed without changing the whole
organism of
man. If the inner man is changed, there is bound to be change also in
the periphery of
life. Moreover, Scripture clearly and explicitly teaches that it affects
both body and soul,
<scripRef id="vi.x-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.23" parsed="|1Thess|5|23|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:23">I Thess. 5:23</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.x-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.17" parsed="|2Cor|5|17|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:17">II Cor. 5:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.12" parsed="|Rom|6|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:12">Rom. 6:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.15" parsed="|1Cor|6|15|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:15">I Cor. 6:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.20" parsed="|1Cor|6|20|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:20">20</scripRef>. The body comes into consideration
here as the organ or instrument of the sinful soul, through which the
sinful inclinations
and habits and passions express themselves. The sanctification of the
body takes place
especially in the crisis of death and in the resurrection of the dead.
Finally, it also
appears from Scripture that sanctification affects all the powers or
faculties of the soul:
the
understanding, <scripRef id="vi.x-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.34" parsed="|Jer|31|34|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:34">Jer. 31:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:John.6.45" parsed="|John|6|45|0|0" passage="John 6:45">John 6:45</scripRef>; — the will, <scripRef id="vi.x-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.25-Ezek.36.27" parsed="|Ezek|36|25|36|27" passage="Ezek. 36:25-27">Ezek. 36:25-27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>; —
the passions, <scripRef id="vi.x-p15.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.24" parsed="|Gal|5|24|0|0" passage="Gal. 5:24">Gal. 5:24</scripRef>; — and the conscience, <scripRef id="vi.x-p15.11" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.15" parsed="|Titus|1|15|0|0" passage="Tit. 1:15">Tit. 1:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p15.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.14" parsed="|Heb|9|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:14">Heb. 9:14</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.x-p16" shownumber="no">4. IT IS A WORK OF GOD IN WHICH BELIEVERS CO-OPERATE. When it is
said that man
takes part in the work of sanctification, this does not mean that man is
an independent
agent in the work, so as to make it partly the work of God and partly
the work of man;
but merely, that God effects the work in part through the
instrumentality of man as a
rational being, by requiring of him prayerful and intelligent
co-operation with the
Spirit. That man must co-operate with the Spirit of God follows: (a)
from the repeated
warnings against evils and temptations, which clearly imply that man must
be active in
avoiding the
pitfalls of life, <scripRef id="vi.x-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.9" parsed="|Rom|12|9|0|0" passage="Rom. 12:9">Rom. 12:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.16" parsed="|Rom|12|16|0|0" passage="Rom 12:16">16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.17" parsed="|Rom|12|17|0|0" passage="Rom 12:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.9" parsed="|1Cor|6|9|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:9">I Cor. 6:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.10" parsed="|1Cor|6|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.16-Gal.5.23" parsed="|Gal|5|16|5|23" passage="Gal. 5:16-23">Gal. 5:16-23</scripRef>; and (b) from
the constant exhortations to holy living. These imply that the believer must
be diligent in
the employment of the means at his command for the moral and spiritual
improvement
of his life,
<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Mic.6.8" parsed="|Mic|6|8|0|0" passage="Micah 6:8">Micah 6:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:John.15.2" parsed="|John|15|2|0|0" passage="John 15:2">John 15:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:John.15.8" parsed="|John|15|8|0|0" passage="John 15:8">8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.10" osisRef="Bible:John.15.16" parsed="|John|15|16|0|0" passage="John 15:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p16.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.12" parsed="|Rom|8|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:12">Rom. 8:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.13" parsed="|Rom|8|13|0|0" passage="Rom 8:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p16.13" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.1" parsed="|Rom|12|1|0|0" passage="Rom 12:1">12:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.2" parsed="|Rom|12|2|0|0" passage="Rom 12:2">2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.17" parsed="|Rom|12|17|0|0" passage="Rom 12:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p16.16" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.7" parsed="|Gal|6|7|0|0" passage="Gal. 6:7">Gal. 6:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.17" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.8" parsed="|Gal|6|8|0|0" passage="Gal 6:8">8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p16.18" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.15" parsed="|Gal|6|15|0|0" passage="Gal 6:15">15</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="vi.x-p16.19">E. THE CHARACTERISTICS OF SANCTIFICATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.x-p17" shownumber="no">1. As appears from the immediately preceding,
sanctification is a work of which
God and not man is the author. Only the advocates of the so-called free
will can claim
that it is a work of man. Nevertheless, it differs from regeneration in
that man can, and is in duty bound to, strive for ever-increasing
sanctification by using the means which
God has placed at his disposal. This is clearly taught in Scripture, <scripRef id="vi.x-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.1" parsed="|2Cor|7|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:1">II
Cor. 7:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.5-Col.3.14" parsed="|Col|3|5|3|14" passage="Col. 3:5-14">Col. 3:5-14</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vi.x-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.22" parsed="|1Pet|1|22|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:22">I Pet. 1:22</scripRef>. Consistent Antinomians lose sight of this important truth,
and feel no need of
carefully avoiding sin, since this affects only the old man which is
condemned to death,
and not the new man which is holy with the holiness of Christ.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p18" shownumber="no">2. Sanctification takes place partly in the subconscious
life, and as such is an
immediate operation of the Holy Spirit; but also partly in the conscious
life, and then
depends on the use of certain means, such as the constant exercise of
faith, the study of
God's Word, prayer, and association with other believers.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p19" shownumber="no">3. Sanctification is usually a lengthy process and never
reaches perfection in this life.
At the same time there may be cases in which it is completed in a very
short time or
even in a moment, as, for instance, in cases in which regeneration and
conversion are
immediately followed by temporal death. If we may proceed on the
assumption that the
believer's sanctification is perfect immediately after death — and
Scripture seems to
teach this as far as the soul is concerned —, then in such cases the
sanctification of the soul must be completed almost at once.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p20" shownumber="no">4. The sanctification of the believer must, it would
seem, be completed either at the
very moment of death, or immediately after death, as far as the soul is
concerned, and
at the resurrection in so far as it pertains to the body. This would
seem to follow from
that fact that, on the one hand, the Bible teaches that in the present
life no one can claim
freedom from
sin, <scripRef id="vi.x-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.46" parsed="|1Kgs|8|46|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:46">I Kings 8:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Prov.20.9" parsed="|Prov|20|9|0|0" passage="Prov. 20:9">Prov. 20:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.10" parsed="|Rom|3|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:10">Rom. 3:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.12" parsed="|Rom|3|12|0|0" passage="Rom 3:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.2" parsed="|Jas|3|2|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:2">Jas. 3:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.8" parsed="|1John|1|8|0|0" passage="I John 1:8">I John 1:8</scripRef>; and that, on
the other hand, those who have gone before are entirely sanctified. It
speaks of them as
"the
spirits of just men made perfect," <scripRef id="vi.x-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.23" parsed="|Heb|12|23|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:23">Heb. 12:23</scripRef>, and as "without
blemish," <scripRef id="vi.x-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.14.5" parsed="|Rev|14|5|0|0" passage="Rev. 14:5">Rev. 14:5</scripRef>. Moreover, we are told that in the heavenly city of God there shall in no
wise enter
"anything unclean or he that maketh an abomination and a lie,"
<scripRef id="vi.x-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.27" parsed="|Rev|21|27|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:27">Rev. 21:27</scripRef>; and that
Christ at His coming will "fashion anew the body of our
humiliation, that it may be
conformed to the
body of His glory," <scripRef id="vi.x-p20.10" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:21">Phil. 3:21</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="vi.x-p20.11">F. THE AUTHOR AND MEANS OF SANCTIFICATION.</h4>
<p id="vi.x-p21" shownumber="no">Sanctification is a work of the triune God, but is
ascribed more particularly to the
Holy Spirit in Scripture, <scripRef id="vi.x-p21.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:11">Rom. 8:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.15.16" parsed="|Rom|15|16|0|0" passage="Rom 15:16">15:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.2" parsed="|1Pet|1|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:2">I Pet. 1:2</scripRef>. It is
particularly important in our
day, with its emphasis on the necessity of approaching the study of
theology
anthropologically and its one-sided call to service in the kingdom of
God, to stress the
fact that God, and not man, is the author of sanctification. Especially
in view of the
Activism that is such a characteristic feature of American religious
life, and which
glorifies the work of man rather than the grace of God, it is necessary
to stress the fact
over and over again that sanctification is the fruit of justification,
that the former is
simply impossible without the latter, and that both are the fruits of
the grace of God in
the redemption of sinners. Though man is privileged to co-operate with
the Spirit of
God, he can do this only in virtue of the strength which the Spirit
imparts to him from
day to day. The spiritual development of man is not a
human achievement, but a work
of divine grace. Man deserves no credit whatsoever for that which he
contributes to it
instrumentally. In so far as sanctification takes place in the
subconscious life, it is
effected by the immediate operation of the Holy Spirit. But as a work in
the conscious
life of believers it is wrought by several means, which the Holy Spirit
employs.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p22" shownumber="no">1. THE WORD OF GOD. In opposition to the Church of Rome it should be
maintained that the principal means used by the Holy Spirit is the Word of God.
The truth in itself
certainly has no adequate efficiency to sanctify the believer, yet it is
naturally adapted to
be the means of sanctification as employed by the Holy Spirit. Scripture
presents all the
objective conditions for holy exercises and acts. It serves to excite
spiritual activity by
presenting motives and inducements, and gives direction to it by
prohibitions,
exhortations,
and examples, <scripRef id="vi.x-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.22" parsed="|1Pet|1|22|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:22">I Pet. 1:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.2" parsed="|1Pet|2|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:2">2:2</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:4. </p>

<p id="vi.x-p23" shownumber="no">2. THE SACRAMENTS.
These are the means<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p23.1">
par excellence</span>
according to
the Church of
Rome. Protestants regard them as subordinate to the Word of God, and
sometimes even
speak of them as the "visible Word." They symbolize and seal
to us the same truths that
are verbally expressed in the Word of God, and may be regarded as an
acted word,
containing a lively representation of the truth, which the Holy Spirit
makes the occasion
for holy exercises. They are not only subordinate to the Word of God,
but cannot exist
without it, and
are therefore always accompanied by it, <scripRef id="vi.x-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.3" parsed="|Rom|6|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:3">Rom. 6:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.13" parsed="|1Cor|12|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:13">I Cor. 12:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.5" parsed="|Titus|3|5|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:5">Tit. 3:5</scripRef>; I Pet, 3:21.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p24" shownumber="no">3. PROVIDENTIAL GUIDANCE. God's
providences, both favorable and adverse, are
often powerful means of sanctification. In connection with the operation
of the Holy
Spirit through the Word, they work on our natural affections and thus
frequently
deepen the impression of religious truth and force it home. It should be
borne in mind
that the light of God's revelation is necessary for the interpretation
of His providential
guidances, <scripRef id="vi.x-p24.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.119.71" parsed="|Ps|119|71|0|0" passage="Ps. 119:71">Ps. 119:71</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p24.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.4" parsed="|Rom|2|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:4">Rom. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.10" parsed="|Heb|12|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:10">Heb. 12:10</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="vi.x-p24.4">G. RELATION OF SANCTIFICATION TO OTHER STAGES IN THE ORDO SALUTIS.</h4>

<p id="vi.x-p25" shownumber="no">It is of considerable importance to have a correct
conception of the relation between
sanctification and some of the other stages in the work of redemption.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p26" shownumber="no">1. TO REGENERATION. There is both
difference and similarity here. Regeneration is completed at once, for a man
cannot be more or less regenerated; he is either dead or
alive spiritually. Sanctification is a process, bringing about gradual
changes, so that
different grades may be distinguished in the resulting holiness. Hence
we are
admonished to perfect holiness in the fear of the Lord, <scripRef id="vi.x-p26.1" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.7.1" parsed="|2Cor|7|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 7:1">II Cor. 7:1</scripRef>. The
Heidelberg
Catechism also presupposes that there are degrees of holiness, when it
says that even
"the holiest men, when in this life, have only a small beginning of
this obedience."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.x-p26.2" n="91" place="foot">Q. 114.</note>
At
the same time regeneration is the beginning of sanctification. The work
of renewal,
begun in the
former, is continued in the latter, <scripRef id="vi.x-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.6" parsed="|Phil|1|6|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:6">Phil. 1:6</scripRef>. Strong says: "It
(sanctification) is distinguished from regeneration as growth from birth, or as the strengthening
of a holy
disposition from the original impartation of it."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.x-p26.4" n="92" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.x-p26.5">Syst. Theol.,</span> p. 871.</note></p>

<p id="vi.x-p27" shownumber="no">2. TO JUSTIFICATION. Justification precedes and is basic to sanctification in the
covenant of grace. In the covenant of works the order of righteousness
and holiness was
just the reverse. Adam was created with a holy disposition and
inclination to serve God,
but on the basis of this holiness he had to work out the righteousness
that would entitle
him to eternal life. Justification is the judicial basis for
sanctification. God has the right
to demand of us holiness of life, but because we cannot work out this
holiness for
ourselves, He freely works it within us through the Holy Spirit on the
basis of the
righteousness of Jesus Christ, which is imputed to us in justification.
The very fact that it is based on justification, in which the free grace of God stands out
with the greatest
prominence, excludes the idea that we can ever merit anything in
sanctification. The
Roman Catholic idea that justification enables man to perform
meritorious works is
contrary to Scripture. Justification as such does not effect a change in
our inner being
and therefore needs sanctification as its complement. It is not
sufficient that the sinner stands righteous before God; he must also be holy in
his inmost life. Barth has a rather
unusual representation of the relation between justification and
sanctification. In order
to ward off all self-righteousness, he insists on it that the two always
be considered
jointly. They go together and should not be considered quantitatively,
as if the one
followed the other. Justification is not a station which one passes, an
accomplished fact
on the basis of which one next proceeds to the highway of
sanctification. It is not a
completed fact to which one can look back with definite assurance, but
occurs ever
anew whenever man has reached the point of complete despair, and then
goes hand in
hand with sanctification. And just as man remains a sinner even after
justification, so he
also remains a sinner in sanctification, even his best deeds continue to
be sins.
Sanctification does not engender a holy disposition, and does not
gradually purify man.
It does not put him in possession of any personal holiness, does not
make him a saint,
but leaves him a sinner. It really becomes a declarative act like
justification.
McConnachie, who is a very sympathetic interpreter of Barth, says:
"Justification and
sanctification are, therefore, to Barth, two sides of one act of God
upon men.
Justification is
the pardon of the sinner (<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p27.1">justificatio impii</span> ),<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p27.2">
by which</span>
God declares the
sinner
righteous. Sanctification is the sanctification of the sinner (<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p27.3">
sanctificatio impii</span>), by
which God declares the sinner 'holy'." However laudable the desire
of Barth to destroy
every vestige of work-righteousness, he certainly goes to an unwarranted
extreme, in
which he virtually confuses justification and sanctification, negatives
the Christian life, and rules out the possibility of confident assurance.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p28" shownumber="no">3. TO FAITH. Faith is the mediate or
instrumental cause of sanctification as well as of
justification. It does not merit sanctification any more than it does
justification, but it
unites us to Christ and keeps us in touch with Him as the Head of the new
humanity,
who is the source of the new life within us, and also of our progressive
sanctification,
through the operation of the Holy Spirit. The consciousness of the fact
that sanctification
is based on justification, and is impossible on any other basis, and
that the constant
exercise of faith is necessary, in order to advance in the way of
holiness, will guard us
against all self-righteousness in our striving to advance in godliness
and holiness of life.
It deserves particular attention that, while even the weakest faith
mediates a perfect justification, the degree of sanctification is commensurate with the
strength of the
Christian's faith and the persistence with which he apprehends Christ.
</p>

<h4 id="vi.x-p28.1">H. THE IMPERFECT CHARACTER OF SANCTIFICATION IN THIS LIFE.</h4>

<p id="vi.x-p29" shownumber="no">1. SANCTIFICATION IMPERFECT IN DEGREE. When we speak of sanctification as being
imperfect in this life, we do not mean to say that it is imperfect in
parts, as if only a part
of the holy man that originates in regeneration were affected. It is the
whole, but yet
undeveloped new man, that must grow into full stature. A
new-born child is, barring
exceptions, perfect in parts, but not vet in the degree of development
for which it is
intended. Just so the new man is perfect in parts, but remains in the
present life
imperfect in the degree of spiritual development. Believers must contend
with sin as
long as they
live, <scripRef id="vi.x-p29.1" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.46" parsed="|1Kgs|8|46|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:46">I Kings 8:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p29.2" osisRef="Bible:Prov.20.9" parsed="|Prov|20|9|0|0" passage="Prov. 20:9">Prov. 20:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p29.3" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.7.20" parsed="|Eccl|7|20|0|0" passage="Eccl. 7:20">Eccl. 7:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p29.4" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.2" parsed="|Jas|3|2|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:2">Jas. 3:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p29.5" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.8" parsed="|1John|1|8|0|0" passage="I John 1:8">I John 1:8</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.x-p30" shownumber="no">2. DENIAL OF THIS IMPERFECTION BY THE PERFECTIONISTS. </p>
<p id="vi.x-p31" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p31.1">
The doctrine of perfectionism.</span>
Speaking
generally, this doctrine is to the effect that
religious perfection is attainable in the present life. It is taught in
various forms by
Pelagians, Roman Catholics or Semi-Pelagians, Arminians, Wesleyans, such
mystical
sects as the Labadists, the Quietists, the Quakers, and others, some of
the Oberlin
theologians, such as Mahan and Finney, and Ritschl. These all agree in
maintaining that
it is possible for believers in this life to attain to a state in which
they comply with the
requirements of
the law<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p31.2"> under which they now live</span>, or under that
law<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p31.3"> as it was adjusted to their present ability and needs</span>, and,
consequently, to be free from sin. They differ,
however: (1) In their view of sin, the Pelagians, in distinction from
all the rest, denying
the inherent corruption of man. They all agree, however, in
externalizing sin. (2) In their
conception of the law which believers are now obliged to fulfill, the
Arminians,
including the Wesleyans, differing from all the rest in holding that
this is not the
original moral law, but the gospel requirements or the new law of faith
and evangelical
obedience. The Roman Catholics and the Oberlin theologians maintain that
it is the
original law, but admit that the demands of this law are adjusted to
man's deteriorated
powers and to his present ability. And Ritschl discards the whole idea
that man is
subject to an externally imposed law. He defends the autonomy of moral
conduct, and
holds that we are under no law but such as is evolved out of our own
moral disposition
in the course of activities for the fulfilment of our vocation. (3) In
their idea of the
sinner's dependence on the renewing grace of God for the ability to
fulfill the law. All, except the Pelagians, admit that he is in some sense dependent on divine
grace, in order
to the attainment of perfection.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p32" shownumber="no">It is very significant that all the leading perfectionist
theories (with the sole
exception of the Pelagian, which denies the inherent corruption of man)
deem it
necessary to lower the standard of perfection and do not hold man
responsible for a
great deal that is undoubtedly demanded by the original
moral law. And it is equally significant that they feel the necessity of externalizing the idea of
sin, when they claim
that only conscious wrong-doing can be so considered, and refuse to
recognize as sin a
great deal that is represented as such in Scripture.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p33" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p33.1">
Scriptural
proofs adduced for the doctrine of perfectionism. </span></p>

<p id="vi.x-p34" shownumber="no">(1) The Bible commands believers to be holy and even to be perfect, <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.1" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.16" parsed="|1Pet|1|16|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:16">I
Pet. 1:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.48" parsed="|Matt|5|48|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:48">Matt. 5:48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.3" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.4" parsed="|Jas|1|4|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:4">Jas. 1:4</scripRef>, and urges them to follow the example of Christ who did
no sin, <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.4" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.21" parsed="|1Pet|2|21|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:21">I Pet. 2:21</scripRef> f. Such commands would be unreasonable, if it were not possible to reach
sinless
perfection. But the Scriptural demand to be holy and perfect holds for
the unregenerate
as well as for the regenerate, since the law of God demands holiness
from the start and
has never been revoked. If the command implies that they to whom it
comes can live up
to the requirement, this must be true of every man. However, only those
who teach
perfectionism in the Pelagian sense can hold that view. The measure of
our ability
cannot be inferred from the Scriptural commandments.
(2) Holiness and perfection are often ascribed to
believers in Scripture, Song of Sol. 4:7; <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.6" parsed="|1Cor|2|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:6">I Cor. 2:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.6" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.17" parsed="|2Cor|5|17|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:17">II Cor. 5:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.27" parsed="|Eph|5|27|0|0" passage="Eph. 5:27">Eph. 5:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.14" parsed="|Heb|5|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 5:14">Heb. 5:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.9" osisRef="Bible:Phil.4.13" parsed="|Phil|4|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 4:13">Phil. 4:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.10" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.10" parsed="|Col|2|10|0|0" passage="Col. 2:10">Col. 2:10</scripRef>. When the Bible
speaks of believers as holy and perfect, however, this does not
necessarily mean that
they are without sin, since both words are often used in a different
sense, not only in
common parlance, but also in the Bible. Persons set aside for the
special service of God
are called holy in the Bible, irrespective of their moral condition and
life. Believers can
be and are called holy, because they are objectively holy in Christ, or
because they are in
principle subjectively sanctified by the Spirit of God. Paul in his
Epistles invariably
addresses his readers as saints, that is "holy ones," and then
proceeds in several cases to
take them to task for their sins. And when believers are described as
perfect, this means
in some cases merely that they are full-grown, <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.6" parsed="|1Cor|2|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:6">I Cor. 2:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.14" parsed="|Heb|5|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 5:14">Heb. 5:14</scripRef>,
and in others that
they are fully equipped for their task, <scripRef id="vi.x-p34.13" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.17" parsed="|2Tim|3|17|0|0" passage="II Tim. 3:17">II Tim. 3:17</scripRef>. All this certainly
does not give
countenance to the theory of sin less perfection.
</p>
<p id="vi.x-p35" shownumber="no">(3) There are, it is said, Biblical examples of saints
who led perfect lives, such as Noah, Job, and Asa, <scripRef id="vi.x-p35.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.6.9" parsed="|Gen|6|9|0|0" passage="Gen. 6:9">Gen. 6:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p35.2" osisRef="Bible:Job.1.1" parsed="|Job|1|1|0|0" passage="Job 1:1">Job 1:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p35.3" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.15.14" parsed="|1Kgs|15|14|0|0" passage="I Kings 15:14">I Kings 15:14</scripRef>. But, surely, such examples as these
do not prove the point for the simple reason that they are no examples
of sinless
perfection. Even the most notable saints of the Bible are pictured as
men who had their
failings and who sinned, in some cases very grievously. This is true of
Noah, Moses, Job,
Abraham, and all the others. It is true that this does not necessarily
prove that their lives
remained sinful as long as they lived on earth, but it is a striking
fact that we are not
introduced to a single one who was without sin. The question of Solomon
is still
pertinent: "Who can say, I have made my heart clean, I am pure from
my sin?" <scripRef id="vi.x-p35.4" osisRef="Bible:Prov.20.9" parsed="|Prov|20|9|0|0" passage="Prov. 20:9">Prov. 20:9</scripRef>. Moreover, John says: "If we say that we have no sin, we
deceive ourselves, and the
truth is not in
us," <scripRef id="vi.x-p35.5" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.8" parsed="|1John|1|8|0|0" passage="I John 1:8">I John 1:8</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.x-p36" shownumber="no">(4) The apostle John declares explicitly that they who
are born of God do not sin, <scripRef id="vi.x-p36.1" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.6" parsed="|1John|3|6|0|0" passage="I John 3:6">I John 3:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p36.2" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.8" parsed="|1John|3|8|0|0" passage="I John 3:8">8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p36.3" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.9" parsed="|1John|3|9|0|0" passage="I John 3:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p36.4" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.18" parsed="|1John|5|18|0|0" passage="I John 5:18">5:18</scripRef>. But when John says that they who are born of God do
not sin, he is
contrasting the two states, represented by the old and the new man, as
to their essential
nature and principle. One of the essential characteristics of the new
man is that he does
not sin. In view of the fact that John invariably uses the present to
express the idea that
the one born of God does not sin, it is possible that he desires to
express the idea that
the child of God
does not<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p36.5"> go on sinning habitually</span>, as the devil
does, <scripRef id="vi.x-p36.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.8" parsed="|1John|3|8|0|0" passage="I John 3:8">I John 3:8</scripRef>.<note anchored="yes" id="vi.x-p36.7" n="93" place="foot">Cf. Robertson,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p36.8"> The Minister and His Greek Testament</span>, p. 100.</note>
He certainly does not mean to assert that the believer never commits an act
of sin, cf. <scripRef id="vi.x-p36.9" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.8-1John.1.10" parsed="|1John|1|8|1|10" passage="I John 1:8-10">I John 1:8-10</scripRef>. Moreover, the Perfectionist cannot very well use these passages
to prove his
point, since they would prove too much for his purpose. He does not make
bold to say
that all believers are actually sinless, but only that they can reach a
state of sinless
perfection. The Johannine passages, however, would prove, on his
interpretation, that all believers are without sin. And more than that, they
would also prove that believers
never fall from the state of grace (for this is sinning); and yet the
Perfectionists are the
very people who believe that even perfect Christians may fall away.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p37" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p37.1"> Objections to
the theory of Perfectionism. </span>
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p38" shownumber="no">(1) In the light of Scripture the doctrine of Perfectionism is
absolutely untenable. The
Bible gives us the explicit and very definite assurance that there is no
one on earth who
does not sin, <scripRef id="vi.x-p38.1" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.46" parsed="|1Kgs|8|46|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:46">I Kings 8:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p38.2" osisRef="Bible:Prov.20.9" parsed="|Prov|20|9|0|0" passage="Prov. 20:9">Prov. 20:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p38.3" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.7.20" parsed="|Eccl|7|20|0|0" passage="Eccl. 7:20">Eccl. 7:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p38.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.3.10" parsed="|Rom|3|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 3:10">Rom. 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p38.5" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.2" parsed="|Jas|3|2|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:2">Jas. 3:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p38.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.8" parsed="|1John|1|8|0|0" passage="I John 1:8">I John 1:8</scripRef>. In view of
these clear statements of Scripture it is hard to see how any who claim
to believe the
Bible as the infallible Word of God can hold that it is possible for
believers to lead
sinless lives, and that some actually succeed in avoiding all sin.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p39" shownumber="no">(2) According to Scripture there is a constant warfare
between the flesh and the
Spirit in the lives of God's children, and even the best of them are
still striving for
perfection. Paul gives a very striking description of this struggle in
<scripRef id="vi.x-p39.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.7-Rom.7.26" parsed="|Rom|7|7|7|26" passage="Rom. 7:7-26">Rom. 7:7-26</scripRef>, a passage which certainly refers to him in his regenerate state. In <scripRef id="vi.x-p39.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.16-Gal.5.24" parsed="|Gal|5|16|5|24" passage="Gal. 5:16-24">Gal. 5:16-24</scripRef> he speaks of
that very same struggle as a struggle that characterizes all the
children of God. And in
<scripRef id="vi.x-p39.3" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.10-Phil.3.14" parsed="|Phil|3|10|3|14" passage="Phil. 3:10-14">Phil. 3:10-14</scripRef> he speaks of himself, practically at the end of his
career, as one who has not
yet reached perfection, but is pressing on toward the goal.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p40" shownumber="no">(3) Confession of sin and prayer for forgiveness are
continually required. Jesus
taught all His disciples without any exception to pray for the
forgiveness of sins and for
deliverance from temptation and from the evil one, <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.12" parsed="|Matt|6|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 6:12">Matt. 6:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p40.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.6.13" parsed="|Matt|6|13|0|0" passage="Matt 6:13">13</scripRef>. And
John says: "If we
confess our sins, He is faithful and righteous to forgive us our sins,
and to cleanse us
from all unrighteousness," <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.3" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.9" parsed="|1John|1|9|0|0" passage="I John 1:9">I John 1:9</scripRef>. Moreover, Bible saints are
constantly represented
as confessing
their sins, <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.4" osisRef="Bible:Job.9.3" parsed="|Job|9|3|0|0" passage="Job 9:3">Job 9:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p40.5" osisRef="Bible:Job.9.20" parsed="|Job|9|20|0|0" passage="Job 9:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.5" parsed="|Ps|32|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 32:5">Ps. 32:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.130.3" parsed="|Ps|130|3|0|0" passage="Ps 130:3">130:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.143.2" parsed="|Ps|143|2|0|0" passage="Ps 143:2">143:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.9" osisRef="Bible:Prov.20.9" parsed="|Prov|20|9|0|0" passage="Prov. 20:9">Prov. 20:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.10" osisRef="Bible:Isa.64.6" parsed="|Isa|64|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 64:6">Isa. 64:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.11" osisRef="Bible:Dan.9.16" parsed="|Dan|9|16|0|0" passage="Dan. 9:16">Dan. 9:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p40.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.14" parsed="|Rom|7|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 7:14">Rom. 7:14</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vi.x-p41" shownumber="no">(4) The Perfectionists themselves deem it necessary to
lower the standard of the law
and to externalize the idea of sin, in order to maintain their theory.
Moreover, some of
them have repeatedly modified the ideal to which, in their estimation,
believers can
attain. At first
the ideal was "freedom from all sin"; then, "freedom from all
conscious sin," next, "entire consecration to God," and,
finally, "Christian assurance." This is in
itself a sufficient condemnation of their theory. We naturally do not deny
that the
Christian can attain to the assurance of faith.
</p>
<h4 id="vi.x-p41.1">I. SANCTIFICATION AND GOOD WORKS.</h4>

<p id="vi.x-p42" shownumber="no">Sanctification and good works are most intimately
related. Just as the old life
expresses itself in works of evil, so the new life, that originates in
regeneration and is promoted and strengthened in sanctification, naturally
manifests itself in good works.
These may be called the fruits of sanctification, and as such come into
consideration here.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p43" shownumber="no">1. THE NATURE OF GOOD WORKS.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p44" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p44.1">
Good works in the specifically theological sense.</span>
When we speak
of good works in
connection with sanctification, we do not refer to works that are
perfect, that answer
perfectly to the requirements of the divine moral law, and that are of
such inherent
worth as to entitle one to the reward of eternal life under the
conditions of the covenant
of works. We do mean, however, works that are essentially different in
moral quality
from the actions of the unregenerate, and that are the expressions of a
new and holy
nature, as the principle from which they spring. These are works which
God not only
approves, but in a certain sense also rewards. The following are the
characteristics of
works that are spiritually good: (1) They are the fruits of a regenerate
heart, since
without this no one can have the disposition (to obey God) and the
motive (to glorify
God) that is required, <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.33" parsed="|Matt|12|33|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:33">Matt. 12:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.17" parsed="|Matt|7|17|0|0" passage="Matt 7:17">7:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p44.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.18" parsed="|Matt|7|18|0|0" passage="Matt 7:18">18</scripRef>. (2) They are not only in
external conformity
with the law of God, but are also done in conscious obedience to the
revealed will of
God, that is, because they are required by God. They spring from the
principle of love to
God and from the
desire to do His will, <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.5" osisRef="Bible:Deut.6.2" parsed="|Deut|6|2|0|0" passage="Deut. 6:2">Deut. 6:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.6" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.15.22" parsed="|1Sam|15|22|0|0" passage="I Sam. 15:22">I Sam. 15:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.1.12" parsed="|Isa|1|12|0|0" passage="Isa. 1:12">Isa. 1:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.8" osisRef="Bible:Isa.29.13" parsed="|Isa|29|13|0|0" passage="Isa 29:13">29:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.15.9" parsed="|Matt|15|9|0|0" passage="Matt. 15:9">Matt. 15:9</scripRef>. (3) Whatever their proximate aim may be, their final aim is not
the welfare of man,
but the glory of
God, which is the highest conceivable aim of man's life, <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.31" parsed="|1Cor|10|31|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:31">I Cor. 10:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.1" parsed="|Rom|12|1|0|0" passage="Rom. 12:1">Rom. 12:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p44.12" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.17" parsed="|Col|3|17|0|0" passage="Col. 3:17">Col. 3:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p44.13" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.23" parsed="|Col|3|23|0|0" passage="Col 3:23">23</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p45" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p45.1">
Good works in a more general sense.</span>
Though the term
"good works" is generally
used in theology in the strict sense just indicated, it remains true
that the unregenerate
can also perform works that may be called good in a superficial sense of
the word. They
often perform works that are in outward conformity with the law of God
and may be
called objectively good, in distinction from flagrant
transgressions of the law. Such
works answer to a proximate aim that meets with the approval of God.
Moreover, in
virtue of the remains of the image of God in the natural man and of the
light of nature,
man may be guided in his relation to other men by motives
which are laudable and in
so far bear the stamp of God's approval. Those good works, however,
cannot be
regarded as fruits of the corrupt heart of man. They find their
explanation only in the
common grace of God. Furthermore, we should bear in mind that, though
these works
can be called good in a certain sense and are so called in the Bible,
<scripRef id="vi.x-p45.2" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.33" parsed="|Luke|6|33|0|0" passage="Luke 6:33">Luke 6:33</scripRef>, they are
yet essentially defective. The deeds of the unregenerate are divorced
from the spiritual
root of love to God. They represent no inner obedience to the law of God
and no
subjection to the will of the sovereign Ruler of heaven and earth. They
have no spiritual
aim, since they are not performed for the purpose of glorifying God, but
only bear on
the relations of the natural life. The real quality of the act is, of course,
determined by the quality of its final aim. The ability of the unregenerate to
perform good works in
some sense of the word has often been denied. Barth goes one step
further when he
goes to the extreme of denying that believers can do good works, and
asserts that all
their works are sins.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p46" shownumber="no">2. THE MERITORIOUS CHARACTER OF GOOD WORKS. Even from the earliest ages of the
Christian Church there was a tendency to ascribe a certain merit to good
works, but the
doctrine of merit was really developed in the Middle Ages. At the time
of the
Reformation it was very prominent in Roman Catholic theology and was
pushed to
ridiculous extremes in practical life. The Reformers at once joined
issue with the Church
of Rome on this point.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p47" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p47.1">
The position of Rome on the point in question.</span>
The Roman
Catholic Church
distinguishes between a<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p47.2">
meritum de condigno</span>
which
represents inherent dignity and
worth, and a<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p47.3">
meritum de
congruo</span>, which is a sort of quasi-merit, something fit to be
rewarded. The former attaches only to works done after regeneration by
the aid of
divine grace, and is a merit which intrinsically deserves the reward it
receives from the
hand of God. The latter attaches to those dispositions or works which a
man may
develop or do before regeneration, in virtue of a mere prevenient grace,
and is a merit
which makes it congruous or fitting for God to reward the agent by
infusing grace into
his heart. Since the decisions of the Council of Trent are rather
dubious on this point,
there is some uncertainty, however, as to the exact position of the
Church. The general idea seems to be that the ability to perform good works in
the strict sense of the word
springs from grace infused into the sinner's heart for the sake of
Christ; and that
afterwards these good works merit, that is, give man a just claim to,
salvation and glory.
The Church goes even farther than that, and teaches that believers can
perform works of
supererogation, can do more than is necessary for their own salvation
and can thus lay by a store of good works, which may accrue to the benefit of
others.</p>

<p id="vi.x-p48" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p48.1">
The Scriptural position on this point.</span>
Scripture
clearly teaches that the good works of
believers are not meritorious in the proper sense of the word. We should
bear in mind,
however, that the word "merit" is employed in a twofold sense,
the one strict and
proper, and the other loose. Strictly speaking, a meritorious work is
one to which, on account of its intrinsic value and dignity, the reward is
justly due from commutative
justice. Loosely speaking, however, a work that is deserving of approval
and to which a
reward is somehow attached (by promise, agreement, or otherwise) is also
sometimes
called meritorious. Such works are praiseworthy and are rewarded by God.
But, however this may be, they are surely not meritorious in the strict sense
of the word.
They do not, by their own intrinsic moral value, make God a debtor to
him who
performs them. In strict justice the good works of believers merit
nothing. Some of the
most conclusive passages of Scripture to prove the point under
consideration are the
following: <scripRef id="vi.x-p48.2" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.9" parsed="|Luke|17|9|0|0" passage="Luke 17:9">Luke 17:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p48.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.10" parsed="|Luke|17|10|0|0" passage="Luke 17:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p48.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.15-Rom.5.18" parsed="|Rom|5|15|5|18" passage="Rom. 5:15-18">Rom. 5:15-18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p48.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.23" parsed="|Rom|6|23|0|0" passage="Rom 6:23">6:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p48.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.8-Eph.2.10" parsed="|Eph|2|8|2|10" passage="Eph. 2:8-10">Eph. 2:8-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p48.7" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.9" parsed="|2Tim|1|9|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:9">II Tim. 1:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p48.8" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.5" parsed="|Titus|3|5|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:5">Tit. 3:5</scripRef>. These
passages clearly show that believers do not receive the inheritance of
salvation because it is due to them in virtue of their good works, but only as
a free gift of God. It stands to
reason also that such works cannot be meritorious, for: (1) Believers
owe their whole life
to God and therefore cannot merit anything by giving God simply what is
His due,
<scripRef id="vi.x-p48.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.9" parsed="|Luke|17|9|0|0" passage="Luke 17:9">Luke 17:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p48.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.10" parsed="|Luke|17|10|0|0" passage="Luke 17:10">10</scripRef>. (2) They cannot perform good works in their own strength,
but only in the
strength which God imparts to them from day to day; and in view of that
fact they
cannot expect the credit for these works, <scripRef id="vi.x-p48.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.10" parsed="|1Cor|15|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:10">I Cor. 15:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p48.12" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.13" parsed="|Phil|2|13|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:13">Phil. 2:13</scripRef>. (3)
Even the best works
of believers remain imperfect in this life, and all good works together
represent only a
partial obedience, while the law demands perfect obedience and can be
satisfied with
nothing less,
<scripRef id="vi.x-p48.13" osisRef="Bible:Isa.64.6" parsed="|Isa|64|6|0|0" passage="Isa. 64:6">Isa. 64:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p48.14" osisRef="Bible:Jas.3.2" parsed="|Jas|3|2|0|0" passage="Jas. 3:2">Jas. 3:2</scripRef>. (4) Moreover, the good works of believers are out of all
proportion to the eternal reward of glory. A temporal and imperfect
obedience can
never merit an eternal and perfect reward.
</p>

<p id="vi.x-p49" shownumber="no">3. THE NECESSITY OF GOOD WORKS. There can
be no doubt about the necessity of good
works properly understood. They cannot be regarded as necessary to merit
salvation,
nor as a means to retain a hold on salvation, nor even as the only way
along which to
proceed to eternal glory, for children enter salvation without having
done any good
works. The Bible does not teach that no one can be saved apart from good
works. At the
same time good works necessarily follow from the union of believers with
Christ. "He
that abideth in me and I in him, the same beareth much fruit," <scripRef id="vi.x-p49.1" osisRef="Bible:John.15.5" parsed="|John|15|5|0|0" passage="John 15:5">John
15:5</scripRef>. They are also
necessary as
required by God, <scripRef id="vi.x-p49.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.7.4" parsed="|Rom|7|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 7:4">Rom. 7:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p49.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.12" parsed="|Rom|8|12|0|0" passage="Rom 8:12">8:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p49.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.13" parsed="|Rom|8|13|0|0" passage="Rom 8:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p49.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.2" parsed="|Gal|6|2|0|0" passage="Gal. 6:2">Gal. 6:2</scripRef>, as the fruits of faith, <scripRef id="vi.x-p49.6" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.14" parsed="|Jas|2|14|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:14">Jas. 2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p49.7" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.17" parsed="|Jas|2|17|0|0" passage="Jas 2:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.x-p49.8" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.20-Jas.2.22" parsed="|Jas|2|20|2|22" passage="Jas 2:20-22">20-22</scripRef>, as expressions of gratitude, <scripRef id="vi.x-p49.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.20" parsed="|1Cor|6|20|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:20">I Cor. 6:20</scripRef>, unto the
assurance of faith, <scripRef id="vi.x-p49.10" osisRef="Bible:2Pet.1.5-2Pet.1.10" parsed="|2Pet|1|5|1|10" passage="II Peter 1:5-10">II Peter 1:5-10</scripRef>, and to
the glory of God, <scripRef id="vi.x-p49.11" osisRef="Bible:John.15.8" parsed="|John|15|8|0|0" passage="John 15:8">John 15:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.x-p49.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.31" parsed="|1Cor|10|31|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:31">I Cor. 10:31</scripRef>. The necessity of good works must
be maintained over against the Antinomians, who
claim that, since Christ not only bore
the penalty of sin, but also met the positive demands of the law, the
believer is free from
the obligation to observe it, an error that is still with us to-day in
some of the forms of
dispensationalism. This is a thoroughly false position, for it is only
the law as a system
of penalty and as a method of salvation that is abolished in the death
of Christ. The law as the standard of our moral life is a transcript of the
holiness of God and is therefore of
permanent validity also for the believer, though his attitude to the law
has undergone a
radical change. He has received the Spirit of God, which is the Spirit
of obedience, so
that, without any constraint, he willingly obeys the law. Strong sums it
up well, when
he says: Christ frees us "(1) from the law as a system of curse and
penalty; this He does
by bearing the curse and penalty Himself . . . ; (2) from the law with
its claims as a
method of salvation; this He does by making His obedience and merits
ours . . . ; (3)
from the law as an outward and foreign compulsion; this He does by
giving us the spirit
of obedience and sonship, by which the law is progressively realized
within."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.x-p49.13" n="94" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.x-p49.14">Syst. Theol.,</span> p.876</note></p>

<p id="vi.x-p50" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: How was
theocratic, related to ethical, holiness
among Israel? How were the ritual purifications related to
sanctification? Who is the
subject of sanctification, the old man or the new, or neither of the
two? Does
sanctification in this life affect all parts of man equally? Where does
the process of
sanctification begin? Do all Christians experience a steady progress in
sanctification?
What is the difference between sanctification and moral improvement?
Does the fact
that sanctification is never complete in this life necessarily lead to
the doctrine of
purgatory, or to that of the continuation of sanctification after death?
How did Wesley
conceive of
"entire sanctification"? Does Barth also ascribe holiness as an
ethical quality
to the believer? What Scripture proof is there that the Christian is not
free from the law
as a rule of life? Do Protestants in general teach that good works are
not necessary?
How do Roman Catholics and Protestants differ as to the necessity of
good works? Is it
wise to say without any qualification that good works are necessary unto
salvation? If
all Christians inherit eternal life, in what sense will their good works
be the standard of
their reward?</p>

<p id="vi.x-p51" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.1">; Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 245-288; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Salute</span>, pp. 134-157; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.3">
Het Werk van den Heiligen Geest</span> III, pp. 1-123; Vos.<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.4">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
IV, pp. 211-248; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.5">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 213-258; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.6">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 553-560; Dabney,
<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.7">Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 660-687; Strong,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.8">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 869-881; Alexander,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.9">
Syst. of Bibl. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 428-459; Litton,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.10">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 322-337; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.11">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 491-503;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.12">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp.
272-277; Pieper,
<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.13">Chr. Dogmatik</span>
III, pp. 1-106; Watson,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.14">
Theol. Institutes</span>
III, pp. 197-206; Curtiss,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.15">
The Chr. Faith</span>, pp. 373-393; Pope,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.16">
Chr. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 28-99; Candlish,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.17">
The Chr. Salvation</span>, pp. 110-133; Impeta,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.18">
De Leer der Heiliging and Volmaking bij Wesley and
Fletcher</span>; Clarke,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.19">
An Outline of Chr. Theol.</span>, pp. 409-427; Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.20">
Handbook of the Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 293-304;
Moehler,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.21"> Symbolism</span>, pp. 157-175; Finney,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.22">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 402-481; Starbuck,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.23">
The Psych. of Rel.</span>, pp. 375-391; Koberle,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.24">
The Quest of Holiness</span>; Warfield,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.25">; Studies in Perfectionism</span> (2
vols.); Newton
Flew,<span class="ital" id="vi.x-p51.26">
The Idea of Perfection in Christian
Theology. </span></p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vi.xi" next="vii" prev="vi.x" title="XI. Perseverance of the Saints">
<h2 id="vi.xi-p0.1">XI. Perseverance of the Saints</h2>

<h4 id="vi.xi-p0.2">A. THE DOCTRINE OF THE PERSEVERANCE OF THE SAINTS IN HISTORY.</h4>
<p id="vi.xi-p1" shownumber="no">The doctrine of the perseverance of the saints is to the
effect that they whom God
has regenerated and effectually called to a state of grace, can neither
totally nor finally
fall away from that state, but shall certainly persevere therein to the
end and be
eternally saved. This doctrine was first explicitly taught by Augustine,
though he was
not as consistent on this point as might have been expected of him as a
strict
predestinarian. With him the doctrine did not assume the form just
stated. He held that
the elect could not so fall away as to be finally lost, but at the same
time considered it
possible that some who were endowed with new life and true faith could
fall from grace
completely and at last suffer eternal damnation. The Church of Rome with
its Semi-
Pelagianism, including the doctrine of free will, denied the doctrine of
the perseverance
of the saints and made their perseverance dependent on the uncertain
obedience of
man. The Reformers restored this doctrine to its rightful place. The
Lutheran Church,
however, makes it uncertain again by making it contingent on man's
continued activity
of faith, and by assuming that true believers can fall completely from
grace. It is only in
the Calvinistic Churches that the doctrine is maintained in a form in
which it affords
absolute assurance. The Canons of Dort, after calling attention to the
many weaknesses
and failures of the children of God, declare: "But God, who is rich
in mercy, according to
His unchangeable purpose of election, does not wholly withdraw the Holy
Spirit from
His own people even in their grievous falls; nor suffers them to proceed
so far as to lose
the grace of adoption and forfeit the state of justification, or to
commit the sin unto
death or against the Holy Spirit; nor does He permit them to be totally
deserted, and to
plunge themselves into everlasting destruction."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.xi-p1.1" n="95" place="foot">V, Art. 6.</note>
The Arminians rejected this view
and
made the perseverance of believers dependent on their will to believe
and on their good
works. Arminius himself avoided that extreme, but his followers did did
not hesitate to
maintain their synergistic position with all its consequences. The
Wesleyan Arminians
followed suit as did several of the sects. The Reformed or Calvinistic
Churches stand
practically alone in giving a negative answer to the question, whether a
Christian can
completely fall from the state of grace and be finally lost. </p>

<h4 id="vi.xi-p1.2">B. STATEMENT OF THE DOCTRINE OF PERSEVERANCE.</h4>

<p id="vi.xi-p2" shownumber="no">The doctrine of perseverance requires careful statement,
especially in view of the fact that the term "perseverance of the
saints" is liable to misunderstanding. It should
be noted first of all that the doctrine is not merely to the effect that
the elect will
certainly be saved in the end, though Augustine has given it that form,
but teaches very
specifically that they who have once been regenerated and effectually
called by God to a
state of grace, can never completely fall from that state and thus fail
to attain to eternal
salvation, though they may sometimes be overcome by evil and fall in sin.
It is
maintained that the life of regeneration and the habits that develop out
of it in the way
of sanctification can never entirely disappear. Moreover, we should
guard against the
possible misunderstanding that this perseverance is regarded as an inherent
property of
the believer or as a continuous activity of man, by means of which he
perseveres in the
way of salvation. When Strong speaks of it as "the voluntary
continuance, on the part of
the Christian, in faith and well-doing," and as "the human
side or aspect of that
spiritual process which, as viewed from the divine side, we call
sanctification," — this is
certainly liable to create the impression that perseverance depends on
man. The
Reformed, however, do not consider the perseverance of the saints as
being, first of all, a
disposition or activity of the believer, though they certainly believe
that man co-
operates in it just as he does in sanctification. They even stress the
fact that the believer
would fall away, if he were left to himself. It is, strictly speaking,
not man but God who
perseveres.
Perseverance may be defined as<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p2.1">
that continuous operation of the Holy Spirit in the believer, by which the work of
divine grace that is begun in the heart, is continued and
brought to completion.</span>
It is because God never forsakes His work that believers continue
to stand to the very end.</p>

<h4 id="vi.xi-p2.2">C. PROOF FOR THE DOCTRINE OF PERSEVERANCE.</h4>
<p id="vi.xi-p3" shownumber="no">The doctrine of perseverance may be proved by certain statements of Scripture and by inference from other doctrines.</p>
<p id="vi.xi-p4" shownumber="no">1. DIRECT STATEMENTS OF SCRIPTURE. There are some
important passages of Scripture
that come into consideration here. In <scripRef id="vi.xi-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:John.10.27-John.10.29" parsed="|John|10|27|10|29" passage="John 10:27-29">John 10:27-29</scripRef> we read: "My
sheep hear my voice,
and I know them, and they follow me; and I give unto them eternal life;
and they shall
never perish, and no one shall snatch them out my hand. My Father, who
hath given
them unto me, is greater than all; and no one is able to snatch them out
of the Father's hand." Paul says in <scripRef id="vi.xi-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.29" parsed="|Rom|11|29|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:29">Rom. 11:29</scripRef>: "For the gifts and
the calling of God are not repented
of." This means that the grace of God revealed in His calling is
never withdrawn, as
though He repented of it. This is a general statement, though in the
connection in which
it is found it refers to the calling of Israel. The apostle comforts the
believing Philippians
with the words: "Being confident of this very thing, that He who
began a good work in
you will perfect
it unto the day of Jesus Christ," <scripRef id="vi.xi-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.6" parsed="|Phil|1|6|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:6">Phil. 1:6</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="vi.xi-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.3.3" parsed="|2Thess|3|3|0|0" passage="II Thess. 3:3">II Thess. 3:3</scripRef> he says:
"But
the Lord is faithful, who shall establish you, and guard you from the
evil one." In <scripRef id="vi.xi-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.12" parsed="|2Tim|1|12|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:12">II Tim. 1:12</scripRef> he sounds a note of rejoicing: "For I know Him whom I have believed, and I
am persuaded that He is able to guard that which I have committed unto
Him against
that day." And in 4:18 of the same Epistle he glories in the fact
that the Lord will deliver him from every evil work and will save him unto His heavenly kingdom.</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p5" shownumber="no">2. INFERENTIAL PROOFS. The doctrine of
perseverance may also be proved in an
inferential way.</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p6" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p6.1">
From the doctrine of election.</span>
Election does
not merely mean that some will be
favored with certain external privileges and<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p6.2">
may be saved</span>, if they do their duty, but that
they who belong to the number of the elect shall finally be saved and
can never fall
short of perfect salvation. It is an election unto an end, that is, unto
salvation. In
working it out God endows believers with such influences of the
Holy Spirit as to lead
them, not only to accept Christ, but to persevere unto the end and to be
saved unto the
uttermost.</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p7" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p7.1">
From the doctrine of the covenant of redemption.</span>
In the covenant
of redemption God
gave His people to His Son as the reward for the latter's obedience and
suffering. This
reward was fixed from eternity and was not left contingent on any
uncertain
faithfulness of man. God does not go back on His promise, and therefore
it is impossible
that they who are reckoned as being in Christ, and as forming a part of
His reward, can
be separated from Him (<scripRef id="vi.xi-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.38" parsed="|Rom|8|38|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:38">Rom. 8:38</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.xi-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.39" parsed="|Rom|8|39|0|0" passage="Rom 8:39">39</scripRef>), and that they who have entered the
covenant as
a communion of life should fall out.</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p8" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p8.1">
From the efficacy of the merits and intercession of
Christ.</span>
In His atoning work Christ
paid the price to purchase the sinner's pardon and acceptance. His
righteousness
constitutes the perfect ground for the justification of the sinner, and
it is impossible that
one who is justified by the payment of such a perfect and efficacious
price should again
fall under condemnation. Moreover, Christ makes constant intercession for
those who
are given Him of the Father, and His intercessory prayer for His people
is always efficacious, <scripRef id="vi.xi-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:John.11.42" parsed="|John|11|42|0|0" passage="John 11:42">John 11:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.7.25" parsed="|Heb|7|25|0|0" passage="Heb. 7:25">Heb. 7:25</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p9" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p9.1">
From the mystical union with Christ.</span>
They who are
united to Christ by faith become
partakers of His Spirit, and thus become one body with Him, pulsating
with the life of
the Spirit. They share in the life of Christ, and because He lives they
live also. It is
impossible that they should again be removed from the body, thus
frustrating the divine
ideal. The union is permanent, since it originates in a permanent and
unchangeable
cause, the free and eternal love of God.
</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p10" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p10.1">
From the work of the Holy Spirit in the heart.</span>
Dabney
correctly says: "It is a low and
unworthy estimate of the wisdom of the Holy Spirit and of His work in
the heart, to
suppose that He will begin the work now, and presently desert it; that
the vital spark of
heavenly birth is an<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p10.2">
ignis fatuus</span>
burning for a
short season, and then expiring in utter
darkness; that the spiritual life communicated in the new birth, is a
sort of spasmodic or
galvanic vitality, giving the outward appearance of life in the dead
soul, and then
dying."<note anchored="yes" id="vi.xi-p10.3" n="96" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p10.4">Syst. and Polem. Theol.,</span> p. 692</note>
According to Scripture the
believer is already in this life in possession of
salvation and eternal life, <scripRef id="vi.xi-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">John 3:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:John.5.24" parsed="|John|5|24|0|0" passage="John 5:24">5:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:John.6.54" parsed="|John|6|54|0|0" passage="John 6:54">6:54</scripRef>. Can we proceed on the
assumption that
eternal life will not be everlasting?
</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p11" shownumber="no">f. <span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p11.1">From the assurance of salvation.</span>
It is quite
evident from Scripture that believers can in this life
attain to the assurance of salvation, <scripRef id="vi.xi-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.3.14" parsed="|Heb|3|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 3:14">Heb. 3:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.11" parsed="|Heb|6|11|0|0" passage="Heb 6:11">6:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.22" parsed="|Heb|10|22|0|0" passage="Heb 10:22">10:22</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:10.
This
would seem to be entirely out of the question, if it were possible for
believers to fall
from grace at any moment. It can be enjoyed only by those who stand in the
firm
conviction that God will perfect the work which He has begun.
</p>

<h4 id="vi.xi-p11.5">D. OBJECTIONS TO THE DOCTRINE OF PERSEVERANCE.</h4>
<p id="vi.xi-p12" shownumber="no">1. IT IS INCONSISTENT WITH HUMAN FREEDOM. It is said that the doctrine of
perseverance is inconsistent with human freedom. But this objection
proceeds on the
false assumption that real freedom consists in the liberty of
indifference, or the power of
contrary choice in moral and spiritual matters. This is erroneous,
however. True liberty
consists exactly in self-determination in the direction of holiness. Man
is never more free
than when he moves consciously in the direction of God. And the
Christian stands in
that liberty through the grace of God.
</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p13" shownumber="no">2. IT LEADS TO INDOLENCE AND IMMORALITY. It is confidently asserted that the
doctrine of perseverance leads to indolence, license, and even
immorality. A false
security is said to result from it. This is a mistaken notion, however,
for, although the
Bible tells us that we are kept by the grace of God, it does not
encourage the idea that
God keeps us without constant watchfulness, diligence, and prayer on our
part. It is
hard to see how a doctrine which assures the believer of a perseverance
in holiness can be an incentive for sin. It would seem that the certainty of success in
the active striving
for sanctification would be the best possible stimulus to ever greater
exertion.</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p14" shownumber="no">3. IT IS CONTRARY TO SCRIPTURE. The doctrine
is frequently declared to be contrary to
Scripture. The passages adduced to prove this contention can be reduced
to three classes.</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p15" shownumber="no">a. There are warnings against apostasy which would seem
to be quite uncalled for, if
the believer
could not fall away, <scripRef id="vi.xi-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.12" parsed="|Matt|24|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:12">Matt. 24:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.23" parsed="|Col|1|23|0|0" passage="Col. 1:23">Col. 1:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.1" parsed="|Heb|2|1|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:1">Heb. 2:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.3.14" parsed="|Heb|3|14|0|0" passage="Heb 3:14">3:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.11" parsed="|Heb|6|11|0|0" passage="Heb 6:11">6:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.6" parsed="|1John|2|6|0|0" passage="I John 2:6">I John 2:6</scripRef>.
But
these warnings regard the whole matter from the side of man and are
seriously meant.
They prompt self-examination, and are instrumental in keeping believers
in the way of
perseverance. They do not prove that any of those addressed will
apostatize, but simply
that the use of means is necessary to prevent them from committing this
sin. Compare
<scripRef id="vi.xi-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.27.22-Acts.27.25" parsed="|Acts|27|22|27|25" passage="Acts 27:22-25">Acts 27:22-25</scripRef> with verse 31 for an illustration of this principle.
</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p16" shownumber="no">b. There are also exhortations, urging believers to
continue in the way of
sanctification, which would appear to be unnecessary if there is no
doubt about it that
they will continue to the end. But these are usually found in connection
with such
warnings as those referred to under (a), and serve exactly the same
purpose. They do
not prove that any of the believers exhorted will not persevere, but
only that God uses
moral means for the accomplishment of moral ends.
</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p17" shownumber="no">c. Again, it is said that Scripture records several cases
of actual apostasy, <scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.19" parsed="|1Tim|1|19|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:19">I Tim. 1:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.20" parsed="|1Tim|1|20|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.17" parsed="|2Tim|2|17|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:17">II Tim. 2:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.18" parsed="|2Tim|2|18|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.10" parsed="|2Tim|4|10|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:10">4:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:2Pet.2.1" parsed="|2Pet|2|1|0|0" passage="II Peter 2:1">II Peter 2:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:2Pet.2.2" parsed="|2Pet|2|2|0|0" passage="II Peter 2:2">2</scripRef>; cf. also <scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.4-Heb.6.6" parsed="|Heb|6|4|6|6" passage="Heb. 6:4-6">Heb. 6:4-6</scripRef>. But these instances do not
prove the contention that real believers, in
possession of true saving faith, can fall from
grace, unless it be shown first that the persons indicated in these
passages had true faith
in Christ, and not a mere temporal faith, which is not rooted in
regeneration. The Bible
teaches us that there are persons who profess the true faith, and yet
are not of the faith,
<scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9" parsed="|Rom|9|0|0|0" passage="Rom. 9">Rom. 9</scripRef>-6; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.19" parsed="|1John|2|19|0|0" passage="I John 2:19">I John 2:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.11" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.1" parsed="|Rev|3|1|0|0" passage="Rev. 3:1">Rev. 3:1</scripRef>. John says of some of them, "They went out from us,"
and
adds by way of explanation, "but they were not of us; for if they
had been of us, they
would have remained with us," <scripRef id="vi.xi-p17.12" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.19" parsed="|1John|2|19|0|0" passage="I John 2:19">I John 2:19</scripRef>.
</p>

<h4 id="vi.xi-p17.13">E. THE DENIAL OF THIS DOCTRINE MAKES SALVATION DEPENDENT ON MAN'S WILL.</h4>

<p id="vi.xi-p18" shownumber="no">The denial of the doctrine of perseverance virtually
makes the salvation of man
dependent on the human will rather than on the grace of God. This
consideration will,
of course, have no effect on those who share the Pelagian conception of
salvation as
autosoteric — and their numbers are great — but certainly ought to cause
those to
pause who glory in being saved by grace. The idea is that, after man is
brought to a state
of grace by the operation of the Holy Spirit alone, or by the joint
operation of the Holy
Spirit and the will of man, it rests solely with man to continue in
faith or to forsake the
faith, just as he sees fit. This renders the cause of man very
precarious and makes it
impossible for him to attain to the blessed assurance of faith.
Consequently, it is of the
utmost importance to maintain the doctrine of perseverence. In the words
of Hovey, "It
may be a source of great comfort and power, — an incentive to gratitude,
a motive to
self-sacrifice,
and a pillar of fire in the hour of danger." </p>

<p id="vi.xi-p19" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What is
the real question concerning perseverance:
is it whether the<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p19.1">
elect</span>
or whether the<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p19.2">
regenerate</span>
persevere? Do Augustine and the
Lutherans also teach that the<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p19.3">
elect</span>
may finally be
lost? How does the analogy of the
natural life favor the doctrine of perseverance? Do not such passages as
<scripRef id="vi.xi-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.4-Heb.6.6" parsed="|Heb|6|4|6|6" passage="Heb. 6:4-6">Heb. 6:4-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vi.xi-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.29" parsed="|Heb|10|29|0|0" passage="Heb 10:29">10:29</scripRef>; II Pet. 2:1 prove the possibility of falling away? How about <scripRef id="vi.xi-p19.6" osisRef="Bible:John.15.1-John.15.6" parsed="|John|15|1|15|6" passage="John 15:1-6">John 15:1-6</scripRef>? Is the
grace of perseverance something innate, necessarily given with the new
nature, or is it
the fruit of a special, gracious, and preserving activity of God? Does
the doctrine imply
that one may be living in habitual and intentional sin, and yet be in a
justified state?
Does it preclude the idea of lapses into sin?
</p>

<p id="vi.xi-p20" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.1"> Geref. Dogm. IV</span>, pp. 289-294; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.2">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
IV., pp. 248-260; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.3">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 687-698; Dick,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.4">
Theology, Lect. LXXIX</span>; Litton,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.5">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 338-343; Finney,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.6">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 544-619; Hovey,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.7">
Manual of Theology and Ethics</span>, pp. 295-299;
Pieper,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.8">
Christ. Dogm.</span>
III, pp.
107-120; Pope<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.9">
Chr. Theol.</span>
III, pp.
131-147;
Meijering,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.10">
De Dordtsche Leerregels</span>, pp. 256-354; Bos,<span class="ital" id="vi.xi-p20.11">
De Dordtsche Leerregelen</span>, pp. 199-255. </p>
</div2>
</div1>

    <div1 id="vii" next="vii.i" prev="vi.xi" title="Part Five: The Doctrine of The Church and of The Means of Grace">
<h2 id="vii-p0.1">PART FIVE: THE DOCTRINE OF THE CHURCH AND OF THE MEANS OF GRACE</h2>

      <div2 id="vii.i" next="vii.i.i" prev="vii" title="The Church">
<h2 id="vii.i-p0.1">1. THE CHURCH</h2>

        <div3 id="vii.i.i" next="vii.i.ii" prev="vii.i" title="Introduction">
<h2 id="vii.i.i-p0.1">Introduction</h2>
<p id="vii.i.i-p1" shownumber="no">The doctrine of the application of the merits of Christ
naturally leads on to the
doctrine of the Church, for the Church consists of those who are
partakers of Christ and
of the blessings of salvation that are in Him. The Reformed conception
is that Christ, by
the operation of the Holy Spirit, unites men with Himself, endows them
with true faith,
and thus
constitutes the Church as His body, the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p1.1">
communio fidelium</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p1.2">
sanctorum.</span>
In Roman Catholic theology, however, the discussion of the Church takes
precedence over
everything else, preceding even the discussion of the doctrine of God
and of divine
revelation. The Church, it is said, has been instrumental in producing
the Bible and
therefore takes precedence over it; it is moreover the dispenser of all
supernatural
graces. It is not Christ that leads us to the Church, but the Church
that leads us to
Christ. All the
emphasis falls, not on the invisible Church as the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p1.3"> communio fidelium</span>, but
on the visible Church as the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p1.4">
mater fidelium.</span>
The Reformation
broke with this Roman
Catholic view of the Church and centered attention once more on the
Church as a
spiritual organism. It emphasized the fact that there is no Church apart
from the
redemptive work of Christ and from the renewing operations of the Holy
Spirit; and
that, therefore, the discussion of these logically precedes the
consideration of the
doctrine of the Church.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.i-p2" shownumber="no">It seems rather peculiar that practically all the
outstanding Presbyterian
dogmaticians of our country, such as the two Hodges, H. B. Smith, Shedd,
and Dabney,
have no separate locus on the Church in their dogmatical works and, in
fact, devote
very little attention to it. Only the works of Thornwell and
Breckenridge form an
exception to the rule. This might create the impression that, in their
opinion, the
doctrine of the Church should not have a place in dogmatics. But this is
extremely
unlikely, since none of them raise a single objection to its inclusion.
Moreover, Turretin and their Scottish forbears, on whose foundation they are
building, devote a great deal
of attention to the Church. Walker says: "There is perhaps no
country in the world in
which all kinds of Church questions have been so largely discussed as in
our own."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.i-p2.1" n="1" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p2.2">Scottish Theology and Theologians</span>, p. 95; cf. also McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p2.3"> The Doctrine of the Church in Scottish Theology</span>, pp. 1 ff.</note>
And, finally, Dr. A. A. Hodge informs us that his father lectured to his
various classes on
the subjects of Ecclesiology, practically covered the entire ground, and
intended to
complete his Systematic Theology by the publication of a fourth volume on
the Church;
but was prevented by the infirmities incident to his advanced age.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.i-p2.4" n="2" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p2.5">Preface</span> to Hodge's work on<span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p2.6"> Church Polity.</span></note>
Dabney says that he
omitted the doctrine of the Church, because this was ably treated in
another department
of the Seminary in which he labored.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.i-p2.7" n="3" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p2.8">Lect. on Theol.,</span> p. 726.</note>
Shedd in giving his scheme asserts that the
Church comes into consideration in connection with the means of grace.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.i-p2.9" n="4" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p2.10">Dogm. Theol.</span> I, p. 10.</note>
However, he devotes very little attention to the means of grace and does not discuss the doctrine of
the Church. And
the editor of Smith's<span class="ital" id="vii.i.i-p2.11">
System of Christian Theology</span>
incorporated
into this
work the author's views on the Church, as expressed in other works.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.i-p2.12" n="5" place="foot">pp. 590 ff.</note>
</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="vii.i.ii" next="vii.i.iii" prev="vii.i.i" title="I. Scriptural Names of the Church and the Doctrine of the Church in History">
<h2 id="vii.i.ii-p0.1">I. Scriptural Names of the Church and the Doctrine of the Church in History</h2>

<h4 id="vii.i.ii-p0.2">A. SCRIPTURAL NAMES FOR THE CHURCH.</h4>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p1" shownumber="no">I. IN THE OLD TESTAMENT. The Old Testament employs two
words to designate the  Church,
namely<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.1">
qahal</span>
(or<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.2"> kahal</span>), derived from an obsolete root<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.3">
qal</span>
(or<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.4"> kal</span>),
meaning "to
call"; and '<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.5">edhah</span>, from<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.6"> ya'adh</span>, "to appoint" or "to
meet or come together at an appointed
place." These two words are sometimes used indiscriminately, but
were not, at first,
strictly synonymous. '<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.7">Edhah</span>
is properly a gathering by
appointment, and when applied
to Israel, denotes the society itself formed by the children of Israel
or their
representative heads, whether assembled or not assembled.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.8">Qahal</span>, on the other hand,
properly denotes the actual meeting together of the people. Consequently
we find
occasionally the
expression<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.9">
qehal</span> '<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.10">edhah</span>, that is, "the assembly of the
congregation" <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.11" osisRef="Bible:Exod.12.6" parsed="|Exod|12|6|0|0" passage="Ex. 12:6">Ex. 12:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.12" osisRef="Bible:Num.14.5" parsed="|Num|14|5|0|0" passage="Num. 14:5">Num. 14:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.13" osisRef="Bible:Jer.26.17" parsed="|Jer|26|17|0|0" passage="Jer. 26:17">Jer. 26:17</scripRef>. It seems that the actual meeting was
sometimes a meeting of
the
representatives of the people, <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.14" osisRef="Bible:Deut.4.10" parsed="|Deut|4|10|0|0" passage="Deut. 4:10">Deut. 4:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.15" osisRef="Bible:Deut.18.16" parsed="|Deut|18|16|0|0" passage="Deut 18:16">18:16</scripRef>, comp. 5:22,23; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.16" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.1" parsed="|1Kgs|8|1|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:1">I Kings 8:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.17" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.2" parsed="|1Kgs|8|2|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:2">2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.18" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.3" parsed="|1Kgs|8|3|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:3">3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.19" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.8.5" parsed="|1Kgs|8|5|0|0" passage="I Kings 8:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p1.20" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.5.2-2Chr.5.6" parsed="|2Chr|5|2|5|6" passage="II Chron. 5:2-6">II Chron. 5:2-6</scripRef>. '<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.21">Edhah</span>
is by far the more common word in Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers,
and Joshua, but is wholly absent from Deuteronomy, and is found but
rarely in the later
books.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.22"> Qahal</span>, abounds in Chronicles, Ezra, and Nehemiah.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.23"> Sunagoge</span>
is the usual, almost
universal, rendering of the former in the Septuagint, and is also the
usual rendering of the latter in the Pentateuch. In the later books of the
Bible, however,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.24"> qahal</span>
is generally
rendered by<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.25">
ekklesia.</span>
Schuerer claims that later Judaism already pointed to the
distinction between<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.26">
sunagoge</span>
as a designation
of the congregation of Israel as an
empirical reality, and<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.27">
ekklesia</span>
as the name of
that same congregation ideally considered.
He is followed in this by Dr. Bavinck. Cremer-Koegel, however, takes
exception to this.
Hort says that after the exile the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.28">
qahal</span>
seems to have
combined the shades of
meaning belonging to both it and '<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.29">
edhah</span>; and that consequently "<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.30">
ekklesia</span>, as the primary
Greek representative of<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.31">
qahal</span>
would naturally,
for Greek-speaking Jews, mean the
congregation of Israel quite as much as an assembly of the
congregation."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.ii-p1.32" n="6" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p1.33">The Christian Ekklesia,</span> p. 7.</note></p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p2" shownumber="no">2. IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. The New Testament also has
two words, derived from
the Septuagint,
namely,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.1">
ekklesia</span>, from<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.2">
ek</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.3">
kaleo</span>,
"to call out," and<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.4">
sunagoge</span>, from<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.5">
sun </span>
and<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.6">
ago</span>, meaning "to come or to bring together." The latter is used
exclusively to denote either the religious gatherings of the Jews or the buildings in which
they assembled for
public worship,
<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.4.23" parsed="|Matt|4|23|0|0" passage="Matt. 4:23">Matt. 4:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p2.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.43" parsed="|Acts|13|43|0|0" passage="Acts 13:43">Acts 13:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.9" parsed="|Rev|2|9|0|0" passage="Rev. 2:9">Rev. 2:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p2.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.9" parsed="|Rev|3|9|0|0" passage="Rev 3:9">3:9</scripRef>. The term<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.11">
ekklesia</span>, however, generally
designates the Church of the New Testament, though in a few places it
denotes common
civil
assemblies. <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.32" parsed="|Acts|19|32|0|0" passage="Acts 19:32">Acts 19:32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p2.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.39" parsed="|Acts|19|39|0|0" passage="Acts 19:39">39</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p2.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.41" parsed="|Acts|19|41|0|0" passage="Acts 19:41">41</scripRef>. The preposition<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.15">
ek</span>
in<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.16">
ekklesia (ekkaleo)</span>
is often
interpreted to mean "out from among the common mass of the people,"
and to indicate
in connection with the Scriptural use of<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.17">
ekklesia</span>, that the Church consists of the elect,
called out of the world of humanity. This interpretation is rather
doubtful, however, for
the preposition originally simply denoted that the Greek citizens were
called out of
their houses. Now it would not have been unnatural if that entirely
Scriptural idea had
been put into the word in God's revelation. But, as a matter of fact, we
have no proof
that this was actually done. The compound verb<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.18">
ekkaleo</span>
is never so used, and the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.19"> ekklesia</span>
never occurs in a context which suggests the presence of that
particular thought
in the mind of the writer. Deissmann would simply render<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.20">
ekklesia</span>
as "the (convened)
assembly," regarding God as the convener. Because the idea of the
Church is a many-
sided concept, it is quite natural that the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.21">
ekklesia</span>, as applied to it, does not always
have exactly the same connotation. Jesus was the first one to use the
word in the New
Testament, and He applied it to the company that gathered about Him,
<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p2.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.18" parsed="|Matt|16|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:18">Matt. 16:18</scripRef>,
recognized Him publicly as their Lord, and accepted the principles of
the Kingdom of
God. It was the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.23">
ekklesia</span>
of the Messiah, the true Israel. Later on, as a result of the extension of the Church, the word acquired various significations. Local
churches were established everywhere, and were also called<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p2.24">
ekklesiai</span>, since they were manifestations of
the one universal Church of Christ. The following are the most important
uses of the
word: </p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p3" shownumber="no">a. Most frequently the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p3.1">
ekklesia</span>
designates a circle of believers in some definite
locality, a local church, irrespective of the question whether these
believers are or are not
assembled for worship. Some passages contain the added idea that they are
assembled,
<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.11" parsed="|Acts|5|11|0|0" passage="Acts 5:11">Acts 5:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.11.26" parsed="|Acts|11|26|0|0" passage="Acts 11:26">11:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.18" parsed="|1Cor|11|18|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:18">I Cor. 11:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.14.19" parsed="|1Cor|14|19|0|0" passage="I Cor. 14:19">14:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.14.28" parsed="|1Cor|14|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 14:28">28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.14.35" parsed="|1Cor|14|35|0|0" passage="I Cor. 14:35">35</scripRef>, while others do not, <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.16.4" parsed="|Rom|16|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 16:4">Rom. 16:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.16.1" parsed="|1Cor|16|1|0|0" passage="I Cor. 16:1">I Cor. 16:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.2" parsed="|Gal|1|2|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:2">Gal. 1:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.2.14" parsed="|1Thess|2|14|0|0" passage="I Thess. 2:14">I Thess. 2:14</scripRef>, etc.</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p4" shownumber="no">b. In some cases the word denotes what may be called a
domestic<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p4.1">
ekklesia</span>, the church
in the house of some individual. It seems that in apostolic times
wealthy or otherwise important persons often set aside a large room in their
homes for divine worship.
Instances of
this use of the word are found in <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.16.23" parsed="|Rom|16|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 16:23">Rom. 16:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.16.19" parsed="|1Cor|16|19|0|0" passage="I Cor. 16:19">I Cor. 16:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Col.4.15" parsed="|Col|4|15|0|0" passage="Col. 4:15">Col. 4:15</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Phlm.1.2" parsed="|Phlm|1|2|0|0" passage="Philemon 2">Philemon 2</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p5" shownumber="no">c. If the reading of Tisschendorf is correct (as is now
generally taken for granted),
then the word is found at least once in the singular to denote a group of
churches,
namely, the churches of Judea, Galilee, and Samaria. The passage in
which it is so used
is <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.9.31" parsed="|Acts|9|31|0|0" passage="Acts 9:31">Acts 9:31</scripRef>. Naturally, this does not yet mean that they together
constituted an
organization such as we now call a denomination. It is not impossible
that the church of
Jerusalem and the church of Antioch in Syria also comprised several
groups that were
accustomed to meet in different places.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p6" shownumber="no">d. In a more general sense the word serves to denote the
whole body, throughout
the world, of those who outwardly profess Christ and organize for
purposes of worship,
under the guidance of appointed officers. This meaning of the word is
somewhat in the
foreground in the First Epistle to the Corinthians, 10:32; 11:22; 12:28,
but was, it would
seem, present also in the mind of Paul, when he wrote the letter to the
Ephesians,
though in that letter the emphasis is on the Church as a spiritual
organism, cf. especially <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.11-Eph.4.16" parsed="|Eph|4|11|4|16" passage="Eph. 4:11-16">Eph. 4:11-16</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p7" shownumber="no">e. Finally, the word in its most comprehensive meaning
signifies the whole body of
the faithful, whether in heaven or on earth, who have been or shall be
spiritually united
to Christ as their Saviour. This use of the word is found primarily in
the Epistles of Paul
to the Ephesians and the Colossians, most frequently in the former, <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|22|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:22">Eph. 1:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.10" parsed="|Eph|3|10|0|0" passage="Eph 3:10">3:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.21" parsed="|Eph|3|21|0|0" passage="Eph 3:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.23-Eph.5.25" parsed="|Eph|5|23|5|25" passage="Eph 5:23-25">5:23-25</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.27" parsed="|Eph|5|27|0|0" passage="Eph 5:27">27</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.32" parsed="|Eph|5|32|0|0" passage="Eph 5:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.18" parsed="|Col|1|18|0|0" passage="Col. 1:18">Col. 1:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.24" parsed="|Col|1|24|0|0" passage="Col 1:24">24</scripRef>.</p>
<p id="vii.i.ii-p8" shownumber="no">We should bear in mind that the names "Church," "Kerk" and
"Kirche" are not
derived from the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p8.1">
ekklesia</span>
but from the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p8.2">
kuriake</span>, which means "belonging to
the Lord." They stress the fact that the Church is the property of
God. The name<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p8.3">
to kuriakon</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p8.4"> he kuriake</span>
first of all designated the place where the Church assembled. This
place was conceived of as belonging to the Lord, and was therefore
called<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p8.5"> to kuriakon.</span>
But the place itself was empty and did not really become manifest as<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p8.6">
to kuriakon</span>
until
the Church gathered for worship. Consequently, the word was transferred
to the
Church itself, the spiritual building of God.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p9" shownumber="no">3. OTHER BIBLICAL DESIGNATIONS OF THE CHURCH. The New
Testament contains
several figurative designations of the Church, each one of which
stresses some
particular aspect of the Church. It is called:
</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p10" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p10.1">
The body of Christ.</span>
Some in our
day seem to regard this appellation as a complete
definition of the New Testament Church, but it is not so intended. The
name is applied
not only to the Church universal, as in <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.23" parsed="|Eph|1|23|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:23">Eph. 1:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.18" parsed="|Col|1|18|0|0" passage="Col. 1:18">Col. 1:18</scripRef>, but also
to a single
congregation, <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.27" parsed="|1Cor|12|27|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:27">I Cor. 12:27</scripRef>. It stresses the unity of the Church, whether
local or universal,
and particularly the fact that this unity is organic, and that the
organism of the Church
stands in vital relationship to Jesus Christ as her glorious head.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p11" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p11.1">
The temple of the Holy Spirit or of God.</span>
The church of
Corinth is called "a temple of
God," in which the Holy Spirit dwelleth, <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.3.16" parsed="|1Cor|3|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 3:16">I Cor. 3:16</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.21" parsed="|Eph|2|21|0|0" passage="Ephesians 2:21">Ephesians 2:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.22" parsed="|Eph|2|22|0|0" passage="Ephesians 2:22">22</scripRef> Paul speaks of
believers as growing into "a holy temple in the Lord," and as
being built together for "a
habitation of God in the Spirit." There the name is applied to the
ideal Church of the
future, which is the church universal. And Peter says that believers as
living stones are built up "a spiritual house," <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.5" parsed="|1Pet|2|5|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:5">I Pet. 2:5</scripRef>. The
connection clearly shows that he is thinking
of a temple. This figure emphasizes the fact that the Church is holy and
inviolable. The
indwelling of the Holy Spirit imparts to her an exalted character.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p12" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p12.1">
The Jerusalem that is above, or the new Jerusalem, or
the heavenly Jerusalem.</span>
All three of
these forms are
found in the Bible, <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.26" parsed="|Gal|4|26|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:26">Gal. 4:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.22" parsed="|Heb|12|22|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:22">Heb. 12:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.2" parsed="|Rev|21|2|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:2">Rev. 21:2</scripRef>, cf. the verses 9 and 10. In the Old Testament Jerusalem is represented as the place where God
dwelt
between the cherubim and where He symbolically established contact with
His people.
The New Testament evidently regards the Church as the spiritual
counterpart of the Old
Testament Jerusalem, and therefore applies to it the same name.
According to this
representation the Church is the dwelling place of God, in which the
people of God are
brought into communion with Him; and this dwelling place,
while still in part on earth,
belongs to the heavenly sphere.</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p13" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p13.1">
Pillar and ground of the truth.</span>
There is just
one place in which that name is applied
to the Church, namely, <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.15" parsed="|1Tim|3|15|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:15">I Tim. 3:15</scripRef>. It clearly refers to the Church in
general, and
therefore also applies to every part of it. The figure is expressive of
the fact that the Church is the guardian of the truth, the citadel of the
truth, and the defender of the
truth over against all the enemies of the Kingdom of God.
</p>

<h4 id="vii.i.ii-p13.3">B. THE DOCTRINE OF THE CHURCH IN HISTORY.</h4>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p14" shownumber="no">1. THE DOCTRINE OF THE  CHURCH BEFORE THE REFORMATION. </p>
<p id="vii.i.ii-p15" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p15.1"> In the patristic period.</span>
By the
Apostolic Fathers and by the Apologetes the Church is
generally represented as the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p15.2">
communio sanctorum</span>
the people
of God which He has
chosen for a possession. The necessity for making distinctions was not
at once apparent.
But as early as the latter part of the second century there was a
perceptible change. The
rise of heresies made it imperative to name some characteristics by
which the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p15.3">
true </span>catholic Church could be known. This tended to fix the attention on the
outward
manifestation of the Church. The Church began to be conceived as an
external
institution, ruled by a bishop as a direct successor of the apostles,
and in possession of
the true tradition. The catholicity of the Church was rather strongly
emphasized. Local
churches were not regarded as so many separate units, but simply as
parts of the one
universal Church. The increasing worldliness and corruption of the Church
gradually
led to reaction and gave rise to the tendency of various sects, such as
Montanism in the
middle of the second, Novatianism in the middle of the third, and
Donatism at the
beginning of the fourth century, to make the holiness of its members the
mark of the
true Church. The early Church Fathers, in combating these sectaries,
emphasized ever
increasingly the episcopal institution of the Church. Cyprian has the
distinction of being
the first to develop fully the doctrine of the episcopal Church. He
regarded the bishops
as the real successors of the apostles and ascribed to them a priestly
character in virtue
of their sacrificial work. They together formed a college, called the
episcopate, which as
such constituted the unity of the Church. The unity of the Church was
thus based on the
unity of the bishops. They who do not subject themselves to the bishop
forfeit the
fellowship of the Church and also their salvation, since there is no
salvation outside of
the Church. Augustine was not altogether consistent in his conception of
the Church. It
was his struggle with the Donatists that compelled him to reflect
more deeply on the
nature of the Church. On the one hand he shows himself to be the
predestinarian, who
conceives of the Church as the company of the elect, the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p15.4"> communio sanctorum</span>, who have
the Spirit of God and are therefore characterized by true love. The
important thing is to
be a living member of the Church so conceived, and not to belong to it
in a merely
external sense. But on the other hand he is the Church-man, who adheres
to the
Cyprianic idea of the Church at least in its general aspects. The true
Church is the
catholic Church, in which the apostolic authority is continued by
episcopal succession.
It is the depositary of divine grace, which it distributes through the
sacraments. For the
present this Church is a mixed body, in which good and evil members have
a place. In
his debate with the Donatists he admitted, however, that the two were not
in the
Church in the same sense. He also prepared the way for the Roman
Catholic identification of the Church and the Kingdom of God.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p16" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p16.1">
In the Middle Ages.</span>
The Scholastics have very little
to say about the Church. The
system of doctrine developed by Cyprian and Augustine was fairly complete
and
needed but a few finishing touches to bring it to its final development.
Says Otten
(Roman Catholic historian): "This system was taken over by the
Scholastics of the
Middle Ages, and then was handed down by them, practically in the same
condition in
which they had received it, to their successors who came after the
Council of Trent."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.ii-p16.2" n="7" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p16.3">Manual of the History of Dogmas,</span> II, p. 214.</note>
Incidentally a few points were somewhat further developed. But if there
was very little
development in the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p16.4">
doctrine</span>
of the Church, the
Church itself actually developed more and more into a close-knit, compactly organized, and absolute hierarchy.
The seeds of
this development were already present in the Cyprianic idea of the Church
and in one
aspect of the Church as represented by Augustine. The other and more
fundamental
idea of that great Church Father, that of the Church as the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p16.5">
communio sanctorum</span>, was
generally disregarded and thus remained dormant. This is not saying that
the
Scholastics denied the spiritual element altogether, but merely that
they did not give it
due prominence. The emphasis was very definitely on the Church as an
external
organization or institution. Hugo of St. Victor speaks of the Church and
the State as the
two powers instituted by God for the government of the people. Both are
monarchical
in constitution, but the Church is the higher power, because she
ministers to the
salvation of men, while the State only provides for their temporal
welfare. The king or
emperor is the head of the state, but the Pope is the head of the
Church. There are two
classes of people in the Church with well defined rights and duties: the
clerics,
dedicated to the service of God, who constitute a unit; and the laics
consisting of people
from every domain of life, who constitute a separate class altogether.
Step by step the
doctrine of the papacy came to development, until at last the Pope
became virtually an
absolute monarch. The growth of this doctrine was in no small measure
aided by the
development of the idea that the Catholic Church was the Kingdom of God
on earth,
and that therefore the Roman bishopric was an earthly kingdom. This
identification of
the visible and organized Church with the Kingdom of God had
far-reaching
consequences: (1) It required that everything be brought under the
control of the
Church: the home and the school, science and art, commerce and industry,
and so on.
(2) It involved the idea that all the blessings of salvation come to man
only through the
ordinances of the Church, particularly through the sacraments. (3) It
led to the gradual
secularization of the Church, since the Church began to pay more
attention to politics
than to the salvation of sinners, and the Popes finally claimed dominion
also over
secular rulers. </p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p17" shownumber="no">2. THE DOCTRINE OF THE CHURCH DURING AND AFTER THE REFORMATION.</p>
<p id="vii.i.ii-p18" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p18.1"> During the period of the Reformation.</span>
The Reformers
broke with the Roman Catholic
conception of the Church, but differed among themselves in some
particulars. The idea
of an infallible and hierarchical Church, and of a special priesthood,
which dispenses
salvation through the sacraments, found no favor with Luther. He regarded
the Church
as the spiritual communion of those who believe in Christ, and restored
the Scriptural
idea of the priesthood of all believers. He maintained the unity of the
Church, but
distinguished two aspects of it, the one visible and the other
invisible. He was careful to point out that these are not two churches, but
simply two aspects of the same Church.
The invisible Church becomes visible, not by the rule of bishops and
cardinals, nor in
the headship of the Pope, but by the pure administration of the Word and
of the
sacraments. He admitted that the visible Church will always contain a
mixture of pious
and wicked members. However, in his reaction against the Roman Catholic
idea of the
domination of the Church over the State, he went to another extreme, and
virtually
made the Church subject to the State in everything except the preaching
of the Word.
The Anabaptists were not satisfied with his position, and insisted on a
Church of
believers only. They, in many instances, even scorned the visible Church
and the means
of grace. Moreover, they demanded the complete separation of Church and
State.
Calvin and Reformed theologians were at one with Luther in the
confession that the
Church is essentially a<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p18.2">
communio sanctorum</span>
a
communion of saints. However, they did
not, like the Lutherans, seek the unity and the holiness of the Church
primarily in the
objective ordinances of the Church, such as the offices, the Word, and
the sacraments,
but most of all in the subjective communion of believers. They, too,
distinguished
between a visible and an invisible aspect of the Church, though in a
slightly different
way. Moreover, they found the true marks of the Church, not only in the
true
administration of the Word and of the sacraments, but also in the
faithful administration
of Church discipline. But even Calvin and the Reformed theologians of
the seventeenth
century in a measure fostered the idea of the subjection of the Church
to the state.
However, they established a form of government in the Church which made
for a
greater degree of ecclesiastical independence and power than was known in
the
Lutheran Church. But while both Lutheran and Reformed theologians sought
to
maintain the proper connection between the visible and the invisible
Church, others lost
sight of this. The Socinians and the Arminians of the seventeenth
century, though
indeed speaking of an invisible Church, forgot all about it in actual
life. The former
conceived of the Christian religion simply as an acceptable doctrine,
and the latter made
the Church primarily a visible society and followed the Lutheran Church
by yielding
the right of discipline to the State and retaining for the Church only
the right to preach
the gospel and to admonish the members of the Church. The Labadists and
Pietists, on
the other hand, manifested a tendency to disregard the visible Church,
seeking a
Church of believers only, showing themselves indifferent to the
institutional Church
with its mixture of good and evil, and seeking edification in
conventicles.</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p19" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p19.1">
During and after the eighteenth century.</span>
During the
eighteenth century Rationalism
made its influence felt also in the doctrine of the Church. It was
indifferent in matters of
faith and lacked enthusiasm for the Church, which it placed on a par with
other human
societies. It even denied that Christ intended to found a
church in the received sense of
the word. There was a pietistic reaction to Rationalism in Methodism,
but Methodism
did not contribute anything to the development of the doctrine of the
Church. In some
cases it sought strength in casting reflection on the existing
Churches, and in others it
adapted itself to the life of these Churches. For Schleiermacher the
Church was
essentially the Christian community, the body of believers who are
animated by the same spirit. He had little use for the distinction between the
visible and the invisible
Church, and found the essence of the Church in the spirit of Christian
fellowship. The
more the Spirit of God penetrates the mass of Christian believers, the
fewer divisions
there will be, and the more they will lose their importance. Ritschl
substituted for the
distinction between the invisible and the visible Church that between the
Kingdom and
the Church. He regarded the Kingdom as the community of God's people
acting from
the motive of love, and the Church as that same community met for
worship. The name
"Church"
is therefore restricted to an external organization<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p19.2">
in the one function of worship</span>;
and this function merely enables believers to become better acquainted
with one
another. This is certainly far from the teaching of the New Testament.
It leads right on to the modern liberal conception of the Church as a mere
social center, a human institution
rather than a planting of God.</p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p20" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Does the
history of the Church begin at or before the
day of Pentecost? If it existed before, how did the Church preceding
that day differ from
the Church following it? To what Church does Jesus refer in <scripRef id="vii.i.ii-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.17" parsed="|Matt|18|17|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:17">Matt. 18:17</scripRef>?
Did Augustine
identify the Church as a spiritual organism, or the Church as an
external institution,
with the Kingdom of God? How do you account for the Roman Catholic
emphasis on
the Church as an external organization? Why did not the Reformers insist
on entire
freedom of the Church from the State? How did Luther and Calvin differ
in this respect?
What controversies respecting the Church arose in Scotland? What
accounts for the
different conceptions of the Church in England and in Scotland? How did
Rationalism
affect the doctrine of the Church? What great dangers are threatening
the Church at the
present time? </p>

<p id="vii.i.ii-p21" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p21.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 302-319; Innes,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p21.2">
Church and State</span>;
Cunningham,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p21.3">
Historical Theology</span>, two volumes, cf. the Index;
Hauck,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p21.4">
Real-Encyclopaedie</span>,
Art.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p21.5">
Kirche</span>
by Koestlin;<span class="ital" id="vii.i.ii-p21.6">
Histories of Dogma</span>, especially those of Harnack, Seeberg,
Sheldon, and Otten, cf. the Indices.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="vii.i.iii" next="vii.i.iv" prev="vii.i.ii" title="II. Nature of the Church">
<h4 id="vii.i.iii-p0.1">II. Nature of the Church</h4>
<h4 id="vii.i.iii-p0.2">A. THE ESSENCE OF THE CHURCH.</h4>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p1" shownumber="no">1. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CONCEPTION. The early Christians spoke of the Church as
the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.1">
communio
sanctorum</span>, and thus already, though without having thought the
matter
through, gave expression to the essence of the Church. But even as early
as the end of
the second century, as the result of the rise of heresies, the question
as to the true
Church forced itself upon them and caused them to fix their attention
upon certain
characteristics of the Church as an external institution. From the days
of Cyprian down
to the Reformation the essence of the Church was sought ever
increasingly in its
external visible organization. The Church Fathers conceived of the
catholic Church as
comprehending all true branches of the Church of Christ, and as bound
together in an
external and visible unity, which had its unifying bond in the college
of bishops. The conception of the Church as an external organization became
more prominent as time
went on. There was an ever growing emphasis on the hierarchical
organization of it,
and the capstone was added with the institution of the Papacy. Roman
Catholics now define the Church as: "<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.2">
The congregation of all the Faithful, who, being
baptized, profess the same faith, partake of the same
sacraments, and are governed by their lawful pastors, under one </span><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.3">
visible head on earth."</span>
They make a
distinction between the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.4">
ecclesia
docens</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.5">
ecclesia audiens</span>, that is, between "the Church consisting of those who rule, teach,
and edify" and
"the Church which is taught, governed, and receives the
sacraments." In the strictest
sense of the
word it is not the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.6">
ecclesia audiens</span>
but the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.7">
ecclesia docens</span>
that constitutes the
Church. The latter shares<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.8">
directly</span>
in the glorious
attributes of the Church, but the former
is adorned with them only indirectly. Catholics are willing to admit
that there is an
invisible side to the Church, but prefer to reserve the name "Church"
for the visible
communion of believers. They frequently speak of the "soul of the
Church," but do not
seem to be altogether agreed as to the exact connotation of the term.
Devine defines the
soul of the Church as "the society of those who are called to faith
in Christ, and who are
united to Christ by supernatural gifts and graces."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p1.9" n="8" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.10">The Creed Explained</span>, p. 259.</note>
Wilmers, however, finds it in
"all
those spiritual, supernatural graces which constitute the Church of
Christ, and enable
its members to attain their last end." Says he: "What we call<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.11">
soul</span>
in general is that
pervading principle which gives life to a body and enables its members
to perform their
peculiar functions. To the soul of the Church belong faith, the common
aspiration of all to the same end, the invisible authority of superiors, the inward grace
of sanctification,
the supernatural virtues, and other gifts of grace."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p1.12" n="9" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.13">Handbook of the Christian Religion</span>, p. 103.</note>
The former writer finds the soul
of
the Church in certain qualified persons, while the latter regards it as
an all-pervading
principle, something like the soul in man. But whatever Roman Catholics
may be ready
to grant, they will not admit that what may be called "the
invisible Church" logically precedes the visible. Moehler says: "The
Catholics teach: the visible Church is first,—
then comes the invisible: the former gives birth to the latter."
This means that the
Church is a<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.14">
mater fidelium</span>
(mother of believers) before she is a<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.15">
communio fidelium </span>
(community of believers). Moehler grants, however, that there is one
sense in which
"the
internal Church" is prior to "the exterior one," namely in the
sense that we are not
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.16">living</span>
members of the latter until we belong to the former. He discusses the
whole
subject of the
relation of those two to each other in his<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p1.17">
Symbolism or Doctrinal Differences.</span><note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p1.18" n="10" place="foot">Chap. V, especially in the paragraphs XLVI-XLVIII.</note>
He stresses the identity of the
visible Church with Christ: "Thus, the visible
Church, from the point of view here taken, is the Son of God,
everlastingly manifesting
himself among men in a human form, perpetually renovated, and eternally
young —
the permanent incarnation of the same, as in Holy Writ, even the
faithful are called 'the body of Christ.'"<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p1.19" n="11" place="foot">p. 59.</note>
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE GREEK ORTHODOX CONCEPTION. The Greek Orthodox conception of the
Church is closely related to that of the Roman Catholics, and yet
differs from it in some
important points. That Church does not recognize the Roman Catholic
Church as the
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p2.1">true</span>
Church, but claims that honor for itself. There is but one true Church,
and that
Church is the Greek Orthodox. While it acknowledges with greater
frankness than the
Roman Catholics the two different aspects of the Church, the visible and
the invisible, it
nevertheless places the emphasis on the Church as an external
organization. It does not
find the essence of the Church in her as the community of the saints,
but in the
Episcopal hierarchy, which it has retained, while rejecting the Papacy.
The infallibility of
the Church is maintained, but this infallibility resides in the bishops,
and therefore in
the
ecclesiastical councils and synods. "As invisible," says Gavin,
"she (the Church) is the bearer of divine gifts and powers, and is engaged in transforming
mankind into the
Kingdom of God. As visible, she is constituted of men professing a
common faith,
observing common customs, and using visible means of grace." At the
same time the
idea is rejected of "an invisible and ideal Church, of which the
various bodies of Christians formed into distinct organizations and calling themselves
'Churches,' are
partial and incomplete embodiments." The Church is "an actual,
tangible, visible entity,
not an unrealized and unrealizable ideal."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p2.2" n="12" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p2.3">Greek Orthodox Thought,</span> pp. 241-242</note></p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p3" shownumber="no">3. THE PROTESTANT CONCEPTION. The Reformationwas a reaction against the
externalism of Rome in general, and in particular, also against its
external conception of
the Church. It brought the truth to the foreground once more that the
essence of the
Church is not found in the external organization of the Church, but in
the Church as the
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p3.1"> communio sanctorum.</span>
For both Luther and Calvin the Church was simply the community
of the saints, that is, the community of those who believe and are
sanctified in Christ,
and who are joined to Him as their Head. This is also the position taken
in the
Reformed confessional standards. Thus the Belgic Confession says:
"We believe and
profess one catholic or universal Church, which is a holy congregation
of true Christian
believers, all expecting their salvation in Jesus Christ, being washed
by His blood,
sanctified and sealed by the Holy Spirit."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p3.2" n="13" place="foot">Art. XXVII.</note>
The Second Helvetic Confession
expresses
the same truth by saying that the Church is "a company of the
faithful, called and
gathered out of the world; a communion of all saints, that is, of them
who truly know
and rightly worship and serve the true God, in Jesus Christ the Saviour,
by the word of
the Holy Spirit, and who by faith are partakers of all those good graces
which are freely
offered through Christ."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p3.3" n="14" place="foot">Chap. XVII.</note>
And the Westminster Confession, defining the
Church from
the point of view of election, says: "The catholic or universal
Church, which is invisible,
consists of the whole number of the elect, that have been, are, or shall
be gathered into
one, under Christ the head thereof; and is the spouse, the body, the
fulness of Him that
filleth all in all."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p3.4" n="15" place="foot">Chap. XXV.</note>
The Church
universal, that is, the Church as it exists in the plan of
God, and as it is realized only in the course of the ages, was conceived
as consisting of
the whole body of the elect, who are in course of time called unto life
eternal. But the
Church as it actually exists on earth was regarded as the community of
the saints. And
it was not only the invisible Church that was so regarded, but the
visible Church as
well. These are not two Churches but one, and therefore have but a
single essence. The
one as well as
the other is<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p3.5">
essentially</span>
the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p3.6">
communio sanctorum</span>, but the invisible Church is
the Church as God sees it, a Church which contains only believers, while
the visible
Church is the Church as man sees it, consisting of those who profess
Jesus Christ with their children and therefore adjudged to be the community of the saints.
This may and
always does contain some who are not yet regenerated — there may be
chaff among the
wheat —, but may not tolerate public unbelievers and wicked persons.
Paul addresses
his Epistles to empirical churches, and does not hesitate to address
them as "saints," but
also insists on the necessity of putting away the wicked and those who
give offense
from among them, <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5" parsed="|1Cor|5|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5">I Cor. 5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.3.6" parsed="|2Thess|3|6|0|0" passage="II Thess. 3:6">II Thess. 3:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.3.14" parsed="|2Thess|3|14|0|0" passage="II Thess. 3:14">14</scripRef>: <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.10" parsed="|Titus|3|10|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:10">Tit. 3:10</scripRef>. The Church forms
a spiritual unity
of which Christ is the divine Head. It is animated by one Spirit, the
Spirit of Christ; it
professes one faith, shares one hope, and serves one King. It is the
citadel of the truth
and God's agency in communicating to believers all spiritual blessings.
As the body of
Christ it is destined to reflect the glory of God as manifested in
the work of redemption.
The Church in its ideal sense, the Church as God intends it to be and as
it will once
become, is an object of faith rather than of knowledge. Hence the
confession: "I believe
one holy
catholic Church." </p>

<h4 id="vii.i.iii-p3.11">B. THE MANY-SIDED CHARACTER OF THE CHURCH.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.iii-p4" shownumber="no">In speaking of the Church several distinctions come into consideration.</p>
<p id="vii.i.iii-p5" shownumber="no">1. THAT OF A MILITANT AND A TRIUMPHANT CHURCH. The Church in
the present
dispensation is a militant Church, that is, she is called unto, and is
actually engaged in,
a holy warfare. This, of course, does not mean that she must spend her
strength in self-
destroying internecine struggles, but that she is duty bound to carry on
an incessant
warfare against the hostile world in every form in which it reveals
itself, whether in the
Church or outside of it, and against all the spiritual forces of
darkness. The Church may
not spend all her time in prayer and meditation, however necessary and
important
these may be, nor may she rest on her oars in the peaceful enjoyment of
her spiritual
heritage. She must be engaged with all her might in the battles of her
Lord, fighting in a
war that is both offensive and defensive. If the Church on earth is the
militant Church,
the Church in heaven is the triumphant Church. There the sword is
exchanged for the
palm of victory, the battle-cries are turned into songs of triumph, and
the cross is
replaced by the crown. The strife is over, the battle is won, and the
saints reign with
Christ forever and ever. In these two stages of her existence the Church
reflects the
humiliation and exaltation of her heavenly Lord. Roman Catholics speak,
not only of a
militant and triumphant, but also of a<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p5.1">
suffering</span>
Church. This
Church, according to them, includes all those believers who are no more on
earth, but have not yet entered the joys
of heaven, and are now being purified in purgatory of their remaining
sins. </p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p6" shownumber="no">2. THAT BETWEEN A VISIBLE AND AN INVISIBLE CHURCH. This means
that the Church of
God is on the one hand visible, and on the other invisible. It is said
that Luther was the
first to make this distinction, but the other Reformers recognized and
also applied it to
the Church. This distinction has not always been properly understood. The
opponents
of the Reformers often accused them of teaching that there are two
separate Churches. Luther perhaps gave some occasion for this charge by
speaking of an invisible<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p6.1">
ecclesiola </span>
within the visible<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p6.2">
ecclesia.</span>
But both he and
Calvin stress the fact that, when they speak of
a visible and an invisible Church, they do not refer to two different
Churches, but to two
aspects of the one Church of Jesus Christ. The term
"invisible" has been variously
interpreted as applying (a) to the triumphant Church; (b) to the ideal
and completed
Church as it will be at the end of the ages; (c) to the Church of all
lands and all places,
which man cannot possibly see; and (d) to the Church as it goes in
hiding in the days of
persecution, and is deprived of the Word and the sacraments. Now it is
undoubtedly
true that the triumphant Church is invisible to those who are on earth,
and that Calvin
in his Institutes also conceives of this as included in the invisible Church,
but the
distinction was undoubtedly primarily intended to apply to the militant
Church. As a
rule it is so applied in Reformed theology. It stresses the fact that
the Church as it exists
on earth is both visible and invisible. This Church is said to be
invisible, because she is
essentially spiritual and in her spiritual essence cannot be discerned
by the physical eye;
and because it is impossible to determine infallibly who do and who do
not belong to her. The union of believers with Christ is a mystical union; the
Spirit that unites them
constitutes an invisible tie; and the blessings of salvation, such as
regeneration, genuine
conversion, true faith, and spiritual communion with Christ, are all
invisible to the
natural eye; — and yet these things constitute the real<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p6.3">
forma</span>
(ideal character) of the
Church. That the term "invisible" should be understood in this
sense, is evident from the historical origin of the distinction between the visible
and the invisible Church in
the days of the Reformation. The Bible ascribes certain glorious
attributes to the Church
and represents her as a medium of saving and eternal blessings. Rome
applied this to
the Church as an external institution, more particularly to the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p6.4">
ecclesia representativa</span>
or
the hierarchy as the distributor of the blessings of salvation, and thus
ignored and
virtually denied the immediate and direct communion of God with His
children, by
placing a human mediatorial priesthood between them. This is the error
which the
Reformers sought to eradicate by stressing the fact that the Church of
which the Bible
says such glorious things is not the Church as an external institution,
but the Church as
the spiritual body of Jesus Christ, which is essentially invisible at
present, though it has a relative and imperfect embodiment in the visible Church and is
destined to have a
perfect visible embodiment at the end of the ages.
The invisible Church naturally assumes a visible form.
Just as the human soul is
adapted to a body and expresses itself through the body, so the
invisible Church,
consisting, not of mere souls but of human beings having souls and
bodies, necessarily
assumes a visible form in an external organization through which it
expresses itself. The
Church becomes visible in Christian profession and conduct, in the
ministry of the
Word and of the sacraments, and in external organization and government.
By making
this distinction between the invisible and the visible Church, McPherson
says,
"Protestantism sought to find the proper mean between the magical
and supernatural externalism of the Romish idea and the extravagant
depreciation of all outward rites,
characteristic of fanatical and sectarian spiritualism."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p6.5" n="16" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p6.6">Chr. Dogmatics,</span> p. 417.</note>
It is very important to bear in
mind that, though both the invisible and the visible Church can be
considered as
universal, the two are not in every respect commensurate. It is possible
that some who
belong to the invisible Church never become members of the visible
organization, as
missionary subjects who are converted on their deathbeds, and that others
are
temporarily excluded from it, as erring believers who are for a time
shut out from the
communion of the visible Church. On the other hand there may be
unregenerated
children and adults who, while professing Christ, have no true faith in
Him, in the
Church as an external institution; and these, as long as they are in
that condition, do not belong to the invisible Church. Good definitions of the
visible and invisible Church may
be found in the Westminster Confession.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p7" shownumber="no">3. THAT BETWEEN THE CHURCH AS AN ORGANISM AND THE CHURCH AS AN INSTITUTION. This distinction should not be identified with the preceding one, as is
sometimes done.
It is a distinction that applies to the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.1"> visible</span>
Church and that
directs attention to two
different aspects of the Church considered as a visible body.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p7.2" n="17" place="foot">Cf. Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.3"> Enc. III</span>, p. 204; Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.4"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV., p. 331; Ten Hoor,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.5"> Afscheiding of Doleantie</span>, pp. 88 f.; Doekes,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.6"> De Moeder der Geloovigen</span>, pp. 10 f.; Steen,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.7"> De Kerk</span>, pp. 51 ff.</note>
It is a mistake to think
that the Church becomes visible only in the offices, in the
administration of the Word
and the sacraments, and in a certain form of Church government. Even if
all these
things were absent, the Church would still be visible in the communal
life and
profession of the believers, and in their joint opposition to the world.
But while
emphasizing the fact that the distinction under consideration is a
distinction within the
visible Church, we should not forget that both the Church as an organism
and the Church as an institution (also called<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.8">
apparitio</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.9">
institutio</span>) have their spiritual
background in the invisible Church. However, though it is true that
these are two
different aspects of the one visible Church, they do represent important
differences. The
Church as an organism is the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.10">
coetus fidelium</span>
the communion of
believers, who are
united in the bond of the Spirit, while the Church as an institution is
the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.11">
mater fidelium</span>,
the mother of believers, a<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.12">
Heilsanstalt</span>
a means of
salvation, an agency for the
conversion of sinners and the perfecting of the saints. The Church as an
organism exists
charismatic: in it all kinds of gifts and talents become manifest and
are utilized in the
work of the Lord. The Church as an institution, on the other hand,
exists in an
institutional form and functions through the offices and means which God
has
instituted. The two are co-ordinate in a sense, and yet there is also a
certain
subordination of the one to the other. The Church as an institution or
organization
(<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.13">mater fidelium</span>) is a means to an end, and this is found in the Church as an organism,
the
community of
believers (<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p7.14">
coetus fidelium</span>
). </p>

<h4 id="vii.i.iii-p7.15">C. VARIOUS DEFINITIONS OF THE CHURCH.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.iii-p8" shownumber="no">The Church being a many-sided entity has naturally also
been defined from more
than one point of view.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p9" shownumber="no">1. FROM THE POINT OF VIEW OF ELECTION. According to some theologians the Church
is<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p9.1"> the community of the elect</span>, the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p9.2">
coetus electorum.</span>
This definition is apt to be somewhat misleading, however. It applies only to the Church<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p9.3">
ideally considered</span>, the Church as it
exists in the idea of God and as it will be completed at the end of the
ages, and not to
the Church as a present empirical reality. Election includes all those
who belong to the
body of Christ, irrespective of their present actual relation to it. But
the elect who are yet
unborn, or who are still strangers to Christ and outside of the pale of
the Church, cannot
be said to
belong to the Church<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p9.4">
realiter. </span>
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p10" shownumber="no">2. FROM THE POINT OF VIEW OF EFFECTUAL CALLING. To escape the objection raised to
the preceding definition, it gradually became customary to define the
Church from the
point of view of some subjective spiritual characteristic of those who
belong to it,
especially effectual calling or faith, either by naming such a
characteristic in addition to
election, or by substituting it for election. Thus the Church was
defined as the company
of the elect who
are called by the Spirit of God (<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p10.1">coetus electorum vocatorum</span> ),
as the body of those who are
effectually called (<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p10.2">coetus vocatorum</span>), or, even more
commonly, as the
community of the
faithful or believers (<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p10.3">coetus fidelium</span> ).
The first two of these definitions
serve the purpose of designating the Church as to its invisible essence,
but give no
indication whatsoever of the fact that it also has a visible side. This
is done, however, in
the last named definition, for faith reveals itself in confession and
conduct.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p11" shownumber="no">3. FROM THE POINT OF VIEW OF BAPTISM AND PROFESSION. From the point of view of
baptism and profession the Church has been defined as the community of
those who
are baptized and profess the true faith; or as the community of those
who profess the
true religion<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p11.1">
together with their children.</span>
It will readily
be seen that this is a definition of
the Church according to its external manifestation. Calvin defines the
visible Church as
"the multitude of men diffused through the world, who profess to
worship one God in
Christ; are initiated into this faith by baptism; testify their unity in
doctrine and charity
by participating in the Supper; have consent in the Word of God, and for
the preaching
of that Word maintain the ministry ordained of Christ."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p11.2" n="18" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p11.3">Institutes</span> IV., 1,7.</note></p>

<h4 id="vii.i.iii-p11.4">D. THE CHURCH AND THE KINGDOM OF GOD.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.iii-p12" shownumber="no">1. THE IDEA OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD. The Kingdom of God is primarily an
eschatological concept. The fundamental idea of the Kingdom in Scripture
is not that of
a restored theocratic kingdom of God in Christ — which is essentially a
kingdom of
Israel—, as the Premillenarians claim; neither is it a new social
condition, pervaded by
the Spirit of Christ, and realized by man through such external means as
good laws,
civilization, education, social reforms, and so on, as the Modernists
would have us
believe. The primary idea of the Kingdom of God in Scripture is that of
the rule of God
established and acknowledged in the hearts of sinners by the powerful
regenerating
influence of the Holy Spirit, insuring them of the inestimable
blessings of salvation, — a
rule that is realized in principle on earth, but will not reach its
culmination until the
visible and glorious return of Jesus Christ. The present realization of it
is spiritual and
invisible. Jesus took hold of this eschatological concept and made it
prominent in His
teachings. He clearly taught the present spiritual realization and the
universal character
of the Kingdom. Moreover, He Himself effected that realization in a
measure formerly
unknown and greatly increased the present blessings of the Kingdom. At
the same time
He held out the blessed hope of the future appearance of that Kingdom in
external
glory and with the perfect blessings of salvation.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p13" shownumber="no">2. HISTORICAL CONCEPTIONS OF THE KINGDOM. In the early Church Fathers
the
Kingdom of God, the greatest good, is primarily regarded as a future
entity, the goal of
the present development of the Church. Some of them regarded it as the
coming
millennial rule of the Messiah, though history does not bear out the
exaggerated claims of some Premillenarian writers as to their number. Augustine viewed the
kingdom as a
present reality and identified it with the Church. For him it was
primarily identical with
the pious and holy, that is, with the Church as a community of
believers; but he used
some expressions which seem to indicate that he also saw it embodied in
the
episcopally organized Church. The Roman Catholic Church frankly
identified the
Kingdom of God with their hierarchical institution, but the Reformers
returned to the
view that it is in this dispensation identical with the invisible
Church. Under the
influence of Kant and especially of Ritschl it was robbed of its
religious character and
came to be regarded as an ethical kingdom of ends. It is often defined
at present as a
new principle introduced into society and destined to transform it in
all its relations, or as the moral organization of mankind through action from
the motive of love, the final
end of creation.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p14" shownumber="no">3. THE KINGDOM OF GOD AND THE INVISIBLE CHURCH. While the
Kingdom of God and
the invisible Church are in a measure identical, they should
nevertheless be carefully
distinguished. Citizenship in the one and membership in the other are
equally
determined by regeneration. It is impossible to be in the Kingdom of God
without being
in the Church as the mystical body of Jesus Christ. At the same time it
is possible to
make a distinction between the point of view from which believers are
called the
Kingdom and that from which they are called the Church. They constitute
a Kingdom in
their relation to God in Christ as their Ruler, and a Church in their
separateness from
the world in devotion to God, and in their organic union with one
another. As a Church
they are called to be God's instrument in preparing the way for, and in
introducing, the
ideal order of things; and as a Kingdom they represent the initial
realization of the ideal
order among themselves.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p15" shownumber="no">4. THE KINGDOM OF GOD AND THE VISIBLE CHURCH. Since the Roman Catholics insist
indiscriminately on the identification of the Kingdom of God and the
Church, their
Church claims power and jurisdiction over every domain of life, such as
science and art,
commerce and industry, as well as social and political organizations.
This is an
altogether mistaken conception. It is also a mistake to maintain, as
some Reformed
Christians do, in virtue of an erroneous conception of the Church as an
organism, that Christian school societies, voluntary organizations of younger
or older people for the
study of Christian principles and their application in life, Christian
labor unions, and
Christian political organizations, are manifestations of the Church as
an organism, for
this again brings them under the domain of the visible Church and under
the direct
control of its officers. Naturally, this does not mean that the Church
has no
responsibility with respect to such organizations. It does mean,
however, that they are
manifestations of the Kingdom of God, in which groups of Christians seek
to apply the
principles of the Kingdom to every domain of life. The visible Church
and the
Kingdom, too, may be identified to a certain extent. The visible Church
may certainly be
said to belong to the Kingdom, to be a part of the Kingdom, and even to
be the most
important visible embodiment of the forces of the Kingdom. It partakes
of the character
of the invisible Church (the two being one) as a means for the
realization of the
Kingdom of God. Like the visible Church, the Kingdom also shares in the
imperfections
to which a sinful world exposes it. This is quite evident from the
parable of the wheat
and the tares, and that of the fishnet. In so far as the visible Church
is instrumental in
the establishment and extension of the Kingdom, it is, of course,
subordinate to this as a
means to an end. The Kingdom may be said to be a broader concept than
the Church,
because it aims at nothing less than the complete control of all the
manifestations of life.
It represents the dominion of God in every sphere of human endeavor.
</p>

<h4 id="vii.i.iii-p15.1">E. THE CHURCH IN THE DIFFERENT DISPENSATIONS.</h4>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p16" shownumber="no">1. IN THE PATRIARCHAL PERIOD. In the
patriarchial period the families of believers
constituted the religious congregations; the Church was best represented
in the pious
households, where the fathers served as priests. There was
no regular cultus, though
<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.4.26" parsed="|Gen|4|26|0|0" passage="Gen. 4:26">Gen. 4:26</scripRef> seems to imply a public calling upon the name of the Lord.
There was a
distinction between the children of God and the children of men, the
latter gradually
gaining the upper hand. At the time of the flood the Church was
saved in the family of
Noah, and continued particularly in the line of Shem. And when true
religion was again
on the point of dying out, God made a covenant with
Abraham, gave unto him the sign
of circumcision, and separated him and his descendants from the world, to
be His own
peculiar people. Up to the time of Moses the families of the patriarchs
were the real
repositories of the true faith, in which the fear of Jehovah and the
service of the Lord
was kept alive. </p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p17" shownumber="no">2. IN THE MOSAIC PERIOD. After the exodus the people of Israel were not only
organized into a nation, but were also constituted the Church of God. They were
enriched with institutions in which not only family devotion or tribal
faith but the
religion of the nation could find expression. The Church did not yet
obtain an
independent organization, but had its institutional existence in the
national life of Israel.
The particular form which it assumed was that of a Church-State. We
cannot say that
the two coalesced altogether. There were separate civil and religious
functionaries and
institutions within the bounds of the nation. But at the same time the
whole nation
constituted the Church; and the Church was limited to the one nation of
Israel, though
foreigners could enter it by being incorporated into the nation. In this
period there was
a marked development of doctrine, an increase in the quantity of the
religious truth
known, and greater clearness in the apprehension of the truth. The
worship of God was
regulated down to the minutest details, was largely ritual and
ceremonial, and was
centered in one central sanctuary.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p18" shownumber="no">3. IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. The New Testament Church is
essentially one with the Church of the old dispensation. As far as their
essential nature is concerned, they both
consist of true believers, and of true believers only. And in their
external organization
both represent a mixture of good and evil. Yet several important changes
resulted from
the accomplished work of Jesus Christ. The Church was divorced from the
national life
of Israel and obtained an independent organization. In
connection with this the national
boundaries of the Church were swept away. What had up to this time been a
national
Church now assumed a universal character. And in order to realize the
ideal of world-
wide extension, it had to become a missionary Church, carrying the
gospel of salvation
to all the nations of the world. Moreover, the ritual worship of the
past made place for a
more spiritual worship in harmony with the greater
privileges of the New Testament.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p19" shownumber="no">The representation given in the preceding proceeds on the
assumption that the
Church existed in the old dispensation as well as in the new, and was<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p19.1">
essentially</span>
the
same in both, in spite of acknowledged institutional and administrative
differences.
This is in harmony with the teachings of our confessional standards. The
Belgic
Confession says in Art. XXVII: "This Church has been from the
beginning of the world,
and will be to the end thereof; which is evident from the fact that
Christ is an eternal
King, which without subjects He cannot be." In full agreement with
this the Heidelberg
Catechism says
in Lord's Day XXI: "That the Son of God, out of the whole human race,
from the beginning to the end of the world, gathers, defends, and
preserves for Himself,
by His Spirit and Word, in the unity of the true faith, a Church chosen
to everlasting
life." The Church is essentially, as was pointed out in the
preceding, the community of
believers, and this community existed from the beginning of the old
dispensation right
down to the present time and will continue to exist on earth until the
end of the world.
On this point we cannot agree with those Premillenarians who, under the
influence of a
divisive dispensationalism, claim that the Church is exclusively a New
Testament
institution, which did not come into existence until the outpouring of
the Holy Spirit on
the day of Pentecost and will be removed from the earth before the
beginning of the
millennium. They like to define the Church as "the body of
Christ," which is a
characteristically New Testament name, and seem to forget that it is
also called "the
temple of God" and "Jerusalem," which are very decidedly
names with an Old
Testament flavor,
cf. <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.3.16" parsed="|1Cor|3|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 3:16">I Cor. 3:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.3.17" parsed="|1Cor|3|17|0|0" passage="I Cor. 3:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.6.16" parsed="|2Cor|6|16|0|0" passage="II Cor. 6:16">II Cor. 6:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.21" parsed="|Eph|2|21|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:21">Eph. 2:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.26" parsed="|Gal|4|26|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:26">Gal. 4:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.7" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.22" parsed="|Heb|12|22|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:22">Heb. 12:22</scripRef>. We
should not close our eyes to the patent fact that the name
"Church" (Heb.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p19.8">qahal</span> rendered<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p19.9"> ekklesia</span> in the Septuagint) is applied to Israel in the Old Testament
repeatedly,
<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.10" osisRef="Bible:Josh.8.35" parsed="|Josh|8|35|0|0" passage="Josh. 8:35">Josh. 8:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.11" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.2.65" parsed="|Ezra|2|65|0|0" passage="Ezra 2:65">Ezra 2:65</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.12" osisRef="Bible:Joel.2.16" parsed="|Joel|2|16|0|0" passage="Joel 2:16">Joel 2:16</scripRef>. The fact that in our translations of the Bible the Old
Testament
rendering of the original is "gathering," "assembly," or
"congregation,"
while the New Testament rendering of it is "Church," may have
given rise to
misunderstanding on this point; but the fact remains that in the Old
Testament as well
as in the New the original word denotes a congregation or an assembly of
the people of
God, and as such serves to designate the essence of the Church. Jesus on
the one hand
said that He would found the Church in the future, <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.18" parsed="|Matt|16|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:18">Matt. 16:18</scripRef>, but also
recognized it as
an already existing institution, <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.17" parsed="|Matt|18|17|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:17">Matt. 18:17</scripRef>. Stephen speaks of
"the Church in the
wilderness," <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.15" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.38" parsed="|Acts|7|38|0|0" passage="Acts 7:38">Acts 7:38</scripRef>. And Paul clearly testifies to the spiritual
unity of Israel and the
Church in <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.16" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.17-Rom.11.21" parsed="|Rom|11|17|11|21" passage="Rom. 11:17-21">Rom. 11:17-21</scripRef>, and in <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p19.17" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.11-Eph.2.16" parsed="|Eph|2|11|2|16" passage="Eph. 2:11-16">Eph. 2:11-16</scripRef>. In essence Israel
constituted the Church of
God in the Old Testament, though its external institution differed vastly
from that of the
Church in the New Testament.</p>

<h4 id="vii.i.iii-p19.18">F. THE ATTRIBUTES OF THE CHURCH.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.iii-p20" shownumber="no">According to Protestants the attributes of the Church are
ascribed primarily to the
Church as an invisible organism, and only secondarily to the Church as
an external
institution. Roman Catholics, however, ascribe them to their
hierarchical organization.
The former speak of three attributes, but to these three the latter add
a fourth.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p21" shownumber="no">1. THE UNITY OF THE CHURCH.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p22" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p22.1"> The Roman Catholic conception.</span>
Roman Catholics
ordinarily recognize only the
hierarchically organized<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p22.2">
ecclesia</span>
as the Church. The
unity of this Church manifests itself
in its imposing world-wide organization, which aims at including the
Church of all
nations. Its real center is not found in the believers, but in the
hierarchy with its
concentric circles. There is first of all the broad circle of the lower
clergy, the priests and other inferior functionaries; then the smaller circle
of the bishops; next the still narrower
one of the archbishops; and, finally, the most restricted circle of the
cardinals; — the
entire pyramid being capped by the Pope, the visible head of the whole
organization,
who has absolute control of all those that are under him. Thus the Roman
Catholic
Church presents to the eye a very imposing structure.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p23" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p23.1">
The Protestant conception.</span>
Protestants assert that the unity of the Church is not
primarily of an external, but of an internal and spiritual character. It
is the unity of the
mystical body of Jesus Christ, of which all believers are members. This
body is
controlled by one Head, Jesus Christ, who is also the King of the
Church, and is
animated by one Spirit, the Spirit of Christ. This unity implies that
all those who belong
to the Church share in the same faith, are cemented together by the
common bond of
love, and have the same glorious outlook upon the future. This inner
unity seeks and
also acquires, relatively speaking, outward expression in the profession
and Christian
conduct of believers, in their public worship of the same God in Christ,
and in their
participation in the same sacraments. There can be no doubt about the
fact that the Bible
asserts the unity, not only of the invisible, but also of the visible
Church. The figure of
the body, as it
is found in <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.12-1Cor.12.31" parsed="|1Cor|12|12|12|31" passage="I Cor. 12:12-31">I Cor. 12:12-31</scripRef>, implies this unity. Moreover, in <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.4-Eph.4.16" parsed="|Eph|4|4|4|16" passage="Eph. 4:4-16">Eph. 4:4-16</scripRef>,
where Paul stresses the unity of the Church, he evidently also has the
visible Church in
mind, for he speaks of the appointment of office-bearers in the Church
and of their
labors in behalf of the ideal unity of the Church. Because of the unity
of the Church one
local church was admonished to supply the needs of another, and the
council of
Jerusalem undertook to settle a question that arose in Antioch. The
Church of Rome
strongly emphasized the unity of the visible Church and expressed it in
its hierarchical
organization. And when the Reformers broke with Rome, they did not deny
the unity of
the visible Church but maintained it. However, they did not find the
bond of union in
the ecclesiastical organization of the Church, but in the true preaching
of the Word and
the right administration of the sacraments. This is also the case in the
Belgic
Confession.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p23.4" n="19" place="foot">Articles XXVII-XXIX.</note>
We quote only the following
statements from it: "We believe and profess
one catholic or universal Church, which is a holy congregation of true
believers, all
expecting their salvation in Jesus Christ, being washed by His blood,
sanctified and
sealed by the Holy Spirit."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p23.5" n="20" place="foot">Art. XXVII.</note>
The marks by which the true Church is known
are these: "If
the pure doctrine of the Gospel is preached therein; if it maintains the
pure
administration of the sacraments as instituted by Christ; if Church
discipline is
exercised in punishing sin; in short, if all things are managed
according to the pure
Word of God; all things contrary thereto rejected, and Jesus Christ
acknowledged as the
only Head of the Church. Hereby the true Church may certainly be known,
from which
no man has a right to separate himself."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p23.6" n="21" place="foot">Art. XXIX.</note>
The unity of the visible Church
was also
taught by Reformed theologians of the post-Reformation period, and was
always very
strongly emphasized in Scottish theology. Walker even
says: "True Churches of Christ,
side by side with one another, forming separate organizations, with
separate
governments, seemed to them (Scottish theologians) utterly inadmissible,
unless it might be in a very limited way, and for some reason of temporary
expediency."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p23.7" n="22" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p23.8">Scottish Theology and Theologians</span> pp. 97 f.</note>
In the
Netherlands this doctrine was eclipsed in recent years in the measure in
which the
multi- or pluriformity of the Churches was emphasized in deference to
the facts of
history and the existing condition. At present it is again stressed in
some of the current
discussions. In view of the present divisions of the Church, it is quite
natural that the
question should arise, whether these do not militate against the
doctrine of the unity of
the visible Church. In answer to this it may be said that some
divisions, such as those
caused by differences of locality or of language, are perfectly
compatible with the unity
of the Church; but that others, such as those which originate in
doctrinal perversions or
sacramental abuses, do really impair that unity. The former result from
the providential
guidance of God, but the latter are due to the influence of sin:
to the darkening of the
understanding, the power of error, or the stubbornness of man; and
therefore the
Church will have to strive for the ideal of overcoming these. The
question may still
arise, whether the one invisible Church ought not to find expression in
a single
organization. It can hardly be said that the Word of God explicitly
requires this, and
history has shown this to be infeasible and also of questionable worth.
The only attempt
that was made so far to unite the whole Church in one great external
organization, did
not prove productive of good results, but led to externalism, ritualism,
and legalism.
Moreover, the multiformity of Churches, so characteristic of
Protestantism, in so far as it
resulted from the providential guidance of God and in a legitimate way,
arose in the
most natural manner, and is quite in harmony with the law of
differentiation, according
to which an organism in its development evolves from the homogeneous to
the
heterogeneous. It is quite possible that the inherent riches of the organism
of the Church
find better and fuller expression in the present variety of Churches
than they would in a
single external organization. This does not mean, of course, that the
Church should not
strive for a greater measure of external unity. The ideal should always
be to give the
most adequate expression to the unity of the Church. At the present time
there is a
rather strong Church union movement, but this movement, as it has
developed up to
this time, though undoubtedly springing from laudable motives on the part
of some, is
still of rather doubtful value. Whatever external union is effected must
be the natural
expression of an existing inner unity, but the present movement partly
seeks to fabricate
an external union where no inner unity is found, forgetting that
"no artificial
aggregation that seeks to unify natural disparities can afford a
guarantee against the
strife of parties within the aggregation." It is un-Scriptural in
so far as it has been
seeking unity at the expense of the truth and has been riding the wave
of subjectivism in religion. Unless it changes colour and strives for greater unity<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p23.9">
in the truth</span>, it will not
be productive of real unity but only of uniformity, and while it may
make the Church
more efficient from a business point of view, it will not add to the
true spiritual
efficiency of the Church. Barth sounds the right note when he says:
"The quest for the
unity of the Church must in fact be identical with the quest for Jesus
Christ as the
concrete Head and Lord of the Church. The blessing of unity cannot be
separated from
Him who blesses, in Him it has its source and reality, through His Word
and Spirit it is
revealed to us, and only in faith can it become a reality among
us."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p23.10" n="23" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p23.11">The Church and the Churches,</span> p. 28</note></p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p24" shownumber="no">2. THE HOLINESS OF THE CHURCH. </p>
<p id="vii.i.iii-p25" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p25.1"> The Roman Catholic conception.</span>
The Roman
Catholic conception of the holiness of
the Church is also primarily of an external character. It is not the
inner holiness of the
members of the Church through the sanctifying work of the Holy Spirit,
but the outer
ceremonial holiness that is placed in the foreground. According to
Father Devine the
Church is holy first of all "in her dogmas, in her moral precepts,
in her worship, in her
discipline," in which "all is pure and irreproachable, all is
of such a nature as is
calculated to remove evil and wickedness, and to promote the most
exalted virtue."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p25.2" n="24" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p25.3">The Creed Explained,</span> p. 285.</note>
Only secondarily is the holiness of the Church conceived of as moral.
Father Deharbe
says that the Church is also holy, "because there were in her at
all times saints whose
holiness God has also confirmed by miracles and extraordinary
graces."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p25.4" n="25" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p25.5">Catechism of the Catholic Religion,</span> p. 140.</note></p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p26" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p26.1">
Protestant conception.</span>
Protestants, however, have quite a different conception of the
holiness of the Church. They maintain that the Church is absolutely holy
in an objective
sense, that is, as she is considered in Jesus Christ. In virtue of the
mediatorial
righteousness of Christ, the Church is accounted holy before God. In a
relative sense
they also regard the Church as being subjectively holy, that is, as
actually holy in the
inner principle of her life and destined for perfect holiness. Hence she
can truly be
called a community of saints. This holiness is first of all a holiness
of the inner man, but
a holiness which also finds expression in the outer life. Consequently,
holiness is also
attributed, secondarily, to the visible Church. That Church is holy in the
sense that it is
separated from the world in consecration to God, and also in the ethical
sense of aiming
at, and achieving in principle, a holy conversation in Christ. Since
visible local churches
consist of believers and their seed, they are supposed to exclude all
open unbelievers
and wicked persons. Paul does not hesitate to address them as churches
of the saints.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p27" shownumber="no">3. THE CATHOLICITY OF THE CHURCH. </p>
<p id="vii.i.iii-p28" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p28.1">
Roman Catholic conception.</span>
The attribute
of catholicity is appropriated by the
Roman Catholic Church, as if it only has the right to be called
catholic. Like the other
attributes of the Church, it is applied by her to the visible
organization. She claims the
right to be considered as the one really catholic Church, because she is
spread over the whole earth and adapts herself to all countries and to all
forms of government; because
she has existed from the beginning and has always had subjects and
faithful children,
while sects come and go; because she is in possession of the fulness of
truth and grace,
destined to be distributed among men; and because she surpasses in number
of members all dissenting sects taken together.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p29" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p29.1">
Protestant conception.</span>
Protestants, again, apply this attribute primarily to the
invisible Church, which can be called catholic in a far truer sense than
any one of the
existing organizations, not even the Church of Rome excepted. They
justly resent the
arrogance of the Roman Catholics in appropriating this attribute for
their hierarchical
organization, to the exclusion of all other Churches. Protestants insist
that the invisible Church is primarily the real catholic Church, because she
includes all believers on earth
at any particular time, no one excepted; because, consequently, she also
has her
members among all the nations of the world that were evangelized; and
because she
exercises a controlling influence on the entire life of man in all
its phases. Secondarily,
they also ascribe the attribute of catholicity to the visible Church. In
our discussion of the unity of the visible Church, it already became apparent
that the Reformers and the
Reformed Confessions expressed their belief in a catholic visible
Church, and this
opinion has been reiterated by Dutch, Scottish, and American Reformed
theologians
right up to the present time, though in recent years some in the
Netherlands expressed
doubt about this doctrine. It must be admitted that this doctrine
presents many difficult
problems, which still call for solution. It is not easy to point out
with precision just
where this one catholic visible Church is. Furthermore, such questions
as these arise: (1)
Does this doctrine carry with it a wholesale condemnation of denominationalism,
as Dr.
Henry Van Dyke seems to think? (2) Does it mean that some one
denomination is the
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p29.2">true</span>
Church, while all others are<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p29.3">
false</span>
or is it better
to distinguish between Churches of
more or less pure formation? (3) At what point does a local church or a
denomination
cease to be an integral part of the one visible Church? (4) Is a single
external institution
or organization essential to the unity of the visible Church, or not?
These are some of
the problems that still call for further study.
</p>

<h4 id="vii.i.iii-p29.4">G. THE MARKS OF THE CHURCH.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.iii-p30" shownumber="no">1. THE MARKS OF THE CHURCH IN GENERAL. </p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p31" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p31.1"> The need of such marks.</span>
Little need was felt for such
marks as long as the Church
was clearly one. But when heresies arose, it became necessary to point
to certain marks
by which the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p31.2">
true</span>
Church could be recognized. The consciousness of this need was
already present in the early Church, was naturally less apparent in the
Middle Ages, but became very strong at the time of the Reformation. At that
time the one existing Church
was not only divided into two great sections, but Protestantism itself
was divided into
several Churches and sects. As a result it was felt ever increasingly
that it was necessary
to point out some marks by which the true Church could be distinguished
from the
false. The very fact of the Reformation proves that the Reformers,
without denying that
God maintains His Church, were yet deeply conscious of the fact that an
empirical
embodiment of the Church may become subject to error, may depart from the
truth, and
may totally degenerate. They assumed the existence of a standard of
truth to which the
Church must correspond, and recognized as such the Word of God.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p32" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p32.1">
The marks of the Church in Reformed theology.</span>
Reformed
theologians differed as to
the number of the marks of the Church. Some spoke of but one, the
preaching of the
pure doctrine of the Gospel (Beza, Alsted, Amesius, Heidanus, Maresius);
others, of
two, the pure preaching of the word and the right administration of the
sacraments
(Calvin, Bullinger, Zanchius, Junius, Gomarus, Mastricht, à Marck) and
still others
added to these a third, the faithful exercise of discipline (Hyperius,
Martyr, Ursinus,
Trelcatius, Heidegger, Wendelinus). These three are also named in our
Confession;<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p32.2" n="26" place="foot">Art. XXIX.</note>
but
after making mention of them, the Confession combines them all into one
by saying: "in
short, if all things are managed according to the pure Word of
God." In course of time a
distinction was made, especially in Scotland, between those features
which are
absolutely necessary to the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p32.3">
being</span>
of a Church, and
those which are only necessary to its<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p32.4">
well-being.</span>
Some began to feel
that, however necessary discipline might be to the health
of the Church, it would be wrong to say that a church without discipline
was no Church
at all. Some even felt the same way about the right administration of
the sacraments,
since they did not feel free to unchurch either the Baptists or the
Quakers. The effect of
this is seen in the Westminster Confession, which mentions as the only
thing that is
indispensable to the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p32.5">
being</span>
of the Church
"the profession of the true religion," and
speaks of other things, such as purity of doctrine or worship, and of
discipline as
excellent qualities of particular churches, by which the degree of their
purity may be measured.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iii-p32.6" n="27" place="foot">Chap. XXV, paragraphs 2, 4. 4.</note>
Dr. Kuyper recognizes only the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p32.7">
praedicatio verbi</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p32.8">
administratio sacramenti</span>
as real marks of the Church, since they
only: (1) are specific, that is, are characteristics of the Church and of no other body; (2) are instruments
through which
Christ works with His grace and Spirit in the Church; and (3) are
formative elements
that go into the constitution of the Church. Discipline is also found
elsewhere and cannot be co-ordinated with these two. Bearing this in mind, he
has no objection,
however, to regard the faithful exercise of discipline as one of the
marks of the Church.
Now it is undoubtedly true that the three marks usually named are not
really co-
ordinate. Strictly speaking, it may be said that the true preaching of
the Word and its
recognition as the standard of doctrine and life, is the one mark of the
Church. Without
it there is no Church, and it determines the right
administration of the sacraments and
the faithful exercise of Church discipline. Nevertheless, the right
administration of the
sacraments is also a real mark of the Church. And though the exercise of
discipline may
not be peculiar to the Church, that is, is not found in it exclusively,
yet it is absolutely
essential to the purity of the Church.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p33" shownumber="no">2. THE MARKS OF THE CHURCH IN PARTICULAR.</p>
<p id="vii.i.iii-p34" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p34.1">
The true preaching of the Word.</span>
This is the
most important mark of the Church.
While it is independent of the sacraments, these are not independent of
it. The true
preaching of the Word is the great means for maintaining the Church and
for enabling
her to be the mother of the faithful. That this is one of the
characteristics of the true
Church, is
evident from such passages as <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p34.2" osisRef="Bible:John.8.31" parsed="|John|8|31|0|0" passage="John 8:31">John 8:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p34.3" osisRef="Bible:John.8.32" parsed="|John|8|32|0|0" passage="John 8:32">32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p34.4" osisRef="Bible:John.8.47" parsed="|John|8|47|0|0" passage="John 8:47">47</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p34.5" osisRef="Bible:John.14.23" parsed="|John|14|23|0|0" passage="John 14:23">14:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p34.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.1-1John.4.3" parsed="|1John|4|1|4|3" passage="I John 4:1-3">I John 4:1-3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p34.7" osisRef="Bible:2John.1.9" parsed="|2John|1|9|0|0" passage="II John 9">II John 9</scripRef>.
Ascribing this mark to the Church does not mean that the preaching of
the Word in a
Church must be perfect before it can be regarded as a true Church. Such
an ideal is
unattainable on earth; only relative purity of doctrine can be ascribed
to any Church. A
church may be comparatively impure in its presentation of the truth
without ceasing to
be a true church. But there is a limit beyond which a Church cannot go
in the
misrepresentation or denial of the truth, without losing her true
character and becoming
a false Church. This is what happens when fundamental articles of faith
are publicly
denied, and doctrine and life are no more under the control of the Word
of God.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p35" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p35.1">
The right administration of the sacraments.</span>
The sacraments
should never be divorced
from the Word, for they have no content of their own, but derive their
content from the
Word of God; they are in fact a visible preaching of the Word. As such
they must also be
administered by lawful ministers of the Word, in accordance with the
divine institution,
and only to properly qualified subjects, the believers and their seed. A
denial of the central truths of the gospel will naturally affect the proper
administration of the
sacraments; and the Church of Rome certainly departs from the right
mode, when it
divorces the sacraments from the Word, ascribing to them a sort of
magical efficacy; and
when it allows midwives to administer baptism in time of need. That the
right
administration of the sacraments is a characteristic of the true Church,
follows from its inseparable connection with the preaching of the Word and from
such passages as <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p35.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:19">Matt. 28:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p35.3" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.15" parsed="|Mark|16|15|0|0" passage="Mark 16:15">Mark 16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p35.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p35.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.42" parsed="|Acts|2|42|0|0" passage="Acts 2:42">Acts 2:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p35.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.23-1Cor.11.30" parsed="|1Cor|11|23|11|30" passage="I Cor. 11:23-30">I Cor. 11:23-30</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p36" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p36.1">
The faithful exercise of discipline.</span>
This is quite
essential for maintaining the purity of
doctrine and for guarding the holiness of the sacraments. Churches that
are lax in
discipline are bound to discover sooner or later within their circle an
eclipse of the light of the truth and an abuse of that which is holy. Hence a
Church that would remain true
to her ideal in the measure in which this is possible on earth, must be
diligent and
conscientious in the exercise of Christian discipline. The Word of God
insists on proper
discipline in
the Church of Christ, <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p36.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.18" parsed="|Matt|18|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:18">Matt. 18:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p36.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.1-1Cor.5.5" parsed="|1Cor|5|1|5|5" passage="I Cor. 5:1-5">I Cor. 5:1-5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p36.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.13" parsed="|1Cor|5|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p36.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.14.33" parsed="|1Cor|14|33|0|0" passage="I Cor. 14:33">14:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p36.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.14.40" parsed="|1Cor|14|40|0|0" passage="I Cor. 14:40">40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p36.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.14" parsed="|Rev|2|14|0|0" passage="Rev. 2:14">Rev. 2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p36.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.15" parsed="|Rev|2|15|0|0" passage="Rev 2:15">15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p36.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.20" parsed="|Rev|2|20|0|0" passage="Rev 2:20">20</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p37" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What is the meaning of the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p37.1">
ekklesia</span>
in <scripRef id="vii.i.iii-p37.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.18" parsed="|Matt|16|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:18">Matt. 16:18</scripRef>; 18:17? When and how did the term<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p37.3">
kuriake</span>
come into use for
the Church? How do
the Dutch words
'kerk' and 'gemeente' differ, and how are they related to the Greek
term? Are there passages in Scripture in which the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p37.4">
ekklesia</span>
is undoubtedly used to
denote as a unity the whole body of those throughout the world who
outwardly profess
Christ? Is the word ever used as the designation of a group of churches
under a
common government, such as we call a denomination? Does the visibility
of the Church
consist merely in the visibility of its members? If not, in what does it
become visible?
Does the visible Church stand in any other than a mere outward relation
to Christ, and
does it enjoy any other than mere outward promises and privileges? Does
the essence of
the visible Church differ from that of the invisible Church? What
objections have been
raised to the distinction between the Church as an institution and the
Church as an
organism? What is the fundamental difference between the Roman Catholic
and the
Reformed conception of the Church?</p>

<p id="vii.i.iii-p38" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.1">; Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 295-354; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Ecclesia</span>,
pp. 3-267; id.,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.3">
Tractaat Van de Reformatie der Kerken;</span> ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.4">
E Voto</span>, II, pp. 108-151; Vos,
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.5">Geref. Dogm.</span>
V, pp. 1-31; Bannerman,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.6">
The Church of Christ</span> I, pp.
1-67;<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.7">
Ten Hoor, Afscheiding en Doleantie</span> and<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.8">
Afscheiding of
Doleantie;</span>
Doekes,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.9">
De Moeder der Geloovigen</span>,
pp. 7-64; Steen,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.10">
De Kerk</span>, pp. 30-131; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.11">
The Doctrine of the Church in Scottish
Theology</span>, pp. 54-128; Van Dyke,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.12">
The Church, Her Ministry and Sacraments</span>, pp. 1-74;
Hort,
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.13">The Christian Ecclesia</span>, especially pp. 1-21, 107-122;
Pieper,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.14">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
III, pp.
458-492; Valentine,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.15">
Chr. Dogm.</span>
II, pp. 362-377; Pope,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.16">
Chr. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 259-287; Litton,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.17">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 357-378; Strong,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.18">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 887-894; Devine,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.19">
The Creed Explained</span>,
pp. 256-295;
Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.20">
Handbook of the Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 102-119;
Moehler,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.21">
Symbolism</span>, pp.
310-362; Schaff,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.22">
Our Fathers' Faith and Ours</span>, pp. 213-239; Morris,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.23">
Ecclesiology</span>
pp. 13-41;
W. A. Visser 't
Hooft and J. H. Oldham,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iii-p38.24">
The Church and its Function in Society. </span></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="vii.i.iv" next="vii.i.v" prev="vii.i.iii" title="III. The Government of the Church">
<h2 id="vii.i.iv-p0.1">III. The Government of the Church</h2>
<h4 id="vii.i.iv-p0.2">A. DIFFERENT THEORIES RESPECTING THE GOVERNMENT OF THE CHURCH.</h4>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p1" shownumber="no">1. THE VIEW OF QUAKERS AND DARBYITES. It is a matter
of principle with the Quakers
and Darbyites to reject all Church Government. According to them every
external
Church formation necessarily degenerates and leads to results that are
contrary to the
spirit of Christianity. It exalts the human element at the expense of
the divine. It neglects
the divinely given charisms and substitutes for them offices instituted
by man, and
consequently offers the Church the husk of human knowledge
rather than the vital
communications of the Holy Spirit. Therefore they regard it as not only
unnecessary but
decidedly sinful to organize the visible Church. Thus the offices fall
by the way, and in
public worship each simply follows the promptings of the Spirit. The
tendency that
becomes apparent in these sects, which gives clear evidence of the
leaven of Mysticism, must be regarded as a reaction against the hierarchical
organization and the formalism
of the Established Church of England. In our country some of the Quakers
have
regularly ordained ministers and conduct their worship very much as other
Churches do.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE ERASTIAN SYSTEM, NAMED AFTER ERASTUS, 1524-1583.
Erastians regard the
Church as a society which owes its existence and form to regulations
enacted by the
State. The officers of the Church are merely instructors or preachers of
the Word,
without any right or power to rule, except that which they derive from
the civil
magistrates. It is the function of the State to govern the Church, to
exercise discipline
and to excommunicate. Church censures are civil punishments, though their
application
may be entrusted to the legal officers of the Church. This system has
been variously
applied in England, Scotland, and Germany (Lutheran Churches). It conflicts
with the
fundamental principle of the Headship of Jesus Christ, and does not
recognize the fact
that Church and State are distinct and independent in their origin, in
their primary
objects, in the power they exercise, and in the administration of that
power.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p3" shownumber="no">3. THE EPISCOPALIAN SYSTEM. The Episcopalians
hold that Christ, as the Head of the
Church, has entrusted the government of the Church directly and
exclusively to an
order of prelates or bishops, as the successors of the apostles; and
that He has
constituted these bishops a separate, independent, and self-perpetuating
order. In this
system the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p3.1">
coetus fidelium</span>
or community of believers has absolutely no share in the
government of the Church. In the early centuries this was the system of
the Roman
Catholic Church. In England it is combined with the Erastian system. But
the Bible does
not warrant the existence of such a separate class of superior officers,
who have the
inherent right of ordination and jurisdiction, and therefore do not
represent the people
nor, in any sense of the word, derive their office from them. Scripture
clearly shows that
the apostolic office was not of a permanent nature. The apostles did
form a clearly
distinct and independent class, but it was not their special task to rule
and administer
the affairs of the churches. It was their duty to carry the gospel to
unevangelized
districts, to found churches, and then to appoint others from among the
people for the
task of ruling these churches. Before the end of the first century the
Apostolate had disappeared entirely.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p4" shownumber="no">4. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC SYSTEM. This is the
Episcopal system carried to its logical
conclusion. The Roman Catholic system pretends to comprise, not only
successors of
the apostles, but also a successor to Peter, who is said to have had the
primacy among
the apostles, and whose successor is now recognized as the special
representative of
Christ. The Church of Rome is of the nature of an absolute monarchy,
under the control
of an infallible Pope, who has the right to determine and regulate the
doctrine, worship,
and government, of the Church. Under him there are inferior classes and
orders, to
whom special grace is given, and whose duty it is to govern the Church
in strict
accountability to their superiors and to the supreme Pontiff. The people
have absolutely
no voice in the government of the Church. This system also conflicts
with Scripture,
which recognizes no such primacy of Peter as that on which the system is
built, and
distinctly recognizes the voice of the people in ecclesiastical affairs.
Moreover, the claim
of the Roman Catholic Church, that there has been an unbroken line of
succession from
the time of Peter down to the present day, is contradicted by history.
The papal system is, both exegetically and historically, untenable.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p5" shownumber="no">5. THE CONGREGATIONAL SYSTEM. This is also called the system of independency.
According to it each church or congregation is a complete church,
independent of every
other. In such a church the governing power rests exclusively with the
members of the
church, who are entitled to regulate their own affairs. Officers are
simply functionaries of the local church, appointed to teach and to administer
the affairs of the church, and
have no governing power beyond that which they possess as members of the
church. If
it is considered expedient that the various churches should exercise communion
with
one another, as is sometimes the case, this fellowship finds expression
in ecclesiastical
councils and in local or provincial conferences, for the consideration
of their common
interests. But the actions of such associated bodies are held to be
strictly advisory or
declarative, and are not binding on any particular church. This theory
of popular
government, making the office of the ministry altogether dependent on
the action of the
people, is certainly not in harmony with what we learn from the Word of
God.
Moreover, the theory that each church is independent of every other
church, fails to
express the unity of the Church of Christ, has a disintegrating effect,
and opens the door
for all kinds of arbitrariness in church government. There is no appeal
from any of the
decisions of the local church.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p6" shownumber="no">6. THE NATIONAL-CHURCH SYSTEM. This system,
also called the Collegial system (which supplanted the Territorial system) was developed in Germany
especially by C.
M. Pfaff (1686-1780), and was later on introduced into the Netherlands.
It proceeds on
the assumption that the Church is a voluntary association, equal to the
State. The
separate churches or congregations are merely sub-divisions of the one
national Church.
The original power resides in a national organization, and this
organization has
jurisdiction over the local churches. This is just the reverse of the
Presbyterian system,
according to which the original power has its seat in the consistory.
The Territorial
system recognized the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p6.1">
inherent</span>
right of the State
to reform public worship, to decide
disputes respecting doctrine and conduct, and to convene synods, while
the Collegial
system ascribes to the State only the right of supervision as an<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p6.2">
inherent right</span>, and
regards all other rights, which the State might exercise in Church
matters, as rights
which the Church by a tacit understanding or by a formal pact conferred
upon the State.
This system disregards altogether the autonomy of the local churches,
ignores the
principles of self-government and of direct responsibility to Christ, engenders
formalism, and binds a professedly spiritual Church by formal and
geographical lines.
Such a system as this, which is akin to the Erastian system, naturally
fits in best with the
present-day idea of the totalitarian State.</p>

<h4 id="vii.i.iv-p6.3">B. THE FUNDAMENTAL PRINCIPLES OF THE REFORMED OR PRESBYTERIAN SYSTEM.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p7" shownumber="no">Reformed Churches do not claim that their system of
Church government is
determined in every detail by the Word of God, but do assert that its
fundamental
principles are directly derived from Scripture. They do not claim a<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p7.1">
jus divinum</span>
for the
details, but only for the general fundamental principles of the system,
and are quite
ready to admit that many of its particulars are determined by expediency
and human
wisdom. From this it follows that, while the general structure must be
rigidly
maintained, some of the details may be changed in the proper
ecclesiastical manner for
prudential reasons, such as the general profit of the churches. The
following are its most
fundamental principles.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p8" shownumber="no">1. CHRIST IS THE HEAD OF THE CHURCH AND THE SOURCE OF ALL ITS AUTHORITY. The
Church of Rome considers it of the greatest importance to maintain the
headship of the
Pope over the Church. The Reformers maintained and defended the position,
in
opposition to the claims of the Papacy, that Christ is the only Head of
the Church. They
did not entirely avoid the danger, however, of recognizing, the one more
and the other
less, the supremacy of the State over the Church. Consequently the
Presbyterian and
Reformed Churches had to fight another battle later on, the battle for
the Headship of
Jesus Christ in opposition to the unwarranted encroachments of the
State. This battle was fought first of all in Scotland, and later on also in
The Netherlands. The very fact
that it was fought against such external powers as the Papacy and the
State or the King,
both of whom claimed to be the head of the visible Church, clearly
implies that they
who were engaged in this battle were particularly interested in
establishing and
maintaining the position that Christ is the only lawful Head of the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p8.1">
visible</span>
Church, and is
therefore the only supreme Lawgiver and King of the Church. Naturally,
they also
recognized Christ as the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p8.2">
organic</span>
Head of the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p8.3">
invisible</span>
Church. They realized that the two
could not be separated, but, since the Pope and the King could hardly
claim to be the
organic head of the invisible Church, this was not really the point in
question.
Respecting the Scottish teachers Walker says: "They meant that
Christ is the real King
and Head of the Church, as a visible organisation, ruling it by His
statutes, and
ordinances, and officers, and forces, as truly and literally as David or
Solomon ruled the covenant people of old."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iv-p8.4" n="28" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p8.5">Scottish Theology and Theologians,</span> p. 130</note></p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p9" shownumber="no">The Bible teaches us that Christ is Head over all things:
He is the Lord of the
universe, not merely as the second person of the Trinity, but in His
mediatorial capacity,  <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.18" parsed="|Matt|28|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:18">Matt.
28:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20-Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|20|1|22" passage="Eph. 1:20-22">Eph. 1:20-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.10" parsed="|Phil|2|10|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:10">Phil. 2:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|11|0|0" passage="Phil 2:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.17.14" parsed="|Rev|17|14|0|0" passage="Rev. 17:14">Rev. 17:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.19.16" parsed="|Rev|19|16|0|0" passage="Rev 19:16">19:16</scripRef>. In a very special sense,
however,
He is the Head of the Church, which is His body. He stands in a vital
and organic
relation to it,
fills it with His life, and controls it spiritually, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:John.15.1-John.15.8" parsed="|John|15|1|15|8" passage="John 15:1-8">John 15:1-8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.10" parsed="|Eph|1|10|0|0" passage="Eph. 1:10">Eph. 1:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.22" parsed="|Eph|1|22|0|0" passage="Eph 1:22">22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.23" parsed="|Eph|1|23|0|0" passage="Eph 1:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.11" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.20-Eph.2.22" parsed="|Eph|2|20|2|22" passage="Eph 2:20-22">2:20-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.12" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.15" parsed="|Eph|4|15|0|0" passage="Eph 4:15">4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.13" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.30" parsed="|Eph|5|30|0|0" passage="Eph 5:30">5:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.14" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.18" parsed="|Col|1|18|0|0" passage="Col. 1:18">Col. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.15" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.19" parsed="|Col|2|19|0|0" passage="Col 2:19">2:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.16" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.11" parsed="|Col|3|11|0|0" passage="Col 3:11">3:11</scripRef>. Premillenarians claim that this is the only sense
in
which Christ is the Head of the Church, for they deny the very point for
which our
Reformed Fathers contended, namely, that Christ is the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p9.17"> King</span>
of the Church, and
therefore the only supreme authority to be recognized in it. Scripture
plainly teaches,
however, that Christ is the Head of the Church, not only in virtue of
His vital
relationship to it, but also as its Legislator and King. In the organic
and vital sense He is the Head primarily, though not exclusively, of the invisible Church,
which constitutes
His spiritual body. But He is also the Head of the visible Church, not
only in the organic
sense, but also in the sense that He has authority and rule over it,
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.18" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.18" parsed="|Matt|16|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:18">Matt. 16:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.19" parsed="|Matt|16|19|0|0" passage="Matt 16:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.20" osisRef="Bible:Matt.23.8" parsed="|Matt|23|8|0|0" passage="Matt 23:8">23:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.21" osisRef="Bible:Matt.23.10" parsed="|Matt|23|10|0|0" passage="Matt 23:10">10</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.22" osisRef="Bible:John.13.13" parsed="|John|13|13|0|0" passage="John 13:13">John 13:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.23" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.5" parsed="|1Cor|12|5|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:5">I Cor. 12:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.24" osisRef="Bible:Eph.1.20-Eph.1.23" parsed="|Eph|1|20|1|23" passage="Eph. 1:20-23">Eph. 1:20-23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.25" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.4" parsed="|Eph|4|4|0|0" passage="Eph 4:4">4:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.26" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.5" parsed="|Eph|4|5|0|0" passage="Eph 4:5">5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.27" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.11" parsed="|Eph|4|11|0|0" passage="Eph 4:11">11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.28" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.12" parsed="|Eph|4|12|0|0" passage="Eph 4:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.29" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.23" parsed="|Eph|5|23|0|0" passage="Eph 5:23">5:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.30" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.24" parsed="|Eph|5|24|0|0" passage="Eph 5:24">24</scripRef>. This Headship of Christ over the
visible Church is the principal part of the dominion bestowed upon Him
as the result of His sufferings. His authority is manifested in the following
points: (a) He instituted the
Church of the New Testament, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.31" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.18" parsed="|Matt|16|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:18">Matt. 16:18</scripRef>, so that it is not, as many
regard it in our day,
a mere voluntary society, which has its only warrant in the consent of
its members. (b)
He instituted the means of grace which the Church must administer,
namely, the Word
and the
sacraments, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.32" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:19">Matt. 28:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.33" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.20" parsed="|Matt|28|20|0|0" passage="Matt 28:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.34" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.15" parsed="|Mark|16|15|0|0" passage="Mark 16:15">Mark 16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.35" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.36" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.17-Luke.22.20" parsed="|Luke|22|17|22|20" passage="Luke 22:17-20">Luke 22:17-20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.37" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.23-1Cor.11.29" parsed="|1Cor|11|23|11|29" passage="I Cor. 11:23-29">I Cor. 11:23-29</scripRef>. In
these matters no one else has the right to legislate. (c) He gave to the
Church its
constitution and officers, and clothed them with divine authority, so
that they can speak
and act in His
name, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.38" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.1" parsed="|Matt|10|1|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:1">Matt. 10:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.39" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.19" parsed="|Matt|16|19|0|0" passage="Matt 16:19">16:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.40" osisRef="Bible:John.20.21-John.20.23" parsed="|John|20|21|20|23" passage="John 20:21-23">John 20:21-23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.41" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.11" parsed="|Eph|4|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:11">Eph. 4:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.42" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.12" parsed="|Eph|4|12|0|0" passage="Eph 4:12">12</scripRef>. (d) He is ever present
in the Church when it meets for worship, and speaks and acts through its
officers. It is
Christ as King that warrants them in speaking and acting with authority,
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.43" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.40" parsed="|Matt|10|40|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:40">Matt. 10:40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p9.44" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.13.3" parsed="|2Cor|13|3|0|0" passage="II Cor. 13:3">II Cor. 13:3</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p10" shownumber="no">2. CHRIST EXERCISES HIS AUTHORITY BY MEANS OF HIS ROYAL WORD. The reign of
Christ
is not in all respects similar to that of earthly kings. He does not
rule the Church by
force, but<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p10.1">
subjectively</span>
by His Spirit, which is operative in the Church, and<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p10.2"> objectively</span>
by
the Word of God as the standard of authority. All believers are
unconditionally bound to
obey the word of the King. As Christ is the only sovereign Ruler of the
Church, His
word is the only word that is law in the absolute sense. Consequently,
all despotic
power is contraband in the Church. There is no ruling power independent
of Christ.
The Pope of Rome stands condemned in that he, while professing to be
Christ's vicar on
earth, virtually supplants Christ and supersedes His word by human
innovations. He
not only places tradition on an equal footing with
Scripture, but also claims to be the
infallible interpreter of both when speaking<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p10.3">
ex cathedra</span>
in matters of faith and morals.
Scripture and tradition may be the mediate or remote rules of faith, the
immediate rule
is the teaching of the Church, which has its guarantee in papal
infallibility.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iv-p10.4" n="29" place="foot">Cf. Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p10.5"> Handbook of the Christian Religion</span>, p. 134.</note>The word
of the Pope is the word of God. But while it is true that Christ
exercises His authority in
the Church through the officers, this is not to be understood in the
sense that He
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p10.6">transfers</span>
His authority to His servants. He Himself rules the Church through all
the
ages, but in doing this, He uses the officers of the Church as His
organs. They have no
absolute or independent, but only a derived and ministerial power.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p11" shownumber="no">3. CHRIST AS KING HAS ENDOWED THE CHURCH WITH POWER. A rather delicate
question arises at this point, namely, Who are the first and proper
subjects of Church
power? To whom has Christ committed this power in the first instance?
Roman
Catholics and Episcopalians answer: to the officers as a separate class,
in
contradistinction from the ordinary members of the Church. This view has
also been held by some eminent Presbyterian divines, such as Rutherford and
Baillie.
Diametrically opposed to this is the theory of the Independents, that
this power is
vested in the Church at large, and that the officers are merely the
organs of the body as
a whole. The great Puritan divine, Owen, adopts this view with some
modifications. In
recent years some Reformed theologians apparently favored this view,
though without
subscribing to the separatism of the Independents. There is another
view, however,
representing a mean between these two extremes, which would seem to
deserve
preference. According to it ecclesiastical power is committed by Christ
to the Church as
a whole, that is to the ordinary members and the officers alike; but in
addition to that
the officers receive such an additional measure of power as is required
for the
performance of their respective duties in the Church of Christ. They
share in the
original power bestowed upon the Church, and receive their authority and
power as
officers directly from Christ. They are representatives, but not mere
deputies or
delegates of the people. Older theologians often say: "All Church
power, in<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p11.1">
actu primo</span>,
or fundamentally, is in the Church itself; in<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p11.2">
actu secundo</span>, or its exercise, in them that are specially called thereto." This
is substantially the view held by Voetius, Gillespie (in his
work on Ceremonies), Bannerman, Porteous, Bavinck, and Vos.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p12" shownumber="no">4. CHRIST PROVIDED FOR THE SPECIFIC EXERCISE OF THIS POWER BY REPRESENTATIVE ORGANS. While Christ committed power to the Church as a whole,
He also provided for
it that this power should be exercised ordinarily and specifically by
representative
organs, set aside for the maintenance of doctrine, worship, and
discipline. The officers
of the Church are the representatives of the people chosen by popular
vote. This does
not mean, however, that they receive their authority from the people,
for the call of the
people is but the confirmation of the inner call by the Lord Himself;
and it is from Him
that they receive their authority and to Him that they are responsible.
When they are called representatives, this is merely an indication of the fact
that they were chosen to
their office by the people, and does not imply that they derive their
authority from
them. Hence they are no deputies or tools that merely serve to carry out
the wishes of
the people, but rulers whose duty it is to apprehend and apply
intelligently the laws of
Christ. At the same time they are in duty bound to recognize the power vested
in the Church as a whole by seeking its assent or consent in important matters.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p13" shownumber="no">5. THE POWER OF THE CHURCH RESIDES PRIMARILY IN THE GOVERNING BODY OF THE LOCAL CHURCH. It is one of the fundamental
principles of Reformed or Presbyterian
government, that the power or authority of the Church does not reside
first of all in the
most general assembly of any Church, and is only secondarily and by
derivation from
this assembly, vested in the governing body of the local Church; but
that it has its
original seat in the consistory or session of the local Church, and is
by this transferred to
the major assemblies, such as classes (presbyteries) and synods or
general assemblies.
Thus the Reformed system honors the autonomy of the local church, though
it always
regards this as subject to the limitations that may be put upon it as
the result of its
association with other churches in one denomination, and assures it the
fullest right to
govern its own internal affairs by means of its officers. At the same
time it also
maintains the right and duty of the local church to unite with other
similar churches on
a common confessional basis, and form a wider organization for
doctrinal, judicial, and
administrative purposes, with proper stipulations of mutual obligations
and rights.
Such a wider organization undoubtedly imposes certain limitations on the
autonomy of
the local churches, but also promotes the growth and welfare of the
churches,
guarantees the rights of the members of the Church, and serves to give
fuller expression
to the unity of the Church.</p>

<h4 id="vii.i.iv-p13.1">C. THE OFFICERS OF THE CHURCH.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p14" shownumber="no">Different kinds of officers may be distinguished in the
Church. A very general
distinction is that between extraordinary and ordinary officers.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p15" shownumber="no">1. EXTRAORDINARY OFFICERS.</p>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p16" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p16.1">
Apostles.</span>
Strictly speaking, this name is applicable only to the Twelve chosen by
Jesus and to Paul; but it is also applied to certain apostolic men, who
assisted Paul in his
work, and who were endowed with apostolic gifts and graces, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.4" parsed="|Acts|14|4|0|0" passage="Acts 14:4">Acts 14:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.14" parsed="|Acts|14|14|0|0" passage="Acts 14:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.9.5" parsed="|1Cor|9|5|0|0" passage="I Cor. 9:5">I Cor. 9:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.9.6" parsed="|1Cor|9|6|0|0" passage="I Cor. 9:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.23" parsed="|2Cor|8|23|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:23">II Cor. 8:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.19" parsed="|Gal|1|19|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:19">Gal. 1:19</scripRef> (?). The apostles had the special task of laying
the foundation for the Church of all ages. It is only through their word that
believers of all following ages
have communion with Jesus Christ. Hence they are the apostles of the Church
in the
present day as well as they were the apostles of the primitive Church.
They had certain
special qualifications. They (a) received their commission directly from
God or from
Jesus Christ,
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:Mark.3.14" parsed="|Mark|3|14|0|0" passage="Mark 3:14">Mark 3:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.13" parsed="|Luke|6|13|0|0" passage="Luke 6:13">Luke 6:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.1" parsed="|Gal|1|1|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:1">Gal. 1:1</scripRef>; (b) were witnesses of the life of Christ and
especially of His resurrection, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.11" osisRef="Bible:John.15.27" parsed="|John|15|27|0|0" passage="John 15:27">John 15:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.21" parsed="|Acts|1|21|0|0" passage="Acts 1:21">Acts 1:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.22" parsed="|Acts|1|22|0|0" passage="Acts 1:22">22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.9.1" parsed="|1Cor|9|1|0|0" passage="I Cor. 9:1">I Cor. 9:1</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.100" parsed="|1Cor|100|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 100">c</scripRef>) were
conscious of
being inspired by the Spirit of God in all their teaching, both oral and
written, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.16" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.28" parsed="|Acts|15|28|0|0" passage="Acts 15:28">Acts 15:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.17" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.2.13" parsed="|1Cor|2|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 2:13">I Cor. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.18" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.8" parsed="|1Thess|4|8|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:8">I Thess. 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.19" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.9-1John.5.12" parsed="|1John|5|9|5|12" passage="I John 5:9-12">I John 5:9-12</scripRef>; (d) had the power to perform miracles and
used this on several occasions to ratify their message, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.20" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.12.12" parsed="|2Cor|12|12|0|0" passage="II Cor. 12:12">II Cor. 12:12</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.21" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.4" parsed="|Heb|2|4|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:4">Heb. 2:4</scripRef>; and (e)
were richly blessed in their work as a sign of the divine approval of
their labors, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.22" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.9.1" parsed="|1Cor|9|1|0|0" passage="I Cor. 9:1">I Cor. 9:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.23" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.9.2" parsed="|1Cor|9|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 9:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.24" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.2" parsed="|2Cor|3|2|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:2">II Cor. 3:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.25" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.3" parsed="|2Cor|3|3|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:3">3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p16.26" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.8" parsed="|Gal|2|8|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:8">Gal. 2:8</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p17" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p17.1"> Prophets.</span>
The New Testament also speaks of
prophets, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.11.28" parsed="|Acts|11|28|0|0" passage="Acts 11:28">Acts 11:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.1" parsed="|Acts|13|1|0|0" passage="Acts 13:1">13:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.2" parsed="|Acts|13|2|0|0" passage="Acts 13:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.32" parsed="|Acts|15|32|0|0" passage="Acts 15:32">15:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.10" parsed="|1Cor|12|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:10">I Cor. 12:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.13.2" parsed="|1Cor|13|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 13:2">13:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.14.3" parsed="|1Cor|14|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 14:3">14:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.20" parsed="|Eph|2|20|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:20">Eph. 2:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.5" parsed="|Eph|3|5|0|0" passage="Eph 3:5">3:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.11" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.11" parsed="|Eph|4|11|0|0" passage="Eph 4:11">4:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.12" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.18" parsed="|1Tim|1|18|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:18">I Tim. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.13" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.14" parsed="|1Tim|4|14|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:14">4:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p17.14" osisRef="Bible:Rev.11.6" parsed="|Rev|11|6|0|0" passage="Rev. 11:6">Rev. 11:6</scripRef>. Evidently the gift of
speaking for the edification of
the Church was highly developed in these prophets, and
they were occasionally instrumental in revealing mysteries and
predicting future
events. The first part of this gift is permanent in the Christian
Church, and was
distinctly recognized by the Reformed Churches (prophesyings), but the
last part of it
was of a charismatic and temporary character. They differed from
ordinary ministers in that they spoke under special inspiration.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p18" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p18.1"> Evangelists.</span>
In addition to
apostles and prophets, evangelists are mentioned in the Bible, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.21.8" parsed="|Acts|21|8|0|0" passage="Acts 21:8">Acts 21:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.11" parsed="|Eph|4|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:11">Eph. 4:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.5" parsed="|2Tim|4|5|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:5">II Tim. 4:5</scripRef>. Philip, Mark, Timothy, and Titus belonged to this
class. Little is known about these evangelists. They accompanied and
assisted the
apostles, and were sometimes sent out by these on special missions.
Their work was to
preach and baptize, but also to ordain elders, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.5" parsed="|Titus|1|5|0|0" passage="Tit. 1:5">Tit. 1:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.22" parsed="|1Tim|5|22|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:22">I Tim. 5:22</scripRef>,
and to exercise
discipline, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.10" parsed="|Titus|3|10|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:10">Tit. 3:10</scripRef>. Their authority seems to have been more general
and somewhat
superior to that of the regular ministers.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p19" shownumber="no">2. ORDINARY OFFICERS.</p>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p20" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.1">
Elders.</span>
Among the common officers of the Church
the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.2">
presbuteroi</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.3">
episkopoi</span>
are first in order of importance. The former name simply means
"elders," that is, older ones,
and the latter,
"overseers." The term<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.4">
presbuteroi</span>
is used in Scripture to denote old men,
and to designate a class of officers somewhat similar to those who
functioned in the
synagogue. As a designation of office the name was gradually eclipsed
and even
superseded by the name<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.5">
episkopoi.</span>
The two terms are
often used interchangeably, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.17" parsed="|Acts|20|17|0|0" passage="Acts 20:17">Acts 20:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.28" parsed="|Acts|20|28|0|0" passage="Acts 20:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.1" parsed="|1Tim|3|1|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:1">I Tim. 3:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.14" parsed="|1Tim|4|14|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:14">4:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.10" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.17" parsed="|1Tim|5|17|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:17">5:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.11" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.19" parsed="|1Tim|5|19|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:19">19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.12" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.5" parsed="|Titus|1|5|0|0" passage="Tit. 1:5">Tit. 1:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.13" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.7" parsed="|Titus|1|7|0|0" passage="Tit 1:7">7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.14" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.1" parsed="|1Pet|5|1|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:1">I Pet. 5:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.15" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.2" parsed="|1Pet|5|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:2">2</scripRef>.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.16">
Presbuteroi</span>
are first mentioned in
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.17" osisRef="Bible:Acts.11.30" parsed="|Acts|11|30|0|0" passage="Acts 11:30">Acts 11:30</scripRef>, but the office was evidently well known already when Paul
and Barnabas
went to Jerusalem, and may have been in existence even before the
institution of the
diaconate. At least the term<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.18">
hoi neoteroi</span>
in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.19" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5" parsed="|Acts|5|0|0|0" passage="Acts 5">Acts 5</scripRef> seems to
point to a distinction between
these and the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.20">
presbuteroi.</span>
Frequent mention is made of them in the book of Acts, 14:23; 15:6,22; 16:4; 20:17,28; 21:18. Probably the presbyterial or episcopal office was first
instituted in the churches of the Jews, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.21" osisRef="Bible:Jas.5.14" parsed="|Jas|5|14|0|0" passage="Jas. 5:14">Jas. 5:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.22" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.7" parsed="|Heb|13|7|0|0" passage="Heb. 13:7">Heb. 13:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.23" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.17" parsed="|Heb|13|17|0|0" passage="Heb 13:17">17</scripRef>, and
then, shortly after, also
in those of the Gentiles. Several other names are applied to these
officers, namely,
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.24">proistamenoi</span>, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.25" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.8" parsed="|Rom|12|8|0|0" passage="Rom. 12:8">Rom. 12:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.26" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.12" parsed="|1Thess|5|12|0|0" passage="I Thes. 5:12">I Thes. 5:12</scripRef>;<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.27">
kuberneseis</span>
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.28" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.28" parsed="|1Cor|12|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:28">I Cor. 12:28</scripRef>;<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.29"> hegoumenoi</span>, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.30" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.7" parsed="|Heb|13|7|0|0" passage="Heb. 13:7">Heb. 13:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.31" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.17" parsed="|Heb|13|17|0|0" passage="Heb 13:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.32" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.24" parsed="|Heb|13|24|0|0" passage="Heb 13:24">24</scripRef>;
and<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p20.33">
poimenes</span>, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p20.34" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.11" parsed="|Eph|4|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:11">Eph. 4:11</scripRef>. These officers clearly had
the oversight of the flock that was entrusted to their care. They had to provide for it, govern it, and
protect it, as the very
household of God.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p21" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p21.1">
Teachers.</span>
It is clear that
the elders were not originally teachers. There was no need of separate teachers
at first, since there were apostles, prophets, and evangelists.
Gradually, however, the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p21.2">
didaskalia</span>
was connected more
closely with the episcopal office;
but even then the teachers did not at once constitute a separate class
of officers. Paul's
statement in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.11" parsed="|Eph|4|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:11">Eph. 4:11</scripRef>, that the ascended Christ also gave "pastors
and teachers,"
mentioned as a single class, to the Church, clearly shows that these two
did not
constitute two different classes of officers, but one class having two
related functions. <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.17" parsed="|1Tim|5|17|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:17">I Tim. 5:17</scripRef> speaks of elders who labor in the Word and in teaching, and
according to <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.7" parsed="|Heb|13|7|0|0" passage="Heb. 13:7">Heb. 13:7</scripRef> the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p21.6">
hegoumenoi</span>
were also teachers. Moreover, in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.7" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.2" parsed="|2Tim|2|2|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:2">II Tim. 2:2</scripRef> Paul urges upon Timothy the necessity of appointing to office faithful men who shall
also be able to teach
others. In course of time two circumstances led to a distinction between
the elders or
overseers that were entrusted only with the government of the Church, and
those that
were also called upon to teach: (1) when the apostles died and heresies
arose and
increased, the task of those who were called upon to teach became more
exacting and
demanded special preparation, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.8" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.2" parsed="|2Tim|2|2|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:2">II Tim. 2:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.9" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.9" parsed="|Titus|1|9|0|0" passage="Tit. 1:9">Tit. 1:9</scripRef>; and (2) in view of
the fact that the
laborer is worthy of his hire, those who were engaged in the ministry of
the Word, a
comprehensive task requiring all their time, were set free from other
work, in order that
they might devote themselves more exclusively to the work of teaching.
In all
probability the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p21.10">
aggeloi</span>
who were addressed in the letters to the seven churches of Asia
Minor, were the
teachers or ministers of those churches, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.11" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.1" parsed="|Rev|2|1|0|0" passage="Rev. 2:1">Rev. 2:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.12" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.8" parsed="|Rev|2|8|0|0" passage="Rev 2:8">8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.13" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.12" parsed="|Rev|2|12|0|0" passage="Rev 2:12">12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.14" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.18" parsed="|Rev|2|18|0|0" passage="Rev 2:18">18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.15" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.1" parsed="|Rev|3|1|0|0" passage="Rev 3:1">3:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.16" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.7" parsed="|Rev|3|7|0|0" passage="Rev 3:7">7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p21.17" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.14" parsed="|Rev|3|14|0|0" passage="Rev 3:14">14</scripRef>. In
Reformed circles the ministers now rule the churches together with the
elders, but in
addition to that administer the Word and the sacraments. Together they
make the
necessary regulations for the government of the Church.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p22" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p22.1">
Deacons.</span>
Besides the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p22.2">
presbuteroi</span>
the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p22.3">
diakonoi</span>
are mentioned in the New Testament,
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.1" parsed="|Phil|1|1|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:1">Phil. 1:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.8" parsed="|1Tim|3|8|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:8">I Tim. 3:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.10" parsed="|1Tim|3|10|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:10">10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.12" parsed="|1Tim|3|12|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:12">12</scripRef>. According to the prevailing opinion <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6.1-Acts.6.6" parsed="|Acts|6|1|6|6" passage="Acts 6:1-6">Acts 6:1-6</scripRef> contains the
record of the institution of the diaconate. Some modern scholars doubt
this, however,
and regard the office mentioned in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6" parsed="|Acts|6|0|0|0" passage="Acts 6">Acts 6</scripRef>, either as a general office in
which the
functions of elders and deacons were combined, or as a merely temporal
office serving a
special purpose. They call attention to the fact that some of the seven
chosen, as Philip
and Stephen, evidently engaged in teaching; and that the money collected
at Antioch for
the poor in Judea was delivered into the hands of the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p22.10">
elders.</span>
No mention is made of
deacons whatsoever in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.11.30" parsed="|Acts|11|30|0|0" passage="Acts 11:30">Acts 11:30</scripRef>, though these, if they had existed as a
separate class,
would have been the natural recipients of that money. And yet in all
probability <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6" parsed="|Acts|6|0|0|0" passage="Acts 6">Acts 6</scripRef>
does refer to the institution of the diaconate, for: (1) The name<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p22.13">
diakonoi</span>, which was,
previous to the event narrated in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6" parsed="|Acts|6|0|0|0" passage="Acts 6">Acts 6</scripRef>, always used in the general
sense of servant,
subsequently began to be employed, and in course of time served
exclusively, to
designate those who were engaged in works of mercy and charity. The only
reason that
can be assigned for this is found in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.15" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6" parsed="|Acts|6|0|0|0" passage="Acts 6">Acts 6</scripRef>. (2) The seven men mentioned
there were
charged with the task of distributing properly the gifts that were
brought for the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p22.16">
agapae</span>,
a ministry that is elsewhere more particularly described by the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p22.17">
diakonia</span>, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.18" osisRef="Bible:Acts.11.29" parsed="|Acts|11|29|0|0" passage="Acts 11:29">Acts 11:29</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.19" osisRef="Bible:Rom.12.7" parsed="|Rom|12|7|0|0" passage="Rom. 12:7">Rom. 12:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.20" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.8.4" parsed="|2Cor|8|4|0|0" passage="II Cor. 8:4">II Cor. 8:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.21" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.1" parsed="|2Cor|9|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:1">9:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.22" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.12" parsed="|2Cor|9|12|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:12">12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.23" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.13" parsed="|2Cor|9|13|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.24" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.19" parsed="|Rev|2|19|0|0" passage="Rev. 2:19">Rev. 2:19</scripRef>. (3) The requirements for the office,
as mentioned in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.25" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6" parsed="|Acts|6|0|0|0" passage="Acts 6">Acts 6</scripRef>, are rather exacting, and in that respect agree with
the demands
mentioned in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.26" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.8-1Tim.3.10" parsed="|1Tim|3|8|3|10" passage="I Tim. 3:8-10">I Tim. 3:8-10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p22.27" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.12" parsed="|1Tim|3|12|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:12">12</scripRef>. (4) Very little can be said in favor of
the pet idea of some
critics that the diaconate was not developed until later, about the time
when the episcopal office made its appearance.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p23" shownumber="no">3. THE CALLING OF THE OFFICERS AND THEIR INDUCTION INTO OFFICE. A distinction
should be made between the calling of the extraordinary officers, such
as apostles, and
that of the ordinary officers. The former were called in an
extraordinary way with an
immediate calling from God, and the latter, in the ordinary manner and
through the
agency of the Church. We are concerned more particularly with the
calling of the
ordinary
officers.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p24" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p24.1">
The calling of
the ordinary officers.</span>
This is twofold:</p>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p25" shownumber="no">(1)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p25.1"> Internal calling.</span> It is sometimes thought that the internal calling to an
office in the
Church consists in some extraordinary indication of God to the effect
that one is called,
— a sort of special revelation. But this is not correct. It consists
rather in certain ordinary
providential indications given by God, and includes especially three
things: (a) the
consciousness of being impelled to some special task in the Kingdom of
God, by love to
God and His cause; (b) the conviction that one is at least in a measure
intellectually and
spiritually qualified for the office sought; and (c) the experience that
God is clearly paving the way to the goal.</p>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p26" shownumber="no">(2)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p26.1">
External calling.</span>
This is the call
that comes to one through the instrumentality of
the Church. It is not issued by the Pope (Roman Catholic), nor by a
bishop or a college
of bishops (Episcopalian), but by the local church. Both the officers
and the ordinary
members of the church have a part in it. That the officers have a
guiding hand in it, but
not to the exclusion of the people, is evident from such passages as
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p26.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.15-Acts.1.26" parsed="|Acts|1|15|1|26" passage="Acts 1:15-26">Acts 1:15-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6.2-Acts.6.6" parsed="|Acts|6|2|6|6" passage="Acts 6:2-6">6:2-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.23" parsed="|Acts|14|23|0|0" passage="Acts 14:23">14:23</scripRef>. The people were recognized even in the choice of an apostle,
according to <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.15-Acts.1.26" parsed="|Acts|1|15|1|26" passage="Acts 1:15-26">Acts
1:15-26</scripRef>. It would seem that in the apostolic age the officers guided the
choice of the
people by calling attention to the necessary qualifications that were
required for the office, but
allowed the people to take part in the choosing, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.15-Acts.1.26" parsed="|Acts|1|15|1|26" passage="Acts 1:15-26">Acts 1:15-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6.1-Acts.6.6" parsed="|Acts|6|1|6|6" passage="Acts 6:1-6">6:1-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p26.8" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.2-1Tim.3.13" parsed="|1Tim|3|2|3|13" passage="I Tim. 3:2-13">I Tim. 3:2-13</scripRef>. Of course, in the case of Matthias God Himself made the final
choice.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p27" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p27.1">
The officers' induction into office.</span>
There are
especially two rites connected with this:</p>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p28" shownumber="no">(1)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p28.1">
Ordination.</span>
This presupposes the calling and examination of the candidate for office. It is an
act of the classis or the presbytery (<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p28.2" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.14" parsed="|1Tim|4|14|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:14">I Tim. 4:14</scripRef>). Says Dr. Hodge:
"Ordination is the solemn expression of the
judgment of the Church, by those
appointed to deliver such judgment, that the candidate is truly called
of God to take
part in this ministry, thereby authenticating to the people the divine
call."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iv-p28.3" n="30" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p28.4">Church Polity,</span> p. 349.</note>
This
authentication is, under all ordinary circumstances, the necessary
condition for the
exercise of the ministerial office. It may briefly be called a
public acknowledgement and
confirmation of the candidate's calling to this
office.</p>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p29" shownumber="no">(2)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p29.1">
Laying on of hands.</span>
Ordination
is accompanied with the laying on of hands.
Clearly, the two
went hand in hand in apostolic times, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p29.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6.6" parsed="|Acts|6|6|0|0" passage="Acts 6:6">Acts 6:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p29.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.13.3" parsed="|Acts|13|3|0|0" passage="Acts 13:3">13:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p29.4" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.14" parsed="|1Tim|4|14|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:14">I Tim. 4:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p29.5" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.22" parsed="|1Tim|5|22|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:22">5:22</scripRef>. In
those early days the laying on of hands evidently implied two things: it
signified that a
person was set aside for a certain office, and that some special spiritual
gift was
conferred upon him. The Church of Rome is of the opinion that these two
elements are
still included in the laying on of hands, that it actually confers some
spiritual grace
upon the recipient, and therefore ascribes to it sacramental significance.
Protestants
maintain, however, that it is merely a symbolical indication of the fact
that one is set
aside for the ministerial office in the Church. While they regard it as
a Scriptural rite
and as one that is entirely appropriate, they do not regard it as
absolutely essential. The
Presbyterian Church makes it optional.</p>

<h4 id="vii.i.iv-p29.6">D. THE ECCLESIASTICAL ASSEMBLIES.</h4>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p30" shownumber="no">1. THE GOVERNING BODIES (CHURCH COURTS) IN THE REFORMED SYSTEM. Reformed
Church government is characterized by a system of ecclesiastical
assemblies in an
ascending or a descending scale, according to the point of view from
which they are
considered. These are the consistory (session), the classis
(presbytery), the synod(s), and
(in some cases) the general assembly. The consistory consists of the
minister (or,
ministers) and the elders of the local church. The classis is composed
of one minister
and one elder of each local church within a certain district. This is
somewhat different in
the Presbyterian Church, however, where the presbytery includes all the
ministers
within its boundaries, and one elder from each of its congregations. The
synod, again, consists of an equal number of ministers and elders from each classis or
presbytery.
And, finally, the general assembly is (in the case of the Presbyterians)
composed of an
equal delegation of ministers and elders from each of the presbyteries,
and not, as might
be expected, from each of the particular synods.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p31" shownumber="no">2. THE REPRESENTATIVE GOVERNMENT OF THE LOCAL CHURCH AND ITS RELATIVE AUTONOMY.</p>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p32" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p32.1">
The representative government of the local church.</span>
Reformed
churches differ, on the
one hand, from all those churches in which the government is in the
hands of a single
prelate or presiding elder, and on the other hand, from those in which
it rests with the
people in general. They do not believe in any one man rule, be he an
elder, a pastor, or a
bishop; neither do they believe in popular government. They choose
ruling elders as
their representatives, and these, together with the minister(s), form a
council or
consistory for the government of the local church. Very likely the
apostles were guided
by the venerated custom of having elders in the synagogue rather than by
any direct
commandment, when they ordained elders in the various churches founded by
them.
The Jerusalem church had elders, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.11.30" parsed="|Acts|11|30|0|0" passage="Acts 11:30">Acts 11:30</scripRef>. Paul and
Barnabas ordained them in the
churches which they organized on the first missionary journey, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.23" parsed="|Acts|14|23|0|0" passage="Acts 14:23">Acts 14:23</scripRef>. Elders were
evidently functioning at Ephesus, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.17" parsed="|Acts|20|17|0|0" passage="Acts 20:17">Acts 20:17</scripRef>, and at Philippi, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.5" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.1" parsed="|Phil|1|1|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:1">Phil. 1:1</scripRef>. The Pastoral
Epistles repeatedly make mention of them, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.6" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.1" parsed="|1Tim|3|1|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:1">I Tim. 3:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.7" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.2" parsed="|1Tim|3|2|0|0" passage="I Tim. 3:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.8" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.5" parsed="|Titus|1|5|0|0" passage="Tit. 1:5">Tit. 1:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.9" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.7" parsed="|Titus|1|7|0|0" passage="Tit 1:7">7</scripRef>. It
deserves attention
that they are
always spoken of in the plural, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.28" parsed="|1Cor|12|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:28">I Cor. 12:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.11" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.17" parsed="|1Tim|5|17|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:17">I Tim. 5:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.7" parsed="|Heb|13|7|0|0" passage="Heb. 13:7">Heb. 13:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.13" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.17" parsed="|Heb|13|17|0|0" passage="Heb 13:17">17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.14" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.24" parsed="|Heb|13|24|0|0" passage="Heb 13:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.15" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.1" parsed="|1Pet|5|1|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:1">I Pet. 5:1</scripRef>. The elders are chosen by the people as
men who are specially qualified to rule
the Church. Scripture evidently intends that the people shall have a voice
in the matter
of their selection, though this was not the case in the Jewish
synagogue, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.16" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.21-Acts.1.26" parsed="|Acts|1|21|1|26" passage="Acts 1:21-26">Acts 1:21-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.17" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6.1-Acts.6.6" parsed="|Acts|6|1|6|6" passage="Acts 6:1-6">6:1-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.18" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.23" parsed="|Acts|14|23|0|0" passage="Acts 14:23">14:23</scripRef>. In the last passage, however, the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p32.19">
cheirotoneo</span>
may have lost its original
meaning of<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p32.20">
appointing by stretching out the hand</span>, and may simply
mean<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p32.21">
to appoint.</span>
At the
same time it is perfectly evident that the Lord Himself places these
rulers over the
people and clothes them with the necessary authority, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.19" parsed="|Matt|16|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:19">Matt. 16:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.23" osisRef="Bible:John.20.22" parsed="|John|20|22|0|0" passage="John 20:22">John 20:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.24" osisRef="Bible:John.20.23" parsed="|John|20|23|0|0" passage="John 20:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.25" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.24" parsed="|Acts|1|24|0|0" passage="Acts 1:24">Acts 1:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.26" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.26" parsed="|Acts|1|26|0|0" passage="Acts 1:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.27" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.28" parsed="|Acts|20|28|0|0" passage="Acts 20:28">20:28</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.28" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.28" parsed="|1Cor|12|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:28">I Cor. 12:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.29" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.11" parsed="|Eph|4|11|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:11">Eph. 4:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.30" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.12" parsed="|Eph|4|12|0|0" passage="Eph 4:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p32.31" osisRef="Bible:Heb.13.17" parsed="|Heb|13|17|0|0" passage="Heb. 13:17">Heb. 13:17</scripRef>. The election by the people is merely
an external confirmation of the inner calling by the Lord Himself.
Moreover, the elders,
though representatives of the people, do not derive their authority from
the people, but
from the Lord of the Church. They exercise rule over the house of God in
the name of
the King, and are responsible only to Him.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p33" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p33.1">
The relative autonomy of the local church.</span>
Reformed Church
government recognizes
the autonomy of the local church. This means: </p>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p34" shownumber="no">(1) That every local church is a complete church of Christ, fully
equipped with
everything that is required for its government. It has absolutely no
need of it that any
government should be imposed upon it from without. And not only that, but
such an
imposition would be absolutely contrary to its nature.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p35" shownumber="no">(2) That, though there can be a proper affiliation or
consolidation of contiguous
churches, there may be no union which destroys the autonomy of the local
church.
Hence it is better not to speak of classes and synods as higher, but to
describe them as
major or more general assemblies. They do not represent a higher, but
the very same,
power that inheres in the consistory, though exercising this on a
broader scale. McGill
speaks of them as<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p35.1">
higher</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p35.2">
remoter</span>
tribunals.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.iv-p35.3" n="31" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p35.4">Church Government,</span> p. 457.</note></p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p36" shownumber="no">(3) That the authority and prerogatives of the major
assemblies are not unlimited,
but have their limitation in the rights of the sessions or consistories.
They are not
permitted to lord it over a local church or its members, irrespective of
the constitutional
rights of the consistory; nor to meddle with the internal affairs of a
local church under
any and all circumstances. When churches affiliate, their mutual rights
and duties are
circumscribed in a Church Order or Form of Government. This stipulates
the rights and
duties of the major assemblies, but also guarantees the rights of the
local church. The
idea that a classis (presbytery) or synod can simply impose whatever it
pleases on a
particular church is essentially Roman Catholic.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p37" shownumber="no">(4) That the autonomy of the local church has its
limitations in the relation in which
it stands to the churches with which it is affiliated, and in the
general interests of the
affiliated churches. The Church Order is a sort of Constitution,
solemnly subscribed to
by every local church, as represented by its consistory. This on the one
hand guards the
rights and interests of the local church, but on the other hand also,
the collective rights
and interests of the affiliated churches. And no single church has the
right to disregard
matters of mutual agreement and of common interest. The local group may be
even
called upon occasionally to deny itself for the far greater good of the
Church in general.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p38" shownumber="no">3. THE MAJOR ASSEMBLIES.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p39" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p39.1">
Scripture warrant for major assemblies.</span>
Scripture does
not contain an explicit
command to the effect that the local churches of a district must form an
organic union.
Neither does it furnish us with an example of such a union. In fact, it
represents the
local churches as individual entities without any external bond of
union. At the same
time the essential nature of the Church, as described in Scripture,
would seem to call for such a union. The Church is described as a spiritual organism, in which
all the
constituent parts are vitally related to one another. It is the
spiritual body of Jesus
Christ, of which He is the exalted Head. And it is but natural that this
inner unity
should express itself in some visible manner, and should even, as much
as possible in
this imperfect and sinful world, seek expression in some corresponding
external
organization. The Bible speaks of the Church not only as a spiritual
body, but also as a
tangible body, as a temple of the Holy Spirit, as a priesthood, and as a
holy nation.
Every one of these terms points to a visible unity. Congregationalists
or Independents
and Undenominationalists lose sight of this important fact. The existing
divisions in the
visible Church at the present time should not cause us to lose sight of
the fact that there are certain passages of Scripture which seem to indicate
rather clearly that, not only the
invisible Church, but also the visible Church is a unity. The word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p39.2">
ekklesia</span>
is used in the
singular as an indication of the visible church in a wider sense than
that of the purely
local church, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p39.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.9.31" parsed="|Acts|9|31|0|0" passage="Acts 9:31">Acts 9:31</scripRef> (according to the now accepted reading), <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p39.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.28" parsed="|1Cor|12|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:28">I Cor. 12:28</scripRef>, and
probably also <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p39.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.32" parsed="|1Cor|10|32|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:32">I Cor. 10:32</scripRef>. In the descriptions of the Church in <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p39.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.12-1Cor.12.50" parsed="|1Cor|12|12|12|50" passage="I Cor. 12:12-50">I Cor. 12:12-50</scripRef> and <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p39.7" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.4-Eph.4.16" parsed="|Eph|4|4|4|16" passage="Eph. 4:4-16">Eph. 4:4-16</scripRef> the apostle also has its visible unity in mind. Moreover, there
are reasons for
thinking that the Church at Jerusalem and at Antioch consisted of
several separate
groups, which together formed a sort of unity. And, finally, <scripRef id="vii.i.iv-p39.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15" parsed="|Acts|15|0|0|0" passage="Acts 15">Acts 15</scripRef>
acquaints us with
the example of the council of Jerusalem. This council was composed of
apostles and
elders, and therefore did not constitute a proper example and pattern of
a classis or
synod in the modern sense of the word. At the same time it was an
example of a major
assembly, and of one that spoke with authority and not merely in an
advisory capacity.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p40" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p40.1">
The representative character of the major assemblies.</span>
In the abstract
it may be said that
the major assemblies might have been composed of<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p40.2">
all</span>
the representatives of all the local
churches under their jurisdiction; but, on account of the number of the
churches
represented, such a body would in most cases prove unwieldy and
inefficient. In order
to keep the number of representatives down to reasonable proportions, the
principle of
representation is carried through also in connection with the major
assemblies. Not the
local churches, but the classes or presbyteries, send their
representatives to Synods. This
affords the gradual contraction that is necessary for a well-compacted
system. The immediate representatives of the people who form the consistories
or sessions, are
themselves represented in classes or presbyteries; and these in turn are
represented in
synods or general assemblies. The more general the assembly, the more
remote it is from
the people; yet none of them is too remote for the expression of the
unity of the Church,
for the maintenance of good order, and for the general effectiveness of
its work. </p>
<p id="vii.i.iv-p41" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p41.1">
The matters that fall under their jurisdiction.</span>
The
ecclesiastical character of these
assemblies should always be borne in mind. It is because they are Church
assemblies,
that purely scientific, social, industrial, or political matters do not,
as such, fall under
their jurisdiction. Only ecclesiastical matters belong to their
province, such as matters of
doctrine or morals, of church government and discipline, and whatever
pertains to the
preservation of unity and good order in the Church of
Jesus Christ. More particularly,
they deal with (1) matters which, as to their nature, belong to the
province of a minor
assembly, but for some reason or other cannot be settled there; and (b)
matters which, as
to their nature, belong to the province of a major assembly, since they
pertain to the
churches in general, such as matters touching the Confession, the Church
Order, or the liturgy of the Church.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p42" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p42.1">
The power and authority of these assemblies.</span>
The major
assemblies do not represent a
higher kind of power than is vested in the consistory or session. The
Reformed churches
know of no higher kind of ecclesiastical power than that which resides
in the consistory.
At the same time their authority is greater in degree and wider in
extent than that of the
consistory. Church power is represented in greater measure in the major
assemblies
than in the consistory, just as apostolic power was represented in
greater measure in
twelve than in a single apostle. Ten churches certainly have more
authority than a single
church; there is an accumulation of power. Moreover, the authority of
the major
assemblies does not apply to a single church only, but extends to all
the affiliated
churches. Consequently, the decisions of a major assembly carry great
weight and can
never be set aside at will. The assertion sometimes made that they are
only of an
advisory character and therefore need not be carried out, is a
manifestation of the
leaven of Independency. These decisions are authoritative, except in
cases where they
are explicitly declared to be merely advisory. They are binding on the
churches as the
sound interpretation and application of the law, — the law of Christ,
the King of the
Church. They cease to be binding only when they are shown to be contrary
to the Word of God.</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p43" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What is
the difference between the New Testament
meaning of the word<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p43.1">
episkopos</span>
and its later
connotation? Why are regular offices
necessary in the Church? Does Scripture favor the idea that the people
should have
some part in the government of the Church? What is the chief
characteristic of
Prelatism? What is the Roman Catholic distinction between a hierarchy of
order and a
hierarchy of jurisdiction? How did the Territorial and the Collegial
systems originate,
and how do they differ? What system did the Arminians adopt, and how did
this affect
their position? What is the present form of Church
government in the Lutheran Church? How does the idea that Christ is the Head of the Church only in an
organic sense affect
the offices and the authority of the Church? What important practical
bearing does the
Headship of Christ (including His kingship) have on the life, the
position, and the
government of the Church? Can any Church be considered autonomous in the
absolute
sense of the word? How do Reformed major assemblies differ from
Congregational
conferences and general councils?</p>

<p id="vii.i.iv-p44" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 354-424; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.2"> Dict. Dogm., De Ecclesia</span>,
pp. 268-293; id.,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.3">
Tractaat van de Reformatie der Kerken</span>, pp. 41-82; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.4">
Geref. Dogm.</span> V, pp. 31-39, 49-70;
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.5">
Church Polity</span>, cf. Index;
Bannerman,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.6">
The Church</span>
II, pp.
201-331;
McGill,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.7">
Church Government</span>, pp. 143-522; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.8">
Presbyterianism;</span>
Heyns,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.9">
Handbook for Elders and Deacons</span>, pp. 13-70; Bouwman,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.10">
Geref. Kerkrecht</span>, cf. Index; Rieker,
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.11">Grundsaetze reformierter
Kirchenverfassung;</span>
Hoffmann,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.12">
Kirchenverfassungsrecht;</span> Lechler,
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.13">Geschichte der Presbyterial— und Synodalverfassung seit der Reformation;</span>
Morris, <span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.14">Ecclesiology</span>, pp. 80-151; Hatch,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.15"> The Organisation of the Early Christian Churches;</span>
Sillevis Smitt,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.16">
De Organisatie
van de Christelijke Kerk;</span>
Lindsay,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.17"> The Church and the Ministry in the Early Centuries;</span>
J. Cunningham,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.18">
The Growth of the Church</span>, pp. 1-77; Van Dyke,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.19">
The Church, Her Ministry and Sacraments</span>, pp. 115-161; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.20">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 501-534;
Litton,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.21"> Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 376-410; Wilson,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.22">
Free Church Principles</span>, pp. 1-65;
Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.23">
Handbook of the Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 77-101;
Devine,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.24">
The Creed Explained</span>, pp. 302-340;
Boynton,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.25">
The Congregational Way;</span>
W. A. Visser 't Hooft and J. H.
Oldham,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.iv-p44.26">
The Church and
its Function in Society. </span></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="vii.i.v" next="vii.ii" prev="vii.i.iv" title="IV. The Power of the Church">
<h2 id="vii.i.v-p0.1">IV. The Power of the Church</h2>

<h4 id="vii.i.v-p0.2">A. THE SOURCE OF CHURCH POWER.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.v-p1" shownumber="no">Jesus Christ not only founded the Church, but also
endowed it with the necessary
power or authority. He is the Head of the Church, not only in an
organic, but also in an
administrative sense, that is, He is not only the Head of the body, but
also the King of
the spiritual commonwealth. It is in His capacity as King of the Church
that He has
clothed her with power or authority. He Himself spoke of the Church as
founded so
firmly upon a rock that the gates of hell cannot prevail against her,
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.18" parsed="|Matt|16|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:18">Matt. 16:18</scripRef>; and on
the same occasion — the very first on which He made mention of the
Church — He also
promised to endow her with power, when He said unto Peter: "I will
give unto thee the
keys of the Kingdom of heaven, and whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth
shall be
bound in heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth shall be
loosed in heaven,"
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.19" parsed="|Matt|16|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:19">Matt. 16:19</scripRef>. It
is quite evident that the terms 'Church' and 'Kingdom of Heaven' are
used interchangeably here. Keys are an emblem of power (cf. <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.22.15-Isa.22.22" parsed="|Isa|22|15|22|22" passage="Isa. 22:15-22">Isa. 22:15-22</scripRef>), and in the
keys of the Kingdom of Heaven Peter receives power to bind and to loose,
which in this
connection would seem to mean, to determine what is forbidden and what is
permitted
in the sphere of the Church.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.v-p1.4" n="32" place="foot">Cf. Vos,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p1.5"> The Kingdom of God and the Church</span>, p. 147; Grosheide,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p1.6"> Comm. on Matthew</span>, in loco.</note>
And the judgment he passes — in this case not
on
persons, but on actions — will be sanctioned in heaven. Peter receives
this power as the
representative of the apostles, and these are the nucleus and foundation
of the Church
in their capacity as teachers of the Church. The Church of all ages is
bound by their
word, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.7" osisRef="Bible:John.17.20" parsed="|John|17|20|0|0" passage="John 17:20">John 17:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.8" osisRef="Bible:1John.1.3" parsed="|1John|1|3|0|0" passage="I John 1:3">I John 1:3</scripRef>. That Christ endowed not only Peter but all
the apostles
with power and with the right to judge, and that not merely actions but
also persons, is
quite evident from <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.9" osisRef="Bible:John.20.23" parsed="|John|20|23|0|0" passage="John 20:23">John 20:23</scripRef>: "Whose soever sins ye forgive, they
are forgiven unto
them; whose soever sins ye retain, they are retained." Christ gave
this power first of all
and in the fullest degree to the apostles, but He also extends it,
though in a lesser
degree, to the Church in general. The Church has the right to
excommunicate an
unrepentant sinner. But it can do this only because Jesus Christ Himself
dwells in the
Church and through the agency of the apostles has supplied the Church
with a proper
standard of judgment. That Christ has given power to the Church as a
whole, is quite
evident from
several passages of the New Testament, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.23-Acts.15.29" parsed="|Acts|15|23|15|29" passage="Acts 15:23-29">Acts 15:23-29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.4" parsed="|Acts|16|4|0|0" passage="Acts 16:4">16:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.7" parsed="|1Cor|5|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:7">I Cor. 5:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.13" parsed="|1Cor|5|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.2-1Cor.6.4" parsed="|1Cor|6|2|6|4" passage="I Cor. 6:2-4">6:2-4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.28" parsed="|1Cor|12|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:28">12:28</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p1.16" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.11-Eph.4.16" parsed="|Eph|4|11|4|16" passage="Eph. 4:11-16">Eph. 4:11-16</scripRef>. The officers in the Church receive their authority from Christ
and not from men, even though the congregation is instrumental in putting
them into office. This means on the one hand that they do not obtain it at the
hands of any civil
authority, which has no power in ecclesiastical matters, and therefore
cannot bestow
any; but on the other hand also, that they do not derive it from the
people in general,
though they are representatives of the people. Porteous correctly
remarks: "That the
presbyter is termed the people's representative shows that he is their
chosen ruler. The way in which the office is acquired, but not the source of
its power, is designated by the title of
representative."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.v-p1.17" n="33" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p1.18">The Government of the Kingdom of God</span>, p. 322.</note></p>

<h4 id="vii.i.v-p1.19">B. THE NATURE OF THIS POWER.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.v-p2" shownumber="no">1. A SPIRITUAL POWER. When the power of
the Church is called a spiritual power, this
does not mean that it is altogether internal and invisible, since Christ
rules both body
and soul, His Word and sacraments address the whole man, and the ministry
of the
diaconate even has special references to physical needs. It is a
spiritual power, because it
is given by the Spirit of God, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.28" parsed="|Acts|20|28|0|0" passage="Acts 20:28">Acts 20:28</scripRef>, can only be exercised in the
name of Christ and
by the power of the Holy Spirit, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:John.20.22" parsed="|John|20|22|0|0" passage="John 20:22">John 20:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:John.20.23" parsed="|John|20|23|0|0" passage="John 20:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.4" parsed="|1Cor|5|4|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:4">I Cor. 5:4</scripRef>, pertains
exclusively to
believers, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.12" parsed="|1Cor|5|12|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:12">I Cor. 5:12</scripRef>, and can only be exercised in a moral and
spiritual way, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.6" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.10.4" parsed="|2Cor|10|4|0|0" passage="II Cor. 10:4">II Cor. 10:4</scripRef>.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.v-p2.7" n="34" place="foot">Bavinck, <span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p2.8">Dogm.</span> IV, p. 452.</note>
The State represents the
government of God over the outward and temporal
estate of man, while the Church represents His government of man's
inward and
spiritual estate. The former aims at assuring its subjects of the
possession and
enjoyment of their external and civil rights, and is often constrained
to exercise coercive
power over against human violence. The latter is founded in opposition
to an evil spirit
and for the purpose of delivering men from spiritual bondage by imparting
to them the
knowledge of the truth, by cultivating in them spiritual
graces, and by leading them to a
life of obedience to the divine precepts. Since the power of the Church
is exclusively
spiritual, it does not resort to force. Christ intimated on more than
one occasion that the
administration of His Kingdom on earth involved a spiritual and not a
civil power,
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.13" parsed="|Luke|12|13|0|0" passage="Luke 12:13">Luke 12:13</scripRef> ff.;
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.25-Matt.20.28" parsed="|Matt|20|25|20|28" passage="Matt. 20:25-28">Matt. 20:25-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.11" osisRef="Bible:John.18.36" parsed="|John|18|36|0|0" passage="John 18:36">John 18:36</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:John.18.37" parsed="|John|18|37|0|0" passage="John 18:37">37</scripRef>. The Church of Rome loses sight of this great
fact, when it insists on the possession of temporal power and is bent on
bringing the
entire life of the people under its sway.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p3" shownumber="no">2. A MINISTERIAL POWER. It is abundantly
evident from Scripture that the power of
the Church is no independent and sovereign power, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.25" parsed="|Matt|20|25|0|0" passage="Matt. 20:25">Matt. 20:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.20.26" parsed="|Matt|20|26|0|0" passage="Matt 20:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.23.8" parsed="|Matt|23|8|0|0" passage="Matt 23:8">23:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.23.10" parsed="|Matt|23|10|0|0" passage="Matt 23:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.10.4" parsed="|2Cor|10|4|0|0" passage="II Cor. 10:4">II Cor. 10:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.10.5" parsed="|2Cor|10|5|0|0" passage="II Cor. 10:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.3" parsed="|1Pet|5|3|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:3">I Pet. 5:3</scripRef>, but a<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p3.8"> diakonia leitourgia</span>, a ministerial
power, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.29" parsed="|Acts|4|29|0|0" passage="Acts 4:29">Acts 4:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.30" parsed="|Acts|4|30|0|0" passage="Acts 4:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.24" parsed="|Acts|20|24|0|0" passage="Acts 20:24">20:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.1" parsed="|Rom|1|1|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:1">Rom.  1:1</scripRef>,
derived from Christ and subordinate to His sovereign authority over the Church,
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.18" parsed="|Matt|28|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:18">Matt. 28:18</scripRef>. It must be exercised in harmony with the Word of God and
under the
direction of the Holy Spirit, through both of which Christ governs His
Church, and in
the name of
Christ Himself as the King of the Church, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.14" parsed="|Rom|10|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 10:14">Rom. 10:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.15" parsed="|Rom|10|15|0|0" passage="Rom 10:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.23" parsed="|Eph|5|23|0|0" passage="Eph. 5:23">Eph. 5:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.4" parsed="|1Cor|5|4|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:4">I Cor. 5:4</scripRef>. Yet it is a very real and comprehensive power, consisting in the
administration of
the Word and the sacraments, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:19">Matt. 28:19</scripRef>, the determination of what is
and what is not permitted in the Kingdom of God, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.19" parsed="|Matt|16|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:19">Matt. 16:19</scripRef>, the forgiving and
retaining of sin, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.20" osisRef="Bible:John.20.23" parsed="|John|20|23|0|0" passage="John 20:23">John 20:23</scripRef>, and the
exercise of discipline in the Church, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.21" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.18" parsed="|Matt|16|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:18">Matt. 16:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.17" parsed="|Matt|18|17|0|0" passage="Matt 18:17">18:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.23" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.4" parsed="|1Cor|5|4|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:4">I Cor. 5:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.24" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.10" parsed="|Titus|3|10|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:10">Tit. 3:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p3.25" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.15-Heb.12.17" parsed="|Heb|12|15|12|17" passage="Heb. 12:15-17">Heb. 12:15-17</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="vii.i.v-p3.26">C. DIFFERENT KINDS OF CHURCH POWER.</h4>
<p id="vii.i.v-p4" shownumber="no">In connection with the three offices of Christ there is
also a threefold power in the
Church, namely,
the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p4.1">
potestas dogmatica</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p4.2">
docendi</span>, the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p4.3">
potestas gubernans</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p4.4">
ordinans</span>
of
which the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p4.5">
potestas iudicans</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p4.6">
disciplinae</span>
is a subdivision, and the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p4.7">
potestas</span>
or<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p4.8">
ministerium misericordiae. </span>
</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p5" shownumber="no">1. THE POTESTAS DOGMATICA OR DOCENDI. The Church has a divine task in connection
with the truth. It is her duty to be a witness to the truth to those who
are without, and
both a witness and a teacher to those that are within. The Church must
exercise this
power: </p>
<p id="vii.i.v-p6" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p6.1">
In the preservation of the Word of God.</span>
By giving His
Word to the Church, God constituted the Church the keeper of the precious deposit of the truth.
While hostile
forces are pitted against it and the power of error is everywhere
apparent, the Church
must see to it that the truth does not perish from the earth, that the
inspired volume in which it is embodied be kept pure and unmutilated, in order
that its purpose may not
be defeated, and that it be handed on faithfully from generation to
generation. It has the
great and responsible task of maintaining and defending the truth
against all the forces
of unbelief and
error, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.3" parsed="|1Tim|1|3|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:3">I Tim. 1:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.4" parsed="|1Tim|1|4|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:4">4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.13" parsed="|2Tim|1|13|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:13">II Tim. 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Titus.1.9-Titus.1.11" parsed="|Titus|1|9|1|11" passage="Tit. 1:9-11">Tit. 1:9-11</scripRef>. The Church has not always
been mindful of this sacred duty. During the last century too many of
the leaders of the Church have even welcomed the assaults of a hostile
criticism upon the Bible, and have
rejoiced in the fact that it was brought down to the level of a purely
human production,
a mixture of truth and error. They have shown little of the
determination which caused
Luther to cry
out: "Das Wort sollen Sie stehen lassen." </p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p7" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p7.1">
In the administration of the Word and of the sacraments.</span>
It is not only
the duty of the
Church to preserve the Word of God, but also to preach it in the world
and in the
assembly of the people of God, for the conversion of sinners and for the
edification of
the saints. The Church has an evangelistic or missionary task in the
world. The King,
clothed with all authority in heaven and on earth, gave her the great
commission: "Go
ye, therefore, and make disciples of all the nations, baptizing them in
the name of the
Father and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit, teaching them to observe
whatsoever I
commanded you." Through the ministry of the Church the Son is
ceaselessly gathering
out of the whole human race a Church chosen to everlasting life. The
empirical Church
of any particular time must be actively engaged in the enlargement and
expansion of
the Church through missionary endeavors, must be instrumental in bringing
in the elect
out of all the nations of the world, adding living stones to the
spiritual temple that is in
process of construction, and must in that manner promote the completion
of the
number who will ultimately constitute the ideal Church of the future,
the perfect bride
of Christ, the new Jerusalem of <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21" parsed="|Rev|21|0|0|0" passage="Revelation 21">Revelation 21</scripRef>. If the Church of Jesus
Christ should be
derelict in the performance of this great task, she would prove
unfaithful to her Lord.
That work must be continued and must be completed before the glorious
return of the
Saviour, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.14" parsed="|Matt|24|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:14">Matt. 24:14</scripRef>. And the great means at the disposal of the Church
for the
accomplishment of this work is, not education, civilization, human
culture, or social
reforms, though all these may have subsidiary significance, but the
gospel of the
Kingdom, which is none other, in spite of what Premillenarians may say,
than the
gospel of free grace, of redemption through the blood of the Lamb. But
the Church may
not rest satisfied with bringing sinners to Christ through the
instrumentality of the
gospel; she must also engage in preaching the word in the assemblies of
those who have already come to Christ. And in the performance of this task it
is not her main task to call
sinners unto Christ, though the invitation to come to Christ may not be
wanting even in
organized churches, but to edify the saints, to strengthen their faith,
to lead them on in
the way of sanctification, and thus to solidify the spiritual temple of
the Lord. Paul has
this in mind when he says that Christ gave the teaching officers to the
Church "for the perfecting of the saints, unto the work of ministering,
unto the building up of the body
of Christ: till we all attain unto the unity of the faith, and of the
knowledge of the Son of
God, unto a full-grown man, unto the measure of the stature of the
fulness of Christ."
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.1213" parsed="|Eph|4|1213|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:1213">Eph. 4:1213</scripRef>. The Church may not rest satisfied with teaching the first
principles of faith,
but must press on to higher ground, in order that those who are babes in
Christ may
become full-grown men and women in Christ, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.5.11-Heb.6.3" parsed="|Heb|5|11|6|3" passage="Heb. 5:11-6:3">Heb. 5:11-6:3</scripRef>. Only a Church
that is
really strong, that has a firm grasp of the truth, can in turn become a
powerful
missionary agency and make mighty conquests for the Lord. Thus the task
of the
Church is a comprehensive task. She must point out the way of salvation,
must warn
the wicked of their coming doom, must cheer the saints with the promises
of salvation,
must strengthen the weak, encourage the faint-hearted and
comfort the sorrowing. And
in order that all this work may be done in every land and among all
nations, she must
see to it that the Word of God is translated into all languages. The
ministry of the
sacraments must, of course, go hand in hand with the ministry of the
Word. It is merely
the symbolical presentation of the gospel, addressed to the eye rather
than to the ear.
The duty of the Church to preach the Word is plainly taught in many
passages of
Scripture, such
as <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.3.10" parsed="|Isa|3|10|0|0" passage="Isa. 3:10">Isa. 3:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.3.11" parsed="|Isa|3|11|0|0" passage="Isa 3:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.20" parsed="|2Cor|5|20|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:20">II Cor. 5:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.13" parsed="|1Tim|4|13|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:13">I Tim. 4:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.10" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.15" parsed="|2Tim|2|15|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:15">II Tim. 2:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.11" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.2" parsed="|2Tim|4|2|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:2">4:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.1-Titus.2.10" parsed="|Titus|2|1|2|10" passage="Tit. 2:1-10">Tit. 2:1-10</scripRef>. In
view of the clear instructions of her King she may never allow any
totalitarian government to
dictate to her what she must preach; neither may she accommodate
herself, as far as the
contents of her message is concerned, to the demands of a naturalistic
science, or to the
requirements of a culture that reflects the spirit of the world.
Modernists have done just
that during the past decades by the suicidal efforts to adapt themselves
in their
preaching to the demands of a rationalistic higher criticism, of biology
and psychology,
of sociology and economics, until at last they completely lost the
message of the King.
Many of them are now coming to the discovery that the message recommended
in
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p7.13">Rethinking Missions</span>
and in Vernon White's<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p7.14">
A New Theology for Missions</span>
is quite
different from the original message and contains little that is peculiar to the
pulpit; and that, as
things now stand in their circles, the Church has no message of its own.
Frantic
attempts are made by Modernists to discover for themselves some message
which they
might bring to the churches, while they should seek to recover the
original message and
humbly take their place at the feet of Jesus.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p8" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p8.1">
In the framing of symbols and confessions.</span>
Every Church
must strive for self-
consciousness in the confession of the truth. In order to accomplish
this, it will not only
have to reflect deeply on the truth, but also to formulate its
expression of what it
believes. By doing this it will engender in its members a clear
conception of their faith,
and convey to outsiders a definite understanding of its doctrines. The
necessity of doing
this was greatly enhanced by the historical perversions of the truth.
The rise of heresies
invariably called for the construction of symbols and confessions, for
clearly formulated
statements of the faith of the Church. Even the apostles sometimes found
it necessary to
restate with greater precision certain truths because of errors that had
crept in. John
restates the central truth of Christ's manifestation in the world in
view of an incipient
Gnosticism (cf. his Gospel and his First Epistle); Paul restates the
doctrine of the
resurrection,
which was denied by some (<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15" parsed="|1Cor|15|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15">I Cor. 15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.20" parsed="|1Tim|1|20|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:20">I Tim. 1:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.17" parsed="|2Tim|2|17|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:17">II Tim. 2:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.18" parsed="|2Tim|2|18|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:18">18</scripRef>), and also
that of the second coming of Christ, which was misunderstood (<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2" parsed="|2Thess|2|0|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2">II Thess. 2</scripRef>); and the
council of Jerusalem found it necessary to re-assert the doctrine of
Christian liberty
(<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15" parsed="|Acts|15|0|0|0" passage="Acts 15">Acts 15</scripRef>). Naturally, the Bible contains no example of a creed. Creeds
are not given by
revelation, but are the fruit of the Church's reflection on
revealed truth. In our day
many are averse to symbols and confessions, and sing the glories of a
creedless Church.
But the objections raised against them are not at all insuperable.
Creeds are not, as some
insinuate, regarded as equal in authority to the Bible, and much less as
superior to it.
They do not, either by express statements or by implication add to the
truth of
Scripture. They do not militate against the freedom of the conscience,
nor do they retard the progress of scientific theological study. Neither can
they be regarded as the cause of
the divisions in the Church, though they may be expressive of these. The
divisions were
there first and gave rise to the various creeds. As a matter of fact,
they serve to a great
extent to promote a measure of unity in the visible Church. Moreover, if
a Church does
not want to be silent, it is bound to develop a creed, be it written or
unwritten. All this does not mean, however, that creeds cannot be abused.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p9" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p9.1">
In the cultivation of the study of theology.</span>
The Church may
not rest on its oars and be
satisfied with the knowledge of the divine truth to which it has
attained and which it
has formulated in its confessions. It must seek to dig ever deeper into
the mine of
Scripture, in order to bring to light its hidden treasures. Through
scientific study it must
seek an ever deeper knowledge, an ever better understanding, of the
words of life. It
owes this to the truth itself as a revelation of God, but also to the
training of its future
ministers. The Church is in duty bound to provide for, or at least to
supervise, the
training of the successive generations of its teachers and pastors. This
would seem to be
implied in the words of Paul to Timothy: "And the things which thou
hast heard from
me among many witnesses commit thou to faithful men, who shall be able
to teach others also." <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.2" parsed="|2Tim|2|2|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:2">II Tim. 2:2</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p10" shownumber="no">2. THE POTESTAS GUBERNANS. This is divided into the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p10.1">
potestas
ordinans</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p10.2">
potestas  iudicans. </span>
</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p11" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p11.1">
The potestas ordinans.</span>
"God is not a God of confusion,
but of peace," <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.14.33" parsed="|1Cor|14|33|0|0" passage="I Cor. 14:33">I Cor. 14:33</scripRef>.
Hence He desires that in His Church "all things be done decently
and in order," vs. 40.
This is evident from the fact that He has made provision for the proper
regulation of the
affairs of the Church. The regulative authority which He has given to
the Church
includes the power:</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p12" shownumber="no">(1)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p12.1">
To enforce the laws of Christ.</span>
This means that
the Church has the right to carry into
effect the laws which Christ has promulgated for the Church. There is an
important
difference on this point between the Roman Catholic Church and the
Protestant
Churches. The former virtually claims authority to<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p12.2">
enact</span>
laws that are binding on the
conscience, and the trangression of which carries with it the same
penalty that is
annexed to any breach of the divine law. The latter, however, disclaim
any such
authority, but maintain the right to enforce the law of Christ, the King
of the Church.
And even so they claim no other than a ministerial or declarative power,
regard the law
as binding only because it is backed by the authority of Christ, and
apply no other
censures than those which He has sanctioned. Moreover, they feel that
compulsion
would conflict with the nature of their power and could never
result in real spiritual benefit. All the members of the Church possess this
power in a measure, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.15.14" parsed="|Rom|15|14|0|0" passage="Rom. 15:14">Rom. 15:14</scripRef>;
Cor. 3:16; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.11" parsed="|1Thess|5|11|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:11">I Thess. 5:11</scripRef>, but it is vested in a special measure in the officers, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:John.21.15-John.21.17" parsed="|John|21|15|21|17" passage="John 21:15-17">John 21:15-17</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.28" parsed="|Acts|20|28|0|0" passage="Acts 20:28">Acts 20:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.2" parsed="|1Pet|5|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:2">I Pet. 5:2</scripRef>. The ministerial character of this power is
brought out in <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.1.24" parsed="|2Cor|1|24|0|0" passage="II Cor. 1:24">II Cor. 1:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.2" parsed="|1Pet|5|2|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:2">I Pet. 5:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.5.3" parsed="|1Pet|5|3|0|0" passage="I Pet. 5:3">3</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p13" shownumber="no">(2)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p13.1">
To draw up canons or church orders.</span>
Numberless
occasions arise on which the
Church is prompted to make enactments or regulations, often called
canons or church
orders. Such enactments are not to be regarded as new laws, but merely
as regulations
for the proper application of the law. They are necessary to give the
outward polity of
the Church a definite form, to stipulate on what terms persons are
permitted to bear
office in the Church, to regulate public worship, to determine the
proper form of discipline, and so on. General principles for the worship of God
are laid down in
Scripture, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:John.4.23" parsed="|John|4|23|0|0" passage="John 4:23">John 4:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.17-1Cor.11.33" parsed="|1Cor|11|17|11|33" passage="I Cor. 11:17-33">I Cor. 11:17-33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.14.40" parsed="|1Cor|14|40|0|0" passage="I Cor. 14:40">14:40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.16.2" parsed="|1Cor|16|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 16:2">16:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.16" parsed="|Col|3|16|0|0" passage="Col. 3:16">Col. 3:16</scripRef>(?); <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.1-1Tim.3.13" parsed="|1Tim|3|1|3|13" passage="I Tim. 3:1-13">I Tim. 3:1-13</scripRef>; but in the
regulation of the details of divine worship the churches are allowed
great latitude. They
may adapt themselves to circumstances, always bearing in mind, however, that
they
should worship God publicly in the manner best adapted to the purpose of
edification.
In no case may the regulations of the Church go contrary
to the laws of Christ.</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p14" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p14.1">
The potestas iudicans.</span>
The
potestas iudicans is the power that is exercised to guard
the holiness of the Church, by admitting those who are approved after
examination, and
by excluding those who depart from the truth or lead dishonorable lives.
It is exercised
especially in matters of discipline.</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p15" shownumber="no">(1)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p15.1">
Scriptural teachings respecting discipline.</span>
Among Israel
unintentional sins could be
atoned for by a sacrifice, but sins committed "with a high
hand" (intentional) were
punished with extermination.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p15.2">
The cherem</span>
(the ban or that
which is devoted) was not
only an ecclesiastical, but also a civil punishment. The uncircumcized,
the lepers, and
the impure, were not permitted to enter the sanctuary, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Lev.5" parsed="|Lev|5|0|0|0" passage="Lev. 5">Lev. 5</scripRef> f.; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.44.9" parsed="|Ezek|44|9|0|0" passage="Ezek. 44:9">Ezek. 44:9</scripRef>. It was only
after Israel lost its national independence, and its character as a
religious assembly
became more prominent, that the ban, consisting in exclusion from the
assembly,
became a measure
of ecclesiastical discipline, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.10.8" parsed="|Ezra|10|8|0|0" passage="Ezra 10:8">Ezra 10:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.22" parsed="|Luke|6|22|0|0" passage="Luke 6:22">Luke 6:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:John.9.22" parsed="|John|9|22|0|0" passage="John 9:22">John 9:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:John.12.42" parsed="|John|12|42|0|0" passage="John 12:42">12:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:John.16.2" parsed="|John|16|2|0|0" passage="John 16:2">16:2</scripRef>.
Jesus instituted discipline in His Church, when He gave the apostles
and, in connection
with their word, also the Church in general, the power to bind and to
loose, to declare
what is forbidden and what is permitted, and to forgive and to retain
sins declaratively,
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.19" parsed="|Matt|16|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:19">Matt. 16:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.18" parsed="|Matt|18|18|0|0" passage="Matt 18:18">18:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.12" osisRef="Bible:John.20.23" parsed="|John|20|23|0|0" passage="John 20:23">John 20:23</scripRef>. And it is only because Christ has given
this power to the
Church, that she can exercise it. Several passages of the New Testament
refer to the
exercise of this
power, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.2" parsed="|1Cor|5|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:2">I Cor. 5:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.7" parsed="|1Cor|5|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:7">7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.13" parsed="|1Cor|5|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.16" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.2.5-2Cor.2.7" parsed="|2Cor|2|5|2|7" passage="II Cor. 2:5-7">II Cor. 2:5-7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.17" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.3.14" parsed="|2Thess|3|14|0|0" passage="II Thess. 3:14">II Thess. 3:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.18" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.3.15" parsed="|2Thess|3|15|0|0" passage="II Thess. 3:15">15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.19" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.20" parsed="|1Tim|1|20|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:20">I Tim. 1:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.20" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.10" parsed="|Titus|3|10|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:10">Tit. 3:10</scripRef>.
Such passages as <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.21" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.5" parsed="|1Cor|5|5|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:5">I Cor. 5:5</scripRef> and <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p15.22" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.1.20" parsed="|1Tim|1|20|0|0" passage="I Tim. 1:20">I Tim. 1:20</scripRef> do not refer to regular
discipline, but to a
special measure permitted only to the apostles and consisting in giving
the sinner over
to Satan for temporary physical punishment, in order to save the soul.</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p16" shownumber="no">(2)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p16.1">
The twofold purpose of discipline.</span>
The purpose of
discipline in the Church is
twofold. In the first place it seeks to carry into effect the law of
Christ concerning the
admission and exclusion of members; and in the second place it aims at
promoting the
spiritual edification of the members of the Church by securing their
obedience to the
laws of Christ. Both of these aims are subservient to a higher end,
namely, the
maintenance of the holiness of the Church of Jesus Christ. With
reference to diseased
members of the Church, discipline is first of all medical in that it
seeks to effect a cure,
but it may become chirurgical, when the well-being of the Church
requires the excision
of the diseased member. It is impossible to tell when a process of
discipline begins,
whether a cure will be effected, or whether the diseased member will
finally have to be
removed. Probably the Church will succeed in bringing the sinner to repentance
—and
this is, of course, the more desirable end—; but it is also possible
that it will have to
resort to the extreme measure of excommunicating him. In all cases of
discipline the
Church will have to figure with both possibilities. Even in the most
extreme measure it
should still have the saving of the sinner in mind, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.5" parsed="|1Cor|5|5|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:5">I Cor. 5:5</scripRef>. At the
same time it should
always remember that the primary consideration is the maintenance of the
holiness of
the Church. </p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p17" shownumber="no">(3)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p17.1">
The exercise of discipline by the officers.</span>
Though the
ordinary members of the
Church are frequently called upon to take part in the application of
discipline, it is
generally applied by the officers of the Church and can be applied<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p17.2">
only by them</span>
when
discipline becomes censure. There are two different ways in which it may
become the
duty of a consistory to deal with a matter of discipline. (a) Private
sins can become a
cause of discipline in the more technical sense of the word in the
manner indicated in <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.15-Matt.18.17" parsed="|Matt|18|15|18|17" passage="Matt. 18:15-17">Matt. 18:15-17</scripRef>. If one sins against a brother, the latter
must admonish the sinner; if this
does not have the desired effect, he must admonish him again in the
presence of one or
two witnesses; and if even this fails, then he must notify the Church,
and it becomes the
duty of the officers to deal with the matter. It should be remembered,
however, that this
method is prescribed for<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p17.4">
private</span>
sins only. The
offence given by public sins cannot be
removed privately, but only by a public transaction. (b) Public sins
make the sinner
subject to disciplinary action by the consistory at once, without the
formality of any
preceding private admonitions, even if there is no formal accusation. By
public sins are
meant, not merely sins that are committed in public, but sins that give
public and rather
general offence. The consistory should not even wait until someone calls
attention to
such sins, but should take the initiative. It was no honor for the
Corinthians that Paul
had to call their attention to the scandal in their midst before they
took action. <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.1" parsed="|1Cor|5|1|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:1">I Cor. 5:1</scripRef> ff.; nor was it an honor for the churches of Pergamus and Thyatira that
they did not
rebuke and exclude the heretical teachers from their midst, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.14" parsed="|Rev|2|14|0|0" passage="Rev. 2:14">Rev.
2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.15" parsed="|Rev|2|15|0|0" passage="Rev 2:15">15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.20" parsed="|Rev|2|20|0|0" passage="Rev 2:20">20</scripRef>. In the case of
public sins the consistory has no right to wait until someone brings
formal charges;
neither has it the right to demand of anyone who finally feels
constrained to call
attention to such sins that he admonish the sinner privately first. The
matter of public
sins can not be settled in private.</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p18" shownumber="no">The disciplinary action of the consistory passes through
three stages: (a) The
<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p18.1">excommunicatio minor</span>, restraining the sinner from
partaking of the Lord's Supper. This is
not public, and is followed by repeated admonitions by the consistory,
in order to bring
the sinner to repentance. (b) If the preceding measure does not avail,
it is followed by
three public announcements and admonitions. In the first of these the
sin is mentioned,
but the sinner is not named. In the second the name is made known in
accordance with
the advice of classis, which must first be obtained. And in the third
the imminent final
excommunication is announced, in order that this may have the consent of
the
congregation. During all this time the consistory, of course, continues
its admonitions.
(c) Finally,
this is followed by the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p18.2">
excommunicatio major</span>,
by which one is cut off from the
fellowship of
the Church, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.17" parsed="|Matt|18|17|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:17">Matt. 18:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.13" parsed="|1Cor|5|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:13">I Cor. 5:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.10" parsed="|Titus|3|10|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:10">Tit. 3:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.11" parsed="|Titus|3|11|0|0" passage="Tit 3:11">11</scripRef>. It is always possible to
reinstate the sinner, if he shows due repentance and confesses his sins,
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.2.5-2Cor.2.10" parsed="|2Cor|2|5|2|10" passage="II Cor. 2:5-10">II Cor. 2:5-10</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p19" shownumber="no">(4)<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p19.1">
The necessity of proper discipline.</span>
The necessity
of proper discipline is stressed in
Scripture, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.15-Matt.18.18" parsed="|Matt|18|15|18|18" passage="Matt. 18:15-18">Matt. 18:15-18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.16.17" parsed="|Rom|16|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 16:17">Rom. 16:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.2" parsed="|1Cor|5|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:2">I Cor. 5:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.9-1Cor.5.13" parsed="|1Cor|5|9|5|13" passage="I Cor. 5:9-13">9-13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.6" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.2.5-2Cor.2.10" parsed="|2Cor|2|5|2|10" passage="II Cor. 2:5-10">II Cor. 2:5-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.7" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.3.6" parsed="|2Thess|3|6|0|0" passage="II Thess. 3:6">II Thess. 3:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.8" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.3.14" parsed="|2Thess|3|14|0|0" passage="II Thess. 3:14">14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.9" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.3.15" parsed="|2Thess|3|15|0|0" passage="II Thess. 3:15">15</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.10" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.10" parsed="|Titus|3|10|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:10">Tit. 3:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.11" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.11" parsed="|Titus|3|11|0|0" passage="Tit 3:11">11</scripRef>. The church of Ephesus is praised because it did not bear with
evil men, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.12" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.2" parsed="|Rev|2|2|0|0" passage="Rev. 2:2">Rev. 2:2</scripRef>,
and those of Pergamus and Thyatira are reproved for harboring heretical
teachers and
heathen abominations, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.13" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.14" parsed="|Rev|2|14|0|0" passage="Rev. 2:14">Rev. 2:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.14" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.20" parsed="|Rev|2|20|0|0" passage="Rev 2:20">20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p19.15" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2.24" parsed="|Rev|2|24|0|0" passage="Rev 2:24">24</scripRef>. On the whole the Reformed
churches have
excelled in the exercise of Church discipline. They strongly stressed
the fact that the
Church of Christ must have an independent government and discipline. The
Lutheran
Churches did not emphasize this. They were Erastian in Church government,
and were
content to leave the exercise of Church discipline in the strict sense
of the word in the
hands of the government. The Church retained the right to exercise
discipline only by
means of the ministry of the Word, that is, by admonitions and
exhortations addressed
to the church as a whole. This was entrusted to the pastor
and did not include the right
to exclude anyone from the communion of the Church. At present there is
in the
Churches round about us a noticeable tendency to be lax in discipline,
to place a one-
sided emphasis on the reformation of the sinner through the ministry of
the Word and
—in some instances—through personal contacts with the sinner, and to
steer clear of
any such measures as excluding one from the communion of the Church.
There is a very
evident tendency to stress the fact that the Church is a great
missionary agency, and to
forget that it is first of all the assembly of the saints, in which
those who publicly live in
sin cannot be tolerated. It is said that sinners must be gathered into
the church, and not
excluded from it. But it should be remembered that they must be gathered
in as saints
and have no legitimate place in the Church as long as they do not
confess their sin and  strive
for holiness of life. </p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p20" shownumber="no">3. THE POTESTAS OR MINISTERIUM MISERICORDIAE.</p>
<p id="vii.i.v-p21" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p21.1"> The charismatic gift of healing.</span>
When Christ
sent His apostles and the seventy
disciples out, He not only instructed them to preach, but also gave them
power to cast
out devils and
to cure all manner of diseases, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.1" parsed="|Matt|10|1|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:1">Matt. 10:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.8" parsed="|Matt|10|8|0|0" passage="Matt 10:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.3.15" parsed="|Mark|3|15|0|0" passage="Mark 3:15">Mark 3:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.9.1" parsed="|Luke|9|1|0|0" passage="Luke 9:1">Luke 9:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.9.2" parsed="|Luke|9|2|0|0" passage="Luke 9:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.10.9" parsed="|Luke|10|9|0|0" passage="Luke 10:9">10:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.10.9" parsed="|Luke|10|9|0|0" passage="Luke 10:9">10:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.10.17" parsed="|Luke|10|17|0|0" passage="Luke 10:17">17</scripRef>. Among the early Christians there were
some who had the gift of healing and
who could
perform miracles, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.9" parsed="|1Cor|12|9|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:9">I Cor. 12:9</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.10" parsed="|1Cor|12|10|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:10">10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.28" parsed="|1Cor|12|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:28">28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.30" parsed="|1Cor|12|30|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.14" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.17" parsed="|Mark|16|17|0|0" passage="Mark 16:17">Mark 16:17</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p21.15" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.18" parsed="|Mark|16|18|0|0" passage="Mark 16:18">18</scripRef>. This extraordinary
condition, however, soon made way for the usual one, in which the Church
carries on
its work by the ordinary means. There is no Scriptural ground for the
idea that the
charism of healing was intended to be continued in the Church of all
ages. Evidently, the miracles and miraculous signs recorded in Scripture were
intended as a mark or
credential of divine revelation, themselves formed a part of this
revelation, and served
to attest and confirm the message of the early preachers of the gospel.
As such they
naturally ceased when the period of special revelation came to an end.
It is true that the
Church of Rome and several sects claim the power of miraculous healing,
but the claim
is not borne out by the evidence. There are many marvelous stories in
circulation of
miraculous cures, but before they are given credence it must be proved:
(1) that they do
not pertain to cases of imaginary sickness, but to cases of real
diseases or physical
defects; (2) that they do not refer to imaginary or pretended, but to
real, cures; and (3)
that the cures are actually wrought in a supernatural way, and are not
the result of the
use of natural means, either material or mental.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.i.v-p21.16" n="35" place="foot">Cf. especially, Warfield, <span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p21.17">Counterfeit Miracles.</span></note></p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p22" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p22.1"> The ordinary ministry of benevolence in the Church.</span>
The Lord
clearly intended that
the Church should make provision for her poor. He hinted at this duty
when He said to
His disciples:
"For ye have the poor always with you," <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.11" parsed="|Matt|26|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 26:11">Matt. 26:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Mark.14.7" parsed="|Mark|14|7|0|0" passage="Mark 14:7">Mark 14:7</scripRef>. By
means of a communion of goods the early Church saw to it that no one wanted
the necessaries
of life, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.34" parsed="|Acts|4|34|0|0" passage="Acts 4:34">Acts 4:34</scripRef>. It is not impossible that the<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p22.5">
neoteroi</span>
of <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.6" parsed="|Acts|5|6|0|0" passage="Acts 5:6">Acts 5:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.5.10" parsed="|Acts|5|10|0|0" passage="Acts 5:10">10</scripRef> were the precursors
of the later deacons. And when the widows of the Greeks were being
neglected in the
daily ministration, the apostles saw to it that seven well qualified men
were put in
charge of this
necessary business, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.6.1-Acts.6.6" parsed="|Acts|6|1|6|6" passage="Acts 6:1-6">Acts 6:1-6</scripRef>. They were to "serve the tables,"
which
seems to mean in this connection, to superintend the service at the
tables of the poor, or
to provide for an equitable division of the provisions that were placed
on the tables.
Deacons and deaconesses are mentioned repeatedly in the Bible, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.16.1" parsed="|Rom|16|1|0|0" passage="Rom. 16:1">Rom.
16:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.10" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.1" parsed="|Phil|1|1|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:1">Phil. 1:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.11" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.3.8-1Tim.3.12" parsed="|1Tim|3|8|3|12" passage="I Tim. 3:8-12">I
Tim. 3:8-12</scripRef>. Moreover, the New Testament contains many passages urging
the necessity
of giving or
collecting for the poor, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.35" parsed="|Acts|20|35|0|0" passage="Acts 20:35">Acts 20:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.16.1" parsed="|1Cor|16|1|0|0" passage="I Cor. 16:1">I Cor. 16:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.16.2" parsed="|1Cor|16|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 16:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.15" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.1" parsed="|2Cor|9|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:1">II Cor. 9:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.16" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.6" parsed="|2Cor|9|6|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:6">6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.17" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.7" parsed="|2Cor|9|7|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:7">7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.18" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.12-2Cor.9.14" parsed="|2Cor|9|12|9|14" passage="II Cor. 9:12-14">12-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.19" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.10" parsed="|Gal|2|10|0|0" passage="Gal. 2:10">Gal. 2:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.20" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.10" parsed="|Gal|6|10|0|0" passage="Gal 6:10">6:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.21" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.28" parsed="|Eph|4|28|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:28">Eph. 4:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.22" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.10" parsed="|1Tim|5|10|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:10">I Tim. 5:10</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.23" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.16" parsed="|1Tim|5|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.24" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.27" parsed="|Jas|1|27|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:27">Jas. 1:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.25" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.15" parsed="|Jas|2|15|0|0" passage="Jas 2:15">2:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.26" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.16" parsed="|Jas|2|16|0|0" passage="Jas 2:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.i.v-p22.27" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.17" parsed="|1John|3|17|0|0" passage="I John 3:17">I John 3:17</scripRef>. There can be no doubt
about the duty of the Church in this respect. And the deacons are the
officers who are
charged with the responsible and delicate task of performing the work of
Christian
benevolence with reference to all the needy of the Church. They must
devise ways and
means for collecting the necessary funds, have charge of the money
collected, and
provide for its prudential distribution. However, their task is not
limited to this offering
of material help. They must also instruct and comfort the needy. In all
their work they
should consider it their duty to apply spiritual principles in the
performance of their
duty. It is to be feared that this function of the Church is sadly
neglected in many of the
churches to-day. There is a tendency to proceed on the assumption that
it can safely be
left to the
State to provide<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p22.28">
even for the poor of the Church.</span>
But in acting
on that
assumption, the Church is neglecting a sacred duty, is impoverishing her
own spiritual
life, is robbing herself of the joy experienced in ministering to the
needs of those who
suffer want, and is depriving those who are suffering hardships, who are
borne down
by the cares of life, and who are often utterly discouraged, of the
comfort, the joy, and
the sunshine of the spiritual ministrations of Christian love, which are
as a rule entirely
foreign to the work of charity administered by the State.</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p23" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: How do the
Reformed and the Lutheran conceptions
of Christ as the Head of the Church differ? Does the Old Testament
contain any
indication that Christ is King of the Church? What systems of Church
government deny,
or detract from, the Head—or Kingship of Christ? How does the Headship of
Christ
affect the relation of the Church to the State, religious liberty, and
liberty of conscience?
Is the doctrine that the power of the Church is exclusively spiritual
consistent with
Romanism and Erastianism? How is the power of the Church overrated by
High
Church men, and underrated by Low Church men, of various descriptions?
How do the
Independents view the power of the officers? How is Church power
limited? What is
the end contemplated in the exercise of Church power? What is meant by
the Church in
<scripRef id="vii.i.v-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.17" parsed="|Matt|18|17|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:17">Matt. 18:17</scripRef>? Does the key of discipline shut out only from outward
privileges in the
Church, or also from a spiritual interest in Christ? By whom and how is
discipline
exercised in the Roman Catholic, the Anglican, the Methodist, and the
Congregational,
Church? Can a Church safely discard discipline?
</p>

<p id="vii.i.v-p24" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 425-482; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.2">
Dict. Dogm., de Ecclesia</span>,  pp.
268-293; id.,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.3">
Tractaat van de Reformatie der
Kerken</span>,
pp. 41-69; Bannerman,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.4">
The Church</span>,
I, pp. 187-480;
II, pp. 186-200; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.5">
Church
Polity</span>,
cf. Index; Morris,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.6">
Ecclesiology</span>, pp.
143-151; Wilson,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.7">
Free Church Principles;</span>
McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.8">
The Doctrine
of the Church in Scottish Theology</span>, pp. 129-224; Gillespie,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.9">
Aaron's Rod Blossoming;</span>
ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.10">
On Ceremonies;</span>
Bouwman, <span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.11">
De Kerkelijke Tucht;</span>
Jansen,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.12">
De Kerkelijke Tucht;</span>
Biesterveld, Van Lonkhuizen, en
Rudolph, <span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.13">Het Diaconaat;</span>
Bouwman,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.14"> Het Ambt der Diakenen;</span>
Litton,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.15">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp.
394-419; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.16">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 607-621; Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.17">
Handbook of the Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 77-101; Cunningham,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.18">
Discussions of Church Principles;</span>
ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.19">
Historical Theology</span>
II, pp. 514-587; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vii.i.v-p24.20">
Presbyterianism. </span></p>
</div3>
</div2>

      <div2 id="vii.ii" next="vii.ii.i" prev="vii.i.v" title="The Means Of Grace">
<h2 id="vii.ii-p0.1">THE MEANS OF GRACE</h2>

        <div3 id="vii.ii.i" next="vii.ii.ii" prev="vii.ii" title="I. The Means of Grace in General">
<h2 id="vii.ii.i-p0.1">I. The Means of Grace in General</h2>
<h4 id="vii.ii.i-p0.2">A. THE IDEA OF THE MEANS OF GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.i-p1" shownumber="no">Fallen man receives all the blessings of salvation out of
the eternal fountain of the
grace of God, in virtue of the merits of Jesus Christ and through the
operation of the
Holy Spirit. While the Spirit can and does in some respects operate
immediately on the
soul of the sinner, He has seen fit to bind Himself largely to the use
of certain means in
the communication of divine grace. The term "means of grace"
is not found in the Bible,
but is nevertheless a proper designation of the means that are indicated
in the Bible. At
the same time the term is not very definite and may have a far more
comprehensive
meaning than it ordinarily has in theology. The Church may be
represented as the great
means of grace which Christ, working through the Holy Spirit, uses for
the gathering of
the elect, the edification of the saints, and the building up of His
spiritual body. He
qualifies her for this great task by endowing her with all kinds of spiritual
gifts, and by
the institution of the offices for the administration of the Word and
the sacraments,
which are all means to lead the elect to their eternal destiny. But the
term may have an
even wider scope. The whole providential guidance of the saints, through
prosperity
and adversity, often becomes a means by which the Holy Spirit leads the
elect to Christ or to an ever closer communion with Him. It is even possible to
include in the means of
grace all that is required of men for the reception and the continued
enjoyment of the
blessings of the covenant, such as faith, conversion, spiritual warfare,
and prayer. It is
neither customary nor desirable, however, to include all this under the
term "means of
grace." The Church is not a means of grace alongside of the Word
and the sacraments,
because her power in promoting the work of the grace of God consists
only in the
administration of these. She is not instrumental in communicating grace,
except by
means of the Word and of the sacraments. Moreover, faith, conversion,
and prayer, are
first of all fruits of the grace of God, though they may in turn become
instrumental in
strengthening the spiritual life. They are not objective ordinances, but
subjective conditions for the possession and enjoyment of the blessings of the
covenant.
Consequently, it is better not to follow Hodge when he includes prayer,
nor McPherson
when he adds to the Word and the sacraments both the Church and prayer.
Strictly
speaking, only the Word and the sacraments can be regarded as means of
grace, that is,
as objective channels which Christ has instituted in the Church, and to
which He
ordinarily binds Himself in the communication of His grace. Of course
these may never
be dissociated from Christ, nor from the powerful operation of the Holy
Spirit, nor from
the Church which is the appointed organ for the distribution of the
blessings of divine
grace. They are in themselves quite ineffective and are productive of
spiritual results
only through the efficacious operation of the Holy Spirit.
</p>
<h4 id="vii.ii.i-p1.1">B. CHARACTERISTICS OF THE WORD AND THE SACRAMENTS AS MEANS OF GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.i-p2" shownumber="no">The fact that one can speak of means of grace in a rather
general sense makes it
imperative to point to the distinctive characteristics of the means of
grace in the technical or restricted sense of the word.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.i-p3" shownumber="no">1. They are instruments, not of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p3.1">
common</span>
but of,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p3.2">
special</span>
grace, the grace that removes
sin and renews the sinner in conformity with the image of God. It is
true that the Word
of God may and in some respects actually does enrich those who live
under the gospel
with some of the choicest blessings of common grace in the restricted
sense of the word; but it, as well as the sacraments, comes into consideration
here only as a means of grace
in the technical sense of the word. And the means of grace in this sense
are always
connected with the beginning and the progressive operation of the
special grace of God,
that is redemptive grace, in the hearts of sinners.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.i-p4" shownumber="no">2. They are<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p4.1">
in themselves</span>
and not in virtue
of their connection with things not
included in them, means of grace. Striking experiences may, and
undoubtedly
sometimes do, serve to strengthen the work of God in the hearts of
believers, but this
does not constitute them means of grace in the technical sense, since
they accomplish
this only in so far as these experiences are interpreted in the light of
God's Word,
through which the Holy Spirit operates. The Word and the sacraments are
in themselves
means of grace; their spiritual efficacy is dependent only on the
operation of the Holy Spirit.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.i-p5" shownumber="no">3. They are<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p5.1">
continuous</span>
instruments of
God's grace, and not in any sense of the word
exceptional. This means that they are not associated with the operation
of God's grace
merely occasionally or in a more or less accidental way, but are the
regularly ordained means for the communication of the saving grace of God and
are as such of perpetual
value. The Heidelberg Catechism asks in Question 65, "Since, then,
we are made
partakers of Christ and all His benefits by faith only, whence comes
this faith?" And the
answer is, "From the Holy Spirit, who works it in our hearts by the
preaching of the
holy gospel, and confirms it by the use of the holy sacraments."
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.i-p6" shownumber="no">4. They are the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.1"> official</span> means of the
Church of Jesus Christ. The<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.2">
preaching</span>
of the Word
(or,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.3"> the Word preached</span>) and the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.4">
administration</span>
of the sacraments (or,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.5">
the sacraments administered</span>) are the means<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.6">
officially instituted in the Church</span>, by which the
Holy Spirit
works and confirms faith in the hearts of men. Some Reformed theologians
limit the
idea of the means of grace still more by saying that they are
administered only within
the visible Church, and that they presuppose the existence of the
principle of the new
life in the soul. Shedd and Dabney both speak of them, without any
qualification, as
"means of
sanctification." Says the former: "When the world of unregenerate men
are
said to have the means of grace, the means of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.7">
conviction</span>
under common grace, not of
sanctification under special grace, are intended."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.i-p6.8" n="36" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.9">Dogm. Theol.</span> II, p. 561.</note>
Honig also distinguishes between
the
Word of God as a means of grace and the Word as it contains the call to
conversion and
serves to call Gentiles to the service of the living God.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.i-p6.10" n="37" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.11">Handboek van de Geref. Dogm.,</span> p. 6111.</note>
Dr. Kuyper, too, thinks of the
means of grace merely as means for the strengthening of the new life
when he says:
"The<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.12">
media gratiae</span>
are means instituted by God that He makes use of to unfold, both
personally and socially, for and through our consciousness, the
re-creation that He
immediately established in our nature."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.i-p6.13" n="38" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.14">Dict. Dogm., De Sacramentis,</span> p. 7 (translation mine — L.B.).</note>
There is, of course, a truth in
this
representation. The principle of the new life is wrought in the soul<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p6.15">
immediately</span>, that is, without the mediation of the Word that is preached. But in so
far as the origination of
the new life also includes the new birth and internal calling, it may
also be said that the
Holy Spirit works the beginning of the new life or of faith, as the
Heidelberg Catechism
says, "by
the preaching of the holy gospel." </p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.i-p6.16">C. HISTORICAL VIEWS RESPECTING THE MEANS OF GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.i-p7" shownumber="no">There has been considerable difference of opinion
respecting the means of grace in
the Church of Jesus Christ. The early Church does not furnish us with
anything very
definite on this point. There was far more emphasis on the sacraments
than on the Word
of God. Baptism was rather generally regarded as the means by which
sinners were
regenerated, while the eucharist stood out as the sacrament of
sanctification. In course
of time, however, certain definite views were developed. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.i-p8" shownumber="no">1. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC VIEW. While the Roman Catholics regarded even relics and
images as means of grace, they singled out in particular the Word and
the sacraments.
At the same time they failed to give due prominence to the Word, and
ascribed to it only
preparatory significance in the work of grace. As compared with the
Word, the
sacraments were considered to be the real means of grace. In the system
that was
gradually developed the Church of Rome recognizes a means that is even
superior to
the sacraments. The Church itself is regarded as the primary means of
grace. In it Christ
continues His divine-human life on earth, performs His prophetic,
priestly, and kingly
work, and through it He communicates the fulness of His grace and truth.
This grace
serves especially to raise man from the natural to the supernatural
order. It is a<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p8.1">
gratia elevans</span>, a supernatural physical power, infused into the natural man through
the
sacraments working<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p8.2">
ex opere operato.</span>
In the sacraments
the visible signs and the invisible
grace are inseparably connected. In fact, the grace of God is contained
in the means as a
sort of substance, is conveyed through the channel of the means, and is
therefore
absolutely bound to the means. Baptism regenerates man<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p8.3">
ex opere operato</span>, and the even
more important eucharist raises his spiritual life to a higher level.
Apart from Christ,
from the Church, and from the sacrament, there is no salvation.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.i-p9" shownumber="no">2. THE LUTHERAN VIEW. With the
Reformation the emphasis was shifted from the sacraments to the Word of God.
Luther gave great prominence to the Word of God as
the primary means of grace. He pointed out that the sacraments have no
significance
apart from the Word and are in fact merely the visible Word. He did not
entirely succeed
in correcting the Roman Catholic error as to the inseparable connection
between the
outward means and the inward grace communicated through them. He, too,
conceived
of the grace of God as a sort of substance contained in the means and
not to be obtained
apart from the means. The Word of God is in itself always efficacious
and will effect a
spiritual change in man, unless he puts a stumblingblock in the way. And
the body and
blood of Christ is "in, with, and under" the elements of bread
and wine, so that they
who eat and drink the latter also receive the former, though this will
be to their
advantage only if they receive them in the proper manner. It was
especially his
opposition to the subjectivity of the Anabaptists that caused Luther to
stress the
objective character of the sacraments and to make their effectiveness
dependent on their
divine institution rather than on the faith of the recipients. The
Lutherans did not
always steer clear of the idea that the sacraments function<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.i-p9.1">
ex opere operato. </span>
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.i-p10" shownumber="no">3. THE VIEW OF THE MYSTICS. Luther had to contend a great deal with the mystical
Anabaptists, and it was especially his reaction to their views that
determined his final view of the means of grace. The Anabaptists, and other
mystical sects of the age of the
Reformation and of later times, virtually deny that God avails Himself
of means in the
distribution of His grace. They stress the fact that God is absolutely
free in
communicating His grace, and therefore can hardly be conceived of as
bound to such
external means. Such means after all belong to the natural world, and
have nothing in
common with the spiritual world. God, or Christ, or the Holy Spirit, or
the inner light,
work directly in the heart, and both the Word and the sacraments can
only serve to
indicate or to symbolize this internal grace. This whole conception is
determined by a
dualistic view of nature and grace.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.i-p11" shownumber="no">4. THE RATIONALISTIC VIEW. The Socinians
of the days of the Reformation, on the
other hand, moved too far in the opposite direction. Socinus himself did
not even
regard baptism as a rite destined to be permanent in the Church of Jesus
Christ, but his
followers did not go to that extreme. They recognized both baptism and
the Lord's
Supper as rites of permanent validity, but ascribed to them only a moral
efficacy. This
means that they thought of the means of grace as working only through
moral
persuasion, and did not associate them at all with any mystical
operation of the Holy Spirit. In fact, they placed the emphasis more on what
man did in the means of grace
than on what God accomplished through them, when they spoke of them as
mere
external badges of profession and (of the sacraments) as memorials. The
Arminians of
the seventeenth century and the Rationalists of the eighteenth century
shared this view.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.i-p12" shownumber="no">5. THE REFORMED VIEW. While reaction to
the Anabaptists caused the Lutherans to
move in the direction of Rome and to bind the grace of God to the means
in the most
absolute sense — a position also taken by High Church Anglicans —, the
Reformed
Churches continued the original view of the Reformation. They deny that
the means of
grace can of themselves confer grace, as if they were endued with a
magical power to
produce holiness. God and God only is the efficient cause of salvation.
And in the
distribution and communication of His grace He is not absolutely bound to
the divinely
appointed means through which He ordinarily works, but uses them to serve
His
gracious purposes according to His own free will. But while they do not
regard the
means of grace as absolutely necessary and indispensable, they strongly
oppose the
idea that these means may be treated as purely accidental and
indifferent and can be
neglected with impunity. God has appointed them as the ordinary means
through
which He works His grace in the hearts of sinners, and their wilful
neglect can only
result in spiritual loss.</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.i-p12.1">D. CHARACTERISTIC ELEMENTS IN THE REFORMED DOCTRINE OF THE MEANS OF GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.i-p13" shownumber="no">For a proper understanding of the Reformed doctrine of the means of
grace the
following points deserve special emphasis.</p>
<p id="vii.ii.i-p14" shownumber="no">1. The special grace of God operates only in the sphere
in which the means of grace
function. This truth must be maintained over against the Mystics, who
deny the
necessity of the means of grace. God is a God of order, who in the
operation of His grace ordinarily employs the means which He Himself has
ordained. This, of course, does not
mean that He has Himself become subservient to the appointed means and
could not
possibly work without them in the communication of His grace, but only
that it has
pleased Him to bind Himself, except in the case of infants, to the use
of these means.</p>
<p id="vii.ii.i-p15" shownumber="no">2. On a single point, namely, in the implanting of the
new life, the grace of God
works immediately, that is, without the use of these means as
instruments. But even so
it works only in the sphere of the means of grace, since these are
absolutely required in
drawing out and nourishing the new life. This is a direct negation of
the position of
Rationalism, which represents regeneration as the result of moral
suasion.</p>
<p id="vii.ii.i-p16" shownumber="no">3. While the grace of God generally operates mediately,
it is not inherent in the
means as a divine deposit, but accompanies the use of these. This must
be maintained in
opposition to the Roman Catholics, the High Church Anglicans, and the
Lutherans, who
proceed on the assumption that the means of grace always operate in
virtue of an
inherent power, though their operation may be made ineffective by the
condition or
attitude of the recipient.</p>
<p id="vii.ii.i-p17" shownumber="no">4. The Word of God may never be separated from the
sacraments, but must always
accompany them, since they are virtually only a visible representation
of the truth that
is conveyed to us by the Word. In the Church of Rome the Word retires
into the
background as having only preparatory significance, while the
sacraments, considered
apart from the Word, are regarded as the real means of grace.
</p>
<p id="vii.ii.i-p18" shownumber="no">5. All the knowledge which is obtained by the recipient
of divine grace, is wrought
in him by means of the Word and is derived from the Word. This position
must be
maintained in opposition to all kinds of Mystics, who lay claim to
special revelations
and to a spiritual knowledge that is not mediated by the Word, and who
thereby lead us
into a sea of boundless subjectivity. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="vii.ii.ii" next="vii.ii.iii" prev="vii.ii.i" title="II. The Word as a Means of Grace">
<h2 id="vii.ii.ii-p0.1">II. The Word as a Means of Grace</h2>
<h4 id="vii.ii.ii-p0.2">A. MEANING OF THE TERM "WORD OF GOD" IN THIS CONNECTION.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.ii-p1" shownumber="no">Roman Catholics can hardly be said to regard the Word of
God as a means of grace. In their estimation the Church is the great and
all-sufficient channel of grace for sinners,
and all other means are subordinate to it. And the two most powerful
means which God
has placed at the disposal of the Church are prayer and the sacraments.
The Churches of
the Reformation, however, both the Lutheran and the Reformed, do honor
the Word of
God as such and even regard it as superior to the sacraments. It is true
that the older
Reformed theologians, such as the professors of Leyden (Synopsis),
Mastricht, à Marck,
Turretin, and others, and even some of a more recent date, such as
Dabney and Kuyper,
do not treat of it separately as a means of grace, but this is largely
due to the fact that
they have already discussed the Word in other connections. They freely
speak of it as a means of grace. And when they consider the Word of God as a
means of grace, they are
not thinking of the Logos, the personal Word, <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:John.1.1-John.1.14" parsed="|John|1|1|1|14" passage="John 1:1-14">John 1:1-14</scripRef>. Neither do
they have in mind
any word of power proceeding out of the mouth of Jehovah, <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.33.6" parsed="|Ps|33|6|0|0" passage="Ps. 33:6">Ps. 33:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.55.11" parsed="|Isa|55|11|0|0" passage="Isa. 55:11">Isa. 55:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p1.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.17" parsed="|Rom|4|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:17">Rom. 4:17</scripRef>, or any word of direct revelation, such as the prophets received,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p1.5" osisRef="Bible:Jer.1.4" parsed="|Jer|1|4|0|0" passage="Jer. 1:4">Jer. 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p1.6" osisRef="Bible:Jer.2.1" parsed="|Jer|2|1|0|0" passage="Jer 2:1">2:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p1.7" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.6.1" parsed="|Ezek|6|1|0|0" passage="Ezek. 6:1">Ezek. 6:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p1.8" osisRef="Bible:Hos.1.1" parsed="|Hos|1|1|0|0" passage="Hos. 1:1">Hos. 1:1</scripRef>. It is the inspired Word of God, the Word of Scripture,
which they regard as
a means of grace. And even when speaking of this as a means of grace,
they
contemplate it from a special point of view. The inspired Scriptures
constitute the
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p1.9">principium cognoscendi</span>, the fountain head, of all our theological knowledge, but it is not
that aspect which we have in mind when we speak of the Word of God as a
means of
grace. The Bible
is not only the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p1.10">
principium cognoscendi</span>
of theology,
but it is also the  means which the Holy
Spirit employs for the extension of the Church and for the
edification and nourishment of the saints. It is pre-eminently the word
of God's grace,
and therefore also the most important means of grace. Strictly speaking,
it is the Word<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p1.11">
as it is preached</span>
in the name of God and in virtue of a divine commission, that is
considered
as a means of grace in the technical sense of the word, alongside of the
sacraments
which are administered in the name of God. Naturally, the Word of God
can also be
considered as a means of grace in a more general sense. It may be a real
blessing as it is
brought to man in many additional ways: as it is read in the home, is
taught in the
school, or is circulated in tracts. As the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p1.12">
official</span>
means of grace, placed at the disposal of
the Church, both the Word and the sacraments can only be administered by
the lawful
and properly qualified officers of the Church. But in distinction from
the sacraments the
Word can also be carried out into the world by all believers and operate
in many
different ways. </p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.ii-p1.13">B. THE RELATION OF THE WORD TO THE HOLY SPIRIT.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.ii-p2" shownumber="no">There has developed in the course of history quite a
difference of opinion respecting
the efficacy of the Word, and consequently, as to the connection between
the effectual operation of the Word, and the work of the Holy Spirit.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p3" shownumber="no">1. Nomism in its various forms, such as Judaism,
Pelagianism, Semi-Pelagianism
Arminianism, Neonomianism, and Rationalism, deems the intellectual,
moral, and
æsthetic influence of the Word as the only influence that
can be ascribed to it. It does not
believe in a supernatural operation of the Holy Spirit through the Word.
The truth
revealed in the Word of God works only by moral persuasion. In some of
its forms, such
as Pelagianism and Rationalisem, Nomism does not even feel the need of a
special
operation of the Holy Spirit in the work of redemption, but in its more
moderate forms,
such as Semi-Pelagianism, Arminianism, and Neonomianism, it considers
the moral
influence of the Word insufficient, so that it must be
supplemented by the work of the
Holy Spirit. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p4" shownumber="no">2. Antinomianism, on the other hand, does not regard the
external Word as
necessary at all, and displays a Mysticism which expects everything from
the inner
word or the inner light, or from the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p4.1">
immediate</span>
operation of the
Holy Spirit. Its slogan is,
"The letter killeth, but the Spirit giveth life." The external
word belongs to the natural
world, is unworthy of the really
spiritual man, and can produce no spiritual results.
While Antinomians of all descriptions reveal a tendency to slight, if
not to ignore
altogether, the means of grace, this tendency received its clearest
expression at the
hands of some of the Anabaptists.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p5" shownumber="no">3. In opposition to these two views, the Reformers
maintained that the Word alone
is not sufficient to work faith and conversion; that the Holy Spirit
can, but does not
ordinarily, work without the Word; and that therefore in the work of
redemption the
Word and the Spirit work together. Though there was little difference on
this point at
first between the Lutherans and the Reformed, the former from the
beginning stressed
the fact that the Holy Spirit works through the Word as His instrument (<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p5.1">per verbum</span>),
while the latter preferred to say that the operation of the Holy Spirit
accompanies the
Word (<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p5.2">cum verbo</span>). Later on Lutheran theologians developed the real Lutheran doctrine,
that the Word of God contains the converting power of the Holy Spirit as
a divine
deposit, which is now so inseparably connected with it that it is
present even when the
Word is not used, or is not used legitimately. But in order to explain
the different results
of the preaching of the Word in the case of different persons, they had
to resort, even
though it be in a mild form, to the doctrine of the free will of man.
The Reformed indeed
regarded the Word of God as always powerful, either as a savour of life
unto life or as a
savour of death unto death, but maintained that it becomes efficacious
in leading to
faith and conversion only by an accompanying operation of the Holy
Spirit in the hearts
of sinners. They refused to consider this efficaciousness as an
impersonal power
resident in the Word.
</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.ii-p5.3">C. THE TWO PARTS OF THE WORD OF GOD CONSIDERED AS A MEANS OF GRACE.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.ii-p6" shownumber="no">1. THE LAW AND THE GOSPEL IN THE WORD OF GOD. The Churches
of the Reformation
from the very beginning distinguished between the law and the gospel as
the two parts
of the Word of God as a means of grace. This distinction was not
understood to be
identical with that between the Old and the New Testament, but was
regarded as a
distinction that applies to both Testaments. There is law and gospel in
the Old
Testament, and there is law and gospel in the New. The law comprises
everything in Scripture which is a revelation of God's will in the form of
command or prohibition,
while the gospel embraces everything, whether it be in the Old Testament
or in the
New, that pertains to the work of reconciliation and that proclaims the
seeking and
redeeming love of God in Christ Jesus. And each one of these two parts
has its own
proper function in the economy of grace. The law seeks to awaken in the
heart of man contrition on account of sin, while the gospel aims at the
awakening of saving faith in
Jesus Christ. The work of the law is in a sense preparatory to that of
the gospel. It
deepens the consciousness of sin and thus makes the sinner aware of the
need of
redemption. Both are subservient to the same end, and both are
indispensable parts of
the means of grace. This truth has not always been sufficiently
recognized. The condemning aspect of the law has sometimes been stressed at the
expense of its
character as a part of the means of grace. Ever since the days of
Marcion there have
always been some who saw only contrast between the law and the gospel and
proceeded on the assumption that the one excluded the other. They based
their opinion
in part on the rebuke which Paul administered to Peter (<scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.11-Gal.2.14" parsed="|Gal|2|11|2|14" passage="Gal. 2:11-14">Gal. 2:11-14</scripRef>),
and partly on the
fact that Paul occasionally draws a sharp distinction between the law
and the gospel
and evidently
regards them as contrasts, <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.6-2Cor.3.11" parsed="|2Cor|3|6|3|11" passage="II Cor. 3:6-11">II Cor. 3:6-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.2" parsed="|Gal|3|2|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:2">Gal. 3:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.3" parsed="|Gal|3|3|0|0" passage="Gal 3:3">3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.10-Gal.3.14" parsed="|Gal|3|10|3|14" passage="Gal 3:10-14">10-14</scripRef>; cf. also <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:John.1.17" parsed="|John|1|17|0|0" passage="John 1:17">John 1:17</scripRef>.
They lost sight of the fact that Paul also says that the law served as a
tutor to lead men
to Christ, <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.24" parsed="|Gal|3|24|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:24">Gal. 3:24</scripRef>, and that the Epistle to the Hebrews represents the
law, not as
standing in antithetical relation to the gospel, but rather as the
gospel in its preliminary
and imperfect state.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p7" shownumber="no">Some of the older Reformed theologians represented the
law and the gospel as
absolute opposites. They thought of the law as embodying all the demands
and
commandments of Scripture, and of the gospel, as containing no demands
whatsoever,
but only<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p7.1">
unconditional</span>
promises; and thus excluded from it all requirements. This was
partly due to the way in which the two are sometimes contrasted in
Scripture, but was
also partly the result of a controversy in which they were engaged with
the Arminians.
The Arminian view, making salvation dependent on faith and evangelical
obedience<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p7.2">
as works of man</span>, caused them to go to the extreme of saying that the covenant of grace
does
not require anything on the part of man, does not prescribe any duties,
does not
demand or command anything, not even faith, trust, and hope in the Lord,
and so on.
but merely conveys to man the promises of what God will do for him.
Others, however,
correctly maintained that even the law of Moses is not devoid of
promises, and that the gospel also contains certain demands. They clearly saw
that man is not merely passive,
when he is introduced into the covenant of grace, but is called upon to
accept the
covenant actively with all its privileges, though it is God who works in
him the ability
to meet the requirements. The promises which man appropriates certainly
impose upon
him certain duties, and among them the duty to obey the law of God as a
rule of life,
but also carry with them the assurance that God will work in him
"both to will and to
do." The consistent Dispensationalists of our day again represent
the law and the gospel
as absolute opposites. Israel was under the law in the previous
dispensation, but the
Church of the present dispensation is under the gospel, and as such is
free from the law.
This means that the gospel is now the only means of salvation, and that
the law does not now serve as such. Members of the Church need not concern
themselves about its
demands, since Christ has met all its requirements. They seem to forget
that, while
Christ bore the curse of the law, and met its demands as a condition of
the covenant of
works, He did not fulfil the law for them as a rule of life, to which
man is subject in
virtue of his creation, apart from any covenant arrangement.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p8" shownumber="no">2. NECESSARY DISTINCTIONS RESPECTING THE LAW AND THE GOSPEL.</p>
<p id="vii.ii.ii-p9" shownumber="no">a. As was already said in the preceding, the distinction between the law
and the
gospel is not the same as that between the Old and the New Testament.
Neither is it the
same as that which present day Dispensationalists make between the
dispensation of
the law and the dispensation of the gospel. It is contrary to the plain
facts of Scripture to
say that there is no gospel in the Old Testament, or at least not in
that part of the Old
Testament that covers the dispensation of the law. There is gospel in
the maternal
promise, gospel in the ceremonial law, and gospel in many of the
Prophets, as <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:Isa.53" parsed="|Isa|53|0|0|0" passage="Isa. 53">Isa. 53</scripRef> and 54; 55:1-3,6.7; <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.33" parsed="|Jer|31|33|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:33">Jer. 31:33</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.34" parsed="|Jer|31|34|0|0" passage="Jer 31:34">34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.25-Ezek.36.28" parsed="|Ezek|36|25|36|28" passage="Ezek. 36:25-28">Ezek. 36:25-28</scripRef>. In fact, there is a gospel current
running
through the whole of the Old Testament, which reaches its highest point
in the
Messianic prophecies. And it is equally contrary to Scripture to say
that there is no law
in the New Testament, or that the law does not apply in the New
Testament
dispensation. Jesus taught the permanent validity of the law, <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.17-Matt.5.19" parsed="|Matt|5|17|5|19" passage="Matt. 5:17-19">Matt. 5:17-19</scripRef>. Paul says
that God provided for it that the requirements of the law should be
fulfilled in our lives,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.4" parsed="|Rom|8|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:4">Rom. 8:4</scripRef>, and holds his readers responsible for keeping the law, <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.13.9" parsed="|Rom|13|9|0|0" passage="Rom. 13:9">Rom. 13:9</scripRef>. James
assures his readers that he who transgresses a single commandment of the
law (and he
mentions some of these), is a transgressor of the law, <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.8-Jas.2.11" parsed="|Jas|2|8|2|11" passage="Jas. 2:8-11">Jas. 2:8-11</scripRef>. And
John defines sin as
"lawlessness," and says that this is the love of God, that we
keep His commandments, <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.4" parsed="|1John|3|4|0|0" passage="I John 3:4">I John 3:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.ii-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:1John.5.3" parsed="|1John|5|3|0|0" passage="I John 5:3">5:3</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p10" shownumber="no">b. It is possible to say that in some respects the
Christian is free from the law of God.
The Bible does not always speak of the law in the same sense. Sometimes
it
contemplates this as the immutable expression of the nature and will of
God, which
applies at all times and under all conditions. But it also refers to it
as it functions in the
covenant of works, in which the gift of eternal life was conditioned on
its fulfilment.
Man failed to meet the condition, thereby also losing the ability to
meet it, and is now
by nature under a sentence of condemnation. When Paul draws a contrast
between the
law and the gospel, he is thinking of this aspect of the law, the broken
law of the
covenant of works, which can no more justify, but can only condemn the
sinner. From
the law in this particular sense, both as a means for obtaining eternal
life and as a
condemning power, believers are set free in Christ, since He became a
curse for them
and also met the demands of the covenant of works in their behalf. The
law in that
particular sense and the gospel of free grace are mutually exclusive.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p11" shownumber="no">c. There is another sense, however, in which the
Christian is not free from the law.
The situation is quite different when we think of the law as the
expression of man's
natural obligations to his God, the law as it is applied to man even
apart from the
covenant of works. It is impossible to imagine any condition in which
man might be
able to claim freedom from the law in that sense. It is pure
Antinomianism to maintain
that Christ kept the law as a rule of life for His people, so that they
need not worry
about this any more. The law lays claim, and justly so, on the entire
life of man in all its
aspects, including his relation to the gospel of Jesus Christ. When God
offers man the gospel, the law demands that the latter shall accept this. Some
would speak of this as
the law in the gospel, but this is hardly correct. The gospel itself
consists of promises
and is no law; yet there is a demand of the law in connection with the
gospel. The law
not only demands that we accept the gospel and believe in Jesus Christ,
but also that we
lead a life of gratitude in harmony with its requirements.
</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.ii-p11.1">D. THE THREEFOLD USE OF THE LAW.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.ii-p12" shownumber="no">It is customary in theology to distinguish a three-fold use of the law.</p>
<p id="vii.ii.ii-p13" shownumber="no">1. THE THREE DEFINED. We distinguish:</p>
<p id="vii.ii.ii-p14" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p14.1"> A usus politicus or civilis.</span>
The law serves
the purpose of restraining in and
promoting righteousness. Considered from this point of view, the law
presupposes sin
and is necessary on account of sin. It serves the purpose of God's
common grace in the
world at large. This means that from this point of view it cannot be
regarded a means of grace in the technical sense of the word.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p15" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p15.1">
A usus elenchticus or pedagogicus.</span>
In this
capacity the law serves the purpose of
bringing man under conviction of sin, and of making him conscious of his
inability to
meet the demands of the law. In that way the law becomes his tutor to
lead him unto
Christ, and thus becomes subservient to God's gracious purpose of
redemption.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p16" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p16.1">
A usus didacticus or normativus.</span>
This is the
so-called<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p16.2">
tertius usus legis</span>, the third use
of the law. The law is a rule of life for believers, reminding them of
their duties and
leading them in the way of life and salvation. This third use of the law
is denied by the
Antinomians.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p17" shownumber="no">2. THE DIFFERENCE BETWEEN THE LUTHERAN AND THE REFORMED ON THIS POINT. There
is some difference between the Lutherans and the Reformed with respect
to this
threefold use of the law. Both accept this threefold distinction, but
the Lutherans stress
the second use of the law. In their estimation the law is primarily the
appointed means
for bringing men under conviction of sin and thus indirectly pointing
the way to Jesus
Christ as the Saviour of sinners. While they also admit the third use of
the law, they do it with a certain reserve, since they hold that believers are
no more under the law.
According to them the third use of the law is necessary only because,
and in so far as,
believers are still sinners; they must be held in check by the law, and
should become
ever-increasingly conscious of their sins. It is not surprising
therefore that this third use
of the law occupies no important place in their system. As a rule they
treat of the law only in connection with the doctrine of human misery. The
Reformed do full justice to
the second use of the law, teaching that "through the law cometh
the knowledge of sin,"
and that the law awakens the consciousness of the need of redemption; but
they devote
even more attention to the law in connection with the doctrine of
sanctification. They
stand strong in the conviction that believers are still under the law as
a rule of life and
of gratitude. Hence the Heidelberg Catechism devotes not less than
eleven Lord's Days
to the discussion of the law, and that in its third part, which deals
with gratitude.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p18" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Why do the
Roman Catholics regard the Church as
the outstanding means of grace? What accounts for their neglect of the
Word as a means
of grace? Why are the means of grace in disrespect among the Mystics?
What
distinguishes the Word and the sacraments as means of grace from all
other means? Is it
correct to say that they are administered only in the Church and serve,
not to originate
the new life, but to strengthen it? Is the Word of God exclusively used
as a means of
grace? How do the law and the gospel differ as different aspects of the
Word?</p>

<p id="vii.ii.ii-p19" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.1">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
IV, pp. 483-505; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.2">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 466-485; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.3">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 561-563;
Vos,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.4">
Geref. Dogm.
V. De Genademiddelen</span>, pp.
1-11; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.5">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 422-427; Dick,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.6">
Lect. on Theology</span>, pp. 447-458; Pieper,
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.7">Christl. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 121-296; Valentine,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.8">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 282-292; Mueller,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.9">
Chr. Dogm.</span>,
pp. 441-484;
Raymond,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.10">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp.
243-255; Drummond,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.ii-p19.11">
Studies in Chr. Doct.</span>, pp.
399-403.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="vii.ii.iii" next="vii.ii.iv" prev="vii.ii.ii" title="III. The Sacraments in General">
<h2 id="vii.ii.iii-p0.1">III. The Sacraments in General</h2>
<h4 id="vii.ii.iii-p0.2">A. RELATION BETWEEN THE WORD AND THE SACRAMENTS.</h4>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p1" shownumber="no">In distinction from the Roman Catholic Church, the
Churches of the Reformation
emphasize the priority of the Word of God. While the former proceeds on
the
assumption that the sacraments contain all that is necessary for the
salvation of sinners,
need no interpretation, and therefore render the Word quite superfluous
as a means of
grace, the latter regard the Word as absolutely essential, and merely
raise the question, why the sacraments should be added to it. Some of the
Lutherans claim that a specific
grace, differing from that which is wrought by the Word, is conveyed by
the sacraments.
This is all but universally denied by the Reformed, a few Scottish
theologians and Dr.
Kuyper forming exceptions to the rule. They point to the fact that God
has so created
man that he obtains knowledge particularly through the avenues of the
senses of sight
and hearing. The Word is adapted to the ear, and the
sacraments to the eye. And since
the eye is more sensuous than the ear, it may be said that God, by
adding the
sacraments to the Word, comes to the aid of sinful man. The truth
addressed to the ear
in the Word, is symbolically represented to the eye in the sacraments.
It should be borne
in mind, however, that, while the Word can exist and is also complete
without the
sacraments, the sacraments are never complete without the Word. There
are points of
similarity and points of difference between the Word and the sacraments.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p2" shownumber="no">1. POINTS OF SIMILARITY. They agree: (a)
in author, since God instituted both as
means of grace; (b) in contents, for Christ is the central content of
the one as well as of
the other; and (c) in the manner in which the contents are appropriated,
namely, by
faith. This is the only way in which the sinner can become a participant
of the grace that
is offered in the Word and in the sacraments.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p3" shownumber="no">2. POINTS OF DIFFERENCE. They differ: (a) in their necessity, the Word being
indispensable, while the sacraments are not; (b) in their purpose, since
the Word is
intended to<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p3.1">
engender</span>
and to strengthen faith, while the sacraments serve only to
strengthen it; and (c) in their extension, since the Word goes out into
all the world, while
the sacraments are administered only to those who are in the Church. </p>
<h4 id="vii.ii.iii-p3.2">B. ORIGIN AND MEANING OF THE WORD "SACRAMENT".</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.iii-p4" shownumber="no">The word "sacrament" is not found in Scripture.
It is derived from the Latin <span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p4.1">sacramentum</span>, which originally denoted a sum of money deposited by two parties in
litigation. After the decision of the court the winner's money was
returned, while that of
the loser was forfeited. This seems to have been called a<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p4.2">
sacramentum</span>, because it was
intended to be a sort of propitiatory offering to the gods. The
transition to the Christian
use of the term is probably to be sought: (a) in the military use of the
term, in which it
denoted the oath by which a soldier solemnly pledged obedience to his
commander,
since in baptism the Christian pledges obedience to his Lord; and (b) in
the specifically
religious sense which it acquired when the Vulgate employed it as a
rendering of the
Greek<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p4.3">
musterion.</span>
It is possible that this Greek term was applied to the sacraments,
because they have a faint resemblance to some of the mysteries of the
Greek religions. In
the early Church the word "sacrament" was first used to denote
all kinds of doctrines
and ordinances. For this very reason some objected to the name, and
preferred to speak
of
"signs," "seals," or "mysteries." Even during and
immediately after the Reformation
many disliked
the name "sacrament." Melanchton used<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p4.4">
"signi,"</span>
and both Luther and
Calvin deemed it necessary to call attention to the fact that the word
"sacrament" is not
employed in its original sense in theology. But the fact that the word
is not found in
Scripture and is not used in its original sense when it is applied to
the ordinances
instituted by Jesus, need not deter us, for usage often determines the
meaning of a
word. The
following definition may be given of a sacrament:<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p4.5">
A sacrament is a holy
ordinance instituted by Christ, in
which by sensible signs the grace of God in Christ, and the benefits of the covenant of grace,
are represented, sealed, and applied to believers, and these, in turn, give
expression to their faith and allegiance to God. </span>
</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.iii-p4.6">C. THE COMPONENT PARTS OF THE SACRAMENTS.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.iii-p5" shownumber="no">Three parts must be distinguished in the sacraments.</p>
<p id="vii.ii.iii-p6" shownumber="no">1. THE OUTWARD OR VISIBLE SIGN. Each one of the sacraments contains a material
element that is palpable to the senses. In a rather loose sense this is
sometimes called the
sacrament. In the strict sense of the word, however, the term is more
inclusive and denotes both the sign and that which is signified. To avoid
misunderstanding, this
different usage should be borne in mind. It explains how an unbeliever
may be said to
receive, and yet not to receive, the sacrament. He does not receive it
in the full sense of
the word. The external matter of the sacrament includes not only the
elements that are
used, namely, water, bread, and wine, but also the sacred rite, that
which is done with
these elements. From this external point of view the Bible calls the
sacraments signs and
-seals, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.12" parsed="|Gen|9|12|0|0" passage="Gen. 9:12">Gen. 9:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.13" parsed="|Gen|9|13|0|0" passage="Gen 9:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.11" parsed="|Gen|17|11|0|0" passage="Gen 17:11">17:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.11" parsed="|Rom|4|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:11">Rom. 4:11</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p7" shownumber="no">2. THE INWARD SPIRITUAL GRACE SIGNIFIED AND SEALED. Signs and seals presuppose
something that is signified and sealed and which is usually called the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p7.1">
materia interna</span>
of the sacrament. This is variously indicated in Scripture as the covenant
of grace, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.12" parsed="|Gen|9|12|0|0" passage="Gen. 9:12">Gen. 9:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.9.13" parsed="|Gen|9|13|0|0" passage="Gen 9:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.11" parsed="|Gen|17|11|0|0" passage="Gen 17:11">17:11</scripRef>,
the righteousness of faith, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.11" parsed="|Rom|4|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:11">Rom. 4:11</scripRef>, the forgiveness of sins, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.4" parsed="|Mark|1|4|0|0" passage="Mark 1:4">Mark 1:4</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.28" parsed="|Matt|26|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 26:28">Matt. 26:28</scripRef>, faith and conversion, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.4" parsed="|Mark|1|4|0|0" passage="Mark 1:4">Mark 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16:16</scripRef>, communion with
Christ in His death and resurrection, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.3" parsed="|Rom|6|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:3">Rom. 6:3</scripRef>, and so on. Briefly
stated, it may be said to consist in Christ
and all His spiritual riches. The Roman Catholics find in it the
sanctifying grace which
is added to human nature, enabling man to do good works and to rise to
the height of
the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p7.11">
visio Dei</span>
(the vision of God). The sacraments signify, not merely a general truth,
but
a promise given unto us and accepted by us, and serve to strengthen our
faith with  respect
to the realization of that promise, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.1-Gen.17.14" parsed="|Gen|17|1|17|14" passage="Gen. 17:1-14">Gen. 17:1-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:Exod.12.13" parsed="|Exod|12|13|0|0" passage="Ex. 12:13">Ex. 12:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.11-Rom.4.13" parsed="|Rom|4|11|4|13" passage="Rom. 4:11-13">Rom. 4:11-13</scripRef>. They
visibly represent, and deepen our consciousness of, the spiritual blessings
of the
covenant, of the washing away of our sins, and of our participation of
the life that is in
Christ, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.11" parsed="|Matt|3|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:11">Matt. 3:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.16" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.4" parsed="|Mark|1|4|0|0" passage="Mark 1:4">Mark 1:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.17" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.5" parsed="|Mark|1|5|0|0" passage="Mark 1:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.18" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.2" parsed="|1Cor|10|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:2">I Cor. 10:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.19" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.3" parsed="|1Cor|10|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:3">3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.20" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.16" parsed="|1Cor|10|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:16">16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.21" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.17" parsed="|1Cor|10|17|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.28" parsed="|Rom|2|28|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:28">Rom. 2:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.23" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.29" parsed="|Rom|2|29|0|0" passage="Rom 2:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.24" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.3" parsed="|Rom|6|3|0|0" passage="Rom 6:3">6:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.25" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.4" parsed="|Rom|6|4|0|0" passage="Rom 6:4">4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p7.26" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.27" parsed="|Gal|3|27|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:27">Gal. 3:27</scripRef>. As signs
and seals they are means of grace, that is, means of strengthening the
inward grace that is wrought in the heart by the Holy Spirit.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p8" shownumber="no">3. THE SACRAMENTAL UNION BETWEEN THE SIGN AND THAT WHICH IS SIGNIFIED. This is usually called
the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.1"> forma sacramenti</span> (<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.2">forma</span> here meaning essence), because it is exactly the
relation between the sign and the thing signified that constitutes the
essence of the
sacrament. According to the Reformed view this is: (a) not<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.3">
physical</span>, as the Roman
Catholics claim, as if the thing signified were inherent in the sign,
and the reception of
the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.4">
materia externa</span>
necessarily carried with it a
participation in the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.5">
materia interna;</span>
(b)<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.6">
nor local</span>, as the Lutherans represent it, as if the sign and the thing signified
were present in
the same space, so that both believers and unbelievers receive the full
sacrament when
they receive the
sign; (c) but<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.7">
spiritual</span>, or as Turretin
expresses it,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.8">
relative</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.9">
moral</span>, so  that, where
the sacrament is received in faith, the grace of God accompanies it.
According to this view the external sign becomes a means employed by the
Holy Spirit
in the communication of divine grace. The close connection between the
sign and the
thing signified explains the use of what is generally called
"sacramental language," in
which the sign
is put for the thing signified or<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p8.10">
vice versa</span>,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.10" parsed="|Gen|17|10|0|0" passage="Gen. 17:10">Gen. 17:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.22.16" parsed="|Acts|22|16|0|0" passage="Acts 22:16">Acts 22:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.7" parsed="|1Cor|5|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:7">I Cor.  5:7</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.iii-p8.14">D. THE NECESSITY OF THE SACRAMENTS.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.iii-p9" shownumber="no">Roman Catholics hold that baptism is absolutely necessary
for all unto salvation,
and that the sacrament of penance is equally necessary for those who
have committed
mortal sins after baptism; but that confirmation, the eucharist, and
extreme unction are
necessary only in the sense that they have been commanded and are
eminently helpful.
Protestants, on the other hand, teach that the sacraments are not
absolutely necessary
unto salvation, but are obligatory in view of the divine precept. Wilful
neglect of their
use results in spiritual impoverishment and has a destructive tendency,
just as all wilful
and persistent disobedience to God has. That they are not absolutely
necessary unto salvation, follows: (1) from the free spiritual character of the
gospel dispensation, in
which God does not bind His grace to the use of certain external forms,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:John.4.21" parsed="|John|4|21|0|0" passage="John 4:21">John 4:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:John.4.23" parsed="|John|4|23|0|0" passage="John 4:23">23</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.18.14" parsed="|Luke|18|14|0|0" passage="Luke 18:14">Luke 18:14</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2" parsed="|Luke|2|0|0|0" passage="Luke 2">2</scripRef>) from the fact that Scripture mentions only faith as the
instrumental
condition of
salvation, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:John.5.24" parsed="|John|5|24|0|0" passage="John 5:24">John 5:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:John.6.29" parsed="|John|6|29|0|0" passage="John 6:29">6:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">3:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.31" parsed="|Acts|16|31|0|0" passage="Acts 16:31">Acts 16:31</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3" parsed="|Acts|3|0|0|0" passage="Acts 3">3</scripRef>) from the fact that the
sacraments do not originate faith but presuppose it, and are administered
where faith is  assumed,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.41" parsed="|Acts|2|41|0|0" passage="Acts 2:41">Acts 2:41</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.14" parsed="|Acts|16|14|0|0" passage="Acts 16:14">16:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.12" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.15" parsed="|Acts|16|15|0|0" passage="Acts 16:15">15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.30" parsed="|Acts|16|30|0|0" passage="Acts 16:30">30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.33" parsed="|Acts|16|33|0|0" passage="Acts 16:33">33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p9.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.23-1Cor.11.32" parsed="|1Cor|11|23|11|32" passage="I Cor. 11:23-32">I Cor. 11:23-32</scripRef>; and (4) from the fact that many
were
actually saved without the use of the sacraments. Think of the believers
before the time
of Abraham and of the penitent thief on the cross
</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.iii-p9.16">E. THE OLD AND NEW TESTAMENT SACRAMENTS COMPARED.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.iii-p10" shownumber="no">1. THEIR ESSENTIAL UNITY. Rome claims that there is an<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p10.1">
essential</span>
difference between
the sacraments of the Old, and those of the New Testament. It holds
that, like the entire
ritual of the old covenant, its sacraments also were merely typical. The
sanctification
wrought by them was not internal, but merely legal, and prefigured the
grace which
was to be conferred on man in the future, in virtue of the passion of
Christ. This does
not mean that no internal grace accompanied their use at all, but merely
that this was
not effected by the sacraments as such, as it is in the new
dispensation. They had no
objective
efficacy, did not sanctify the recipient<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p10.2">
ex opere operato</span>,
but only<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p10.3">
ex opere operantis</span>, that is, because of the faith and charity with which he received them.
Because
the full realization of the grace typified by those sacraments depended
on the coming of
Christ. the Old Testament saints were shut up in the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p10.4">
Limbus Patrum</span>
until Christ led
them out. As a matter of fact, however, there is no<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p10.5">
essential</span>
difference between the
sacraments of the Old, and those of the New Testament. This is proved by
the following
considerations: (a) in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.1-1Cor.10.4" parsed="|1Cor|10|1|10|4" passage="I Cor. 10:1-4">I Cor. 10:1-4</scripRef> Paul ascribes to the Old Testament
Church that which
is essential in the New Testament sacraments; (b) in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.11" parsed="|Rom|4|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:11">Rom. 4:11</scripRef> he speaks
of the
circumcision of Abraham as a seal of the righteousness of faith; and (c)
in view of the
fact that they represent the same spiritual realities, the names of the
sacraments of both dispensations are used interchangeably; circumcision and
passover are ascribed to the
New Testament Church. <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.7" parsed="|1Cor|5|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:7">I Cor. 5:7</scripRef>: <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p10.9" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.11" parsed="|Col|2|11|0|0" passage="Col. 2:11">Col. 2:11</scripRef>, and baptism and the Lord's
Supper to the
Church of the
Old Testament, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p10.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.1-1Cor.10.4" parsed="|1Cor|10|1|10|4" passage="I Cor. 10:1-4">I Cor. 10:1-4</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p11" shownumber="no">2. THEIR FORMAL DIFFERENCES. Notwithstanding the essential unity of the Sacraments
of both dispensations, there are certain points of difference. (a) Among
Israel the
sacraments had a national aspect in addition to their spiritual
significance as signs and
seals of the covenant of grace. (b) Alongside of the sacraments Israel
had many other
symbolical rites, such as offerings and purifications, which in the main
agreed with
their sacraments, while the New Testament sacraments stand absolutely
alone. (c) The
Old Testament sacraments pointed forward to Christ and were the seals of
a grace that
still had to be merited while those of the New Testament point back to
Christ and His
completed sacrifice of redemption. (d) In harmony with the whole Old
Testament
dispensation, a smaller measure of divine grace accompanied the use of
the Old
Testament sacraments than is now obtained through the faithful reception
of those of
the New Testament.
</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.iii-p11.1"> F. THE NUMBER OF THE SACRAMENTS.</h4>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p12" shownumber="no">1. IN THE OLD TESTAMENT. During the old dispensation
there were two sacraments,
namely, circumcision and passover. Some Reformed theologians were of the
opinion
that circumcision originated among Israel, and was derived from this
ancient covenant
people by other nations. But it is now quite clear that this is an
untenable position. From
the earliest times the Egyptian priests were circumcised. Moreover,
circumcision is
found among many peoples in Asia, Africa, and even Australia, and it is
very unlikely
that they all derived it from Israel. Only among Israel, however, did it
become a
sacrament of the covenant of grace. As belonging to the Old Testament
dispensation, it
was a bloody sacrifice, symbolizing the excision of the guilt and
pollution of sin, and
obliging the people to let the principle of the grace of God penetrate
their entire life. The
passover was also a bloody sacrament. The Israelites escaped the doom of
the Egyptians
by substituting a sacrifice, which was a type of Christ, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:John.1.29" parsed="|John|1|29|0|0" passage="John 1:29">John 1:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:John.1.36" parsed="|John|1|36|0|0" passage="John 1:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.7" parsed="|1Cor|5|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:7">I
Cor. 5:7</scripRef>. The saved
family ate the lamb that was slain, symbolizing the appropriating act of
faith, very much as the eating of the bread in the Lord's Supper.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p13" shownumber="no">2. IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. The Church of the New
Testament also has two
sacraments, namely, baptism and the Lord's Supper. In harmony with the
new
dispensation as a whole, they are unbloody sacraments. However, they
symbolize the
same spiritual blessings that were symbolized by circumcision and
passover in the old dispensation. The Church of Rome has enlarged the number of
the sacraments to seven
in a wholly unwarranted manner. To the two that were instituted by Christ
it added
confirmation, penance, orders, matrimony, and extreme unction. It seeks
the Scriptural
ground for
confirmation in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.17" parsed="|Acts|8|17|0|0" passage="Acts 8:17">Acts 8:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.14.22" parsed="|Acts|14|22|0|0" passage="Acts 14:22">14:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.6" parsed="|Acts|19|6|0|0" passage="Acts 19:6">19:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.2" parsed="|Heb|6|2|0|0" passage="Heb. 6:2">Heb. 6:2</scripRef>; for penance in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Jas.5.16" parsed="|Jas|5|16|0|0" passage="Jas. 5:16">Jas. 5:16</scripRef>; for
orders in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.14" parsed="|1Tim|4|14|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:14">I Tim. 4:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.6" parsed="|2Tim|1|6|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:6">II Tim. 1:6</scripRef>; for matrimony in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:Eph.5.32" parsed="|Eph|5|32|0|0" passage="Eph. 5:32">Eph. 5:32</scripRef>; and for
extreme unction in
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.9" osisRef="Bible:Mark.6.13" parsed="|Mark|6|13|0|0" passage="Mark 6:13">Mark 6:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iii-p13.10" osisRef="Bible:Jas.5.14" parsed="|Jas|5|14|0|0" passage="Jas. 5:14">Jas. 5:14</scripRef>. Each of these sacraments is supposed to convey, in
addition to the
general grace of sanctification, a special sacramental grace, which is
different in each
sacrament. This multiplication of the sacraments created a difficulty
for the Church of
Rome. It is generally admitted that sacraments, in order to be valid,
must have been instituted by Christ; but Christ instituted only two.
Consequently, the others are not
sacraments, or the right to institute them must also be ascribed to the
apostles. Before
the Council of Trent many, indeed, asserted that the additional five
were not instituted
by Christ directly, but through the apostles. The Council, however,
boldly declared that
all the seven sacraments were instituted by Christ Himself, and thus
imposed an
impossible task on the theology of its Church. It is a point that must
be accepted by
Roman Catholics on the testimony of the Church, but that cannot be
proved.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p14" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Has the term<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p14.1">
musterion</span>
the same
meaning in the
New Testament as it has in the mystery religions? Are the New Testament
teachings
respecting the sacraments borrowed from the mystery religions, as a
recent school of
New Testament criticism claims? Is the assertion of this school correct,
that Paul
represents the sacraments as effective<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p14.2">
ex opere operato?</span>
Why do the
Lutherans prefer to
speak of the sacraments as<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p14.3">
rites</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p14.4">
actions</span>
rather than as<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p14.5">
signs?</span>
What do they
understand by the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p14.6">
materia coelestis</span>
of the sacraments?
What is meant by the Roman
Catholic doctrine of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p14.7">
intention</span>
in connection with
the administration of the sacraments?
What negative requirement does Rome consider necessary in the recipient
of the
sacrament? Is it correct to describe the relation between the sign and
the thing signified
as an<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p14.8">
unio sacramentalis?</span>
What constitutes the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p14.9">
gratia sacramentalis</span>
in each of the seven
sacraments of the Roman Catholic Church?
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iii-p15" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 483-542; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Sacramentis</span>, pp. 3-96; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.3">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 466-526; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.4">
Geref. Dogm. V. De Genademiddelen</span>, pp. 1-35; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.5">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 727-757; McPherson,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.6">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 422-431; Litton,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.7">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 419-450; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.8">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Ch.</span>
pp. 504-540; Valentine,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.9">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II pp. 278-305; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.10">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
III,
pp. 121-296;
Kaftan,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.11">
Dogm.</span>, pp. 625-636;
Pope,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.12">
Chr. Theol.</span>
III, pp.
294-310; Miley,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.13">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 389-395; Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.14">
Handbook of the Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 305-314;
Moehler,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.15">
Symbolism</span>, pp. 202-218; Schaff,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.16">
Our Fathers' Faith and Ours</span>, pp. 309-315; Bannerman,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.17">
The Church</span> II,
pp. 1-41;
Macleod,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.18">
The Ministry and the Sacraments of
the Church of Scotland</span>, pp. 198-227;
Candlish,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.19">
The Sacraments</span>, pp. 11-44; Burgess,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iii-p15.20">
The Protestant Faith</span>, pp. 180-198.</p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="vii.ii.iv" next="vii.ii.v" prev="vii.ii.iii" title="IV. Christian Baptism">
<h2 id="vii.ii.iv-p0.1">IV. Christian Baptism</h2>
<h4 id="vii.ii.iv-p0.2">A. ANALOGIES OF CHRISTIAN BAPTISM.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.iv-p1" shownumber="no">1. IN THE GENTILE WORLD. Baptism was not something absolutely new in the days of
Jesus. The Egyptians, the Persians, and the Hindus, all had their religious
purifications.
These were even more prominent in the Greek and Roman religions.
Sometimes they
took the form of a bath in the sea, and sometimes they were effected by
sprinkling.
Tertullian says that in some cases the idea of a new birth was connected
with these
lustrations. Many present day scholars hold that Christian baptism,
especially as it was
taught by Paul, owes its origin to similar rites in the mystery
religions, but such a
derivation does not even have appearance in its favor. While the
initiatory rite in the
mystery religions does involve a recognition of the deity in question,
there is no trace of
a baptism into the name of some god. Nor is there any evidence that the
influence of the
divine<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p1.1">
pneuma</span>, rather prominent in the mystery religions, was ever connected with the
rite of lustration. Moreover, the ideas of death and resurrection, which
Paul associated
with baptism, do not fit in with the mystery ritual at all. And,
finally, the form of the
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p1.2">taurobolium</span>, which is supposed to be the most striking analogy that can be cited,
is so
foreign to the New Testament rite as to make the idea of the derivation
of the latter from
the former seem utterly ridiculous. These heathen purifications have
very little in
common, even in their external form, with our Christian baptism.
Moreover, it is a well
established fact that the mystery religions did not make their
appearance in the Roman
Empire before the days of Paul.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p2" shownumber="no">2. AMONG THE JEWS. The Jews had many ceremonial purifications and
washings, but
these had no sacramental character, and therefore were no signs and
seals of the
covenant. The so-called baptism of proselytes bore a greater resemblance
to Christian
baptism. When Gentiles were incorporated in Israel, they were
circumcized and, at least
in later times, also baptized. It has long been a debatable question,
whether this custom
was in vogue before the destruction of Jerusalem, but Schuerer has shown
conclusively
by quotations from the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p2.1">
Mishna</span>
that it was.
According to the Jewish authorities quoted
by Wall in his<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p2.2">
History of
Infant Baptism</span>, this baptism had to be administered in the
presence of two or three witnesses. Children of parents who received
this baptism, if
born before the rite was administered, were also baptized, at the
request of the father as
long as they were not of age (the boys thirteen and the girls twelve),
but if they were of age, only at their own request. Children who were born
after the baptism of the parent
or parents, were accounted as clean and therefore did not need baptism.
It seems,
however, that this baptism was also merely a sort of ceremonial washing,
somewhat in
line with the other purifications. It is sometimes said that the baptism
of John was
derived from this baptism of proselytes, but it is quite clear that this
was not the case.
Whatever historical relation there may have existed between the two, it
is quite evident
that the baptism of John was pregnant with new and more
spiritual meanings. Lambert
is quite correct when he, in speaking of the Jewish lustrations, says:
"Their purpose was,
by removing a ceremonial defilement, to restore a man to his normal
position within the
ranks of the Jewish community; John's baptism, on the other hand, aimed
at
transferring those who submitted to it into an altogether new sphere —
the sphere of
definite preparation for the approaching Kingdom of God. But above all,
the difference
lay in this, that John's baptism could never be regarded as a mere
ceremony; it was
always vibrant through and through with ethical meaning. A cleansing of
the heart from
sin was not only its preliminary condition, but its constant aim and
purpose. And by the
searching and incisive preaching with which he accompanied it, John kept
it from
sinking, as it would otherwise have tended to do, to the level of a mere<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p2.3">
opus operatum.</span>"<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p2.4" n="39" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p2.5">The Sacraments in the New Testament</span>, p. 57.</note></p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p3" shownumber="no">Another question that calls for consideration, is that of
the relation of the baptism of
John to that of Jesus. The Roman Catholic Church in the Canons of Trent<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p3.1" n="40" place="foot">Sess. VII. <span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p3.2">De Baptismo</span></note>
curses those
who say that the baptism of John equalled that of Jesus in efficacy, and
regards it, along
with the Old Testament sacraments, as purely typical. It claims that
those who were
baptized by John did not receive real baptismal grace in this baptism,
and were at a later
time re-baptized, or, more correctly expressed, baptized for the first
time in the
Christian manner. The older Lutheran theologians maintained that the two
were
identical as far as<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p3.3">
purpose</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p3.4">
efficacy</span>
were concerned, while some of the later ones
rejected what they considered to be a complete and essential identity of
the two. Something similar may be said of Reformed theologians. The older
theologians
generally identified the two baptisms, while those of a more recent date
direct attention
to certain differences. John himself would seem to call attention to a
point of difference
in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.11" parsed="|Matt|3|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:11">Matt. 3:11</scripRef>.
Some also find a proof for the essential difference of the two in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.1-Acts.19.6" parsed="|Acts|19|1|19|6" passage="Acts 19:1-6">Acts 19:1-6</scripRef>,
which, according to them, records a case in which some, who were
baptized by John,
were re-baptized. But this interpretation is subject to doubt. It would
seem to be correct
to say that the two are<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p3.7">
essentially</span>
identical, though
differing in some points. The baptism
of John, like the Christian baptism, (a) was instituted by God Himself,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.25" parsed="|Matt|21|25|0|0" passage="Matt. 21:25">Matt. 21:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:John.1.33" parsed="|John|1|33|0|0" passage="John 1:33">John 1:33</scripRef>; (b) was
connected with a radical change of life, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.1-Luke.1.17" parsed="|Luke|1|1|1|17" passage="Luke 1:1-17">Luke 1:1-17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:John.1.20-John.1.30" parsed="|John|1|20|1|30" passage="John 1:20-30">John 1:20-30</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:John.100" parsed="|John|100|0|0|0" passage="John 100">c</scripRef>) stood
in sacramental relation to the forgiveness of sins, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.7" parsed="|Matt|3|7|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:7">Matt. 3:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.8" parsed="|Matt|3|8|0|0" passage="Matt 3:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Mark.1.4" parsed="|Mark|1|4|0|0" passage="Mark 1:4">Mark 1:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Luke.3.3" parsed="|Luke|3|3|0|0" passage="Luke 3:3">Luke 3:3</scripRef> (comp.
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.28" parsed="|Acts|2|28|0|0" passage="Acts 2:28">Acts 2:28</scripRef>) and (d) employed the same material element, namely, water. At
the same time
there were several points of difference: (a) the baptism of John still
belonged to the old
dispensation, and as such pointed forward to Christ; (b) in harmony with
the
dispensation of the law in general, it stressed the necessity of
repentance, though not
entirely to the exclusion of faith; (c) it was intended for the Jews
only, and therefore
represented the Old Testament particularism rather than the New Testament
universalism; and (d) since the Holy Spirit had not yet been poured out
in pentecostal
fulness, it was not yet accompanied with as great a measure of spiritual
gifts as the later Christian baptism.</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.iv-p3.18">B. THE INSTITUTION OF CHRISTIAN BAPTISM.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.iv-p4" shownumber="no">1. IT WAS INSTITUTED WITH DIVINE AUTHORITY. Baptism was instituted by Christ after
He had finished the work of reconciliation and this had received the
approval of the
Father in the resurrection. It is worthy of notice that He prefaced the
great commission
with the words, "All authority hath been given unto me in heaven
and on earth."
Clothed with the fulness of that mediatorial authority, He instituted
Christian baptism
and thus made it binding for all following generations. The great
commission is
couched in the following words: "Go ye therefore (that is, because
all nations are made
subject to Me), and make disciples of all nations, baptizing them in the
name of the
Father and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit: teaching them to observe
whatsoever I
have commanded you." <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:19">Matt. 28:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.20" parsed="|Matt|28|20|0|0" passage="Matt 28:20">20</scripRef>. The complementary form in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.15" parsed="|Mark|16|15|0|0" passage="Mark 16:15">Mark
16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16</scripRef> reads
as follows: "Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel to the
whole creation. He
that believeth and is baptized shall be saved; but he that disbelieveth
shall be
condemned." Thus the following elements are clearly indicated in
this authoritative
command: (a) The disciples were to go out into the whole world and to
preach the
gospel to all nations, in order to bring people to repentance and to the
acknowledgment
of Jesus as the promised Saviour. (b) They who accepted Christ by faith
were to be
baptized in the name of the triune God, as a sign and seal of the fact
that they had
entered into a new relation to God and as such were obliged to live
according to the
laws of the Kingdom of God. (c) They were to be brought under the
ministry of the
Word, not merely as a proclamation of the good news, but as an
exposition of the
mysteries, the privileges, and the duties, of the new covenant. For the
encouragement of
the disciples Jesus adds the words, "And lo, I (who am clothed with
the authority to
give this commandment) am with you always, even unto the end of the
world."</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p5" shownumber="no">2. THE BAPTISMAL FORMULA. The apostles were specifically instructed to baptize<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.1">
eis to onoma tou patros kai tou huiou kai tou hagiou pneumatos</span>
(into the name
of the Father and of
the Son and of the Holy Spirit). The Vulgate rendered the first words
"<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.2">
eis to onoma</span>
" by
the Latin
"in nomine" (in the name), a rendering followed by Luther's "im
namen." The
words are thus made to mean "on the authority of the triune
God." Robertson gives this
as their meaning
in his<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.3"> Grammar of the Greek New Testament</span>, p. 649, but
fails to give any
proof for it. The fact is that this interpretation is exegetically
untenable. The idea of "on
the authority
of" is expressed by the phrase<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.4">
en toi onomati</span>
or the shorter one<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.5">
en onomati</span>,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.9" parsed="|Matt|21|9|0|0" passage="Matt. 21:9">Matt. 21:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.17" parsed="|Mark|16|17|0|0" passage="Mark 16:17">Mark 16:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.10.17" parsed="|Luke|10|17|0|0" passage="Luke 10:17">Luke 10:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:John.14.26" parsed="|John|14|26|0|0" passage="John 14:26">John 14:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.6" parsed="|Acts|3|6|0|0" passage="Acts 3:6">Acts 3:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.9.27" parsed="|Acts|9|27|0|0" passage="Acts 9:27">9:27</scripRef>, etc. The preposition<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.12">
eis </span>
(into) is indicative rather of an end, and may therefore be interpreted
to mean "in
relation
to," or "into the profession of faith in one and sincere obedience to
one." It is quite in harmony with this when Allen says in his commentary on Matthew:
"The
person baptized was symbolically introduced 'into the name of Christ,'
that is, became
His disciple, that is, entered into a state of allegiance to Him and
fellowship with Him."
This is the meaning given by Thayer, Robinson, and, substantially, also
by Cremer-
Koegel and Baljon, in their Lexicons. It is also that adopted by the
commentators, such
as Meyer, Alford, Allen, Bruce, Grosheide, and Van Leeuwen. This meaning
of the term
is fully borne
out by such parallel expressions as<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.13">
eis ton Mousen</span>,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.2" parsed="|1Cor|10|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:2">I Cor. 10:2</scripRef>;<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.15">
eis to onoma Paulou</span>, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.16" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.13" parsed="|1Cor|1|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:13">I Cor. 1:13</scripRef>;<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.17">
eis hen soma</span>, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.18" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.13" parsed="|1Cor|12|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:13">I Cor. 12:13</scripRef>; and<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.19">
eis Christon</span>
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.3" parsed="|Rom|6|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:3">Rom. 6:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p5.21" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.27" parsed="|Gal|3|27|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:27">Gal. 3:27</scripRef>. Dr. Kuyper's
argument touching this point is found in<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.22">
Uit het Woord, Eerste Serie, Eerste Bundel.</span><note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.23" n="41" place="foot">pp. 263 ff.</note>
It would seem that we should
translate the preposition<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.24">
eis</span>
by "into" or
"to"
(that is, "in relation to'") the name. The word<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.25">
onoma</span>
(name) is used in the sense of
the Hebrew<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.26">
shem</span>
as indicative of all the qualities by which God makes Himself known,
and which constitute the sum total of all that He is for His
worshippers. Deissman in his
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.27">Bible Studies</span><note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.28" n="42" place="foot">p. 146.</note>
refers to interesting examples of
this particular use of the word<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p5.29">
onoma</span> in
the papyri. Interpreted in this light, the baptismal formula indicates
that by baptism
(that is, by that which is signified in baptism) the recipient is placed
in a special
relationship to the divine self-revelation, or to God as He has revealed
Himself and
revealed what He will be for His people, and at the same time becomes
duty bound to
live up to the light of that revelation.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p6" shownumber="no">It is not necessary to assume that, when Jesus employed
these words, He intended
them as a formula to be used ever after. He merely used them as
descriptive of the
character of the baptism which He instituted, just as similar
expressions serve to characterize
other baptisms, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.3" parsed="|Acts|19|3|0|0" passage="Acts 19:3">Acts 19:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.13" parsed="|1Cor|1|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:13">I Cor. 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.2" parsed="|1Cor|10|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:2">10:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.13" parsed="|1Cor|12|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:13">12:13</scripRef>. It is sometimes said with
an appeal to
such passages as <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.48" parsed="|Acts|2|48|0|0" passage="Acts 2:48">Acts 2:48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.16" parsed="|Acts|8|16|0|0" passage="Acts 8:16">8:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.48" parsed="|Acts|10|48|0|0" passage="Acts 10:48">10:48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.19.5" parsed="|Acts|19|5|0|0" passage="Acts 19:5">19:5</scripRef>, and also <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.3" parsed="|Rom|6|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:3">Rom. 6:3</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.27" parsed="|Gal|3|27|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:27">Gal. 3:27</scripRef>, that the apostles evidently did not use the trinitarian formula;
but this is not
necessarily implied, though it is entirely possible since they did not
understand the
words of Jesus in the great commission as prescribing a definite
formula. It is also
possible, however, that the expressions used in the passages indicated
served to stress
certain particulars respecting the baptism of the apostles. It should be
noted that the
prepositions
differ. <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.38" parsed="|Acts|2|38|0|0" passage="Acts 2:38">Acts 2:38</scripRef> speaks of a baptism<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p6.12">
epi toi onomati Jesou Christou</span>, which
probably refers to a baptism on the confession of Jesus as the Messiah.
According to
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p6.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.48" parsed="|Acts|10|48|0|0" passage="Acts 10:48">Acts 10:48</scripRef> those who were present in the house of Cornelius were
baptized<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p6.14">
en onomati Jesou Christou</span>, to indicate that they were baptized on the authority of Jesus. All the
remaining
passages mention a baptism<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p6.15">
eis to
onoma Jesou Christou</span>
(<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p6.16">or tou kuriou Jesou</span>), or simply a baptism<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p6.17">
eis Christon.</span>
These expressions
may simply serve to stress the fact that
the recipients were brought into special relationship to Jesus Christ,
whom the apostles
were preaching, and were thereby made subject to Him as their Lord. But
whatever may have been the practice in the apostolic age, it is quite evident
that when the Church later
on felt the need of a formula, it could find no better than that
contained in the words of
the institution. This formula was already in use when the Didache (<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p6.18">The Teaching of the Twelve Apostles</span>) was written (c. 100 A.D.).<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p6.19" n="43" place="foot">Cf. Chapter VII.</note></p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.iv-p6.20">C. THE DOCTRINE OF BAPTISM IN HISTORY.</h4>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p7" shownumber="no">1. BEFORE THE REFORMATION. The early Fathers regarded baptism as the rite of
initiation into the Church, and usually considered it as closely
connected with the
forgiveness of sins and the communication of the new life. Some of their
expressions
would seem to indicate that they believed in baptismal regeneration. At
the same time it
should be noted that in the case of adults they did not regard baptism
as efficacious
apart from the right disposition of the soul, and they did not consider
baptism as
absolutely essential to the initiation of the new life, but rather
looked upon it as the
completing element in the process of renewal. Infant baptism was already
current in the
days of Origen and Tertullian, though the latter discouraged it on the
grounds of
expediency. The general opinion was that baptism should never be
repeated, but there
was no unanimity as to the validity of baptism administered by heretics.
In course of time, however, it became a fixed principle not to re-baptize those
who were baptized
into the name of the triune God. The mode of baptism was not in dispute.
From the second century on the idea gradually gained ground that baptism works
more or less
magically. Even Augustine seems to have considered baptism as effective<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p7.1">
ex opere operato </span>
in the case of children. He regarded baptism as absolutely necessary and
held that
unbaptized children are lost. According to him baptism cancels original
guilt, but does
not wholly remove the corruption of nature. The Scholastics at first
shared Augustine's
view, that in the case of adults baptism presupposes faith, but
gradually another idea
gained the upper hand, namely, that baptism is always effective<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p7.2">
ex opere operato.</span>
The
importance of subjective conditions was minimized. Thus the
characteristic Roman
Catholic conception of the sacrament, according to which baptism is the
sacrament of
regeneration and of initiation into the Church, gradually gained the
upper hand. It
contains the grace which it signifies and confers this on all those who
put no obstacle in
the way. This grace was regarded as very important, since (a) it sets an
indelible mark
on the recipient as a member of the Church; (b) delivers from the guilt
of original sin
and of all actual sins committed up to the time of baptism, removes the
pollution of sin,
though concupiscence remains, and sets man free from eternal punishment
and from all
positive temporal punishments; (c) works spiritual renewal by the
infusion of
sanctifying grace and of the supernatural virtues of faith, hope, and
love; and (d)
incorporates the recipient into the communion of the saints and into the
visible Church.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p8" shownumber="no">2. SINCE THE REFORMATION. The Lutheran Reformation did not entirely rid itself of
the Roman Catholic conception of the sacraments. Luther did not regard
the water in
baptism as common water, but as a water which had become, through the
Word with its
inherent divine power, a gracious water of life, a washing of
regeneration. Through this
divine efficacy of the Word the sacrament effects regeneration. In the
case of adults
Luther made the effect of baptism dependent on faith in the recipient.
Realizing that he
could not consider it so in the case of children, who cannot exercise
faith, he at one time held that God by His prevenient grace works faith in the
unconscious child, but later on
professed ignorance on this point. Later Lutheran theologians retained
the idea of an
infant-faith as a precondition for baptism, while others conceived of
baptism as
producing such a faith immediately. This in some cases led on to the idea
that the
sacrament works<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p8.1">
ex opere
operato.</span>
Anabaptists cut the Gordian knot of Luther by
denying the legitimacy of infant baptism. They insisted on baptizing all
applicants for
admission to their circle, who had received the sacrament in infancy,
and did not regard
this as a re-baptism, but as the first true baptism. With them children
had no standing in
the Church. Calvin and Reformed theology proceeded on the assumption that
baptism
is instituted for believers, and does not work but strengthens the new
life. They were
naturally confronted with the question as to how infants could be
regarded as believers,
and how they could be strengthened spiritually, seeing that they could
not yet exercise
faith. Some simply pointed out that infants born of believing parents
are children of the
covenant, and as such heirs of the promises of God, including also the
promise of
regeneration; and that the spiritual efficacy of baptism is not limited
to the time of its
administration, but continues through life. The Belgic Confession also
expresses that
idea in these words: "Neither does this baptism avail us only at
the time when water is
poured upon us, and received by us, but also through the whole course of
our life."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p8.2" n="44" place="foot">Art. XXXIV.</note>
Others went beyond this position and maintained that the children of the
covenant were
to be regarded as<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p8.3"> presumptively</span>
regenerated. This
is not equivalent to saying that they
are all regenerated, when they are presented for baptism, but that they
are assumed to
be regenerated until the contrary appears from their
lives. There were also a few who
regarded baptism as nothing more than the sign of an external covenant.
Under the
influence of Socinians, Arminians, Anabaptists, and Rationalists,
it has become quite
customary in many circles to deny that baptism is a seal of divine
grace, and to regard it
as a mere act of profession on the part of man. In our day many
professing Christians have completely lost the consciousness of the spiritual
significance of baptism. It has
become a mere
formality.</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.iv-p8.4">D. THE PROPER MODE OF BAPTISM.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.iv-p9" shownumber="no">Baptists are at variance with the rest of the Christian
world in their position that
dipping or immersion, followed by emersion, is the only proper mode of
baptism; and
that this mode is absolutely essential to baptism, because this rite is
intended to
symbolize the death and resurrection of Jesus Christ, and the consequent
death and
resurrection of the subject of baptism with Him. Two questions arise,
therefore, and it is
best to consider them in the following order: (1) What is the essential
thing in the
symbolism of baptism? and (2) Is immersion the only proper mode of
baptism? This
order is preferable, because the former question is the more important
of the two, and because the answer to the second will depend in part on that
given to the first.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p10" shownumber="no">1. WHAT IS THE ESSENTIAL THING IN THE SYMBOLISM OF BAPTISM? According to
the
Baptists immersion, followed by emersion, is the essential thing in the
symbolism of
baptism. A surrender of this would be equivalent to giving up baptism
itself. The real
baptismal idea, they say, is expressed in the going down into, and the
coming up out of, the water. That such an immersion naturally involves a
certain washing or purification,
is something purely accidental. Baptism would be baptism even if one
were immersed in something that has no cleansing properties. They base their opinion
on <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.38" parsed="|Mark|10|38|0|0" passage="Mark 10:38">Mark 10:38</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.39" parsed="|Mark|10|39|0|0" passage="Mark 10:39">39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.50" parsed="|Luke|12|50|0|0" passage="Luke 12:50">Luke 12:50</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.3" parsed="|Rom|6|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:3">Rom. 6:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.4" parsed="|Rom|6|4|0|0" passage="Rom 6:4">4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.12" parsed="|Col|2|12|0|0" passage="Col. 2:12">Col. 2:12</scripRef>. But the first two passages merely express the
idea that Christ would be overwhelmed by His coming sufferings, and do
not speak of
the sacrament of baptism at all. The last two are the only ones that
really have any
bearing on the matter, and even these are not to the point, for they do
not speak directly of any baptism with water at all, but of the spiritual
baptism thereby represented. They
represent regeneration under the figure of a dying and a rising again.
It is certainly
perfectly obvious that they do not make mention of baptism as an emblem
of Christ's
death and resurrection. If baptism were represented here at all as an
emblem, it would
be as an emblem of the believer's dying and rising again. And since this
is only a
figurative way of representing his regeneration, it would make baptism a
figure of a figure.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p11" shownumber="no">Reformed theology has an entirely different conception of
the essential thing in the
symbolism of baptism. It finds this in the idea of purification. The
Heidelberg
Catechism asks in Question 69: "How is it signified and sealed unto
you in holy baptism
that you have a part in the one sacrifice of Christ on the cross?"
And it answers: "Thus,
that Christ has appointed the outward washing with water and added the
promise that
I am washed with His blood and Spirit from the pollution of my soul,
that is, from all
my sins, as certainly as I am washed outwardly with water, by which the
filthiness of
the body is commonly washed away." This idea of purification was
the pertinent thing in all the washings of the Old Testament, and also in the
baptism of John, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.7" parsed="|Ps|51|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:7">Ps. 51:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.25" parsed="|Ezek|36|25|0|0" passage="Ezek. 36:25">Ezek. 36:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:John.3.25" parsed="|John|3|25|0|0" passage="John 3:25">John 3:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:John.3.26" parsed="|John|3|26|0|0" passage="John 3:26">26</scripRef>. And we may assume that in this respect the baptism
of Jesus was
entirely in line with previous baptisms. If He had intended the baptism
which He
instituted as a symbol of something entirely different, He would have
indicated this
very clearly, in order to obviate all possible misunderstanding.
Moreover, Scripture
makes it abundantly clear that baptism symbolizes spiritual cleansing or
purification, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.38" parsed="|Acts|2|38|0|0" passage="Acts 2:38">Acts 2:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.22.16" parsed="|Acts|22|16|0|0" passage="Acts 22:16">22:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.4" parsed="|Rom|6|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:4">Rom. 6:4</scripRef> f.; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.11" parsed="|1Cor|6|11|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:11">I Cor. 6:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.5" parsed="|Titus|3|5|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:5">Tit. 3:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.22" parsed="|Heb|10|22|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:22">Heb. 10:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.21" parsed="|1Pet|3|21|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:21">I Pet. 3:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.5" parsed="|Rev|1|5|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:5">Rev. 1:5</scripRef>. This is
exactly the point on which the Bible places all emphasis, while it never
represents the
going down and coming up as something essential.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p12" shownumber="no">2. IS IMMERSION THE ONLY PROPER MODE OF BAPTISM? The generally prevailing opinion
outside of Baptist circles is that, as long as the fundamental idea,
namely, that of
purification, finds expression in the rite, the mode of baptism is quite
immaterial. It may
be administered by immersion, by pouring or effusion, or by sprinkling.
The Bible
simply uses a generic word to denote an action designed to produce a
certain effect,
namely, cleansing or purification, but nowhere determines the specific
mode in which
the effect is to be produced. Jesus did not prescribe a certain mode of
baptism. He
evidently did not attach as much importance to it as the Baptists do.
Neither do the
Biblical examples of baptism stress any particular mode. There is not a
single case in
which we are explicitly told just how baptism was administered. The
Baptists assert,
however, that the Lord did command baptism by immersion, and that all
those who
administer it in a different way are acting in open disobedience to His
authority. To prove their assertion, they appeal to the words<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p12.1">
bapto</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p12.2">
baptizo</span>, which are used in
Scripture for "to baptize." The second word seems to be an
intensive or frequentative
form of the first, though in general usage the distinction does not
always hold.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p12.3">
Bapto</span>
is frequently used in the Old Testament, but occurs in the New Testament
only four times,
namely, in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.24" parsed="|Luke|16|24|0|0" passage="Luke 16:24">Luke 16:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:John.13.26" parsed="|John|13|26|0|0" passage="John 13:26">John 13:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.19.13" parsed="|Rev|19|13|0|0" passage="Rev. 19:13">Rev. 19:13</scripRef>, and in these cases does not refer to
Christian baptism. Baptists were very confident at one time that this
verb means only
"to dip"; but many of them have changed their mind since
Carson, one of their greatest
authorities, came to the conclusion that it also has a secondary meaning,
namely, "to
dye," so
that it came to mean "to dye by dipping," and even, "to dye in
any manner," in
which case it ceased to be expressive of mode.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p12.7" n="45" place="foot">Carson, <span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p12.8">Baptism in its Mode and Subjects,</span> pp. 44 ff.</note></p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p13" shownumber="no">The question further arose, whether <span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p13.1">baptizo</span>, which is used 76 times, and which is the word employed by the Lord in
the
words of the institution, was derived from<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p13.2">
bapto</span>
in its<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p13.3">
primary</span>
or in its<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p13.4">
secondary </span>
meaning. And Dr. Carson answers that it is derived from<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p13.5">
bapto</span>
in the sense of "to dip."
Says he: "<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p13.6">
Bapto</span>, the root, I have shown to possess two meanings,
and two only, 'to dip'
and 'to dye.'<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p13.7">
Baptizo</span>, I have asserted, has but one
signification. It has been founded on  the
primary meaning of the root, and has never admitted the secondary.... My position is,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p13.8">
that it always
signifies to dip; never expressing anything but mode."</span><note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p13.9" n="46" place="foot">Op. cit., p. 55</note>
The Baptists must
maintain this, if they want to prove that the Lord commanded baptism by
immersion.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p14" shownumber="no">But the facts, as they appear in both classical and New
Testament Greek, do not
warrant this position. Even Dr. Gale, who was perhaps the most learned
author who
sought to maintain it, felt constrained by the facts to
modify it. Wilson in his splendid
work on<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.1">
Infant Baptism</span>, which is partly a reply to the work of Dr. Carson, quotes Gale as
saying:
"The word<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.2">
baptizo</span>
perhaps<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.3">
does not so necessarily express the action of putting
under water</span>, as in general a thing's being in that condition,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.4">
no matter how it comes to be so, whether it is put into the water, or the water comes over
it</span>;
though, indeed, to put into the
water is the most natural way and the most common, and is, therefore,
usually and
pretty constantly, but it may be not necessarily, implied."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.5" n="47" place="foot">p. 47</note>
 Wilson shows conclusively that, according to Greek usage, baptism is effected in various ways.
Says he: "Let the
baptizing element encompass its object, and in the case of liquids,
whether this relative
state has been produced by immersion, effusion, overwhelming, or in any
other mode,
Greek usage recognizes it as a valid baptism." He further goes on
to show in detail that
it is impossible to maintain the position that the word<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.6">
baptizo</span>
always signifies
immersion in the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.7">
New Testament.</span><note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.8" n="48" place="foot">For the various possible meanings of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.9"> baptizo</span> consult, besides the treatise of Wilson, already referred to, such works as those of Armstrong,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.10"> The Doctrine of Baptisms</span>; Seiss,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.11"> The Baptist System Examined</span>; Ayres, <span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.12">Christian Baptism</span>; Hibbard,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p14.13"> Christian Baptism. </span></note></p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p15" shownumber="no">It is quite evident that both words,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p15.1">
bapto</span>
and<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p15.2">
baptizo</span>, had other meanings, such as
"to
wash," "to bathe," and to "purify by washing." The
idea of washing or purification
gradually became the prominent idea, while that of the manner in which
this took place
retired more and more into the background. That this purification was
sometimes
effected by
sprinkling, is evident from <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Num.8.7" parsed="|Num|8|7|0|0" passage="Num. 8:7">Num. 8:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Num.19.13" parsed="|Num|19|13|0|0" passage="Num 19:13">19:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Num.19.18" parsed="|Num|19|18|0|0" passage="Num 19:18">18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Num.19.19" parsed="|Num|19|19|0|0" passage="Num 19:19">19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:Num.19.20" parsed="|Num|19|20|0|0" passage="Num 19:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.7" parsed="|Ps|51|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:7">Ps. 51:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.25" parsed="|Ezek|36|25|0|0" passage="Ezek. 36:25">Ezek. 36:25</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.10" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.10" parsed="|Heb|9|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:10">Heb. 9:10</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.11" osisRef="Bible:Jdt.12.7" parsed="|Jdt|12|7|0|0" passage="Judith 12:7">Judith 12:7</scripRef> and <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.12" osisRef="Bible:Mark.7.3" parsed="|Mark|7|3|0|0" passage="Mark 7:3">Mark 7:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.13" osisRef="Bible:Mark.7.4" parsed="|Mark|7|4|0|0" passage="Mark 7:4">4</scripRef> we cannot possibly think of
dipping. Neither is
this possible in connection with the following passages of the New
Testament: <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.3.11" parsed="|Matt|3|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 3:11">Matt. 3:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.15" osisRef="Bible:Luke.11.37" parsed="|Luke|11|37|0|0" passage="Luke 11:37">Luke 11:37</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.16" osisRef="Bible:Luke.11.38" parsed="|Luke|11|38|0|0" passage="Luke 11:38">38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.17" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.50" parsed="|Luke|12|50|0|0" passage="Luke 12:50">12:50</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.18" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.3" parsed="|Rom|6|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:3">Rom. 6:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.19" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.13" parsed="|1Cor|12|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:13">I Cor. 12:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.20" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.10" parsed="|Heb|9|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:10">Heb. 9:10</scripRef> (cf.
verses 13,14,19, 21); <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.21" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.1" parsed="|1Cor|10|1|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:1">I Cor. 10:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.22" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.2" parsed="|1Cor|10|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:2">2</scripRef>. Since
the word<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p15.23">
baptizo</span>
does not
necessarily mean "to immerse," and because the
New Testament does not in any case explicitly assert that baptism took
place by
immersion, the burden of proof would seem to rest on the Baptists. Was
John the Baptist
capable of the enormous task of immersing the multitudes that flocked
unto him at the
river Jordan, or did he simply pour water on them as some of the early
inscriptions
would seem to indicate? Did the apostles find enough water in Jerusalem,
and did they
have the necessary facilities, to baptize three thousand in a single day
by immersion?
Where is the evidence to prove that they followed any other method than
the Old
Testament mode of baptisms? Does <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.24" osisRef="Bible:Acts.9.18" parsed="|Acts|9|18|0|0" passage="Acts 9:18">Acts 9:18</scripRef> indicate in any way that Paul
left the place
where Ananias found him, to be immersed in some pool or river? Does not
the account
of the baptism of Cornelius create the impression that water was to be
brought and that those present were baptized right in the house? <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.25" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.47" parsed="|Acts|10|47|0|0" passage="Acts 10:47">Acts 10:47</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.26" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.48" parsed="|Acts|10|48|0|0" passage="Acts 10:48">48</scripRef>.
Is there any evidence that
the jailor at Philippi was not baptized in or near the prison, but led
his prisoners out to
the river, in order that he might be immersed? Would he have dared to
take them
outside of the city, when he was commanded to keep them safely? <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.27" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.22-Acts.16.33" parsed="|Acts|16|22|16|33" passage="Acts 16:22-33">Acts 16:22-33</scripRef>. Even
the account of the baptism of the eunuch, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.28" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.36" parsed="|Acts|8|36|0|0" passage="Acts 8:36">Acts 8:36</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.29" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.38" parsed="|Acts|8|38|0|0" passage="Acts 8:38">38</scripRef>, which is often
regarded as the
strongest Scriptural proof for baptism by immersion, cannot be regarded
as conclusive
evidence. A careful study of Luke's use of the preposition<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p15.30">
eis</span>
shows that he used it not
only in the sense of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p15.31">
into</span>
but also in the sense of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p15.32">
to</span>
so that it
is entirely possible to read the relevant statement in verse 38 as follows: "and they both went
down to the water,
both Philip and the eunuch, and he baptized him." And even if the
words were
intended to convey the idea that they went down<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p15.33">
into</span>
the water, this does not yet prove
the point, for according to pictorial representations of the early
centuries they who were
baptized by effusion often stood in the water. It is entirely possible,
of course, that in the
apostolic age some were baptized by immersion, but the fact that the New
Testament
nowhere insists on this proves that it was not essential. Immersion is a
proper mode of
baptism, but so is baptism by effusion or by sprinkling, since they all
symbolize
purification. The passages referred to in the preceding prove that many
Old Testament
washings (baptizings) took place by sprinkling. In a prophecy respecting
the spiritual
renewal of the New Testament day the Lord says: "And I will
sprinkle clean water upon
you, and ye shall be clean," <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.34" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.36.25" parsed="|Ezek|36|25|0|0" passage="Ezek. 36:25">Ezek. 36:25</scripRef>. The matter signified in
baptism, namely, the
purifying Spirit, was poured out upon the Church, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.35" osisRef="Bible:Joel.2.28" parsed="|Joel|2|28|0|0" passage="Joel 2:28">Joel 2:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.36" osisRef="Bible:Joel.2.29" parsed="|Joel|2|29|0|0" passage="Joel 2:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.37" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.4" parsed="|Acts|2|4|0|0" passage="Acts 2:4">Acts
2:4</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.38" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.33" parsed="|Acts|2|33|0|0" passage="Acts 2:33">33</scripRef>. And the
writer of Hebrews speaks of his readers as having their hearts sprinkled
from an evil
conscience, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p15.39" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.22" parsed="|Heb|10|22|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:22">Heb. 10:22</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.iv-p15.40">E. THE LAWFUL ADMINISTRATORS OF BAPTISM.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.iv-p16" shownumber="no">Roman Catholics consider baptism absolutely essential to
salvation; and because
they regard it as cruel to make the salvation of anyone dependent on the
accidental
presence or absence of a priest, they also in cases of emergency permit
baptism by
others, particularly by midwives. In spite of the contrary view of
Cyprian, they
recognize the baptism of heretics, unless their heresy involves a denial
of the Trinity. The Reformed Churches always acted on the principle that the
administration of the
Word and of the sacraments belong together, and that therefore the
teaching elder or the
minister is the only lawful administrator of baptism. The Word and the
sacrament are
joined together in the words of the institution. And because baptism is
not a private
matter, but an ordinance of the Church, they also hold that it should be
administered in
the public assembly of believers. They have generally recognized the
baptism of other
Churches, not excluding the Roman Catholics, and also of the various
sects, except in
the case of Churches and sects which denied the Trinity. Thus they refused
to honour
the baptism of the Socinians and of the Unitarians. In general, they
considered a
baptism as valid which was administered by a duly accredited minister and
in the name
of the triune God. </p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.iv-p16.1">F. THE PROPER SUBJECTS OF BAPTISM.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.iv-p17" shownumber="no">Baptism is intended only for properly qualified rational
beings, namely, for believers
and their children. Rome loses sight of this in so far as it applies the
sacrament also to
clocks, buildings, and so on. There are two classes to which it should
be applied,
namely, adults and infants.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p18" shownumber="no">1. ADULT BAPTISM. In the case of
adults baptism must be preceded by a profession of
faith, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">Mark 16:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.41" parsed="|Acts|2|41|0|0" passage="Acts 2:41">Acts 2:41</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.37" parsed="|Acts|8|37|0|0" passage="Acts 8:37">8:37</scripRef> (not found in some MSS.); 16:31-33. Therefore the
Church insists on such a profession before baptizing adults. And when
such a
profession is made, this is accepted by the Church at its face value,
unless she has good
objective reasons for doubting its veracity. It does not belong to her
province to pry into
the secrets of the heart and thus to pass on the genuineness of such a
profession. The responsibility rests on the person who makes it. The method of
prying into the inner
condition of the heart, in order to determine the genuineness of one's
profession, is
Labadistic and not in harmony with the practice of the Reformed
Churches. Since
baptism is not merely a sign and seal, but also a means of grace, the
question arises as to
the nature of the grace wrought by it. This question is raised here only
with respect to
adult baptism. In view of the fact that according to our Reformed
conception, this
baptism presupposes regeneration, faith, conversion, and justification,
these surely are
not to be conceived as wrought by it. In this respect we differ from the
Church of Rome.
Even the Lutherans, who ascribe greater power to baptism as a means of
grace than the
Reformed do, agree with the latter on this point. Neither does baptism
work a special
sacramental grace, consisting in this that the recipient is implanted
into the body of
Jesus Christ. The believer's incorporation into mystical union with
Christ is also
presupposed. Word and sacrament work exactly the same kind of grace,
except that the
Word, in distinction from the sacrament, is also instrumental in the
origination of faith.
The sacrament of baptism strengthens faith, and because faith plays an
important part
in all the other operations of divine grace, these are also greatly
benefited by it. Baptism
represents primarily an act of the grace of God, but because the
professing Christian
must voluntarily submit to it, it can also be considered from the side
of man. There is in
it an offer and gift of God, but also an acceptance on the part of man.
Consequently,
baptism also signifies that man accepts the covenant and assumes its
obligations. It is a
seal, not merely of an offered, but of an offered and accepted, that is,
of a concluded
covenant. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p19" shownumber="no">2. INFANT BAPTISM. It is on the point of infant baptism that the most
important
difference is found between us and the Baptists. The latter hold, as Dr.
Hovey, a Baptist
author, expresses it, "that only believers in Christ are entitled
to baptism, and that only
those who give credible evidence of faith in Him should be
baptized." This means that
children are excluded from the sacrament. In all other denominations,
however, they
receive it. Several points call for consideration in connection with
this subject.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p20" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p20.1">
The Scriptural basis for infant baptism.</span>
It may be said
at the outset that there is no
explicit command in the Bible to baptize children, and that there is not
a single instance
in which we are plainly told that children were baptized. But this does
not necessarily
make infant baptism un-Biblical. The Scriptural ground for it is found
in the following data:</p>
<p id="vii.ii.iv-p21" shownumber="no">(1) The covenant made with Abraham was primarily a<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p21.1">
spiritual</span>
covenant, though it
also had a national aspect, and of this spiritual covenant circumcision
was a sign and
seal. It is an unwarranted procedure of the Baptists to split this
covenant up into two of
three different covenants. The Bible refers to the covenant with Abraham
several times,
but always in
the singular, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.2.24" parsed="|Exod|2|24|0|0" passage="Ex. 2:24">Ex. 2:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Lev.26.42" parsed="|Lev|26|42|0|0" passage="Lev. 26:42">Lev. 26:42</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:2Kgs.13.23" parsed="|2Kgs|13|23|0|0" passage="II Kings 13:23">II Kings 13:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:1Chr.16.16" parsed="|1Chr|16|16|0|0" passage="I Chron. 16:16">I Chron. 16:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.105.9" parsed="|Ps|105|9|0|0" passage="Ps. 105:9">Ps. 105:9</scripRef>.
There is not a single exception to this rule. The spiritual nature of
this covenant is
proved by the manner in which its promises are interpreted in the New
Testament,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.16-Rom.4.18" parsed="|Rom|4|16|4|18" passage="Rom. 4:16-18">Rom. 4:16-18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.8" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.6.16-2Cor.6.18" parsed="|2Cor|6|16|6|18" passage="II Cor. 6:16-18">II Cor. 6:16-18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.9" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.8" parsed="|Gal|3|8|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:8">Gal. 3:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.9" parsed="|Gal|3|9|0|0" passage="Gal 3:9">9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.11" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.14" parsed="|Gal|3|14|0|0" passage="Gal 3:14">14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.12" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.16" parsed="|Gal|3|16|0|0" passage="Gal 3:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.13" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.10" parsed="|Heb|8|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 8:10">Heb. 8:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.14" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.9" parsed="|Heb|11|9|0|0" passage="Heb 11:9">11:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.15" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.10" parsed="|Heb|11|10|0|0" passage="Heb 11:10">10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.16" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.13" parsed="|Heb|11|13|0|0" passage="Heb 11:13">13</scripRef>. It also follows from
the fact that circumcision was clearly a rite that had spiritual
significance, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.17" osisRef="Bible:Deut.10.16" parsed="|Deut|10|16|0|0" passage="Deut. 10:16">Deut. 10:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.18" osisRef="Bible:Deut.30.6" parsed="|Deut|30|6|0|0" passage="Deut 30:6">30:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.19" osisRef="Bible:Jer.4.4" parsed="|Jer|4|4|0|0" passage="Jer. 4:4">Jer. 4:4</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.20" osisRef="Bible:Jer.9.25" parsed="|Jer|9|25|0|0" passage="Jer 9:25">9:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.21" osisRef="Bible:Jer.9.26" parsed="|Jer|9|26|0|0" passage="Jer 9:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.22" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.1" parsed="|Acts|15|1|0|0" passage="Acts 15:1">Acts 15:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.23" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.26-Rom.2.29" parsed="|Rom|2|26|2|29" passage="Rom. 2:26-29">Rom. 2:26-29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.24" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.11" parsed="|Rom|4|11|0|0" passage="Rom 4:11">4:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.25" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.2" parsed="|Phil|3|2|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:2">Phil. 3:2</scripRef>; and from the fact that the
promise of the
covenant is even called "the gospel," <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p21.26" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.8" parsed="|Gal|3|8|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:8">Gal. 3:8</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p22" shownumber="no">(2) This covenant is still in force and is essentially
identical with the "new covenant"
of the present dispensation. The unity and continuity of the covenant in
both
dispensations follows from the fact that the Mediator is the same, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.4.12" parsed="|Acts|4|12|0|0" passage="Acts 4:12">Acts 4:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.43" parsed="|Acts|10|43|0|0" passage="Acts 10:43">10:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.10" parsed="|Acts|15|10|0|0" passage="Acts 15:10">15:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.11" parsed="|Acts|15|11|0|0" passage="Acts 15:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.16" parsed="|Gal|3|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:16">Gal. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.5" parsed="|1Tim|2|5|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:5">I Tim. 2:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2.6" parsed="|1Tim|2|6|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.9-1Pet.1.12" parsed="|1Pet|1|9|1|12" passage="I Pet. 1:9-12">I Pet. 1:9-12</scripRef>; the condition is the same, namely, faith,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:Gen.15.6" parsed="|Gen|15|6|0|0" passage="Gen. 15:6">Gen. 15:6</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.3" parsed="|Rom|4|3|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:3">Rom. 4:3</scripRef>); <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.10" parsed="|Ps|32|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 32:10">Ps. 32:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.4" parsed="|Heb|2|4|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:4">Heb. 2:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.13" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.43" parsed="|Acts|10|43|0|0" passage="Acts 10:43">Acts 10:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.14" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11" parsed="|Heb|11|0|0|0" passage="Heb. 11">Heb. 11</scripRef>; and the blessings are the same,
namely, justification, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.1" parsed="|Ps|32|1|0|0" passage="Ps. 32:1">Ps. 32:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.2" parsed="|Ps|32|2|0|0" passage="Ps 32:2">2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.32.5" parsed="|Ps|32|5|0|0" passage="Ps 32:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.18" osisRef="Bible:Isa.1.18" parsed="|Isa|1|18|0|0" passage="Isa. 1:18">Isa. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.19" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.9" parsed="|Rom|4|9|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:9">Rom. 4:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.20" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.6" parsed="|Gal|3|6|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:6">Gal. 3:6</scripRef>,
regeneration, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.21" osisRef="Bible:Deut.30.6" parsed="|Deut|30|6|0|0" passage="Deut. 30:6">Deut. 30:6</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.22" osisRef="Bible:Ps.51.10" parsed="|Ps|51|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 51:10">Ps. 51:10</scripRef>,
spiritual gifts, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.23" osisRef="Bible:Joel.2.28" parsed="|Joel|2|28|0|0" passage="Joel 2:28">Joel 2:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.24" osisRef="Bible:Joel.2.32" parsed="|Joel|2|32|0|0" passage="Joel 2:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.25" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.17-Acts.2.21" parsed="|Acts|2|17|2|21" passage="Acts 2:17-21">Acts 2:17-21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.26" osisRef="Bible:Isa.40.31" parsed="|Isa|40|31|0|0" passage="Isa. 40:31">Isa. 40:31</scripRef>, and eternal life, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.27" osisRef="Bible:Exod.3.6" parsed="|Exod|3|6|0|0" passage="Ex. 3:6">Ex. 3:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.28" osisRef="Bible:Heb.4.9" parsed="|Heb|4|9|0|0" passage="Heb. 4:9">Heb. 4:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.29" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.10" parsed="|Heb|11|10|0|0" passage="Heb 11:10">11:10</scripRef>. Peter gave those who were under conviction on the day of
Pentecost the
assurance that the promise was unto them and to their children, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.30" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.39" parsed="|Acts|2|39|0|0" passage="Acts 2:39">Acts 2:39</scripRef>. Paul argues
in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.31" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.13-Rom.4.18" parsed="|Rom|4|13|4|18" passage="Rom. 4:13-18">Rom. 4:13-18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.32" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13-Gal.3.18" parsed="|Gal|3|13|3|18" passage="Gal. 3:13-18">Gal. 3:13-18</scripRef> that the giving of the law did not make
the promise of none
effect, so that it still holds in the new dispensation. And the writer
of Hebrews points
out that the promise to Abraham was confirmed with an oath, so that New
Testament
believers may derive comfort from its immutability, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p22.33" osisRef="Bible:Heb.6.13-Heb.6.18" parsed="|Heb|6|13|6|18" passage="Heb. 6:13-18">Heb. 6:13-18</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p23" shownumber="no">(3) By the appointment of God infants shared in the
benefits of the covenant, and
therefore received circumcision as a sign and seal. According to the
Bible the covenant is
clearly an organic concept, and its realization moves along organic and
historical lines.
There is a people or nation of God, an organic whole such as could only
be constituted
by families. This national idea is naturally very prominent in the Old
Testament, but the
striking thing is that it did not disappear when the nation of Israel had
served its
purpose. It was spiritualized and thus carried over into the New
Testament, so that the
New Testament people of God are also represented as a nation, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.43" parsed="|Matt|21|43|0|0" passage="Matt. 21:43">Matt. 21:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.25" parsed="|Rom|9|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:25">Rom. 9:25</scripRef>.26
(comp. <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Hos.2.23" parsed="|Hos|2|23|0|0" passage="Hosea 2:23">Hosea 2:23</scripRef>); <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.6.16" parsed="|2Cor|6|16|0|0" passage="II Cor. 6:16">II Cor. 6:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.5" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.14" parsed="|Titus|2|14|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:14">Tit. 2:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.6" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.9" parsed="|1Pet|2|9|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:9">I Pet. 2:9</scripRef>. Infants were considered during the
old dispensation as an integral part of Israel as the people of God.
They were present
when the covenant was renewed, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.7" osisRef="Bible:Deut.29.10" parsed="|Deut|29|10|0|0" passage="Deut. 29:10">Deut. 29:10</scripRef>:13; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.8" osisRef="Bible:Josh.8.35" parsed="|Josh|8|35|0|0" passage="Josh. 8:35">Josh. 8:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.9" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.20.13" parsed="|2Chr|20|13|0|0" passage="II Chron. 20:13">II Chron. 20:13</scripRef>, had a
standing in the congregation of Israel, and were therefore present in
their religious
assemblies, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.10" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.20.13" parsed="|2Chr|20|13|0|0" passage="II Chron. 20:13">II Chron. 20:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.11" osisRef="Bible:Joel.2.16" parsed="|Joel|2|16|0|0" passage="Joel 2:16">Joel 2:16</scripRef>. In view of such rich promises as those in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.54.13" parsed="|Isa|54|13|0|0" passage="Isa. 54:13">Isa. 54:13</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.13" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.34" parsed="|Jer|31|34|0|0" passage="Jer. 31:34">Jer. 31:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.14" osisRef="Bible:Joel.2.28" parsed="|Joel|2|28|0|0" passage="Joel 2:28">Joel 2:28</scripRef> we would hardly expect the privileges of such
children to be reduced
in the new dispensation, and certainly would not look for their
exclusion from any
standing in the Church. Jesus and the apostles did not exclude them,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.14" parsed="|Matt|19|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:14">Matt. 19:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.16" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.39" parsed="|Acts|2|39|0|0" passage="Acts 2:39">Acts 2:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p23.17" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.7.14" parsed="|1Cor|7|14|0|0" passage="I Cor. 7:14">I Cor. 7:14</scripRef>. Such an exclusion would seem to require a very
explicit statement to  that
effect. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p24" shownumber="no">(4) In the new dispensation baptism is by divine
authority substituted for
circumcision as the initiatory sign and seal of the covenant of grace.
Scripture strongly
insists on it
that circumcision can no more serve as such, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.1" parsed="|Acts|15|1|0|0" passage="Acts 15:1">Acts 15:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.2" parsed="|Acts|15|2|0|0" passage="Acts 15:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.21.21" parsed="|Acts|21|21|0|0" passage="Acts 21:21">21:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.4" osisRef="Bible:Gal.2.3-Gal.2.5" parsed="|Gal|2|3|2|5" passage="Gal. 2:3-5">Gal. 2:3-5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.5" osisRef="Bible:Gal.5.2-Gal.5.6" parsed="|Gal|5|2|5|6" passage="Gal 5:2-6">5:2-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.6" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.12" parsed="|Gal|6|12|0|0" passage="Gal 6:12">6:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.7" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.13" parsed="|Gal|6|13|0|0" passage="Gal 6:13">13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.8" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.15" parsed="|Gal|6|15|0|0" passage="Gal 6:15">15</scripRef>. If baptism did not take its place, then the New
Testament has no
initiatory rite. But Christ clearly substituted it as such, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.19" parsed="|Matt|28|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:19">Matt. 28:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.20" parsed="|Matt|28|20|0|0" passage="Matt 28:20">20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.11" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.15" parsed="|Mark|16|15|0|0" passage="Mark 16:15">Mark 16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.12" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16</scripRef>. It
corresponds with circumcision in spiritual meaning. As circumcision
referred to the
cutting away of
sin and to a change of heart, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.13" osisRef="Bible:Deut.10.16" parsed="|Deut|10|16|0|0" passage="Deut. 10:16">Deut. 10:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.14" osisRef="Bible:Deut.30.6" parsed="|Deut|30|6|0|0" passage="Deut 30:6">30:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.15" osisRef="Bible:Jer.4.4" parsed="|Jer|4|4|0|0" passage="Jer. 4:4">Jer. 4:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.16" osisRef="Bible:Jer.9.25" parsed="|Jer|9|25|0|0" passage="Jer 9:25">9:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.17" osisRef="Bible:Jer.9.26" parsed="|Jer|9|26|0|0" passage="Jer 9:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.18" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.44.7" parsed="|Ezek|44|7|0|0" passage="Ezek. 44:7">Ezek. 44:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.19" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.44.9" parsed="|Ezek|44|9|0|0" passage="Ezek 44:9">9</scripRef>, so
baptism refers to the washing away of sin, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.20" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.38" parsed="|Acts|2|38|0|0" passage="Acts 2:38">Acts 2:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.21" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.21" parsed="|1Pet|3|21|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:21">I Pet. 3:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.22" osisRef="Bible:Titus.3.5" parsed="|Titus|3|5|0|0" passage="Tit. 3:5">Tit. 3:5</scripRef>,
and to
spiritual renewal, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.23" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.4" parsed="|Rom|6|4|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:4">Rom. 6:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.24" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.11" parsed="|Col|2|11|0|0" passage="Col. 2:11">Col. 2:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.25" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.12" parsed="|Col|2|12|0|0" passage="Col 2:12">12</scripRef>. The last passage clearly
links up circumcision
with baptism, and teaches that the Christ-circumcision, that is,
circumcision of the heart,
signified by circumcision in the flesh, was accomplished by
baptism, that is, by that
which baptism signifies. Cf. also <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.26" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.27" parsed="|Gal|3|27|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:27">Gal. 3:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.27" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.29" parsed="|Gal|3|29|0|0" passage="Gal 3:29">29</scripRef>. But if children received
the sign and seal
of the covenant in the old dispensation, the presumption is that they
surely have a right
to receive it in the new, to which the pious of the Old Testament were
taught to look
forward as a much fuller and richer dispensation. Their exclusion from
it would require
a clear and unequivocal statement to that effect, but quite the contrary
is found, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.28" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.14" parsed="|Matt|19|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:14">Matt. 19:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.29" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.39" parsed="|Acts|2|39|0|0" passage="Acts 2:39">Acts 2:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p24.30" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.7.14" parsed="|1Cor|7|14|0|0" passage="I Cor. 7:14">I Cor. 7:14</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p25" shownumber="no">(5) As was pointed out in the preceding, the New
Testament contains no direct
evidence for the practice of infant baptism in the days of the apostles.
Lambert, after considering and weighing all the available evidence, expresses
his conclusion in the
following words: "The New Testament evidence, then, seems to point
to the conclusion
that infant baptism, to say the least, was not the general custom of the
apostolic age."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p25.1" n="49" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p25.2">The Sacraments in the New Testament</span>, p. 204.</note>
But it need not surprise anyone that there is no direct mention of the
baptism of infants,
for in a missionary period like the apostolic age the emphasis would naturally
fall on
the baptism of adults. Moreover, conditions were not always favorable to
infant
baptism. Converts would not at once have a proper conception of their
covenant duties
and responsibilities. Sometimes only one of the parents was converted,
and it is quite
conceivable that the other would oppose the baptism of the children.
Frequently there
was no reasonable assurance that the parents would educate their children
piously and
religiously, and yet such assurance was necessary. At the same time the
language of the New Testament is perfectly consistent with a continuation of
the organic administration
of the covenant, which required the circumcision of children, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p25.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.14" parsed="|Matt|19|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:14">Matt. 19:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p25.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.13-Mark.10.16" parsed="|Mark|10|13|10|16" passage="Mark 10:13-16">Mark 10:13-16</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p25.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.39" parsed="|Acts|2|39|0|0" passage="Acts 2:39">Acts 2:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p25.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.7.14" parsed="|1Cor|7|14|0|0" passage="I Cor. 7:14">I Cor. 7:14</scripRef>. Moreover, the New Testament repeatedly speaks of
the baptism of
households, and gives no indication that this is regarded as something
out of the
ordinary, but
rather refers to it as a matter of course, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p25.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.15" parsed="|Acts|16|15|0|0" passage="Acts 16:15">Acts 16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p25.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.33" parsed="|Acts|16|33|0|0" passage="Acts 16:33">33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p25.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.16" parsed="|1Cor|1|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:16">I Cor. 1:16</scripRef>. It is
entirely possible, of course, but not very probable,
that none of these households
contained children. And if there were infants, it is morally certain
that they were
baptized along with the parents. The New Testament certainly contains no
evidence that
persons born and reared in Christian families may not be baptized until
they have come
to years of discretion and have professed their faith in Christ. There
is not the slightest allusion to any such practice. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p26" shownumber="no">(6)
Wall in the introduction to his<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.1">
History of Infant Baptism</span>
points out that in the
baptism of proselytes children of proselytes were often baptized along
with their
parents; but Edersheim says that there was a difference of opinion on
this point.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.2" n="50" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.3">Life and Times of Jesus the Messiah</span> II, p. 746.</note>
Naturally, even if this did happen, it would prove nothing so far as
Christian baptism is
concerned, but it would go to show that there was nothing
strange in such a procedure.
The earliest historical reference to infant baptism is found in writings
of the last half of
the second century. The Didache speaks of adult, but not of infant
baptism; and while
Justin makes mention of women who became disciples of Christ from
childhood (<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.4">ek paidon</span>), this passage does not mention baptism, and<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.5">
ek paidon</span>
does not necessarily mean infancy. Irenæus, speaking of Christ, says:
"He came to save through means of Himself
all who through Him are born again unto God, infants, and little
children, and boys, and youths, and old men."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.6" n="51" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.7">Adv. Haereses</span> II, 22,4.</note>
This passage, though it does not explicitly
mention
baptism, is generally regarded as the earliest reference to infant
baptism, since the early
Fathers so closely associated baptism with regeneration that they used
the term
"regeneration" for "baptism." That infant baptism
was quite generally practiced in the
latter part of the second century, is evident from the writings of
Tertullian, though he
himself considered it safer and more profitable to delay baptism.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.8" n="52" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.9">De Baptismo,</span> c. XVIII.</note>
Origen speaks of it as
a tradition of the apostles. Says he: "For this also it was, that
the Church had from the
apostles a tradition (or, order) to give baptism even to infants."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.10" n="53" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p26.11">comm. in Epist. ad Romanos,</span> lib. V.</note>
The Council of
Carthage (A.D. 253) takes infant baptism for granted and discusses
simply the question,
whether they may be baptized before the eighth day. From the second
century on, infant baptism is regularly recognized, though it was sometimes
neglected in practice.
Augustine inferred from the fact that it was generally practiced by the
Church
throughout the world in spite of the fact that it was not instituted in
Councils, that it
was in all probability settled by the authority of the apostles. Its
legitimacy was not
denied until the days of the Reformation, when the Anabaptists opposed
it.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p27" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p27.1"> Objections to infant baptism.</span>
A few of the
more important objections to infant
baptism call for brief consideration.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p28" shownumber="no">(1) Circumcision was merely a carnal and typical
ordinance, and as such was
destined to pass away. To put baptism in the place of circumcision, is
simply to continue
the carnal ordinance. Such carnal ordinances have no legitimate place in
the New
Testament Church. In our day this objection is raised by some
dispensationalists, such
as Bullinger and O'Hair, who claim that the baptism instituted by Jesus
is connected
with the Kingdom, and that only the baptism of the Spirit has a proper
place in the
Church. The book of Acts marks the transition from water-baptism to
Spirit-baptism.
Naturally, this argument would prove all baptism, adult as well as
infant, illegitimate. In this representation of the matter the Jewish and
Christian dispensations are placed
over against each other as carnal and spiritual, and circumcision is
said to belong to the
former. But this argument is fallacious. There is no warrant for placing
circumcision
altogether on a level with the carnal ordinances of the Mosaic law. Says
Bannerman:
"Circumcision was independent either of the introduction or
abolition of the law of
Moses; and would have continued the standing ordinance for admission into
the
Church of God as the seal of the covenant of grace, had not baptism been
expressly appointed as a substitute for it."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p28.1" n="54" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p28.2">The Church of Christ</span> II, p. 98.</note>
It may be admitted that circumcision did
acquire a
certain typical significance in the Mosaic period, but it was primarily
a sign and seal of
the covenant already made with Abraham. In so far as it was a type it
naturally ceased
with the appearance of the antitype, and even as a seal of the covenant
it made way for
an unbloody sacrament expressly instituted by Christ for the Church, and
recognized as
such by the apostles, since Christ had put an end once
for all to the shedding of blood in
connection with the work of redemption. In the light of Scripture the
position is entirely
untenable, that baptism is connected with the Kingdom rather than with
the Church,
and is therefore Jewish rather than Christian. The words of the institution
themselves
condemn this view, and so does the fact that on the birthday of the New
Testament
Church Peter required of those who were added to it that they should be
baptized. And
if it be said that Peter, being a Jew, still followed the example of
John the Baptist, it may
be pointed out that Paul, the apostle of the Gentiles, also required
that his converts be
baptized, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p28.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.15" parsed="|Acts|16|15|0|0" passage="Acts 16:15">Acts
16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p28.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.33" parsed="|Acts|16|33|0|0" passage="Acts 16:33">33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p28.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.18.8" parsed="|Acts|18|8|0|0" passage="Acts 18:8">18:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p28.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.16" parsed="|1Cor|1|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:16">I Cor. 1:16</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p29" shownumber="no"> There is no explicit command that children must be
baptized. This is perfectly
true, but does not disprove the validity of infant baptism. It should be
observed that this
objection is based on a canon of interpretation to which the Baptists
themselves are not
true when they hold that Christians are in duty bound to celebrate the
first day of the
week as their Sabbath, and that women must also partake of the Lord's
Supper; for
these are things not explicitly commanded. May not the silence of
Scripture be
construed for, rather than against, infant baptism? For twenty centuries
children had
been formally initiated into the Church, and the New Testament does not
say that this
must now cease, though it does teach that circumcision can no more serve
for this
purpose. The Lord Himself instituted another rite, and on the day of
Pentecost Peter
says to those who joined the Church that the promise is unto them and to
their children,
and further to as many as the Lord Himself shall call. This statement of
Peter at least
proves that he still had the organic conception of the covenant in mind.
Moreover, the
question may be raised how the Baptist himself can prove the correctness
of his own
position by an express command of Scripture. Does the Bible anywhere
command the
exclusion of
children from baptism? Does it command that<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p29.1">
all those who are born and reared in Christian families</span>
must profess
their faith before they are baptized? Clearly, there
are no such commands.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p30" shownumber="no">(3) A closely related objection is, that there is no
example of infant baptism in the
New Testament. It is perfectly true that the Bible does not explicitly
say that children were baptized, though it does apprise us of the fact that the rite was
administered to
whole households. The absence of all definite references to infant
baptism finds its
explanation, at least to a large extent, in the fact that Scripture
gives us a historical
record of the missionary work of the apostles, but no such record of the
work that was
carried on in the organized churches. And here, too, the tables may be
easily turned on the Baptist. Will he show us an example of the baptism of an
adult who had been born
and reared in a Christian home? There is no danger that he ever will.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p31" shownumber="no">(4) The most important objection to infant baptism raised
by the Baptists, is that,
according to Scripture, baptism is conditioned on an active faith
revealing itself in a
creditable profession. Now it is perfectly true that the Bible points to
faith as a
prerequisite for
baptism, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p31.1" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">Mark 16:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p31.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.44-Acts.10.48" parsed="|Acts|10|44|10|48" passage="Acts 10:44-48">Acts 10:44-48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p31.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.14" parsed="|Acts|16|14|0|0" passage="Acts 16:14">16:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p31.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.15" parsed="|Acts|16|15|0|0" passage="Acts 16:15">15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p31.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.31" parsed="|Acts|16|31|0|0" passage="Acts 16:31">31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p31.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.16.34" parsed="|Acts|16|34|0|0" passage="Acts 16:34">34</scripRef>. If this means that the
recipient of baptism must<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p31.7">
in all cases</span>
give
manifestations of an active faith before
baptism, then children are naturally excluded. But though the Bible
clearly indicates
that only those adults who believed were baptized, it nowhere lays down the
rule that
an active faith is absolutely essential for the reception of baptism.
Baptists refer us to the
great commission, as it is found in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p31.8" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.15" parsed="|Mark|16|15|0|0" passage="Mark 16:15">Mark 16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p31.9" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16</scripRef>. In view of the fact
that this is a
missionary command, we may proceed on the assumption that the Lord had in
mind an
active faith in those words. And though it is not explicitly stated, it
is altogether likely
that He regarded this faith as a prerequisite for the baptism of the
persons intended. But
who are they? Evidently, the adults of the nations that were to be
evangelized, and therefore the Baptist is not warranted in construing it as an
argument against infant
baptism. If he insists on doing this nevertheless, it should be pointed out
that on his
construction these words prove too much even for him, and therefore prove
nothing.
The words of our Saviour imply that faith is a prerequisite for the
baptism of those who
through the missionary efforts of the Church would be brought to Christ,
and do not
imply that it is also a prerequisite for the baptism of
children. The Baptist generalizes
this statement of the Saviour by teaching that it makes all baptism
contingent on the
active faith of the recipient. He argues as follows: Active faith is the
prerequisite of
baptism. Infants cannot exercise faith. Therefore infants may not be
baptized. But in that
way these words might also be construed into an argument against infant
salvation,
since they not only<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p31.10">
imply</span>
but<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p31.11">
explicitly state</span>
that faith (active faith) is the condition for
salvation. To be consistent the Baptist would thus find himself burdened
with the
following syllogism: Faith is the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p31.12">
conditio sine qua non</span>
of
salvation. Children cannot yet
exercise faith. Therefore children cannot be saved. But this is a
conclusion from which
the Baptist himself would shrink back.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p32" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p32.1"> The ground for infant baptism. </span></p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p33" shownumber="no">(1)<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p33.1"> The position of our confessional standards.</span>
The Belgic
Confession declares in Art. XXXIV that infants of believing parents "ought to be baptized and
sealed with the sign
of the covenant, as the children of Israel formerly were circumcized
upon the same
promises which are made to our children." The Heidelberg Catechism
answers the
question,
"Are infants also to be baptized?" as follows: "Yes, for since
they, as well as  adults, are included in the
covenant and Church of God, and since both redemption
from sin and the Holy Spirit, the Author of faith, are through the blood
of Christ
promised to them no less than to adults, they must also by baptism, as a
sign of the
covenant, be ingrafted into the Christian Church, and distinguished from
the children of
unbelievers, as was done in the old covenant or testament by
circumcision, instead of which baptism was instituted in the new
covenant."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p33.2" n="55" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p33.3">Lord's Day</span> XXVII, Q. 74.</note>
And the Canons of Dort contain
the following statement in I, Art. 17: "Since we are to judge of
the will of God from His
Word, which testifies that the children of believers are holy, not by
nature, but in virtue
of the covenant of grace, in which they together with their parents are
comprehended,
godly parents ought not to doubt the election and salvation of their
children whom it
pleases God to
call out of this life in their infancy (<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p33.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.7" parsed="|Gen|17|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 17:7">Gen. 17:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p33.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.39" parsed="|Acts|2|39|0|0" passage="Acts 2:39">Acts 2:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p33.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.7.14" parsed="|1Cor|7|14|0|0" passage="I Cor. 7:14">I Cor.
7:14</scripRef>)."
These statements of our confessional standards are entirely in line with
the position of
Calvin, that infants of believing parents, or those who have only one
believing parent,
are baptized on the basis of their covenant relationship.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p33.7" n="56" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p33.8">Inst.</span> IV. 16:6,15.</note>
The same note is struck in our
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p33.9">Form for the Baptism of Infants</span>: "Since,
then, baptism has come in the place of
circumcision, the children should be baptized as heirs of the Kingdom of
God and of
His covenant." It will be observed that all these statements are
based on the
commandment of God to circumcize the children of the covenant, for in
the last analysis
that commandment is the ground of infant baptism. On the basis of our
confessional
standards it may be said that infants of believing parents are baptized
on the ground
that they are children of the covenant, and are as such
heirs of the all-comprehensive
covenant-promises of God, which include also the promise of the
forgiveness of sins
and the gift of the Holy Spirit unto regeneration and sanctification. In
the covenant God
makes over to them a certain grant or donation in a formal and objective
way, requires
of them that they will in due time accept this by faith, and promises to
make it a living
reality in their lives by the operation of the Holy Spirit. And in view
of this fact the
Church must regard them as prospective heirs of salvation, must regard
them as under
obligation to walk in the way of the covenant, has the right to expect
that, under a
faithful covenant administration, they, speaking generally, will live in
the covenant, and is in duty bound to regard them as covenant breakers, if they do not
meet its
requirements. It is only in this way that it does full justice to the
promises of God, which
must in all their fulness be appropriated in faith by those who come to
maturity. Thus
the covenant, including the covenant promises, constitutes the objective
and legal
ground for the baptism of children. Baptism is a sign and seal of all
that is comprehended in the promises.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p34" shownumber="no">(2)<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p34.1">
Differences of opinion among Reformed theologians.</span>
Reformed
theologians did not all
agree in the past, and are not even now all unanimous, in their
representation of the
ground of infant baptism. Many theologians of the sixteenth and
seventeenth centuries
took the position described in the preceding, namely, that infants of
believers are
baptized, because they are in the covenant and are as such heirs of the
rich promises of
God including a title, not only to regeneration, but also to all the
blessings of
justification and of the renewing and sanctifying influence of the
Holy Spirit. Others,
however, while recognizing the truth of this representation, were not
wholly satisfied
with it. They stressed the fact that baptism is something more than the
seal of a promise,
or even of all the covenant promises; and that it is not merely the seal
of a future good,
but also of present spiritual possessions. The view became rather
prevalent that baptism
is administered to infants on the ground of presumptive regeneration. But
even those
who accepted this view did not all agree. Some combined this view with
the other while
others substituted it for the other. Some would proceed on the
assumption that all the
children presented for baptism are regenerated, while others would assume
this only in
connection with the elect children. The difference of opinion between
those who believe
that children of believers are baptized on the ground of their covenant
relationship and
of the covenant promise, and those who find this ground in presumptive
regeneration
persisted up to the present time and was the source of a lively controversy,
especially in
the Netherlands during the last period of the nineteenth, and the
beginning of the
twentieth, century. Dr. Kuyper at first spoke of presumptive
regeneration as the ground
of infant baptism, and many readily accepted this view. G. Kramer wrote
his splendid
thesis on<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p34.2">
Het Verband van Doop en Wedergeboorte</span>
especially in
defense of this position. Later on Dr. Kuyper did not use this expression any more, and some of
his followers felt
the need of more careful discrimination and spoke of the covenant
relationship as the
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p34.3">legal</span>, and presumptive regeneration as the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p34.4">
spiritual</span>
ground of infant
baptism. But even
this is not a satisfactory position. Dr. Honig, who is also a disciple
and admirer of
Kuyper, is on
the right track when he says in his recent<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p34.5">
Handboek van de Gereformeerde Dogmatiek</span><note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p34.6" n="57" place="foot">p. 655.</note>
"We do not baptize the
children of believers on the ground of an
assumption, but on the ground of a command and an act of God. Children
must be
baptized in virtue of the covenant of God" (translation mine).
Presumptive regeneration
naturally cannot be regarded as the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p34.7">
legal</span>
ground of infant
baptism; this can be found
only in the covenant promise of God. Moreover, it cannot be the ground
in any sense of the word, since the ground of baptism must be something
objective, as the advocates of
the view in question themselves are constrained to admit. If they are
asked, why they
assume the regeneration of children presented for baptism, they can only
answer,
Because they are born of believing parents, that is, because they are
born in the
covenant. Naturally, to deny that presumptive regeneration is the ground
of infant
baptism, is not equivalent to saying that it is entirely unwarranted to
assume that infant
children of believers are regenerated. This is a question that must be
considered on its
own merits.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p35" shownumber="no">It may be well to quote in this connection the first half
of the fourth point of the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p35.1"> Conclusions of Utrecht</span>, which were adopted by our Church in 1908. We translate this as
follows:
"And, finally, as far as the fourth point, that of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p35.2">
presumptive regeneration</span>, is
concerned, Synod declares that, according to the confession of our
Churches, the seed of
the covenant must, in virtue of the promise of God, be presumed to be
regenerated and
sanctified in Christ, until, as they grow up, the contrary appears from
their life or
doctrine; that it is, however, less correct to say that baptism is
administered to the
children of believers on the ground of their presumptive regeneration,
since the ground
of baptism is the command and the promise of God; and that further the judgment
of
charity, with which the Church presumes the seed of the covenant to be
regenerated, by
no means intends to say that therefore each child is really regenerated,
since the Word of
God teaches that they are not all Israel that are of Israel, and it is
said of Isaac: in him
shall thy seed be called (<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p35.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.6" parsed="|Rom|9|6|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:6">Rom. 9:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p35.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.7" parsed="|Rom|9|7|0|0" passage="Rom 9:7">7</scripRef>), so that in preaching it is always
necessary to insist
on serious self-examination, since only those who shall have believed
and have been
baptized will be
saved."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p35.5" n="58" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p35.6">Acts of Synod,</span> 1908, pp. f.</note></p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p36" shownumber="no">(3)<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p36.1">
Objection to the view that children are baptized on the
ground of their covenant relationship.</span>
It has been said that, if children are baptized on the ground that they
are
born in the covenant and are therefore heirs of the promise, they are
baptized on
another ground than adults, since these are baptized on the ground of
their faith or their
profession of faith. But this is hardly correct, as Calvin already
pointed out in his day. The great Reformer answered this objection effectively. The following is
a translation of
what Kramer says respecting Calvin's position on this point:
"Calvin finds occasion
here in connection with infant baptism, now that he has taken the
standpoint of the
covenant, to draw the line farther. Up to this point he has not called
attention to the fact
that adults too are baptized according to the rule of the covenant. And
therefore it might seem that there was a difference between the baptism of
adults and that of children. The
adults to be baptized on the ground of their faith, infants, on the
ground of the covenant
of God. No, the Reformer declares, the only rule according to which, and
the legal
ground on which, the Church may administer baptism, is the covenant.
This is true in
the case of adults as well as in the case of children. That the former
must first make a
confession of faith and conversion, is due to the fact that they are
outside of the
covenant. In order to be admitted into the communion of the covenant,
they must first
learn the requirements of the covenant, and then faith and conversion
open the way to
the covenant."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p36.2" n="59" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p36.3">Het Verband van Doop en Wedergeboorte</span>, pp. 122 f.</note>
The very same opinion is
expressed by Bavinck.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p36.4" n="60" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p36.5">Geref. Dogm,</span> IV. p. 581.</note>
This means that, after adults find entrance into the covenant by faith and conversion, they
receive the
sacrament of baptism on the ground of this covenant relationship.
Baptism is also for
them a sign and seal of the covenant.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p37" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p37.1">
Infant baptism as a means of grace.</span>
Baptism is a
sign and seal of the covenant of
grace. It does not signify one thing and seal another, but sets the seal
of God on that
which it signifies. According to our confessional standards and our Form
for the
administration of baptism, it signifies the washing away of our sins,
and this is but a
brief expression for the removal of the guilt of sin in justification,
and for the removal of
the pollution of sin in sanctification, which is, however, imperfect in
this life. And if this
is what is signified, then it is also that which is sealed. And if it be
said, as it is
sometimes in our Reformed literature, that baptism seals the promise(s)
of God, this
does not merely mean that it vouches for the truth of the promise, but
that it assures the
recipients that they are the appointed heirs of the promised blessings.
This does not
necessarily mean that they are already in principle in possession of the
promised good,
though this is possible and may even be probable, but certainly means
that they are
appointed heirs and will receive the heritage, unless they show
themselves unworthy of
it and refuse it. Dabney calls attention to the fact that seals are
often appended to
promissory covenants, in which the bestowment of the promised good is
conditional. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p38" shownumber="no">But baptism is more than a sign and seal; it is as such also a means of
grace.
According to Reformed theology it is not, as the Roman Catholics claim,
the means of
initiating the work of grace in the heart, but it is a means for the
strengthening of it or,
as it is often expressed, for the increase of grace. This gives rise to
a rather difficult
question in connection with infant baptism. It can readily be seen how
baptism can
strengthen the work of faith in the adult recipient, but it is not so
apparent how it can
operate as a means of grace in the case of children who are entirely
unconscious of the
significance of baptism and cannot yet exercise faith. The difficulty,
with which we are
confronted here, naturally does not exist for the small number of
Reformed scholars
who deny that baptism merely strengthens an antecedent condition of
grace, and claim
that it "is a means for the impartation of grace in a specific
form, and for the specific end
of our regeneration and ingrafting in Christ."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.iv-p38.1" n="61" place="foot">This position is defended at length in a work entitled<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p38.2"> The Divine Life in the Church</span>, pp. 9-196.</note>
All the others must, of course,
face the
problem. Luther also wrestled with that problem. He made the efficacy of
baptism
dependent on the faith of the recipient; but when he reflected on
the fact that infants
cannot exercise faith, he was inclined to believe that God by His
prevenient grace
wrought an incipient faith in them through baptism; and, finally, he
referred the
problem to the doctors of the Church. Reformed theologians solve the
problem by
calling attention to three things, which may be regarded as
alternatives, but may also be
combined. (1) It is possible to proceed on the assumption (not the
certain knowledge)
that the children offered for baptism are regenerated and are therefore
in possession of
the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p38.3">
semen fidei</span>
(the seed of faith); and to hold that God through baptism in some
mystical way, which we do not understand, strengthens this seed of faith
in the child.
(2) Attention may also be called to the fact that the operation of
baptism as a means of
grace is not necessarily limited to the moment of its administration any
more than that
of the Lord's Supper is limited to the time of its celebration. It may
in that very moment
serve in some mysterious way to increase the grace of God in the heart,
if present, but
may also be instrumental in augmenting faith later on, when the
significance of baptism
is clearly understood. This is clearly taught in both the Belgic and the
Westminster
Confession. (3) Again, it may be pointed out, as has been done by some
theologians (e.g.
Dabney and Vos) that infant baptism is also a means of grace for the
parents who
present their child for baptism. It serves to strengthen their faith in
the promises of God,
to work in them the assurance that the child for whom they stand sponsors
has a right
of property in the covenant of grace, and to strengthen in them the
sense of
responsibility for the Christian education of their child. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p39" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p39.1">
The extension of baptism to children of unbelievers.</span>
Naturally, only
children of
believers are the proper subjects of infant baptism. In several ways,
however, the circle
has been enlarged. (1) Roman Catholics and Ritualists of the Anglican
Church proceed
on the assumption that baptism is absolutely essential to salvation,
since it conveys a
grace that can be obtained in no other way. Hence they consider it their
duty to baptize all children that come within their reach, without inquiring as
to the spiritual condition
of their parents. (2) Some call attention to the fact that the promise
applies to parents
and children and children's children, even to the thousandth generation,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p39.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.105.7-Ps.105.10" parsed="|Ps|105|7|105|10" passage="Ps. 105:7-10">Ps. 105:7-10</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p39.3" osisRef="Bible:Isa.59.21" parsed="|Isa|59|21|0|0" passage="Isa. 59:21">Isa. 59:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p39.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.39" parsed="|Acts|2|39|0|0" passage="Acts 2:39">Acts 2:39</scripRef>. In view of these promises they maintain that
children whose
parents have left the Church have not thereby forfeited their privileges
as children of
the covenant. (3) There are those who externalize the covenant by making
it co-
extensive with the State in a State-Church. An English child, has, as
such, just as much
right to baptism as it has to State protection, irrespective of the
question, whether the
parents are believers or not. (4) Some have taken the position that the
fact that parents
are baptized, also assures their children of a title to baptism. They
regard the personal relation of the parents to the covenant as quite
immaterial. Churches have occasionally
acted on that principle, and finally harbored a class of members who did
not themselves
assume the responsibility of the covenant, and yet sought the seal of
the covenant for
their children. In New England this was known as the half-way covenant.
(5) Finally,
the principle of adoption has been applied, in order to obtain baptism
for children who
were not entitled to it otherwise. If the parents were
unfit or unwilling to vouch for the
Christian education of their children, others could step in to guarantee
this. The main ground for this was sought in <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p39.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.17.12" parsed="|Gen|17|12|0|0" passage="Gen. 17:12">Gen. 17:12</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p40" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What are the different meanings of the words<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p40.1">
bapto</span>,
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p40.2">baptizo</span>, and<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p40.3">
louesthai?</span>
Did John the Baptist baptize by immersion? Was the eunuch (<scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p40.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.38" parsed="|Acts|8|38|0|0" passage="Acts 8:38">Acts 8:38</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p40.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.8.39" parsed="|Acts|8|39|0|0" passage="Acts 8:39">39</scripRef>) baptized in that manner? Does the New Testament anywhere
emphasize the
necessity of one particular mode of baptism? Is the doctrine of infant
baptism Biblical?
Was its right ever called in question before the Reformation? What
accounts for the rise
of the Anabaptist denial at the time of the Reformation? What is the
Baptist conception
of the covenant with Abraham? How do they explain <scripRef id="vii.ii.iv-p40.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.4.11" parsed="|Rom|4|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 4:11">Rom. 4:11</scripRef>? What do our
confessional standards say as to the ground on which children are
baptized? What is
Calvin's position as to the ground on which both children and adults are
baptized?
What practical dangers are connected with the doctrine of presumptive
regeneration?
How about Dabney's position that baptism is a sacrament to the parent as
well as to the child? </p>

<p id="vii.ii.iv-p41" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV., pp. 543-590; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.2">
Dict. Dogm. de Sacramentis</span>, pp. 82-157; id.,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.3">
E Voto II</span>, pp. 499-566; III, pp. 5-68; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.4">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III. pp. 526-611; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.5">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 728-799; Dick,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.6">
Theology</span>
Lectures
LXXXVIII-
-LXXXIX; Litton,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.7">
Introd. to
Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 444-464; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.8">
Geref. Dogm., De Genademiddelen</span>, pp. 36-134; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.9">
De Verbondsleer in de Geref. Theol.</span>; Strong,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.10">
Syst. Theol.</span>,  pp.
930-959; Hovey,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.11">
Manual of Theol. and Ethics</span>, pp. 312-333;
Pieper,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.12">
Christl. Dogm.</span>, III,
pp. 297-339;
Schmid,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.13">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 540-558;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.14">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 305-335; Mueller,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.15">
Chr. Dogm.</span>, pp. 486-505; Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.16">
Handbook of the Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 314-322; Schaff,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.17">
Our Fathers' Faith and Ours</span>, pp. 315-320; Pope,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.18">
Chr. Theol.</span>
III, pp.
311-324; Lambert,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.19">
The Sacraments in the New Testament</span>, pp. 36-239; Wilson,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.20">
On Infant Baptism</span>; Carson,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.21">
On Baptism</span>; Ayres,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.22">
Christian
Baptism;</span>
Seiss,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.23">
The Baptist System Examined</span>;
Armstrong,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.24">
The Doctrine of Baptisms;</span>
Merrill,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.25">
Christian Baptism</span>; McLeod,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.26">
The Sacrament of Holy Baptism</span> in<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.27">
The Divine Life
in the Church</span>; White,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.28">
Why Are Infants Baptized</span>;
Bannerman,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.29">
The Church of Christ</span>
II, pp. 42-127; Kramer,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.30">
Het Verband tusschen Doop en Wedergeboorte</span>; Wall,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.31">
History of
Infant Baptism</span>; Wielenga,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.32">
Ons Doopsformulier</span>; Schenck,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.iv-p41.33"> The Presbyterian Doctrine of Children in
the Covenant. </span></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="vii.ii.v" next="viii" prev="vii.ii.iv" title="V. The Lord's Supper">
<h2 id="vii.ii.v-p0.1">V. The Lord's Supper</h2>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p1" shownumber="no">A. ANALOGIES OF THE LORD'S SUPPER AMONG ISRAEL.</p>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p2" shownumber="no">Just as there were analogies to Christian baptism among
Israel, there were also
analogies of the Lord's Supper. Not only among the Gentiles, but also
among Israel, the
sacrifices that were brought were often accompanied with sacrificial
meals. This was
particularly a characteristic feature of the peace-offerings. Of these
sacrifices only the fat
adhering to the inwards was consumed on the altar; the wave-breast was
given to the
priesthood, and the heave-shoulder to the officiating
priest, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Lev.7.28-Lev.7.34" parsed="|Lev|7|28|7|34" passage="Lev. 7:28-34">Lev. 7:28-34</scripRef>, while the rest
constituted a sacrificial meal for the offerer and his friends, provided
they were
levitically
clean, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Lev.7.19-Lev.7.21" parsed="|Lev|7|19|7|21" passage="Lev. 7:19-21">Lev. 7:19-21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Deut.12.7" parsed="|Deut|12|7|0|0" passage="Deut. 12:7">Deut. 12:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:Deut.12.12" parsed="|Deut|12|12|0|0" passage="Deut 12:12">12</scripRef>. These meals taught in a symbolic way that
"being justified by faith, we have peace with God through our Lord
Jesus Christ." They
were expressive of the fact that, on the basis of the offered and
accepted sacrifice, God receives His people as guests in His house and unites
with them in joyful communion,
the communal life of the covenant. Israel was forbidden to take part in
the sacrificial
meals of the Gentiles exactly because it would express their allegiance
to other gods, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:Exod.34.15" parsed="|Exod|34|15|0|0" passage="Ex. 34:15">Ex. 34:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.6" osisRef="Bible:Num.25.3" parsed="|Num|25|3|0|0" passage="Num. 25:3">Num. 25:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Num.25.5" parsed="|Num|25|5|0|0" passage="Num 25:5">5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.106.28" parsed="|Ps|106|28|0|0" passage="Ps. 106:28">Ps. 106:28</scripRef>. The sacrificial meals, which testified to the union of
Jehovah with His people, were seasons of joy and gladness, and as such
were
sometimes abused and gave occasion for revelry and drunkenness, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.1.13" parsed="|1Sam|1|13|0|0" passage="I Sam. 1:13">I Sam. 1:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.10" osisRef="Bible:Prov.7.14" parsed="|Prov|7|14|0|0" passage="Prov. 7:14">Prov. 7:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.28.8" parsed="|Isa|28|8|0|0" passage="Isa. 28:8">Isa. 28:8</scripRef>.
The sacrifice of the Passover was also accompanied with such a sacrificial
meal. Over against the Roman Catholics, Protestants sometimes sought to
defend the
position that this meal constituted the whole of the Passover, but this
is an untenable
position. The
Passover was first of all a sacrifice of atonement, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:Exod.12.27" parsed="|Exod|12|27|0|0" passage="Ex. 12:27">Ex. 12:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.13" osisRef="Bible:Exod.34.25" parsed="|Exod|34|25|0|0" passage="Ex 34:25">34:25</scripRef>. Not only
is it called a sacrifice, but in the Mosaic period
it was also connected with the sanctuary,
<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.14" osisRef="Bible:Deut.16.2" parsed="|Deut|16|2|0|0" passage="Deut. 16:2">Deut. 16:2</scripRef>. The lamb was slain by the Levites, and the blood was
manipulated by the
priests, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.15" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.30.16" parsed="|2Chr|30|16|0|0" passage="II Chron. 30:16">II Chron. 30:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.16" osisRef="Bible:2Chr.35.11" parsed="|2Chr|35|11|0|0" passage="II Chron. 35:11">35:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.17" osisRef="Bible:Ezra.6.19" parsed="|Ezra|6|19|0|0" passage="Ezra 6:19">Ezra 6:19</scripRef>. But though it is first of all a sacrifice, that
is not all; it is also a meal, in which the roasted lamb is eaten with
unleavened bread and bitter
herbs, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.18" osisRef="Bible:Exod.12.8-Exod.12.10" parsed="|Exod|12|8|12|10" passage="Ex. 12:8-10">Ex. 12:8-10</scripRef>. The sacrifice passed right into a meal, which in
later times became far
more elaborate than it originally was. The New Testament ascribes to the
Passover a
typical significance, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.19" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.5.7" parsed="|1Cor|5|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 5:7">I Cor. 5:7</scripRef>, and thus saw in it not only a reminder
of the deliverance
from Egypt, but also a sign and seal of the deliverance from the bondage
of sin and of
communion with God in the promised Messiah. It was in connection with
the paschal
meal that Jesus instituted the Lord's Supper. By using the elements
present in the
former He effected a very natural transition to the latter. Of late some
critics sought to
cast doubt on the institution of the Lord's Supper by Jesus, but there is
no good reason
to doubt the testimony of the Gospels, nor the independent testimony of
the apostle
Paul in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p2.20" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.23-1Cor.11.26" parsed="|1Cor|11|23|11|26" passage="I Cor. 11:23-26">I Cor. 11:23-26</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.v-p2.21">B. THE DOCTRINE OF THE LORD'S SUPPER IN HISTORY.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p3" shownumber="no">1. BEFORE THE REFORMATION. Even in the
apostolic age the celebration of the Lord's  Supper
was accompanied with<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p3.1">
agapae</span>
or love-feasts,
for which the people brought the
necessary ingredients, and which sometimes led to sad abuses, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.20-1Cor.11.22" parsed="|1Cor|11|20|11|22" passage="I Cor. 11:20-22">I Cor. 11:20-22</scripRef>. In course of time the gifts so brought were called oblations and
sacrifices, and were blessed by the
priest with a prayer of thanksgiving. Gradually these names were applied
to the
elements in the Lord's Supper, so that these assumed the character of a
sacrifice brought
by the priest, and thanksgiving came to be regarded as a consecration of
those elements.
While some of the early Church Fathers (Origen, Basil, Gregory of
Nazianze) retained
the symbolical or spiritual conception of the sacrament, others (Cyril,
Gregory of Nyssa,
Chrysostom) held that the flesh and blood of Christ were in some
way combined with
the bread and wine in the sacrament. Augustine retarded the realistic
development of
the doctrine of the Lord's Supper for a long time. While he did speak of
the bread and
wine as the body and blood of Christ, he distinguished between the sign
and the thing
signified, and did not believe in a change of substance. He denied that
the wicked,
though receiving the elements, also received the body, and stressed the
commemorative
aspect of the Lord's Supper. During the Middle Ages the Augustinian view
was
gradually transplanted by the doctrine of transubstantiation. As early
as 818 A.D.
Paschasius Radbertus already formally proposed this doctrine, but met
with strong
opposition on the part of Rabanus Maurus and Ratramnus. In the eleventh
century a
furious controversy again broke out on the subject between Berenger of
Tours and
Lanfranc. The latter made the crass statement that "the very body
of Christ was truly
held in the priest's hand, broken and chewed by the teeth of the
faithful." This view was
finally defined by Hildebert of Tours (1134), and designated as the
doctrine of
transubstantiation. It was formally adopted by the fourth Lateran
Council in 1215.
Many questions connected with this doctrine were debated by the
Scholastics, such as
those respecting the duration of the change of bread and wine into the
body and blood
of Jesus Christ, the manner of Christ's presence in both elements, the
relation of
substance and accidents, the adoration of the host, and so on. The final
formulation of
the doctrine was given by the Council of Trent, and is recorded in<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p3.3">
Sessio</span>
XIII of its
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p3.4">Decrees and Canons.</span>
Eight Chapters and eleven Canons are devoted to it. We can only
mention the most essential points here. Jesus Christ is truly, really,
and substantially
present in the holy sacrament. The fact that He is seated at the right
hand of God does
not exclude the possibility of His substantial and sacramental presence
in several places
simultaneously. By the words of consecration the substance of bread and
wine is
changed into the body and blood of Christ. The entire Christ is present
under each
species and under each particle of either species. Each one who receives
a particle of the
host receives the whole Christ. He is present in the elements even
before the
communicant receives them. In view of this presence, the adoration of
the host is but
natural. The sacrament effects an "increase of sanctifying grace,
special actual graces,
remission of venial sins, preservation from grievous (mortal) sin, and
the confident
hope of eternal
salvation." </p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p4" shownumber="no">2. DURING AND AFTER THE REFORMATION. The Reformers,
one and all, rejected the
sacrificial theory of the Lord's Supper, and the mediaeval doctrine of
transubstantiation.
They differed, however, in their positive construction of the Scriptural
doctrine of the
Lord's Supper. In opposition to Zwingli, Luther insisted on the literal
interpretation of
the words of the institution and on the bodily presence of Christ in the
Lord's Supper.
However, he substituted for the doctrine of transubstantiation that of
consubstantiation,
which has been defended at length by Occam in his<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p4.1">
De Sacramento Altaris</span>, and
according to which Christ is "in, with, and under" the
elements. Zwingli denied
absolutely the bodily presence of Christ in the Lord's Supper, and gave
a figurative
interpretation to the words of the institution. He saw in the sacrament
primarily an act
of commemoration, though he did not deny that in it Christ is
spiritually present<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p4.2">
to the faith of believers.</span>
Calvin maintained an intermediate position. Like Zwingli, he denied
the bodily presence of the Lord in the sacrament, but in distinction
from the former, he
insisted on the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p4.3">
real</span>, though spiritual, presence of the Lord in the Supper, the presence of
Him as a fountain of spiritual virtue and efficacy. Moreover, instead of
stressing the
Lord's Supper as an act of man (either of commemoration or of
profession), he
emphasized the fact that it is the expression first of all of a gracious
gift of God to man,
and only secondarily a commemorative meal and an act of profession. For
him, as well
as for Luther, it was primarily a divinely appointed means for the
strengthening of faith.
The Socinians, Arminians, and Mennonites saw in the Lord's Supper only a
memorial,
an act of profession, and a means for moral improvement. Under the influence
of
Rationalism this became the popular view. Schleiermacher stressed the
fact that the
Lord's Supper is the means by which the communion of life with Christ is
preserved in
a particularly energetic manner in the bosom of the Church. Many of the
Mediating
theologians, while belonging to the Lutheran Church, rejected the
doctrine of
consubstantiation, and approached the Calvinistic view of the spiritual
presence of  Christ
in the Lord's Supper. </p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.v-p4.4">C. SCRIPTURAL NAMES FOR THE LORD'S SUPPER.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p5" shownumber="no">While there is but a single name for the initiatory
sacrament of the New Testament,
there are several for the sacrament now under consideration, all of
which are derived
from Scripture.
They are the following: (1)<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p5.1">
Deipnon
kuriakon</span>,
the Lord's Supper, which is
derived from <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.20" parsed="|1Cor|11|20|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:20">I Cor. 11:20</scripRef>. This is the most common name in Protestant
circles. It seems
that in the passage indicated the apostle wants to make a pointed
distinction between
the sacrament and the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p5.3">
agapae</span>
which the
Corinthians connected with it and which they
abused, thus making the two virtually incongruous. The special emphasis
is on the fact
that this Supper is the Lord's. It is not a supper in which the rich
invite the poor as their
guests and then treat them niggardly, but a feast in which the Lord
provides for all in
rich abundance. (2)<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p5.4">
Trapeza kuriou</span>
the table of the
Lord, a name that is found in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.21" parsed="|1Cor|10|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:21">I Cor. 10:21</scripRef>. Corinthian Gentiles offered to idols and after their sacrifices
sat down to
sacrificial meals; and it seems that some of the Corinthian church
thought it was
permissible to join them, seeing that all flesh is alike. But Paul
points out that sacrificing
to idols is sacrificing to devils, and that joining in such sacrificial
meals is equivalent to
exercising communion with devils. This would be absolutely in conflict
with sitting at
the table of the Lord, confessing allegiance to Him and exercising
communion with
Him. (3)<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p5.6">Klasis tou artou</span>, the breaking of bread, a term that is
used in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.42" parsed="|Acts|2|42|0|0" passage="Acts 2:42">Acts 2:42</scripRef>; cf. also
<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.7" parsed="|Acts|20|7|0|0" passage="Acts 20:7">Acts 20:7</scripRef>. While this is a term which, in all probability, does not
refer exclusively to the
Lord's Supper,
but also to the love-feasts, it certainly also includes the Lord's Supper.
The name may even find its explanation in the breaking of the bread as
this was
ordained by Jesus. (4)<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p5.9">
Eucharistia</span>
thanksgiving, and<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p5.10">
eulogia</span>, blessing, terms which are
derived from <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.16" parsed="|1Cor|10|16|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:16">I Cor. 10:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.24" parsed="|1Cor|11|24|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:24">11:24</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.26" parsed="|Matt|26|26|0|0" passage="Matt. 26:26">Matt. 26:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.27" parsed="|Matt|26|27|0|0" passage="Matt 26:27">27</scripRef> we read that the
Lord took the bread
and blessed it, and took the cup and gave thanks. In all probability the
two words were
used interchangeably and refer to a blessing and thanksgiving combined.
The cup of
thanksgiving and blessing is the consecrated cup.</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.v-p5.15">D. INSTITUTION OF THE LORD'S SUPPER.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p6" shownumber="no">1. DIFFERENT ACCOUNTS OF THE INSTITUTION. There are four different accounts of the
institution of
the Lord's Supper, one in each of the Synoptics, and one in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11" parsed="|1Cor|11|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11">I Cor. 11</scripRef>. John speaks of the eating of the passover, but does not mention the
institution of a new
sacrament. These accounts are independent of, and serve to complement,
one another.
Evidently, the Lord did not finish the passover meal before He
instituted the Lord's
Supper. The new sacrament was linked up with the central element in the
paschal meal.
The bread that was eaten with the lamb was consecrated to a new use.
This is evident
from the fact that the third cup, generally called "the cup of
blessing" was used for the
second element in the new sacrament. Thus the sacrament of the Old
Testament passed
into that of the New in a most natural way.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p7" shownumber="no">2. THE SUBSTITUTION OF BREAD FOR THE LAMB. The paschal lamb had symbolical
significance. Like all the bloody sacrifices of the Old Testament, it
taught the people that
the shedding of blood was necessary unto the remission of sins. In
addition to that it
had a typical meaning, pointing forward to the great sacrifice which
would be brought
in the fulness of time to take away the sin of the world. And, finally,
it also had national
significance as a memorial of Israel's deliverance. It was but natural
that, when the real
Lamb of God made His appearance and was on the point of being slain, the
symbol and
type should disappear. The all-sufficient sacrifice of Jesus Christ
rendered all further
shedding of blood unnecessary; and therefore it was entirely fitting
that the bloody
element should make way for an unbloody one which, like it, had
nourishing
properties. Moreover, through the death of Christ the middle wall of
partition was
broken down, and the blessings of salvation were extended to all the
world. And in
view of this it was quite natural that the passover, a symbol with a
national flavor,
should be replaced by one that carried with it no implications of
nationalism.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p8" shownumber="no">3. SIGNIFICANCE OF THE DIFFERENT ACTIONS AND TERMS. </p>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p9" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p9.1"> Symbolic actions.</span> All the accounts of the institution of the Lord's Supper make mention of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p9.2">
the breaking of
the bread</span>, and Jesus clearly indicates that this was intended to
symbolize the breaking of His body for the redemption of sinners. Because Jesus
broke
the bread<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p9.3">
in the presence of His disciples</span>, Protestant
theology generally insists on it that
this action should always take place in the sight of the people. This
important
transaction was intended to be a sign, and a sign must be visible. After
distributing the
bread, Jesus took the cup, blessed it, and gave it to His disciples. It
does not appear that
He poured the wine in their presence, and therefore this is not regarded
as essential to
the celebration of the Lord's Supper. Dr. Wielinga infers, however, from
the fact that the
bread must be broken, that the wine must also be poured, in the sight of
the
communicants.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.v-p9.4" n="62" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p9.5">Ons Avondmaals Formulier</span>, pp. 243 f.</note>
Jesus naturally used unleavened
bread, since it was the only kind at
hand, and the ordinary wine which was largely used as a beverage in
Palestine. But
neither the one nor the other is stressed, and therefore it does not
follow that it would
not be permissible to use leavened bread and some other kind of wine.
The disciples
undoubtedly received the elements in a reclining position, but this does
not mean that
believers may not partake of them in a sitting, kneeling, or standing,
position. </p>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p10" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p10.1"> Words of command.</span>
Jesus accompanied His action with words of command. When
He gave the bread to His disciples, He said, "Take, eat." And
in issuing this command
He undoubtedly had in mind, not merely a physical eating, but a spiritual
appropriation of the body of Christ by faith. It is a command which,
though it came first
of all to the apostles, was intended for the Church of all ages.
According to <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.19" parsed="|Luke|22|19|0|0" passage="Luke 22:19">Luke 22:19</scripRef>  (comp.
<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.24" parsed="|1Cor|11|24|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:24">I Cor. 11:24</scripRef>) the Lord added the words: "This do in remembrance of
me." Some infer from these words that the Supper instituted by Jesus was nothing
more than a
memorial meal. It is quite evident, however, especially from <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:John.6.32" parsed="|John|6|32|0|0" passage="John 6:32">John 6:32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:John.6.33" parsed="|John|6|33|0|0" passage="John 6:33">33</scripRef>, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:John.6.50" parsed="|John|6|50|0|0" passage="John 6:50">50</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:John.6.51" parsed="|John|6|51|0|0" passage="John 6:51">51</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.26-1Cor.11.30" parsed="|1Cor|11|26|11|30" passage="I Cor. 11:26-30">I Cor. 11:26-30</scripRef>, that it was intended to be far more than that; and in so far
as it had memorial
significance, it was intended as a memorial of the sacrificial work of
Christ rather than of His person. There was another word of command in
connection with the cup. After
distributing the bread the Lord also took the cup, gave thanks, and
said, "Drink ye all of it," or
(according to Luke), "Take this and divide it among yourselves." It
is quite clear
that the cup here stands for what it contains, for the cup could not be
divided. From
these words it is perfectly evident that the Lord intended the Sacrament
to be used in
both kinds (<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p10.9">sub utraque specie</span>), and that Rome is wrong in withholding the cup from the
laity. The use of both elements enabled Christ to give a vivid
representation of the idea
that His body was broken, that flesh and blood were separated, and
that the sacrament
both nourishes and quickens the soul.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p11" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p11.1"> Words of explanation.</span>
The word of
command in connection with the bread is
immediately followed by a word of explanation, which has given rise to
sharp disputes,
namely, "This is my body." These words have been interpreted
in various ways.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p12" shownumber="no">(1) The Church of Rome makes the copula "is"
emphatic. Jesus meant to say that
what He held in His hand was really His body, though it looked and
tasted like bread.
But this is a thoroughly untenable position. In all probability Jesus
spoke Aramaic and
used no copula at all. And while He stood before the disciples in the
body, He could not
very well say to His disciples in all seriousness that He held His body
in His hand.
Moreover, even on the Roman Catholic view, He could not truthfully say,
"This is my
body," but
could only say, "This is now becoming my body." </p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p13" shownumber="no">(2) Carlstadt held the novel view that Jesus, when He
spoke these words, pointed to
His body. He argued that the neuter<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p13.1">
touto</span>
could not refer to<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p13.2">
artos</span>, which is masculine.
But bread can very well be conceived of as a thing and thus referred to
as neuter.
Moreover, such a statement would have been rather inane under the
circumstances.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p14" shownumber="no">(3) Luther and the Lutherans also stress the word
"is," though they admit that Jesus
was speaking figuratively. According to them the figure was not a
metaphor, but a
synecdoche. The Lord simply meant to say to His disciples: Where you
have the bread,
you have my body in, under, and along with it, though the substance of
both remains
distinct. This view is burdened with the impossible doctrine of the
omnipresence of the Lord's physical body.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p15" shownumber="no">(4) Calvin and the Reformed Churches understand the words
of Jesus
metaphorically:
"This is (that is, signifies) my body." Such a statement would be
just as
intelligible to the disciples as other similar statements, such as,
"I am the bread of life,"
<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:John.6.35" parsed="|John|6|35|0|0" passage="John 6:35">John 6:35</scripRef>, and,
"I am the true vine," <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:John.15.1" parsed="|John|15|1|0|0" passage="John 15:1">John 15:1</scripRef>. At the same time they reject the
view, generally ascribed to Zwingli, that the bread<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p15.3">
merely signifies</span>
the body of Christ, and
stress the fact that it also serves to seal the covenant mercies of God
and to convey
spiritual nourishment. To these words Jesus adds the further statement,
"which is given
for you." These words in all probability express the idea that the
body of Jesus is given
for the benefit, or in the interest, of the disciples. It is given by
the Lord to secure their
redemption. Naturally, it is a sacrifice not only for the immediate
disciples of the Lord,
but also for all those who believe.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p16" shownumber="no">There is also a word of explanation in connection with
the cup. The Lord makes the
significant statement: "This cup is the new covenant in my blood,
even that which is
poured out for you." <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Luke.22.20" parsed="|Luke|22|20|0|0" passage="Luke 22:20">Luke 22:20</scripRef>. These words convey an implied
contrast between the
blood of the Saviour, as the blood of the new covenant, and the blood of
the old
covenant mentioned in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.24.8" parsed="|Exod|24|8|0|0" passage="Ex. 24:8">Ex. 24:8</scripRef>. The latter was only a shadowy
representation of the
New Testament reality. The words "for you" have no wider
application than they do in
the statement made in connection with the bread, "which is given
for you." They are
not to be understood in the unrestricted sense of "for all men
indiscriminately," but
rather in the limited sense of "for you and for all who are really
my disciples." The
concluding words in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.26" parsed="|1Cor|11|26|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:26">I Cor. 11:26</scripRef>, "For as often as ye eat this
bread, and drink this cup,
ye proclaim the
Lord's death till He come," point to the perennial significance of the
Lord's Supper as a memorial of the sacrificial death of Christ; and
clearly intimate that it
should be celebrated regularly until the Lord's return.
</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.v-p16.4">E. THE THINGS SIGNIFIED AND SEALED IN THE LORD'S SUPPER.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p17" shownumber="no">1. THE THINGS SIGNIFIED IN THE SACRAMENT. It is one of the characteristics of a
sacrament that it represents one or more spiritual truths by means of
sensible and
outward signs. The outward sign in the case of the Lord's Supper
includes not only the
visible elements employed, but also the breaking of the bread and the
pouring of the wine, the appropriation of bread and wine by eating and drinking, and the
partaking of
them in communion with others. The following points should be mentioned
here:</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p18" shownumber="no">a. It is a symbolical representation of the Lord's death, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.26" parsed="|1Cor|11|26|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:26">I Cor. 11:26</scripRef>. The
central fact  of redemption, prefigured in
the sacrifices of the Old Testament, is clearly set forth by
means of the significant symbols of the New Testament sacrament. The
words of the institution, "broken for you" and "shed for
many", point to the fact that the death of
Christ is a sacrificial one, for the benefit, and even in the place, of
His people.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p19" shownumber="no">b. It also symbolizes the believer's participation in the
crucified Christ. In the
celebration of the Lord's Supper the participants not merely look at the
symbols, but
receive them and feed upon them. Figuratively speaking, they "eat
the flesh of the Son
of Man, and drink His blood," <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p19.1" osisRef="Bible:John.6.53" parsed="|John|6|53|0|0" passage="John 6:53">John 6:53</scripRef>, that is, they symbolically
appropriate the
benefits secured
by the sacrificial death of Christ. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p20" shownumber="no">c. It represents, not only the death of Christ as the
object of faith, and the act of faith
which unites the believer to Christ, but also the effect of this act as
giving life, strength,
and joy, to the soul. This is implied in the emblems used. Just as bread
and wine nourish
and invigorate the bodily life of man, so Christ sustains and quickens
the life of the
soul. Believers are regularly represented in Scripture as having their
life, and strength,
and happiness, in Christ.
d. Finally, the sacrament also symbolizes the union of
believers with one another. As
members of the mystical body of Jesus Christ, constituting a spiritual
unity, they eat of the same bread and drink of the same wine, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.17" parsed="|1Cor|10|17|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:17">I Cor. 10:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.12.13" parsed="|1Cor|12|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 12:13">12:13</scripRef>. Receiving the elements,
the one from the other, they exercise intimate communion with one
another.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p21" shownumber="no">2. THE THINGS SEALED IN THE LORD'S SUPPER. The Lord's
Supper is not only a sign but
also a seal. This is lost sight of by a good many in our day, who have a
very superficial
view of this sacrament, and regard it merely as a memorial of Christ and
as a badge of
Christian profession. These two aspects of the sacrament, namely, as a
sign and as a seal,
are not independent of each other. The sacrament as a sign, or — to put
it differently —
the sacrament with all that it signifies, constitutes a seal. The seal
is attached to the
things signified, and is a pledge of the covenanted grace of God
revealed in the
sacrament. The Heidelberg Catechism says that Christ intends "by
these visible signs
and pledges to assure us that we are as really partakers of His true body
and blood,
through the working of the Holy Spirit, as we receive by the mouth of
the body these
holy tokens in remembrance of Him; and that all His sufferings and
obedience are as certainly ours as if we ourselves had in our own persons suffered and
made satisfaction
to God for our sins."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.v-p21.1" n="63" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p21.2">Lord's Day</span> XXIX, Q. 79</note>
The following points come into consideration
here:</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p22" shownumber="no">a. It seals to the participant the great love of Christ,
revealed in the fact that He
surrendered Himself to a
shameful and bitter death for them. This does not merely
mean that it testifies to the reality of that sacrificial
self-surrender, but that it assures the
believing participant of the Lord's Supper that he personally was the
object of that
incomparable love.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p23" shownumber="no">b. Moreover, it pledges the believing partaker of the
sacrament, not only the love
and grace of Christ in now offering Himself to them as their Redeemer in
all the fulness
of His redemptive work; but gives him the personal assurance that all
the promises of
the covenant and all the riches of the gospel offer are his by a divine
donation, so that he
has a personal claim on them.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p24" shownumber="no">c. Again, it not only ratifies to the believing
participant the rich promises of the
gospel, but it assures him that the blessings of salvation are his in
actual possession. As
surely as the body is nourished and refreshed by bread and wine, so
surely is the soul that receives Christ's body and blood through faith even now
in possession of eternal
life, and so surely will he receive it ever more abundantly.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p25" shownumber="no">d.
Finally, the Lord's Supper is a reciprocal seal. It is a badge of profession on
the
part of those who partake of the sacrament. Whenever they eat the bread
and drink the
wine, they profess their faith in Christ as their Saviour and their
allegiance to Him as their King, and they solemnly pledge a life of obedience
to His divine commandments.
</p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.v-p25.1">F. THE SACRAMENTAL UNION OR THE QUESTION OF THE REAL PRESENCE OF CHRIST IN THE LORD'S SUPPER.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p26" shownumber="no">With this question we are entering upon what has long
been, and still is, the
occasion for considerable difference of opinion in the Church of Jesus
Christ. There is by
no means a unanimous opinion as to the relation of the sign to the thing
signified, that
is to say, as to the nature of the presence of Christ in the Lord's
Supper. There are especially four views that come into consideration here.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p27" shownumber="no">1. THE VIEW OF ROME. The Church of Rome conceives of the sacramental union
in a
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p27.1">physical sense.</span>
It is hardly justified, however, in speaking of any sacramental union
at all,
for according to its representation there is no union in the proper
sense of the word. The sign is not joined to the thing signified, but makes way for it, since
the former passes
into the latter. When the priest utters the formula, "<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p27.2">
hoc est corpus meum</span>
", bread and wine
change into the body and blood of Christ. It is admitted that even after
the change the
elements look and taste like bread and wine. While the substance of both
is changed,
their properties remain the same. In the form of bread and wine the
physical body and
blood of Christ are present. The supposed Scriptural ground for this is
found in the
words of the institution, "this<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p27.3">
is</span>
my body", and in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p27.4" osisRef="Bible:John.6.50" parsed="|John|6|50|0|0" passage="John 6:50">John 6:50</scripRef> ff. But the former passage is
clearly
tropical, like those in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p27.5" osisRef="Bible:John.14.6" parsed="|John|14|6|0|0" passage="John 14:6">John 14:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p27.6" osisRef="Bible:John.15.1" parsed="|John|15|1|0|0" passage="John 15:1">15:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p27.7" osisRef="Bible:John.10.9" parsed="|John|10|9|0|0" passage="John 10:9">10:9</scripRef>, and others; and the latter,
literally understood, would teach more than the Roman Catholic himself would be
ready to
grant, namely, that every one who eats the Lord's Supper goes to heaven,
while no one
who fails to eat it will obtain eternal life (cf. verses 53,54).
Moreover, verse 63 clearly
points to a spiritual interpretation. Furthermore, it is quite
impossible to conceive of the
bread which Jesus broke as being the body which was handling it; and it
should be
noted that Scripture calls it bread even after it is supposed to have
been trans-
substantiated, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p27.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.10.17" parsed="|1Cor|10|17|0|0" passage="I Cor. 10:17">I Cor. 10:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p27.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.26" parsed="|1Cor|11|26|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:26">11:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p27.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.27" parsed="|1Cor|11|27|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:27">27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p27.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.28" parsed="|1Cor|11|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:28">28</scripRef>. This view of Rome also violates the human
senses, where it asks us to believe that what tastes and looks like
bread and wine, is
really flesh and blood; and human reason, where it requires belief
in the separation of a
substance and its properties and in the presence of a material body in
several places at
the same time, both of which are contrary to reason. Consequently, the
elevation and
adoration of the host is also without any proper foundation.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p28" shownumber="no">2. THE LUTHERAN VIEW. Luther rejected
the doctrine of transubstantiation and
substituted for it the related doctrine of consubstantiation. According
to him bread and
wine remain what they are, but there is in the Lord's Supper
nevertheless a mysterious
and miraculous real presence of the whole person of Christ, body and
blood, in, under,
and along with, the elements. He and his followers maintain the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p28.1">
local presence</span>
of the
physical body and blood of Christ in the sacrament.
Lutherans sometimes deny that
they teach the local presence of Christ in the Lord's Supper, but then
they ascribe to the
word 'local' a meaning not intended by those who ascribe this teaching
to them. When
it is said that they teach the local presence of the physical nature of
Christ, this does not
imply that all other bodies are excluded from the same portion of space,
nor that the human nature of Christ is nowhere else, as, for instance, in heaven;
but it does mean
that the physical nature of Christ is locally present in the Lord's
Supper, as magnetism is
locally present in the magnet, and as the soul is locally present in the
body.
Consequently, they also teach the so-called<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p28.2"> manducatio oralis</span>, which means that those
who partake of the elements in the Lord's Supper eat and drink the
Lord's body and blood "with the bodily mouth", and not merely that
they appropriate these by faith.
Unworthy communicants also receive them, but to their condemnation. This
view is no
great improvement on the Roman Catholic conception, though it does not
involve the
oft-repeated miracle of a change of substance minus a change of
attributes. It really
makes the words of Jesus mean, 'this accompanies my body', an
interpretation that is
more unlikely than either of the others. Moreover, it is burdened with
the impossible
doctrine of the ubiquity of the Lord's glorified human nature, which
several Lutherans
would gladly discard.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p29" shownumber="no">3. THE ZWINGLIAN VIEW. There is a very
general impression, not altogether without foundation, that Zwingli's view of
the Lord's Supper was very defective. He is usually
alleged to have taught that it is a bare sign or symbol, figuratively
representing or
signifying spiritual truths or blessings; and that its reception is a
mere commemoration
of what Christ did for sinners, and above all a badge of the Christian's
profession. This
hardly does justice to the Swiss Reformer, however. Some of his
statements
undoubtedly convey the idea that to him the sacrament was merely a
commemorative
rite and a sign and symbol of what the believer pledges in it. But his
writings also
contain statements that point to a deeper significance of the Lord's
Supper and
contemplate it as a seal or pledge of what God is doing for the believer
in the sacrament.
In fact, he seems to have changed his view somewhat in the course of
time. It is very
hard to determine exactly what he did believe in this matter. He
evidently wanted to
exclude from the doctrine of the Lord's Supper all unintelligible
mysticism, and showed
an excessive leaning to the side of plainness and simplicity in its
exposition. He
occasionally expresses himself to the intent that it is a mere sign or
symbol, a
commemoration of the Lord's death. And though he speaks of it in passing
also as a seal
or pledge, he certainly does not do justice to this idea. Moreover, for
him the emphasis
falls on what the believer, rather than on what God, pledges in the
sacrament. He
identified the eating of the body of Christ with faith in Him and a
trustful reliance on
His death. He denied the bodily presence of Christ in the Lord's Supper,
but did not
deny that Christ is present there in a spiritual manner to the faith of
the believer. Christ
is present only in His divine nature and in the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p29.1">
apprehension</span>
of the believing
communicant.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p30" shownumber="no">4. THE REFORMED VIEW. Calvin objects
to Zwingli's doctrine of the Lord's Supper, (a)
that it allows the idea of what the believer does in the sacrament to
eclipse the gift of
God in it; and (b) that it sees in the eating of the body of Christ
nothing more nor higher
than faith in His name and reliance on His death. According to him the
sacrament is
connected not merely with the past work of Christ, with the Christ who
died (as
Zwingli seems to think), but also with the present spiritual work of
Christ, with the
Christ that is alive in glory. He believes that Christ, though not
bodily and locally
present in the Supper, is yet present and enjoyed in His entire person,
both body and
blood. He emphasizes the mystical communion of believers with the entire
person of
the Redeemer. His representation is not entirely clear, but he seems to
mean that the
body and blood of Christ, though absent and locally present only in
heaven,
communicate a life-giving influence to the believer when he is in
the act of receiving the
elements. That influence, though real, is not physical but
spiritual and mystical, is
mediated by the Holy Spirit, and is conditioned on the act of faith by
which the
communicant symbolically receives the body and blood of Christ. As to
the way in
which this communion with Christ is effected, there is a twofold
representation.
Sometimes it is represented as if by faith the communicant lifts his
heart to heaven,
where Christ is; sometimes, as if the Holy Spirit brings the influence
of the body and
blood of Christ down to the communicant. Dabney positively rejects the
representation
of Calvin as if the communicant partakes of the very body and blood of
Christ in the
sacrament. This is undoubtedly an obscure point in Calvin's
representation. Sometimes he seems to place too much emphasis on the literal flesh
and blood. Perhaps, however,
his words are to be understood sacramentally. that is, in a figurative
sense. This view of
Calvin is that found in our confessional standards.<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.v-p30.1" n="64" place="foot">Cf.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p30.2"> Conf. Belg.</span>, Art. XXXV;<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p30.3"> Heidelberg Catechism</span>, Question 75,76, and also in the Form for the celebration of the Lord's Supper.</note>
A very common interpretation of
the dubious point in Calvin's doctrine, is that the body and blood of
Christ are present
only virtually, that is, in the words of Dr. Hodge, that "the virtues
and effects of the sacrifice of the body of the Redeemer on the cross are made
present and are actually
conveyed in the sacrament to the worthy receiver by the power of the
Holy Ghost, who
uses the sacrament as His instrument according to His sovereign
will."<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.v-p30.4" n="65" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p30.5">Comm. on the Confession of Faith</span>, p. 492.</note></p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.v-p30.6">G. THE LORD'S SUPPER AS A MEANS OF GRACE, OR ITS EFFICACY.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p31" shownumber="no">The sacrament of the Lord's Supper, instituted by the
Lord Himself as a sign and
seal, is as such also a means of grace. Christ instituted it for the
benefit of His disciples and of all believers. It was clearly the intention of
the Saviour that His followers should
profit by participation in it. This follows from the very fact that He
instituted it as a sign
and seal of the covenant of grace. It can also readily be inferred from
the symbolical
eating and drinking, which point to nourishment and quickening, and from
such passages as <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p31.1" osisRef="Bible:John.6.48-John.6.58" parsed="|John|6|48|6|58" passage="John 6:48-58">John 6:48-58</scripRef> (irrespective of the question, whether this
refers directly to the
Lord's Supper or
not), and <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p31.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.17" parsed="|1Cor|11|17|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:17">I Cor. 11:17</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p32" shownumber="no">1. THE GRACE RECEIVED IN THE LORD'S SUPPER. The Lord's
Supper is intended for
believers and for believers only, and therefore is not instrumental in
originating the
work of grace in the heart of the sinner. The presence of the grace of
God is
presupposed in the hearts of the participants. Jesus administered it to
His professed
followers only; according to <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p32.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.42" parsed="|Acts|2|42|0|0" passage="Acts 2:42">Acts 2:42</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p32.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.46" parsed="|Acts|2|46|0|0" passage="Acts 2:46">46</scripRef> they who believed continued
steadfastly in the
breaking of bread; and in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p32.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.28" parsed="|1Cor|11|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:28">I Cor. 11:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p32.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.29" parsed="|1Cor|11|29|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:29">29</scripRef> the necessity of
self-examination before
partaking of the Lord's Supper is stressed. The grace received in the
sacrament does not
differ in kind from that which believers receive through the
instrumentality of the
Word. The sacrament merely adds to the effectiveness of the Word, and
therefore to the
measure of the grace received. It is the grace of an ever closer
fellowship with Christ, of
spiritual nourishment and quickening, and of an ever increasing
assurance of salvation.
The Roman Catholic Church names specifically sanctifying grace, special
actual graces,
the remission of venial sins, preservation from mortal sin, and the
assurance of  salvation.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p33" shownumber="no">2. THE MANNER IN WHICH THIS GRACE IS WROUGHT. How does the sacrament function
in this respect? Is the Lord's Supper in any way a meritorious cause of
the grace
conferred? Does it confer grace irrespective of the spiritual condition
of the recipient, or
does it not? </p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p34" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p34.1">
The Roman Catholic view.</span>
For the Roman
Catholics the Lord's Supper is not merely
a sacrament, but
also a<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p34.2">
sacrifice</span>; it is even
first of all a sacrifice. It is "the unbloody
renewal of the
sacrifice of the cross." This does not mean that in the Lord's Supper
Christ actually dies anew, but that He undergoes an external change,
which is in some
way equivalent to death. Did not the Lord speak of the bread as His body
that was
broken for the disciples, and of the wine as His blood that was poured
out for them?
Roman Catholic controversialists sometimes give the impression that this
sacrifice has
only a representative or commemorative character, but this is not the
real doctrine of the
Church. The
sacrifice of Christ in the Lord's Supper is considered to be a real sacrifice,
and is supposed to have propitiatory value. When the question is raised,
what this
sacrifice merits for the sinner, Roman Catholic authorities begin to
hedge and to speak
inconsistent
language. The statement of Wilmers in his<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p34.3">
Handbook of the Christian Religion</span>,
which is used as a textbook in many Roman Catholic schools, may be given
as an
example. Says he on page 348: "By the fruits of the sacrifice of
the Mass we understand
the effects
which it produces<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p34.4">
for us</span>, inasmuch as it
is a sacrifice of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p34.5">
atonement</span>
and <span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p34.6">impetration</span>: (a) not only supernatural graces, but also natural favors; (b) remission of
sins, and of the punishment due to them. What Christ merited for us by
His death on
the cross is<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p34.7">
applied</span>
to us in the sacrament of the
Mass." After the sacrifice of the Mass is called a
sacrifice of<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p34.8">
atonement</span>, the last
sentence seems to say that it is after all only a
sacrifice in which that which Christ merited on the cross is applied to
the participants.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p35" shownumber="no">As far as the Lord's Supper as a sacrament is concerned,
the Roman Catholic Church
teaches that it works<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p35.1">
ex opere operato</span>
which means,
"in virtue of the sacramental act
itself, and not in virtue of the acts or disposition of the recipient,
or of the worthiness of
the minister (<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p35.2">ex opere operantis</span>)." This means that every one who
receives the elements,
be he wicked or pious, also receives the grace signified, which is conceived
of as a
substance contained in the elements. The sacramental rite itself conveys
grace unto the
recipient. At the same time it also teaches, rather inconsistently, it
would seem, that the
effects of the sacrament may be completely or partially frustrated by
the existence of
some obstacle, by the absence of that disposition that makes the soul
capable of
receiving grace, or by the priest's want of intention to do what the
Church does.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p36" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p36.1">
The prevailing Protestant view.</span>
The prevailing
view in the Protestant Churches is,
that the sacrament does not work<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p36.2">
ex opere operato.</span>
It is not itself a
cause of grace, but
merely an instrument in the hand of God. Its effective operation is
dependent, not only
on the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p36.3">
presence</span>, but on the<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p36.4">
activity</span>, of faith in the recipient. Unbelievers may receive the
external elements, but do not receive the thing signified thereby. Some
Lutherans and
the High Church Episcopalians, however, in their desire to maintain the
objective
character of the sacrament, clearly manifest a leaning toward the
position of the Church
of Rome.
"We believe, teach, and confess", says the Formula of Concord,
"that not only
true believers in Christ, and such as worthily approach the Supper of
the Lord, but also
the unworthy and unbelieving receive the true body and blood of Christ;
in such wise,
nevertheless, that they derive thence neither consolation nor life, but
rather so as that
receiving turns to their judgment and condemnation, unless they be
converted and
repent (<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p36.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.27" parsed="|1Cor|11|27|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:27">I Cor. 11:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p36.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.29" parsed="|1Cor|11|29|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:29">29</scripRef>).<note anchored="yes" id="vii.ii.v-p36.7" n="66" place="foot">VII. 7.</note></p>

<h4 id="vii.ii.v-p36.8">H. THE PERSONS FOR WHOM THE LORD'S SUPPER IS INSTITUTED.</h4>
<p id="vii.ii.v-p37" shownumber="no">1. THE PROPER PARTICIPANTS OF THE SACRAMENT. In answer to the question, "For
whom is the Lord's Supper instituted?" the Heidelberg Catechism
says: "For those who are truly displeased with themselves for their sins and yet trust that
these are forgiven
them for the sake of Christ, and that their remaining infirmity is
covered by His passion
and death; who also desire more and more to strengthen their faith and
amend their
life." From these words it appears that the Lord's Supper was not
instituted for all men
indiscriminately, nor even for all those who have a place in the visible
Church of Christ, but only for those who earnestly repent of their sins, trust
that these have been covered
by the atoning blood of Jesus Christ, and are desirous to increase their
faith, and to
grow in true holiness of life. The participants of the Lord's Supper
must be repentant
sinners, who are ready to admit that they are lost in themselves. They
must have a
living faith in Jesus Christ, so that they trust for their redemption in
the atoning blood
of the Saviour. Furthermore, they must have a proper
understanding and appreciation
of the Lord's Supper, must discern the difference between it and a
common meal, and
must be impressed with the fact that the bread and wine are the tokens of
the body and
blood of Christ. And, finally, they must have a holy desire for
spiritual growth and for
ever-increasing conformity to the image of Christ.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p38" shownumber="no">2. THOSE WHO MUST BE EXCLUDED FROM THE LORD'S SUPPER. Since the Lord's Supper
is a sacrament of and for the Church, it follows that they who are
outside of the Church
cannot partake of it. But it is necessary to make still further
limitations. Not even every
one that has a place in the Church can be admitted to the table of the
Lord. The
following exceptions should be noted:
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p39" shownumber="no">a. Children, though they were allowed to eat the passover
in the days of the Old
Testament, cannot be permitted to partake of the table of the Lord,
since they cannot
meet the requirements for worthy participation. Paul insists on the
necessity of self-
examination previous to the celebration, when he says: "But let a
man prove himself,
and so let him eat of the bread and drink of the cup", <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p39.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.28" parsed="|1Cor|11|28|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:28">I Cor. 11:28</scripRef>, and children are not
able to examine themselves. Moreover, he points out that, in order to
partake of the
Supper in a worthy manner, it is necessary to discern the body, <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p39.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.29" parsed="|1Cor|11|29|0|0" passage="I Cor. 11:29">I Cor.
11:29</scripRef>, that is, to
distinguish properly between the elements used in the Lord's Supper and
ordinary
bread and wine, by recognizing those elements as symbols of the body and
blood of
Christ. And this, too, is beyond the capacity of children. It is only
after they have come to years of discretion, that they can be permitted to join
in the celebration of the Lord's
Supper. </p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p40" shownumber="no">b. Such unbelievers as may possibly be within the
confines of the visible Church
have no right to partake of the table of the Lord. The Church must
require of all those
who desire to celebrate the Lord's Supper a credible profession of
faith. Naturally, she
cannot look into the heart and can only base her judgment respecting an
applicant for
admission on his confession of faith in Jesus Christ. It is possible
that she occasionally
admits hypocrites to the privileges of full communion, but such persons
in partaking of
the Lord's Supper will only eat and drink judgment to themselves. And if
their unbelief
and ungodliness becomes evident, the Church will have to exclude them by
the proper
administration of Church discipline. The holiness of the Church and of
the sacrament
must be safeguarded.
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p41" shownumber="no">c. Even true believers may not partake of the Lord's
Supper under all conditions
and in every frame of mind. The condition of their spiritual life, their
conscious relation
to God, and their attitude to their fellow-Christians may be such as to
disqualify them
to engage in such a spiritual exercise as the celebration of the Lord's
Supper. This is
clearly implied in what Paul says in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p41.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.11.28-1Cor.11.32" parsed="|1Cor|11|28|11|32" passage="I Cor. 11:28-32">I Cor. 11:28-32</scripRef>. There were
practices among the
Corinthians which really made their participation in the Lord's Supper a
mockery.
When a person is conscious of being estranged from the Lord or from his
brethren, he
has no proper place at a table which speaks of communion. It should be
stated
explicitly, however, that lack of the assurance of salvation need not
deter anyone from
coming to the table of the Lord, since the Lord's Supper was instituted
for the very
purpose of strengthening faith.</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p42" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Can it be proved that the Lord's Supper took the
place of the Old Testament passover? How? Is it permissible to cut the
bread in squares
before the administration of the Lord's Supper, and to use the
individual cup? What
does the term "real presence" mean in connection with this
sacrament? Does the Bible
teach such a real presence? If it does, does it favor the idea that the
human nature of
Christ is present in the state of humiliation, or in that of
glorification? What is meant by
the Reformed doctrine of the spiritual presence? Does the discourse of
Jesus in <scripRef id="vii.ii.v-p42.1" osisRef="Bible:John.6" parsed="|John|6|0|0|0" passage="John 6">John 6</scripRef>
really refer to
the Lord's Supper? How does Rome defend the celebration of the Lord's
Supper under one species? How did the conception of the Lord's Supper as
a sacrifice
arise? What objections are there to this notion? Does "eating the
body" simply amount
to believing in Christ? Is open communion defensible?
</p>

<p id="vii.ii.v-p43" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.1">; Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 590-644; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.2">
Dict. Dogm. De Sacramentis</span>, pp. 158-238; Vos,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.3">
Geref. Dogm. V. De Genademiddelen</span>, pp. 134-190; Hodge,
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.4">Syst. Theol.</span> III, pp. 611-692; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.5"> Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 800-817; Bannerman,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.6">
The Church of Christ</span>, II, pp. 128-185; Cunningham,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.7">
The Reformers and the Theology of the Reformation</span>, pp. 212-291; Valentine,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.8">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 335-361;<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.9">
Schmid, Doct. Theol. of the
Ev. Luth. Ch.</span>, pp. 558-584; Browne,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.10">
Exposition of the Thirty-Nine Articles</span>, pp. 683-757;
Litton,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.11">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 464-532; Candlish,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.12">
The Christian Salvation</span>, pp. 179-204;
Pieper,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.13">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 340-458; Pope,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.14">
Chr. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 325-334; Wilmers,
<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.15">Handbook of the Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 327-349; Moehler,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.16">
Symbolism</span>
pp. 235-254;
Schaff,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.17">
Our Father's Faith and Ours</span>, pp. 322-353; Otten,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.18">
Manual of the Hist. of Dogma</span> II, pp. 310-337;
Hebert,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.19">
The Lord's Supper</span>, (two vols.) cf. Index; Ebrard,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.20">
Das Dogma vom Heiligen Abendmahl, cf.</span>
Index; Calvin,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.21">
Institutes</span>, Bk. IV, chapters 17 and 18; Wielenga,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.22">
Ons Avondmaalsformulier</span>; Lambert,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.23">
The Sacraments
in the New Testament</span>, pp. 240-422; MacLeod,<span class="ital" id="vii.ii.v-p43.24">
The Ministry
and Sacraments of the Church of Scotland</span>
pp. 243-300. </p>
</div3>
</div2>
</div1>

    <div1 id="viii" next="viii.i" prev="vii.ii.v" title="Part Six: The Doctrine of The Last Things">
<h2 id="viii-p0.1">PART SIX: THE DOCTRINE OF THE LAST THINGS</h2>

      <div2 id="viii.i" next="viii.ii" prev="viii" title="Introductory Chapter">
<h2 id="viii.i-p0.1">Introductory Chapter</h2>
<h4 id="viii.i-p0.2">A. ESCHATOLOGY IN PHILOSOPHY AND RELIGION.</h4>
<p id="viii.i-p1" shownumber="no">1. THE QUESTION OF ESCHATOLOGY A NATURAL ONE. A doctrine of the last things is not
something that is peculiar to the Christian religion. Wherever people
have seriously
reflected on human life, whether in the individual or in the race,
they have not merely
asked, whence did it spring, and how did it come to be what it is, but
also, whither is it
bound? They raised the question, What is the end or final destiny of the
individual; and
what is the goal towards which the human race is moving?
Does man perish at death, or
does he enter upon another state of existence, either of bliss or of woe?
Will the
generations of men come and go in endless succession and finally sink
into oblivion, or
is the race of the children of men and the whole creation moving on to
some divine<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p1.1">
telos</span>,
an end designed for it by God. And if the human race is moving on to
some final, some
ideal, condition perhaps, will the generations that have come and gone
participate in
this in any way, and if so, how; or did they merely serve as a
thoroughfare leading up to
the grand climax? Naturally, only those who believe that, as the history
of the world
had a beginning, it will also have an end, can speak of a consummation
and have a
doctrine of
eschatology. </p>

<p id="viii.i-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE QUESTION OF ESCHATOLOGY IN PHILOSOPHY. The question of the final destiny of
the individual and of the race occupied an important place even in the
speculations of
the philosophers. Plato taught the immortality of the soul, that is, its
continued
existence after death, and this doctrine remained an important tenet in
philosophy up to
the present time. Spinoza had no place for it in his pantheistic system,
but Wolff and Leibnitz defended it with all kinds of arguments. Kant stressed
the untenableness of
these arguments, but nevertheless retained the doctrine of immortality
as a postulate of
practical reason. The idealistic philosophy of the nineteenth century
ruled it out. In fact,
as Haering says, "Pantheism of all sorts is limited to a definite
mode of contemplation,
and does not
lead to any 'ultimate'." Not only did the philosophers reflect on
the future
of the individual; they also thought deeply on the future of the world.
The Stoics spoke
of successive world-cycles, and the Buddhists, of world-ages, in each of
which a new
world appears and again disappears. Even Kant speculated on the birth and
death of  worlds.
</p>

<p id="viii.i-p3" shownumber="no">3. THE QUESTION OF ESCHATOLOGY IN RELIGION. It is especially in religion, however,
that we meet with eschatological conceptions. Even false religions, the
more primitive
as well as the more advanced, have their eschatology. Buddhism has its
Nirvana,
Mohammedanism, its sensual paradise, and the Indians, their happy
hunting-grounds.
Belief in the continued existence of the soul appears
everywhere and in various forms.
Says J. T. Addison: "The belief that the soul of man survives his
death is so nearly
universal that we have no reliable record of a tribe or nation or
religion in which it does
not prevail."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.i-p3.1" n="1" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.i-p3.2">Life Beyond Death</span>, p. 3.</note>
It may manifest itself in the
conviction that the dead are still hovering
around and near at hand, in ancestor worship, in seeking intercourse with
the dead, in
the conception of an underworld peopled with the dead, or in the idea of
the
transmigration of souls; but it is always present in some form or other.
But in these
religions all is vague and uncertain. It is only in the Christian
religion that the doctrine
of the last things receives greater precision and carries with it an
assurance that is
divine. Naturally, they who are not content to rest their faith
exclusively on the Word of
God, but make it contingent on experience and on the deliverances of the
Christian
consciousness, are at a great disadvantage here. While they may
experience spiritual
awakening, divine illumination, repentance and conversion, and may
observe the fruits
of the operations of divine grace in their lives, they cannot experience
nor see the
realities of the future world. They shall have to accept the testimony
of God respecting these, or continue to grope about in the dark. If they do not
wish to build the house of
their hope on vague and indeterminate longings, they shall have to turn
to the firm
ground of the Word of God.</p>

<h4 id="viii.i-p3.3">B. ESCHATOLOGY IN THE HISTORY OF THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH.</h4>
<p id="viii.i-p4" shownumber="no">Speaking generally, it may be said that Christianity
never forgot the glorious
predictions respecting its future and the future of the individual
Christian. Neither the
individual Christian nor the Church could avoid thinking about these and
finding
comfort in them. Sometimes, however, the Church, borne down with the
cares of life, or entangled in its pleasures, thought little of the future. Moreover, it
happened repeatedly
that at one time it would think more of this, and at another time, more
of that particular
element of its future hope. In days of defection the Christian hope sometimes
grew dim
and uncertain, but it never died out altogether. At the same time it
must be said that
there has never been a period in the history of the Christian Church, in
which
eschatology was the center of Christian thought. The other loci of Dogmatics
have each
had their time of special development, but this cannot be said of
eschatology. Three
periods can be distinguished in the history of eschatological thought.
</p>

<p id="viii.i-p5" shownumber="no">1. FROM THE APOSTOLIC AGE TO THE BEGINNING OF THE FIFTH CENTURY. In the very
first
period the Church was perfectly conscious of the separate elements of
the Christian
hope, as, for instance, that physical death is not yet eternal death,
that the souls of the
dead live on, that Christ is coming again, that there will be a blessed
resurrection of the
people of God, that this will be followed by a general judgment, in
which eternal doom
will be pronounced upon the wicked but the pious will be rewarded with
the
everlasting glories of heaven. But these elements were simply seen as so
many separate
parts of the future hope, and were not yet dogmatically
construed. Though the various
elements were quite well understood, their interrelation was not yet
clearly seen. At first
it seemed as if eschatology was in a fair way to become the center of
the construction of
Christian doctrine, for in the first two centuries Chiliasm was rather
prominent, though
not as prominent as some would have us believe. As it turned out,
however, eschatology was not developed in this period.</p>

<p id="viii.i-p6" shownumber="no">2. FROM THE BEGINNING OF THE FIFTH CENTURY TO THE REFORMATION. Under the
guidance of the Holy Spirit the attention of the Church was directed
from the future to
the present, and Chiliasm was gradually forgotten. Especially under the
influence of
Origen and Augustine, anti-chiliastic views became dominant in the
Church. But
though these were regarded as orthodox, they were not thought through and
systematically developed. There was a general belief in a life after
death, in the return of
the Lord, in the resurrection of the dead, in the final judgment, and in
a kingdom of
glory, but very little reflection on the manner of these. The
thought of a material and
temporal kingdom made way for that of eternal life and the future
salvation. In course
of time the Church was placed in the center of attention, and the
hierarchical Church
was identified with the Kingdom of God. The idea gained ground that
outside of this
Church there was no salvation, and that the Church determined the proper
pedagogical
training for the future. A great deal of attention was paid to the
intermediate state, and
particularly to the doctrine of purgatory. In connection with this the
mediation of the
Church was brought to the foreground, the doctrine of the mass, of
prayers for the
dead, and of indulgences. As a protest against this ecclesiasticism,
Chiliasm again made
its appearance in several sects This was in part a reaction of a
pietistic nature against the
externalism and worldliness of the Church.
</p>

<p id="viii.i-p7" shownumber="no">3. FROM THE REFORMATION UP TO THE PRESENT DAY. The thought of the Reformation
centered primarily about the idea of the application and appropriation of
salvation, and
sought to develop eschatology mainly from this point of view. Many of
the old
Reformed theologians treat it merely as an adjunct to soteriology,
dealing with the
glorification of believers. Consequently, only a part of eschatology was
studied and
brought to further development. The Reformation adopted what the early
Church
taught respecting the return of Christ, the resurrection, the final
judgment, and eternal
life, and brushed aside the crass form of Chiliasm which appeared in the
Anabaptist
sects. In its opposition to Rome, it also reflected a good deal on
the intermediate state
and rejected the various tenets developed by the Roman Catholic Church.
It can hardly
be said that the Churches of the Reformation did much for the
development of
eschatology. In Pietism Chiliasm again made its appearance. The
Rationalism of the
eighteenth century retained of eschatology merely the bare idea of a
colourless
immortality, of the mere survival of the soul after death. Under the influence
of the
philosophy of evolution with its idea of an endless progress, it became,
if not obsolete,
at least obsolescent. Liberal theology entirely ignored the
eschatological teachings of
Jesus and placed all the emphasis on His ethical precepts. As a result
it has no
eschatology worthy of the name. Other - worldliness made way for this -
worldliness;
the blessed hope of eternal life was replaced by the social hope of a
kingdom of God
exclusively of this world; and the former assurance respecting the
resurrection of the
dead and future glory was supplanted by the vague trust that God may have
even
better things in store for man than the blessings which he now enjoys.
Says Gerald
Birney Smith: "In no realm are the changes of thinking more marked
than in the portion
of theology which deals with the future life. Where theologians used to
speak to us in
detail concerning 'last things,' they now set forth in somewhat general
terms the
reasonable basis for optimistic confidence in the continuance of life
beyond physical
death."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.i-p7.1" n="2" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.i-p7.2">A Guide to the Study of the Christian Religion</span>p. 538.</note>
At the present time, however,
there are some signs of a change for the better. A new wave of Premillennialism
appeared, which is not limited to the sects, but has also
found entrance in some of the Churches of our day, and its advocates
suggest a
Christian philosophy of history, based particularly on the study of
Daniel and
Revelation, and help to fix the attention once more on the end of the
ages. Weiss and Schweitzer called attention to the fact that the eschatological
teachings of Jesus were far
more important in His scheme of thought than His ethical precepts, which
after all
represent only an "Interimsethik." And Karl Barth also
stresses the eschatological
element in divine revelation.</p>

<h4 id="viii.i-p7.3">C. THE RELATION OF ESCHATOLOGY TO THE REST OF DOGMATICS.</h4>
<p id="viii.i-p8" shownumber="no">1. WRONG CONCEPTIONS WHICH OBSCURE THIS RELATION. When Kliefoth wrote his
<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p8.1">Eschatologie</span>, he complained about the fact that there had never yet appeared a
comprehensive and adequate treatise on eschatology as a whole; and
further calls
attention to the fact that in dogmatical works it often appears, not as
a main division
uniform with the others, but merely as a fragmentary and neglected
appendix, while
some of its questions are discussed in other loci. There were good
reasons for his
complaints. In general it may be said that eschatology is even now the
least developed
of all the loci of dogmatics. Moreover, it was often given a very
subordinate place in the
systematic treatment of theology. It was a mistake of Coccejus that he
arranged the
whole of dogmatics according to the scheme of the covenants, and thus
treated it as a
historical study rather than a systematic presentation of all the truths
of the Christian religion. In such a scheme eschatology could only appear as
the finale of history, and
not at all as one of the constitutive elements of a system of truth. A
historical discussion
of the last things may form a part of the<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p8.2">
historia revelationis</span>, but cannot as such be
introduced as an integral part of dogmatics. Dogmatics is not a descriptive,
but a
normative science, in which we aim at<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p8.3">
absolute</span>
rather than at
mere<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p8.4">
historical</span>, truth.
Reformed theologians on the whole saw this point very clearly, and
therefore discussed
the last things in a systematic way. However, they did not always do
justice to it as one
of the main divisions of dogmatics, but gave it a subordinate place in
one of the other
loci. Several of them conceived of it merely as dealing with the
glorification of the saints
or the consummation of the rule of Christ, and introduced it at the
conclusion of their
discussion of objective and subjective soteriology. The result was that
some parts of
eschatology received due emphasis, while other parts were all but
neglected. In some
cases the subject-matter of eschatology was divided among different
loci. Another
mistake, sometimes made, was to lose sight of the theological character
of eschatology.
We cannot subscribe to the following statement of Pohle (Roman Catholic)
in his work  on<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p8.5">
Eschatology, or the Catholic Doctrine of the Last Things</span>:
"Eschatology is anthropological
and cosmological rather than theological; for, though it deals with God
as the
Consummator and Universal Judge, strictly speaking, its subject is the
created universe,
i.e. man and the cosmos."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.i-p8.6" n="3" place="foot">p. 1</note>
If eschatology is not theology it has no
proper place in dogmatics. </p>

<p id="viii.i-p9" shownumber="no">2. THE PROPER CONCEPTION OF THIS RELATION. Strange to say, the same Catholic
author says: "Eschatology is the crown and capstone of dogmatic
theology," which is
perfectly correct. It is the one locus of theology, in which all the
other loci must come to a head, to a final conclusion. Dr. Kuyper correctly
points out that every other locus left
some question unanswered, to which eschatology should supply the answer.
In
theology it is the question, how God is finally perfectly glorified in
the work of His
hands, and how the counsel of God is fully realized; in anthropology,
the question, how
the disrupting influence of sin is completely overcome; in
christology, the question, how the work of Christ is crowned with perfect
victory; in soteriology, the question, how the
work of the Holy Spirit at last issues in the complete redemption and
glorification of the
people of God; and in ecclesiology, the question of the final apotheosis
of the Church.
All these questions must find their answer in the last locus of
dogmatics, making it the
real capstone of dogmatic theology. Haering testifies to the same fact
when he says: "As
a matter of fact it (eschatology) does shed a clear light upon every
single section of
doctrine. Is the universality of God's saving plan, is personal
communion with a
personal God asserted without reserve, is the permanent significance of
the Redeemer
upheld, is forgiveness of sin conceived as one with victory over the
power of sin — on
these points the eschatology must remove all doubt, even when indefinite
statements which have been made in the preceding parts could not at once be
recognized as such.
Nor is it difficult to discover the reason of this. In the doctrine of
the last things, the
communion between God and man is set forth as completed, and therefore
the idea of
our religion, the Christian principle, is presented in its purity; not,
however, as a mere
idea in the sense of an ideal which is never completely realized, but as
perfect reality — and it is clear what difficulties are implied in that. It
must therefore appear at last, in the
presentment of eschatology, if not sooner, whether the reality of this
communion with
God has received its unrestricted due."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.i-p9.1" n="4" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.i-p9.2">The Christian Faith</span>, p. 831.</note></p>

<h4 id="viii.i-p9.3">D. THE NAME "ESCHATOLOGY."</h4>
<p id="viii.i-p10" shownumber="no">Various names have been applied to the last locus of
dogmatics, of which<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.1">
de Novissimis</span>
or<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.2">
Eschatology</span>
is the most common. Kuyper uses the term<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.3">
Consummatione Saeculi.</span>
The name "eschatology" is based on those passages of
Scripture that speak of "the last days (<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.4">eschatai hemerai</span>), <scripRef id="viii.i-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.2.2" parsed="|Isa|2|2|0|0" passage="Is. 2:2">Is. 2:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.i-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:Mic.4.1" parsed="|Mic|4|1|0|0" passage="Mic. 4:1">Mic. 4:1</scripRef>, "the last time " (<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.7">eschatos ton chronon</span>), <scripRef id="viii.i-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.20" parsed="|1Pet|1|20|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:20">I Pet. 1:20</scripRef>, and
"the last hour," (<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.9">eschate hora</span> ),
<scripRef id="viii.i-p10.10" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.18" parsed="|1John|2|18|0|0" passage="I John 2:18">I John 2:18</scripRef>. It is true that these expressions
sometimes refer to the whole New Testament dispensation, but even so
they embody an
eschatological idea. Old Testament prophecy distinguishes only two
periods, namely, "this age" (<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.11">olam hazzeh</span> Gr.<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.12">; aion houtos</span>), and "the coming age" (<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.13">ollam habba</span>', Gr.<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.14">; aion mellon</span>). Since the prophets represent the coming of the Messiah and the end of
the
world as coinciding, the "last days" are the days<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.15">
immediately</span>
preceding both the coming
of the Messiah and the end of the world. They nowhere draw a clear line
of distinction
between a first and a second coming of the Messiah. In the New
Testament, however, it
becomes perfectly evident, that the coming of the Messiah is twofold,
and that the
Messianic age includes two stages, the present Messianic age and the
future
consummation. Consequently, the New Testament dispensation may be
regarded under
two different aspects. If the attention is fixed on the future coming of
the Lord, and all
that precedes it is considered as belonging to "this age,"
then New Testament believers
are regarded as living on the eve of that important event, the Lord's
return in glory and
the final consummation. If, on the other hand, the attention is centered
on the first
coming of Christ, it is natural to consider the believers of this
dispensation as already,
though only in principle, living in the<span class="ital" id="viii.i-p10.16">
future</span>
age. This representation
of their condition
is not uncommon in the New Testament. The Kingdom of God is already
present,
eternal life is realized in principle, the Spirit is the earnest of the
heavenly inheritance, and believers are already seated with Christ in heavenly
places. But while some of the
eschatological realities are thus projected into the present, they are
not fully realized
until the time of the future consummation. And when we speak of
"eschatology," we
have in mind more particularly the facts and events that are connected
with the second
coming of Christ, and that will mark the end of the present dispensation
and will usher
in the eternal glories of the future.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.i-p10.17">E. THE CONTENTS OF ESCHATOLOGY: GENERAL AND INDIVIDUAL ESCHATOLOGY.</h4>
<p id="viii.i-p11" shownumber="no">1. GENERAL ESCHATOLOGY. The name "eschatology" calls attention to the fact that the
history of the world and of the human race will finally reach its
consummation. It is not
an indefinite and endless process, but a real history moving on to a
divinely appointed
end. According to Scripture that end will come as a mighty crisis, and
the facts and events associated with this crisis form the contents of
eschatology. Strictly speaking,
they also determine its limits. But because other elements may be
included under the
general head, it is customary to speak of the series of events that is
connected with the
return of Jesus Christ and the end of the world as constituting general
eschatology, —
an eschatology in which all men are concerned. The subjects that call
for consideration
in this division, are the return of Christ, the general resurrection,
the last judgment, the
consummation of the Kingdom, and the final condition of both the pious
and the
wicked. </p>

<p id="viii.i-p12" shownumber="no">2. INDIVIDUAL ESCHATOLOGY. Besides this
general, there is also an individual,
eschatology that must be taken into consideration. The events named may
constitute the
whole of eschatology in the strict sense of the word, yet we cannot do
justice to this
without showing how the generations who have died will participate in
the final events.
For the individual the end of the present existence comes with death,
which transfers
him completely from the present into the future age. In so far as he is
removed from the
present age with its historical development, he is introduced into the
future age, which
is eternity. In the same measure in which there is a change in locality,
there is also a
change of æon. The things touching the condition of the individual
between his death
and the general resurrection, belong to personal or individual
eschatology. Physical death, the immortality of the soul, and the intermediate
condition call for discussion
here. The study of these subjects will serve the purpose of connecting
up the condition
of those who die before the parousia with the final consummation. </p>
</div2>

      <div2 id="viii.ii" next="viii.ii.i" prev="viii.i" title="Individual Eschatology">
<h2 id="viii.ii-p0.1">INDIVIDUAL ESCHATOLOGY</h2>

        <div3 id="viii.ii.i" next="viii.ii.ii" prev="viii.ii" title="I. Physical Death">
<h2 id="viii.ii.i-p0.1">I. Physical Death</h2>
<p id="viii.ii.i-p1" shownumber="no">The Scriptural idea of death includes physical,
spiritual, and eternal death. Physical
and spiritual death are naturally discussed in connection with the
doctrine of sin, and
eternal death is considered more particularly in general eschatology.
For that reason a
discussion of death in any sense of the word might seem to be out of
place in individual
eschatology. Yet it can hardly be left out of consideration altogether
in an attempt to link up past generations with the final consummation.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.i-p1.1">A. THE NATURE OF PHYSICAL DEATH.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.i-p2" shownumber="no">The Bible contains some instructive indications as to the
nature of physical death. It
speaks of this in various ways. In <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.28" parsed="|Matt|10|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:28">Matt. 10:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.4" parsed="|Luke|12|4|0|0" passage="Luke 12:4">Luke 12:4</scripRef>, it is spoken
of as the death of
the body, as distinguished from that of the soul (psuche). Here the body
is considered as
a living organism, and the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p2.3">
psuche</span>
is evidently the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p2.4">
pneuma</span>
of man, the spiritual element
which is the principle of his natural life. This view of natural death
also underlies the
language of Peter in <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.14-1Pet.3.18" parsed="|1Pet|3|14|3|18" passage="I Pet. 3:14-18">I Pet. 3:14-18</scripRef>. In other passages it is described
as the termination of
the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p2.6">
psuche</span>, that is, of animal life or living, or
as the loss of this, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.2.20" parsed="|Matt|2|20|0|0" passage="Matt. 2:20">Matt. 2:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.8" osisRef="Bible:Mark.3.4" parsed="|Mark|3|4|0|0" passage="Mark 3:4">Mark 3:4</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.6.9" parsed="|Luke|6|9|0|0" passage="Luke 6:9">Luke 6:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.14.26" parsed="|Luke|14|26|0|0" passage="Luke 14:26">14:26</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.11" osisRef="Bible:John.12.25" parsed="|John|12|25|0|0" passage="John 12:25">John 12:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:John.13.37" parsed="|John|13|37|0|0" passage="John 13:37">13:37</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.13" osisRef="Bible:John.13.38" parsed="|John|13|38|0|0" passage="John 13:38">38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.26" parsed="|Acts|15|26|0|0" passage="Acts 15:26">Acts 15:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.15" osisRef="Bible:Acts.20.24" parsed="|Acts|20|24|0|0" passage="Acts 20:24">20:24</scripRef>, and other passages.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.ii.i-p2.16" n="5" place="foot">Cf. Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p2.17"> Bijb. en Rel. Psych.</span>, p. 34.</note>
And, finally,
it is also represented as a separation of body and soul, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.18" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.12.7" parsed="|Eccl|12|7|0|0" passage="Eccl. 12:7">Eccl. 12:7</scripRef>
(comp. <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.19" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.7" parsed="|Gen|2|7|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:7">Gen. 2:7</scripRef>); <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.20" osisRef="Bible:Jas.2.26" parsed="|Jas|2|26|0|0" passage="Jas. 2:26">Jas.  2:26</scripRef>,
an idea that is also basic to such passages as <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.21" osisRef="Bible:John.19.30" parsed="|John|19|30|0|0" passage="John 19:30">John 19:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.22" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.59" parsed="|Acts|7|59|0|0" passage="Acts 7:59">Acts 7:59</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.23" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.23" parsed="|Phil|1|23|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:23">Phil. 1:23</scripRef>. Cf. also the use of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p2.24">
exodus</span>
in <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p2.25" osisRef="Bible:Luke.9.31" parsed="|Luke|9|31|0|0" passage="Luke 9:31">Luke 9:31</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:15,16. In view
of all this it may be said that,
according to Scripture, physical death is a termination of physical life
by the separation
of body and soul. It is never an annihilation, though some sects
represent the death of
the wicked as such. God does not annihilate anything in His creation.
Death is not a
cessation of existence, but a severance of the natural relations of
life. Life and death are not opposed to each other as existence and non-existence, but are
opposites only as
different modes of existence. It is quite impossible to say exactly what
death is. We
speak of it as the cessation of physical life, but then the question
immediately arises,
Just what is life? And we have no answer. We do not know what life is in
its essential
being, but know it only in its relations and actions. And experience
teaches us that, where these are severed and cease, death enters. Death means a
break in the natural
relations of life. It may be said that sin is<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p2.26">
per se</span>
death, because it represents a break in the
vital relation in which man, as created in the image of God, stands to
his Maker. It
means the loss of that image, and consequently disturbs all the
relations of life. This
break is also carried through in that separation of body and soul which
is called physical death.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.i-p2.27">B. THE CONNECTION OF SIN AND DEATH.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.i-p3" shownumber="no">Pelagians and Socinians teach that man was created
mortal, not merely in the sense
that he could fall a prey to death, but in the sense that he was, in
virtue of his creation,
under the law of death, and in course of time was bound to die. This
means that Adam
was not only susceptible to death, but was actually subject to it before
he fell. The
advocates of this view were prompted primarily by the desire to evade
the proof for
original sin derived from the suffering and death of infants. Present
day science seems
to support this position by stressing the fact that death is the law of
organized matter,
since it carries within it the seed of decay and dissolution. Some of
the early Church
Fathers and some later theologians, such as Warburton and Laidlaw, take
the position
that Adam was indeed created mortal, that is, subject to the law of
dissolution, but that
the law was effective in his case only because he sinned. If he had
proved himself to be
obedient, he would have been exalted to a state of immortality. His sin
brought about
no change in his constitutional being in this respect, but under the
sentence of God left
him subject to the law of death, and robbed him of the boon of
immortality, which he
might have had without experiencing death. On this view the actual
entrance of death,
of course, remains penal. It is a view which might be made to fit in
very well with the
supralapsarian position, but is not demanded by this. In reality this
theory merely seeks
to square the facts, as they are revealed in the Word of God, with the
dicta of science,
but even these do not make it imperative. Suppose that science had
proved conclusively
that death reigned in the vegetable and animal world before the entrance
of sin, then it
would not yet necessarily follow that it also prevailed in the world of
rational and
moral beings. And even if it were established beyond the shadow of a
doubt that all
physical organisms, the human included, now carry within them the seeds
of
dissolution, this would not yet prove that man was not an exception to
the rule before
the fall. Shall we say that the almighty power of God, by which the
universe was
created, was not sufficient to continue man in life indefinitely?
Moreover we ought to
bear in mind the following Scriptural data: (1) Man was created in the
image of God
and this, in view of the perfect condition in which the image of God
existed originally,
would seem to exclude the possibility of his carrying within him the
seeds of
dissolution and mortality. (2) Physical death is not represented in
Scripture as the
natural result of the continuation of the original condition of man, due
to his failure to
rise to the height of immortality by the path of obedience; but as the
result of his
spiritual death,
<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.23" parsed="|Rom|6|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:23">Rom. 6:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.21" parsed="|Rom|5|21|0|0" passage="Rom 5:21">5:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.56" parsed="|1Cor|15|56|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:56">I Cor. 15:56</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.15" parsed="|Jas|1|15|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:15">Jas. 1:15</scripRef>. (3) Scriptural expressions certainly
point to death as something introduced into the world of humanity by sin,
and as a
positive
punishment for sin, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.17" parsed="|Gen|2|17|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:17">Gen. 2:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.3.19" parsed="|Gen|3|19|0|0" passage="Gen 3:19">3:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.12" parsed="|Rom|5|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:12">Rom. 5:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.17" parsed="|Rom|5|17|0|0" passage="Rom 5:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.23" parsed="|Rom|6|23|0|0" passage="Rom 6:23">6:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.21" parsed="|1Cor|15|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:21">I Cor. 15:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:Jas.1.15" parsed="|Jas|1|15|0|0" passage="Jas. 1:15">Jas. 1:15</scripRef>. (4)
Death is not represented as something natural in the life of man, a mere
falling short of
an ideal, but very decidedly as something foreign and hostile to human
life: it is an
expression of divine anger, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.7" parsed="|Ps|90|7|0|0" passage="Ps. 90:7">Ps. 90:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.90.11" parsed="|Ps|90|11|0|0" passage="Ps 90:11">11</scripRef>, a judgment, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.32" parsed="|Rom|1|32|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:32">Rom. 1:32</scripRef>, a
condemnation, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.16" parsed="|Rom|5|16|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:16">Rom. 5:16</scripRef>, and a curse, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Gal.3.13" parsed="|Gal|3|13|0|0" passage="Gal. 3:13">Gal. 3:13</scripRef>, and fills the hearts of the
children of men with dread and
fear, just because it is felt to be something unnatural. All this does
not mean, however,
that there may not have been death in some sense of the word in the
lower creation
apart from sin, but even there the entrance of sin evidently brought a
bondage of
corruption that was foreign to the creature, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.20-Rom.8.22" parsed="|Rom|8|20|8|22" passage="Rom. 8:20-22">Rom. 8:20-22</scripRef>. In strict
justice God might
have imposed death on man in the fullest sense of the word immediately
after his
transgression, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Gen.2.17" parsed="|Gen|2|17|0|0" passage="Gen. 2:17">Gen. 2:17</scripRef>. But by His common grace He restrained the
operation of sin
and death, and by His special grace in Christ Jesus He conquered these
hostile forces,
<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.19" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.17" parsed="|Rom|5|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 5:17">Rom. 5:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.20" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.45" parsed="|1Cor|15|45|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:45">I Cor. 15:45</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.21" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.10" parsed="|2Tim|1|10|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:10">II Tim. 1:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.22" osisRef="Bible:Heb.2.14" parsed="|Heb|2|14|0|0" passage="Heb. 2:14">Heb. 2:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.23" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.18" parsed="|Rev|1|18|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:18">Rev. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.24" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.14" parsed="|Rev|20|14|0|0" passage="Rev 20:14">20:14</scripRef>. Death now accomplishes
its work fully only in the lives of those who refuse the deliverance
from it that is offered
in Jesus Christ. Those who believe in Christ are freed from the power of
death, are
restored to communion with God, and are endowed with an endless life,
<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.25" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">John 3:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.26" osisRef="Bible:John.6.40" parsed="|John|6|40|0|0" passage="John 6:40">6:40</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.27" osisRef="Bible:Rom.5.17-Rom.5.21" parsed="|Rom|5|17|5|21" passage="Rom. 5:17-21">Rom. 5:17-21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.28" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.23" parsed="|Rom|8|23|0|0" passage="Rom 8:23">8:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.29" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.26" parsed="|1Cor|15|26|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:26">I Cor. 15:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.30" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.51-1Cor.15.57" parsed="|1Cor|15|51|15|57" passage="I Cor. 15:51-57">51-57</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.31" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.14" parsed="|Rev|20|14|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:14">Rev. 20:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.32" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.3" parsed="|Rev|21|3|0|0" passage="Rev 21:3">21:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p3.33" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.4" parsed="|Rev|21|4|0|0" passage="Rev 21:4">4</scripRef>.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.i-p3.34">C. THE SIGNIFICANCE OF THE DEATH OF BELIEVERS.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.i-p4" shownumber="no">The Bible speaks of physical death as a punishment, as
"the wages of sin." Since
believers are justified, however, and are no more under obligation to
render any penal
satisfaction, the question naturally arises, Why must they die? It is
quite evident that for
them the penal element is removed from death. They are no more under the
law, either
as a requirement of the covenant of works or as a condemning power,
since they have
obtained a complete pardon for all their sins. Christ became a curse for
them, and thus
removed the penalty of sin. But if this is so, why does God still deem
it necessary to lead
them through the harrowing experience of death? Why does He not simply
transfer
them to heaven at once? It cannot be said that the destruction of the
body is absolutely
essential to a perfect sanctification, since that is contradicted by the
examples of Enoch
and Elijah. Neither does it satisfy to say that death sets the believer
free from the ills and
sufferings of the present life, and from the trammels of the dust, by
liberating the spirit
from the present coarse and sensual body. God might effect this
deliverance also by a
sudden transformation, such as living saints will experience at the time
of the parousia.
It is quite evident that the death of believers must be regarded as the
culmination of the
chastisements which God has ordained for the sanctification of His
people. While death in itself remains a real natural evil for the children of
God, something unnatural, which
is dreaded by them as such, it is made subservient in the economy of
grace to their
spiritual advancement and to the best interests of the Kingdom of God.
The very
thought of death, bereavements through death, the feeling that sicknesses
and
sufferings are harbingers of death, and the consciousness of the
approach of death, — all have a very beneficial effect on the people of God.
They serve to humble the proud,
to mortify carnality, to check worldliness and to foster
spiritual-mindedness. In the
mystical union with their Lord believers are made to share the
experiences of Christ.
Just as He entered upon His glory by the pathway of sufferings and
death, they too can
enter upon their eternal reward only through sanctification. Death is
often the supreme
test of the strength of the faith that is in them, and frequently calls
forth striking
manifestations of the consciousness of victory in the very hour of
seeming defeat, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.4.12" parsed="|1Pet|4|12|0|0" passage="I Pet. 4:12">I Pet. 4:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.4.13" parsed="|1Pet|4|13|0|0" passage="I Pet. 4:13">13</scripRef>. It completes the sanctification of the souls of believers, so
that they become at
once "the
spirits of just men made perfect," <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.23" parsed="|Heb|12|23|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:23">Heb. 12:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.27" parsed="|Rev|21|27|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:27">Rev. 21:27</scripRef>. Death is not
the end
for believers, but the beginning of a perfect life. They enter death
with the assurance
that its sting has been removed, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.55" parsed="|1Cor|15|55|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:55">I Cor. 15:55</scripRef>, and that it is for them
the gateway of
heaven. They fall asleep in Jesus, <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:7">II Thess. 1:7</scripRef>, and know that even
their bodies will at
last be snatched out of the power of death, to be forever with the Lord,
<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:11">Rom. 8:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">I Thess. 4:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.17" parsed="|1Thess|4|17|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:17">17</scripRef>.
Jesus said, "He that believeth on me, though he die, yet shall he
live."
And Paul had the blessed consciousness that for him to live was Christ,
and to die was gain. Hence he could also speak in jubilant notes at the end of
his career: "I have fought
the good fight, I have finished the course, I have kept the faith:
henceforth there is laid
up for me the crown of righteousness, which the Lord, the righteous
Judge, shall give to
me at that day; and not to me only, but also to all them that have loved
His appearing," <scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.7" parsed="|2Tim|4|7|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:7">II Tim. 4:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.i-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.8" parsed="|2Tim|4|8|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:8">8</scripRef>. </p>
<p id="viii.ii.i-p5" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What is the fundamental idea of the Biblical
conception of death? Is death merely the natural result of sin, or is it
a positive
punishment for sin? If it is the latter, how can this be proved from
Scripture? In what
sense was man, as he was created by God, mortal; and in what sense,
immortal? How
can you disprove the position of the Pelagians? In what sense has death
really ceased to be death for believers? What purpose does death serve in their
lives? When is the power
of death completely terminated for them?</p>

<p id="viii.ii.i-p6" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Dick,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.1">
Lect. on Theol</span>, pp. 426-433; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.2">
Syst. and Polemic Theol.</span>, pp.
817-821; Litton;<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.3">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 536-540; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.4">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
III, pp. 569-573;
Schmid,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.5">
Dogm. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp. 626-631;
Pope,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.6">
Chr. Theol.</span>
III, pp.
371-376;
Valentine,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.7">
Chr. Theol.</span>, II, pp.
389-391; Hovey,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.8">
Eschatology</span>, pp. 13-22;
Dahle,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.9">
Life After Death</span>, pp. 24-58; Kenneday,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.10">
St. Paul's Conception of the Last Things</span>, pp. 103-157;
Strong,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.11">
Syst. Theol.</span>
pp. 982 f.; Pohle-Preuss,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.i-p6.12">
Eschatology</span>, pp. 5-17. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="viii.ii.ii" next="viii.ii.iii" prev="viii.ii.i" title="II. The Immortality of the Soul">
<h2 id="viii.ii.ii-p0.1">II. The Immortality of the Soul</h2>
<p id="viii.ii.ii-p1" shownumber="no">In the preceding it was pointed out that physical death is
the separation of body and
soul and marks the end of our present physical existence. It necessarily
involves and
results in the decomposition of the body. It marks the end of our
present life and the end
of the "natural body." But now the question arises, What
becomes of the soul: does
physical death bring its life to a close, or does it continue to exist
and live on after
death? It has always been the firm conviction of the Church of Jesus Christ
that the soul
continues to live even after its separation from the body. This doctrine
of the
immortality of the soul calls for brief consideration at this point.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.ii-p1.1">DIFFERENT CONNOTATIONS OF THE TERM "IMMORTALITY."</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.ii-p2" shownumber="no">In a discussion of the doctrine of immortality it should
be borne in mind that the
term "immortality" is not always used in the same sense. There
are certain distinctions that are quite essential, in order to prevent
confusion.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p3" shownumber="no">1. In the most absolute sense of the word immortality is
ascribed only to God. Paul
speaks of Him in <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.15" parsed="|1Tim|6|15|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:15">I Tim. 6:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.16" parsed="|1Tim|6|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:16">16</scripRef> as "the blessed and only Potentate,
the King of kings, the
Lord of lords,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p3.3">
who only hath immortality."</span>
This does not
mean that none of His creatures
are immortal in any sense of the word. Understood in that unrestricted
sense, this word
of Paul would also teach that the angels are not immortal, and this is
certainly not the
intention of the apostle. The evident meaning of his statement is that
God is the only
being who possesses immortality "as an original, eternal, and
necessary endowment."
Whatever immortality may be ascribed to some of His creatures, is
contingent on the
divine will, is conferred upon them, and therefore had a beginning. God,
on the other hand, is necessarily free from all temporal limitations.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p4" shownumber="no">2. Immortality in the sense of continuous or endless
existence is also ascribed to all
spirits, including the human soul. It is one of the doctrines of natural
religion or
philosophy that, when the body is dissolved, the soul does not share in
its dissolution,
but retains its identity as an individual being. This idea of the
immortality of the soul is in perfect harmony with what the Bible teaches about
man, but the Bible, religion, and
theology, are not primarily interested in this purely quantitative and
colourless
immortality, — the bare continued existence of the soul.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p5" shownumber="no">3. Again, the term "immortality" is used in
theological language to designate that
state of man in which he is entirely free from the seeds of decay and
death. In this sense
of the word man was immortal before the fall. This state clearly did not
exclude the
possibility of man's becoming subject to death. Though man in the state
of rectitude was
not subject to death, yet he was liable to it. It was entirely possible
that through sin he
would become subject to the law of death; and as a matter of fact he did
fall a victim to it.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p6" shownumber="no">4. Finally, the word "immortality" designates,
especially in eschatological language,
that state of man in which he is impervious to death and cannot possibly
become its
prey. Man was not immortal in this highest sense of the word in virtue
of his creation,
even though he was created in the image of God. This immortality would
have resulted
if Adam had complied with the condition of the covenant of works, but
can now only
result from the work of redemption as it is completed in the
consummation.</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.ii-p6.1">B. TESTIMONY OF GENERAL REVELATION TO THE IMMORTALITY OF THE SOUL.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.ii-p7" shownumber="no">The
question of Job, "If a man die, shall he live again?" (<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p7.1" osisRef="Bible:Job.14.14" parsed="|Job|14|14|0|0" passage="Job 14:14">Job 14:14</scripRef>) is
one of
perennial interest. And with it the question constantly recurs, whether
the dead still
live. The answer to this question has practically always been an
affirmative one. Though
evolutionists cannot admit that faith in the immortality of the soul is
an original
endowment of man, yet it cannot be denied that this faith is all but
universal, and is found even in the lowest forms of religion. Under the influence
of materialism many
have been inclined to doubt and even to deny the future life of man. Yet
this negative
attitude is not the prevailing one. In a recent Symposium on
"Immortality," containing
the views of about a hundred representative men, the opinions are
practically
unanimous in favour of a future life. The historical and philosophical
arguments for the
immortality of the soul are not absolutely conclusive, but certainly are
important
testimonies to the continued personal and conscious existence of man.
They are the
following.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p8" shownumber="no">1. THE HISTORICAL ARGUMENT. The<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p8.1">
consensus gentium</span>
is just as
strong in connection
with the immortality of the soul, as it is with reference to the
existence of God. There
always have been unbelieving scholars who denied the continued existence
of man, but
in general it may be said that belief in the immortality of the soul is
found among all
races and nations, no matter what their stage of civilization may be.
And it would seem
that a notion so common can only be regarded as a natural instinct or as
something
involved in the very constitution of human nature.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p9" shownumber="no">2. THE METAPHYSICAL ARGUMENT. This
argument is based on the simplicity of the
human soul, and infers from this its indissolubility. In death matter is
dissolved into its
parts. But the soul as a spiritual entity is not composed of various
parts, and is therefore
incapable of division or dissolution. Consequently, the decomposition of
the body does
not carry with it the destruction of the soul. Even when the former
perishes, the latter
remains intact. This argument is very old and was already used by Plato.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p10" shownumber="no">3. THE TELEOLOGICAL ARGUMENT. Human
beings seem to be endowed with almost
infinite capabilities, which are never fully developed in this life. It
seems as if most men
only just begin to accomplish some of the great things to which they
aspire. There are
ideals that fall far short of realization, appetites and desires that
are not satisfied in this
life, yearnings and aspirations that are disappointed. Now it is argued
that God would
not have conferred upon men such abilities and talents, only to make
them fail in their
achievements, would not have filled the heart with such desires and
aspirations, only to
disappoint them. He must have provided a future existence, in which human
life will
come to
fruition. </p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p11" shownumber="no">4. THE MORAL ARGUMENT. The human
conscience testifies to the existence of a moral
Ruler of the universe who will exercise justice. Yet the demands of
justice are not met in this present life. There is a very unequal and seemingly
unjust distribution of good and
evil. The wicked often prosper, increase in riches, and have an abundant
share of the
joys of life, while the pious frequently live in poverty, meet with
painful and
humiliating reverses, and suffer many afflictions. Hence there
must be a future state of
existence, in which justice will reign supreme, and the inequalities of
the present will be  adjusted.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.ii-p11.1">C. TESTIMONY OF SPECIAL REVELATION TO THE IMMORTALITY OF THE SOUL.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.ii-p12" shownumber="no">The historical and philosophical proofs for the survival
of the soul are not absolutely
demonstrative, and therefore do not compel belief. For greater assurance
in this matter,
it is necessary to direct the eye of faith to Scripture. Here, too, we
must rely on the voice
of authority. Now the position of Scripture with respect to this matter
may at first seem somewhat dubious. It speaks of God as the only one who hath
immortality (<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.15" parsed="|1Tim|6|15|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:15">I Tim. 6:15</scripRef>),
and never predicates this of man. There is no explicit mention of the
immortality of the
soul, and much less any attempt to prove it in a formal way. Hence the
Russellites or
Millennial Dawnists often challenge theologians to point to a single
passage in which
the Bible teaches that the soul of man is immortal. But even if the
Bible does not
explicitly state that the soul of man is immortal, and does not seek to
prove this in a
formal way, any more than it seeks to present formal proof for the
existence of God, this
does not mean that Scripture denies or contradicts or even ignores it.
It clearly assumes
in many passages that man continues his conscious existence after death.
In fact, it
treats the truth of the immortality of man very much as it does that of
the existence of
God, that is, it assumes this as an undisputed postulate.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p13" shownumber="no">1. THE DOCTRINE OF IMMORTALITY IN THE OLD TESTAMENT. The assertion has been
made repeatedly that the Old Testament, and particularly the Pentateuch,
does not
teach in any way the immortality of the soul. Now it is perfectly true
that this great
truth is revealed less clearly in the Old than in the New Testament; but
the facts in the
case do not warrant the assertion that it is absent from the Old
Testament altogether. It
is a well-known and generally recognized fact that God's revelation in
Scripture is
progressive and gradually increases in clearness; and it stands to
reason that the
doctrine of immortality in the sense of a blessed eternal life, could
only be revealed in
all its bearings after the resurrection of Jesus Christ, who
"brought life and immortality
to light," <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.10" parsed="|2Tim|1|10|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:10">II Tim. 1:10</scripRef>. But while all this is true, it cannot be
denied that the Old
Testament implies the continued conscious existence of man, either in
the sense of a
bare immortality or survival of the soul, or of a blessed future life,
in several ways. This
is implied: </p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p14" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p14.1">
In its doctrine of God and man.</span>
The very root
of Israel's hope of immortality was
found in its belief in God as its Creator and Redeemer, its covenant
God, who would
never fail them. He was to them the living, the eternal, the faithful
God, in whose
fellowship they found joy, life, peace, and perfect satisfaction. Would
they have panted
after Him as they did, have entrusted themselves to Him completely in
life and death,
and have sung of Him as their portion forever, if they felt that all He
offered them was
but for a brief span of time? How could they derive real comfort from
the promised
redemption of God, if they regarded death as the end of their existence?
Moreover, the Old Testament represents man as created in the image of God,
created for life and not
for mortality. In distinction from the brute, he possesses a life that
transcends time and
already contains within itself a pledge of immortality. He is made for
communion with
God, is but little lower than the angels, and God has set eternity in
his heart, <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.3.11" parsed="|Eccl|3|11|0|0" passage="Eccl. 3:11">Eccl. 3:11</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p15" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p15.1">
In its doctrine of sheol.</span>
We are taught in the Old Testament that the dead descend
into<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p15.2">
sheol.</span>
The discussion of this doctrine belongs to the following chapter. But
whatever
may be the proper interpretation of the Old Testament<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p15.3">
sheol</span>, and whatever may be said
of the condition of those who have descended into it, this is certainly
represented as a
state of more or less conscious existence, though not one of bliss. Man
enters upon the
state of perfect bliss only by a deliverance from<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p15.4">
sheol.</span>
In this deliverance we reach the
real core of the Old Testament hope of a blessed immortality. This is
clearly taught in
several
passages, such as <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.10" parsed="|Ps|16|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 16:10">Ps. 16:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.14" parsed="|Ps|49|14|0|0" passage="Ps 49:14">49:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.15" parsed="|Ps|49|15|0|0" passage="Ps 49:15">15</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p16" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p16.1">
In its frequent warnings against consulting the dead or
"familiar spirits</span>
" that is,
persons who were able to summon the spirits of the dead and to convey
their messages
to the
inquirers, <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Lev.19.31" parsed="|Lev|19|31|0|0" passage="Lev. 19:31">Lev. 19:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Lev.20.27" parsed="|Lev|20|27|0|0" passage="Lev 20:27">20:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Deut.18.11" parsed="|Deut|18|11|0|0" passage="Deut. 18:11">Deut. 18:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.8.19" parsed="|Isa|8|19|0|0" passage="Isa. 8:19">Isa. 8:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.29.4" parsed="|Isa|29|4|0|0" passage="Isa 29:4">29:4</scripRef>. Scripture does not
say that
it is impossible to consult the dead, but rather seems to presuppose the
possibility while
it condemns the practice.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p17" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p17.1">
In its teachings respecting the resurrection of the dead.</span>
This doctrine
is not explicitly
taught in the earlier books of the Old Testament. Christ points out,
however, that it was
taught by implication in the statement, "I am the God of Abraham,
and the God of
Isaac, and the
God of Jacob," <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.32" parsed="|Matt|22|32|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:32">Matt. 22:32</scripRef>, cf. <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Exod.3.6" parsed="|Exod|3|6|0|0" passage="Ex. 3:6">Ex. 3:6</scripRef>, and chides the Jews for not understanding the Scriptures on this point. Moreover, the doctrine of
the resurrection is
explicitly
taught in such passages as <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Job.19.23-Job.19.27" parsed="|Job|19|23|19|27" passage="Job 19:23-27">Job 19:23-27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.9-Ps.16.11" parsed="|Ps|16|9|16|11" passage="Ps. 16:9-11">Ps. 16:9-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.17.15" parsed="|Ps|17|15|0|0" passage="Ps 17:15">17:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.15" parsed="|Ps|49|15|0|0" passage="Ps 49:15">49:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.24" parsed="|Ps|73|24|0|0" passage="Ps 73:24">73:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Isa.26.19" parsed="|Isa|26|19|0|0" passage="Isa. 26:19">Isa. 26:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.2" parsed="|Dan|12|2|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:2">Dan. 12:2</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p18" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p18.1"> In certain striking Old Testament passages which speak of the believer's enjoyment in communion with God after death.</span>
These are in
the main identical with the passages
referred to in
the preceding, namely, <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Job.19.25-Job.19.27" parsed="|Job|19|25|19|27" passage="Job 19:25-27">Job 19:25-27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.9-Ps.16.11" parsed="|Ps|16|9|16|11" passage="Ps. 16:9-11">Ps. 16:9-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.17.15" parsed="|Ps|17|15|0|0" passage="Ps 17:15">17:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.23" parsed="|Ps|73|23|0|0" passage="Ps 73:23">73:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.24" parsed="|Ps|73|24|0|0" passage="Ps 73:24">24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.26" parsed="|Ps|73|26|0|0" passage="Ps 73:26">26</scripRef>. They
breathe the confident expectation of pleasures in the presence of
Jehovah.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p19" shownumber="no">2. THE DOCTRINE OF IMMORTALITY IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. In the New Testament,
after Christ has brought life and immortality to light, the proofs
naturally multiply. The
passages that contain these may again be divided into various classes,
as referring:</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p20" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p20.1">
To the survival of the soul.</span>
A continued
existence of both the righteous and the
wicked is clearly taught. That the souls of believers survive, appears
from such passages
as <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.28" parsed="|Matt|10|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 10:28">Matt. 10:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.43" parsed="|Luke|23|43|0|0" passage="Luke 23:43">Luke 23:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:John.11.25" parsed="|John|11|25|0|0" passage="John 11:25">John 11:25</scripRef> f.; 14:3; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.1" parsed="|2Cor|5|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:1">II Cor. 5:1</scripRef>; and several other passages
make it quite evident that the same can be said of the souls of the
wicked, Matt. i1:21-24; 12:41; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.5-Rom.2.11" parsed="|Rom|2|5|2|11" passage="Rom. 2:5-11">Rom. 2:5-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.10" parsed="|2Cor|5|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:10">II Cor. 5:10</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p21" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p21.1">
To the resurrection by which the body is also made to
share in the future existence.</span>
For
believers the resurrection means the redemption of the body and entrance
into the
perfect life in communion with God, the full blessedness of immortality.
This
resurrection is
taught in <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Luke.20.35" parsed="|Luke|20|35|0|0" passage="Luke 20:35">Luke 20:35</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.20.36" parsed="|Luke|20|36|0|0" passage="Luke 20:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:John.5.25-John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|25|5|29" passage="John 5:25-29">John 5:25-29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15" parsed="|1Cor|15|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15">I Cor. 15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">I Thess. 4:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p21.7" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:21">Phil. 3:21</scripRef>,
and other passages. For the wicked the resurrection will also mean a
renewed and
continued existence of the body, but this can hardly be called life.
Scripture calls it
eternal death. The resurrection of the wicked is mentioned in <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p21.8" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">John 5:29</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p21.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.24.15" parsed="|Acts|24|15|0|0" passage="Acts 24:15">Acts 24:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p21.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.12-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|12|20|15" passage="Rev. 20:12-15">Rev. 20:12-15</scripRef>.</p>
<p id="viii.ii.ii-p22" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p22.1"> To the blessed life of believers in communion with God.</span>
There are
numerous passages
in the New Testament which stress the fact that the immortality of
believers is not a bare
endless existence, but a rapturous life of bliss in communion with God
and with Jesus
Christ, the full fruition of the life that is implanted in the soul
while still on earth. This is
clearly
emphasized in such passages as <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.43" parsed="|Matt|13|43|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:43">Matt. 13:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.34" parsed="|Matt|25|34|0|0" passage="Matt 25:34">25:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.7" parsed="|Rom|2|7|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:7">Rom. 2:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.10" parsed="|Rom|2|10|0|0" passage="Rom 2:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.49" parsed="|1Cor|15|49|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:49">I Cor. 15:49</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:21">Phil.  3:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.8" parsed="|2Tim|4|8|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:8">II Tim. 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.4" parsed="|Rev|21|4|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:4">Rev. 21:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.22.3" parsed="|Rev|22|3|0|0" passage="Rev 22:3">22:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.ii-p22.11" osisRef="Bible:Rev.22.4" parsed="|Rev|22|4|0|0" passage="Rev 22:4">4</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.ii-p22.12">D. OBJECTIONS TO THE DOCTRINE OF PERSONAL IMMORTALITY AND MODERN SUBSTITUTES FOR IT.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.ii-p23" shownumber="no">1. THE MAIN OBJECTION TO IT. Belief in
the immortality of the soul for a time suffered
a decline under the influence of a materialistic philosophy. The
main argument against
it was forged in the workshop of physiological psychology, and runs
somewhat as
follows: The mind or the soul has no independent substantial existence,
but is simply a product or function of brain activity. The brain of man is the
producing cause of mental
phenomena, just as the liver is the producing cause of bile. The
function cannot persist
when the organ decays. When the brain ceases to operate, the stream of
mental life
comes to a stop.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p24" shownumber="no">2.
SUBSTITUTES
FOR THE DOCTRINE OF PERSONAL IMMORTALITY. The desire for
immortality is so deeply implanted in the human soul that even those who
accept the
dicta of a materialistic science, seek some sort of substitute for the discarded
notion of
the personal immortality of the soul. Their hope for the future assumes
one of the
following forms:</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p25" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p25.1">
Racial immortality.</span>
There are
those who comfort themselves with the idea that the
individual will continue to live on this earth in his posterity, in his
children and
grandchildren, to endless generations. The individual seeks compensation
for his lack of
hope in a personal immortality in the notion that he contributes his
share to the life of
the race and will continue to live on in that. But the idea that a man
lives on in his
progeny, whatever modicum of truth it may contain, can hardly serve as a
substitute for
the doctrine of personal immortality. It certainly does not do justice
to the data of
Scripture, and does not satisfy the deepest longings of the human heart.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p26" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p26.1">
Immortality of commemoration.</span>
According to
Positivism this is the only immortality
we should desire and look for. Everyone should aim at doing something to
establish a
name for himself, which will go down in the annals of history. If he
does this, he will
continue to live in the hearts and minds of a grateful posterity. This
also falls far short of
the personal immortality which Scripture leads us to expect. Moreover,
it is an
immortality in which only a few will share. The names of most men are
not recorded on
the pages of history, and many of those who are so recorded are soon
forgotten. And to
a great extent it may be said that the best and the worst share it
alike.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p27" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p27.1">
Immortality of in</span><span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p27.2">
fl</span><span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p27.3">
uence.</span>
This is very closely related to the preceding. If a
man
makes his mark in life, and accomplishes something that is of enduring
value, his
influence will continue long after he is gone. Jesus and Paul,
Augustine and Thomas
Aquinas, Luther and Calvin, — they are all very much alive in the influence
which they
exercise up to the present time. While this is perfectly true, this
immortality of influence
is but a poor substitute for personal immortality. All the objections
that were raised
against the immortality of commemoration, also apply in this case.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p28" shownumber="no">3. THE RECOVERY OF FAITH IN IMMORTALITY. At the present time the materialistic
interpretation of the universe is making way for a more spiritual
interpretation; and as a
result faith in personal immortality is once more gaining favor. Dr.
William James, while
subscribing to the formula, "Thought is a function of the
brain," denies that this
logically compels us to disbelieve the doctrine of immortality. He
maintains that this conclusion of the scientists is based on the mistaken
notion that the function of which
the formula speaks is necessarily a<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p28.1">
productive</span>
function, and
points out that it may also
be a<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p28.2">
permissive</span>
or<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p28.3">
transmissive</span>
function. The brain may merely transmit, and in the
transmission colour, thought, just as a coloured glass, a prism, or a
refracting lens, may
transmit light and at the same time determine its colour and direction.
The light exists
independent of the glass or lens; so thought also exists independent of
the brain. He
comes to the conclusion that one can, in strict logic, believe in
immortality. Some
evolutionists now base the doctrine of conditional immortality on the
struggle for
existence. And such scientists as William James, Sir Oliver Lodge, and
James H. Hyslop,
attach great significance to reputed communications with the dead. On
the basis of
psychic phenomena the first was inclined to believe in immortality,
while the other two
embraced it as an established fact.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p29" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Is the
doctrine of immortality found in the
Pentateuch? What accounts for the comparative scarcity of proofs for it
in the Old
Testament? On what did Plato base his belief in the immortality of the
soul? How did
Kant judge of the usual natural arguments for the doctrine of
immortality? Is there any
place for belief in personal immortality in either Materialism or
Pantheism? Why does
the doctrine of so-called "social immortality" fail to
satisfy? Is the immortality of the
soul in the philosophical sense the same as eternal life? How should we
judge of the
reputed spiritualistic communications with the dead?
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.ii-p30" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 645-655; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.2">
Dict. Dogm. De
Consummatione Saeculi</span>, pp. 3-24; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.3">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 713-730; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.4">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 817-823; Dick,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.5">
Lect. on Theol.</span>
Lectures LXXX,
LXXXI; Litton,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.6">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 535-548; Heagle,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.7">
Do the Dead Still Live;</span>
Dahl,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.8">
Life After Death</span>, pp. 59-84;
Salmond,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.9">
Christian Doctrine of Immortality</span>, cf. Index;
Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.10">
Immortality and the
Future</span>, pp. 164-179; Brown,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.11">
The Christian Hope</span>, cf. Index; Randall,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.12">
The New Light on
Immortality;</span>
Macintosh,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.13">
Theology as an Empirical Science</span>, pp. 72-80;
Althaus,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.14">
Die Letzten
Dinge</span>, pp. 1-76; A. G. James,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.15">
Personal Immortality</span>, pp. 19-52; Rimmer,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.16">
The Evidences for
Immortality;</span>
Lawton,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.17">
The Drama of Life After Death;</span>
Addison,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.ii-p30.18">
Life Beyond Death</span>, pp. 3-132. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="viii.ii.iii" next="viii.iii" prev="viii.ii.ii" title="III. The Intermediate State">
<h2 id="viii.ii.iii-p0.1">III. The Intermediate State</h2>
<h4 id="viii.ii.iii-p0.2">A. THE SCRIPTURAL VIEW OF THE INTERMEDIATE STATE.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.iii-p1" shownumber="no">1. THE SCRIPTURAL REPRESENTATION OF BELIEVERS BETWEEN DEATH AND THE RESURRECTION. The usual position of the Reformed Churches is that the
souls of
believers<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p1.1">
immediately</span>
after death enter upon the glories of heaven. In answer to the
question, "What comfort does the resurrection of the body afford
thee?" the Heidelberg
Catechism says: "That not only my soul, after this life, shall be
immediately taken up to Christ its Head, but also that this my body, raised by
the power of Christ, shall again be
united with my soul, and made like the glorious body of Christ."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.ii.iii-p1.2" n="6" place="foot">Q. 57.</note>
The Westminster Confession speaks in the same spirit, when it says that, at death,
"The souls of the
righteous, being then made perfect in holiness, are received into the
highest heavens,
where they behold the face of God in light and glory, waiting for the
full redemption of  their
bodies."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.ii.iii-p1.3" n="7" place="foot">Chap. XXXII, I.</note>
Similarly, the Second Helvetic Confession
declares: "We believe that the
faithful, after bodily death, go directly unto Christ."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.ii.iii-p1.4" n="8" place="foot">Chap. XXVI.</note>
This view would seem to find
ample justification in Scripture, and it is well to take note of this,
since during the last
quarter of a century some Reformed theologians have taken the position
that believers
at death enter an intermediate place, and remain there until the day of
the resurrection. The Bible teaches, however, that the soul of the believer
when separated from the body,
enters the presence of Christ. Paul says that he is "willing rather
to be absent from the
body, and to be at home with the Lord." <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.5" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.8" parsed="|2Cor|5|8|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:8">II Cor. 5:8</scripRef>. To the
Philippians he writes that he
has a "desire to depart and to be with Christ," <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.6" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.23" parsed="|Phil|1|23|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:23">Phil. 1:23</scripRef>.
And Jesus gave the penitent
malefactor the joyous assurance, "To-day shalt thou be with me in
paradise," <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.43" parsed="|Luke|23|43|0|0" passage="Luke 23:43">Luke 23:43</scripRef>. And to be
with Christ is also to be in heaven. In the light of <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.8" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.12.3" parsed="|2Cor|12|3|0|0" passage="II Cor. 12:3">II Cor. 12:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.9" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.12.4" parsed="|2Cor|12|4|0|0" passage="II Cor. 12:4">4</scripRef> "paradise" can only be a designation of heaven. Moreover, Paul
says that, "if the earthly
house of our tabernacle be dissolved, we have a building from God, a
house not made
with hands, eternal in the heavens," <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.10" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.1" parsed="|2Cor|5|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:1">II Cor. 5:1</scripRef>. And the writer of
Hebrews cheers the
hearts of his readers with this thought among others that they "are
come to the general
assembly and
church of the firstborn<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p1.11">
who are
enrolled in heaven</span>,"
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.23" parsed="|Heb|12|23|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:23">Heb. 12:23</scripRef>. That the
future state of believers after death is greatly to be preferred to the
present appears
clearly from the assertions of Paul in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.13" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.8" parsed="|2Cor|5|8|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:8">II Cor. 5:8</scripRef> and <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.14" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.23" parsed="|Phil|1|23|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:23">Phil. 1:23</scripRef>,
quoted above. It is a state in which believers are truly alive and fully conscious, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.15" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.19-Luke.16.31" parsed="|Luke|16|19|16|31" passage="Luke 16:19-31">Luke 16:19-31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.16" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.10" parsed="|1Thess|5|10|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:10">I Thess. 5:10</scripRef>; a
state of rest
and endless bliss, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p1.17" osisRef="Bible:Rev.14.13" parsed="|Rev|14|13|0|0" passage="Rev. 14:13">Rev. 14:13</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p2" shownumber="no">2. THE SCRIPTURAL REPRESENTATION OF THE STATE OF THE WICKED BETWEEN DEATH AND THE RESURRECTION. The Westminster Catechism says that the souls of the
wicked after
death "are cast into hell, where they remain in torments and utter
darkness, reserved to
the judgment of the great day." Moreover, it adds: "Besides
these two places (heaven
and hell) for souls separated from their bodies, the Scripture
acknowledgeth none."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.ii.iii-p2.1" n="9" place="foot">Chap. XXXII.</note>
And the Second Helvetic Confession continues after the quotation cited
above: "In like
manner, we believe that the unbelievers are cast headlong into hell,
from whence there
is no return opened to the wicked by any offices of those who
live."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.ii.iii-p2.2" n="10" place="foot">Chap. XXVI.</note>
The Bible sheds
very little direct light on this subject. The only passage that can
really come into
consideration here is the parable of the rich man and Lazarus in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16" parsed="|Luke|16|0|0|0" passage="Luke 16">Luke 16</scripRef>, where<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p2.4">
hades </span>
denotes hell, the place of eternal torment. The rich man found himself
in the place of
torment; his condition was fixed forever; and he was conscious of his
miserable plight,
sought mitigation of the pain he was suffering, and desired to have his
brethren
warned, in order that they might avoid a similar doom. In addition to
this direct proof
there is also an inferential proof. If the righteous enter upon their
eternal state at once,
the presumption is that this is true of the wicked as well. We leave out
of consideration
here a couple of passages, which are of uncertain interpretation,
namely, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.19" parsed="|1Pet|3|19|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:19">I Pet. 3:19</scripRef>; II Pet. 2:9.</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.iii-p2.6">B. THE DOCTRINE OF THE INTERMEDIATE STATE IN HISTORY.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.iii-p3" shownumber="no">In the earliest years of the Christian Church there was
little thought of an
intermediate state. The idea that Jesus would soon return as Judge made
the interval
seem to be of little consequence. The problem of the intermediate state
arose when it
became apparent that Jesus would not at once return. The real problem
that vexed the
early Fathers, was how to reconcile individual judgment and retribution
at death with
the general judgment and retribution after the resurrection. To ascribe
too much
importance to the former would seem to rob the other of its
significance, and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p3.1">
vice versa. </span>
There was no unanimity among the early Church Fathers, but the majority
of them
sought to solve the difficulty by assuming a distinct intermediate state
between death
and the resurrection. Says Addison: "For many centuries the general
conclusion was
widely accepted that in a subterranean Hades the righteous enjoy a
measure of reward not equal to their future heaven and the wicked suffer a degree of
punishment not equal
to their future hell. The intermediate state was thus a slightly reduced
version of
ultimate retribution."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.ii.iii-p3.2" n="11" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p3.3">Life Beyond Death,</span> p. 202</note>
This view was held, though with some
variations, by such men
as Justin Martyr, Irenæus, Tertullian, Novatian, Origen, Gregory of
Nyssa, Ambrose,
and Augustine. In the Alexandrian School the idea of the intermediate
state passed into
that of a gradual purification of the soul, and this in course of time
paved the way for
the Roman Catholic doctrine of purgatory. There were some, however, who
favored the
idea that at death the souls of the righteous immediately entered
heaven, namely,
Gregory of Nazianze, Eusebius, and Gregory the Great. In the Middle Ages
the doctrine
of an intermediate state was retained, and in connection with it the
Roman Catholic
Church developed the doctrine of purgatory. The prevailing opinion was
that hell
received at once the souls of the wicked, but that only those of the
righteous who were
free from every stain of sin, were admitted at once into the blessedness
of heaven, to
enjoy the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p3.4">
visio Dei.</span>
The martyrs were usually reckoned among the favored few. Those
who were in need of further purification were, according to the
prevalent view,
detained in purgatory for a shorter or longer period of time, as the
degree of remaining
sin might require, and were there purged from sin by a purifying fire.
Another idea, that
was also developed in connection with the thought of the intermediate
state, was that of
the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p3.5">
Limbus Patrum</span>, where the Old Testament saints were detained until the resurrection
of Christ. The Reformers, one and all, rejected the doctrine of
purgatory, and also the
whole idea of a<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p3.6">
real</span>
intermediate state, which carried with it the idea of an intermediate
place. They held that those who died in the Lord at once entered the
bliss of heaven,
while those who died in their sins at once descended into hell. However,
some
theologians of the Reformation period assumed a difference in degree
between the bliss
of the former and the judgment of the latter before the final judgment,
and their final bliss and punishment after the great assize. Among the
Socinians and the Anabaptists
there were some who revived the old doctrine held by some in the early
Church, that
the soul of man sleeps from the time of death until the resurrection.
Calvin wrote a
treatise to combat this view. The same notion is advocated by some
Adventist sects and
by the Millennial Dawnists. During the nineteenth century several
theologians,
especially in England, Switzerland, and Germany, embraced the idea that
the
intermediate state is a state of further probation for those who have
not accepted Christ
in this life. This view is maintained by some up to the present time and
is a favorite
tenet of the Universalists. </p>


<h4 id="viii.ii.iii-p3.7">C. THE MODERN CONSTRUCTION OF THE DOCTRINE OF SHEOL-HADES</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.iii-p4" shownumber="no">1. STATEMENT OF THE DOCTRINE. There are several representations of the Biblical
conception of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.1">
sheol-hades</span>
in present day theology, and it is quite impossible to consider
each one of them separately. The idea is quite prevalent at present that
the Old
Testament conception of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.2">
sheol</span>
to which that of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.3">
hades</span>
in the New Testament is supposed
to correspond, was borrowed from the Gentile notion of the underworld. It
is held that
according to the Old Testament and the New, both the pious and the
wicked at death
enter the dreary abode of the shades, the land of forgetfulness, where
they are doomed
to an existence that is merely a dreamy reflection of life on
earth. The underworld is in
itself neither a place of rewards nor a place of punishment. It is not
divided into
different compartments for the good and the bad, but is a region without
moral
distinctions. It is a place of weakened consciousness and of slumbrous
inactivity, where
life has lost its interests and the joy of life is turned into sadness.
Some are of the
opinion that the Old Testament represents<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.4">
sheol</span>
as the permanent abode of all men,
while others find that it holds out a hope of escape for the pious.
Occasionally we meet
with a somewhat different representation of the Old Testament
conception, in which
<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.5">sheol</span>
is represented as divided into two compartments, namely,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.6">
paradise</span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.7">
gehenna</span>, the
former containing either all the Jews or only those who faithfully
observed the law, and
the latter embracing the Gentiles. The Jews will be delivered from<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.8">
sheol</span>
at the coming of
the Messiah, while the Gentiles will remain forever in the abode of
darkness. The New
Testament counterpart of this conception of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.9">
sheol</span>
is found in its representation of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p4.10">
hades. </span>
It is not merely held that the Hebrews entertained the notion of such an
underworld,
nor that the Biblical writers occasionally accommodated themselves
formally in their
representations to the views of the Gentiles of whom they were speaking;
but that this is
the Scriptural view of the intermediate state.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p5" shownumber="no">2. CRITICISM OF THIS MODERN REPRESENTATION. In the abstract it is, of course, possible
that the idea of such a separate locality, which is neither heaven nor
hell, in which all
the dead are gathered and where they remain, either permanently or until
some
communal resurrection, was more or less current in popular Hebrew thought
and may
have given rise to some figurative descriptions of the state of the
dead; but it can hardly
be regarded by those who believe in the plenary inspiration of the Bible
as an element of
the positive teachings of Scripture, since it plainly contradicts the Scriptural
representation that the righteous at once enter glory and the wicked at
once descend into the place of eternal punishment. Moreover, the following
considerations can be
urged against this view:</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p6" shownumber="no">a. The question arises, whether the view of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p6.1">
sheol-hades</span>, now so widely regarded as Scriptural, is true to fact or not. If it
was true to fact at the time, when the books of the
Bible were written, but is no more true to fact to-day, the question
naturally rises, What brought about the change? And if it was not true to fact,
but was a decidedly false view
—and this is the prevalent opinion —, then the problem at once arises,
how this
erroneous view could be countenanced and sanctioned and even taught positively
by
the inspired writers of Scripture. The problem is not relieved by the
consideration,
urged by some, that the inspiration of Scripture does not carry with it
the assurance that
the Old Testament saints were correct when they spoke of men entering
some
subterranean place at death, because not only these saints but also the
inspired writers
of Scripture employed language which, in itself and irrespective of
other clear teachings
of Scripture,
might be so interpreted, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Num.16.30" parsed="|Num|16|30|0|0" passage="Num. 16:30">Num. 16:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.15" parsed="|Ps|49|15|0|0" passage="Ps. 49:15">Ps. 49:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.16" parsed="|Ps|49|16|0|0" passage="Ps 49:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.88.3" parsed="|Ps|88|3|0|0" passage="Ps. 88:3">Ps. 88:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.48" parsed="|Ps|89|48|0|0" passage="Ps. 89:48">Ps. 89:48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.9.10" parsed="|Eccl|9|10|0|0" passage="Eccl. 9:10">Eccl. 9:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Isa.5.14" parsed="|Isa|5|14|0|0" passage="Isa. 5:14">Isa. 5:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:Hos.13.14" parsed="|Hos|13|14|0|0" passage="Hos. 13:14">Hos. 13:14</scripRef>. Were these inspired writers in error, when
they spoke of both
the righteous and the wicked as descending into<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p6.10">
sheol</span>? It may be said that there was
development in the revelation respecting the future destiny of man, and
we have no
reason to doubt that on this point, as on many others, that which was
first obscure
gradually gained in definiteness and clearness; but this certainly does
not mean that the
true developed out of the false. How could this be? Did the Holy Spirit
deem it
expedient for man that he first receive false impressions and obtain
erroneous views,
and then exchange these in course of time for a correct insight into the
condition of the
dead? </p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p7" shownumber="no">b. If in the Scriptural representation<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.1">
sheol-hades</span>
is really a neutral place, without
moral distinctions, without blessedness on the one hand, but also without
positive pain
on the other, a place to which all alike descend, how can
the Old Testament hold up the
descent of the wicked into<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.2">
sheol</span>
as a warning, as
it does in several places, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Job.21.13" parsed="|Job|21|13|0|0" passage="Job 21:13">Job 21:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.9.17" parsed="|Ps|9|17|0|0" passage="Ps. 9:17">Ps. 9:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Prov.5.5" parsed="|Prov|5|5|0|0" passage="Prov. 5:5">Prov. 5:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Prov.7.27" parsed="|Prov|7|27|0|0" passage="Prov 7:27">7:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Prov.9.18" parsed="|Prov|9|18|0|0" passage="Prov 9:18">9:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Prov.15.24" parsed="|Prov|15|24|0|0" passage="Prov 15:24">15:24</scripRef>; 23:14? How can the Bible speak of God's anger burning
there, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.22" parsed="|Deut|32|22|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:22">Deut. 32:22</scripRef>, and how can it use the term<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.10">
sheol</span>
as synonymous with<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.11">
abaddon</span>
that
is, destruction,
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.12" osisRef="Bible:Job.26.6" parsed="|Job|26|6|0|0" passage="Job 26:6">Job 26:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.13" osisRef="Bible:Prov.15.11" parsed="|Prov|15|11|0|0" passage="Prov. 15:11">Prov. 15:11</scripRef>; 27:20? This is a strong term, which is applied to the
angel of the abyss in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.14" osisRef="Bible:Rev.19.11" parsed="|Rev|19|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 19:11">Rev. 19:11</scripRef>. Some seek escape from this difficulty
by surrendering
the neutral character of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.15">
sheol</span>
and by assuming
that it was conceived of as an
underworld with two divisions, called in the New Testament<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.16">
paradise</span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.17">
gehenna</span>, the
former the destined abode of the righteous, and the latter that of the
wicked; but this
attempt can only result in disappointment, for the Old Testament
contains no trace of such a division, though it does speak of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.18">
sheol</span>
as a place of punishment for the wicked.
Moreover, the New Testament clearly identifies paradise with heaven in
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.19" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.12.2" parsed="|2Cor|12|2|0|0" passage="II Cor. 12:2">II Cor. 12:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.20" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.12.4" parsed="|2Cor|12|4|0|0" passage="II Cor. 12:4">4</scripRef>.
And, finally, if<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.21">
hades</span>
is the New
Testament designation of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.22">
sheol</span>
and all alike go
there,
what becomes of the special doom of Capernaum, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.23" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.23" parsed="|Matt|11|23|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:23">Matt. 11:23</scripRef>, and how can
it be
pictured as a place of torment, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.24" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.23" parsed="|Luke|16|23|0|0" passage="Luke 16:23">Luke 16:23</scripRef>? Someone might be inclined to
say that the
threatenings contained in some of the passages mentioned refer to a<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.25">
speedy</span>
descent into <span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p7.26">
sheol</span>, but there is no indication of this in the text whatsoever, except in
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p7.27" osisRef="Bible:Job.21.13" parsed="|Job|21|13|0|0" passage="Job 21:13">Job 21:13</scripRef>, where
this is
explicitly stated. </p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p8" shownumber="no">c. If a descent into<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p8.1">
sheol</span>
was the gloomy
outlook upon the future, not only of the
wicked but also of the righteous, how can we explain the expressions of
gladsome
expectation, or
joy in the face of death, such as we find in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Num.23.10" parsed="|Num|23|10|0|0" passage="Num. 23:10">Num. 23:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.9" parsed="|Ps|16|9|0|0" passage="Ps. 16:9">Ps. 16:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.11" parsed="|Ps|16|11|0|0" passage="Ps 16:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.17.15" parsed="|Ps|17|15|0|0" passage="Ps 17:15">17:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.15" parsed="|Ps|49|15|0|0" passage="Ps 49:15">49:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.24" parsed="|Ps|73|24|0|0" passage="Ps 73:24">73:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.26" parsed="|Ps|73|26|0|0" passage="Ps 73:26">26</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Isa.25.8" parsed="|Isa|25|8|0|0" passage="Isa. 25:8">Isa. 25:8</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.54" parsed="|1Cor|15|54|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:54">I Cor. 15:54</scripRef>)? The expression in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.15" parsed="|Ps|49|15|0|0" passage="Ps. 49:15">Ps. 49:15</scripRef> may be
interpreted to mean that God will deliver the poet out of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p8.12">
sheol</span>
or from the power of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p8.13">
sheol.</span>
Notice also what the writer of Hebrews says of the Old Testament heroes
of faith
in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.13-Heb.11.16" parsed="|Heb|11|13|11|16" passage="Heb. 11:13-16">Heb. 11:13-16</scripRef>. The New Testament, of course, speaks abundantly of the
joyous
outlook of believers on the future, and teaches their conscious
happiness in the
disembodied
state, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.23" parsed="|Luke|16|23|0|0" passage="Luke 16:23">Luke 16:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.16" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.25" parsed="|Luke|16|25|0|0" passage="Luke 16:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.17" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.43" parsed="|Luke|23|43|0|0" passage="Luke 23:43">23:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.18" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.59" parsed="|Acts|7|59|0|0" passage="Acts 7:59">Acts 7:59</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.19" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.1" parsed="|2Cor|5|1|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:1">II Cor. 5:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.20" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.6" parsed="|2Cor|5|6|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:6">6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.21" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.8" parsed="|2Cor|5|8|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.22" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.21" parsed="|Phil|1|21|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:21">Phil. 1:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.23" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.23" parsed="|Phil|1|23|0|0" passage="Phil 1:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.24" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.10" parsed="|1Thess|5|10|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:10">I Thess. 5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.25" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.14" parsed="|Eph|3|14|0|0" passage="Eph. 3:14">Eph. 3:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.26" osisRef="Bible:Eph.3.15" parsed="|Eph|3|15|0|0" passage="Eph 3:15">15</scripRef> ("family in heaven," not in "<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p8.27"> hades");</span>
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.28" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.9" parsed="|Rev|6|9|0|0" passage="Rev. 6:9">Rev. 6:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.29" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.11" parsed="|Rev|6|11|0|0" passage="Rev 6:11">11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.30" osisRef="Bible:Rev.14.13" parsed="|Rev|14|13|0|0" passage="Rev 14:13">14:13</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.31" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.12.2" parsed="|2Cor|12|2|0|0" passage="II Cor. 12:2">II Cor. 12:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p8.32" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.12.4" parsed="|2Cor|12|4|0|0" passage="II Cor. 12:4">4</scripRef>
"paradise" is used synonymously with "the third
heaven." In connection with this clear
representation of the New Testament, it has been suggested that the New
Testament
believers were privileged above those of the Old Testament by receiving
immediate
access to the bliss of heaven. But the question may well be asked, What
basis is there for
assuming such a distinction?</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p9" shownumber="no">d. If the word<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p9.1">
sheol</span>
always denotes the
shadowy region to which the dead descend,
and never has any other meaning, then the Old Testament, while it does
have a word
for heaven as the blessed abode of God and of the holy angels, has no
word for hell, the place of destruction and of eternal punishment. But it is
only on the assumption that in
some passages<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p9.2">
sheol</span>
designates a place of punishment whither the wicked go in
distinction from the righteous, that the warnings referred to under (b)
have any point.
<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p9.3">Sheol</span>
is actually sometimes contrasted with<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p9.4">
shamayim</span>
(heavens) as in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Job.11.8" parsed="|Job|11|8|0|0" passage="Job 11:8">Job 11:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.8" parsed="|Ps|139|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 139:8">Ps. 139:8</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:Amos.9.2" parsed="|Amos|9|2|0|0" passage="Amos 9:2">Amos 9:2</scripRef>. Scripture also speaks of the deepest or lowest<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p9.8">
sheol</span>
in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Deut.32.22" parsed="|Deut|32|22|0|0" passage="Deut. 32:22">Deut. 32:22</scripRef>. The same expression is also found in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:Ps.86.13" parsed="|Ps|86|13|0|0" passage="Ps. 86:13">Ps. 86:13</scripRef>, but in
that passage is evidently used figuratively.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p10" shownumber="no">e. Finally, it should be noticed that there was a
difference of opinion among scholars
as to the exact subject of the descent into<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p10.1">
sheol.</span>
The prevailing opinion is that man as a
whole is the subject. Man descends into<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p10.2">
sheol</span>
and in some
obscure fashion continues his
existence in a world of shadows, where the relations of life still reflect
those on earth.
This representation would seem to be most in harmony with the statements
of
Scripture, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.37.35" parsed="|Gen|37|35|0|0" passage="Gen. 37:35">Gen. 37:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:Job.7.9" parsed="|Job|7|9|0|0" passage="Job 7:9">Job 7:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Job.14.13" parsed="|Job|14|13|0|0" passage="Job 14:13">14:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:Job.21.13" parsed="|Job|21|13|0|0" passage="Job 21:13">21:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.139.8" parsed="|Ps|139|8|0|0" passage="Ps. 139:8">Ps. 139:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.9.10" parsed="|Eccl|9|10|0|0" passage="Eccl. 9:10">Eccl. 9:10</scripRef>. There are some which
point to the
fact that the body is included. There is danger that Jacob's "gray
hairs" will
be brought down to<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p10.9">
sheol</span>
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.10" osisRef="Bible:Gen.42.38" parsed="|Gen|42|38|0|0" passage="Gen. 42:38">Gen. 42:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.11" osisRef="Bible:Gen.44.29" parsed="|Gen|44|29|0|0" passage="Gen 44:29">44:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.12" osisRef="Bible:Gen.44.31" parsed="|Gen|44|31|0|0" passage="Gen 44:31">31</scripRef>; Samuel comes up as an old man covered
with a robe, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.13" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.28.14" parsed="|1Sam|28|14|0|0" passage="I Sam. 28:14">I Sam. 28:14</scripRef>; and Shimei's "hoar head" must be brought down to<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p10.14">
sheol</span>, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.15" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.2.6" parsed="|1Kgs|2|6|0|0" passage="I Kings 2:6">I  Kings 2:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.16" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.2.9" parsed="|1Kgs|2|9|0|0" passage="I Kings 2:9">9</scripRef>.
But if<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p10.17">
sheol</span>
is a place whither all the dead go, body and soul, what then is
laid in the grave, which is supposed to be another place? This
difficulty is obviated by
those scholars who maintain that only the souls descend into<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p10.18">
sheol</span>, but this can hardly
be said to be in harmony with the Old Testament representation. It is
true that there are
a few passages which speak of souls as going down into, or as being in,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p10.19">
sheol</span>, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.20" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.10" parsed="|Ps|16|10|0|0" passage="Ps. 16:10">Ps. 16:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.21" osisRef="Bible:Ps.30.3" parsed="|Ps|30|3|0|0" passage="Ps 30:3">30:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.22" osisRef="Bible:Ps.86.13" parsed="|Ps|86|13|0|0" passage="Ps 86:13">86:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.23" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.48" parsed="|Ps|89|48|0|0" passage="Ps 89:48">89:48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p10.24" osisRef="Bible:Prov.23.14" parsed="|Prov|23|14|0|0" passage="Prov. 23:14">Prov. 23:14</scripRef>, but it is a well known fact that in Hebrew the word
<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p10.25">nephesh</span>
(soul) with the pronominal suffix is often, especially in poetical
language,
equivalent to the personal pronoun. Some conservative theologians adopted
this
construction of the Old Testament representation, and found in it
support for their idea
that the souls of men are in some intermediate place (a place with moral
distinctions and separate divisions, however) until the day of the
resurrection.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p11" shownumber="no">3. SUGGESTED INTERPRETATION OF SHEOL-HADES. The
interpretation of these terms is
by no means easy, and in suggesting an interpretation we do not desire
to give the
impression that we are speaking with absolute assurance. An inductive
study of the
passages in which the terms are found soon dissipates the notion that
the terms<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.1">
sheol </span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.2">
hades</span>
are always used in the same sense, and can in all cases be rendered by
the
same word, whether it be underworld, state of death, grave, or hell.
This is also clearly
reflected in the various translations of the Bible. The Holland
Version renders the term
<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.3">sheol</span>
by<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.4">
grave</span>
in some passages, and by<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.5">
hell</span>
in others. The St. James or
Authorized
Version employs three words in its translation, namely,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.6">
grave, hell</span>, and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.7">
pit.</span>
The English
Revisers rather inconsistently retained<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.8">
grave</span>
or<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.9">
pit</span>
in the text of the historical books,
putting<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.10">
sheol</span>
in the margin. They retained<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.11">
hell</span>
only in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.14" parsed="|Isa|14|0|0|0" passage="Isa. 14">Isa. 14</scripRef>. The American
Revisers
avoid the difficulty by simply retaining the original words<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.13">
sheol</span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.14">
hades</span>
in their
translation. Though the opinion has gained wide currency that sheol is
simply the
underworld to which all men descend, this view is by no means unanimous.
Some of
the earlier scholars simply identified<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.15">
sheol</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.16">
grave;</span>
others regard it as the place
where the souls of the dead are retained; and still others, of whom
Shedd, Vos, Aalders,
and De Bondt may be mentioned, maintain that the word<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p11.17">
sheol</span>
does not always have the
same meaning. It would seem that the last opinion deserves preference,
and that the
following can be said respecting its different meanings: </p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p12" shownumber="no">a. The words<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.1">
sheol</span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.2">
hades</span>
do not always denote a locality in Scripture, but are
often used in an abstract sense to designate the state of death, the
state of the separation
of body and soul. This state is frequently locally conceived as
constituting the realm of
death, and is sometimes represented as a stronghold with gates, which only
he who has
the keys can lock and unlock, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.18" parsed="|Matt|16|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:18">Matt. 16:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.18" parsed="|Rev|1|18|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:18">Rev. 1:18</scripRef>. This local
representation is in all
probability based on a generalization of the idea of the grave, into
which man descends
when he enters the state of death. Since both believers and unbelievers
at the
termination of their life enter into the state of death, it can very
well be said figuratively
that they are without distinction in<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.5">
sheol</span>
or<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.6">
hades.</span>
They are all alike in the state of death.
The parallelism clearly shows what is meant in a passage like <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:1Sam.2.6" parsed="|1Sam|2|6|0|0" passage="I Sam. 2:6">I Sam.
2:6</scripRef>: "Jehovah killeth and maketh alive; He bringeth down to<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.8">
sheol</span>, and bringeth up." Cf. also <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:Job.14.13" parsed="|Job|14|13|0|0" passage="Job 14:13">Job 14:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:Job.14.14" parsed="|Job|14|14|0|0" passage="Job 14:14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:Job.17.13" parsed="|Job|17|13|0|0" passage="Job 17:13">17:13</scripRef>;<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.12" osisRef="Bible:Job.14" parsed="|Job|14|0|0|0" passage="Job 14">14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.89.48" parsed="|Ps|89|48|0|0" passage="Ps. 89:48">Ps. 89:48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.14" osisRef="Bible:Hos.13.14" parsed="|Hos|13|14|0|0" passage="Hos. 13:14">Hos. 13:14</scripRef>, and several other passages. The word<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.15">
hades</span>
is evidently used more than once in the nonlocal sense of the state of the
dead in the New
Testament, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.16" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.27" parsed="|Acts|2|27|0|0" passage="Acts 2:27">Acts 2:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.17" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.31" parsed="|Acts|2|31|0|0" passage="Acts 2:31">31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.18" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.8" parsed="|Rev|6|8|0|0" passage="Rev. 6:8">Rev. 6:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p12.19" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.28" parsed="|Rev|20|28|0|0" passage="Rev 20:28">20:28</scripRef>. In the last two passages we have a
personification. Since the terms may denote the state of death, it is
not necessary to
prove that they never refer to anything that concerns the
righteous and the wicked
alike, but only that they do not denote a place where the souls of both
are gathered. De
Bondt calls attention to the fact that in many passages the term<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.20">
sheol</span>
is used in the
abstract sense
of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.21">
death</span>, of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.22">
the power of death</span>, and of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p12.23">
the danger of death. </span>
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p13" shownumber="no">b. When<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p13.1">
sheol</span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p13.2">
hades</span>
designate a locality in the literal sense of the word, they
either refer to what we usually call hell, or to the grave. Descent into<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p13.3">
sheol</span>
is threatened
as a danger and
as a punishment for the wicked, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.9.17" parsed="|Ps|9|17|0|0" passage="Ps. 9:17">Ps. 9:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.14" parsed="|Ps|49|14|0|0" passage="Ps 49:14">49:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.55.15" parsed="|Ps|55|15|0|0" passage="Ps 55:15">55:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Prov.15.11" parsed="|Prov|15|11|0|0" passage="Prov. 15:11">Prov. 15:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:Prov.15.24" parsed="|Prov|15|24|0|0" passage="Prov 15:24">15:24</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.23" parsed="|Luke|16|23|0|0" passage="Luke 16:23">Luke 16:23</scripRef><span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p13.10">
(hades).</span>
The warning and threatening contained in these passages is lost
altogether, if<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p13.11">
sheol</span>
is conceived of as a neutral place whither all go. From these passages
it also follows that it cannot be regarded as a place with two
divisions. The idea of such
a divided<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p13.12">
sheol</span>
is borrowed from the Gentile conception of the underworld, and finds no
support in Scripture. It is only of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p13.13">
sheol</span>
as the state of
death that we can speak as having
two divisions, but then we are speaking figuratively. Even the Old
Testament testifies to
it that they who die in the Lord enter upon a fuller enjoyment of the
blessings of
salvation, and therefore do not descend into any underworld in the
literal sense of the
word, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.14" osisRef="Bible:Num.23.5" parsed="|Num|23|5|0|0" passage="Num. 23:5">Num. 23:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.15" osisRef="Bible:Num.23.10" parsed="|Num|23|10|0|0" passage="Num 23:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.16.11" parsed="|Ps|16|11|0|0" passage="Ps. 16:11">Ps. 16:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.17.15" parsed="|Ps|17|15|0|0" passage="Ps 17:15">17:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.18" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.24" parsed="|Ps|73|24|0|0" passage="Ps 73:24">73:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.19" osisRef="Bible:Prov.14.32" parsed="|Prov|14|32|0|0" passage="Prov. 14:32">Prov. 14:32</scripRef>. Enoch and Elijah were taken up,
and did not descend into an underworld, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.20" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.5" parsed="|Heb|11|5|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:5">Heb. 11:5</scripRef> ff. Moreover,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p13.21">
sheol</span>, not merely as a
state, but also as a place, is regarded as in the closest connection
with death. If the
Biblical conception of death is understood in its deep significance, in
its spiritual
meaning, it will readily be seen that<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p13.22">
sheol</span>
cannot be the
abode of the souls of those who
die in the Lord, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.23" osisRef="Bible:Prov.5.5" parsed="|Prov|5|5|0|0" passage="Prov. 5:5">Prov. 5:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.24" osisRef="Bible:Prov.15.11" parsed="|Prov|15|11|0|0" passage="Prov 15:11">15:11</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p13.25" osisRef="Bible:Prov.27.20" parsed="|Prov|27|20|0|0" passage="Prov 27:20">27:20</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p14" shownumber="no">There are also several passages in which<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p14.1">
sheol</span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p14.2">
hades</span>
seem to designate the grave.
It is not always easy to determine, however, whether the words refer to
the grave or to
the state of the dead. The following are some of the passages that come
into
consideration
here: <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.3" osisRef="Bible:Gen.37.25" parsed="|Gen|37|25|0|0" passage="Gen. 37:25">Gen. 37:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.4" osisRef="Bible:Gen.42.38" parsed="|Gen|42|38|0|0" passage="Gen 42:38">42:38</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.5" osisRef="Bible:Gen.44.29" parsed="|Gen|44|29|0|0" passage="Gen 44:29">44:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.6" osisRef="Bible:Gen.29.31" parsed="|Gen|29|31|0|0" passage="Gen 29:31">29:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.7" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.2.6" parsed="|1Kgs|2|6|0|0" passage="I Kings 2:6">I Kings 2:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.8" osisRef="Bible:1Kgs.2.9" parsed="|1Kgs|2|9|0|0" passage="I Kings 2:9">9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.9" osisRef="Bible:Job.14.13" parsed="|Job|14|13|0|0" passage="Job 14:13">Job 14:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.10" osisRef="Bible:Job.17.13" parsed="|Job|17|13|0|0" passage="Job 17:13">17:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.11" osisRef="Bible:Job.21.13" parsed="|Job|21|13|0|0" passage="Job 21:13">21:13</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.12" osisRef="Bible:Ps.6.5" parsed="|Ps|6|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 6:5">Ps. 6:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.13" osisRef="Bible:Ps.88.3" parsed="|Ps|88|3|0|0" passage="Ps 88:3">88:3</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p14.14" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.9.10" parsed="|Eccl|9|10|0|0" passage="Eccl. 9:10">Eccl. 9:10</scripRef>. But though the name<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p14.15">
sheol</span>
is also used for the grave, it does not
necessarily follow that this is the original use of the word, from which
its use to
designate hell is borrowed. In all probability the opposite is true. The
grave is called
sheol, because it symbolizes the going down, which is connected with the
idea of
destruction. For believers the Biblical symbolism is changed by
Scripture itself. Paul
says that they go down in death as a grain is sown in the earth, from
which springs a
new, a more abundant, a more glorious life. In the Old Testament the
word<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p14.16">
sheol</span>
is used
more often for grave and less often for hell, while in the corresponding
use of<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p14.17">
hades</span>
in
the New Testament the contrary holds.</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.iii-p14.18">D. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC DOCTRINES RESPECTING THE ABODE OF THE SOUL AFTER DEATH.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.iii-p15" shownumber="no">1. PURGATORY. According to the Church of
Rome the souls of those who are perfectly
pure at death are forthwith admitted to heaven or the beatific vision of
God, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|46|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:46">Matt. 25:46</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.23" parsed="|Phil|1|23|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:23">Phil. 1:23</scripRef>; but those who are not perfectly cleansed, who are still
burdened with the
guilt of venial sins and have not borne the temporal punishment due to
their sins —
and this is the condition of most of the faithful at death — must
undergo a process of
cleansing before they can enter into the supreme blessedness and joys of
heaven.
Instead of entering heaven at once, they enter purgatory. Purgatory is
not a place of
probation, but a place of purification and of preparation for the souls
of believers who
are sure of an ultimate entrance into heaven, but are not yet fit to
enter upon the bliss of
the beatific vision. During the stay of these souls in purgatory they suffer
the pain of
loss, that is, the anguish resulting from the fact that they are
excluded from the blessed
sight of God, and also endure "the punishment of sense," that
is, suffer positive pains,
which afflict the soul. The length of their stay in purgatory
cannot be determined
beforehand. The duration as well as the intensity of their sufferings
varies according to
the degree of purification still needed. They can be shortened and
alleviated by the
prayers and the good works of the faithful on earth, and especially by
the sacrifice of
the mass. It is possible that one must remain in purgatory until the
time of the last
judgment. The Pope is supposed to have jurisdiction over purgatory. It
is his peculiar
prerogative to grant indulgences, lightening the purgatorial sufferings
or even
terminating them. The main support for this doctrine is found in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:2Macc.12.42-2Macc.12.45" parsed="|2Macc|12|42|12|45" passage="II Maccabees 12:42-45">II
Maccabees 12:42-45</scripRef>,
and therefore in a book that is not recognized as canonical by the
Protestants. But this
passage proves too much, that is, more than the Roman Catholics
themselves can
consistently admit, namely, the possible deliverance of soldiers from
purgatory who
had died in the mortal sin of idolatry. Certain passages of Scripture
are also supposed to
favor this
doctrine, such as <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Isa.4.4" parsed="|Isa|4|4|0|0" passage="Isa. 4:4">Isa. 4:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.5" osisRef="Bible:Mic.7.8" parsed="|Mic|7|8|0|0" passage="Mic. 7:8">Mic. 7:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.6" osisRef="Bible:Zech.9.11" parsed="|Zech|9|11|0|0" passage="Zech. 9:11">Zech. 9:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.7" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.2" parsed="|Mal|3|2|0|0" passage="Mal. 3:2">Mal. 3:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.8" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.3" parsed="|Mal|3|3|0|0" passage="Mal 3:3">3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.32" parsed="|Matt|12|32|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:32">Matt. 12:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.10" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.3.13-1Cor.3.15" parsed="|1Cor|3|13|3|15" passage="I Cor. 3:13-15">I Cor. 3:13-15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p15.11" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.29" parsed="|1Cor|15|29|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:29">15:29</scripRef>. It is perfectly evident, however, that these passages can
be made to
support the doctrine of purgatory only by a very forced exegesis. The
doctrine finds
absolutely no support in Scripture, and moreover, rests on several false
premises, such
as (a) that we must add something to the work of Christ; (b) that our
good works are
meritorious in the strict sense of the word; (c) that we can perform
works of
supererogation, works in excess of the commands of duty; and (d) that
the Church's
power of the keys is absolute in a judicial sense. According to it the
Church can shorten,
alleviate, and even terminate the sufferings of purgatory.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p16" shownumber="no">2. THE LIMBUS PATRUM. The Latin word<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p16.1">
limbus</span>
(fringe) was used in the Middle Ages
to denote two places on the fringe or outskirts of hell, namely, the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p16.2">
Limbus Patrum</span> and the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p16.3">
Limbus
Infantum.</span>
The former is the place where, according to the
teachings of Rome,
the souls of the Old Testament saints were detained in a state of
expectation until the
Lord's resurrection from the dead. After His death on the cross Christ
is supposed to
have descended into the abode of the fathers, to release them from their
temporary
confinement and to carry them in triumph to heaven. This is the Roman
Catholic
interpretation of Christ's descent into<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p16.4">
hades. Hades</span>
is regarded as the
dwelling place of
the departed spirits, having two divisions, one for the righteous and one
for the wicked.
The division inhabited by the spirits of the righteous was the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p16.5">
Limbus Patrum</span>, known to
the Jews as Abraham's bosom, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.23" parsed="|Luke|16|23|0|0" passage="Luke 16:23">Luke 16:23</scripRef>, and paradise, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.43" parsed="|Luke|23|43|0|0" passage="Luke 23:43">Luke 23:43</scripRef>. It is
maintained
that heaven was not open to any man until Christ had actually made
propitiation for
the sin of the world.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p17" shownumber="no">3. THE LIMBUS INFANTUM. This is the abode of the souls of all unbaptized
children,
irrespective of their descent from heathen or from Christian parents.
According to the
Roman Catholic Church unbaptized children cannot be admitted to heaven,
cannot
enter the Kingdom of God, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:John.3.5" parsed="|John|3|5|0|0" passage="John 3:5">John 3:5</scripRef>. There was always a natural
repugnance, however,
to the idea that these children should be tortured in hell, and Roman
Catholic
theologians sought a way of escape from the difficulty. Some thought
that such children
might perhaps be saved by the faith of their parents, and others, that
God might
commission the angels to baptize them. But the prevailing opinion is
that, while they
are excluded from heaven, they are consigned to a place on the outskirts
of hell, where
its terrible fires do not reach. They remain in this place forever
without any hope of
deliverance. The Church has never defined the doctrine of the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p17.2">
Limbus Infantum</span>, and the
opinions of the theologians vary as to the exact condition of the
children confined in it.
The prevailing opinion is, however, that they suffer no positive
punishment, no "pain of
sense," but are simply excluded from the blessings of heaven. They
know and love God
by the use of their natural powers, and have full natural happiness.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.iii-p17.3">E. THE STATE OF THE SOUL AFTER DEATH ONE OF CONSCIOUS EXISTENCE.</h4>
<p id="viii.ii.iii-p18" shownumber="no">1. THE TEACHING OF SCRIPTURE ON THIS POINT. The question has been raised,
whether
the soul after death remains actively conscious and is capable of
rational and religious
action. This has sometimes been denied on the general ground that the
soul in its
conscious activity is dependent on the brain, and therefore cannot
continue to function
when the brain is destroyed. But, as already pointed out in the
preceding (pp. 677 f.), the cogency of this argument may well be doubted.
"It is," to use the words of Dahle,
"based on the error of confusing the worker with his machine."
From the fact that the
human consciousness in the present life transmits its effects through
the brain, it does
not necessarily follow that it can work in no other way. In arguing for
the conscious
existence of the soul after death, we place no reliance on the phenomena
of present day
spiritualism, and do not even depend on philosophical
arguments, though these are not
without force. We seek our evidence in the Word of God, and particularly
in the New
Testament. The rich man and Lazarus converse together, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p18.1" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.19-Luke.16.31" parsed="|Luke|16|19|16|31" passage="Luke 16:19-31">Luke 16:19-31</scripRef>.
Paul speaks of
the disembodied state as a "being at home with the Lord," and
as something to be
desired above the present life, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.6-2Cor.5.9" parsed="|2Cor|5|6|5|9" passage="II Cor. 5:6-9">II Cor. 5:6-9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.23" parsed="|Phil|1|23|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:23">Phil. 1:23</scripRef>. Surely, he
would hardly speak
after that fashion about an unconscious existence, which is a virtual
non-existence. In
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.23" parsed="|Heb|12|23|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:23">Heb. 12:23</scripRef>
believers are said to have come to... "the spirits of just men<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p18.5">
made perfect</span>,"
which certainly implies their conscious existence. Moreover, the spirits
under the altar
are crying out for vengeance on the persecutors of the Church, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.9" parsed="|Rev|6|9|0|0" passage="Rev. 6:9">Rev. 6:9</scripRef>,
and the souls of
the martyrs are said to reign with Christ, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.4" parsed="|Rev|20|4|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:4">Rev. 20:4</scripRef>. This truth of the
conscious existence of the soul after death has been denied in more than one
form.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p19" shownumber="no">2. THE DOCTRINE OF THE SLEEP OF THE SOUL (PSYCHOPANNYCHY).</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p20" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p20.1"> Statement of the doctrine.</span>
This is one of
the forms in which the conscious existence
of the soul after death is denied. It maintains that, after death, the
soul continues to exist
as an individual spiritual being, but in a state of unconscious repose.
Eusebius makes
mention of a small sect in Arabia that held this view. During the Middle
Ages there
were quite a few so-called Psychopannychians, and at the time of the
Reformation this
error was advocated by some of the Anabaptists. Calvin even wrote a
treatise against
them under the title<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p20.2">
Psychopannychia.</span>
In the nineteenth
century this doctrine was held
by some of the Irvingites in England, and in our day it is one of the
favorite doctrines of
the Russellites or Millennial Dawnists of our own country. According to
the latter body
and soul descend into the grave, the soul in a state of sleep, which
really amounts to a
state of non-existence. What is called the resurrection is in reality a
new creation. During
the millennium the wicked will have a second chance, but if they show no
marked
improvement during the first hundred years, they will be annihilated. If
in that period
they give evidence of some amendment of life, their probation will
continue, but only to
end in annihilation, if they remain impenitent. There is no hell, no
place of eternal
torment. The doctrine of the sleep of soul seems to have a peculiar
fascination for those
who find it hard to believe in a continuance of consciousness apart from
the corporeal
organism. </p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p21" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p21.1">
Supposed Scriptural warrant for this doctrine.</span>
Scripture proof
for this doctrine is
found especially in the following: (1) Scripture often represents death
as a sleep, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.9.24" parsed="|Matt|9|24|0|0" passage="Matt. 9:24">Matt. 9:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.60" parsed="|Acts|7|60|0|0" passage="Acts 7:60">Acts 7:60</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.51" parsed="|1Cor|15|51|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:51">I Cor. 15:51</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.13" parsed="|1Thess|4|13|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:13">I Thess. 4:13</scripRef>. This sleep, it is said, cannot be a sleep of the
body, and therefore must be a sleep of the soul. (2) Certain passages of
Scripture teach
that the dead
are unconscious, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.6.5" parsed="|Ps|6|5|0|0" passage="Ps. 6:5">Ps. 6:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.30.9" parsed="|Ps|30|9|0|0" passage="Ps 30:9">30:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.8" osisRef="Bible:Ps.115.17" parsed="|Ps|115|17|0|0" passage="Ps 115:17">115:17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.9" osisRef="Bible:Ps.146.4" parsed="|Ps|146|4|0|0" passage="Ps 146:4">146:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.10" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.9.10" parsed="|Eccl|9|10|0|0" passage="Eccl. 9:10">Eccl. 9:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.38.18" parsed="|Isa|38|18|0|0" passage="Isa. 38:18">Isa. 38:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.38.19" parsed="|Isa|38|19|0|0" passage="Isa 38:19">19</scripRef>. This
is
contrary to the idea that the soul continues its conscious existence.
(3) The Bible teaches
that the destinies of men will be determined by a final judgment and
will be a surprise to some. Consequently, it is impossible to assume that the
soul enters upon its destiny
immediately
after death, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.22" parsed="|Matt|7|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:22">Matt. 7:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.23" parsed="|Matt|7|23|0|0" passage="Matt 7:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.37-Matt.25.39" parsed="|Matt|25|37|25|39" passage="Matt 25:37-39">25:37-39</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.44" parsed="|Matt|25|44|0|0" passage="Matt 25:44">44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.17" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">John 5:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.18" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.10" parsed="|2Cor|5|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:10">II Cor. 5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p21.19" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.12" parsed="|Rev|20|12|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:12">Rev. 20:12</scripRef> f.
(4)
None of those who were raised from the dead have ever given any account
of their
experiences. This can best be understood on the assumption that their
souls were
unconscious in their disembodied state.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p22" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p22.1">
Consideration of the arguments presented.</span>
The preceding
arguments may be
answered as follows in the order in which they were stated: (1) It
should be noted that
the Bible never says that the soul falls asleep, nor that the body does
so, but only the
dying person. And this Scriptural representation is simply based on the
similarity
between a dead body and a body asleep. It is not unlikely that Scripture
uses this
euphemistic expression, in order to suggest to believers the comforting
hope of the
resurrection. Moreover, death is a break with the life of the world
round about us, and
in so far is a sleep, a rest. Finally, it should not be forgotten that
the Bible represents
believers as enjoying a conscious life in communion with God and with
Jesus Christ
<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p22.2">immediately after death</span>, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.19-Luke.16.31" parsed="|Luke|16|19|16|31" passage="Luke 16:19-31">Luke 16:19-31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.23.43" parsed="|Luke|23|43|0|0" passage="Luke 23:43">23:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.7.59" parsed="|Acts|7|59|0|0" passage="Acts 7:59">Acts 7:59</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.8" parsed="|2Cor|5|8|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:8">II Cor. 5:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:Phil.1.23" parsed="|Phil|1|23|0|0" passage="Phil. 1:23">Phil. 1:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.9" parsed="|Rev|6|9|0|0" passage="Rev. 6:9">Rev. 6:9</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.7.9" parsed="|Rev|7|9|0|0" passage="Rev 7:9">7:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p22.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.4" parsed="|Rev|20|4|0|0" passage="Rev 20:4">20:4</scripRef>. (2) The passages which seem to teach that the dead are unconscious
are clearly
intended to stress the fact that in the state of death man can no more
take part in the
activities of this present world. Says Hovey: "The work of the
artisan is arrested, the
voice of the singer is hushed, the scepter of the king falls. The body
returns to the dust,
and the praise of God in this world ceases forever." (3) It is
sometimes represented as if
man's eternal destiny depends upon a trial at the last day, but this is
evidently a
mistake. The day of judgment is not necessary to reach a decision
respecting the reward
or punishment of each man, but only for the solemn announcement of the
sentence, and
for the revelation of the justice of God in the presence of men and
angels. The surprise
of which some of the passages give evidence pertains to the ground on which
the
judgment rests rather than to the judgment itself. (4) It is true that
we do not read that
any of those who were raised from the dead ever told anything about their
experiences
between their death and resurrection. But this is a mere argument from
silence, which is
quite worthless in this case, since the Bible clearly teaches the
conscious existence of the
dead. It may well be, however, that those persons were silent about their
experiences,
but this can readily be explained on the assumption that they were not
permitted to tell
about them, or that they could not give an account of them in human
language. Cf. <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p22.11" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.12.4" parsed="|2Cor|12|4|0|0" passage="II Cor. 12:4">II Cor. 12:4</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p23" shownumber="no">3. THE DOCTRINE OF ANNIHILATIONISM AND OF CONDITIONAL IMMORTALITY. </p>
<p id="viii.ii.iii-p24" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p24.1">Statement of these doctrines.</span>
According to
these doctrines there is no conscious
existence, if any existence at all, of the wicked after death. The two
are one in their
conception of the state of the wicked after death, but differ in a
couple of fundamental
points. Annihilationism teaches that man was created immortal, but that
the soul, which
continues in sin, is by a positive act of God deprived of the gift of
immortality, and
ultimately destroyed, or (according to some) forever bereaved of
consciousness, which
is practically equivalent to being reduced to non-existence. According
to the doctrine of
conditional immortality, on the other hand, immortality
was not a natural endowment
of the soul, but is a gift of God in Christ to those who believe. The
soul that does not
accept Christ ultimately ceases to exist, or loses all consciousness.
Some of the advocates
of these doctrines teach a limited duration of conscious suffering for the
wicked in the
future life, and thus retain something of the idea of positive
punishment.</p>
<p id="viii.ii.iii-p25" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p25.1">These doctrines in history.</span>
The doctrine of annihilationism was taught by Arnobius
and the early Socinians, and by the philosophers Locke and Hobbes, but
was not
popular in its original form. In the previous century, however, the old
idea of
annihilation was revived with some modifications under the name of
conditional
immortality, and in its new form found considerable favor. It was
advocated by E.
White, J. B. Heard, and the Prebendaries Constable and Row in England,
by Richard
Rothe in Germany, by A. Sabatier in France, by E. Petavel and Ch.
Secretan in
Switzerland, and by C. F. Hudson, W. R. Huntington, L. C. Baker, and L.
W. Bacon in
our own country, and therefore deserves special notice. They do not all
put the doctrine
in the same form, but agree in the fundamental position that man is not
immortal in
virtue of his original constitution, but is made immortal by a special
act or gift of grace.
As far as the wicked are concerned some maintain that these retain a
bare existence,
though with an utter loss of consciousness, while others assert that they
perish utterly
like the beasts, though it may be after longer or shorter periods of
suffering.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p26" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p26.1">
Arguments adduced in favor of this doctrine.</span>
Support for
this doctrine is found partly
in the language of some of the early Church Fathers, which seems to
imply at least that
only believers receive the gift of immortality, and partly also in some
of the most recent
theories of science, which deny that there is any scientific proof for
the immortality of
the soul. The main support for it, however, is sought in Scripture. It
is said that the
Bible: (1) teaches that God only is inherently immortal, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.2" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.16" parsed="|1Tim|6|16|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:16">I Tim. 6:16</scripRef>;
(<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.3" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.2" parsed="|1Tim|2|0|0|0" passage="I Tim. 2">2</scripRef>) never speaks of
the immortality of the soul in general, but represents immortality as a
gift of God to
those who are in
Christ Jesus, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.4" osisRef="Bible:John.10.27" parsed="|John|10|27|0|0" passage="John 10:27">John 10:27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.5" osisRef="Bible:John.10.28" parsed="|John|10|28|0|0" passage="John 10:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.6" osisRef="Bible:John.17.3" parsed="|John|17|3|0|0" passage="John 17:3">17:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.7" parsed="|Rom|2|7|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:7">Rom. 2:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.22" parsed="|Rom|6|22|0|0" passage="Rom 6:22">6:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.23" parsed="|Rom|6|23|0|0" passage="Rom 6:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.10" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.8" parsed="|Gal|6|8|0|0" passage="Gal. 6:8">Gal. 6:8</scripRef>; and (3)
threatens
sinners with "death" and "destruction," asserting that they
will "perish,"
terms which are to be taken to mean that unbelievers will be reduced to
non-existence, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.13" parsed="|Matt|7|13|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:13">Matt. 7:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.28" parsed="|Matt|10|28|0|0" passage="Matt 10:28">10:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.13" osisRef="Bible:John.3.16" parsed="|John|3|16|0|0" passage="John 3:16">John 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.6.23" parsed="|Rom|6|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 6:23">Rom. 6:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.13" parsed="|Rom|8|13|0|0" passage="Rom 8:13">8:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p26.16" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.9" parsed="|2Thess|1|9|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:9">II Thess. 1:9</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p27" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p27.1">
Consideration of these arguments.</span>
It cannot be
said that the arguments in favor of
this doctrine are conclusive. The language of the early Church Fathers
is not always
exact and self-consistent, and admits of another interpretation. And the
speculative
thought of the ages has, on the whole, been favorable to the doctrine of
immortality,
while science has not succeeded in disproving it. The Scriptural
arguments may be
answered in order as follows: (1) God is indeed the only one that has
inherent
immortality. Man's immortality is derived, but this is not equivalent to
saying that he
does not possess it in virtue of his creation. (2) In the second
argument the bare
immortality or continued existence of the soul is confused with eternal
life, while the
latter is a far richer concept. Eternal life is indeed the gift of God
in Jesus Christ, a gift which the wicked do not receive, but this does not mean
that they will not continue to
exist. (3) The
last argument arbitrarily assumes that the terms "death,"
"destruction,"
and "perish" denote a reduction to non-existence. It is only
the baldest literalism that
can maintain this, and then only in connection with<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p27.2">
some</span>
of the passages quoted by the
advocates of this theory.
</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p28" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p28.1">
Arguments against this doctrine.</span>
The doctrine of
conditional immortality is plainly
contradicted by Scripture where it teaches: (1) that sinners as well as
saints will continue
to exist
forever, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p28.2" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.12.7" parsed="|Eccl|12|7|0|0" passage="Eccl. 12:7">Eccl. 12:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p28.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|46|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:46">Matt. 25:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p28.4" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.8-Rom.2.10" parsed="|Rom|2|8|2|10" passage="Rom. 2:8-10">Rom. 2:8-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p28.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.14.11" parsed="|Rev|14|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 14:11">Rev. 14:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p28.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.10" parsed="|Rev|20|10|0|0" passage="Rev 20:10">20:10</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p28.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.2" parsed="|Rev|2|0|0|0" passage="Rev 2">2</scripRef>) that the
wicked
will suffer eternal punishment, which means that they will be forever
conscious of a
pain which they will recognize as their just desert, and therefore will
not be annihilated,
cf. the passages just mentioned; and (3) that there will be degrees in
the punishment of
the wicked, while extinction of being or consciousness admits of no
degrees, but
constitutes a punishment that is alike for all, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p28.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.47" parsed="|Luke|12|47|0|0" passage="Luke 12:47">Luke 12:47</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p28.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.48" parsed="|Luke|12|48|0|0" passage="Luke 12:48">48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p28.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.12" parsed="|Rom|2|12|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:12">Rom. 2:12</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p29" shownumber="no">The following considerations are also decidedly opposed
to this particular doctrine:
(1) Annihilation would be contrary to all analogy. God does not
annihilate His work,
however much He may change its form. The Biblical idea of death has
nothing in
common with annihilation. Life and death are exact opposites in
Scripture. If death
means simply the cessation of being or consciousness, life must mean
only the
continuation of these; but as a matter of fact it means much more than
that, cf. <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p29.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.6" parsed="|Rom|8|6|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:6">Rom. 8:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p29.2" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.8" parsed="|1Tim|4|8|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:8">I Tim. 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p29.3" osisRef="Bible:1John.3.14" parsed="|1John|3|14|0|0" passage="I John 3:14">I John 3:14</scripRef>. The term has a spiritual connotation, and so
has the word death.
Man is spiritually dead before he falls a prey to physical death, but
this does not involve
a loss of being
or consciousness, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p29.4" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.1" parsed="|Eph|2|1|0|0" passage="Eph. 2:1">Eph. 2:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p29.5" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.2" parsed="|Eph|2|2|0|0" passage="Eph 2:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p29.6" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.5.6" parsed="|1Tim|5|6|0|0" passage="I Tim. 5:6">I Tim. 5:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p29.7" osisRef="Bible:Col.2.13" parsed="|Col|2|13|0|0" passage="Col. 2:13">Col. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p29.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.1" parsed="|Rev|3|1|0|0" passage="Rev. 3:1">Rev. 3:1</scripRef>. (2) Annihilation
can hardly be called a punishment, since this implies a consciousness of
pain and ill-
desert, while, when existence terminates, consciousness also ceases. It
might at most be
said that the dread of annihilation would be a punishment, but this
punishment would
not be commensurate with the transgression. And naturally the dread of a
man who
never had within him the spark of immortality, will never equal that of
him who has
eternity in his heart, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p29.9" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.3.11" parsed="|Eccl|3|11|0|0" passage="Eccl. 3:11">Eccl. 3:11</scripRef>. (3) It often happens that people
consider the extinction of
being and of consciousness a very desirable thing, when they grow tired
of life. For
these such a punishment would be in reality a blessing.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.ii.iii-p29.10">F. THE INTERMEDIATE STATE NOT A STATE OF FURTHER PROBATION.</h4>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p30" shownumber="no">1. STATEMENT OF THE DOCTRINE. The theory of the so-called "second probation"
found considerable favor in the theological world of the nineteenth
century. It is
advocated, among others, by Mueller, Dorner, and Nitzsch in Germany, by
Godet and
Gretillat in Switzerland, by Maurice, Farrar, and Plumptre in England,
and by Newman
Smythe, Munger, Cox, Jukes and several Andover theologians in our own
country. This
theory is to the effect that salvation through Christ is still possible
in the intermediate
state for certain classes or, perhaps, for all; and that this is offered
on substantially the
same terms as at present, namely, faith in Christ as Saviour. Christ is
made known to all
who still need Him unto salvation, and acceptance of Him is urged on
all. No one is
condemned to hell without being subjected to this test, and only they are
condemned
who resist this offer of grace. The eternal state of man will not be
irrevocably fixed until
the day of judgment. The decision made between death and the resurrection
will
decide, whether one will be saved or not. The fundamental principle on
which this
theory rests, is that no man will perish without having been offered a
favorable
opportunity to know and accept Jesus. Man is condemned only for the
obstinate refusal
to accept the salvation that is offered in Christ Jesus. Opinions
differ, however, as to the
persons to whom the gracious opportunity to accept Christ will be
offered in the intermediate state. The general opinion is that it will
certainly be extended to all
children who die in infancy, and to the adult heathen who in this life
have not heard of
Christ. The majority hold that it will even be granted to those who
lived in Christian
lands, but in this present life never properly considered the claims of
Christ. Again,
there is great diversity of opinion as to the agency and the methods by
which this
saving work will be carried on in the future. Moreover, while some
entertain the largest
hope as to the outcome of the work, others are less sanguine in their
expectations.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p31" shownumber="no">2. THE FOUNDATION ON WHICH THIS DOCTRINE RESTS. This theory is founded in part
on general considerations of what might be expected of the love and
justice of God, and
on an easily understood desire to make the gracious work of Christ as
inclusive as
possible, rather than on any solid Scriptural foundation. The main
Scriptural basis for it
is found in <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.1" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.19" parsed="|1Pet|3|19|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:19">I Pet. 3:19</scripRef> and 4:6, which are understood to teach that
Christ in the period
between His death and resurrection preached to the spirits in hades. But
these passages
furnish but a precarious foundation, since they are capable of quite a
different
interpretation.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.ii.iii-p31.2" n="12" place="foot">Cf. especially Hovey,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p31.3"> Eschatology</span>, pp. 97-113, and Vos, Art.<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p31.4"> Eschatology of the New Testament</span>in the <span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p31.5">International Standard Bible Encyclopaedia.</span></note>
And even if these passages did
teach that Christ actually went into the
underworld to preach, His offer of salvation would extend only to those
who died
before His crucifixion. They also refer to passages which, in their
estimation, represent
unbelief as the only ground of condemnation, such as <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.6" osisRef="Bible:John.3.18" parsed="|John|3|18|0|0" passage="John 3:18">John 3:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.7" osisRef="Bible:John.3.36" parsed="|John|3|36|0|0" passage="John 3:36">36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.8" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.15" parsed="|Mark|16|15|0|0" passage="Mark 16:15">Mark 16:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.9" osisRef="Bible:Mark.16.16" parsed="|Mark|16|16|0|0" passage="Mark 16:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.10.9-Rom.10.12" parsed="|Rom|10|9|10|12" passage="Rom. 10:9-12">Rom. 10:9-12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.11" osisRef="Bible:Eph.4.18" parsed="|Eph|4|18|0|0" passage="Eph. 4:18">Eph. 4:18</scripRef>; II Pet. 2:3,4; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.12" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.3" parsed="|1John|4|3|0|0" passage="I John 4:3">I John 4:3</scripRef>. But these passages only prove that faith in Christ is the way of salvation, which is by no means the same as proving
that a
conscious rejection of Christ is the only ground of condemnation.
Unbelief is
undoubtedly a great sin, and one that stands out prominently in the lives
of those to
whom Christ is preached, but it is not the only form of revolt against
God, nor the only
ground of condemnation. Men are already under condemnation when Christ is
offered to them. Other
passages, such as <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.31" parsed="|Matt|13|31|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:31">Matt. 13:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.32" parsed="|Matt|13|32|0|0" passage="Matt 13:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.15" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.24-1Cor.15.28" parsed="|1Cor|15|24|15|28" passage="I Cor. 15:24-28">I Cor. 15:24-28</scripRef>; and <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p31.16" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.9-Phil.2.11" parsed="|Phil|2|9|2|11" passage="Phil. 2:9-11">Phil. 2:9-11</scripRef> are
equally inconclusive. Some of them prove too much and therefore prove
nothing.</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p32" shownumber="no">3. ARGUMENTS AGAINST THIS DOCTRINE. The following considerations can be urged
against this theory: (a) Scripture represents the state of unbelievers
after death as a fixed
state. The most important passage that comes into consideration here is
<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.1" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.19-Luke.16.31" parsed="|Luke|16|19|16|31" passage="Luke 16:19-31">Luke 16:19-31</scripRef>.
Other passages
are <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.2" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.11.3" parsed="|Eccl|11|3|0|0" passage="Eccl. 11:3">Eccl. 11:3</scripRef> (of uncertain interpretation); <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.3" osisRef="Bible:John.8.21" parsed="|John|8|21|0|0" passage="John 8:21">John 8:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.4" osisRef="Bible:John.8.24" parsed="|John|8|24|0|0" passage="John 8:24">24</scripRef>; II Pet. 2:4,9; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.5" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.7-Jude.1.13" parsed="|Jude|1|7|1|13" passage="Jude 7-13">Jude 7-13</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.6" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.19" parsed="|1Pet|3|19|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:19">I Pet. 3:19</scripRef>). (b) It also invariably represents the coming
final judgment as
determined by the things that were done in the flesh, and never
speaks of this as
dependent in any way on what occurred in the intermediate state, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.22" parsed="|Matt|7|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:22">Matt. 7:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.23" parsed="|Matt|7|23|0|0" passage="Matt 7:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.32" parsed="|Matt|10|32|0|0" passage="Matt 10:32">10:32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.10.33" parsed="|Matt|10|33|0|0" passage="Matt 10:33">33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.34-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|34|25|46" passage="Matt 25:34-46">25:34-46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.12" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.47" parsed="|Luke|12|47|0|0" passage="Luke 12:47">Luke 12:47</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.13" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.48" parsed="|Luke|12|48|0|0" passage="Luke 12:48">48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.14" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.9" parsed="|2Cor|5|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:9">II Cor. 5:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.15" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.10" parsed="|2Cor|5|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.16" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.7" parsed="|Gal|6|7|0|0" passage="Gal. 6:7">Gal. 6:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.17" osisRef="Bible:Gal.6.8" parsed="|Gal|6|8|0|0" passage="Gal 6:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.18" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.8" parsed="|2Thess|1|8|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:8">II Thess. 1:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.19" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.27" parsed="|Heb|9|27|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:27">Heb. 9:27</scripRef>. (c) The
fundamental principle of this
theory, that only the conscious rejection of Christ and His
gospel, causes men to perish, is un-Scriptural. Man is lost by nature,
and even original
sin, as well as all actual sins, makes him worthy of condemnation. The
rejection of
Christ is undoubtedly a great sin, but is never represented as the only
sin that leads to
destruction. (d) Scripture teaches us that the Gentiles perish, <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.20" osisRef="Bible:Rom.1.32" parsed="|Rom|1|32|0|0" passage="Rom. 1:32">Rom. 1:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.21" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.12" parsed="|Rom|2|12|0|0" passage="Rom 2:12">2:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.ii.iii-p32.22" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.8" parsed="|Rev|21|8|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:8">Rev. 21:8</scripRef>.
There is no Scripture evidence on which we can base the hope that adult
Gentiles, or
even Gentile children that have not yet come to years of discretion,
will be saved. (e)
The theory of a future probation is also calculated to extinguish all
missionary zeal. If
the Gentiles can decide as to the acceptance of Christ in the future, it
can only bring a
speedier and increased judgment upon many, if they are placed before the
choice now.
Why not leave them in ignorance as long as possible? </p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p33" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Is the position tenable that<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p33.1">
sheol-hades</span>
always
designates an underworld whither all the dead go? Why is it
objectionable to believe
that the Bible in its statements respecting<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p33.2">
sheol</span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p33.3">
hades</span>
simply reflects the popular
notions of the day? Must we assume that the righteous and the wicked at
death enter
some temporary and provisional abode, and do not at once enter upon their
eternal
destiny? In what sense is the intermediate state only transitional? How
did the notion of
purgatory arise? How do Catholics conceive of the purgatorial fire? Is
this fire merely
purifying or also penal? What sound element do some Lutherans recognize
in the
doctrine of purgatory? What mixture of heresies do we meet with in
Millennial
Dawnism? Does the intermediate state, according to Scripture, represent
a third<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p33.4">
aion</span>
between the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p33.5">
aion houtos</span>
and the<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p33.6">
aion ho mellon?</span>
Is the Scriptural emphasis on the present as "the day of salvation" in harmony with the doctrine of a
future probation?</p>

<p id="viii.ii.iii-p34" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV., pp. 655-711; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Consummatione Saeculi</span>, pp. 25-116; Vos,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.3">
Geref. Dogm.</span>
V,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.4"> Eschatologie</span>, pp. 3-14; Hodge,
<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.5">Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 713-770; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.6">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 591-640; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.7">
Syst. and Polem.
Theol.</span>
pp. 823-829; Litton,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.8">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>, pp. 548-569; Valentine,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.9">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II,
pp. 392-407;
Pieper,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.10">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
III, pp.
574-578; Miley,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.11">
Syst. Theol.</span>
II, pp.
430-439; Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.12">
Handbook of the
Chr. Rel.</span>, pp. 385-391; Schaff,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.13">
Our Fathers' Faith and Ours</span>, pp.
412-431; Row,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.14">
Future Retribution</span>, pp. 348-404; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.15">
Doctrine of Endless Punishment</span>, pp. 19-117; King,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.16">
Future Retribution;</span>
Morris,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.17">
Is There Salvation After Death?</span> Hovey,
<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.18">Eschatology</span>, pp. 79-144; Dahle,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.19">
Life After Death</span>, pp. 118-227; Salmond,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.20">
Chr. Doct. of Immortality</span>, cf. Index; Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.21">
Immortality and the Future</span>, pp. 195-228;
Addison,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.22">
Life Beyond Death</span>, pp. 200-214;<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.23">
De Bondt, Wat Leert Het Oude Testament Aangaande Her Leven
Na Dit Leven?</span>
pp. 40-129; Kliefoth,<span class="ital" id="viii.ii.iii-p34.24">
Christl. Eschatologie</span>, pp. 32-126. </p>
</div3>
</div2>

      <div2 id="viii.iii" next="viii.iii.i" prev="viii.ii.iii" title="General Eschatology">
<h2 id="viii.iii-p0.1">GENERAL ESCHATOLOGY</h2>

        <div3 id="viii.iii.i" next="viii.iii.ii" prev="viii.iii" title="I. The Second Coming of Christ">
<h2 id="viii.iii.i-p0.1">I. The Second Coming of Christ</h2>
<p id="viii.iii.i-p1" shownumber="no">While the prophets do not clearly distinguish a twofold
coming of Christ, the Lord
Himself and the apostles make it abundantly clear that the first coming
will be followed
by a second. Jesus referred to His return more than once towards the end
of His public
ministry, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.30" parsed="|Matt|24|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:30">Matt. 24:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.19" parsed="|Matt|25|19|0|0" passage="Matt 25:19">25:19</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt 25:31">31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.64" parsed="|Matt|26|64|0|0" passage="Matt 26:64">26:64</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.5" osisRef="Bible:John.14.3" parsed="|John|14|3|0|0" passage="John 14:3">John 14:3</scripRef>. At the time of His ascension angels
pointed to His future return, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.11" parsed="|Acts|1|11|0|0" passage="Acts 1:11">Acts 1:11</scripRef>. Moreover, the apostles speak of
it in numerous
passages, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.20" parsed="|Acts|3|20|0|0" passage="Acts 3:20">Acts 3:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.21" parsed="|Acts|3|21|0|0" passage="Acts 3:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.9" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.20" parsed="|Phil|3|20|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:20">Phil. 3:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.10" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.15" parsed="|1Thess|4|15|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:15">I Thess. 4:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.11" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.12" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:7">II Thess. 1:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.13" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|10|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:10">10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.14" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.13" parsed="|Titus|2|13|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:13">Tit. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.15" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.28" parsed="|Heb|9|28|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:28">Heb. 9:28</scripRef>.
Several terms are used to denote this great event, of which the
following are the most
important: (1)<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p1.16">
apocalupsis</span>
(unveiling), which points to the removal of that which now
obstructs our
vision of Christ, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.17" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.1.7" parsed="|1Cor|1|7|0|0" passage="I Cor. 1:7">I Cor. 1:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.18" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:7">II Thess. 1:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.19" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.7" parsed="|1Pet|1|7|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:7">I Pet. 1:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.20" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.1.13" parsed="|1Pet|1|13|0|0" passage="I Pet. 1:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.21" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.4.13" parsed="|1Pet|4|13|0|0" passage="I Pet. 4:13">4:13</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.22" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2" parsed="|1Pet|2|0|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2">2</scripRef>)<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p1.23">
epiphaneia </span>
(appearance, manifestation), a term referring to Christ's coming forth
out of a hidden  background
with the rich blessings of salvation, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.24" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.8" parsed="|2Thess|2|8|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:8">II Thess. 2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.25" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.6.14" parsed="|1Tim|6|14|0|0" passage="I Tim. 6:14">I Tim. 6:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.26" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.1" parsed="|2Tim|4|1|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:1">II Tim. 4:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.27" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.8" parsed="|2Tim|4|8|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.28" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.13" parsed="|Titus|2|13|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:13">Tit. 2:13</scripRef>; and (3)<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p1.29">
parousia</span>
(lit. presence),
which points to the coming that precedes the
presence or
results in the presence, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.30" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.3" parsed="|Matt|24|3|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:3">Matt. 24:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.31" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.27" parsed="|Matt|24|27|0|0" passage="Matt 24:27">27</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.32" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.37" parsed="|Matt|24|37|0|0" passage="Matt 24:37">37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.33" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.23" parsed="|1Cor|15|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:23">I Cor. 15:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.34" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.2.19" parsed="|1Thess|2|19|0|0" passage="I Thess. 2:19">I Thess. 2:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.35" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.3.13" parsed="|1Thess|3|13|0|0" passage="I Thess. 3:13">3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.36" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.15" parsed="|1Thess|4|15|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:15">4:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.37" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.23" parsed="|1Thess|5|23|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:23">5:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.38" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.1-2Thess.2.9" parsed="|2Thess|2|1|2|9" passage="II Thess. 2:1-9">II Thess. 2:1-9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.39" osisRef="Bible:Jas.5.7" parsed="|Jas|5|7|0|0" passage="Jas. 5:7">Jas. 5:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.40" osisRef="Bible:Jas.5.8" parsed="|Jas|5|8|0|0" passage="Jas 5:8">8</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:16; 3:4,12; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p1.41" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.28" parsed="|1John|2|28|0|0" passage="I John 2:28">I John 2:28</scripRef>.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.i-p1.42">A. THE SECOND COMING A SINGLE EVENT.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.i-p2" shownumber="no">Present day dispensationalists distinguish between a
twofold future coming of
Christ, though they sometimes seek to preserve the unity
of the idea of the second
coming by speaking of these as two aspects of that great event. But
since these two are
in reality represented as two different events, separated by a period of
several years,
each having a purpose of its own, they can hardly be regarded as a
single event. The
first of these
is the<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p2.1">
parousia</span>
or simply
"the coming," and results in the rapture of the
saints, sometimes represented as a<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p2.2">
secret rapture.</span>
This coming is
imminent, that is, it can
occur at any moment, since there are no predicted events which must
precede its
occurrence. The prevailing opinion is that at this time Christ does not
come down to
earth, but remains in the upper air. Those who die in the Lord are
raised from the dead,
the living saints are transfigured, and together they are caught up to
meet the Lord in
the air. Hence
this coming is also called the "coming<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p2.3">
for</span>
His saints," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.15" parsed="|1Thess|4|15|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:15">I Thess. 4:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">16</scripRef>. It is followed by an interval of seven years, during which the world is
evangelized, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.14" parsed="|Matt|24|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:14">Matt. 24:14</scripRef>, Israel is
converted, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.7" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.26" parsed="|Rom|11|26|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:26">Rom. 11:26</scripRef>, the great tribulation occurs, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.21" parsed="|Matt|24|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:21">Matt. 24:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.22" parsed="|Matt|24|22|0|0" passage="Matt 24:22">22</scripRef>, and
Antichrist or the man of sin will be revealed, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.10" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.8-2Thess.2.10" parsed="|2Thess|2|8|2|10" passage="II Thess. 2:8-10">II Thess. 2:8-10</scripRef>. After
these events there is
another coming
of the Lord<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p2.11">
with</span>
His saints, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.12" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.3.13" parsed="|1Thess|3|13|0|0" passage="I Thess. 3:13">I Thess. 3:13</scripRef>, which is called "the
revelation" or "the day of the Lord," in which He comes
down to earth. This coming
cannot be called imminent, because it must be preceded by several
predicted events. At this coming Christ judges the living nations, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|31|25|46" passage="Matt. 25:31-46">Matt. 25:31-46</scripRef>, and ushers in the millennial
kingdom. Thus we have two distinct comings of the Lord, separated by a
period of
seven years, of which the one is imminent and the other is not, the one
is followed by
the glorification of the saints, and the other by the judgment of the
nations and the
establishment of the kingdom. This construction of the doctrine of the
second coming is very convenient for the dispensationalists, since it enables
them to defend the view that
the coming of the Lord is imminent, but is not warranted by Scripture
and carries with
it un-Scriptural
implications. In <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.14" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.1" parsed="|2Thess|2|1|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:1">II Thess. 2:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.15" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.2" parsed="|2Thess|2|2|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:2">2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.16" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.8" parsed="|2Thess|2|8|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:8">8</scripRef> the terms<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p2.17">
parousia</span>
and "day of the Lord" are used interchangeably, and according to <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.18" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7-2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|1|10" passage="II Thess. 1:7-10">II Thess. 1:7-10</scripRef> the
revelation mentioned in
verse 7 synchronizes with the parousia which brings the glorification of
the saints of
which the 10th verse speaks. <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.29-Matt.24.31" parsed="|Matt|24|29|24|31" passage="Matt. 24:29-31">Matt. 24:29-31</scripRef> represents the coming of the
Lord at which
the elect are gathered together as following<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p2.20">
immediately after</span>
the great tribulation
mentioned in the context, while according to the theory under
consideration it should
occur<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p2.21">
before</span>
the tribulation. And. finally, according to this theory the Church will
not
pass through the great tribulation, which is represented in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.4-Matt.24.26" parsed="|Matt|24|4|24|26" passage="Matt. 24:4-26">Matt. 24:4-26</scripRef> as
synchronizing with the great apostasy, but the representation of
Scripture in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.23" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.22" parsed="|Matt|24|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:22">Matt. 24:22</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.24" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.36" parsed="|Luke|21|36|0|0" passage="Luke 21:36">Luke 21:36</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.25" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.3" parsed="|2Thess|2|3|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:3">II
Thess. 2:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.26" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.1-1Tim.4.3" parsed="|1Tim|4|1|4|3" passage="I Tim. 4:1-3">I Tim. 4:1-3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.27" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.1-2Tim.3.5" parsed="|2Tim|3|1|3|5" passage="II Tim. 3:1-5">II Tim. 3:1-5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p2.28" osisRef="Bible:Rev.7.14" parsed="|Rev|7|14|0|0" passage="Rev. 7:14">Rev. 7:14</scripRef> is quite different. On the
basis of Scripture it should be maintained that the second coming of the
Lord will be a
single event. Happily, some Premillenarians do not agree with this
doctrine of a twofold
second coming of Christ, and speak of it as an unwarranted novelty. Says
Frost: "It is
not generally known, and yet it is an indisputable fact that the
doctrine of a
pretribulation resurrection and rapture is a modern interpretation — I am
tempted to
say, a modern invention."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.i-p2.29" n="13" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p2.30">The Second Coming of Christ</span>, p. 203.</note>
According to him it dates from the day of
Irving and Darby.
Another Premillenarian, namely, Alexander Reese, puts up a very strong
argument
against this
whole idea in his work on<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p2.31">
The
Approaching Advent of Christ. </span>
</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.i-p2.32">B. GREAT EVENTS PRECEDING THE PAROUSIA.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.i-p3" shownumber="no">According to Scripture several important events must
occur before the return of the
Lord, and therefore it cannot be called imminent. In the light of
Scripture it cannot be maintained that there are no predicted events which must still come to
pass before the
second coming. As might be expected in view of what was said in the
preceding, Frost,
in spite of his dispensationalism, rejects the doctrine of imminence. He
prefers to speak
of the coming of Christ as "impending." Support for the
doctrine of the imminence of
the return of Christ is found in Scripture statements to the effect that
Christ is coming  after
"a very little while," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.37" parsed="|Heb|10|37|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:37">Heb. 10:37</scripRef>; or "quickly," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Rev.22.7" parsed="|Rev|22|7|0|0" passage="Rev. 22:7">Rev. 22:7</scripRef>;
in exhortations to watch and wait for His
coming, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.42" parsed="|Matt|24|42|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:42">Matt. 24:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.13" parsed="|Matt|25|13|0|0" passage="Matt 25:13">25:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.16.15" parsed="|Rev|16|15|0|0" passage="Rev. 16:15">Rev. 16:15</scripRef>; and in the fact that Scripture condemns the
person who saith, "My Lord tarrieth" (or, "delayeth his
coming"), <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.48" parsed="|Matt|24|48|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:48">Matt. 24:48</scripRef>. Jesus did indeed teach that His coming was near, but this is not
the same as
teaching that it was imminent. In the first place it should be borne in
mind that in speaking of His coming, He does not always have in mind the
eschatological coming.
Sometimes He refers to His coming in spiritual power on the day of
Pentecost;
sometimes to His coming in judgment in the destruction of Jerusalem. In
the second
place He and the apostles teach us that several important events had to
occur before His
physical return
at the last day, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.5-Matt.24.14" parsed="|Matt|24|5|24|14" passage="Matt. 24:5-14">Matt. 24:5-14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.21" parsed="|Matt|24|21|0|0" passage="Matt 24:21">21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.22" parsed="|Matt|24|22|0|0" passage="Matt 24:22">22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.29-Matt.24.31" parsed="|Matt|24|29|24|31" passage="Matt 24:29-31">29-31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.2-2Thess.2.4" parsed="|2Thess|2|2|2|4" passage="II Thess. 2:2-4">II Thess. 2:2-4</scripRef>. Therefore He
could not very well regard and represent His
coming as imminent. It is evident also that, when He spoke of His coming as near, He did not mean to represent
it<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p3.12">
as
immediately at hand.</span>
In the parable of the pounds He teaches that the Lord of the
servants came to reckon with them "after a long time," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.19" parsed="|Matt|25|19|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:19">Matt. 25:19</scripRef>. And the parable of
the pounds was spoken for the very purpose of correcting the notion
"that the kingdom
of God should immediately appear," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.11" parsed="|Luke|19|11|0|0" passage="Luke 19:11">Luke 19:11</scripRef>. In the parable of
the ten virgins the
bridegroom is represented as "tarrying," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.5" parsed="|Matt|25|5|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:5">Matt. 25:5</scripRef>. This is
in harmony with what Paul
says in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.2" parsed="|2Thess|2|2|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:2">II Thess. 2:2</scripRef>. Peter predicted that scoffers would arise saying,
"Where is the day
of His coming?" And he teaches his readers to understand the
predictions of the
nearness of the second coming from the divine point of view, according
to which one day is as a thousand years, and a thousand years as one day, II
Pet. 3:3-9. To teach that
Jesus regarded the second coming as immediately at hand, would be to
represent Him
as in error, since almost two thousand years have already elapsed since
that time. Now
the question can be raised, How can we then be urged to watch for the
coming? Jesus
teaches us in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.32" parsed="|Matt|24|32|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:32">Matt. 24:32</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.33" parsed="|Matt|24|33|0|0" passage="Matt 24:33">33</scripRef> to watch for the coming through the signs:
"when ye see all these things, know ye that He is nigh." Moreover, we
need not interpret the exhortation
to watch as an exhortation to scan the heavens for immediate signs of
the Lord's
appearance. We should rather see in it an admonition to be awake, to be
alert, to be
prepared, to be active in the work of the Lord, lest we be overtaken by
sudden calamity.
The following great events must precede the coming of the Lord. </p>
<p id="viii.iii.i-p4" shownumber="no">1. THE CALLING OF THE GENTILES. Several passages of the New Testament point to the
fact that the gospel of the Kingdom must be preached to all nations
before the return of
the Lord, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.14" parsed="|Matt|24|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:14">Matt. 24:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.10" parsed="|Mark|13|10|0|0" passage="Mark 13:10">Mark 13:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.25" parsed="|Rom|11|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:25">Rom. 11:25</scripRef>. Many passages testify to the fact that the
Gentiles will enter the Kingdom in goodly numbers during the new
dispensation, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.11" parsed="|Matt|8|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:11">Matt. 8:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.31" parsed="|Matt|13|31|0|0" passage="Matt 13:31">13:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.32" parsed="|Matt|13|32|0|0" passage="Matt 13:32">32</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.2.32" parsed="|Luke|2|32|0|0" passage="Luke 2:32">Luke 2:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.15.14" parsed="|Acts|15|14|0|0" passage="Acts 15:14">Acts 15:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.24-Rom.9.26" parsed="|Rom|9|24|9|26" passage="Rom. 9:24-26">Rom. 9:24-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:Eph.2.11-Eph.2.20" parsed="|Eph|2|11|2|20" passage="Eph. 2:11-20">Eph. 2:11-20</scripRef>, and other passages. But
those indicated above clearly refer to the evangelization of all nations
as the goal of
history. Now it will hardly do to say that the gospel has already been
proclaimed among
all peoples, nor that the labors of a single missionary in each one of
the nations of the
world would meet all the requirements of the statement of Jesus. On the
other hand it is
equally impossible to maintain that the words of the Saviour call for
the preaching of the gospel to every individual of the different nations of the
world. They do require,
however, that those nations<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p4.11">
as nations</span>
shall be
thoroughly evangelized, so that the
gospel becomes a power in the life of the people, a sign that calls for
decision. It must be
preached to them<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p4.12">
for a testimony</span>
so that it can be
said that an opportunity was given
them to choose for or against Christ and His Kingdom. These words
clearly imply that
the great commission must be carried out in all the nations of the
world, in order to
make disciples of all nations, that is, from among the people of all
those nations. They
do not justify the expectation, however, that all the nations will<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p4.13">
as a whole</span>
accept the
gospel, but only that it will find adherents in all the nations and will
thus be
instrumental in bringing in the fulness of the Gentiles. At the end of
time it will be
possible to say that all nations were made acquainted with the gospel,
and the gospel
will testify against the nations that did not accept it.
It will readily be understood from what we said in the
preceding that many
dispensationalists have quite a different view of the matter. They do
not believe that the
evangelization of the world need be, nor that it will be, completed
before the parousia,
which is imminent. According to them it will really begin at that time.
They point out
that the gospel indicated in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.14" parsed="|Matt|24|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:14">Matt. 24:14</scripRef> is not the gospel of the grace
of God in Jesus
Christ, but the gospel of the Kingdom, which is quite different, the
good news that the
Kingdom is once more at hand. After the Church has been removed from
this earthly
scene, and with it the indwelling Holy Spirit has gone — which really
means, after Old Testament conditions have been restored —, then the gospel
with which Jesus<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p4.15">
began</span>
His
ministry will again be preached. It will be preached at first by those
who were
converted by the very removal of the Church, later on perhaps by
converted Israel and a
special messenger,<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.i-p4.16" n="14" place="foot">Blackstone,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p4.17"> Jesus is Coming</span>, p. 233.</note>
or, particularly during the great
tribulation, by the believing remnant of Israel.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.i-p4.18" n="15" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p4.19">Scofield's Bible</span>, pp. 1033,1036; Rogers,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p4.20"> The End from the Beginning</span>, p. 144; Feinberg,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p4.21"> Premillennialism or Amillennialism</span>, pp. 134,135.</note>
This preaching will be
wonderfully effective, far more effective than
the preaching of the gospel of the grace of God. It is during this
period that the 144,000
and the great multitude which no man can number of <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.22" osisRef="Bible:Rev.7" parsed="|Rev|7|0|0|0" passage="Rev. 7">Rev. 7</scripRef> will be
converted. And in
that way the prediction of Jesus in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p4.23" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.14" parsed="|Matt|24|14|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:14">Matt. 24:14</scripRef> will be fulfilled. It
should be remembered
that this construction is one which the older Premillenarians did not
accept, which is
even now rejected by some present day Premillenarians. and which
certainly does not
commend itself to us. The distinction between a twofold gospel and a
twofold second
coming of the Lord is an untenable one. The gospel of the grace of God
in Jesus Christ is
the only gospel that saves and that gives entrance to the Kingdom of God.
And it is
absolutely contrary to the history of revelation, that a reversal to Old
Testament
conditions, including the absence of the Church and of the indwelling
Holy Spirit,
should be more effective than the preaching of the gospel of the grace
of God in Jesus
Christ and the gift of the Holy Spirit.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p5" shownumber="no">2. THE CONVERSION OF THE PLEROMA OF ISRAEL. Both the Old and the New Testament speak of a
future conversion of Israel, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Zech.12.10" parsed="|Zech|12|10|0|0" passage="Zech. 12:10">Zech. 12:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Zech.13.1" parsed="|Zech|13|1|0|0" passage="Zech 13:1">13:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.15" parsed="|2Cor|3|15|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:15">II Cor. 3:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.3.16" parsed="|2Cor|3|16|0|0" passage="II Cor. 3:16">16</scripRef>, and <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.25-Rom.11.29" parsed="|Rom|11|25|11|29" passage="Rom. 11:25-29">Rom.
11:25-29</scripRef> seems to connect this with the end of time. Premillennialists
have exploited this
Scriptural teaching for their particular purpose. They maintain that
there will be a
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p5.6">national</span>
restoration and conversion of Israel, that the Jewish nation will be
re-
established in the Holy Land, and that this will take place immediately
preceding or
during the millennial reign of Jesus Christ. It is very doubtful,
however, whether
Scripture warrants the expectation that Israel will finally be
re-established as a nation,
and will as a nation turn to the Lord. Some Old Testament prophecies
seem to predict
this, but these should be read in the light of the New Testament. Does
the New
Testament justify the expectation of a future restoration and conversion
of Israel as a
nation? It is not taught nor even necessarily implied in such passages
as <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.28" parsed="|Matt|19|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:28">Matt. 19:28</scripRef>, and
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.24" parsed="|Luke|21|24|0|0" passage="Luke 21:24">Luke 21:24</scripRef>, which are often quoted in its favor. The Lord spoke very
plainly of the
opposition of the Jews to the spirit of His Kingdom, and of the
certainty that they, who
could in a sense be called children of the Kingdom, would lose their
place in it, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.11" parsed="|Matt|8|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:11">Matt. 8:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.12" parsed="|Matt|8|12|0|0" passage="Matt 8:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.28-Matt.21.46" parsed="|Matt|21|28|21|46" passage="Matt 21:28-46">21:28-46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.1-Matt.22.14" parsed="|Matt|22|1|22|14" passage="Matt 22:1-14">22:1-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.13" osisRef="Bible:Luke.13.6-Luke.13.9" parsed="|Luke|13|6|13|9" passage="Luke 13:6-9">Luke 13:6-9</scripRef>. He informs the wicked Jews that the Kingdom
will be taken from them and given to a nation bringing forth the fruits
thereof, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.43" parsed="|Matt|21|43|0|0" passage="Matt. 21:43">Matt. 21:43</scripRef>. And even when He speaks of the corruptions which in course of
time will creep
into the Church, of the troubles it will encounter, and of the apostasy
which will finally
ensue, He does not hint at any prospective restoration and conversion of
the Jewish
people. This silence of Jesus is very significant. Now it may be thought
that <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p5.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.11-Rom.11.32" parsed="|Rom|11|11|11|32" passage="Rom. 11:11-32">Rom. 11:11-32</scripRef> certainly teaches the future conversion of the nation of
Israel. Many
commentators adopt this view, but even its correctness is subject to
considerable doubt.
In the chapters 9-11 the apostle discusses the question, how the
promises of God to
Israel can be reconciled with the rejection of the greater part of
Israel. He points out first
of all in the chapters 9 and 10 that the promise applies, not to Israel
according to the
flesh, but to the spiritual Israel; and in the second place that
God still has His elect
among Israel, that there is among them still a remnant according to the
election of grace,
11:1-10. And even the hardening of the greater part of Israel is not
God's final end, but
rather a means in His hand to bring salvation to the Gentiles, in order
that these, in turn,
by enjoying the blessings of salvation, may provoke Israel to jealousy.
The hardening of
Israel will always be only partial, for through all the succeeding
centuries there will
always be some who accept the Lord. God will continue to gather His
elect remnant out
of the Jews during the entire new dispensation until the fulness<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p5.16">
(pleroma</span>, that is, the
number of the elect) of the Gentiles be come in, and so (in this manner)
all Israel (its
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p5.17">pleroma</span>, that is, the full number of true
Israelites) shall be saved. "All Israel" is to be
understood as a designation, not of the whole nation, but of the whole
number of the
elect out of the ancient covenant people. Premillenarians take the 26th
verse to mean
that, after God has completed His purpose with the Gentiles, the nation
of Israel will be
saved. But the apostle said at the beginning of his discussion that the
promises were for
the spiritual Israel; there is no evidence of a change of thought in the
intervening
section, so that this would come as a surprise in 11:26; and the adverb<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p5.18">
houtos</span>
cannot
mean "after
that," but only "in this manner." With the fulness of the
Gentiles the fulness of Israel will
also come in. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p6" shownumber="no">3. THE GREAT APOSTASY AND THE GREAT TRIBULATION. These two may be mentioned
together, because they are interwoven in the eschatological discourse of
Jesus, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.9-Matt.24.12" parsed="|Matt|24|9|24|12" passage="Matt. 24:9-12">Matt. 24:9-12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.21-Matt.24.24" parsed="|Matt|24|21|24|24" passage="Matt 24:21-24">21-24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.9-Mark.13.22" parsed="|Mark|13|9|13|22" passage="Mark 13:9-22">Mark 13:9-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.22-Luke.21.24" parsed="|Luke|21|22|21|24" passage="Luke 21:22-24">Luke 21:22-24</scripRef>. The words of Jesus undoubtedly found a
partial fulfilment in the days preceding the destruction of Jerusalem,
but will evidently
have a further fulfilment in the future in a tribulation far surpassing
anything that has
ever been experienced, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.21" parsed="|Matt|24|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:21">Matt. 24:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.19" parsed="|Mark|13|19|0|0" passage="Mark 13:19">Mark 13:19</scripRef>. Paul also speaks of the
great apostasy in
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.3" parsed="|2Thess|2|3|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:3">II Thess. 2:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.1" parsed="|1Tim|4|1|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:1">I Tim. 4:1</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.1-2Tim.3.5" parsed="|2Tim|3|1|3|5" passage="II Tim. 3:1-5">II Tim. 3:1-5</scripRef>. He already saw something of that spirit of apostasy
in his own day, but clearly wants to impress upon his readers that it
will assume much
greater propcrtions in the last days. Here again present day
dispensationalists differ
from us. They do not regard the great tribulation as a precursor of the
coming of the
Lord (the parousia), but believe that it will follow "the
coming," and that therefore the
Church will not pass through the great tribulation. The assumption is
that the Church
will be "caught up," to be with the Lord, before the
tribulation with all its terrors
overtakes the inhabitants of the earth. They prefer to speak of the
great tribulation as
"the day of
Jacob's trouble," since it will be a day of great trouble for Israel
rather than
for the Church. But the grounds which they adduce for this view are not
very
convincing. Some of them derive whatever force they have from their own
preconceived notion of a twofold second coming of Christ, and therefore
have no
meaning whatsoever for those who are convinced that there is no evidence
for such a
twofold coming in Scripture. Jesus certainly mentions the great
tribulation as one of the
signs of His coming and of the end of the world, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.3" parsed="|Matt|24|3|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:3">Matt. 24:3</scripRef>. It is of
that coming
(parousia) that He is speaking throughout this chapter, as may be seen
from the
repeated use of the word parousia, verses 3,37,39. It is only reasonable
to assume that He is speaking of the same coming in verse 30, a coming which
according to verse 29
will follow immediately after the tribulation. This tribulation will
affect also the elect:
they will be in danger of being led astray, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.24" parsed="|Matt|24|24|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:24">Matt. 24:24</scripRef>; for their sakes
the days of agony
will be shortened, verse 22; they will be gathered out of all quarters
of the world at the
coming of the Son of Man; and they are encouraged to look up when they
see these
things come to pass, since their redemption draweth nigh, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.12" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.28" parsed="|Luke|21|28|0|0" passage="Luke 21:28">Luke 21:28</scripRef>.
There is no
warrant for limiting the elect to the elect of Israel, as the Premillenarians
do. Paul clearly
represents the great falling away as preceding the second coming, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.13" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.3" parsed="|2Thess|2|3|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:3">II Thess. 2:3</scripRef>, and
reminds Timothy of the fact that grievous times will come in the last
days, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.14" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.1" parsed="|1Tim|4|1|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:1">I Tim. 4:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.15" osisRef="Bible:1Tim.4.2" parsed="|1Tim|4|2|0|0" passage="I Tim. 4:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.16" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.1-2Tim.3.5" parsed="|2Tim|3|1|3|5" passage="II Tim. 3:1-5">II Tim. 3:1-5</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.17" osisRef="Bible:Rev.7.13" parsed="|Rev|7|13|0|0" passage="Rev. 7:13">Rev. 7:13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.18" osisRef="Bible:Rev.7.14" parsed="|Rev|7|14|0|0" passage="Rev 7:14">14</scripRef> saints in heaven are said to have come out
of the great
tribulation, and in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p6.19" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.9" parsed="|Rev|6|9|0|0" passage="Rev. 6:9">Rev. 6:9</scripRef> we find such saints praying for their
brethren who were still
suffering persecution.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.i-p6.20" n="16" place="foot">For further defense of the position that the Church will pass through the tribulation, we refer to the works of two Premillenarians, namely. Frost,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p6.21"> The Second Coming of Christ</span>, pp. 202-227; Reese,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p6.22"> The  Approaching Advent of Christ</span>, pp. 199-224.</note>
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p7" shownumber="no">4. THE COMING REVELATION OF ANTICHRIST. The term<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p7.1"> antichristos</span> is found only in the
Epistles of
John, namely, in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.18" parsed="|1John|2|18|0|0" passage="I John 2:18">I John 2:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.22" parsed="|1John|2|22|0|0" passage="I John 2:22">22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.3" parsed="|1John|4|3|0|0" passage="I John 4:3">4:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:2John.1.7" parsed="|2John|1|7|0|0" passage="II John 7">II John 7</scripRef>. As far as the form of the word
is
concerned, it may describe (a) one who takes the place of Christ; then
"anti" is taken in
the sense of "instead of"; or (b) one who, while assuming the
guise of Christ, opposes
Him; then
"anti" is used in the sense of "against." The latter is
more in harmony with
the context in which the word occurs. From the fact that John uses the
singular in 2:18
without the article, it is evident that the term "antichrist"
was already regarded as a
technical name. It is uncertain, whether John in using the singular had
in mind one
paramount Antichrist, of which the others to which he refers were merely
harbingers or
forerunners, or simply meant to personify the principle embodied in
several antichrists,
the principle of evil militating against the Kingdom of God. Antichrist
clearly does represent a certain principle, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:1John.4.3" parsed="|1John|4|3|0|0" passage="I John 4:3">I John 4:3</scripRef>. If we bear this in mind, we
shall also realize
that, though John is the first to use the term "antichrist,"
the principle or spirit indicated
by it is clearly mentioned in earlier writings. Just as there is in
Scripture a clearly
marked development in the delineation of Christ and of the Kingdom of
God, so there is
also a progressive revelation of antichrist. The representations differ,
but increase in  definiteness
as God's revelation progresses. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p8" shownumber="no">In the majority of the Old Testament prophets we see the
principle of
unrighteousness working in the ungodly nations which show themselves
hostile to
Israel and are judged by God. In the prophecy of Daniel we find
something more
specific. The language used there furnished many of the features of
Paul's description of the man of sin in II Thessalonians. Daniel finds the
wicked, ungodly principle embodied
in the
"little horn," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Dan.7.8" parsed="|Dan|7|8|0|0" passage="Dan. 7:8">Dan. 7:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Dan.7.23-Dan.7.26" parsed="|Dan|7|23|7|26" passage="Dan 7:23-26">23-26</scripRef>, and describes it very clearly in 11:35
ff. Here even the
personal element is not altogether wanting, though it is not entirely
certain that the
prophet is thinking of some particular king, namely, Antiochus
Epiphanes, as a type of
Antichrist. The coming of Christ naturally calls forth this principle in
its specifically
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p8.3">anti-Christian</span>
form, and Jesus represents it as embodied in various persons. He speaks
of<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p8.4"> pseudoprophetai</span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p8.5">
pseudochristoi</span>, who take position against Him and His Kingdom,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.15" parsed="|Matt|7|15|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:15">Matt. 7:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.5" parsed="|Matt|24|5|0|0" passage="Matt 24:5">24:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.24" parsed="|Matt|24|24|0|0" passage="Matt 24:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.21" parsed="|Mark|13|21|0|0" passage="Mark 13:21">Mark 13:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.22" parsed="|Mark|13|22|0|0" passage="Mark 13:22">22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.23" parsed="|Luke|17|23|0|0" passage="Luke 17:23">Luke 17:23</scripRef>. In order to correct the erroneous view of
the Thessalonians, Paul calls attention to the fact that the day of
Christ cannot come,
"except the falling away come first, and the man of sin be
revealed, the son of
perdition." He describes this man of sin as "he that opposeth
and exalteth himself
against all that is called God or worshipped; so that he sitteth in the
temple of God,
setting himself forth as God," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.2.3" parsed="|1Thess|2|3|0|0" passage="I Thess. 2:3">I Thess. 2:3</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.2.4" parsed="|1Thess|2|4|0|0" passage="I Thess. 2:4">4</scripRef>. This description
naturally reminds us of
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:Dan.11.36" parsed="|Dan|11|36|0|0" passage="Dan. 11:36">Dan. 11:36</scripRef> ff. and clearly points to Antichrist. There is no good reason
for doubting the
identity of the man of sin, of whom Paul speaks, and the Antichrist
mentioned by John.
The apostle sees the "mystery of lawlessness" already at work,
but assures his readers
that the man of sin cannot come forth until that which (or, "he
that") restraineth is taken
out of the way. When this obstacle, whatever it may be (it is variously
interpreted), is
removed, he will appear "whose coming is according to the working
of Satan with all
power and signs and lying wonders," verses 7-9. In this chapter the
personal element is
presupposed throughout. The book of Revelation finds the anti-Christian
principle or
power in the two beasts coming up out of the sea and out of the earth,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:Rev.13" parsed="|Rev|13|0|0|0" passage="Rev. 13">Rev. 13</scripRef>. The first
is generally thought to refer to governments, political powers, or some
world-empire;
the second, though not with the same unanimity, to false religion, false
prophecy, and
false science, particularly the first two. This opponent, or opposing
principle, John in his
epistles finally calls "Antichrist."
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p9" shownumber="no">Historically, there have been different opinions respecting Antichrist.
In the ancient
Church many maintained that Antichrist would be a Jew, pretending to be
the Messiah
and ruling at Jerusalem. Many recent commentators are of the opinion
that Paul and
others mistakenly thought that some Roman emperor would be Antichrist,
and that
John clearly had Nero in mind in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:Rev.13.18" parsed="|Rev|13|18|0|0" passage="Rev. 13:18">Rev. 13:18</scripRef>, since the letters in the
Hebrew words for
"emperor
Nero" are exactly equivalent to 666, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:Rev.13.18" parsed="|Rev|13|18|0|0" passage="Rev. 13:18">Rev. 13:18</scripRef>. Since the time of the 
Reformation many, among whom also Reformed scholars, looked upon papal
Rome,
and in some cases even on some particular Pope, as Anti-Christ. And the
papacy indeed
reveals several traits of Antichrist as he is pictured in Scripture. Yet
it will hardly do to
identify it with Antichrist. It is better to say that there are elements
of Antichrist in the papacy. Positively, we can only say: (a) that the
anti-Christian principle was already at
work in the days of Paul and John according to their own testimony; (b)
that it will
reach its highest power towards the end of the world; (c) that Daniel
pictures the
political, Paul the ecclesiastical, and John in the book of Revelation
both sides of it: the
two may be successive revelations of the anti-Christian power; and (d)
that probably this power will finally be concentrated in a single individual,
the embodiment of all
wickedness. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p10" shownumber="no">The question of the personal character of Antichrist is
still a subject of debate. Some
maintain that
the expressions "antichrist," "the man of sin, the son of
perdition," and
the figures in Daniel and Revelation are merely descriptions of the
ungodly and anti-
Christian principle, which manifests itself in the opposition of the
world to God and His
Kingdom, throughout the whole history of that Kingdom, an opposition
sometimes
weaker, sometimes stronger, but strongest toward the end of time. They
do not look for
any one personal Antichrist. Others feel that it is contrary to
Scripture to speak of
Antichrist merely as an abstract power. They hold that such an
interpretation does not do justice to the data of Scripture, which speaks, not
only of an abstract spirit, but also
of actual
persons. According to them "Antichrist" is a collective concept, the
designation of a succession of persons, manifesting an ungodly or
anti-Christian spirit,
such as the Roman emperors who persecuted the Church and the Popes who engaged
in a similar work of persecution. Even they do not think of a personal
Antichrist who
will be in himself the concentration of all wickedness. The more general
opinion in the
Church, however, is that in the last analysis the term
"Antichrist" denotes an
eschatological person, who will be the incarnation of all wickedness and
therefore
represents a spirit which is always more or less present in the world,
and who has
several precursors or types in history. This view prevailed in the early
Church and
would seem to be the Scriptural view. The following may be said in favor
of it: (a) The
delineation of Antichrist in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Dan.11" parsed="|Dan|11|0|0|0" passage="Dan. 11">Dan. 11</scripRef> is more or less personal, and may
refer to a definite
person as a type
of Antichrist. (b) Paul speaks of Antichrist as "the man of sin" and
"the
son of
perdition." Because of the peculiar Hebrew use of the terms
"man" and "son"
these expressions in themselves may not be conclusive, but the context
clearly favors
the personal idea. He opposes, sets himself up as God, has a definite
revelation, is the
lawless one, and so on. (c) While John speaks of many antichrists as
already present, he
also speaks of Antichrist in the singular as one that is still coming in
the future, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.18" parsed="|1John|2|18|0|0" passage="I John 2:18">I John
2:18</scripRef>. (d) Even in Revelation, where the representation is largely
symbolical, the personal
element is not lacking, as, for instance in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Rev.19.20" parsed="|Rev|19|20|0|0" passage="Rev. 19:20">Rev. 19:20</scripRef>, which speaks of
Antichrist and his
subordinate as being cast into the lake of fire. And (e) since Christ is
a person, it is but natural to think that Antichrist will also be a person.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p11" shownumber="no">5. SIGNS AND WONDERS. The Bible speaks
of several signs that will be harbingers of
the end of the world and of the coming of Christ. It mentions (a) wars
and rumours of
wars, famines and earthquakes in various places, which are called the
beginning of
travail, the travail, as it were, of the rebirth of the universe at the
time of the coming of
Christ; (b) the coming of false prophets, who will lead many astray, and
of false Christs,
who will show great signs and wonders to lead astray, if possible, even
the elect; and (c)
of fearful portents in heaven involving sun, moon, and stars, when the
powers of the
heavens will be
shaken, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.29" parsed="|Matt|24|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:29">Matt. 24:29</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.30" parsed="|Matt|24|30|0|0" passage="Matt 24:30">30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.24" parsed="|Mark|13|24|0|0" passage="Mark 13:24">Mark 13:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.25" parsed="|Mark|13|25|0|0" passage="Mark 13:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.25" parsed="|Luke|21|25|0|0" passage="Luke 21:25">Luke 21:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.26" parsed="|Luke|21|26|0|0" passage="Luke 21:26">26</scripRef>. Since some of
these signs are of a kind which repeatedly occur in the natural order of
events, the
question naturally arises in what way they can be recognized as special
signs of the end.
Attention is usually called to the fact that they will differ from
previous occurrences in
intensity and extent. But, of course, this does not entirely satisfy,
because those seeing
such signs can never know, if there be no other indications, whether the
signs which
they are witnessing may not be followed by other similar signs of even
greater extent
and intensity. Therefore attention should also be called to the fact
that there will be,
when the end is near, a remarkable conjunction of all these signs, and
that the natural
occurrences will be accompanied with supernatural phenomena, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.25" parsed="|Luke|21|25|0|0" passage="Luke 21:25">Luke
21:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.26" parsed="|Luke|21|26|0|0" passage="Luke 21:26">26</scripRef>. Jesus
says: "When
ye see<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p11.9">
all these things</span>, know that He
is nigh, even at the doors." <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.33" parsed="|Matt|24|33|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:33">Matt. 24:33</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.i-p11.11">C. THE PAROUSIA OR THE SECOND COMING I1TSELF.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.i-p12" shownumber="no">Immediately after the portents just mentioned "the
sign of the Son of Man shall be
seen coming on the clouds of heaven," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.30" parsed="|Matt|24|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:30">Matt. 24:30</scripRef>. In connection
with this the following
points should be noted: </p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p13" shownumber="no">1. THE TIME OF THE SECOND COMING. The exact time of the coming of the Lord is
unknown, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.36" parsed="|Matt|24|36|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:36">Matt. 24:36</scripRef>, and all the attempts of men to figure out the
exact date proved to
be erroneous. The only thing that can be said with certainty, on the
basis of Scripture, is
that He will return at the end of the world. The disciples asked the
Lord. "What shall be
the sign of thy coming, and of the end of the world?" <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.3" parsed="|Matt|24|3|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:3">Matt. 24:3</scripRef>.
They link the two
together, and the Lord does not intimate in any way that this is a
mistake, but rather
assumes the correctness of it in His discourse. He represents the two as
synchronizing in
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.29-Matt.24.31" parsed="|Matt|24|29|24|31" passage="Matt. 24:29-31">Matt. 24:29-31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.35-Matt.24.44" parsed="|Matt|24|35|24|44" passage="Matt 24:35-44">35-44</scripRef>: comp. <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.39" parsed="|Matt|13|39|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:39">Matt. 13:39</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.40" parsed="|Matt|13|40|0|0" passage="Matt 13:40">40</scripRef>. Paul and Peter also speak of the two as
coinciding, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.23" parsed="|1Cor|15|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:23">I Cor. 15:23</scripRef>.24; II Pet. 3:4-10. A study of the concomitants of the second
coming leads to the same result. The resurrection of the saints will be
one of its
concomitants, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.23" parsed="|1Cor|15|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:23">I Cor. 15:23</scripRef>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.9" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">I Thess. 4:16</scripRef>, and Jesus assures us that He
will raise them up
at the last day,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.10" osisRef="Bible:John.6.39" parsed="|John|6|39|0|0" passage="John 6:39">John 6:39</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.11" osisRef="Bible:John.6.40" parsed="|John|6|40|0|0" passage="John 6:40">40</scripRef>.44,54. According to Thayer, Cremer-Koegel, Walker,
Salmond, Zahn, and others, this can only mean the day of the
consummation, — the
end of the world. Another one of its concomitants will be the judgment
of the world,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|31|25|46" passage="Matt. 25:31-46">Matt. 25:31-46</scripRef>, particularly also the judgment of the wicked, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.13" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7-2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|1|10" passage="II Thess. 1:7-10">II Thess. 1:7-10</scripRef>, which
Premillenarians place at the end of the world. And, finally, it will
also carry with it the
restoration of
all things, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.14" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.20" parsed="|Acts|3|20|0|0" passage="Acts 3:20">Acts 3:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.15" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.21" parsed="|Acts|3|21|0|0" passage="Acts 3:21">21</scripRef>. The strong expression "restoration of all
things" is
too strong to refer to anything less than the perfect restoration of
that state of things that
existed before the fall of man. It points to the restoration of<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p13.16">
all things</span>
to their former
condition, and this will not be found in the millennium of the Premillenarians.
Even sin and death will continue to slay their victims during that period.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.i-p13.17" n="17" place="foot">Cf. Thayer, Cremer-Koegel, Weiss,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p13.18"> Bib. Theol. of the N. T.</span>, p. 194, note.</note>
As was pointed out in
the preceding, several things must occur before the Lord's return. This
must be borne in
mind in the reading of those passages which speak of the coming of the
Lord or the last
day as near,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.28" parsed="|Matt|16|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:28">Matt. 16:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.20" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.34" parsed="|Matt|24|34|0|0" passage="Matt 24:34">24:34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.21" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.25" parsed="|Heb|10|25|0|0" passage="Heb. 10:25">Heb. 10:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.22" osisRef="Bible:Jas.5.9" parsed="|Jas|5|9|0|0" passage="Jas. 5:9">Jas. 5:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.23" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.4.5" parsed="|1Pet|4|5|0|0" passage="I Pet. 4:5">I Pet. 4:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.24" osisRef="Bible:1John.2.18" parsed="|1John|2|18|0|0" passage="I John 2:18">I John 2:18</scripRef>. They find
their
explanation partly in the fact that, considered from the side of God,
with whom one day
is as a thousand years, and a thousand years as one day, the coming is
always near;
partly in the Biblical representation of the New Testament time as
constituting the last
days or the last time; partly in the fact that the Lord in speaking of
His coming does not
always have in mind His physical return at the end of time, but may
refer to His coming
in the Holy Spirit; and partly in the characteristic prophetic
foreshortening, in which no
clear distinction is made between the proximate coming of the Lord in
the destruction
of Jerusalem and His final coming to judge the world. Sectaries have
often made the
attempt to fix the exact time of the second coming, but these attempts
are always
delusive. Jesus says explicitly: "But of that day and hour knoweth
no one, not even the
angels of heaven, neither the Son, but the Father only," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p13.25" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.36" parsed="|Matt|24|36|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:36">Matt. 24:36</scripRef>. The statement
respecting the Son probably means that this knowledge was not included in
the
revelation which He as Mediator had to bring.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p14" shownumber="no">2. THE MANNER OF THE SECOND COMING. The following points deserve emphasis here:</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p15" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p15.1"> It will be a personal coming.</span>
This follows from
the statement of the angels to the
disciples on the Mount of the Ascension: "This Jesus, who was
received up from you
into heaven, shall so come in like manner as ye beheld Him going into
heaven," <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.11" parsed="|Acts|1|11|0|0" passage="Acts 1:11">Acts 1:11</scripRef>. The person of Jesus was leaving them, and the person of Jesus will
return. In the
system of present day Modernism there is no place for a personal return
of Jesus Christ.
Douglas Clyde Macintosh sees the return of Christ in "the
progressive domination of individuals and society by the moral and religious
principles of essential Christianity,
i.e. by the
Spirit of Christ."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.i-p15.3" n="18" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p15.4">Theology as an Empirical Science</span>, p. 213.</note>
William Newton Clarke says: "No visible
return of Christ
to the earth is to be expected, but rather the long and steady advance
of His spiritual
Kingdom. . . . If our Lord will but complete the spiritual coming that
He has begun,
there will be no need of a visible advent to make perfect His glory on
the earth."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.i-p15.5" n="19" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p15.6">Outline of Christian Theology,</span> p. 444.</note>
According to William Adams Brown "Not through an abrupt
catastrophe, it may be, as
in the early Christian hope, but by the slower and surer method of
spiritual conquest,
the ideal of Jesus shall yet win the universal assent which it deserves,
and His spirit
dominate the world. This is the truth for which the doctrine of the
second advent
stands."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.i-p15.7" n="20" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p15.8">Christian Theology in Outline</span>, p. 373.</note>
Walter Rauschenbusch and Shailer
Mathews speak in similar terms of the
second coming. One and all, they interpret the glowing descriptions of
the second
coming of Christ as figurative representations of the idea that the
spirit of Christ will be
an ever-increasing, pervasive influence in the life of the world.
But it goes without
saying that such representations do not do justice to the descriptions
found in such
passages as <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.11" parsed="|Acts|1|11|0|0" passage="Acts 1:11">Acts 1:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.10" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.20" parsed="|Acts|3|20|0|0" passage="Acts 3:20">3:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.21" parsed="|Acts|3|21|0|0" passage="Acts 3:21">21</scripRef>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.44" parsed="|Matt|24|44|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:44">Matt. 24:44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:22">I Cor. 15:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.14" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.20" parsed="|Phil|3|20|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:20">Phil. 3:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.15" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.4" parsed="|Col|3|4|0|0" passage="Col. 3:4">Col. 3:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.16" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.2.19" parsed="|1Thess|2|19|0|0" passage="I Thess. 2:19">I Thess. 2:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.17" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.3.13" parsed="|1Thess|3|13|0|0" passage="I Thess. 3:13">3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.18" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.15-1Thess.4.17" parsed="|1Thess|4|15|4|17" passage="I Thess. 4:15-17">4:15-17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.19" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.8" parsed="|2Tim|4|8|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:8">II Tim. 4:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.20" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.13" parsed="|Titus|2|13|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:13">Tit. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p15.21" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.28" parsed="|Heb|9|28|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:28">Heb. 9:28</scripRef>. Modernists themselves admit this when
they speak of these as representing the old Jewish way of thinking. They
have new and
better light on the subject, but it is a light that grows rather dim in
view of the world
events of the present day.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p16" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.1"> It will be a physical coming.</span> That the Lord's
return will be physical follows from
such passages as <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.11" parsed="|Acts|1|11|0|0" passage="Acts 1:11">Acts 1:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.20" parsed="|Acts|3|20|0|0" passage="Acts 3:20">3:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.21" parsed="|Acts|3|21|0|0" passage="Acts 3:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.28" parsed="|Heb|9|28|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:28">Heb. 9:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.7" parsed="|Rev|1|7|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:7">Rev. 1:7</scripRef>. Jesus will return to earth in the
body. There are some who identify the predicted coming of the Lord with
His spiritual coming on the day of Pentecost, and understand the<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.7">
parousia</span>
to mean the Lord's
spiritual presence in the Church. According to their representation the
Lord did return
in the Holy Spirit on the day of Pentecost, and is now present (hence<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.8">
parousia</span>) in the
Church. They lay special emphasis on the fact that the word<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.9">
parousia</span>
means<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.10">
presence.</span><note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.i-p16.11" n="21" place="foot">This interpretation is found in Warren's<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.12"> The Parousia of Christ</span>, and in J. M. Campbell's<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.13"> The Second Coming of Christ. </span></note>
Now it is quite evident that the New Testament does speak of a spiritual
coming of
Christ, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.28" parsed="|Matt|16|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:28">Matt. 16:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.15" osisRef="Bible:John.14.18" parsed="|John|14|18|0|0" passage="John 14:18">John 14:18</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.16" osisRef="Bible:John.14.23" parsed="|John|14|23|0|0" passage="John 14:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.17" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.20" parsed="|Rev|3|20|0|0" passage="Rev. 3:20">Rev. 3:20</scripRef>; but this coming, whether to the Church on
the day of Pentecost or to the individual in his spiritual renewal, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.18" osisRef="Bible:Gal.1.16" parsed="|Gal|1|16|0|0" passage="Gal. 1:16">Gal. 1:16</scripRef>, cannot be
identified with what the Bible represents as<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.19">
the</span>
second coming of Christ. It is true that
the word<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.20">
parousia</span>
means<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.21">
presence</span>, but Dr. Vos correctly pointed out that in its religious
eschatological usage it also means<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.22">
arrival</span>
and that in the
New Testament the idea of <span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.23">
arrival</span>
is in the
foreground. Moreover, it should be borne in mind that there are other
terms in the New Testament, which serve to designate the second coming,
namely
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.24">apokalupsis, epiphaneia</span>, and<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p16.25">
phanerosis</span>, every one of which points to a coming
that can be
seen. And, finally, it should not be forgotten that the Epistles refer
to the second coming
repeatedly as an
event that is still future, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.26" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.20" parsed="|Phil|3|20|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:20">Phil. 3:20</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.27" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.3.13" parsed="|1Thess|3|13|0|0" passage="I Thess. 3:13">I Thess. 3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.28" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.15" parsed="|1Thess|4|15|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:15">4:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.29" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.30" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7-2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|1|10" passage="II Thess. 1:7-10">II Thess. 1:7-10</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p16.31" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.13" parsed="|Titus|2|13|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:13">Tit. 2:13</scripRef>. This does not fit in with the idea that the coming was
already an event of the past.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p17" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p17.1">
It will be a visible coming.</span>
This is
intimately connected with the preceding. It may
be said that, if the coming of the Lord will be physical, it will also
be visible. This would
seem to follow as a matter of course, but the Russellites or Millennial
Dawnists do not
seem to think so. They maintain that the return of Christ and the
inauguration of the
millennium took place invisibly in 1874, and that Christ came in power
in 1914 for the
purpose of removing the Church and overthrowing the kingdoms of the
world. When
the year 1914 passed by without the appearance of Christ, they sought a
way of escape
from the difficulty in the convenient theory that He remained in hiding,
because the
people do not manifest sufficient repentance. Christ has come,
therefore, and has come
invisibly. Scripture does not leave us in doubt, however, as to the
visibility of the Lord's
return. Numerous passages testify to it, such as <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.30" parsed="|Matt|24|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:30">Matt. 24:30</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p17.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.26.64" parsed="|Matt|26|64|0|0" passage="Matt 26:64">26:64</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.26" parsed="|Mark|13|26|0|0" passage="Mark 13:26">Mark 13:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p17.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.27" parsed="|Luke|21|27|0|0" passage="Luke 21:27">Luke 21:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p17.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.1.11" parsed="|Acts|1|11|0|0" passage="Acts 1:11">Acts 1:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p17.7" osisRef="Bible:Col.3.4" parsed="|Col|3|4|0|0" passage="Col. 3:4">Col. 3:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p17.8" osisRef="Bible:Titus.2.13" parsed="|Titus|2|13|0|0" passage="Tit. 2:13">Tit. 2:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p17.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.28" parsed="|Heb|9|28|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:28">Heb. 9:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p17.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.7" parsed="|Rev|1|7|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:7">Rev. 1:7</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p18" shownumber="no">d.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p18.1"> It will be a sudden coming.</span>
Though the Bible teaches us on the one hand that the
coming of the Lord will be preceded by several signs, it teaches on the
other hand in an
equally emphatic manner that the coming will be sudden, will be rather
unexpected,
and will take
people by surprise, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p18.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.37-Matt.24.44" parsed="|Matt|24|37|24|44" passage="Matt. 24:37-44">Matt. 24:37-44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p18.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.1-Matt.25.12" parsed="|Matt|25|1|25|12" passage="Matt 25:1-12">25:1-12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p18.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.13.33-Mark.13.37" parsed="|Mark|13|33|13|37" passage="Mark 13:33-37">Mark 13:33-37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p18.5" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.2" parsed="|1Thess|5|2|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:2">I Thess. 5:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p18.6" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.5.3" parsed="|1Thess|5|3|0|0" passage="I Thess. 5:3">3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p18.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.3" parsed="|Rev|3|3|0|0" passage="Rev. 3:3">Rev. 3:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p18.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.16.15" parsed="|Rev|16|15|0|0" passage="Rev 16:15">16:15</scripRef>. This is not contradictory, for the predicted signs are
not of such a kind as
to designate the exact time. The prophets pointed to certain signs that
would precede
the first coming of Christ, and yet His coming took many by surprise.
The majority of
the people paid no attention to the signs whatsoever. The Bible
intimates that the
measure of the surprise at the second coming of Christ will be in an
inverse ratio to the measure of their watchfulness.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p19" shownumber="no">e.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p19.1">
It will be a glorious and triumphant coming.</span>
The second
coming of Christ, though
personal, physical, and visible, will yet be very different from His
first coming. He will
not return in the body of His humilation, but in a glorified body and in
royal apparel,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p19.2" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.28" parsed="|Heb|9|28|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:28">Heb. 9:28</scripRef>. The clouds of heaven will be His chariot, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p19.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.30" parsed="|Matt|24|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:30">Matt. 24:30</scripRef>, the
angels His
bodyguard, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p19.4" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:7">II Thess. 1:7</scripRef>, the archangels His heralds. <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p19.5" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">I Thess. 4:16</scripRef>, and
the saints of God
His glorious retinue, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p19.6" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.3.13" parsed="|1Thess|3|13|0|0" passage="I Thess. 3:13">I Thess. 3:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p19.7" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|10|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:10">II Thess. 1:10</scripRef>. He will come as
King of kings and Lord
of lords, triumphant over all the forces of evil, having put all His
enemies under His feet, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p19.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.25" parsed="|1Cor|15|25|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:25">I Cor. 15:25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p19.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.19.11-Rev.19.16" parsed="|Rev|19|11|19|16" passage="Rev. 19:11-16">Rev. 19:11-16</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p20" shownumber="no">3. THE PURPOSE OF THE SECOND COMING. Christ will return at the end of the world for
the purpose of introducing the future age, the eternal state of things,
and He will do this
by inaugurating and completing two mighty events, namely, the
resurrection of the
dead and the
final judgment, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.49" parsed="|Matt|13|49|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:49">Matt. 13:49</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.50" parsed="|Matt|13|50|0|0" passage="Matt 13:50">50</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.27" parsed="|Matt|16|27|0|0" passage="Matt 16:27">16:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.3" parsed="|Matt|24|3|0|0" passage="Matt 24:3">24:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.14-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|14|25|46" passage="Matt 25:14-46">25:14-46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.9.26" parsed="|Luke|9|26|0|0" passage="Luke 9:26">Luke 9:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.15" parsed="|Luke|19|15|0|0" passage="Luke 19:15">19:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.26" parsed="|Luke|19|26|0|0" passage="Luke 19:26">26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.9" osisRef="Bible:Luke.19.27" parsed="|Luke|19|27|0|0" passage="Luke 19:27">27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.10" osisRef="Bible:John.5.25-John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|25|5|29" passage="John 5:25-29">John 5:25-29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.11" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.31" parsed="|Acts|17|31|0|0" passage="Acts 17:31">Acts 17:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.12" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.3-Rom.2.16" parsed="|Rom|2|3|2|16" passage="Rom. 2:3-16">Rom. 2:3-16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.4.5" parsed="|1Cor|4|5|0|0" passage="I Cor. 4:5">I Cor. 4:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.14" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.23" parsed="|1Cor|15|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:23">15:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.15" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.10" parsed="|2Cor|5|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:10">II Cor. 5:10</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.16" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.20" parsed="|Phil|3|20|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:20">Phil. 3:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.17" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil 3:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.18" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.13-1Thess.4.17" parsed="|1Thess|4|13|4|17" passage="I Thess. 4:13-17">I Thess. 4:13-17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.19" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7-2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|1|10" passage="II Thess. 1:7-10">II Thess. 1:7-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.20" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.7" parsed="|2Thess|2|7|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:7">2:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.21" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.8" parsed="|2Thess|2|8|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:8">8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.22" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.1" parsed="|2Tim|4|1|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:1">II Tim. 4:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.23" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.8" parsed="|2Tim|4|8|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:8">8</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:10-13; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.24" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.14 Bible:Jude.1.15" parsed="|Jude|1|14|0|0;|Jude|1|15|0|0" passage="Jude 14,15">Jude 14,15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.25" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.11-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|11|20|15" passage="Rev. 20:11-15">Rev. 20:11-15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.26" osisRef="Bible:Rev.22.12" parsed="|Rev|22|12|0|0" passage="Rev 22:12">22:12</scripRef>.
In the usual representation of Scripture, as already intimated in the
preceding, the end
of the world, the day of the Lord, the physical resurrection of the
dead, and the final
judgment coincide. That great turning point will also bring the
destruction of all the evil
forces that are
hostile to the Kingdom of God, <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.27" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.8" parsed="|2Thess|2|8|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:8">II Thess. 2:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.28" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.14" parsed="|Rev|20|14|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:14">Rev. 20:14</scripRef>. It may be
doubted, whether anyone would have read the relevant passages in any
other way, if <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p20.29" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.1-Rev.20.6" parsed="|Rev|20|1|20|6" passage="Rev. 20:1-6">Rev. 20:1-6</scripRef> had not been set up by some as the standard by which all the
rest of the New
Testament must be interpreted. According to Premillenarians the second
coming of
Christ will primarily serve the purpose of establishing the visible
reign of Christ and
His Saints on earth, and of inaugurating the real day of salvation for
the world. This
will involve the rapture, the resurrection of the righteous, the wedding
of the Lamb, and judgments upon the enemies of God. But other resurrections and
judgments will follow
at various intervals, and the last resurrection and final judgment will
be separated from
the second coming by a thousand years. The objections to this view have
partly been
given in the preceding and will partly be mentioned in the following
chapters. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p21" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Why cannot the term<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p21.1">
parousia</span>
simply be
rendered
'presence'
wherever it is found? In what different senses does the Bible speak of the
coming of Christ? How should <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.16.28" parsed="|Matt|16|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 16:28">Matt. 16:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.34" parsed="|Matt|24|34|0|0" passage="Matt 24:34">24:34</scripRef> be interpreted? Does the
discourse of
Jesus in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24" parsed="|Matt|24|0|0|0" passage="Matt. 24">Matt. 24</scripRef> speak of a single coming? Does the doctrine of the
national restoration
of the Jews necessarily involve the doctrine of the millennium? Do the
following
passages teach
such a restoration: <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.23.39" parsed="|Matt|23|39|0|0" passage="Matt. 23:39">Matt. 23:39</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.13.35" parsed="|Luke|13|35|0|0" passage="Luke 13:35">Luke 13:35</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.24" parsed="|Luke|21|24|0|0" passage="Luke 21:24">21:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.8" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.6" parsed="|Acts|3|6|0|0" passage="Acts 3:6">Acts 3:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.9" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.7" parsed="|Acts|3|7|0|0" passage="Acts 3:7">7</scripRef>? Does Daniel
refer to Antiochus Epiphanes as a type of Antichrist in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.10" osisRef="Bible:Dan.11.36" parsed="|Dan|11|36|0|0" passage="Dan. 11:36">Dan. 11:36</scripRef> ff.?
How are the beasts
of <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.11" osisRef="Bible:Rev.13" parsed="|Rev|13|0|0|0" passage="Rev. 13">Rev. 13</scripRef> related to Antichrist? Should the man of sin, of which Paul
speaks, be
identified with Antichrist? What is the restraining power which is
mentioned in <scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.12" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.6" parsed="|2Thess|2|6|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:6">II Thess. 2:6</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.i-p21.13" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.7" parsed="|2Thess|2|7|0|0" passage="II Thess. 2:7">7</scripRef>? Did the apostles teach that the Lord might return during
their lifetime?
Does the New Testament warrant the idea that the phrase "the
end" or "the end of the world" simply means 'the end of the age'?</p>

<p id="viii.iii.i-p22" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.1"> Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 712-753; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Consummatione Saeculi</span>, pp. 117-245; Vos.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.3">
Geref. Dogm. V, Eschatologie</span>, pp. 22-23; id.,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.4">
Pauline Eschatology</span>
pp. 72-135;
Hodge,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.5">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp.
790-836; Pieper,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.6">
Christl. Dogm.</span>
III, pp.
579-584; Valentine,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.7">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp.
407-411; Schmid,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.8">
Doct. Theol. of the Ev. Luth. Church</span>, pp.
645-657; Strong,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.9">
Syst. Theol.</span>, pp. 1003-1015; Pope,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.10">
Chr. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 387-397; Hovey,
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.11">Eschatology</span>, pp. 23-78; Kliefoth,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.12">
Eschatologie</span>, pp. 126-147, 191-225; Mackintosh.
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.13">Immortality and the Future</span>, pp. 130-148; Kennedy,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.14"> St. Paul's Conceptions of the Last Things</span>,
pp. 158-193;
Salmond,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.15">
The Chr. Doct. of Immortality</span>, pp. 241-251;
Snowden,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.i-p22.16">
The Coming of the Lord</span>
pp. 123-171. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="viii.iii.ii" next="viii.iii.iii" prev="viii.iii.i" title="II. Millenial Views">
<h2 id="viii.iii.ii-p0.1">II. Millennial Views</h2>
<p id="viii.iii.ii-p1" shownumber="no">There are some who connect with the advent of Christ the
idea of a millennium,
either immediately before or immediately following the second coming.
While this idea
is not an integral part of Reformed theology, it nevertheless deserves
consideration here,
since it has become rather popular in many circles. Reformed theology
cannot afford to
ignore the wide-spread millenarian views of the present day, but should
define its
position with respect to these. Some of those who expect a millennium in
the future
hold that the Lord will return before the millennium, and are therefore
called
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p1.1">Premillennialists;</span>
while others believe that His second coming will follow after the
millennium, and are therefore known as<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p1.2">
Postmillennialists.</span>
There are
large numbers,
however, who do not believe that the Bible warrants the expectation of a
millennium,
and it has become customary of late to speak of them as<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p1.3">
Amillennialists.</span>
The Amillennial
view is, as the name indicates, purely negative. It holds that there is
no sufficient
Scriptural ground for the expectation of a millennium, and is firmly
convinced that the
Bible favors the idea that the present dispensation of the Kingdom of
God will be
followed<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p1.4">
immediately</span>
by the Kingdom of God in its consummate and eternal form. It is
mindful of the fact that the Kingdom of Jesus Christ is represented as
an eternal and not
as a temporal
kingdom, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.9.7" parsed="|Isa|9|7|0|0" passage="Isa. 9:7">Isa. 9:7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.6" osisRef="Bible:Dan.7.14" parsed="|Dan|7|14|0|0" passage="Dan. 7:14">Dan. 7:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.1.33" parsed="|Luke|1|33|0|0" passage="Luke 1:33">Luke 1:33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.8" parsed="|Heb|1|8|0|0" passage="Heb. 1:8">Heb. 1:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.28" parsed="|Heb|12|28|0|0" passage="Heb 12:28">12:28</scripRef>; II Pet. 1:11; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.11.15" parsed="|Rev|11|15|0|0" passage="Rev. 11:15">Rev. 11:15</scripRef>; and that to enter the Kingdom of the future is to enter upon
one's eternal state,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.21" parsed="|Matt|7|21|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:21">Matt. 7:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.22" parsed="|Matt|7|22|0|0" passage="Matt 7:22">22</scripRef>, to enter life, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.8" parsed="|Matt|18|8|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:8">Matt. 18:8</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.9" parsed="|Matt|18|9|0|0" passage="Matt 18:9">9</scripRef> (cf. the preceding context),
and to be saved, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.15" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.25" parsed="|Mark|10|25|0|0" passage="Mark 10:25">Mark 10:25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p1.16" osisRef="Bible:Mark.10.26" parsed="|Mark|10|26|0|0" passage="Mark 10:26">26</scripRef>. Some Premillenarians have spoken of<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p1.17">
Amillennialism</span>
as a new view and as one
of the most recent novelties, but this is certainly not in accord with
the testimony of
history. The name is new indeed, but the view to which it is applied is
as old as
Christianity. It had at least as many advocates as Chiliasm among the
Church Fathers of
the second and third centuries, supposed to have been the heyday of
Chiliasm. It has
ever since been the view most widely accepted, is the only view that is
either expressed
or implied in the great historical Confessions of the Church, and has
always been the
prevalent view in Reformed circles.</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.ii-p1.18">A. PREMILLENNIALISM.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.ii-p2" shownumber="no">Since Premillennialism has not always assumed the same form, it may be well to indicate briefly the form which it generally assumed in the past
(without noting all
kinds of aberrations), and then to follow this up with a more detailed
description of the most dominant premillennial theory of the present day.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p3" shownumber="no">1. THE PREMILLENNIALISM OF THE PAST.
The view of Irenæus may be given as that
which best reflects that of the early Christian centuries. The
present world will endure
six thousand years, corresponding to the six days of creation. Towards
the end of this
period the sufferings and persecutions of the pious will greatly
increase, until finally the
incarnation of all wickedness appears in the person of Antichrist. After
he has
completed his destructive work and has boldly seated himself in the
temple of God,
Christ will appear in heavenly glory and triumph over all His enemies.
This will be
accompanied by the physical resurrection of the saints and the
establishment of the
Kingdom of God on earth. The period of millennial bliss, lasting a
thousand years, will
correspond to the seventh day of creation, — the day of rest. Jerusalem
will be rebuilt;
the earth will yield its fruit in rich abundance; and peace and
righteousness will prevail.
At the end of the thousand years the final judgment will ensue, and a
new creation will
appear, in which the redeemed will live forever in the presence of God. In
general
outline this representation is typical of the eschatological views of
the early Christian
centuries, however these may differ in some details. During all the
following centuries
and into the nineteenth century, millennial thought remained essentially
the same,
though there were strange aberrations in some of the sects. Continued
study, however,
led to further development and to greater clarity in the presentation of
some of its
particulars. The main features of the common view may be stated somewhat
as follows:
The coming advent of Christ to the world is near, and will be visible,
personal, and
glorious. It will be preceded, however, by certain events, such as the
evangelization of
all nations, the conversion of Israel, the great apostasy and the great
tribulation, and the
revelation of the man of sin. Dark and trying times are therefore still
in store for the
Church, since she will have to pass through the great tribulation. The
second coming
will be a great, single, outstanding, and glorious event, but will be
accompanied by
several others bearing on the Church, on Israel, and on the world. The
dead saints will
be raised and the living transfigured, and together they will be
translated to meet the
coming Lord. Antichrist and his wicked allies will be slain; and Israel,
the ancient
people of God will repent, be saved, and restored to the Holy Land. Then
the Kingdom
of God, predicted by the prophets, will be established in a transformed
world. The
Gentiles will turn to God in great abundance and be incorporated in the
Kingdom. A
condition of peace and righteousness will prevail in all the earth.
After the expiration of
the earthly rule of Christ the rest of the dead will be raised up; and
this resurrection will
be followed by the last judgment and the creation of a new heaven and a
new earth.
Generally speaking, it may be said that this is the type of Premillennialism
advocated by such men as Mede, Bengel, Auberlen, Christlieb, Ebrard, Godet,
Hofmann, Lange,
Stier, Van Oosterzee, Van Andel, Alford, Andrews, Ellicott, Guinness,
Kellogg, Zahn,
Moorehead, Newton, Trench, and others. It goes without saying that these
men differed
in some details.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p4" shownumber="no">2. THE PREMILLENNIALISM OF THE PRESENT. In the second quarter of the nineteenth
century a new form of Premillennialism was introduced under the influence
of Darby, Kelly, Trotter, and their followers in England and America, a
Premillennialism wedded
to Dispensationalism. The new views were popularized in our country
especially
through the Scofield Bible, and are widely disseminated through the
works of such men
as Bullinger, F. W. Grant, Blackstone, Gray, Silver, Haldeman, the two
Gaebeleins,
Brookes, Riley, Rogers, and a host of others. They really present a new
philosophy of the
history of redemption, in which Israel plays a leading role and the
Church is but an
interlude. Their guiding principle prompts them to divide the Bible into
two books, the
book of the Kingdom and the book of the Church. In reading their
descriptions of God's
dealings with men one is lost in a bewildering maze of covenants and
dispensations,
without an Ariadne thread to give safe guidance. Their divisive tendency
also reveals
itself in their eschatological program. There will be two second
comings, two or three (if
not four) resurrections, and also three judgments. Moreover, there will
also be two
peoples of God, which according to some will be eternally separate,
Israel dwelling on
earth, and the Church in heaven.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p5" shownumber="no">The following will give some idea of the Premillennial
scheme that enjoys the
greatest popularity to-day: </p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p6" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p6.1">
Its view of history.</span>
God deals
with the world of humanity in the course of history
on the basis of several covenants and according to the principles of
seven different
dispensations. Each dispensation is distinct, and each one of them
represents a different
test of the natural man; and since man fails to meet the successive
tests, each
dispensation ends in a judgment. The theocracy of Israel, founded on
Mount Sinai,
occupies a special place in the divine economy. It was the initiatory
form of the
Kingdom of God or the Kingdom of the Messiah, and had its golden age in
the days of
David and Solomon. In the way of obedience it might have increased in
strength and
glory, but as the result of the unfaithfulness of the people, it was
finally overthrown,
and the people were carried away into exile. The prophets predicted this
overthrow, but
also brought messages of hope and raised the expectation that in the
days of the
Messiah Israel would turn to the Lord in true repentance, the throne of
David would be
re-established in unsurpassed glory, and even the Gentiles would share
in the blessings
of the future Kingdom. But when the Messiah came and offered to
establish the
Kingdom, the Jews failed to show the requisite repentance. The result
was that the King
did not establish the Kingdom, but withdrew from Israel and went into a
far country,
postponing the establishment of the Kingdom until His return. Before He
left the earth,
however, He founded the Church, which has nothing in common with the
Kingdom,
and of which the prophets never spoke. The dispensation of the law made
way for the
dispensation of the grace of God. During this dispensation the Church is
gathered out of
Jews and Gentiles, and forms the body of Christ, which now shares in His
sufferings,
but will once, as the bride of the Lamb, share in His glory. Of this
Church Christ is not
the King, but the divine Head. She has the glorious task of preaching,
not the gospel of
the Kingdom, but the gospel of the free grace of God, among all the
nations of the
world, to gather out of them the elect and further to be a testimony
unto them. This
method will prove to be a failure; it will not effect conversions on any
large scale. At the
end of this dispensation Christ will suddenly return and effect a far
more universal
conversion. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p7" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p7.1"> Its eschatology.</span> The return of Christ is imminent now, that is, He may come at any
time, for there are no predicted events that must still precede it.
However, His coming consists of two separate events, separated from each other
by a period of seven years.
The first of these events will be the<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p7.2">
parousia</span>
when Christ will
appear in the air to meet
His saints. All the righteous dead will then be raised up, and the
living saints will be
transfigured. Together they will be caught up into the air, will
celebrate the wedding of
the Lamb, and will then be forever with the Lord. The translation of the
living saints is
called "<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p7.3">
the rapture</span>
," sometimes "<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p7.4">
the secret rapture.</span>
" While Christ and His Church are
absent from the earth, and even the indwelling Holy Spirit has gone with
the Church,
there will be a period of seven years or more, often divided into two
parts, in which
several things will happen. The gospel of the Kingdom will again be
preached,
primarily, it would seem, by the believing remnant of the Jews, and
conversions on a
large scale will result, though many will still continue to blaspheme
God. The Lord will
again begin to deal with Israel and it will probably at this time
(though some say it will
be later) be converted. In the second half of this period of seven years
there will be a
time of unequalled tribulation, the length of which is still a subject
of debate. Antichrist
will be revealed and the vials of God's wrath will be poured out upon
the human race.
At the end of the seven-year period the "<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p7.5">
revelation</span>
" will follow, that is, the coming of the
Lord down to earth, now not<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p7.6">
for</span>
but<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p7.7">
with</span>
His saints. The living nations are now judged
(<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:31">Matt. 25:31</scripRef> ff.), and the sheep separated from the goats; the saints
that died during the
great tribulation are raised up; Antichrist is destroyed; and Satan is
bound for a
thousand years. The millennial kingdom will now be established, a real
visible,
terrestrial, and material kingdom of the Jews, the restoration of the
theocratic kingdom,
including the re-establishment of the Davidic kingship. In it the saints
will reign with
Christ, the Jews will be the natural citizens and many Gentiles adopted
citizens. The
throne of Christ will be established at Jerusalem, which will also again
become the
central place of worship. The temple will be rebuilt on Mount Zion, and
the altar will
again reek with the blood of sacrifices, even of sin- and
trespass-offerings. And though
sin and death will still claim their victims, it will be a time of great
fruitfulness and
prosperity, in which men's lives will be prolonged and the wilderness
will blossom as
the rose. In this time the world will speedily be converted, according
to some by the
gospel, but according to the majority by totally different means, such
as the personal
appearance of Christ, the envy aroused by the blessedness of the saints,
and above all
great and terrible judgments. After the millennium Satan will be loosed
for a little
season, and the hordes of Gog and Magog assemble against the holy city.
The enemies
are devoured, however, by fire from heaven, and Satan is cast into the
bottomless pit,
whither the beast and the false prophet have preceded him. After this
little season the
wicked dead are raised up and appear in judgment before the great white
throne, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p7.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.11-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|11|20|15" passage="Rev. 20:11-15">Rev. 20:11-15</scripRef>. And then there will be a new heaven and a new
earth.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p8" shownumber="no">c.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p8.1"> Some of the variations of this theory.</span>
Premillenarians
are by no means all agreed as to
the particulars of their eschatological scheme. A study of their
literature reveals a great
variety of opinions. There is indefiniteness and uncertainty on many
points, which
proves that their detailed construction is of rather doubtful value.
While the majority of
present day Premillenarians believe in a coming visible rule of Jesus
Christ, even now
some anticipate only a spiritual rule, and do not look for a physical
presence of Christ
on earth. Though the thousand years of <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20" parsed="|Rev|20|0|0|0" passage="Rev. 20">Rev. 20</scripRef> are generally interpreted
literally, there
is a tendency on the part of some to regard them as an indefinite period
of shorter or
longer duration. Some think that the Jews will be converted first, and
then brought back
to Palestine, while others are of the opinion that this order will be
reversed. There are
those who believe that the means used for the conversion of the world
will be identical
with those now employed, but the prevailing opinion is that other means
will be
substituted. There is a difference of opinion also as to the place where
the risen saints
will dwell during their millennial reign with Christ, on earth or in
heaven, or in both
places. Opinions differ very much, too, with respect to the continuance
of the
propagation of the human race during the millennium, the degree of sin
that will
prevail at that time, and the continued sway of death, and many other
points.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p9" shownumber="no">3. OBJECTIONS TO PREMILLENNIALISM. In the discussion of the second advent the
premillennial view of it was already subjected to special scrutiny and
criticism, and the
succeeding chapters on the resurrection and the final judgment will
offer further
occasion for a critical consideration of the premillennial construction
of these events.
Hence the objections raised at this point will be of a more general
nature, and even so
we can only pay attention to some of the most important ones.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p10" shownumber="no">a. The theory is based on a literal interpretation of the
prophetic delineations of the
future of Israel and of the Kingdom of God, which is entirely untenable.
This has been
pointed out repeatedly in such works on prophecy as those of Fairbairn,
Riehm, and
Davidson, in the
splendid work of David Brown on<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p10.1">
The Second Advent</span>,
in Waldegrave's
important volume
on<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p10.2"> New Testament Millennarianism</span>, and in the
more recent works of
Dr. Aalders on<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p10.3">
De Profeten des Ouden Verbonds</span>, and<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p10.4">
Het Herstel van Israel Volgens het Oude
Testament.</span>
The last volume is devoted entirely to a detailed exegetical study of
all the
Old Testament passages that might bear in any way on the future
restoration of Israel. It
is a thorough work that deserves careful study. Premillenarians maintain
that nothing
short of a literal interpretation and fulfilment will satisfy the
requirements of these
prophetic forecasts; but the books of the prophets themselves already
contain
indications that
point to a spiritual fulfilment, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Isa.54.13" parsed="|Isa|54|13|0|0" passage="Isa. 54:13">Isa. 54:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:Isa.61.6" parsed="|Isa|61|6|0|0" passage="Isa 61:6">61:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:Jer.3.16" parsed="|Jer|3|16|0|0" passage="Jer. 3:16">Jer. 3:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:Jer.31.31-Jer.31.34" parsed="|Jer|31|31|31|34" passage="Jer 31:31-34">31:31-34</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.9" osisRef="Bible:Hos.14.2" parsed="|Hos|14|2|0|0" passage="Hos. 14:2">Hos. 14:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.10" osisRef="Bible:Mic.6.6-Mic.6.8" parsed="|Mic|6|6|6|8" passage="Mic. 6:6-8">Mic. 6:6-8</scripRef>. The contention that the names "Zion" and "Jerusalem"
are never used
by the prophets in any other than a literal sense, that the former
always denotes a
mountain, and the latter, a city, is clearly contrary to fact. There are
passages in which
both names are employed to designate Israel, the Old Testament Church of
God, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.11" osisRef="Bible:Isa.49.14" parsed="|Isa|49|14|0|0" passage="Isa. 49:14">Isa.
49:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.12" osisRef="Bible:Isa.51.3" parsed="|Isa|51|3|0|0" passage="Isa 51:3">51:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.13" osisRef="Bible:Isa.52.1" parsed="|Isa|52|1|0|0" passage="Isa 52:1">52:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.14" osisRef="Bible:Isa.52.2" parsed="|Isa|52|2|0|0" passage="Isa 52:2">2</scripRef>. And this use of the terms passes right over into
the New Testament,  <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.15" osisRef="Bible:Gal.4.26" parsed="|Gal|4|26|0|0" passage="Gal. 4:26">Gal. 4:26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.16" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.22" parsed="|Heb|12|22|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:22">Heb. 12:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.17" osisRef="Bible:Rev.3.12" parsed="|Rev|3|12|0|0" passage="Rev. 3:12">Rev. 3:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.18" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.9" parsed="|Rev|21|9|0|0" passage="Rev 21:9">21:9</scripRef>. It is remarkable that the New Testament,
which is
the fulfilment of the Old, contains no indication whatsoever of the
re-establishment of
the Old Testament theocracy by Jesus, nor a single undisputed positive
prediction of its
restoration, while it does contain abundant indications of the spiritual
fulfilment of the
promises given
to Israel, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.43" parsed="|Matt|21|43|0|0" passage="Matt. 21:43">Matt. 21:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.20" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.29-Acts.2.36" parsed="|Acts|2|29|2|36" passage="Acts 2:29-36">Acts 2:29-36</scripRef>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.21" osisRef="Bible:Acts.2.15" parsed="|Acts|2|15|0|0" passage="Acts 2:15">15</scripRef>:14-18; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.22" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.25" parsed="|Rom|9|25|0|0" passage="Rom. 9:25">Rom. 9:25</scripRef>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.23" osisRef="Bible:Rom.9.26" parsed="|Rom|9|26|0|0" passage="Rom 9:26">26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.24" osisRef="Bible:Heb.8.8-Heb.8.13" parsed="|Heb|8|8|8|13" passage="Heb. 8:8-13">Heb. 8:8-13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.25" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.2.9" parsed="|1Pet|2|9|0|0" passage="I Pet. 2:9">I Pet. 2:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.26" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.6" parsed="|Rev|1|6|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:6">Rev. 1:6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.27" osisRef="Bible:Rev.5.10" parsed="|Rev|5|10|0|0" passage="Rev 5:10">5:10</scripRef>. For further details on the spiritualization found
in Scripture the
work of Dr.
Wijngaarden on<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p10.28">
The Future of the Kingdom</span>
may be
consulted. The New Testament certainly does not favor the literalism of the
Premillenarians. Moreover this
literalism lands them in all kinds of absurdities, for it involves the
future restoration of
all the former historical conditions of Israel's life: the great world
powers of the Old Testament (Egyptians, Assyrians, and Babylonians), and the
neighboring nations of
Israel (Moabites, Ammonites, Edomites, and Philistines) must again
appear on the
scene, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.29" osisRef="Bible:Isa.11.14" parsed="|Isa|11|14|0|0" passage="Isa. 11:14">Isa. 11:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.30" osisRef="Bible:Amos.9.12" parsed="|Amos|9|12|0|0" passage="Amos 9:12">Amos 9:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.31" osisRef="Bible:Joel.3.19" parsed="|Joel|3|19|0|0" passage="Joel 3:19">Joel 3:19</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.32" osisRef="Bible:Mic.5.5" parsed="|Mic|5|5|0|0" passage="Mic. 5:5">Mic. 5:5</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.33" osisRef="Bible:Mic.5.6" parsed="|Mic|5|6|0|0" passage="Mic 5:6">6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.34" osisRef="Bible:Rev.18" parsed="|Rev|18|0|0|0" passage="Rev. 18">Rev. 18</scripRef>. The temple will have to be
rebuilt, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.35" osisRef="Bible:Isa.2.2" parsed="|Isa|2|2|0|0" passage="Isa. 2:2">Isa. 2:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.36" osisRef="Bible:Isa.2.3" parsed="|Isa|2|3|0|0" passage="Isa 2:3">3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.37" osisRef="Bible:Mic.4.1" parsed="|Mic|4|1|0|0" passage="Mic. 4:1">Mic. 4:1</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.38" osisRef="Bible:Mic.4.2" parsed="|Mic|4|2|0|0" passage="Mic 4:2">2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.39" osisRef="Bible:Zech.14.16-Zech.14.22" parsed="|Zech|14|16|14|22" passage="Zech. 14:16-22">Zech. 14:16-22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.40" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.40" parsed="|Ezek|40|0|0|0" passage="Ezek. 40">Ezek. 40</scripRef>-48, the sons of Zadok will again
have to serve as priests, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.41" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.44.15-Ezek.44.41" parsed="|Ezek|44|15|44|41" passage="Ezek. 44:15-41">Ezek. 44:15-41</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.42" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.48.11-Ezek.48.14" parsed="|Ezek|48|11|48|14" passage="Ezek 48:11-14">48:11-14</scripRef>, and even sin and
trespass offerings will
again have to be brought upon the altar, not for commemoration (as some
Premillenarians would have it), but for atonement, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.43" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.42.13" parsed="|Ezek|42|13|0|0" passage="Ezek. 42:13">Ezek. 42:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.44" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.43.18-Ezek.43.27" parsed="|Ezek|43|18|43|27" passage="Ezek 43:18-27">43:18-27</scripRef>.
And in
addition to all that, the altered situation would make it necessary for
all the nations to
visit Jerusalem from year to year, in order to celebrate the feast of
tabernacles, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.45" osisRef="Bible:Zech.14.16" parsed="|Zech|14|16|0|0" passage="Zech. 14:16">Zech. 14:16</scripRef>, and even from week to week, to worship before Jehovah, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p10.46" osisRef="Bible:Isa.66.23" parsed="|Isa|66|23|0|0" passage="Isa. 66:23">Isa. 66:23</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p11" shownumber="no">b. The so-called postponement theory, which is a
necessary link in the premillennial
scheme, is devoid of all Scriptural basis. According to it John and
Jesus proclaimed that
the Kingdom, that is, the Jewish theocracy, was at hand. But because the
Jews did not
repent and believe, Jesus postponed its establishment until His second
coming. The
pivotal point marking the change is placed by Scofield in <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.20" parsed="|Matt|11|20|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:20">Matt. 11:20</scripRef>,
by others in <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12" parsed="|Matt|12|0|0|0" passage="Matt. 12">Matt. 12</scripRef>, and by others still later. Before that turning point Jesus did not
concern Himself with the Gentiles, but preached the gospel of the kingdom to
Israel; and after that He did not
preach the kingdom any more, but only predicted its future coming and offered
rest to
the weary of both Israel and the Gentiles. But it cannot be maintained
that Jesus did not
concern Himself with the Gentiles before the supposed turning point, cf.
<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.5-Matt.8.13" parsed="|Matt|8|5|8|13" passage="Matt. 8:5-13">Matt. 8:5-13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:John.4.1-John.4.42" parsed="|John|4|1|4|42" passage="John 4:1-42">John 4:1-42</scripRef>, nor that after it He ceased to preach the kingdom, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13" parsed="|Matt|13|0|0|0" passage="Matt. 13">Matt. 13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.10.1-Luke.10.11" parsed="|Luke|10|1|10|11" passage="Luke 10:1-11">Luke 10:1-11</scripRef>.
There is absolutely no proof that Jesus preached two different gospels,
first the gospel of
the kingdom and then the gospel of the grace of God; in the light of
Scripture this
distinction is untenable. Jesus never had in mind the re-establishment
of the Old
Testament theocracy, but the introduction of the spiritual reality, of
which the Old
Testament
kingdom was but a type, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.11" parsed="|Matt|8|11|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:11">Matt. 8:11</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.12" parsed="|Matt|8|12|0|0" passage="Matt 8:12">12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.31-Matt.13.33" parsed="|Matt|13|31|13|33" passage="Matt 13:31-33">13:31-33</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.21.43" parsed="|Matt|21|43|0|0" passage="Matt 21:43">21:43</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.11" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.21" parsed="|Luke|17|21|0|0" passage="Luke 17:21">Luke 17:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.12" osisRef="Bible:John.3.3" parsed="|John|3|3|0|0" passage="John 3:3">John 3:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.13" osisRef="Bible:John.18.36" parsed="|John|18|36|0|0" passage="John 18:36">18:36</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.14" osisRef="Bible:John.18.37" parsed="|John|18|37|0|0" passage="John 18:37">37</scripRef> (comp. <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.15" osisRef="Bible:Rom.14.17" parsed="|Rom|14|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 14:17">Rom. 14:17</scripRef>). He did not postpone
the task for which He had come into
the world, but actually established the Kingdom and referred to it more
than once as a
present reality,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.12" parsed="|Matt|11|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:12">Matt. 11:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.17" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.28" parsed="|Matt|12|28|0|0" passage="Matt 12:28">12:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.18" osisRef="Bible:Luke.17.21" parsed="|Luke|17|21|0|0" passage="Luke 17:21">Luke 17:21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.19" osisRef="Bible:John.18.36" parsed="|John|18|36|0|0" passage="John 18:36">John 18:36</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.20" osisRef="Bible:John.18.37" parsed="|John|18|37|0|0" passage="John 18:37">37</scripRef>; (comp. <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.21" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.13" parsed="|Col|1|13|0|0" passage="Col. 1:13">Col. 1:13</scripRef>). This
whole postponement theory is a comparatively recent fiction, and is very
objectionable,
because it breaks up the unity of Scripture and of the people of God in
an unwarranted
way. The Bible represents the relation between the Old
Testament and the New as that
of type and antitype, of prophecy and fulfilment; but this theory holds
that, while the
New Testament was originally meant to be a fulfilment of the Old, it
really became
something quite different. The kingdom, that is, the Old Testament
theocracy, was
predicted and was not restored, and the Church was not predicted but was
established.
Thus the two fall apart, and the one becomes the book of the kingdom,
and the other,
with the exception of the Gospels, the book of the Church. Besides, we
get two peoples
of God, the one natural and the other spiritual, the one earthly and the
other heavenly,
as if Jesus did
not speak of "one flock and one shepherd," <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.22" osisRef="Bible:John.10.16" parsed="|John|10|16|0|0" passage="John 10:16">John 10:16</scripRef>, and as
if Paul did
not say that the Gentiles were grafted into the old olive tree, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p11.23" osisRef="Bible:Rom.11.17" parsed="|Rom|11|17|0|0" passage="Rom. 11:17">Rom.
11:17</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p12" shownumber="no">c. This theory is also in flagrant opposition to the Scriptural
representation of the
great events of the future, namely, the resurrection, the final
judgment, and the end of
the world. As was shown in the preceding, the Bible represents these
great events as
synchronizing. There is not the slightest indication that they are
separated by a
thousand years, except this be found in <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.1" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.4-Rev.20.6" parsed="|Rev|20|4|20|6" passage="Rev. 20:4-6">Rev. 20:4-6</scripRef>. They clearly
coincide, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.37-Matt.13.43" parsed="|Matt|13|37|13|43" passage="Matt. 13:37-43">Matt. 13:37-43</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.47-Matt.13.50" parsed="|Matt|13|47|13|50" passage="Matt 13:47-50">47-50</scripRef> (separation of the good and the evil at "the
end," not a thousand years
before); 24:29-31; 25:31-46; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:John.5.25-John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|25|5|29" passage="John 5:25-29">John 5:25-29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22-1Cor.15.26" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|15|26" passage="I Cor. 15:22-26">I Cor. 15:22-26</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.20" parsed="|Phil|3|20|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:20">Phil. 3:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil 3:21">21</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.15" parsed="|1Thess|4|15|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:15">I Thess. 4:15</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.9" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.11-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|11|20|15" passage="Rev. 20:11-15">Rev. 20:11-15</scripRef>. They all occur at the coming of the Lord, which is also
the day of the Lord.
In answer to this objection Premillenarians often suggest that the day
of the Lord may
be a thousand years long, so that the resurrection of the saints and the
judgment of the nations takes place in the morning of that long day, and the
resurrection of the wicked
and the judgment at the great white throne occurs in the evening of that
same day. They
appeal to II Pet. 3:8... "one day is with the Lord as a thousand
years, and a thousand
years as one day." But this can hardly prove the point, for the
tables might easily be
turned here. The same passage might also be used to prove that the
thousand years of  <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p12.11" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20" parsed="|Rev|20|0|0|0" passage="Rev. 20">Rev. 20</scripRef> are but a single day. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p13" shownumber="no">d. There is no positive Scriptural foundation whatsoever
for the Premillennial view of a double, or even a three- or fourfold resurrection, as their theory
requires, nor for
spreading the last judgment over a period of a thousand years by dividing
it into three
judgments. It is, to say the least, very dubious that the words,
"This is the first resurrection" in <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.5" parsed="|Rev|20|5|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:5">Rev. 20:5</scripRef>, refer to a physical
resurrection. The context does not
necessitate, nor even favor this view. What might seem to favor the
theory of a double
resurrection, is the fact that the apostles often speak of the
resurrection of believers only,
and do not refer to that of the wicked at all. But this is due to the
fact that they are
writing to the churches of Jesus Christ, to the connections in which
they bring up the subject of the resurrection, and to the fact that they desire
to stress the soteriological
aspect of it, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15" parsed="|1Cor|15|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15">I Cor. 15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.13-1Thess.4.18" parsed="|1Thess|4|13|4|18" passage="I Thess. 4:13-18">I Thess. 4:13-18</scripRef>. Other passages clearly speak
of the resurrection of
the righteous and that of the wicked in a single breath, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.2" parsed="|Dan|12|2|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:2">Dan. 12:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p13.5" osisRef="Bible:John.5.28" parsed="|John|5|28|0|0" passage="John 5:28">John
5:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p13.6" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p13.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.24.15" parsed="|Acts|24|15|0|0" passage="Acts 24:15">Acts 24:15</scripRef>. We shall consider this matter further in the following chapter.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p14" shownumber="no">e. The Premillennial theory entangles itself in all kinds
of insuperable difficulties
with its doctrine of the millennium. It is impossible to understand how
a part of the old
earth and of sinful humanity can exist alongside of a part of the new
earth and of a
humanity that is glorified. How can perfect saints in glorified bodies
have communion
with sinners in the flesh. How can glorified saints live in this
sin-laden atmosphere and
amid scenes of death and decay? How can the Lord of glory, the glorified
Christ,
establish His throne on earth as long as it has not yet been renewed.
The twenty-first
chapter of Revelation informs us that God and the Church of the redeemed
will take up
their dwellingplace on earth after heaven and earth have been renewed;
how then can it
be maintained that Christ and the saints will dwell there a thousand
years before this
renewal. How will sinners and saints in the flesh be able to stand
in the presence of the
glorified Christ, seeing that even Paul and John were completely
overwhelmed by the  vision
of Him, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:Acts.26.12-Acts.26.14" parsed="|Acts|26|12|26|14" passage="Acts 26:12-14">Acts 26:12-14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.17" parsed="|Rev|1|17|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:17">Rev. 1:17</scripRef>? Beet truly says: "We cannot conceive
mingled
together on the same planet some who have yet to die and others who have
passed
through death and will die no more. Such confusion of the present age
with the age to
come is in the
last degree unlikely."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.ii-p14.3" n="22" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p14.4">The Last Things,</span> p. 88</note>
And Brown calls out: "What a mongrel
state of
things is this! What an abhorred mixture of things totally inconsistent
with each
-other!"<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.ii-p14.5" n="23" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p14.6">The Second Advent,</span> p. 384.</note></p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p15" shownumber="no">f. The only Scriptural basis for this theory is <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.1-Rev.20.6" parsed="|Rev|20|1|20|6" passage="Rev. 20:1-6">Rev. 20:1-6</scripRef>, after an Old Testament
content has been poured into it. This is a very precarious basis for
various reasons. (1)
This passage occurs in a highly symbolical book and is admittedly very
obscure, as may
be inferred from the different interpretations of it. (2) The literal
interpretation of this
passage, as given by the Premillenarians, leads to a view that finds no
support
elsewhere in Scripture, but is even contradicted by the rest of the New
Testament. This
is a fatal objection. Sound exegesis requires that the obscure passages
of Scripture be
read in the light of the clearer ones, and not<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p15.2">
vice versa.</span>
(3) Even the literal interpretation
of the Premillenarians is not consistently literal, for it makes the
chain in verse 1 and consequently also the binding of verse 2 figurative, often
conceives of the thousand
years as a long but undefined period, and changes the souls of verse 4
into resurrection
saints. (4) The passage, strictly speaking, does not say that the
classes referred to (the
martyr saints and those who did not worship the beast) were raised up
from the dead,
but simply that they lived and reigned with Christ. And this living and
reigning with
Christ is said to constitute the first resurrection. (5) There is
absolutely no indication in
these verses that Christ and His saints are seen ruling on the earth. In
the light of such
passages as <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p15.3" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.4" parsed="|Rev|4|4|0|0" passage="Rev. 4:4">Rev. 4:4</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p15.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.6.9" parsed="|Rev|6|9|0|0" passage="Rev 6:9">6:9</scripRef>, it is far more likely that the scene is laid in heaven. (6) It also
deserves notice that the passage makes no mention whatsoever of Palestine,
of
Jerusalem, of the temple, and of the Jews, the natural citizens of the
millennial kingdom.
There is not a single hint that these are in any way concerned with this
reign of a
thousand years. For a detailed interpretation of this passage from the
Amillennial point
of view we refer to Kuyper, Bavinck, De Moor, Dijk, Greydanus, Vos, and
Hendriksen. </p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.ii-p15.5">B. POSTMILLENNIALISM.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.ii-p16" shownumber="no">The position of Postmillennialism is quite the opposite
of that taken by
Premillennialism respecting the time of the second coming of Christ. It
holds that the
return of Christ will follow the millennium, which may be expected
during and at the
close of the gospel dispensation. Immediately after it Christ will come
to usher in the
eternal order of things. In the discussion of Postmillennialism it will
be necessary to
distinguish two different forms of the theory, of which the one expects
the millennium
to be realized through the supernatural influence of the Holy
Spirit, and the other
expects it to come by a natural process of evolution.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p17" shownumber="no">1. DIFFERENT FORMS OF POSTMILLENNIALISM. </p>
<p id="viii.iii.ii-p18" shownumber="no">a.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p18.1"> The earlier form.</span>
During the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries several
Reformed
theologians in the Netherlands taught a form of Chiliasm, which would now
be called
Postmillennialism. Among them were such well-known men as Coccejus,
Alting, the
two Vitringas, d'Outrein, Witsius, Hoornbeek, Koelman, and Brakel, of
which some
regarded the millennium as belonging to the past, others thought of it as
present, and
still others looked for it in the future. The majority expected it
toward the end of the world, just before the second coming of Christ. These men
rejected the two leading
ideas of the Premillenarians, namely, that Christ will return physically<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p18.2">
to reign on earth for a thousand years</span>, and that the saints will be raised up at His coming, and will then
reign with him in the millennial kingdom. While their representations
differed in some
details, the prevailing view was that the gospel, which will gradually
spread through
the whole world, will in the end become immeasurably more effective than
it is at
present, and will usher in a period of rich spiritual blessings for the
Church of Jesus
Christ, a golden age, in which the Jews will also share in the blessings
of the gospel in
an unprecedented manner. In more recent years some such Postmillennialism
was
advocated by D. Brown, J. Berg, J. H. Snowden, T. P. Stafford, and A. H. Strong. The last
named theologian says that the millennium will be "a period in the
later days of the
Church militant, when, under the special influence of the Holy
Spirit, the spirit of the
martyrs shall appear again, true religion be greatly quickened and
revived, and the
members of Christ's churches become so conscious of their strength in
Christ that they
shall, to an extent unknown before, triumph over the power of evil both
within and
without."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.ii-p18.3" n="24" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p18.4">Syst. Theol.,</span> p. 1013.</note>
The golden age of the Church
will, it is held, be followed by a brief apostasy, a terrible conflict between the forces of good and evil, and by
the simultaneous
occurrence of the advent of Christ, the general resurrection, and the
final judgment.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p19" shownumber="no">b.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p19.1"> The later form.</span> A great deal of
present day Postmillennialism is of an entirely
different type, and concerns itself very little about the teachings of
Scripture, except as a
historical indication of what people once believed. The modern man has
little patience
with the millennial hopes of the past with their utter
dependence on God. He does not
believe that the new age will be ushered in by the preaching of the
gospel and the
accompanying work of the Holy Spirit; nor that it will be the result of
a cataclysmic
change. On the one hand it is believed that evolution will gradually
bring the
millennium, and on the other hand, that man himself must usher in the new
age by
adopting a constructive policy of world-betterment. Says Walter
Rauschenbusch: "Our
chief interest in any millennium is the desire for a social order in
which the worth and
freedom of every least human being will be honored and protected; in
which the
brotherhood of man will be expressed in the common possession of the
economic
resources of society; and in which the spiritual good of humanity will
be set high above
the private profit interests of all materialistic groups.... As to the
way in which the
Christian ideal of society is to come, — we must shift from catastrophe
to
development."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.ii-p19.2" n="25" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p19.3">A Theology for the Social Gospel</span>, pp. 224 f.</note></p>
<p id="viii.iii.ii-p20" shownumber="no">Shirley Jackson Case asks: "Shall we
still look for God to introduce a new order by catastrophic means or shall we assume the responsibility of
bringing
about our own millennium, believing that God is working in us and in our
world to will
and to work for His good pleasure?" And he himself gives the answer
in the following
paragraphs: "The course of history exhibits one long process of
evolving struggle by
which humanity as a whole rises constantly higher in the scale of
civilization and
attainment, bettering its condition from time to time through its
greater skill and
industry. Viewed in the long perspective of the ages, man's career has
been one of actual ascent. Instead of growing worse, the world is found to be
constantly growing better . . .
Since history and science show that betterment is always the result of
achievement, man
learns to surmise that evils still unconquered are to be eliminated by
strenuous effort
and gradual reform rather than by the catastrophic intervention of
Deity.... Disease is to
be cured or
prevented by the physician's skill, society's ills are to be remedied by
education and legislation, and international disasters are to be averted
by establishing
new standards and new methods for dealing with the problems involved. In
short, the
ills of life are to be cured by a gradual process of remedial treatment
rather than by a sudden annihilation."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.ii-p20.1" n="26" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p20.2">The Millennial Hope,</span> pp. 229,238 f.</note>
These quotations are quite characteristic of a great deal of
present day Postmillennialism, and it is no wonder that the
Premillenarians react
against it. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p21" shownumber="no">2. OBJECTIONS TO POSTMILLENNIALISM. There are some
very serious objections to the
Postmillennial theory.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p22" shownumber="no">a. The fundamental idea of the doctrine, that the whole
world will gradually be won
for Christ, that the life of all nations will in course of time be
transformed by the gospel,
that righteousness and peace will reign supreme, and that the blessings
of the Spirit will
be poured out in richer abundance than before, so that the Church will
experience a
season of
unexampled prosperity<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p22.1"> just before the coming of the Lord</span>, — is not in
harmony  with the picture of the end of the
ages found in Scripture. The Bible teaches indeed that
the gospel will spread throughout the world and will exercise a
beneficent influence,
but does not lead us to expect the conversion of the world, either in
this or in a coming
age. It stresses the fact that the time immediately preceding the end
will be a time of
great apostasy, of tribulation and persecution, a time when the faith of
many will wax cold, and when they who are loyal to Christ will be subjected to
bitter sufferings, and
will in some cases even seal their confession with their blood, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p22.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.6-Matt.24.14" parsed="|Matt|24|6|24|14" passage="Matt. 24:6-14">Matt. 24:6-14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p22.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.21" parsed="|Matt|24|21|0|0" passage="Matt 24:21">21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p22.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.22" parsed="|Matt|24|22|0|0" passage="Matt 24:22">22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p22.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.18.8" parsed="|Luke|18|8|0|0" passage="Luke 18:8">Luke 18:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p22.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.21.25-Luke.21.28" parsed="|Luke|21|25|21|28" passage="Luke 21:25-28">21:25-28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p22.7" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.2.3-2Thess.2.12" parsed="|2Thess|2|3|2|12" passage="II Thess. 2:3-12">II Thess. 2:3-12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p22.8" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.3.1-2Tim.3.6" parsed="|2Tim|3|1|3|6" passage="II Tim. 3:1-6">II Tim. 3:1-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p22.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.13" parsed="|Rev|13|0|0|0" passage="Rev. 13">Rev. 13</scripRef>. Postmillennialists, of course, cannot
very well ignore entirely what is said about the apostasy and the
tribulation that will
mark the end of history, but they minimize it and represent it as
predicting an apostasy and a tribulation on a small scale, which will not
affect the main course of the religious
life. Their expectation of a glorious condition of the Church in the
end, is based on
passages which contain a figurative description, either of the gospel
dispensation as a
whole, or of the perfect bliss of the external Kingdom of Jesus Christ.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p23" shownumber="no">b. The related idea, that the present age will not end in
a great cataclysmic change,
but will pass almost imperceptibly into the coming age, is equally
un-Scriptural. The
Bible teaches us very explicitly that a catastrophe, a special
intervention of God, will
bring the rule of Satan on earth to an end, and will usher in the
Kingdom that cannot be
shaken, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p23.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.29-Matt.24.31" parsed="|Matt|24|29|24|31" passage="Matt. 24:29-31">Matt. 24:29-31</scripRef>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p23.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.35-Matt.24.44" parsed="|Matt|24|35|24|44" passage="Matt 24:35-44">35-44</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p23.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.26" parsed="|Heb|12|26|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:26">Heb. 12:26</scripRef>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p23.4" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.27" parsed="|Heb|12|27|0|0" passage="Heb 12:27">27</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:10-13. There will be a crisis, a
change so great that it can be called "the regeneration,"
<scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p23.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.28" parsed="|Matt|19|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:28">Matt. 19:28</scripRef>. No more than
believers are progressively sanctified in this life until they are
practically ready to pass,
without much more change, into heaven, will the world gradually be
purified and thus
made ready to enter upon the next stage. Just as believers must still
undergo a great change at death, so must the world suffer a tremendous change when the
end comes.
There will be a new heaven and a new earth. <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p23.6" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.1" parsed="|Rev|21|1|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:1">Rev. 21:1</scripRef>.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p24" shownumber="no">c. The modern idea that natural evolution and the efforts
of man in the field of
education, of social reform, and of legislation, will gradually bring in
the perfect reign
of the Christian spirit, conflicts with everything that the Word
of God teaches on this
point. It is not the work of man, but the work of God to bring in the
glorious Kingdom
of God. This Kingdom cannot be established by natural but only by
supernatural
means. It is the reign of God, established and acknowledged in the
hearts of His people,
and this reign can never be made effective by purely natural means.
Civilization
without regeneration, without a supernatural change of the heart, will
never bring in a
millennium, an effective and glorious rule of Jesus Christ. It would
seem that the
experiences of the last quarter of a century should have forced this
truth upon the
modern man. The highly vaunted development of man has not yet brought us
in sight
of the millennium.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p25" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: What is the historic origin of Premillennialism? Was
it actually the prevailing view in the second and third centuries? What
was Augustine's
view of the Kingdom of God and the millennium? Are the Kingdom of God
and the
Church distinct or identical in Scripture? Is the one natural and
national, and the other
spiritual and universal? Do <scripRef id="viii.iii.ii-p25.1" osisRef="Bible:Luke.14.14" parsed="|Luke|14|14|0|0" passage="Luke 14:14">Luke 14:14</scripRef> and 20:35 teach a partial
resurrection? Will any
part of Israel constitute a part of the bride of Christ? Will the bride
be complete when Christ returns? Are the Postmillennialists necessarily
evolutionists? Is the optimism of
the Postmillennialists, that the world is gradually getting better,
justified by experience?
Does the Bible predict continuous progress for the Kingdom of God right
up to the end
of the world? Is it necessary to assume a cataclysmic change at the end?</p>

<p id="viii.iii.ii-p26" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.1">; Geref. Dogm,</span> IV, pp. 717-769; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Consummatione Saeculi</span>, pp. 237-279; Vos,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.3">
Geref. Dogm. V. Eschatologie,</span> pp. 36-40; id.,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.4">
The Pauline Eschatology</span>, pp. 226-260; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.5">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 861-868; Warfield,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.6">
The Millennium and the Apocalypse in Biblical Studies</span>, pp. 643-664; Dahle,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.7">
Life After Death</span> pp. 354-418; D.
Brown,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.8">
The Second Advent;</span>
Ch. Brown,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.9">
The Hope of His Coming;</span>
Hoekstra,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.10">
Het Chiliasme;</span>
Rutgers,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.11">
Premillennialism in America;</span>
Merrill,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.12">
Second Coming of Christ;</span>
Eckman,
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.13">When Christ Comes Again;</span>
Heagle,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.14">
That Blessed
Hope;</span>
Case,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.15">
The Millennial Hope;</span>
Rall, <span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.16">Modern Premillennialism and the
Christian Hope;</span>
Fairbairn,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.17">
The Prophetic Prospect of the Jews </span>
(by Pieters);
Berkhof,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.18">
Premillennialisme;</span>
Riley,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.19">
The Evolution of the Kingdom;</span>
Bultema,
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.20">Maranatha;</span>
Berkhoff,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.21">
De Wederkomst van Christus;</span>
Brookes,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.22">
Maranatha;</span>
Haldeman,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.23">
The Coming of the Lord;</span>
Snowden,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.24">
The Second Coming of the Lord;</span>
Blackstone;<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.25">
Jesus is Coming; </span>
Milligan,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.26">
Is the Kingdom
Age at Hand?</span>
Peters,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.27">
The Theocratic Kingdom;</span>
West,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.28">
The Thousand Years in Both Testaments;</span> Silver,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.29">
The Lord's
Return;</span>
Bullinger,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.30">
How to Enjoy the Bible; </span>
Waldegrave,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.31">
New Testament
Millenarianism;</span>
Feinberg,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.32">
Premillennialism and Amillennialism; </span>
Gæbelein,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.33">
The Hope of the Ages;</span>
Hendriksen,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.34">
More Than Conquerors;</span>
Dijk,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.35">
Het Rijk der Duizend Jaren;</span> Aalders,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.36">
Het Herstel van Israel Volgens het Oude Testament;</span>
Mauro,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.37"> The Gospel of the Kingdom</span>, and<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.38">
The Hope of
Israel;</span>
Frost;<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.39">
The Second Coming of Christ;</span>
Reese,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.40">
The Approaching Advent of Christ;</span>
Wyngaarden,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.ii-p26.41">
The Future of the Kingdom. </span></p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="viii.iii.iii" next="viii.iii.iv" prev="viii.iii.ii" title="III. The Resurrection of the Dead">
<h2 id="viii.iii.iii-p0.1">III. The Resurrection of the Dead </h2>
<p id="viii.iii.iii-p1" shownumber="no">The discussion of the second advent of Christ naturally
leads on to a consideration
of its concomitants. Foremost among these is the resurrection of the
dead or, as it is
sometimes
called, "the resurrection of the flesh." </p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iii-p1.1">A. THE DOCTRINE OF THE RESURRECTION IN HISTORY.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iii-p2" shownumber="no">In the days of Jesus there was a difference of opinion
among the Jews respecting the
resurrection. While the Pharisees believed in it, the Sadducees did not,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p2.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.23" parsed="|Matt|22|23|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:23">Matt. 22:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p2.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.23.8" parsed="|Acts|23|8|0|0" passage="Acts 23:8">Acts 23:8</scripRef>. When Paul spoke of it at Athens, he met with mockery, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p2.3" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.32" parsed="|Acts|17|32|0|0" passage="Acts 17:32">Acts 17:32</scripRef>.
Some of the
Corinthians denied it, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p2.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15" parsed="|1Cor|15|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15">I Cor. 15</scripRef>, and Hymenæus and Phyletus, regarding
it as something
purely spiritual, asserted that it was already a matter of history, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p2.5" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.18" parsed="|2Tim|2|18|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:18">II
Tim. 2:18</scripRef>. Celsus, one
of the earliest opponents of Christianity, made especially this doctrine
the butt of
ridicule; and the Gnostics, who regarded matter as inherently evil,
naturally rejected it.
Origen defended the doctrine over against the Gnostics and Celsus, but
yet did not
believe that the very body which was deposited in the grave would be
raised up. He
described the body of the resurrection as a new, refined, and spiritualized
body. While
some of the early Christian Fathers shared his view, the majority of
them stressed the
identity of the present body and the body of the resurrection. The
Church already in the Apostolic Confession expressed its belief in the
resurrection of the flesh (<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p2.6">sarkos</span>).
Augustine was at first inclined to agree with Origen, but later on
adopted the prevalent
view, though he did not deem it necessary to believe that the present
differences of size
and stature would continue in the life to come. Jerome insisted strongly
on the identity
of the present and the future body. The East, represented by such men as
the two
Gregories, Chrysostom, and John of Damascus, manifested a tendency to
adopt a more
spiritual view of the resurrection than the West. Those who believed in
a coming
millennium spoke of a double resurrection, that of the righteous at the
beginning, and
that of the wicked at the end of the millennial reign. During the Middle
Ages the
Scholastics speculated a great deal about the body of the resurrection,
but their
speculations are mostly fanciful and of little value. Thomas Aquinas
especially seemed
to have special information about the nature of the resurrection body,
and about the
order and manner of the resurrection. The theologians of the period of
the Reformation
were generally agreed that the body of the resurrection would be
identical with the
present body. All the great Confessions of the Church represent the
general resurrection as simultaneous with the second coming of Christ, the
final judgment and the end of the
world. They do not separate any of these events, such as the
resurrection of the
righteous and that of the wicked, and the coming of Christ and the end
of the world, by
a period of a thousand years. The Premillenarians, on the other hand,
insist on such a
separation. Under the influence of Rationalism and with the
advance of the physical
sciences some of the difficulties with which the doctrine of the
resurrection is burdened
were accentuated, and as a result modern religious liberalism denies the
resurrection of the flesh, and explains the Scriptural representations of
it as a figurative representation
of the idea that the full human personality will continue to exist after
death.</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iii-p2.7">B. SCRIPTURAL PROOF FOR THE RESURRECTION.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iii-p3" shownumber="no">1. IN THE OLD TESTAMENT. It is sometimes said that the
Old Testament knowns of no
resurrection of the dead, or knows of it only in its latest books. The
opinion is rather
common that Israel borrowed its belief in the resurrection from the
Persians. Says
Mackintosh: "Strong evidence exists for the hypothesis that the
idea of the resurrection
entered the Hebrew mind from Persia."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p3.1" n="27" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p3.2">Immortality and the Future,</span> p. 34.</note>
Brown speaks in a somewhat similar vein:
"The doctrine of individual resurrection first appears in Israel
after the exile, and may
have been due to Persian influence."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p3.3" n="28" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p3.4">Christian Theology in Outline,</span> pp. 251 f.</note>
Salmond also mentions this view,
but claims that
it is not sufficiently warranted. Says he: "The Old Testament
doctrine of God is of itself enough to explain the entire history of the Old
Testament conception of a future life."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p3.5" n="29" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p3.6">The Christian Doctrine of Immortality,</span> pp. 221 f</note>
De Bondt comes to the conclusion that there is not a single people among
those with
whom Israel came in contact, which had a doctrine of the resurrection
that might have
served as a pattern for the representation of it that was current among
Israel; and that
the faith in the resurrection which finds expression in the Old
Testament does not find its basis in the religions of the Gentiles, but in the
revelation of Israel's God.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p3.7" n="30" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p3.8">Wat Leert het Oude Testament Aangaande het Leven na dit Leven</span> pp. 263 f.</note>
It is true
that we find no clear statements respecting the resurrection of the dead
before the time
of the prophets, though Jesus found that it was already implied in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Exod.3.6" parsed="|Exod|3|6|0|0" passage="Ex. 3:6">Ex. 3:6</scripRef>; cf. <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.29-Matt.22.32" parsed="|Matt|22|29|22|32" passage="Matt. 22:29-32">Matt. 22:29-32</scripRef>, and the writer of Hebrews intimates that even the patriarchs
looked forward
to the resurrection of the dead, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.10" parsed="|Heb|11|10|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:10">Heb. 11:10</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.13-Heb.11.16" parsed="|Heb|11|13|11|16" passage="Heb 11:13-16">13-16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.19" parsed="|Heb|11|19|0|0" passage="Heb 11:19">19</scripRef>. Certainly
evidences are not wanting
that there was a belief in the resurrection long before the exile. It is
implied in the
passages that
speak of a deliverance from<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p3.14">
sheol</span>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Ps.49.15" parsed="|Ps|49|15|0|0" passage="Ps. 49:15">Ps. 49:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.24" parsed="|Ps|73|24|0|0" passage="Ps 73:24">73:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.73.25" parsed="|Ps|73|25|0|0" passage="Ps 73:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Prov.23.14" parsed="|Prov|23|14|0|0" passage="Prov. 23:14">Prov. 23:14</scripRef>. It finds
expression in the famous statement of Job, 19:25-27. Moreover, it is
very clearly taught in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.19" osisRef="Bible:Isa.26.19" parsed="|Isa|26|19|0|0" passage="Isa. 26:19">Isa. 26:19</scripRef> (a late passage, according to the critics), and in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.20" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.2" parsed="|Dan|12|2|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:2">Dan.
12:2</scripRef>, and is probably
implied also in
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p3.21" osisRef="Bible:Ezek.37" parsed="|Ezek|37|0|0|0" passage="Ezek. 37">Ezek. 37</scripRef>: 1-14. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p4" shownumber="no">2. IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. As might be expected, the New
Testament has more to say on the resurrection of the dead than the Old, because
it brings the climax of God's
revelation on this point in the resurrection of Jesus Christ. Over
against the denial of the Sadducees, Jesus argues the resurrection of the dead
from the Old Testament, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.23-Matt.22.33" parsed="|Matt|22|23|22|33" passage="Matt. 22:23-33">Matt. 22:23-33</scripRef>, and parallels, cf. <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Exod.3.6" parsed="|Exod|3|6|0|0" passage="Ex. 3:6">Ex. 3:6</scripRef>. Moreover, He teaches that great
truth very clearly in
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:John.5.25-John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|25|5|29" passage="John 5:25-29">John 5:25-29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:John.6.39" parsed="|John|6|39|0|0" passage="John 6:39">6:39</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:John.6.40" parsed="|John|6|40|0|0" passage="John 6:40">40</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:John.6.44" parsed="|John|6|44|0|0" passage="John 6:44">44</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:John.6.54" parsed="|John|6|54|0|0" passage="John 6:54">54</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:John.11.24" parsed="|John|11|24|0|0" passage="John 11:24">11:24</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:John.11.25" parsed="|John|11|25|0|0" passage="John 11:25">25</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:John.14.3" parsed="|John|14|3|0|0" passage="John 14:3">14:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:John.17.24" parsed="|John|17|24|0|0" passage="John 17:24">17:24</scripRef>. The classical passage of the New
Testament for the doctrine of the resurrection is <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15" parsed="|1Cor|15|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15">I Cor. 15</scripRef>. Other important
passages are: <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.13" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.13-1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|13|4|16" passage="I Thess. 4:13-16">I Thess. 4:13-16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.1-2Cor.5.10" parsed="|2Cor|5|1|5|10" passage="II Cor. 5:1-10">II Cor. 5:1-10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p4.15" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.4-Rev.20.6" parsed="|Rev|20|4|20|6" passage="Rev. 20:4-6">Rev. 20:4-6</scripRef> (of dubious interpretation), and 20:13. </p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iii-p4.16">C. THE NATURE OF THE RESURRECTION.</h4>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p5" shownumber="no">1. IT IS A WORK OF THE TRIUNE GOD. The
resurrection is a work of the triune God. In
some cases we are simply told that God raises the dead, no person being
specified, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.29" parsed="|Matt|22|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:29">Matt. 22:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.1.9" parsed="|2Cor|1|9|0|0" passage="II Cor. 1:9">II Cor. 1:9</scripRef>. More particularly, however, the work of the
resurrection is ascribed to
the Son, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:John.5.21" parsed="|John|5|21|0|0" passage="John 5:21">John 5:21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:John.5.25" parsed="|John|5|25|0|0" passage="John 5:25">25</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.5" osisRef="Bible:John.5.28" parsed="|John|5|28|0|0" passage="John 5:28">28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.6" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.7" osisRef="Bible:John.6.38-John.6.40" parsed="|John|6|38|6|40" passage="John 6:38-40">6:38-40</scripRef>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.8" osisRef="Bible:John.6.44" parsed="|John|6|44|0|0" passage="John 6:44">44</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.9" osisRef="Bible:John.6.54" parsed="|John|6|54|0|0" passage="John 6:54">54</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.10" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">I Thess. 4:16</scripRef>. Indirectly, it is also designated
as a work of the
Holy Spirit, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p5.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:11">Rom. 8:11</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p6" shownumber="no">2. IT IS A PHYSICAL OR BODILY RESURRECTION. There were some in the days of Paul
who regarded the resurrection as spiritual, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.2.18" parsed="|2Tim|2|18|0|0" passage="II Tim. 2:18">II Tim. 2:18</scripRef>. And there are
many in the
present day who believe only in a spiritual resurrection. But the Bible
is very explicit in
teaching the resurrection of the body. Christ is called the
"firstfruits" of the resurrection,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.20" parsed="|1Cor|15|20|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:20">I Cor. 15:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.23" parsed="|1Cor|15|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:23">23</scripRef>, and "the firstborn of the dead," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Col.1.18" parsed="|Col|1|18|0|0" passage="Col. 1:18">Col. 1:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.1.5" parsed="|Rev|1|5|0|0" passage="Rev. 1:5">Rev. 1:5</scripRef>. This implies
that the
resurrection of the people of God will be like that of their heavenly
Lord. His
resurrection was a bodily resurrection, and theirs will be of the same
kind. Moreover,
the redemption wrought by Christ is also said to include the body, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.23" parsed="|Rom|8|23|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:23">Rom.
8:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.13-1Cor.6.20" parsed="|1Cor|6|13|6|20" passage="I Cor. 6:13-20">I Cor.
6:13-20</scripRef>. In <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:11">Rom. 8:11</scripRef> we are told explicitly that God through His Spirit
will raise up our
mortal bodies. And it is clearly the body that is prominently before the
mind of the
apostle in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15" parsed="|1Cor|15|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15">I Cor. 15</scripRef>, cf. especially the verses 35-49. According to
Scripture there will be a
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p6.10">resurrection</span>
of the body, that is, not an entirely new creation, but a body that
will be in a
fundamental sense identical with the present body. God will not create a
new body for
every man, but will raise up the very body that was deposited in the
earth. This cannot
only be inferred
from the term "resurrection," but is clearly stated in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:Rom.8.11" parsed="|Rom|8|11|0|0" passage="Rom. 8:11">Rom. 8:11</scripRef>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.12" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.53" parsed="|1Cor|15|53|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:53">I Cor. 15:53</scripRef>, and is further implied in the figure of the seed sown in the
earth, which the
apostle employs in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p6.13" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.36-1Cor.15.38" parsed="|1Cor|15|36|15|38" passage="I Cor. 15:36-38">I Cor. 15:36-38</scripRef>. Moreover, Christ, the firstfruits of
the resurrection,
conclusively proved the identity of His body to His disciples. At the
same time
Scripture makes it perfectly evident that the body will be greatly
changed. Christ's body
was not yet fully glorified during the period of transition between the
resurrection and
the ascension; yet it had already undergone a remarkable change. Paul
refers to the
change that will take place, when he says that in sowing a seed we do
not sow the body
that shall be; we do not intend to pick the same seed out of the ground.
Yet we do
expect to reap something that is in a fundamental sense identical with
the seed
deposited in the earth. While there is a certain identity between the
seed sown and the
seeds that develop out of it, yet there is also a remarkable difference.
We shall be
changed, says the apostle, "for this corruptible must put on
incorruption, and this
mortal must put on immortality." The body "is sown in
corruption; it is raised in
incorruption: it is sown in dishonor; it is raised in power; it is sown
a natural body; it is
raised a spiritual body." Change is not inconsistent with the
retention of identity. We are
told that even now every particle in our bodies changes every seven
years, but through
it all the body retains its identity. There will be a certain physical
connection between
the old body and the new, but the nature of this connection is not
revealed. Some
theologians speak of a remaining germ from which the new body develops;
others say
that the organizing principle of the body remains. Origen had something
of that kind in
mind; so did Kuyper and Milligan. If we bear all this in mind, the old
objection against
the doctrine of the resurrection, namely, that it is impossible that a
body could be raised
up, consisting of the same particles that constituted it at death, since
these particles pass
into other forms of existence and perhaps into hundreds of other bodies,
loses its force
completely. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p7" shownumber="no">3. IT IS A RESURRECTION OF BOTH THE RIGHTEOUS AND THE WICKED. According to
Josephus the Pharisees denied the resurrection of the wicked.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p7.1" n="31" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p7.2">Ant. XVIII.</span> 1,3; <span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p7.3">Wars</span> II. 8.14.</note>
The doctrine of
annihilationism and that of conditional immortality, both of which, at
least in some of
their forms, deny the resurrection of the ungodly and teach their
annihilation, embraced
by many theologians, has also found favor in such sects as Adventism and
Millennial
Dawnism. They believe in the total extinction of the wicked. The
assertion is sometimes
made that Scripture does not teach the resurrection of the wicked, but
this is clearly
erroneous, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.2" parsed="|Dan|12|2|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:2">Dan. 12:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:John.5.28" parsed="|John|5|28|0|0" passage="John 5:28">John 5:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.24.15" parsed="|Acts|24|15|0|0" passage="Acts 24:15">Acts 24:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p7.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.13-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|13|20|15" passage="Rev. 20:13-15">Rev. 20:13-15</scripRef>. At the same time it must be
admitted that their resurrection does not stand out prominently in
Scripture. The
soteriological aspect of the resurrection is clearly in the foreground,
and this pertains to
the righteous only. They, in distinction from the wicked, are the ones
that profit by the
resurrection. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p8" shownumber="no">4. IT IS A RESURRECTION OF UNEQUAL IMPORT FOR THE JUST AND THE UNJUST.
Breckenridge quotes <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:22">I Cor. 15:22</scripRef> to prove that the resurrection of both
saints and sinners
was purchased by Christ. But it can hardly be denied that the second
"all" in that
passage is general only in the sense of "all who are in
Christ." The resurrection is
represented there as resulting from a vital union with Christ. But,
surely, only believers
stand in such a living relation to Him. The resurrection of the wicked
cannot be
regarded as a blessing merited by the mediatorial work of Christ, though
it is connected
with this indirectly. It is a necessary result of postponing the
execution of the sentence of
death on man, which made the work of redemption possible. The
postponement
resulted in the comparative separation of temporal and eternal death, and
in the
existence of an intermediate state. Under these circumstances it becomes
necessary to
raise the wicked from the dead, in order that death in its widest extent
and in all its
weight might be imposed on them. Their resurrection is not an act of
redemption, but of
sovereign justice, on the part of God. The resurrection of the just and
the unjust have
this in common, that in both bodies and souls are reunited. But in the
case of the former
this results in perfect life, while in the case of the latter it issues
in the extreme penalty
of death, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:John.5.28" parsed="|John|5|28|0|0" passage="John 5:28">John
5:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">29</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iii-p8.4">D. THE TIME OF THE RESURRECTION.</h4>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p9" shownumber="no">1. THE PREMILLENNIAL VIEW RESPECTING THE TIME OF THE RESURRECTION. It is the
common opinion among Premillenarians that the resurrection of the saints
will be
separated by a thousand years from that of the wicked. They almost seem
to regard it as an axiomatic truth that these two classes cannot possibly arise
at the same time. And not
only that, but the type of Premillennialism which is now dominant, with
its theory of a
twofold second coming of Christ, feels the need of positing a third
resurrection. All the
saints of former dispensations and of the present dispensation are raised
up at the
parousia or the coming of the Lord. Those still alive at that time are
changed in a
moment, in the twinkling of an eye. But in the seven years that follow
the parousia
many other saints die, especially in the great tribulation. These must
also be raised up,
and their resurrection will occur at the revelation of the day of the
Lord. seven years
after the parousia. But even at this point Premillenarians cannot very
well stop. Since
the resurrection at the end of the world is reserved for the wicked,
there must be
another resurrection of the saints who die during the millennium, which
precedes that
of the wicked, for the two cannot be raised up at the same time.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p10" shownumber="no">2. SCRIPTURAL INDICATIONS AS TO THE TIME OF THE RESURRECTION. According to
Scripture the resurrection of the dead coincides with the parousia, with
the revelation or
the day of the Lord, and with the end of the world, and will immediately
precede the
general and final judgment. It certainly does not favor the
premillennial distinctions
with respect to this doctrine. In several places it represents the
resurrection of the
righteous and that of the wicked as contemporaneous, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.2" parsed="|Dan|12|2|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:2">Dan. 12:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.2" osisRef="Bible:John.5.28" parsed="|John|5|28|0|0" passage="John 5:28">John 5:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:Acts.24.15" parsed="|Acts|24|15|0|0" passage="Acts 24:15">Acts 24:15</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.13-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|13|20|15" passage="Rev. 20:13-15">Rev. 20:13-15</scripRef>. All of these passages speak of the resurrection as
a single event and
do not contain the slightest indication that the resurrection of the
righteous and that of
the wicked will be separated by a period of a thousand years. But this
is not all that can
be said in favor of the idea that the two coincide. In <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:John.5.21-John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|21|5|29" passage="John 5:21-29">John 5:21-29</scripRef>
Jesus combines the
thought of the resurrection, including the resurrection of the righteous,
with the thought
of the judgment, including the judgment of the wicked. Moreover, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7-2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|1|10" passage="II Thess. 1:7-10">II Thess. 1:7-10</scripRef>
clearly represents the parousia (vs. 10), the revelation (vs. 7), and
the judgment of the
wicked (vs. 8,9) as coinciding. If that is not the case, language would
seem to have lost
its meaning. Furthermore, the resurrection<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p10.8">
of believers</span>
is directly connected with the
second coming of
the Lord in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.9" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.23" parsed="|1Cor|15|23|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:23">I Cor. 15:23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.10" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.20" parsed="|Phil|3|20|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:20">Phil. 3:20</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.11" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.21" parsed="|Phil|3|21|0|0" passage="Phil 3:21">21</scripRef>; and <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.12" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">I Thess. 4:16</scripRef>, but it is also
represented as occurring at the end of the world, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.13" osisRef="Bible:John.6.39" parsed="|John|6|39|0|0" passage="John 6:39">John 6:39</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.14" osisRef="Bible:John.6.40" parsed="|John|6|40|0|0" passage="John 6:40">40</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.15" osisRef="Bible:John.6.44" parsed="|John|6|44|0|0" passage="John 6:44">44</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p10.16" osisRef="Bible:John.6.54" parsed="|John|6|54|0|0" passage="John 6:54">54</scripRef> or
at the last day.
That means that believers are raised up at the last day, and that the
last day is also the
day of the coming of the Lord. Their resurrection does not precede the
end by a period
of a thousand years. Happily, there are several Premillenarians who do
not accept the
theory of a threefold resurrection, but who nevertheless cling to the
doctrine of a double
resurrection. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p11" shownumber="no">3. CONSIDERATION OF THE ARGUMENTS FOR A DOUBLE RESURRECTION.</p>
<p id="viii.iii.iii-p12" shownumber="no">a. Great emphasis is placed on the fact that Scripture, while speaking
in general of
the resurrection<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p12.1">
ton nekron</span>
that is, "of
the dead," repeatedly refers to the resurrection of believers as a resurrection<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p12.2">
ek nekron</span>
that is,
"out of the dead." Premillenarians render
this expression, "from among the dead," so that it would imply
that many dead still
remain in the grave. Lightfoot also asserts that this expression refers
to the resurrection
of believers, but Kennedy says, "There is absolutely no evidence
for this definite
assertion." This is also the conclusion to which Dr. Vos comes
after a careful study of the
relevant passages. In general it may be said that the assumption that
the expression<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p12.3">
he anastasis ek nekron</span>
should be rendered "the
resurrection from among the dead," is  entirely
gratuitous. The standard lexicons know nothing of such a rendering; and
Cremer-Koegel interprets the expression to mean "from the state of
the dead," and this
would seem to be the most natural interpretation. It should be noted that
Paul uses the
terms interchangeably in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p12.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15" parsed="|1Cor|15|0|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15">I Cor. 15</scripRef>. Though speaking of the resurrection
of believers only, he evidently does not seek to stress the fact that this is of a
specific character, for he
uses the more
general term repeatedly, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p12.5" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.12" parsed="|1Cor|15|12|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:12">I Cor. 15:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p12.6" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.13" parsed="|1Cor|15|13|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:13">13</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p12.7" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.21" parsed="|1Cor|15|21|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:21">21</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p12.8" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.42" parsed="|1Cor|15|42|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:42">42</scripRef>.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p12.9" n="32" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p12.10">Cf. also Waldegrave</span>,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p12.11"> New Testament Millenarianism</span>, pp. 575 f.</note></p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p13" shownumber="no">b. Premillenarians also appeal to certain specific
expressions, such as "a better
resurrection,"
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Heb.11.35" parsed="|Heb|11|35|0|0" passage="Heb. 11:35">Heb. 11:35</scripRef>, "the resurrection of life," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">John 5:29</scripRef>, "the
resurrection of the
just," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Luke.14.14" parsed="|Luke|14|14|0|0" passage="Luke 14:14">Luke 14:14</scripRef>, and "the resurrection of the dead in Christ," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p13.4" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">I Thess. 4:16</scripRef>, —
all of  which refer to the resurrection of
believers only. These expressions seem to set that
resurrection off as something apart. But these passages merely prove
that the Bible
distinguishes the resurrection of the righteous from that of the wicked
and afford no
proof whatsoever that there will be two resurrections, separated from
each other by a
period of a thousand years. The resurrection of the people of God
differs from that of
unbelievers in its moving principle, in its essential nature, and in its
final issue, and can
therefore very well be represented as something distinctive and to be
desired far above
the resurrection of the wicked. The former does, and the latter does
not, deliver men
from the power of death. In spite of their resurrection unbelievers
remain in the state of
death. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p14" shownumber="no">c. One of the principal proof passages of the
Premillenarians for a double
resurrection is
found in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.22-1Cor.15.24" parsed="|1Cor|15|22|15|24" passage="I Cor. 15:22-24">I Cor. 15:22-24</scripRef>: "For as in Adam all die, so also in Christ shall
all
be made alive. But each one in his own order: Christ the firstfruits;
then they that are
Christ's, at His coming. Then cometh the end, when He shall deliver up
the kingdom to
God, even the Father." In this passage they find three stages of
the resurrection
indicated, namely, (1) the resurrection of Christ; (2) the resurrection
of believers; and (3)
the end (as they interpret it) of the resurrection, that is, the
resurrection of the wicked.
Silver puts it rather picturesquely: "In the resurrection Christ
and many saints who rise
in and around Jerusalem appear as the first band. More than 1900 years
afterwards 'they
that are
Christ's, at His coming' appear as the second band. 'Then,' but not
immediately,
'cometh the end'
(verse 24), the last great body like a band of forlorn creatures ending
the procession."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.2" n="33" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.3">The Lord's Return,</span> p. 230.</note>
It will be noted
that the idea "not immediately" is carried into the
text. The argument is that because<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.4">
epeita</span>
(then) in verse 23
refers to a time at least 1900
years later, the word<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.5">
eita</span>
(then) in verse 24 refers to a
time 1000 years later. But this is a
mere assumption without any proof. The words<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.6">
epeita</span>
and<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.7">
eita</span>
do indeed mean the same
thing, but neither one of them<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.8">
necessarily</span>
implies the idea
of a long intervening period.
Notice the use
of<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.9">
epeita</span>
in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p14.10" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.7" parsed="|Luke|16|7|0|0" passage="Luke 16:7">Luke 16:7</scripRef>
and <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p14.11" osisRef="Bible:Jas.4.14" parsed="|Jas|4|14|0|0" passage="Jas. 4:14">Jas. 4:14</scripRef>, and that of<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.12">
eita</span>
in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p14.13" osisRef="Bible:Mark.8.25" parsed="|Mark|8|25|0|0" passage="Mark 8:25">Mark 8:25</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p14.14" osisRef="Bible:John.13.5" parsed="|John|13|5|0|0" passage="John 13:5">John 13:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p14.15" osisRef="Bible:John.19.27" parsed="|John|19|27|0|0" passage="John 19:27">19:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p14.16" osisRef="Bible:John.20.27" parsed="|John|20|27|0|0" passage="John 20:27">20:27</scripRef>. Both words can be used for that which will immediately
occur and for that which will occur only after some time, so that it is a pure assumption
that the
resurrection of believers will be separated by a long period of time
from the end.
Another gratuitous assumption is that "the end" means
"the end of the resurrection."
According to the analogy of Scripture it points to the end of the world,
the
consummation, the time when Christ will deliver up the kingdom to the
Father and will
have put all enemies under His feet. This is the view
adopted by such commentators as
Alford, Godet, Hodge, Bachmann, Findley, Robertson and Plummer, and
Edwards.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.17" n="34" place="foot">For a further discussion of this whole point cf. Salmond,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.18"> Christian Doctrine of Immortality</span>, pp. 414 f.; Milligan,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.19"> The Resurrection of the Dead</span>, pp. 64 ff.; Vos,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p14.20"> Pauline Eschatology</span>, pp. 241 ff.</note> </p>
<p id="viii.iii.iii-p15" shownumber="no">d. Another passage to which the Premillenarians appeal is
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:1Thess.4.16" parsed="|1Thess|4|16|0|0" passage="I Thess. 4:16">I Thess. 4:16</scripRef>, "For the
Lord Himself shall descend from heaven with a shout, with the voice of
the archangel,
and with the trump of God: and the dead in Christ shall rise
first." From this they infer
that those who did not die in Christ will be raised up at a later date.
But it is perfectly
clear that this is not the antithesis which the apostle has in mind. The
statement
following is not, "Then the dead who are not in Christ shall
arise," but, "Then we that
are alive, that are left, shall together with them be caught up in the
air: and so shall we
ever be with the Lord." This is frankly admitted by Biederwolf.<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p15.2" n="35" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p15.3">Millennium Bible,</span> p. 472.</note>
Both in this passage and in the
preceding one Paul is speaking of the resurrection of believers only; that of
the wicked is not in his purview at all.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p16" shownumber="no">e. The most important passage to which the
Premillenarians refer is <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.1" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.4-Rev.20.6" parsed="|Rev|20|4|20|6" passage="Rev. 20:4-6">Rev. 20:4-6</scripRef>:...
"and they lived and reigned with Christ a thousand years. The rest
of the dead lived not
until the thousand years should be finished. This is the first
resurrection." Here the
verses 5 and 6 make mention of a first resurrection, and this, it is
said, implies that there
will be a second. But the supposition that the writer is here speaking
of a bodily
resurrection is extremely dubious. The scene in the verses 4-6 is evidently
laid, not on
earth, but in heaven. And the terms employed are not suggestive of a
bodily
resurrection. The seer does not speak of persons or bodies that were
raised up, but of  souls
which "lived" and "reigned." And he calls their living and
reigning with Christ
"the first
resurrection." Dr. Vos suggests that the words, "<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p16.2">
This</span>
(emphatic) is the first
resurrection," may even be "a pointed disavowal of a more
realistic (chiliastic)
interpretation of the same phrase."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iii-p16.3" n="36" place="foot">ISBE, Art, <span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p16.4">Esch. of the N.T.</span></note>
In all probability the expression refers to
the
entrance of the souls of the saints upon the glorious state of life with
Christ at death.
The absence of the idea of a double resurrection may well make us
hesitate to affirm its presence in this obscure passage of a book so full of symbolism as the
Revelation of
John. Wherever the Bible mentions the resurrection of the righteous and
the wicked
together, as in
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.5" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.2" parsed="|Dan|12|2|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:2">Dan. 12:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.6" osisRef="Bible:John.5.28" parsed="|John|5|28|0|0" passage="John 5:28">John 5:28</scripRef>.29; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.24.15" parsed="|Acts|24|15|0|0" passage="Acts 24:15">Acts 24:15</scripRef>, it does not contain the slightest hint
that the two are to be separated by a thousand years. On the other hand
it does teach
that the resurrection will take place at the last day, and will at once
be followed by the  last
judgment, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:31">Matt. 25:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.32" parsed="|Matt|25|32|0|0" passage="Matt 25:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.10" osisRef="Bible:John.5.27-John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|27|5|29" passage="John 5:27-29">John 5:27-29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.11" osisRef="Bible:John.6.39" parsed="|John|6|39|0|0" passage="John 6:39">6:39</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.12" osisRef="Bible:John.6.40" parsed="|John|6|40|0|0" passage="John 6:40">40</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.13" osisRef="Bible:John.6.44" parsed="|John|6|44|0|0" passage="John 6:44">44</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.14" osisRef="Bible:John.6.54" parsed="|John|6|54|0|0" passage="John 6:54">54</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.15" osisRef="Bible:John.11.24" parsed="|John|11|24|0|0" passage="John 11:24">11:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p16.16" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.11-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|11|20|15" passage="Rev. 20:11-15">Rev. 20:11-15</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p17" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Does the Apostolic Confession speak of the
resurrection of the body, or of the resurrection of the flesh? How
do you account for the
change from the one to the other? Do not all Premillenarians have to
posit another
resurrection of the righteous in addition to those that occur at the
parousia and at the
revelation? How do Premillenarians construe even <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p17.1" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.2" parsed="|Dan|12|2|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:2">Dan. 12:2</scripRef> into an
argument for a
double resurrection? How do they find an argument for it in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p17.2" osisRef="Bible:Phil.3.11" parsed="|Phil|3|11|0|0" passage="Phil. 3:11">Phil. 3:11</scripRef>?
What is the
principal argument of modern liberals against the doctrine of a physical
resurrection?
What does Paul mean, when he speaks of the resurrection body as a<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p17.3">
soma pneumatikon</span>, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iii-p17.4" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.15.44" parsed="|1Cor|15|44|0|0" passage="I Cor. 15:44">I Cor. 15:44</scripRef>?</p>

<p id="viii.iii.iii-p18" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.1">; Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 755-758, 770-777; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Consummatione Saeculi</span>, pp. 262-279; Vos,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.3">
Geref. Dogm. V. Eschatologie</span>, pp. 14-22;<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.4">
ibid. The Pauline Eschatology</span>, pp. 136-225; Hodge,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.5">
Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 837-844; Dabney,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.6">
Syst. and Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 829-841; Shedd.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.7">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
pp. 641-658; Valentine,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.8">
Chr. Theol.</span>
II, pp.
414-420; Dahle,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.9">
Life After Death</span>, pp. 358-368, 398-418; Hovey,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.10">
Eschatology</span>, pp. 23-78;
Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.11">
Immortality and the Future</span>, pp. 164-179;
Snowden,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.12">
The Coming of the Lord</span>,
pp. 172-191;
Salmond,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.13">
The Chr. Doct. of Immortality</span>, pp. 262-272,
437-459; Kennedy,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.14">
St. Paul's Conceptions of the Last Things</span>, pp. 222-281; Kliefoth,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.15">
Eschatologie</span>
pp. 248-275;
Brown,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.16">
The Chr. Hope</span>, pp. 89-108; Milligan.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iii-p18.17">
The Resurrection of the Dead</span>, pp. 61-77. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="viii.iii.iv" next="viii.iii.v" prev="viii.iii.iii" title="IV. The Final Judgement.">

<h2 id="viii.iii.iv-p0.1">IV. The Final Judgment</h2>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p1" shownumber="no">Another one of the important concomitants of the return
of Christ is the last
judgment, which will be of a general nature. The Lord is coming again
for the very
purpose of judging the living and consigning each individual to his
eternal destiny.</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iv-p1.1">A. THE DOCTRINE OF THE LAST JUDGMENT IN HISTORY.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p2" shownumber="no">The doctrine of a final general judgment was from the
very earliest times of the
Christian era connected with that of the resurrection of the dead. The
general opinion
was that the dead would be raised up, in order to be judged according to
the deeds
done in the body. As a solemn warning the certainty of this judgment was
stressed. This
doctrine is already contained in the Apostolic Confession: "From
thence He shall come
to judge the living and the dead." The prevailing idea was that
this judgment would be
accompanied with the destruction of the world. On the whole the early
Church Fathers
did not speculate much about the nature of the final
judgment, though Tertullian forms
an exception. Augustine sought to interpret some of the figurative
statements of
Scripture respecting the judgment. In the Middle Ages the Scholastics
discussed the
matter in greater detail. They, too, believed that the resurrection of
the dead would be
followed immediately by the general judgment, and that this would mark
the end of
time for man. It will be general in the sense that all rational
creatures will appear in it,
and that it will bring a general revelation of each one's deeds, both
good and evil. Christ
will be the Judge, while others will be associated with Him in the
judgment; not,
however, as judges in the strict sense of the word. Immediately after
the judgment there
will be a universal conflagration. We leave out of consideration
some of the other
particulars here. The Reformers shared this view in general, but added
little or nothing
to the prevailing view. The same view is found in all the Protestant
Confessions, which
explicitly affirm that there will be a day of judgment at the end of the
world, but do not
enter into details. It has been the official view of the Churches up to
the present time.
This does not mean that no other views found expression. Kant inferred
from the
categorical imperative the existence of a supreme Judge who would right
all wrongs in
some future life. Schelling in his famous dictum, "The history of
the world is the
judgment of the world," evidently regarded the judgment merely as a
present
immanent process. Some were not inclined to grant the moral constitution
of the
universe, did not believe that history was moving on to some moral
termination, and thus denied the future judgment. This idea was given a
philosophical construction by
Von Hartmann. In modern liberal theology, with its emphasis on the fact
that God is
immanent in all the processes of history, there is a strong tendency to
regard the
judgment primarily, if not exclusively, as a present immanent process.
Says Beckwith:
"In his (God's) dealing with men there is no holding in abeyance,
no suspension of any
attribute of his being. The judgment is, therefore, no more truly future
than it is present.
So far as God is the author of it, it is as constant and perpetual as
his action in human
life. To postpone the judgment to a future public hour is to misconceive
of justice, as if it
were dormant or suspended, wholly bound up with outward conditions. On
the
contrary the sphere of justice must be sought not first without but
within, in the inner
life, in the world of consciousness."<note anchored="yes" id="viii.iii.iv-p2.1" n="37" place="foot"><span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p2.2">Realities of Christian Theology,</span> pp. 362 f.</note>
Dispensationalists believe whole-heartedly in
the future judgment, but speak of judgments in the plural. According to them
there will be
one judgment at the parousia, another at the revelation of Christ, and
still another at the
end of the world.</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iv-p2.3">B. THE NATURE OF THE FINAL JUDGMENT.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p3" shownumber="no">The final judgment of which the Bible speaks may not be
regarded as a spiritual,
invisible and endless process, which is identical with God's providence
in history. This
is not equivalent to a denial of the fact that there is a providential
judgment of God in the vicissitudes of individuals and nations, though it may
not always be recognized as
such. The Bible clearly teaches us that God even in the present life
visits evil with
punishment and rewards the good with blessings, and these punishments and
rewards
are in some cases positive, but in other instances appear as the natural
providential
results of the
evil committed or of the good done, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Deut.9.5" parsed="|Deut|9|5|0|0" passage="Deut. 9:5">Deut. 9:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Ps.9.16" parsed="|Ps|9|16|0|0" passage="Ps. 9:16">Ps. 9:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Ps.37.28" parsed="|Ps|37|28|0|0" passage="Ps 37:28">37:28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:Ps.59.13" parsed="|Ps|59|13|0|0" passage="Ps 59:13">59:13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.5" osisRef="Bible:Prov.11.5" parsed="|Prov|11|5|0|0" passage="Prov. 11:5">Prov. 11:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.6" osisRef="Bible:Prov.14.11" parsed="|Prov|14|11|0|0" passage="Prov 14:11">14:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.7" osisRef="Bible:Isa.32.16" parsed="|Isa|32|16|0|0" passage="Isa. 32:16">Isa. 32:16</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.8" osisRef="Bible:Isa.32.17" parsed="|Isa|32|17|0|0" passage="Isa 32:17">17</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Lam.5.7" parsed="|Lam|5|7|0|0" passage="Lam. 5:7">Lam. 5:7</scripRef>. The human conscience also testifies to
this fact. But it
is also manifest from Scripture that the judgments of God in the present
are not final.
The evil sometimes continues without due punishment, and the good is not
always
rewarded with the promised blessings in this life. The wicked in the
days of Malachi
were emboldened to cry out, "Where is the God of judgment?"
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.10" osisRef="Bible:Mal.2.17" parsed="|Mal|2|17|0|0" passage="Mal. 2:17">Mal. 2:17</scripRef>. The complaint was heard in those days: "It is vain to serve
God; and what profit is it that we have kept
His charge, and that we have walked mournfully before Jehovah of Hosts?
And now we
call the proud happy; yea, they that work wickedness are built up; yea,
they tempt God
and escape," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.11" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.14" parsed="|Mal|3|14|0|0" passage="Mal. 3:14">Mal. 3:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.15" parsed="|Mal|3|15|0|0" passage="Mal 3:15">15</scripRef>. Job and his friends were wrestling with
the problem of the
sufferings of the righteous, and so was Asaph in the 73rd Psalm. The
Bible teaches us to look forward to a final judgment as the decisive answer of
God to all such questions, as
the solution of all such problems, and as the removal of all the
apparent discrepancies of the present,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|31|25|46" passage="Matt. 25:31-46">Matt. 25:31-46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:John.5.27-John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|27|5|29" passage="John 5:27-29">John 5:27-29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Acts.25.24" parsed="|Acts|25|24|0|0" passage="Acts 25:24">Acts 25:24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.5-Rom.2.11" parsed="|Rom|2|5|2|11" passage="Rom. 2:5-11">Rom. 2:5-11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:Heb.9.27" parsed="|Heb|9|27|0|0" passage="Heb. 9:27">Heb. 9:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Heb.10.27" parsed="|Heb|10|27|0|0" passage="Heb 10:27">10:27</scripRef>; II
Pet. 3:7; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p3.19" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.11-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|11|20|15" passage="Rev. 20:11-15">Rev. 20:11-15</scripRef>. These passages do not refer to a process, but to a very definite
event at
the end of time. It is represented as accompanied by other historical
events, such as the
coming of Jesus Christ, the resurrection of the dead, and the renewal of
heaven and
earth. </p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iv-p3.20">C. ERRONEOUS VIEWS RESPECTING THE JUDGMENT.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p4" shownumber="no">1. THE JUDGMENT PURELY METAPHORICAL. According to Schleiermacher and many
other German scholars the Biblical descriptions of the last judgment are
to be
understood as symbolical indications of the fact that the world and the
Church will
finally be separated. This explanation serves to evaporate the whole
idea of a forensic
judgment for the public determination of the final state of man. It is
an explanation which surely does not do justice to the strong statements of
Scripture respecting the
future judgment
as a<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p4.1">
formal</span>,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p4.2"> public</span>,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p4.3">
and final declaration. </span>
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.iv-p5" shownumber="no">2. THE JUDGMENT EXCLUSIVELY IMMANENT. Schelling's dictum that "the history of the
world is the judgment of the world" undoubtedly contains an element
of truth. There
are, as was pointed out in the preceding, manifestations of the
retributive justice of God
in the history of nations and individuals. The rewards or punishments may
be of a
positive character, or may be the natural result of the good or evil
done. But when many
liberal scholars claim that the divine judgment is wholly immanent and is
determined
entirely by the moral order of the world, they certainly fail to do
justice to the
representations of Scripture. Their view of the judgment as
"self-acting" makes God an
otiose God, who merely looks on and approves of the distribution of
rewards and
punishments. It completely destroys the idea of the judgment as an
outward and visible
event, which will occur at some definite time in the future. Moreover,
it cannot satisfy
the longings of the human heart for perfect justice. Historical
judgments are always
only partial and sometimes impress men as a travesty on justice. There
always has been and still is occasion for the perplexity of Job and Asaph.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.iv-p6" shownumber="no">3. THE JUDGMENT NOT A SINGLE EVENT. Present day Premillenarians speak of three
different future judgments. They distinguish: (a) A judgment of the
risen and living
saints at the parousia or the coming of the Lord, which serves the
purpose of
vindicating the saints publicly, rewarding each one according to his
works, and
assigning to them their respective places in the coming millennial
kingdom. (b) A
judgment at the revelation of Christ (the day of the Lord), immediately
after the great
tribulation, in which, according to the prevailing view, the Gentile
nations are judged<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p6.1">
as nations</span>, according to the attitude they have assumed to the evangelizing
remnant of
Israel (the least of the brethren of the Lord). The entrance of these
nations into the
kingdom depends on the outcome. This is the judgment mentioned in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|31|25|46" passage="Matt. 25:31-46">Matt. 25:31-46</scripRef>. It
is separated from the earlier judgment by a period of seven years. (c) A
judgment of the
wicked dead before the great white throne, described in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.11-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|11|20|15" passage="Rev. 20:11-15">Rev. 20:11-15</scripRef>.
The dead are
judged according to their works, and these determine the degree of
punishment which
they will receive. This judgment will be more than a thousand years
later than the
preceding one. It should be noted, however, that the Bible always speaks
of the future
judgment as a single event. It teaches us to look forward, not to days,
but to<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p6.4">
the day</span>
of
judgment, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:John.5.28" parsed="|John|5|28|0|0" passage="John 5:28">John 5:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.31" parsed="|Acts|17|31|0|0" passage="Acts 17:31">Acts 17:31</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:7, also called "that day," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.22" parsed="|Matt|7|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:22">Matt. 7:22</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.8" parsed="|2Tim|4|8|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:8">II Tim.  4:8</scripRef>, and "the day of wrath and
revelation of the righteous judgment of God," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.10" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.5" parsed="|Rom|2|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:5">Rom. 2:5</scripRef>.
Premillenarians feel the force of this argument, for they reply that it
may be a day of a
thousand years. Moreover, there are passages of Scripture from which it
is abundantly
evident that the righteous and the wicked appear in judgment together
for a final
separation,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.22" parsed="|Matt|7|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:22">Matt. 7:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.23" parsed="|Matt|7|23|0|0" passage="Matt 7:23">23</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|31|25|46" passage="Matt 25:31-46">25:31-46</scripRef> <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.14" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.5-Rom.2.7" parsed="|Rom|2|5|2|7" passage="Rom. 2:5-7">Rom. 2:5-7</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.15" osisRef="Bible:Rev.11.18" parsed="|Rev|11|18|0|0" passage="Rev. 11:18">Rev. 11:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.16" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.11-Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|11|20|15" passage="Rev 20:11-15">20:11-15</scripRef>. Furthermore, it
should be noted that the judgment<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p6.17">
of the wicked</span>
is represented as
a concomitant of the
parousia and
also of the revelation, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.18" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7-2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|1|10" passage="II Thess. 1:7-10">II Thess. 1:7-10</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:4-7. And, finally, it
should
be borne in mind that God does not judge the nations<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p6.19">
as nations</span>
where eternal issues are
at stake, but only individuals; and that a final separation of the
righteous and the
wicked cannot possibly be made until the end of the world. It is hard to
see how anyone
can give a tolerable and self-consistent interpretation of <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p6.20" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|31|25|46" passage="Matt. 25:31-46">Matt. 25:31-46</scripRef>, except on the
supposition that the judgment referred to is the universal judgment of
all men, and that
they are judged, not as nations, but as individuals. Even Meyer and
Alford who are
themselves Premillenarians consider this to be the only tenable
exposition.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.iv-p7" shownumber="no">4. THE FINAL JUDGMENT UNNECESSARY. Some regard the final judgment as entirely unnecessary, because each man's destiny is determined at the time of his
death. If a man
fell asleep in Jesus, he is saved; and if he died in his sins, he is
lost. Since the matter is
settled, no further judicial inquiry is necessary, and therefore such a
final judgment is
quite superfluous. But the certainty of the future judgment does
not depend on our
conception of its necessity. God clearly teaches us in His Word that
there will be a final
judgment, and that settles the matter for all those who recognize the
Bible as the final
standard of faith. Moreover, the underlying assumption on which this
argument
proceeds, namely, that the final judgment is for the purpose of
ascertaining what should
be the future state of man, is entirely erroneous. It will serve the
purpose rather of
displaying before all rational creatures the declarative glory of God in
a formal, forensic act, which magnifies on the one hand His holiness and
righteousness, and on the other
hand, His grace and mercy. Moreover, it should be borne in mind that the
judgment at
the last day will differ from that at the death of each individual in
more than one
respect. It will not be secret, but public; it will not pertain to the
soul only, but also to the
body; it will not have reference to a single individual, but to all men.</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iv-p7.1">D. THE JUDGE AND HIS ASSISTANTS.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p8" shownumber="no">Naturally, the final judgment, like all God's<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p8.1">
opera ad extra</span>,
is a work of the triune
God, but Scripture ascribes it particularly to Christ. Christ in His
mediatorial capacity
will be the
future Judge, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:31">Matt. 25:31</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.32" parsed="|Matt|25|32|0|0" passage="Matt 25:32">32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:John.5.27" parsed="|John|5|27|0|0" passage="John 5:27">John 5:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:Acts.10.42" parsed="|Acts|10|42|0|0" passage="Acts 10:42">Acts 10:42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.6" osisRef="Bible:Acts.17.31" parsed="|Acts|17|31|0|0" passage="Acts 17:31">17:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.7" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.10" parsed="|Phil|2|10|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:10">Phil. 2:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.8" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.4.1" parsed="|2Tim|4|1|0|0" passage="II Tim. 4:1">II Tim. 4:1</scripRef>.
Such passages as <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.28.18" parsed="|Matt|28|18|0|0" passage="Matt. 28:18">Matt. 28:18</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.10" osisRef="Bible:John.5.27" parsed="|John|5|27|0|0" passage="John 5:27">John 5:27</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.11" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.9" parsed="|Phil|2|9|0|0" passage="Phil. 2:9">Phil. 2:9</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.12" osisRef="Bible:Phil.2.10" parsed="|Phil|2|10|0|0" passage="Phil 2:10">10</scripRef>, make it abundantly
evident that the
honor of judging the living and the dead was conferred on Christ as
Mediator in reward
for His atoning work and as a part of His exaltation. This may be
regarded as one of the
crowning honors of His kingship. In His capacity as Judge, too, Christ
is saving His
people to the uttermost: He completes their redemption, justifies them
publicly, and
removes the last
consequences of sin. From such passages as <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.41" parsed="|Matt|13|41|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:41">Matt. 13:41</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.42" parsed="|Matt|13|42|0|0" passage="Matt 13:42">42</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.31" parsed="|Matt|24|31|0|0" passage="Matt 24:31">24:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt 25:31">25:31</scripRef>,
it may be inferred that the angels will assist Him in this great work.
Evidently, the saints
will in some
sense sit and judge with Christ, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.17" osisRef="Bible:Ps.149.5-Ps.149.9" parsed="|Ps|149|5|149|9" passage="Ps. 149:5-9">Ps. 149:5-9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.18" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.2" parsed="|1Cor|6|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:2">I Cor. 6:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.19" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.3" parsed="|1Cor|6|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:3">3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.20" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.4" parsed="|Rev|20|4|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:4">Rev. 20:4</scripRef>. It is
hard
to say just what this will involve. It has been interpreted to mean that
the saints will
condemn the world by their faith, just as the Ninevites would have
condemned the
unbelieving cities of Jesus' day; or that they will merely concur in the
judgment of
Christ. But the argument of Paul in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.21" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.2" parsed="|1Cor|6|2|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:2">I Cor. 6:2</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p8.22" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.3" parsed="|1Cor|6|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:3">3</scripRef> would seem to require
something more
than this, for neither of the two suggested interpretations would prove
that the
Corinthians were capable of judging the matters that arose in the
Church. Though the
saints cannot be expected to know all those who appear in judgment and to
apportion
the penalties, yet they will have some real active share in the judgment
of Christ,
though it is impossible to say just what this will be.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iv-p8.23">E. THE PARTIES THAT WILL BE JUDGED.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p9" shownumber="no">Scripture contains clear indications of at least two
parties that will be judged. It is
quite evident that the fallen angels will stand before the tribunal of
God, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.29" parsed="|Matt|8|29|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:29">Matt. 8:29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.2" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.3" parsed="|1Cor|6|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:3">I Cor. 6:3</scripRef>; II Pet. 2:4; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.3" osisRef="Bible:Jude.1.6" parsed="|Jude|1|6|0|0" passage="Jude 6">Jude 6</scripRef>. Satan and his demons will meet their
final doom in the day of
judgment. It is also perfectly clear that every individual of the human
race will have to
appear before
the judgment seat, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.4" osisRef="Bible:Eccl.12.14" parsed="|Eccl|12|14|0|0" passage="Eccl. 12:14">Eccl. 12:14</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.5" osisRef="Bible:Ps.50.4-Ps.50.6" parsed="|Ps|50|4|50|6" passage="Ps. 50:4-6">Ps. 50:4-6</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.36" parsed="|Matt|12|36|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:36">Matt. 12:36</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.7" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.37" parsed="|Matt|12|37|0|0" passage="Matt 12:37">37</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.8" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.32" parsed="|Matt|25|32|0|0" passage="Matt 25:32">25:32</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.9" osisRef="Bible:Rom.14.10" parsed="|Rom|14|10|0|0" passage="Rom. 14:10">Rom. 14:10</scripRef>;
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.10" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.10" parsed="|2Cor|5|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:10">II Cor. 5:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.11" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.12" parsed="|Rev|20|12|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:12">Rev. 20:12</scripRef>. These passages certainly leave no room for the view of the
Pelagians and of those who follow in their wake, that the final judgment
will be limited
to those who have enjoyed the privileges of the gospel. Neither do they
favor the idea of
those sectarians who hold that the righteous will not be called into
judgment. When
Jesus says in <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.12" osisRef="Bible:John.5.24" parsed="|John|5|24|0|0" passage="John 5:24">John 5:24</scripRef>, "Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that
heareth my word and
believeth Him that sent me, hath everlasting life, and cometh not into
judgment, but
hath passed out of death into life," he clearly means in view of
the context, that the
believer cometh not into<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p9.13">
condemnatory</span>
judgment. But it
is sometimes objected that the sins of believers, which are pardoned, certainly
will not be published at that time; but
Scripture leads us to expect that they will be, though they will, of
course, be revealed as
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p9.14">pardoned</span>
sins. Men will be judged for
"every idle word," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.15" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.36" parsed="|Matt|12|36|0|0" passage="Matt. 12:36">Matt. 12:36</scripRef>, and for "every
secret thing," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.16" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.16" parsed="|Rom|2|16|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:16">Rom. 2:16</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.17" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.4.5" parsed="|1Cor|4|5|0|0" passage="I Cor. 4:5">I Cor. 4:5</scripRef>, and there is no indication
whatsoever that this will
be limited to the wicked. Moreover, it is perfectly evident from such
passages as <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.18" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.30" parsed="|Matt|13|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:30">Matt. 13:30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.19" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.40-Matt.13.43" parsed="|Matt|13|40|13|43" passage="Matt 13:40-43">40-43</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.20" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.49" parsed="|Matt|13|49|0|0" passage="Matt 13:49">49</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.21" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.14-Matt.25.23" parsed="|Matt|25|14|25|23" passage="Matt 25:14-23">25:14-23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.22" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.34-Matt.25.40" parsed="|Matt|25|34|25|40" passage="Matt 25:34-40">34-40</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.23" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|46|0|0" passage="Matt 25:46">46</scripRef>, that the righteous will appear before the judgment seat
of Christ. It is more difficult to determine, whether the good angels
will be subject to the
final judgment in any sense of the word. Dr. Bavinck is inclined to
infer from <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.24" osisRef="Bible:1Cor.6.3" parsed="|1Cor|6|3|0|0" passage="I Cor. 6:3">I Cor. 6:3</scripRef>
that they will be; but this passage does not prove the point. It might
do this, if the word
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p9.25">aggelous</span>
were preceded by the article, which is not the case. We simply read,
"Know ye not that we shall judge angels?" Because of the uncertainty
connected with this matter,
it is better to be silent. The more so, since the angels are clearly
represented only as
ministers of Christ in connection with the work of judgment, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.26" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.30" parsed="|Matt|13|30|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:30">Matt. 13:30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.27" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.41" parsed="|Matt|13|41|0|0" passage="Matt 13:41">41</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.28" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.31" parsed="|Matt|25|31|0|0" passage="Matt 25:31">25:31</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.29" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:7">II Thess. 1:7</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p9.30" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.8" parsed="|2Thess|1|8|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:8">8</scripRef>.</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iv-p9.31">F. THE TIME OF THE JUDGMENT.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p10" shownumber="no">Though the time of the future judgment cannot be
determined absolutely, it can be
fixed relatively, that is, relative to other eschatological events. It
will clearly be at the
end of the present world, for it will be a judgment passed on the whole
life of every
man, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.40-Matt.13.43" parsed="|Matt|13|40|13|43" passage="Matt. 13:40-43">Matt. 13:40-43</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:7. Moreover, it will be a concomitant of the coming (<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.iv-p10.2">parousia</span>) of Jesus Christ, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.19-Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|19|25|46" passage="Matt. 25:19-46">Matt. 25:19-46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.4" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.7-2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|7|1|10" passage="II Thess. 1:7-10">II Thess. 1:7-10</scripRef>; II Pet. 3:9,10, and will follow immediately
after the resurrection of the dead, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.5" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.2" parsed="|Dan|12|2|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:2">Dan. 12:2</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.6" osisRef="Bible:John.5.28" parsed="|John|5|28|0|0" passage="John 5:28">John 5:28</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.7" osisRef="Bible:John.5.29" parsed="|John|5|29|0|0" passage="John 5:29">29</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.8" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.12" parsed="|Rev|20|12|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:12">Rev. 20:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.13" parsed="|Rev|20|13|0|0" passage="Rev 20:13">13</scripRef>. The
question whether it will immediately precede, be coincident with, or
immediately
follow, the renewal of heaven and earth, cannot be settled conclusively
on the basis of
Scripture. <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.11" parsed="|Rev|20|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:11">Rev. 20:11</scripRef> would seem to indicate that the transformation of
the universe will
take place when the judgment begins; II Pet. 3:7, that the two will
synchronize; and <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.11" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.1" parsed="|Rev|21|1|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:1">Rev. 21:1</scripRef>, that the renewal of heaven and earth will follow the judgment. We
can only speak
of them in a general way as concomitants. It is equally impossible to
determine the
exact duration of the judgment. Scripture speaks of "the day of
judgment," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.22" parsed="|Matt|11|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:22">Matt. 11:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.13" osisRef="Bible:Matt.12.36" parsed="|Matt|12|36|0|0" passage="Matt 12:36">12:36</scripRef>,
"that day," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.14" osisRef="Bible:Matt.7.22" parsed="|Matt|7|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 7:22">Matt. 7:22</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.15" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.10" parsed="|2Thess|1|10|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:10">II Thess. 1:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.16" osisRef="Bible:2Tim.1.12" parsed="|2Tim|1|12|0|0" passage="II Tim. 1:12">II Tim. 1:12</scripRef>, and "the
day of wrath," <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.17" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.5" parsed="|Rom|2|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:5">Rom. 2:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p10.18" osisRef="Bible:Rev.11.8" parsed="|Rev|11|8|0|0" passage="Rev. 11:8">Rev. 11:8</scripRef>. We need not infer from these and similar passages that
it will be a day of
exactly twenty-four hours, since the word "day" is also used
in a more indefinite sense
in Scripture. On the other hand, however, the interpretation of some of
the
Premillenarians, that it is a designation of the whole millennial
period, cannot be
regarded as a plausible one. When the word "day" is used to
denote a period, it is a
period which is, as a whole, characterized by some special
characteristic, usually
indicated by the genitive that follows the word. Thus "the day of
trouble" is the period
that is characterized throughout by trouble, and "the day of
salvation" is the period
which is in its entirety noted for its outstanding display of God's
favour or grace. And it
certainly cannot be said that the millennial period of the
Premillenarians, while
beginning and ending with a judgment, is throughout a period of judgment.
It is rather
a period of joy, of righteousness and of peace. The outstanding
characteristic of it is
certainly not that of judgment.</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iv-p10.19">G. THE STANDARD OF JUDGMENT.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p11" shownumber="no">The standard by which saints and sinners are judged will
evidently be the revealed
will of God. This is not the same for all. Some have been privileged
above others, and
this naturally adds to their responsibility, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p11.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.21-Matt.11.24" parsed="|Matt|11|21|11|24" passage="Matt. 11:21-24">Matt. 11:21-24</scripRef>: <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p11.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.12-Rom.2.16" parsed="|Rom|2|12|2|16" passage="Rom. 2:12-16">Rom. 2:12-16</scripRef>. This does not
mean that there will be different conditions of salvation for different
classes of people.
For all those who appear in judgment entrance into, or exclusion from,
heaven, will
depend on the question, whether they are clothed with the righteousness
of Jesus
Christ. But there will be different degrees, both of the bliss of heaven
and of the
punishment of hell. And these degrees will be determined by what is done
in the flesh,  <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p11.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.22" parsed="|Matt|11|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:22">Matt. 11:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p11.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.24" parsed="|Matt|11|24|0|0" passage="Matt 11:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p11.5" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.47" parsed="|Luke|12|47|0|0" passage="Luke 12:47">Luke 12:47</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p11.6" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.48" parsed="|Luke|12|48|0|0" passage="Luke 12:48">48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p11.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.20.47" parsed="|Luke|20|47|0|0" passage="Luke 20:47">20:47</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p11.8" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.3" parsed="|Dan|12|3|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:3">Dan. 12:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p11.9" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9" parsed="|2Cor|9|0|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9">II Cor. 9</scripRef>-6. The Gentiles will be
judged by
the law of nature, inscribed in their hearts, the Israelites of the old
dispensation by the
Old Testament revelation and by that only, and those who have enjoyed,
besides the
light of nature and the revelation of the Old Testament, the light of
the gospel, will be
judged according to the greater light which they have received. God will
give to every man his due.</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.iv-p11.10">H. THE DIFFERENT PARTS OF THE JUDGMENT.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p12" shownumber="no">Here we should distinguish:</p>
<p id="viii.iii.iv-p13" shownumber="no">1. THE COGNITIO CAUSAE. God will take
cognizance of the state of affairs, of the
whole past life of man, including even the thoughts and secret intents
of the heart. This
is symbolically represented in Scripture as the opening of the books,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p13.1" osisRef="Bible:Dan.7.10" parsed="|Dan|7|10|0|0" passage="Dan. 7:10">Dan. 7:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p13.2" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.12" parsed="|Rev|20|12|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:12">Rev.
20:12</scripRef>. The pious of the days of Malachi spoke of a book of remembrance
written before
God, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p13.3" osisRef="Bible:Mal.3.16" parsed="|Mal|3|16|0|0" passage="Mal. 3:16">Mal. 3:16</scripRef>. It is a figurative description which is added to
complete the idea of the
judgment. A judge usually has the book of the law and the record of
those who appear
before him. In all probability the figure in this case simply refers to
the omniscience of
God. Some speak of the book of God's Word as the statute book, and of
the book of
remembrance as the book of predestination, God's private record. But it
is very doubtful
whether we should particularize in that fashion.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.iv-p14" shownumber="no">2. THE SENTENTIAE PROMULGATIO. There will
be promulgation of the sentence. The
day of judgment is the day of wrath, and of the revelation of the
righteous judgment of
God, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p14.1" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.5" parsed="|Rom|2|5|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:5">Rom. 2:5</scripRef>. All must be revealed before the tribunal of the supreme
Judge, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p14.2" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.5.10" parsed="|2Cor|5|10|0|0" passage="II Cor. 5:10">II Cor.
5:10</scripRef>. The sense of justice demands this. The sentence pronounced upon
each person will not be secret, will not be known to that person only, but will
be publicly proclaimed, so
that at least those in any way concerned will know. Thus the
righteousness and grace of
God will shine out in all their splendor.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.iv-p15" shownumber="no">3. THE SENTENTIAE EXECUTIO. The sentence of
the righteous will convey everlasting
blessedness, and that of the wicked everlasting misery. The Judge will
divide mankind into two parts, as a shepherd separates the sheep from the
goats, <scripRef id="viii.iii.iv-p15.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.32" parsed="|Matt|25|32|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:32">Matt. 25:32</scripRef> ff. In view
of what will be said of their final state in the following chapter,
nothing more need be
added here. </p>
</div3>

        <div3 id="viii.iii.v" next="ix" prev="viii.iii.iv" title="V. The Final State">
<h2 id="viii.iii.v-p0.1">V. The Final State </h2>
<p id="viii.iii.v-p1" shownumber="no">The last judgment determines, and therefore naturally
leads on to, the final state of those who appear before the judgment seat.
Their final state is either one of everlasting misery or one of eternal blessedness.
</p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.v-p1.1">A. THE FINAL STATE OF THE WICKED. </h4>
<p id="viii.iii.v-p2" shownumber="no">There are especially three points that call for consideration here:</p>
<p id="viii.iii.v-p3" shownumber="no">1. THE PLACE TO WHICH THE WICKED ARE CONSIGNED. In present day theology there is
an evident tendency in some circles to rule out the idea of eternal
punishment. The
Annihilationists, which are still represented in such sects as Adventism
and Millennial
Dawnism, and the advocates of conditional immortality, deny the
continued existence
of the wicked, and thereby render a place of eternal punishment
unnecessary. In
modern liberal theology the word "hell" is generally regarded
as a figurative
designation of a purely subjective condition, in which men may find
themselves even
while on earth, and which may become permanent in the future. But these
interpretations certainly do not do justice to the data of Scripture.
There can be no
reasonable doubt as to the fact that the Bible teaches the continued
existence of the
wicked, <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.24.5" parsed="|Matt|24|5|0|0" passage="Matt. 24:5">Matt. 24:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.30" parsed="|Matt|25|30|0|0" passage="Matt 25:30">25:30</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|46|0|0" passage="Matt 25:46">46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.19-Luke.16.31" parsed="|Luke|16|19|16|31" passage="Luke 16:19-31">Luke 16:19-31</scripRef>. Moreover, in connection with the subject of
"hell"
the Bible certainly uses local terms right along. It calls the place of torment
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p3.5">gehenna</span>, a name derived from the Hebrew<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p3.6">
ge</span>
(land, or valley) and<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p3.7">
hinnom or beney hinnom</span>, that is, Hinnom or sons of Hinnom. This name was originally applied to
a
valley southwest of Jerusalem. It was the place where wicked idolators
sacrificed their
children to Moloch by causing them to pass through the fire. Hence it
was considered
impure and was called in later days "the valley of<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p3.8">
tophet</span>
(spittle), as an utterly despised
region. Fires were constantly burning there to consume the offal of
Jerusalem. As a
result it became a symbol of the place of eternal torment. <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.9" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.9" parsed="|Matt|18|9|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:9">Matt. 18:9</scripRef>
speaks of<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p3.10">
ten geennan tou puros</span>, the gehenna of fire, and this strong expression is used synonymously
with<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p3.11">
to pur to aionion</span>, the eternal fire, in the previous
verse. The Bible also speaks of a
"furnace of
fire," <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.42" parsed="|Matt|13|42|0|0" passage="Matt. 13:42">Matt. 13:42</scripRef>, and of a "lake of fire," <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.13" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.14" parsed="|Rev|20|14|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:14">Rev. 20:14</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.14" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.15" parsed="|Rev|20|15|0|0" passage="Rev 20:15">15</scripRef>,
which forms a
contrast with
the "sea of glass like unto crystal," <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.15" osisRef="Bible:Rev.4.6" parsed="|Rev|4|6|0|0" passage="Rev. 4:6">Rev. 4:6</scripRef>. The terms
"prison," <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.16" osisRef="Bible:1Pet.3.19" parsed="|1Pet|3|19|0|0" passage="I Pet. 3:19">I Pet. 3:19</scripRef>,
"abyss,"
<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.17" osisRef="Bible:Luke.8.31" parsed="|Luke|8|31|0|0" passage="Luke 8:31">Luke 8:31</scripRef>, and "tartarus," II Pet. 2:4 are also used. From the fact
that the
preceding terms are all local designations, we may infer that hell is a
place. Moreover,
local expressions are generally used in connection with it. Scripture
speaks of those who are excluded
from heaven as being "outside," and as being "cast into
hell." The
description in <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p3.18" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.19-Luke.16.31" parsed="|Luke|16|19|16|31" passage="Luke 16:19-31">Luke 16:19-31</scripRef> is certainly altogether local.
</p>

<p id="viii.iii.v-p4" shownumber="no">2. THE STATE IN WHICH THEY WILL CONTINUE THEIR EXISTENCE. It is impossible to
determine precisely what will constitute the eternal punishment of the
wicked, and it
behooves us to speak very cautiously on the subject. Positively, it may
be said to consist in (a) a total absence of the favor of God; (b) an endless
disturbance of life as a result of
the complete domination of sin; (c) positive pains and sufferings in
body and soul; and
(d) such subjective punishments as pangs of conscience, anguish,
despair, weeping, and
gnashing of
teeth, <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.8.12" parsed="|Matt|8|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 8:12">Matt. 8:12</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.2" osisRef="Bible:Matt.13.50" parsed="|Matt|13|50|0|0" passage="Matt 13:50">13:50</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.3" osisRef="Bible:Mark.9.43" parsed="|Mark|9|43|0|0" passage="Mark 9:43">Mark 9:43</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.4" osisRef="Bible:Mark.9.44" parsed="|Mark|9|44|0|0" passage="Mark 9:44">44</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.5" osisRef="Bible:Mark.9.47" parsed="|Mark|9|47|0|0" passage="Mark 9:47">47</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.6" osisRef="Bible:Mark.9.48" parsed="|Mark|9|48|0|0" passage="Mark 9:48">48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.7" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.23" parsed="|Luke|16|23|0|0" passage="Luke 16:23">Luke 16:23</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.8" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.28" parsed="|Luke|16|28|0|0" passage="Luke 16:28">28</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.9" osisRef="Bible:Rev.14.10" parsed="|Rev|14|10|0|0" passage="Rev. 14:10">Rev. 14:10</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.10" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.8" parsed="|Rev|21|8|0|0" passage="Rev 21:8">21:8</scripRef>.
Evidently, there will be degrees in the punishment of the wicked. This
follows from
such passages as
<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.11" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.22" parsed="|Matt|11|22|0|0" passage="Matt. 11:22">Matt. 11:22</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.12" osisRef="Bible:Matt.11.24" parsed="|Matt|11|24|0|0" passage="Matt 11:24">24</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.13" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.47" parsed="|Luke|12|47|0|0" passage="Luke 12:47">Luke 12:47</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.14" osisRef="Bible:Luke.12.48" parsed="|Luke|12|48|0|0" passage="Luke 12:48">48</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.15" osisRef="Bible:Luke.20.17" parsed="|Luke|20|17|0|0" passage="Luke 20:17">20:17</scripRef>. Their punishment will be
commensurate with their sinning against the light which they had
received. But it will,
nevertheless, be eternal punishment for all of them. This is plainly
stated in Scripture,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.16" osisRef="Bible:Matt.18.8" parsed="|Matt|18|8|0|0" passage="Matt. 18:8">Matt. 18:8</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.17" osisRef="Bible:2Thess.1.9" parsed="|2Thess|1|9|0|0" passage="II Thess. 1:9">II Thess. 1:9</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.18" osisRef="Bible:Rev.14.11" parsed="|Rev|14|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 14:11">Rev. 14:11</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p4.19" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.10" parsed="|Rev|20|10|0|0" passage="Rev 20:10">20:10</scripRef>. Some deny that there will be a literal fire,
because this could not affect spirits like Satan and his demons. But how
do we know
this? Our body certainly works on our soul in some mysterious way. There
will be some
positive punishment corresponding to our bodies. It is undoubtedly true,
however, that
a great deal of the language concerning heaven and hell must be
understood
figuratively.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.v-p5" shownumber="no">3. THE DURATION OF THEIR PUNISHMENT. The question of the eternity of the future
punishment deserves more special consideration, however, because it is
frequently
denied. It is said that the words used in Scripture for
"everlasting" and "eternal" may
simply denote an "age" or a "dispensation," or any
other long period of time. Now it
cannot be doubted that they are so used in some passages, but this does
not prove that
they always have that limited meaning. It is not the literal meaning of
these terms.
Whenever they are so used, they are used figuratively, and in such cases
their figurative
use is generally quite evident from the connection. Moreover, there are
positive reasons
for thinking that these words do not have that limited meaning in the
passages to which
we referred. (a) In <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p5.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|46|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:46">Matt. 25:46</scripRef> the same word describes the duration of
both, the bliss of
the saints and the penalty of the wicked. If the latter is not, properly
speaking,
unending, neither is the former; and yet many of those who doubt eternal
punishment,
do not doubt everlasting bliss. (b) Other expressions are used which
cannot be set aside
by the consideration mentioned in the preceding. The fire of hell is
called an
"unquenchable
fire," <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p5.2" osisRef="Bible:Mark.9.43" parsed="|Mark|9|43|0|0" passage="Mark 9:43">Mark 9:43</scripRef>; and it is said of the wicked that "their worm dieth
not,"
<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p5.3" osisRef="Bible:Mark.9.48" parsed="|Mark|9|48|0|0" passage="Mark 9:48">Mark 9:48</scripRef>. Moreover, the gulf that will separate saints and sinners in
the future is said  to
be fixed and impassable, <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p5.4" osisRef="Bible:Luke.16.26" parsed="|Luke|16|26|0|0" passage="Luke 16:26">Luke 16:26</scripRef>. </p>

<h4 id="viii.iii.v-p5.5">B. THE FINAL STATE OF THE RIGHTEOUS.</h4>
<p id="viii.iii.v-p6" shownumber="no">1. THE NEW CREATION. The final state
of believers will be preceded by the passing of
the present world and the appearance of a new creation. <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p6.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.19.28" parsed="|Matt|19|28|0|0" passage="Matt. 19:28">Matt. 19:28</scripRef>
speaks of "the
regeneration,"
and <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p6.2" osisRef="Bible:Acts.3.21" parsed="|Acts|3|21|0|0" passage="Acts 3:21">Acts 3:21</scripRef>, of "the restoration of all things." In <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p6.3" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.27" parsed="|Heb|12|27|0|0" passage="Heb. 12:27">Heb. 12:27</scripRef> we
read:
"And this word, Yet once more signifieth the removing of those
things that are shaken
(heaven and earth), as of things that are made, that those things which
are not shaken
(the kingdom of God) may remain." Peter says: "But according
to His promise, we look
for new heavens and a new earth, wherein dwelleth righteousness,"
II Pet. 3:13, cf. vs.
12; and John saw this new creation in a vision, <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p6.4" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.1" parsed="|Rev|21|1|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:1">Rev. 21:1</scripRef>. It is only
after the new creation
has been established, that the new Jerusalem descends out of heaven from
God, that the
tabernacle of God is pitched among men, and that the righteous enter upon
their eternal
joy. The question is often raised, whether this will be an entirely new
creation, or a
renewal of the present creation. Lutheran theologians strongly favor the
former position
with an appeal
to II Pet. 3:7-13; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p6.5" osisRef="Bible:Rev.20.11" parsed="|Rev|20|11|0|0" passage="Rev. 20:11">Rev. 20:11</scripRef>; and 21:1; while Reformed theologians prefer
the latter idea,
and find support for it in <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p6.6" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.26" parsed="|Ps|102|26|0|0" passage="Ps. 102:26">Ps. 102:26</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p6.7" osisRef="Bible:Ps.102.27" parsed="|Ps|102|27|0|0" passage="Ps 102:27">27</scripRef>; (<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p6.8" osisRef="Bible:Heb.1.10-Heb.1.12" parsed="|Heb|1|10|1|12" passage="Heb. 1:10-12">Heb. 1:10-12</scripRef>); and <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p6.9" osisRef="Bible:Heb.12.26-Heb.12.28" parsed="|Heb|12|26|12|28" passage="Heb. 12:26-28">Heb. 12:26-28</scripRef>. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.v-p7" shownumber="no">2. THE ETERNAL ABODE OF THE RIGHTEOUS. Many conceive of heaven also as a
subjective condition, which men may enjoy in the present and which in
the way of
righteousness will naturally become permanent in the future. But here,
too, it must be
said that Scripture clearly presents heaven as a place. Christ<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p7.1">
ascended</span>
to heaven, which
can only mean that He went from one place to another. It is described as
the house of
our Father with many mansions, <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p7.2" osisRef="Bible:John.14.1" parsed="|John|14|1|0|0" passage="John 14:1">John 14:1</scripRef>, and this description would
hardly fit a condition. Moreover, believers are said to be within, while
unbelievers are without,
<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p7.3" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.12" parsed="|Matt|22|12|0|0" passage="Matt. 22:12">Matt. 22:12</scripRef>,<scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p7.4" osisRef="Bible:Matt.22.13" parsed="|Matt|22|13|0|0" passage="Matt 22:13">13</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p7.5" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.10-Matt.25.12" parsed="|Matt|25|10|25|12" passage="Matt 25:10-12">25:10-12</scripRef>. Scripture gives us reasons to believe that the
righteous will not
only inherit heaven, but the entire new creation, <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p7.6" osisRef="Bible:Matt.5.5" parsed="|Matt|5|5|0|0" passage="Matt. 5:5">Matt. 5:5</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p7.7" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.1-Rev.21.3" parsed="|Rev|21|1|21|3" passage="Rev. 21:1-3">Rev. 21:1-3</scripRef>.</p>

<p id="viii.iii.v-p8" shownumber="no">3. THE NATURE OF THEIR REWARD. The reward
of the righteous is described as eternal
life, that is, not merely an endless life, but life in all its fulness,
without any of the
imperfections and disturbances of the present, <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p8.1" osisRef="Bible:Matt.25.46" parsed="|Matt|25|46|0|0" passage="Matt. 25:46">Matt. 25:46</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p8.2" osisRef="Bible:Rom.2.7" parsed="|Rom|2|7|0|0" passage="Rom. 2:7">Rom. 2:7</scripRef>.
The fulness of this
life is enjoyed in communion with God, which is really the essence of
eternal life, <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p8.3" osisRef="Bible:Rev.21.3" parsed="|Rev|21|3|0|0" passage="Rev. 21:3">Rev. 21:3</scripRef>. They will see God in Jesus Christ face to face, will find full
satisfaction in Him, will
rejoice in Him, and will glorify Him. We should not think of the joys of
heaven,
however, as exclusively spiritual. There will be something corresponding
to the body. There will be recognition and social intercourse on an elevated
plane. It is also evident
from Scripture that there will be degrees in the bliss of heaven, <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p8.4" osisRef="Bible:Dan.12.3" parsed="|Dan|12|3|0|0" passage="Dan. 12:3">Dan. 12:3</scripRef>; <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p8.5" osisRef="Bible:2Cor.9.6" parsed="|2Cor|9|6|0|0" passage="II Cor. 9:6">II Cor. 9:6</scripRef>.
Our good works will be the measure of our gracious reward, though they do
not merit
it. Notwithstanding this, however, the joy of each individual will be
perfect and full. </p>

<p id="viii.iii.v-p9" shownumber="no">QUESTIONS FOR FURTHER STUDY: Why does
the moral sense of mankind demand a
future judgment? To what historical precursors of the final judgment
does Scripture
refer? Where will the final judgment take place? What encouragement is
there for
believers in the fact that Christ will be the Judge? Does not the
expression that he who
believes on the Son "shall not come into condemnation," <scripRef id="viii.iii.v-p9.1" osisRef="Bible:John.5.24" parsed="|John|5|24|0|0" passage="John 5:24">John 5:24</scripRef>, prove that believers
will not be judged? What works will come into consideration in the final
judgment
according to Scripture? If all believers inherit eternal life, in what
sense is their reward
determined by their works? Does the judgment serve the purpose of
acquainting God
better with men? What purpose does it serve? Will men be finally lost
only for the sin of
consciously rejecting Christ?</p>

<p id="viii.iii.v-p10" shownumber="no">LITERATURE: Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.1"> Geref. Dogm.</span> IV, pp. 777-815; Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.2">
Dict. Dogm., De Consummatione Saeculi</span>, pp. 280-327; Vos,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.3">
Geref. Dogm.</span>,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.4">
Eschatologie</span>
pp. 32-50; Hodge.
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.5">Syst. Theol.</span>
III, pp. 844-880; Shedd,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.6">
Dogm. Theol.</span>
II, pp. 659-754; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.7">
Doctrine of Endless
Punishment;</span>
Dabney,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.8">
Syst. and
Polem. Theol.</span>, pp. 842-862; Litton,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.9">
Introd. to Dogm. Theol.</span>,
pp. 581-595;
Beckwith,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.10">
Realities of Chr. Theol.</span>, pp. 361-382;
Drummond,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.11">
Studies in Chr. Doct.</span>, pp. 505-514; Macintosh,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.12">
Theol. as an Empirical Science</span>, pp. 205-215;
Dahle,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.13">
Life After
Death</span>, pp. 418-455; Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.14">
Immortality and the Future</span>, pp. 180-194;
229-244; King,
<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.15">Future Retribution;</span>
Hovey,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.16">
Biblical Eschatology</span>,
pp. 145-175; Von Huegel,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.17">
Eternal
Life; </span> Alger,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.18">
History of the
Doctrine of a Future Life</span>
pp. 394-449, 508-549,
567-724; Schilder.<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.19">
Wat is de Hemel;</span>
Vos,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.20">
The Pauline
Eschatology</span>, pp. 261-316; Kliefoth,<span class="ital" id="viii.iii.v-p10.21"> Eschatologie</span>, pp. 275-351. </p>
</div3>
</div2>
</div1>

    <div1 id="ix" next="toc" prev="viii.iii.v" title="Bibliography">
<h2 id="ix-p0.1">BIBLIOGRAPHY</h2>
<h3 id="ix-p0.2">DOGMATICS IN GENERAL</h3>
<h4 id="ix-p0.3">REFORMED</h4>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p1" shownumber="no">Barth,<span class="ital" id="ix-p1.1"> Dogmatik, Prolegomena,</span> Muenchen, 1927 (officially Reformed); id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p1.2"> The Doctrine of the Word of God,</span> New York, 1936.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p2" shownumber="no">Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="ix-p2.1"> Gereformeerde Dogmatiek,</span> Kampen, 1906-1911. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p3" shownumber="no">Breckenridge,<span class="ital" id="ix-p3.1"> The Knowledge of God, Objectively and Subjectively Considered,</span> New York 1857-1859.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p4" shownumber="no">Brunner,<span class="ital" id="ix-p4.1"> Our Faith,</span> New York, 1936. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p5" shownumber="no">Calvin,<span class="ital" id="ix-p5.1"> Institutes of the Christian Religion,</span> Eerdmans, 1949.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p6" shownumber="no">Dabney,<span class="ital" id="ix-p6.1"> Systematic and Polemic Theology,</span> St. Louis, 1878.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p7" shownumber="no">Dick,<span class="ital" id="ix-p7.1"> Lectures on Theology,</span> Cincinnati, 1853. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p8" shownumber="no">Gerhardt,<span class="ital" id="ix-p8.1"> Institutes of the Christian Religion,</span> New York, 1891-1894. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p9" shownumber="no">Heppe,<span class="ital" id="ix-p9.1"> Dogmatik der evangelisch-reformirten Kirche,</span> Elberveld, 1861. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p10" shownumber="no">Hodge, Charles,<span class="ital" id="ix-p10.1"> Systematic Theology, New York,</span> 1892. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p11" shownumber="no">Hodge, Archibald A.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p11.1"> Outlines of Theology,</span> New York, 1878.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p12" shownumber="no">Honig,<span class="ital" id="ix-p12.1"> Gereformeerde Dogmatiek,</span> Kampen, 1938. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p13" shownumber="no">Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="ix-p13.1"> Dictaten Dogmatiek,</span> Kampen, 1910.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p14" shownumber="no">Marck,<span class="ital" id="ix-p14.1"> Godgeleerdheid,</span>Rotterdam, 1741. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p15" shownumber="no">Mastricht,<span class="ital" id="ix-p15.1"> Beschouwende en Practicale Godgeleerdheit,</span> Rotterdam,1749. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p16" shownumber="no">McPherson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p16.1"> Christian Dogmatics,</span> Edinburgh, 1898. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p17" shownumber="no">Orr,<span class="ital" id="ix-p17.1"> Side-Lights on Christian Doctrine,</span> London, 1909. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p18" shownumber="no">Perkens,<span class="ital" id="ix-p18.1">Werken,</span> 1659.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p19" shownumber="no">Pictet,<span class="ital" id="ix-p19.1"> Christian Theology,</span> Philadelphia, (no date given) </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p20" shownumber="no">Shedd,<span class="ital" id="ix-p20.1"> Dogmatic Theology,</span> New York, 1891-1894. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p21" shownumber="no">Smith, H. B.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p21.1"> System of Christian Theology,</span> New York, 1885. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p22" shownumber="no"><span class="ital" id="ix-p22.1">Synopsis Purioris Theologiae.</span> Leiden, 1881.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p23" shownumber="no">Ten Hoor,<span class="ital" id="ix-p23.1"> Gereformeerde Dogmatiek,</span> Holland, Mich. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p24" shownumber="no">Thornwell,<span class="ital" id="ix-p24.1"> Collected Writings,</span> Richmond, Va., 1871-1873. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p25" shownumber="no">Turretin, <span class="ital" id="ix-p25.1">Institutio Theologiae, Elenchticae,</span> Edinburgh, 1847. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p26" shownumber="no">Vos,<span class="ital" id="ix-p26.1"> Gereformeerde Dogmatiek</span> (mimeographed).</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p27" shownumber="no">Witsius,<span class="ital" id="ix-p27.1"> Over de Verbonden,</span> Amsterdam, 1716. </p>

<h4 id="ix-p27.2">NON-REFORMED</h4>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p28" shownumber="no">Beckwith,<span class="ital" id="ix-p28.1"> Realities of Christian Theology,</span> New York, 1906.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p29" shownumber="no">Boyce,<span class="ital" id="ix-p29.1"> Abstract of Systematic Theology.</span> Philadelphia, 1899. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p30" shownumber="no">Brown,<span class="ital" id="ix-p30.1"> Christian Theology in Outline,</span> New York, 1906.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p31" shownumber="no">Gavin,<span class="ital" id="ix-p31.1"> Orthodox Greek Thought,</span> Milwaukee, 1898. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p32" shownumber="no">Clarke,<span class="ital" id="ix-p32.1"> An Outline of Christian Theology,</span> 1898. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p33" shownumber="no">Curtis,<span class="ital" id="ix-p33.1"> The Christian Faith,</span> New York, 1905. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p34" shownumber="no">Dorner,<span class="ital" id="ix-p34.1"> System of Christian Doctrine,</span> Edinburgh, 1897. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p35" shownumber="no">Drummond,<span class="ital" id="ix-p35.1"> Studies in Christian Doctrine,</span> London, 1908. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p36" shownumber="no">Foster,<span class="ital" id="ix-p36.1"> Christianity in its Modern Expression,</span> New York, 1921.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p37" shownumber="no">Gibbons,<span class="ital" id="ix-p37.1"> Faith of Our Fathers.</span> New York, 1917. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p38" shownumber="no">Haering,<span class="ital" id="ix-p38.1"> The Christian Faith,</span> London, 1915. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p39" shownumber="no">Kaftan,<span class="ital" id="ix-p39.1"> Dogmatik,</span> Tuebingen, 1920. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p40" shownumber="no">Litton,<span class="ital" id="ix-p40.1"> Introduction to Dogmatic Theology</span>, London, 1912. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p41" shownumber="no">Macintosh,<span class="ital" id="ix-p41.1"> Theology as an Empirical Science</span>, New York, 1919. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p42" shownumber="no">Martensen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p42.1"> Christian Dogmatics</span>, Edinburgh, 1860 </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p43" shownumber="no">Micklem,<span class="ital" id="ix-p43.1"> What is the Faith</span>, Nashville, Tenn. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p44" shownumber="no">Miley,<span class="ital" id="ix-p44.1"> Systematic Theology</span>, New York, 1893.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p45" shownumber="no">Mortimer,<span class="ital" id="ix-p45.1"> Catholic Faith and Practice</span>, London, 1923. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p46" shownumber="no">Mueller,<span class="ital" id="ix-p46.1"> Christian Dogmatics</span>, St. Louis, 1934. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p47" shownumber="no">Nitzsch,<span class="ital" id="ix-p47.1"> System of Christian Doctrine</span>, Edinburgh, 1849. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p48" shownumber="no">Pieper,<span class="ital" id="ix-p48.1"> Christliche Dogmatik</span>, St. Louis, 1924.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p49" shownumber="no">Pohle-Preuss,<span class="ital" id="ix-p49.1"> Dogmatic Theology</span>, St. Louis, 12 volumes from 1925 on. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p50" shownumber="no">Pope,<span class="ital" id="ix-p50.1"> Compendium of Christian Theology</span>, London, 1879. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p51" shownumber="no">Rauschenbusch,<span class="ital" id="ix-p51.1"> A Theology for the Social Gospel</span>, New York, 1919. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p52" shownumber="no">Raymond,<span class="ital" id="ix-p52.1"> Systematic Theology</span>, Cincinnati, 1877. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p53" shownumber="no">Schleiermacher,<span class="ital" id="ix-p53.1"> Christlicher Glaube (Glaubenslehre)</span>, 1821, 1822. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p54" shownumber="no">Schmid,<span class="ital" id="ix-p54.1"> Doctrinal Theology of the Evangelical Lutheran Church</span>, Philadelphia, 1889 </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p55" shownumber="no">Sheldon,<span class="ital" id="ix-p55.1"> System of Christian Doctrine</span>, Cincinnati, 1903. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p56" shownumber="no">Strong, A. H.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p56.1"> Systematic Theology</span>, Philadelphia, 1912. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p57" shownumber="no">Strong, T. B.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p57.1"> A Manual of Theology</span>, London, 1903.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p58" shownumber="no">Thomasius,<span class="ital" id="ix-p58.1"> Christi Person und Work</span>, Erlangen, 1886-1888. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p59" shownumber="no">Valentine,<span class="ital" id="ix-p59.1"> Christian Theology</span>, Philadelphia, 1906. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p60" shownumber="no">Watson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p60.1"> Theological Institutes</span>, London, 1829. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p61" shownumber="no">Wilmers,<span class="ital" id="ix-p61.1"> Handbook of the Christian Religion</span> New York, 1921.</p>
<h3 id="ix-p61.2">THE SEPARATE LOCI</h3>
<h4 id="ix-p61.3">THEOLOGY</h4>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p62" shownumber="no">Adeney,<span class="ital" id="ix-p62.1"> The Christian Conception of God</span>, New York.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p63" shownumber="no">Baillie,<span class="ital" id="ix-p63.1"> Our Knowledge of God</span>, New York, 1939.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p64" shownumber="no">Bartlett,<span class="ital" id="ix-p64.1"> The Triune God</span>-, New York, 1937. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p65" shownumber="no">Bates,<span class="ital" id="ix-p65.1"> The Harmony of the Divine Attributes</span>, Philadelphia. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p66" shownumber="no">Beckwith,<span class="ital" id="ix-p66.1"> The Idea of God</span>, New York, 1922. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p67" shownumber="no">Boettner,<span class="ital" id="ix-p67.1"> The Reformed Doctrine of Predestination</span>, Grand Rapids, 1932.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p68" shownumber="no">Brightman,<span class="ital" id="ix-p68.1"> The Problem of God</span>, New York, 1930. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p69" shownumber="no">Candlish,<span class="ital" id="ix-p69.1"> The Fatherhood of God</span>, Edinburgh, 1866. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p70" shownumber="no">Charnock,<span class="ital" id="ix-p70.1"> The Existence and Attributes of God</span>, New York, 1859. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p71" shownumber="no">Clarke,<span class="ital" id="ix-p71.1"> The Christian Doctrine of God</span>, New York, 1923. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p72" shownumber="no">Cole,<span class="ital" id="ix-p72.1"> Calvin's Calvinism</span>, Manchester, 1927.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p73" shownumber="no">Comrie en Holtius,<span class="ital" id="ix-p73.1"> Examen Van Het Ontwerp Van Tolerantie</span>, Amsterdam, 1753 </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p74" shownumber="no">Crawford,<span class="ital" id="ix-p74.1"> The Fatherhood of God.</span> Edinburgh, 1866. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p75" shownumber="no">Dijk,<span class="ital" id="ix-p75.1"> Om't Feuwig Welbehagen</span>, Amsterdam, 1924; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p75.2"> De Voorzienigheid Gods</span>, Amsterdam, 1927.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p76" shownumber="no">Farmer,<span class="ital" id="ix-p76.1"> Experience of God</span>, New York, 1929. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p77" shownumber="no">Fleming,<span class="ital" id="ix-p77.1"> Evolution or Creation.</span> London. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p78" shownumber="no">Flint,<span class="ital" id="ix-p78.1"> Theism</span>, New York, 1895; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p78.2"> Antitheistic Theories</span>, Edinburgh, 1906. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p79" shownumber="no">Girardeau,<span class="ital" id="ix-p79.1"> Calvinism and Evangelical Arminianism</span>, Columbia, 1890. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p80" shownumber="no">Harris,<span class="ital" id="ix-p80.1"> God the Creator and Lord of All</span>, New York, 1896.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p81" shownumber="no">Heim,<span class="ital" id="ix-p81.1"> God Transcendent</span>, New York, 1936.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p82" shownumber="no">Hendry,<span class="ital" id="ix-p82.1"> God the Creator</span>, Nashville, 1938. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p83" shownumber="no">Illingworth,<span class="ital" id="ix-p83.1"> Divine Immanence</span>, New York, 1898; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p83.2"> The Doctrine of the Trinity</span>, London, 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p84" shownumber="no">Kerr,<span class="ital" id="ix-p84.1"> A God-Centered Faith</span>, New York, 1935.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p85" shownumber="no">Kuyper, A., Sr.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p85.1"> De Engelen Gods</span>, Amsterdam. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p86" shownumber="no">Kuyper, A., Jr.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p86.1"> Van de Kennisse Gods</span>, Amsterdam, 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p87" shownumber="no">Mathews,<span class="ital" id="ix-p87.1"> The Growth of the Idea of God</span>, New York, 1931. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p88" shownumber="no">More,<span class="ital" id="ix-p88.1"> The Dogma of Evolution</span>, Princeton, 1925. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p89" shownumber="no">Morton,<span class="ital" id="ix-p89.1"> The Bankruptcy of Evolution</span>, New York.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p90" shownumber="no">Mozley,<span class="ital" id="ix-p90.1"> Lectures on Miracles</span>, London, 1886. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p91" shownumber="no">Newton,<span class="ital" id="ix-p91.1"> My Idea of God</span> (A Symposium), Boston, 1927. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p92" shownumber="no">O'Toole,<span class="ital" id="ix-p92.1"> The Case Against Evolution</span>, New York, 1926.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p93" shownumber="no">Otto,<span class="ital" id="ix-p93.1"> The Idea of the Holy</span>, London, 1928. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p94" shownumber="no">Pink,<span class="ital" id="ix-p94.1"> The Sovereignty of God</span>, Swengel, Pa., 1918. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p95" shownumber="no">Polman,<span class="ital" id="ix-p95.1"> De Praedestinatileer van Augustinus</span>,<span class="ital" id="ix-p95.2"> Thomas van Aquino en Calvijn</span>, Franeker, 1936.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p96" shownumber="no">Pringl-Pattison,<span class="ital" id="ix-p96.1"> The Idea of God</span>, London, 1917. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p97" shownumber="no">Rimmer,<span class="ital" id="ix-p97.1"> The Theory of Evolution and the Facts of Science</span>, Grand Rapids, 1935. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p98" shownumber="no">Robinson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p98.1"> The God of the Liberal Christian</span>, New York, 1926. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p99" shownumber="no">Scheibe,<span class="ital" id="ix-p99.1"> Calvins Praedestinationslehre</span>, Halle, 1897.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p100" shownumber="no">Shute,<span class="ital" id="ix-p100.1"> The Fatherhood of God</span>, Cincinnati, 1904. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p101" shownumber="no">Snowden,<span class="ital" id="ix-p101.1"> The Personality of God</span>, New York, 1920; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p101.2"> The Discovery of God</span>, New York, 1932.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p102" shownumber="no">Steenstra,<span class="ital" id="ix-p102.1"> The Being of God as Unity and Trinity</span> New York, 1891. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p103" shownumber="no">Thomas,<span class="ital" id="ix-p103.1"> The Biblical Idea of God</span>, New York, 1924. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p104" shownumber="no">Thomson, W. D.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p104.1"> The Christian Miracles and the Conclusions of Science</span>, Edinburgh. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p105" shownumber="no">Thomson, W. R.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p105.1"> The Christian Idea of God</span>, London. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p106" shownumber="no">Tolley,<span class="ital" id="ix-p106.1"> The Idea of God in the Philosophy of Saint Augustine</span> New York, 1930.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p107" shownumber="no">Warfield,<span class="ital" id="ix-p107.1"> Biblical Doctrines</span>, New York, 1929; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p107.2"> Calvin and Calvinism</span>, New York, 1931; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p107.3"> Studies in Theology</span> 1932.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p108" shownumber="no">Youtz,<span class="ital" id="ix-p108.1"> The Enlarging Conception of God</span>, New York. 1924.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p109" shownumber="no">Zanchius,<span class="ital" id="ix-p109.1"> The Doctrine of Absolute Predestination. </span></p>

<h4 id="ix-p109.2">ANTHROPOLOGY</h4>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p110" shownumber="no">Aalders,<span class="ital" id="ix-p110.1"> Het Verbond Gods</span>, Kampen, 1939. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p111" shownumber="no">Ball,<span class="ital" id="ix-p111.1"> A Treatise on the Covenant of Grace</span>, London, 1645.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p112" shownumber="no">Boston,<span class="ital" id="ix-p112.1"> The Covenant of Works, Works</span>, Aberdeen, 1848-1852; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p112.2"> The Covenant of Grace, Works</span>, Aberdeen, 1848-1852. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p113" shownumber="no">Brunner,<span class="ital" id="ix-p113.1"> Man in Revolt</span>, New York, 1939. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p114" shownumber="no">Candlish,<span class="ital" id="ix-p114.1"> The Biblical Doctrine of Sin</span>, Edinburgh, 1893. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p115" shownumber="no">Cook,<span class="ital" id="ix-p115.1"> The Origin of Sin</span>, New York, 1899. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p116" shownumber="no">Edwards,<span class="ital" id="ix-p116.1"> Freedom of the Will, Works</span>, New York; id., <span class="ital" id="ix-p116.2">Doctrine of Original Sin Defended, Works</span>, New York.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p117" shownumber="no">Fleming,<span class="ital" id="ix-p117.1"> The Origin of Mankind</span>, London, 1935.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p118" shownumber="no">Gib,<span class="ital" id="ix-p118.1"> Sacred Contemplations</span> (<span class="ital" id="ix-p118.2">Covenant of Grace</span>-).</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p119" shownumber="no">Girardeau,<span class="ital" id="ix-p119.1"> The Will in its Theological Relations</span>, New York, 1891. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p120" shownumber="no">Gracey,<span class="ital" id="ix-p120.1"> Sin and the Unfolding Salvation</span>, London, 1894. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p121" shownumber="no">Heard,<span class="ital" id="ix-p121.1"> The Tri-Partite Nature of Man</span>, Edinburgh, 1875. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p122" shownumber="no">Hendriksen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p122.1"> The Covenant of Grace</span>, Grand Rapids, 1932. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p123" shownumber="no">Honig,<span class="ital" id="ix-p123.1"> Creatianisme and Traducianisme</span>, Kampen, 1906. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p124" shownumber="no">Kuyper, A., Jr.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p124.1"> De Vastigheid des Verbonds</span>, Amsterdam, 1908; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p124.2"> De Band des Verbonds</span>, Amsterdam, 1907; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p124.3"> Het Beeld Gods</span> , Amsterdam, 1929. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p125" shownumber="no">Kuyper, H. H.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p125.1"> Hamabdil</span> (<span class="ital" id="ix-p125.2">Covenant of Grace</span> ), Amsterdam, 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p126" shownumber="no">Laidlaw,<span class="ital" id="ix-p126.1"> The Bible Doctrine of Man</span>, Edinburgh, 1905. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p127" shownumber="no">Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="ix-p127.1"> Christianity and Sin</span>, New York, 1914. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p128" shownumber="no">Moxon,<span class="ital" id="ix-p128.1"> The Doctrine of Sin</span>, New York, 1922. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p129" shownumber="no">Mueller,<span class="ital" id="ix-p129.1"> The Christian Doctrine of Sin</span>, Edinburgh, 1905. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p130" shownumber="no">Niebuhr, Reinhold,<span class="ital" id="ix-p130.1"> The Nature and Destiny of Man</span>, Scribner, 1941. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p131" shownumber="no">Olevianus,<span class="ital" id="ix-p131.1"> Het Wezen en de Middelen des Genade-Verbonds</span>, Groningen, 1739. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p132" shownumber="no">Orchard,<span class="ital" id="ix-p132.1"> Modern Theories of Sin</span>, 1909. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p133" shownumber="no">Orr,<span class="ital" id="ix-p133.1"> God's Image in Man</span>, New York, 1906.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p134" shownumber="no">Owen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p134.1"> The Covenant of Grace</span>, Philadelphia, 1862. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p135" shownumber="no">Roberts,<span class="ital" id="ix-p135.1"> God's Covenants with Man</span>, London, 1657.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p136" shownumber="no">Robinson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p136.1"> The Christian Doctrine of Man</span>, Edinburgh, 1920. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p137" shownumber="no">Strong,<span class="ital" id="ix-p137.1"> Discourses on the Covenant</span>, London, 1678. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p138" shownumber="no">Talma,<span class="ital" id="ix-p138.1"> De Anthropologie van Calvijn</span> Utrecht, 1882.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p139" shownumber="no">Tennant,<span class="ital" id="ix-p139.1"> The Origin and Propagation of Sin</span>, Cambridge, 1906; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p139.2">The Concept of Sin</span>, New York and Cambridge, 1912. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p140" shownumber="no">Tulloch,<span class="ital" id="ix-p140.1"> The Christian Doctrine of Sin</span>, New York, 1876.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p141" shownumber="no">Van den Bergh,<span class="ital" id="ix-p141.1"> Calvijn over het Genadeverbond</span>, 's Gravenhage, 1879. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p142" shownumber="no">Vos,<span class="ital" id="ix-p142.1"> De Verbondsleer in de Gereformeerde Theologie</span> Grand Rapids, 1887.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p143" shownumber="no">Weidner,<span class="ital" id="ix-p143.1"> The Doctrine of Man</span>, Chicago, 1912. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p144" shownumber="no">Wiggers,<span class="ital" id="ix-p144.1"> Augustinism and Pelagianism</span>, Andover, 1840.</p>

<h4 id="ix-p144.2">CHRISTOLOGY</h4>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p145" shownumber="no">Berkhof,<span class="ital" id="ix-p145.1"> Christ in the Light of Eschatology</span>, Princeton Review, Jan. 1927; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p145.2"> Vicarious Atonement Through Christ</span>, Grand Rapids, 1936. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p146" shownumber="no">Bruce,<span class="ital" id="ix-p146.1"> The Kingdom of God</span>, New York, 1893; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p146.2"> The Humiliation of Christ</span>, New York, 1901.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p147" shownumber="no">Brunner,<span class="ital" id="ix-p147.1"> Der Mitler</span>, (Eng. tr.<span class="ital" id="ix-p147.2"> The Mediator</span>). </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p148" shownumber="no">Bushnell,<span class="ital" id="ix-p148.1"> Vicarious Sacrifice</span>, New York, 1866. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p149" shownumber="no">Candlish,<span class="ital" id="ix-p149.1"> The Kingdom of God</span>, Edinburgh, 1884. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p150" shownumber="no">Cave,<span class="ital" id="ix-p150.1"> The Doctrine of the Work of Christ</span>, Nashville, 1937.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p151" shownumber="no">Cooke,<span class="ital" id="ix-p151.1"> The Incarnation and Recent Criticism</span> New York, 1907.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p152" shownumber="no">Crawford,<span class="ital" id="ix-p152.1"> The Atonement</span>, Edinburgh, 1871.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p153" shownumber="no">Dale,<span class="ital" id="ix-p153.1"> The Atonement</span>, London, 1877. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p154" shownumber="no">De Jong,<span class="ital" id="ix-p154.1"> De Leer der Verzoening in de Amerikaansche Theologie</span>, Grand Rapids, 1913. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p155" shownumber="no">Denney,<span class="ital" id="ix-p155.1"> The Christian Doctrine of Reconciliation</span> New York, 1918.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p156" shownumber="no">Emmen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p156.1"> De Christologie van Calvijn</span>, Amsterdam, 1935. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p157" shownumber="no">Enelow,<span class="ital" id="ix-p157.1"> A Jewish View of Jesus</span>, New York, 1920.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p158" shownumber="no">Franks,<span class="ital" id="ix-p158.1"> A History of the Doctrine of the Work of Christ</span> New York. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p159" shownumber="no">Godet, and others,<span class="ital" id="ix-p159.1"> The Atonement in Modern Religious Thought</span> (A Symposium), New York, 1902.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p160" shownumber="no">Hodge,<span class="ital" id="ix-p160.1"> The Atonement</span>, Philadelphia, 1867. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p161" shownumber="no">Honig,<span class="ital" id="ix-p161.1"> De Persoon des Middelaars in de Nieuwere Duitsche Theologie</span> ,Kampen, 1910.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p162" shownumber="no">Hughes,<span class="ital" id="ix-p162.1"> The Kingdom of Heaven</span>, New York, 1922. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p163" shownumber="no">Kuyper, A., Sr.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p163.1"> De Vleeschwording des Woords</span>, Franeker, 1887. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p164" shownumber="no">Kuyper, A., Jr.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p164.1"> De Middelaar Gods en der Menschen</span>, Kampen, 1923. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p165" shownumber="no">Liddon,<span class="ital" id="ix-p165.1"> The Divinity of our Lord</span>, London, 1888. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p166" shownumber="no">Macinnes,<span class="ital" id="ix-p166.1"> The Kingdom of God in the Apostolic Writings</span>, London, 1924. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p167" shownumber="no">Machen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p167.1"> The Virgin Birth of Christ</span>, New York, 1930; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p167.2"> The Christian View of Man</span>, New York, 1937. </p>

<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p168" shownumber="no">Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="ix-p168.1"> The Doctrine of the Person of Christ</span>, New York, 1912. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p169" shownumber="no">Meeter,<span class="ital" id="ix-p169.1"> The Heavenly High Priesthood of Christ</span>, Grand Rapids. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p170" shownumber="no">Milligan,<span class="ital" id="ix-p170.1"> The Ascension and Heavenly Priesthood of Our Lord</span>, London, 1892;id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p170.2"> The Resurrection of our Lord</span>, New York, 1917.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p171" shownumber="no">Mozley,<span class="ital" id="ix-p171.1"> The Doctrine of the Atonement</span>, New York, 1916.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p172" shownumber="no">Orr,<span class="ital" id="ix-p172.1"> The Virgin Birth of Christ</span>, New York, 1914; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p172.2"> The Resurrection of Jesus</span>, New York. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p173" shownumber="no">Ottley,<span class="ital" id="ix-p173.1"> The Doctrine of the Incarnation</span>, London. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p174" shownumber="no">Otto,<span class="ital" id="ix-p174.1"> The Kingdom of God and the Son of Man. </span></p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p175" shownumber="no">Relton,<span class="ital" id="ix-p175.1"> A Study in Christology</span>, London, 1917. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p176" shownumber="no">Ritschl,<span class="ital" id="ix-p176.1"> Die Christliche Lehre der Rechtfertigung und Versoehnung</span>, Bonn, 1895-1903.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p177" shownumber="no">Robertson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p177.1"> Regnum Dei</span>, New York, 1901. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p178" shownumber="no">Robinson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p178.1"> Our Lord</span>, Grand Rapids, 1937. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p179" shownumber="no">Rostron,<span class="ital" id="ix-p179.1"> The Christology of St. Paul</span>, New York, 1912. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p180" shownumber="no">Sanday,<span class="ital" id="ix-p180.1"> Christologies Ancient and Modern</span>, New York, 1910.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p181" shownumber="no">Scott,<span class="ital" id="ix-p181.1"> The Kingdom and the Messiah</span>, Edinburgh, 1911. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p182" shownumber="no">Smith, D.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p182.1"> The Atonement in the Light of History and the Modern Spirit</span> New York.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p183" shownumber="no">Stafford,<span class="ital" id="ix-p183.1"> A Study of the Kingdom</span>, Nashville, 1925. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p184" shownumber="no">Stevens,<span class="ital" id="ix-p184.1"> The Christian Doctrine of Salvation</span>, New York, 1905. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p185" shownumber="no">Stevenson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p185.1"> Treatise on the Offices of Christ</span>, Edinburgh, 1845. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p186" shownumber="no">Sweet,<span class="ital" id="ix-p186.1"> The Birth and Infancy of Jesus Christ</span>, Philadelphia, 1906.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p187" shownumber="no">Swete,<span class="ital" id="ix-p187.1"> The Ascended Christ</span>, London, 1910. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p188" shownumber="no">Symington,<span class="ital" id="ix-p188.1"> The Atonement and Intercession of Jesus Christ</span>, New York, 1858. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p189" shownumber="no">Tait,<span class="ital" id="ix-p189.1"> The Heavenly Session of Our Lord</span>, London, 1912.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p190" shownumber="no">Ullmann,<span class="ital" id="ix-p190.1"> The Sinlessness of Jesus</span>, Edinburgh, 1901. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p191" shownumber="no">Vos,<span class="ital" id="ix-p191.1"> The Kingdom and the Church</span>, New York, 1903; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p191.2"> The Self-Disclosure of Jesus</span>, New York, 1926; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p191.3"> New Testament Theology</span> (mimeographed).</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p192" shownumber="no">Warfield,<span class="ital" id="ix-p192.1"> Christology and Criticism</span>, New York, 1929.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p193" shownumber="no">Wood, H. G., and others,<span class="ital" id="ix-p193.1"> The Kingdom of God in History</span> (A Symposium), New York, 1938. </p>

<h4 id="ix-p193.2">SOTERIOLOGY</h4>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p194" shownumber="no">Ames,<span class="ital" id="ix-p194.1"> The Psychology of Religious Experience</span> New York, 1910.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p195" shownumber="no">Bavinck,<span class="ital" id="ix-p195.1"> Roeping en Wedergeboorte</span>, Kampen, 1903; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p195.2"> De Zekerheid des Geloofs</span>, Kampen, 1901; ibid.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p195.3"> Algemeene Genade</span>, Kampen, 1894. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p196" shownumber="no">Berkhof,<span class="ital" id="ix-p196.1"> The Assurance of Faith</span>, Grand Rapids, 1928. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p197" shownumber="no">Brinkman,<span class="ital" id="ix-p197.1"> De Gerechtigheid Gods bij Paulus</span>, Rotterdam,1916.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p198" shownumber="no">Broomall,<span class="ital" id="ix-p198.1"> The Holy Spirit</span>, New York, 1940. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p199" shownumber="no">Buchanan,<span class="ital" id="ix-p199.1"> The Doctrine of Justification</span>, Edinburgh,1867. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p200" shownumber="no">Camfield,<span class="ital" id="ix-p200.1"> Revelation and the Holy Spirit</span>, New York, 1934.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p201" shownumber="no">Candlish,<span class="ital" id="ix-p201.1"> The Work of the Holy Spirit</span>, Edinburgh. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p202" shownumber="no">Comrie,<span class="ital" id="ix-p202.1"> Heidelbergsche Catechismus, Zondagen</span> 1-7 [Faith], Amsterdam, 1753; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p202.2"> Het A B C des Geloofs</span>-, Sneek, 1860.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p203" shownumber="no">Davies,<span class="ital" id="ix-p203.1"> Treatise on Justification</span>, Cincinnati, 1875.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p204" shownumber="no">Dee,<span class="ital" id="ix-p204.1"> Het Geloofsbegrip van Calvijn</span>, Kampen, 1918. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p205" shownumber="no">Firey,<span class="ital" id="ix-p205.1"> Infant Salvation</span>, New York, 1902.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p206" shownumber="no">Flew,<span class="ital" id="ix-p206.1"> The Idea of Perfection in Christian Theology</span> London, 1934.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p207" shownumber="no">Gennrich,<span class="ital" id="ix-p207.1"> Die Lehre von der Wiedergeburt</span>, Leipzig, 1907.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p208" shownumber="no">Girardeau,<span class="ital" id="ix-p208.1"> Discussion of Theological Questions</span> [Adoption], Richmond, Va., 1905; id., <span class="ital" id="ix-p208.2">Calvinism and Evangelical Arminianism</span> [Justification], Columbia, S. C., 1890. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p209" shownumber="no">Gore,<span class="ital" id="ix-p209.1"> The Holy Spirit and the Church</span>, New York, 1924.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p210" shownumber="no">Gunkel,<span class="ital" id="ix-p210.1"> Die Wirkungen des Heiligen Geistes</span>, Goettingen,1899.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p211" shownumber="no">Hoffmann,<span class="ital" id="ix-p211.1"> Die Lehre von der Fides Implicita</span>, Leipzig, 1903.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p212" shownumber="no">Hoyle,<span class="ital" id="ix-p212.1"> The Holy Spirit in St. Paul</span>, London, 1927. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p213" shownumber="no">Impeta,<span class="ital" id="ix-p213.1"> De Leer der Heiliging en Volmaking bij Wesley en Fletcher</span>, Leiden, 1913. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p214" shownumber="no">Inge,<span class="ital" id="ix-p214.1"> Faith and Its Psychology</span>, New York, 1910.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p215" shownumber="no">James,<span class="ital" id="ix-p215.1"> Varieties of Religious Experience</span>, New York, 1902.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p216" shownumber="no">Kerswill,<span class="ital" id="ix-p216.1"> The Old Testament Doctrine of Salvation</span>, Philadelphia,1904.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p217" shownumber="no">Koeberle,<span class="ital" id="ix-p217.1"> The Quest for Holiness</span>, New York, 1936. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p218" shownumber="no">Kuiper, H.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p218.1"> Calvin on Common Grace</span>, Goes, 1928. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p219" shownumber="no">Kuyper, A., Sr.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p219.1"> Het Werk van den Heiligen Geest</span>, Amsterdam, 1888; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p219.2"> De Gemeene Gratie</span>, Leiden, 1902; id., <span class="ital" id="ix-p219.3">Uit het Woord</span>, lste Serie, III, Amsterdam. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p220" shownumber="no">Kuyper, A., Jr.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p220.1"> De Band des Verbonds</span>, Amsterdam, 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p221" shownumber="no">Machen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p221.1"> What Is Faith?</span> New York, 1915. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p222" shownumber="no">Moffatt,<span class="ital" id="ix-p222.1"> Grace in the New Testament</span>, New York, 1932.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p223" shownumber="no">O'Brien,<span class="ital" id="ix-p223.1"> The Nature and Effects of Faith</span>, London, 1863.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p224" shownumber="no">Owen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p224.1"> On Justification</span>, Philadelphia, 1862; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p224.2"> A Discourse Concerning the Holy Spirit</span>, London, 1852. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p225" shownumber="no">Redlich,<span class="ital" id="ix-p225.1"> The Forgiveness of Sins</span>, Edinburgh, 1937. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p226" shownumber="no">Robinson, H. W.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p226.1"> The Christian Experience of the Holy Spirit</span>, New York,1928. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p227" shownumber="no">Smeaton,<span class="ital" id="ix-p227.1"> The Doctrine of the Holy Spirit</span>, Edinburgh,1889. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p228" shownumber="no">Snowden,<span class="ital" id="ix-p228.1"> The Psychology of Religion</span>, New York, 1916. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p229" shownumber="no">Stagg,<span class="ital" id="ix-p229.1"> Calvin, Twisse and Edwards on Universal Salvation of Infants</span> Richmond, Va., 1902.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p230" shownumber="no">Starbuck,<span class="ital" id="ix-p230.1"> The Psychology of Religion</span>, New York, 1911. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p231" shownumber="no">Steven,<span class="ital" id="ix-p231.1"> The Psychology of the Christian Soul</span>, New York, 1911.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p232" shownumber="no">Swete,<span class="ital" id="ix-p232.1"> The Forgiveness of Sins</span>, London, 1917; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p232.2"> The Holy Spirit in the New Testament</span>, London,1919. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p233" shownumber="no">Walden,<span class="ital" id="ix-p233.1"> The Great Meaning of Metanoia</span>, New York, 1896.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p234" shownumber="no">Warfield,<span class="ital" id="ix-p234.1"> The Plan of Salvation</span>, Grand Rapids, 1935; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p234.2"> Biblical Doctrines</span>, New York, 1929.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p235" shownumber="no">Webb,<span class="ital" id="ix-p235.1"> The Theology of Infant Salvation</span>, Richmond, Va., 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p236" shownumber="no">Wernecke, "<span class="ital" id="ix-p236.1"> Faith" in the New Testament</span>, Grand Rapids, 1934. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p237" shownumber="no"> Wiersinga,<span class="ital" id="ix-p237.1"> Gods Werk in Ons</span>, Kampen. </p>

<h4 id="ix-p237.2">ECCLESIOLOGY</h4>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p238" shownumber="no">Armstrong,<span class="ital" id="ix-p238.1"> The Doctrine of Baptisms</span>, New York,1857. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p239" shownumber="no"> Ayres,<span class="ital" id="ix-p239.1"> Christian Baptism</span> [dealing with mode], London. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p240" shownumber="no">Bannerman,<span class="ital" id="ix-p240.1"> The Church of Christ</span>, Edinburgh, 1868. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p241" shownumber="no">Barth,<span class="ital" id="ix-p241.1"> The Church and the Churches</span>, Grand Rapids,1936. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p242" shownumber="no">Biesterveld, Van Lonkhuizen en Rudolph,<span class="ital" id="ix-p242.1"> Het Diaconaat</span> Hilversum, 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p243" shownumber="no">Binnie,<span class="ital" id="ix-p243.1"> The Church</span>, Edinburgh. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p244" shownumber="no">Bouwman,<span class="ital" id="ix-p244.1"> Gereformeerd Kerkrecht</span>, Kampen, 1928; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p244.2"> De Kerkelijke Tucht</span>, Kampen, 1912;  id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p244.3"> Het Ambt der Diakenen</span>, Kampen, 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p245" shownumber="no">Campbell,<span class="ital" id="ix-p245.1"> Christian Baptism</span>, St. Louis, 1882. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p246" shownumber="no">Carson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p246.1"> Baptism in its Mode and Subjects</span>, London, 1884. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p247" shownumber="no">Diermanse,<span class="ital" id="ix-p247.1"> De Uitverkoren Kinderen Wedergeboren, Eisch des Verbonds? Eisch des Doops? </span> Den Haag, 1906, 1907; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p247.2"> Verbond en Kerk, Woord en Doop</span>, Kampen, 1909; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p247.3"> De Beschouwing der Kerkleden</span>, 's Gravenhage, 1913; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p247.4"> De Onderstelling</span>, Den Haag, 1931. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p248" shownumber="no">Dimock,<span class="ital" id="ix-p248.1"> The Doctrine of the Sacraments</span>, London, 1908. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p249" shownumber="no">Ebrard,<span class="ital" id="ix-p249.1"> Das Dogma vom Heiligen Abendmahl</span>, Frankfurt, 1845. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p250" shownumber="no">Goode,<span class="ital" id="ix-p250.1"> The Doctrine of the Church of England as to the Effects of Baptism in the Case of Infants</span>, London, 1850. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p251" shownumber="no"> Gore,<span class="ital" id="ix-p251.1"> The Holy Spirit and the Church</span>, New York, 1924.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p252" shownumber="no">Hatch,<span class="ital" id="ix-p252.1"> The Organisation of the Early Christian Churches</span> Oxford, 1881.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p253" shownumber="no">Hebert,<span class="ital" id="ix-p253.1"> The Lord's Supper: Uninspired Teaching</span>, London, 1879.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p254" shownumber="no">Heyns,<span class="ital" id="ix-p254.1"> Kybernetiek</span> (mimeographed) ; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p254.2"> Handbook for Elders and Deacons</span>, Grand Rapids, 1928.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p255" shownumber="no">Hibbard,<span class="ital" id="ix-p255.1"> Christian Baptism</span>, New York, 1842. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p256" shownumber="no">Hodge,<span class="ital" id="ix-p256.1"> Church Polity</span>, New York, 1878. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p257" shownumber="no">Hort,<span class="ital" id="ix-p257.1"> The Christian Ecclesia</span>, London, 1898. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p258" shownumber="no">Jansen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p258.1"> De Kerkenordening, Van de Diensten</span> Nijverdal, 1917; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p258.2"> De Kerkelijke Tucht</span>, Arnhem, 1913; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p258.3"> Korte Verklaring Van de Kerkenorde</span>, Kampen, 1923. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p259" shownumber="no">Kramer,<span class="ital" id="ix-p259.1"> Het Verband van Doop en Wedergeboorte</span> Breukelen, 1897.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p260" shownumber="no">Kuyper, A., Sr.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p260.1"> Tractaat van de Reformatie der Kerken</span>, Amsterdam, 1884. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p261" shownumber="no">Lambert,<span class="ital" id="ix-p261.1"> The Sacraments in the New Testament</span>, Edinburgh, 1903. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p262" shownumber="no">Lilley,<span class="ital" id="ix-p262.1"> Sacraments</span>-, New York, 1929.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p263" shownumber="no">Lindsay,<span class="ital" id="ix-p263.1"> The Church and the Ministry in the Early Centuries</span> New York. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p264" shownumber="no">Mathews,<span class="ital" id="ix-p264.1"> The Church and the Changing Order</span>, New York, 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p265" shownumber="no">McPherson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p265.1"> Presbyterianism</span>, Edinburgh; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p265.2"> The Doctrine of the Church in Scottish Theology</span>, Edinburgh, 1903. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p266" shownumber="no">McGill,<span class="ital" id="ix-p266.1"> Church Government</span>, Philadelphia, 1888. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p267" shownumber="no">Miller,<span class="ital" id="ix-p267.1"> Warrant, Nature, and Duties of the Office of the Ruling Elder</span>, Philadelphia, 1832.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p268" shownumber="no">Olthuis,<span class="ital" id="ix-p268.1"> De Doopspraktijk der Gereformeerde Kerken in Nederland</span>, Utrecht, 1908.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p269" shownumber="no">Schaff,<span class="ital" id="ix-p269.1"> Church and State in the United States</span> New York, 1888.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p270" shownumber="no">Schenck,<span class="ital" id="ix-p270.1"> The Presbyterian Doctrine of Children in the Covenant</span>, New Haven, 1940. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p271" shownumber="no">Seiss,<span class="ital" id="ix-p271.1"> The Baptist System Examined</span>, Philadelphia, 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p272" shownumber="no">Sillevis Smit,<span class="ital" id="ix-p272.1"> De Organisatie van de Christelijke Kerk</span>, Rotterdam, 1910. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p273" shownumber="no">Steen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p273.1"> De Kerk</span>, Kampen, 1936. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p274" shownumber="no">Ten Hoor,<span class="ital" id="ix-p274.1"> Afscheiding en Doleantie</span>, Leiden, 1880; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p274.2"> Afscheiding of Doleantie</span>, Leiden, 1891.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p275" shownumber="no">Van Dyke,<span class="ital" id="ix-p275.1"> The Church, Her Ministry and Sacraments</span>, Philadelphia, 1903. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p276" shownumber="no">Visser 't Hooft and Oldham,<span class="ital" id="ix-p276.1"> The Church and Its Function in Society</span>, New York, 1937. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p277" shownumber="no">Voetius,<span class="ital" id="ix-p277.1"> Verhandeling over de Zichtbare en Georganiseerde Kerk</span> Kampen, 1902; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p277.2"> Politica Ecclesiastica</span>, 1663-1676.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p278" shownumber="no">Wall,<span class="ital" id="ix-p278.1"> History of Infant Baptism</span>, Oxford, 1836.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p279" shownumber="no">White,<span class="ital" id="ix-p279.1"> Why Infants are Baptized</span>, Philadelphia,1900.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p280" shownumber="no">Wilson,<span class="ital" id="ix-p280.1"> Infant Baptism</span>, London, 1848. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p281" shownumber="no">Wilson, Wm.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p281.1"> Free Church Principles</span>, Edinburgh, 1887. </p>

<h4 id="ix-p281.2">ESCHATOLOGY</h4>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p282" shownumber="no">Addison,<span class="ital" id="ix-p282.1"> Life After Death in the Beliefs of Mankind</span>, Boston, 1932. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p283" shownumber="no">Aalders,<span class="ital" id="ix-p283.1"> Het Herstel van Israel Volgens het Oude Testament</span>, Kampen. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p284" shownumber="no">Althaus,<span class="ital" id="ix-p284.1"> Die Letzten Dinge</span>, Guetersloh, 1926. Beet,<span class="ital" id="ix-p284.2"> The Last Things</span>, London, 1905. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p285" shownumber="no">Berkhof,<span class="ital" id="ix-p285.1"> Premillennialisme</span>, Grand Rapids, 1919. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p286" shownumber="no">Berkhoff,<span class="ital" id="ix-p286.1"> De Wederkomst van Christus</span>, Kampen, 1926; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p286.2"> De Christus Regeering</span>, Kampen, 1929.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p287" shownumber="no">Berg,<span class="ital" id="ix-p287.1"> The Second Advent of Jesus, Not Premillennial</span>, Philadelphia, 1859. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p288" shownumber="no">Brookes,<span class="ital" id="ix-p288.1"> Maranatha, or the Lord Cometh</span>, New York, 1889.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p289" shownumber="no">Brown, Ch.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p289.1"> The Hope of His Coming</span>, Anderson, 1927. Brown, D.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p289.2"> The Second Advent</span>, Edinburgh, 1867. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p290" shownumber="no">Brown, W. A.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p290.1"> The Christian Hope</span>, New York, 1919.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p291" shownumber="no">Bultema,<span class="ital" id="ix-p291.1"> Maranatha</span>, Grand Rapids, 1917. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p292" shownumber="no">Case,<span class="ital" id="ix-p292.1"> The Millennial Hope</span>, Chicago, 1916. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p293" shownumber="no">Dahle,<span class="ital" id="ix-p293.1"> Life After Death</span>, Edinburgh, 1896. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p294" shownumber="no">De Bondt,<span class="ital" id="ix-p294.1"> Wat Leert het Oude Testament Aangaande het Leven na Dit Leven</span>, Kampen, 1938</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p295" shownumber="no">De Jong,<span class="ital" id="ix-p295.1"> De Komende Christus</span>, Grand Rapids, 1920. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p296" shownumber="no">Doekes,<span class="ital" id="ix-p296.1"> De Beteekenis van Israels Val</span>, Nijverdal, 1915. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p297" shownumber="no">Dijk,<span class="ital" id="ix-p297.1"> Het Rijk der Duizend Jaren</span>, Kampen. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p298" shownumber="no">Eaton,<span class="ital" id="ix-p298.1"> The Millennial Dawn Heresy</span>, Cincinnati, 1911.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p299" shownumber="no">Eckman,<span class="ital" id="ix-p299.1"> When Christ Comes Again</span>, Cincinnati,1917. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p300" shownumber="no">Frost,<span class="ital" id="ix-p300.1"> The Second Coming of Christ</span>, Grand Rapids,1934. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p301" shownumber="no">Grosheide,<span class="ital" id="ix-p301.1"> De Verwachting der Toekomst van Jezus Christus</span>, Amsterdam,1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p302" shownumber="no">Heagle,<span class="ital" id="ix-p302.1"> Do the Dead Still Live?</span> Philadelphia, 1920. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p303" shownumber="no">Hendriksen,<span class="ital" id="ix-p303.1"> More than Conquerers</span>, Grand Rapids, 1940.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p304" shownumber="no">Hepp,<span class="ital" id="ix-p304.1"> De Antichrist</span>, Kampen, 1919. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p305" shownumber="no">Hoekstra,<span class="ital" id="ix-p305.1"> Het Chiliasme</span>, Kampen, 1903. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p306" shownumber="no">Hovey,<span class="ital" id="ix-p306.1"> Eschatology</span>, Philadelphia, 1888. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p307" shownumber="no">James, A.<span class="ital" id="ix-p307.1"> J., Personal Immortality</span>, London, 1922. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p308" shownumber="no">King,<span class="ital" id="ix-p308.1"> Future Retribution</span>, New York, 1901.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p309" shownumber="no">Kliefoth,<span class="ital" id="ix-p309.1"> Christliche Eschatologie</span>, Leipzig, 1886.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p310" shownumber="no">Kuyper,<span class="ital" id="ix-p310.1"> Van de Voleinding</span>, Kampen, 1929-1931. Translation of fourth volume by J. H. De  Vries, Grand Rapids, 1935, entitled:<span class="ital" id="ix-p310.2"> The Revelation of St. John. </span></p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p311" shownumber="no">Lamont,<span class="ital" id="ix-p311.1"> Issues of Immortality</span>, New York, 1932. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p312" shownumber="no">Lawton,<span class="ital" id="ix-p312.1"> The Drama of Life After Death</span>, New York, 1932. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p313" shownumber="no">Love,<span class="ital" id="ix-p313.1"> Future Probation Examined</span>, New York, 1888.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p314" shownumber="no">Mackintosh,<span class="ital" id="ix-p314.1"> Immortality and the Future</span>, New York, 1917. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p315" shownumber="no">Mauro,<span class="ital" id="ix-p315.1"> God's Present Kingdom</span>, New York, 1919; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p315.2"> The Gospel of the Kingdom</span>, Boston, 1928; id.,<span class="ital" id="ix-p315.3"> The Hope of Israel, What Is It?</span> Boston, 1929.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p316" shownumber="no">McCown,<span class="ital" id="ix-p316.1"> The Promise of His Coming</span>, New York, 1921. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p317" shownumber="no">Merrill,<span class="ital" id="ix-p317.1"> Second Coming of Christ</span>, Cincinnati, 1879. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p318" shownumber="no">Milligan,<span class="ital" id="ix-p318.1"> The Resurrecton of the Dead</span>, Edinburgh, 1894. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p319" shownumber="no">Morris,<span class="ital" id="ix-p319.1"> Is There Salvation After Death?</span> New York, 1887.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p320" shownumber="no">Peters,<span class="ital" id="ix-p320.1"> The Theocratic Kingdom</span>, New York, 1884. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p321" shownumber="no">Pieters,<span class="ital" id="ix-p321.1"> Fairbairn Versus Fairbairn</span>, Grand Rapids, 1930. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p322" shownumber="no">Rall,<span class="ital" id="ix-p322.1"> Modern Premillennialism and the Christian Hope</span> Cincinnati, 1920.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p323" shownumber="no">Randall,<span class="ital" id="ix-p323.1"> The New Light on Immortality</span>, New York, 1920. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p324" shownumber="no">Reese,<span class="ital" id="ix-p324.1"> The Approaching Advent of Christ</span> London, 1937.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p325" shownumber="no">Riley,<span class="ital" id="ix-p325.1"> The Evolution of the Kingdom</span>, New York, 1913.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p326" shownumber="no">Rimmer,<span class="ital" id="ix-p326.1"> The Evidences for Immortality</span>, Grand Rapids, 1935. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p327" shownumber="no">Rutgers,<span class="ital" id="ix-p327.1"> Premillennialism in America</span>, Goes, 1930. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p328" shownumber="no">Salmond,<span class="ital" id="ix-p328.1"> Christian Doctrine of Immortality</span>, Edinburgh, 1907. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p329" shownumber="no">Shedd,<span class="ital" id="ix-p329.1"> Doctrine of Endless Punishment</span>, New York,1886.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p330" shownumber="no">Silver,<span class="ital" id="ix-p330.1"> The Lord's Return</span>, New York, 1914. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p331" shownumber="no">Snowden,<span class="ital" id="ix-p331.1"> The Coming of the Lord</span>, New York, 1919. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p332" shownumber="no">Swedenborg,<span class="ital" id="ix-p332.1"> Heaven and its Wonders and Hell</span>, Philadelphia, 1894. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p333" shownumber="no">Van Leeuwen, <span class="ital" id="ix-p333.1">De Parousie-Verwachting in het Nieuwe Testament</span>, Utrecht, 1898.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p334" shownumber="no">Vos,<span class="ital" id="ix-p334.1"> The Pauline Eschatology</span>, Princeton, 1930.</p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p335" shownumber="no">Waldegrave,<span class="ital" id="ix-p335.1"> New Testament Millenarianism</span>, London, 1855. </p>
<p class="hangingindent" id="ix-p336" shownumber="no">Wyngaarden,<span class="ital" id="ix-p336.1"> The Future of the Kingdom</span>, 1934. </p>
</div1>


  </ThML.body>
</ThML>
